



Produced by David Edwards and the Online Distributed
Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
produced from images generously made available by The
Internet Archive)










                                   THE
                             CATHOLIC WORLD.

                                    A
                            MONTHLY MAGAZINE
                                   OF
                     GENERAL LITERATURE AND SCIENCE.

                                VOL. XXI.
                    APRIL, 1875, TO SEPTEMBER, 1875.

                                NEW YORK:
                     THE CATHOLIC PUBLICATION HOUSE,
                            9 Warren Street.

                                  1875.

       Entered, according to Act of Congress, in the year 1875, by
                    THE CATHOLIC PUBLICATION SOCIETY,
    in the office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington, D. C.

          JOHN ROSS & CO., PRINTERS, 27 ROSE STREET, NEW YORK.




CONTENTS.


    Anne of Cleves, 403.
    Are You My Wife? 41, 162, 306, 451, 590, 742.

    Blessed Nicholas von der Flüe, 836.
    Blumisalpe, Legend of the, 285.
    Brother Philip, 384, 509.

    Calderon’s Autos Sacramentales, 32, 213.
    Cardinalate, The, 359, 472.
    Charities, Specimen, 289.
    “Chiefly Among Women,” 324.
    Craven’s The Veil Withdrawn, 18.
    Cross in the Desert, 813.

    Daniel O’Connell, 652.
    Dr. Draper, 651.
    Dom Guéranger and Solesmes, 279.
    Dominique de Gourges, 701.
    Draper’s Conflict between Religion and Science, 178.

    Early Annals of Catholicity in New Jersey, 565.
    Education, The Rights of the Church over, 721.
    Episode, An, 805.
    Exposition of the Church in View of Recent Difficulties and
      Controversies, and the Present Needs of the Age, 117.

    First Jubilee, The, 258.
    Flüe, Blessed Nicholas von der, 836.
    Fragment, A, 628.
    Future of the Russian Church, The, 61.

    German Reichstag, The Leader of the Centrum in the, 112.
    Gladstone’s Misrepresentations, 145.
    Greville and Saint-Simon, 266.
    Guéranger and Solesmes, 279.

    House of Joan of Arc, The, 697.

    Ireland in 1874, A Visit to, 765.
    Irish Tour, 497.

    Joan of Arc, The House of, 697.
    Jubilee, The First, 258.

    Kentucky Mission, Origin and Progress of the, 825.

    Ladder of Life, The, 715.
    Lady Anne of Cleves, 403.
    Leader of the Centrum in the German Reichstag, The, 112.
    Legend of Friar’s Rock, The, 780.
    Legend of the Blumisalpe, 285.
    Legend of the Rhine, A, 541.
    Lourdes, Notre Dame de, 682.
    Lourdes, On the Way to, 368, 549.

    Maria Immacolata of Bourbon, 670.
    Modern Literature of Russia, The, 250.

    New Jersey, Early Annals of Catholicity in, 565.
    Notre Dame de Lourdes, 682.

    Odd Stories--Kurdig, 139.
    O’Connell, Daniel, 652.
    Old Irish Tour, An, 497.
    On the Way to Lourdes, 368, 549.
    Origin and Progress of the Kentucky Mission, 825.

    Persecution in Switzerland, The, 577.
    Philip, Brother, 384, 509.
    Pius IX. and Mr. Gladstone’s Misrepresentations, 145.

    Religion and Science, 178.
    Religion in Our State Institutions, 1.
    Rhine, A Legend of the, 541.
    Rights of the Church over Education, The, 721.
    Roman Ritual, The, and its Chant, 415, 527, 638.
    Russia, The Modern Literature of, 250.

    Saint-Simon and Greville, 266.
    Scientific Goblin, The, 849.
    Space, 433, 614, 790.
    Specimen Charities, 289.
    Stray Leaves from a Passing Life, 68, 200, 341, 486.
    Substantial Generations, 97, 234.
    Switzerland, The Persecution in, 577.

    Tondini’s Russian Church, 61.
    Tragedy of the Temple, The, 84, 223.

    Ultraism, 669.

    Veil Withdrawn, The, 18.
    Visit to Ireland in 1874, A, 765.

    “Women, Chiefly Among,” 324.


POETRY.

    Art and Science, 637.
    Assumption, The, 848.

    Bath of the Golden Robin, The, 159.
    Blind Beggar, The, 305.

    Coffin Flowers, 589.
    Corpus Christi, 450.

    Dunluce Castle, 789.

    Happy Islands, The, 852.
    Horn Head, 485.

    I am the Door, 222.
    In Memoriam, 83.
    In Memory of Harriet Ryan Albee, 414.

    Little Bird, A, 564.

    March, 31.

    On a Charge Made after the Publication of a Volume of Poetry, 340.

    Sonnet, 700.
    Spring, 96.
    Submission, 526.

    Why Not? 548.


NEW PUBLICATIONS.

    Adhemar de Belcastel, 428.
    Archbishop, The, of Westminster’s Reply to Mr. Gladstone, 142.

    Balmes’ Criterion, 428.
    Be not Hasty in Judging, 428.
    Biographical Readings, 859.
    Boone’s Manual of the Blessed Sacrament, 570.
    Brann’s Politico-Historical Essay, etc., 859.
    Breakfast, Lunch, and Tea. 719.
    Bridgett’s Our Lady’s Dowry, 288.
    Bulla Jubilæi, 1875, 288.

    Catholic Premium-Book Library, 720.
    Child, The, 573.
    Classens’ Life of Father Bernard, 429.
    Coffin’s Caleb Krinkle, 144.
    Coleridge’s The Ministry of S. John Baptist, 143.
    Cortes’ Essays, 431.
    Craven’s The Veil Withdrawn, 143.

    Deharbe’s A Full Catechism of the Catholic Religion, 576.
    De Mille’s The Lily and the Cross, 143.
    Donnelly’s Domus Dei, 431.
    Droits de Dieu, Les, et les Idées Modernes, 855.
    Dunne’s Our Public Schools, etc., 429.
    Dupanloup’s The Child, 573.

    Eggleston’s How to make a Living, 430.
    Essays on Catholicism, Liberalism, and Socialism, 431.

    Fessler’s True and False Infallibility, 141, 428.
    First Christmas, The, 859.
    Full Catechism of the Catholic Religion, A, 576.
    Fullerton’s Life of Father Henry Young, 143.
    Fullerton’s Seven Stories, 288.
    Fullerton’s The Straw-Cutter’s Daughter, etc., 430.

    Gahan’s Sermons for Every Day in the Year, etc., 576.
    Gross’ Tract on Baptism, 428.

    Hedley’s (Bishop) The Spirit of Faith, 576, 716.
    Herbert’s Wife, 719.
    Higginson’s Brief Biographies, 429.
    History of England, Abridged, 720.

    Internal Mission of the Holy Ghost, The, 426.
    Irish World, The, 421.

    Kostka, S. Stanislaus, The Story of, 859.

    Lambing’s The Orphan’s Friend, 430.
    Life of Father Henry Young, 143.
    Life of Father Bernard, 429.
    Life of Our Lord Jesus Christ, 571.
    Lingard’s History of England, Abridged. 720.

    McQuaid’s (Bishop) Lecture on the School Question, etc., 429.
    Madame de Lavalle’s Bequest, 719.
    Manning’s (Archbishop) Reply to Mr. Gladstone, 142, 428.
    Manning’s (Archbishop) The Internal Mission of the Holy Ghost, 426.
    Manual of the Blessed Sacrament, 570.
    Mary, Star of the Sea, 427.
    Memoirs of General William T. Sherman, 856.
    Ministry of S. John Baptist, 143.
    Montagu’s (Lord Robert) Reply to Mr. Gladstone, 142.
    Moore’s and Jerdan’s Personal Reminiscences, 287.

    Newman’s Postscript to a Letter to the Duke of Norfolk, 287.

    Old Chest, The, 430.
    O’Reilly’s The Victims of the Mamertine, 576.
    Orphan’s Friend, The, 430.
    Our Lady’s Dowry, 288.
    Our Public Schools, etc., 429.
    Ozanam’s Land of the Cid, 576.

    Postscript to a Letter to the Duke of Norfolk, 287.

    Readings from the Old Testament, 288.

    Sherman, General William T., Memoirs of, 856.
    Shields’ Religion and Science, 716.
    Spalding’s Young Catholic’s Sixth Reader, 286.
    Spirit of Faith, The, 576, 716.
    Stewart’s Biographical Readings, 859.
    Story of a Convert, The, 430.
    Story of S. Stanislaus Kostka, 859.
    Straw-Cutter’s Daughter, etc., 430.
    Syllabus for the People, The, 286.

    Thiéblin’s Spain and the Spaniards, 574.
    Thompson’s Paparchy and Nationality, 428.
    Tract for the Missions, on Baptism, 428.
    True, The, and the False Infallibility of the Popes, 141, 428.
    Tyler’s Discourse on Williston, 572.

    Ullathorne’s (Bishop) Reply to Mr. Gladstone, 142.

    Vatican Decrees, The, and Civil Allegiance, 428.
    Vaughan’s (Bishop) Reply to Mr. Gladstone, 142.
    Veil Withdrawn, The, 143.
    Vercruysses’ New Practical Meditations, 718.
    Veuillot’s The Life of Our Lord Jesus Christ, 571.
    Victims of the Mamertine, The, 576.

    Wann spricht die Kirche unfehlbar? etc., 720.
    Warren’s Physical Geography, 718.
    Wenham’s Readings from the Old Testament, 288.
    Wilson’s Poems, 144.
    Whitcher’s The Story of a Convert, 430.

    Young Catholic’s Fifth and Sixth Readers, 286.
    Young Ladies’ Illustrated Reader, The, 860.




THE CATHOLIC WORLD.

VOL. XXI., No. 121.--APRIL, 1875.

Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1875, by Rev. I. T.
HECKER, in the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington, D. C.


RELIGION IN OUR STATE INSTITUTIONS.

    “No member of this State shall be disfranchised or deprived
    of any of the rights or privileges secured to any citizens
    thereof, unless by the law of the land or the judgment of his
    peers.”

    “The free exercise and enjoyment of religious profession and
    worship, without discrimination or preference, shall for ever
    be allowed in this State to all mankind.”--_Constitution of the
    State of New York_, Art. i. Sects. 1 and 3.

The first article of all the old English charters which were embodied in,
and confirmed by, the Great Charter wrung from King John, was, “First
of all, we wish the church of God to be free.” In the days when those
charters were drawn up there was no dispute as to which was “the church
of God.” The religious unity of Christendom had not yet been reformed
into a thousand contending sects, each of which was a claimant to the
title of “the church of God.” The two sections of our own constitution
quoted from above, which establish in their fullest sense the civil and
religious liberty of the individual, are taken from those grand old
charters of Catholic days. The only thing practically new in them is
the substitution, for the “church of God,” of “the free exercise and
enjoyment of religious profession and worship, without discrimination
or preference.” The reason for this alteration is plain. Civil liberty
is impossible without religious liberty. But here the founders of our
constitution were confronted with a great difficulty. To follow out
the old Catholic tradition, and grant freedom to the “church of God,”
was impossible. There were so many “churches of God,” antagonistic to
one another, that to pronounce for one was to pronounce against all
others, and so establish a state religion. This they found themselves
incompetent to do. Accordingly, leaving the title open, complete freedom
of religious profession and worship was proclaimed as being the only
thing commensurate with complete civil liberty and that large, generous,
yet withal safe freedom of the individual which forms the corner-stone of
the republic.

This really constitutes what is commonly described as the absolute
separation of church and state, on which we are never weary of
congratulating ourselves. It is not that the state ignores the church
(or churches), but that it recognizes it in the deepest sense, as a
power that has a province of its own, in the direction of human life
and thought, where the state may not enter--a province embracing
all that is covered by the word religion. This is set apart by the
state, voluntarily, not blindly; as a sacred, not as an unknown and
unrecognized, ground, which it may invade at any moment. It is set apart
for ever, and as long as the American Constitution remains what it
is, will so remain, sacred and inviolate. Men are free to believe and
worship, not only in conscience, but in person, as pleases them, and no
state official may ever say to them, “Worship thus or thus!”

Words would be wasted in dwelling on this point. There is not a member
of the state who has not the law, as it were, born in his blood. No man
ever dreams of interfering with the worship of another. Catholic church
and Jewish tabernacle and Methodist meeting-house nestle together side
by side, and their congregations come and go, year in year out, and
worship, each in its own way, without a breath of hindrance. Conversion
or perversion, as it may be called, on any side is not attempted, save
at any particular member’s good-will and pleasure. Each may possibly
entertain the pious conviction that his neighbor is going directly to
perdition, but he never dreams of disputing that neighbor’s right of
way thither. And the thought of a state official or an official of any
character coming in and directly or indirectly ordering the Catholics
to become Methodists, or the Methodists Jews, or the Jews either, is
something so preposterous that the American mind can scarcely entertain
it. Yet, strange as it is painful to confess, just such coercion of
conscience is carried on safely, daily and hourly, under our very noses,
by State or semi-state officials. Ladies and gentlemen to whom the State
has entrusted certain of its wards are in the habit of using the powers
bestowed on them to restrain “the free exercise of religious profession
and worship,” and not simply to restrain it, but to compel numbers
of those under their charge to practise a certain form of religious
profession and worship which, were they free agents, they would never
practise, and against which their conscience must revolt.

This coercion is more or less generally practised in the prisons,
hospitals, reformatories, asylums, and such like, erected by the State
for such of its members or wards as crime or accident have thrown on
its hands. Besides those mainly supported by the State, there are many
other institutions which volunteer to take some of its work off the hands
of the State, and for which due compensation is given. In short, the
majority of our public institutions will come within the scope of our
observations. And it may be as well to premise here that our observations
are intended chiefly to expose a wrong that we, as Catholics, feel keenly
and suffer from; but the arguments advanced will be of a kind that may
serve for any who suffer under a similar grievance, and who claim for
themselves or their co-religionists “the free exercise of religious
profession and worship, without discrimination or preference.” If the
violation of this article of the constitution to-day favors one side
under our ever-shifting parties and platforms, it may to-morrow favor
the other. What we demand is simply that the constitution be strictly
maintained, and not violated under any cover whatsoever.

The inmates of our institutions may be divided into two broad classes,
the criminal and the unfortunate. From the very fact of their being
inmates of the institutions both alike suffer certain deprivation of
“the rights and privileges” secured to them as citizens. In the case of
criminals those rights and privileges are forfeited. They are deprived of
personal liberty, because they are a danger instead of a support to the
State and to the commonwealth. The question that meets us here is, does
the restriction of personal involve also that of religious liberty and
worship?

Happily, there is no need to argue the matter at any length, as it has
already been pronounced upon by the State; and as regards the religious
discipline in prisons, our objection is as much against a non-application
as a misapplication of the law. “The free exercise and enjoyment of
religious profession and worship” is never debarred any man by the State.
On the contrary, it is not only enjoined, but, where possible, provided.
Even the criminal who has fallen under the supreme sentence of the law,
and whose very life is forfeit to the State, is in all cases allowed the
full and free ministry of the pastor of his church, whatever that church
may be. Nothing is allowed to interfere with their communion. Even the
ordinary discipline of the prison is broken into in favor of that power
to which, from the very first, the State set a region apart. And it
is only at the last moment of life that the minister, be he Catholic,
Methodist, or Jew, yields to the hangman.

Is it possible to think that the State, which, in the exercise of its
last and most painful prerogative, shows itself so wise, just, tender
even, and profoundly religious--so true, above all, to the letter and
the spirit of the constitution--should, when the question concerns not
the taking, but the guarding, of the criminal’s life, and, if possible,
its guidance to a better end, show itself cruel, parsimonious, and a
petty proselytizer? Does it hold that freedom of religious profession
and worship is a privilege to be granted only to that superior grade of
criminal whose deeds have fitted him before his time for another world,
and not to the lesser criminal or the unfortunate, who is condemned to
the burden of life, and who has it still within his power to make that
life a good and useful one? Such a question is its own answer. And yet
the system of religious discipline at present prevailing in many of our
prisons, as in most of our institutions, would seem to indicate that
the State exhausts its good-will over murderers, and leaves all other
inmates, in matters of religion, to the ministry of men in whom they do
not believe and creeds that they reject. A certain form of religious
discipline is provided, which is bound to do duty for all the prisoners,
Jew and Gentile, Catholic and Protestant alike. If that is not good
enough for them, they may not even do without it; for all are bound to
attend religious worship, which, in the case of Catholic prisoners at
least--for we adhere to our main point--is beyond all doubt the severest
coercion of conscience. The worst Catholic in this world would never
willingly take part in the worship of any but his own creed. It is idle
to ask whether some worship is not better for him than none at all. The
fact remains that he does not believe in any other but his own church, in
the sacredness of any other ministry but his own, in the efficacy of any
means of grace save those that come to him through the church of which he
is a member. More than this, he knows that it is a sin not to approach
the sacraments and hear Mass, and that, without frequenting them, he
cannot hope to lead a really good life. The perversion of discipline
prevents him either hearing Mass or frequenting the sacraments, often
even from seeing a priest at all.

There is no need to dwell on the fact that of all men in this world,
those who are in prison or in confinement stand most in need of constant
spiritual aid and consolation. Indeed, in many cases the term of
imprisonment would be the most favorable time to work upon their souls.
The efficacy of religion in helping to reform criminals is recognized by
the State in establishing prison chaplains, and even making attendance at
worship compulsory. But this compulsion is not intended so much as an act
of coercion of conscience as an opportunity and means of grace. As seen
in the case of murderers, the State is only too happy to grant whatever
spiritual aid it can to the criminal, without restriction of any kind.

Laying aside, then, as granted, the consideration that spiritual ministry
is of a reforming tendency in the case of those who come freely under
its influence, we pass on at once to show where in our own State we are
lamentably deficient and unjust in failing to supply that ministry.

In this State there are three State prisons: those of Sing Sing, Auburn,
and Clinton. In no one of them is there proper provision for the
spiritual needs of Catholic prisoners.

There are also in this State seven penitentiaries: Blackwell’s Island,
New York; Kings County, Staten Island, Albany, Syracuse, Rochester,
and Buffalo. Of these seven, in three only is Mass celebrated and the
sacraments administered, viz., Blackwell’s Island, Kings County, and
Albany.

The State boasts also of four reformatories: the Catholic Protectory,
Westchester County; House of Refuge, New York; Juvenile Asylum, New York;
Western House of Refuge, Rochester. Of these, at the first named only is
Mass celebrated and the sacraments administered.

This is a very lamentable state of affairs, and one that ought to
be remedied as speedily as possible. It is being remedied in many
places, for it prevails practically throughout the country. Catholics,
unfortunately, add their quota to the criminal list, as to every grade
and profession in life. But there is no reason why Catholic criminals
alone should be debarred the means which is more likely than the
punishment of the law to turn their minds and hearts to good--the
sacraments and ministry of their church. But the fault, probably, in the
particular case of prisons, consists in the fact that the grievance has
not hitherto been fairly set before the authorities in whose hands the
remedy lies. The application of the remedy, indeed, is chiefly a question
of demand, for it consists in conformity to the constitution.

The Catholic Union of New York has been at pains to collect testimony on
this subject, and the testimony is unanimous as to the advisability of
allowing Catholic prisoners free access to priests, sacraments, and Mass.
In Great Britain, where there really is a state religion, Catholic as
well as Protestant chaplains are appointed to the various prisons and
reformatories, as also to the army and navy. In answer to an inquiry from
the Catholic Union respecting the system on which British reformatories
are managed in regard to the religious instruction afforded to their
Catholic inmates, the following letter was received:

    “OFFICE OF INSPECTOR OF REFORMATORY AND INDUSTRIAL SCHOOLS, NO.
    3 DELAHAY STREET, December 7, 1874.

    “SIR: In reference to your letter of the 20th ultimo, I beg
    to forward you a copy of the last report of the Inspector of
    Reformatory and Industrial Schools.

    “You will observe that almost all the schools are
    denominational; one reformatory (the Northeastern) and one or
    two industrial schools alone receiving both Protestant and
    Roman Catholic children.

    “In these cases the children of the latter faith are visited at
    stated times by a priest of their own religion, and allowed to
    attend service on Sundays in the nearest Catholic chapel.

    “The Catholic schools are solely and entirely for Catholics.

                   “I am, sir, your faithful servant,

                                                   “WILLIAM COSTEKER.

    “DR. E. B. O’CALLAGHAN.”

In the British provinces on this continent the same system prevails.
Equal religious freedom is guaranteed in all reformatories and prisons.
In the Province of Quebec, where the French population and Catholic
religion predominate, the system is the same. Throughout Europe it
is practically the same. Rev. G. C. Wines, D.D., the accredited
representative of our government to the International Penitentiary
Congress at London, in his report to the President, February 12, 1873,
gave most powerful testimony on this point. A few extracts will suffice
for our purpose.

In England “every convict prison has its staff of ministers of religion.
For the most part, the chaplains are not permitted to have any other
occupations than those pertaining to their office, thus being left free
to devote their whole time to the improvement of the prisoners.”

In Ireland, in this respect, “the regulations and usages of the convict
prisons are substantially the same.”

In France, in the smaller departmental prisons, “some parish priest
acts as chaplain.” In the larger, as well as in all central prisons,
“the chaplain is a regular officer of the establishment, and wholely
devoted to its religious service.” “Liberty of conscience is guaranteed
to prisoners of all religions.” If the prisoner, who must declare his
faith on entering, is not a Catholic, “he is transferred, whenever it is
possible, to a prison designed to receive persons of the same religious
faith as himself.”

In Prussia “chaplains are provided for all prisons and for all religions.
They hold religious service, give religious lessons, inspect the prison
schools,” etc.

In Saxony “the religious wants of the prisoners are equally regarded and
cared for, whatever their creed may be.”

In Würtemberg “in all the prisons there are Protestant and Catholic
chaplains. For prisoners of the Jewish faith there is similar provision
for religious instruction.”

In Baden “chaplains are provided for all prisons and for all religions.”

In Austria, “in the prisons of all kinds, chaplains and religious
teachers are provided for prisoners of every sect.”

In Russia “in all the large prisons there are chapels and chaplains.
Prisoners of all the different creeds receive the offices of religion
from ministers of their own faith, even Jews and Mussulmans.”

In the Netherlands, “in all the central prisons, in all the houses of
detention, and in the greater part of the houses of arrest, the office
of chaplain and religious services are confided to one of the parish
ministers of each religion, who is named by the Minister of Justice.”

In Switzerland “ministers of the reformed and of the Catholic religion
act as chaplains in the prisons. The rabbi of the nearest locality is
invited to visit such co-religionists as are occasionally found in them.”

Is it not sad, after testimony of this kind, to come back to our own
country, and, with the law on the point so plain, to find the practice
so wretchedly deficient? In New York State Mass is celebrated in three
penitentiaries and one reformatory only, and that solitary reformatory is
denominational. It was only last year that a Mass was celebrated for the
first time in a Boston prison, and a chaplain appointed to it. In Auburn
prison a priest has only recently been allowed to visit the Catholic
prisoners, hear confessions, and preach on Sunday afternoons. But the
prisoners are compelled to attend the Protestant services also.

In the State prison at Dannemora, Clinton Co., N. Y., where a Catholic
chaplain has only of late been appointed, the prisoners hear Mass but
once a month.

In the Western House of Refuge, a branch house of an establishment in
this city, to which attention will be called presently, it was only
after a severe conflict[1] that in December of last year permission was
granted “to Catholic and all ministers” of free access to the asylum “to
conduct religious exercises, etc.,” and that Catholic children be no
longer compelled “to attend what is called ‘non-sectarian’ services.”
Such testimony might be multiplied all over the country. Indeed, as far
as our present knowledge goes, the State of Minnesota is the only State
wherein “liberty of conscience and equal rights in matters of religion to
the inmates of State institutions” have been secured, and they were only
_secured_ by an act approved March 5, 1874.

Catholics are content to believe that the main difficulty in the way
of affording Catholic instruction to the Catholic inmates of such
institutions has hitherto rested with themselves. Either they have
not sufficiently exposed the grievance they were compelled to endure,
or, more likely, such exposure was useless, inasmuch as the paucity
of priests prevented any being detailed to the special work of the
prisons and public institutions. This, too, is probably the difficulty
in the army and navy of the United States, which boast of two Catholic
chaplains in all, and those two for the army only. But the growth of
our numbers, resources, dioceses, and clergy is rapidly removing any
further obstruction on that score; so that there is no further reason
why Catholic priests should not be allowed to attend to and--always, of
course, at due times--perform the duties of their office for inmates of
institutions who, by reason of their confinement, are prevented from the
free exercise of their religious profession and worship laid down and
guaranteed in the constitution to all mankind for ever.

But over and above the strictly criminal class of inmates of our State
institutions there is another, a larger and more important class, to be
considered--that already designated as unfortunate. Most of its members,
previous to their admission into the institutions provided for their
keeping, have hovered on that extreme confine where poverty and crime
touch each other. Many of them have just crossed the line into the latter
region. Inmates of hospitals and insane asylums will come, without
further mention, within the scope of our general observations. Our
attention now centres on those inmates of State or public institutions
who, for whatever reasons, in consequence either of having no home or
inadequate protection at home, are thrown absolutely upon the hands of
the State, which is compelled in some way or other to act towards them
_in loco parentis_. In the majority of cases there is hope that they may
by proper culture and care be converted, from a threatened danger to the
State, to society at large, and to themselves, into honest, creditable,
and worthy citizens.

This class, composed of the youth of both sexes, instead of diminishing,
seems, with the spread of population, to be on the increase. From its
ranks the criminal and pauper classes, which are also on the increase,
are mainly recruited. The criminal, in the eye of the law, who has led
a good life up to manhood or womanhood, is the exception. Crime, as
representative of a class, is a growth, not a sudden aberration. It is,
then, a serious and solemn duty of the State to cut off this criminal
growth by converting the class who feed it to good at the outset. At the
very lowest estimate it is a duty of self-preservation. This being so,
there is no need to dwell on the plain fact that it is the duty of the
State to do all that in it lies to lead the lives of those unfortunates
out of the wrong path into the right. Every means at its disposal ought
to be worked to that end. There is still less reason to dwell on the
fact, acknowledged and recognized by the State and by all men, that, in
leading a life away from evil and up to good, no influence is so powerful
as that of religion. The fear of man, of the power and vengeance of the
law, is undoubtedly of great force; but it is not all, nor is it the
strongest influence that can be brought to bear on the class indicated,
not yet criminal. At the best it represents to their minds little more
than the whip of the slave-driver--something to be feared, but something
also to be hated, and to be defied and broken where defiance may for
the time seem safe. But the moral sense, the sense of right and wrong,
of good and evil, which shows law in its true guise as the benignant
representative of order rather than the terror of disorder, is a higher
guide, a truer teacher, and a more humane and lasting power.

This sense can only come with religion; and so convinced is the State
of this fact that, as usual, it calls in religion to its aid, and over
its penitentiaries and reformatories sets chaplains. It goes further
even, and, as in prisons, compels the inmates of such institutions to
attend religious services, practise religious observances, and listen to
religious instruction. There is no State reformatory--it is safe to say
no reformatory at all--without such religious worship and instruction.

This careful provision for the spiritual wants of so extensive and
important a class we of course approve to the full. The idea of a
reformatory where no religious instruction is given the inmates would be
a contradiction. The State empowers those into whose hands it entrusts
the keeping of its wards to impart religious instruction--in short, to do
everything that may tend to the mental, moral, and physical advancement
of those under their charge. All that we concede and admire. But the
State never empowers those who have the control of such institutions to
draw up laws or rules for them which should in any way contravene the law
of the State, least of all that article of the constitution wherein the
free exercise of religious profession and worship, without discrimination
or preference, is allowed to all mankind in this State for ever. But
it is just in this most important point that our public institutions
signally fail.

Here is our point: In our public institutions there is, in the case of
Catholic inmates, a constant and persistent violation of the constitution
of the State regarding freedom of religious profession and worship. In
those institutions there is a stereotyped system of religious profession
and worship, which all the inmates, of whatever creed, are compelled to
accept and observe. They have no freedom of choice in the matter. They
may not hold any religious intercourse with the pastors of their church,
save, in impossible instances, on that stereotyped plan. Practically,
they may not hold any such intercourse at all. Once they become inmates
of these institutions, the freedom of religious profession and worship
that they enjoyed, or were at liberty to enjoy, before entering, is
completely cut off, and a new form of religious profession and practice,
which, whether they like it or not, whether they believe it or not, they
are compelled to observe and accept as their religion until they leave
the institution, is substituted. No matter what name may be given this
mode of worship and instruction, whether it be called “non-sectarian”
or not, it is a monstrous violation of human conscience, not to speak
of the letter and the spirit of the constitution of this State. Its
proper name would be the “Church Established in Public Institutions.”
From the day when a Catholic child crosses the threshold of such an
institution until he leaves it, in most cases he is not allowed even to
see a Catholic clergyman; he is certainly not allowed to practise his
religion; he is not allowed to read Catholic books of instruction; he is
not allowed to hear Mass or frequent the sacraments. For him his religion
is choked up and dammed off utterly, and his soul left dry and barren.
Nor does the wrong rest even here; for all the while he is exposed
to non-Catholic influences and to a direct system of anti-Catholic
instruction and worship. He is compelled to bow to and believe in the
“Church Established” in the institution.

There is, unfortunately, a superabundance of evidence to prove all, and
more than all, our assertions. There will be occasion to use it; but
just now we content ourselves with such as is open to any citizen of the
State, and as is given in the _Reports_ of the various institutions.
Of these we select one--the oldest in the State--the Society for the
Reformation of Juvenile Delinquents, which has this year published its
fiftieth _Annual Report_. Within these fifty years of its life 15,791
children, of ages ranging from five to sixteen, of both sexes, of native
and foreign parentage, of every complexion of color and creed, have
passed through its hands. The society has, on more than one occasion,
come before the public, more especially within the last two or three
years, in anything but an enviable light. But all considerations of that
kind may pass for the present, our main inquiry being, What kind of
religion, of religious discipline, instruction, and worship, is provided
for the hundreds of children who year by year enter this asylum?

The “Circular to Parents and Guardians,” signed by the president, Mr.
Edgar Ketchum, sets forth the objects of the institution and the manner
in which it is conducted. “For your information,” says Mr. Ketchum to
the parents and guardians, “the managers deem it proper to state that
the institution is not a place of punishment nor a prison, but a reform
school, where the inmates receive such instruction and training as are
best adapted to form and perpetuate a virtuous character.” An excellent
introduction! Nothing could be better calculated to allay any scruples
that an anxious parent or guardian might entertain respecting the
absolute surrender of a child or ward to the institution, “to remain
during minority, or until discharged by the managers, as by due process
of law.” Of course the Catholic parent or guardian who receives such a
circular will have no question as to the “instruction and training best
adapted to form and (above all) _to perpetuate a virtuous character_”!
The training up of “a virtuous character” is, by all concession, mainly
a purely religious work, and the Catholic knows, believes in, and
recognizes only one true religion--that taught by the Catholic Church.
Whether he is right or wrong in that belief is not the question. It is
sufficient to know that the constitution recognizes and respects it.

A few lines lower the Catholic parent or guardian receives still
more satisfactory information on this crucial point. After a glowing
description of the life of the inmates, he is informed that they, “on the
Sabbath, are furnished with suitable religious and moral instruction.”
Just what is wanted by the child! “Sabbath,” it is true, has come to
have a Protestant sound; but as for “suitable religious and moral
instruction,” there can be no doubt that the only religious instruction
suitable for a Catholic child is that of the Catholic religion, and such
as would be given him outside in the Sunday-school by the Catholic priest
or teacher. He is just as much a Catholic inside that institution as he
was outside; and there is no more right in law or logic to force upon
him a system of non-Catholic and anti-Catholic instruction within than
without its walls. Let us see, then, of what this moral and religious
instruction consists; if Catholic, all our difficulties are over.

Turning a few pages, we come to the “Report of the Chaplain.” _The_
chaplain! The chaplain, then, is the gentleman charged with furnishing
“on the Sabbath” the “suitable religious and moral instruction” of the
Catholic child. The chaplain is the Rev. George H. Smyth, evidently
a clergyman of some denomination. His name is not to be found in the
Catholic directory. He is probably, then, not a Catholic priest. However,
his report may enlighten us.

It occupies five and a half pages, and renders an admirable account
of--the Rev. George H. Smyth, who, to judge of him by his own report,
must be an exceedingly engaging person, and above all a powerful
preacher. No doubt he is. He informs us that the children have shown,
among other good qualities, “an earnest desire to receive instruction,
both secular and religious.” That is cheering news. It is worthy of note,
too, the distinction made between the secular and religious instruction
of the children. That is just the Catholic ground. Children require
both kinds of instruction--instruction in their religion, as well as in
reading, writing, ciphering, and so on. The Catholic parent or guardian
congratulates himself, then, on the fact that his child or ward will
not be deprived of instruction in his religion while an inmate of the
institution. All satisfactory so far; but let us read Mr. Smyth a little
more.

“Often have the chaplain’s counsel and sympathy been sought by those
striving to lead a better life.” Very natural! “And as often have they
been cordially tendered.” Still more natural. Then follow some pleasing
reminiscences from the boys and girls of the chaplain’s good offices. He
even vouchsafes, almost unnecessarily, to inform us that “the children
have it impressed on them that the object of the preaching they hear is
wholly to benefit them.” It could not well be otherwise. And Mr. Smyth’s
preaching evidently does benefit them, for one of the boys remarked to
him, casually: “Chaplain, you remember that sermon you preached”--neither
the sermon nor its text, unfortunately, is given--“that was the sermon
that led me to the Saviour.” Happy lad! It is to be regretted that he
ever came back. We are farther informed of “the close attention given
by the children to the preaching of the Gospel Sabbath after Sabbath.”
“On one occasion a distinguished military gentleman and statesman--an
ambassador from one of the leading courts of Europe--was present. The
sermon was from the text _Cleanse thou me from secret faults_.” So
powerful was Mr. Smyth’s sermon on that occasion that the reverend
gentleman graciously informs us it so moved the “distinguished military
gentleman and statesman” from Europe that at the close he rose, and,
“taking the chaplain by the hand, said with great warmth of feeling,
‘That sermon was so well suited to these children they must be better for
it. I saw it made a deep impression upon them; but I rose to thank you
for myself--_it just suited me_.’”

And there the story ends, leaving us in a painful state of conjecture
respecting the state of that “distinguished military gentleman and
statesman’s” conscience. These little incidents are thrown off with a
naïve simplicity almost touching, and are noticed here as they are given,
as establishing beyond all doubt the clear and marked distinction in
nature and grace between the Rev. Mr. Smyth and the dreadful characters,
whether ambassadors or youthful pickpockets, with whom Mr. Smyth is
brought in contact. But the main question for the Catholic parent or
guardian is, What religious and moral instruction is my child to receive?
For it is clear that Mr. Smyth is not a Catholic clergyman. It seems
that Mr. Smyth being “_the_ chaplain,” there is no Catholic chaplain at
all, and no Catholic instruction at all for Catholic children. Are the
Catholic children compelled, then, to attend Mr. Smyth’s preaching and
Mr. Smyth’s worship, and nothing but Mr. Smyth, excellent man though he
be? Mr. Ketchum has already, in the name of the managers, informed us
that the institution is not “a place of punishment.” Far be it from us to
hint, however remotely, that it is a punishment even _to be compelled_
to listen to the preaching of such a man as Mr. Smyth. With the evidence
before us, how could such a thought be entertained for a moment? But at
least how is this state of things reconcilable with that solemn article
of the constitution already quoted so often?

However, let us first dismiss Mr. Smyth, after ascertaining, if possible,
what it is he does teach. Here we have it in his own words: “The truths
preached to these children [all the inmates of the institution] have been
those fundamental truths held in common by all Christian communions, and
which are adapted to the wants of the human race, and must ever be the
foundation of pure morals and good citizenship. Studious care has been
taken not to prejudice the minds of the inmates against any particular
form of religious belief.”

Here lies the essence of what we have called the “Church Established
in Public Institutions.” The favorite term for it is “non-sectarian”
teaching; and on the ground that it is “non-sectarian,” that it favors no
particular church or creed, but is equally available to all, it has thus
far been upheld and maintained in our public institutions. It is well to
expose the cant and humbug of this non-sectarianism once for all.

In the first place, no such thing exists. Let us adhere to the case in
point. Mr. Smyth, who is styled “reverend,” is the chaplain of the
society we are examining. What is the meaning of the word chaplain?
A clergyman appointed to perform certain clerical duties. Mr. Smyth
is a clergyman of some denomination or other, we care not what. He is
not a self-appointed “reverend.” He must have been brought up in some
denomination and educated in some theological school. There is no such
thing as a “reverend” of no church, of a non-sectarian church. Every
clergyman has been educated in some theological school, or at least
according to some special form of doctrine and belief, and has entered
the ministry as a teacher and preacher of that special form of belief
and doctrine. If he leaves it, he leaves it either for infidelity--in
which case he renounces his title as a clergyman--or for some other
form of doctrine and belief to which he turns, and of which, so long
as he remains in the ministry, he is the teacher, propagator, and
upholder. If he is not this, he is a humbug. To say that he is or can be
non-sectarian--that is, pledged to preach no particular form of doctrine,
or a form of doctrine equally available for all kinds of believers or
non-believers--is to talk the sheerest nonsense. In all cases a clergyman
is, by virtue of his office and profession and belief, pledged to some
form of doctrine and faith, which unless he teaches, he is either a
coward or a humbug. Anything resembling a “non-sectarian” clergyman
would be exactly like a soldier who bound himself by oath to a certain
government, yet held himself free not to defend that government, or, when
he saw it attacked, to be particularly careful not to do anything that
might possibly offend or oppose the foe. The world and his own government
would stamp such a man as the vilest of beings--a traitor. The union of
such diametrically opposite professions is a sheer impossibility.

Let us test the doctrine Mr. Smyth himself lays down here, or which
the managers of the institution have laid down for him, and show how
sectarianism, which is the one thing to be avoided, or, to use a kinder
term, denominationalism, must inevitably meet the teacher or preacher
at every turn. “The truths preached to these children have been those
fundamental truths held in common by all Christian communions.” Mr. Smyth
has told us already that “the chaplain’s counsel and sympathy are sought
by those striving to lead a better life, and with good results.” There
must, then, be questioning on the part of the children. Indeed, how could
instruction possibly go on without question, explanation, objection, and
answer? Let us begin, then, with the very foundation of his doctrine.
The first question that would occur to any one would be, What are “those
fundamental truths held in common by all _Christian_ communions”? Mr.
Smyth does not mention one. Where shall we find one? A fundamental truth
held in common by all Christian communions might at least be supposed to
be a belief in Christ. Very well. Then who is Christ? Where is Christ?
Is Christ God or man, or both? How do we come to know him? Is Christ not
God, is he not man? What is his history? Where is it found? In the Bible?
What is the Bible? Who wrote the Bible? Why must we accept it as the
Word of God? Is it the Word of God? Why “all Christian communions” are
at war right on this “fundamental truth,” from which they derive their
very name of Christian, and not a single question can be put or answered
without introducing denominationalism of some kind or another, and so at
least prejudicing the minds of the inmates against _some_ particular form
of religious belief.

Take another supposition. Surely, belief in God would be “a fundamental
truth held in common by all Christian communions.” Here we begin again.
Who is God? What is God? Where is God? Is God a spirit? Is God a trinity
or a unity? Is there only one God? Do all men believe in and worship the
same God? All at sea again at the very mention of God’s name!

Take the belief in a future. Does man end here? Does he live again
after death? Will the future be happy or miserable? Is there a hell or
a heaven? Is there an everlasting life? What is Mr. Smyth’s own opinion
on such “fundamental truth”? There is not a single “fundamental truth”
“held in common by all Christian communions.” What is truth itself?
What is a fundamental truth? Fundamental to what? Why, there is not a
single religious subject of any kind whatever that can be mentioned to
“Christian communions” of a mixed character which will not on the instant
create as many contentions as there are members of various Christian
communions present. Let Mr. Smyth try it outside, and see. Let him preach
on “fundamental truth” to any mixed congregation in New York; let there
be free discussion after, and what would be the result? It is hard to
say. But in all probability the discussion would end by the State, in
the persons of its representatives, stepping in to eject the fundamental
truths from the building.

One need not go beyond this to show how necessarily sectarian must
Mr. Smyth’s religious instruction and preaching be. But the very next
sentence bristles with direct antagonism to Catholic teaching: “What
delinquent children need is not the mere memorizing of ecclesiastical
formularies and dogmas, which they can repeat one moment and commit a
theft the next.” In plain English, Catholic children do not need to learn
their catechism, which is the compendium of Christian doctrine. What is
the use of learning it, asks Mr. Smyth, when they can “commit a theft
the next moment”? He had better go higher, and ask Christian members of
Congress how they can address such pious homilies to interesting Young
Men’s Christian Associations, while they know they have been guilty
of stealing. He might even ask the Rev. George H. Smyth how he could
reconcile it with his conscience to take an oath or make a solemn promise
on entering the ministry to preach a certain form of doctrine, and
profess to throw that oath and promise to the winds immediately on being
offered a salary to teach something quite different on Randall’s Island.
“But they do need, and it is the province of the State to teach them
that there are, _independent of any and all forms of religious faith_,
fundamental principles of eternal right, truth, and justice, which, as
members of the human family and citizens of the commonwealth, they must
learn to live by, and which are absolutely essential to their peace and
prosperity. These principles are inseparable from a sound education, and
must underlie any and every system of religion that is not a sham and a
delusion.”

That sounds very fine, and it is almost painful to be compelled to spoil
its effect. One cannot help wondering in what theological school Mr.
Smyth studied. He will insist on his “fundamental principles,” which, in
the preceding paragraph, are “common to all Christian communions,” but
have now become “independent of any and all forms of religious faith.” Is
there any “fundamental principle of _eternal_ right, truth, and justice”
which, to “members of the human family,” is “independent of any and all
forms of _religious_ faith”? Is there anything breathing of _eternity_ at
all that comes not to us in and through “religious faith”? If there be
such “fundamental principles of eternal right, truth, and justice,” in
God’s name let us know them; for they _are_ religion, and we are ready
to throw “any and all forms of religious faith” that contradict those
eternal principles to the winds. This we know: that there is not a single
“principle of _eternal_ right, truth, and justice” which, according
to Mr. Smyth, “it is the province of the State to teach delinquent
children,” that did not come to the State through some form or another
of religious faith; for in the history of this world religion has always
preceded and, in its “fundamental principles of eternal right, truth, and
justice,” instructed and informed the state. The Rev. George H. Smyth is
either an infidel or he does not know of what he is writing.

What kind of “moral and religious instruction” is likely to be imparted
to all children, and to Catholic children of all, by the Rev. George H.
Smyth, may be judged from the foregoing. Whether or not his teaching
can approve itself to a Catholic conscience may be left to the judgment
of all fair-minded men. His report is only quoted further to show how
completely subject the consciences of all these children are to him:

“The regular preaching service each Sabbath morning in the chapel has
been conducted by the chaplain, one or more of the managers usually being
present; also, the Wednesday lecture for the officers. In the supervision
of the Sabbath-schools in the afternoon he has been greatly aided by
managers Ketchum and Herder, whose valuable services have been gratefully
appreciated by the teachers and improved (_sic_) by the inmates.

“_The course of religious instruction laid down in the by-laws and
pursued in the house for fifty years has been closely adhered to._” That
is to say, for fifty years not a syllable of Catholic instruction has
been imparted to the Catholic inmates of the House of Refuge. The number
of those Catholic inmates will presently appear.

Among the gentlemen to whom the chaplain records his “obligations” for
their gratuitous services in the way of lectures are found the names of
nine Protestant clergymen and two Protestant laymen. No mention of a
Catholic. The Sabbath-school of the Reformed Church, Harlem, is thanked
for “a handsome supply” of the _Illustrated Christian Weekly_. The
librarian reports that one hundred copies of the _Youth’s Companion_
are supplied weekly, one hundred copies of the _American Messenger_,
and one hundred and twenty-five copies of the _Child’s Paper_. There is
no mention of a Catholic print of any kind. The chaplain and librarian
are under no obligations for copies of the _Young Catholic_, or the
New York _Tablet_, or the _Catholic Review_, or any one of our many
Catholic journals. They are all forbidden. Yet they are not a whit more
“sectarian” than the _Christian Weekly_. In addition, the Bible Society
is thanked “for a supply of Bibles sufficient to give each child a copy
on his discharge.”

We turn now to the report of the principal of schools. It is chiefly an
anti-Catholic tirade on the public school question, but that point may
pass for the present. What we are concerned with here is the species
of instruction to which the Catholic children of the institution are
subjected. Mr. G. H. Hallock, the principal, is almost “unco guid.”
A single passage will suffice. “But underneath all this intellectual
awakening there is a grander work to be performed; there is a moral
regeneration that can be achieved. Shall we stand upon the environs of
this moral degradation among our boys, and shrink from the duty we owe
them, because they are hardened in sin and apparently given over to evil
influences? Would He who came to save the ‘lost’ have done this?

“_Nothing can supply the place of earnest, faithful religious teaching
drawn from the Word of God._ I have the most profound convictions of the
inefficacy of all measures of reformation, except such as are based on
the Gospel and pervaded by its spirit. In vain are all devices, if the
heart and conscience, beyond all power of external restraints, are left
untouched.”

It were easy to go on quoting from Mr. Hallock, but this is more than
enough for our purpose. Catholics too believe in the efficacy of the
Word of God, but in a different manner, and to a great extent in a
different “Word” from that of Mr. Hallock. It is plain that this man
is imbued with the spirit of a missionary rather than of a principal
of schools, though how Catholic sinners would fare at his hands may be
judged from the tone of his impassioned harangue. The missionary spirit
is an excellent spirit, and we have no quarrel with Mr. Hallock or with
his burning desire to save lost souls; we only venture to intimate that
Mr. Hallock is even less the kind of teacher than Mr. Smyth is the kind
of preacher to whom we should entrust the spiritual education of our
Catholic children. By the bye, this excellent Mr. Hallock’s name occurred
during the trial of Justus Dunn for the killing of Calvert, one of the
keepers of this very institution, in 1872. One of the witnesses in that
eventful trial, a free laborer in the house, testified on oath concerning
the punishment of a certain boy there:

“_Q._ What was the boy punished for?

“_A._ For not completing his task and not doing it well. He was reported
for this to the assistant-superintendent, Mr. Hallock. He (Mr. Hallock)
carried him down to the office by his collar, and there punished him
for about fifteen minutes with his cane, so that the blood ran down the
boy’s back; then the assistant-superintendent brought him back into the
shop to his place, and there struck him on the side of the head, telling
him that if he did not do his work right, he would give him more yet.
Then the boy cried out, ‘For God’s sake! I am not able to do it.’ So he
took him by his neck, and carried him to the office, where he caned him
again. After that he brought the boy back to his place in the shop, and
treated him then as he did on the other occasion. The boy could not speak
a word after that. Then the assistant carried him down to the office,
and caned him for the third time. After this caning the boy could not
come upstairs, so they took him to the hospital, where he died in about
four days. After his death a correspondent wrote a letter to the New York
_Tribune_, stating the facts, and asking for an investigation, which took
place. The punishment of Mr. Hallock was his deposition from his office
as assistant superintendent, and installation as teacher of the school.
The eye-witnesses of the occurrence were not examined, but the whole
matter was settled in the office of the institution.”

This _en passant_. It is pleasing, after having read it, to be able to
testify to Mr. Hallock’s excellent sentiments, as shown in the extract
already given from his report, which concludes in this touching fashion:
“We are left to labor in the vineyard amid scenes sometimes discouraging,
severe, and depressing even. But, amid all, the sincere and earnest
worker may hear the voice of the Great Teacher uttering words of comfort
and consolation: _Inasmuch as ye have done it unto one of the least of
these my brethren, ye have done it unto me_.” Those words of consolation
may be read in more senses than one.

In keeping with all this is the report of the president, Mr. Edgar
Ketchum. He also has the Catholics in his eye. He is strong on the moral
training of the children and “the mild discipline of the house,” of which
the public knows sufficient to warrant our letting Mr. Ketchum’s ironical
expression pass without comment. He is “far from discouraging any effort
to extend Christian sympathy and aid to a class who so deeply need them.”
He believes that “religion, in her benign offices, will here and there
be found to touch some chord of the soul, and make it vibrate for ever
with the power of a new life.” What religion and what offices? He is of
opinion that “the interests of society and the criminal concur; and if
his crimes have banished him from all that makes life desirable, _they
need not carry with them also a sentence of exclusion from whatever a
wise Christian philanthropy can do in his behalf_.”

We quite agree with Mr. Ketchum. Christian philanthropy, as far as it
extends in this world, with the solitary exception of this country, has,
as already seen, by unanimous action, annulled, if ever it existed, that
“sentence of exclusion” which shut off the criminal, or the one whom Mr.
Ketchum designates as “the victim of society,” from the free profession
and practice of his religion, whether he were Catholic, Protestant, Jew,
or Mahometan. That same “Christian philanthropy,” as Mr. Ketchum is
pleased to call it, never peddled over by-laws, or rules, or regulations,
or “difficulties” whose plain purpose was to hinder Catholic children,
confined as are those in the house of which he is president, from seeing
their priest, hearing their Mass, going to confession, frequenting
the sacraments, and learning their catechism. The same wise Christian
philanthropy framed that section of the constitution, binding alike
on Mr. Ketchum and his charges, that was precisely framed to prevent
the “sentence of exclusion” which Mr. Ketchum so justly and with such
eloquence denounces. Christian philanthropy can do no work more worthy of
itself than allowing these unfortunate children, foremost and above all
things, the practice of that form of Christianity which, were they free
agents, they would undoubtedly follow; nor could it do anything less
worthy of itself than force upon them a system of worship and religious
training which their hearts abhor and their consciences reject. It could
not devise a more heinous offence against God and man, or a more hateful
tyranny, than that very “sentence of exclusion” which, under the “mild
discipline of the house,” prevails in the society of which Mr. Ketchum is
president.

There is nothing left now but to turn to the superintendent’s report,
in order to ascertain the number of Catholic children who, for the last
fifty years, have suffered this “sentence of exclusion” from their faith,
its duties, and its practices. We are only enabled to form a proximate
idea of their number, but sufficiently accurate to serve our purpose. The
superintendent’s figures are as follows:

    Total number of children committed in fifty years,      15,791

Of these, 12,545 were boys and 3,246 girls. The statistics for the first
four decades are more accurate than for the last, and show the relative
percentage of the children of native and foreign parents, as follows:

    1ST DECADE:
      Native,                 44 per cent.
      Foreign,                56     ”

    2D DECADE:
      Native,                 34½    ”
      Foreign,                65½    ”

    3D DECADE:
      Native,                 22     ”
      Foreign,                78     ”

    4TH DECADE:
      Native,                 14     ”
      Foreign,                86     ”

    5TH DECADE:
      Native,                 13⁶/₁₀ ”
      Foreign,                86⁴/₁₀ ”

It will be seen from this that the percentage of the entire number is
enormously in favor of the children born of foreign parents. This is
only natural from a variety of reasons, chief among which is that the
foreign-born population, including their children in the first degree,
has, within the last half-century, been vastly in excess of the native,
in this city particularly. Full statistics of the various nationalities
of the children are only given for the last year (1874). Of the 636 new
inmates received during the year, a little more than half the number
(334) were of Irish parentage; 8 were French; 3 Italian; 1 Cuban. All
of these may be safely set down as Catholics. There were 88 of German
birth, of whom one-third, following the relative statistics of their
nation, might be assumed as of the Catholic faith. The remainder, whom
we are willing to set down in bulk as non-Catholic, were divided as to
nationality as follows:

    American,          96
    African,           35
    English,           26
    Jewish,             3
    Scotch,             6
    Bohemian,           1
    Welsh,              1
    Mixed,             34

At all events, figure as we may, it may be taken as indisputable that
more than one-half the children committed during the past year to the
House of Refuge were of Catholic parents. Their average age, according to
the statistics, was thirteen years and eight months. Consequently, the
children were quite of an age to be capable of distinguishing between
creed and creed, and six years beyond the average age set down by the
Catholic Church as a proper time to begin to frequent the sacraments of
Confession and Communion, to prepare for Confirmation, and to hear Mass
on all Sundays and holydays of obligation, under pain of mortal sin.
From the moment of their entering the institution the “wise Christian
philanthropy” of which Mr. Edgar Ketchum is so eloquent an exponent has
pronounced against them a dread “sentence of exclusion” from all these
practices of faith and means of grace, as well as from instruction of any
kind whatever in their religion. And not only has this been the case,
but they have been subjected to the constant instruction of such men as
Mr. Smyth and Mr. Hallock. Multiply these children throughout the last
fifty years, as far as the relative percentage given will allow us to
form an opinion of their creeds, and the picture that presents itself of
these poor little Catholics is one that rends the heart. In the present
article we are only presenting the general features of the case, basing
our argument for the admission of a Catholic chaplain to this and all
similar institutions from which a Catholic chaplain is excluded, on the
law of the land, on the letter and spirit of the constitution, which
we Catholics love, revere, and obey. We simply set the case in its
barest aspect before our fellow-citizens, of whatever creed, and ask
for our children what they would claim for their children--the right of
instruction in the religion in which they were born; the right of the
free practice and profession of the religion in which they believe; the
right to repel all coercion, in whatever form, of conscience, whether
such coercion be called sectarian or non-sectarian. In a word, we ask
now, as at the beginning, what we ask for all, and what Catholics, where
they have the power, as already seen, freely and without compulsion, or
request even, grant to all--that great privilege and right which the
constitution of this State guarantees to all mankind: “the free exercise
and enjoyment of religious profession and worship, without discrimination
or preference.”


THE VEIL WITHDRAWN.

TRANSLATED, BY PERMISSION, FROM THE FRENCH OF MME. CRAVEN, AUTHOR OF “A
SISTER’S STORY,” “FLEURANGE,” ETC.

CONCLUDED.


XLIV.

This was the spring of the year 1859. In spite of the retirement in
which we lived and Lorenzo’s assiduous labors, which deprived him of the
leisure to read even a newspaper, the rumors of a war between Austria and
Italy had more than once reached us and excited his anxiety--excited him
as every Italian was at that period at the thought of seeing his country
delivered from the yoke of the foreigner. On this point public sentiment
was unanimous, and many people in France will now comprehend better than
they did at that time, perhaps, a cry much more sincere than many that
were uttered at a later day--the only one that came from every heart:
_Fuori i Tedeschi_. But till the time, when the realization of this wish
became possible, it was only expressed by those who labored in secret to
hasten its realization; it seemed dormant among others. Political life
was forbidden or impossible. An aimless, frivolous life was only embraced
with the more ardor, and this state of things had furnished Lorenzo with
more than one excuse at the time when he snatched at a poor one.

I had often heard him express his national and political opinions,
aspirations, and prejudices, but these points had never interested me.
I loved Italy as it was. I thought it beautiful, rich, and glorious. I
did not imagine anything could add to the charm, past and present, which
nature, poetry, religion, and history had endowed it with. From time to
time I had also heard a cry which excited my horror, and conveyed to my
mind no other idea than a monstrous national and religious crime: _Roma
capitale!_ These words alone roused me sufficiently from my indifference
to excite my indignation, and even awakened in me a feeling bordering on
repugnance to all that was then called the Italian _resorgimento_.

Stella did not, in this respect, agree with me. It was her nature to be
roused to enthusiasm by everything that gave proof of energy, courage,
and devotedness--traits that patriotism, more or less enlightened, easily
assumes the seductive appearance of, provided it is sincere. No one could
repeat with more expression than she:

                        “_Italia! Italia!_ …
    De’h fossi tu men bella! O almen piu forte!”[2]

Or the celebrated apostrophe of Dante:

    “Ahi serva Italia! di dolore ostello!”[3]

Never did her talent appear to better advantage than in the recitation
of such lines; her face would light up and her whole attitude change.
Lorenzo often smilingly said if he wished to represent the poetical
personification of Italy, he would ask Stella to become his model. As
to what concerned Rome, she did not even seem to comprehend my anxiety.
If a few madmen already began to utter that ominous cry, the most
eminent Italians of the time declared that to infringe on the majesty
of Rome, deprive her of the sovereignty which left her, in a new sense,
her ancient title of queen of the world--in short, to menace the Papacy,
“_l’unique grandeur vivante de l’Italie_,” would be to commit the crime
of treason against the world, and uncrown Italy herself.

Alas! now that the time approached for realizing some of her dreams
and the bitter deception of others, Stella, absorbed in her grief, was
indifferent to all that was occurring in her country, and did not even
remark the universal excitement around her! As for me, who had always
taken so little interest in such things, I was more unconcerned than
ever, and scarcely listened to what was said on the subject in Mme.
de Kergy’s drawing-room. I was far from suspecting I was about to be
violently roused from my state of indifference.

It was Easter Sunday. I had been to church with Lorenzo. We had fulfilled
together the sweet, sacred obligations of the day; the union of our souls
was complete, and our hearts were at once full of joy and solemnity--that
is, in complete harmony with the great festival. At our return we found
breakfast awaiting us. Ottavia, who, with a single domestic, had the
care of our house, had adorned the table with flowers, as well as with
a little more silver than usual, in order to render it somewhat more in
accordance with the importance of the day. By means of -glass
windows and some old paintings suspended on the dark wainscotting,
Lorenzo had given our little dining-room an aspect at once serious and
smiling, which greatly pleased me, and I still remember the feeling of
happiness and joy with which, on my return from church, I entered the
little room, the open window of which admitted the sun and the odor of
the jasmine twined around it. The three conditions of true happiness we
did not lack--order, peace, and industry--and we were in that cheerful
frame of mind which neither wealth, nor gratified ambition, nor any
earthly prosperity is able to impart.

We took seats at the table. Lorenzo found before him a pile of letters
and newspapers, but did not attempt to open them. He sat looking at me
with admiration and affection. I, on my part, said to myself that moral
and religious influences had not only a beneficial effect on the soul,
but on the outward appearance. Never had Lorenzo’s face worn such an
expression; never had I been so struck with the manly beauty of his
features. Our eyes met. He smiled.

“Ginevra mia!” said he, “in truth, you are right. The life we now lead
must suit you, for you grow lovelier every day.”

“Our life does not suit you less than it does me, Lorenzo,” said I. “We
are both in our element now. God be blessed! His goodness to us has
indeed been great!”

“Yes,” said he with sudden gravity, “greater a thousand times than I had
any right to expect. I am really too happy!”

This time I only laughed at his observation, and tried to divert his mind
from the remembrances awakened.

“Where are your letters from?”

He tore one open, and his face brightened.

“That looks well! Nothing could suit me better. Here is an American
who wishes a repetition of my _Sappho_, and gives me another order of
importance. And then what? He wishes to purchase the lovely _Vestal_ he
saw in my studio. Oh! as for that, _par exemple_, no!… The _Vestal_ is
mine, mine alone. No one else shall ever have it. But no matter, Ginevra;
if things go on in this way, I shall soon be swimming in money, and then
look out for the diamonds!”

He knew now, as well as I, what I thought of such things. He laughed, and
then continued to read his letters.

“This is from Lando. It is addressed to us both.”

He glanced over it:

“Their honeymoon at Paris is still deferred. They cannot leave Donna
Clelia.”

After reading for some time in silence, he said in an animated tone:

“This letter has been written some time, and it seems there were rumors
of war on all sides at the time, and poor Mariuccia, though scarcely
married to her German baron, had to set out for her new home much sooner
than she expected.”

I listened to all this with mingled indifference and distraction, when I
suddenly saw Lorenzo spring from his seat with an exclamation of so much
surprise that I was eager to know what had caused his sudden excitement.

He had just opened a newspaper, and read the great news of the day: the
Austrians had declared war against Italy. The beginning of the campaign
was at hand.

Alas! my happy Easter was instantly darkened by a heavy cloud!

Lorenzo seized his hat, and immediately went out to obtain further
details concerning the affair, leaving me sad and uneasy. Oh! how far I
lived from the agitations of great political disturbances! How incapable
I was of comprehending them! For a year my soul had been filled with
emotions as profound as they were sweet. After great sufferings, joys so
great had been accorded me that I felt a painful shrinking from the least
idea of any change. But though the power of suffering was still alive
in my heart, all anxiety was extinguished. Whatever way a dear hand is
laid on us, we never wish to thrust it away. I remained calm, therefore,
though a painful apprehension had taken possession of my mind; and when
Lorenzo returned, two hours later, I was almost prepared for what he had
to communicate.

Yes, I knew it; he wished to go. Every one in the province to which his
family belonged was to take part in this war of independence. He could
not remain away from his brothers and the other relatives and friends who
were to enroll themselves in resisting a foreign rule.

“It is the critical moment. Seconded by France, the issue cannot be
doubtful this time. You know I have abhorred conspiracies all my life,
and my long journeys have served to keep me away from those who would
perhaps have drawn me into them. But now how can you wish me to hesitate?
How can you expect me at such a time to remain inactive and tranquil?
You would be the first, I am sure, to be astonished at such a course,
and I hope to find you now both courageous and prompt to aid me, for I
must start without any delay. You understand, my poor Ginevra, before
to-morrow I must be on my way.”

He said all this and much more besides. I neither tried to remonstrate
nor reply. I felt he was obeying what he believed to be a call of duty,
and I could use no arguments to dissuade him from it. What could I do,
then? Only aid him, and bear without shrinking the unexpected blow which
had come like a sudden tempest to overthrow the edifice, but just
restored, of my calm and happy life!

The day passed sadly and rapidly away. I was occupied so busily that I
scarcely had time for reflection. But at last all I could do was done,
and Lorenzo, who had gone out in the afternoon, found, on returning at
nightfall, that everything was ready for his departure, which was to take
place that very night.

We sat down side by side on a little bench against the garden-wall.
Spring-time at Paris is lovely also, and everything was in bloom that
year on Easter Sunday. The air even in Italy could not have been sweeter
nor the sky clearer. He took my hand, and I leaned my head against his
shoulder. For some minutes my heart swelled with a thousand emotions I
was unable to express. I allowed my tears to flow in silence. Lorenzo
likewise struggled to repress the agitation he did not wish to betray, as
I saw by his trembling lips and the paleness of his face.

I wiped my eyes and raised my head.

“Lorenzo,” said I all at once, “why not take me with you, instead of
leaving me here?”

“To the war?” said he, smiling.

“No, but to Italy. You could leave me, no matter where. On the other side
of the Alps I should be near you, and … should you have need of me, I
could go to you.”

He remained thoughtful for a moment, and then said, as if speaking to
himself:

“Yes, should I be wounded, and have time to see you again, it would be a
consolation, it is true.”

We became silent again, and I awaited his decision with a beating heart.
Finally he said in a decided tone:

“No, Ginevra, it cannot be. Remain here. It is my wish. You must.”

“Why?” asked I, trying to keep back the tears that burst from my eyes at
his reply--“why? Oh! tell me why?”

“Because,” replied he firmly, “I have no idea what will be the result of
the war in Italy. Very probably it will cause insurrections everywhere,
perhaps revolutions.”

“O my God!” cried I with terror … “and you expect me not to feel any
horror at this war! Even if it had not come to overturn my poor life, how
can I help shuddering at the thought of all the misery it is about to
produce?”

“What can you expect, Ginevra? Yes, it is a serious affair. God alone
knows what it will lead to. You see Mario writes Sicily is already
a-flame. No one can tell what will take place at Naples. I should not be
easy about you anywhere but here.… No, Ginevra, you cannot go. You must
remain here. I insist upon it.”

I knew, from the tone in which he said this, it was useless to insist,
and I bent my head in silence. He gently continued, as he pressed my hand
in his:

“The war will be short, I hope, Ginevra. If I am spared, I will hasten to
resume the dear life we have led here. But if, on the contrary.…”

He stopped a moment, then, with a sudden change of manner and an accent I
shall never forget, he continued:

“But why speak to you as I should to any other woman? Why not trust to
the inward strength you possess, which has as often struck me as your
sweetness of disposition? I know now where your strength comes from, and
will speak to you without any circumlocution.”

I looked at him with surprise at this preamble, and by the soft evening
light I saw a ray of heaven in his eyes; for they beamed with faith and
humility as he uttered the following words:

“Why deceive you, Ginevra? Why not tell you I feel this is the last hour
we shall ever pass together in this world?”

I shuddered. He put his arm around my waist, and drew me towards him.

“No, do not tremble!… Listen to me.… If I feel I am to die, I have
always thought a life like mine required some other expiation besides
repentance. The happiness you have afforded me is not one, and who knows
if its continuation might not become a source of danger to me? Whereas
to die now would be something; it would be a sacrifice worthy of being
offered … and accepted.”

My head had again fallen on his shoulder, and my heart beat so rapidly I
was not able to reply.

“Look upward, Ginevra,” said he in a thrilling tone; “raise your eyes
towards the heaven you have taught me to turn to, to desire, and hope
for. Tell me we shall meet there again, and there find a happiness no
longer attended by danger!”

Yes, at such language I felt the inward strength he had spoken of assert
itself, after seeming to fail me, and this terrible, painful hour became
truly an hour of benediction.

“Lorenzo,” said I in a tone which, in spite of my tears, was firm, “yes,
you are right, a thousand times right. Yes, whatever be your fate and
mine, let us bless God!… We are happy without doubt; but our present
life, whatever its duration, is only a short prelude to that true life of
infinite happiness which awaits us. Let God do as he pleases with it and
with us! Whatever be the result, there is no adieu for us.”

Do I mean to say that the sorrow of parting was extinguished? Oh! no,
assuredly not. We tasted its bitterness to the full, but there is a
mysterious savor which is only revealed to the heart that includes all in
its sacrifice, and refuses nothing. This savor was vouchsafed us at that
supreme hour, and we knew and felt it strengthened our souls.


XLV.

The two weeks that succeeded this last evening seem, as I look back upon
them, like one long day of expectation. Nothing occurred to relieve my
constant uneasiness. A few lines from Lorenzo, written in haste as he was
on the point of starting to join the army, where the post of aide-de-camp
to one of the generals had been reserved for him, were the last direct
news I received. From that day I had no other information but what I
gathered from the newspapers, or what Mme. de Kergy and Diana obtained
from their friends, who, though most of them were unfavorable to the war
in which France was engaged, felt an ardent interest in all who took
part in it. But there were only vague, confused reports, which, far from
calming my agitation, only served to increase it.

One evening I remained later than usual at church. Prostrate before one
of the altars, which was lit up with a great number of tapers, I could
not tear myself away, though night had come and the church was almost
deserted. It was one of those dark, painful hours when the idea of
suffering fills us with fear and repugnance, and rouses every faculty
of our nature to resist it; one of those hours of mortal anguish that
no human being could support had there not been a day--a day that will
endure as long as the world--when this agony was suffered by Him who
wished us to participate in it in order that he might be for ever near us
when we, in our turn, should have to endure it for him!…

Oh! in that hour I felt in how short a time I had become attached to the
earthly happiness that had been granted me beyond the realization of my
utmost wishes. What tender, ardent sentiments! What sweet, delightful
communings already constituted a treasure in my memory which furnished
material for the most fearful sacrifice I could be called upon to make!
Alas! the human heart, even that to which God has deigned to reveal
himself, still attaches itself strongly to all it is permitted to love on
earth! But this divine love condescends to be jealous of our affection,
and it is seldom he spares such hearts the extreme sacrifices which lead
them to give themselves to him at last without any reserve!

When I left the church, I saw a crowd in the street. Several houses were
illuminated, and on all sides I heard people talking of a great victory,
the news of which had just arrived at Paris.

I returned home agitated and troubled. At what price had this victory
been won? Who had fallen in the battle? What was I to hear? And when
would the anguish that now contracted my heart be relieved … or
justified? Mme. de Kergy, who hastened to participate in my anxiety,
was unable to allay it. But our suspense was not of long duration. The
hour, awaited with the fear of an overpowering presentiment, was soon to
arrive!…

Two days after I was sitting in the evening on the little bench in the
garden where we held our last conversation, when I received the news for
which he had so strangely prepared me. His fatal prevision was realized.
He was one of the first victims of the opening attack. His name, better
known than many others, had been reported at once, and headed the list of
those who fell in the battle.

       *       *       *       *       *

No preparation, no acceptation of anticipated misfortune, no effort at
submission or courage, was now able to preserve me from a shock similar
to the one I have related the effects of at the beginning of this story.
As on that occasion, I lost all consciousness, and Ottavia carried me
senseless to my chamber. As then, likewise, I was for several days the
prey to a burning fever, which was followed by a weakness and prostration
that rendered my thoughts confused and incoherent for some time. And
finally, as when I was but fifteen years old, it was also a strong,
sudden emotion that helped restore my physical strength and the complete
use of my senses and reason.

The most profound silence reigned in the chamber where I lay, but I felt
I was surrounded by the tenderest care. At length I vaguely began to
recognize voices around me; first, that of Ottavia, which made me shed
my first tears--tears of emotion, caused by a return to the days of my
childhood. I thought myself there again. I forgot everything that had
happened since. But this partial relief restored lucidness to my mind,
and with it a clear consciousness of the misfortune that had befallen me.
Then I uttered a cry--a cry that alarmed my faithful nurse. But I had the
strength to reassure her at once.

“Let me weep, Ottavia,” said I in a low tone--“I know, … I recollect. Do
not be alarmed; I am better, Ottavia. God be blessed, I can pray!”

I said no more, and closed my eyes. But a little while after I reopened
them, and eagerly raised my head. What did I hear? Mme. de Kergy and
Diana were there. I recognized their voices, and now distinguished their
faces. But whose voice was that which had just struck my ear? Whose sweet
face was that so close to mine? Whose hand was that I felt the pressure
of?

“O my Stella!” I cried, “is it a dream, or are you really here?” …


XLVI.

No, it was not a dream. It was really Stella, who had torn herself from
her retreat, her solitude and her grief, and hastened to me as soon as
she heard of the fresh blow that had befallen me. She had not ceased
to interest herself in all that concerned my new life, and the distant
radiance of my happiness had been the only joy of her wounded heart.
Now this happiness was suddenly destroyed.… I was far away; I was in
trouble; I was alone; the state of affairs, which became more and more
serious, detained my brother in Sicily; but she was free--free, alas!
from every tie, from every duty, and she came to me as fast as the most
rapid travelling could bring her. But when she arrived, I was unable to
recognize her, and, when I now embraced her, she had watched more than a
week at my bedside!

This was the sweetest consolation--the greatest human assistance heaven
could send me, and it was a benefit to both of us. For each it was
beneficial to have the other to think of.

My health now began to improve, and my soul recovered its serenity. I
felt a solemn, profound peace, which could not be taken from me, and
which continually increased; but this did not prevent me from feeling and
saying with sincerity that everything in this world was at an end for me.

Yes, everything was at an end; but I resigned myself to my lot, and when,
after this new affliction, I found myself before the altar where I prayed
that evening with so many gloomy forebodings, I fell prostrate, as,
after some severe combat or long journey, a child falls exhausted on the
threshold of his father’s house, to which he returns never to leave it
again!

If I had then obeyed my natural impulse, I should have sought some place
of profound seclusion, where I could live, absorbed and lost in the
thought continually present to my mind since the great day of grace which
enabled me to comprehend the words: _God loves me!_ and to which I could
henceforth add: And whom alone I now love!

But it is seldom the case one’s natural inclinations can be obeyed,
especially when they incline one to a life of inaction and retirement.
There is but little repose on earth, and the more we love God, the less
it is permitted to sigh after it. I was forced to think of others at this
time, and, above all, of the dear, faithful friend who had come so far to
console me.

It did not require a long time for Mme. de Kergy to discern the heroic
greatness of Stella’s character, and still less for her maternal heart,
that had received so many blows, to sympathize with the broken heart of
Angiolina’s mother. The affection she at once conceived for Stella was so
strong that I might have been almost jealous, had it not exactly realized
one of my strongest desires, and had not Mme. de Kergy been one of those
persons whose affection is the emanation of a higher love which is
bestowed on all, without allowing that which is given to the latest comer
to diminish in the least the part of the others.

She at once perceived the remedy that would be efficacious to her wounded
heart, and what would be a beneficial effort for mine, and she threw us
both, if I may so express myself, into that ocean of charity where all
personal sufferings, trials, and considerations are forgotten, and where
peace is restored to the soul by means of the very woes one encounters
and succeeds in relieving.

No fatigue, no fear of contagion, the sight of no misery, affected
Stella’s courage; no labor wearied her patience, no application or effort
was beyond her ability and perseverance. For souls thus constituted it
is a genuine pleasure to exercise their noble faculties and be able to
satisfy the thirst for doing good that devours them. Her eyes, therefore,
soon began to brighten, her face to grow animated, and from time to time,
like a reflection of the past, her lips to expand with the charming smile
of former days.

There is a real enjoyment, little suspected by those who have not
experienced it, in these long, fatiguing rounds, the endless staircases
ascended and descended, in all these duties at once distressing and
consoling, and it can be truly affirmed that there is more certainty
of cheerfulness awaiting those who return home from these sad visits
than the happiest of those who come from some gay, brilliant assembly.
It is to the former the words of S. Francis de Sales may be addressed:
“Consider the sweetest, liveliest pleasures that ever delighted your
heart, and say if there is one worth the joy you now taste.…”

Thus peace and a certain joy returned by degrees, seconded by the
sweetest, tenderest, most beneficial sympathy. Notwithstanding the
solitude in which we lived, and the mourning I never intended to lay
aside, and which Stella continued to wear, we spent an hour every evening
at Mme. de Kergy’s, leaving when it was time for her usual circle to
assemble. This hour was a pleasant one, and she depended on seeing us,
for she began to cling to our company. Diana, far from being jealous,
declared we added to the happiness of their life; and one day, in one of
her outbursts of caressing affection, she exclaimed that the good God had
restored to her mother the two daughters she had mourned for so long.

At these words Mme. de Kergy’s eyes filled with tears, which she hastily
wiped away, and, far from contradicting her daughter, she extended her
arms and held us both in a solemn, tender, maternal embrace!


XLVII.

What Stella felt at that moment I cannot say. As for me, my feelings were
rather painful than pleasant. I comprehended only too well the sadness
that clouded the dear, venerable brow of Gilbert’s mother, and his
prolonged absence weighed on my heart like remorse. Of course I did not
consider myself the direct cause. But I could not forget that he merely
left his country for a few weeks, and it was only after his sojourn at
Naples he had taken the sudden resolution to make almost the tour of the
world--that is, a journey whose duration was prolonged from weeks into
months, and from months into years. I felt that no joy could spring up on
the hearth he had forsaken till the day he should return, and it seemed
to me I should not dare till that day arrived enjoy the peace that had
been restored to my soul.

Months passed away, however, autumn came for the second time since
Stella’s arrival, and the time fixed for her departure was approaching.
I had made up my mind to accompany her, and pass some time at Naples
with her, in order to be near my sister; but various unforeseen events
modified her plans as well as mine.

I went one day to the Hôtel de Kergy at a different hour from that I was
in the habit of going. Diana and her mother had gone out. I was told
they would return in an hour. I decided, therefore, to wait, and, as
the weather was fine, I selected a book from one of the tables of the
drawing-room, and took a seat in the garden.

While I was looking over the books, my attention was attracted to
several letters that lay on the table awaiting Mme. de Kergy’s return,
and, to my great joy, I recognized Gilbert’s writing on one of them.
His long absence had this time been rendered more painful by the
infrequency and irregularity of his letters. Whole months often elapsed
without the arrival of any. I hoped this one had brought his mother the
long-wished-for promise of his return, and cheered by this thought, I
opened my book, which soon absorbed me so completely that I forgot my
anxiety, and hope, and everything else.…

The book I held in my hand was the _Confessions of S. Augustine_, and,
opening it at hazard, the passage on which my eyes fell was this:

“What I know, not with doubt, but with certainty; what I know, O my God!
is that I love thee. Thy word penetrated my heart and suddenly caused it
to love thee. The heavens and the earth, and all they contain, do they
not cry without ceasing that all men should love thee? But he on whom it
pleaseth thee to have mercy alone can comprehend this language.”[4]

O words, ancient but ever new, like the beauty itself that inspired them!
What a flight my soul took as I read them again here in this solitude and
silence. Though centuries had passed since the day they were written,
how exactly they expressed, how faithfully they portrayed, the feelings
of my heart! How profound was the conviction I felt, in my turn, that,
without the mercy and compassion of God, I should never have been able to
understand their meaning!

I was deeply, deeply plunged in these reflections, I was lost in a world,
not of fancy, but of reality more delightful than a poet’s dreams,
when an unusual noise brought me suddenly to myself. First I heard the
rattling of a carriage which I supposed to be Mme. de Kergy’s. But I
instantly saw two or three servants rush into the court, as if some
unexpected event had occurred. Then the old gardener, at work in the
parterre before me, suddenly threw down his watering-pot and uttered a
cry of surprise and joy:

“O goodness of God!” exclaimed he in a trembling voice, “there is
Monsieur le Comte!”

“Monsieur le Comte?” cried I, hastily rising.…

But I had not time to finish my question. It was really he--Gilbert.
He was there before me, on the upper step of the flight that led to
the drawing-room. I sprang towards him with a joy I did not think of
repressing or concealing, and, extending both hands, I exclaimed:

“Oh! God be blessed a thousand times. It is you! You have returned! What
a joyful surprise for your mother! For Diana! For me also, I assure you!…”

I know not what else I was on the point of adding when, seeing him stand
motionless, and gaze at me as if incapable of answering a word, a faint
blush rose to my face. Was he surprised at such a greeting, or too much
agitated? Perchance he was deceived as to its signification. This doubt
caused a sudden embarrassment, and checked the words I was about to utter.

At length he explained his unexpected arrival. His letter ought to have
arrived before. He supposed his mother was notified.… He wished to spare
her so sudden a surprise.…

“I knew you were at Paris,” continued he, in a tone of agitation he could
not overcome. “Yes … I knew it, and hoped to see you again. But to find
you here … to see you the first, O madame! that was a happiness too great
for me to anticipate, and I cannot yet realize it is not, after all, a
dream.…”

While he was thus speaking, and gazing intently at me as if I were some
vision about to vanish from his sight, my joyful greeting and cordiality
were changed into extreme gravity of manner, and I looked away as his
eyes wandered from my face to my mourning attire, and for the first time
it occurred to me he found me free, and perhaps was now thinking of it!

Free!… Oh! if I have succeeded in describing the state of my soul since
that moment of divine light which marked the most precious day of my
life; if I have clearly expressed the aspect which the past, the present,
the future, and all the joys, all the sufferings, in short, every event
of my life, henceforth took in my eyes; if, I say, I have been able to
make myself understood, those who have read these pages are already aware
what the word _free_ now signified to me.

Free! Yes, as the bird that cleaves the air is free to return to its
cage; as the captive on his way to the shores of his native land is free
to return and resume his chains; so is the soul that has once tasted the
blessed reality of God’s love free also to return to the vain dreams of
earthly happiness.

“I would not accept it!” was the exclamation of a soul[5] that had thus
been made free, and it is neither strange nor new. No more than the bird
or the captive could it be tempted to return to the past.…

       *       *       *       *       *

I did not utter a word, however, and the thoughts that came over me like
a flood died away in the midst of the joyful excitement that put an end
to this moment of silence. Mme. de Kergy and Diana, who had been sent
for, arrived pale and agitated. But when I saw Gilbert in his mother’s
arms, I felt so happy that I entirely forgot what had occurred, and was
not even embarrassed when, as I was on the point of leaving, I heard
Diana say to her brother that her mother had two new daughters now, and
he would find three sisters instead of one in the house.

I returned home in great haste. It was the first time for a long while my
heart had felt light. I searched for Stella. She was neither in the house
nor garden. I then thought of the studio, where, in fact, I found her.
Everything remained in the same way Lorenzo had left it, and Stella, who
had a natural taste for the arts, knew enough of sculpture to devote a
part of her time to it. She had succeeded in making a bust of Angiolina
which was a good likeness, and she was at work upon it when I entered.

She looked at me with an air of surprise, for she saw something unusual
had taken place.

“Gilbert has returned!” I exclaimed, without thinking of preparing her
for the news, the effect of which I had not sufficiently foreseen.

She turned deadly pale, and her face assumed an expression I had never
known it to wear. I was utterly amazed. Rising with an abrupt movement,
she said, in an altered tone:

“Then I must go, Ginevra!” And, suddenly bursting into tears, she pressed
her lips to the little bust, the successful production of her labor and
grief.

“O my angel child!” said she, “forgive me. I know it; I ought to love no
one but thee. I have been punished, cruelly punished. And yet I am not
sure of myself, Ginevra. I do not wish to see him again. I must go.”

It was the first time in her life Stella had thus allowed me to read the
depths of her heart. It was the first time the violence of any emotion
whatever broke down the wall of reserve she knew how to maintain, and
made her rise above her natural repugnance to speak of herself. It was
the first time I was sure of the wound I had so long suspected, but which
I had never ventured to probe.

God alone knows with what emotion I listened to her. What hopes were
awakened, and what prayers rose from my heart during the moment’s silence
that followed these ardent words. She soon continued, with renewed
agitation:

“Yes, I must start at once. I had no idea he would arrive in this way
without giving me time to escape!…”

Then she added, in a hollow tone:

“Listen, Ginevra. For once I must be frank with you. He loves you, you
well know, and now there is nothing more to separate you; now you are
free.…”

But she stopped short, surprised, I think, at the way in which I looked
at her.

“She also! Is it possible?” murmured I, replying to my own thoughts.

And my eyes, that had been fixed on her, involuntarily looked upward at
the light that came from the only window in the studio. I soon said in a
calm tone:

“You are mistaken, Stella. I am not free, as you suppose. But let us not
speak of myself, I beg.…”

She listened without comprehending me, and her train of thought,
interrupted for a moment, resumed its course. I was far from wishing to
check a communicativeness her suffering heart had more need of than she
was aware. I allowed her, therefore, to pour out without hindrance all
that burdened her mind. I suffered her to give way to her unreasonable
remorse. I did not even contradict her when she repeated that her sweet
treasure would not have been ravished from her, had she been worthy of
possessing it, if no other love had been allowed to enter her heart. I
did not oppose this fancy, which was only one of those _perfidies de
l’amour_, as such imaginary wrongs have been happily styled, which, after
the occurrence of misfortune, often add to one’s actual sorrow a burden
still heavier and more difficult to bear.

On the contrary, I assured her we would start together, and she herself
should fix the day of our departure.

I only begged her not to hasten the time, and, by leaving Paris so
abruptly, afflict our excellent friend at the very hour of her joy, and
make Diana weep at the moment when she was so pleased at the restoration
of their happiness. At last I induced her to consent that things should
remain for the present as they were. She would return to the Hôtel de
Kergy, and Gilbert’s return should in no way change the way of life we
had both led for a year.


XLVIII.

Nothing, in fact, was changed. Our morning rounds, our occupations in the
afternoon, and our evening reunions, all continued the same as before.
Apparently nothing new had occurred except the satisfaction and joy
which once more brightened the fireside of our friends, and things were
pleasanter than ever, even when Gilbert was present. This time he seemed
decided to put an end to his wandering habits, and settle down with his
mother, never to leave her again.

Nothing was changed, therefore. And yet before the end of the year I
alone remained the same as the day of Gilbert’s arrival, the day when
Stella was so desirous of going away that she might not meet him again;
the day when (as I must now acknowledge) he thought if he was deceived
by the pleasure I manifested at seeing him again, if my sentiments did
not respond to his, if some new insurmountable barrier had risen in the
place of that which death had removed, then he would once more depart, he
would leave his country again, he would exile himself from his friends
… and--who knows?--perhaps die--yes, really, die of grief with a broken
heart!…

It was somewhat in these terms he spoke to me some time after his
return, and I looked at him, as I listened, with a strange sensation of
surprise. He was, however, the same he once was, the same Gilbert whose
presence had afforded me so much happiness and been such a source of
danger. There was no change in the charm of his expression, his voice,
his wit, the elevation of his mind and character, and yet … I tried, but
in vain, to recall the emotions of the past I once found so difficult to
hide, so painful to combat, so impossible to overcome. I could not revive
the dreams, the realization of which was now offered me, and convince
myself it was I who had formerly regarded such a destiny as so happy a
one and so worthy of envy--I, who now found it so far below the satisfied
ambition of my heart. Ah! it was a good thing for me to see Gilbert
again; it was well to look this earthly happiness once more in the face,
in order to estimate the extent the divine arrow had penetrated my soul
and opened the only true fountain of happiness and love!

It was not necessary to give utterance to all these thoughts. There
was something inexpressible in my eyes, my voice, my language, my
tranquillity in his presence, in my friendship itself, so evident and
sincere, which were more expressive than any words or explanation, and
by degrees produced a conviction no man can resist unless he is--which
Gilbert was not--blind, presumptuous, or inflated with pride.

    “Amor, ch’ a null’ amato amar perdona,”[6]

says our great poet. But he should have added that, if this law is not
obeyed, love dies, and he who loves soon grows weary of loving in vain.

Gilbert was not an exception to this rule. The time came for its
accomplishment in his case. The day came when he realized it. It was a
slow, gradual, insensible process, but at length I saw the budding, the
progress, the fulfilment of my dearest hopes.

The “_sang joyeux_” which once enabled my dear Stella to endure the
trials of her earlier life now diffused new joy and hope in her heart,
brought back to her eyes and lips that brilliancy of color and intensity
of expression which always reflected the emotions of her soul, and made
her once more what she was before her great grief!…

       *       *       *       *       *

I saw her at last happy--happy to a degree that had never before been
shed over her life. I should have left her then, as I intended, to see
Livia again; but, while the changes I have just referred to were taking
place around me, the heavy, unmerciful hand of spoliation had been laid
on the loved asylum where my sister hoped to find shelter for life.
Soldiers’ quarters were needed. The monastery was appropriated, the nuns
were expelled. A greater trial than exile was inflicted on their innocent
lives--a trial as severe as death, and, in fact, was death to several
of their number. They were separated from one another; the aged were
received in pious families; some were dispersed in various convents of
their order still spared in Italy by the act of suppression; others,
again, sought refuge in countries not then affected by the tempest which,
from time to time, rises against the church and strikes the religious
orders as lightning always strikes the highest summits, without ever
succeeding in annihilating one, but leaving to the persecutors the stigma
of crime and the shame of defeat!

My sister Livia was of the number of these holy exiles. A convent of her
order, not far from Paris, was assigned her as a refuge, and it was there
I had the joy of once more seeing her calm, angelic face. How much we
had to say to each other! How truly united we now were! What a pleasure
to again find her attentive ear, her faithful heart, and her courageous,
artless soul! But when, after the long account I had to give her, I
asked her to tell me, in her turn, all she had suffered from the sudden,
violent invasion, the profanation of a place so dear and sacred to her,
and the necessity of bidding farewell to the cloudless heavens, the
beautiful mountains, and all the enchanting scenery of the country she
loved, she smiled:

“What difference does all that make?” said she. “Only one thing is sad:
that they who have wronged us should have done us this injury. As for us,
the only real privation there is they could not inflict on us; the only
true exile they could not impose. _Domini est terra et plenitudo ejus!_
No human power can separate us from him!”

       *       *       *       *       *

And now there remains but little to add.

The happiness of this world, such as it is, in all its fulness and its
insufficiency, Gilbert and Stella possess. Diana also, without being
obliged to leave her mother, has found a husband worthy of her and the
dear sanctuary of all that is noble. Mario makes frequent journeys
to France to visit his sisters, each in her retreat, and his former
asperities seem to grow less and less. Lando and Teresina also come to
see me every time they visit Paris, and I always find in him a sincere
and faithful friend; but it is very difficult to convince him I shall
never marry again, and still more so to make him understand how I can be
happy.

Happy!… Nevertheless I am, and truly so! I am happier than I ever
imagined I could be on earth; and if life sometimes seems long, I have
never found it sad. Order, peace, activity, salutary friendship, a divine
hope, leave nothing to be desired, and like one[7] who, still young,
likewise arrived through suffering to the clearest light, I said, in my
turn: Nothing is wanting, for “_I believe, I love, and I wait!_”

Yes, I await the plenitude of that happiness, a single ray of which
sufficed to transform my whole life. I bless God for having unveiled the
profound mystery of my heart, and enabled me to solve its enigma, and
to understand with the same clearness all the aspirations of the soul
which constitute here below the glory and torment of our nature! I render
thanks to him for being able to comprehend and believe with assurance
that the reason why we are so insatiable for knowledge, for repose, for
happiness, for love, for security, and for so many other blessings never
found on earth to the extent they are longed for, is because “we are all
created _solely_ for what we cannot here possess!”[8]


MARCH.

    Ready is Time beneath her brooding wing
      To break with swelling life the brown earth’s sheath;
      And fondly do we watch th’ expectant heath
    For bloom and song the days are ripe to bring.
    Our heralds even vaunt the birth of spring,
      While yet, alack! the winter’s blatant breath
      Defieth trust, and coldly shadoweth
    With drifts of gray each hope that dares to sing.
    Yet still we know, as deepest shades foretell
      The coming of the morn, and lovely sheen
      Of living sunshine lies asleep between
    A snow-bound crust and joys that upward well,
    So, sure of triumph o’er the yielding shell,
      Are ecstasies of song and matchless green!


CALDERON’S AUTOS SACRAMENTALES.

I.


I.

Villemain, in his _Lectures on the Literature of the Middle Ages_, while
speaking of the Mysteries performed by the _Confrères de la Passion_,
exclaims, “It is to be regretted that at that period the French language
was not more fully developed, and that there was no man of genius among
the _Confrères de la Passion_.

“The subject was admirable: imagine a theatre, which the faith of the
people made the supplement of their worship; conceive religion, with the
sublimity of its dogmas, put on the stage before convinced spectators,
then a poet of powerful imagination, able to use freely all these grand
things, not reduced to the necessity of stealing a few tears from us
by feigned adventures, but striking our souls with the authority of
an apostle and the impassioned magic of an artist, addressing what we
believe and feel, and making us shed real tears over subjects which seem
not only true, but divine--certainly nothing would have been greater than
this poetry!”

Such a poet and such poetry Spain possesses in Calderon and his _Autos
Sacramentales_, which may be regarded as the completion and perfection of
the religious drama of the Middle Ages.

Of the modern nations which possess a national popular drama, Spain is
the only one where, by the side of the secular stage, there has grown up
and been carefully cultivated a religious drama; for this, in England,
died with the Mysteries and Moralities.

The persistence of the religious drama in Spain is to be explained by the
peculiar history of the nation, especially the struggle of centuries with
the Moors--a continual crusade fought on their own soil, which inflamed
to the highest degree the religious enthusiasm of the people.

The Reformation awoke but a feeble echo in Spain, and only served to
quicken the masses to greater devotion to doctrines they saw threatened
from abroad.

The two dogmas of the church which have always been especially
dear to the Spaniards are those of the Immaculate Conception and
Transubstantiation.

The former, as more spiritual and impalpable, remained an article of
faith, deep and fervent, only represented to the senses by the mystic
masterpieces of Murillo. Transubstantiation, on the other hand, was
embodied in a host of symbols and ceremonies, and had devoted to it the
most gorgeous of all the festivals of the church--that of Corpus Christi,
established in 1263 by Urban IV., formally promulgated by Clement V. in
1311, and fifty years later amplified and rendered more magnificent by
John XXIII.

This festival was introduced into Spain during the reign of Alfonso X.,
and its celebration there, as elsewhere, was accompanied by dramatic
representations.

In Barcelona, even earlier than 1314, part of the celebration consisted
in a procession of giants and ridiculous figures--a feature, as we shall
afterwards see, always retained.

It seems established that from the earliest date dramatic representations
of some kind always accompanied the celebration of Corpus Christi.

These plays, constituting a distinct and peculiar class, received a name
of their own, and were at first called _autos_ (from the Latin _actus_,
applied to any particularly solemn act, as _autos-da-fe_), and later more
specifically _autos sacramentales_.

We infer from occasional notices that these religious dramas were
performed without interruption during the XIVth and XVth centuries. What
their character was during this period we do not know, as we possess none
earlier than the beginning of the XVIth century.

From this last-named date notices of the secular drama begin to multiply,
and we may form some idea of the early _autos sacramentales_ from the
productions of Juan de la Enzina and Gil Vicente.

The former wrote a number of religious dialogues or plays, which he
named _eclogues_, probably because the majority of the characters were
shepherds.

One of these eclogues is on the Nativity, another on the Passion and
Death of our Redeemer.

The word _auto_, as we have stated, was applied to any solemn act, and
did not at first refer exclusively to the Corpus Christi dramas, so we
find among the works of Gil Vicente an _auto_ for Christmas, and one on
the subject of S. Martin, which, although having nothing to do with the
mystery of the Eucharist, was performed during the celebration of Corpus
Christi in 1504, in the vestibule of the Church of Las Caldas in Lisbon.

These sacred plays were undoubtedly at first represented only in the
churches by the ecclesiastics; they were not allowed to be performed in
villages (where they could not be supervised by the higher clergy), or
for the sake of money.

The abuses in their performance, or perhaps the large number of
spectators, afterwards led to their representation in the open air.

The stage (as in the beginning of the classical drama) was a wagon, on
which the scenery was arranged; when the _autos_ became more elaborate,
three of these wagons or _carros_ were united.

We may see what these primitive stages were like in _Don Quixote_ (part
ii. chap. 11), the hero of which encountered upon the highway one of
these perambulating theatres:

    “He who guided the mules and served for carter was a frightful
    demon. The cart was uncovered and opened to the sky, without
    awning or wicker sides.

    “The first figure that presented itself to Don Quixote’s eyes
    was that of Death itself with a human visage. Close by him sat
    an angel with painted wings. On one side stood an emperor, with
    a crown, seemingly of gold, on his head.

    “At Death’s feet sat the god called Cupid, not blindfolded, but
    with his bow, quiver, and arrows.

    “There was also a knight completely armed, excepting only that
    he had no morion or casque, but a hat with a large plume of
    feathers of divers colors.

    “With these came other persons, differing both in habits and
    countenances.”

To Don Quixote’s question as to who they were the carter replied:

    “Sir, we are strollers belonging to Angulo el Malo’s company.
    This morning, which is the octave of Corpus Christi, we have
    been performing, in a village on the other side of yon hill, a
    piece representing the Cortes or Parliament of Death, and this
    evening we are to play it again in that village just before us;
    which being so near, to save ourselves the trouble of dressing
    and undressing, we come in the clothes we are to act our parts
    in.”

The character of the _autos_ changed with the improvements in their
representation; from mere dialogues they developed into short farces, the
object of which was to amuse while instructing.

Like the secular plays, they opened with a prologue, called the _loa_
(from _loar_, to praise), in which the object of the play was shadowed
forth and the indulgence of the spectators demanded.

The _loa_ was originally spoken by one person, and was also called
_argumento_ or _introito_, and was in the same metre as the _auto_;
although it consisted sometimes of a few lines in prose, as in the _auto_
of _The Gifts which Adam sent to Our Lady by S. Lazarus_:

    “LOA.--Here is recited an _auto_ which treats of a letter
    and gifts which our father Adam sent by S. Lazarus to the
    illustrious Virgin, Our Lady, supplicating her to consent to
    the Passion of our Lord Jesus Christ.

    “In order that the _auto_ may be easily heard, the accustomed
    silence is requested.”

Still later the _loa_ was extended into a short, independent play,
sometimes with no reference to the _auto_ it preceded, and frequently by
another author.

During Lope de Vega’s reign over the Spanish stage an _entremes_ or farce
was inserted between the _loa_ and _auto_.

These _entremeses_ are gay interludes, terminating with singing and
dancing, and having no connection with the solemn play which follows,
unless, as is the case with one of Lope de Vega’s (_Muestra de los
Carros_), to ridicule the whole manner of celebrating the festival.

With the increase in wealth and cultivation the performance of the
_autos_ had lost much of its primitive simplicity, and was attended with
lavish magnificence.

The proper representation of these truly national works was deemed of
such importance that each city had a committee, or _junta del corpus_,
consisting of the _corregidor_ and two _regidores_ of the town, and a
secretary.

This committee in Madrid was presided over by a member of the royal
council (_Consejo y Cámera real_) who was successively called the
“commissary, protector, and superintendent of the festivals of the Most
Holy Sacrament.”

The president of the junta was armed with extraordinary powers,
frequently exercised against refractory actors. It was his duty to
provide everything necessary for the festival: plays, actors, cars,
masked figures for the processions, decorations for the streets, etc.

As there were at that date no permanent theatrical companies in the
cities, it was necessary to engage actors for the _autos_ early in the
year, in order that there might be no risk of failure, and to afford the
necessary time for rehearsals.

The necessary preparations having been made, and an early Mass
celebrated, a solemn procession took place, followed by the
representation of the _autos_ in the open air.

The best descriptions of the manner of representation are found in the
travels of two persons who witnessed the performance of the _autos_ in
Madrid in 1654 and 1679.

The second of the two was the Comtesse d’Aulnoy, whose account of her
travels was always a popular book.[9] The writer was a gossipy French
lady, who disseminated through Europe many groundless scandals about the
Spanish court.

Here are her own words about the _autos_:

    “As soon as the Holy Sacrament is gone back to the church
    everybody goes home to eat, that they may be at the _autos_,
    which are certain kinds of tragedies upon religious subjects,
    and are oddly enough contrived and managed; they are acted
    either in the court or street of each president of a council,
    to whom it is due.

    “The king goes there, and all the persons of quality receive
    tickets overnight to go there; so that we were invited, and I
    was amazed to see them light up abundance of flambeaux, whilst
    the sun beat full upon the comedians’ heads, and melted the wax
    like butter. They acted the most impertinent piece that I ever
    saw in my days.… These _autos_ last for a month.…”

We shall see why the flippant Parisian was shocked when we consider the
subject-matter of these plays.

The whole ceremony is much better described by the earlier traveller,
Aarseus de Somerdyck, a Dutchman, who was in Madrid in 1654.

His account is so long and minute that we have been obliged to condense
it slightly:

    “The day opened with a procession, headed by a crowd of
    musicians and Biscayans with tambourines and castanets; then
    followed many dancers in gay dresses, who sprang about and
    danced as gayly as though they were celebrating the carnival.

    “The king attended Mass at Santa Maria, near the palace, and
    after the service came out of the church bearing a candle in
    his hand.

    “The repository containing the Host occupied the first place;
    then came the grandees and different councils.

    “At the head of the procession were several gigantic figures
    made of pasteboard, and moved by persons concealed within. They
    were of various designs, and some looked frightful enough; all
    represented women, except the first, which consisted only of
    an immense painted head borne by a very short man, so that the
    whole looked like a dwarf with a giant’s head.

    “There were besides two similar figures representing a Moorish
    and an Ethiopian giant, and a monster called the _tarrasca_.

    “This is an enormous serpent, with a huge belly, long tail,
    short feet, crooked claws, threatening eyes, powerful,
    distended jaws, and entire body covered with scales.

    “Those who are concealed within cause it to writhe so that its
    tail often knocks off the unwary bystanders’ hats, and greatly
    terrifies the peasants.

    “In the afternoon, at five o’clock, the _autos_ were performed.
    These are religious plays, between which comic interludes are
    given to heighten and spice the solemnity of the performance.

    “The theatrical companies, of which there are two in Madrid,
    close their theatres during this time, and for a month perform
    nothing but such religious plays, which take place in the open
    air, on platforms built in the streets.

    “The actors are obliged to play every day before the house
    of one of the presidents of the various councils. The first
    representation is before the palace, where a platform with a
    canopy is erected for their majesties.

    “At the foot of this canopy is the theatre; around the stage
    are little painted houses on wheels, from which the actors
    enter, and whither they retire at the end of every scene.

    “Before the performance the dancers and grotesque figures amuse
    the public.

    “During the representation lights were burned, although it
    was day and in the open air, while generally other plays are
    performed in the theatres in the daytime without any artificial
    light.”

Sufficient has now been said in regard to the history and mode of
representation of the _autos_ to enable us to understand the essentially
popular character of these plays--a fact very necessary to be kept in
mind, and which will explain, if not palliate, the many abuses which
gradually were introduced, and which led to their suppression by a royal
decree in 1765.

They have, however, left traces of their influence in plays still
performed on Corpus Christi in some parts of Spain, and in the sacred
plays represented during Lent in all the large cities.[10]


II.

We have seen the primitive condition of the _autos_ when Lope de Vega
took possession of the stage. He did for the _autos_ what he did for the
secular drama: with his consummate knowledge of the stage and the public,
he took the materials already at hand, and remodelled them to the shape
most likely to interest and win applause.

The superior poetic genius of Calderon found in the _autos_ the field for
its noblest exercise, and it is now admitted that he carried the secular
as well as the religious drama to the highest perfection of which it was
capable.

It is perhaps not generally remembered that Calderon, in common with many
men of letters of that day, took Holy Orders when he was fifty-one years
old (1651), and was appointed chaplain at Toledo.

This, however, involved his absence from court, and twelve years later he
was made chaplain of honor to the king; other ecclesiastical dignities
were added, which he enjoyed until the close of his life, in 1681.

Mr. Ticknor (_Hist. of Span. Lit._, ii. 351, note) says: “It seems
probable that Calderon wrote no plays expressly for the public stage
after he became a priest in 1651, confining himself to _autos_ and to
_comedias_ for the court, which last, however, were at once transferred
to the theatres of the capital.”

For nearly thirty-seven years he furnished Madrid, Toledo, Granada, and
Seville with _autos_, and devoted to them all the energies of his matured
mind.

Solis, the historian, in one of his letters says: “Our friend Don Pedro
Calderon is just dead, and went off, as they say the swan does, singing;
for he did all he could, even when he was in immediate danger, to finish
the second _auto_ for Corpus Christi.

“But, after all, he completed only a little more than half of it, and it
has been finished in some way or other by Don Melchior de Leon.”

Calderon evidently based his claim for recognition as a great poet on his
_autos_; of all his plays he deemed them alone worthy of his revision for
publication, and he would now without doubt be judged by them, had not
the spirit in which and for which they were written passed away, to a
great extent, with the author.

Before we examine his _autos_ in detail we must notice some of their most
striking peculiarities, and see in what respect they differ from plays on
religious subjects.

The intensely religious character of the Spaniards led, at an early date,
to their consecrating to religion every form of literature; and plays
based on the lives of the saints, miracles of the Blessed Virgin, etc.,
are very common.

Almost every prominent doctrine of the church is illustrated in the
dramas of Lope de Vega and Calderon.

Their plays differ not at all in _form_ from those of a purely secular
character; they are all in three acts, in verse.

The _autos_, on the other hand, are restricted to the celebration of one
doctrine--that of Transubstantiation; consist of but one act (that one,
however, nearly equal in length to the three of many secular plays); and
were performed on but one solemn occasion--the festival of Corpus Christi.

The most striking peculiarity of the _autos_ consists in the introduction
of _allegorical_ characters, which, however, were not first brought
before the public in _autos_, nor was their use restricted to that class
of dramatic compositions.

The custom of personifying inanimate objects is as old as the imagination
of man, and has been constantly used since the days of Job and David; and
Cervantes, in his interesting drama, _Numancia_, introduces “a maiden who
represents Spain,” and “the river Douro.”

It is not easy to see how the introduction of allegorical personages
could have been avoided.

The leading idea in all the _autos_ is the redemption of the human soul
by the personal sacrifice of the Son of God--that great gift of himself
to us embodied in the doctrine of the Real Presence.

The plot is the history of the soul from its innocence in Eden to its
temptation and fall, and subsequent salvation; the characters are the
soul itself, represented by human nature, the Spouse Christ, the tempter,
the senses, the various virtues and vices.

These constitute but a small minority of the whole number, as will be
seen by the following list, which might easily be expanded:

God Almighty as Father, King, or Prince, Omnipotence, Wisdom, Divine
Love, Grace, Righteousness, Mercy; Christ as the Good Shepherd,
Crusader, etc., the Bridegroom--_i.e._, Christ, who woos his bride, the
Church--the Virgin, the Devil or Lucifer, Shadow as a symbol of guilt,
Sin, Man as Mankind, the Soul, Understanding, Will, Free-will, Care,
Zeal, Pride, Envy, Vanity, Thought (generally, from its fickleness, as
Clown), Ignorance, Foolishness, Hope, Comfort, the Church, the written
and natural Law, Idolatry, Judaism or the Synagogue, the Alcoran or
Mahometanism, Heresy, Apostasy, Atheism, the Seven Sacraments, the World,
the four quarters of the globe, Nature, Light symbol of Grace, Darkness,
Sleep, Dreams, Death, Time, the Seasons and Days, the various divisions
of the world, the four elements, the plants (especially the wheat and
vine, as furnishing the elements for the Holy Eucharist), the five
Senses, the Patriarchs, Prophets, Apostles and their symbols (the eagle
of John, etc.), and the Angels and Archangels.

Anachronisms are not regarded, and the prophets and apostles appear side
by side on the same stage.

Although the plot was essentially always the same, its development and
treatment were infinitely varied.

The protagonist is Man, but under the most diversified forms, from
abstract man to Psyche or Eurydice, representatives of the human soul.

The essential idea of man’s fall and salvation is entwined with all
manner of subjects taken from history, mythology, and romance.

The first contributed _The Conversion of Constantine_, the second a
host of plays like _The Divine Jason_, _Cupid and Psyche_, _Andromeda
and Perseus_, _The Divine Orpheus_, _The True God Pan_, _The Sacred
Parnassus_, _The Sorceries of Sin_ (Ulysses and Circe). Romance
contributed the fables of _Charlemagne and the Twelve Peers_, etc.

It is almost needless to say that the most important sources of the
_autos_ are the Scriptures and Biblical traditions.

Examples of the former are: _The Brazen Serpent_, _The First and Second
Isaac_, _Baltassar’s Feast_, _The Vineyard of the Lord_ (S. Matt. xx. 1).
_Gedeon’s Fleece_, _The Faithful Shepherd_, _The Order of Melchisedech_,
_Ruth’s Gleaning_, etc.

An interesting example of the use of tradition is the _auto_ of _The Tree
of the Best Fruit_ (_El Arbol del Mejor Fruto_), embodying the legend
that the cross on which Christ died was produced from three seeds of
the tree of the forbidden fruit planted on the grave of Adam. There yet
remains a large number of plays which cannot be referred to any of the
above-mentioned classes.

These are the inventions of the poet’s brain, some of them but a recast
of secular plays already popular;[11] others are fresh creations, and
are among the most interesting of the autos. Among these are _The Great
Theatre of the World_ (_El Gran Teatro del Mundo_, partly translated by
Dean Trench), _The Poison and the Antidote_ (_El Veneno y la Triaca_,
partly translated by Mr. MacCarthy), etc.

No idea, however, can be formed of the _autos_ from a mere statement of
their form and subjects; they must be examined in their entirety, and the
reader must transport himself back to the spirit of the times in which
they were written.

What this spirit was, and how the _autos_ are to be regarded, is
admirably expressed by Schack, in his _History of the Spanish Drama_
(iii. p. 251), and of which Mr. MacCarthy has given the following
spirited translation:

    “Posterity cannot fail to participate in the admiration of
    the XVIIth century for this particular kind of poetry, when
    it shall possess sufficient self-denial to transplant itself
    out of the totally different circle of contemporary ideas into
    the intuition of the world, and the mode of representing it,
    from which this entire species of drama has sprung. He who
    can in this way penetrate deeply into the spirit of a past
    century will see the wonderful creations of Calderon’s _autos_
    rise before him, with sentiments somewhat akin to those of
    the astronomer, who turns his far-reaching telescope upon the
    heavens, and, as he scans the mighty spaces, sees the milky-way
    separating into suns, and from the fathomless depths of the
    universe new worlds of inconceivable splendor rising up.

    “Or let me use another illustration: he may feel like the
    voyager who, having traversed the wide waste of waters, steps
    upon a new region of the earth, where he is surrounded by
    unknown and wonderful forms--a region which speaks to him in
    the mysterious voices of its forests and its streams, and where
    other species of beings, of a nature different from any he has
    known, look out wonderingly at him from their strange eyes.

    “Indeed, like to such a region these poems hem us round.

    “A temple opens before us, in which, as in the Holy Graal
    Temple of Titurel, the Eternal Word is represented symbolically
    to the senses.

    “At the entrance the breath as if of the Spirit of eternity
    blows upon us, and a holy auroral splendor, like the brightness
    of the Divinity, fills the consecrated dome.

    “In the centre, as the central point of all being and of all
    history, stands the cross, on which the infinite Spirit has
    sacrificed himself from his infinite benevolence towards man.

    “At the foot of this sublime symbol stands the poet as
    hierophant and prophet, who explains the pictures upon the
    walls, and the dumb language of the tendrils, and the flowers
    that are twining round the columns, and the melodious tones
    which reverberate in music from the vault.

    “He waves his magic wand, and the halls of the temple extend
    themselves through the immeasurable; a perspective of pillars
    spreads from century to century up to the dark gray era of the
    past, where first the fountain of life gushes up, and where
    suns and stars, coming forth from the womb of nothing, begin
    their course.

    “And the inspired seer unveils the secrets of creation, showing
    to us the breath of God moving over the chaos, as he separates
    the solid earth from the waters, points out to the moon and
    the stars their orbits, and commands the elements whither they
    should fly and what they are to seek.

    “We feel ourselves folded in the wings of the Spirit of the
    universe, and we hear the choral jubilation of the new-born
    suns, as they solemnly enter on their appointed paths,
    proclaiming the glory of the Eternal.

    “From the dusky night, which conceals the source of all things,
    we see the procession of peoples, through the ever-renewing
    and decaying generations of men, following that star that led
    the wise men from the east, and advancing in their pilgrimage
    towards the place of promise; but beyond, irradiated by the
    splendors of redemption and reconciliation, lies the future,
    with its countless generations of beings yet unborn.

    “And the sacred poet points all round to the illimitable,
    beyond the boundaries of time out into eternity, shows the
    relation of all things, created and uncreated, to the symbol of
    grace, and how all nations look up to Him in worship.

    “The universe in its thousand-fold phenomena, with the chorus
    of all its myriad voices, becomes one sublime psalm to the
    praise of the Most Holy; heaven and earth lay their gifts at
    his feet; the stars, ‘the never-fading flowers of heaven,’ and
    the flowers, ‘the transitory stars of earth,’ must pay him
    tribute; day and night, light and darkness, lie worshipping
    before him in the dust, and the mind of man opens before him
    its most hidden depths, in order that all its thoughts and
    feelings may become transfigured in the vision of the Eternal.

    “This is the spirit that breathes from the _autos_ of Calderon
    upon him who can comprehend them in the sense meant by the
    poet.”

With this preparation we can now examine in detail one or two of the
most characteristic of Calderon’s _autos_, selecting from the class of
Scriptural subjects _Baltassar’s Feast_, and from the large class of
allegories invented by the poet the _Painter of his own Dishonor_, which
is of especial interest, as being the counterpart of a secular play.

NOTE.--Those who desire a better acquaintance with Calderon’s AUTOS than
they can form from the above very imperfect sketch and analyses will find
the following list of authorities of interest:

The _autos_ were not collected and published until some time after the
poet’s death, in 1717, six vols. 4to, and 1759-60, six vols., also in
4to, both editions somewhat difficult to find. In 1865 thirteen were
published in Riradeneyra’s collection of Spanish authors in a work
entitled _Autos Sacramentales desde su origen hasta fines del siglo_
XVII., with an historical introduction by the collector, Don Eduardo G.
Pedroso.

The _autos_ have never been republished, in the original, out of Spain.

The enthusiasm in regard to the Spanish drama aroused by Schlegel’s
_Lectures_, early in this century, bore fruit in a large number of
excellent German translations of the most celebrated secular plays.

The _autos_ were neglected until 1829, when Cardinal Diepenbrock
published a translation of _Life is a Dream_ (counterpart of comedy of
same name); this was followed in 1846-53 by _Geistliche Schauspiele_, von
Calderon (Stuttgart, two volumes), containing eleven _autos_ translated
by J. von Eichendorff, a writer well known in other walks of literature.
In this translation the original metre is preserved, and they are in
every way worthy of admiration.

In 1856 Ludwig Braunfels published two volumes of translations from Lope
de Vega, Iviso de Molina, and Calderon; the second volume contains the
_auto_ of _Baltassar’s Feast_.

In 1855 Dr. Franz Lorinser, an ecclesiastic of Regensburg, an
enthusiastic admirer of Spanish literature, began the translation of
all of Calderon’s _autos_, and has now translated some sixty-two of the
seventy-two into German trochaic verse, without any attempt to preserve
the original _asonante_.

This translation is accompanied by valuable notes and explanations,
very necessary for the non-Catholic reader, as these plays are in many
instances crowded with scholastic theology.

If the Germans, with their genius for translation, shrank from the labor
necessary for the faithful rendering of the _autos_, the English, with
their more unmanageable language, may well be excused for suffering these
remarkable plays to remain so long unknown.

Occasional notices and analyses had been given in literary histories
and periodicals, but the first attempt at a metrical translation was by
Dean Trench in his admirable little work (reprinted in New York 1856) on
Calderon, which contains a partial translation of _The Great Theatre of
the World_.

It is needless to say it is beautifully done, and on the whole is the
most poetical translation yet made into English.

The first complete translation of an _auto_ was made by Mr. D. F.
MacCarthy, published in 1861 in London, under the title, _Three Dramas of
Calderon, from the Spanish_, and containing the _auto_, _The Sorceries of
Sin_.

The author was favorably known for his previous labors in this field,
which had won him the gratitude of all interested in Spanish literature.

He has since published a volume, entitled _Mysteries of Corpus Christi_,
Dublin and London, 1867, containing complete translations of _Baltassar’s
Feast_, _The Divine Philothea_, and several scenes from _The Poison and
the Antidote_, in all of which the original metre is strictly preserved.
There are few translations in the English language where similar
difficulties have been so triumphantly overcome.

The _asonante_ can never be naturalized in English verse, but Mr.
MacCarthy has done much to reconcile us to it, and make its introduction
in Spanish translations useful, if not indispensably necessary.

It may be doubted whether in any other way a correct idea of the Spanish
drama can be conveyed to those unacquainted with the Spanish language.

TO BE CONCLUDED NEXT MONTH.


ARE YOU MY WIFE?

BY THE AUTHOR OF “A SALON IN PARIS BEFORE THE WAR,” “NUMBER THIRTEEN,”
“PIUS VI.,” ETC.

CHAPTER III.

THE LILIES.

My first step was to pay a visit to the Préfecture de Police. I was
received with the utmost courtesy and many half-spoken, half-intimated
expressions of sympathy that were touching and unexpected. All that my
sensitive pride most shrank from in my misfortune was ignored with a
tact and delicacy that were both soothing and encouraging. I had felt
more than once, when exposing my miserable and extraordinary situation
to the police agents at home, that it required the strongest effort of
professional gravity on their part not to burst out laughing in my face.
No such struggle was to be seen in the countenances of the French police.
They listened with interest, real or feigned, to my story, and invited
what confidence I had to give by the matter-of-fact simplicity with which
they set to work to put the few pieces of the puzzle together, and to
endeavor to read some clew in them. I returned to my hotel after this
interview more cheered and sanguine than the incident itself reasonably
warranted.

It was scarcely two years since I had been in Paris, yet since that
first visit I found it singularly altered. I could not say exactly how;
but it was not the same. It had struck me when I first saw it as the
place above all I had yet seen for a man to build an earthly paradise
to himself; the air was full of brightness, redolent of light-hearted
pleasure; the aspect of the city, the looks of the people, suggested
at every point the Epicurean motto, “Eat, drink, and be merry; for
to-morrow we die!” But it was different now. Perhaps the change was in
me; in the world within rather than the world without. The chord that had
formerly answered to the touch of the vivacious gayety of the place was
broken. I walked through the streets and boulevards now with wide-open,
disenchanted eyes, critical and unsympathetic. Things that had passed
unheeded before appeared to me with a new meaning. What struck me as most
disagreeable, and with a sense of complete novelty, was the widespread
popularity which the devil apparently enjoyed amongst the Parisians. If,
as we may assume, the popularity of a name implies the popularity of the
person or the idea that it represents, it is difficult to exaggerate
the esteem and favor which Satan commands in the city of bonnets and
revolutions. You can scarcely pass through any of the thoroughfares
without seeing his name emblazoned on a shop-window, or his figure carved
or bedaubed in some grotesque or hideous guise on a sign-board inviting
you to enter and spend your money under his patronage. There are devils
dancing and devils grinning, devils fat and devils lean, a _diable
vert_ and a _diable rose_, a _bon diable_, a _diable à quatre_--every
conceivable shape and color of _diable_, in fact, in the range of the
infernal hierarchy. He stands as high in favor with the literary guild
as with the shop-keepers; books and plays are called after him; his name
is a household word in the press; it gives salt to the editor’s joke and
point to his epigram. The devil is welcome everywhere, and everywhere
set up as a sign not to be contradicted. Angels, on the other hand, are
at a discount. Now and then you chance upon some honorable mention of
the _ange gardien_, but the rare exception only serves as a contrast
which vindicates the overwhelming popularity of the fallen brethren.
Is this the outcome of the promise, “I will give my angels charge over
thee”? And does Beelzebub’s protection of his Parisian votaries justify
their interpretation of the message? I was revolving some such vague
conjectures in my mind as I turned listlessly into the Rue de Rivoli, and
saw a cab driving in under the _porte cochère_ of my hotel. I quickened
my pace, for I fancied I recognized a familiar face in the distance. The
glass door at the foot of the stairs was still swinging, as I pushed it
before me, and heard a voice calling my name on the first floor. “Hollo!
here you are, uncle!” I cried, and, clearing the intervening stair at
three bounds, I seized the admiral by both arms, as he stood with his
hand still on my bell-rope.

“Come in, my boy. Come in,” he said, and pushed in without turning his
head towards me.

“You have bad news!” I said. I read it in his averted face and the
subdued gravity of his greeting. He deliberately took off his hat and
flung his light travelling surtout on the sofa before he answered me.
Then he came up and laid his hand on my shoulder. “Yes, very bad news, my
poor fellow; but you will bear up like a man. It doesn’t all end here,
you know.”

“My God! It is all over, then! She is dead!” I cried.

He made a gesture that signified assent, and pressed me down into a
chair. I do not remember what followed.

I recollect his standing over me, and whispering words into my ear that
came like the sound of my mother’s voice--words that fell like balm upon
my burning brain, and silenced, as if by some physical force, other
words that were quivering on my tongue. I never knew or cared before
whether my uncle believed in anything, whether he had faith in God or in
devils; but as he spoke to me then I remember feeling a kind of awe in
his presence--awe mingled with surprise and a sense of peace and comfort;
it was as if I had drifted unawares into a haven. He never left me for a
moment till the hard dumbness was melted, and I let my head drop on his
shoulder, and wept.…

He told me that the day I left Dieppe news came of the wreck of a
fishing-smack having floated into the harbor of St. Valéry. The police
were on the alert, and went at once to inspect the boat. It had capsized,
and had drifted ashore, after knocking about on the high seas no one
could say how many days; but it bore the name of a fisherman who had been
seen in the neighborhood about ten days before. There was nothing in the
boat, of course, that could give any indication as to what had become of
its owner or how the accident had occurred. About two days later the body
of a woman was washed ashore almost on the same spot; the police, still
on the _qui-vive_, went down to see it, and at once telegraphed for my
uncle. The body was lying at the _morgue_ of St. Valéry; it was already
decomposing, but the work of destruction was not far enough advanced
to admit of doubt as to the identity. The long, dark hair was dripping
with the slime of the sea, and tangled like a piece of sea-weed; but the
admiral’s eyes had no sooner glanced at the face than he recognized it.

I can write this after an interval of many months, but even now I cannot
recall it without feeling, almost as vividly as at the moment, the
pang that seemed to cleave my very life in two. My uncle had said: “It
doesn’t all end here!” and those words, I believe, preserved me from
suicide. They kept singing, not in my ears, but within me, and seemed
to be coming out of all the common sounds that were jarring and dinning
outside. The very ticking of the clock seemed to repeat them: “It does
not all end here.” It did, so far as my happiness went. I was a blighted
man for ever. The dark mystery of the flight and the death would never
be solved on this side of the grave. The sea had given up its dead, but
the dead could not speak. I was alone henceforth with a secret that no
fellow-creature could unriddle for me. I must bear the burden of my
broken life, without any hope of alleviation, to the end. The name of De
Winton was safe now. No blot would come upon it through the follies or
sins of her who had beamed like a sweet, sudden star upon my path, and
then gone out, leaving me in the lonely darkness. Why should I chronicle
my days any more? They can never be anything to me but a dreary routine
of comings and goings, without joy or hope to brighten them. The sun
has gone down. The stone has fallen to the bottom; the trembling of the
circles, as they quiver upon the surface of the water, soon passes away,
and then all is still and stagnant again.

       *       *       *       *       *

So Clide lapses into silence again, and for a time we lose sight of him.
He is roving about the world, doing his best to kill pain by excitement,
and soothe memory with hope; and all this while a new life is getting
ready for him, growing and blossoming, and patiently waiting for the
summer-time, when the fruit shall be ripe for him to come and gather
it. The spot which this new life has chosen for its home is suggestive
rather of the past than of the future. A tiny brick cottage, with a
thatched roof overgrown with mosses green and brown, a quaint remnant
of old-fashioned life, a bit of picturesque long ago forgotten on the
skirts of the red-tiled, gas-lit, prosperous modern town of Dullerton.
The little brick box, smothered in its lichens and mosses, was called The
Lilies from a band of those majestic flowers that dwelt on either side
of the garden-wicket, like guardian angels of the place, looking out in
serene beauty on the world without.

It was a nine days’ wonder to Dullerton when the Comte Raymond de la
Bourbonais and his daughter Franceline came from over the seas, and took
up their abode at The Lilies with a French _bonne_ called Angélique.
There was the usual amount of guessing amongst the gossips as to the why
and the wherefore a foreign nobleman should have selected such a place
as Dullerton, when, as was affirmed by those who knew all about it, he
had all the world before him to choose from. The only person who could
have thrown light upon the mystery was Sir Simon Harness, the lord of the
manor of Dullerton. But Sir Simon was not considerate enough to do so;
he was even so perverse as to set the gossips on an entirely wrong scent
for some time; and it was not until the count and his daughter had become
familiar objects to the neighborhood that the reason of their presence
there transpired.

The De la Bourbonais were an old race of royalists whose archives could
have furnished novels for a generation without mixing one line of fiction
with volumes of fact. They had fought in every Crusade, and won spurs on
every battle-field wherever a French prince fought; they had produced
heroes and heroines in the centuries when such things were expected from
the feudal lords of France, and they had furnished scapegraces without
end when these latter became the fashion; they had quarrelled with their
neighbors, stormed their castles, and misbehaved themselves generally
like other noble families of their time, dividing their days between
war and gallantry so evenly that it was often difficult to say where
the one began and where the other ended, or which led to which. This
was in the good old times. Then the Revolution came. The territorial
importance of the De la Bourbonais was considerably diminished at this
date; but the prestige of the old name, with the deeds of prowess that
had once made it a power in the camp and a glory at the court, was as
great as ever, and marked its owners amongst the earliest victims of the
Terror. They gave their full contingent of blue blood to the guillotine,
and what lands remained to them were confiscated to the Regenerators
of France. The then head of the house, the father of the present Comte
Raymond, died in England under the roof of his friend, Sir Alexander
Harness, father of Sir Simon. The son that was born to him in exile
returned to France at the Restoration, and grew up in solitude in the
old castle that had withstood so many storms, and--thanks partly to its
dilapidated condition, but chiefly to the fidelity and courage of an old
dependent--had been rescued from the general plunder, and left unmolested
for the young master who came back to claim it. Comte Raymond lived there
in learned isolation, sharing the ancestral ruin with a population of
owls, who pursued their meditations in one wing while he pondered over
philosophical problems in another. It was a dreary abode, except for the
owls; a desolate wreck of ancient splendor and power. We may poetize
over ruins, and clothe them with what pathos we will, the beauty of
decay is but the beauty of death; the ivy that flourishes on the grave
of a glorious past is but a harvest of death; it looks beautiful in the
weird silver shadows of the moon, but it shrinks before the blaze of day
that lights up the proud castle on the hill, standing in its strength of
battlement and tower and flying buttress, and smiling a grim, granite
smile upon the gray wreck in the valley down below, and wondering what
poets and night-birds can find in its crumbling arches and gaping windows
to haunt them so fanatically. Raymond de la Bourbonais was contented in
his weather-beaten old fortress, and would probably never have dreamed
of leaving it or changing the owl-like routine of his life, if it had
not entered into the mind of his grand-aunt, the only remaining lady of
his name, to marry him. Raymond started when the subject was broached,
but, with the matter-of-fact coolness of a Frenchman in such things,
he quickly recovered his composure, and observed blandly to the aged
countess: “You are right, my aunt. It had not occurred to me, I confess;
but now that you mention it, I see it would be desirable.” And having
so far arranged his marriage, Raymond, satisfied with his own consent,
relapsed into his books, and begged that he might hear no more about it
until his grand-aunt had found him a wife.

The family of the De Xaintriacs lived near him, and happened just at
this moment to have a daughter to marry; so the old countess ordered out
the lumbering family coach that had taken her great-grandmother to the
_fêtes_ given for Marie de Medicis on her marriage, and rumbled over the
roads to the Château de Xaintriac. This ancestral hall was about on a par
with its neighbor, De la Bourbonais, as regarded external preservation,
but the similarity between the two houses ended here. The De Xaintriacs’
origin was lost in the pre-historic ages before the Deluge, the earliest
record of its existence being a curious iron casket preserved in the
archives, in which, it was said, the family papers had been rescued from
the Flood by one of Noe’s daughters-in-law, “herself a demoiselle de
Xaintriac”--so ran the legend. The papers had been destroyed in a fire
many centuries before the Christian era, but happily the casket had been
saved. It was to a daughter of this illustrious house that the Comtesse
de la Bourbonais offered her grand-nephew in marriage. Armengarde de
Xaintriac was twenty-five years of age, and shadowed forth in character
and person the finest characteristics of her mystic genealogy. In
addition to the antediluvian casket, she brought the husband, who was
exactly double her age, a dower of beauty and sweetness that surpassed
even the lofty pride that was her birthright. For four years they were
as happy as two sojourners in this valley of tears could well be. Then
the young wife began to droop, perishing away slowly before her husband’s
eyes. “Take her to the Nile for a year; there is just a chance that
that may save her,” said the doctors. Armengarde did not hear the cruel
verdict; and when Raymond came back one day after a short absence,
and announced that he had come in unexpectedly to a sum of money, and
proposed their spending the winter in Egypt, she clapped her hands,
and made ready for the journey. Raymond watched her delight like one
transfigured, while she, suspecting nothing, took his happiness as a
certain pledge of restored health, and went singing about the house, as
if the promise were already fulfilled. The whole place revived in a new
atmosphere of hope and security; the low ceilings, festooned with the
cobwebs of a generation, grew alight with cheerfulness, and the sunbeams
streamed more freely through the dingy panes of the deep windows. It was
as if some stray ray from heaven had crept into the old keep, lighting it
up with a brightness not of earth.

Angélique was to go with them in charge of little Franceline, their only
child.

It was on a mild autumn morning, early in October, that the travellers
set out on their journey toward the Pyramids. The birds were singing,
though the sun was hiding behind the clouds; but as Raymond de la
Bourbonais looked back from the gate to catch a last glimpse of the home
that was no longer his, the clouds suddenly parted, and the sun burst
out in a stream of golden light, painting the old keep with shadows of
pathetic beauty, and investing it with a charm he had never seen there
before. Sacrifice, like passion, has its hour of rapture, its crisis
of mysterious pain, when the soul vibrates between agony and ecstasy.
A sunbeam lighted upon Raymond’s head, encircling it like a halo. “My
Raymond, you look like an angel; see, there is a glory round your head!”
cried Armengarde.

“It is because I am so happy!” replied her husband, with a radiant smile.
“We are going to the land of the sun, where my pale rose will grow red
again.”

The sacrifice was not quite in vain. She was spared to him four years;
then she died, and he laid her to rest under the shade of the great
Pyramid, where they told him that Abraham and Sara were sleeping.

When M. de la Bourbonais set foot on his native soil again, he was a
beggar. The money he had received for the castle and the small bit of
land belonging to it had just sufficed to keep up the happy delusion
with Armengarde to the last, and bring him and Franceline and Angélique
home; the three landed at Marseilles with sufficient money to keep them
for one month, using it economically. Meantime the count must look
for employment, trusting to Providence rather than to man. Providence
did not fail him. Help was at hand in the shape of one of those kind
dispensations that we call lucky chances, and which are oftener found in
the track of chivalrous souls than misanthropes like to own. About three
days after his arrival in the busy mercantile port, M. de la Bourbonais
was walking along the quay, indulging in sad reveries with the vacant air
and listless gait now habitual to him, when a hand was laid brusquely
on his shoulder. “As I live, here is the man,” cried Sir Simon Harness.
“My dear fellow, you’ve turned up in the very nick of time; but where in
heaven’s name have you turned up from?”

The question was soon answered. Sir Simon gave his heartiest sympathy,
and then told his friend the meaning of the joyous exclamation which had
greeted him.

“You remember a villain of the name of Roy--a notary who played old Harry
with some property in shares and so forth that your father entrusted to
him just before he fled to England? You must have heard him tell the
story many a time, poor fellow. Well, this worthy, as big a blackguard
as ever cheated the hangman of his fee, was called up to his reckoning
about a month ago, and, by way, I suppose, of putting things straight
a bit before he handed in his books, the rascal put a codicil to his
will, restoring to you what little remained of the money he swindled
your poor father out of. It is placed in bank shares--a mere pittance
of the original amount; but it will keep your head above water just
for the present, and meantime we must look about for something for you
at headquarters--some stick at the court or a nice little government
appointment. The executors have been advertising for you in every
direction; it’s the luckiest chance, my just meeting you in time to give
the good news.”

Raymond was thankful for the timely legacy, but he would not hear of a
stir being made to secure him either stick or place. He was too proud
to sue at the hands of the regicide’s son who now sat on the throne of
Louis Seize, nor would he accept an appointment at his court, supposing
it offered unsolicited. The pittance that, in Sir Simon’s opinion, was
enough to keep him above water for a time, would be, with his simple
habits, enough to float him for the rest of his life. He had, it is true,
visions of future wealth for Franceline, but these were to be realized
by the product of his own brain, not by the pay of a courtly sinecure
or government office. Finding him inexorable on this point, Sir Simon
ceased to urge it. He was confident that a life of poverty and obscurity
would soon bring down the rigid royalist’s pride; but meantime where was
he to live? Raymond had no idea. Life in a town was odious to him. He
wanted the green fields and quiet of the country for his studies; but
where was he to seek them now? He had no mind to go back to Lorraine
and live like a peasant, in sight of his old home, that was now in the
hands of strangers. “Come to England,” said Sir Simon. “You’ll stay with
me until you grow home-sick and want to leave us. No one will interfere
with you; you can work away at your books, and be as much of a hermit
as you like.” Raymond accepted the invitation, but only till he should
find some suitable little home for himself in the neighborhood. Within
a week he found himself installed at Dullerton Court with Franceline
and Angélique. The same rooms that his father had occupied sixty years
before, and which had ever since been called the count’s apartments,
were prepared for them. They were very little changed by the wear and
tear of the intervening half-century. There were the same costly hangings
to the gilt four-post beds, the same grim, straight-nosed Queen Elizabeth
staring down from the tapestry, out of her stiff ruffles, on one wall;
the same faded David and Goliath wrestling on the other. Raymond could
remember how the pictures used to fascinate him when he was a tiny boy,
and how he used to lie awake in his little bed and keep his eyes fixed
on them, and wonder whether the two would ever leave off fighting, and
if the big man would not jump up suddenly and knock down the little man,
who was sticking something into his chest. Outside the house the scene
was just as unchanged; the lake was in the same place, and it seemed
as if the swan that was sitting in the middle of it, with folded sails
and one leg tucked under his wing, was the identical one that the young
countess used to feed, and that Raymond cried to be let ride on. The
deer were glancing through the distant glade, just as he remembered them
as a child, starting at every sound, and tossing their antlers in the
sunlight; the gray stone of the grand castellated house may have been a
tinge darker for the smoke and fog of the sixty additional years, but
this was not noticeable; the sunbeams sent dashes of golden light across
the flanking towers with their dark ivy draperies, and into the deep
mullioned windows, where the queer small panes hid themselves, as if they
were ashamed to be seen, just as in the old days; the fountain sent up
its crystal showers on the broad sweep of the terrace, and the lime and
the acacia trees sheltering the gravel walks that led through grassy
openings into the enclosed flower-garden were as dark and as shady as of
yore; the clumps on the mounds swelling here and there through the park
had not outgrown the shapes they were in Raymond’s memory; the lawn was
as smooth and green as when he rolled over its mossy turf, to the utter
detriment of fresh-frilled pinafores and white frocks.

It was a pleasant resting-place, a palm-grove in the wilderness, where
the wayfarer might halt peacefully, and take breath for the rest of
the journey. Yet Raymond was determined not to tarry there longer than
was absolutely needful. Sir Simon did all that a host could do to
make him prolong his stay; but he was inexorable. He spied out a tiny
brick cottage perched on a bit of rising ground just below the park,
half-smothered in moss and lichens. It was beautifully situated as to
view; flowing meadows sloped down before it towards the river; beyond
the river corn-fields stretched out towards the woods, that rose like
dark waves breaking at the foot of the purple hills; the cottage was
called The Lilies, and contained six rooms, three above and three below,
including the kitchen. When Raymond offered himself as a tenant for it,
the baronet burst into a ringing laugh that scared the stately swan out
of his dignity, and sent him scudding over the water like a frightened
goose. But Raymond was not to be laughed out of his purpose; he should
have The Lilies, or he would go away. He must have it, too, like any
ordinary tenant, on the same conditions, neither better nor worse. The
lease was accordingly drawn out in due form, and M. de la Bourbonais
entered into possession after a very short delay. The room that was
intended for a drawing-room was fitted up with the count’s books--the
few special treasures he had rescued from the fate of all his goods
and chattels four years ago--and was called the library. It was not
much bigger than a good-sized book-case, but it would answer all the
purposes of a sitting-room for the present; Franceline would never be
in his way, and might sit there as much as she liked. The landlord had
had a little scheme of his own about the furnishing of the cottage, and
had sent for a London tradesman to this effect, intending to surprise
Raymond by having it all ready for him. But Raymond was as impracticable
here as about the lease. Sir Simon was annoyed. Raymond contrived to
foil him and have his own way in everything. He seemed to be half his
time in the moon; but when you wanted him to stay there, he was suddenly
wide-awake and as wilful as a mule. There was a substratum of steel
somewhere in him, in spite of his gentleness; and though it never hurt
you, it repelled you when you came against it every now and then, and
it was provoking. There was altogether something about Raymond that
mystified Sir Simon. To see a man as refined and sensitive as he was,
endowed with the hereditary instincts that make affluence a necessity
of existence to a gentleman, settling down into the conditions and
abode of the smallest of small farmers, and doing it as cheerfully as
if he were perfectly contented with the prospect, was something beyond
Sir Simon’s comprehension. To him life without wealth--not for its own
sake, but for what it gives and hinders--was merely a sentence of penal
servitude. Raymond had always been poor, he knew; but poverty in the
antique splendor of decayed ancestral halls, with the necessaries of
life provided as by a law of nature, and in the midst of a loyal and
reverent peasantry, was a very different sort of poverty from what he was
now embarking on. He would sometimes fix his eyes on Raymond when he was
busying himself, with apparently great satisfaction, on some miserable
trifle that Angélique wanted done in her room or in the kitchen, and
wonder whether it was genuine or feigned, whether sorrow or philosophy
had so deadened him to external conditions as to make him indifferent to
the material meanness and miseries of his position. He never heard a word
of regret, or any expression that could be construed into regret, escape
him in their most familiar conversations. Once Raymond, in speaking of
poverty, had confessed that he had never believed it had any power to
make men unhappy--such poverty as his had been--until he felt the touch
of its cruel finger on his Armengarde; then he realized the fact in its
full bitterness. But he had foiled the tormenter by a sublime fraud
of love, and saved his own heart from an anguish that would have been
more intolerable than remorse. Sir Simon remembered the expression of
Raymond’s face as he said this; the smile of gentle triumph that it wore,
as if gratitude for the rescue and the sacrifice had alone survived. He
concluded that it was so; that Raymond had forgiven poverty, since he had
conquered her; and that now he could take her to live with him like a
snake that had lost its sting, or some bright-spotted wild beast that he
had wrestled with and tamed, and might henceforth sport with in safety.

Sir Simon found it hard to reconcile this serene philosophical state
of mind with his friend’s insurmountable reluctance to accept the least
material service, while, on the other hand, he took with avidity any
amount of affection and sympathy that was offered to him. It was because
he felt that he could repay these in kind; whereas for the others he
must remain an insolvent debtor. “Bourbonais, that is sheer nonsense and
inconsistency. I wouldn’t give a button for your philosophy, if it can’t
put you above such weakness. It’s absurd; you ought to struggle against
it and overcome it.” This was the baronet’s pet formula; he was always
ready with this advice to his friends. Raymond never contested the wisdom
of the proposition, or Sir Simon’s right to enunciate it; but in this
particular at least he did not adopt it.

The gentry of the neighborhood called in due course at The Lilies,
and M. de la Bourbonais punctiliously returned the civility, and here
the intercourse ended. He would accept no hospitality that he was not
in a position to return. He was on very good terms with his immediate
neighbors, who were none of them formidable people. There was Mr.
Langrove, the vicar of Dullerton, and Father Henwick, the Catholic
priest, and Miss Bulpit and Miss Merrywig, two maiden ladies, who were in
their separate ways prominent institutions of the place. These four, with
Sir Simon, were the only persons who could boast of being on visiting
terms with the shy, polite foreigner who bowed to every old apple-woman
on the road as if she were a duchess, and kept the vulgar herd of the
town and the fine people of the county as much at a distance as if he
were an exiled sovereign who declined to receive the homage of other
subjects than his own.

Franceline had been eight years at Dullerton, and was now in her
seventeenth year. She was very beautiful, as she stood leaning on the
garden-rail amongst the lilies, looking like a lily herself, with one
dove perched upon her finger, while another alighted on her head, and
cooed to it. She was neither a blonde nor a brunette, as we classify
them, but a type between the two. Her complexion was of that peculiar
whiteness that we see in fair northern women, Scandinavians and Poles; as
clear as ivory and as colorless, the bright vermilion of the finely cut,
sensitive mouth alone relieving its pallor. Yet her face was deficient
neither in warmth nor light; the large, almond-shaped eyes, flashing
in shadow, sometimes black, sometimes purple gray, lighted it better
than the pinkest roses could have done; and if the low arch of the dark
eyebrows gave a tinge of severity to it, the impression was removed by
two saucy dimples that lurked in either cheek, and were continually
breaking out of their hiding-places, and brightening the pensive features
like a sunbeam. Franceline’s voice had a note in it that was as bright as
her dimples. It rang through the brick cottage like the sound of running
water; and when she laughed, it was so hearty that you laughed with
her from very sympathy. Such a creature would have been in her proper
sphere in a palace, treading on pink marble, and waited on by a retinue
of pages. But she was not at all out of place at The Lilies; perhaps,
next to the palace and pink marble, she could not have alighted in a
more appropriate frame than this mossy flower-bed to which a capricious
destiny had transplanted her. She seemed quite as much a fitting part
of the place as the tall, majestic lilies on either side of the
garden-gate. But as regarded Dullerton beyond the garden-gate, she was
as much out of place as a gazelle in a herd of Alderney cows. Dullerton
was the very ideal of commonplace, the embodiment of respectability and
dulness--wealthy, fat-of-the-land dulness; if a prize had been set up for
that native commodity, Dullerton would certainly have carried it over
every county in England. There was no reason why it should have been so
dull, for it possessed quite as many external elements of sociability
as other provincial neighborhoods, and the climate was no foggier than
elsewhere; everybody was conscious of the dulness, and complained of it
to everybody else, but nobody did anything to mend matters. There was,
nevertheless, a good deal of intercourse one way or another; a vast
amount of food was interchanged between the big houses, and the smaller
ones periodically called in the neighbors to roll croquet-balls about
on the wet grass, and sip tea under the dripping trees; for it seemed
a law of nature that the weather was wet on this social occasion. But
nothing daunted the good-will of the natives; they dressed themselves in
muslins, pink, white, and blue, and came and played croquet, and drank
tea, and bored themselves, and went away declaring they had never been
at such a stupid affair in their lives. The gentlemen were always in a
feeble minority at these festive gatherings, and, instead of multiplying
themselves to supplement numbers by zeal, they had a habit of getting
together in a group to discuss the crops and the game-laws, leaving their
wives and daughters to seek refuge in county gossip, match-making, or
parish affairs, according to their separate tastes. Dullerton was not a
scandal-mongering place. Its gossip was mostly of an innocent kind; the
iniquities of servants the difficulties of getting a tolerable cook or a
housemaid that knew her business, recipes for economical soups for the
poor, the best place to buy flannels, etc., formed the staple subjects of
the matrons’ conversation. The young ladies dressed themselves bravely in
absolute defiance of the rudiments of art and taste; vied with each other
in disguising their heads--some of them very pretty ones--under monstrous
_chignons_ and outlandish head-gears; practised the piano, rode on
horseback, and wondered who Mr. Charlton would eventually marry; whether
his attentions to Miss X---- meant anything, or whether he was only
playing her off against Miss Z----. Mr. Charlton was the only eligible
young man resident within a radius of fifteen miles of Dullerton, and
was consequently the target for many enterprising bows and arrows. For
nine years he had kept mothers and daughters in harassing suspense as to
“what he meant”; and, instead of reforming as he grew older, he was more
tantalizing than ever now at the mature age of thirty-two. Mothers and
maidens were still on the _qui-vive_, and lived in perpetual hot water
as to the real intentions of the owner of Moorlands and six thousand
a year. He had, besides this primary claim on social consideration,
another that would in itself have made him master of the situation
in Dullerton: he had a fine voice, and sang a capital song; and this
advantage Mr. Charlton used somewhat unkindly. He was as capricious with
his voice as in his attentions, and it was a serious preoccupation with
the dinner-givers whether he would make the evening go off delightfully
by singing one of his songs with that enchanting high C, or leave it to
its native dulness by refusing to sing at all. The moods and phases of
the tyrannical tenor were, in fact, watched as eagerly by the expectant
hostess as the antics of the needle on the eve of a picnic.

The one house of that side of the county where people did not bore
themselves was Dullerton Court. They congregated here, predetermined
to enjoy something more than eating and drinking; and they were never
disappointed. There was nothing in the entertainments themselves
to explain this fact; the house was indeed on a grander scale of
architecture, more palatial than any other country mansion in those
parts; but the people who met there, and chatted and laughed and went
away in high satisfaction with themselves and each other, were the same
who congregated in the other houses to yawn and be bored, and go away
grumbling. The secret of the difference lay entirely in the host. Sir
Simon Harness came into the world endowed with a faculty that predestined
him to rule over a certain class of men--the dull and dreary class;
people who have no vital heat of their own, but are for ever trying to
warm themselves at other people’s fires. He had, moreover, the genius of
hospitality in all its charms. He welcomed every commonplace acquaintance
with a heartiness that put the visitor in instantaneous good-humor with
himself and his host and all the world. Society was his life; he could
not live without it. He enjoyed his fellow-creatures, and he delighted
in having them about him; his house was open to his friends at all
times and seasons. What else was a house good for? What pleasure could
a man take in his house, unless it was full of friends? Unhappily for
Dullerton, Sir Simon was a frequent absentee. Some said that he could
not stand its dulness for long at a time, and that this was why he was
continually on the road to Paris and Vienna and the sunny shores of
Italy and Spain. But this could not be true; you had only to witness his
mercurial gayety in the midst of his Dullerton friends, and hear the ring
of his loud, manly voice when he shook them by the hand and bade them
welcome, to be convinced that he enjoyed them to the full as much as
they enjoyed him. It is true that since M. de la Bourbonais had come to
be his neighbor, the squire was less of a rover than formerly. When he
was at home, he spent a great deal of time at The Lilies--a circumstance
which gave Dullerton a great deal to talk about, and raised the reserved,
courteous recluse a great many pegs in the estimation of the county.
The baronet and his friend had many points of sympathy besides the
primary one of old hereditary friendship, though they were as dissimilar
in tastes and character as any two could be. This dissimilarity was,
however, a part of the mutual attraction. Sir Simon was an inexhaustible
talker, and M. de la Bourbonais an indefatigable listener; he had what
Voltaire called a talent for holding his tongue. But this negative
condition of a good listener was not his only one; he possessed in a
rare degree all the merits that go to the composition of that delightful
personage. Most people, while you are talking to them, are more occupied
in thinking what they will say to you than in attending to what you
are saying to them, and these people are miserable listeners. M. de
la Bourbonais gave his whole mind to what you were saying, and never
thought of his answer until the time came to give it. He not only seemed
interested, he really was interested, in your discourse; and he would
frequently hear more in it than it was meant to convey, supplying from
his own quick intelligence what was wanting in your crude, disjointed
remarks. There was nothing in a quiet way that Sir Simon liked better
than an hour’s talk with his tenant, and he always came away from the
luxury of having been listened to by a cultivated, philosophical mind in
high good-humor with himself. His vanity, moreover, was flattered by the
fact beyond the mere personal gratification it afforded him. Everybody
knew that the French _emigré_ was a man of learning, given to abstruse
study of some abstract kind; the convivial squire must therefore be more
learned than he cared to make believe, since this philosophical student
took such pleasure in his society. When his fox-hunting friends would
twit him jocosely on this score, Sir Simon would pooh-pooh them with a
laugh, observing in a careless way: “One must dip into this sort of thing
now and then, you see, or else one’s brain gets rusty. I don’t care much
myself about splitting hairs on Descartes or untwisting the fibres of a
Greek root, but it amuses Bourbonais; you see he has so few to talk to
who can listen to this sort of thing.” It was true that the conversation
did occasionally take such learned turns, and equally true that M. de la
Bourbonais enjoyed airing his views on the schools and dissecting roots,
and that Sir Simon felt elevated in his own opinion when the count
caught up some hazardous remark of his on one of the classic authors,
and worked it up into an elaborate defence of the said author; and
when, on their next meeting, Raymond would accost him with “Mon cher, I
didn’t quite see at the moment what you meant by pointing that line from
Sophocles at me, but I see now,” Sir Simon would purr inwardly like a
stroked cat. Every now and then, too, he would startle the Grand Jury
by the brilliancy of his classical quotations, and the way in which he
bore down on them with a weight of argument worthy of a Q.C. in high
practice; little they dreamed that the whole case had been sifted the day
before by the orator’s learned friend, who had analyzed it, and put it in
shape for the rhetorical purpose of the morrow. The baronet was serenely
unconscious of being a plagiarist; he had got into a way of sucking his
friend’s brains, until he honestly thought they were his own.

This intellectual piracy is not so rare, perhaps, as at first sight you
may imagine. It would be a curious revelation if our own minds could be
laid bare to us, and we were enabled to see how far their workings are
original and how far imitative. We should, I fancy, be startled to find
how small a proportion the former bears to the latter, and how much that
we consider the spontaneous operation of our minds is, in reality, but
the reflex of the minds of others, and the unconscious reproduction of
thoughts and ideas that are suggested by things outside of us.

Franceline’s _bonne_, as she still called her, though Angélique had
passed from that single capacity into the complex position of butler,
cook, housemaid, lady’s maid, and general factotum at The Lilies, was
as complete a contrast to a name as ever mortal presented. A gaunt,
high-cheek-boned, grizzly-haired woman, with a squint and a sharp,
aggressive chin, every inch of her body protested against the mockery
that had labelled her angelic. She had a gruff voice like a man’s, and a
trick of tossing her head and falling back in her chair when she answered
you that had gained her the nickname of the French grenadier amongst
the rising generation of Dullerton. Yet the kernel of this rough husk
was as tender and mellow as a peach, and differed from the outer woman
as much as the outer woman differed from her name. When the small boys
followed her round the market, laughing at her under her very nose, and
accompanying their vernacular comments with very explicative gestures,
the French grenadier had not the heart to stop the performance by sending
the actors to the right-about, as she might have done with one shake
of her soldier-like fist; but if they had dared to look crooked at
Franceline, or play off the least of their tricks on M. de la Bourbonais,
she would have punched their heads for them, and sent them off yelling
with broken noses without the smallest compunction. Angélique had found a
husband in her youth, and when he died she had transferred all her wifely
solicitude to her master and his wife and child. She could have given him
no greater proof of it than by leaving her native village and following
him to his foreign home; yet she never let him suspect that the sacrifice
cost her a pang. She was of a social turn, and it was no small trial
to be shut out from neighborly chat by her ignorance of the language.
She took it out, to be sure, with the count and Franceline, and with
the few intimates of The Lilies who spoke French; but, let her improve
these opportunities as she might, there was still a great gap in her
social life. Conversation with ladies and gentlemen was one thing, and a
good gossip with a neighbor was another. But Angélique kept this grief
to herself, and never complained. With M. le Curé, as she dubbed Father
Henwick, the Catholic priest of Dullerton, she went the length of shaking
her head, and observing that people who were in exile had their purgatory
in this world, and went straight to heaven when they died. Father Henwick
had been brought up at S. Sulpice, and spoke French like a native,
and was as good as a born Frenchman. She could pour her half-uttered
pinings into his ear without fear or scruple; her dreams of returning
_dans mon pays_ at some future day, when M. le Comte would have married
mademoiselle. She could even confide to this trusty ear her anxieties on
the latter head, her fear that M. le Comte, being a philosopher, would
not know how to go about finding a husband for Franceline. She could
indulge freely in motherful praises of Franceline’s perfections, and tell
over and over again the same stories of her nurseling’s babyhood and
childhood; how certain traits had frightened her that the _petite_ was
going to turn out a very Jezabel for wickedness, but how she had lived
to find out her mistake. She loved notably to recall one instance of
these juvenile indications of character; when one day, after bellowing
for a whole hour without ceasing, the child suddenly stopped, and Mme.
la Comtesse called out from her pillows under the palm-tree: “At last!
Thank goodness it’s over!” and how Franceline stamped her small foot,
and sobbed out: “No-o-o, it’s not over! I repose myself!” and began
again louder than ever. And how another day, when a powerful Arab who
was leading her mule over the hills suddenly lashed his whip across the
shoulders of a little boy fast asleep on the pathway, waking him up
with a howl of pain, Franceline clutched her little fist and struck the
savage a box on the ear, screaming at him in French: “O you wicked! I
wish you were a thief, and I’d lock you up! I wish you were a murderer,
and I’d cut your head off! I wish you were a candle, and I’d blow you
out!” Father Henwick would listen to the same stories, and delight
Angélique by assuring her for the twentieth time that they were certain
pledges of future strength and decision in the woman. And when Angélique
would wind up with the usual remark, “Ah! our little one is born for
something great; she would make a famous queen, Monsieur le Curé,” he
would cordially agree with her, revolving, nevertheless, in his own mind
the theory that there are many kinds of greatness, and many queens who go
through life without the coronation ceremony that crowns them with the
outward symbols of royalty.

Miss Merrywig was another of Angélique’s friends; but she had not been
educated at S. Sulpice, and so the intercourse was sustained under
difficulties. Her French was something terrific. She ignored genders,
despised moods and tenses; and as to such interlopers as adverbs and
prepositions, Miss Merrywig treated them with the contempt they deserved.
Her mode of proceeding was extremely simple: she took a bundle of
infinitives in one hand, and pronouns and adjectives in another, and
shook them up together, and they fell into place the best way they could.
It was wonderful how, somehow or other, they turned into sentences, and
Angélique, by dint of good-will, always guessed what Miss Merrywig was
driving at. A great bond between them was their love of a bargain. Miss
Merrywig delighted in a bargain as only an old maid with an income of two
hundred pounds a year can delight in it. She had, moreover, a passion
for making everybody guess what she paid for things. This harmless
peculiarity was apt to be a nuisance to her friends. The first thing she
did after investing in a remnant of some sort, or a second-hand article,
was to carry it the rounds of Dullerton, and insist on everybody’s
guessing how much it cost.

“Make a guess! You know what a good linsey costs, and you see this is
pure wool; you can see that? you have only to feel it. Just feel it! It’s
as soft as cashmere. That’s what tempted me. I don’t want it _exactly_,
but then I mightn’t get _such_ a bargain when I did want it; and, as the
young man at Willis’ said--they’re so _uncommonly_ civil at Willis’!--a
good article _always_ brings its value; and there was no denying it _was_
a bargain, and one never _can_ go wrong in taking a good thing when one
gets it cheap; and they do mix cotton so much with the wool nowadays that
one can’t be too particular, as my dear mother used to say, though in her
time it was of course very different. Now you’ve examined it, what do
you think I gave for it?” There was no getting out of it: you might try
to fight off on the plea that you had no experience in linseys, that you
were no judge--Miss Merrywig would take no excuse.

“Well, but give a guess. Say something. What would you consider _cheap_?
You know what a stuff all pure wool _ought_ to be worth. Just give a
guess. Remember, it was a bargain!” Thus adjured and driven into a
corner, you timidly ventured a sum, and, whether you hit it or not,
Miss Merrywig was aggrieved. If you fell below the mark, there was no
describing her astonishment and disappointment. “Fifteen shillings! Dear
_me_! Why, that’s the price of a common alpaca! Fifteen shillings! Good
_gracious_! Oh? you can’t _mean_ it. Do guess again.”

And when, to console her, you guessed double, and it happened to be
right, she was still inconsolable.

“So you don’t think it was a bargain after all! Dear me! Well that _is_
a disappointment. All I can say is that my dear mother had a linsey that
was not one atom softer or stronger than this, and she paid just double
for it--three pounds; she did indeed; she told me so _herself_, poor
soul. I often heard her speak highly of that linsey when I was a child,
and I quite well remember her saying that it had cost three pounds, and
that it had been well worth the money.”

You might cry _peccavi_, and eat your words, and declare your conviction
that it was the greatest windfall you ever heard of; nothing would pacify
Miss Merrywig until she had carried her bargain to some one else, and had
it guessed at a higher figure, which you were pretty sure to be informed
of at the earliest opportunity, and triumphantly upbraided for your want
of appreciation. Angélique was a great comfort to Miss Merrywig on this
head. She loved a bargain dearly, and was proud of showing that she knew
the difference between one that was and one that was not; accordingly,
she was one of the first to whom Miss Merrywig submitted a new purchase.
“Voyons!” the grenadier would say, and then she would take out her
spectacles, wipe them, adjust them on her nose, and then deliberately rub
the tissue between her finger and thumb, look steadily at Miss Merrywig,
as if trying to gather a hint before committing herself, and then give an
opinion. She generally premised with the cautious formula: “Dans mon pays
it would be so-and-so. Of course I can only make a guess in this country;
prices differ.” She was not often far astray; but even when she was, this
preface disarmed Miss Merrywig, and, when Angélique hit the mark, her
satisfaction was unbounded. Other people might say she had been cheated,
or that she had paid the full value of the thing. There was Comte de la
Bourbonais’ French maid, who said it was the _greatest_ bargain she had
_ever_ seen; and being a Frenchwoman, and accustomed to French stuffs,
she was more likely to know than people who had never been out of England
in the whole course of their lives.

The other old maid who occupied a prominent position at Dullerton, and
was on friendly terms with the grenadier, was Miss Bulpit. It would be
difficult to meet with a greater contrast between any two people than
between Miss Bulpit and Miss Merrywig. The latter talked in italics,
emphasizing all the small words of her discourse, so as to throw
everything out of joint. Miss Bulpit spoke “in mournful numbers,” brought
out her sentences as slowly as a funeral knell, and was altogether
funereal in her aspect. She was tall and lank, and wore a black silk
wig, pasted in melancholy braids on either side of her face--a perfect
foil to the gay little curls that danced on Miss Merrywig’s forehead
like so many little bells keeping time to her tongue. Miss Bulpit was
enthroned on a pedestal of one thousand five hundred pounds a year,
and attended by all the substantial honors that spring from such a
foundation. She was fully alive to the advantages of her position, and
had never married from the fear of being sought more for her money
than for herself. So, at least, rumor has it. Mr. Tobes, the Wesleyan
clergyman of the next parish, whose awakening sermons decoyed the black
sheep of the surrounding folds to him, had tried for the prize for
more than seven years, but in vain. Miss Bulpit smiled with benevolent
condescension on his assiduities, allowed him to meet her at the railway
station and to hand her a bouquet occasionally; but this was the extent
of his reward. He persevered, however; and, when Miss Bulpit shook her
black silk head at him with a melancholy smile and a reproof for wasting
on her the precious time that belonged to his flock, Mr. Tobes would
reply that the laborer was worthy of his hire, and that no man could live
without an occasional recompense for his labors.

Miss Bulpit was the lowest of the Low-Church, so zealous in propagating
her own views as to be a severe trial to the vicar, Mr. Langrove. The
vicar was a shy, scholarly man and a great lover of peace, but he was
often hard pushed to keep the peace with Miss Bulpit. She crossed him in
every way, and defied him to his very face; but it was done so mildly,
with such an unction of zeal and such a sincere desire to correct his
errors and make up for his shortcomings, that it was impossible to treat
her like an ordinary antagonist. She had a soup-kitchen and a dispensary
in her own house, where the poor of his parish were fed and healed; and
if Miss Bulpit made these material things the medium of dealing with
their souls, and if they chose to be dealt with, how could Mr. Langrove
interfere to prevent it? If she had a call to break the word to others,
why should she not obey it just as he obeyed his? He had his pulpit,
which she did not interfere with--a mercy for which the vicar was not,
perhaps, sufficiently grateful. Miss Bulpit was limited to no restriction
of place or time; she could preach anywhere and at a moment’s notice;
the water was always at high pressure, and only wanted a touch to set
it flowing into any channel; the cottages, the wards of the hospital,
the village school, the roadside, any place was a rostrum for her. If
she met a group of laborers going home with their spades over their
shoulders, Miss Bulpit would accost them with a few good words; and if
they took them well, as their class mostly do from ladies, she would
plunge into the promiscuous depths of that awful leather bag of hers that
was Mr. Langrove’s horror, and evolve from a chaos of pill-boxes, socks,
spectacles, soap, black draughts, buns, and bobbins, a packet of tracts,
and, selecting an appropriate one, she would proceed to expound it, and
wind up with a few texts out of the little black Testament that lived
by itself in an outside pocket of the black leather bag. This state of
things would have been bad enough, even if Miss Bulpit had held sound
views; but what made it infinitely worse was that her orthodoxy was more
than doubtful. But there was no way of putting her in her place. She was
too rich for that. If she had been a poor woman, like Miss Merrywig,
it would have been easy enough; but Miss Bulpit’s fortune had built a
bulwark of defence round her, and against these stout walls the vicar’s
shafts might be pointed in perfect safety to the enemy. It was a great
mercy if they did not recoil on himself. Some persons accused him of
being ungrateful. How could he quarrel with her for preaching in the
school when she had re-roofed it for him, after he had spent six months
in fruitless appeals to the board to do it? How could the authorities of
the hospital refuse her the satisfaction of saying a few serious words to
the inmates, when she supplied them with unlimited port-wine and jellies,
and other delicacies which the authorities could not provide? It was very
difficult to turn out a benefactor who paid liberally for her privileges,
and had so firm a footing in every charitable institution of the county.
The vicar was not on vantage-ground in his struggle to hold his own. Miss
Bulpit was a pillar of the state of Dullerton. There were not a few who
whispered that if either must go to the wall, it had better be the parson
than the parishioner. Coals were at famine prices; soup and port-wine are
comforting to the soul of man, and the donor’s strictures on S. James and
exclusive enthusiasm for S. Paul were things that could be tolerated by
those whom they did not concern.

Franceline had been to see Miss Merrywig, who lived like a lizard in
the grass, with a willow weeping copious tears over her mouldy little
cottage. The cheerful old lady always spoke with thankfulness of
the quiet and comfort of her home, and believed that everybody must
envy her its picturesque situation, to say nothing of the delights of
being wakened by the larks before daylight, and kept awake long after
midnight by the nightingales. The woods at Dullerton were alive with
nightingales. On emerging from the damp darkness after an hour with Miss
Merrywig, Franceline found that the sun had climbed up to the zenith, and
was pouring down a sultry glow that made the earth smoke again. There
was a stile at the end of the wood, and she sat down to rest herself
under the thick shade of a sycamore. The stillness of the noon was on
everything. A few lively linnets tried to sing; but, the effort being
prompted solely by duty, after a while they gave it up, and withdrew to
the coolest nooks, and enjoyed their siesta like the lazy ones. Nobody
stirred, except the insects that were chirping in the grass, and some
bees that sailed from flower to flower, buzzing and doing field-labor
when everybody else was asleep or idle. To the right the fields were
brimful of ripening grain of every shade of gold; the deep-orange corn
was overflowing into the pale amber of the rye, and the bearded barley
was washing the hedge that walled it off from the lemon- wheat.
To the left the rich grass-lands were dotted with flocks and herds. In
the nearest meadow some cattle were herding. It was too hot to eat, so
they stood surveying the fulness of the earth with mild, bovine gaze.
They might have been sphinxes, they were so still; not a muscle in their
sleek bodies moved, except that a tail lashed out against the flies now
and then. Some were in the open field, holding up their white horns to
the sunlight; others were grouped in twos and threes under a shady tree;
but the noontide hush was on them all. Presently a number of horses
came trooping leisurely up to the pond near the stile; the mild-eyed
kine moved their slow heads after the procession, and then, one by one,
trooped on with it. The noise of the hoofs plashing into the water, and
the loud lapping of the thirsty tongues, was like a drink to the hot
silence. Franceline watched them lifting their wet mouths, all dripping,
from the pool, and felt as if she had been drinking too. There was a
long, solemn pause, and then a sound like the blast of an organ rose up
from the pond, swelling and sweeping over the fields; before it died away
a calf in a distant paddock answered it.

If any one had told Franceline, as she sat on her stile, thinking sweet,
nothing-at-all thoughts, under the sycamore tree, that she was communing
with nature, she would have opened her dark eyes at them, and laughed.
It was true, nevertheless. She might not know it, but she drew a great
deal of her happiness from the woods and fields, and the birds and the
sunsets. Her life had been from its babyhood, comparatively speaking, a
solitary one, and the want, or rather the absence, of kindred companions
had driven her unconsciously into companionship with nature. Her father’s
society was a melancholy one enough for a young girl. Raymond’s mind
was like an æolian harp set up in a ruin; every breath of wind that
swept over it drew out sounds of sweet but mournful music. Even his
cheerfulness--and it was uniform and genuine--had a note of sadness in
it, like a lively air set in a minor key; there was nothing morbid or
harsh in his spirit, but it was entirely out of tune with youth. He
was perfectly resigned to life, but the spring was broken; he looked
on at Franceline’s young gayety, as he might do at the flutterings and
soarings of her doves, with infinite admiration, but without the faintest
response within himself. So the child grew up as much alone as a bird
might be with creatures of a different nature, and made herself a little
world of her own--not a dream world, in the sense of ordinary romance;
she had read no novels and knew nothing about the great problem of the
human heart, except what its own promptings may have whispered to her.
She made friends with the flowers and the birds and the woods, and loved
them as if they were living companions. She watched their comings and
goings, and found out their secrets, and got into a way of talking to
them and telling them hers. As a child, the first peep of the snowdrop
and the first call of the cuckoo was as exciting an event to her as the
arrival of a new toy or a new dress to other little girls. She found S.
Francis of Assisi’s beautiful hymn to his “brother, the sun, and his
sisters, the moon and the stars,” one day in an old book of her father’s,
and she learned it by heart, and would warble it in a duet with the
nightingale out of her lattice-window sometimes when Angélique fancied
her fast asleep. As she grew up the mystery of the poem grew clearer
to her, and she repeated it with a deeper sense of sympathy with the
brothers and sisters that dwell in the sky, and the clear, pure water,
and everywhere in the beautiful creation. I am sorry if this sounds
unnatural, but I cannot help it. I am describing Franceline as I knew
her. But I don’t think it will seem unnatural if you notice the effect
of surroundings on delicate-fibred children; how easily they follow the
lights we hold out to them, and how vibratile their little spirits are.
There was no absolute want of child society at Dullerton, any more than
grown-up society; but Franceline de la Bourbonais did not care for it
somehow. She felt shy amongst the noisy, romping children that swarmed
in the nurseries of Dullerton, and they thought her a queer child, and
did not get on well with her. The only house where she cared at all to
go in her juvenile days was the vicarage; but the attraction was the
vicar himself, rather than his full home, that was like an aviary of
chattering parrots and chirping canaries. Now that the parrots were
grown up and “going out,” Franceline saw very little of them. They were
occupied making markers on perforated card-board for all their friends,
or else “doing up” their dresses for the next dinner or croquet party;
the staple topic of their conversation after these entertainments was
why Mr. Charlton took Miss This down to dinner, instead of Miss That;
whether it was an accident, or whether there was anything in it; and how
divinely Mr. Charlton had sung “Ah, non giunge.” These things were not
the least interesting to Franceline, who was not “out,” or ever likely to
be. Who would take her, and where could she get dresses to go? She hated
perforated card-board work, and she did not know Mr. Charlton. It was no
wonder, therefore, she felt out of her element at the vicarage, like a
wild bird strayed into a cackling farmyard, and that the Langrove girls
thought her dull and cold.

It would be a very superficial observer, nevertheless, who would accuse
Franceline of either coldness or dulness, as she sits there on this
lovely summer day, her gypsy hat thrown back, and showing the small head
in its unbroken outline against the sky, with the red gold hair drifting
in wavy braids from the broad, ivory forehead, while her dark eyes
glance over the landscape with an intense listening expression, as if
some inaudible voices were calling to her. It was very pleasant sitting
there in the shade doing nothing, and there is no saying how long she
might have indulged in the delicious _far niente_, if a thrush had not
wakened suddenly in the foliage over her head, and reminded her that it
was time to be stirring. It was nearly three hours since she had left
home, and Angélique would be wondering what had become of her. With a
fairy suddenness of motion she rose up, vaulted over the stile with the
agility of a young kid, and plunged into the teeming field. There was a
footpath through it in ordinary times, but it was flooded now, and she
had to wade through the rye, putting her arms out before her, as if she
were swimming; for a light breeze had sprung up and was blowing the tawny
wave in ripples almost into her face. She shut her eyes for a moment,
and, opening them, suddenly fancied she was in the middle of the sea, the
sun lighting up the yellow depths with myriads of scarlet poppies and
blue-bells, that shone like fairy sea-weed through the stems. She had not
got quite to the end of the last field when she heard a sound of voices
coming down the park toward a small gate that opened into the fields. She
hurried on, thinking it must be Sir Simon, and perhaps her father; and it
was not until he was close by the gate that she discovered her mistake.
One of the voices belonged to Mr. Charlton, the other to a young man
whom she had never seen before. Franceline knew Mr. Charlton by sight.
She had met him once at Miss Merrywig’s, who was a particular friend of
his--but then everybody was a particular friend of Miss Merrywig’s--and
a few times when she was out walking with Sir Simon and her father, and
the young man had stood to shake hands; but this had not led to anything
beyond a bowing acquaintance. That was not Mr. Charlton’s fault. There
were few things that would have gratified him more than to be able to
establish himself as a visitor at The Lilies; but M. de la Bourbonais had
not given him the smallest sign of encouragement, so he had to content
himself with raising his hat instinctively an inch higher than to any
other lady of his acquaintance when he met Franceline on the road or in
the green lanes--he on horseback, she, of course, on foot; and when the
young French girl returned his salute by that stately little bend of her
head, he would ride on with a sense of elation, as if a royal princess
had paid him some flattering attention. This was the first time they
had met alone on foot. Mr. Charlton’s first impulse was to speak; but
something stronger than first impulse checked him, and, before he had
made up his mind about it, he had lost an opportunity. The stranger,
whose presence of mind was disturbed by no scruples or timidity, stepped
quickly forward, and lifted the latch of the heavy wooden gate, and
swung it back, lifting his hat quite off, and remaining uncovered till
Franceline had passed in. It was very vexatious to Mr. Charlton to have
missed the chance of the little courtesy, and to feel that his companion
had the largest share in the bow that included them both as she walked
rapidly on. Franceline’s curiosity, meanwhile, was excited. Who could
this strange gentleman be, who looked so like a Frenchman, and bowed like
one? If he was a guest of Mr. Charlton’s, she would never know, most
likely; but if he was staying at the Court, she would soon hear all about
him. She wondered which way they were going. The gate had clicked, so
they were sure to have gone on. Franceline scarcely stopped to consider
this, but, obeying the impulse of the moment, turned round and looked.
She did so, and saw the stranger, with his hand still upon the gate,
looking after her.

TO BE CONTINUED.


THE FUTURE OF THE RUSSIAN CHURCH.

BY THE REV. CÆSARIUS TONDINI, BARNABITE.

CONCLUDED.

IV.

It is time that our notice of this subject drew towards its close. The
return of the Russian Church to Catholic unity is the dearest wish of
our heart. A brother in religion (in which we love each other as perhaps
nowhere else in the world, because we love each other for eternity) drew
us, during the few months we spent together in Italy, to share in his
longings and aspirations for the religious future of Russia, his native
country. Before quitting Italy Father Schouvaloff went to Rome, and
presented himself before the Pope. The Holy Father, Pius IX., engaged him
to make a daily offering of his life to God to obtain the return of his
country to the unity of the Catholic Church. Father Schouvaloff joyfully
obeyed, and God, on his part, accepted the offering. Being sent to Paris
towards the end of the year 1857, Father Schouvaloff died there on the 2d
of April, 1859.

Upon his tomb we promised to continue, in so far as it would be granted
to us under religious obedience, our feeble co-operation in his work; and
our writings are in part the fulfilment of this promise.

Father Schouvaloff’s confidence in the return of Russia to Catholic unity
was very great; we have fully shared in this confidence, and everything
that, since his death, has taken place in Russia, has but served to
augment it. This may appear strange, but perhaps more than one among our
readers will share it with us when we have said in what manner we look
forward to this happy event.

A return of the Russians _en masse_ to Catholic unity we scarcely
contemplate. This could not happen except under the hypothesis of
political interests which appear to us inadmissible. And even should we,
in this matter, be mistaken, and from political interests the Russian
people were to accept union with Rome, would a union thus brought
about be desirable? Unless we mistake, the words of Jesus Christ might
be applied to a faith thus created when he said, _Omnis plantatio quam
non plantavit Pater meus eradicabitur_--“Every plant which my Heavenly
Father hath not planted shall be rooted up” (S. Matt. xv. 13). Was it by
promising the Jewish nation to deliver it from the Roman yoke that Jesus
Christ taught his heavenly doctrine? Was it by promising independence,
honors, temporal advantages, that the apostles persuaded the pagans to
believe in the Crucified? Again, is it by pointing to a perspective
of material advantages that any Catholic priest, however moderately
cognizant of his own duty and the good of souls, seeks to induce any one
to become a Catholic? If to those who aspire to follow Jesus Christ was
always held the same language as that which he himself used to them,
there might, perhaps, be fewer conversions, but they would be true
conversions, and each one would lead on others, as true as themselves.
No; a faith created by political interests would never be a real and
solid faith, and other political interests would cause it to be cast
aside as easily as it had been accepted; it is the tree which the Father
has not planted, and which will be rooted up. Besides, history proves it.
More than once have the Greeks momentarily reunited themselves to the
Catholic Church; their defection has been explained by the _fides Græca_,
and that is all. But let us be just; Greek faith is pretty much the
faith of every nation. If we take into account the circumstances under
which these reunions were accomplished, the motives which led the Greek
bishops, whether to Lyons or to Florence, and the small care they took
to cause that that which had agreed happily with their presence in the
council--the discussion of the contested points--should remain always the
principal end, we shall perceive that the duration of the reunion would
have been a prodigy.

In not effecting this prodigy our Lord has perhaps willed to hinder men
from finding in history a denial given to his words: _Omnis plantatio
quam non plantavit Pater meus eradicabitur_--“Every plant which my
Heavenly Father hath not planted shall be rooted up.”

Neither have we by any means an unlimited confidence in the action which
might be exercised by the emperors of Russia on the bishops and clergy
of their church. While retaining the hope that the czars may understand
that it is to their interest to dispossess themselves, in great part at
least, of the religious power, and not even despairing of their favoring
the reunion of the Russian bishops with Rome, our confidence is not based
upon their actions. It is difficult for us to believe that they could
be moved by other than political interests; that which we have said,
therefore, respecting a return _en masse_ of the Russian people, would
consequently here again find its application. Besides, if formerly the
word of a czar was that of Russia, and his will the will also of his
subjects, it is no longer the same in the present day. When Peter I.
accepted the scheme of reunion proposed by the doctors of the Sorbonne of
Paris, and consented to have it examined by his bishops (1717); when Paul
I. took into consideration the plan suggested by Father Gruber (1800),
one might truly have said, Russia promises fair to become Catholic. At
this present time, however, an emperor of Russia might probably speak
and promise for himself alone. We must add that at a period when changes
in popular opinion and sympathies are as frequent as they are sudden, the
simple fact that the reunion with Rome had been promoted and favored by a
czar might, in certain circumstances, furnish an additional pretext for
disavowing it afterwards.

But what is it, then, which induces us to hope, which sustains our
confidence, and which emboldens us to manifest it openly, though we
should seem to be following an utopian idea?

In the first place, we have hope in a change which, grace aiding it, the
events recently accomplished, and those which are continuing to take
place in Europe, will work on the minds of men. Events have their logic,
and it imposes itself also upon the nations. The alternative indicated
above, and which will force minds to recognize the divinity of the
Catholic Church, will become an evident fact, and God will do the rest.

We hope because Alexander II. has emancipated the peasantry, and we may
be allowed to see in the emancipation of the peasantry the prelude to the
emancipation of the Russian Church. We shall return to this point.

We hope because the spirit of apostolate, by faith and charity, is now
more powerful than ever in the Catholic Church. As soon as the doors
of Russia shall be open to her, and she can there freely exercise her
action, her priests, her missionaries, her religious orders, her Sisters
of Charity, her Little Sisters of the Poor, will present themselves of
their own accord. God will do the rest.

Again, we hope because of the “Associations of Prayer,” which have
already preceded and powerfully prepared the way for the return of Russia
to the Catholic faith. The favor demanded is a great one, and therefore
we have chosen all that Christian piety, the church, God himself, offers
us as having most power to prevail with him. Rather than depend alone on
disseminating leaflets of prayers, or engaging pious souls to remember
Russia, thus giving to these associations a form which, in one way or
another, might injure their character of universality, we have endeavored
to obtain the celebration of the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass. For this
intention we have asked for Masses.[12] In the Holy Mass it is Jesus
Christ himself who prays, and he is always heard.

A plenary indulgence, attached to these Masses, invites the faithful to
unite their prayers with those of the divine Intercessor. If the faithful
fail, still Jesus pleads; for faith this is enough.

Lastly, we hope because eighteen centuries which have passed away
since Jesus Christ quitted the earth in human form have not been able
to diminish in anything the creative power of his words. Jesus Christ
promised to faith--and to faith possessed in the measure of a grain of
mustard-seed--that it should move mountains (S. Matt. xvii. 19; S. Luke
xvii. 6). Thus it was with happiness, at the last General Congress at
Mechlin, in 1867, we made a public act of faith in proclaiming our
unlimited confidence in prayer, and, we added, “in prayer presented to
God by Mary.”[13] This public act of faith we here repeat.

At the same Congress of Mechlin we also spoke of our confidence in the
special benediction which His Holiness Pius IX. had deigned to grant to
us, and which is thus expressed: _Benedicat te Deus et dirigat cor et
intelligentiam tuam_.

This confidence has assuredly not diminished since that time. Far from
this, if there is one teaching which imposes itself with an irresistible
force upon our mind, it is this: that in the Vicar of Jesus Christ, no
less than in Jesus Christ himself, is fulfilled the declaration of our
divine Saviour, “He that gathereth not with me, scattereth” (S. Luke xi.
23).

And further, Jesus Christ spoke thus to his disciples: _When you shall
have done all the things that are commanded you, say: We are unprofitable
servants: we have done that which we ought to do_ (S. Luke xvii. 10).
After this it is not even humility, but simple Christian logic, to attach
a high value to the works of the apostolate, to the benediction of the
pope; lest we should be not only unprofitable servants--which is always
the case--but dangerous servants.

It is that, in the first place, the benediction of the pope, while it
encourages zeal, requires that we should correct whatever there may be
of human or of reprehensible in the manner in which our zeal expresses
itself and the means which it employs. The Vicar of Jesus Christ cannot
and does not bless anything but what is pleasing to Jesus Christ and
conformable to his will. That which is not conformable to these, far from
participating in this benediction, dishonors and in some sort vilifies
it. The benediction of the pope imposes an obligation.

It is, in the second place, that the mission of the priest is not to
preach according to his own ideas; to exercise the ministry according
to his own ideas; to aid the church according to his own ideas; but to
preach, to exercise the ministry, to aid the church, after the manner
indicated by God, who is the Master of the church, who knows her needs
better than we do, and who has no need of us. And who will inform us
of his will, if not his legitimate representatives, the bishops, and,
above them, the Vicar of Jesus Christ, the pope? All those who, however
slightly, have studied the mysteries of the human heart, the relations
existing between faith and reason, and the powerlessness of all human
means to produce one single act of faith, will, we are certain, partake
in the sentiment which we have just expressed. Hence it is that we are
happy here to proclaim again our confidence in the benediction of Pius IX.

Thus, therefore, the logic of events, the spirit of the apostolate, the
emancipation of the serfs, the efficaciousness of prayer, the power of
faith, the benediction of Pius IX.--these are the things which support
our confidence; these are our motives for hope.

Are we the plaything of an illusion, and is our confidence the effect of
religious excitement? Not in any wise; for we are now about to indicate
where lies the principal obstacle in the way of reunion, and what is the
objection which will have the most effect upon the minds of men. It is in
the fear that the popes may overstep the limits of their authority; that
the religious power may absorb that of the state; and that Russia would
only become Catholic to the detriment of the national spirit.

In fact, we cannot deny the teaching of history, which shows us, almost
always and everywhere, conflicts between the civil and religious power.
More than in the conduct of the popes, the true cause of these will
be found, we believe, in the fact that Cæsarism--that is to say, the
tendency of sovereigns to obtain an empire entire and absolute over
their subjects--is to be found in human nature itself. To avoid the
possibility of conflicts between Rome and the various governments, it
would be necessary to change human nature. Perhaps it may be allowable
to say that, in the difficulty which stands in the way, practically
to define in an absolute manner the limits of the two powers, we must
recognize a providential disposition which has permitted this in order to
open a wider field for the exercise of virtue. That which was said by S.
Augustine, _Homines sumus, fragiles, infirmi, lutea vasa portantes; sed
si angustiantur vasa carnis, dilatentur spatia charitatis_, may find here
its application, at least, if from the supreme representatives of the
two powers, the pope and the sovereign, we descend to those who exercise
these powers in their name in less elevated spheres and in the ordinary
details of life. These smaller and subordinate authorities, charged to
represent power, and carrying into their representation of power their
personal character, their private views, at times their prejudices
and their interests, may be well compared to those vases of which S.
Augustine speaks--vases of capacity and of varied form, and which must be
made to occupy a certain fixed space. Let only charity intervene, round
the angles, shape the lines, adapt the prominences to the sinuosities,
determine the length, shorten where needful, obtain even the sacrifice of
some superfluous ornaments, these vases will then all find their place;
space is multiplied by miracle; that which has effected it is the spirit
of Jesus Christ, which is charity.

This solution of the difficulty by charity is not, however, the only one
which we propose. Without speaking of the concordats which prove that
an amicable understanding may be entered into with Rome, and also not
to mention those great sovereigns of various countries whose history
proves that to live in peace with the church is by no means hurtful to
the prosperity of the state, the Russians will allow us also to reckon in
some degree upon the intellectual progress to which, no less than other
nations, they attach a great value. Now, to advance intellectually is to
perceive that which was previously hidden from the mind, and to discern
clearly that which was only half guessed at before. Why, then, not hope
that the Russians will now see more clearly than in the time when Peter
I. treated them so contemptuously what must be expected or feared from
the religious and civil power; that is to say, that if conflicts appear
inevitable, the alternative, for them as well as for other peoples, is
this: conflicts with Rome, or slavery to their sovereigns. Let them make
their choice.

Much is said about the providential mission of Russia in Asia. Why not
also in Europe? Of all the nations of Europe, the Russian people is that
which more than all others knows by experience what serfdom really is,
under the empire of a sovereign ruling at the same time bodies and souls.
Their submission has been called “the heroism of slavery.” “Whoever has
seen Russia,” it has also been said, “will find himself happy to live
anywhere else.” Well! at the risk of provoking a smile of incredulity, we
express the hope that there will be found amongst the Russians sufficient
intelligence to comprehend that God is offering to them the most sublime
mission with which he can honor a nation. A people only now freed from
religious slavery, and consecrating the first exercise of its liberty to
hinder other nations from falling into the same slavery, will be worthy
of true admiration, so much would there be in this conduct of nobleness,
of self-denial, and of disinterestedness! Now, all this is what Russia
can do. But in order to do it, she must break with the past; she must
disavow her acts; she must acknowledge with humility her faults, which
she must hasten to repair. If those who hold in their hands the destinies
of Russia were not czars, that would offer no difficulty. The czars
are not the Russian people. If they have reparation to make, they have
nothing to disavow. In the situation in which Russia has been up to the
present time the faults of the czars have been personally their own; no
responsibility could rest upon the Russian people.

But Russia is still governed by the czars. Will they be asked to break
with their past? Will it be expected that they will disavow the acts of
their dynasty; that they will acknowledge their faults; that they will
repair them? It is to require of them a more than heroic virtue. Are they
capable of it? Why not?

The czar who at this time governs Russia has emancipated the Russian
peasants, he has abolished the servitude of the glebe. He has had to
break with his past, disavow the acts of his ancestors, acknowledge their
faults, and repair them. He has had to struggle against immense interior
difficulties, against the interests of the lords, against routine,
against the spirit of domination, against cupidity. In spite of all this,
Alexander II. is emancipator of the serfs--a title far more glorious than
those given by flattery to Peter I.

When the servitude of the peasantry was still in existence in Russia,
lords were not wanting who held to their serfs the following kind of
language: “How happy you are! You are delivered from all care for your
own existence or for that of your families! When you have finished the
work which you owe to me, you can do whatever you think best. You enjoy
in peace the fruits of the earth, the pleasures of the country, the free
air of the fields. I consider you as my children. I take care of you.
Your interests are mine. Your family joys are mine, and mine also are
your pains. How happy you are!” In fact, if we are to believe certain
authorities, nothing was wanting to the happiness of the Russian peasant,
serf of the glebe; it was a perpetual idyl. In spite of that, all Europe
pitied him. And why? Because the peasant could not go whither he would,
and because, if he were not sensible of the privation of this liberty, it
was because he had been rendered incapable of appreciating it.

Now, there are peoples who are chained to the glebe, not by the body, but
by the soul.

They have each their lord, and, provided that they accomplish the
work which their lord imposes upon them, they are, for the rest,
free to employ their time as they please. Care is taken of them, of
their families, of their material interests, and especially they are
unceasingly reminded that they are free, and that their lord has nothing
more at heart than their liberty. They are indeed free to do many things;
but one liberty is wanting to them--their body may go whither they desire
it, but their soul is chained to the glebe. Study being granted to them,
and the knowledge of that which is passing in the world being no longer
refused to them, they discover on the earth a church which calls herself
divine, and charged to conduct all souls to heaven. They study her; they
are not alarmed at objections; they know how to make allowance for
human weakness in her children, and even in her ministers. They find in
this weakness itself one argument more in favor of the divinity of this
church. They admire the courage, full of gentleness, of these bishops. It
is truth, it is God, who speaks by her. These souls desire God, and they
are therefore drawn towards her, because they lift themselves up to God.
At this moment a heavy weight holds them back; wishing to soar towards
heaven, they find themselves chained to the glebe.

Yes, for the souls who desire God the false interests of the state
are but a glebe--a glebe the laws to which the conscience refuses
to submit--a glebe the will of the sovereign, and a glebe also the
traditions of his dynasty.

These people, let others call them free, and, on the faith of their
lords, let them also call themselves free; they are none the less people
in serfdom--souls chained to the glebe.

What glory for Alexander II., if, after having delivered bodies from the
servitude of the glebe, he would also deliver souls! What glory, if,
after having delivered his own subjects from it, he would labor also to
set others free!


STRAY LEAVES FROM A PASSING LIFE.

CHAPTER I.

MR. CULPEPPER MAKES A PROPOSAL--A RENCOUNTER IN A CHURCHYARD.

It was one of those golden November mornings that throw a mystic
glamour over New York. A warm haze draped the great city, softening
its deformities, blending its beauties. In its magic light the very
street-cars took on a romantic air, as they sped along loaded with
their living freight. The bales of goods on the sidewalk, huddled
together in careless profusion, were no longer the danger which they
are generally supposed to be by elderly gentlemen who have due regard
for life and limb, but gracious droppings rather from Pandora’s box,
raining down fresh and bright from the hands of the genial goddess. What
in the garish sun were vulgar business houses filled with sober goods
and peopled with staring and sleek-combed clerks, assumed under this
gorgeous drapery the aspect of mystic temples of commerce, where silent
and solemn-eyed priests stood patiently all the day long to call in
the passers-by to worship. The lofty policeman, looming like a statue
at the corner, was not the ferocious, peanut-chewing being that he is
commonly supposed to be, but a beneficent guardian of the great temple
of peace. The busy crowds of brisk business men that hurried along,
untouched as yet by the toil and the soil of the day, were fresh-faced
and clear-eyed, chatty and cheerful. Thompson stepped out as cheerily
as though he were just beginning that strange task, on which so many
ambitious mortals have gone down, of performing his thousand miles in
a thousand hours; for Thompson, happy man! knew not as yet what was so
calmly awaiting him on his desk--that heavy bill that he was bound to
meet, but which, strange to say, had quite slipped his memory. And there
is Johnson walking arm-in-arm with Jones, Johnson’s face wreathed in
sunny smiles the while. Johnson’s heart is gay and his step light, and
he feels the happy influence of the morning. Jones is sadly in want of a
confidential clerk, and his friend is dilating on the treasure that he
himself possesses--that very clerk who, he learns on reaching his office,
absconded last night with a fearful amount of Johnson’s property. Nor,
on the other hand, does that eager-faced youngster, the shining seams of
whose garments tell of more years than his seamless face and brow, know
that at last the gracious answer that he has so longed for awaits his
arrival, and that the bright opening at length lies before him that is to
lead him on to fortune, if not to fame, more than the five hundred and
forty-six rival applicants know that their addresses have been rejected.
As yet the day is marked with neither white bean nor black, and so let
us hope, with this mighty stream pouring on and on and on down the great
thoroughfares of the city, that the white beans may outnumber the black
when the day is done, and that what is lost here may be gained there;
for we are of them, brethren of theirs, and joyous hopes of this kind
cost little, while, at least, they harden not the heart. And so the whole
city, with its hopes and fears, its life and its death, moved out under
the November haze that morning, and with it, as the central figure in the
vast panorama, he whose stray leaves, it is hoped, may prove at least of
passing interest to the many of whom he is one.

My special point of attraction that day was the office of _The Packet_,
“a monthly journal of polite literature,” to quote the prospectus, which
was supported by “the ablest pens of both hemispheres,” as the same
prospectus modestly admitted. As at this time I was a pretty constant
contributor to _The Packet_, I suppose that, according to the prospectus,
I was fully entitled to take my stand among “the ablest pens of both
hemispheres,” whether I chose to insist on my literary rank or not. And
as I contributed occasionally to other journals which were respectively,
according to their several prospectuses, “the leading weekly,” “the
greatest daily,” “the giant monthly,” “the only quarterly,” “the great
art journal,” etc., there could not possibly be any doubt as to my
literary position. For all that, I confess I was still among the callow
brood, and fear that, if any person had referred to me in public as “a
literary man,” the literary man would have blushed very violently, and
felt as small as a titmouse. Still, I had that delicious feeling of the
dawning of hope and the glorious uncertainty of a great ambition that
always attend and encourage the first steps of a new career, whatever
be its character. It was natural enough, then, that I should step out
lustily among my fellows, my head high in air, and my heart higher
still, drinking in the inspiration of the morning, piercing the golden
mist with the eye of hope, feeling a young life throbbing eagerly within
me, feeling a mysterious brotherhood with all men, gliding as through a
fairy city in a gilded dream.

As I had several places to call at, it was late in the afternoon when I
arrived at _The Packet_ office to draw my little account. On entering I
found an unusual commotion; something had evidently gone very wrong. Mr.
Culpepper, the experienced editor of the journal of polite literature,
was, to judge by the tones of his voice, in a towering rage. I fancied
that I caught expressions, too, which were not exactly in accordance
with polite literature. When Mr. Culpepper’s temper did happen to fail,
it was an event to be remembered, particularly as that event took
place, on an average, some two or three times a week. Everything and
everybody in the office was in a turmoil; for Mr. Culpepper’s temper had
an infectious quality that affected all its immediate surroundings. An
experienced eye could tell by the position of the dictionary, the state
of the floor, the standing of the waste-basket, the precise turn of the
editor’s easy-chair, how the wind blew to Mr. Culpepper. On this mild
November afternoon it was clear that a terrific gale had sprung up from
some unexpected quarter. It had ruffled what was left of Mr. Culpepper’s
hair, it blew his cravat awry, it had disarranged his highly intellectual
whiskers, it spared not even his venerable coat-tails. His private office
showed the effects of a raging tornado. Pigeon-holes had been ransacked;
drawers had been wrenched open and rifled of their contents; Webster and
Worcester lay cheek-by-jowl in the waste-basket; the easy-chair had a
dangerous crick in the back; Mr. Culpepper himself was plunged ankle-deep
in manuscripts that strewed the floor in wild confusion; while Mr.
Culpepper’s hands were thrust in his cavernous pockets, as he stood there
on my entrance, a very monument of editorial despair.

Mr. Culpepper, like most men, was preferable when good-tempered. Indeed,
though his opinions at times, particularly on the merits or demerits of
my own compositions, were apt to be more emphatic than polished, Mr.
Culpepper, when good-tempered, was by no means an unpleasant companion.
In his stormy periods I always coasted as clear of him as I could; but it
was now too late to sheer off. So, making the best of a bad bargain, I
advanced boldly to meet the enemy, when to my surprise he greeted me with
the exclamation,

“Oh! you are just the man I wanted. Can you tell a story--a good,
lively Christmas story, with a spice of fun, a dash of love, a slice of
plum-pudding, a sprinkling of holly and ivy, with a bunch of mistletoe
thrown in? And, by the bye, if you have genius enough, a good ghost. Yes,
a good, old-fashioned ghost would be capital. They are dying out now,
more’s the pity. Yes, I must have a ghost and a country churchyard, with
a bowl of punch, if you want it. There are your materials. Now, I want
them fixed up into a first-class Christmas story, to fill exactly eight
pages, by four o’clock to-morrow afternoon at the latest. Must have it to
fit this illustration. Clepston was to have done it, but he has failed me
at the last hour. Just like him--he must go and get married just when
I want my story. He did it on purpose, because I refused to advance his
pay--married out of revenge, just to spite me. Well, what do you say?”

I said nothing; for Mr. Culpepper’s rapidity and the novelty of his
proposal fairly took my breath away. I had never yet attempted fiction,
but there was a certain raciness in Mr. Culpepper’s manner of putting it
that urged me to seize my present opportunity. A good ghost-story within
just twenty-four hours! A pleasant winter tale that should be read to
happy families by happy firesides; by boys at school, their hair standing
on end with wild excitement, and their laughter ringing out as only boys’
laughter does; by sweet-faced girls--by everybody, in fact, with a vast
amount of pleasure and not a twinge of pain. Thousands whom I should
never know would say, “What a dear fellow this story-teller is!” “What a
pleasant way he has of putting things!” “What--”

“Well, what do you say?” broke in Mr. Culpepper rudely; and I remembered
that the story which was to win me such golden opinions from all sorts of
people was yet to be written.

“I hardly know. Four o’clock to-morrow afternoon? The time is so very
short. Could you not extend it?”

“Not a moment. Printers waiting now. If I can’t have yours by that time,
I must use something else; and I have not a thing to suit. Just look
here,” he said pointing to the floor, and glancing ruefully around; “I
have spent the day wading through all these things, and there is nothing
among the pile. A mass of rubbish, all of it!”

My resolution was made; I started up.

“Mr. Culpepper, I will try. I will stay up all night; and if there be a
ghost yet unlaid, a pudding yet unmade, a piece of holly yet ungathered,
or a bunch of mistletoe that has not yet done duty, you shall have them
all by four o’clock to-morrow afternoon.”

“Now, I rely on you, mind. Four o’clock sharp. Let it be brisk and
frosty, bright as the holly-berries, and soothing as a glass of punch!
We owe you a little account, I believe. Here it is, and now good-by till
to-morrow afternoon.”

Who has not experienced that half-fearful and yet wholly pleasant feeling
of setting foot for the first time in a new and strange land? It was
with some such feeling that my heart fluttered as I left the office of
_The Packet_ that afternoon. Yet what was I to achieve within the next
four-and-twenty hours? An eight-page Christmas story of the approved
pattern, with the conventional sauces and seasonings--nothing more. The
thing had been done a thousand times before, and would be done a thousand
times again, as often as Christmases came round, and thought nothing
of. Why should I be so fluttered at the task? Was this to be the great
beginning at last of my new career? Was this trumpery eight-page story
to be the true keynote to what was to make music of all the rest of my
life? Nonsense! I said to myself; and yet why nonsense? Did not all great
enterprises spring from small and insignificant beginnings? Were not all
great men at some time or another babies in arms, rocked in cradles, fed
on soothing syrups, and carried about in long clothes? Did not a falling
apple lead Newton on to the great discovery of gravitation? Was it not
a simmering kettle that opened Watt’s eyes to steam, and introduced the
railway and the packet? Did not a handful of sand reveal the mines of
California? Must not Euclid have started with a right reading of axioms
as old as the world? Who shall fix the starting-point of genius? And why
should not my first fictitious Christmas pudding contain the germ of
wonders that were to be?

I can feel the astute and experienced reader who has been gracious enough
to accompany me thus far already falter at the very outset of the short
excursion we purposed taking together. I can feel the pages close over
me like a tomb, while a weary yawn sings my death-dirge. But allow me,
my dear sir, or my dear madam, or my much-esteemed young lady, to stay
your hands just one moment, until I explain matters a little, until I
introduce myself properly; and I promise to be very candid in all I have
to say. You see--indeed, you will have seen already--that the gentleman
who has just left Mr. Culpepper’s presence was at this period of his
life very young indeed, and proportionately ambitious. These two facts
will explain the fluttering of his heart at the cold-blooded proposal
of spending an entire night at his writing-desk, delving his brain for
the materials of a silly little story, while you, dear sir, have drawn
over your ears, and over that head that has been rubbed into reverent
smoothness by the gentle hand of time, the sleep-compelling night-cap;
and while you, dear madam, while you have--done nothing of the kind. I
plead guilty, then, at this time, to the twofold and terrible charge of
outrageous youth and still more outrageous ambition. But I have long
since contrived to overcome the disgrace of excessive youth; while, as
regards ambition, what once happened to a literary friend of mine has
never happened to me: that morning I have been waiting for so long,
so long, when I was to wake up and find myself famous, has not yet
arrived--looks even as though it never meant to dawn. Literature was to
me an unknown sea, upon which I had not fairly embarked. I had paddled a
little in a little cockleshell of my own in sunny weather around friendly
coasts, but as yet had not ventured to launch out into the great deep.
The storm and the darkness and the night, the glory and the dread of the
tempest, the awful conflicts of the elements, were as yet unknown to and
unbraved by me. Indeed, as I promised to be candid, I may as well whisper
in your ear that the main efforts of my pen at this precise period of
my life were devoted to meeting with a calm front and easy conscience
the weekly eye of Mrs. Jinks. Mrs. Jinks was my boarding-house keeper, a
remarkable woman in her way, and one for whom I entertained an unbounded
respect; but she was scarcely a Mme. de Staël, unless in looks, still
less a Mme. de Sévigné. Mme. Jinks’ encouragement to aspiring genius was
singularly small when aspiring genius could not pay its weekly board--a
contingency that has been known to occur. Mrs. Jinks never fell into the
fatal mistake of tempting the man to eat unless the man was prepared
to pay. But even Mrs. Jinks could not crush out all ambition, so that
I hugged Mr. Culpepper’s proposal, as I went home that evening, with a
fervor and enthusiasm that I had never before experienced; for it seemed
to open up to me a new vista of bright and beautiful imaginings.

For all that, I could not strike the clew. It seems a very easy thing,
does it not, to concoct a passable enough Christmas story out of the
ample materials with which Mr. Culpepper had so lavishly supplied me?
Just try; sit down and write a good, short, brisk Christmas story, out of
all the time-honored materials, and judge for yourself what an easy task
it is, O sapient critic! a line from whose practised pen stabs to death
a year of hopes, and projects, and labor. Strange to say, my immediate
project dissolved and faded out of my mind, as I plodded homewards along
the great thoroughfare I had trodden so serenely in the morning. The
little Christmas story gave place to something new, something larger,
something vague, indefinable, and mighty. A great realm of fiction
unfolded itself before me--a realm all my own, a fairy island in a summer
sea, peopled with Calibans and dainty Ariels, Mirandas and Ferdinands,
and a thousand unseen creatures, waiting only for the wave of my magic
wand to be summoned into the beauty of life, to bring sweet songs down
from the clouds of heaven, and whisperings of spirits far away that the
earth had never yet heard. A mist sprang up around me as I walked, and
through it peered a thousand eyes, and from it came and went a thousand
shapeless forms, whose outlines I could half discern, but hold not. I
could not bid them stay until I grasped them. Something was wanting, a
touch only, a magic word, but I could not find it. A charm was on me,
and more potent than I. It was there, working, working, working, but I
could not master it. I walked along in a dream. Men in throngs passed
me by in what seemed a strange and awful silence. If they spoke, never a
word heard I. Carriages and vehicles of every description I felt rolling,
rolling past; but their wheels were strangely muffled, for never a sound
fell on my ear. The fair, bright city of the morning was filled now with
silent shadows, moving like ghosts in a troubled dream. Lights sprang
up out of the mist as I passed along, but they seemed to shine upon me
alone. Intensely conscious of my own existence, I had only a numb feeling
of other life around me. At last I found myself at Mrs. Jinks’ door. I
took a letter from her hand, and seated at length in my own room, with
familiar objects around me, the shadows seemed to lift, and I was brought
back to the subject of my proposed night’s work.

Still, I could not collect my thoughts sufficiently to bring them to
bear, in a practical way, on the central idea around which my fiction
was to take body and shape. The sudden strain on my imagination had been
too severe; a kind of numbness pervaded my whole being, and the moments,
every one of which was precious as a grain of gold, were slipping idly
away. The feeling that all the power to achieve what you desire lies
there torpid within you, but too sullen to be either coaxed or bullied
into action, laughing sluggishly at the most violent effort of the will
to move it, is, perhaps, one of the most exasperating that a man can
experience. It is like one in a nightmare, who sees impending over him a
nameless terror that it only needs a wag of a little tongue to divert,
and yet the little tongue cleaves with such monstrous persistency to
the roof of the parched mouth that not all the leverage of Archimedes
himself could move it from its place. That fine power of man’s intellect,
that clear perception and keen precision which can search the memory, and
at a glance find the clew that it is seeking; that can throw out those
far-reaching fibres over the garden of knowledge, gathering in from all
sides the necessary stores, was as far away from me as from a madman’s
dream. I could fasten upon nothing; my brain was in disorder, while the
moments were lengthening into hours, and the hours slipping silently away.

In despair I tried a cigar--a favorite refuge of mine in difficulties;
and soon light clouds, pervaded with a subtle aroma, were added to those
thinner clouds of undefined and indefinable images that floated around
me, volatile, shadowy, intangible; mysterious, nebulous. Mr. Culpepper’s
“materials” had quite evaporated, and I began to think dreamily of old
days, of anything, everything, save what was to the point. I remember how
poor old Wetherhead, of all people in the world--“Leatherhead” we used
facetiously to style him at college--came up before me, and I laughed
over the fun we had with him. What a plodder he was! When preparing
for his degree, he took ferociously to wet towels. He had the firmest
faith in wet towels. He had tried them for the matriculation, and found
them “capital,” he assured us. “Try a towel, Leathers,” we would say to
him whenever we saw him in difficulties. Poor fellow! He was naturally
dull and heavy, dense and persistent as a clod. It would take digging
and hoeing and trenching to plant anything in that too solid brain; and
yet he was the most hopeful fellow alive. He was possessed with the
very passion of study, without a streak of brightness or imagination
to soften and loosen the hopeless mass of clay whereof his mind seemed
composed; and so he depended on wet towels to moisten it. He almost wore
his head out while preparing for the matriculation examen. But by slow
and constant effort he succeeded in forcing a sufficient quantity of
knowledge into his pores, and retaining it there, to enable him to pass
the very best-deserved first class that ever was won. The passage of
the Alps to a Hannibal or a Napoleon was a puny feat compared with the
passing of an examination by a Wetherhead. We took him on our shoulders,
and bore him aloft in triumph, a banner-bearer, with a towel for banner,
marching at the head of the procession. “You may laugh, but it was the
towels pulled me through, old fellow,” he said to me, smiling, his great
face expanding with delight. “Stay there, and don’t go any farther,
Leathers,” I advised, when he proclaimed his intention of going up for
the degrees. “Nonsense!” said he, and, in spite of everybody’s warnings,
Wetherhead “went in” for the B.A. It was a sight to see him in the
agonies of study; his eyes almost starting out of his head as the day
wore on, and around that head, arranged in turban fashion, an enormous
towel reeking with moisture. “How many towels to-day, Leathers?” “How’s
the reservoir, Leatherhead?” those impudent youngsters would cry out.
As time went on and the examination drew near the whole college became
interested in Wetherhead and his prospects of success. Bets were made
on him, and bets were made on his towels. The wit of our class wrote an
essay--which, it was whispered aloud, had reached the professors’ room,
and been read aloud there to their intense amusement--on “Towels _vs._
Degrees; or, The probabilities of success, measured by the quantity of
water on the brain.” He bore it all good-humoredly, even the threat to
crown him with towels instead of laurel if he passed and went up for
his degree. A dark whisper reached me, away in the country at the time,
that he had failed, that the failure had touched his brain, and that he
was cut down half-strangled one morning from his own door-key, to which
he had suspended himself by means of a wet towel; which, instead of its
usual position around his brow, had fastened itself around his throat. Of
course that was a malicious libel; for I met the poor fellow soon after,
looking the ghost of himself. “How was it, Wetherhead?” I asked. “I don’t
know, old fellow,” he responded mournfully. “I got through splendidly the
first few days; but after that things began to get muddled and mixed up
somehow, so that I could hardly tell one from another. It was all there,
but something had got out of order. I felt that it was all there, but
there was too much to hold together. The fact is, _I missed my towel_. A
towel or two would have set it all right again. The machine had got too
hot, and wanted a little cooling off; but I couldn’t march in there, you
know, with a big towel round my head; so I failed.”

The clock striking twelve woke me from my dream of school-days. I had
just sixteen hours and a half left to complete the story that was not yet
begun. Whew! I might as well engage to write a history of science within
the appointed time. It was useless. My cigar had gone out, and I gave up
the idea of writing a story at all. And yet surely it was so easy, and I
had promised Culpepper, and both he and _The Packet_ and the public were
awaiting my decision. And this was to be the end of what I had deemed the
dawn of my hope and the firstling of my true genius!

“Roger Herbert, you are an ass,” spake a voice I knew well--a voice that
compelled my attention at the most unseasonable hours. “Excuse me for
my plainness of speech, but you are emphatically an ass. Now, now, no
bluster, no anger. If you and I cannot honestly avow the plain truth to
each other, there is no hope for manhood. Mr. Culpepper and the public
waiting for you! Ho! ho! Ha! ha! It’s a capital joke. Mr. Culpepper is
at this moment in the peaceful enjoyment of his first slumbers; and the
public would not even know your name if it were told them. Upon my word,
Roger, you are even a greater ass than I took you to be. Well, well,
we live and learn. For the last half-a-dozen hours or more where have
you been? Floating in the clouds; full of the elixir of life; dreaming
great dreams, your spirit within you fanned with the movement of the
_divinus afflatus_, eh? Is not that it? Nonsense, my dear lad. You have
only once again mounted those two-foot stilts, against which I am always
warning you, and which any little mountebank can manage better than you.
_They_ may show some skill, but you only tumble. So come down at once,
my fine fellow, and tread on _terra firma_ again, where alone you are
safe. You a genius! Ho! ho! Ho! ho! ho! And all apropos of a Christmas
pudding. The genius of a Christmas pudding! It is too good. Your proper
business, when Mr. Culpepper made his proposal to you this afternoon, was
to tell him honestly that the task he set you was one quite beyond your
strength--altogether out of your reach, in fact. But no; you must mount
your stilts, and, once on them, of course you are a head and shoulders
above honest folk. O Roger, Roger! why not remember your true stature?
What is the use of a man of five foot four trying to palm himself off and
give himself the airs of one of six foot four? He is only laughed at for
his pains, as Mr. Culpepper will assuredly laugh at you to-morrow. Take
my advice, dear boy, acknowledge your fault, and then go to bed. You are
no genius, Roger. In what, pray, are you better, in what are you so good,
as fifty of your acquaintances, whom I could name right off for you, but
who never dream that they are geniuses? The _divinus afflatus_, forsooth!
For shame, for shame, little man! Stick to your last, my friend, and be
thankful even that you have a last whereto to stick. Let Apelles alone,
or let the other little cobblers carp at him, if they will. The world
will think more of his blunders than of all your handicraft put together,
and your little cobbler criticisms into the bargain. And now, having said
my say, I wish you a very good-night, Roger, or good-morning rather.”

So spake the voice of the _Daimon_ within me; a very bitter voice it
has often proved to me--as bitter, but as healthy, as a tonic. And
at its whisper down tumbled all “the cloud-capt towers and gorgeous
palaces” that my imagination had so swiftly conjured up. It was somewhat
humiliating to confess, but, after all, Roger Herbert, Senior, as I
called that inner voice, was right. I resolved to go to bed. Full of that
practical purpose, I went to my desk to close it up for the night, and
all dreams of a momentary ambition with it, when my eyes fell upon a
letter bearing the address:

    ROGER HERBERT, ESQ.,
    Care of Mrs. Jinks,
    ---- Street,
    New York,
    United States,
    America.

What a quantity of writing for so small an envelope! One needed no
curious peep within, nor scarcely a second glance at the neat-pointed
hand, with the up-and-down strokes of equal thickness, to guess at the
sex of the writer. I remembered now; it was the letter Mrs. Jinks gave me
at the door, and, good heavens! it had been lying there disregarded all
these hours, while I was inflated with my absurd and bombastic thoughts.
The writing I knew well, for my hand had been the first to guide the
writer through the mazes and the mysteries of chirography. One sentence
from the letter is sufficient to give here. “Dear, dear Roger: Papa is
sick--is _dying_. Come home at once.” It was signed “Fairy.”

“Home at once!” The post-marks said London and Leighstone. London, it
may be necessary to inform the reader, is the capital of a county called
Middlesex, in a country called England, while Leighstone is a small
country town some thirty miles out of London. From Leighstone writes
“Fairy” to “Dear, dear Roger” some thousand--it seems fifty thousand--odd
miles away. The father reported dying is my father; Fairy is my sister.
It is now nearly two in the morning, and by four in the afternoon Mr.
Culpepper and the printers expect that brisk, pleasant, old-fashioned
Christmas story that is to make everybody happy, and not a hint at pain
in it! And I have been puzzling my brains these long hours past trying
to compose it, with that silent letter staring me in the face all the
time. A pleasant Christmas story, a cheery Christmas story! How bitterly
that voice began to laugh within me again! Oh! the folly, the crime, of
which I had been guilty. It was such vain and idle dreams as these that
had lured me away from that father’s side; that had brought me almost to
forget him; that, great God! perhaps had dealt the blow that struck him
down. Merciful heavens! what a Christmas story will it be mine to tell?

At four in the afternoon a steamer sailed for Liverpool, and I was one
of the passengers. Years have passed since then, and I can write all
this calmly enough now; but only those--and God grant that they may be
few!--who at a moment’s warning, or at any warning, have had to cross
more than a thousand miles of ocean in the hope of catching a dying
parent’s last breath, can tell how the days pall and the sleepless nights
drag on; how the sky expands into a mighty shroud covering one dear
object, of which the sad eyes never lose the sight; how the winds, roar
they loud or sing they softly, breathe ever the same low, monotonous
dirge.

It was scarcely a year since I had parted from my father, and our parting
had not been of the friendliest. He was a magnate in Leighstone, as all
the Herberts before him had been since Leighstone had a history. They
were a tradition in the place; and though to be great there in these days
did not mean what it once meant, and to the world outside signified very
little indeed, yet what is so exacting or punctilious as the etiquette
of a petty court, what so precise and well preserved as its narrow
traditions and customs? Time did not exist for Leighstone when a Herbert
was not the foremost man there. The tomb of the Herberts was the oldest
and grandest in the churchyard that held the ashes of whole generations
of the Leighstone folk. There had been Crusading Herberts, and Bishops
Herbert, Catholic and Protestant, Abbots Herbert, Justices Herbert,
Herberts that had shared in councils of state, and Herberts that had been
hanged, drawn, and quartered by order of the state. Old townsfolk would
bring visitors to the churchyard and give in their own way the history of
“that ere Harbert astretched out atop o’ the twomb, wi’ a swoord by his
soide, and gluvs on his hands, the two on ’em folded one aginst t’other
a-prayin’ loike, and a cross on his buzzum, and a coople o’ angels wi’
stone wings a-watchin’ each side o’ ’im. A had fowt in the waars long
ago, that ere Harbert had, when gentle-folk used to wear steel coats,
a used, and iron breeches, and go ever so fur over the seas to foight.
Queer toimes them was. Whoi, the Harberts, folks did say, was the oldest
fam’ly i’ the country. Leastwoise, there was few ’uns older.”

My father was possessed with the greatness of his ancestry, and resented
the new-fangled notions that professed to see nothing in blood or
history. Nurtured on tradition of a past that would never reappear,
he speedily retired from a world where he was too eager to see that a
Herbert was no more than a Jones or a Smith, and, though gifted with
powers that, rightly used, might have proved, even in these days, that
there was more in his race than tradition of a faded past, he preferred
withdrawing into that past to reproducing it in a manner accommodated
to the new order of things. In all other respects he was a very amiable
English gentleman, who, abjuring politics, which he held had degenerated
into a trade unbecoming a gentleman’s following, divided his time between
antiquarian and agricultural pursuits, for neither of which did I exhibit
so ardent an admiration as he had hoped. As soon as I could read, and
think, and reason in my own way, I ran counter to my father in many
things, and was pronounced by him to be a radical, infected with the
dangerous doctrines of the day, which threatened the overthrow of all
things good, and the advent of all things evil. He only read in history
the records of a few great families. For me the families were of far
less interest than the peoples, historically at least. The families had
already passed or were passing away; the peoples always remained. To the
families I attributed most of the evils that had afflicted humanity; in
the peoples I found the stuff that from time to time helped to regenerate
humanity. I do not say that all this came to me at once; but this manner
of looking at things grew upon me, and made my father anxious about my
future, though he was too kind to place any great restrictions in the way
of my pursuits, and our disputes would generally end by the injunction:
“Roger, whatever you do or think, always remember that you represent a
noble race, and are by your very birth an English gentleman, so long as
such a being is permitted to exist.”

As I grew older problems thickened around me, and I often envied the
passive resignation with which so spirited a temperament as my father’s
could find refuge from the exciting questions of the day in the quiet
of his books and favorite pursuits. Coming home from college or from an
occasional excursion into the great world without, Leighstone would seem
to me a hermitage, where life was extinct, and there was room for nothing
save meditation. And there I meditated much, and pondered and read, as I
then thought, deeply. The quaint, old churchyard was my favorite ground
for colloquy with myself, and admirably adapted, with its generations of
silent dead, was it for the purpose. In that very tomb lay bones, once
clothed with flesh, through which coursed lustily blood that had filtered
down through the ages into my veins. In my thoughts I would question
that quiet old Herbert stretched out there on his tomb centuries ago,
and lying so still, with his calm, stony face upturned immovably and
confidently to heaven. The face was not unlike my father’s; Leighstone
folk said it was still more like mine. That Herbert was a Catholic, and
believed earnestly in all that I and my father as earnestly disbelieved.
Was he the worse or the better man for his faith? To what had his faith
led him, and to what had ours led us? What was his faith, and what was
ours? To us he was a superstitious creature, born in dark ages, and the
victim of a cunning priestcraft, that, in the name of heaven, darkened
the minds and hearts of men; while, had he dreamed that a degenerate
child of his would ever, even in after-ages, turn heretic, as he would
say, the probabilities were that in his great-hearted earnestness, had it
rested solely with him, he would rather have ended the line in his own
person than that such disgrace should ever come upon it. The man who in
his day had dared tell him that flesh of his would ever revile the church
in which he believed, and the Sacrament which he adored, would likely
enough have been piously knocked on the head for his pains. What a puzzle
it all was! Could a century or two make all this difference in the manner
of regarding the truths on which men professed to bind their hopes of an
eternal hereafter?

One afternoon of one of those real English summer days that when they
come are so balmy and bright and joyous, while sauntering through the
churchyard, I lighted upon a figure half buried in the long grass, so
deeply intent on deciphering the inscription around the tomb of my
ancestor that he did not notice my approach. There he lay, his hat by
his side, and an open sketch-book near it, peering into the dim, old,
half-effaced characters as curiously as ever did alchemist of eld into an
old black-letter volume. His years could not be many more than mine. His
form would equally attract the admiration of a lady or a prize-fighter.
The sign of ruddy health burned on the bronzed cheek. The dress had
nothing particular in it to stamp the character of the wearer. The
sketch-book and his absorbing interest in the grim old characters around
a tomb might denote the enthusiasm of an artist, or of an antiquarian
like my father, though he looked too full of the robust life of careless
youth for the one, and too evidently in the enjoyment of life as it was
for the other. Altogether a man that, encountered thus in a country
churchyard on a warm July afternoon, would at once excite the interest
and attract the attention of a passer-by.

While I was mentally noting down, running up, and calculating to a
nicety the sum of his qualities, the expression of his face indicated
that he was engaged in a hopeless task. “I can make all out about the
old Crusader except the date, and that is an all-important point. The
date--the date--the date,” he repeated to himself aloud. “I wonder what
Crusade he fought in?”

“Perhaps I could assist you,” I broke in. “Sir Roger Herbert followed the
good King Edward to the Holy Land, and for the sake of Christ’s dear rood
made many a proud painim to bite the dust. So saith the old chronicle
of the Abbey of S. Wilfrid which you see still standing--the modernized
version of it, at least--on yonder hill. The present abbot of S. Wilfrid
is the florid gentleman who has just saluted me. That handsome lady
beside him is the abbot’s wife. The two pretty girls seated opposite are
the abbot’s daughters. The good and gentle Abbot Jones is taking the fair
abbess, Mrs. Jones, out for her afternoon airing. She is a very amiable
lady; he is a very genial gentleman, and the author of the pamphlet in
reply to Maitland’s _Dark Ages_. Mr. Jones is very severe on the laziness
and general good-for-nothingness of the poor monks.”

My companion, who still remained stretched on the grass, scanned my face
curiously and with an amused glance while I spoke. He seemed lost in a
half-revery, from which he did not recover until a few moments after I
had ceased speaking. With sudden recollection, he said:

“I beg your pardon, I was thinking of something else. Many thanks for
your information about this old hero, whom the new train of ideas, called
up by your mention of the Abbot Jones and his family, drove out of my
mind a moment. The Abbot Jones!” he laughed. “It is very funny. Yet why
do the two words seem so little in keeping?”

“It is because, as my father would tell you, this is the century of the
Joneses. Centuries ago Abbot Jones would have sounded just as well and as
naturally as did Queen Joan. But, in common with many another good thing,
the name has become vulgarized by a vulgar age.”

My companion glanced at me curiously again, and seemed more inwardly
amused than before, whether with me or at me, or both, it was impossible
to judge from his countenance, though that was open enough. He turned
from the abbot to the tomb again.

“And so this old hero,” said he, patting affectionately the peaked toe of
the figure of Sir Roger, “drew his sword long ago for Christ’s dear rood,
and probably scaled the walls of Damietta at the head of a lusty band.
What a doughty old fellow he must have been! I should have been proud to
have shaken hands with him.”

“Should you, indeed? Then perhaps you will allow a remote relative of
that doughty old fellow to act as his unworthy representative in his
absence?” said I, offering my hand.

“Why, you don’t mean to say that you are a descendant of the old knight
whose ashes consecrate this spot!” he exclaimed, rising and grasping
me by the hand. “Sir, I am happy to lay my hand in that of a son of a
Crusader!”

“I fear I may not claim so high a character. There are no Crusaders
left. Myself, and Sir Roger here, move in different circles. You forget
that a few centuries roll between us.”

“Centuries change the fashion of men’s garments,” he responded quickly,
“not the fashion of their hearts. Truth is truth, and faith faith, and
honor honor, now as when this warrior fought for faith, and truth, and
honor. The crusades end only with the cross and faith in Christ.”

So spake with fervent accent and kindling glance the gentleman whom a
few moments before I had set down as one eminently fitted to attract the
admiration alike of lady or prize-fighter. The words struck me as so
strange, spoken in such a place and by such a person, that I was silent a
little, and he also. At length I said:

“You are like my father. You seem to prefer the old to the new.”

“Not so; I am particularly grateful that I was born in this and in no
other century. But I object to the enthusiasm that would leave all the
dead past to bury its dead. There were certain things, certain qualities
in the centuries gone by, a larger faith, a more general fervor, a
loyalty to what was really good and great, more universal than prevails
to-day, that we might have preserved with benefit to ourselves and to
generations to come. But pardon me. You have unfortunately hit upon one
of my hobbies, and I could talk for hours on the subject.”

“On the contrary, I ought to feel flattered at finding one interested
even in so remote a relative of mine as Sir Roger. As I look at him this
moment the thought comes to me, could he bend those stiff old knees of
his, hardened by the centuries into triple stone, rise up and walk
through Leighstone, live a week among us, question us, know our thoughts,
feelings, aspirations, religions, ascertain all that we have profited by
the centuries that have rolled over this tomb, he would, after one week
of it all, gather his old joints together and go back to his quiet rest
until that

    ‘Tuba mirum spargens sonum
    Per sepulchra regionum
    Coget omnes ante thronum.’

“I can’t help laughing at the conceit. Imagine me escorting this
stiff and stony old Sir Roger through the streets of Leighstone, and
introducing him to my relations and friends as my grandfather some six
centuries removed. But the fancy sounds irreverent to one whom I doubt
not was as loyal-hearted a gentleman as ever clove a Turk to the chine.
Poor old Sir Roger! I must prevent Mattock making such constant use of
his elbow. It is getting quite out of repair.”

“Who is Mattock, may I ask?”

“Mattock is a character in his way. He is the Leighstone grave-digger,
and has been as long as I can remember. He claims a kind of fellowship
with those he buries, and he has buried a whole generation of
Leighstonites, till a contagious hump has risen on his back from the
number of mounds he has raised. He is a cynic in his way, and can be
as philosophic over a skull as Hamlet in the play. He has a wonderful
respect, almost a superstitious regard, for Sir Roger. Whenever he
strips for a burial, he commends his goods to the care of my ancestor,
accompanied always by the same remark: ‘I wonder who laid thee i’
the airth? A weighty corpse thou, a warrant. A deep grave thine, old
stone-beard. Well, lend’s your elbow, and here’s to ye, wherever ye
may be.’ Mattock takes special care to fortify himself against possible
contingencies with a dram. ‘Cold corpses,’ he says, ‘is unhealthy. They
are apt to lie heavy on the stomick, if ye doant guard agin ’em; corpses
doos. So doos oysters. A dram afore burial and another dram after keeps
off the miasmys.’ Such is Mattock’s opinion, backed up by an experience
of a quarter of a century. You are evidently a stranger in this
neighborhood?”

“Yes, I was merely passing through. I am enjoying a walking tour, being a
great walker. It is by far the best method of seeing a country. When in
the course of my wanderings I come across an old tomb such as this, an
old inscription, or anything at all that was wrought or writ by reverent
hands centuries ago, and has survived through the changes of time, I am
amply repaid for a day’s march. Doubly so in this instance, since it
has been the fortunate means of bringing me in contact with one whose
opinions I am happy to think run in many things parallel with my own. And
now to step out of the past into the very vulgar present, I am staying
at the ‘Black Bull.’ The ‘Black Bull,’ I am assured, is famous for his
larder, so that, if you feel inclined to ripen the acquaintance begun by
the grave of your ancestor, in the interior of the ‘Black Bull,’ Kenneth
Goodal will consider that he has fallen on an exceptionally happy day.”

“Kenneth Goodal?” The name struck me as familiar; but I could not
recollect at the moment where I had heard it before. I repeated it aloud.

“It sounds quite a romantic name, does it not? It was my absurd mother
who insisted on the Kenneth, after a Scotch uncle of mine. For that
matter I suppose it was she who also insisted on the Goodal. At least
my father says so. But she is the sweetest of women to have her own
way, Heaven bless her! Of course I had no voice in the matter at all,
beyond the generic squeal of babyhood. Had I been consulted, I should
have selected Jack, a jolly, rough-and-ready title. It carries a sort
of slap-me-on-the-back sound with it. One is never surprised at a Jack
getting into scrapes or getting out of them. But it would cause very
considerable surprise to hear that a Kenneth had been caught in any wild
enterprise. However, Kenneth I am, and Kenneth I must remain, as staid
and respectable as a policeman on duty by very force of title.”

“Now I remember where I heard the name. There were traditions at Dr.
Porteous’, at Kingsclere, of a Kenneth Goodal who had just left before I
went there. But he can’t have been you.”

“No? Why not?”

“He was an awful scape-grace, they told me. He used to play all kinds
of tricks on the masters, though as great a favorite with them as with
the boys. He was a great mimic, and Dr. Porteous, who is as solemn as an
undertaker at a rich man’s funeral, and as pompous as a parish beadle,
surprised Kenneth Goodal one day, surrounded by a delighted crowd,
listening with such rapt attention to a highly wrought discourse, after
the doctor’s best manner, on the history and philosophy of Resurrection
Pie, that it required the unmistakable ‘ahem!’ of the doctor at the close
to announce to actor and audience the presence of the original. The
doctor in the grand old-school manner congratulated the youthful Roscius
on talents of whose existence he had been hitherto unaware, and hinted
that a repetition of so successful a performance might encourage him to
seek a wider field for so promising a pupil. And when the same Kenneth
thrashed the Kingsclere Champion for beating one of the youngsters,
bribing the policeman not to interfere until he had finished him, the
doctor, who was a model of decorum, had him up before the whole college,
and delivered an address that is not quite forgotten to this day;
acknowledging the credit to the establishment of such a champion in their
midst; a young gentleman who could mimic his superiors until his identity
was lost, and pummel his inferiors until their identity was lost, was
wasting his great natural gifts in so narrow an arena; and so on--all
delivered in the doctor’s best Ciceronian style. It took a deputation
of all the masters and all the boys together to beg the delinquent off
a rustication or worse. In fact, the stories of him and his deeds are
endless. How odd that you should have the same name!”

My new acquaintance laughed outright.

“I fear I must lay claim to more than the name; that historical personage
stands before you. I was with Dr. Porteous for a couple of years, and had
no idea that I left such fame behind me. The doctor and I became the best
of friends after my departure. And so you and I are, in a manner, old
school-fellows? How happy I am to have fallen across you. But, come; the
‘Black Bull’ is waiting.”

“By the elbow of mine ancestor, nay. Such dishonor may not come upon the
Herberts. Why, Sir Roger here would rise from his tomb at the thought and
denounce me in the market-place. You must come with me. Dinner is ready
by this time. Come as you are. My father will like you. He likes any one
who is interested in his ancestors. And my sister, who, since my mother’s
death, is mistress of the house and mistress of us all, shall answer for
herself.”

“So be it,” he said, and we passed under the yews, their sad branches
flushed in the sun, out through the gate, under the old archway with its
mouldering statues, up the pretty straggling road that formed the High
Street of Leighstone, arm in arm together, fast friends we each of us
felt, though but acquaintances of an hour. The instinct that out of a
multitude selects one, though you may scarcely know his name, and tells
you that one is your friend, is as strange as unerring. It was this
unconscious necromancy that had woven a mesh of golden threads caught
from the summer sunlight around us as we moved along. Its influence
was upon us, breathing in the perfumed air. I had never had a real
friend of my own age before, and I hailed this one as the discovery of
a life-time. We should strike out together, tread the same path, be it
rough or smooth, arm in arm until the end come. Damon and Pythias would
be nothing to us. The same loves, the same hates, the same hopes, were to
guide, animate, and sustain us. Castles in the air! Castles in the air!
Who has not built them? Who among the sons of men in the neighborhood of
twenty summers has not chosen one man out of thousands, leant upon him,
cherished him, made him his idol, loved him above all? And so it goes
on, until some day comes a laughing eye peeping from under a bonnet, and
with one dart the bosom friendship is smitten through and through, and
Damon is ready to sacrifice a hecatomb of his Pythiases on the altar of
the ox-eyed goddess.

TO BE CONTINUED.


IN MEMORIAM.

E. T.

OBIIT ANNOS NATA XV.

    Who says she has wither’d, that little White Rose?
      She has been but remov’d from the valley of tears
    To a garden afar, where her loveliness glows
      Begemm’d with the grace-dew of virginal years,

    I knew we should lose her. The dear Sacred Heart
      Has a nook in earth’s desert for flowerets so rare;
    And keeps them awhile in safe shelter, apart
      From the wind and the rain, from the dust and the glare;

    But all to transplant them when fairest they bloom,
      When most we shall miss them. And this, that our love
    May be haunted the more by the fadeless perfume
      They have left us to breathe of the Eden above.

    Farewell, happy maiden! Our weariest hours
      May gather a share of thy perfect repose.
    And fragrantly still with the Lord of the flowers
      Thou wilt plead for thy lov’d ones--our little Saint Rose.[14]

    FEBRUARY 27, 1875.[15]


THE TRAGEDY OF THE TEMPLE.

History is like a prison-house, of which Time is the only jailer who
can reveal the secrets. And Father Time is slow to speak. Sometimes
he is strangely dumb concerning events of deep importance, sometimes
idly garrulous about small matters. When now and then he reveals some
long-kept secret, we refuse to believe him; we cannot credit that such
things ever happened on this planet of ours, so respectable in its
civilized humanity, so tenderly zealous for the welfare and freedom of
its remotest members. But this same humanity is a riddle to which our
proudest philosophers have not yet found the clew. It moves mountains to
deliver an oppressed mouse, and sits mute and apathetic while a nation
of weak brothers is being hunted to death by a nation of strong ones in
the midst of its universal brotherhood; seeing the most sacred principles
and highest interests of the world attacked and imperilled, and the
earth shaken with throes and rendings that will bring forth either life
or death, exactly as humanity shall decide, and yet not moving a finger
either way. Then, when the storm is over and it beholds the wreck caused
by its own apathy or stupidity, it fills the world with an “agony of
lamentation,” gnashes its teeth, and protests that it slept, and knew not
that these things were being done in its name.

Sometimes the funeral knell of the victims goes on echoing like a distant
thunder-tone for a whole generation, and is scarcely heeded, until at
last some watcher hearkens, and wakes us up, and, lo! we find that a
tragedy has been enacted at our door, and the victim has been crying
out piteously for help while we slumbered. History is full of these
slumberings and awakenings. What an awakening for France was that when,
after the lapse of two generations, the jailer struck the broken stones
of the Temple, and gave them a voice to tell their story, bidding all the
world attend!

The account of the imprisonment and death of Louis XVII. had hitherto
come down to his people stripped of much of its true character, and
clothed with a mistiness that disguised the naked horror of the truth,
and flattered the sensitive vanity of the nation into the belief--or
at any rate into the plausible hope--that much had been exaggerated,
and that the historians of those times had used too strong colors in
portraying the sufferings of the son of their murdered king. The _Grande
Nation_ had been always grand; she had had her hour of delirium, and run
wild in anarchy and chaos while it lasted; but she had never disowned
her essential greatness, never forfeited her humanity, the grandeur of
her mission as the eldest daughter of the church of Christ, and the
apostle of civilization among the peoples. The demon in man’s shape,
called Simon the Cordwainer, had disgraced his manhood by torturing
a feeble, inoffensive child committed to his mercy, but he alone was
responsible. The governing powers of the time were in total ignorance
of his proceedings; France had no share in the blame or the infamy. The
sensational legend of the Temple was bad enough, but at its worst no
one was responsible but Simon, a besotted shoemaker. It was even hinted
that the Dauphin had been rescued, and had not died in the Tower at all,
and many tender-hearted Frenchmen clung long and tenaciously to this
fiction. But at the appointed time one man, at the bidding of the great
Secret-Teller, stood forth and tore away the veil, and discovered to all
the world the things that had been done, not by Simon the Cordwainer, but
by the _Grande Nation_ in his person. M. de Beauchesne[16] was that man,
and nobly, because faithfully and inexorably, he fulfilled his mission.
It was a fearful message that he had to deliver, and there is no doubt
but that his work--the result of twenty years’ persevering research and
study--moved the hearts of his countrymen as no book had ever before
moved them. It made an end once and for ever of garbled narratives, and
comforting fables, and bade the guilty nation look upon the deeds she had
done, and atone for them with God’s help as best she might.

In reading the records of those mad times one ceases to wonder at recent
events. They give the key to all subsequent crimes and wanderings. A
nation that deliberately, in cold, premeditated hate and full wakefulness
of reason, decrees by law in open court that God does not exist, and
forthwith abolishes him by act of parliament--a nation that does this
commits itself to the consequences. France did this in the National
Convention of 1793, and why should she not pay the penalty?

Of all the victims of that bloody period, there is none whose story is
so touching as that of the little son of Louis and Marie Antoinette. He
was born at Versailles on the 27th of March, 1785. All eye-witnesses
describe him as a bright and lovely child, with shining curls of fair
hair, large, blue eyes, liquid as a summer sky, and a countenance of
angelic sweetness and rare intelligence--“a thing of joy” to all who
beheld him. Crowds waited for hours to catch a glimpse of him disporting
himself in his little garden before the palace, a flower amidst the
flower-beds, prattling with every one, making the old park ring with
his joyous laughter. One day, when in the midst of his play, he ran to
meet his mother, and, flinging himself into a bush for greater haste,
got scratched by the thorns; the queen chided him for the foolish
impetuosity. “How then?” replied the child; “you told me only yesterday
that the road to glory was through thorns.” “Yes, but glory means
devotion to duty, my son,” was Marie Antoinette’s reply. “Then,” cried
the little man, throwing his arms, round her knees, “I will make it my
glory to be devoted to you, mamma!” He was about four years old when this
anecdote was told of him.

It is rather characteristic of the child’s destiny that two hours after
the bereavement which made him Dauphin of France, and while his parents
were breaking their hearts by the still warm body of his elder brother,
a deputation from the Tiers Etat came to demand an audience of the
king. Louis XVI. was a prey to the first agony of his paternal grief,
and sent to entreat the deputies to spare him, and return another day.
They sent back an imperious answer, insisting on his appearing. “Are
there no fathers amongst them?” exclaimed the king; but he came out and
received them. The incident was trifling, yet it held one of those notes
of prophetic anticipation which now first began to be heard, foretelling
the approaching storm in which the old ship of French royalty was to be
wrecked.

On the 6th of October the palace of Versailles was stormed by the mob;
the guards were massacred, the royal family led captives to Paris amidst
the triumphant yells of the _sans-culottes_. Then followed the gilded
captivity of the Tuileries, which lasted three years; then came the 10th
of August, when this was exchanged for the more degrading prison of the
Temple; then the _Conciergerie_--then the scaffold.

The Temple was a Gothic fortress built in 1212 by the Knights of the
Temple. It had been long inhabited by those famous warrior-knights,
and consisted of two distinct towers, which were so constructed as to
resemble one building. The great tower was a massive structure divided
into five or six stories, above a hundred and fifty feet high, with a
pyramidal roof like an extinguisher, having at each corner a turret
with a conical roof like a steeple. This was formerly the keep, and had
been used as treasury and arsenal by the Templars; it was accessible
only by a single door in one turret, opening on a narrow stone stair.
The other was called the Little Tower, a narrow oblong with turrets at
each angle, and attached, without any internal communication, to its big
neighbor on the north side. Close by, within the enclosure of the Temple,
stood an edifice which had in olden times been the dwelling-house of
the prior, and it was here the royal family were incarcerated on their
arrival. The place was utterly neglected and dilapidated, but from its
construction and original use it was capable of being made habitable.
The king believed that they were to remain here, and visited the empty,
mouldy rooms next day, observing to Cléry what changes and repairs were
most urgently required. No such luxurious prospect was, however, in store
for them. They were merely huddled into the Prior’s Hotel while some
preparations were being made for their reception in the tower. These
preparations consisted in precautions, equally formidable and absurd,
against possible rescue or flight. The heavy oak doors, the thick stone
walls, which had proved safe enough for murderers and rebel warriors,
were not considered secure for the timid king and his wife and children.
Doors and windows were reinforced with iron bars, bolts, and wooden
blinds. The corkscrew stair was So narrow that only one person could pass
it at a time, yet new iron-plated doors were put up, and bars thrown
across it at intervals, to prevent escape. The door leading from it into
the royal prisoners’ apartment was so low that when Marie Antoinette
was dragged from her children, after the king’s death, to be taken to
the _Conciergerie_, she knocked her head violently against the upper
part of it, exclaiming to some one who hoped she was not hurt, “Nothing
can hurt me now!” The Abbé Edgeworth thus describes the access to the
king’s rooms: “I was led across the court to the door of the tower,
which, though very narrow and very low, was so overcharged with iron
bolts and bars that it opened with a horrible noise. I was conducted up a
winding stair so narrow that two persons would have had great difficulty
in getting past each other. At short distances these stairs were cut
across by barriers, at each of which was a sentinel; these men were all
true _sans-culottes_, generally drunk, and their atrocious exclamations,
re-echoed by the vast vaults which covered every story of the tower,
were really terrifying.” For still greater security all the adjoining
buildings which crowded round the tower were thrown down. This work of
destruction was entrusted to Palloy, a zealous patriot, whose energy in
helping to pull down the Bastile pointed him out as a fit instrument for
the occasion. These external arrangements fitly symbolized the systematic
brutality which was organized from the first by the Convention, and
relentlessly carried out by its agents on each succeeding victim, but
by no one so ferociously as Simon the shoemaker. The most appalling
riddle which the world has yet set us to solve is the riddle of the
French Revolution. The deepest thinkers, the shrewdest philosophers, are
puzzling over it still, and will go on puzzling to the crack of doom.
There are causes many and terrible which explain the grand fact of the
nation’s revolt itself; why, when once the frenzy broke out, the people
murdered the king, and butchered all belonging to him, striving to bring
about a new birth, a different order of things, by a baptism of blood,
the death and annihilation of the old system--many wise and solemn words
have been uttered concerning these things, many answers which, if they
do not justify the madness of the Revolution, help us to pity, and in
a measure excuse, its actors; but the enigma which no one has ever yet
solved, or attempted to solve, is the excess of cruelty practised on
the fair-haired child whose sole crime was his misfortune in being the
descendant of the kings of France.

The Princesse de Lamballe fell on the 3d of September at the prison of La
Force. The National Guards carried the head on a pike through the city,
and then hoisted it under the windows of the king, and clamored for him
to come out and show himself. One young officer, more humane than his
compeers, rushed forward and prevented it, and saved Louis from beholding
the dreadful spectacle. The king was deeply grateful for the kind action,
and asked the officer’s name. “And who was the other who tried to force
your majesty out?” enquired M. de Malesherbes. “Oh! I did not care to
know his name!” replied Louis gently. That was a night of horrors. The
two princesses, Mme. Royale and Princess Elizabeth, could not sleep; the
drums were beating to arms, and they sat in silence, “listening to the
sobs of the queen, which never ceased.” But more cruel days were yet in
store. Before the month was out the Commune de Paris issued a decree for
the separation of the king from his wife and children. “They felt it,”
says this curious document, “their imperious duty to prevent the abuses
which might facilitate the evasion of those traitors, and therefore
decree, 1st, that Louis and Antoinette be separated.

“2d. That each shall have a separate dungeon (_cachot_).

“3d. That the _valet de chambre_ be placed in confinement, etc., etc.”

That same night the king was removed to the second story of the great
tower. The room was in a state of utter destitution; no preparations of
the commonest description had been made for receiving him. A straw bed
was thrown down on the floor; Cléry, his _valet_, had not even this, but
sat up all night on a chair. A month later (October) the queen and her
children were transferred to the story over that now occupied by Louis in
the great tower. On the 26th the Dauphin was torn from his mother under
the pretence that he was now too old to be left to the charge of women,
being just seven years and six months. He was therefore lodged with his
father, who found his chief solace in teaching the child his lessons;
these consisted of Latin, writing, arithmetic, geography, and history.
The separation was for the present mitigated by the consolation of
meeting at meal-times, and being allowed to be together for some hours in
the garden every day. They bore all privations and the insults of their
jailers with unruffled patience and sweetness. Mme. Elizabeth and the
queen sat up at night to mend their own and the king’s clothes, which the
fact of their each having but one suit made it impossible for them to do
in the daytime.

This comparatively merciful state of things lasted till the first week
in December, when a new set of commissaries were appointed and the
captives watched day and night with lynx-eyed rigor. On the 11th the
prince was taken back to his mother, the king was summoned to the bar
of the Convention, and on his return to prison was informed that he was
henceforth totally separated from his family. He never saw them again
until the eve of his death. The Duchesse d’Angoulême (Mme. Royale) has
described that interview to us with her usual simplicity and pathos: “My
father, at the moment of parting with us for ever, made us promise never
to think of avenging his death. He was well satisfied that we should hold
sacred his last instructions; but the extreme youth of my brother made
him desirous of producing a still stronger impression upon him. He took
him on his knee, and said to him, ‘My son, you have heard what I have
said, but, as an oath is something more sacred than words, hold up your
hand and swear that you will accomplish the last wish of your father.’ My
brother obeyed, bursting into tears, and this touching goodness redoubled
ours.”

The next day Louis had gone to receive the reward promised to the
merciful, to those who return love for hate, blessings for curses. When
the guillotine had done its work, the shouts of the infuriated city
announced to the queen that she was a widow. Her agony was inconsolable.
In the afternoon of this awful day she asked to see Cléry, hoping that he
might have some message for her from the king, with whom he had remained
till his departure from the Temple. She guessed right; the faithful
servant had been entrusted with a ring, which the king desired him to
deliver to her with the assurance that he never would have parted with it
but with his life. But Cléry was not allowed the mournful privilege of
fulfilling his trust in person; he was kept a month in the Temple, and
then released. “We had now a little more freedom,” continues Mme. Royale.
“The guards even believed that we were about to be sent out of France;
but nothing could calm the agony of the queen. No hope could touch her
heart; life was indifferent to her, and she did not fear death.”

Her son, meanwhile, had nominally become King of France. The armies of
La Vendée proclaimed him as Louis XVII., under the regency of his uncle,
the Comte de Provence. He was King of France everywhere except in France,
where he was the victim of a blind ferocity unexampled in the history of
the most wicked periods of the world.

The “freedom” which the Duchesse d’Angoulême speaks of lasted but a few
days; the royal family were all now in the queen’s apartment, but kept
under, if possible, more rigid and humiliating supervision than before.
Their only attendants were a certain Tison and his wife, who had hitherto
been employed in the most menial household work of the Temple. They were
coarse and ignorant by nature, and soon the confinement to which they
were themselves condemned so soured their temper that they grew cruel and
insolent, and avenged their own privations on their unhappy prisoners.
They denounced three of the municipals whom they detected in some signs
of respect and sympathy for the queen, and these men were all guillotined
on the strength of the Tisons’ evidence. The woman went mad with remorse
when she beheld the mischief her denunciations had done. At first she
sank into a black melancholy. Marie Antoinette and the Princess Elizabeth
attended on her, and did their utmost to soothe her during the first
stage of the malady; but their gentle charity was like coals of fire on
the head of their persecutor. She soon became furious, and had to be
carried away by force to a mad-house.

About the 6th of May the young prince fell ill. The queen was alarmed,
and asked to see M. Brunier, his ordinary physician; the request was
met with a mocking reply, and no further notice taken of it, until the
child’s state became so serious that the prison doctor was ordered by
the Commune to go and see what was amiss with him. The doctor humanely
consulted M. Brunier, who was well acquainted with the patient’s
constitution, and otherwise did all that was in his power to alleviate
his condition. This was not much, but the queen and Mme. Elizabeth, who
for three weeks never left the little sufferer’s pillow, were keenly
alive to the kindness of the medical man. This illness made no noise
outside the Temple walls; but Mme. Royale always declared that her
brother had never really recovered from it, and that it was the first
stage of the disease which ultimately destroyed him. The government
had hitherto been too busy with more important matters to have leisure
to attend to such a trifle as the life or death of “little Capet.” It
was busy watching and striving to control the struggle between the
Jacobins and the Girondists, which ended finally in the overthrow of the
latter. On the 9th of July, however, it suddenly directed its notice to
the young captive, and issued a decree ordering him to be immediately
separated from Antoinette, and confided to a tutor (_instituteur_), who
should be chosen by the nation. It was ten o’clock at night when six
commissaries, like so many birds of ill-omen, entered the Temple, and
ascended the narrow, barricaded stairs leading to the queen’s rooms.
The young prince was lying fast asleep in his little curtainless bed,
with a shawl suspended by tender hands to shade him from the light on
the table, where his mother and aunt sat mending their clothes. The men
delivered their message in loud tones; but the child slept on. It was
only when the queen uttered a great cry of despair that he awoke, and
beheld her with clasped hands praying to the commissaries. They turned
from her with a savage laugh, and approached the bed to seize the prince.
Marie Antoinette, quicker than thought, flew towards it, and, clasping
him in her arms, clung despairingly to the bed-post. One of the men was
about to use violence in order to seize the boy, but another stayed his
hand, exclaiming: “It does not become us to fight with women; call up
the guard!” Horror-stricken at the threat, Mme. Elizabeth cried out:
“No, for God’s sake, no! We submit, we cannot resist; but give us time
to breathe. Let the child sleep out the night here. He will be delivered
to you to-morrow.” This prayer was spurned, and then the queen entreated
as a last mercy that her son might remain in the tower, where she might
still see him. A commissary retorted brutally, _tutoyant_ her, “What!
you make such a to-do because, forsooth, you are separated from your
child, while our children are sent to the frontiers to have their brains
knocked out by the bullets which you bring upon us!” The princesses now
began to dress the prince; but never was there such a long toilet in this
world. Every article was passed from one to another, put on, taken off
again, and replaced after being drenched with tears. The commissaries
were losing patience. “At last,” says Mme. Royale, the queen, gathering
up all her strength, placed herself in a chair, with the child standing
before her, put her hands on his little shoulders, and, without a tear or
a sigh, said with a grave and solemn voice, “My child, we are about to
part. Bear in mind all I have said to you of your duties when I shall be
no longer near to repeat it. Never forget God, who thus tries you, nor
your mother, who loves you. Be good, patient, kind, and your father will
look down from heaven and bless you.” Having said this, she kissed him
and handed him to the commissaries. One of them said: “Come, I hope you
have done with your sermonizing; you have abused our patience finely.”
Another dragged the boy out of the room, while a third added: “Don’t be
uneasy; the nation will take care of him!” Then the door closed. Take
care of him! Not even in that hour of supreme anguish, quickened as her
imagination was by past and present experience of the nation’s “care,”
could his mother have pictured to herself what sort of guardianship was
in preparation for her son. That night which saw him torn from her arms
and from beneath the protecting shadow of her immense love, beheld the
little King of France transferred to the pitiless hands of Simon and his
wife.

Simon was a thick-set, black-visaged man of fifty-eight years of age. He
worked as a shoemaker next door to Marat, whose patronage procured for
him the office of “tutor” to the son of Louis XVI. His wife is described
as an ill-favored woman of the same age as her husband, with a temper as
sour and irascible as his was vicious and cruel. They got five hundred
francs a month for maltreating the “little Capet,” whom Simon never
addressed except as “viper.” “wolf-cub,” “poison-toad,” adding kicks and
blows as expletives. For two days and nights the child wept unceasingly,
refusing to eat or sleep, and crying out continually to be taken back to
his mother. He was starved and beaten into sullen silence and a sort of
hopeless submission. If he showed terror or surprise at a threat, it was
treated as insolent rebellion, and he was seized and beaten as if he had
attempted a crime. All this first month of Simon’s tutorship the child
was so ill as to be under medical treatment. But this was no claim on the
tutor’s mercy; if it had been, he would have been unfitted for his task,
and would not have been chosen for it. He was astonished, nevertheless,
at the indomitable spirit of his victim, at the quiet firmness with which
he bore his treatment, and at the perseverance with which he continued
to insist on being restored to his mother. How long would it take to
break this royal “wolf-cub”? Simon began to be perplexed about it. He
must have advice from headquarters, and fuller liberty for the exercise
of his own ingenuity. Four members of the Committee of _Sûreté Générale_
betook themselves to the Temple, and there held a conference with the
patriot shoemaker which remains one of the most curious incidents of
those wonderful days. Amongst the four councillors was Drouet, the famous
post-master of Sainte Ménéhould, and Chabot, an apostate monk. One of
the others related the secret conference to Sénart, secretary of the
committee, who thus transcribed it at the time: “Citizens,” asks Simon,
“what do you decide as to the treatment of the wolf-cub? He has been
brought up to be insolent. I can tame him, but I cannot answer that he
will not sink under it (_crever_). So much the worse for him; but, after
all, what do you mean to do with him? To banish him?” Answer: “No.” “To
kill him?” “No.” “To poison him?” “No.” “But what, then?” “_To get rid of
him_” (_s’en défaire_).

From this forth the severity of Simon knew no bounds but those of his
own fiendish powers of invention. He applied his whole energies to the
task of “doing away with” the poor child. He made him slave like a dog at
the most laborious and menial work; he was shoe-black, turnspit, drudge,
and victim at once. Not content with thus degrading him, Simon insisted
that the boy should wear the red cap as an external badge of degradation.
The republican symbol was no doubt associated in the child’s mind with
the bloody riots of the year before; for the mere sight of it filled him
with terror, and nothing that his jailer could say or do could persuade
him to let it be placed on his head. Simon, exasperated by such firmness
in one so frail and young, fell upon him and flogged him unmercifully,
until at last Mme. Simon, who every now and then showed that the woman
was not quite dead within her, interfered to rescue the boy, declaring
that it made her sick to see him beaten in that way. But she hit upon
a mode of punishment which, though more humane, proved more crushing
to the young captive than either threats or blows. His fair hair, in
which his mother had taken such fond pride, still fell long and unkempt
about his shoulders. Mme. Simon declared that this was unseemly in the
little Capet, and that he should be shorn like a son of the people. She
forthwith proceeded to cut off the offending curls, and in a moment,
before he realized what she was about to do, the shining locks lay strewn
at his feet. The effect was terrible; the child uttered a piteous cry,
and then lapsed into a state of sullen despair. All spirit seemed to
have died out of him; and when Simon, perceiving this, again approached
him with the hated cap, he made no resistance, gave no sign, but let it
be placed on his little shorn head in silence. The shabby black clothes
that he wore by way of mourning for his father were now taken off, and
replaced by a complete _Carmagnole_ costume; still Louis offered no
opposition. He was taken out for exercise on the leads every day, and,
to prevent the queen having the miserable satisfaction of catching a
glimpse of him on these occasions, a wooden partition had been run up;
it was loosely put together, however, and Mme. Elizabeth discovered a
chink through which it was possible to see the captive as he passed.
Marie Antoinette was filled with thankfulness when she heard of this,
and overcoming her reluctance to leave her room, from which she had
never stirred since the king’s death, she now used every subterfuge for
remaining on the watch within sight of the chink. At last, on the 20th
of July, her patience was rewarded. But what a spectacle it was that
met her gaze! Her beautiful, fair-haired child, cropped as if he had
just recovered from a fever, and dressed out in the odious garb of his
father’s murderers, driven along by the brutal Simon, and addressed in
coarse and horrible language. She was near enough to hear it, to see
the look of terror and suffering on the child’s face as he passed. Yet,
such strength does love impart to a mother in her most trying needs, the
queen was able to see it all and remain mute and still; she did not cry
out, nor faint, nor betray by a single movement the horror that made
her very heart stand still, but, rising slowly from the spot, returned
to her room. The shock had almost paralyzed her, and she resolved that
nothing should ever tempt her to renew it. But the longing of the
mother’s heart overcame all other feelings. The next day she returned to
her watch-point, and waited for hours until the little feet were heard
on the leads again, accompanied as before by Simon’s heavy tread and
rough tones. What Marie Antoinette must have suffered during those few
days, when she beheld with her own eyes and heard with her own ears the
sort of tutelage to which her innocent child was subjected, God, and
perhaps a mother’s heart, alone can tell. That young soul, whose purity
she had guarded as the very apple of her eye, was now exposed to the
foulest influences; for prayers and pious teachings he heard nothing but
blasphemy and curses; his faith, that precious flower which had been
planted so reverently and watered with such tender care, what was to
become of it--what had become of it already? None but God knew, and to
God alone did the mother look for help. He who saved Daniel in the lions’
den and the children in the fiery furnace was powerful to save his own
now, as then; he would save her child, for man was powerless to help.
One of Simon’s diabolical amusements was to force the prince to use bad
language and sing blasphemous songs. Blows and threats were unavailing
so long as the boy caught any part of the revolting sense of the words;
but at last, deceived no doubt by the very grossness of the expressions,
and unable to penetrate their meaning, he took refuge from blows in
compliance, and with his sweet childish treble piped out songs that were
never heard beyond the precincts of a tavern or a guard-house. The queen
heard this once. Angels heard it, too, and, closing their ears to the
loathsome sounds, smiled with angels’ pity on the unconscious treason of
their little kindred spirit.

But this new crisis of misery was not of long duration to Marie
Antoinette. About three days after her first vision of Simon and his
victim, the commissaries entered her room in the dead of the night, and
read a decree, ordering them to convey her to the _Conciergerie_. This
was the first step of the scaffold. The summons would have been welcome
to the widow of Louis XVI., if she had not been a mother; but she was,
and the thought of leaving her son in the hands of men whose aim was not
merely to “slay the body,” but to destroy the soul, made the prospect of
her own deliverance dreadful to contemplate. But God was there--God, who
loved her son better and more availingly than even she loved him. She
committed him once more to God, and commended her daughter to the tender
and virtuous Elizabeth, little dreaming that the same fate which had
befallen the brother was soon to be awarded to the gentle, inoffensive
sister.

On the same day that the queen was sent to the _Conciergerie_,
preparatory to her execution, a member of the Convention sent a toy
guillotine as a present to “the little Capet,” doubtless with the
merciful design of acquainting the poor child with his mother’s impending
fate. A subaltern officer in the Temple, however, had the humanity to
intercept the fiendish present, for the young prince never received it.
It was the fashion of the day to teach children to play at beheading
sparrows, which were sold on the boulevards with little guillotines,
by way of teaching them to love the republic and to scorn death. It is
rather a curious coincidence that Chaumette, the man who sent the satanic
toy to the Dauphin, was himself decapitated by it a year before the death
of the child whom he thought to terrify by his cruel gift.

While the mock trial of the queen was going on, Simon pursued more
diligently than ever his scheme of demoralization. A design which must
first have originated in some fiend’s brain had occurred to him, and it
was necessary to devise new means for carrying it into execution. He
would make this spotless, idolized child a witness against his mother;
the little hand which hers had guided in forming its first letters, and
taught to lift itself in prayer, should be made an instrument in the most
revolting calumny which the human mind ever conceived. Simon began to
make the boy drink; when he attempted to refuse, the liquor was poured
into his mouth by force; until at last, stupefied and unconscious of what
he was doing, unable to comprehend the purpose or consequence of the act,
he signed his name to a document in which the most heinous accusations
were brought against his august mother. The same deposition was presented
to his sister for her signature; but without the same success. “They
questioned me about a thousand terrible things of which they accused my
mother and my aunt,” says Mme. Royale; “and, frightened as I was, I could
not help exclaiming that they were wicked falsehoods.” The examination
lasted three hours, for the deputies hoped that the extreme youth and
timidity of the princess would enable them to compel her consent to sign
the paper; but in this they were mistaken. “They forgot,” continues Mme.
Royale, “the life that I had led for four years past, and, above all,
that the example shown me by my parents had given me more energy and
strength of mind.” The queen’s trial lasted two entire days and nights
without intermission. Not a single accusation, political or otherwise,
was confirmed by a feather’s weight of evidence. But what did that
signify? The judges had decreed beforehand that she must die. Hébert
brought forward the document signed by her son; she listened in silent
scorn, and disdained to answer. One of the paid assassins on the jury
demanded why she did not speak. The queen, thus adjured, drew herself up
with all the majesty of outraged motherhood, and, casting her eyes over
the crowded court, replied: “_I did not answer; but I appeal to the heart
of every mother who hears me_.” A low murmur ran through the crowd. No
mother raised her voice in loyal sympathy with the mother who appealed to
them, but the inarticulate response was too powerful for the jury; they
dropped the subject, and when the counsel nominally appointed for her
defence had done speaking, the president demanded of the prisoner at the
bar whether she had anything to add. There was a moment’s hush, and then
the queen spoke: “For myself, nothing; for your consciences, much! I was
a queen, and you dethroned me; I was a wife, and you murdered my husband;
I was a mother, and you have torn my children from me. I have nothing
left but my blood--make haste and take it!”

This last request was granted. The trial ended soon after daybreak on
the third day, and at eleven o’clock the same forenoon she was led to the
scaffold.

Seldom has retribution more marked ever followed a crime, than that which
awaited the perpetrators of this legal murder. Within nine months from
the death of Marie Antoinette every single individual known to have had
any share in the deed--judges, jury, witnesses, and prosecutors--all
perished on the same guillotine to which they condemned the queen.

The captives in the Temple knew nothing either of the mock trial or the
death which followed it. It is difficult to understand the motive of
this silence, especially as concerns Simon. Perhaps it was owing to his
wife’s influence that the young prince was spared the blow of knowing
that he was an orphan. If so, it was the only act of mercy she was able
to obtain for him. The brutalities of the jailer rather increased than
diminished after the queen’s death. The child was locked up alone in a
room almost entirely dark, and the gloom and solitude reduced him to
such a point of despondency and apathy that few hearts, even amongst the
cruel men about him, could behold the wretched spectacle unmoved. One
of the municipals begged Simon’s leave to give the poor child a little
artificial canary bird, which sang a song and fluttered its wings. The
toy gave him such intense pleasure that the man good-naturedly followed
up the opportunity of Simon’s mild mood to bring a cage full of real
canaries, which he was likewise allowed to give the little Capet. The
birds were tamed to come on his finger and perch on his shoulder, and had
other pretty tricks which amused and delighted the poor little fellow
inexpressibly. He was very happy in the society of his feathered friends
for some time, until one unlucky day a new commissary came to inspect his
room, and, expressing great surprise at “the son of the tyrant” being
allowed such an aristocratic amusement, ordered the cage to be instantly
removed. Simon, to atone for this passing weakness towards the wolf-cub,
set himself to maltreat him more savagely than ever. The child, in the
midst of the revolting atmosphere which surrounded him, still cherished
the memory of his mother’s teaching; he remembered the prayers she had
taught him, the lessons of love and faith she had planted in his heart.
Simon had flogged him the first time he saw him go down on his knees to
say his prayers, so the child ever after went to bed and got up without
repeating the offence. We may safely believe that he sent up his heart to
God morning and night, nevertheless, though he did not dare kneel while
doing so. One night, a bitter cold night in January, Simon awoke, and,
by the light of the moon that stole in through the wooden blind of the
window, beheld the boy kneeling up in his bed, his hands clasped and his
face uplifted in prayer. He doubted at first whether the child was awake
or asleep; but the attitude and all that it suggested threw him into a
frenzy of superstitious rage; he took up a large pitcher of water, icy
cold as it was, and flung it, pitcher and all, at the culprit, exclaiming
as he did so, “I’ll teach you to get up Pater-nostering at night like
a Trappist!” Not satisfied with this, he seized his own shoe--a heavy
wooden shoe with great nails--and fell to beating him with it, until
Mme Simon, terrified by his violence and sickened by the cries of the
victim, rushed at her husband, and made him desist. Louis, sobbing and
shivering, gathered himself up out of the wet bed, and sat crouching on
the pillow; but Simon pulled him down, and made him lie in the soaking
clothes, perishing and drenched as he was. The shock was so great that he
never was the same after this night; it utterly broke the little spirit
that yet remained in him, and gave a blow to his health which it never
recovered.

TO BE CONCLUDED NEXT MONTH.


SPRING.

    The spring-time has come,
      But with skies dark and gray
    And the wind waileth wildly
      Through all the drear day.
    Few glimpses of sunshine,
      No thought of the flowers,
    No bird’s songs enliven
      These chill, gloomy hours.

    The snow lieth coldly
      Where lately it fell,
    The crocus and daisy
      Yet sleep in the dell;
    The frost yet at evening
      Falls softly and chill,
    And scatters his pearls
      Over meadow and hill.

    But April, sweet April--
      Her tears bring no gloom--
    Will pour on the zephyr
      A violet perfume;
    Will bid the rill glance
      In the sunlight along,
    And waken at morning
      The bird’s gushing song.

    I am thinking of one
      Who oft sought for the flowers
    In the sunlight and shadow
      Of April’s bright hours.
    But when winter’s bleak winds
      Sang a dirge for the year,
    With pale lips, yet smiling,
      She lay on her bier.

    The flowers then that died
      Will awaken again,
    But her we have loved
      We shall look for in vain;
    Yet, though we have laid her
      Beneath the dark sod,
    She bloometh this spring
      In the garden of God.


SUBSTANTIAL GENERATIONS.

I.

We have shown that the intrinsic principles of the primitive material
substance are _the matter_ and _the substantial form_; and we have proved
that in the material element the matter is a mere mathematical point--the
centre of a virtual sphere--whilst the substantial form which gives
existence to such a centre is an act, or an active principle, having a
spherical character, and constituting a sphere of power all around that
centre, as shown by its exertions directed all around in accordance with
the Newtonian law. Hence the nature of the matter as actuated by its
substantial form, and the nature of the substantial form as terminated to
its matter, are fully determined.

It would seem that nothing remains to be investigated about this subject;
for, when we have reached the _first_ constituent principles of a
given essence, the metaphysical analysis is at an end. One question,
however, remains to be settled between us and the philosophers of the
Aristotelic school concerning the _mutual relation_ of the matter and
the substantial form in a material being. Is such a relation variable or
invariable? Is the matter separable from any given substantial form, as
the Aristotelic theory assumes, or are the matter and its form so bound
together as to form a unit substantially unchangeable? Can substantial
forms be supplanted and superseded by other substantial forms, or do they
continue for ever as they were at the instant of their creation?

Some of our readers may think that what we have said in other preceding
articles suffices to settle the question; for it is obvious that simple
material elements are substantially unchangeable. But the peripatetic
school looked at things from a different point of view, and thought that
the question was to be solved by the consideration of the potentiality
of the _first matter_ with respect to all substantial forms. Hence it is
under this aspect that their opinion is to be examined, that a correct
judgment may be formed of the merits and deficiencies of a system so
long advocated by the most celebrated philosophers. For this reason, as
also because some modern writers have resuscitated this system without
taking notice of its defects, and without making such corrections as
were required to make it agree with the positive sciences, we think it
necessary to examine the notions on which the whole Aristotelic theory is
established, and the reasonings by which it is supported, and to point
out the inaccuracies by which some of those reasonings are spoiled, as
well as the limits within which the conclusions of the school can be
maintained.

_Materia prima._--The notion of “first matter,” which plays the principal
part in the theory of substantial generations, has been the source of
many disputes among philosophers. Some, as Suarez, think that the
_materia prima_ is metaphysically constituted of act and potency; others
consider the _materia prima_ as a real potency only; whilst others
consider it as a mere potency of being, and therefore as a non-entity.
The word “matter” can, in fact, be used in three different senses.

First, it is used for _material substance_, either compound or simple;
as when steel is said to be the matter of a sword, or when the primitive
elements are said to be the matter of a body. When taken in this sense,
the word “matter” means a _physical_ being, substantially perfect, and
capable of accidental modifications.

Secondly, the word “matter” is used for _the potential term lying under
the substantial form_ by which it is actuated. In this sense the matter
is a _metaphysical_ reality which, by completing its substantial form,
concurs with it to the constitution of the physical being--that is, of
the substance. It is usually called _materia formata_, or “formed matter.”

Thirdly, the word “matter” is used also for _the potential term of
substance conceived as deprived of its substantial form_. In this sense
the matter is a mere potency of being, and therefore _a being of reason_;
for it cannot thus exist in the real order: and it is then called
_materia informis_, or “unformed matter.” It is, however, to be remarked
that the phrase _materia informis_ has been used by the fathers of the
church to designate the matter as it came out of the hands of the Creator
before order, beauty, and harmony were introduced into the material
world. Such a matter was not absolutely without form, as is evident.

Of the three opinions above mentioned about the nature of _materia
prima_, the one maintained by Suarez is, in the present state of physical
science, the most satisfactory, though it can scarcely be said to agree
with the Aristotelic theory, as commonly understood. Indeed, if such a
first matter is metaphysically constituted of act and potency, as he
maintains, such a matter is nothing less than a primitive substance,
as he also maintains; and we may be allowed to add, on the strength
of the proofs given in our preceding articles, that such a first
matter corresponds to our primitive unextended elements, which, though
unknown to Suarez, are in fact the _first_ physical matter of which all
natural substances are composed. But, if the first matter involves a
metaphysical act and is a substance, such a matter cannot be the subject
of _substantial_ generation; for what is already in act is not potential
to the first act, and what has already a first being is not potential to
the first being. Hence we may conclude that the first matter of Suarez
excludes the theory of rigorously substantial generations, and leads to
the conclusion that the generated substances are not new with respect to
their substance, but only with regard to their compound essence, and that
the forms by which they are constituted are indeed _essential_ to them,
but not strictly _substantial_, as we intend hereafter to explain.

The second interpretation of the words _materia prima_ is that given by
S. Thomas, when he considers the first matter as “matter without form,”
and as a mere potency of being. “The matter,” he says, “exists sometimes
under one form, and at other times under another; but it can never exist
isolated--that is, by itself--because, as it does not involve in its
ratio any form, it cannot be in act (for the form is the only source
of actuality), but can merely be in potency. And therefore, _nothing
which is in act can be called first matter_.”[17] From these words it is
evident that S. Thomas considers the first matter as matter without form;
for, had it a form, it would be in act, and would cease to be called
“first” matter. In another place he says: “Since the matter is a pure
potency, it is _one_, not through any one form actuating it, but _by the
exclusion of all forms_.”[18] And again: “The accidental form supervenes
to a subject already pre-existent in act; the substantial form, on the
contrary, does not supervene to a subject already pre-existent in act,
but _to something which is merely in potency to exist_, viz., _to the
first matter_.”[19] And again: “The true nature of matter is _to have
no form whatever in act_, but to be in potency with regard to any of
them.”[20] And again: “The first matter is a pure potency, just as God is
a pure act.”[21]

From these passages, and from many others that might be found in S.
Thomas’ works, it is manifest that the holy doctor, in his metaphysical
speculations, considers the first matter as matter without a form.
In this he faithfully follows Aristotle’s doctrine. For the Greek
philosopher explicitly teaches that “as the metal is to the statue, or
the wood to the bedstead, or any other unformed material to the thing
which can be formed with it, so is the matter to the substance and to the
being”;[22] that is, as the metal has not yet the form of a statue, so
the first matter still lacks the substantial form, and consequently is a
_pure_ potency of being.

Nevertheless, the Angelic Doctor does not always abide by this old and
genuine notion of the first matter. When treating of generation and
corruption, or engaged in other physical questions, he freely assumes
that the first matter is something actually lying under a substantial
form, and therefore that it is a _real_ potency in the order of nature,
and not a mere result of intellectual abstraction. Thus he concedes that
“the first matter exists in all bodies,”[23] that “the first matter must
have been created by God under a substantial form,”[24] and that “the
first matter remains in act, after it has lost a certain form, owing to
the fact that it is actuated by another form.”[25] In these passages and
in many others the first matter is evidently considered as matter under a
form.

It is difficult to reconcile with one another these two notions, matter
_without a form_, and matter _under a form_; for they seem quite
contradictory. The only manner of attempting such a conciliation would
be to assume that when the first matter is said to be without a form,
the preposition “without” is intended to express a mental abstraction,
not a real exclusion, of the substantial form. Thus the phrase “without
a form” would mean “without taking the form into account,” although such
a form is really in the matter. This interpretation of the phrase might
be justified by those passages of the holy doctor in which the first
matter, inasmuch as _first_, is presented as a result of intellectual
abstraction. Here is one of such passages: “First matter,” says he,
“is commonly called something, within the genus of substance which
is _conceived_ as a potency abstracted from all forms and from all
privations, but susceptible both of forms and of privations.”[26] It is
evident that, by this kind of abstraction, the matter which is actually
under a form would be conceived as being without a form. As, however, the
conception would not correspond to the reality, the first matter, thus
conceived, would have nothing common with the real matter which exists in
nature. For, since the whole reality of matter depends on its actuation
by a form, to conceive the matter without any form is to take away from
it the only source of its reality, and to leave nothing but a non-entity
connoting the privation of its form. Hence such a _materia prima_ would
entirely belong to the order of conceptual beings, not to the order of
realities; and therefore the matter which exists in nature would not be
“first matter.” It is superfluous to remark that if the first matter
does not exist, as _first_, in the real order, all the reasonings of the
peripatetic school about the offices performed by the first matter in the
substantial generation are at an end.

The confusion of actuated with actuable matter was quite unavoidable in
the Aristotelic theory of substantial generations. This theory assumes
that not only the primitive elements of matter, but also every compound
material substance, has a special _substantial_ form giving the _first_
being (_simpliciter esse_, or _primum esse_) to its matter. Hence, in
the substantial generation, as understood by Aristotle, the matter must
pass from one _first_ being to another _first_ being. Now, the authors
who adopted such a theory well saw that the matter which had to acquire
a first being, was to be considered as having no being at all; else it
would not acquire its _first_ being. On the other hand, the matter which
passed from one first being to another was to be considered as having
a first being; or else it would not exchange it for another. Hence the
first matter, as ready to acquire a first being, was called a _pure_
potency--that is, a potency of being; whilst, as ready to exchange its
first being for another, it was called a _real_ potency--that is, an
actual reality. That a _pure_ potency can be a _real_ potency, or an
actual reality, is an assumption which the peripatetic school never
succeeded in proving, though it is the very foundation of the theory of
strictly substantial generations as by them advocated.

Before we proceed further we have to mention S. Augustine’s notion of
_unformed_ matter, as one which contains a great deal more of truth
than is commonly believed by the peripatetic writers. This great doctor
admits that _unformed_ matter was created, and existed for a time in
its informity. “The earth,” says he, “was nothing but unformed matter;
for it was invisible and uncompounded, … and out of this invisible
and uncompounded matter, out of this informity, out of this almost
mere nothingness, thou wast to make, O God! all the things which this
changeable world contains.”[27] Some will ask: How could such a great
man admit the existence of matter without a form? Did he not know that a
potency without an act cannot exist? Or is it to be suspected that what
he calls _unformed matter_ was not altogether destitute of a form, but
only of such a form as would make it visible as in the compound bodies?

S. Thomas believes that S. Augustine really excluded all forms from his
unformed matter, and remarks that such an unformed matter could not
possibly exist in such a state; for, if it existed, it was in act as
a result of creation. For the term of creation is a being in act; and
the act is a form.[28] Thus it is evident that to admit the existence
of the matter without any form at all is a very gross blunder. But,
for this very reason that the blunder is so great, we cannot believe
that S. Augustine made himself guilty of it. We rather believe that he
merely excluded from his unformed matter a visible shape, and what was
afterward called “the form of corporeity” by which compound substances
are constituted in their species and distinguished from one another. Let
us hear him.

“There was a time,” says he, “when I used to call _unformed_, not that
which I thought to be altogether destitute of a form, but that which
I imagined to be ill-formed, and to have such an odd and ugly form as
would be shocking to see. But what I thus imagined was unformed, not
absolutely, but only in comparison with other things endowed with better
forms; whilst reason and truth demanded that I should discard entirely
all thought of any remaining form, if I wished to conceive matter as
truly unformed. But this I could not do; for it was easier to surmise
that a thing altogether deprived of form had no existence, than to admit
anything intermediate between a formed being and nothing, which would be
neither a formed being nor nothing, but an unformed being and almost a
mere nothing. At last I dropped from my mind all those images of formed
bodies, which my imagination was used to multiply and vary at random,
and began to consider the bodies themselves, and their mutability on
account of which such bodies cease to be what they were, and begin to be
what they were not. And I began to conjecture that their passage from
one form to another was made through something unformed, not through
absolute nothing. But this I desired to know, not to surmise. Now, were
I to say all that thou, O God! hadst taught me about this subject, who
among my readers would strive to grasp my thought? But I shall not cease
to praise thee in my heart for those very things which I cannot expound.
For the mutability of changeable things is susceptible of all the forms
by which such things can be changed. But what is such a mutability?
Is it a soul? Is it a body? Is it the feature of a soul or of a body?
Were it allowable, I would call it a _nothing-something_, and a _being
non-being_. And yet it was already in some manner before it received
these visible and compounded forms.”[29]

The more we examine this passage, the stronger becomes our conviction
that the word “form” was used here by S. Augustine, not for the
substantial form of Aristotle, but for _shape_ or geometric form, and
that “unformed matter” stands here for _shapeless matter_. For, when he
says that “reason and truth demand that all thought of any remaining
forms should be discarded,” of what remaining forms does he speak? Of
those “odd and ugly forms” which he says would be shocking to see. But
it is evident that no substantial form can be odd and ugly or shocking
to see. Moreover, S. Augustine conceives his “unformed matter,” by
dropping from his mind “all those images of formed bodies” by which
his imagination had been previously haunted. Now, it is obvious that
substantial forms are not an object of the imagination, nor can they be
styled “images” of formed bodies. Lastly, the holy doctor explicitly
says that the matter of the bodies “was already in some manner before it
could receive _these visible and compounded forms_,” which shows that the
forms which he excluded from the primitive matter are “the visible and
compounded forms” of bodies--that is, such forms as result from material
composition. And this is confirmed by those other words of the holy
doctor, “The earth was nothing but unformed matter; _for it was invisible
and uncompounded_”--that is, the informity of the earth consisted in the
absence of material composition, and, therefore, of visible shape, not in
the absence of primitive substantial forms.

It would be interesting to know why S. Augustine believed that his
readers would not bear with him (_quis legentium capere durabit?_) if
he were to say all that God had taught him about shapeless matter. Had
God taught him the existence of simple and unextended elements? Was his
shapeless matter that simple point, that invisible and uncompounded
potency, on account of which all elements are liable to geometrical
arrangement and to physical composition? The holy doctor does not tell
us; but certainly, if there ever was shapeless matter, it could have
no extension, for extension entails shape. It would, therefore, seem
that S. Augustine’s shapeless matter could not but consist of simple
and unextended elements; and if so, he had good reason to expect that
his readers would scorn a notion so contrary to the popular bias; as
we see that even in our own time, and in the teeth of scientific and
philosophical evidence, the same notion cannot take hold of the popular
mind.

If the unformed matter of S. Augustine is matter without shape and
without extension, we can easily understand why he calls it _pene nullam
rem_, viz., scarcely more than nothing.[30] Indeed, the potential term
of a primitive element, a simple point in space, is scarcely more than
nothing; for it has no bulk, and were it not for the act which gives it
existence, it would be nothing at all, as it has nothing in itself and in
its potential nature which deserves the name of “being”; but it borrows
all its being from the substantial act, as we shall explain later on.
It is, therefore, plain that the matter of a simple element, and of all
simple elements, is hardly more than nothing, and that it might almost
be described as a _nothing-something_, and a _being non-being_, as S.
Augustine observes. But when the primitive matter began to cluster into
bodies having bulk and composition, then this same matter acquired a
_visible form_ under definite dimensions, and thus one mass of matter
became distinguishable from another, and by the arrangement of such
distinct material things the order and beauty of the world were produced.

Thus S. Augustine did not admit the existence of matter deprived of a
substantial form, but only the existence of matter without shape, and
therefore without extension. And for this reason we have said that his
doctrine contains more truth than is commonly believed by the peripatetic
writers. His _uncompounded_ matter can mean nothing else than simple
elements; and since the components are the material cause of the
compound, and must be presupposed to it, the simple elements of which all
bodies consist are undoubtedly those material beings which God must have
created before anything having shape and material composition could make
its appearance in the world. Hence S. Augustine’s view of creation is,
in this respect, perfectly consistent with sound philosophy no less than
with revelation. His shapeless matter must be ranked, we think, with the
first matter of Suarez above mentioned, under the name of _primitive_
material substance.

As to the first matter of S. Thomas and of the other followers of
Aristotle, it is difficult to say what it is; for we have seen that
it has been understood in two different manners. If we adopt its most
received definition, we must call it “a pure potency” and “a first
potency.” According to this definition, the first matter is a non-entity,
as we have already remarked, and has no part in the constitution of
substance, any more than a corpse in the constitution of man; for, as the
body of man is not _a living corpse_, so the matter in material substance
is not _a pure potency in act_, both expressions implying a like
contradiction. Hence the first matter, according to this definition,
is not a metaphysical being, but a mere being of reason--that is, a
conception of nothingness as resulting from the suppression of the formal
principle of being.

From our notion of simple elements we can form a very clear image of
this being of reason. In a primitive element the matter borrows all its
reality from the substantial form of which it is the intrinsic term--that
is, from a virtual sphericity of which it is the centre. To change such
a centre into a _pure_ potency of being, we have merely to suppress
the virtual sphericity; for, by so doing, what was a _real_ centre of
power becomes an _imaginary_ centre, a term deprived of its reality, a
mere nothing; which however, from the nature of the process by which
it is reached, is still conceived as the vestige of the real centre of
power, and, so to say, the shadow of the real matter which disappears.
Thus the _materia prima_, as a pure potency, is nothing else than an
imaginary point in space, or the potency of a real centre of power. This
clear and definite conception of the first matter is calculated to shed
some additional light on many questions connected with the peripatetic
philosophy, and, above all, on the very definition of matter. The old
metaphysicians, when defining the first matter to be “a pure potency,”
had no notion of the existence of simple elements, and knew very little
about the law of material actions; and for this reason they could say
nothing about the special character of such a pure potency. For the
same reason they were unable also to point out the special nature of
the first act of matter; they simply recognized that the conspiration
of such a potency with such an act ought to give rise to a “movable
being.” But potency and act are to be found not only in material, but
also in spiritual, substances; and as these substances are of a quite
different nature, it is evident that their respective potencies and their
respective acts must be of a quite different nature. Now, the special
character of the potency of material substance consists in its being a
_local_ term, whilst the special character of the potency of spiritual
substance consists in its being an _intellectual_ term. And therefore, to
distinguish the former from the latter, we should say that the matter is
“a potential term _in space_” and the first matter “a potency of being in
space.” The additional words “_in space_” point out the characteristic
attribute of the material potency as distinguished from all other
potencies.

Moreover, our conception of _materia prima_ as an imaginary point in
space may help us to realize more completely the distinction which
must be made between the non-entity of the first matter and absolute
nothingness. Absolute nothingness is a mere negation of being, or a
_negative_ non-entity; whereas the non-entity of the first matter is
formally constituted by a privation, and must be styled a _privative_
non-entity. For, as the matter and its substantial form are the
constituents of one and the same primitive essence, we cannot think
of the matter without reference to the form, nor of the form without
reference to the matter. And therefore, when, in order to conceive the
first matter, we suppress mentally the substantial form, we deprive
the matter of what it essentially requires for its existence; and it
is in consequence of such a process that we reduce the matter to a
non-entity. Now, to exclude from the matter the form which is due
to it is to constitute the matter under a privation. Therefore the
resulting non-entity of the first matter is a privative non-entity.
Indeed, privation is defined as “the absence of something due _to a
subject_,” and we can scarcely say that a non-entity is a subject. But
this definition applies to _real_ privations only, which require a
_real_ subject lacking something due to it; as when a man has lost an
eye or a foot. But in our case, as we are concerned with a pure potency
of being, which has no reality at all, our subject can be nothing else
than a non-entity. This is the subject which demands the form of which
it is bereaved, as it cannot even be conceived without reference to it.
The very name of _matter_, which it retains, points out a _form_ as its
transcendental correlative; while the epithet “first” points out the fact
that this matter is yet destitute of that being which it should have in
order to deserve the name of _real_ matter.

But, much as this notion of the first matter agrees with that of “pure
potency” and of “first potency,” the followers of the peripatetic system
will say that _their_ first matter is something quite different, as is
evident from their theory of substantial generations, which would have
no meaning, if the first matter were not a reality. Let us, then, waive
for the present the notion of “_pure_ potency,” and turn our attention to
that of “_real_ potency,” that we may see what kind of reality the first
matter must be, when the “first matter” is identified with the matter
actually existing under a substantial form.

The matter actuated by a form is a _real potency_, and nothing more.
It is only by stretching the word “being” beyond its legitimate meaning
that this real potency is sometimes called a real being. In fact, the
potential term of the real being is real, not on account of any real
entity involved in its own nature, but merely on account of the real act
by which it is actuated. How anything can be real without possessing
an entity of its own our reader may easily understand by recollecting
what we have often remarked about the centre of a sphere, whose reality
is entirely due to the spherical form, or by reflecting that negations
and privations are similarly called _real_, not because of any entity
involved in them, but simply because they are appurtenances of real
beings.

We have seen that S. Augustine would fain have called the primitive
matter a _nothing-something_ and a _being non-being_, if such phrases
had been allowable. His thought was deep, but he could not find words to
express it thoroughly. Our “real potency” is that “nothing-something”
which was in the mind of the holy doctor. S. Thomas gives us a clew to
the explanation of such a “nothing-something” by remarking that _to be_
and _to have being_ are not precisely the same thing. _To be_ is the
attribute of a complete act, whilst _to have being_ is the attribute
of a potency actuated by its act. That is said _to be_ which contains
in itself the formal reason of its being; whilst that is said _to have
being_ which does not contain in itself the formal reason of its being,
but receives its being from without, and puts it on as a borrowed
garment. Of course, God alone can be said _to be_ in the fullest meaning
of the term, as he alone contains in himself the _adequate_ reason of
his being; yet all created essence can be said _to be_, inasmuch as it
contains in itself the _formal_ reason of its being--that is, an act
giving existence to a potency; whereas the potency itself can be said
merely _to have being_, because _being_ is not included in the nature of
potency, but must come to it from a distinct source. And therefore, as
a thing  _has_ color, but _is not_ color, and as a body animated
_has_ life, but _is not_ life, so the matter actuated by its form _has_
being, but _is not_ a being.

Some philosophers, who failed to take notice of this distinction,
maintained that the matter which exists under a substantial form is
an _incomplete being_, and an _incomplete substance_. The expression
is not correct. For, if the matter which lies under the substantial
form were an incomplete being, it would be the office of the form to
complete it. Now, the substantial form can have no such office; for the
form always inchoates what the matter completes. It is always the term
that completes the act, whilst the act actuates the term by giving it
the first being. Hence the matter which lies under its substantial form
is not an incomplete entity. Nor is it an entity destined to complete
the form; for, if the term which completes a form were a being, such a
term would be a real subject, and thus the form terminated to it would
not be strictly substantial, as it would not give it the first being.
Moreover, the matter and the substantial form constitute _one_ primitive
essence, in which it is impossible to admit a multiplicity of entitative
constituents; and therefore, since the substantial form, which is a
formal source of being, is evidently an entitative constituent, it
follows that the matter lying under it has no entity of its own, but is
merely clothed with the entity of its form.

But, true though it is that the matter lying under a substantial form has
no entity of its own, it is, however, a _real_ term, as we have already
intimated; hence it may be called a _reality_. And since _reality_
and _entity_ are commonly used as synonymous, we may admit that the
formed matter is an entity, adjectively, not substantively, just as we
admit that ivory is _a sphere_ when it lies under a spherical form.
Nevertheless the ivory, to speak more properly, should be said _to have
sphericity_ rather than _to be a sphere_; for, though it is the subject
of sphericity, it is not spherical of its own nature. In the same manner,
a body vivified by a soul is called _living_; but, properly speaking, it
should be styled _having life_, because life is not a property of the
body as such, but it springs from the presence of the soul in the body.
The like is to be said of the being of the matter as actuated by the
substantial form. It is from the form alone that such a matter has its
first being; and therefore such a matter has only a borrowed being, and
is a _real potency_, not a real entity. Such is, we believe, the true
interpretation of S. Augustine’s phrase: “nothing-something” and “being
non-being”--_Nihil aliquid, et est non est_.

Nor is it strange that the matter should be _a reality_ without being
_an entity_, properly so called; for the like happens with all the real
terms of contingent things. Thus the real term of a line (the point)
is no linear entity, though it certainly belongs to the line, and is
something real in the line; the real term of time (the present instant,
or the _now_) is no temporal entity, as it has no extension, though it
certainly belongs to time, and is something real in time; the real term
of a body (the simple element) is no bodily entity, as it has no bulk,
though it certainly belongs to the body, and is something real in it;
the real term of a circle (the centre) is no circular entity, though
it certainly belongs to the circle, and is something real in it. And
in like manner the real term of a primitive contingent substance (its
potency) is no substantial entity, though it evidently belongs to the
contingent substance, and is something real in it. In God alone, whose
being excludes contingency, the substantial term (the Word) stands forth
as a true entity--a most perfect and infinite entity--for, as the term
of the divine generation is not educed out of nothing, it is absolutely
free from all potentiality, and is in eternal possession of infinite
actuality. Hence it is that God alone, as we have above remarked, can be
said _to be_ in the fullest meaning of the term.

As the best authors agree that the matter which is under a substantial
form is no being, but only “a real potency,” we will dispense with
further considerations on this special point. What we have said suffices
to give our readers an idea of the _materia prima_ of the ancients, and
of the different manners in which it has been understood.

_Substantial form._--Coming now to the notion of the substantial form
the first thing which deserves special notice is the fact that the
phrase “substantial form” can be interpreted in two manners, owing to
the double meaning attached to the epithet “substantial.” All the forms
which supervene to a specific nature already constituted have been called
“accidental,” and all the forms which enter into the constitution of
a specific nature have been called “substantial.” But as the accident
can be contrasted with the _essence_ no less than with the _substance_
of a thing, so the substantial form can be defined either as that which
gives the first being to a certain _essence_, or as that which gives the
first being to a _substance_ as such. The schoolmen, in fact, left us
two definitions of their substantial forms, of which the first is: “The
substantial form is that which gives the first being to the matter”; the
second is: “The substantial form is that which gives the first being to
a thing.” The first definition belongs to the form strictly substantial,
for the result of the first actuation of matter is a primitive substance;
whereas the second has a much wider range, because all things which
involve material composition, in their specific nature, receive the
first specific being by a form which needs not give the first existence
to their material components, and which, therefore, is not strictly
a substantial form. Thus a molecule of oxygen, because it contains a
definite number of primitive elements, cannot be formally constituted
in its specific nature, except by a specific composition; and such a
composition is an essential, though not a truly substantial, form of the
compound, as we shall more fully explain in another article.

The strictly substantial form contains in itself the whole reason of
the being of the substance; for the matter which completes it does
not contribute to the constitution of the substance, except as a mere
term--that is, by simply receiving existence, and therefore without
adding any new entity to the entity of the form. Whence it follows that
the form itself contains the whole reason of the resulting essence.
“Although the essence of a being,” says S. Thomas, “is neither the form
alone nor the matter alone, yet the form alone is, in its own manner, the
cause of such an essence.”[31] It cannot, however, be inferred from this
that the strictly substantial form is a _physical_ being. Physical beings
have a complete essence and an existence of their own; which is not the
case with any material form. “Even the forms themselves,” according to
S. Thomas, “have no being; it is only the compounds (of matter and form)
that have being through them.”[32] And again: “The substantial form
itself has no complete essence; for in the definition of the substantial
form it is necessary to include that of which it is the form.”[33] It
is plain that a being which has no complete essence and no possibility
of a separate existence cannot be styled a physical being, but only a
metaphysical constituent of the physical being.

The schoolmen teach that the substantial forms of bodies _are educed out
of the potency of matter_. This proposition is true. For the so-called
“substantial” forms of bodies are not strictly substantial, but only
essential or natural forms, as they give the first existence, not to
the matter of which the bodies are composed, but only to the bodies
themselves. Now, all bodies are material compounds of a certain species,
and therefore involve distinct material terms bound together by a
specific form of composition, without which such a specific compound can
have no existence. The specific form of composition is therefore the
essential form of a body of a given species; and such is the form that
gives _the first being_ to the body. To say that such a form is educed
out of the potency of matter is to state an obvious truth, as it is known
that the composition of bodies is brought about by the mutual action of
the elements of which the bodies are constituted, which action proceeds
from the _active_ potency, and actuates the _passive_ potency of the
matter of the body, as we shall explain more fully in the sequel.

But the old natural philosophers, who had no notion of primitive
unextended elements, when affirming the eduction of substantial forms out
of the potency of matter, took for granted that such forms were strictly
substantial, and gave the first being not only to the body, but also
to the matter itself of which the body was composed. In this they were
mistaken; but the mistake was excusable, as chemistry had not yet shown
the law of definite proportions in the combination of different bodies,
nor had the spectroscope revealed the fact that the primitive molecules
of all bodies are composed of free elementary substances vibrating around
a common centre, and remaining substantially identical amid all the
changes produced by natural causes in the material world. Nevertheless,
had they not been biassed by the _Ipse dixit_, the peripatetics would
have found that, though accidental forms, and many essential forms too,
are educed out of the potency of matter, yet the strictly substantial
forms cannot be so educed.

The matter may be conceived either as formed or as unformed. If it is
formed, it is already in possession of its substantial form and of its
first being, which it never loses, as we shall prove hereafter. Therefore
such a matter is not in potency with regard to its first being; and thus
no strictly substantial form can be educed from the potency of the formed
matter. If, on the contrary, the matter is yet unformed, it is plain
that such a matter cannot be acted on by natural agents; for it has no
existence in the order of things, and therefore it cannot be the subject
of natural actions. How, then, can it receive the first being? Owing to
the impossibility of explaining how the unformed matter could be actuated
by natural agents, those who admitted the eduction of substantial forms
out of the potency of matter were constrained to assume that the _first_
matter had some reality of its own, and consisted intrinsically, as
Suarez teaches, of act and potency. But, though it is true that the
matter must have some reality in order to receive from natural agents
a new form, it is evident that such a new form cannot be strictly
substantial; for it cannot give the first being to a matter already
endowed with being. Hence no strictly substantial form can be naturally
educed out of the potency of matter.

If, then, a truly substantial form could in any sense be educed out of
the potency of matter, such an eduction should be made, not by natural
causes, but by God himself in the act of creation; for no agent, except
God, can bring matter into existence. But we think that even in this case
it would be incorrect to say that the substantial form is educed out
of the potency of matter. For, although the unformed matter, and the
nothingness out of which things are educed by creation, admit of no real
difference, yet the unformed matter, as a privative non-entity, involves
a formality of reason, which absolute nothingness does not involve; and
hence to substitute the unformed matter for absolute nothingness as the
extrinsic term of creation, is to present the fact of creation under a
false formality. God creates a substance, not by educing its _form_ out
of a privative non-entity--that is, out of an abstraction--but by educing
the _substance_ itself out of nothingness. And for this reason it would
be quite incorrect to call creation an eduction of a substantial form out
of the potency of matter.

There is yet another reason why creation should not be so explained. For
the philosophers who admit the eduction of substantial forms out of the
potency of matter, assume, either explicitly or implicitly, that such
a potency is _real_, though they often call it “a pure potency,” as we
have stated. Their matter is therefore a _real_ subject of substantial
generations. Now, it is obvious that creation neither presupposes nor
admits a previous real subject. Hence, to say that creation is the
eduction of a substantial form out of the potency of matter, would be to
employ a very mischievous phrase, with nothing to justify it, even if no
other objection could be raised against its use.

We conclude that strictly substantial forms are never educed out of the
potency of matter, but are simply educed out of nothing in creation. As,
however, every such form gives being to its matter, without which it
cannot exist, we commonly say that the whole substance, and not its form
as such, is educed out of nothing. S. Thomas says: “The term of creation
is a being in act; and its act is its form”[34]--the form, evidently,
which gives the first being to the matter, and which is therefore truly
and properly substantial. Hence, before the position of this act, nothing
exists in nature which can be styled “matter,” whilst at the position
of this act, and by virtue of it, the material substance itself is
instantly brought into existence. Accordingly, the position of an act
which formally gives existence to its term is the very eduction of the
substance out of nothing; and the strictly substantial form is educed out
of nothing in the very creation of the substance, whereas the matter, at
the mere position of such a form, and through it immediately, acquires
its first existence. The matter, as the reader may recollect, is to its
form what the centre of a sphere is to the spherical form. Hence, as the
centre acquires its being by the mere position of a spherical form, so
the matter acquires its being by the mere position of the substantial
form, without the concurrence of any other causality.

This last conclusion may give rise to an objection, which we cannot leave
without an answer. The objection is the following: If the matter receives
its first being through the substantial form alone, it follows that God
did not create the matter, but only the form itself.

We answer that when we speak of the creation of matter, the word “matter”
means “material substance.” For the term of creation, as we have just
remarked with S. Thomas, is _the being in act_--that is, the complete
being, as it physically exists in the order of nature. Now, such a being
is the substance itself. On the other hand, to create _the being in act_
is to produce _the act_ which is the formal reason of the being; and
since the position of the act entails the existence of a potential term,
it is evident that God, by producing the act, causes the existence of the
potential term. But as this term is not a “real being,” but only a “real
potency,” and as its reality is merely “borrowed” from the substantial
form, it has nothing in itself which requires making, and therefore it
cannot be the term of a special creation.

The old philosophers, who admitted the separability of the matter from
its substantial form, and who were for this reason obliged to grant to
such a matter an imperfect being, were wont to say that the matter was
_con-created_ with the form, and thus they seem to have conceived the
creation of a primitive material substance as including two partial
creations. But, as a primitive being includes but _one_ act, it cannot be
the term of _two_ actions; for two actions imply two acts. On the other
hand, the matter which is under the substantial act has no entity of its
own, as we have shown to be the true and common doctrine, and therefore
has no need of a special effection, but only of a formal actuation. Hence
the creation of a primitive material substance does not consist of two
partial creations. We may, however, adopt the term “_con-created_” to
express the fact that the position of the act entails the reality of the
potential term, just as the position of sphericity entails the existence
of a centre.

The preceding remarks have been made with the object of preparing the
solution of a difficulty concerning the creation of matter. For matter
is potential, whilst God is a pure act without potency; but a pure
act without potency cannot produce anything potential, since it does
not contain in itself any potentiality nor anything equivalent to it.
Therefore the origin of matter cannot be accounted for by creation.

The answer to this difficulty is as follows: We grant that the matter, as
distinguished from the form which gives it the first being, and therefore
as a potential term of the primitive substance, cannot be created, for
it is no being at all, but only a potency of being; and yet it does not
follow that the material substance itself cannot be created. Of course
God does not contain in himself, either formally or eminently, the
potentiality of his own creatures, but he eminently contains in himself
and can produce out of himself an endless multitude of acts giving
existence to as many potential terms. And thus God, by producing any such
act, causes the existence of its correspondent potency, which is not
efficiently made, but only formally actuated, as has been just explained.
Creation is an action, and action is the production of an act; hence
“the term of creation is _a being in act_, and this act is the form,” as
St. Thomas teaches; the matter, on the contrary, or the potency of the
created being, is a term coming out of nothingness by formal actuation,
and consequently having no being of its own, but owing whatever existence
it has to the act or form of which it is the term; so that, if God ceased
to conserve such an act, the term would instantly vanish altogether
without need of a special annihilation. Nothingness is the source of all
potentiality and imperfection, as God is the source of all actuality and
perfection. Hence even the spiritual creatures, in which there is no
matter, are essentially potential, inasmuch as they, too, have come out
of nothing. This suffices to show that God, though containing in himself
no formal and no virtual potentiality, can create a substance essentially
constituted of act and potency. For we have seen that, to create such a
substance, God needs only to produce an act _ad extra_, and that such an
act contains in itself the formal reason of its proportionate potency;
because “although the essence of a being is neither the form alone nor
the matter alone, yet the form alone is in its own manner (that is, by
formal principiation) the cause of such an essence.”

And let this suffice respecting the general notions of first matter and
substantial form.

TO BE CONTINUED.


THE LEADER OF THE CENTRUM IN THE GERMAN REICHSTAG.

The Catholics of Germany have suffered a great loss in the death of
Herman von Mallinkrodt, deputy to the Reichstag. Germany now realizes
what he was, and it is indeed a pleasure for us to honor in this
periodical the memory of this extraordinary man by giving a short sketch
of his life.

Herman von Mallinkrodt was born in Minden (Westphalia), on the 5th of
February, 1821. His father, who was of noble birth and a Prussian officer
of state, was a Protestant; his mother, _née_ Von Hartman, of Paderborn,
was an excellent Catholic. All the children of this marriage were
baptized Catholics--which is very seldom the case in mixed marriages--and
were filled with the true Catholic spirit.

Like Herman, so also did his brother and sister, who were older than he,
distinguish themselves by their decidedly Catholic qualities. George,
who had become the possessor of the old convent of Boeddekken, founded
in the year 837 by S. Meinulph, cherished a special devotion towards
this the first saint of Paderborn, and rebuilt the chapel, destroyed in
the beginning of this century by the Prussian government. This chapel is
greatly esteemed as a perfect specimen of Gothic architecture, and is
now held in high honor, as being the final resting-place of Herman von
Mallinkrodt. His sister, Pauline, the foundress and mother-general of the
sisterhood of “Christian Love,” has become celebrated by the success she
has achieved in the education of girls. (The principal teacher of Pauline
was the noble convert and celebrated poetess, Louisa Aloysia Hensel, in
whose verses, according to the criticism of the Protestant historian
Barthel, more tender and Christian sentiments are expressed than are
to be found in any German production of modern times.) These excellent
Sisters were also expelled, as being dangerous to the state, and sought
as well as found a new field of usefulness in America, the land of
freedom.

The true Catholic discipline of these three children they owe to the
careful training of their mother and the pure Catholic atmosphere of
Aix-la-Chapelle, to which city their father was sent as vice-president
of the government. Herman followed the profession of his father, and
studied jurisprudence. The interest felt by the young jurist in whatever
concerned the church is seen in the following incident, which had an
important influence on his whole life: When the time had arrived for him
to pass his state examination, he retired to the quiet of Boeddekken.
From different themes he selected the one treating on the judicial
relations between church and state. Not being satisfied with the view
taken by certain authors, he endeavored to arrive at a knowledge of the
matter by personal investigation, and after fourteen months of close
application he succeeded in establishing a system which proved itself on
all sides tenable and in harmony with the writings of the old canonists
of the church. The person to whose judgment the production was submitted
declared that the treatise, although excellent, was too strongly in
favor of the church, but that the author had permission to publish it,
which, however, was not done. Herman, nevertheless, as he afterwards told
one of his friends, had never to retract one of the principles he then
maintained; he had only to let them develop themselves more fully. As he
in his youth did not rest until he had become perfect master of any theme
he had to discuss, so also did he never in afterlife ascend the tribune,
upon which he won imperishable honors, until he had digested the whole
matter in his mind. We make no mention of the positions which Mallinkrodt
occupied as the servant of the state. It is well known that his strong
Catholic sentiments were for the Prussian government an insurmountable
objection to his being elevated to a post corresponding with his eminent
ability, until he, as counsellor of the government at Merseburg, left the
ungrateful service of the state. It was, however, his good fortune to
apply the talents which Almighty God had given him in so full a measure,
to his parliamentary duties for eighteen years, from 1852 to 1874, the
short interruption from 1864 to 1868 excepted.

In his life his friends recognized his merits, and in his death even his
enemies confessed that a great man had passed away.

This prominent leader Almighty God has taken from us in a sudden and
unexpected manner. The last Prussian Diet, at whose session he was
more conspicuous than ever before, had adjourned, and in paying his
farewell visits before his return to his home in Nord-Borchen, where
he possessed a family mansion, he contracted a cold, which finally
developed itself into an inflammation of the lungs and of the membrane
covering the thorax. On the fifth day of his sickness the man who, by his
indefatigable public labors and the grief he felt for the afflictions
undergone by the church, had worn out his life, passed to his eternal
reward, on the 26th of May, in the 53d year of his age. He had married
Thecla, _née_ Von Bernhard, a step-sister of his first wife, several
months before his death, and she was present when he died. Placing one
hand in hers, he embraced with the other the cross, which in life he had
always venerated and chosen as his standard.

No pen can describe the heartfelt anguish which the Catholic people
of Germany felt at their loss. At the funeral services in Berlin the
distinguished members of all parties were present. The government alone
failed to acknowledge the merit of one who had so long been an eminent
leader in the Reichstag. Paderborn, to which city the body was conveyed,
has never witnessed such a grand funeral procession as that of Von
Mallinkrodt. From thence to Boeddekken, a distance of nine miles, one
congregation after the other formed the honorary escort, not counting
the crowd of mourners who had gathered together at Boeddekken, where the
deceased was to be buried in the chapel of S. Meinulph. A large number
of members of the Centrum party, nearly all the nobility of Westphalia,
were here assembled, and many cities of Germany sent deputies, who
deposited laurel wreaths upon the coffin. It was an imposing sight
when his Excellency Dr. Windthorst approached the open grave to strew,
as the last service of love, some blessed earth upon the remains of his
dear friend, the tears streaming meanwhile from his eyes. During the
funeral services the bells of the Cathedral of Münster tolled solemnly
for two hours, summoning Catholics from the different districts to attend
the High Mass of Requiem for the beloved dead; so that the words of
the Holy Scriptures applied to the hero of the Machabees can be truly
applied also to Von Mallinkrodt: “And all the people … bewailed him
with great lamentation” (1 Machabees ix. 20). It is a remarkable fact
that even his opponents, who during his lifetime attacked him with all
manner of weapons, could not but bestow the most unqualified praises
upon him in death. It would seem that the eloquence of Von Mallinkrodt
during his latter years had been all in vain; for although every seat
was filled as soon as he ascended the tribune to speak, and he was
listened to with profound attention, yet he exercised no influence upon
the votes, for the reason that they had previously been determined
upon. No one was found who could reply to his forcible arguments, for
they were unanswerable. Not only his graceful oratory, but the very
appearance of a man so true to his convictions, had its effect even upon
his opponents. It will not be out of place for us to give a few of the
tributes paid to his memory by those who differed from him in politics.
Even in Berlin, where titles are so plentiful, the general sentiment was
one of sorrow. “With respectful sympathy,” writes the _Spener Gazette_,
“we have to announce the unexpected death of a man distinguished not
only for talent, but for integrity--Herman von Mallinkrodt, deputy to
the Reichstag. He was sincerely convinced of the justice of the cause
he espoused. Greater praise we cannot bestow upon a friend, nor can we
refrain from acknowledging that our late adversary always acted from
principle.” “Von Mallinkrodt,” says the correspondent of the Berlin
_Progress_, “stood in the first rank when there was question regarding
the policy of the government against the church; no other orator, not
only of his own party, but even of the opposition, could compare with him
in logical reasoning or in rhetorical skill. His speeches give evident
proof of the rare combination of truth and ability to be found in this
great man.” The fault-finding Elberfelder _Gazette_ testifies as follows
to the eloquence of our deputy: “Who that has listened to even one of
Von Mallinkrodt’s speeches can ever forget the fascinating eloquence or
the picturesque appearance of the orator--reminding one of the Duke of
Alba, by the perfect dignity of his manner and the classic form of his
discourse?” The Magdeburg correspondent almost goes further when he says:
“He served his party with such disinterestedness, and was so indifferent
to his own advancement, that it would be well if all political parties
could show many such characters--men who live exclusively for one idea,
and sacrifice every temporal advantage to this idea. The Reichstag
will find it difficult to fill the vacuum caused by the death of Von
Mallinkrodt. In this all parties agree; and members who combated the
principles of the deceased with the greatest earnestness, nevertheless
confess that in energy and vigor of expression he was seldom equalled
and never excelled by any one.” “In regard to his exterior appearance,”
the Magdeburg _Gazette_ says: “Von Mallinkrodt, with his erect person,
beautifully-formed head, stern features, and flashing eyes, was a fine
specimen of a man who knew how to control his temper, and not give way
to an outburst of passion at an important moment. He was a leader who,
in the severest combat, could impart courage and confidence to his
followers, and he stood as firm as a rock when any attempt was made to
crush him.… He will not be soon forgotten by those with whom he has had
intellectual contests. Of Von Mallinkrodt, who stands alone among men, it
can be truly said: ‘He was a great man.’”

The reader will pardon us for selecting from among the many tributes
of respect paid to the memory of Von Mallinkrodt one taken from the
democratic Frankfort _Gazette_, edited by Jews, which journal at other
times keeps its columns open to the most outrageous attacks upon the
Catholic Church. It says with great truth: “The single idea of the
church entirely filled the mind of this extraordinary and wonderful man;
and firmly as he upheld the system of Mühler-Krätzig, as steadfastly
did he oppose the policy of Falk. In this opposition he grew stronger
from session to session, the governing principle of his life developed
itself more and more fully, and he became bolder in his attack upon the
ministers and their parliamentary friends. Talent and character were
united in him; a true son of the church, he was at the same time a true
son of mother earth, and his healthy organization had its effect upon his
disposition. The last session of the Reichstag saw him at the height of
his usefulness; his last grand speech, in reference to the laws against
the bishops, was, as his friends and opponents acknowledge, the most
important parliamentary achievement since the beginning of the conflict.…
In him the Reichstag loses not only one of its shining lights, but also
a character of iron mould, such as is seldom found preserved in all its
strength in the present unsettled state of public affairs. We cannot join
in the requiem which the priests will sing around his catafalque, but his
honest opponents will venerate his memory, for he was, what can be said
of but few in our degenerate times--_a true man_.”

With these noble qualities Von Mallinkrodt possessed the greatest
modesty; he was accessible to every one, cheerful and familiar in the
happy circle of his friends, respectful to his political opponents, just
and reasonable to Protestants, and devoted to his spiritual mother, the
Catholic Church. Like O’Connell, during his parliamentary labors he had
constant recourse to prayer. “Pray for me!” were his farewell words to
his sister when he went to Berlin to enter the arena of politics. When he
had concluded the above-mentioned last and grand speech in the Reichstag,
in regard to the laws against the bishops, with the words, _Per crucem ad
lucem_, which he himself translated, “through the cross to joy,” and when
he descended the tribune, he went directly to the seat of Rev. Father
Miller, of Berlin, counsellor of the bishop, stretched out his hand to
him, and said, “You have prayed well!” It is said of him that before
any important debate in the chambers he went in the morning to Holy
Communion. The people of Nord-Borchen tell one another with emotion how,
without ever having been noticed by him, they have observed their good
Von Mallinkrodt pass hours in prayer in the lonely chapel near Borchen.
What pious aspirations he made in that secluded spot God alone knows. He
was always very fond of reciting the Rosary, which devotion displayed
itself particularly upon his death-bed. He asked the Sister who nursed
him to recite the beads with him, as his weakness prevented him from
praying aloud. When his wife approached his couch of pain, after greeting
her affectionately, he told her to look for his rosary and crucifix,
which she would find lying beside him on the right. The following day,
when his sister, the Superioress Pauline, had arrived in Berlin, after
a friendly salutation, he said to her: “It is indeed good that you
are here; say with me another decade of the Rosary.” It is related of
O’Connell that in a decisive moment he would always retire to a corner
in the House of Parliament, in order to say the Rosary; it was also the
habit of Von Mallinkrodt.

The same living faith which animated him in life gave him also
consolation in death. “Think of S. Elizabeth,” said he to his wife,
Thecla; “she also became a widow when young.” When his wife, the day
previous to his death, spoke to him of the love and grief of his five
children, tears filled his eyes; but he wiped them quietly away without
uttering a word, and looked up to heaven. He explained to the Sister
who attended him why during his whole illness he had never felt any
solicitude concerning his temporal or family affairs; for, said he, “I
have confidence in God.”

Another remarkable feature of his last sickness, which testifies to the
peaceful state of mind of this Christian warrior, who fought the cause,
but not the individual, was the fact that he evinced real satisfaction
that his personal relations toward his political opponents had become
no worse, but even more friendly. It was this sentiment which, when the
fever had reached its height, caused him to exclaim: “I was willing to
live in peace with every one; but justice must prevail! Should Christians
not speak more like Christians when among Christians?” As Von Mallinkrodt
lived by faith, so also did he die, embracing the sign of redemption; and
thus he passed away _per crucem ad lucem_--through the cross to joy.


AN EXPOSITION OF THE CHURCH IN VIEW OF RECENT DIFFICULTIES AND
CONTROVERSIES AND THE PRESENT NEEDS OF THE AGE.[35]

“These are not the times to sit with folded arms, while all the enemies
of God are occupied in overthrowing every thing worthy of respect.”--PIUS
IX., Jan. 13, 1873.

“Yes, this change, this triumph, will come. I know not whether it will
come during my life, during the life of this poor Vicar of Jesus Christ;
but that it must come, I know. The resurrection will take place and we
shall see the end of all impiety.”--PIUS IX., Anniversary of the Roman
Plébiscite, 1872.


I. THE QUESTION STATED.

The Catholic Church throughout the world, beginning at Rome, is in a
suffering state. There is scarcely a spot on the earth where she is not
assailed by injustice, oppression, or violent persecution. Like her
divine Author in his Passion, every member has its own trial of pain to
endure. All the gates of hell have been opened, and every species of
attack, as by general conspiracy, has been let loose at once upon the
church.

Countries in which Catholics outnumber all other Christians put together,
as France, Austria, Italy, Spain, Bavaria, Baden, South America, Brazil,
and, until recently, Belgium, are for the most part controlled and
governed by hostile minorities, and in some instances the minority is
very small.

Her adversaries, with the finger of derision, point out these facts
and proclaim them to the world. Look, they say, at Poland, Ireland,
Portugal, Spain, Bavaria, Austria, Italy, France, and what do you see?
Countries subjugated, or enervated, or agitated by the internal throes
of revolution. Everywhere among Catholic nations weakness only and
incapacity are to be discerned. This is the result of the priestly
domination and hierarchical influence of Rome!

Heresy and schism, false philosophy, false science, and false art,
cunning diplomacy, infidelity, and atheism, one and all boldly raise up
their heads and attack the church in the face; while secret societies
of world-wide organization are stealthily engaged in undermining her
strength with the people. Even the Sick man--the Turk--who lives at the
beck of the so-called Christian nations, impudently kicks the church of
Christ, knowing full well there is no longer in Europe any power which
will openly raise a voice in her defence.

How many souls, on account of this dreadful war waged against the church,
are now suffering in secret a bitter agony! How many are hesitating,
knowing not what to do, and looking for guidance! How many are wavering
between hope and fear! Alas! too many have already lost the faith.

Culpable is the silence and base the fear which would restrain one’s
voice at a period when God, the church, and religion are everywhere
either openly denied, boldly attacked, or fiercely persecuted. In such
trying times as these silence or fear is betrayal.

The hand of God is certainly in these events, and it is no less certain
that the light of divine faith ought to discern it. Through these clouds
which now obscure the church the light of divine hope ought to pierce,
enabling us to perceive a better and a brighter future; for this is what
is in store for the church and the world. That love which embraces at
once the greatest glory of God and the highest happiness of man should
outweigh all fear of misinterpretations, and urge one to make God’s hand
clear to those who are willing to see, and point out to them the way to
that happier and fairer future.

What, then, has brought about this most deplorable state of things? How
can we account for this apparent lack of faith and strength on the part
of Catholics? Can it be true, as their enemies assert, that Catholicity,
wherever it has full sway, deteriorates society? Or is it contrary to the
spirit of Christianity that Christians should strive with all their might
to overcome evil in this world? Perhaps the Catholic Church has grown
old, as others imagine, and has accomplished her task, and is no longer
competent to unite together the conflicting interests of modern society,
and direct it towards its true destination?

These questions are most serious ones. Their answers must be fraught with
most weighty lessons. Only a meagre outline of the course of argument can
be here given in so vast a field of investigation.


II. REMOTE CAUSE OF PRESENT DIFFICULTIES.

One of the chief features of the history of the church for these last
three centuries has been its conflict with the religious revolution
of the XVIth century, properly called Protestantism. The nature of
Protestantism may be defined as the exaggerated development of personal
independence, directed to the negation of the divine authority of the
church, and chiefly aiming at its overthrow in the person of its supreme
representative, the Pope.

It is a fixed law, founded in the very nature of the church, that every
serious and persistent denial of a divinely-revealed truth necessitates
its vigorous defence, calls out its greater development, and ends,
finally, in its dogmatic definition.

The history of the church is replete with instances of this fact. One
must suffice. When Arius denied the divinity of Christ, which was always
held as a divinely-revealed truth, at once the doctors of the church and
the faithful were aroused in its defence. A general council was called at
Nice, and there this truth was defined and fixed for ever as a dogma of
the Catholic faith. The law has always been, from the first Council at
Jerusalem to that of the Vatican, that the negation of a revealed truth
calls out its fuller development and its explicit dogmatic definition.

The Council of Trent refuted and condemned the errors of Protestantism at
the time of their birth, and defined the truths against which they were
directed; but, for wise and sufficient reasons, abstained from touching
the objective point of attack, which was, necessarily, the divine
authority of the church. For there was no standing-ground whatever for
a protest against the church, except in its denial. It would have been
the height of absurdity to admit an authority, and that divine, and at
the same time to refuse to obey its decisions. It was as well known then
as to-day that the keystone of the whole structure of the church was its
head. To overthrow the Papacy was to conquer the church.

The supreme power of the church for a long period of years was the centre
around which the battle raged between the adversaries and the champions
of the faith.

The denial of the Papal authority in the church necessarily occasioned
its fuller development. For as long as this hostile movement was
aggressive in its assaults, so long was the church constrained to
strengthen her defence, and make a stricter and more detailed application
of her authority in every sphere of her action, in her hierarchy, in her
general discipline, and in the personal acts of her children. Every new
denial was met with a new defence and a fresh application. The danger was
on the side of revolt, the safety was on that of submission. The poison
was an exaggerated spiritual independence, the antidote was increased
obedience to a divine external authority.

The chief occupation of the church for the last three centuries was
the maintenance of that authority conferred by Christ on S. Peter and
his successors, in opposition to the efforts of Protestantism for its
overthrow; and the contest was terminated for ever in the dogmatic
definition of Papal Infallibility, by the church assembled in council in
the Vatican. Luther declared the pope Antichrist. The Catholic Church
affirmed the pope to be the Vicar of Christ. Luther stigmatized the See
of Rome as the seat of error. The council of the church defined the See
of Rome, the chair of S. Peter, to be the infallible interpreter of
divinely-revealed truth. This definition closed the controversy.

In this pressing necessity of defending the papal authority of the
church, the society of S. Ignatius was born. It was no longer the
refutation of the errors of the Waldenses and the Albigenses that was
required, nor were the dangers to be combated such as arise from a
wealthy and luxurious society. The former had been met and overcome by
the Dominicans; the latter by the children of S. Francis. But new and
strange errors arose, and alarming threats from an entirely different
quarter were heard. Fearful blows were aimed and struck against the
keystone of the divine constitution of the church, and millions of her
children were in open revolt. In this great crisis, as in previous ones,
Providence supplied new men and new weapons to meet the new perils.
S. Ignatius, filled with faith and animated with heroic zeal, came to
the rescue, and formed an army of men devoted to the service of the
church, and specially suited to encounter its peculiar dangers. The
Papacy was their point of attack; the members of his society must be the
champions of the pope, his body-guard. The papal authority was denied;
the children of S. Ignatius must make a special vow of obedience to the
Holy Father. The prevailing sin of the time was disobedience; the members
of his company must aim at becoming the perfect models of the virtue of
obedience, men whose will should never conflict with the authority of the
church, _perinde cadaver_. The distinguishing traits of a perfect Jesuit
formed the antithesis of a thorough Protestant.

The society founded by S. Ignatius undertook a heavy and an heroic task,
one in its nature most unpopular, and requiring above all on the part of
its members an entire abnegation of that which men hold dearest--their
own will. It is no wonder that their army of martyrs is so numerous and
their list of saints so long.

Inasmuch as the way of destroying a vice is to enforce the practice of
its opposite virtue, and as the confessional and spiritual direction are
appropriate channels for applying the authority of the church to the
conscience and personal actions of the faithful, the members of this
society insisted upon the frequency of the one and the necessity of the
other. In a short period of time the Jesuits were considered the most
skilful and were the most-sought-after confessors and spiritual directors
in the church.

They were mainly instrumental--by the science of their theologians, the
logic of their controversialists, the eloquence of their preachers, the
excellence of their spiritual writers, and, above all, by the influence
of their personal example--in saving millions from following in the great
revolt against the church, in regaining millions who had gone astray,
and in putting a stop to the numerical increase of Protestantism, almost
within the generation in which it was born.

To their labors and influence it is chiefly owing that the distinguishing
mark of a sincere Catholic for the last three centuries has been a
special devotion to the Holy See and a filial obedience to the voice of
the pope, the common father of the faithful.

The logical outcome of the existence of the society founded by S.
Ignatius of Loyola was the dogmatic definition of Papal Infallibility;
for this was the final word of victory of divine truth over the specific
error which the Jesuits were specially called to combat.


III. PROXIMATE CAUSE.

The church, while resisting Protestantism, had to give her principal
attention and apply her main strength to those points which were
attacked. Like a wise strategist, she drew off her forces from the
places which were secure, and directed them to those posts where danger
threatened. As she was most of all engaged in the defence of her external
authority and organization, the faithful, in view of this defence, as
well as in regard to the dangers of the period, were specially guided to
the practice of the virtue of obedience. Is it a matter of surprise that
the character of the virtues developed was more passive than active? The
weight of authority was placed on the side of restraining rather than of
developing personal independent action.

The exaggeration of personal authority on the part of Protestants brought
about in the church its greater restraint, in order that her divine
authority might have its legitimate exercise and exert its salutary
influence. The errors and evils of the times sprang from an unbridled
personal independence, which could be only counteracted by habits of
increased personal dependence. _Contraria contrariis curantur._ The
defence of the church and the salvation of the soul were ordinarily
secured at the expense, necessarily, of those virtues which properly go
to make up the strength of Christian manhood.

The gain was the maintenance and victory of divine truth and the
salvation of the soul. The loss was a certain falling off in energy,
resulting in decreased action in the natural order. The former was a
permanent and inestimable gain. The latter was a temporary, and not
irreparable, loss. There was no room for a choice. The faithful were
placed in a position in which it became their unqualified duty to put
into practice the precept of our Lord when he said: _It is better for
thee to enter into life maimed or lame, than, having two hands or two
feet, to be cast into everlasting fire_.[36]

In the principles above briefly stated may in a great measure be found
the explanation why fifty millions of Protestants have had generally a
controlling influence, for a long period, over two hundred millions of
Catholics, in directing the movements and destinies of nations. To the
same source may be attributed the fact that Catholic nations, when the
need was felt of a man of great personal energy at the head of their
affairs, seldom hesitated to choose for prime minister an indifferent
Catholic, or a Protestant, or even an infidel. These principles explain
also why Austria, France, Bavaria, Spain, Italy, and other Catholic
countries have yielded to a handful of active and determined radicals,
infidels, Jews, or atheists, and have been compelled to violate or
annul their concordats with the Holy See, and to change their political
institutions in a direction hostile to the interests of the Catholic
religion. Finally, herein lies the secret why Catholics are at this
moment almost everywhere oppressed and persecuted by very inferior
numbers. In the natural order the feebler are always made to serve the
stronger. Evident weakness on one side, in spite of superiority of
numbers, provokes on the other, where there is consciousness of power,
subjugation and oppression.


IV. IS THERE A WAY OUT?

Is divine grace given only at the cost of natural strength? Is a true
Christian life possible only through the sacrifice of a successful
natural career? Are things to remain as they are at present?

The general history of the Catholic religion in the past condemns these
suppositions as the grossest errors and falsest calumnies. Behold the
small numbers of the faithful and their final triumph over the great
colossal Roman Empire! Look at the subjugation of the countless and
victorious hordes of the Northern barbarians! Witness, again, the prowess
of the knights of the church, who were her champions in repulsing the
threatening Mussulman; every one of whom, by the rule of their order,
were bound not to flinch before two Turks! Call to mind the great
discoveries made in all branches of science, and the eminence in art,
displayed by the children of the church, and which underlie--if there
were only honesty enough to acknowledge it--most of our modern progress
and civilization! Long before Protestantism was dreamed of Catholic
states in Italy had reached a degree of wealth, power, and glory
which no Protestant nation--it is the confession of one of their own
historians--has since attained.

There is, then, no reason in the nature of things why the existing
condition of Catholics throughout the world should remain as it is. The
blood that courses through our veins, the graces given in our baptism,
the light of our faith, the divine life-giving Bread we receive, are all
the same gifts and privileges which we have in common with our great
ancestors. We are the children of the same mighty mother, ever fruitful
of heroes and great men. The present state of things is neither fatal
nor final, but only one of the many episodes in the grand history of the
church of God.


V. WHICH IS THE WAY OUT?

No better evidence is needed of the truth of the statements just made
than the fact that all Catholics throughout the world are ill at ease
with things as they are. The world at large is agitated, as it never has
been before, with problems which enter into the essence of religion or
are closely connected therewith. Many serious minds are occupied with the
question of the renewal of religion and the regeneration of society. The
aspects in which questions of this nature are viewed are as various as
the remedies proposed are numerous. Here are a few of the more important
ones.

One class of men would begin by laboring for the reconciliation of
all Christian denominations, and would endeavor to establish unity in
Christendom as the way to universal restoration. Another class starts
with the idea that the remedy would be found in giving a more thorough
and religious education to youth in schools, colleges, and universities.
Some would renew the church by translating her liturgies into the vulgar
tongues, by reducing the number of her forms of devotion, and by giving
to her worship greater simplicity. Others, again, propose to alter the
constitution of the church by the practice of universal elections in the
hierarchy, by giving the lay element a larger share in the direction of
ecclesiastical matters, and by establishing national churches. There
are those who hope for a better state of things by placing Henry V.
on the throne of France, and Don Carlos on that of Spain. Others,
contrariwise, having lost all confidence in princes, look forward with
great expectations to a baptized democracy, a holy Roman democracy, just
as formerly there was a Holy Roman Empire. Not a few are occupied with
the idea of reconciling capital with labor, of changing the tenure of
property, and abolishing standing armies. Others propose a restoration of
international law, a congress of nations, and a renewed and more strict
observance of the Decalogue. According to another school, theological
motives have lost their hold on the people, the task of directing society
has devolved upon science, and its apostolate has begun. There are
those, moreover, who hold that society can only be cured by an immense
catastrophe, and one hardly knows what great cataclysm is to happen and
save the human race. Finally, we are told that the reign of Antichrist
has begun, that signs of it are everywhere, and that we are on the eve of
the end of the world.

These are only a few of the projects, plans, and remedies which are
discussed, and which more or less occupy and agitate the public mind. How
much truth or error, how much good or bad, each or all of these theories
contain, would require a lifetime to find out.

The remedy for our evils must be got at, to be practical, in another way.
If a new life be imparted to the root of a tree, its effects will soon be
seen in all its branches, twigs, and leaves. Is it not possible to get at
the root of all our evils, and with a radical remedy renew at once the
whole face of things? Universal evils are not cured by specifics.


VI. THE WAY OUT.

All things are to be viewed and valued as they bear on the destiny of
man. Religion is the solution of the problem of man’s destiny. Religion,
therefore, lies at the root of everything which concerns man’s true
interest.

Religion means Christianity, to all men, or to nearly all, who hold
to any religion among European nations. Christianity, intelligibly
understood, signifies the church, the Catholic Church. The church is God
acting through a visible organization directly on men, and, through men,
on society.

The church is the sum of all problems, and the most potent fact in the
whole wide universe. It is therefore illogical to look elsewhere for the
radical remedy of all our evils. It is equally unworthy of a Catholic to
look elsewhere for the renewal of religion.

The meditation of these great truths is the source from which the
inspiration must come, if society is to be regenerated and the human race
directed to its true destination. He who looks to any other quarter for
a radical and adequate remedy and for true guidance is doomed to failure
and disappointment.


VII. MISSION OF THE HOLY SPIRIT.

It cannot be too deeply and firmly impressed on the mind that the church
is actuated by the instinct of the Holy Spirit; and to discern clearly
its action, and to co-operate with it effectually, is the highest
employment of our faculties, and at the same time the primary source of
the greatest good to society.

Did we clearly see and understand the divine action of the Holy Spirit
in the successive steps of the history of the church, we would fully
comprehend the law of all true progress. If in this later period more
stress was laid on the necessity of obedience to the external authority
of the church than in former days, it was, as has been shown, owing to
the peculiar dangers to which the faithful were exposed. It would be an
inexcusable mistake to suppose for a moment that the holy church, at any
period of her existence, was ignorant or forgetful of the mission and
office of the Holy Spirit. The Holy Spirit established the church, and
can he forget his own mission? It is true that he has to guide and govern
through men, but he is the Sovereign of men, and especially of those whom
he has chosen as his immediate instruments.

The essential and universal principle which saves and sanctifies souls
is the Holy Spirit. He it was who called, inspired, and sanctified the
patriarchs, the prophets and saints of the old dispensation. The same
divine Spirit inspired and sanctified the apostles, the martyrs, and the
saints of the new dispensation. The actual and habitual guidance of the
soul by the Holy Spirit is the essential principle of all divine life. “I
have taught the prophets from the beginning, and even till now I cease
not to speak to all.”[37] Christ’s mission was to give the Holy Spirit
more abundantly.

No one who reads the Holy Scriptures can fail to be struck with the
repeated injunctions to turn our eyes inward, to walk in the divine
presence, to see and taste and listen to God in the soul. These
exhortations run all through the inspired books, beginning with that of
Genesis, and ending with the Revelations of S. John. “I am the Almighty
God, walk before me, and be perfect,”[38] was the lesson which God gave
to the patriarch Abraham. “Be still and see that I am God.”[39] “O
taste, and see that the Lord is sweet; blessed is the man that hopeth in
him.”[40] God is the guide, the light of the living, and our strength.
“God’s kingdom is within you,” said the divine Master. “Know you not
that you are the temple of God, and that the Spirit of God dwelleth
in you?”[41] “For it is God who worketh in you both to will and to
accomplish, according to his will.”[42] The object of divine revelation
was to make known and to establish within the souls of men, and through
them upon the earth, the kingdom of God.

In accordance with the Sacred Scriptures, the Catholic Church teaches
that the Holy Spirit is infused, with all his gifts, into our souls by
the sacrament of baptism, and that, without his actual prompting or
inspiration and aid, no thought or act, or even wish, tending directly
towards our true destiny, is possible.

The whole aim of the science of Christian perfection is to instruct men
how to remove the hindrances in the way of the action of the Holy Spirit,
and how to cultivate those virtues which are most favorable to his
solicitations and inspirations. Thus the sum of spiritual life consists
in observing and fortifying the ways and movements of the Spirit of God
in our soul, employing for this purpose all the exercises of prayer,
spiritual reading, sacraments, the practice of virtues, and good works.

That divine action which is the immediate and principal cause of the
salvation and perfection of the soul claims by right its direct and
main attention. From this source within the soul there will gradually
come to birth the consciousness of the indwelling presence of the Holy
Spirit, out of which will spring a force surpassing all human strength,
a courage higher than all human heroism, a sense of dignity excelling
all human greatness. The light the age requires for its renewal can come
only from the same source. The renewal of the age depends on the renewal
of religion. The renewal of religion depends upon a greater effusion of
the creative and renewing power of the Holy Spirit. The greater effusion
of the Holy Spirit depends on the giving of increased attention to his
movements and inspirations in the soul. The radical and adequate remedy
for all the evils of our age, and the source of all true progress,
consist in increased attention and fidelity to the action of the Holy
Spirit in the soul. “Thou shalt send forth thy Spirit, and they shall be
created: and thou shalt renew the face of the earth.”[43]


VIII. THE MEN THE AGE DEMANDS.

This truth will be better seen by looking at the matter a little more in
detail. The age, we are told, calls for men worthy of that name. Who are
those worthy to be called men? Men, assuredly, whose intelligences and
wills are divinely illuminated and fortified. This is precisely what is
produced by the gifts of the Holy Spirit; they enlarge all the faculties
of the soul at once.

The age is superficial; it needs the gift of wisdom, which enables
the soul to contemplate truth in its ultimate causes. The age is
materialistic; it needs the gift of intelligence, by the light of
which the intellect penetrates into the essence of things. The age
is captivated by a false and one-sided science; it needs the gift of
science, by the light of which is seen each order of truth in its
true relations to other orders and in a divine unity. The age is in
disorder, and is ignorant of the way to true progress; it needs the gift
of counsel, which teaches how to choose the proper means to attain an
object. The age is impious; it needs the gift of piety, which leads the
soul to look up to God as the Heavenly Father, and to adore him with
feelings of filial affection and love. The age is sensual and effeminate;
it needs the gift of force, which imparts to the will the strength to
endure the greatest burdens and to prosecute the greatest enterprises
with ease and heroism. The age has lost and almost forgotten God; it
needs the gift of fear, to bring the soul again to God, and make it feel
conscious of its great responsibility and of its destiny.

Men endowed with these gifts are the men for whom--if it but knew
it--the age calls: men whose minds are enlightened and whose wills are
strengthened by an increased action of the Holy Spirit; men whose souls
are actuated by the gifts of the Holy Spirit; men whose countenances are
lit up with a heavenly joy, who breathe an air of inward peace, and act
with a holy liberty and an unaccountable energy. One such soul does more
to advance the kingdom of God than tens of thousands without such gifts.
These are the men and this is the way--if the age could only be made to
see and believe it--to universal restoration, universal reconciliation,
and universal progress.


IX. THE CHURCH HAS ENTERED ON THIS WAY.

The men the age and its needs demand depend on a greater infusion of the
Holy Spirit in the souls of the faithful; and the church has been already
prepared for this event.

Can one suppose for a moment that so long, so severe, a contest, as that
of the three centuries just passed, which, moreover, has cost so dearly,
has not been fraught with the greatest utility to the church? Does God
ever allow his church to suffer loss in the struggle to accomplish her
divine mission?

It is true that the powerful and persistent assaults of the errors of
the XVIth century against the church forced her, so to speak, out of the
usual orbit of her movement; but having completed her defence from all
danger on that side, she is returning to her normal course with increased
agencies--thanks to that contest--and is entering upon a new and fresh
phase of life, and upon a more vigorous action in every sphere of her
existence. The chiefest of these agencies, and the highest in importance,
was that of the definition concerning the nature of papal authority.
For the definition of the Vatican Council, having rendered the supreme
authority of the church, which is the unerring interpreter and criterion
of divinely-revealed truth, more explicit and complete, has prepared the
way for the faithful to follow, with greater safety and liberty, the
inspirations of the Holy Spirit. The dogmatic papal definition of the
Vatican Council is, therefore, the axis on which turn the new course
of the church, the renewal of religion, and the entire restoration of
society.

O blessed fruit! purchased at the price of so hard a struggle, but which
has gained for the faithful an increased divine illumination and force,
and thereby the renewal of the whole face of the world.

It is easy to perceive how great a blunder the so-called “Old Catholics”
committed in opposing the conciliar definition. They professed a desire
to see a more perfect reign of the Holy Spirit in the church, and by
their opposition rejected, so far as in them lay, the very means of
bringing it about!

This by the way: let us continue our course, and follow the divine
action in the church, which is the initiator and fountain-source of the
restoration of all things.

What is the meaning of these many pilgrimages to holy places, to
the shrines of great saints, the multiplication of Novenas and new
associations of prayer? Are they not evidence of increased action of the
Holy Spirit on the faithful? Why, moreover, these cruel persecutions,
vexatious fines, and numerous imprisonments of the bishops, clergy, and
laity of the church? What is the secret of this stripping the church of
her temporal possessions and authority? These things have taken place by
the divine permission. Have not all these inflictions increased greatly
devotion to prayer, cemented more closely the unity of the faithful, and
turned the attention of all members of the church, from the highest to
the lowest, to look for aid from whence it alone can come--from God?

These trials and sufferings of the faithful are the first steps towards
a better state of things. They detach from earthly things and purify
the human side of the church. From them will proceed light and strength
and victory. _Per crucem ad lucem._ “If the Lord wishes that other
persecutions should be sown, the church feels no alarm; on the contrary,
persecutions purify her and confer upon her a fresh force and a new
beauty. There are, in truth, in the church certain things which need
purification, and for this purpose those persecutions answer best which
are launched against her by great politicians.” Such is the language of
Pius IX.[44]

These are only some of the movements, which are public. But how many
souls in secret suffer sorely in seeing the church in such tribulations,
and pray for her deliverance with a fervor almost amounting to agony! Are
not all these but so many preparatory steps to a Pentecostal effusion of
the Holy Spirit on the church--an effusion, if not equal in intensity to
that of apostolic days, at least greater than it in universality? “If
at no epoch of the evangelical ages the reign of Satan was so generally
welcome as in this our day, the action of the Holy Spirit will have
to clothe itself with the characteristics of an exceptional extension
and force. The axioms of geometry do not appear to us more rigorously
exact than this proposition. A certain indefinable presentiment of
this necessity of a new effusion of the Holy Spirit for the actual
world exists, and of this presentiment the importance ought not to be
exaggerated; but yet it would seem rash to make it of no account.”[45]

Is not this the meaning of the presentiment of Pius IX., when he said:
“Since we have nothing, or next to nothing, to expect from men, let us
place our confidence more and more in God, whose heart is preparing, as
it seems to me, to accomplish, in the moment chosen by himself, a great
prodigy, which will fill the whole earth with astonishment”?[46]

Was not the same presentiment before the mind of De Maistre when he
penned the following lines: “We are on the eve of the greatest of
religious epochs; … it appears to me that every true philosopher must
choose between these two hypotheses: either that a new religion is about
to be formed, or that Christianity will be renewed in some extraordinary
manner”?[47]


X. TWOFOLD ACTION OF THE HOLY SPIRIT.

Before further investigation of this new phase of the church, it would
perhaps be well to set aside a doubt which might arise in the minds of
some, namely, whether there is not danger in turning the attention of the
faithful in a greater degree in the direction contemplated?

The enlargement of the field of action for the soul, without a true
knowledge of the end and scope of the external authority of the church,
would only open the door to delusions, errors, and heresies of every
description, and would be in effect merely another form of Protestantism.

On the other hand, the exclusive view of the external authority of the
church, without a proper understanding of the nature and work of the
Holy Spirit in the soul, would render the practice of religion formal,
obedience servile, and the church sterile.

The action of the Holy Spirit embodied visibly in the authority of
the church, and the action of the Holy Spirit dwelling invisibly in
the soul, form one inseparable synthesis; and he who has not a clear
conception of this twofold action of the Holy Spirit is in danger
of running into one or the other, and sometimes into both, of these
extremes, either of which is destructive of the end of the church.

The Holy Spirit, in the external authority of the church, acts as the
infallible interpreter and criterion of divine revelation. The Holy
Spirit in the soul acts as the divine Life-Giver and Sanctifier. It is of
the highest importance that these two distinct offices of the Holy Spirit
should not be confounded.

The supposition that there can be any opposition or contradiction between
the action of the Holy Spirit in the supreme decisions of the authority
of the church, and the inspirations of the Holy Spirit in the soul, can
never enter the mind of an enlightened and sincere Christian. The same
Spirit which through the authority of the church teaches divine truth, is
the same Spirit which prompts the soul to receive the divine truths which
he teaches. The measure of our love for the Holy Spirit is the measure
of our obedience to the authority of the church; and the measure of our
obedience to the authority of the church is the measure of our love for
the Holy Spirit. Hence the sentence of S. Augustine: “_Quantum quisque
amat ecclesiam Dei, tantum habet Spiritum Sanctum_.” There is one Spirit,
which acts in two different offices concurring to the same end--the
regeneration and sanctification of the soul.

In case of obscurity or doubt concerning what is the divinely-revealed
truth, or whether what prompts the soul is or is not an inspiration
of the Holy Spirit, recourse must be had to the divine teacher or
criterion, the authority of the church. For it must be borne in mind
that to the church, as represented in the first instance by S. Peter,
and subsequently by his successors, was made the promise of her divine
Founder that “the gates of hell should never prevail against her.”[48] No
such promise was ever made by Christ to each individual believer. “The
church of the living God is the pillar and ground of truth.”[49] The
test, therefore, of a truly enlightened and sincere Christian, will be,
in case of uncertainty, the promptitude of his obedience to the voice of
the church.

From the above plain truths the following practical rule of conduct may
be drawn: The Holy Spirit is the immediate guide of the soul in the way
of salvation and sanctification; and the criterion or test that the soul
is guided by the Holy Spirit is its ready obedience to the authority of
the church. This rule removes all danger whatever, and with it the soul
can walk, run, or fly, if it chooses, in the greatest safety and with
perfect liberty, in the ways of sanctity.


XI. NEW PHASE OF THE CHURCH.

There are signs which indicate that the members of the church have not
only entered upon a deeper and more spiritual life, but that from the
same source has arisen a new phase of their intellectual activity.

The notes of the divine institution of the church--and the credibility of
divine revelation--with her constitution and organization, having been
in the main completed on the external side, the notes which now require
special attention and study are those respecting her divine character,
which lie on the internal side.

The mind of the church has been turned in this direction for some time
past. One has but to read the several Encyclical letters of the present
reigning Supreme Pontiff, and the decrees of the Vatican Council, to be
fully convinced of this fact.

No pontiff has so strenuously upheld the value and rights of human reason
as Pius IX.; and no council has treated so fully of the relations of
the natural with the supernatural as that of the Vatican. It must be
remembered the work of both is not yet concluded. Great mission that, to
fix for ever those truths so long held in dispute, and to open the door
to the fuller knowledge of other and still greater verities!

It is the divine action of the Holy Spirit in and through the church
which gives her external organization the reason for its existence.
And it is the fuller explanation of the divine side of the church and
its relations with her human side, giving always to the former its due
accentuation, that will contribute to the increase of the interior
life of the faithful, and aid powerfully to remove the blindness of
those--whose number is much larger than is commonly supposed--who only
see the church on her human side.

As an indication of these studies, the following mere suggestions,
concerning the relations of the internal with the external side of the
church, are here given.

The practical aim of all true religion is to bring each individual soul
under the immediate guidance of the divine Spirit. The divine Spirit
communicates himself to the soul by means of the sacraments of the
church. The divine Spirit acts as the interpreter and criterion of
revealed truth by the authority of the church. The divine Spirit acts as
the principle of regeneration and sanctification in each Christian soul.
The same Spirit clothes with suitable ceremonies and words the truths of
religion and the interior life of the soul in the liturgy and devotions
of the church. The divine Spirit acts as the safeguard of the life of the
soul and of the household of God in the discipline of the church. The
divine Spirit established the church as the practical and perfect means
of bringing all souls under his own immediate guidance and into complete
union with God. This is the realization of the aim of all true religion.
Thus all religions, viewed in the aspect of a divine life, find their
common centre in the Catholic Church.

The greater part of the intellectual errors of the age arise from a lack
of knowledge of the essential relations of the light of faith with the
light of reason; of the connection between the mysteries and truths of
divine revelation and those discovered and attainable by human reason; of
the action of divine grace and the action of the human will.

The early Greek and Latin fathers of the church largely cultivated this
field. The scholastics greatly increased the riches received from their
predecessors. And had not the attention of the church been turned aside
from its course by the errors of the XVIth century, the demonstration
of Christianity on its intrinsic side would ere this have received its
finishing strokes. The time has come to take up this work, continue it
where it was interrupted, and bring it to completion. Thanks to the
Encyclicals of Pius IX. and the decisions of the Vatican Council, this
task will not now be so difficult.

Many, if not most, of the distinguished apologists of Christianity,
theologians, philosophers, and preachers, either by their writings or
eloquence, have already entered upon this path. The recently-published
volumes, and those issuing day by day from the press, in exposition, or
defence, or apology of Christianity, are engaged in this work.

This explanation of the internal life and constitution of the church,
and of the intelligible side of the mysteries of faith and the intrinsic
reasons for the truths of divine revelation, giving to them their due
emphasis, combined with the external notes of credibility, would complete
the demonstration of Christianity. Such an exposition of Christianity,
the union of the internal with the external notes of credibility, is
calculated to produce a more enlightened and intense conviction of its
divine truth in the faithful, to stimulate them to a more energetic
personal action; and, what is more, it would open the door to many
straying, but not altogether lost, children, for their return to the fold
of the church.

The increased action of the Holy Spirit, with a more vigorous
co-operation on the part of the faithful, which is in process of
realization, will elevate the human personality to an intensity of force
and grandeur productive of a new era to the church and to society--an
era difficult for the imagination to grasp, and still more difficult to
describe in words, unless we have recourse to the prophetic language of
the inspired Scriptures.

Is not such a demonstration of Christianity and its results anticipated
in the following words?

“We are about to see,” said Schlegel, “a new exposition of Christianity,
which will reunite all Christians, and even bring back the infidels
themselves.” “This reunion between science and faith,” says the
Protestant historian Ranke, “will be more important in its spiritual
results than was the discovery of a new hemisphere three hundred years
ago, or even than that of the true system of the world, or than any other
discovery of any kind whatever.”


XII. MISSION OF RACES.

Pursuing our study of the action of the Holy Spirit, we shall perceive
that a deeper and more explicit exposition of the divine side of the
church, in view of the characteristic gifts of different races, is the
way or means of realizing the hopes above expressed.

God is the author of the differing races of men. He, for his own good
reasons, has stamped upon them their characteristics, and appointed them
from the beginning their places which they are to fill in his church.

In a matter where there are so many tender susceptibilities, it is highly
important not to overrate the peculiar gifts of any race, nor, on the
other hand, to underrate them or exaggerate their vices or defects.
Besides, the different races in modern Europe have been brought so
closely together, and have been mingled to such an extent, that their
differences can only be detected in certain broad and leading features.

It would be also a grave mistake, in speaking of the providential mission
of the races, to suppose that they imposed their characteristics on
religion, Christianity, or the church; whereas, on the contrary, it
is their Author who has employed in the church their several gifts for
the expression and development of those truths for which he specially
created them. The church is God acting through the different races of men
for their highest development, together with their present and future
greatest happiness and his own greatest glory. “God directs the nations
upon the earth.”[50]

Every leading race of men, or great nation, fills a large space in the
general history of the world. It is an observation of S. Augustine that
God gave the empire of the world to the Romans as a reward for their
civic virtues. But it is a matter of surprise how large and important a
part divine Providence has appointed special races to take in the history
of religion. It is here sufficient merely to mention the Israelites.

One cannot help being struck with the mission of the Latin and Celtic
races during the greater period of the history of Christianity. What
brought them together in the first instance was the transference of
the chair of S. Peter, the centre of the church, to Rome, the centre
of the Latin race. Rome, then, was the embodied expression of a
perfectly-organized, world-wide power. Rome was the political, and, by
its great roads, the geographical, centre of the world.

What greatly contributed to the predominance of the Latin race, and
subsequently of the Celts in union with the Latins, was the abandonment
of the church by the Greeks by schism, and the loss of the larger
portion of the Saxons by the errors and revolt of the XVIth century.
The faithful, in consequence, were almost exclusively composed of
Latin-Celts.

The absence of the Greeks and of so large a portion of the Saxons,
whose tendencies and prejudices in many points are similar, left a
freer course and an easier task to the church, through her ordinary
channels of action, as well as through her extraordinary ones--the
Councils, namely, of Trent and the Vatican--to complete her authority and
external constitution. For the Latin-Celtic races are characterized by
hierarchical, traditional, and emotional tendencies.

These were the human elements which furnished the church with the
means of developing and completing her supreme authority, her divine
and ecclesiastical traditions, her discipline, her devotions, and, in
general, her æsthetics.


XIII. SOME OF THE CAUSES OF PROTESTANTISM.

It was precisely the importance given to the external constitution
and to the accessories of the church which excited the antipathies of
the Saxons, which culminated in the so-called Reformation. For the
Saxon races and the mixed Saxons, the English and their descendants,
predominate in the rational element, in an energetic individuality, and
in great practical activity in the material order.

One of the chief defects of the Saxon mind lay in not fully understanding
the constitution of the church, or sufficiently appreciating the
essential necessity of her external organization. Hence their
misinterpretation of the providential action of the Latin-Celts, and
their charges against the church of formalism, superstition, and popery.
They wrongfully identified the excesses of those races with the church
of God. They failed to take into sufficient consideration the great
and constant efforts the church had made, in her national and general
councils, to correct the abuses and extirpate the vices which formed the
staple of their complaints.

Conscious, also, of a certain feeling of repression of their natural
instincts, while this work of the Latin-Celts was being perfected, they
at the same time felt a great aversion to the increase of externals in
outward worship, and to the minute regulations in discipline, as well as
to the growth of papal authority and the outward grandeur of the papal
court. The Saxon leaders in heresy of the XVIth century, as well as those
of our own day, cunningly taking advantage of those antipathies, united
with selfish political considerations, succeeded in making a large number
believe that the question in controversy was not what it really was--a
question, namely, between Christianity and infidelity--but a question
between Romanism and Germanism!

It is easy to foresee the result of such a false issue; for it is
impossible, humanly speaking, that a religion can maintain itself among
a people when once they are led to believe it wrongs their natural
instincts, is hostile to their national development, or is unsympathetic
with their genius.

With misunderstandings, weaknesses, and jealousies on both sides, these,
with various other causes, led thousands and millions of Saxons and
Anglo-Saxons to resistance, hatred, and, finally, open revolt against the
authority of the church.


XIV. PRESENT SAXON PERSECUTIONS.

The same causes which mainly produced the religious rebellion of the
XVIth century are still at work among the Saxons, and are the exciting
motives of their present persecutions against the church.

Looking through the distorted medium of their Saxon prejudices, grown
stronger with time, and freshly stimulated by the recent definition of
Papal Infallibility, they have worked themselves into the belief--seeing
the church only on the outside, as they do--that she is purely a human
institution, grown slowly, by the controlling action of the Latin-Celtic
instincts, through centuries, to her present formidable proportions. The
doctrines, the sacraments, the devotions, the worship of the Catholic
Church, are, for the most part, from their stand-point, corruptions
of Christianity, having their source in the characteristics of the
Latin-Celtic races. The papal authority, to their sight, is nothing else
than the concentration of the sacerdotal tendencies of these races,
carried to their culminating point by the recent Vatican definition,
which was due, in the main, to the efforts and the influence exerted
by the Jesuits. This despotic ecclesiastical authority, which commands
a superstitious reverence and servile submission to all its decrees,
teaches doctrines inimical to the autonomy of the German Empire, and
has fourteen millions or more of its subjects under its sway, ready at
any moment to obey, at all hazards, its decisions. What is to hinder
this ultramontane power from issuing a decree, in a critical moment,
which will disturb the peace and involve, perhaps, the overthrow of
that empire, the fruit of so great sacrifices, and the realization
of the ardent aspirations of the Germanic races? Is it not a dictate
of self-preservation and political prudence to remove so dangerous an
element, and that at all costs, from the state? Is it not a duty to free
so many millions of our German brethren from this superstitious yoke and
slavish subjection? Has not divine Providence bestowed the empire of
Europe upon the Saxons, and placed us Prussians at its head, in order to
accomplish, with all the means at our disposal, this great work? Is not
this a duty which we owe to ourselves, to our brother Germans, and, above
all, to God? This supreme effort is our divine mission!

This picture of the Catholic Church, as it appears to a large class
of non-Catholic German minds, is not overdrawn. It admits of higher
coloring, and it would still be true and even more exact.

This is the monster which the too excited imagination and the
deeply-rooted prejudice of the Saxon mind have created, and called, by
way of contempt, the “Latin,” the “Romish,” the “Popish” Church. It is
against this monster that they direct their persistent attacks, their
cruel persecutions, animated with the fixed purpose of accomplishing its
entire overthrow.

Is this a thing to be marvelled at, when Catholics themselves abhor
and detest this caricature of the Catholic Church--for it is nothing
else--more than these men do, or possibly can do?

The attitude of the German Empire, and of the British Empire also, until
the Emancipation Act, _vis-à-vis_ to the Catholic Church as they conceive
her to be, may, stripped of all accidental matter, be stated thus:
Either adapt Latin Christianity, the Romish Church, to the Germanic type
of character and to the exigencies of the empire, or we will employ all
the forces and all the means at our disposal to stamp out Catholicity
within our dominions, and to exterminate its existence, as far as our
authority and influence extend!


XV. RETURN OF THE SAXON RACES TO THE CHURCH.

The German mind, when once it is bent upon a course, is not easily turned
aside, and the present out-look for the church in Germany is not, humanly
speaking, a pleasant one to contemplate. It is an old and common saying
that “Truth is mighty, and will prevail.” But why? “Truth is mighty”
because it is calculated to convince the mind, captivate the soul, and
solicit its uttermost devotion and action. “Truth will prevail,” provided
it is so presented to the mind as to be seen really as it is. It is only
when the truth is unknown or disfigured that the sincere repel it.

The return, therefore, of the Saxon races to the church, is to be hoped
for, not by trimming divine truth, nor by altering the constitution of
the church, nor by what are called concessions. Their return is to be
hoped for, by so presenting the divine truth to their minds that they
can see that it is divine truth. This will open their way to the church
in harmony with their genuine instincts, and in her bosom they will
find the realization of that career which their true aspirations point
out for them. For the Holy Spirit, of which the church is the organ and
expression, places every soul, and therefore all nations and races, in
the immediate and perfect relation with their supreme end, God, in whom
they obtain their highest development, happiness, and glory, both in this
life and in the life to come.

The church, as has been shown, has already entered on this path of
presenting more intimately and clearly her inward and divine side to the
world; for her deepest and most active thinkers are actually engaged,
more or less consciously, in this providential work.

In showing more fully the relations of the internal with the external
side of the church, keeping in view the internal as the end and aim of
all, the mystic tendencies of the German mind will truly appreciate the
interior life of the church, and find in it their highest satisfaction.
By penetrating more deeply into the intelligible side of the mysteries of
faith and the intrinsic reasons for revealed truth and the existence of
the church, the strong rational tendencies of the Saxon mind will seize
hold of, and be led to apprehend, the intrinsic reasons for Christianity.
The church will present herself to their minds as the practical means
of establishing the complete reign of the Holy Spirit in the soul, and,
consequently, of bringing the kingdom of heaven upon earth. This is the
ideal conception of Christianity, entertained by all sincere believers
in Christ among non-Catholics in Europe and the United States. This
exposition, and an increased action of the Holy Spirit in the church
co-operating therewith, would complete their conviction of the divine
character of the church and of the divinity of Christianity.

All this may seem highly speculative and of no practical bearing. But it
has precisely such a bearing, if one considers, in connection with it,
what is now going on throughout the Prussian kingdom and other parts
of Germany, including Switzerland. What is it which we see in all these
regions? A simultaneous and persistent determination to destroy, by every
species of persecution, the Catholic Church. Now, the general law of
persecution is the conversion of the persecutors.

Through the cross Christ began the redemption of the world; through the
cross the redemption of the world is to be continued and completed. It
was mainly by the shedding of the blood of the martyrs that the Roman
Empire was gained to the faith. Their conquerors were won by the toil,
heroic labors and sufferings of saintly missionaries. The same law holds
good in regard to modern persecutors. The question is not how shall
the German Empire be overthrown, or of waiting in anticipation of its
destruction, or how shall the church withstand its alarming persecutions?
The great question is how shall the blindness be removed from the eyes of
the persecutors of the church, and how can they be led to see her divine
beauty, holiness, and truth, which at present are hidden from their
sight? The practical question is how shall the church gain over the great
German empire to the cause of Christ?

O blessed persecutions! if, in addition to the divine virtues, which
they will bring forth to light by the sufferings of the faithful, they
serve also to lead the champions of the faith to seek for and employ
such proofs and arguments as the Saxon mind cannot withstand, producing
conviction in their intelligence, and striking home the truth to their
hearts; and in this way, instead of incurring defeat, they will pluck out
of the threatening jaws of this raging German wolf the sweet fruit of
victory.

This view is eminently practical, when you consider that the same law
which applies to the persecutors of the church applies equally to
the leading or governing races. This is true from the beginning of
the church. The great apostles S. Peter and S. Paul did not stop in
Jerusalem, but turned their eyes and steps towards all-conquering,
all-powerful Rome. Their faith and their heroism, sealed with their
martyrdom, after a long and bloody contest, obtained the victory. The
imperial Roman eagles became proud to carry aloft the victorious cross of
Christ! The Goths, the Huns, and Vandals came; the contest was repeated,
the victory too; and they were subdued to the sweet yoke of Christ, and
incorporated in the bosom of his church.

Is this rise of the Germanic Empire, in our day, to be considered only
as a passing occurrence, and are we to suppose that things will soon
again take their former course? Or is it to be thought of as a real
change in the direction of the world’s affairs, under the lead of the
dominant Saxon races? If the history of the human race from its cradle
can be taken as a rule, the course of empire is ever northward. Be that
as it may, the Saxons have actually in their hands, and are resolutely
determined to keep, the ruling power in Europe, if not in the world. And
the church is a divine queen, and her aim has always been to win to her
bosom the imperial races. She has never failed to do it, too!

Think you these people are for the most part actuated by mere malice, and
are persecuting the church with knowledge of what they are doing? The
question is not of their prominent leaders and the actual apostates.
There may be future prodigal sons even amongst these. Does not the church
suffer from their hands in a great measure what her divine Founder
suffered when he was nailed to the cross, and cried, “Father, forgive
them, they know not what they do”?

The persecutors in the present generation are not to be judged as those
who were born in the church, and who, knowing her divine character, by
an unaccountable defection, turned their backs upon her. Will their
stumbling prove a fatal fall to all their descendants? God forbid! Their
loss for a time has proved a gain to the church, and their return will
bring riches to both, and through them to the whole world; “for God is
able to ingraft them again.”[51]

The Catholic Church unveils to the penetrating intelligence of the
Saxon races her divine internal life and beauty; to their energetic
individuality she proposes its elevation to a divine manhood; and to
their great practical activity she opens the door to its employment in
spreading the divine faith over the whole world!

That which will hasten greatly the return of the Saxons to the church
is the progressive action of the controlling and dissolving elements of
Protestantism towards the entire negation of all religion. For the errors
contained in every heresy, which time never fails to produce, involve its
certain extinction. Many born in those errors, clearly foreseeing these
results, have already returned to the fold of the church. This movement
will be accelerated by the more rapid dissolution of Protestantism,
consequent on its being placed recently under similar hostile legislation
in Switzerland and Germany with the Catholic Church. “The blows struck at
the Church of Rome,” such is the acknowledgment of one of its own organs,
“tell with redoubled force against the evangelical church.”

With an intelligent positive movement on the part of the church, and by
the actual progressive negative one operating in Protestantism, that
painful wound inflicted in the XVIth century on Christianity will be
soon, let us hope, closed up and healed, never again to be reopened.


XVI. MIXED SAXONS RETURNING.

Christ blamed the Jews, who were skilful in detecting the signs of change
in the weather, for their want of skill in discerning the signs of the
times. There are evidences, and where we should first expect to meet
them--namely, among the mixed Saxon races, the people of England and the
United States--of this return to the true church.

The mixture of the Anglo-Saxons with the blood of the Celts in former
days caused them to retain, at the time of the so-called Reformation,
more of the doctrines, worship, and organization of the Catholic Church
than did the thorough Saxons of Germany. It is for the same reason that
among them are manifested the first unmistakable symptoms of their
entrance once more into the bosom of the church.

At different epochs movements in this direction have taken place, but
never so serious and general as at the present time. The character and
the number of the converts from Anglicanism to the Catholic Church
gave, in the beginning, a great alarm to the English nation. But now
it has become reconciled to the movement, which continues and takes its
course among the more intelligent and influential classes, and that
notwithstanding the spasmodic cry of alarm of Lord John Russell and the
more spiteful attack of the Right Hon. William E. Gladstone, M.P., late
prime minister.

It is clear to those who have eyes to see such things that God is
bestowing special graces upon the English people in our day, and that the
hope is not without solid foundation which looks forward to the time when
England shall again take rank among the Catholic nations.

The evidences of a movement towards the Catholic Church are still clearer
and more general in the United States. There is less prejudice and
hostility against the church in the United States than in England, and
hence her progress is much greater.

The Catholics, in the beginning of this century, stood as one to every
two hundred of the whole population of the American Republic. The ratio
of Catholics now is one to six or seven of the inhabitants. The Catholics
will outnumber, before the close of this century, all other believers in
Christianity put together in the republic.

This is no fanciful statement, but one based on a careful study of
statistics, and the estimate is moderate. Even should emigration from
Catholic countries to the United States cease altogether--which it will
not--or even should it greatly diminish, the supposed loss or diminution,
in this source of augmentation, will be fully compensated by the relative
increase of births among the Catholics, as compared with that among other
portions of the population.

The spirit, the tendencies, and the form of political government
inherited by the people of the United States are strongly and
distinctively Saxon; yet there are no more patriotic or better citizens
in the republic than the Roman Catholics, and no more intelligent,
practical, and devoted Catholics in the church than the seven millions of
Catholics in this same young and vigorous republic. The Catholic faith is
the only persistently progressive religious element, compared with the
increase of population, in the United States. A striking proof that the
Catholic Church flourishes wherever there is honest freedom and wherever
human nature has its full share of liberty! Give the Catholic Church
equal rights and fair play, and she will again win Europe, and with
Europe the world.

Now, who will venture to assert that these two mixed Saxon nations,
of England and the United States, are not, in the order of divine
Providence, the appointed leaders of the great movement of the return of
all the Saxons to the Holy Catholic Church?

The sun, in his early dawn, first touches the brightest mountain-tops,
and, advancing in his course, floods the deepest valleys with his
glorious light; and so the Sun of divine grace has begun to enlighten the
minds in the highest stations in life in England, in the United States,
and in Germany; and what human power will impede the extension of its
holy light to the souls of the whole population of these countries?


XVII. TRANSITION OF THE LATIN-CELTS

Strange action of divine Providence in ruling the nations of this earth!
While the Saxons are about to pass from a natural to a supernatural
career, the Latin-Celts are impatient for, and have already entered upon,
a natural one. What does this mean? Are these races to change their
relative positions before the face of the world?

The present movement of transition began on the part of the Latin-Celtic
nations in the last century among the French people, who of all these
nations stand geographically the nearest, and whose blood is most mingled
with that of the Saxons. That transition began in violence, because it
was provoked to a premature birth by the circumstance that the control
exercised by the church as the natural moderator of the Christian
republic of Europe was set aside by Protestantism, particularly so in
France, in consequence of a diluted dose of the same Protestantism under
the name of Gallicanism. Exempt from this salutary control, kings and the
aristocracy oppressed the people at their own will and pleasure; and the
people, in turn, wildly rose up in their might, and cut off, at their own
will and pleasure, the heads of the kings and aristocrats. Louis XIV.,
in his pride, said, “L’Etat c’est moi!” The people replied, in their
passion, “L’Etat c’est nous!”

Under the guidance of the church the transformation from feudalism to
all that is included under the title of modern citizenship was effected
with order, peace, and benefit to all classes concerned. Apart from this
aid, society pendulates from despotism to anarchy, and from anarchy to
despotism. The French people at the present moment are groping about, and
earnestly seeking after the true path of progress, which they lost some
time back by their departure from the Christian order of society.

The true movement of Christian progress was turned aside into destructive
channels, and this movement, becoming revolutionary, has passed in our
day to the Italian and Spanish nations.

Looking at things in their broad features, Christianity is at this
moment exposed to the danger, on the one hand, of being exterminated by
the persecutions of the Saxon races, and, on the other, of being denied
by the apostasy of the Latin-Celts. This is the great tribulation of
the present hour of the church. She feels the painful struggle. The
destructive work of crushing out Christianity by means of these hostile
tendencies has already begun. If, as some imagine, the Christian faith be
only possible at the sacrifice of human nature, and if a natural career
be only possible at the sacrifice of the Christian faith, it requires no
prophetic eye to foresee the sad results to the Christian religion at no
distant future.

But it is not so. The principles already laid down and proclaimed to the
world by the church answer satisfactorily these difficulties. What the
age demands, what society is seeking for, rightly interpreted, is the
knowledge of these principles and their practical application to its
present needs.

For God is no less the author of nature than of grace, of reason than of
faith, of this earth than of heaven.

The Word by which all things were made that were made, and the Word which
was made flesh, is one and the same Word. The light which enlighteneth
every man that cometh into this world, and the light of Christian faith,
are, although differing in degree, the same light. “There is therefore
nothing so foolish or so absurd,” to use the words of Pius IX. on the
same subject, “as to suppose there can be any opposition between
them.”[52] Their connection is intimate, their relation is primary;
they are, in essence, one. For what else did Christ become man than to
establish the kingdom of God on earth, as the way to the kingdom of God
in heaven?

It cannot be too often repeated to the men of this generation, so many
of whom are trying to banish and forget God, that God, and God alone, is
the Creator and Renewer of the world. The same God who made all things,
and who became man, and began the work of regeneration, is the same who
really acts in the church now upon men and society, and who has pledged
his word to continue to do so until the end of the world. To be guided
by God’s church is to be guided by God. It is in vain to look elsewhere.
“Society,” as the present pontiff has observed, “has been enclosed in a
labyrinth, out of which it will never issue save by the hand of God.”[53]
The hand of God is the church. It is this hand he is extending, in a more
distinctive and attractive form, to this present generation. Blessed
generation, if it can only be led to see this outstretched hand, and to
follow the path of all true progress, which it so clearly points out!


XVIII. PERSPECTIVE OF THE FUTURE.

During the last three centuries, from the nature of the work the church
had to do, the weight of her influence had to be mainly exerted on the
side of restraining human activity. Her present and future influence, due
to the completion of her external organization, will be exerted on the
side of soliciting increased action. The first was necessarily repressive
and unpopular; the second will be, on the contrary, expansive and
popular. The one excited antagonism; the other will attract sympathy and
cheerful co-operation. The former restraint was exercised, not against
human activity, but against the exaggeration of that activity. The future
will be the solicitation of the same activity towards its elevation and
divine expansion, enhancing its fruitfulness and glory.

These different races of Europe and the United States, constituting the
body of the most civilized nations of the world, united in an intelligent
appreciation of the divine character of the church, with their varied
capacities and the great agencies at their disposal, would be the
providential means of rapidly spreading the light of faith over the whole
world, and of constituting a more Christian state of society.

In this way would be reached a more perfect realization of the prediction
of the prophets, of the promises and prayers of Christ, and of the true
aspiration of all noble souls.

This is what the age is calling for, if rightly understood, in its
countless theories and projects of reform.


ODD STORIES.

IX.

KURDIG.

The sun was setting in the vale of Kashmir. Under the blessing of its
rays the admiring fakir would again have said that here undoubtedly was
the place of the earthly paradise where mankind was born in the morning
of the world. Something of the same thought may have stirred the mind of
a dwarfed and hump-backed man with bow-legs, who, from carrying on his
shoulders a heavy barrel up the steep and crooked path of a hillside,
stopped to rest while he looked mournfully at the sun. Herds of goats
that strayed near him, and flocks of sheep that grazed below, might have
provoked their deformed neighbor to envy their shapely and well-clad
beauty and peaceful movements. Could he have found it in his heart to
curse the sun which had seemed to view with such complacency his hard
toils amid the burden and heat of the day, the compassionate splendor of
its last look upon field, river, and mountain would still have touched
his soul. As it was, he saw that earth and heaven were beautiful, and
that he was not. Whether he uttered it or not, his keen, sad eyes and
thoughtful face were a lament that his hard lot had made him the one
ugly feature in that gentle scene. No, not the only one; he shared his
singularity with the little green snake that now crawled near his feet.
Yet even this reptile, he thought, could boast its sinuous beauty,
its harmony with the order of things; for it was a perfect snake, and
he--well, he was scarce a man. Soon, however, better thoughts took
possession of his mind, and, when he shouldered his barrel to climb the
hill, he thought that one of those beautiful peris, whose mission it is
to console earth’s sorrowing children ere yet their wings are admitted to
heaven, thus murmured in his ear, with a speech that was like melody: “O
Kurdig, child of toil! thy lot is indeed hard, but thou bearest it not
for thyself alone, and thy master and rewarder hath set thee thy task;
and for this thou shalt have the unseen for thy friends, love for thy
thought, and heaven for thy solace.” As he ascended the hill it seemed
to him that his load grew lighter, as if by help of invisible hands. He
looked for a moment on the snake which hissed at him, and though but
an hour ago, moved by a feud as old as man, he would have ground it in
hate beneath his foot, he now let it pass. The crooked man ascended the
hill, while the crooked serpent passed downward; and it was as if one
understood the other. At length the dwarf Kurdig reached the yard of
the palace, which stood on a shady portion of the eminence, but, as he
laid down his burden with a smile and a good word before his employer,
suddenly he felt the sharp cut of a whip across the shoulders. He
writhed and smarted, feeling as if the old serpent had stung him.

Kurdig was one of those hewers of wood and drawers of water whose daily
being in the wonderful vale of Kashmir seemed but a harsh contrast of
fallen man with the paradise that once was his home. When he did not
carry barrels of wine, or fruit-loads, or other burdens to the top
of the hill, he assisted his poor sister and her child in the task
of making shawls for one of a number of large shawl-dealers who gave
employment to the people of the valley. With them the dearest days of
his life were spent. At odd times he taught the little girl the names of
flowers, the virtues of herbs, and even how to read and write--no small
accomplishments among peasant folk, and only gained by the dwarf himself
because his mind was as patient and as shrewd as his body was misshapen.
His great desire for all useful knowledge found exercise in all the
common stores of mother-wit and rustic science which the unlettered
people around preserved as their inheritance. How to build houses, to
make chairs, ovens, hats; how to catch fish and conduct spring-waters;
how to apply herbs for cure and healing; how to make oils and crude
wine--these things he knew as none other of all the peasantry about could
pretend to know. He had seen, too, and had sometimes followed in the
hunt, the beasts of the forest; nor was he, as we have seen, afraid of
reptiles. He could row and swim, and while others danced he could sing
and play. This variety of accomplishments slowly acquired for the dwarf
an influence which, though little acknowledged, was widespread. In all
the work and play of the rude folk around him he was the almost innocent
and unregarded master-spirit. The improvement of their houses owed
something to his hand, and their feasts were in good part planned by him;
for, while he acted as their servant, he was in truth their master. To
cure the common fevers, aches, hurts, he had well-tried simples, and his
searches and experiments had added something new to the herbal remedies
of his fathers. All his talents as doctor, musician, mechanic, and
story-teller his neighbors did not fail to make use of, while the dwarf
still kept in the background, and his ugliness, whenever accident had
made him at all prominent, was laughed at as much as ever. Even the poor
creatures his knowledge had cured, and his good-nature had not tasked to
pay him, uttered a careless laugh when they praised their physician, as
if they said: “Well, who would have thought the ugly little crook-back
was so cunning?”

Yet there was one who never joined in the general smile which accompanied
the announcement of the name of Kurdig. This was his sister’s child.
Never without pain could she hear his name jestingly mentioned; always
with reverence, and sometimes with tears, she spoke of him. The wan,
slender child had grown almost from its feeble infancy by the side of
the dwarf. When able to leave her mother’s sole care, he had taught the
child her first games and songs, and step by step had instructed her in
all the rude home-lessons prevalent among the country people--how to
knit, to weave, to read and to write, according to the necessities of her
place and condition. The wonder was that from a pale and sickly infant
the child grew as by a charm, under the eye of the dwarf, into a blooming
girl, whose quiet and simple demeanor detracted nothing from her peculiar
loveliness, and made her habits of industry the more admirable. There
was, then, one being in the world whom the dwarf undoubtedly loved, and
by whom he was loved in return.


NEW PUBLICATIONS.

    THE TRUE AND THE FALSE INFALLIBILITY OF THE POPES, ETC. By
    the late Bishop Fessler. Translated by Father St. John, of the
    Edgbaston Oratory. New York: The Catholic Publication Society.
    1875.

Dr. Fessler was Bishop of St. Polten in Austria, and the
Secretary-General of the Council of the Vatican. He wrote this pamphlet
as a reply to the apostate Dr. Schulte. It was carefully examined and
approved at Rome, and the author received a complimentary letter from
the Pope for the good service he had rendered to the cause of truth. The
true infallibility which the author vindicates is that infallibility of
the Pope in defining dogmas of Catholic faith and condemning heresies,
which was defined as a Catholic dogma by the Council of the Vatican.
The false infallibility which he impugns is the travesty of the true
doctrine, falsely imputed by Schulte and others to the Catholic Church
as her authoritative teaching expressed in the definition of the Vatican
Council. This doctrine of infallibility falsely imputed represents the
Pope as claiming inspiration, power to create new dogmas, infallibility
as a private doctor, as a judge of particular cases, and as a ruler.
Such an infallibility was not defined by the Council of the Vatican,
has never been asserted by the popes, is not maintained by any school
of theologians, and is, moreover, partly in direct contradiction to
the Catholic doctrine, partly manifestly false, and as for the rest
without any solid or probable foundation. This false infallibility
must, however, be carefully distinguished from the theological doctrine
which extends the infallibility of the church and of the Pope as to
its objective scope and limit; beyond the sphere of pure dogma, or the
Catholic faith, strictly and properly so-called; over the entire realm
of matters virtually, mediately, or indirectly contained in, related to,
or connected with the body of doctrine which is formally revealed, and
is either categorically proposed or capable of being proposed by the
church as of divine and Catholic faith. Bishop Fessler confines himself
to that which has been defined in express terms by the council, and must
be held as an article of faith by every Catholic, under pain of incurring
anathema as a heretic. This definition respects directly the Pope,
speaking as Pope, as being the subject, of whom the same infallibility
is predicated which is predicated of the Catholic Church. The object
of infallibility is obliquely defined, and only so far as necessary to
the precise definition of the subject, which is the Pope speaking _ex
cathedrâ_. As to the object, or extension of infallibility, no specific
definition has been made. The definition is generic only. That is, it
gives in general terms those matters which are in the genus of faith
and morals, as the object of infallible teaching. The truths formally
revealed are the basis of all doctrine in any way respecting faith and
morals which is theological; and they control all doctrine which is
philosophical, concerning our relations to God and creatures, at least
negatively. Therefore, taken in its most restricted sense, infallibility
in faith and morals must denote infallibility in teaching and defining
these formally-revealed truths. So much, then, respecting the object, is
necessarily _de fide_, and is held as such by every theologian and every
instructed Catholic.

As to the further extension of infallibility, or the specific definition
of all the matters included in the term “de fide et moribus,” the fathers
of the council postponed their decisions to a later day, and probably
will consider them when the council is re-assembled. In the meantime,
we have to be guided by the teaching of the best theologians whose
doctrine is consonant to the practice of the Holy See. We may refer
the curious reader to Father Knox’s little work, _When does the Church
Speak Infallibly?_ as the safest source of information concerning this
important point. As a matter of fact, the popes do teach with authority
many truths which are not articles of faith, and condemn many opinions
which are not heresies. Moreover, they command the faithful to assent
to their teaching, and frequently punish those who refuse to do so.
It is much more logical, and much more consonant to sound theological
principles, to believe that they are infallible in respect to every
matter in which they justly command our absolute and irrevocable assent,
than to believe that we are bound to render this obedience to a fallible
authority. But of the obligation in conscience to submit to all the
doctrinal decisions of the Holy See there is no question. And this
obligation is very distinctly and emphatically declared by Pius IX., with
the concurrence of the universal episcopate, in the closing monition of
the First Decree of the Council of the Vatican.

“Since it is not enough to avoid heretical pravity, unless those errors
also are diligently shunned which more or less approach it, we admonish
all of the duty of observing also those constitutions and decrees in
which perverse opinions of this sort, not here expressly enumerated, are
proscribed and prohibited by this Holy See.”

    THE ARCHBISHOP OF WESTMINSTER’S REPLY TO MR. GLADSTONE.

    BISHOP ULLATHORNE ON THE SAME SUBJECT.

    BISHOP VAUGHAN ON THE SAME.

    LORD ROBERT MONTAGU ON THE SAME, ETC.--All published by The
    Catholic Publication Society. New York: 1875.

The Archbishop of Westminster has the intellectual and moral as well as
the ecclesiastical primacy in the Catholic Church of England, and in
this controversy he leads the band of noble champions of the faith which
Mr. Gladstone’s audacious war-cry has evoked. The illustrious successor
of S. Anselm and S. Thomas à Becket has a remarkably clear insight into
the fundamental principles of theology and canon law, an unswerving
logical consistency in deducing their connections and consequences, a
loyal integrity in his faith and devotion toward Christ and his Vicar, a
lucidity of style and language, an untiring activity, dauntless courage,
tactical skill, and abundance of resources in his polemics, which combine
to make him a champion and leader of the first class in ecclesiastical
warfare--a very Duguesclin of controversy. In the present pamphlet he
has defined the issues with more precision, and brought the main force
of Catholic principles more directly and powerfully into collision with
his adversary’s opposite centre, than any other of the remarkably able
antagonists of Mr. Gladstone.

We refer our readers to the pamphlet itself for a knowledge of its line
of argument. We will merely call attention to a few particular points
in it which are noteworthy. In the first place, we desire to note the
exposition of one very important truth frequently misapprehended and
misstated. This is, namely, that the doctrine of Papal Infallibility was
not, before the Council of the Vatican, a mere opinion of theologians,
but the certain doctrine of the church, proximate to faith, and only
questioned since the Council of Constance by a small number, whose
opinion was _never a probable doctrine, but only a tolerated error_.
The archbishop, moreover, shows briefly but clearly how this error,
whose intrinsic mischief was practically nullified in pious Gallicans by
their obedience to the Holy See, and the overpowering weight which the
concurrence of the great body of the bishops with the Pope always gave
to his dogmatic decrees, was threatening to become extremely active and
dangerous if longer tolerated; and that the definition of the Council of
the Vatican was therefore not only opportune and prudent, but necessary.

He shows, moreover, that the violent and aggressive party which stirred
up the conflict now raging was the party of faithless men who wore the
mask of Catholic profession, with their political and anti-Catholic
accomplices, whose unsuccessful _ruse de guerre_, at the time of the
council, was only the preliminary manœuvre of a systematic war on the
church.

The unchanged position of Catholics since the council, in respect to
civil allegiance; the essential similarity of that position, doctrinally,
with that of all persons who maintain the supremacy of conscience and
divine law; its greater practical security for stability of government
and political order over any other position; the firm basis for temporal
sovereignty and independence which Catholic doctrine gives to the state;
and the great variation of practical relations between church and state
from their condition at a former period which altered circumstances
have caused, are clearly and ably developed. We are pleased to observe
the positions laid down in our own editorial article on “Religion and
State in our Republic” sustained and confirmed by the archbishop’s high
authority. Americans must be especially gratified at the warm eulogium
upon Lord Baltimore and the primitive constitution of the Maryland colony.

Among the numerous other replies to Mr. Gladstone, besides those already
noticed in this magazine, the pamphlets of Bishop Vaughan, Bishop
Ullathorne, and Lord Robert Montagu are especially remarkable and worthy
of perusal. Each of them has its own peculiar line of argument and
individual excellence, and they supplement each other.

The want of sympathy with Mr. Gladstone generally manifested in England
and America, and the respectful interest shown in the exposition of
Catholic principles by his antagonists, are specially worthy of remark.
We are under great obligations to Mr. Gladstone for the fine opportunity
he has afforded us of gaining such a hearing, and he has thus indirectly
and unintentionally done the cause of Catholic truth a very great
service, which some of our opponents candidly, though with considerable
chagrin, have acknowledged.

    THE MINISTRY OF S. JOHN BAPTIST. By H. J. Coleridge, S.J.
    London: Burns & Oates. 1875. (New York: Sold by The Catholic
    Publication Society.)

Father Coleridge has devoted himself to very extensive and critical
studies, with the intention of publishing a new life of Christ. This
volume is the first instalment. It is learned and critical without being
dry or abstruse. It can be relied on, therefore, for scholarly accuracy,
and at the same time enjoyed for its literary beauties. The author has
a felicity of diction and a talent for historical narration, which,
combined with his solid learning, make him singularly competent for the
important and delightful task he has undertaken and so successfully
commenced.

    LIFE OF FATHER HENRY YOUNG. By Lady Georgiana Fullerton.
    London: Burns & Oates. 1875. (New York: Sold by The Catholic
    Publication Society.)

This remarkable and somewhat eccentric priest lived and died in Dublin,
though he exercised his apostolic ministry also in many other parts of
Ireland. He was undoubtedly a saint, and in some respects strikingly like
the venerable Curé of Ars. The author has written his life in her usual
charming style, and it is not only edifying, but extremely curious and
entertaining.

    THE LILY AND THE CROSS. A Tale of Acadia. By Prof. James De
    Mille. Boston and New York: Lee & Shepard. 1875.

Here we have a kind of quasi-Catholic tale, written by a Protestant.
As a story it has a good deal of stirring incident and dramatic power,
mingled with a fine spice of humor. The writer shows no unkind or unfair
disposition toward Catholics or their religion, and the priest in the
story, as a man, is a noble and heroic character. His Catholicity,
however, is too weak even for the most extreme left of liberal Catholics.

    THE VEIL WITHDRAWN (_Le Mot de L’Enigme_). Translated, by
    permission, from the French of Mme. Craven, author of _A
    Sister’s Story_, _Fleurange_, etc. New York: The Catholic
    Publication Society. 1875.

In its didactic aspects we consider _The Veil Withdrawn_ superior to its
immediate predecessor, _Fleurange_, inasmuch as its moral purpose is more
decided and apparent; and we believe Mme. Craven has been very opportune
in the choice of the principal lesson which her book inculcates, as well
as felicitous in the manner in which it is conveyed. There is perhaps no
peril to which a frank, confiding young matron is more exposed at the
present day than that constituted by the circumstances which formed the
temptation of the heroine of this novel, and which she so heroically
overcame. And herein we trust the non-Catholic reader will not fail to
observe the safeguard which Catholic principles and the confessional
throw around the innocent--warning them of the threatened danger, without
detracting from the ingenuousness and simplicity which constitute a chief
charm of the sex. We purposely avoid being more specific in our allusion
to the plot of this story, lest we diminish the pleasure of those who
have delayed its perusal until now.

    CALEB KRINKLE. By Charles Carleton Coffin (“Carlton”). Boston
    and New York: Lee & Shepard. 1875.

This “Story of American Life,” which would have been more aptly called
a “Story of Yankee Life,” is really capital. Linda Fair, Dan Dishaway,
and old Peter are excellently-drawn characters, and the others are good
in their way. The description of the blacksmith and his daughter is like
a paraphrase of Longfellow’s exquisite little poem. The author makes
use both of pathos and humor, and although there are rather too many
disasters and narrow escapes, yet, on the whole, the story is simple,
natural, and life-like, its moral tone is elevated, and it is well worth
reading.

    POEMS. By William Wilson. Edited by Benson J. Lossing,
    Poughkeepsie: Archibald Wilson. 1875.

He is a bold publisher who sends forth a poetical venture in these
prosaic days, backed though it be by a partial subscription list and the
favorable reception of a first edition.

We are reminded in looking over this volume, as we have often been
before in examining those of the tuneful brethren, how much the world
is indebted to the church, consciously or otherwise, for its most
refined enjoyments. If “an undevout astronomer is mad,” how can a poet’s
instincts be otherwise than Catholic? Were it not for Catholic themes,
he would lack his highest inspiration, as well as appropriate imagery to
illustrate his thoughts withal. Even that doughty old iconoclast, John
Bunyan--every inch a poet, though his lines were not measured--found
no relief for his pilgrim-hero till he had looked upon that symbol of
symbols--the cross.

The author of the present collection made no permanent profession of
literature, and rarely wrote except when the impulse was too strong to be
resisted. His impromptu lines were always his best, the Scottish dialect,
in which many of them are written, adding not a little to their racy
flavor. His verse is characterized by sweetness, beauty, and strength,
and he is particularly happy when descanting upon the joys of home, of
love and friendship, and the charms of outward nature.

We are not aware that the author ever made a study of the claims of the
church, and some passages in his poems give evidence of much of the
traditional prejudice against her; but we are confident, from other
indications, that his head was too logical and his heart too large to
be shut up within the narrow limits of Presbyterian or other sectarian
tenets. The final stanza of “The Close”--the last he ever wrote--is
touching and suggestive:

    “And his pale hand signing
      Man’s redemption sign,
    Cried, with forehead shining,
      ‘Father, I am Thine!’
    And so to rest he quietly hath passed,
      And sleeps in Christ, the comforter, at last.”




THE CATHOLIC WORLD.

VOL. XXI., No. 122.--MAY, 1875.

Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1875, by Rev. I. T.
HECKER, in the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington, D. C.


PIUS IX. AND MR. GLADSTONE’S MISREPRESENTATIONS.

The recent conduct of the Right Honorable William Ewart Gladstone has
filled his former friends and admirers with anger and sorrow, and the
nobler among his enemies with astonishment and pity. He has done much to
convert the defeat of the liberal party in Great Britain, which might
have been but temporary, into absolute rout and lasting confusion; for
its return to power is impossible as long as the alienation of the
Irish Catholic members of Parliament continues. The more generous of
Mr. Gladstone’s political foes cannot but deplore that the once mighty
opponent, whom they succeeded in driving from office, has, by his own
behavior, fallen into something very like contempt. His strictures on
the Vatican decrees and the _Speeches_ of Pius IX. possess little merit
in a literary point of view, being written in the bad style common
to Exeter Hall controversialists, and being full of inaccuracies,
misrepresentations, and oversights. They have accordingly received from
the leading critical journals in Great Britain either open censure or
that faint praise which is equally damning. The _Pall Mall Gazette_
observes that, if Mr. Gladstone goes on writing in a similar strain, no
one will heed what he writes. The wild assault made by him upon Catholics
is not only perceived by others to be causeless and gratuitous, but is
freely confessed by himself to be uncalled for and unwarranted. Speaking
of the questions, whether the Pope claimed temporal jurisdiction or
deposing power, or whether the church still teaches the doctrine of
persecution, he says in his _Expostulation_ (page 26): “Now, to no one
of these questions could the answer really be of the smallest immediate
moment to this powerful and solidly-compacted kingdom.” Again, in the
_Quarterly Review_ article (page 300), he asserts that the “burning”
question of the deposing power, “with reference to the possibilities
of life and action, remains the shadow of a shade!” Why, then, does
Mr. Gladstone apply the torch to quicken the flame of the burning
controversy, which he affirms to be beyond the range of practical
politics? Why does he summon the “shadow of a shade” to trouble, terrify,
or distress his fellow-countrymen? Has he forgotten the history of
his country, which teaches him that these very questions were among
those which brought innocent men to the block, and caused multitudes
to suffer the tortures of the rack and the pains of ignominious death?
We read in Hallam (_Constitutional Hist. of England_) that one of the
earliest novelties of legislation introduced by Henry VIII. was the act
of Parliament of 1534, by which “it was made high treason to deny that
ecclesiastical supremacy of the crown which, till about two years before,
no one had ever ventured to assert. Bishop Fisher, almost the only
inflexibly honest churchman of that age, was beheaded for this denial.”
Sir Thomas More met the same fate. Burleigh, in a state paper in which he
apologizes for the illegal employment of torture in Elizabeth’s reign,
includes among the questions “asked during their torture” of those “put
to the rack,” the question, “What was their own opinion as to the pope’s
right to deprive the queen of her crown?” In those days, then, the mere
opinions of Catholics concerning papal supremacy were torturing and
beheading questions--questions of the rack, the block, and the stake.
Now they are “burning” questions, in a metaphorical sense, and lead to
wordy strife, polemical bitterness, and to widening the breach between
two sections of Queen Victoria’s subjects, which all wise men during
late years have deplored and striven to lessen, but which Mr. Gladstone
deliberately sets himself to widen.

Into the causes which have provoked Mr. Gladstone to attack Catholics and
the Pope it is not necessary to enter. Corrupt or impure motives are not
imputed to him. Nor is it here intended to discuss the theological part
of the subject, which has already been exhaustively dealt with by Dr.
John Henry Newman, Archbishop Manning, Bishops Ullathorne, Vaughan, and
Clifford, Monsignor Capel, and others. The aim of the present writer is
to point out the inaccuracies of Mr. Gladstone in his _Expostulation_ and
his _Quarterly Review_ article on the _Speeches_ of Pius IX., to exhibit
his general untrustworthiness in his references and quotations, and to
bring forward the real instead of the travestied sentiments of the Pope.

Now, to honest and fair examination of documents which concern their
faith Catholics have no objection. On the contrary, they desire sincerely
that Protestants should read, mark, learn, and inwardly digest them.
Nothing but good to the Catholic Church can result from impartial
study of such documents as the Vatican decrees, the _Encyclical_ and
_Syllabus_ of Pius IX., to which, in his _Expostulation_, Mr. Gladstone
made such extensive reference. Catholics give him a cordial assent
when he says: “It is impossible for persons accepting those decrees
justly to complain when such documents are subjected in good faith to a
strict examination as respects their compatibility with civil right and
the obedience of subjects.” But Catholics and all upright Protestants
must join in condemning as unjust and unfair that bad habit common to
controversialists of a certain class, who aim at temporary victory
for themselves and their party, careless of the interests of eternal
verity. There are partisan writers who cite portions of a document,
in the belief that the mass of readers will have no knowledge of the
entire, and who take extracts hap-hazard from secondary sources, without
troubling themselves to search the authentic or original documents.
Wilful inaccuracy and purposed misquotations are not, as has already
been stated, to be imputed to Mr. Gladstone. But it often occurs that
carelessness and prejudice lead distinguished writers into errors
similar to those produced by malice, and equally or more detrimental.
It so happens that Mr. Gladstone, in describing and quoting the Vatican
decrees, the words of Pius IX., the _Syllabus_ and _Encyclical_, has
published statements so incorrect and so misleading as to subject the
author, were he less eminent for honor and scrupulous veracity, to the
charge either of criminal ignorance or of wilful intention to mislead.
For example, he cites, at pages 32-34 of his _Expostulation_, the
form of the present Vatican decrees as proof of the wonderful “change
now consummated in the constitution of the Latin Church” and of “the
present degradation of its episcopal order.” He says the present Vatican
decrees, being promulgated in a strain different from that adopted by
the Council of Trent, are scarcely worthy to be termed “the decrees
of the Council of the Vatican.” The Trent canons were, he says, real
canons of a real council, beginning thus: “Hæc Sacrosancta,” etc.,
“Synodus,” etc., “docet” or “statuit” or “decernit,” and the like; and
its canons, “as published in Rome, are _Canones et Decreta Sacrosancti
Œcumenici Concilii Tridentini_, and so forth. But what we have now to
do with is the _Constitutio Dogmatica Prima de Ecclesiâ Christi edita
in Sessione tertia_ of the Vatican Council. It is not a constitution
made by the council, but one promulgated in the council. And who is it
that legislates and decrees? It is _Pius Episcopus, servus servorum
Dei_; and the seductive plural of his _docemus et declaramus_ is simply
the dignified and ceremonious ‘we’ of royal declarations. The document
is dated ‘Pontificatus nostri Anno XXV.,’ and the humble share of
the assembled episcopate in the transaction is represented by _sacro
approbante concilio_.” Mr. Gladstone, stating that the Trent canons
are published as _Canones et Decreta Sac. Œcum. Concilii Tridentini_,
and particularizing in a foot-note the place of publication as “Romæ:
in Collegio urbano de Propaganda Fide, 1833,” leads his readers
wrongfully to infer that there exists no similar publication of the
Vatican decrees. However, the very first complete edition of the
Vatican decrees, printed especially for distribution to the fathers of
the council, bears this title: _Acta et Decreta Sacrosancti Œcumenici
Concilii Vaticani in Quatuor Prioribus Sessionibus--Romæ ex Typographia
Vaticana_, 1872. What Mr. Gladstone appears to have quoted are the small
tracts, containing portions of the decrees, for general use, one of
which is entitled _Dogmatic Constitution concerning the Catholic Faith,
Published in the Third Session_, while another is entitled _The First
Dogmatic Constitution of the Church of Christ, Published in the Fourth
Session_. Mr. Gladstone has not scrupled to take one of these tracts as
his text-book, misstating its very title; for he quotes it as “edita in
sessione tertia” instead of “quarta,” and deriving from it, instead of
from the authentic _Acta et Decreta_, his materials for charging the
decrees with a change of form “amounting to revolution.” Had the _Acta_
in their complete version been before him, he could not truthfully have
said “the humble share of the assembled episcopate in the transaction
is represented by _sacro approbante concilio_”; for he would have found
it distinctly stated, and apparently as reason for their confirmation
by the Pope, that the decrees and canons contained in the constitution
were read before, and approved by, all the fathers of the council, with
two exceptions--“Decreta et Canones qui in constitutione modo lecta
continentur, placuerunt patribus omnibus, duobus exceptis, Nosque,
sacro approbante concilio, illa et illos, ut lecta sunt, definimus
et apostolica auctoritate confirmamus.” Why does Mr. Gladstone call
attention to the date as being “Pontificatus nostri Anno XXV.”? Is it in
order to show that the Vatican despises the other mode of computation,
or is it to exhibit his own minute accuracy in quoting? In either case
Mr. Gladstone was wrong, for the date in the _Constitutio Dogmatica_
before him was as follows: “Datum Romæ, etc., Anno Incarnationis Dominicæ
1870, die 18 Julii. Pontificatus Nostri, Anno XXV.” And why should Mr.
Gladstone describe as “seductive” the plural of the Pope’s “docemus et
declaramus,” and assert that plural form to be “simply the dignified
and ceremonious ‘We’ of royal declarations”? Did he mean to impute to
the use of the plural number a corrupt intention to make people believe
that the ‘we’ included the bishops as well as the Pope? Did he mean also
to impute to the use of the plural an arrogant affectation of royal
dignity? If such were the purpose of Mr. Gladstone, it can only be said
that such rhetorical artifices are unworthy of him and are not warranted
by truth. The ‘we’ is simply the habitual form of episcopal utterances,
employed even by Protestant prelates in their official acts. It is
evident, moreover, that the use of the plural _docemus_ or _declaramus_,
and the employment of the formula _sacro approbante concilio_, denounced
by Mr. Gladstone as innovations, have ancient precedents in their favor.
The _Acta Synodalia_ of the Eleventh General and Third Lateran Council,
held under Pope Alexander III. in 1179, are thus worded: “Nos … de
concilio fratrum nostrorum et sacri approbatione concilii … decrevimus”
or “statuimus.” The same form, with trifling variation, was employed in
1225 by Innocent III. in another General Council, the Fourth Lateran. Mr.
Gladstone thinks “the very gist of the evil we are dealing with consists
in following (and enforcing) precedents of the age of Innocent III.,”
so that it may be useless to cite the General Council of Lyons in 1245,
under Innocent IV., with its decrees published in the obnoxious strain,
“_Innocentius Episcopus, servus servorum Dei, etc., sacro præsente
concilio ad rei memoriam sempiternam_.” The language of another General
Council at Lyons, in 1274, under Gregory X., “Nos … sacro approbante
concilio, damnamus,” etc., and the language of the Council of Vienne,
in 1311, under Clement V., “Nos sacro approbante concilio … damnamus
et reprobamus,” come perhaps too near the age of Innocent III. to have
weight with Mr. Gladstone. But he cannot object on this score to the
Fifth Lateran Council, begun in 1512 under Julius II., and finished in
1517 under Leo X. In this General Council, the next before that of Trent,
Pope Leo was present in person, and by him, just as by Pius IX., in the
Vatican Council, all the definitions and decrees were made in the strain
which Mr. Gladstone calls innovating and revolutionary, namely, in the
style, “Leo Episcopus servus servorum Dei ad perpetuam rei memoriam,
sacro approbante concilio.” Leo X. uniformly employed the plural
_statuimus et ordinamus_ in every session of that council. Pius IX.
followed the example of Leo X., and obeyed precedents set him by popes
who presided in person--not by legates, as at Trent--at General Councils
held in the years 1179, 1225, 1244, 1274, 1311, and 1517. Accordingly,
“the change of form in the present, as compared with other conciliatory
(_sic_) decrees,” turns out on examination to be no revolution, but, on
the contrary, appears to have in its favor precedents the earliest of
which has seven centuries of antiquity. And yet to this alleged change
of form, and to this alone, Mr. Gladstone appealed in evidence of “the
amount of the wonderful change now consummated in the constitution of the
Latin Church” and of “the present degradation of its episcopal order”!

The _Encyclical_ and _Syllabus_ of 1864 have been treated by Mr.
Gladstone in the same loose, careless, and unfair way as he treated
the Vatican decrees. He promised, at page 15 of his _Expostulation_,
to “state, in the fewest possible words and with references, a few
propositions, all the holders of which have been _condemned_ [the italics
are Mr. Gladstone’s] by the See of Rome during my own generation, and
especially within the last twelve or fifteen years. And in order,”
so proceeds Mr. Gladstone, “that I may do nothing towards importing
passion into what is matter of pure argument, I will avoid citing any
of the fearfully energetic epithets in which the condemnations are
sometimes clothed.” The references here given by Mr. Gladstone are to
the Encyclical letter of Pope Gregory XVI. in 1831--a date, it may be
noticed, rather more ancient than “the last twelve or fifteen years”--and
to the following documents, which at page 16 of his pamphlet are thus
detailed: The Encyclical “of Pope Pius IX., in 1864”; “Encyclical of Pius
IX., December 8, 1864”; “Syllabus of March 18, 1861”; and the “Syllabus
of Pope Pius IX., March 8, 1861.” Here are apparently five documents
deliberately referred to, the first an Encyclical of Gregory XVI.; the
second an Encyclical of Pius IX., in 1864; the third another Encyclical
of Pius IX., dated December 8, 1864; the fourth a Syllabus of March
18th, 1861; and the fifth another Syllabus of the 8th of March, 1861.
Yet these apparently five documents, to which reference is made by Mr.
Gladstone with so much seeming particularity and exactitude of dates, are
in reality two documents only, and have but one date--namely, the 8th
of December, 1864--on which day the _Encyclical_, with the _Syllabus_
attached, was published by Pius IX. At page 67 of his pamphlet Mr.
Gladstone “cites his originals,” and curiously enough, by a printer’s
error, assigns the Encyclical of Gregory XVI. to Gregory XIV. But he
cites from two sources only--namely, the _Encyclical_ and _Syllabus_ of
1864. That Encyclical contains a quotation from an Encyclical of Gregory
XVI., which and the _Syllabus_ are positively the only documents actually
cited. By a series of blunders, all of which cannot be charged to the
printer--and in a work which has arrived at the “sixteenth thousand”
edition printers’ errors are hardly allowable--the two documents, with
their one date, have been made to do duty for five documents, ascribed
gravely to as many different dates!

Moreover, Mr. Gladstone’s assertion that he will state “a few
propositions, all the holders of which have been _condemned_ by the Holy
See,” is inaccurate, as far as his extracts from the _Encyclical_ and
the _Syllabus_--the only documents to which he appeals--are concerned;
for in them no “holders” of any propositions are condemned, nor is there
a single anathema directed against any individual. The errors only
are censured. Mr. Gladstone cannot illustrate any one of his eighteen
propositions by a single epithet which could with truth be called
“fearfully energetic.” As a matter of fact, there are no epithets at
all attached to any condemnations in the eighty propositions of the
_Syllabus_. When, therefore, Mr. Gladstone professes, in order to do
nothing “towards importing passion,” that he will “avoid citing any of
the fearfully energetic epithets in which the condemnations are sometimes
clothed,” he plays a rhetorical trick upon his readers. In truth, had he
quoted the entire of the _Encyclical_ and _Syllabus_, he would not have
been able to make his hypocritical insinuation that he might have culled,
if he wished, more damaging extracts. Catholics have to lament, not that
he quoted too much, but that he quoted too little; not that he quoted
with severe rigor, but that he quoted with absolute unfaithfulness. It is
justice, not mercy, which Catholics demand from him, and which they ask
all the more imperatively because he has himself laid down the axiom:
“Exactness in stating truth according to the measure of our intelligence
is an indispensable condition of justice and of a title to be heard.”

It was urged by some persons that Mr. Gladstone gave sufficient
opportunities for correcting the effect of his inaccuracies by publishing
in an appendix the Latin of the propositions he professed to quote. But
so glaring is the contrast between the “propositions” in English and
the same in Latin that a writer in the _Civiltâ Cattolica_ exclaims
in amazement: “Has he [Mr. Gladstone] misunderstood the Latin of the
quoted texts? Has he through thoughtlessness travestied the sense? Or
has his good faith fallen a victim to the disloyalty of some cunning Old
Catholics who furnished him with these propositions?” Mr. Gladstone has
asserted that Pius IX. has condemned “those who maintain the liberty
of the press,” “or the liberty of conscience and of worship,” “or the
liberty of speech.” On referring to the Latin original of these the
first three of his eighteen propositions, it is found that Pius IX. has
given no occasion for such a monstrous assertion. The Pope has merely
condemned that species of liberty which every man not a socialist or
communist must from his heart believe worthy of censure. Gregory XVI.
called this vicious sort of liberty by the name of _delirium_, and Pius
IX., in his _Encyclical_, terms it the “liberty of perdition.” It is
a liberty “especially pernicious (_maxime exitialem_) to the Catholic
Church and the salvation of souls,” and the claim to it is based on the
error “that liberty of conscience and of worship is the proper right
of every man; that it ought to be proclaimed and asserted by law in
every well-constituted society; and that citizens have an inherent
right to liberty of every kind, not to be restrained by any authority,
ecclesiastical or civil, so that they may be able, openly and publicly,
to manifest and declare their opinions, of whatever kind, by speech, by
the press, or by any other means.” Such is the sort of liberty which the
_Encyclical_ condemns, which is not the general liberty of the press,
or of conscience and worship, as Mr. Gladstone would have it, but that
sort of liberty which might be better termed licentiousness--a liberty,
that is, which knows no bridle or restraint, whether human or divine,
and which refuses to be kept in check by any authority, ecclesiastical
or civil--“omnimodam libertatem nullâ vel ecclesiasticâ, vel civili
auctoritate coarctandam.” The _Expostulation_ has been widely circulated
among the learned, and also in a sixpenny edition among the masses. It
is evident that thousands of persons accustomed to entertain a high
opinion of the veracity of great men in Mr. Gladstone’s position will
take his statements upon trust, and never dream of testing, even had they
the requisite acquaintance with a dead language, the accuracy of his
translations and quotations. To abuse the confidence of this section of
the public is a sin severely to be reprobated.

The _Speeches of Pius IX_.--which, it would appear, were not read by
Mr. Gladstone until after he wrote the _Expostulation_--have been by
him criticised in the _Quarterly Review_ unmercifully and unfairly. He
did not take into consideration the circumstance that these speeches
are not elaborate orations, but are merely the unprepared, unstudied
utterances of a pontiff so aged as to be termed by the reviewer himself
a “nonagenarian,” borne down with unparalleled afflictions, weighted
with innumerable cares, and oppressed with frequent and at times serious
illnesses. The speeches themselves were not reported _verbatim_ or _in
extenso_. No professional shorthand writer attended when they were
delivered, and they were not spoken with a view to their publication.
But every word which comes from the lips of Pius IX. is precious to
Catholics; and as some of these speeches were taken down by various hands
and appeared in various periodicals, it was thought proper to allow a
collection of them to be formed and published by an ecclesiastic, Don
Pasquale de Franciscis, who himself took notes of the greater number
of these _Discourses_. This gentleman is described by Mr. Gladstone as
“an accomplished professor of flunkyism in things spiritual,” and one
of the “sycophants” about the Pope who administer to His Holiness “an
adulation, not only excessive in its degree, but of a kind which to an
unbiassed mind may seem to border on profanity.” Mr. Gladstone is fond
of insinuating that his own mind is “unbiassed” or “dispassionate,” and
that he would by no means “import passion” into a controversy where calm
reasoning alone is admissible. But, in point of fact, as the _Pall Mall
Gazette_ has pointed out, he shows himself the bigoted controversialist
instead of the grave statesman. Forgetting the genius of the Italian
people, and the difference between the warm and impulsive natives of the
South and the phlegmatic Anglo-Saxons; forgetting, also, the literary
toadyism of English writers not many years ago, and the apparently
profane adulation paid to British sovereigns, he attacks Don Pasquale
for calling the book of the Pope’s speeches “divine,” and accuses him of
downright blasphemy. Dr. Newman, in one of his _Lectures on the Present
Position of Catholics in England_, has given an humorous account of
the way in which foreigners might be induced to believe the laws and
constitution of England to be profane and blasphemous. This he did by
culling out a series of sentences from Blackstone and others, such as
“the king can do no wrong,” “the king never dies,” he is “the vicar of
God on earth.” Thus impeccability, immortality, and omnipotence may be
claimed for the British monarch! Moreover, the subjects of James I.
called him “the breath of their nostrils”; he himself, according to Lord
Clarendon, on one occasion called himself “a god”; Lord Bacon called him
“some sort of little god”; Alexander Pope and Addison termed Queen Anne
“a goddess,” the words of the latter writer being: “Thee, goddess, thee
Britannia’s isle adores.” What Dr. Newman did in good-humored irony Mr.
Gladstone does in sober and bitter earnest. He picks out epithets here
and there, tacking on the expressions of one page to those of another,
and then flings the collected epithets before his reader as proof of Don
Pasquale’s profanity. The temperament of Italians in the present day
may or may not furnish a valid defence, in respect to good taste, for
Don Pasquale. But it is certain that the phrases used by the latter,
when taken in their context and interpreted as any one familiar with
Italian ideas would interpret them, afford slight basis for the odious
charge of profanity--a charge which Mr. Gladstone urges not only by the
means already pointed out, but by other means still more reprehensible,
namely, by fastening on Don Pasquale expressions which he did not employ.
Thus, at page 274 of the _Review_, Mr. Gladstone, in reference to the
“sufferings pretended to be inflicted by the Italian kingdom upon the
so-called prisoner of the Vatican,” adds, “Let us see how, and with what
daring misuse of Holy Scripture, they are illustrated in the authorized
volume before us. ‘He and his august consort,’ says Don Pasquale,
speaking of the Comte and Comtesse de Chambord, ‘were profoundly moved
at such great afflictions which the Lamb of the Vatican has to endure.’”
It seems, in the first place, rather strained to term the application of
the word “lamb” to Pius IX., or any other person, a “daring misuse of
Holy Scripture.” Many a man, when expressing pious hope under disaster,
exclaims, “The Lord tempers the wind to the shorn lamb,” using or
misusing, as the case may be, not the language of Holy Scripture, but the
words of the author of _Tristram Shandy_, to whose works, we believe, the
epithet “holy” is not commonly applied. If Pius IX. had been termed “the
lamb of God,” then indeed Holy Scripture might have been used or misused;
but the single word “lamb,” even in the phrase “lamb of the Vatican,”
is no more an allusion, profane or otherwise, to the Gospels than it is
to the Rev. Laurence Sterne. In the second place, the expression, be it
proper or improper, was not used by Don Pasquale. Turning to volume ii.
of the _Discorsi_, page 545, as Mr. Gladstone directs us, we find the
words were not employed by Don Pasquale, but by the writer of an article
in the _Unità Cattolica_! Pages 545 and 546, the pages cited, contain
a notice of the presentation to the Comte and Comtesse de Chambord of
the first volume of the _Discorsi_; for the article is dated in 1872,
and the second volume was not printed until 1873. So that it appears
the naughty word was not only not used by Don Pasquale, but did not in
reality form part of the “authorized volume,” being merely found in
a newspaper extract inserted in an appendix. In this same newspaper
extract the Comtesse de Chambord is said to have called the first volume
of the _Discorsi_ “a continuation of the Gospels and the Acts of the
Apostles.” This statement rests on the authority of the writer in the
_Unità Cattolica_, but is brought up in judgment not only against Don
Pasquale, but against the Pope himself, who is held by Mr. Gladstone
to be responsible for everything stated either by Don Pasquale in his
preface or by any other persons in the appendices to the _Discorsi_!

Concerning the Pope, Mr. Gladstone, at page 299 of the _Review_, thus
writes: “Whether advisedly or not, the Pontiff does not, except once
(vol. i. 204), apply the term [infallible] to himself, but is in other
places content with alleging his superiority, as has been shown above,
to an inspired prophet, and with commending those who come to hear his
words as words proceeding from Jesus Christ (i. 335).” At page 268 of
the _Review_ it is also said that Don Pasquale, in his preface, p. 17,
calls the voice of Pius IX. “the voice of God,” and that the Pope is
“nature that protests” and “God that condemns.” If, however, in order
to test the worth of these assertions of Mr. Gladstone, we turn to the
passages he has cited, it will be discovered that Pius IX. did not even
once apply the term infallible to himself; for he, in the passage cited,
applied it not to himself individually, but to the infallible judgment
(_giudizio infallibile_) in principles of revelation, as contrasted
with the authoritative right of popes in general. Nor did Pius IX.
assert any “superiority to an inspired prophet” by saying (_Review_,
p. 276, _Discorsi_, vol. i. 366): “I have the right to speak even more
than Nathan the prophet to David the king.” The right to speak upon a
certain occasion does not surely contain of necessity an allegation of
superiority nor imply a claim to inspiration! Nor did Pius IX. commend
“those who came to hear his words as words proceeding from Jesus Christ”;
for he merely said, in reply to a deputation: “I answer with the church;
and the church herself supplies to me the words in the Gospel for this
morning. You are here, and have put forth your sentiments; but you desire
also to hear the word of Jesus Christ as it issues from the mouth of his
Vicar.” That is to say: You shall have for answer “the word of Jesus
Christ”--meaning this day’s Gospel--spoken by, or as it issues from, or
which proceeds (_che esce_) out of, the mouth of his Vicar. The words,
“He is nature that protests, he is God that condemns,” are evidently
metaphorical expressions of the editor, harmless enough; for, as Pius IX.
cannot be both God and nature literally, the metaphorical application is
apparent to the meanest comprehension. It is true that Don Pasquale, in
his preface, page 16, ascribes to Pius IX. this language: “This voice
which now sounds before you is the voice of Him whom I represent on
earth” (_la VOCE di colui che in terra Io rappresento_); but, turning
to Don Pasquale’s reference (vol. i. p. 299) to verify the quotation,
it is found that the editor made a serious mistake, by which the entire
character of the passage was altered. The Pope had just contrasted
himself (the _vox clamantis de Vaticano_) with John the Baptist (the
_vox clamantis in deserto_). “Yes,” he adds, “I may also call myself
the Voice; for, although unworthy, I am yet the Vicar of Christ, and
this voice which now sounds before you is the voice of him who in earth
represents him” (_è la voce di colui, che in terra lo rappresenta_). Don
Pasquale imprudently put the word “voce” in capital letters, changed “lo”
into “Io,” and “rappresenta” into “rappresento.” The Pope simply said
that his voice, as it cried from the Vatican, was the voice of the Vicar
of Christ. And in the belief of all Catholics so it is.

The charge of “truculence” is brought against the Pope by Mr. Gladstone.
“It is time to turn,” he says (_Review_, p. 277), “with whatever
reluctance, to the truculent and wrathful aspect which unhappily prevails
over every other in these _Discourses_.” The first proof of this
“truculence” is, it seems, the fact that the “_cadres_, or at least the
skeletons and relics of the old papal government over the Roman states,
are elaborately and carefully maintained.” One would suppose that these
_cadres_ were maintained with the bloodthirsty intention of making war on
Victor Emanuel. But Mr. Gladstone does not say so; nay, he insinuates in
a foot-note that their maintenance is for a purpose far from truculent.
“We have seen it stated from a good quarter,” so Mr. Gladstone writes,
“that no less than three thousand persons, formerly in the papal
employment, now receive some pension or pittance from the Vatican.
Doubtless they are expected to be forthcoming on all occasions of great
deputations, as they may be wanted, like the _supers_ and dummies at
the theatres.” It appears from the _Discorsi_ that the Pope received in
audience deputations from the persons formerly in the papal employment on
twenty-one occasions, between September, 1870, and September, 1873. On
fourteen of these occasions the _impiegati_ were received on days when
no other deputations attended. On the other occasions, although other
deputations were received on the same days, the ex-employees were never
mixed up with other deputations, but were always placed in separate rooms
for audience. Mr. Gladstone has not the least ground for insinuating that
these unfortunate persons, who refused to take the oath of allegiance
to Victor Emanuel, and thereby forfeited employment and pay, were ever
called upon like _supers_ or dummies to make a show at great deputations.
If these ex-employees receive pay from the Pope, it surely is no proof
of papal “truculence.” But “none of these,” so asserts Mr. Gladstone
(_Review_, p. 278), “appear at the Vatican as friends, co-religionists,
as receivers of the Pontiff’s alms, or in any character which could be
of doubtful interpretation. They appear as being actually and at the
moment his subjects and his military and civil servants respectively,
although only in _disponibilità_, or, so to speak, on furlough; they are
headed by the proper leading functionaries, and the Pope receives them as
persons come for the purpose of doing homage to their sovereign.” The
references given for this somewhat confused statement are pages 88 and
365 of volume i., where the Pope very naturally speaks of “the fidelity
shown by them to their sovereign,” and of their “faith, constancy, and
attachment to religion, to God, and to the Vicar of Jesus Christ, their
sovereign.” It was in consequence of the introduction by Victor Emanuel,
into the several government departments in Rome, of an oath of allegiance
to the head of the state--an oath not demanded previously under the Papal
rule--that these _impiegati_ resigned their situations, their consciences
not permitting them to take the oath. It was no wonder, then, that Pius
IX. should notice their fidelity to himself. But he makes no assertion
whatever to the effect that these civil and military servants are merely
on furlough or in _disponibilità_. That they do appear as pensioners
on the bounty of Pius IX. may be proved, in spite of Mr. Gladstone’s
denial, by reference to the _Discorsi_, at pages 38, 50, 99, 182, 235,
308, 460, and 472 of volume i. and pages 25, 38, and 122 of volume
ii. It cannot be expected that we should quote all these passages at
length, but we will quote a few of them. The ex-civil servants, on 13th
July, 1872, approached His Holiness to express “their sincere devotion
and gratitude for what he had done for their sustentation and comfort
under most distressing circumstances.” The police officials, seven days
afterwards, were introduced by Mgr. Randi; and one of them, the Marquis
Pio Capranica, read an address, in which the persons whom Mr. Gladstone
calls “the scum of the earth” (_Review_, p. 278) thank the Pope for
extending to them and their “families his fatherly munificence.” On the
27th of December, 1871, the ex-military officials, through Gen. Kanzler,
laid at the foot of the Pope their protestations of unalterable fidelity,
their prayers for the prolongation of his life, and their gratitude for
his generosity in alleviating the distress and misery of many families
of his former soldiers. But perhaps the “truculence” of Pius IX. may be
discovered, if not in his compassion and generosity to his ex-servants,
at least in his admonitions to them to furbish up their arms and keep
their powder dry. Mr. Gladstone asserts (_Review_, p. 297) that “blood
and iron” are “in contemplation at the Vatican.” “No careful reader of
this authoritative book (the _Speeches_) can doubt that these are the
means by which the great Christian pastor contemplates and asks--ay, asks
as one who should think himself entitled to command--the re-establishment
of his power in Rome.” Now, the Pope can ask or command this “blood and
iron” assistance from none so well as from his ex-soldiers, and from the
civil and military officials still loyal to their chief. It happens,
however, that no “careful reader” of the Pope’s speeches to his former
soldiers or servants can discover a trace of this “truculent” purpose
of His Holiness. He rarely mentions a weapon; but when he does, it is
to remind his audience (as at p. 197, vol. i.) that “we must not combat
with material weapons, but spiritually--that is to say, with united
prayers.” He reminds some young soldiers (vol. i. p. 69) that “prayer is
the terrible weapon for use specially in the actual grievous condition of
affairs, by which weapon alone can the complete triumph of the church and
religion be obtained.” When he would place before some of his faithful
civil servants the example of the “Hebrews when rebuilding Jerusalem,
who held in one hand the working tools and in the other the sword to
combat the enemy,” he warns them to imitation by means of “prayer on the
one side, and constancy on the other” (vol. i. p. 475). Prayer is the
burden of his advice on all these occasions. “_Sursum corda!_ Lift up
the thought and the heart to God, from whom only we can expect comfort,
help, counsel, or protection now and always” (vol. ii. p. 25). “They
have imagined,” says the Pontiff to the Marquis Pio Capranica and other
ex-functionaries of the Police Department (vol. ii. p. 36), “that we wish
to cause an armed reaction! To think this is folly, and to assert it
is calumny. I have made known to all persons that the reaction which I
desire is this: namely, to have people who can protect youth, and provide
for the good education of the young in the principles of faith, morality,
honesty, and respect towards the church and her ministers. This is the
reaction which now and always I will say is our desire. As for the rest,
God will do that which he wills. Great reactions are not in my hands,
but in His upon whom all depends.” There is one passage cited by Mr.
Gladstone to show that the Pope would “take the initiative,” if he could,
and lead his troops to battle. It occurs in a speech addressed to Gen.
Kanzler and the officers of the late pontifical army, and may be found in
vol. ii. pages 141 and 142. The Pope says at the beginning of his speech,
“You are come, soldiers of honor, attached to this Holy See and constant
in the exercise of your duties, to present yourselves before me; but you
come without arms, proving thereby how sad are the present times. Oh!
would I also could obey that voice of God which many ages ago said to a
people, Transform your ploughs and plough-shares and your instruments of
husbandry into spears and swords and implements of war; for the enemies
are advancing, and there is need of many weapons and of many armed men.
Would that God would to-day repeat those same inspirations even unto us.
But God is silent, and I, his Vicar, cannot do aught in distinction from
him, and cannot do aught save keep silence.” The foregoing paragraph has
undoubtedly a warlike sound, and is of course quoted by Mr. Gladstone;
but it is immediately followed by another passage which takes from it
all its force, and which is not quoted by Mr. Gladstone: “And I will
particularly add that I could never desire to authorize an augmentation
of arms, because, as Vicar of the God of Peace, who came on earth to
bring peace to us, I am bound to sustain all the rights of peace, which
is the fairest gift which God can give to this earth.”

Mr. Gladstone notices “the Pope’s wealth of vituperative power,” and
refers to various passages for illustrations. A string of references
looks convincing, but it has been already shown how little reliance can
be placed on Mr. Gladstone in this respect. He who takes the pains to
verify these references will find Pius IX. has indeed used hard language,
not only towards the Italian government or Victor Emanuel, but towards
insidious proselytizers and bad and immoral teachers, spectacles,
and publications. But is Mr. Gladstone an unprejudiced judge of the
propriety of the pontifical expressions? The late British premier thinks
favorably of Victor Emanuel, and imagines Rome to be much improved
by the entrance of the Italians. He thinks the Pope “knows nothing
except at second-hand, nothing except as he is prompted by the blindest
partisans.” But Mr. Gladstone himself is the infallible authority. He
has sought and produced, of course from impartial sources, statistics to
show that crime has greatly diminished since the termination of the papal
_régime_. The Gladstonian statistics, of course, refute the statements
of the Pope, and also, as it happens, those of the law officers of the
crown in Italy, one of whom, Ghiglieri, when lately opening the legal
year with an elaborate speech, enlarged on the increasing prevalence of
crime in the Roman province since 1870--that is, since Rome became the
capital. Every visitor at Rome since that date knows that “flower-girls”
and other girls have only since 1870 been permitted to infest the Corso
and theatres, and that Rome, though not yet as bad as Paris or London
in respect to ostensible immorality, is rapidly advancing to equality
in vice with rival capitals. But Mr. Gladstone is not averse to vice in
certain quarters. He calls the blind Duke of Sirmoneta “able, venerable,
and highly cultivated,” and contrasts him (with perfect accuracy, but
rather scandalously) with the other members of the Roman aristocracy,
who, according to Edmond About, have not even vice to recommend them. The
Carnival of 1875 in Rome is itself an illustration of the progress of
vice and of crime in what Mr. Gladstone calls the “orderly and national
Italian kingdom.”

There is but space left to us to notice the deposing power, “the most
familiar to Englishmen” of all the “burning questions.” And the best
way to notice this question is to set before our readers the _ipsissima
verba_ of Pius IX. on the subject (as far as a translation can pretend
to supply them) from the famous speech to the Academia di Religione
Cattolica on July 20, 1871. The Pope said:

“But amid the variety of themes presented to you, one seems to me at
present of great importance, and this is to repel the attacks by which
they try to falsify the idea of the Pontifical Infallibility. Among
other errors, that one is more than all others malicious which would
attribute to it the right to depose sovereigns and release nations from
the bond of fidelity. This right, without doubt, was sometimes in extreme
circumstances exercised by pontiffs; but it has nothing to do with the
Pontifical Infallibility. Nor is its source the infallibility, but the
pontifical authority. The exercise, moreover, of this right, in those
ages of faith which respected in the pope that which he is--namely,
the Supreme Judge of Christianity--and recognized the advantages of
his tribunal in the great contests of peoples and sovereigns, freely
was extended (aided, also, as a duty, by the public right and by the
common consent of the nations) to the gravest interests of states and
of their rulers. But the present conditions are entirely different from
those, and only malice can confound things so diverse--as, for instance,
the infallible judgment concerning the principles of revelation--with
the right which the popes exercised in virtue of their authority when
the common good demanded it. As for the rest, they know it better than
we, and every one can perceive the reason why they raise at present a
confusion of ideas so absurd and bring upon the field hypotheses to
which no one gives heed. They beg, that is, every pretext, even the most
frivolous and the furthest from truth, provided it be suited to give us
annoyance and to excite princes against the church. Some persons wished
that I should explain and make more clear the conciliar definition. This
I will not do. It is clear in itself, and has no need of further comments
and explanations. Its true sense presents itself easily and obviously to
whoever reads the decree with a dispassionate mind.”

Doubtless the deposing power is one of the “rusty tools” which Rome,
according to Mr. Gladstone, has “refurbished and paraded anew.” But
what man with a dispassionate mind can read the authentic version of
the words put by Mr. Gladstone incorrectly before the public without
coming to the conclusion that the “refurbishing and parading anew” of the
deposing power is altogether a creation of Mr. Gladstone’s “brain-power,”
and that Pius IX., so far from showing a disposition to employ again
“the rusty tool,” actually manifests an intention to undervalue it and
lay it aside? Some persons would “refurbish” up the deposing power by
connecting it with infallibility, and the Pope denounces their attempt as
absurd and malicious. The abstract right of pontiffs to depose princes
and release subjects from allegiance is referred by Pius IX. not to the
infallibility which would give it new lustre, but to the pontifical
authority, which in olden time was strong and powerful, but which at
present is scarcely recognized by the kingdoms of the world. The exercise
of this right is delicately touched upon, in such a way as to suggest not
the least disposition to resume the right by putting it in practice. It
was indeed “sometimes, in extreme circumstances”--_talvolta in supreme
circostanze_--exercised by popes in those times when the pontiff was
acknowledged “the Supreme Judge of Christianity,” and when the Holy See,
by the common consent of nations, was the tribunal to which appeal was
made in the great contests of sovereigns and nations. Then indeed this
right was extended to “the gravest interests of nations and of rulers”;
but now all is different--“aflatto diverse.” So far from “parading anew”
the abstract right, and “furbishing” it up for present use, the Holy
Father indignantly repudiates the malicious allegation by declaring that
the right itself was but seldom exercised in ancient times, and then
only under special conditions such as are not likely to be found in
modern days. “Hypotheses” may of course be imagined by those who wish
“to give annoyance and excite princes against the church.” But these
“hypotheses,” as the Pope remarks, are not serious. No one pays heed
or attention to them. They are “ipotesi, alle quali niuno pensa.” The
limits of the obedience of subjects to sovereigns are clearly set forth
by Pius IX. in his address to an Austrian deputation on the 18th of June,
1871. “Submission and respect to authority are the principal duties of
truly good subjects. But at the same time I must remind you,” says the
Pope, “that your obedience and fidelity have a limit to be observed.
Be faithful to the sovereign whom God has given to you, and obey the
laws which govern you; but when necessity calls, let your obedience and
fidelity not advance beyond, but be arrested at, the steps of the altar.”
You have “duties to the laws as subjects, and to your consciences as
Christians.” “Unite these duties well, and let your supreme rule be the
holy law of God and his church.” The state of mind of that man who can
find nothing in the _Speeches of Pius IX._ save matter for ridicule,
sarcasm, and invective is not to be envied. It reminds one of the phrase
employed in the consistorial “_processus_” for the appointment of a
bishop to a diocese in which heretics usurped the churches and impeded
the profession and practice of true religion: _Illius status potius est
deplorandus quam recensendus_--It is a condition which is rather to be
deplored than described.


THE BATH OF THE GOLDEN ROBIN.

    The sun beams over Laurelside
      To Ana-lo-mink water,
    And nature smiles in rural pride
      At all the gifts he brought her.

    The merry greenwood branches hold
      More cheer than castle’s rafter,
    The gurgling river ne’er is old
      With sly and mellow laughter.

    How welcome is the soothing sound
      Of mingling water speeding
    O’er pebbly bed with laugh and bound,
      Through wooded banks receding!

    Ah! pleasant ’tis to close one’s eyes,
      And let the murmurous measure
    With liquid tones of gay surprise
      Fill up the fancy’s pleasure.

    But ere my hooded eyes could wake
      Sweet fancy’s happy scheming,
    Came Robin Oriole to break
      My sleepless, dulcet dreaming.

    For Rob outshines the glowing day,
      And in the sun’s dominions
    Seems like a ball of fire at play
      On elfin sable pinions.

    He glints the orchard’s dropping dew,
      Illumes the maple’s mazes,
    Dispels the pine-shade passing through,
      And in the sunshine blazes!

    And sweeping to a mossy bank,
      The wings the flame deliver
    Where fern-encloister’d pebbles flank
      An eddy from the river.

    Here, by the stream-indented path,
      As master Rob did spy it,
    Thought he, What chance for Sunday bath!
      So tempting, cool, and quiet.

    He quaintly eyed the little pool,
      And hopt so self-confiding,
    And peek’d around, like boy from school,
      To see none near were hiding.

    Then, list’ning, seem’d to mark the tone
      Made by the eddies’ patter;
    But bravely sprang upon a stone,
      And plunged with splash and spatter.

    The bath came only to his knees,
      But, ducking as he flutters,
    Against his throat the water sprees,
      And round his body sputters.

    It leapt in bubbles, as his crest
      And wings were merrily toiling;
    You’d think his ruffled, fiery breast
      Had set the water boiling.

    He stopt short in his merry ways
      As coy as any lady,
    And, flutt’ring, sent a diamond haze
      Around his bath so shady.

    Then popt out on the olive moss
      So softly deep and luscious;
    Then skimm’d the blue-eyed flow’rs across,
      And perch’d within the bushes.

    He perk’d his head like dandy prig,
      Now feeling fine and fresher;
    And took the air upon a twig,
      That scarcely felt his pressure.

    Full suddenly he scann’d his shank,
      As though he had not reckon’d
    One dip enough, flew to the bank,
      And gayly took a second!

    Oh! how the jolly fellow dashed
      The little waves asunder!
    Dove in his head and breast, and splashed
      His pinion-feathers under.

    Then standing up, as though to rest,
      He looked around discreetly;
    Again with zest the pool caress’d,
      And made his bath completely.

    Out hopt he where the sun-fed breeze
      Came streamward warmly tender--
    A brilliant prince of Atomies
      Amid this mountain splendor.

    Oh, balmy is the mountain air
      Of May with sunlight in it!
    And blest is he from town-wrought care
      Who can in greenwood win it.

    But sun on Robin’s radiant coat,
      All drench’d, he fear’d might spoil it,
    So to an alder grove did float
      To make his feathery toilet.

    He pick’d his wings and smoothed his neck,
      Arranged his vest’s carnation,
    And flew out without stain or speck
      To dazzle all creation!


ARE YOU MY WIFE?

BY THE AUTHOR OF “A SALON IN PARIS BEFORE THE WAR,” “NUMBER THIRTEEN,”
“PIUS VI.,” ETC

CHAPTER IV.

“Here you are, you naughty little maiden, gadding about the country
when I want you to be at home to talk to me!” exclaimed Sir Simon, as
Franceline burst into the cottage full of her little adventure. “Where
have you been all this time?”

“Only to see Miss Merrywig, and then I came home by the fields.”

“And was any poor mortal lucky enough to meet you coming through the
rye?” inquired Sir Simon facetiously.

Franceline didn’t see the point a bit; but she blushed as if she did, and
Sir Simon was not the man to let her off.

“Oh! so that’s it, is it? Come, now, and tell me all about it,” he said,
drawing her to a low seat beside his arm-chair, the only one in the
establishment, and which his host always insisted on his taking. “You
must let me into the secret; it’s very shabby of you to have got one
without consulting me. Who is he, and where did you meet him?”

“One is Mr. Charlton,” replied Franceline naïvely; “but I don’t know who
the other is. I never saw him before. Tell me who he is, monsieur?”

“Tell you! Well, upon my word, you are a pretty flirt! You don’t even
know his name! A very nice young lady!”

“Is he a Frenchman, monsieur? I think he must be from the way he bowed.
Is he a friend of yours? Nobody else knows Frenchmen here but you. Do
tell me who he is.”

“He’s not a Frenchman,” said Sir Simon, “and he’ll never forgive you for
mistaking him for one, I can tell you. If you were a man, he would run
you through the body for it just as soon as he’d look at you!”

“Mon Dieu!” cried Franceline, opening her eyes wide with wonder, “then
I don’t care to know any more about him. I hope I shall never see him
again.”

“Yes, but you shall, though, and I’ll take care to tell him,” declared
Sir Simon.

“What is it? What is it?” called out M. de la Bourbonais, looking up from
a letter that he was writing against time to catch the post. “What are
you both quarrelling about again?”

“Petit père, monsieur is so unkind and so disagreeable!”

“And Mlle. Franceline is so cruel and so inquisitive!”

“He won’t tell me who that strange gentleman is, petit père. Canst thou
tell me?”

“Oh! ho! I thought we didn’t care to know!” laughed Sir Simon with a
mischievous look.

“Tell me, petit père!” said Franceline, ignoring her tormentor’s taunt;
and going up to her father, she laid her head coaxingly against his.

He looked at her for a moment with a strange expression, and then said,
half speaking to himself, while he stroked her hair, “What can it matter
to thee? What is one strange face more or less to thee or me?” Then
turning to Sir Simon, who was enjoying the sight of the young girl’s
innocent curiosity, and perhaps revolving possible eventualities in his
buoyant mind, the count said, “Who is it, Harness?”

“How do I know?” retorted his friend. “A strange gentleman that bows like
a Frenchman is not a very lucid indication.”

“I met him coming out of your gate, walking with Mr. Charlton,” explained
Franceline. “He’s taller than Mr. Charlton--as tall as you, monsieur--and
he wore a moustache like a Frenchman. I never saw any one like him in
England.”

Franceline’s recollections of France were mostly rather dim, but, like
the memories of childhood, those that survived were very vivid.

“If he must be a Frenchman, I can make nothing out of it,” said Sir Simon.

“Voyons, Harness,” laughed the count, “don’t be too unmerciful! Curiosity
in a woman once led to terrible consequences.”

“Well, I’ll tell you who he is In fact, I came here to-day on purpose to
tell you, and to ask when I could bring him to see you. He’s the nephew
of my old school-chum, De Winton, a very nice fellow, but not the least
like a Frenchman, whatever his bow and his moustache may say to the
contrary.”

“Do you mean Clide De Winton, the poor young fellow who …?”

“Precisely,” replied Sir Simon; “he’s been a rover on the face of the
earth for the last eight or nine years. This is the first time I’ve seen
him since I said good-by to him on the steamer at Marseilles, and met
you on my way back. He’s been all over the world since then, I believe.
You’ll find he has plenty to say for himself, and his French is number
one.”

“And the admiral--is he with him?” inquired Raymond.

“I’m expecting him down to-morrow. How long is it since you saw him?”

“Hé!… let us not count the years, mon cher! We were all young then.”

“We’re all young now,” protested the hearty baronet. “Men of our time of
life never grow old; it’s only these young ones that can afford that sort
of thing,” nodding toward Franceline, who, since she found her Frenchman
was no Frenchman, appeared to have lost all interest in him, and was
busily tidying her father’s table. “As to the admiral, he’s younger than
ever he was. By the way, I don’t intend to let him cut me out with a
certain young lady; so let me see no flirtation in that quarter. I’ll not
stand it. Do you hear me, Miss Franceline?”

“Yes,” was the laconic rejoinder, and she went on fixing some loose
papers in a letter-press.

       *       *       *       *       *

“Yes, Monsieur le Comte is at home; but, as monsieur knows, he never
likes to be disturbed at this hour,” replied Angélique, who was knitting
the family stockings in the wee summer-house at the end of the garden.

“Oh! I’ll answer for it he won’t mind being disturbed this time,” said
Sir Simon. “Tell him it’s his old friend, the admiral, who wants to see
him.”

Before Angélique had got her needles under way and risen, a cry of
jubilant welcome sounded from the closed shutters of the little room
where the count was hard at work in the dark. “Mon cher De Vinton! how it
rejoices me to embrace you.” And the Frenchman was in his friend’s arms
in a minute. “My good Angélique, this is one of our eldest friends! Where
is mademoiselle? Fetch her on the instant! Mon cher De Vinton.”

The four gentlemen--for Clide was there--went laughing and shaking hands
into the house, and groped their way as best they could into Raymond’s
study. He had the sensible foreign habit of keeping the shutters closed
to exclude the heat, and the admiral nearly fell over a stool in
scrambling for a chair.

“My dear Bourbonais, we’re none of us bats, and darkness isn’t a help
to the flow of soul,” said Sir Simon; “so, by your leave, I’ll throw a
little light on the subject.” And he pushed back the shutter.

Before their eyes had recovered the blinding shock of the light coming
suddenly on the darkness, a light foot was pattering down the stairs,
and Franceline glided into the room. The effect was very much as if a
lily had sprouted up from the carpet. An involuntary “God bless my soul!”
broke from the admiral, and Clide started to his feet. “My daughter,
messieurs,” said M. de la Bourbonais, with a sudden touch of the courtier
in his manner, as he took her by the hand, and presented her to them
both. Franceline bowed to the young man, and held out her hand to the
elder one. The admiral, with an unwonted impulse of gallantry, raised
it to his lips, and then held it in both his own, looking steadily into
her face with an open stare of fatherly admiration. He had seen many
lovely women in his day, and, if report spoke true, the brave sailor
had been a very fair judge of the charms of the gentler sex; but he had
never seen anything the least like this. Perhaps it was the unexpected
contrast of the picture with the frame that took him so much by surprise
and heightened the effect; but, whatever it was, he was completely taken
aback, and stood looking at it speechless and bewildered.

“Do you mean to tell me that this wild rose belongs to _him_?” he said
at last, addressing himself to Sir Simon, and with an aggressive nod
at Raymond, as if he suspected him of having pilfered the article in
question, and were prepared to do battle for the rightful owner.

“He says so,” averred the baronet cautiously.

“He may say what he likes,” declared the admiral, “my belief is that he
purloined it out of some fairy’s garden.”

“And my belief is that you purloined that!” snubbed Sir Simon. “You never
had as much poetry in you as would inspire a fly; had he, Clide?”

Raymond rubbed his spectacles, and put them on again--his usual way of
disposing of an awkward situation, and which just now helped to conceal
the twinkle of innocent paternal vanity that was dancing in his gray eyes.

“No, you usedn’t to be much of a poet when I knew you, De Vinton,” he
said.

“No more he is now,” asserted the baronet. “What do you say, Clide?”

“The most prosaic of us may become poets under a certain pressure of
inspiration,” replied the young man, with an imperceptible movement of
his head in the direction of Franceline, who blushed under the speech
just enough to justify the admiral’s wild-rose simile. She drew her hand
laughingly away from his, and then, when everybody had found a seat, she
pushed her favorite low stool close to her father’s chair, and sat down
by his knee.

The friends had a great deal to say to each other, although the presence
of Clide and Sir Simon prevented their touching on certain episodes of
the past that were brought vividly to Raymond’s mind by the presence
of one whom he had not seen since they had taken place. This kept all
painful subjects in the background; and in spite of a wistful look in
Raymond’s eyes, as if the sailor’s weather-beaten face were calling up
the ghost of by-gone days--joys that had lived their span and died,
and sorrow that was not dead, but sleeping--he kept up the flow of
conversation with great animation. Meanwhile, the two young people
were pushed rather outside the circle. Clide, instead of entering on
a _tête-à-tête_, as it was clearly his right and his duty to do, kept
holding on by the fringe of his uncle’s talk, feigning to be deeply
interested in it, while all the time he was thinking of something else,
longing to go and sit by Franceline, and talk to her. It was not shyness
that kept him back. That infirmity of early youth had left him, with
other outward signs of boyhood. The features had lost their boyish
expression, and matured into that of the man of the world, who had seen
life and observed things by the road with shrewd eyes and a mind that had
learned to think. Clide had ripened prematurely within the last eight
years, as men do who are put to school to a great sorrow. He and his
monitress had not parted company, but they had grown used to each other.
Sometimes he reproached himself for this with a certain bitterness. It
seemed like treason to have forgotten; to have put his grief aside,
railed it off, as it were, from his life, like a grave to be visited at
stated times, and kept trimmed with flowers that were no longer watered
with tears. He accused himself of being too weak to hold his sorrow, of
having let it go from want of strength to keep it. Enduring grief, like
enduring love, must have a strong, rich soil to feed upon. The thing
we mourn, like the thing we love, may contain in itself all good and
beauty and endless claims upon our constancy; but we may fail in power
to answer them. The demand may be too great for the scanty measure of
our supply. It is harder to be faithful in sorrow than in love. Clide
had realized this, and he could never think of it without a pang. Yet
he was not to blame. What he had loved and mourned was only a mirage,
a will-o’-the-wisp the ideal creation of his own trusting heart and
generous imagination. He was angry with himself because the thunderbolt
that had fallen in his Garden of Eden, and burnt up the leaves of his
tree of life, had not torn it up by the roots and killed it. Our lives
have deeper roots than we know. Even when they are torn quite up we
sometimes plant them again, and they grow afresh, striking their fibres
deeper than before, and bringing forth richer fruit. But we refuse to
believe this until we have tasted of the fruit. Clide sat apparently
listening to the cheery, affectionate talk of his uncle and Raymond;
but he was all the while listening to his own thoughts. What was there
in the sight of this ivory-browed, mystic-looking maiden to call up so
vividly another face so utterly different from it? Why did he hear the
sea booming its dirge like a reproach to him from that lonely grave at
St. Valery, as if he were wronging or wounding the dead by resting his
eyes on Franceline? Yet, in spite of the reproach, he could not keep them
averted. Her father sometimes called her _Clair de lune_. It was not an
inappropriate name; there was something of the cold, pure light of the
moon in her transparent pallor, and in the shadows of her eyes under the
long, black lashes that lent them such a soft fascination. Clide thought
so, as he watched her; cold as the face might be, it was stirring his
pulse and making his heart beat as he never thought to feel them stir and
beat again.

“Are ces messieurs going to stay for supper?” said Angélique, putting her
nut-brown face in at the door. “Because, if they are, I must know in time
to get ready.”

“Why, Angélique, I never knew you want more than five minutes to prepare
the best _omelette soufflée_ I ever get anywhere out of the Palais
Royal!” said Sir Simon.

“Ah! monsieur mocks me,” said Angélique, who was so elated by this public
recognition of her omelet talent that, if Sir Simon was not embraced
by the nut-brown face on the spot, it was one of those hair-breadth
escapes that our lives are full of, and we never give thanks for because
we never know of them. “Persuade De Vinton and our young friend here
to stop and test it, then!” exclaimed M. de la Bourbonais, holding out
both hands to the admiral in his genial, impulsive way. “The garden is
our _salle-à-manger_ in this hot weather, so there is plenty of room.”
There was something irresistible in the simplicity and cordiality of
the offer, and the admiral was about to say he would be delighted, when
Sir Simon put in his veto: “No, no, not this evening. You must come and
dine with us, Bourbonais; I want you up at the house this evening. But
the invitation will keep. We’ll not let Angélique off her _omelette
soufflée_; we’ll come and attack it to-morrow, if these rovers don’t
bolt, as they threaten to do.”

And so the conference was broken up, and Raymond accompanied his guests
to the garden-gate, promising to follow them in half an hour.

It was a rare event for M. de la Bourbonais to dine at Dullerton Court;
he disliked accepting its grand-seignior hospitality, and whenever he
consented it was understood there should be nobody to meet him. “I have
grown as unsocial as a bear from long habit, mon cher,” he would be sure
to say every time Sir Simon bore down on him with an invitation. “I shall
turn into a mollusk by-and-by. How completely we are the creatures of
habit!” To which Sir Simon would invariably reply with his Johnsonian
maxim: “You should struggle against that sort of thing, Bourbonais, and
overcome it”; and Raymond would smile, and agree with him. He was too
gentle and too thoroughbred to taunt his friend with not following it
himself, which he might have done with bitter truth. Sir Simon was the
slave of habits and of weaknesses that it was far more necessary to
struggle against than Raymond’s harmless little foibles. There are some
men who spend one-half of their lives in cheating others, and the other
half in trying to cheat themselves. Sir Simon Harness was one of these.
Cheating is perhaps a hard word to apply to his efforts to keep up a
delusion which had grown so entirely his master that he could scarcely
see where the substance ended and where the shadow began. Yet his whole
life at present was a cheat. He had the reputation of being the largest
land-owner and the wealthiest man in that end of the county, and he
was, in reality, one of the poorest. The grand aim of his existence was
to live up to this false appearance, and prevent the truth from coming
out. It would be a difficult and useless undertaking to examine how
far he was originally to blame for the state of active falsehood into
which he and his circumstances had fallen. There is no doubt that his
father was to blame in the first instance. He had been a very splendid
old gentleman, Sir Alexander Harness, and had lived splendidly and died
heavily in debt, leaving the estate considerably mortgaged. He had not
been more than twenty years dead at the time I speak of, so that his son,
in coming into possession, found himself saddled with the paternal debts,
and with the confirmed extravagant habits of a lifetime. This made the
sacrifices which the payment of those debts necessitated seem a matter
of simple impossibility to him. The only thing to be done was to let the
Court for a term of years, send away the troops of misnamed servants
that encumbered the place, sell off the stud, and betake himself to the
Continent and economize. Thus he would have paid off his encumbrances,
and come back independent and easy in his mind. But, unluckily, strong
measures of this sort did not lie at all in Sir Simon’s way. He talked
about going abroad, and had some indefinite notion of “pulling in.” He
did run off to Paris and other continental places very frequently; but
as he travelled with a courier and a valet, and with all the expenses
inseparable from those adjuncts, the excursions did not contribute much
towards the desired result. Things went on at the Court in the old way;
the same staff of servants was kept up; the same number of parasites who,
under pretence of payment for some small debt, had lived in the Court for
years, until they came to consider they had a vested life-interest in the
property, were allowed to hang on. The new master of Dullerton was loath
to do such a shabby thing as to turn them out; and they were sure to die
off after a while. Then there was the stud, which Sir Alexander had been
so proud of. It had been a terrible expense to set it up, but, being up,
it was a pity to let it down; when things were going, they had a way of
keeping themselves going. There had always been open house at the Court
from time immemorial. In the shooting season people had come down, as a
matter of course, and enjoyed the jovial hospitalities of the old squire
ever since Dullerton had belonged to him. While his son was there he
could not possibly break through these old habits; they were as sacred
as the family traditions. By-and-by, when he saw his way to shutting up
the place and going abroad, it might be managed. Meanwhile, the old debts
were accumulating, and new ones were growing, and Sir Simon was beginning
less than ever to see his way to setting things right. If that tough old
Lady Rebecca Harness, his step-mother, would but take herself to a better
world, and leave him that fifty thousand pounds that reverted to him at
her demise, it would be a great mercy. But Lady Rebecca evidently was in
no hurry to try whether there was any pleasanter place than this best of
all possible worlds, and, in spite of her seventy years, was as hale as a
woman of forty. This was a trying state of things to the light-tempered,
open-handed baronet; but the greatest trial to him was the fear in
which he lived of being found out. He was at heart an upright man, and
it was his pride that men looked up to him as one whose character and
principles were, like Cæsar’s wife, above suspicion. He had lived up to
this reputation so far; but he was conscious of a growing fear that with
the increase of difficulties there was stealing on him a lessening of the
fine moral sense that had hitherto supported him under many temptations.
His embarrassments were creating a sort of mental fog around him; he was
beginning to wonder whether his theories about honesty were quite where
they used to be, and whether he was not getting on the other side of the
border-line between conscience and expediency. Outside it was still all
fair; he was the most popular man in the county, a capital landlord--in
fact, everybody’s friend but his own. The only person, except the family
lawyer, who was allowed to look at the other side of the picture, was
M. de la Bourbonais. Sir Simon was too sympathetic himself not to feel
the need of sympathy. He must occasionally complain of his hard fate to
some one, so he complained to Raymond. But Raymond, while he gave him
his sincerest sympathy, was very far from realizing the extent of the
troubles that called it forth. The baronet bemoaned himself in a vague
manner, denouncing people and things in a general sweep every now and
then; but between times he was as gay and contented as a man could be,
and Raymond knew far too little of the ways of the world and of human
nature to reconcile these conflicting evidences, and deduce from them
the facts they represented. He could not apprehend the anomaly of a sane
man, and a man of honor, behaving like a lunatic and a swindler; spending
treble his income in vanity and superfluity, and for no better purpose
than an empty bubble of popularity and vexation of spirit. Of late,
however, he had once or twice gained a glimpse into the mystery, and it
had given him a sharp pang, which Sir Simon no sooner perceived than he
hastened to dispel by treating his lamentations as mere irritability
of temper, assuring Raymond they meant nothing. But there was still an
uneasy feeling in the latter’s mind. It was chiefly painful to him for
Sir Simon’s sake, but it made him a little uncomfortable on his own
account. With Raymond’s punctilious notions of integrity, the man who
connived at wrong-doing, or in the remotest way participated in it, was
only a degree less culpable than the actual wrong-doer; and if Sir Simon
had come to the point of being hard up for a fifty-pound note to meet a
pressing bill, it was very unprincipled of him to be giving dinners with
Johannisberg and Tokay at twenty shillings a bottle, and very wrong of
his friends to aid and abet him in such extravagance. One day Sir Simon
came in with a clouded brow to unburden himself about a fellow who had
the insolence to write for the seventh time, demanding the payment of
his “little bill,” and, after a vehement tirade, wound up by asking
Raymond to go back and dine with him. “We’ll have up a bottle of your
favorite Château Margaux, and drink confusion to the duns and the speedy
extermination of the race,” said the baronet. “Come and cheer a fellow
up, old boy; nothing clears away the blue devils like discussing one’s
worries over a good glass of claret.” Raymond fought off, first on the
old plea that he hated going out, etc.; but, finding this would not
do, he confessed the truth. He hinted delicately that he did not feel
justified in allowing his friend to go to any expense on his account.
The innocence and infantine simplicity of this avowal sent Sir Simon
into such a hearty fit of laughter that Raymond felt rather ashamed of
himself, and began to apologize profusely for being so stupid and having
misunderstood, etc., and declared he would go and drink the bottle
of Château Margaux all to himself. But after this Sir Simon was more
reticent about his embarrassments; and as things went on at the Court in
the old, smooth, magnificent way, M. de la Bourbonais began to think it
was all right, and that his friend’s want of money must have been a mere
temporary inconvenience. In fact, he began to doubt this evening whether
it was not all a dream of his that Sir Simon had ever talked of being
“hard up.” When he entered the noble dining-room and looked around him,
it was difficult to believe otherwise. Massive silver and costly crystal
sparkled and flashed under a shower of light from the antique branching
chandelier; wax-lights clustered on the walls amidst solemn Rembrandt
heads, and fascinating Reynoldses, and wild Salvator Rosas, and tender
Claudes, and sunny Canalettos. It was not in nature that the owner of
all this wealth and splendor should know what it was to be in want of
money. Sir Simon, moreover, was in his element; and it would have puzzled
a spectator more versed than Raymond in the complex mechanism of the
human heart to believe that the brilliant host who was doing the honors
of his house so delightfully had a canker gnawing at his vitals. He
rattled away with the buoyant spirits of five-and-twenty; he was brimful
of anecdote, and bright with repartee. He drew every one else out. This
was what made him so irresistibly charming in society; it was not only
that he shone himself, but he had a knack of making other people shine.
He made the admiral tell stories of his seafaring life, he drew out Clide
about Afghanistan, and spirited M. de la Bourbonais into a quarrel with
him about the dates of the Pyramids; never flagging for a moment, never
prosing, but vaulting lightly from one subject to another, and all the
while leaving his guests under the impression that they were entertaining
him rather than he them, and that he was admiring them a vast deal more
than he admired himself. A most delightful host Sir Simon was.

“Nothing cheers a man up like the sight of an old friend! Eh, De Winton?”
he exclaimed, falling back in his chair, with a thumb thrust into each
waistcoat pocket, and his feet stretched out to their full length under
the mahogany, the picture of luxury, hospitality, and content.

“Much you know about it!” grunted the admiral, filling his glass--“a man
that never wanted to be cheered up in his life!”

Sir Simon threw back his head and laughed. It was wine to him to be
rated such a good fellow by his old college chum.

They kept it up till eleven o’clock, puffing their cigars on the terrace,
where the soft summer moon was shining beautifully on the fawns playing
under the silver spray of the fountain.

“I’ll walk home with you, Raymond,” said Sir Simon when the chime of the
stable-clock reminded the count that it was time for him to go.

It was about ten minutes’ walk to The Lilies through the park; but as the
night was so lovely, the baronet proposed they should take the longer way
by the road, and see the river by moonlight. They walked on for a while
without speaking. Raymond was enjoying the beauty of the scene, the gold
of the fields and the green of the meadows, all shining alike in silver,
the identity of the trees and flowers merged in uniform radiancy; he
fancied his companion was admiring it too, until the latter broke the
spell by an unexpected exclamation: “What an infernal bore money is, my
dear fellow! I mean the want of it.”

“Mon Dieu!” was the count’s astonished comment. And as Sir Simon said
nothing more, he looked up at him uneasily: “I thought things had come
all right again, mon cher?”

“They never were right; that’s the deuce of it. If I’d found them right,
I wouldn’t have been such an ass as to put them wrong. A man needn’t be
a saint or a philosopher to keep within an income of ten thousand pounds
a year; the difficulty is to live up to the name of it when you haven’t
got more than the fifth in reality. A man’s life isn’t worth a year’s
purchase with the worry these rascally fellows give one--a set of low
scoundrels that would suck your vitals with all the pleasure in life,
just because you happen to be a gentleman. Here’s that architect fellow
that ran up those stables last year, blustering and blowing about his
miserable twelve hundred pounds as if it was the price of a cathedral!
I told the fellow he’d have to wait for his money, and of course he was
all readiness and civility, anything to secure the job; and it’s no
sooner done than he’s down on me with a hue-and-cry. He must have his
money, forsooth, or else he’ll be driven to the painful necessity of
applying through his man of business. A fellow of his kind threatening
me with his man of business! The impertinence of his having a man of
business at all! But I dare say it’s a piece of braggadocio; he thinks
he’ll frighten the money out of me by giving himself airs and talking
big. I’ll see the scoundrel further! There’s no standing the impudence
of that class nowadays. Something must be done to check it. It’s a
disgrace to the country to see the way they’re taking the upper hand and
riding rough-shod over us. And mark my words if the country doesn’t live
to regret it! We landed proprietors are the bulwark of the state; and
if they let us be sent to the wall, they had better look to their own
moorings. Mark my words, Bourbonais!”

Bourbonais was marking his words, but he was too bewildered to make any
sense out of them. “I agree with you, mon cher, the lower orders are
becoming the upper ones in many ways; but what does that prove?”

“Prove! It proves there’s something rotten in the state of Denmark!”
retorted Sir Simon.

“But how does that affect the case in question? I mean what has it to do
with this architect’s bill?”

“It has this to do with it: that if this fellow’s father had attempted
the same impertinence with my father, he’d have been sent to the
right-about; whereas he may insult me, not only with impunity, but with
effect! That’s what it has to do with it. Public opinion has changed
sides since my father lived like a gentleman, and snapped his fingers at
these parasites that live by sucking our blood.”

Raymond knew that when Sir Simon got on the subject of the “lower”
orders and their iniquities, there was nothing for it but to give him
his head, and wait patiently till he pulled up of his own accord.
When at last the baronet drew breath, and was willing to listen, he
brought him back to the point, and asked what he meant to do about the
twelve-hundred-pound bill. Did he see his way to paying it? Sir Simon
did not. It was a curious fact that he never saw his way to paying a
bill until he had contracted it, and until his vision had been sharpened
by some disagreeable process like the present, which forced him to face
the alternative of paying or doing worse. These new stables had been a
necessary expense, it is true, and he was very forcible in reiterating
the fact to Raymond; but the latter had a provoking way of reverting
to first principles, as he called it, and, after hearing his friend’s
logical demonstration as to the absolute necessity which had compelled
him to build--the valuable horses that were being damaged by the damp of
the old stables; the impossibility of keeping up a hunting stud without
proper accommodations for horses and men; the economy that the outlay
was sure to be in the long run, the saving of doctor’s bills, etc.; the
“vet.” was never out of the house while the horses were lodged in the old
stables--M. de la Bourbonais said: “But, mon cher, why need you keep a
hunting stud, why keep horses at all, if you can’t afford it?”

This was a question that never crossed Sir Simon’s mind, or, if it did,
it was dismissed with such a peremptory snub that it never presented
itself again. It was peculiarly irritating to have it thrust on him now,
at a moment when he wanted some soothing advice to cheer him up. The
idea, put into words and spoken aloud by another, was, however, not as
easily ignored as when it passed silently through his own mind; it must
be answered, if only by shutting the door in its face.

“My dear Raymond,” said the baronet in his affectionate, patronizing way,
“you don’t quite understand the matter; you look at it too much from a
Frenchman’s point of view. You don’t make allowance for the different
conditions of society in this country. There are certain things, you see,
that a man must do in England; society exacts it of him. A gentleman must
live like a gentleman, or else he can’t hold his own. It isn’t a matter
of choice.”

“It seems to me it is, though,” returned Raymond. “He may choose between
his duty to his conscience and his duty to society.”

“You can’t separate them, my dear fellow; it’s not to be done in this
country. But that’s shifting the question too wide of the mark,” observed
Sir Simon, who began to feel it was being driven rather too close. “The
thing is, how am I to raise the wind to quiet this architect? It is too
late to discuss the wisdom of building the stables; they are built, and
they must be paid for.”

“Sell those two hunters that you paid five hundred pounds apiece for;
that will go a long way towards it,” suggested the count.

The proposition was self-evident, but that did not make it the more
palatable to Sir Simon. He muttered something about not seeing his way to
a purchaser just then. Raymond, however, pressed the matter warmly, and
urged him to set about finding one without delay. He brought forward a
variety of arguments to back up this advice, and to prove to his friend
that not only common sense and justice demanded that he should follow
it, but that, from a selfish point of view, it was the best thing he
could do. “Trust me,” he cried, “the peace of mind it will bring you
will largely compensate for the sacrifice.” Sacrifice! It sounded like a
mockery on Raymond de la Bourbonais’ lips to apply the word to the sale
of a couple of animals for the payment of a foolish debt; but Raymond,
whatever Sir Simon might say to the contrary, made large allowance for
their relative positions, and was very far from any thought of irony when
he called it a sacrifice.

“You’re right; you’re always right, Raymond,” said the baronet, leaning
his arm heavily on the count’s shoulder, and imperceptibly guiding him
closer to the river, that was flowing on like a message of peace in the
solemn, star-lit silence. “I’d be a happier man if I could take life as
you do, if I were more like you.”

“And had to black your own boots?” Raymond laughed gently.

“I shouldn’t mind a rap blacking my boots, if nobody saw me.”

“Ah! that’s just it! But when people are reduced to black their own
boots, they’re sure to be seen. The thing is to do it, and not care who
sees us.”

“That’s the rub,” said Sir Simon; and then they walked on without
speaking for a while, listening to a nightingale that woke up in a
willow-tree and broke the silence with a short, bright cadence, ending
in a trill that made the very shadows vibrate on the water. There is a
strange unworldliness in moonlight. The cold stars, tingling silently in
the deep blue peace so far above us, have a voice that rebukes the strife
of our petty passions more forcibly than the wisest sermon. The cares and
anxieties of our lives pale into the flimsy shadows that they are, when
we look at them in the glory of illuminated midnight heavens. What sheer
folly it all was, this terror of what the world would say of him if he
sold his hunters! Sir Simon felt he could laugh at the world’s surprise,
ay, or at its contempt, if it had met him there and then by the river’s
side, while the stars were shining down upon him.

“Simon,” said M. de la Bourbonais, stopping as they came within a few
steps of The Lilies, “I am going to ask you for a proof of friendship.”
He scarcely ever called the baronet by his name, and Sir Simon felt that,
whatever the proof in question was, it was stirring Raymond’s heart very
deeply to ask it.

“I thought we had got beyond _asking_ each other anything of that sort;
if I wanted a service from you, I should simply tell you so,” replied the
baronet.

“You are right. That is just what I feel about it. Well, what I want
to say is this: I have a hundred pounds laid by. I don’t want it at
present; there is no knowing when I may want it, so I will draw it
to-morrow and take it to you.” Raymond made his little announcement very
simply, but there was a tremor in his voice. Sir Simon hardly knew what
to say. It was impossible to accept, and impossible to refuse.

“It’s rather a good joke, my offering to lend you money!” said Raymond,
laughing and walking on as if he noticed nothing. “But you know the story
of the lion and the mouse.”

“Raymond, you’re a richer man than I am,” said Sir Simon; “a far happier
one,” he added in his own mind.

“Then you’ll take the hundred pounds?”

“Yes; that is to say, no. I can’t say positively at this moment; we’ll
talk it over to-morrow. You’ll come up early, and we’ll talk it over. You
see, I may not want it after all. If I get the full value of Nero and
Rosebud, I shouldn’t want it.”

“But you may not find a purchaser at once, and a hundred pounds would
keep this man quiet till you do,” suggested Raymond.

“My dear old boy!” said the baronet, grasping his hand--they were at the
gate now--“I ought to be ashamed to own it; but the fact is, Roxham--you
know Lord Roxham in the next county?--offered me a thousand pounds for
Rosebud only two days ago. I’ll write to him to-morrow and accept it. I
dare say he’d be glad to take the two.”

“Oh! how you unload my heart! Good-night, mon cher ami. A demain!” said
Raymond.

On his way home Sir Simon looked stern realities in the face, and came to
the determination that a change must be made; that it was not possible
to get on as he was, keeping up a huge establishment, and entertaining
like a man of ten thousand a year, and getting deeper and deeper into
debt every day. Raymond was right. Common sense and justice were the best
advisers, and it was better to obey their counsels voluntarily while
there was yet time than wait till it was too late, and he was driven to
extremities. This architect’s bill was a mere drop in the ocean; but it
is a drop that every now and then makes the flood run over, and compels
us to do something to stem the torrent. As Sir Simon turned it all in
his mind in the presence of the stars, he felt very brave about the
necessary measures of reform. After all, what did it signify what the
world said of him? Would the world that criticised him, perhaps voted
him a fool for selling his hunters, help him when the day of reckoning
came? What was it all but emptiness and vanity of vanities? He realized
this truth, as he sauntered home through the park, and stood looking
down over the landscape sleeping under the deep blue dome. Where might
he and his amusements and perplexities be to-morrow--that dim to-morrow,
that lies so near to each of us, poor shadows that we are, our life a
speck between two eternities? Sir Simon let himself in by a door on the
terrace, and then, instead of going straight to his room, went into the
library, and wrote a short note to Lord Roxham. It was safer to do it now
than wait till morning. The morning was a dangerous time with Sir Simon
for resolves like the present. It was ever to him a mystery of hope, the
awakening of the world, the setting right and cheering up of all things
by the natural law of resurrection.

The admiral and Clide had planned to leave next day; but the weather was
so glorious and the host was so genial that it required no great pressing
to make them alter their plans and consent to remain a few days longer.

“You know we are due at Bourbonais’ this evening,” said Sir Simon. “The
old lady will never forgive me if I disappoint her of cooking that omelet
for you.”

So it was agreed that they would sup at The Lilies, and M. de la
Bourbonais was requested to convey the message to Angélique when,
according to appointment, he came up early to the Court. He had no
opportunity of talking it over with Sir Simon; the admiral and Clide
were there, and other visitors dropped in and engaged his attention.
The baronet, however, contrived to set him quite at rest; the grasp of
his hand, and the smile with which he greeted his friend, said plainer
than words: “Cheer up, we’re all right again!” He was in high spirits,
welcoming everybody, and looking as cheerful as if he did not know what
a dun meant. He fully intended to whisper to Raymond that he had written
about the horses to Lord Roxham; but he was not able to do it, owing to
their being so surrounded.

“Do you ride much, Monsieur le Comte?” said Clide, coming to sit by
Raymond, who, he observed, stood rather aloof from the people who were
chatting together on common topics.

“No,” said Raymond; “I prefer walking, which is fortunate, as I don’t
possess a horse.”

“If you cared for it, that wouldn’t be an impediment, I fancy” said the
young man. “Sir Simon would be only too grateful to you for exercising
one of his. He has a capital stud. I’ve been looking at it this morning.
He’s a first-rate judge of horse-flesh.”

“That is the basis of an Englishman’s education, is it not?” said the
count playfully.

“Which accounts, perhaps, for the defects of the superstructure,” replied
Clide, laughing. “It is rather a hard hit at us, Monsieur le Comte; but
I’m afraid we deserve it. You have a good deal to put up with from us one
way or another, I dare say, to say nothing of our climate.”

“That is a subject that I never venture to touch on,” said Raymond, with
affected solemnity. “I found out long ago that his climate was a very
sore point with an Englishman, and that he takes any disrespect to it as
a personal offence.”

“A part of our general conceit,” observed Clide good-humoredly. “I’ve
been so long out of it that I almost forget its vices, and only remember
its virtues.”

“What are they?” inquired Raymond.

“Well, I count it a virtue in a wet day to hold out the hope to you of
seeing it clear up at any moment; whereas, in countries that are blessed
with a good climate, once the day sets in wet, you know your doom;
there’s nothing to hope for till to-morrow.”

“There is something in that, I grant you,” replied Raymond thoughtfully;
“but the argument works both ways. If the day sets in fine here, you
never know what it may do before an hour. In fact, it proves, what I have
long ago made up my mind to, that there is no climate in England--only
weather. Just now it is redeeming itself; I never saw a lovelier day in
France. Shall we come out of doors and enjoy it?”

They stepped out on to the terrace, and turned from the flowery parterre,
with its fountain flashing in the sunlight, into a shady avenue of
lime-trees.

Clide felt very little interest in Raymond’s private opinion of the
climate. He wanted to make him talk of himself, as a preliminary to talk
of his daughter; and, as usual when we want to lead up to a subject, he
could hit on nothing but the most irrelevant commonplaces. Chance finally
came to his rescue in the shape of a stunted palm-tree that was obtruding
its parched leaves through the broken window of a neglected orangery. Sir
Simon had had a hobby about growing oranges at the Court, and had given
it up, like so many other hobbies, after a while, and the orangery, that
had cost so much money for a time, was standing forlorn and half-empty
near the flower-garden, a trophy of its owner’s fickle purpose and
extravagance.

“Poor little abortion!” exclaimed the count, pointing to the starved
palm-tree, “it did not take kindly to its exile.”

“Exile is a barren soil to most of us,” said Clide. “We generally prove a
failure in it.”

“I suppose because we are a failure when we come to it,” replied Raymond.
“We seldom try exile until life has failed to us at home.” He looked up
with a quick smile as he said this, and Clide answered him with a glance
of intelligent and respectful sympathy. As the two men looked into each
other’s face, it was as if some intangible barrier were melting away, and
confidence were suddenly being established in its place.

Clide had never pronounced his wife’s name since the day he had let his
head drop on the admiral’s breast, and abandoned himself to the passion
of his boyish grief. It was as if the recollection of his marriage and
its miserable ending had died and been buried with Isabel. The admiral
had often wondered how one so young could be so self-contained, wrapping
himself in such an impenetrable reserve. The old sailor was not given
to speculating on mental phenomena as a rule; but he had given this
particular one many a five minutes’ cogitation, and the conclusion he
arrived at was that either Clide had taken the matter less to heart than
he imagined, and so felt no need of the solace of talking over his loss,
or that the sense of humiliation which attached to the memory of Isabel
was so painful to him, as a man and a De Winton, that he was unwilling to
recur to it. There may have been something of this latter feeling mixed
up with the other impalpable causes that kept him mute; but to-day, as he
paced up and down under the fragrant shade of the lime-trees with M. de
la Bourbonais, a sudden desire sprang up in him to speak of the past, and
evoke the sympathy of this man, who had suffered, perhaps, more deeply
than himself. They were silent for a few minutes, but a subtle, magnetic
sympathy was at work between them.

“I too have had my little glimpse of paradise, only to be turned out,
like so many others, to finish my pilgrimage alone,” said Raymond
abruptly.

“No, not alone,” retorted Clide; “you have a daughter, who must be a
great delight to you.”

“Ah! you are right. I was ungrateful to say alone; but you can
understand that that other solitude can never be filled up. That is to
say,” he added, looking up with a brightening expression in his keen
eyes, that sparkled under projecting brows, made more prominent by bushy
black eyebrows, “not at my age; at yours it is different. When sorrow
comes to a man at the close of his half-century, it is too late to plant
again; he cannot begin life anew. There is no future for him but courage
and resignation. But at your age everything is a beginning. While we are
young, no matter how dark the sky is, the future looks bright; to-morrow
is always full of hope and glad surprises when we are young.”

“I don’t feel as if I were young,” said Clide; “it seems to me as if I
had outlived my youth. You know there are experiences that do the work of
years quite as well as time; that make us old prematurely?”

“I know it, I can believe it,” replied Raymond; “but nevertheless the
spring of youth remains. It only wants the help of time to heal its
wounds and restore its power of working and enjoying.”

The young man shook his head incredulously.

“You don’t believe it yet; but you will find it out by-and-by,” insisted
Raymond; “that is, if you wish it and strive for it. We are most of us
asleep until sorrow wakes us up and stings us into activity; then we
begin to live really, and to work.”

“Then I’m afraid I have been awakened to no purpose,” remarked Clide
rather bitterly. “I certainly have not begun to work.”

“Perhaps unawares you have all this time been preparing yourself for
work--for some appointed task that you would never have been fitted for
without the experiences of the last years.”

“Well, perhaps you are right,” assented his companion. They walked on
through the flower-beds for a few moments without speaking. Then Raymond
broke the silence: “Why should you go away again, wandering about the
Continent, and indulging in morbid memories, when you have such a
noble mission before you at home! Youth, intelligence, and a splendid
patrimony--what a field of usefulness lies before you! Is it permitted
to leave any field untilled when the laborers are so few?” The same
thought had occurred to Clide during the last twenty-four hours with
a persistency that he was not very earnest in repelling. “Indulging
in morbid memories!” That was what his step-mother was now constantly
reproaching him with. He resented it from her; but Raymond did not excite
his resentment. It was too much as if a father were expostulating with
his son. The paternal tone of the remonstrance called, moreover, for
fuller confidence on his part, and, yielding to the fascination of the
sympathy that was drawing him on and on, he resolved there and then to
give it. He told M. de la Bourbonais the history of his life from the
beginning: his loveless childhood, his boyhood, starved of all spiritual
food, his youth’s wild passion, the loneliness of his later years, and
his present dissatisfied longings. He laid bare all that inner life he
had never unfolded to any human being before. It was a touching and
desolate picture enough, and one that called out Raymond’s tenderest
interest and compassion. He listened to the story with that breathless,
undivided attention that made Sir Simon so delight in him as a listener;
answering by an inarticulate exclamation now and then, interrupting here
and there to put in a question that showed how closely he was following
every turn in the narrative, and how fully and completely he understood
and entered into every phase of feeling the speaker described. When
Clide had finished, he seemed to understand himself better than he had
ever done before. Every question of the listener seemed to throw a new
and stronger light on what he was telling him; it was like a key opening
unexpected mysteries in the past and in his own mind, showing him how
from the very starting his whole theory of life had been a mistake. Life
was now for the first time put under the laws of truth, and through
that transparent medium every act and circumstance showed altogether
differently; hidden meanings came out of what had hitherto been mere
blots, what he had called accidents and mischances; every detail had a
form and color of its own, and fitted into the whole like the broken
pieces of a puzzle. He had been learning and training all the time while
he fancied he was only suffering; he had unawares been drinking in that
moral strength that is only to be gained in wrestling with sorrow. The
revelation was startling; but Clide frankly acknowledged it, and in
so doing felt that he was tacitly committing himself to the new line
of conduct which must logically follow on this admission, if it was
worth anything. There must be an end of sentimental regrets and morbid
despondings. He must, as Raymond said, begin to practise the lesson he
had paid so dear to learn; he must begin to live and to work; he must,
by faithfulness and courage in the future, atone for the folly and
selfishness of the past.

It may appear strange, perhaps incredible, that a mere passing contact
with a stranger should have so suddenly revealed all this to Clide,
stirred him so deeply, and impelled him to a definite resolution that was
to change the whole current of his life. But which of us cannot trace to
some apparently chance meeting, some word heedlessly uttered, and perhaps
not intended for us, a momentous epoch in our lives? We can never tell
who may be the bearer of the burning message to us, nor in what unknown
tongue it may be spoken. All that matters to us is that we hearken to it,
and follow where the messenger beckons. M. de la Bourbonais had no idea
that he was performing this office to Clide; nor did anything that he
actually said justify the young man in looking upon him in the light of
a herald or an interpreter. It was something rather in the man himself
that did it; a voice that spoke unconsciously in his voice. There is a
power in truth and simplicity more potent than any eloquence; and truth
and simplicity radiated from Raymond like an atmosphere. His presence
had a light in it that impressed you insensibly with the right view of
things, and dissipated worldliness and selfishness and morbid delusions
as the sun clears away the mists. Perhaps along with this immediate
influence there was another one which acted unawares on Clide, adding to
the pressure of Raymond’s pleading the softer incentive of an ideal yet
possible reward.

TO BE CONTINUED.


DRAPER’S CONFLICT BETWEEN RELIGION AND SCIENCE.[54]

The author of this volume became known to the public of New York a little
over twenty years ago through a hand-book of chemistry, written at a
time when that science was emerging into its present maturity. Almost
simultaneously appeared from his pen a treatise on _Human Physiology_,
when it likewise was running a swift race to its splendid proportions
of to-day, impelled by the labors of Claude Bernard, Beaumont, and
Bichat. Those works were received at the time with much favor by American
teachers of both named sciences as being clear and succinct compilations
of the labors of European investigators, while containing some original
observations of undoubted scientific merit. Thus, the perception of the
influence of endosmosis and exosmosis on the functions of respiration and
circulation, and the reference of pitch, quality, and intensity of sound
to different portions of the anatomical structure of the ear, constitute
a valid claim, on Draper’s part, as a contributor to modern physiology.
As a chemist, though painstaking and observant, he failed to keep pace
with European researches, and so his book has been superseded in our
schools and colleges by later and more thorough productions. Indeed, it
may be said that his work on physiology likewise is rapidly becoming
obsolete, its popularity having ceded place to the excellent treatises of
Dalton and Austin Flint, Jr.

Had he in time recognized his exclusive fitness for experimental
chemistry and physiology, his name might rank to-day with those of Liebig
and Lehmann; but some disturbing idiosyncrasy or malevolent influence
inspired him with the belief that he was destined for higher pursuits,
and he burned to emulate Gibbon and Buckle. On the heels of the late
civil war, accordingly, appeared from his ambitious pen a book with the
pretentious title of _History of the American Civil War_, in which he
strove to prove that the agencies which precipitated that sad quarrel
dated back a thousand years; that thermal bands having separated the
North from the South, the two sections could not agree; that the conflict
is not yet over, and will be ended only when both sides recognize the
East as the home of science, and make their salam to the rising sun. We
speak not in jest; the book, we believe, is still extant, and may be
consulted by the curious in such matters. Though the _History of the
American Civil War_ did not meet with flattering success, the new apostle
of Islamism was not discouraged. No more trustworthy as a historian than
Macaulay, he lacked the _verve_ and eloquence of that brilliant essayist,
and his bantling fell into an early decline.

But there still was Buckle, in another department of intellectual
activity, whom it might be vouchsafed him to outsoar; and so,
Dædalus-like, having readjusted his wings by means of a fresh supply
of wax, he took a swoop into the _Intellectual Development of Europe_
with precisely the results which befell his classical prototype. Here
indeed was a wide field for the display of that peculiar philosophy of
his which anathematizes the _Pentateuch_ and the pope, and apotheosizes
the locomotive and the loom. Accordingly, we find the _Development_ to
be a bitter attack on the church and all ecclesiastical institutions,
with alternate rhapsodical praises of material progress and scientific
discoveries.

In the view taken by Dr. Draper the Papacy defeated the kindly intents
of the mild-mannered Mahomet; but with the death of Pio Nono or some
immediate successor the pleasant doctrines of Averroës and Buddha will
reassert themselves, and we shall all finally be absorbed in the great
mundane soul. As we have said, in alluding to the _History of the
American Civil War_, these are not mere idle words; they carry their
black and white attestation in every page of the work referred to.

But we must hasten to the volume under review. It is entitled _History
of the Conflict between Religion and Science_. The title of the book is
indeed the fittest key to its purpose. It predicates this conflict on
the first page; it assumes it from the start, and, instead of proving
its existence, interprets statements and misstatements by the light of
that assumption. Of this the reader is made painfully aware from the very
outset, and his sense of logic and fair play is constantly shocked by the
distortion of very many historical facts and the truthful presentment of
a few in support of what is a plain and palpable assumption. The book is
therefore a farrago of falsehoods, with an occasional ray of truth, all
held together by the slender thread of a spurious philosophy.

In the preface the author promises to be impartial, and scarcely has he
proceeded eight short pages in his little volume before a cynical and
sneering spirit betrays him into errors which a Catholic Sunday-school
child would blush to commit. On page 8 he says: “Immaculate Conceptions
and celestial descents were so currently received in those days that
whoever had greatly distinguished himself in the affairs of men was
thought to be of supernatural lineage.” And a little further on: “The
Egyptian disciples of Plato would have looked with anger on those
who rejected the legend that Perictione, the mother of that great
philosopher, a pure virgin, had suffered an immaculate conception.” This
is but a forestalment of the wrath held in store by our author for the
dogma proclaimed in 1854, a derisive comparison of it with the gross
myths of the superstitious Greeks. And yet how conspicuous does not the
allusion render his ignorance of the Catholic doctrine! For evidently
the reference to a pure virgin subjected to an immaculate conception
through the agency of a God reveals Draper’s belief that the Catholic
dogma of the Immaculate Conception consists in the conception of Christ
in the womb of the Virgin Mary without human intervention. Surely some
malign agent had warped his judgment when he assumed to expound Catholic
doctrine; had

    “Made the eye blind, and closed the passages
    Through which the ear converses with the heart.”

But this is not the only point concerning which we would refer persons
curious about Catholic doctrines to Dr. Draper, and those who would
like to become acquainted with Catholic tenets never promulgated
by any council from Nice to the Vatican. On two occasions, speaking
of Papal Infallibility, he distinctly avers that it is the same as
omniscience! On page 352 he says: “Notwithstanding his infallibility,
which implies omniscience, His Holiness did not foresee the issue of
the Franco-Prussian war.” And again on page 361: “He cannot claim
infallibility in religious affairs, and decline it in scientific.
Infallibility embraces all things. If it holds good for theology, it
necessarily holds good for science.” Here is Catholic doctrine _à la_
Draper! Presumptuous reader, be not deluded by the belief that the
Vatican Council expressly confines infallibility to purely doctrinal
matters; it could not have done so! Does not Dr. Draper as explicitly
affirm that the dogma of infallibility implies omniscience? His
individual experience no doubt had much to do with his extension of
the term; for, knowing himself to be a good chemist and physiologist,
he doubted not that by the same title he was a sound philosopher and
a keen-eyed observer of events. If it holds good in chemistry and
physiology, it necessarily holds good in philosophy and history. It is a
renewal of the old belief of the Stoics, as expounded by Horace, who says
that the wise man is a capital shoemaker and barber, alone handsome and a
king. But these are blemishes which assume even the appearance of bright
spots shining out by contrast with the deeper darkness which they stud.

The radical error of the book is twofold. It first confounds with the
Catholic Church a great number of singular subjects to which that
universal predicate cannot be applied, loosely and vaguely referring to
this incongruous chimera a great number of acts which cannot be imputed
to the church at all in any proper sense. It next makes the mistake of
applying the standard of estimation which is justly applicable only
to the present time to epochs long past and in many respects diverse
from it. For instance, the personal acts of prelates are referred to
the church considered as an infallible tribunal. Only an ignoramus in
theology needs to be informed that the infallible church is the body of
the episcopate teaching or defining in union with the head, or the head
of the episcopate teaching and defining, as the principal organ of the
body, that which is explicitly or implicitly contained in the revealed
deposit of faith. Administration of affairs, decisions of particular
cases, private opinions and personal acts, even official acts which are
not within the category above stated, do not pertain to the sphere of
infallibility; therefore when Dr. Draper charges against the church acts
which are worthy of censure, or which are by him so represented, and
we detect in the case the absence of some one condition requisite to
involve the church in the sense stated, we retort that he either knows
not what he says or is guilty of wilful misrepresentation. Yet his book
is an unbroken tissue of such charges. And not only are those charges
improperly alleged, but they are for the most part substantially false.

At a time, for instance, when the placid influence of Christianity had
not supplanted in men’s hearts the fierce passions which ages of paganism
had nurtured there, a band of infuriated monks murdered and tore to
pieces the celebrated Hypatia, in resentment of some real or fancied
affront offered to S. Cyril The crime was indeed unpardonable, and
perhaps S. Cyril was remiss in its punishment; but we might as well lay
to the charge of the New York Academy of Medicine the revolting deeds
perpetrated by individual members of the medical profession, as hold the
church accountable for this crime. Both organizations have repeatedly
expressed their abhorrence of what morality condemns, and it is only
fair that the one as well as the other be judged by its authoritative
teachings and practices. Yet Dr. Draper draws from his quiver on this
occasion the sharpest of arrows to bury in the bosom of that church which
could stain her escutcheon by this wanton attack on philosophy. “Hypatia
and Cyril! Philosophy and bigotry! They cannot exist together.” Do not
the melodramatic surroundings with which Draper’s graphic pen invests
the murder of this woman readily suggest an episode in the history of a
certain knight of rueful mien when he charged a flock of sheep, believing
that he saw before him “the wealthy inhabitants of Mancha crowned
with golden ears of corn; the ancient offspring of the Goths cased in
iron; those who wanton in the lazy current of Pisverga, those who feed
their numerous flocks in the ample plains where the Guadiana pursues
its wandering course--in a word, half a world in arms”? He charges,
and behold seven innocent sheep fall victims to his prowess. Flushed
with this victory, and covetous of fresh laurels, our author whets
his blade for another thrust at that most odious of doctrines--Papal
Infallibility. The management of the attack will serve as a specimen of
Dr. Draper’s mode of critical warfare; it will show how neatly he puts
forward assertion for proof, and in what a spirit of calm and dignified
philosophy he concludes the case against the church.

A compatriot of his, who had changed the homely name of Morgan for the
more resonant one of Pelagius, feeling that the confines of the little
isle which gave him birth were too narrow for a soul swelling with
polemics, hied to Rome, where his theological fervor was speedily cooled
by Pope Innocent I. Pelagius denied the Catholic doctrine of grace,
asserting the sufficiency of nature to work out salvation. S. Augustine
pointed out the errors of Pelagius and of his associate, Celestius, which
were accordingly condemned by Pope Innocent. If we accept Dr. Draper as
an authority in ecclesiastical history, a much-vexed question connected
with this very intricate affair is readily solved, and we are taught
to understand how indiscreet were the fathers of the Vatican Council
in decreeing the infallibility of the pope. He says: “It happened that
at this moment Innocent died, and his successor, Zosimus, annulled his
judgment and declared the opinions of Pelagius to be orthodox. These
contradictory decisions are still often referred to by the opponents of
Papal Infallibility.”

Now, so far from this being the case, Zosimus, after a considerable
time of charitable waiting, to give Celestius an opportunity of
reconsidering his errors and being reconciled to the church, formally
repeated the condemnation pronounced by his predecessor, and effectually
stamped out Pelagianism as a formidable heresy. But since our weight
and calibre are so much less than Dr. Draper’s as not to allow our
assertion to pass for proof, we will dwell a moment on the historical
details of the controversy. Before the death of Innocent, Celestius
had entered a protest against his accuser, Paulinus, on the ground of
misrepresentation, but did not follow up his protest by personally
appearing at Rome. The succession of the kind-hearted Zosimus and the
absence of Paulinus appeared to him a favorable opportunity for doing
this, and he accordingly wrote to Zosimus for permission to present
himself. Though the pope was engrossed at the time by the weighty cares
of the universal church, his heart yearned to bring back the repentant
Celestius to the fold of Christ, and he accorded to him a most patient
hearing. Only a fragment of Celestius’ confession remains, but we
have the testimony of three unsuspected witnesses, because determined
anti-Pelagians, concerning the part taken in the matter by the pope.
S. Augustine says: “The merciful pontiff, seeing at first Celestius
carried away by the heat of passion and presumption, hoped to win him
over by kindness, and forbore to fasten more firmly the bands placed
on him by Innocent. He allowed him two months for deliberation.”
Elsewhere S. Augustine says (_Epist. Paulin._, const. 693, _Labbé_, t.
2) that Celestius replied to the interrogatories of the pope in these
terms: “I condemn in accordance with the sentence of your predecessor,
Innocent of blessed memory.” Marius Mercator, who lived at the time of
these occurrences, says that Celestius made the fairest promises and
returned the most satisfactory answers, so that the pope was greatly
prepossessed in his favor (_Labbé_, t. 2, coll. 1512). Zosimus at length
saw through the devices of the wily Celestius, who, like all dangerous
heretics, desired to maintain his errors while retaining communion
with the church, and, in a letter written to the bishops of Africa,
formally reiterated against Pelagius and his adherents the condemnation
of the African Council. Only fragments of the letter remain, but we
know that thereafter some of the most violent Pelagians submitted to
the Holy See. With what imposing dignity Dr. Draper waves aside these
facts, and coolly asserts that Zosimus annulled the judgment of his
predecessor, and declared the opinions of Pelagius to be orthodox! But
this is only a sample of similar flagrant misstatements in which the
book abounds. For even immediately after, referring to Tertullian’s
eloquent statement of the principles of Christianity, he says that it
is marked by a complete absence of the doctrines of original sin, total
depravity, predestination, grace, and atonement, and that therefore these
doctrines had not been broached up to this time. Certainly not all of
them, for the church does not teach the doctrine of total depravity;
but the statement, being of the nature of a negative proof, possesses
no value, and only shows on how slender a peg our author is ready to
hang a damaging assertion against the church. Having thus triumphantly
demonstrated that Tertullian is not the author of the doctrine of the
fall of man, he recklessly lays it at the door of the illustrious Bishop
of Hippo. He says: “It is to S. Augustine, a Carthaginian, that we are
indebted for the precision of our views on these important points.” We
wonder did Dr. Draper ever read these words of S. Paul to the Romans:
“Wherefore as by one man sin entered into this world and by sin death:
and so death passed upon all men, in whom all have sinned” (Epist. Rom.
v. 12). Yet S. Paul lived before Tertullian or S. Augustine. Draper
next sententiously adds: “The doctrine declared to be orthodox by
ecclesiastical authority is overthrown by the unquestionable discoveries
of modern science. Long before a human being had appeared upon the
earth, millions of individuals--nay, more, thousands of species, and
even genera--had died; those which remain with us are an insignificant
fraction of the vast hosts that have passed away.” Admirably reasoned! A
million or more megatheria and megalosauri floundered for a while in the
marshes of an infant world, and died; therefore Adam was not the first
man to die, for through him death did not enter into the world. Had S.
Paul anticipated the honor of a dissection at the hands of so eminent
a wielder of the scalpel, he no doubt would have stated in his Epistle
that when he spoke of death entering into the world through the sin of
one man, he meant, not death to frogs and snakes, or bats and mice, but
death to human beings alone. He would thus have helped Dr. Draper to
the avoidance of one exegetical error at least. Another assertion of
illimitable reaches rapidly follows: “Astronomy, geology, geography,
anthropology, chronology, and indeed all the various departments of human
knowledge, were made to conform to the Book of Genesis”; that is to say,
ecclesiastical authority prohibits us from seeking elsewhere than in the
pages of Holy Writ such knowledge as is contained in Gray’s _Anatomy_
or Draper’s _Chemistry_ and _Physiology_. Where are your _pièces
justificatives_ for this monstrous assertion, Dr. Draper? Did not the
church, in the heyday of her temporal power, warn Galileo not to invoke
the authority of the Scriptures in support of his doctrine for the reason
that they were not intended to serve as a guide in purely scientific
matters? And here indeed is the true key to the conflict between that
philosopher and the church. Has not the same sentiment, moreover, been
explicitly affirmed by every commentator from S. Augustine himself down
to Maldonatus and Cornelius à Lapide, when considering chapter x. verse
13 of the Book of Josue? Not a single document, extant or lost, can be
referred to as justifying Draper’s extraordinary assertion that the
Book of Genesis, “in a philosophical point of view, became the grand
authority of patristic science.” Of course it is readily perceived that
the term patristic science, as used by Dr. Draper, is not the science
commonly known as patrology, but natural science, as understood and
taught by the fathers. Chief among those whose officious intermeddling in
scientific matters excites the spleen of Dr. Draper is, as before stated,
S. Augustine, Bishop of Hippo. “No one,” he says, “did more than this
father to bring science and religion into antagonism; it was mainly he
who diverted the Bible from its true office, a guide to purity of life,
and placed it in the perilous position of being the arbiter of human
knowledge, an audacious tyranny over the mind of man.” The rash dogmatism
of these words scarcely consists with the spirit Draper arrogates to
himself--the spirit of calm impartiality. So far from having striven to
make Scripture the arbiter of science, S. Augustine studied to bring
both into harmony, and, with this end in view, put the most liberal
interpretation on those passages of Holy Writ which might conflict with,
as yet, unmade scientific discoveries. For this reason he hints at the
possibility of the work of creation extending over indefinite periods of
time, as may, he says, be maintained consistently with the meaning of
the Syro-Chaldaic word which stands indifferently for day and indefinite
duration. The saint’s chief anxiety is to uphold the integrity of the
Book of Genesis against the numerous attacks of pagan philosophers and
paganizing Christians. The necessity of doing this was paramount at
the time, for the Jews and their doctrines were exceedingly obnoxious
to Christian and Gentile; and since the church recognized the divine
inspiration of the Hebrew Scriptures, the task of vindicating their
genuineness devolved on her theologians. But Dr. Draper overlooks this
essential fact, and places S. Augustine in the totally false light of
wantonly belittling science by making it square with the letter of the
Bible. But it is not as a censor alone of S. Augustine’s opinions that
Dr. Draper means to figure; he follows him into the domain of dogmatic
theology, and, having there erected a tribunal, cites him to its bar. He
quotes at length the African bishop’s views on the fundamental dogmas
of the Trinity and creation, having modestly substituted Dr. Pusey’s
translation for his own. The saint expresses his awe and reverence in
face of the wondrous power and incomprehensible works of the Creator,
and Dr. Draper calls him rhetorical and rhapsodical. No wonder. The mind
becomes subdued to the shape in which it works; and since the vigorous
years of Dr. Draper’s life were spent in the laboratory, investigating
secondary causes and the properties of matter, it is not to be supposed
that he can enter at once into close sympathy with souls which have fed
on spiritual truths.

    “What’s Hecuba to him, or he to Hecuba?”

But the crowding errors of the book warn us to hasten forward.

Having consigned S. Augustine to never-ending oblivion, our untiring
athlete of the pen eloquently sketches step by step the progressive
paganization of Christianity. The first thing to be done, he says, was
to restore the worship of Isis by substituting for that _numen_ the
Blessed Virgin Mary. This substitution was accomplished by the Council
of Ephesus, which declared Mary to be the Mother of God, and condemned
the contradicting proposition of Nestorius. Is it proper to treat this
_niaiserie_ with irony or indignation? We will do neither, but will
respectfully refer Dr. Draper either to Rohrbacher’s _History of the
Church_, or Orsini’s _Devotion to the Blessed Virgin_, to convince
him of the priority of this devotion to the times of S. Cyril and
Nestorius. The matter is too elementary and well known to justify us in
occupying more space with its consideration. Therefore, passing over
frivolous charges of this sort, let us seize the underlying facts in
this alleged paganization of Christianity. The church does not teach
the doctrine of complete spiritual blindness, and is willing to admit
on the part of pagans the knowledge of many religious truths in the
natural order. Prominent among these is a belief in the existence of God,
the immortality of the soul, and a system of rewards and punishments
in the future life. The propositions of De Lamennais, refusing to pure
reason the power of establishing these truths, were formally condemned
by Gregory XVI. In addition, it is part of theological teaching that
certain portions of the primitive revelation made to the patriarchs
flowed down through succeeding generations, corrupted, it is true, and
sadly disfigured, yet substantially identical, and tinged the various
systems of belief in vogue among the nations of the earth. It is almost
unnecessary to point out the numberless analogies which exist between
the Hebrew doctrines and the myths of Grecian and Roman polytheism. The
unity of God was universally symbolized by the admission of a supreme
being, to whom the other deities were subject. The fall of man, a
flooded earth and a rescued ark find their fitting counterparts in the
traditions of most races. Here, then, we find one source of possible
agreement between Christianity and the pagan system without resorting to
Dr. Draper’s ingenious process of gradual paganization. If, before the
Christian revelation, human reason could have partially lifted the veil
which hides another life, and if a defiled current of tradition could
have borne on its bosom fragments of a primitive revelation, surely it is
not necessary to suppose a compromise between Christianity and paganism
by virtue of which the former finds itself in accord on certain points
with the latter. But a still stronger reason for the alleged resemblances
and analogies between the two systems may be found in the common nature
of those who accepted them. There is no sentiment in the human heart more
potent than veneration, especially as its objects ascend in the scale of
greatness. Man’s first impulse is to bow the head before the grandeur of
nature’s mighty spectacles, before the rushing cataract and the sweeping
storm, and to adore the Being whose voice is heard in the tempest, who
dwells in a canopy of clouds and rides on the wings of the wind. Filled
with this sentiment, he builds temples, he offers sacrifices, eucharistic
and propitiatory, he consecrates his faculties to the service of his
God, and applauds those of his fellows who, yielding to a still higher
reverential influence, devote themselves in a special manner to the
promotion of the divine glory and honor.

For this reason not only the Vestal Virgins themselves deemed celibacy
an honorable privilege which drew them nearer to the Deity, and gloried
in its faithful practice, if history is at all truthful; but their
self-sacrifice invested them with a special halo in the eyes of the
multitude. Had Dr. Draper shared the ennobling sentiments of these pagan
women, he would never have uttered the base slander on humanity--which
puts his own manhood to the blush, and brands the warm-blooded days of
his single life--that “public celibacy is private wickedness.”

Animated by the same sentiment of rendering all things subject to the
Divinity, men consecrated to him the fruits of the earth, and invoked
his blessing on the seedling buried in the soil. Familiar objects became
typical of divine attributes, as water of the purity of Diana, and salt
of the incorruptibility of Saturn; hence the sprinkling of the _aqua
lustralis_ among the Romans on all solemn occasions, and the use of salt
in their sacrifices. Even the scattering of a little dust on the forehead
was to them expressive of the calm and tranquillity of death succeeding
to the storms and passions of life. No doubt, had Dr. Draper recalled
those lines of Virgil:

    “Hi motus animorum atque hæc certamina tanta
    Pulveris exigui jactu compressa quiescunt,”

he would, in accordance with his peculiar logic, have perceived in the
ceremonies of Ash-Wednesday another instance of a return to paganism.
Without entering at greater length into those spontaneous expressions
of reverence towards the Deity which abound in every religious system,
and which well up from the human heart as a necessary confession of its
dependence on a higher cause, we will hasten to the conclusion, implied
in them, that there is an identity of external worship in all religions
which, so far, proclaims an identity of origin. What, therefore, Dr.
Draper pronounces to be a paganization of Christianity is nothing more
than acceptance by it of those features of older creeds which are founded
on truth, and spring from the constitution of human nature.

What though the Romans did pay homage to Lares and Penates, to river
gods and tutelary deities; should that fact stigmatize as idolatrous or
heathenish the reverence exhibited by Christians towards the Blessed
Virgin and the saints? Does not the fact rather indicate, by its very
universality, that it is part of the divine economy, and that such
worship best represents the wants of the human heart? Assuredly, this
is not intended as a vindication of pagan practices, but aimed to show
that, in the struggles of the human heart to satisfy its cravings, an
undeserting instinct guides it along a path which, however tortuous and
winding, leads in the end to truth. Draper’s charge of paganization in
all respects resembles Voltaire’s assertion that Christianity is a
counterfeit of Buddhism.

That noted infidel contended that celibacy, monasticism, mendicity,
voluntary poverty, humility, and mortification of the senses, were so
many features of Buddhism unblushingly borrowed by the Christian Church.
But, like the other misstatements of Voltaire, made through pure love of
mischief, this one has been refuted time and again. It has been shown
that the ethics of Buddha flow from the dogma that ignorance, passion,
and desire are the root of all evil, and, this principle granted,
nothing could be more natural than the moral system thence resulting.
In the Christian code, on the contrary, purity, voluntary poverty, and
mortification of the senses are practised for their own sake; not for the
purpose of enlightenment or the extirpation of ignorance, but that our
natures may thereby become purified. No matter, therefore, how strong
and striking analogies may be, the difference in principle destroys the
theories of Voltaire and Draper; for similar consequences often proceed
from widely differing premises. We see this fact impressively exhibited
in the practice of auricular confession as it exists among the followers
of Gautama. According to them, the evil tendencies of the human heart
are manifold and varied, and, to be successfully combated, must be
divided into classes. Thus the sin of sensuality admits of a division
into excess at table and concupiscence of the flesh, the latter being in
turn subdivided into lust of the eye and lust of the body, evil thoughts,
evil practices, etc. We have here in reality a true system of casuistry.
Faults should be confessed with sorrow and an accompanying determination
not to repeat them; nay, even wrongs must be repaired as far as
possible, and stolen property be restored. Such are the views which have
been firmly held by the disciples of Buddha from time immemorial. Thus
we find confession and its concomitant practices established among the
Buddhists on grounds of pure reason; and surely the fact is no argument
against the same practice in the Christian Church, nor does the existence
of the practice among Christians necessarily denote a Buddhic origin. The
explanation is still the same that practices and beliefs founded on the
wants of human nature are universal, circumscribed neither by church nor
creed. We believe, therefore, that Dr. Draper’s philosophy of gradual
paganization is not tenable; and if we strip it of a certain veneer
of elegant verbiage, we shall find a rather dull load of unsupported
assertion beneath:

    “Desinit in piscem mulier formosa superne.”

The whole account of this pretended paganization breathes a spirit of
bitterness and malignity that makes one perforce smile at the title-page
of the book, on which is inscribed the name of that sweet daughter of
philosophy, Science. The reader is constantly startled by volleys of
assertions, contemptuous, blasphemous, ironical, and derisive. Indeed,
it may be said that hatred of Catholic doctrine and usages is the
attendant demon of Dr. Draper’s life, the wraith that haunts him day and
night. He says that it was for the gratification of the Empress Helena
the Saviour’s cross was discovered; that when the people embraced the
knees of S. Cyril after the Blessed Virgin was declared Mother of God,
it was the old instinct peeping out--their ancestors would have done
the same for Diana; that the festival of the Purification was invented
to remove the uneasiness of heathen converts on account of the loss
of their _Lupercalia_, or feasts of Pan; that quantities of dust were
brought from the Holy Land, and sold at enormous prices as antidotes
against devils, etc., _ad nauseam_. Through all this rodomontade we
perceive not a single attempt at proof, only an unbroken tissue of
unsupported assertion. It is said; it is openly stated; there is a belief
that--these are Draper’s usual formularies whenever an obscure but impure
and blasphemous tradition is related by him. When, however, he surpasses
himself in obscenity, he drops even this thin disguise of reasoning,
and boldly asserts. But with matter of this sort we will not stain our
pages. Indeed, these vile and obscure traditions seem to have a special
charm for our author. Worse, however, than this packing of silly and
stupid fables into his book is the implied understanding that the church
is answerable for them all. She it is who falsifies decretals, invents
miracles, discovers fraudulent relics, beholds apparitions, sanctions
the trial by fire, massacres a whole cityful, and perpetrates every
crime in the calendar. Surely, she were a very monster of iniquity, the
real scarlet lady, the beast with seven heads, were the half true of her
which Dr. Draper lays at her door. There is in it, however, the manifest
intent and outline of a crusade against the church and the institutions
she fosters; the shadowing forth of a purpose to array against her, what
is more formidable than Star Chamber or Inquisition--the feelings of
unreflecting millions who are allured by the glamour of manner to the
utter disregard of matter. But it must be remembered that Exeter Hall
fanaticism has never found a genial home on this side of the Atlantic,
and we are not afraid that the stupid conglomeration of silly charges
brought against the church by Dr. Draper, more akin to fatuous drivel
than to the dignified and scholarly arraignment of a philosopher, will do
more than provoke a pitying smile. His feeble blows fall on adamantine
sides which have oft resisted shafts aimed with deadlier intent than
these:

    “Telumque imbelle sine ictu
    Conjecit.”

But there is another explanation of the successive accumulation of
doctrines and practices in the church which will perhaps come more
within the reach of Dr. Draper’s appreciation, as it throws light on the
history of science itself, and underlies the growth of every system of
philosophy. We speak of the doctrine of development. Draper unfolded,
even pathetically, the impressive picture of science springing from
very humble beginnings, and growing dauntlessly, despite bigotry and
persecutions, into that colossal structure of to-day which, according to
him, shelters the highest hopes and aspirations of men, and assures to
them a glorious future of absorption into the universal spirit--viz.,
annihilation. “Ab exiguis profecta initiis, eo creverit ut jam
magnitudine laboret sua.” This gradual development he proclaims to be the
natural expansion and growth of science, on which theory he predicts for
it an unending career of glory--“crescit occulto velut arbor ævo.” But he
is indignant that the church did not spring into existence, like Minerva
from the brain of Jupiter, armed cap-a-pie, in the full bloom of her
maturity and charms. Because she did not do so, every advance on her part
was retrogressive, and her growth was the addition of “a horse’s neck
to a human head.” She borrowed, compromised, and substituted; so that,
if we believe Dr. Draper, no _olla podrida_ could be composed of more
heterogeneous elements than the Christian Church.

She placed under contribution not only paganism, but Mahometanism, and
filched a few thoughts from Buddha, Lao-Tse, and Confucius. The least
courtesy we might expect from Dr. Draper is that we may be allowed to
attempt to prove that Christianity, like every system entrusted to the
custody of men, is necessarily affected on its secular side by that
wardship, and so far is subject to the same conditions. But no; he
condemns in advance, and so fastens the gyves of his condemnation on
the church as apparently not to leave even a loop-hole of escape, or a
possible rational explanation of the successive events of her history.

But enough of this. Even to the most ordinary mind the thin veil of
philosophy in which Dr. Draper wraps his balderdash of paganization is
sufficiently easy of penetration. And what does he offer to the Christian
who would range himself under the new banner? In what attractive forms
does Draper present his science to win the sympathies and sentiments
of men, and make them forego the hopes of eternal happiness whispered
on the cross? Here is one: _Ex uno disce omnes_. When Newton succeeded
in proving that the influence of the earth’s attraction extended as
far as the moon, and caused her to revolve in her orbit around the
earth, he was so overcome by the flooding of truth upon his mind that
he was compelled to call in the assistance of another to complete the
proof. A pretty picture, no doubt, and a fit canonization of science.
But let us contrast it with a Xavier expiring on the arid plains of
an eastern isle, far away from the last comforting words and soothing
touch of a friend, yet happy beyond expression in the firmness of his
faith, while clasping in his dying hands the crucifix, which to him had
been no stumbling-block, but the incitement to labor through ten years
of incomparable suffering among a degraded race. Or place it beside a
Vincent de Paul, who from dawn to darkness traversed the slums of Paris,
picking up waifs, the jetsam and flotsam of society, washing them,
feeding them, dressing their sores, and nursing them more tenderly than a
mother. Or contrast its flimsy sentimentality with the motives which sped
missionaries across unknown oceans, over the Andes, the Himalayas, and
the Rocky Mountains, and into the ice-bound wildernesses of Canada, to
subdue the savage Iroquois by the mildness of the Gospel; to found a new
golden age on the plains of Paraguay; to preach the evangel of peace and
purity through the wide limits of the Flowery Kingdom; and to seal with
their blood the ceaseless toil of their lives.

    “Quæ regio in terris nostri non plena laboris?
    Quæ caret ora cruore nostro?”

Dr. Draper, evidently, has not read the _Decline and Fall of the Roman
Empire_ in vain. Not only does the same anti-Christian spirit breathe
through his pages, but he has seized the stilted style of Gibbon, deemed
philosophical, which is never at home but when soaring amid the clouds.
There is a pomp and parade of philosophy, an assumption of dignified
tranquillity, a tone of mock impartiality, which vividly recall the
defective qualities of Gibbon’s work. But in studying these features
of style, which necessitate a deal of dogmatism, Draper has allowed
himself to be betrayed into numberless errors in philosophy. Perhaps
an illustration or two will help to give point to our remarks. On page
243 he writes: “If there be a multiplicity of worlds in infinite space,
there is also a succession of worlds in infinite time. As one after
another cloud replaces cloud in the skies, so this starry system, the
universe, is the successor of countless others that have preceded it, the
predecessor of countless others that will follow. There is an unceasing
metamorphosis, a sequence of events, without beginning or end.”

Is not this

    “A pithless branch beneath a fungous rind”?

Is Dr. Draper aware that Gassendi, Newton, Descartes, and Leibnitz
devoted the highest efforts of their noble intellects to the
consideration of time and space, and would long have hesitated before
thus flippantly affixing the epithet “infinite” to either? What is space
apart from the contained bodies? If it contains nothing, or rather if
there is nothing in space, space itself is nothing; it merely represents
to us the possibility of extended bodies. And if it is nothing, how can
it be infinite? The application of the word infinite to time is still
more inappropriate. There can be no such thing as infinite time. Let
us take Dr. Draper’s own successive periods, though embracing millions
of years, and we contend that there must be some beginning to them.
For if there is no beginning to them, they are already infinite in
number--that is, they are already a number without beginning or end. But
this cannot be. For we can consider either the past series of periods
capable of augmentation by periods to come; and what then becomes of
Draper’s infinity? For surely that is not infinite which is susceptible
of increase. Or we can consider the past series minus one or two of its
periods--a supposition equally fatal to the notion of infinity. Time,
then, is of a purely finite character, and is nothing else than the
successive changes which finite beings undergo. More nonsensical still
is the notion of “a sequence of events without beginning or end.” We
must discriminate here between an actual series and a potential series
of events, which Dr. Draper forgets to do; for on the distinction a
great deal depends. An actual series can never be infinite, for we can
take it at any given stage of its progress, whether at the present
moment or in the past, and consider it increased by one; but any number
susceptible of increase can be represented by figures, since it is
finite, that is, determinate. It cannot be said that it extends into the
past without beginning, for the dilemma always recurs that it is either
finite or infinite; if finite, it must be represented by figures, and
that destroys the idea of a non-beginning; and if it is infinite, it
cannot be increased, which is absurd. And if we ask for a cause for any
one event in the reputed unending series, we are referred to the event
immediately preceding, which in turn has for its cause another prior
event. If, however, we inquire for the cause of the whole series, we are
told that there is none such; there is naught but an eternal succession
of events. Is not this, as some author says, as if we were to ask what
upholds the last link in a chain suspended from an unknown height, and
should receive the answer that the link next to the last supports it, and
the third supports the two beneath, and so on, each higher link supports
a weightier burden? If then we should ask, What is it that supports the
whole? we are told that it supports itself. Therefore a finite weight
cannot support itself in opposition to the laws of gravitation; much
less can another finite weight twice as heavy as the first, and less and
less can it do so as the weight increases; but when the weight becomes
infinite, nothing is required to uphold it. The reasoning is entirely
analogous to Draper’s, who speaks of cloud replacing cloud in the skies
without beginning, without end. “Quos Deus vult perdere prius dementat.”
Bacon has well said that the exclusive consideration of secondary causes
leads to the exclusion of God from the economy of the universe, while a
deeper insight reveals of necessity a First Cause on which all others
depend. This is exactly the trouble with Dr. Draper. He will not lift his
purblind gaze from the mere phenomena of nature to their cause, but is
satisfied to revolve for ever in the vicious circle of countless effects
without a cause. If we are to judge by the additional glow which pervades
what he has written concerning the nebular hypothesis, he unquestionably
considers that theory a conclusive proof of the non-interference of the
Deity in the affairs of the universe.

Now, we have no particular fault to find with the nebular hypothesis. It
is only an explanation of a change which matter has undergone. It does
not affect the question of creation whether matter was first in a state
of incandescent gas, or sprang at the bidding of the eternal fiat into
its manifold conditions of to-day. Indeed, we will grant that there is a
plausibility in the theory which to many minds renders it fascinating;
but that does not make matter eternal and self-conserving. It is entirely
consistent with the dogma of creation that God first made matter devoid
of harmonious forms and relations, and that these slowly developed in
accordance with the laws he appointed. There is nothing inconsistent in
supposing that our terrestrial planet is a fragment struck off from the
central mass, and that, after having undergone numerous changes, it at
last settled down into a fit abode for man. The church never expressed
herself pro or con; for no matter how individual writers may have felt
and written, no matter how much they may have sought to place this or
that physical theory in antagonism with revealed truth, the church never
took action, for the reason that the question lies beyond the sphere of
her infallible judgment until it touches upon the revealed doctrine.
It is Dr. Draper, therefore, who strenuously seeks to draw inferences
from modern physical theories, so as to put them in conflict, not only
with revelation, but with the truths of natural theology. After having
given an outline of the nebular hypothesis, he says: “If such be the
cosmogony of the solar system, such the genesis of the planetary worlds,
we are constrained to extend our view of the dominion of law, and to
recognize its agency in the creation as well as in the conservation of
the innumerable orbs that throng the universe.” Now, what he means by
extending our views of the dominion of law is to make it paramount
and supreme. But what is this law? If its agency is to be recognized
in the creation of the innumerable orbs that throng the universe, it
certainly must have existed prior to that event, else Dr. Draper uses
the word creation in a sense entirely novel. Now, supposing, as we
are fairly bound to do, that Dr. Draper attaches to the term creation
its ordinary signification, we will have the curious spectacle of law
creating that of which it is but the expression. We cannot perceive what
other meaning we are to extract from the saying that we must recognize
the agency of law in the creation of the universe. Law is, therefore,
the creator of the universe; that is to say, “The general expression
of the conditions under which certain assemblages of phenomena occur”
(Carpenter’s definition of law) ushered into existence the cause of
those phenomena. Can anything more absurd be conceived? But apart from
the notion of law being at the bottom of creation, how can Dr. Draper,
consistently with his ideas of “infinite space,” “infinite time,”
“sequence of events without beginning or end,” admit such a thing as
creation at all? Creation is the transition of a portion of the eternal
possibles in the divine mind from a state of possibility into one of
physical existence, at the bidding of God’s infinite power. Supposing,
then, that it is in this sense Dr. Draper uses the word creation, he must
of necessity discard the doctrine of the eternity of matter, and his
_nugæ canoræ_ concerning “the immutability of law,” “law that dominates
overall,” “unending succession of events,” become the frothings of a
distempered mind. But when a person writes in accordance with no fixed
principles, only as the intellectual caprice of the moment dictates, he
necessarily falls into glaring and fatal inconsistencies. For not many
pages after this implied admission of creation, even though it be the
inane creation by law, he says: “These considerations incline us to view
favorably the idea of transmutations of one form into another rather
than that of sudden creations. Creation implies an abrupt appearance,
transformation a gradual change.” He thus again rejects the doctrine of
creation in almost the same breath in which he spoke of it as brought
about by the agency of law. The question here occurs, Are the notions
of creation and law antipodal? Can they not coexist? For our own part,
we see nothing inconsistent in the supposition that God created the
universe, under stable laws for its guidance and conservation. The very
simplicity of the compatible existence of the two puzzles us to know what
objection to it the ingenuity of Dr. Draper has discovered. For it must
be understood that his stated incompatibility is a wearisome assumption
throughout--wearisome, for the mind, ever on the alert to find a reason
for the statement, withdraws from the hopeless task tired and disgusted.
For instance, at the close of his remarks concerning the nebular theory
he says: “But again it may be asked, ‘Is there not something profoundly
impious in this? Are we not excluding Almighty God from the world he has
made?’” The words are sneeringly written. They are supposed to contain
their own reply, and the writer passes on to something else. He does
not attempt to prove that the nebular hypothesis is at variance with
creation, except with such a view of the act as he himself entertains.
And this brings us to the consideration of his views concerning this
sublime dogma. Draper evidently supposes that creation took place by fits
and starts, as figures pop out in a puppet-show. Hence he is constantly
contrasting the grandeur of a slow development, an ever-progressing
evolution, with the unphilosophical idea of sudden and abrupt creations.
Though we fail to perceive anything derogatory to the infinite wisdom of
the Creator in supposing that he launched worlds into existence perfect
and complete, the idea of creation in the Christian sense does not
necessarily imply this. We hold that the iron logic of facts forces us
to the admission of creation in general, in opposition to the senseless
doctrine of unbeginning and unending series and sequences; and while we
do not pretend to determine the manner in which God proceeded with his
work, we likewise hold that the gradual appearance of planet after planet
of the innumerable orbs that stud the firmament, of genus after genus,
and species after species, can be far more philosophically referred to
the positive act of an infinite power than to the vague operation of law.
Draper, therefore, shivers a lance against a windmill when he sets up his
doctrine of evolution against a purely imaginary creation. While he thus
arraigns the doctrine of creation as shortsighted and unphilosophical,
it is amusing to contemplate the substitute therefor which his system
offers. On page 192 he says: “Abrupt, arbitrary, disconnected creative
acts may serve to illustrate the divine power; but that continuous,
unbroken chain of organisms which extends from palæozoic formations to
the formations of recent times--a chain in which each link hangs on a
preceding and sustains a succeeding one--demonstrates to us not only that
the production of animated beings is governed by law, but that it is by
law that it has undergone no change. In its operation through myriads
of ages there has been no variation, no suspension.” We have already
proved that whatever is finite or contingent in the actual order must
necessarily have had a beginning--a fact which Draper himself seems to
admit when he speaks of the creative agency of law; and the question
arises what it is which Dr. Draper substitutes for the creative act.
Creation by law is an absurdity, since law is but the expression of the
regularity of phenomena, once the fact of the universe has been granted.
Unbeginning and unending series are not only an absurdity, but a palpable
evasion of the difficulty. We have, therefore, according to Dr. Draper, a
tremendous effect without a cause. When we view the many-sided spectacle
of nature, the star-bespangled empyrean, the endless forms of life
which the microscope reveals, the harmony and order of the universe, we
naturally inquire, Whence sprang this mighty panorama? What all-potent
Being gave it existence? Draper’s answer is, It had no beginning, it
will have no end--_i.e._, it began nowhere, it will end nowhere. There
it is, and be satisfied. The Christian replies that it is the work of an
eternal, necessary, and all-perfect Being, who contains within himself
the reason of his own existence, and whose word is sufficient to usher
into being countless other worlds of far vaster magnitude than any that
now exist.

Throughout the whole book are scattered references to this supremacy of
law over creation, and the inference is constantly deduced that every
curse which has befallen humanity, every retarding influence placed in
the way of human progress, has proceeded from the doctrine of creation.
Creation alone can give color to the doctrine of miracles, and creation
renders impossible the safe prediction of astronomical events. For these
reasons Draper condemns it, not only as an intellectual monstrosity, but
as morally bad. While we admit that the possibility of miracles does
depend on the admission of an intelligent Cause of all things, it by no
means follows that the same admission invalidates the safe prediction
of an eclipse or a comet. Draper’s words touching the matter are such
a curiosity in their way that we cannot forbear quoting them. On page
229 he says: “Astronomical predictions of all kinds depend upon the
admission of this fact: that there never has been and never will be any
intervention in the operation of natural laws. The scientific philosopher
affirms that the condition of the world at any given moment is the direct
result of its condition in the preceding moment, and the direct cause of
its condition in the subsequent moment. Law and chance are only different
names for mechanical necessity.”

Parodying the words of Mme. Roland, we might exclaim, O Philosophy! what
follies are committed in thy name. Just think of it, reader, because God
is supposed to superintend, by virtue of his infinite intelligence, the
processes of universal nature, with the power to derogate from the laws
he himself appointed, he must be so capricious that constancy, harmony,
and regularity are strangers to him. Supposing we take for granted the
possibility of miracles, it does not ensue that God is about to disturb
the regularity of the universe at the bidding of him who asks. The
circumstances attending the performance of a miracle are so obvious that
there can be no room for doubting the constancy of law operation. Thus
the promotion of an evidently good purpose, which is the prime intent
of a miracle, precludes the caprice which alone could render unsafe
the prediction of a physical occurrence. As well might we question the
probable course a man of well-known probity and discretion will pursue
under specified circumstances, with this difference: that as God is
infinitely wise, in proportion is the probability great that he will not
depart from his usual course, except for most extraordinary reasons.
And if the safety of a prediction depending on such circumstances is
not as great as that which depends on mechanical necessity, we must
base our scepticism on very shadowy grounds. Father Secchi can compute
the next solar eclipse as well as Dr. Diaper; and if he should add,
as he undoubtedly would, D. V., nobody will therefore be inclined to
question the accuracy of his calculations or doubt the certainty of the
occurrence. In preference, however, to the admission of a free agency in
the affairs of the universe, he subscribes to the stoicism of Grecian
philosophy, which subjects all things to a stern, unbending necessity,
and makes men act by the impulse and determination of their nature.
“This system offered a support in their hour of trial, not only to
many illustrious Greeks, but also to some of the great philosophers,
statesmen, generals, and emperors of Rome--a system which excluded chance
from everything, and asserted the direction of all events by irresistible
necessity to the promotion of perfect good; a system of earnestness,
sternness, austerity, virtue--a protest in favor of the common sense of
mankind. And perhaps we shall not dissent from the remark of Montesquieu,
who affirms that the destruction of the Stoics was a great calamity to
the human race; for they alone made great citizens, great men.” Men can
therefore be great in Draper’s sense when they can no longer be virtuous;
they can acquire fame and win the gratitude of posterity when they can
no longer merit; in a word, mechanical necessity; the same inexorable
fatality which impels the river-waters to seek the sea, which turns the
magnet to the north, and makes the planets run their destined courses,
presides over the conduct of men, and elevates, ennobles their actions.
Free-will is chance; Providence an impertinent and debasing interference;
and virtue the firmness, born of necessity, which made Cato end his days
by his own hand. Such is Draper’s substitute in the moral order for the
teachings of Christianity--a system inevitably tending to build a Paphian
temple on the site of every Christian church, and to revive the infamies
which the pen of Juvenal so scathingly satirized, and for which S. Paul
rebuked the Romans in terms of frightful severity and reprobation. For
what consideration can restrain human passions, if men deem their actions
to be a necessary growth or expansion of their nature, if the good and
bad in human deeds are as the tempest that wrecks, or the gentle dews
that fructify and animate the vegetable world? His whole book is a
cumbersome and disjointed argument in favor of necessity, as opposed to
free agency; of law, as opposed to Providence. The manner of his refuting
the existence of divine Providence is so far novel and original that
we are tempted to reproduce it for those of our readers who prefer not
to lose time by perusing the work in full. On page 243 he says: “Were
we set in the midst of the great nebula of Orion, how transcendently
magnificent the scene! The vast transformation, the condensations of a
fiery mist into worlds, might seem worthy of the immediate presence, the
supervision, of God; here, at our distant station, where millions of
miles are inappreciable to our eyes, and suns seem no bigger than motes
in the air, that nebula is more insignificant than the faintest cloud.
Galileo, in his description of the constellation of Orion, did not think
it worth while so much as to mention it. The most rigorous theologian of
those days would have seen nothing to blame in imputing its origin to
secondary causes; nothing irreligious in failing to invoke the arbitrary
interference of God in its metamorphoses. If such be the conclusion
to which we come respecting it, what would be the conclusion to which
an Intelligence seated in it would come respecting us? It occupies an
extent of space millions of miles greater than that of our solar system;
we are invisible from it, and therefore absolutely insignificant. Would
such an Intelligence think it necessary to require for our origin and
maintenance the immediate intervention of God?” That is to say, we are
too insignificant for God’s notice, because larger worlds roll through
space millions of miles from us, and God would have enough to do, if at
all disposed to interfere, in looking after them, without occupying his
important time with terra and her Liliputian denizens.

It is evident from this passage that Draper’s mind can never rise to
a grand conception. It would not do to tell him that the Intelligence
which superintends and controls the universe “reaches from end to end
powerfully, and disposes all things mildly”; that his infinite ken
“numbers the hair of our heads,” notes the sparrow’s fall, and sweeps
over the immensity of space with its thronging orbs, by one and the same
act of a supreme mind. The furthest is as the nearest, the smallest as
the greatest, with Him who holds the universe in the hollow of his hand,
and whose omnipotent will could create and conserve myriad constellations
greater than Orion. In the passage just quoted Dr. Draper commits the
additional blunder of confounding creation in general with a special view
conveniently entertained by himself. His objection to creation, as before
remarked, proceeds on the notion that creation is necessarily adverse to
slow and continuous development, such as the facts of nature point out as
having been the course through which the world has reached its present
maturity. He does not seem able to understand that, creation having
taken place, the whole set of physical phenomena which underlie recent
physical theories may have come to pass, as he maintains; only we must
assign a beginning. His whole disagreement with the doctrine of creation
is founded on this principle of a non-beginning, though he vainly strives
to make it appear that he objects to it as interfering with regular,
progressive development. On page 239 he says: “Shall we, then, conclude
that the solar and the starry systems have been called into existence
by God, and that he has then imposed upon them by his arbitrary will
laws under the control of which it was his pleasure that their movements
should be made?

“Or are there reasons for believing that these several systems came into
existence, not by such an arbitrary fiat, but through the operation of
law?” The shallowness of this philosophy the simplest can sound. As well
might we speak of a nation or state springing into existence through the
operation of those laws which are subsequently enacted for its guidance.
Prayer and the possibility of miracles are equally assailed by Draper’s
doctrine of necessary law. His argument against the former is very
closely akin to J. J. Rousseau’s objection to prayer. “Why should we,”
says the pious author of _Emile_, “presume to hope that God will change
the order of the universe at our request? Does he not know better what is
suited to our wants than our short-sighted reason can perceive, to say
nothing of the blasphemy which sets up our judgment in opposition to the
divine decrees?” The opposition of Draper and Tyndall to prayer proceeds
exactly on the same notion--the absurdity, namely, of supposing that our
petitions can ever have the effect of changing the fixed and unalterable
scheme of the universe. Tyndall went so far as to propose a prayer-gauge
by separating the inmates of a hospital into praying and non-praying
ones, and seeing what proportion of the two classes would recover
more rapidly. Those three distinguished philosophers evidently never
understood the nature and conditions of prayer, else they would not
hold such language. God changes nothing at our instance, but counts our
prayer in as a part of the very plan on which the universe was projected.
In the divine mind every determination of our will is perceived from
eternity, as indeed are all the events of creation. But we admit a
distinction of logical priority of some over others. Thus God’s knowledge
of our determination to act is logically subsequent to the determination
itself, since the latter is the object of the divine knowledge, and
must have a logical precedence over it. Prayer, then, is compatible
with the regularity of the universe and infinite wisdom, because God,
having perceived our prayer and observed the conditions accompanying it,
determined in eternity to grant or to withhold it, and regulated the
universe in accordance with such determination. Our prayers have been
granted or withheld in the long past as regards us, but not in the past
as regards God, in whom there is no change nor shadow of a change. It is
evident from this how absurd is Tyndall’s notion of testing the efficacy
of prayer in the manner he proposed, and how unjust is Draper’s constant
arrow-shooting at shrine-cures and petitions for health addressed to God
and to his saints. Nor does the granting of a prayer necessarily imply a
departure from the natural course of events. The foreseen goodness and
piety of a man can have determined God to allow the natural order and
sequence of events to proceed in such a manner as to develop conformably
to his petition. In this there is no disturbance of the natural order,
since the expression means nothing else than the regularity with which
phenomena occur in their usual way--a fact entirely consistent with the
theory of prayer.

It is true, however, that the history of the church exhibits many
well-authenticated examples of prayers being granted under circumstances
which implied the performance of a miracle or a suspension of the effects
of law. To this Draper opposes three arguments: first, the inherent
impossibility of miracles; secondly, the capricious disturbance of the
universe which would ensue; and, thirdly, the impossibility of discerning
between miracles and juggling tricks or the marvellous achievements
of science. To the first argument we would return an _argumentum ad
hominem_. While Dr. Draper sneeringly repudiates a miracle which implies
a derogation from physical law, he unwittingly admits a miracle tenfold
more astounding. The argument was directed against Voltaire long years
ago, and has been repeatedly employed since.

Suppose, then, that a whole cityful of people should testify to the
resurrection of a dead man from the grave; would we be justified in
rejecting the testimony on the sole ground of the physical impossibility
of the occurrence? We would thereby suppose that a whole population,
divided into the high and low born, the ignorant and the educated, the
good and the bad, with interests, passions, hopes, prejudices, and
aspirations as wide apart as the poles, should secretly conspire to
impose on the rest of the world, and this so successfully that not even
one would reveal the gigantic deception. History abounds in instances
of the sort, in recitals of sudden cures witnessed by thousands, of
conflagrations suddenly checked, of plagues disappearing in a moment;
and if we are pleased to refuse the testimony because of the physical
impossibility, we are reduced to the necessity of admitting, not a
miracle, but a monstrosity in the moral order. It is true that Dr. Draper
quietly ignores this feature of the case, and is satisfied with the
objection to the possibility of miracles on physical grounds, without
taking the pains to inquire whether circumstances can be conceived
in which this physical possibility may be set aside. Complacently
resting his argument here, the “impartial” doctor, whose lofty mind
ranges in the pure ether of immaculate truth, accuses the church of
filling the air with sprites whose duty it is to perform miracles every
moment. Recklessly and breathlessly he repeats and multiplies the old,
time-worn, oft-refuted, and ridiculous stories which stain the pages of
long-forgotten Protestant controversialists, and which well-informed
men of to-day not in communion with the church would blush to repeat,
as likely to stamp their intelligence with vulgarity and credulity.
Not so with Dr. Draper; for not only does he rehash what for years we
have been hearing from Pecksniffs and Chadbands _usque ad nauseam_,
but he introduces his stale stories in the most incongruous manner.
Shrine-cures, as he calls them, he finds to have gone hand in hand with
the absence of carpeted floors, and relic-worship with smoky chimneys,
poor raiment, and unwholesome food. No doubt his far-seeing mind has
been able to discover a necessary relation between those things which
the ordinary judgment would pronounce most incongruous and dissonant.
Draper not only refuses to recognize the long and laborious efforts of
the church to ameliorate the condition of the masses, to lift them from
the misery and insanitary surroundings into which they had sunk during
the night of Roman decadence, and in which the internecine feuds of the
robber barons and princes, of feudal masters and vassals, had left them,
but he impudently charges the church with being the author of their
wrongs and wretchedness. It is true the same charge has been made before
by vindictive and passionate writers, and it receives no additional
weight at the hands of Dr. Draper by being left, like Mahomet’s coffin,
without prop or support. Since Maitland’s work first disabused Englishmen
of the opinions they had formed concerning mediæval priest-craft and
church tyranny, no writer has had the hardihood to revive the exploded
slanders of Stillingfleet and Fletcher, till this latest anti-<DW7> felt
that he had received a mission to do so.

Draper’s belief that the admitted possibility of miracles would tend to
disturb the regular succession of natural phenomena is simply puerile;
for miracles occur only under such circumstances as all men understand
to preclude caprice and irregularity. Thus the daily-recurring mystery
of transubstantiation still takes place upon our altars, and, so far as
that tremendous fact is concerned, we might all cling to the idea of
necessary, immutable law; for no order is disturbed, no planet fails
to perform its accustomed revolution. As for its being impossible for
Catholics to distinguish between real miracles and juggleries, it is
very evident that, in keeping with his general opinion of believers in
miracles, he must rate their standard of intelligence at an exceedingly
low figure. A miracle supposes a derogation of the laws of the physical
world, and is never accepted till its character in this sense has been
thoroughly proved. A Protestant writer of high intelligence, who not long
since was present in Rome at an investigation into the evidence adduced
to prove the genuineness of certain miracles attributed to a servant
of God, in whose behalf the title of venerable was demanded, remarked
that, had the same searching scrutiny been employed in every legal case
which had fallen under his observation, he would not hesitate to place
implicit confidence in the rigid impartiality of the judge, the logical
nature of the evidence, and the unimpeachable veracity of the witnesses.
Dr. Draper, therefore, supposes, on the part of those whom he claims
to be incapable or unwilling to discriminate between miracles, in the
sense defined, and mere feats of legerdemain, an unparalleled stupidity
or contemptible roguery. Since, however, he constitutes himself supreme
judge in the case, we will place in juxtaposition with this judgment
another, which will readily show to what extent his discriminating sense
may be trusted. On page 298 he says: “The Virgin Mary, we are assured
by the evangelists, had accepted the duties of married life, and borne
to her husband several children.” As this is a serious accusation, and
the doctor, in presenting it, desires to maintain his high reputation
as an erudite hermeneutist and strict logician by adducing irrefragable
proofs in its support, he triumphantly refers to S. Matt. i. 25. “And he
knew her not till she brought forth her first-born.” We are reluctant to
mention, when it is question of the accuracy of so learned a man as Dr.
Draper, that among the Hebrews the word _until_ denotes only what has
occurred, without regard to the future; as when God says: “I am till
you grow old.” If Draper’s exegesis is correct concerning S. Matt. i.
25, then we must infer that God as surely implies, in the words quoted,
that he will cease to exist at a specified time, as he explicitly states
he will exist till that time. But, not satisfied with this display of
Scriptural erudition, he refers, in support of the same statement, to
S. Matt. xiii. 55, 56; and, because mention is there made of Jesus’
brethren and sisters, the latest foe to Mary’s virginity concludes that
these were brothers and sisters by consanguinity. What a large number of
brothers and sisters our preachers of every Sunday must have, who address
by these endearing terms their numerous congregations! If, however,
Dr. Draper desires to ascertain who these brethren and sisters were,
he will find that they were cousins to our divine Saviour; it being a
favored custom among the Jews thus to style near relatives. S. Matt,
xxvii. 56 and S. John xix. 25 will define the exact relation the persons
in question bore to the Saviour. Such are the penetration, profundity,
and erudition of the man who brands as imbeciles, dupes, and rogues the
major part of Christendom! But perhaps it may be said that hermeneutics
are not Draper’s _forte_, owing to his supreme contempt of the New
and Old Testaments, and that he has won his laurels in the field of
philosophy. We have already hinted that his perspicuity in philosophical
discussions is in advance of his subtlety, for the reason that he keeps
well on the surface, and exhibits a commendable anxiety not to venture
beyond his depth. At times, however, an intrepidity, born of ignorance,
overcomes his native timidity, and, with amazing confidence, he plays
the oft-assumed _rôle_ of the bull in a china-shop. Mixing himself up
with the Arian dispute concerning the Blessed Trinity, he inclines to the
anti-Trinitarian view, because a son cannot be coeval with his father!
The carnal-minded Arius thus reasoned, and it is no wonder Dr. Draper
agrees with him. Had Dr. Draper taken down from his library shelf the
_Summa_ of S. Thomas, the great extinguisher of Draper’s philosophical
beacon, Averroës, he would have received such enlightenment as would have
made him blush to concur in a proposition so utterly unphilosophical. The
Father, as principle of the Son’s existence, is co-existent with him as
God, and logically only prior to him as father, just as a circle is the
source whence the equality of the radii springs; though, given a circle,
the equality of the radii co-exists, and, if an eternally existing circle
be conceived, an eternal equality of radii ensues. The priority is
therefore one of reason, viz., the priority of a cause to a co-existing
effect. But we have said _satis superque_ concerning Draper and his book.
We deplore, not so much the publication of the volume, as the unhealthy
condition of the public mind which can hail its appearance with welcome.
As an appetite for unnatural food argues a diseased state of the bodily
system, so we infer that men’s minds are sadly diseased when they take
pleasure in what is so hollow, false, and shallow as Dr. Draper’s latest
addition to anti-Catholic literature. We have been obliged to suppress
a considerable portion of the criticisms we had prepared on particular
portions of this rambling production, in order not to take up too much
space. We consider it not to be worth the space we have actually given
to its refutation. And yet, of such a book, one of our principal daily
papers has been so unadvised or thoughtless as to say that it ought to
be made a _text-book_. To this proposition we answer by the favorite
exclamation of the wife of Sir Thomas More: “TILLEY-VALLEY!”


STRAY LEAVES FROM A PASSING LIFE.

CHAPTER II.

A DINNER AT THE GRANGE--A PAIR OF OWLS.

As we passed up the gravel walk of the Grange a face was trying its
prettiest to look scoldingly out of the window, but could not succeed.
When the eyes lighted upon my companion, face and eyes together
disappeared. It was a face that I had seen grow under my eyes, but it
had never occurred to me hitherto that it had grown so beautiful. Could
that tall young lady, who did the duties of mistress of the Grange so
demurely, be the little fairy whom only yesterday I used to toss upon
my shoulder and carry out into the barnyard to see the fowls, one hand
twined around my neck, and the other waving her magic wand with the
action of a little queen--the same magic wand that I had spent a whole
hour and a half--a boy’s long hour and a half--in peeling and notching
with my broken penknife, engraving thereon the cabalistic characters
“F. N.,” which, as all the world was supposed to know, signified
“Fairy Nell”? And that was “Fairy” who had just disappeared from the
honeysuckles. Faith! a far more dangerous fairy than when I was her
war-horse and she my imperious queen.

I introduced my companion as an old school-fellow of mine to my father
and sister. So fine-looking a young man could not fail to impress my
father favorably, who, notwithstanding his seclusion, had a keen eye
for persons and appearances. How so fine-looking a young man impressed
my sister I cannot say, for it is not given to me to read ladies’
hearts. The dinner was passing pleasantly enough, when one of those odd
revulsions of feeling that come to one at times in the most inopportune
situations came over me. I am peculiarly subject to fits of this nature,
and only time and years have enabled me to overcome them to any extent.
By the grave of a friend who was dear to me, and in presence of his
weeping relatives, some odd recollection has risen up as it were out of
the freshly-dug grave, and grinned at me over the corpse’s head, till I
hardly knew whether the tears in my eyes were brought there by laughter
or by grief. Just on the attainment of some success, for which I had
striven for months or years, may be, and to which I had devoted every
energy that was in me, while the flush of it was fresh on my cheek and in
my heart, and the congratulations of friends pouring in on me, has come
a drear feeling like a winter wind across my summer garden to blast the
roses and wither the dew-laden buds just opening to the light. Why this
is so I cannot explain; that it is so I know. It is a mockery of human
nature, and falls on the harmony of the soul like that terrible “ha! ha!”
of the fiend who stands by all the while when poor Faust and innocent
Marguerite are opening their hearts to each other.

“And so, Mr. Goodal, you are an old friend of Roger’s? He has told me
about most of his friends. It is strange he never mentioned your name
before.”

“It is strange,” I broke in hurriedly. “Kenneth is the oldest of all,
too. I found him first in the thirteenth century. He bears his years
well, does he not, Fairy?”

My father and Nellie both looked perplexed. Kenneth laughed.

“What in the world are you talking about, Roger?” asked my father in
amazement.

“Where do you think I found him? Burrowing at the tomb of the Herberts,
as though he were anxious to get inside and pass an evening with them.”

“And judging the past by the present, a very agreeable evening I should
have spent,” said Kenneth gayly.

“Well, sir, I will not deny that you would have found excellent company,”
responded my father, pleased at the compliment. “The Herberts. ..” he
began.

“For heaven’s sake, sir, let them rest in their grave. I have already
surfeited Mr. Goodal with the history of the Herberts.” Kenneth was about
to interpose, but I went on: “A strangely-mixed assembly the Herberts
would make in the other world; granting that there is another world, and
that the members of our family condescend to know each other there.”

“Roger!” said Nellie in a warning tone, while my father reddened and
shifted uneasily in his chair.

“If there be another world and the Herberts are there, it is impossible
that they can live together _en famille_. It can scarcely be even a
bowing acquaintance,” I added, feeling all the while that I was as rude
and undutiful as though I had risen from my chair and dealt my father a
blow in the face. He remembered, as I did not, what was due to our guest,
and said coldly:

“Roger, don’t you think that you might advantageously change the subject?
Mr. Goodal, I am very far behind the age, and not equal to what I suppose
is the prevailing tone among clever young gentlemen of the present day. I
am very old fogy, very conservative. Try that sherry.”

The quiet severity of his tone cut me to the quick. The spirit of
mischief must have been very near my elbow at that moment. Instead of
taking my lesson in good part, I felt like a whipped school-boy, and,
regardless of poor Nellie’s pale face and Kenneth’s silence, went on
resolutely:

“Well, sir, my ancestors are to me a most interesting topic of
conversation, and I take it that a Herbert only shows a proper regard for
his own flesh and blood if he inquire after their eternal no less than
their temporal welfare. What has become of all the Herberts, I should
dearly like to know?”

“I know, sir, what will become of one of them, if he continues his silly
and unmannerly cynicism,” said my father, now fairly aroused. He was very
easily aroused, and I wonder that he restrained himself so long. “I
cannot imagine, Mr. Goodal, what possesses the young men of the present
day, or what they are coming to. Irreverence for the dead, irreverence
for the living, irreverence for all that is worthy of reverence, seems
to stamp their character. I trust, sir, indeed I believe, that you have
better feelings than to think that life and death, here and hereafter,
are fit subjects for a boy’s sneer. I am sure that you have that respect
for church and state and--and things established that is becoming a
gentleman. I can only regret that my son is resolved on going as fast as
he can to--to--” He glanced at Nellie, and remained silent.

“I know where you would say, sir; and in the event of my happy arrival
there, I shall beyond doubt meet a large section of the Herberts who
have gone before me--that is, if church and things established are to
be believed. When one comes to think of it, what an appalling number of
Herberts must have gone to the devil!”

“Nellie, my girl, you had better retire, since your brother forgets how
to conduct himself in the presence of ladies and gentlemen.”

But Nellie sat still with scared face, and, though by this time my heart
ached, I could not help continuing:

“But, father, what are we to believe, or do we believe anything? Up
to a certain period the Herberts were what their present head--whom
heaven long preserve!--would call rank <DW7>s. Old Sir Roger, whose
epitaph I found Mr. Goodal endeavoring to decipher this afternoon, was a
Crusader, a soldier of the cross which, in our enlightenment and hatred
of idolatry, we have torn down from the altar where he worshipped, and
overturned that altar itself. Was it for love of church and things
established, as we understand them, that he sailed away to the Holy Land,
and in his pious zeal knocked the life out of many an innocent painim?
Was good Abbot Herbert, whose monumental brass in the chancel of S.
Wilfrid’s presents him kneeling and adoring before the chalice that he
verily believed to hold the blood of Christ, a worshipper of the same
God and a holder of the same faith as my uncle, Archdeacon Herbert, who
denies and abhors the doctrine of Transubstantiation, although his two
daughters, who are of the highest High-Church Anglicans, devoutly believe
in something approaching it, and, to prove their faith, have enrolled
themselves both in the Confraternity of the Cope, whose recent discovery
has set Parliament and all the bench of bishops abuzz? Is it all a humbug
all the way down, or were the stout, Crusading, Catholic Herberts real
and right, while we are wrong and a religious sham? Does the Reformation
mark us off into white sheep and black sheep, consigning them to hell and
us to heaven? If not, why were they not Protestants, and why are we not
Catholics, or why are we all not unbelievers? Can the same heaven hold
all alike--those who adored and adore the Sacrament as God, and those who
pronounce adoration of the Sacrament idolatry and an abomination?”

My father’s only reply to this lengthy and irresistible burst of eloquent
reasoning was to ask Nellie, who had sat stone-still, and whose eyes were
distended in mingled horror and wonder, for a cup of coffee. My long
harangue seemed to have a soothing effect upon my nerves. I looked at
Goodal, who was looking at his spoon. I felt so sorry that I could have
wished all my words unsaid.

“My dear father, and my dear Kenneth, and you too, Nellie, pardon me. I
have been unmannerly, grossly so. I brought you here, Kenneth, to spend
a pleasant evening, and help us to spend one, and some evil genius--a
_daimon_ that I carry about with me, and cannot always whip into good
behavior--has had possession of me for the last half-hour. It was he that
spoke in me, and not my father’s son, who, were he true to the lessons
and example of his parent, would as soon think of committing suicide as
a breach of hospitality or good manners. Now, as you are antiquarians,
I leave you a little to compare notes, while I take Fairy out to trip
upon the green, and console her for my passing heresy with orthodoxy and
Tupper, who, I need not assure you, is her favorite poet, as he is of
all true English country damsels. There is the moon beginning to rise;
and there is a certain melting, a certain watery, quality about Tupper
admirably adapted to moonlight.”

The rest of the evening passed more pleasantly. After a little we all
went out on the lawn, and sat there together. The moonlight nights of the
English summer are very lovely. That night was as a thousand such, yet it
seemed to me that I had never felt the solemn beauty of nature so deeply
or so sensibly before. S. Wilfrid’s shone out high and gray and solemn
in the moon. Through the yew-trees of the priory down below gleamed the
white tombstones of the churchyard. A streak of silver quivering through
the land marked the wandering course of the Leigh. And high up among the
beeches and the elms sat we, the odors of the afternoon still lingering
on the air, the melody of a nightingale near by wooing the heart of the
night with its mystic notes, and the moonlight shimmering on drowsy trees
and slumbering foliage that not a breath in all the wide air stirred.

“There is a soft quiet in our English nights, a kind of home feeling
about them, that makes them very lovable, and that I have experienced
nowhere else,” said Kenneth.

“Oh! I am so glad to hear you say that, Mr. Goodal.”

“May I ask why, Miss Herbert?”

“Well, I hardly know. Because, I suppose, I am so very English.”

“So is Tupper, and Fairy swears by Tupper. At least she would, if she
swore at all,” remarked her brother, whose hair was pulled for his pains.

“Were you ever abroad, Miss Herbert?”

“Never; papa wished to take me often, but I refused, because I suppose
again I am so very English.”

“Too English to face sea-sickness,” said her brother.

“I believe the fault is mine, Mr. Goodal,” said her father. “You see the
gout never leaves me for long together. I am liable at any time to an
attack; and gout is a bad companion on foreign travel. It is bad enough
at home, as Nellie finds, who insists on being my only nurse; and I am so
selfish that I have not the heart to let her go, and I believe she has
hardly the heart to leave me.”

“Oh! I don’t wish to go. Cousin Edith goes every year, and we have such
battles when she comes back. She cannot endure this climate, she cannot
endure the people, she cannot endure the fashions, the language is too
harsh and grating for her ear, the cooking is barbarous--every thing is
bad. Now, I would rather stay at home and be happy in my ignorance than
learn such lessons as that,” said honest Nellie.

“You would never learn such lessons.”

“Don’t you think so? But tell us now, Mr. Goodal, do not you, who have
seen so much, find England very dull?”

“Excessively. That is one of its chief beauties. Dulness is one of our
national privileges; and Roger here will tell you we pride ourselves on
it.”

“Kenneth would say that dulness is only another word for what you would
call our beautiful home-life,” said the gentleman appealed to.

“Dulness indeed! I don’t find it dull,” broke in Nellie, bridling up.

“No, the dairy and the kitchen; the dinner and tea; the Priory on a
Sunday; the shopping excursions into Leighstone, where there is nothing
to buy; the garden and the vinery; the visits to Mrs. Jones and Mrs.
Knowles; to Widow Wickham, who is blind; to Mrs. Staynes, who is deaf,
and whose husband ran away from her because, as he said, he feared that
he would rupture a blood-vessel in trying to talk to her; the parish
school and the charity hospital, make the life of a well-behaved young
English lady quite a round of excitement. There are such things, too, as
riding to hounds, and a ball once in a while, and croquet parties, and
picnics, and the Eleusinian mysteries of the tea-table. Who shall say
that, with all these opportunities for wild dissipation, English country
life is dull?”

“Roger wearies of Leighstone, you perceive,” said my father. “Well, I
was restless once myself; but the gout laid hold of me early in life, and
it has kept its hold.”

“Now, Mr. Goodal, in all your wanderings, tell me where you have seen
anything so delightful as this? Have you seen a ruin more venerable than
S. Wilfrid’s, nodding to sleep like a gray old monk on the top of the
hill there? Every stone of it has a history; some of them gay, many of
them grave. Look at the Priory nestling down below--history again. See
how gently the Leigh wanders away through the country. Every cottage and
farm on its banks I know, and those in them. Could you find a sweeter
perfume in all the world than steals up from my own garden here, where
all the flowers are mine, and I sometimes think half know me? All around
is beauty and peace, and has been so ever since I was a child. Why, then,
should I wish to wander?”

Something more liquid even than their light glistened in Fairy’s eyes, as
she turned them on Kenneth at the close. He seemed startled at her sudden
outburst, and, after a moment, said almost gravely:

“You are right, Miss Herbert. The beauty that we do not know we may
admire, but hardly love. It is like a painting that we glance at, and
pass on to see something else. There is no sense of ownership about it. I
have wandered, with a crippled friend by my side, through art galleries
where all that was beautiful in nature and art was drawn up in a way
to fascinate the eye and delight the senses. Yet my crippled friend
never suffered by contrast; never felt his deformity there. Knowledge,
association, friendship, love--these are the great beautifiers. The
little that we can really call our own is dearer to us than all the
world--is our world, in fact. An Italian sunset steals and enwraps the
senses into, as it were, a third heaven. A London fog is one of the most
hideous things in this world; yet a genuine Londoner finds something in
his native fog dear to him as the sunset to the Italian, and I confess
to the barbarism myself. On our arrival the other day we were greeted by
a yellow, dense, smoke- fog, such as London alone can produce. It
was more than a year since I had seen one, and I enjoyed it. I breathed
freely again, for I was at home. You will understand, then, how I
appreciate your enthusiasm about Leighstone; and if Leighstone had many
like Miss Herbert, I can well understand why its people should be content
to stay at home.”

Nellie laughed. “I am afraid, Mr. Goodal, that you have brought back
something more than your taste for fogs and your homely Saxon from Italy.”

“Yes, a more rooted love for my own land, a truer appreciation of my
countrymen, and more ardent admiration of my fair countrywomen.”

“Ah! now you are talking Italian. But, honestly, which country do you
find the most interesting of all you have seen?”

“My own, Miss Herbert.”

“The nation of shop-keepers!” ejaculated I.

“Of Magna Charta,” interposed my father, who, ready enough to condemn
his age and his country himself, was Englishman enough to allow no other
person to do so with impunity.

“Of hearth and home, of cheerful firesides and family circles,” added
Nellie.

“Of work-houses and treadmills,” I growled.

“Of law and order, of civil and religious liberty,” corrected my father.

“Which are of very recent introduction and very insecure tenure,” added I.

“They formed the corner-stone of the great charter on which our English
state is built--a charter that has become our glory and the world’s envy.”

“To be broken into and rifled within a century; to be set under the
foot of a Henry VIII. and pinned to the petticoat of an Elizabeth; to
be mocked at in the death of a Mary, Queen of Scots, and a Charles; to
be thrown out of window by a Cromwell. Our charters and our liberties!
Oh! we are a thrifty race. We can pocket them all when it suits our
convenience, and flaunt them to the world on exhibition-days. Our charter
did not save young Raymond Herbert his neck for sticking to his faith
during the Reformation, though I believe that same charter provided above
all things that the church of God should be free; and a Chief-Justice
Herbert sat on the bench and pronounced sentence on the boy, not daring
to wag a finger in defence of his own flesh and blood. Of course the
Catholic Church was not the church of God, for so the queen’s majesty
decreed; and to Chief-Justice Herbert we owe these lands, such of them
as were saved. Great heaven! we talk of nobility--English nobility; the
proudest race under the sun. The proudest race under the sun, who would
scorn to kiss the Pope’s slipper, grovelled in the earth, one and all of
them, under the heel of an Elizabeth, and the other day trembled at the
frown of a George the Fourth!”

I need not dwell on the fact that in those days I had a particular
fondness for the sound of my own voice. I gloried in what seemed to me
startling paradoxes, and flashes of wisdom that loosened bolts and rivets
of prejudice, shattered massive edifices of falsehood, undermined in a
twinkling social and moral weaknesses, which, of course, had waited in
snug security all these long years for my coming to expose them to the
scorn of a wondering world. What a hero I was, what a trenchant manner
I had of putting things, what a keen intellect lay concealed under that
calm exterior, and what a deep debt the world would have owed me had
it only listened in time to my Cassandra warnings, it will be quite
unnecessary for me to point out.

“I suppose I ought to be very much ashamed of myself,” said Kenneth
good-humoredly; “but I still confess that I find my own country the most
interesting of any that I have seen. It may be that the very variety,
the strange contradictions in our national life and character, noticed
by our radical here, are in themselves no small cause for that interest.
If we have had a Henry VIII., we have had an Alfred and an Edward; if we
have had an Elizabeth, we have also had a Maud; if our nobles cowered
before a woman, they faced a man at Runnymede, and at their head were
English churchmen, albeit not English churchmen of the stamp of to-day.
If we broke through our charter, let us at least take the merit of having
restored something of it, although it is somewhat mortifying to find that
centuries of wandering and of history and discovery only land us at our
old starting-point.”

“I give in. Bah! we are spoiling the night with history, while all
nature is smiling at us in her beautiful calm.”

“Ah! you have driven away the nightingale; it sings no more,” said Fairy.

“Surely some one can console us for its absence,” said Kenneth, glancing
at Nellie.

“I do not understand Italian,” she laughed back.

“Your denial is a confession of guilt. I heard Roger call you Fairy.
There be good fairies and bad. You would not be placed among the bad?”

“Why not?”

“Because all the bad fairies are old.”

“And ride on broomsticks,” added I.

Unlike her brother, who had not a note of music in him, Fairy had a
beautiful voice, which had had the additional advantage of a very careful
cultivation. She sang us a simple old ballad that touched our hearts; and
when that was done, we insisted on another. Then the very trees seemed
to listen, the flowers to open as to a new sunlight, and shed their
sweetness in sympathy, as she sang one of those ballads of sighs and
tears, hope and despair and sorrowful lamentation, caught from the heart
of a nation whose feelings have been stirred to the depths to give forth
all that was in them in the beautiful music that their poet has wedded to
words. The ballad was “The Last Rose of Summer,” and as the notes died
away the foliage seemed to move and murmur with applause, while after a
pause the nightingale trilled out again its wonderful song in rivalry.
There was silence for a short time, which was broken by Kenneth saying:

“I must break up Fairy-land, and go back to the Black Bull.”

But of this we would not hear. It was agreed that Kenneth should take
up his quarters with us. The conversation outlasted our usual hours at
Leighstone. Kenneth sustained the burden; and with a wonderful grace and
charm he did so. He had read as well as travelled, and more deeply and
extensively than is common with men of his years; for his conversation
was full of that easy and delightful illustration that only a student
whose sharp angles have been worn off by contact with the world outside
his study can command and gracefully use, leaving the gem of knowledge
that a man possesses, be it small or great, perfect in its setting. Much
of what he related was relieved by some shrewd and happy remark of his
own that showed him a close observer, while a genial good-nature and
tendency to take the best possible view of things diffused itself through
all. It was late when my father said:

“Mr. Goodal, you have tempted me into inviting an attack of my old enemy
by sitting here so long. There is no necessity for your going to-morrow,
is there, since you are simply on a walking tour? Roger is a great
rambler, and there are many pretty spots about Leighstone, many an old
ruin that will repay a visit. Indeed, ruins are the most interesting
objects of these days. My walking days, I fear, are over. A visitor is a
Godsend to us down here, and, though you ramblers soon tire of one spot,
there is more in Leighstone than can be well seen in a day.”

Thus pressed, he consented, and our little party broke up.

“Are you an owl!” I asked Kenneth, as my father and sister retired.

“Somewhat,” he replied, smiling.

“Then come to my room, and you shall give your to-whoo to my to-whit. I
was born an owl, having been introduced into this world, I am informed,
in the small hours; and the habits of the species cling to me. Take that
easy-chair and try this cigar. These slippers will ease your feet. Though
not a drinking man, properly so called, I confess to a liking for the
juice of the grape. The fondness for it is still strong in the sluggish
blood of the Norse, and I cannot help my blood. Therefore, at an hour
like this, a night-cap will not hurt us. Of what color shall it be? Of
the deep claret tint of Bordeaux, the dark-red hue of Burgundy, or the
golden amber of the generous Spaniard? Though, as I tell you, not a
drinking man, I think a good cigar and a little wine vastly improves the
moonlight, provided the quantity be not such as to obscure the vision of
eye or brain. That is not exactly a theory of my own. It was constantly
and deeply impressed upon me by a very reverend friend of mine, with whom
I read for a year. Indeed I fear his faith in port was deeper than his
faith in the Pentateuch. The drunkard is to me the lowest of animals,
ever has been, and ever will be. Were the world ruled--as it is scarcely
likely to be just yet--by my suggestions, the fate of the Duke of
Clarence should be the doom of every drunkard, with only this difference;
that each one be drowned in his own favorite liquor, soaked there till
he dissolved, and the contents ladled out and poured down the throat of
whoever, by any accident, mistook the gutter for his bed. You will pardon
my air; in my own room I am supreme lord and master. Kenneth, my boy,
I like you. I feel as though I had known you all my life. That must
have been the reason for my unruly, ungracious, and unmannerly explosion
down-stairs at dinner. I have an uncontrollable habit of breaking out in
that style sometimes, and the effect on my father, whom I need not tell
you I love and revere above all men living, is what you see.”

He smoked in silence a few seconds, and then, turning on me, suddenly
asked:

“Where did you learn your theology?”

The question was the last in the world that would have presented itself
to me, and was a little startling, but put in too earnest a manner for
a sneer, and too kindly to give offence. I answered blandly that I was
guiltless of laying claim to any special theology.

“Well, your opinions, then--the faith, the reasons, on which you ground
your life and views of life. Your conversation at times drifts into a
certain tone that makes me ask. Where or what have you studied?”

“Nowhere; nothing; everywhere; everything; everybody; I read whatever
I come across. And as for theology--for my theology, such as it is--I
suppose I am chiefly indebted to that remarkably clever organ of opinion
known as the _Journal of the Age_.”

A few whiffs in silence, and then he said:

“I thought so.”

“What did you think?”

“That you were a reader of the _Journal of the Age_. Most youngsters who
read anything above a sporting journal or a sensational novel are. I have
been a student of it myself--a very close student. I knew the editor
well. We were at one time bosom friends. He took me in training, and I
recognized the symptoms in you at once.”

“How so?”

“The _Journal of the Age_--and it has numerous admirers and
imitators--is, in these days, the ablest organ of a great and almost
universal worship of an awful trinity that has existed since man was
first created; and the name of that awful trinity is--the devil, the
world, and the flesh.”

I stared at him in silent astonishment. All the gayety of his manner, all
its softness, had gone, and he seemed in deadly earnest, as he went on:

“This worship is not paraded in its grossest form. Not at all. It is
graced by all that wit can give and undisciplined intellect devise. It
has a brilliant sneer for Faith, a scornful smile for Hope, and a chill
politeness for Charity. I revelled in it for a time. Heaven forgive me! I
was happy enough to escape.”

“With what result?”

“Briefly with this: with the conviction that man did not make this world;
that he did not make himself, or send himself into it; that consequently
he was not and could never be absolutely his own master; that he was
sent in and called out by Another, by a Greater than he, by a Creator,
by a God. I became and am a Catholic, to find that what for a time I had
blindly worshipped were the three enemies against whom I was warned to
fight all the days of my life.”

“And the _Journal of the Age_?”

“The editor cut me as soon as he found I believed in God in preference to
himself. He is the fiercest opponent of Papal Infallibility with whom I
ever had the honor of acquaintance.”

“I cannot say that your words and the manner in which you speak them
do not impress me. Still, it never occurred to me that so insignificant
a being as Roger Herbert was worthy the combined attack of the three
formidable adversaries you have named. What have the devil, the world,
and the flesh to do with me?”

“Yes, there is the difficulty, not only with Roger Herbert, but with
everybody else. It does seem strange that influences so powerful and
mysterious should be for ever ranged against such wretched little beings
as we are, whom a toothache tortures and a fever kills. Yet surely man’s
life on earth is not all fever and its prevention, toothache and its
cure, or a course of eating, doctoring, and tailoring. If we believe at
all in a life that can never end, in a soul, surely that is something
worth thought and care. An eternal life that must range itself on one
side or the other seems worthy of a struggle between the powers of good
and evil, if good and evil there be. Nay, man is bound of his own right,
of his own free will, of his very existence, to choose between one and
the other, to be good or be bad, and not stumble on listlessly as a thing
of chance, tossed at will from one to the other. We do not sufficiently
realize the greatest of our obligations. We should feel disgraced if we
did not pay our tailor or our wine-merchant; but such a thought never
presents itself to us when the question concerns God or the devil, or
that part of us that does not wear clothes and does not drink wine.”

He had risen while he was speaking, and spoke with an energy and
earnestness I had never yet witnessed in any man. Whether right or
wrong, his view of things towered so high above my own blurred and
crooked vision that I felt myself crouch and grow small before him. The
watch-tower of his faith planted him high up among the stars of heaven,
while I groped and struggled far away down in the darkness. Oh! if I
could only climb up there and stand with him, and see the world and all
things in it from that divine and serene height, instead of impiously
endeavoring to build up my own and others’ little Babel that was to
reach the skies and enable us to behold God. But conversions are not
wrought by a few sentences nor by the mere emotions of the heart; not by
Truth itself, which is for ever speaking, for ever standing before and
confronting us, its mark upon its forehead, yet we pass it blindly by;
for has it not been said that “having eyes they see not, and having ears
they hear not”?

“Kenneth,” I said, stretching out my hand, which he clasped in both of
his, “the subject which has been called up I feel to be far too solemn
to be dismissed with the sneer and scoff that have grown into my nature.
Indeed, I always so regarded it secretly; but perhaps the foolish manner
in which I have hitherto treated it was owing somewhat to the foolish
people with whom I have had to deal from my boyhood. They give their
reasons about this, that, and the other as parrots repeat their lesson,
with interjectory shrieks and occasional ruffling of the poll, all after
the same pattern. You seem to me to be in earnest; but, if you please, we
will say no more about it--at least now.”

“As you please,” he replied. “Here I am at the end of my cigar. So
good-night, my dear boy. Well, you have had my to-whit to your to-whoo.”

And so a strange day ended. I sat thinking some time over our
conversation. Kenneth’s observations opened quite a new train of thought.
It had never occurred to me before that life was a great battle-field,
and that all men were, as it were, ranged under two standards, under the
folds of which they were compelled to fight. Everything had come to me
in its place. A man might have his private opinions on men and things,
as he collects a private museum for his own amusement; but in the main
one lived and died, acted and thought, passed through and out of life,
in much the same manner as his neighbor, not inquiring and not being
inquired into too closely. Life was made for us, and we lived it much
in the same way as we learned our alphabet, we never knew well how, or
took our medicine, in the regulation doses. Sometimes we were a little
rebellious, and suffered accordingly; that was all. Excess on any side
was a bore to everybody else. It was very easy, and on the whole not
unpleasant. We nursed our special crotchets, we read our newspapers,
we watched our children at their gambols, we chatted carelessly away
out on the bosom of the broad stream along which we were being borne so
surely and swiftly into the universal goal. Why should we scan the sky
and search beneath the silent waters, trembling at storms to come and
treacherous whirlpools, hidden sand-banks, and cruel rocks on which many
a brave bark had gone down? Chart and compass were for others; a pleasant
sail only for us. There was a Captain up aloft somewhere; it was his duty
and not ours to see that all was right and taut--ours to glide along in
slumbrous ease, between eternal banks of regions unexplored; to feast
our eyes on fair scenes, and lap our senses in musical repose. That was
the true life. Sunken rocks, passing storms, mutinies among the crew,
bursting of engines--what were such things to us? Had we not paid our
fares and made our provision for the voyage, and was not the Captain
bound to land us safely at our journey’s end, if he valued his position
and reputation?

The devil, the world, and the flesh! What nightmare summoned these
up, and set them glaring horribly into the eyes of a peaceful British
subject? What had the devil to do with me or I with the devil? What
were the world and the flesh? Take my father, now; what had they to do
with him? Or Fairy? Why, her life was as pure as that sky that smiled
down upon her with all its starry eyes. Let me see; there were others,
however, who afforded better subjects for investigation. Whenever
you want to find out anything disagreeable, call on your friends and
neighbors. There was the Abbot Jones, now; let us weigh him in the
triple scale. How fared the devil, the world, and the flesh with the
Abbot Jones? He was, as I said to Kenneth, a very genial man; he had
lived a good life, married into an excellent family, paid his bills,
had a choice library, a good table, was an excellent judge of cattle,
and a preacher whom everybody praised. Abbot Jones was faultless! There
was not a flaw to be found in him from the tip of his highly-polished
toe to the top of his highly-polished head. He had a goodly income,
but he used it cautiously; for Clara and Alice were now grown up, and
were scarcely girls to waste their lives in a nunnery, like my cousins,
the daughters of Archdeacon Herbert, who adored all that was sweetly
mortifying and secluded, yet, by one of those odd contradictions in
female and human nature generally, never missed a fashion or a ball. Yes,
Abbot Jones was a good and exemplary man. To be sure, he did not walk
barefoot or sandal-shod, not alone among the highways, where men could
see and admire, but into the byways of life, down among the alleys of
the poor, where clustered disease, drunkenness, despair, death; where
life is but one long sorrow. But then for what purpose did he pay a
curate, unless to do just this kind of dirty, apostolic work, while the
abbot devoted himself to the cares of his family, the publication of an
occasional pamphlet, and that pleasant drawing-room religion that finds
its perfection in good dinners, sage maxims, and cautious deportment? If
the curate neglected his duty, that was clearly the curate’s fault, and
not the abbot’s. If the abbot were clothed, not exactly in purple, but
in the very best of broadcloth, and fasted only by the doctor’s orders,
prayed not too severely, fared sumptuously every day of his life, he paid
for every inch of cloth, every ounce of meat, every drop of that port
for which his table was famous; for he still clung to the clerical taste
for a wine that at one time assumed a semi-ecclesiastical character,
and certain crumbs from his table went now and then to a stray Lazarus.
Yes, he was a faultless man, as the world went. He did not profess to
be consumed with the zeal for souls. His life did not aim at being an
apostolic one. He had simply adopted a profitable and not unpleasant
profession. If a S. Paul had come, straggling, footsore, and weary, into
Leighstone, and begun preaching to the people and attacking shepherds
who guarded not their fold, but quietly napped and sipped their port,
while the wolves of irreligion, of vice and misery in every form,
entered in and rent the flock from corner to corner, the abbot would
very probably have had S. Paul arrested for a seditious vagrant and a
disturber of the public peace.

Take my uncle, the archdeacon; what thought he of the world, the flesh,
and the devil? As for the last-named enemy of the human race, he did
not believe in him. A personal devil was to him simply a bogy wherewith
to frighten children. It was the outgrowth of mediæval superstition, a
Christianized version of a pagan fable. The devil was a gay subject with
Archdeacon Herbert, who was the wittiest and courtliest of churchmen. His
mission was up among the gods of this world; his confessional ladies’
boudoirs, his penance an epigram, his absolution the acceptance of an
invitation to dinner. He breathed in a perfumed atmosphere; his educated
ear loved the rustle of silks; he saw no heaven to equal a coach-and-four
in Rotten Row during the season. It was in every way fitting that such a
man should sooner or later be a bishop of the Church Established. He was
an ornament to his class--a man who could represent it in society as well
as in the pulpit, whose presence distilled dignity and perfume, and whose
views were what are called large and liberal--that is to say, no “views”
at all. What the three enemies had to do with my uncle I could not see.
I could only see that he would scarcely have been chosen as one of The
Twelve; but then who would be chosen as one of The Twelve in these days?

I went to the window and looked out. The moon was going down behind S.
Wilfrid’s, and Leighstone was buried in gloomy shadow. Down there below
me in the darkness throbbed thousands of hearts resting a little in
peaceful slumber till the morning came to wake them again to the toil
and the struggle, the pleasure and the pain, the good and the evil, of
another day. The good and the evil. Was there no good and evil waiting
down there by the bedside of every one, to face them in the morning, and
not leave them until they returned to that bedside at night? Was there
a great angel somewhere up above in that solemn, silent, ever-watchful
heaven, with an open scroll, writing down in awful letters the good and
the bad, the white and the black, in the life of each one of us? Were we
worth this care, weak little mortals, human machines, that we were? What
should our good or our evil count against the great Spirit, whom we are
told lives up above there in the passionless calm of a fixed eternity?
Did we shake our puny fists for ever in the face of that broad, bent
heaven that wrapped us in and overwhelmed us in its folds, what effect
would it have? If we held them up in prayer, what profited it? Who of men
could storm heaven or search hell? And yet, as Kenneth said, a life that
could not end was an awful thing. That the existence we feel within us is
never to cease; that the power of discriminating between good and evil,
define them, laugh at them or quibble about them as we may, can never
die out of us; that we are irresistibly impelled to one or the other;
that they are always knocking at the door of our hearts, for we feel them
there; that they cannot be blind influences, knowing not when to come or
when to go, but the voices of keen intelligences acting over the great
universe, wherever man lives and moves and has his being; that they are
not creations of our own, for they are independent of us; we may call
evil good and good wicked, but in the end the good will show itself, and
the evil throw off its disguise in spite of us--what does all this say
but that there is an eternal conflict going on, and that, will he or will
he not, every man born into the world must take a share in it?

That being so, search thine own heart, friend. Leave thy uncle, leave
thy neighbor, and come back to thyself. Let them answer for their share;
answer thou for thine. Which is thy standard? It cannot be both. What
part hast thou borne in the conflict? What giants killed? What foes
overcome? Hast thou slain that doughty giant within thee--thine own self?
Is there no evil in thee to be cast out? No stain upon the scutcheon of
thy pure soul? No vanity, no pride, no love of self above all and before
all, no worship of the world, no bowing to Mammon or other strange gods,
not to mention graver blots than all of these? Let thy neighbor pass till
all the dross is purged out of thee. There is not a libertine in all the
world but would wish all the world better, provided he had not to become
better with it. Thy good wishes for others are shared by all men alike,
by the worst as by the best. Begin at home, friend, and root out and
build up there. Trim thy own garden, cast out the weeds, water and tend
it well. The very sight of it is heaven to the weary wayfarer who, having
wandered far away from his own garden, sinks down at thy side, begrimed
with the dust of the road and the smoke of sin. You may tear him to
pieces, you may lacerate his soul, you may cast him, bound hand and foot,
into the outer darkness, yet never touch his heart. But he will stand
afar off and admire when he sees thy garden blowing fair, and all the
winds of heaven at play there, all the dews of heaven glistening there,
all the sunshine of heaven beaming there; then will he come and creep
close up to thee, desiring to take off the shoes from his feet, soiled
with his many wanderings in foul places. Then for the first time he feels
that he has wandered from the way, will see the stains upon him, and with
trembling fingers hasten to cast them off, and, standing barefoot and
humble before Him who made thee pure, falter out at length, “Lord, it is
good for us to be here.”

TO BE CONTINUED.


CALDERON’S AUTOS SACRAMENTALES.

CONCLUDED.

II.


I. BALTASSAR’S FEAST.[55]

Of all Calderon’s _autos_, this is the one which has been the most
generally admired, both on account of its intense dramatic power and
popular character.

It has been translated several times into German (see note at end of
previous article on the _autos_), and into English by Mr. MacCarthy.

The latter says in his preface: “This _auto_ must be classed with those
whose action relates directly to the Blessed Sacrament, because it puts
before us, in the profanation of the vases of the Temple by Baltassar, a
type of the desecration of the Holy Sacrament, and symbolizes to us, in
the punishment that follows this sacrilege, the magnitude and sublimity
of the Eucharistic Mystery. Although this immediate relation between the
action of the _auto_ and the sacrament becomes only manifestly clear
in the last scene, nevertheless all the preceding part, which is only
preparing us for the final catastrophe, stands in immediate connection
with it, and, through it, with the action of the _auto_. The wonderful
simplicity of this relation, and the lively dramatic treatment of the
subject, allow us to place this _auto_, justly, in the same category
with those that, comparatively speaking, are easy to be understood, and
which, like _The Great Theatre of the World_, have especial claims upon
popularity, even if many of its details contain very deep allusions, the
meaning of which, at first sight, is not very intelligible.”

The _auto_ opens in the garden of Baltassar’s palace with a scene between
Daniel and Thought, who, dressed in a coat of many colors, represents
the Fool.

After a long description of his abstract self he states that he has this
day been assigned to King Baltassar’s mind, and ironically remarks that
he, Thought, is not the only fool, and apologizes for his rudeness in not
listening to Daniel:

    “It were difficult to try
    To keep up a conversation,
    We being in our separate station,
    Wisdom thou, and Folly I.”

Daniel answers that there is no reason why they should not converse, for
the sweetest harmony is that which proceeds from two different chords.

Thought hesitates no longer, and informs Daniel that he is thinking of
the wedding which Babylon celebrates this day with great rejoicings. The
groom is King Baltassar, son and heir of Nabuchodonosor; the happy bride
the fair Empress of the East, Idolatry herself.

That the king is already wedded to Vanity is no hindrance, as his law
allows him a thousand wives.

Daniel breaks forth in lamentations for God’s people and the unhappy
kingdom; while clownish Thought asks if Daniel himself is interested in
the ladies, since he makes such an outcry over the news, and insinuates
that envy and his captivity are the causes of his grief.

With a flourish of trumpets enter Baltassar and Vanity at one side,
and Idolatry, fantastically dressed, at the other, with attendants,
followers, etc.

The king courteously welcomes his new wife, who replies that it is right
that she should come to his kingdom, since here first after the Flood
idolatry arose.

The king declares that his own idea, his sole ambition, has been to unite
Idolatry and Vanity, and then suddenly becomes absorbed in thought while
fondly regarding his wives; to their questions as to the cause of his
suspense he answers that, fired by their beauty, he wishes to relate the
wondrous story of his conquests.

Wonderful indeed is the story which follows, extending, in the original,
through three hundred and fifty uninterrupted lines.

In the introduction the king relates the strange fate of his father,
Nabuchodonosor, whose worthy successor he declares himself to be, and
describes his vaulting ambition, which will not be satisfied until he is
the sole ruler over all the region of Senaar, which beheld the building
of the Tower of Babel; this leads to an account of the Deluge, so
poetical and characteristic that we give its finest portion here:[56]

    “First began a dew as soft
    As those tears the golden sunrise
    Kisseth from Aurora’s lids;
    Then a gentle rain, as dulcet
    As those showers the green earth drinks
    In the early days of summer;
    From the clouds then water-lances,
    Darting at the mountains, struck them;
    In the clouds their sharp points shimmer’d,
    On the mountains rang their but-ends;
    Then the rivulets were loosened,
    Roused to madness, ran their currents,
    Rose to rushing rivers, then
    Swelled to seas of seas. O Summit
    Of all wisdom! thou alone
    Knowest how thy hand can punish!
    … Then a mighty sea-storm rushed
    Through the rents and rocky ruptures,
    By whose mouths the great earth yawns,
    When its breath resounds and rumbles
    From internal caves. The air
    … Roared confined, the palpitation
    Of its fierce internal pulses
    Making the great hills to shake,
    And the mighty rocks to tremble.
    The strong bridle of the sand,
    Which the furious onset curbeth
    Of the white horse of the sea
    With its foam-face silver fronted,
    Loosened every curbing rein,
    So that the great steed, exulting,
    Rushed upon the prostrate shore,
    With loud neighing to o’errun it.”

The ark alone is saved, and Nimrod resolves to anticipate a second
Deluge, and erect a more ambitious refuge. The building of the Tower of
Babel and the Confusion of Tongues then follow, and the king closes his
long monologue with the determination to rebuild Nimrod’s tower, urged to
the task by the opportune conjunction of Idolatry and Vanity.

These express their gratification at this lofty scheme, and offer to
perpetuate the fame of his great deeds.

The king, exulting, exclaims: “Who shall break this bond?”

Daniel, advancing, “The hand of God!” and returns the same answer to the
king’s angry question, “What can save thee from my power or defend thee?”

Baltassar is profoundly moved, but spares Daniel because Vanity loathes
the captive and Idolatry disdains his religion.

In the fourth scene the prophet addresses the Most High, and cries: “Who
can endure these offences, these pretences of Vanity and displays of
Idolatry? Who will end so great an evil?”

“I will,” answers Death, who enters, wearing a sword and dagger, and
dressed symbolically in a cloak covered with figures of skeletons.

      DANIEL. “Awful shape, to whom I bow
    Through the shadowy glooms that screen thee,
    Never until now I’ve seen thee:
    Fearful phantom, who art thou?”

Death’s answer in the following monologue is most impressive and
beautiful. Our space, unfortunately, will let us quote but a part:

    “Daniel, thou Prophet of the God of Truth,
    I am the end of all who life begin,
    The drop of venom in the serpent’s tooth,
    The cruel child of envy and of sin.
    Abel first showed the world’s dark door uncouth,
    But Cain threw wide the door, and let me in;
    Since then I’ve darkened o’er life’s checker’d path,
    The dread avenger of Jehovah’s wrath.
    … The proudest palace that supremely stands,
    ’Gainst which the wildest winds in vain may beat;
    The strongest wall, that like a rock withstands
    The shock of shells, the furious fire-ball’s heat--
    All are but easy triumphs of my hands,
    All are but humble spoils beneath my feet;
    If against _me_ no palace-wall is proof,
    Ah! what can save the lowly cottage-roof?
    Beauty, nor power, nor genius, can survive,
    Naught can resist my voice when I sweep by;
    For whatsoever has been let to live,
    It is my destined duty to see die.
    With all the stern commands that thou mayst give,
    I am, God’s Judgment, ready to comply;
    Yea, and so quickly shall my service run
    That ere the word is said the deed is done!”

Death then recounts some of his past achievements to prove his readiness
to inflict punishment on the king.

Daniel, however, expressly forbids him to kill Baltassar, and gives him
leave only to awaken him to a sense of coming woe and the fact that he is
mortal.

This Death does by appearing to the king and showing him a small book
lost by him some time before (_i.e._, the remembrance of his mortality,
which he had forgotten), in which is written his debt to Death.

He leaves the terror-stricken monarch with an admonition to remember his
obligation.

Thought, hovering between Vanity and Idolatry, soon, however, effaces the
impression left by the terrible visitor.

The king and Thought, lulled by their combined flatteries, fall asleep,
while Death enters and delivers the following monologue, which, as Mr.
MacCarthy truly says, “belongs unquestionably to the deepest and most
beautiful poetry that has ever flown from the pen of Calderon”:

      DEATH. “Man the rest of slumber tries,
    Never the reflection making
    That, O God! asleep and waking,
    Every day he lives and dies;
    That a living corse he lies,
    After each day’s daily strife,
    Stricken by an unseen knife,
    In brief lapse of life, not breath,
    A repose which is not death;
    But what is death teaches life:
    Sugared poison ’tis, which sinks
    On the heart, which it o’ercometh,
    Which it hindereth and benumbeth.
    And can a man, then, live who poison drinks?
    ’Tis forgetting, when the links
    That gave life by mutual fretting
    To the Senses, snap, or letting
    The imprisoned Five go free,
    They can hear not, touch, or see;
    And can a man forget this strange forgetting?
    It is frenzy, that which moves
    Heart and eyes to taste and see
    Joys and shapes that ne’er can be:
    And can a man be found who frenzy loves?
    ’Tis a lethargy that proves
    My best friend; in trust for me,
    Death’s dull, drowsy weight bears he,
    And, by failing limb and eye,
    Teaches man the way to die:
    And can a man, then, seek this lethargy?
    ’Tis a shadow, which is made
    Without light’s contrasted aid,
    Moving in a spectral way,
    Sad, phantasmal foe of day:
    And can a man seek rest beneath such shade?
    Finally, ’tis well portrayed
    As Death’s Image: o’er and o’er
    Men have knelt its shrine before,
    Men have bowed the suppliant knee,
    All illusion though it be:
    And can a man this Image, then, adore?
    Since Baltassar here doth sleep,
    Since he hath the poison drank,
    Since he treads oblivion’s blank,
    Since no more his pulses leap,
    Since the lethargy is deep,
    Since, in horror and confusion,
    To all other sights’ exclusion,
    He has seen the Image--seen
    What this shade, this poison, mean,
    What this frenzy, this illusion:
    Since Baltassar sleepeth so,
    Let him sleep, and never waken:
    Be his body and soul o’ertaken
    By the eternal slumber.”

(He draws his sword, and is about to kill him.)

Daniel rushes in and saves the sleeper, who is dreaming a mysterious
vision, which is visibly represented to the spectators.

The king on awakening is captivated, as usual, by Idolatry, who proposes
to him a magnificent feast, in which shall be used the sacred vessels
carried away from Jerusalem.

The feast is prepared; the table is brought in, on which are displayed
the sacred vessels; the attendants begin serving the banquet, while
Thought plays the court-fool.

In the midst of the revelry Death enters, disguised as one of the
servants, and, when the king calls for wine, presents him with one of the
golden goblets from the table, with a mysterious aside referring to the
Lord’s Supper, where the cup contains both death and life, as it is drunk
worthily or unworthily.

The king rises and gives the toast: “For ever, Moloch, god of the
Assyrians, live!”

A great clap of thunder is heard, darkness settles on the feast, and a
fiery hand writes upon the wall the fatal “MANE, THECEL, PHARES.”

Idolatry, Vanity, and Thought in turn fail to interpret the mysterious
words, and the first named suggests that Daniel should be summoned.[57]

The prophet comes and explains the hidden meaning of the words, declaring
that God’s wrath has been aroused by the misuse of the sacred vessels,
which, until the law of grace reigns on earth, foreshow the Blessed
Sacrament.

Baltassar and his wives tremble at the solemn words. Thought, an
expression of the reproaches of his master’s conscience, turns against
the king, who laments the desertion of his friends in the hour of need.

Death, during this scene, has been approaching nearer and nearer, and now
draws his sword and stabs the unhappy monarch, who cries:

    “This is death, then!
    Was the venom not sufficient
    That I drank of?”

      DEATH. “No; that venom
    Was the death of the soul; the body’s
    This swift death-stroke representeth.”

The king, struggling with Death, is forced to confess:

    “He who dares profane God’s cup,
    Him he striketh down forever;
    He who sinfully receives
    Desecrates God’s holiest vessel!”

These are his last words. Idolatry awakens from her dream, and longs to
see the light of the law of grace now while the written law reigns.

Death declares that it is foreshadowed in Gedeon’s fleece, in the manna,
in the honey-comb, in the lion’s mouth, and in the shew-bread.

    DANIEL. “If these emblems
    Show it not, then be it shown
    In the full foreshadowing presence
    Of the feast here now transformed
    Into Bread and Wine--stupendous
    Miracle of God; his greatest
    Sacrament in type presented.”

The scene opens to the sound of solemn music; a table is seen arranged
as an altar, with a monstrance and chalice in the middle, and two wax
candles on each side.

The _auto_ closes with Idolatry’s declaration that she is transformed
into _Latria_, and the usual personal address to the audience.


II. THE PAINTER OF HIS OWN DISHONOR.

We have already remarked that the _auto El Pintor de su Deshonra_ is a
_replica_ of a secular play bearing the same title.

It will not be out of place to give a short analysis of the latter,
premising that it is one of the greatest of Calderon’s tragedies.

In the first act the Governor of Gaeta welcomes to his residence his
friend Don Juan Roca, whose young wife, Seraphine, soon becomes intimate
with the governor’s daughter, Portia, to whom she reveals the secret that
she has been ardently loved by Portia’s brother, Don Alvaro, whose love
she has as ardently returned.

News, however, was received of his shipwreck and death, and she finally
yielded to her father’s urgent requests, and gave her hand to Don Juan.

The unhappy lady faints while reciting her griefs, and Portia hastens for
aid. At this moment a stranger enters, perceives the unconscious lady,
and bends over her with an expression of the warmest interest. Seraphine
opens her eyes, and with the cry “Alvaro!” faints again.

Her old lover, saved from the waves, has returned to find her another’s
wife.

From this moment begins a struggle between love and duty, depicted with
all the tenderness and power of which the poet was capable.

Seraphine attempts with all her strength to master her love for Alvaro,
and tells him, with forced coolness, how much she is attached to her
husband by duty and inclination.

During this interview a cannon is heard--the signal announcing the
approaching departure of Don Juan’s ship. Seraphine withdraws to follow
him to their home in Spain, and leaves Alvaro in a state of utter
hopelessness.

The second act reveals to us Don Juan (an enthusiastic lover of art) in
his home in Barcelona, painting his wife’s portrait.

The remembrance of the past seems banished from Seraphine’s heart, and
everything indicates a state of peace and happiness.

Don Juan withdraws a moment, when a sailor enters the room.

It is Don Alvaro, who, unable to forget his love, has followed Seraphine
to Barcelona. He overwhelms her with his affection; but she shows him
so firmly and eloquently that his pleading is in vain that he in turn
resolves to conquer his passion and leave her for ever.

He still lingers near, but makes no attempt to approach her again.

One day, during the Carnival, Don Juan’s villa takes fire. Seraphine is
borne insensible from the house by her husband, who confides her to Don
Alvaro, whom he does not, of course, recognize, and returns to help the
others who are in danger.

Don Alvaro, meanwhile, is left with Seraphine in his arms. His love
revives stronger than ever in the terrible temptation, and he bears the
still insensible Seraphine to his ship, and makes sail with the greatest
haste.

Don Juan does not return until the ship is under way, discovers too late
that he has been deceived, and throws himself into the sea in order to
overtake the fugitives.

In the last act we find Don Juan at Gaeta, disguised as an artist, in
order to obtain more easily access into private houses, and discover who
has stolen his wife.

He is introduced to Prince Urbino, who commissions him to paint the
portrait of a beautiful woman whom he has seen at a neighboring
forester’s house, which he visits in order to meet Portia secretly.

The same place has been chosen by Don Alvaro to conceal Seraphine, who is
the beautiful lady who has attracted the prince’s attention.

Don Juan repairs to the appointed spot, and erects his easel near a
window, through the blinds of which he can see, unnoticed, the fair one.

The artist discovers, with feelings which can be imagined, his wife
asleep in the garden. She murmurs words which prove her innocence. But
this cannot save her; she must be sacrificed to remove the stain on her
husband’s honor.

Don Juan expresses his feelings in a most powerful soliloquy, when
Alvaro enters and embraces the sleeping Seraphine. At that instant two
shots are heard, and the innocent and guilty fall bleeding to the ground.

The _auto_ founded on the above play is, in the opinion of no less a
critic than Wilhelm Val Schmidt, the first of its class, and withal much
less technical than is usual with these plays.

The _dramatis personæ_ include the Artist, the World, Love, Lucifer, Sin,
Grace, Knowledge, Nature (_i.e._, human nature at first in a state of
innocence), Innocence, and the Will (_i.e._, free-will).

The first car represents a dragon, which opens and discloses Lucifer,
whose first speech proves the trite remark about the devil quoting
Scripture; for he immediately proceeds to cite Jeremias and David, who
alluded to him as the dragon.

He then summons Sin, and repeats to her his partly-known history, which
contains some singular ideas.

He was the favorite of the Father in his former home, where he saw,
before the original existed, the portrait of so rare a beauty that,
inflamed with love, and to prevent the Prince from marrying her, he
rebelled, and, placing himself at the head of the other discontented
spirits, was defeated and doomed to perpetual exile and darkness.

So far Sin is acquainted with the story; but from this point all is new
to her.

The greatest of Lucifer’s sufferings arises from his envy of the
Prince, who is all that is wise and lovely: a learned theologian,
legislator, philosopher, physician, logician, astrologist, mathematician,
architect--“witness the palace of the world”--geometrician, rhetorician,
musician, and poet.

But none of these qualities so enrages and astonishes Lucifer as the
Prince’s talent for painting. He has already been engaged six days on
a landscape. At the beginning the ground of the canvas was so bare and
rough that he only drew on it the outline in shadowy figures. The first
day he gave it light; the second day he introduced heaven and earth,
dividing the waters and the firmament; the third day, seeing the earth so
arid and bare, he painted flowers in it and fruits, and the fourth day
the sun and moon. He filled, the fifth day, the air and waters with birds
and fishes; and this sixth day he has covered the landscape with various
animals.

Nothing of all this astonishes Lucifer so much as the Prince’s intention
to embody in a palpable form the ideal which was the cause of Lucifer’s
fall.

The divine Artist has himself chosen the colors and selected clay and
occult minerals, which Lucifer fears a breath may animate: “Since if a
breath can dissipate dust, I suspect, I lament, I fear, that dust may
live by the inspiration of a breath.”

Animated by this fear, Lucifer has summoned Sin to aid him in destroying
this image, so that the Prince may be The Painter of his own Dishonor.

A palace appears, and near the entrance the painting on an easel. Lucifer
and Sin retire; for the Artist, accompanied by the Virtues, comes to put
a careful hand to his work.

Sin knows not where to conceal herself. Lucifer bids her hide in a cave
in the bank of a stream.

Sin answers that she is afraid of the water, because she foresees that it
is to be (in the water of baptism) the antidote to sin.

The flowers, grain, and vine all terrify her, before which, as symbols of
some unknown sacrament, she reverently bows.

She at last conceals herself in a tree, which Lucifer calls from that
moment _the tree of death_.

The Artist enters, Innocence bearing the palette, Knowledge the
mall-stick, and Grace the brushes.

He declares his intention to show his power in the portrait his love
wishes to paint, and asks the attendant Virtues to add their gifts to
Human Nature.

He proceeds to work, while the Virtues call upon the sun, moon, etc., to
praise the Lord.

The Artist finishes his work by breathing the breath of life into it.
The picture falls, and in its place appears Human Nature, who expresses
most vividly her wonder at her creation, and joins in the general anthem,
“Bless the Lord.” Lucifer confesses that he and Sin are _de trop_, and
they depart to seek some disguise in which to return and carry out their
undertaking. While the chorus repeats the praises of the Lord, Human
Nature naïvely asks, “How can I bless him, if I do not know him? Who will
tell me who He is or who I am?”

The Artist advances and answers her question. Nature demands who _he_
is. “I am who am, and have been, and am to be; and since thou hast been
created for Love’s spouse, let thy love be grateful.”

“What command dost thou lay on me, my Love? I will never break it.”

“All that thou seest here is thine; that tree alone is mine.”

Nature asks who can ever divert her love, and is answered, “Thy
Free-will.”

“What new spirit and force was created in my new being by that word,
which told me that there was something in me besides myself? Voice, tell
me, who is Free-will.”

Free-will appears as a rustic, and answers, “I.”

Nature then proceeds to name the various objects about her, accompanying
each name with some appropriate remark, and is led quite naturally to
indulge in some boasting at her dominion over such a beautiful and varied
kingdom.

This is the moment Lucifer and Sin select to appear in the disguise of
rustics. The latter remains concealed in the tree; the former introduces
himself to Human Nature as a gardener, and says very gallantly that he
lost his last place on her account.

Nature hastens to turn a conversation becoming somewhat personal by
asking what he is cultivating.

“That beautiful tree.”

“It is extremely lovely.”

“There is something more singular about it than being merely lovely.”

“What?”

“Earth, who brought it forth, can tell thee.”

“I am earth, since I was formed of earth; so I will tell the Earth to
keep me no longer in suspense.”

“Then speak to her, and thou shalt see.”

“Mother Earth, what is this hidden mystery?”

SIN. “Eat, and thou shalt be as God.”

Then follow the Fall and a powerful scene depicting Nature’s confusion
and grief, as she is dragged off by Satan as his slave, while Sin claims
Free-will as her prey.

The Artist enters and finds Knowledge, Innocence, and Grace in tears; the
latter informs him of the Fall.

He thus reproaches his creation for her ingratitude: “What more could
I do for thee, my best design, than form thee with my own hands? I gave
thee my image, a soul that cost thee nothing, and yet thou desertest me
for my greatest enemy.”

He then pronounces the curse upon Mankind and the Serpent, and declares
he will blot out the world, the scene of their sin.

The clouds break and the sea bursts its limits; the Earth trembles and
struggles with the waves, and in agony calls on the Lord for mercy.

In the midst of this confusion of the elements Human Nature is heard
crying for help.

LUCIFER. “Why callest thou for aid, if I, the only one whom it behooves
to give it, delight in seeing thee annihilated?”

Sin also makes the same declaration. The World alone attempts to save its
queen.

At last the Artist casts her a plank, saying, “Mortal, again see whom
thou hast deserted, and for whom; since he whom thou hast offended saves
thee, and he whom thou lovest abandons thee! One day thou wilt know of
what this plank, fragment of a miraculous ark, is symbol.”

The World, Nature, and Free-will are saved; the latter enters, bound with
Sin, who declares that Sin and Human Nature are so nearly the same that
one cannot go anywhere without the other.

We have said anachronisms are frequent; the poet here even makes his
characters jest about it.

HUMAN NATURE. “Since here there are no real persons, and Allegory can
traverse centuries in hours, it seems to me that the salute the angels
are singing to this celestial aurora declares in resounding words…”

MUSIC. “In heaven and on earth peace to man and glory to God.”

FREE-WILL. “The story has made a fine jump from the Creation to the
Flood, and I think there is going to be another, if I understand that
song aright--from the Deluge to the Nativity!”

The chant continues, to the infinite discomfort of Lucifer and Sin, who
at last determine in their rage to disfigure Human Nature so that her
Creator himself could not recognize her.

Lucifer holds her hands, while Sin brands upon her brow the sign of
slavery.

Lucifer then commands the World to remain on guard, and let no one enter
without careful scrutiny, for fear lest the Artist may attempt to avenge
the wrong done him.

The Artist enters, accompanied by Divine Love.

They are soon discovered by the World, who exclaims: “Who goes there?”

“Friends.”

“Your name?”

“A Man.”

“And the World, the faithful sentinel of Sin, does not know how thou hast
entered here?”

“I did not come that Sin should know me.”

“_I_ do not know thee.”

“So John will say.”

“By what door didst thou enter?”

“By that of Divine Love, who accompanies me.”

“What is thy office?”

“I was once an Artist in a certain allegory, and must still be the same.”

“Artist?”

“Yes, since I came to retouch a figure of mine which an error has
blotted.”

“Since thou art a painter thou canst do me a favor.…”

“What is it?”

The World then informs him that there is a certain Spouse who has been
carried away from her husband, and is now in the power of a Tyrant, who
is endeavoring to force her to accompany him to another world, the seat
of his rule.

The Artist weeps, because he remembers his own Spouse, whose fate is
similar to that of this one.

The world begs the Artist to make a portrait of this fair disconsolate
one, that he (the World) may wear it on his breast.

The Artist consents, and conceals himself in order to work unobserved.

The World goes in search of Human Nature, while the Artist looks about
for some hiding-place. Love points to a cross near by, and says that as
the first offence was committed in a tree, this one will witness his
vengeance.

The Artist calls for his colors, and Love presents him with a box, in
opening which his hands are stained a bloody red.

“Take this!”

“It is all carmine.”

“I have no other color.”

“Do not let it afflict thee, Love, that blood must retouch what Sin has
blotted. The brushes!”

Love hands him three nails--“Here they are!”

“How sharp and cruel! What can be the canvas for such brushes!”

Love gives him a canvas in the shape of a heart--“a heart.”

“Of bronze?”

“Yes.”

“How I grieve to see it so hardened, when I intended to form in it a
second figure! Give me the mall-stick.”

Love presents him with a small lance. “Here it is.”

“The point is steel! Less cruel instruments Innocence, Grace, and
Knowledge once gave me!”

“Be not astonished if these are more cruel than those; for then thou
didst paint as God, and now as Man!”

While the Artist is working Nature, Free-will, and Sin enter, and later
Lucifer, who, wearied of Nature’s continual lamentation, comes to drag
her to his realm.

ARTIST. “Why should I delay my vengeance, seeing them together? Give me,
Love, the weapons which I brought for this occasion!”

“Thy voice is the lightning, this weapon only its symbol; but I deliver
it to thee with sorrow!”

“When my offended honor is so deeply concerned?”

“I am Love, and _she_ is weeping; but I will direct my gaze to thy
wrongs, and without fail shall hit the mark.”

“My hand cannot err, traitrous adulterers, who conspired against me; the
honor of an insulted man obliges me to this! I am the Painter of his own
Dishonor; die both at one stroke!” (Fires. Lucifer and Sin both fall.)

LOVE. “Thou hast hit Sin, and not Human Nature!”

The Artist answers that it cannot be said that his shot has failed, since
by this tree Nature lives, and Lucifer and Sin are killed.

The Artist points to a fountain of seven streams, and the Virtues, and
invites Human Nature to bathe in the blood from his side, and be restored
to her original condition.

The _auto_ closes with an expression of gratitude from Nature, and the
usual allusion to the Sacrament in whose honor the present festival is
celebrated.


I AM THE DOOR.

“To him that knocketh it shall be opened.”

    Truly, I see Thou art!--with nails hinged fast:
      Yet faster barred and locked with bolts of love.
    I, treasure seeking, through Thee would go past.
      Than lock or hinges must I stronger prove?

    “A knock will do’t.” A knock! Where durst I, Lord?
    “Knock at my heart; there all my wealth is stored.”


THE TRAGEDY OF THE TEMPLE.

CONCLUDED.

While the so-called King of France was thus subjected to the fierce and
brutal caprice of one man, there were thousands of loyal hearts beating
in pity for him, and longing to liberate and crown him, even at the price
of their blood. The faithful army of La Vendée was fighting for him,
and with a courage and determination that caused some anxiety among the
good patriots as to the possible issue of the campaign. The movement
was held up to ridicule; the young prince was mockingly styled King of
La Vendée. Nevertheless, the republicans were alarmed, and the hopes of
the royalists were reviving. The Simons were discussing these matters
one evening over the newspaper, when Simon, looking at the forlorn,
broken-spirited little monarch, whose cause was thus creating strife and
bloodshed far beyond his dungeon’s walls, exclaimed sneeringly: “I say,
little wolf-cub, they talk of setting up the throne again, and putting
thee in thy father’s place; what wouldst thou do to me if they made thee
king?” The boy raised his dim blue eyes from the ground, where they were
now habitually fixed, and replied: “I would forgive thee!” Mme. Simon, in
relating this incident long after, said that even her husband seemed for
a moment awed by the sublime simplicity of the answer.

They were both of them sick and tired of their office by this time; she
of the cruel work it involved, he of the close confinement to which
it condemned them. He tried to get released from his post, and after
some fruitless efforts succeeded. On the 19th of January, 1794, they
left the Temple. The patriot shoemaker died six months afterwards on
the guillotine. He had no successor, properly speaking, in the Tower;
in history he has neither successor nor predecessor; he stands alone,
unrivalled and unapproachable, as a type of the tiger-man, a creature
devoid of one humane, redeeming characteristic. Other men whose names
have become bywords of cruelty or ferocious wickedness have at least had
the excuse of some all-absorbing passion which, stifling reason and every
better instinct of their nature, carried them on as by some overmastering
impulse; but Simon could not plead even this guilty excuse. His was no
mad delirium of passion, but a cold-blooded, deadly, undying, unrelenting
cruelty in the execution of a murder that he had no motive in pursuing
except as a means of adding a few coins more to his salary. He entered on
his task of lingering assassination with deliberate barbarity; he was not
stimulated by the sense of personal wrong, by a thirst for revenge, by
any motive that could furnish the faintest thread of extenuation. He rose
every morning and went to his victim as other men rise and go to their
studies or their work. He devoted all his energies, all his instincts, to
coolly inflicting torture on a beautiful, engaging, and innocent little
child. No, happily for the world, he has no prototype in its history;
nor, for the honor of humanity, has he ever found an apologist. He is
perhaps the only monster of ancient or modern times who has never found
a sceptic or a casuist to lift a voice in his behalf. Nero and Trajan,
Queen Elizabeth and Louis XI., have had their apologists; nay, even Judas
has found amongst the fatalists of some German school an infatuated
fellow-mortal to attempt a defence of the indefensible; but no man has
yet been known to utter a word of excuse for the brutal jailer of Louis
XVII.

And yet his departure, though it rid the helpless captive of an active,
ever-present barbarity, can hardly be said, except negatively, to have
bettered his position. The Convention decreed that it was essential
to the nation’s life and prosperity that the little Capet should be
securely guarded; and as if the insane precautions hitherto used were
not sufficient to secure a feeble, attenuated child, he was removed to
a stronger and more completely isolated dungeon, where henceforth his
waning life might die out quicker and more unheard of. There was only
one window to the room, and this was darkened by a thick wooden blind,
reinforced by iron bars outside. The door was removed, and replaced by a
half-door with iron bars above; these bars, when unlocked, opened like a
trap, and through this food was passed to the prisoner. The only light at
night was from a lamp fastened to the wall opposite the iron grating.

Mme. Royale thus describes the state of her brother in this new abode, to
which he was transferred--whether by accident or design we know not--on
the anniversary of his father’s death, January 21: “A sickly child of
eight years, he was locked and bolted in a great room, with no other
resource than a broken bell, which he never rang, so greatly did he dread
the people whom its sound would have brought to him; he preferred wanting
any and every thing to calling for his persecutors. His bed had not been
stirred for six months, and he had not strength to make it himself; it
was alive with bugs and vermin still more disgusting. His linen and his
person were covered with them. For more than a year he had no change of
shirt or stockings; every kind of filth was allowed to accumulate about
him and in his room; and during all that period nothing had been removed.
His window, which was locked as well as grated, was never opened, and
the infectious smell of this horrid room was so dreadful that no one
could bear it for a moment. He might indeed have washed himself--for he
had a pitcher of water--and have kept himself somewhat more clean than
he did; but overwhelmed by the ill-treatment he had received, he had not
resolution to do so, and his illness began to deprive him of even the
necessary strength. He never asked for anything, so great was his dread
of Simon and his other keepers. He passed his days without any kind
of occupation. They did not even allow him light in the evening. This
situation affected his mind as well as his body, and it is not surprising
that he should have fallen into a frightful atrophy. The length of time
which he resisted this treatment proves how good his constitution must
have originally been.”

While the boy-king was slowly telling away his remnant of miserable life
in the dark solitude of the Tower, thousands were being daily immolated
on the public places, where the guillotine, insatiable and indefatigable,
despatched its cartloads of victims. On the 10th of May Mme. Elizabeth,
the most revered and saintly of all the long roll of martyrs inscribed on
that bloody page, was sacrificed with many other noble and interesting
women, amongst them the venerable sister of M. de Malesherbes, the
courageous advocate of the king. She was seventy-six years of age. By a
refinement of barbarity the municipals who conducted the “batch” obliged
Mme. Elizabeth to wait to see her twenty-five companions executed before
laying her own head on the block. Each of them, as they left the tumbrel,
asked leave to embrace her; she kissed them with a smiling face, and said
a few words of encouragement to each. “Her strength did not fail her to
the last,” says Mme. Royale, “and she died with all the resignation of
the purest piety.”

Mme. Royale was henceforth left in perfect solitude like her brother. She
thus describes her own and the Dauphin’s life after the departure of her
beloved aunt, of whose death she was happily kept in ignorance for a long
time: “The guards were often drunk; but they generally left my brother
and me quiet in our respective apartments until the 9th Thermidor. My
brother still pined in solitude and filth. His keepers never went near
him but to give him his meals; they had no compassion on this unhappy
child. There was one of the guards whose gentle manners encouraged me to
recommend my brother to his attention; this man ventured to complain of
the severity with which the boy was treated, but he was dismissed next
day. I, at least, could keep myself clean. I had soap and water, and
carefully swept out my room every day. I had no light.… They would not
give me any more books, but I had some religious works and some travels,
which I read over and over.”

The fall of Robespierre, which rescued so many doomed heads from the
guillotine, and opened the doors of their prison, had no such beneficent
effect on the fate of the two royal children. It gave rise, however,
to some alleviation of their sufferings. Immediately on the death of
his cowardly and “incorruptible” colleague, Barras visited the Tower,
and dismissed the whole set of commissaries of the Commune, who were
forthwith despatched to have their heads cut off next day, while a single
guardian was appointed in their place.

Laurent was the man’s name. He had good manners, some education, and,
better than all, a human heart. The lynxes of the Temple eyed him
askance; he was not of their kin, this creole with the heart of a man,
and they mistrusted him. It was not until two o’clock in the morning that
they conducted him to the presence of his charge. He tells us that when
he entered the ante-room of the dungeon he recoiled before the horrible
stench that came from the inner room through the grated door-way. Good
heavens! was this the outcome of the reign of brotherhood which talked
so mightily of universal love and liberty? It was in truth the most
forcible illustration of the gospel of Sans-culottism that the world had
yet beheld. “Capet! Capet!” cried the municipals in a loud voice. But
no answer came. More calling, with threats and oaths, at last brought
out a feeble, wailing sound like the cry of some dying animal. But
nothing more could threats, or even an attempt at coaxing, elicit. Capet
would not move; would not come forth and show himself to the new tutor.
Laurent took a candle, and held it inside the bars of the noxious cage;
he beheld, crouching on a bed in the furthest corner of the dungeon, the
body which was confided to his guardianship. Sickened with the sight, he
turned away. There was no appliance at hand for forcing open the door or
the grating. Laurent at once sent in an account of what he had seen, and
demanded that this remnant of child-life, that he was appointed to watch
over, should be examined by proper authority. The next day, July 30, some
members of the Sûreté Générale came to the Tower. M. de Beauchesne tells
us what they saw: “They called to him through the grating; no answer.
They then ordered the door to be opened. It seems there were no means of
doing it. A workman was called, who forced away the bars of the trap so
as to get in his head, and, having thus got sight of the child, asked
him why he did not answer. Still no reply. In a few minutes the whole
door was broken down, and the visitors entered. Then appeared a spectacle
more horrible than can be conceived--a spectacle which never again can
be seen in the annals of a nation calling itself civilized, and which
even the murderers of Louis XVI. could not witness without mingled pity
and fright. In a dark room, exhaling a smell of death and corruption,
on a crazy, dirty bed, a child of nine years old was lying prostrate,
motionless, and bent up, his face livid and furrowed by want and
suffering, and his limbs half covered with a filthy cloth and trowsers
in rags. His features, once so delicate, and his countenance, once so
lively, denoted now the gloomiest apathy--almost insensibility; and his
blue eyes, looking larger from the meagreness of the rest of his face,
had lost all spirit, and taken, in their dull immovability, a tinge of
gray and green. His head and neck were eaten up (_rongés_) with purulent
sores; his legs, arms, and neck, thin and angular, were unnaturally
lengthened at the expense of his chest and body. His hands and feet were
not human. A thick paste of dirt stuck like pitch over his temples, and
his once beautiful curls were full of vermin, which also covered his
whole body, and which, as well as bugs, swarmed in every fold of the
rotten bedding, over which black spiders were running.… At the noise of
forcing the door the child gave a nervous shudder, but barely moved,
not noticing the strangers. A hundred questions were addressed him; he
answered none of them. He cast a vague, wandering, unmeaning look at his
visitors, and at this moment one would have taken him for an idiot. The
food they had given him was still untouched; one of the commissioners
asked him why he had not eaten it. Still no answer. At last the oldest
of the visitors, whose gray hairs and paternal tone seemed to make an
impression on him, repeated the question, and he answered in a calm but
resolute tone: ‘Because I want to die!’ These were the only words which
this cruel and memorable inquisition extracted from him.”

Barras, the stuttering, pleasure-loving noble of Provence, “a terror
to all phantasms, being himself of the genus Reality”--Barras, who had
stood, like a bewildered, shipwrecked man while the storm-wind was
whirling blood-waves round about him, now enters and beholds the royal
victim whom it has taken nearly eighteen months of Simon the Cordwainer’s
treatment “to get rid of”--perishing, but still alive in his den of
squalor, darkness, and fright. His knees were so swollen that his ragged
trowsers had become painfully tight. Barras ordered them to be cut
open, and found the joints “prodigiously swollen and livid.” One of the
municipals, who had formerly been a surgeon, was permitted to dress the
sores on the head and neck; after much hesitation a woman was employed
to wash and comb the child, and at Laurent’s earnest remonstrance a
little air and light were admitted into the damp room; the vermin were
expelled as far as could be, an iron bed and clean bedding replaced
the former horrors in which the boy had lain so many months, and the
grated door was done away with. These were small mercies, after all,
and to which the vilest criminal had a right. All the other rigors of
his prison were maintained. He was still left to partial darkness and
complete solitude. Laurent, after a while, wearied the municipals into
giving him leave to take him occasionally for an airing on the leads. The
indulgence was perhaps welcome, but the child showed no signs of pleasure
in it; he never spoke or took the smallest notice of anything he saw.
Once only, when on his way to the leads, he passed by the wicket which
conducted to the rooms that his mother had occupied; he recognized the
spot at once, gazed wistfully at the door, and, clinging to Laurent’s
arm, made a sign for them to go that way. The municipal who was on guard
at the moment saw what the poor little fellow meant, and told him he
had mistaken the door; it was, he said, at the other side. But the child
had guessed aright. The kind-hearted Laurent began soon to feel his own
confinement, almost as solitary as the prince’s, more than he could
bear. He petitioned to have some one to assist him in his duties, and,
owing to some secret influence of the royalists, a man named Gomin, who
was at heart devoted to their cause, was appointed. The only benefit
which the young prisoner derived from the change of his jailers was that
civility and cleanliness had replaced insolence and dirt. For the rest,
he was still locked up alone, never seeing any one except at meal times,
when the two guardians and a municipal were present, the former being
often powerless to control the insulting remarks and gratuitous cruelty
of the latter. So the wretched days dragged on, silent, monotonous,
miserable. Meanwhile, Paris was breathing freely after the long night
of Terror. The Fraternity of the Guillotine was well-nigh over, and the
_Jeunesse dorée_ had flung away the red caps and the _Carmagnole_, and
was disporting itself with a light heart in gaudy attire of the antique
cut. Fair _citoyennes_ discarded the unbecoming and therefore, even to
the most patriotic among them, odious costume of the republic, and decked
themselves out in flowing Greek draperies, binding their hair with gold
and silver fillets like Clytemnestra and Antigone, and replacing the
_sabots_ of the people with picturesque sandals, clothing their naked
feet only in ribbons, despite the biting cold of this memorable winter.
The death-beacons one by one had been quenched, not by nimble hands,
like the lights of the ballroom or the gay flame of the street, but in
blood dashed freely over their lurid glare. Terrified men were emerging
from their holes and hiding-places; nobles were returning from exile;
there was a sudden flaming up of merriment, an effervescence of luxury,
an intoxicating thirst for pleasure, a hunger to eat of the good things
of life, of which the reign of _sans-culottism_ had starved them. There
were gay gatherings in all ranks; in the highest the _bals des victimes_,
where the guests wore a badge of crape on their arm, as a sign that they
had lost a near relative on the guillotine--none others being admitted.
So, while the waltzers spun round to the clang of brass music and in
the blaze of wax-lights, and all the world was embracing and exchanging
congratulations, like men escaped from impending death, the tragedy in
the Tower drew to its end unheard and unheeded. The King of La Vendée
ate his dinner of “_bouilli_ and dry vegetables, generally beans”; the
same at eight o’clock for supper, when he was locked up for the night,
and left unmolested till nine next morning. One day there came a rough,
blustering man to the prison, who flung open the doors with much noise,
and talked like thunder. His name was Delboy. He chanced to arrive at
the dinner-time. “Why this wretched food?” cried the noisy visitor.
“If _they_ were still at the Tuileries, I would help to starve them
out; but here they are our prisoners, and it is unworthy of the nation
to starve them. Why these blinds? Under the reign of equality the sun
should shine for all. Why is he separated from his sister? Under the
reign of fraternity why should they not see each other?” Then addressing
the child in a gentler tone, he said, “Should you not like, my boy, to
play with your sister? If you forget your origin, I don’t see why the
nation should remember it.” He reminded the guardians that it was not the
little Capet’s fault that he was his father’s son--it was his misfortune;
he was now only “an unfortunate child,” and the “nation should be his
mother.” The only advantage the unfortunate child derived from this
strange visit was that the lamp of his dungeon was lighted henceforth
at dark. Gomin asked this favor on the spot, and it was granted. The
commissioners were continually changed--a circumstance which proved a
frequent cause of suffering and annoyance to the captive, who was the
victim of their respective tempers, often fierce and cruel as those of
his jailers of the earlier days. These accumulated miseries were finally
wearing out his little remnant of strength. The malady which for some
time past gave serious alarm to his two kind-hearted friends, Laurent
and Gomin, increased with sudden rapidity, and in the month of February,
1795, assumed a threatening character. He could hardly move from extreme
weakness, and had lost all desire to do so. When he went for his airing,
Laurent or Gomin had to carry him in their arms. He let them do so
reluctantly; but he was now too apathetic to resist anything. The surgeon
of the prison was called in, and certified that “the little Capet had
tumors on all his joints, especially his knees; that it was impossible
to extract a word from him; that he never would rise from his chair or
his bed, and refused to take any kind of exercise.” This report brought
a deputation of members of the Sûreté Générale, who were so horrified at
the state of things they found that they drew up the following appeal
to their colleagues: “For _the honor of the nation_, who knew nothing
of these horrors; for that of the Convention, which was, in truth, also
ignorant of them; and even for that of the guilty municipality of Paris
itself, who knew all and was the cause of all these cruelties, we should
make no public report, but only state the result in a secret meeting of
the committee.” This confession is revolting enough; but it might find
some shadow of excuse, if, after hiding the cruelties for the sake of
shielding the wretches who had sanctioned them, these deputies had taken
steps to repair the wrong-doing, and to alleviate the position of the
victim; but, as far as the evidence goes, nothing of the sort was done.

The tomb-like solitude to which the young prince had so long been
subjected, added to the chronic terror in which he had lived from the
time of his coming under Simon’s tutelage, had induced him to maintain
an obstinate, unbroken silence. He could not be persuaded to answer a
question, to utter a word. Yet it was evident enough that this did not
proceed from stupidity or insensibility, but that his faculties still
retained much of their native vivacity and sensitiveness. Gomin was so
timid by nature that, in spite of his affection for his little charge,
he seldom ventured on any outward expression of sympathy, afraid he
should be detected and made, like so many others, to pay the penalty of
it. One day, however, that he chanced to be left quite alone with him,
he felt safe to let his heart speak, and showed great tenderness to the
child; the boy fixed a long, wistful look on his face, and then rose and
advanced timidly to the door, his eyes still fastened on Gomin with an
expression of entreaty too significant to be misunderstood. “No, no,”
said Gomin, shaking his head reluctantly; “you know _that_ cannot be.”
“_Oh! I must see her_,” cried the poor child. “_Oh! pray, pray let me
see her just once before I die!_” Gomin made no answer but by his look
of pity and regret, and, going up to the child, led him gently from
the door. The young prince threw himself on the bed with a gesture of
despair, and remained there, senseless and motionless, so long that
his guardian at one moment, as he confessed afterwards, feared he was
dead. Poor child! The longing to see his mother had of late taken the
shape of a hope, and he had been busy in his mind as to how it could
possibly be realized; this had been an opportunity, he thought, and the
disappointment overwhelmed him. Gomin said that, for his part, the sight
of the boy’s grief nearly broke his heart. The incident, he believed,
hastened the crisis, that was now steadily advancing. A few days after
this occurrence a new commissary came to inspect the prisoner, and, after
eyeing him curiously, as if he had been a strange variety of animal, he
said out loud to Laurent and Gomin, who were standing by, “That child
has not six weeks to live!” Fearing the shock these words might cause
the subject of them, the guardians ventured to say something to modify
their meaning; the commissary turned on them, and with a savage oath
repeated, “I tell you, citizens, in six weeks he will be an idiot, if he
is not dead!” When he left the room, the young prince gazed after him
with a mournful smile. The sentence, brutally delivered as it was, had
no fears for him; presently a few teardrops stole down his cheeks, and
he murmured, as if speaking to himself, “And yet I never did any harm to
anybody.”

A new affliction now awaited him. The kind and faithful Laurent left
him. His post in the Tower, repulsive from the first, had become utterly
insupportable to him of late, and on the death of his mother he applied
to be liberated from it. When he came to bid farewell to the unhappy
child, whose lot he had endeavored to soften as far as his power
admitted, the prince squeezed his hand affectionately, _looked_ his
regret at him, but uttered no word.

Laurent was replaced by a man named Lasne, formerly a soldier in the
old Gardes Françaises, now a house-painter. For the first few weeks
after his arrival the young prince was mute to him, as he had been to
his predecessor, until the latter’s persevering kindness had disarmed
timidity and mistrust. A trifle at last broke the ice. Lasne was in the
habit of talking to his little charge, making kindly remarks, or telling
stories that he thought might amuse him, never waiting for any sign of
response. One day he happened to tell him of something that occurred
when he, Lasne, had been in the old guard, and, being on guard at the
Tuileries, had seen the Dauphin reviewing a regiment of children which
had been formed for his amusement, and of which he was colonel. The boy’s
countenance beamed with a sudden ray of surprise and pleasure, and he
exclaimed in a whisper, as if afraid of being overheard, “And didst thou
see me with my sword?” Lasne answered that he had, and from this forth
they were fast friends. Bolder, though scarcely more sympathizing, than
either Laurent or Gomin, Lasne determined to apply at headquarters for
some decisive change in the prince’s treatment. He induced his colleague
to join him in signing a report to the effect that “the little Capet was
indisposed.” This was inscribed on the Temple register; but no notice was
taken, and in a few days they both again protested in stronger terms:
“The little Capet is seriously indisposed.” No notice being taken of
this, the brave men wrote a third time: “The life of little Capet is in
danger!” This finally brought a response. M. Desault, one of the first
physicians in Paris, was sent to visit the young prince. He had come too
late, however; the malady which had carried off the elder Dauphin had
taken too deep a hold on the child’s life to be now arrested or overcome.
Nothing could induce the prince to answer a question or speak a word to
the doctor or in his presence; and it was only after great difficulty,
and at the earnest entreaties of his two guardians, that he consented
to swallow the medicines prescribed. By degrees, however, as it always
happened, the persistent kindness and sympathizing looks and words of M.
Desault conquered his suspicions or timidity; and though he never plucked
up courage to speak to him, the municipals being always present, he would
take hold of the doctor’s coat, and thus express a desire for him to
prolong his visit. This lasted three weeks.

Among the commissaries there was a M. Bellenger, an artist, who was
deeply touched by the pitiable condition of the child, and one day,
thinking to give him a moment’s diversion, he brought a portfolio of
drawings, and showed them to him while waiting in his room for M. Desault
to come. The novel amusement seemed to interest him very little. He
looked on listlessly, as M. Bellenger turned over the sketches for his
inspection; then, as the doctor did not appear, the artist said, “Sir,
there is another sketch that I should have much pleasure in carrying
away with me, if it were not disagreeable to you.” The deferential
manner, coupled with the title “monsieur,” so long a foreign sound to the
captive’s ear, startled and moved him. “What sketch?” he said, for the
first time breaking silence. “Your features, if it were not disagreeable
to you, it would give me great pleasure.” “Would it?” said the child and
he smilingly acquiesced. M. Bellenger completed his sketch, and still
no doctor appeared; he took leave of the prince, saying he would come
at the same hour the following day. He did so; but M. Desault was again
unpunctual. The time for his visit elapsed, and he neither came nor sent
a message. The commissary suggested that some one should be despatched
to inquire the reason of his absence; but even so simple a step as this
Lasne and Gomin dared not venture on without direct orders. They were
discussing what had best be done, when a new commissary arrived and
satisfied all inquiries: “There is no need to send after M. Desault;
he died yesterday.” This sudden death was the signal for the wildest
conjectures. It was rumored that the physician had been bribed to poison
the prince, and then in remorse had poisoned himself. In times like
those such a report was eagerly accepted, fed as it was by the mystery
which surrounded the inmate of the Tower, and the vague stories afloat
concerning the character of the ill-omened dungeon and the people who now
ruled there.

But there was no foundation for the story in actual facts. M. Desault
was a man of unimpeachable integrity, whose entire life gave the lie to
so odious a suspicion. “The only poison which shortened my brother’s
life,” says Mme. Royale, “was filth, made more fatal by cruelty.” The
death of the kind and clever physician, from whatever cause it arose, was
a serious loss to the forsaken sufferer in the Temple. He remained for
several days without medical care of any sort, until, on the 5th of June,
M. Pelletan, surgeon of one of the large hospitals, was named to attend
him. It would seem as if the race of tigers was dying out, except in the
ranks of the patriot municipals; for all who by accident approached the
poor child in these last days were filled at once with melting pity,
and found courage to give utterance to this feeling aloud. M. Pelletan
remonstrated with the utmost indignation on the darkness and closeness
of the room where his patient was lodged, and on the amount of bolting
and barring that went on every time the door was opened or shut, the
violent crash being injuriously agitating to the child. The guardians
were willing enough to do away with the whole thing, but the municipals
observed that there was no authority for removing the bars or otherwise
altering the arrangements complained of. “If you can’t open the window
and remove these irons, you cannot at least object to remove him to
another room,” said the doctor, speaking in a loud and vehement tone, as
he surveyed the horrible precincts. The prince started, and, beckoning
to this bold, unknown friend, forgot his self-imposed dumbness, and
whispered, drawing M. Pelletan down to him: “Hush! If you speak so loud,
_they_ will hear you; and I don’t want them to know I am so ill; they
would be frightened.” He was alluding to the queen and Mme. Elizabeth,
whom he believed still living in the story above. Every one present
was moved by the tender thoughtfulness the words betrayed, and the
commissary, carried away by sympathy for the unconscious little orphan,
exclaimed: “I take it upon myself to authorize the removal, in compliance
with Citizen Pelletan’s instruction.” Gomin, nothing loath, immediately
lifted the patient in his arms, and carried him off to a bright room in
the little tower, which had been formerly the drawing-room of the keeper
of the archives, and was now hurriedly prepared for the accommodation of
this new inmate. His eyes had been so long accustomed to the gloom that
they were painfully dazzled by the sudden change into the full sunshine.
He hid his face on Gomin’s shoulder for a while, but by degrees he became
able to bear the light, and drew long breaths, opening out his little
hands as if to embrace the blessed sunshine, and then turned a look of
ineffable happiness and thanks on Gomin, who still held him in his arms
at the open window. When eight o’clock came, he was once more locked up
alone.

Next day M. Pelletan came early to see him; he found him lying on his
bed, and basking placidly in the sunny freshness of the June air that
was streaming in upon him. “Do you like your new room?” inquired the
doctor. The child drew a long breath. “Oh! yes,” he said, with a smile
that went to every heart. But even at this happy crisis the sting of the
old serpent woke up, as if to remind the victim that it was not dead.
At dinner-time a new commissary, a brute of the name of Hébert, and full
worthy of that abominable name, burst into the room, and began to talk in
the coarse, boisterous tones once so familiar to the captive. “How now!
Who gave permission for this? Since when have _carabins_ governed the
republic? This must be altered! You must have the orders of the Commune
for moving the wolf-cub.” The child dropped a cherry that he was putting
to his lips, fell back on his pillow, and neither spoke nor moved till
evening, when he was locked up for the night, and left to brood alone
over the terrible prospect which Hébert’s threats had conjured up.

M. Pelletan found him so much worse next day that he wrote to the Sûreté
Générale for another medical opinion; and M. Dumangier was ordered to
attend. Before they arrived the prince had a fainting fit, which lasted
so long that it terrified his guardians. He had, however, quite recovered
from it when the physicians came. They held a consultation; but it was a
mere form. Death was written on every lineament of the wasted body. All
that science could do was to alleviate the last days of the fast-flitting
life. The two medical men expressed surprise and anger at the solitude
to which the dying child was still subjected at night, and insisted on a
nurse being immediately provided. It was not worth the “nation’s” while
to refuse anything now. The order for procuring the nurse was at once
given; but that night the old rule prevailed, and the patient was again
locked up alone. He felt it acutely; the merciful change that had been
effected in so many ways had revived his hopes--the one hope to which
his young heart had been clinging in silence, fondly and perseveringly.

When Gomin said good-night to him, he murmured, while the big tears ran
down his face, “Still alone, and my mother in the other tower!” He was
not to be kept apart from her much longer. When Lasne came next morning,
he thought him rather better. The doctors, however, were of a different
opinion; they found him sinking rapidly, and despatched a bulletin to the
Commune to this effect.

At 11 in the forenoon Gomin came to relieve Lasne by the bedside of the
captive. They remained a long time silent; there was something solemn
in the stillness which Gomin did not like to break, and the child
never was the first to speak. At last Gomin, bending tenderly towards
him, expressed his sorrow at seeing him so weak and exhausted. “Oh! be
comforted,” replied the prince in a whisper; “I shall not suffer long
now.” Gomin could not control his emotion, but dropt on his knees by the
bedside, and wept silently; the child took his hand and pressed it to
his lips, while Gomin prayed. This was the only ministry the son of S.
Louis was to have on his deathbed--the tears of a turnkey, the prayers
of a poor, ignorant son of toil; but angels were there to supplement
the unconsecrated priesthood of charity, weeping in gentle pity for the
sufferings that were soon to cease. Bright spirits were hovering round
the prisoner’s couch, tuning their harps for his ears alone.

Gomin raising his head from its bowed attitude, beheld the prince so
still and motionless that he was alarmed lest another fainting fit had
come on. “Are you in pain?” he asked timidly. “Oh! yes, still in pain,
but less; the music is so beautiful!” Gomin thought he must be dreaming.
There was no music anywhere; not a sound was audible in the room. “Where
do you hear the music?” he asked. “Up there,” with a glance at the
ceiling. “Since when?” “Since you went on your knees. Don’t you hear it?
Listen!” And he lifted his hand, and his large eyes opened wide, as if
he were in an ecstasy. Gomin remained silent, in a kind of awe. Suddenly
the child started up with a convulsive cry of joy, and exclaimed, “I hear
my mother’s voice amongst them!” He was looking towards the window, his
lips parted, his whole face alight with a wild joy and curiosity. Gomin
called to him, twice, three times, asking him to say what he saw. He did
not hear him; he made no answer, but fell back slowly on his pillow, and
remained motionless. He did not speak again until Lasne came to relieve
Gomin. Then, after a long interval of silence, he made a sign as if he
wanted something. Lasne asked him what it was.

“Do you think my sister could hear the music?” he said. “How she would
like it!” He turned his head with a start towards the window again, his
eyes opening with the same expression of joyous surprise, and uttered
a half-inarticulate exclamation; then looking at Lasne, he whispered:
“Listen! I have something to tell you!” Lasne took his hand, and bent
down to hear. But no words came--would never more come from the child’s
still parted lips. He was dead.

So ended the tragedy of the Temple. There is nothing more to tell. Why
should we follow the ghastly story of the stolen heart, deposited in the
“vase with seventeen stars,” then surreptitiously abstracted by the
physician’s pupil, until all faith in the authenticity of the alleged
relic evaporates?

Neither is it profitable to discuss the controversy which arose over
the resting-place of the martyred child; for even in his grave he was
pursued by malignant disputations. Enough for us to hear and to believe
that the son of the kings of France was accompanied to the grave by a few
humane municipals and by his faithful friend Lasne; and that his dust
still reposes in an obscure spot of the Cemetery of S. Margaret, in the
Faubourg St. Antoine, undisturbed and undistinguished under its grassy
mound beneath the shadow of the church close by.


SUBSTANTIAL GENERATIONS.

II.

It is customary with most of the peripatetic writers to assume that the
Aristotelic hypothesis of substantial generations, as understood by
S. Thomas and by his school, cannot be rejected without upsetting the
whole scholastic philosophy. Nothing is more false. Suarez, than whom no
modern writer has labored more successfully in defending and developing
the scholastic philosophy, rejects the fundamental principle of the
Aristotelic theory, and maintains that no generation of new compound
substances is possible, unless the matter which is destined to receive a
new form possess an entity of its own, and be intrinsically constituted
of act and potency, contrary to the universal opinion of the peripatetic
school. “The first matter,” says he, “has of itself, and not through its
form, _its actual entity of essence_, though it has it not without an
intrinsic leaning towards the form.”[58] And again: “The first matter has
also of itself and by itself _its actual entity of existence_ distinct
from the existence of the form, though it has it not independently of
the form.”[59] That these two propositions clash with the Aristotelic
and Thomistic doctrine we need not prove, as we have already shown that
neither S. Thomas nor Aristotle admitted in their first matter anything
but the mere potency of being; and although Aristotle sometimes calls the
first matter “a substance” and “a subject,” he expressly warns us that
such a substance is in potency, and such a subject is destitute of all
intrinsic act.[60] Hence it is plain that the first matter of Suarez is
not the first matter of the peripatetics; whence it follows that the form
which is received in such a matter is not a strictly substantial form,
since it cannot give the first being to a matter having a _first_ initial
being of its own. Hence the Suarezian theory, though full of peripatetic
spirit, and formulated in the common language of the peripatetic school,
is radically opposed to the rigid peripatetic doctrine, and destroys its
foundation. “If the first matter,” says S. Thomas, “had any form of its
own, it would be something in act; and consequently such a matter would
not, at the supervening of any other form, acquire its first being, but
it would only become such or such a being; and thus there would be no
true substantial generation, but mere alteration. Hence all those who
assumed that the first subject of generation is some kind of body, as air
or water, taught that generation is nothing but alteration.”[61] This
remark of the holy doctor may be well applied to the Suarezian theory;
for in such a theory the first matter is “something in act” and has “a
form of its own.” And, therefore, whoever adopts the Suarezian theory
must give up all idea of truly substantial generations. Yet no one who
has a grain of judgment will pretend that Suarez, by framing his new
theory, upset the scholastic philosophy.

The truth is that, as there are two definitions of the substantial form
(_quæ dat primum esse materiæ: quæ dat primum esse rei_), so also there
are two manners of understanding the so-called “substantial” generation;
and, whilst Aristotle and his followers _assumed_ without any good
proof[62] that the specific form of a generated compound gives the
first being to the matter of the compound, and is, therefore, a strictly
substantial form, the modern school _demonstrates_ from the principles
of the scholastic philosophy, no less than from positive science, that
the specific form of a physical compound does not give the first being
to the matter of the compound, but only to the compound nature itself;
and, therefore, is to be called an _essential_ rather than a truly and
strictly substantial form.[63]

The primitive material substance, which is constituted of matter and
substantial form, cannot but be physically simple--that is, free from
all composition of parts--though it is metaphysically compounded, or (as
we would prefer to say) _constituted_ of act and potency. This being the
case, it evidently follows that all substance physically compounded must
involve in its essential constitution something else besides the matter
and the substantial form; for it must contain in itself both that which
gives the first being to the physical components, and that which gives
the first being to the resulting physical compound.

Hence in all substance which is physically compounded of material parts
there are always two kinds of formal constituents. The first kind belongs
to the components, the second to the compound. The first consists of
the substantial forms by which the components are constituted in their
substantial being; which forms must actually remain in the compound;
for the substantial being of the components is the material cause of
the physical compound, and is the sole reason why the physical compound
receives the name of substance. The second is the principle by which
the first components, or elements, are formed into a compound specific
nature. In other terms, the specific compound is “a substance,” because
it is made up of substances, or primitive elements, constituted of matter
and _substantial_ form; whilst the same specific compound is “a compound”
and is “of such a specific nature,” owing to the composition, and to
such a composition, of the primitive elements. This composition is the
_essential_ form of the material compound.

We may here remark that the substantial forms of the component elements,
taken together, constitute what may be called the _remote_ formal
principle of the compound essence (_principium formale quod, seu
remotum_), whilst the specific composition constitutes the _proximate_
formal principle of the same compound essence (_principium formale quo,
seu proximum_). For, as each primitive element is immediately constituted
by its substantial form, so is the physically compound essence
immediately constituted by its specific composition.

It is hardly necessary to add that the matter which is the subject of the
specific composition is not the first matter of Aristotle, but a number
of primitive substances, and that these substances are endowed with
real activity no less than with real passivity, and therefore contain
in themselves such powers as are calculated to bind together the parts
of the compound system, in this or in that manner, according to the
geometric disposition and the respective distances of the same. For,
as the power of matter is limited to _local_ action, it is the _local_
disposition and co-ordination of the primitive elements that determines
the mode of exertion of the elementary powers, inasmuch as it determines
the special conditions under which the Newtonian law has to be carried
into execution. On such a determination the specific composition and the
specific properties of the compound nature proximately depend.

The composition of matter with matter is confessedly an accidental
entity, and arises from accidental action. It would, however, be a
manifest error to pretend that such a composition is an _accidental
form_ of the compound nature. For nothing is accidental to a subject but
what supervenes to it; whereas the composition does not supervene to
the compound, but enters into its very constitution. On the other hand,
the composition does not deserve the name of _substantial form_ in the
strict sense of the word, since it does not give the first being to the
matter it compounds. We might, indeed, call it a substantial form in a
wider sense; for in the same manner as a compound of many substances is
called “a substance,” so can the form of the substantial compound be
called “substantial.” But to avoid the danger of equivocation, we shall
not use this epithet; and we prefer to say that the specific composition
is the _natural_ or the _essential_ form of the material compound, so
far at least as there is question of compounds _purely_ material. This
essential or natural form may be properly defined as _the act by which a
number of physical parts or terms are formed into one compound essence_,
or, more concisely, _the act which gives the first being to the specific
compound_; which latter definition is admitted by the schoolmen, though,
as interpreted by them, it leads to no satisfactory results, as we shall
see presently.

The first physical compound which possesses a permanent specific
constitution is called “a molecule.” Those physicists who assume matter
to be intrinsically extended and continuous, by the name of molecule
understand a little mass filling the space occupied by its volume,
hard, indivisible, and unchangeable, to which they also give the name
of “atom.” But this opinion, which is a relic of the ancient physical
theories, is fast losing ground among the men of science, owing to the
fact that molecules are subject to internal movements, and therefore
composed of discrete parts. Such discrete parts must be simple and
unextended elements, as we have demonstrated. Hence a molecule is nothing
but _a number of simple elements_ (some attractive and some repulsive)
_permanently connected by mutual action in one dynamical system_. We
say _permanently connected_; because no system of elements which lacks
stability can constitute permanent substances, such as we meet everywhere
in nature. Yet the stability of the molecular system is not an absolute,
but only a relative, unchangeableness; for, although the bond which
unites the parts of the molecular system must (at least in the case of
primitive molecules) remain always the same _in kind_, it can (even in
the case of primitive molecules) become different _in degree_ within
the limits of its own kind. And thus any molecule can be altered by
heat, by cold, by pressure, etc., without its specific constitution
being impaired. A molecule of hydrogen is specifically the same at two
different temperatures, because the change of temperature merely modifies
the bond of the constituent elements, without destroying it or making
it specifically different; and the same is true of all other natural
substances.

The _material_ constituent of a molecular system is, as we have said,
a number of primitive elements. These elements may be more or less
numerous, and possess greater or less power, either attractive or
repulsive; on condition, however, that attraction shall prevail in the
system; for without the prevalence of attraction no permanent composition
is possible.

The _formal_ constituent of a molecular system, or that which causes
the said primitive elements to be a molecule, is the determination by
which the elements are bound with one another in a definite manner, and
subjected to a definite law of motion with respect to one another. Such a
determination is in each of the component elements the resultant of the
actions of all the others.

The matter of the molecular system is _disposed_ to receive such a
determination, or natural form, by the relative disposition of the
elements involved in the system. Such a disposition is local; for the
resultant of the actions by which the elements are bound with one another
depends on their relative distances as a condition.

The _efficient cause_ of the molecular system are the elements
themselves; for it is by the exertion of their respective powers that
they unite in one permanent system when placed under suitable mechanical
conditions. The original conditions under which the molecules of the
primitive compound substances were formed must be traced to the sole will
of the Creator, who from the beginning disposed all things in accordance
with the ends to be obtained through them in the course of all centuries.

Molecules may differ from one another, both as to their matter and as to
their form. They differ in matter when they consist of a different number
of primitive elements, or of elements possessing different degrees of
active power or of a different proportion of attractive and repulsive
elements. They differ as to their form, when their constitution subjects
them to different mechanical laws; for as the law of movement and of
mutual action which prevails within a molecule is a formal result of its
molecular constitution, we can always ascertain the difference of the
constitution by the difference of the law.

It is well known that the law according to which a system of material
points acts and moves can be expressed or represented by a certain
number of mathematical formulas. The equations by which the mutual
dynamical relations of the elements in a molecular system should be
represented are of three classes. Some should represent the _mutual
actions_ to which such elements are subjected at any given moment of
time; and these equations would contain differentials of the second
order. Other equations should represent the _velocities_ with which such
elements move at any instant of time; and these equations would contain
differentials of the first order. Other equations, in fine, should
determine the _place_ occupied by each of such elements at any given
moment, and consequently the figure of the molecular system; and these
last equations would be free from differential terms. The equations
exhibiting the mutual actions must be obtained from the consideration of
positive data, like all other equations expressing the conditions of a
given problem. The equations exhibiting the velocities of the vibrating
elements can be obtained by the integration of the preceding ones. The
equations determining the relative position of the elements at any moment
of time will arise from the integration of those which express the
velocities of the vibrating points. Had we sufficient data concerning
the internal actions of a molecule, and sufficient mathematical skill to
carry out all the operations required, we would be able to determine with
mathematical accuracy the whole constitution of such a molecule, and all
the properties flowing from such a constitution. This, unfortunately, we
cannot do as yet with regard to the molecule of any natural substance in
particular; and, therefore, we must content ourselves with the general
principle that those molecular systems are of the same kind whose
constitution can be exhibited _by mathematical formulas of the same
form_, and those molecules are of a different kind whose constitution
is represented _by mathematical formulas of a different form_. This
principle is self-evident; for the formulas by which the mechanical
relations of the elements are determined cannot be of the same form,
unless the conditions which they express are of the same nature; whereas
it is no less evident that two molecular systems cannot be of the same
kind when their mechanical constitution implies conditions of a different
nature.

Two molecules of the same kind may differ _accidentally_--that is, as
to their mode of being--without any essential change in their specific
constitution. Thus, two molecules of hydrogen may be under different
pressure, or at a different temperature, without any specific change. In
this case, the mechanical relations between the elements of the molecule
undergo an accidental change, and the equations by which such relations
are expressed are also accidentally modified, inasmuch as some of the
quantities involved in them acquire a different value; but the form
of the equations, which is the exponent of the specific nature of the
substance, remains unchanged.

From these remarks four conclusions can be drawn. The first is that
molecules consisting of a different number of constituent elements always
differ in kind. For it is impossible for such molecules to be represented
by equations of the same form.

The second is that a molecule is _one_ owing to the oneness of the
common tie between its constituent elements, and to their common and
stable dependence on one mechanical law. Hence a molecule is not _one
substance_, but _one compound nature_ involving a number of substances
conspiring to form a permanent principle of actions and passions of a
certain kind. In other terms, a molecule is not _unum substantiale_, but
_unum essentiale_ or _unum naturale_.

The third is that the specific form of a molecule admits of different
degrees within the limits of its species. This conclusion was quite
unknown to the followers of Aristotle; and S. Thomas reprehends Averroës
for having said that the forms of the elements (fire, water, air,
and earth) could pass through different degrees of perfection, whilst
Aristotle teaches that they are _in indivisibili_, and that every change
in the form changes the specific essence.[64] Yet it is evident that
as there can be circles, ellipses, and other curves having a different
degree of curvature, while preserving the same specific form, so also can
molecules admit of a different degree of closeness in their constitution
without trespassing on the limits of their species. So long as the
changes made in a molecule do not interfere with the conditions on which
the form of its equations depends, so long the specific constitution
of the molecule remains unimpaired. Mathematical formulas are only
artificial abridgments of metaphysical expressions; and their accidental
changes express but the accidental changes of the thing which they
represent. On the other hand, it is well known that the equations by
which the specific constitution of a compound system is determined can
preserve the same form, while some of the quantities they contain receive
an increase or a decrease connected with a change of merely accidental
conditions.

The fourth conclusion is that a number of primitive molecules of
different kinds may combine together in such a manner as to impair more
or less their own individuality by fixing themselves in a new molecular
system of greater complexity. Likewise, a molecular system of greater
complexity is susceptible of resolution into less complex systems. These
combinations and resolutions are the proper object of chemistry, which is
_the science of the laws, principles, and conditions of the specific
changes of natural substances_, and to which metaphysicians must humbly
refer when treating of substantial generation, if they wish to reason on
the solid ground of facts.

We have thus briefly stated what we hold to be the true scientific and
philosophic view of the constitution of natural substances; and as we
have carefully avoided all gratuitous assumptions, we feel confident that
our readers need no further arguments to be convinced of its value as
compared with the hypothetical views of the old physicists. As, however,
the conclusions of the peripatetic school concerning the constitution
and generation of natural substances have still some ardent supporters,
who think that the strictly substantial generations and corruptions are
demonstrated by unanswerable arguments, we have yet to show that such
pretended arguments consist of mere assumption and equivocation.

The first argument in favor of the old theory may be presented under
the following form: “Every natural substance is _unum per se_--that
is, substantially one. Therefore no natural substance implies more
than _one_ substantial form.” The antecedent is assumed as evident,
and the consequent is proved by the principle that “from two beings in
act it is impossible to obtain a being substantially one.” Hence it is
concluded that all natural substances, as water, flesh, iron, etc., have
a substantial form which gives to the first matter the being of water, of
flesh, of iron, etc.

This argument, instead of proving the truth of the theory, proves its
weakness; for it consists of a _petitio principii_. What right has the
peripatetic school to assume that every natural substance is _unum per
se_ substantially? A substance physically simple is, of course, _unum
per se_ substantially; but water, flesh, iron, and the other natural
substances are not physically simple, since they imply quantity of mass
and quantity of volume, which presuppose a number of material terms
actually distinct, and therefore possessing their distinct substantial
forms. No compound substance can be _unum per se_ as a substance; it can
be _unum per se_ only as a compound essence; and for this reason every
natural substance contains as many _substantial_ forms as it contains
primitive elements, whereas it has only one _essential_ form, which gives
the first being to its compound nature. This _one_ essential form is, as
we have explained, the specific composition of its constituent elements.

The principle “From two beings in act it is impossible to obtain a being
_substantially_ one” is perfectly true; but it will be false if, instead
of “substantially,” we put “essentially”; for all essences physically
compounded result from the union of a certain number of actual beings,
and yet every compound essence is _unum per se_ essentially, though not
substantially. For, as _unum per accidens_ is that which has something
superadded to its essential principles, so _unum per se_ is that which
includes nothing in itself but its essential principles; and consequently
every essence, as such, is _unum per se_, whether it be physically simple
or not--that is, whether it be one substance or a number of substances
conspiring into a specific compound. Hence flesh, water, iron, and every
other natural substance may be, and are, _unum per se_, notwithstanding
the fact that they consist of a number of primitive elements and contain
as many substantial forms as components.

It is therefore manifest that this first argument has no strength. No
ancient or modern philosopher has ever proved that any natural substance
is _substantially_ one. To prove such an assertion it would be necessary
to show that the physical compound is physically simple; which, we
trust, no one will attempt to show. Even Liberatore, whose efforts to
revive among us the peripatetic theory have been so remarkable, seems to
have felt the utter impossibility of substantiating such an arbitrary
supposition by anything like a proof, as he lays it down without even
pretending to investigate its value. “True bodies,” says he--“that is,
bodies which are substances, and not mere aggregates of substances--are
essentially constituted of matter and substantial form.”[65] Indeed, if
a body is not an aggregate of substances, it must be evident to every
one that the essence of that body is exclusively constituted of matter
and substantial form. But where is a body to be found which is not an
aggregate of substances--that is, of primitive elements? The learned
author omits to examine this essential point, clearly because there are
neither facts in science nor arguments in philosophy by which it can
be settled favorably to the peripatetic view. Thus the whole theory of
substantial generations, understood in the peripatetic sense, rests on a
mere assumption contradicted, as we know, by natural science no less than
by metaphysical reasoning.

The second argument of the peripatetic school is as follows: When the
matter has its first being, all form supervening to it is accidental; for
the matter which has its first being cannot receive but a being _secundum
quid_--that is, a mode of being which is an accident. But the natural
substance cannot be constituted by an accidental form. Therefore the
form of the natural substance does not supervene to any matter having
its first being, but itself gives the first being to its matter, and
therefore is a strictly substantial form.

Our answer is very plain. We admit that, when the matter has its first
being, all supervening form is accidental _to it_; and we admit, also,
that the composition of matter with matter is an accidental entity,
and gives to the matter an accidental mode of being. This, however,
does not mean that the specific composition is an _accidental form_
of the compound nature. Composition, as compared with substance, is
an accident; but, as compared with the essence of the compound, is an
_essential_ constituent, as we have already remarked; for it is of the
essence of all physical compounds to have a number of substances as their
matter, and a specific composition as their form. In other terms, the
essence of a physical compound involves substance and accident alike;
but what is an accident of the component substances is not an accident
of the compound essence. Hence the proposition, “The natural substance
cannot be constituted by an accidental form,” must be distinguished. If
“natural substance” stands for the primitive substances that constitute
the matter of the compound nature, the proposition is true; for all
such substances have their strictly substantial forms, as is obvious.
If “natural substance” stands for the compound nature itself, inasmuch
as it is a compound of a certain species, then the proposition must
be subdistinguished. For, if by “accidental form” we understand an
accident of the component substances, the proposition will be false;
for, evidently, the compound nature is constituted by composition, and
composition is an accident of the components. Whilst, if the words
“accidental form” are meant to express an accident of the compound
nature, then the proposition is true again; for the composition is not an
accidental, but an essential, constituent of the compound, as every one
must concede. Yet “essential” is not to be confounded with “substantial”;
and therefore, though all natural substances must have their essential
form, it does not follow that such a form gives the first being to the
matter, but only that it gives the first being to the specific compound
inasmuch as it is such a compound. Had the peripatetics kept in view,
when treating of natural substances, the necessary distinction between
the essential and the strictly substantial forms, they would possibly
have concluded, with the learned Card. Tolomei, that their theory was “a
groundless assumption,” and their arguments a “begging the question.”
But, unfortunately, Aristotle’s authority, before the discoveries of
modern science, had such a weight with our forefathers that they scarcely
dared to question what they believed to be the cardinal point of his
philosophy. But let us go on.

A third argument in favor of the old theory is drawn from the
constitution of man. In man the soul is a substantial form, the root of
all his properties, and the constituent of the human substance. Hence
all other natural substances, it is argued, must have in a similar
manner some substantial principle containing the formal reason of their
constitution, of their natural properties, and of their operations. “The
fact that man is composed of matter and of substantial form shows,” says
Suarez, “that in natural things there is a substantial subject naturally
susceptible of being informed by a substantial act. Such a subject (the
matter) is therefore an imperfect and incomplete substance, and requires
to be constantly under some substantial act.”[66] Whence it follows that
all natural substance consists of matter actuated by a substantial form.

This argument, according to Scotus and his celebrated school, is based
on a false assumption. Man is not _one substance_, but _one nature_
resulting from the union of two distinct substances, the spiritual and
the material; and to speak of a _human substance_ as one is nothing less
than to beg the whole question. Every one must admit that the human
soul is the _natural_ form of the animated body, and that, inasmuch as
it is a substance and not an accident, the same soul may be called a
“substantial” form; but, according to the Scotistic school, to which we
cannot but adhere on this point, it is impossible to admit the Thomistic
notion that the soul gives the first being to the matter of the body,
so as to constitute _one substance_ with it; and accordingly it is
impossible to admit that the soul is a strictly “substantial” form in
the rigid peripatetic sense of the word; and thus the above argument,
which is based entirely on the unity of human _substance_, comes to
naught.

This is not the place to develop the reasons adduced by the Scotists
and by others against the Thomistic school, or to refute the arguments
by which the latter have supported their opinion. We will merely remark
that, according to a principle universally received, by the Thomists no
less than by their opponents (_Actus est qui distinguit_), there can be
no distinct substantial terms without distinct substantial acts; and
consequently our body cannot have distinct substantial parts, unless it
has as many distinct substantial acts. And as there is no doubt that
there are in our body a great number of distinct substantial parts (as
many, in fact, as there are primitive elements of matter), there is no
doubt that there are also a great number of distinct substantial acts.
It is not true, therefore, that the human body (or any other body) is
constituted by _one_ “substantial” form. The soul is not defined as the
_first act of matter_, but it is defined as _the first act of a physical
organic body_; which means that the body must possess its own _physical_
being and its _bodily_ and _organic_ form before it can be informed by
a soul. And surely such a body needs not receive from the soul what it
already possesses as a condition of its information; it must therefore
receive that alone in regard to which it is still potential; and this is,
not the first act of being, but the first act of life. But if the soul
were a strictly “substantial” form according to the Thomistic opinion, it
should be _the first act of matter_ as such, and it would have no need
of a previously-formed physical organic body; for the position of such
a form would, of itself, entail the existence of its substantial term.
We must therefore conclude that the human soul is called a “substantial”
form, simply because it is a substance and not an accident,[67] and
because, in the language of the schools, all the “essential” forms have
been called “substantial,” as we have noticed at the beginning of this
article. We believe that it is owing to this double meaning of the
epithet “substantial” that both S. Thomas and his followers were led to
confound the natural and essential with the strictly substantial forms.
They reasoned thus: “What is not accidental must be substantial”; and
they did not reflect that “what is not accidental may be _essential_,”
without being substantial in the meaning attached by them to the term.

But since we cannot here discuss the question concerning the human soul
as its importance deserves, let us admit, for the sake of the argument,
that the human soul gives the first being to its body, and is thus a
strictly substantial form in the sense intended by our opponents. It
still strikes us that no logical mind can from such a particular premise
draw such a general conclusion as is drawn in the objected argument. Is
it lawful to apply to inanimate bodies in the conclusion what in the
premises is asserted only of animated beings? Or is there any parity
between the form of the human nature and that of a piece of chalk? The
above-mentioned Card. Tolomei well remarks that “such a pretended
parity is full of disparities, and that from the human soul, rational,
spiritual, subsistent, and immortal, we cannot infer the nature of those
incomplete, corruptible, and corporeal entities which enter into the
constitution of purely material things.”[68]

That “all natural substances must have some substantial principle” we
fully admit. For we have shown that in every natural compound there are
just as many substantial forms as there are primitive elements in it, and
therefore there is no doubt that each point of matter receives its first
being through a strictly substantial form. But these substantial forms
are the forms of the components; they are not the _specific form_ of the
compound. Nor do we deny that the properties of the compound must be
ultimately traced to some substantial principle; for we admit the common
axiom that “the first principle of the being is the first principle of
its operations”; and thus we attribute the activity of the compound
nature to the substantial forms of its components. But we maintain that
the same components may constitute different specific compounds having
different properties and different operations, according as they are
disposed in different manners and subjected to a different composition.
This being evident, we must be allowed to conclude that the proximate and
specific constituent form of a compound inanimate nature is nothing else
than its specific composition.

Our opponents cannot evade this conclusion, which annihilates the whole
peripatetic theory, unless they show either that there may be a compound
without composition, or that in natural things there is no material
composition of substantial parts. The first they cannot prove, as a
compound without composition is a mere contradiction. Nor can they prove
the second; for they admit that natural substances are extended, and it
is evident that there can be no material extension without parts outside
of parts, and therefore without material composition.

As to the passage of Suarez objected in the argument, two simple remarks
will suffice. The first is that “the fact that man is composed of matter
and substantial form does _not_ show that in other natural things there
is a substantial subject naturally susceptible of being informed by a
substantial act”; unless, indeed, the epithet “substantial” be taken in
the sense of “essential,” as we have above explained. But, even in this
case, there will always be an immense difference between such essential
forms, because the form of a human body must be a substance, whilst
the form of the purely material compounds can be nothing else than
composition. The second remark is that, as the first matter, according to
Suarez, has its own entity of essence and its own entity of existence,
“the substantial subject naturally susceptible of being informed” has
neither need nor capability of receiving its _first_ being; whence it
follows that such a substantial subject is never susceptible of being
informed by a truly and strictly substantial form. We know that Suarez
rejects this inference on the ground that the entity of matter, according
to him, is incomplete, and requires to be perfected by a substantial
form. But the truth is that no strictly substantial form can be conceived
to inform a matter which has already an actual entity of its own; for
the substantial form is not simply that which _perfects the matter_ (for
every form perfects the matter), but it is that which _gives to it the
first being_, as all philosophers agree. On the other hand, it might be
proved that the matter which is a subject of natural generations is not
an _incomplete_ substantial entity, and that the intrinsic act by which
it is constituted, is not, as Suarez pretends, an act _secundum quid_,
but an act _simpliciter_; it being evident that nothing can be in act
_secundum quid_ unless it be already in act _simpliciter_; whence it is
manifest that the _first_ act of matter cannot be an act _secundum quid_.

It would take too long to discuss here the whole Suarezian theory. Its
fundamental points are two: The first, that the matter which is the
subject of natural generations “has an entity of its own”; the second,
that “such an entity is substantially incomplete.” The first of these two
points he establishes against the peripatetics with very good reasons,
drawn from the nature of generation; but the second he does not succeed
in demonstrating, as he does not, and cannot, demonstrate that an act
_secundum quia_ precedes the act _simpliciter_. For this reason we
ventured to say in our previous article that the first matter of Suarez
corresponds to our primitive elements, which, though unknown to him, are,
in fact, the first physical matter of which the natural substances are
composed. What we mean is that, though Suarez intended to prove something
else, he has only succeeded in proving that the matter of which natural
substances are composed is as true and as complete a substance as any
primitive substance can be. And we even entertain some suspicion that
this great writer would have held a language much more conformable to
our modern views, had he not been afraid of striking too heavy a blow
at the peripatetic school, then so formidable and respected. For why
should he call “substantial” the forms of compound bodies, when he knew
that the matter of those bodies had already an actual entity of its own?
He certainly saw that such forms were by no means the substantial forms
of S. Thomas and of Aristotle; but was it prudent to state the fact
openly, and to draw from it such other conclusions as would have proved
exceedingly distasteful to the greatest number of his contemporaries?
However this may be, it cannot be denied that the Suarezian theory,
granting to the matter of the bodies an entity of its own, leads to the
rejection of the truly substantial generations, and to the final adoption
of the doctrine which we are maintaining in accordance with the received
principles of modern natural science. But let us proceed.

The fourth argument in favor of the old theory is the following: If the
components remain _actually_ in the compound, and do not lose their
substantial forms by the accession of a new substantial form, it follows
that no new substance is ever generated; and thus what we call “new
substances” will be only “new accidental aggregates of substances,” and
there will be no substantial difference between them. But this cannot be
admitted; for who will admit that bread and flesh are _substantially_
identical? And yet who can deny that from bread flesh can be generated?

We concede most explicitly that no new “substance” is, or can be, ever
generated by natural processes. God alone can produce a substance, and
he produces it by creation. To say that natural causes can destroy the
substantial forms by which the matter is actuated, and produce new
substantial forms giving a new _first_ being to the matter, is to endow
the natural causes with a power infinitely superior to their nature. The
action of a natural cause is the production of an accidental act; and
so long as “accidental” does not mean “substantial,” we contend that no
substantial form can originate from any natural agent or concurrence of
natural agents. It is therefore evident for us that no “substance” can
ever arise by natural generation.

But, though this is true, it is evident also that from pre-existing
substances “a new compound nature” can be generated by the action of
natural causes. These new compound natures are, indeed, called “new
substances,” but they are the _old_ substances under a _new_ specific
composition; that is, they are not new as substances, though they form
_a new specific compound_. To say that such a compound is “a merely
accidental aggregate of substances” is no objection. Were we to maintain
that _one single substance_ is an accidental aggregate of substances,
the objection would be very natural; but to say, as we do, that _one
compound essence_ is an aggregate of substances united by accidental
actions, is to say what is evidently true and unobjectionable. Yet we
must add that the composition of such substances, accidental though it be
to them individually, is _essential_ to the compound nature; for this
compound nature is a special essence, endowed with special properties
dependent proximately on the special composition, and only remotely on
the substantial forms of the component substances.

That there may be “no substantial difference” between two natural
compounds is quite admissible; but it does not follow from the argument.
It is admissible; because a different specific composition suffices to
cause a different specific compound; as is the case with gum-arabic
and cane-sugar, which consist of a different combination of the same
components. Yet it does not follow from the argument; because the
specific composition of different compounds may require, and usually
does require, a different set of components--that is, of substances;
which shows that there is also a _substantial_ difference between natural
compounds, although their essential form be not the substantial form of
the peripatetics.

Lastly, we willingly concede that bread and flesh are not substantially
identical; but we must deny that their substantial difference arises
from their having a different substantial form. Bread and flesh are
different specific compounds; they differ essentially and substantially,
or formally and materially, because they involve different substances
under a different specific composition. To say that bread and flesh are
_the same matter_ under two different substantial forms would be to give
the lie to scientific evidence. This we cannot do, however much we may
admire the great men who, from want of positive knowledge, thought it the
safest course to accept from Aristotle what seemed to them a sufficient
explanation of things. On the other hand, is it not strange that our
opponents, who admit of no other substantial form in man, except the
soul, should now mention a substantial form of flesh? To be consistent,
they should equally admit a _substantial_ form of blood, a _substantial_
form of bone, etc. Perhaps this would help them to understand that
the epithet “substantial,” when applied to characterize the forms of
material compounds, has been a source of innumerable equivocations, and
that the schoolmen would have saved themselves much trouble, and avoided
inextricable difficulties, if they had made the necessary distinction
between _substantial_ and _essential_ forms.

The arguments to which we have replied are the main support of the
peripatetic doctrine; we, at least, have not succeeded in finding any
other argument on the subject which calls for a special refutation. We
beg, therefore, to conclude that the theory of strictly substantial
generations, as well as that of the constitution of bodies, as held by
the peripatetic school, rest on no better ground than “assumption,” or
_petitio principii_, as Card. Tolomei reluctantly avows. There would
yet remain, as he observes, the argument from authority; but when it is
known that the great men whose authority is appealed to were absolutely
ignorant of the most important facts and laws of molecular science, and
when it is proved that such facts and laws exclude the very possibility
of the old theory,[69] we are free to dismiss the argument. “Were S.
Thomas to come back on earth,” says Father Tongiorgi, “he would be a
peripatetic no more.” No doubt of it. S. Thomas would teach his friends a
lesson, by letting them know that his true followers are not those who
shut their eyes to the evidence of facts, that they may not be disturbed
in their peripateticism, but those who imitate him by endeavoring to
utilize, in the interest of sound philosophy, the positive knowledge of
their own time, as he did the scanty positive knowledge of his.

But we have yet an important point to notice. The ancient theory is
wholly grounded on the possibility of the eduction of new substantial
forms out of the potency of matter; hence, if no truly substantial
form can be so educed, the theory falls to the ground. We have already
shown that true substantial forms giving the first being to the matter
cannot naturally be educed out of the potency of matter.[70] This would
suffice to justify us in rejecting the peripatetic theory. But to
satisfy our peripatetic friends that we did not come too hastily to such
a conclusion, and to give them an opportunity of examining their own
philosophical conscience, we beg leave to submit to their appreciation
the following additional reasons.

First, all philosophers agree that the matter cannot be actuated by a
new form, unless it be _actually_ disposed to receive it. But actual
disposition is itself an accidental form; and all matter that has an
accidental form has also _a fortiori_ a substantial form. Therefore
no matter is actually disposed to receive a new form, but that which
has actually a substantial form. But the matter which has actually a
substantial form is not susceptible of a new substantial form; for the
matter which has its first being is not potential with regard to it, but
only with regard to some mode of being. Therefore no new form truly and
strictly substantial can be bestowed upon existing matter.

Secondly, if existing matter is to receive a new substantial form, its
old substantial form must give way and disappear, as our opponents
themselves teach, by natural corruption. But the form which gives
the first being to the matter is not corruptible. Therefore no truly
substantial form can give way to a new substantial form. The minor of
this syllogism is easily proved. For all natural substances consist
of simple elements, of which every one has its first being by a form
altogether simple and incorruptible. Moreover, the substantial form of
primitive elements is a product of creation, not of generation; the term
of divine, not of natural, action; it cannot, therefore, perish, except
by annihilation. The only form which is liable to corruption is that
which links together the elements of the specific compound; but this is a
natural and essential, not a strictly substantial, form.

Thirdly, the form which gives the first being to the matter is altogether
incorruptible, if the same is not subject to alteration; for alteration
is the way to corruption. But no form giving the first being to the
matter is subject to alteration. For, according to the universal
doctrine, it is the matter, not the form, that is in potency to receive
the action of natural agents. The form is an active, not a passive,
principle; and therefore it is ready to act, not to be acted on; which
proves that substantial forms are inalterable and incorruptible. We are
at a loss to understand how it has been possible for so many illustrious
philosophers of the Aristotelic school not to see the open contradiction
between the corruption of strictly substantial forms and their own
fundamental axiom: “Every being acts inasmuch as it is in act, and
suffers inasmuch as it is in potency.” If the substantial form is subject
to corruption, surely the substance suffers not only inasmuch as it is in
potency, but also, and even more, inasmuch as it is in act. We say “even
more,” because the substance would, inasmuch as it is in act, suffer the
destruction of its very essence; whereas, as it is in potency, it would
not suffer more than an accidental change. It is therefore manifest that
the corruption of substantial forms cannot be admitted without denying
one of the most certain and universal principles of metaphysics.

Fourthly, if the natural agents concerned in the generation of a new
being cannot produce anything but accidental determinations, nor
destroy anything but other accidental determinations, then, evidently,
the form which is destroyed in the generation of a new thing is an
accidental entity, as also the new form introduced. But the efficient
causes of natural generations cannot produce anything but accidental
determinations, and cannot destroy anything but other accidental
determinations. Therefore in the generation of a new being both the
form which is destroyed and the form which replaces it are accidental
entities. In this syllogism the major is evident; and the minor is
certain, both physically and metaphysically. For it is well known that
the natural agents concerned in the generation of a new substance have
no other power than that of producing local motion; also, that the
matter acted on has no other passive potency than that of receiving
local motion. Hence no action of matter upon matter can be admitted
but that which tends to give an accidental determination to local
movement; and if any cause be known to exert actions not tending to
impart local movement, we must immediately conclude that such a cause is
not a material substance. On the other hand, all act produced belongs
to an order of reality infinitely inferior to that of its efficient
principle; so that, as God cannot efficiently produce another God, so
also a contingent substance cannot efficiently produce another contingent
substance; and a substantial form cannot efficiently produce another
substantial form; but as all that God efficiently produces is infinitely
inferior to him in the order of reality, so all act produced by a created
substance is infinitely inferior to the act which is the principle of
its production.[71] It is therefore impossible to admit that the act
produced, and the act which is the principle of its production, belong
to the same order of reality; in other terms, they cannot be both
“substantial”; but while the act by which the agent acts is substantial,
the act produced is always accidental. And thus it is plain that no
natural agent or combination of natural agents can ever produce a truly
substantial form.

A great deal more might be said on this subject; but we think that our
philosophical readers need no further reasonings of ours to be fully
convinced of the inadmissibility of the Aristotelic hypothesis concerning
the constitution and the generation of natural substances. Would that the
great men who adopted it in past ages had had a knowledge of the workings
of nature as extensive as we now possess; their love of truth would have
prompted them to frame a philosophical theory as superior to that of the
Greek philosopher as fact is to assumption. As it is, we must strive to
do within the compass of our means what they would have done much better,
and would do if they were among the living, with their gigantic powers.
We cannot hold in metaphysics what we have to reject in physics. To say
that what is true in physics may be false in metaphysics is no less an
absurdity than Luther’s proposition, that “something may be true in
philosophy which is false in theology.”


THE MODERN LITERATURE OF RUSSIA.[72]

The history of Russia, during the course of the last twenty years, has
entered upon a new era. It also has had its 19th of February,[73] its
day of emancipation; and from the hour when it was permitted to treat
of the times anterior to the reign of the Emperor Nicholas, although
still maintaining a certain reserve, it has lost no time in profiting by
the benefit of which advantage has been eagerly taken. A multitude of
writings, more or less important, which have since then been published,
prove that, in order to become fruitful, it only needed to be freed from
the ligatures of the ancient censure; and it is wonderful to note the
large number of publications with which the history of the last century
finds itself enriched in so short a space of time, besides the documents
of every description that were never previously allowed to see the light
of day, but from which the interdict has been removed that for so long
had condemned them to the dust and oblivion of locked-up archives.

Nor has this been all. The riches of this new mine were sufficiently
plentiful to supply matter for entire collections. Societies were formed
for the purpose of arranging and publishing them without delay, in order
to satisfy the legitimate desire of so many to know the past of their
country, not only from official digests, but from the original sources of
information. It will suffice to name the principal collections created
under the inspiration of this idea, such as the _Russian Archives_, and
also the _XVIIIth and XIXth Centuries_, of M. Bartenev, guardian of the
Library of Tcherkov; the _Old Russian Times_ (_Russkaïa Starina_), of
M. Semevski; the _Historical Society of the Annalist Nestor_, formed at
Kiev, under the presidency of M. Antonovitch; the _Collection of the
Historical Society of St. Petersburg_, under the exalted patronage of the
czarovitch; without enumerating the periodical publications issued by
societies which were already existing, as at Moscow and elsewhere.

To arrange in some degree of order the rapid notice which is all we must
permit ourselves, and laying aside for the present any consideration of
periodical literature, we will mention, in the first place, the works
upon Russian history in general, ecclesiastical and secular; then the
various memoirs and biographies; concluding with bibliography, or the
history of literature.

I. GENERAL HISTORY OF RUSSIA.--Amongst the works which treat of this
subject, that of M. Soloviev indisputably occupies the first place.
His _History of Russia from the Earliest Times_ (_Istoria Rossiis
drevneichikh vremen_) advances with slow but steady pace, and has at this
time reached its twenty-third volume, embracing the second septennate
of the Empress Elizabeth, which concludes with the year 1755--a year
memorable in the annals of Russian literature, as witnessing the
establishment of the first Russian university, namely, that of Moscow.
It is not surprising that this subject has inspired the author, who is
a professor of the same university, to write pages full of interest.
With regard to what he relates respecting the exceedingly low level of
civilization to which the Russian clergy had at that time sunk, other
authors have made it the subject of special treatises, and with an
amplitude of development which could not have found place in a general
history. M. Soloviev’s method is well known--_i.e._, to turn to the
advantage of science the original documents, for the most part inedited,
and frequently difficult of access to the generality of writers. But does
he always make an impartial use of them? This is a question. The manner
in which he has recounted the law-suit of the Patriarch Nicon--to cite
this only as an example--does not speak altogether favorably for the
historian; besides, his history is too voluminous to be accessible to the
generality of readers; and when it will be finished, who can divine?

For this reason a complete history, in accordance with recent
discoveries, and reduced to two or three volumes, would meet with a warm
welcome. That of Oustrialov is already out of date; the little abridgment
of M. Soloviev is too short; and the work of M. Bestoujev-Rumine remains
at its first volume, the two which are to follow, and which have been
long promised, not having yet appeared.

M. Kostomarov, who has just celebrated the 25th year of his literary
career, is also publishing a _History of Russia, Considered in the Lives
of its Principal Representatives_,[74] of which the interest increases
as the period of which it treats approaches our own. Two sections have
already appeared. The first, which is devoted to the history of the house
of S. Vladimir, embraces four centuries; the second, as considerable as
its predecessor in amount of matter, comprises no more than the interval
of about a century--that is to say, the reigns of Ivan the Terrible, his
father, and his grandfather (1462-1583). Faithful to the plan he has
adopted, the author relates the life and deeds of the most remarkable
men, whether in the political or social order: thus, in the second
section, after the historical figures of Ivan III., Basil, and Ivan IV.,
we have the Archbishop Gennadius, the monk Nilus Sorski, whom the Russian
Church reckons among her saints: the Prince Patrikeïev, the celebrated
Maximus, a monk of Mt. Athos, and, lastly, the heretic Bachkine with his
sectaries. The first volume will be terminated by the third section,
which will conclude the history of the house of Vladimir.

This history meets with a violent opponent and an implacable judge in the
person of M. Pogodine, the veteran of Russian historians. The antagonism
of these two writers, M. Pogodine and M. Kostomarov, is of long standing.
But never have polemics taken a more aggressive tone than on the present
occasion; and the aggression is on the part of M. Pogodine, who accuses
his adversary of nothing more nor less than mystifying the public and
corrupting the rising generation; of having arbitrarily omitted the
origin and commencement of the nation; of throwing, by preference, into
strong relief all the dark pages of the history; and, lastly, declares
him to be guilty of venality. To these charges M. Kostomarov replies
that his censor is playing the part of a policeman rather than of a
critic; that his arguments, like his anger, inspire him with pity; and
that the most elementary rules of propriety forbid him to imitate his
language. Coming to historical facts, he explains the reasons for his
silence on the _pagan_ period of Russian history; for treating the call
of Rurik as a fable, together with a multitude of other stories of the
ancient chronicles; for seeing in the Varangian[75] princes nothing
but barbarians, and the pagans of this period the same. He also brings
proofs to show that Vladimir Monomachus was really the first to seek
allies among the tribes of the Polovtsis; that Vassilko caused the whole
population of Minsk to be exterminated; and that Andrew Bogolubski
was not by any means beloved by the people, as had been stated by M.
Pogodine--these three subjects being among the principal points of
dispute.

But we have no desire to pursue any further details which cannot
in themselves have any interest for the public, although, taken in
connection with the histories of the antagonistic authors, they may
be suggestive. For instance, it is not easy to forget what the ardent
professor of Moscow relates of himself with reference to certain of his
fellow-countrywomen who had embraced the Catholic faith. Being at Rome,
he tells us (and his words depict in a lively manner the character of his
zeal) that he felt himself strongly tempted to _seize by the hair_ two
Russian ladies[76] whom he saw crossing the Piazza di Spagna to enter
a Catholic church. He is said to be at this time preparing a _Campaign
against Adverse Powers_, in which he combats “historic heresies.”

But the services rendered by M. Pogodine to the national history are
undoubtedly great. We may notice a new one in his _Ancient History of
Russia before the Mongolian Yoke_,[77] in which, after grouping the
Russian principalities around that of Kiev as their political centre
anterior to the invasion of the Mongols, he also gives the separate
history of each. In the second volume the church, literature, the state,
manners, and customs, are treated upon in turn, and form a series
of pictures traced by a skilful hand, closing with a terribly-vivid
description of the Tartar invasion.

II. PARTICULAR OR INDIVIDUAL HISTORY.--It is about two years since
historical science in Russia sustained a loss in the death of M.
Pékarski, who had scarcely reached his forty-fifth year. This laborious
and learned writer, who, in so short a space of time, produced an unusual
number of important works,[78] died after having just completed his
_History of the Academy of Sciences_. This work contains about eighteen
hundred pages. After a solid introduction there follow the biographies
of the first fifty members of the Academy, all of whom were foreigners,
to which succeed those of Trediakovski and Lomonosov. In glancing over
these biographies one is struck with the preponderance of the German
element, the Academy, at its commencement, being almost exclusively
composed of learned men of that nation. With the reign of Elizabeth the
Russian party began to take the lead, and it was Lomonosov, the son of a
fisherman of Archangelsk, who was the life and soul of it, as a learned
man, an historian, and a poet. Pékarski mentions some curious details
respecting the correspondence between Peter I. and the Sorbonne, touching
the reunion of the Russian Church with Rome. It is to be wished that
the documents treating of this matter, and which are preserved in the
archives of the academy, might be published.

III. ECCLESIASTICAL HISTORY.--After the _History of the Russian Church_,
by Mgr. Macarius, the present Metropolitan of Lithuania, which has
just reached its seventh volume, the first place is due to that by M.
Znamenski, entitled _The Parochial Clergy in Russia, subsequent to the
Reform of Peter I._[79] In presence of the Protestant reforms which
are in course of introduction into the official church by the Russian
government, M. Znamenski’s book offers an eminently practical interest,
and it is greatly to be wished that those in power would profit by its
serious teaching. The author advances nothing without producing his
proofs, drawn from official documents, which he has taken great pains to
search for and consult wherever they were to be found.

His work is divided into five chapters, the first of which treats of the
“Nomination of the Parochial Clergy.” Down to the middle of the XVIIIth
century its members were chosen on the elective system; it is the ancient
mode of nomination, which existed also in the Catholic Church. But from
the middle of the XVIIIth century this gave place, in Russia, to the
_hereditary_ system, which has become one of the distinctive features of
the Russian communion,[80] and in which may be found the cause of the
separation and the spirit of caste which from that time began to isolate
the clergy from the rest of society, and made them in all respects a body
apart.

This spirit of caste still subsists, though not in so perceptible a
degree as formerly. One inevitable consequence of this Levitism was the
difficulty of quitting the caste when once a person belonged to it, as
the author develops in his second chapter (pp. 176-354). In the third,
he treats of the “Civil Rights of the Clergy,” and there depicts the
revolting abuses in which the secular authorities allowed themselves with
regard to the unfortunate clergy. The arbitrary injustice to which they
were subjected during the whole of the XVIIIth century, and of which the
still vivid traces remained in the time of the Emperor Alexander I.,
appears almost incredible. For instance, a poor parochial incumbent,
having had the misfortune to pass before the house of the principal
proprietor of the place without having taken off his hat to that
personage, who was on the balcony with company, was immediately seized,
thrust into a barrel, and thus rolled from the top of the hill on which
the seignorial dwelling was situated, into the river which flowed at
its base. His death was almost instantaneous. Justice, as represented
in that quarter, being informed of this new species of murder, found
itself unequal to touch the little potentate, and hushed up the affair.
Similar horrors were by no means rare in the XVIIIth century. In the
fourth chapter (pp. 507-617) the author speaks of the “Relations of the
Clergy with the Ecclesiastical Authorities”; and although the picture he
draws is somewhat less sombre than the preceding, still it is melancholy
enough. Venality the most systematic, and rigor that can hardly be said
to fall short of cruelty, were, for more than half a century, the most
prominent features of the ecclesiastical government. No post, however
small or humble, could be obtained without the imposition of a purely
arbitrary tax; and these taxes formed in the end a very considerable
amount. As for the spirit of the government, its fundamental maxim was
to _hold down_ the lower clergy _in humility_ (_smirenié_)--a formula
which was imprinted on the very bodies of the unfortunate victims.
The slightest fault or error on their part was punished by corporal
chastisements so severe that the sufferer sometimes expired under the
blows. Priests were treated by their chief pastors as beings on a level
with the meanest of slaves. One of these _vladykas_ (which is the name by
which the Russian bishops are designated) condemned his subordinates to
dig fish-ponds on his estate, which ponds were to be so shaped as to form
on a gigantic scale the initials (E. B.) of his lordship’s name.[81]

The failure of resources, so materially diminished by the cupidity of
their superiors, forced the parochial clergy to contrive for themselves
an income by means more or less lawful. Besides the legal charges, they
invented various small taxes on their own behalf; or, when all else
failed, they begged their bread from their own parishioners, who were
apt to be more liberal of reproaches than of alms. The well-being of the
secular clergy being one of the questions under consideration by the
present government, the author has devoted to it much of his last chapter.

Such is the general plan of this book, which must be read through to give
an idea of the humiliating degradation to which the hapless clergy were
for more than a century condemned, thanks to the anomaly of institutions
still more than to the abuses practised by individuals. When the source
is corrupt, can the stream be pure?

But all this relates to the “Orthodox” of the empire. That which is
more directly interesting to the Catholic reader will be found in works
respecting the Ruthenian[82] Church, which is at this time attracting the
attention of the West.

The _History of the Reunion of the Ancient Uniates of the West_,[83] by
M. Koïalovitch, Professor of the Ecclesiastical (Orthodox) Academy of the
capital, repeats the faults of all the numerous writings, whether books,
pamphlets, or articles, which have issued from his pen in the course of
the last ten years, and which are painfully remarkable for their spirit
of partiality, their preconceived ideas, their self-contradictions,
and their hatred of the Catholic faith. An organ of the press of St.
Petersburg has expressed a desire that the documents upon which this
author professedly rests three-fourths of his last book, while purposely
neglecting all extraneous sources whatever, whether political or
diplomatic, should be given to the public, which would then be enabled
to judge for itself how far the statements based upon them are to be
trusted. Nor can any obstacle exist in the way of such publication,
as was shown by the work of Moroehkine on the reunion of the Uniates
in 1839, equally compiled from official documents of unquestionable
importance, which were then edited for the first time.

It is impossible not to be struck with the strange coincidence of so many
publications upon union with the painful events which are taking place at
the present time in the Diocese of Khelm, and which had evidently been
preparing long beforehand. Books have their _raison d’être_--a reason
for their appearance at particular periods. It is said, even, that M.
Koïalovitch is at the head of a school of opinion, and that his disciples
can be pointed out without difficulty. Thus, Rustchinski is the author
of a study on the _Religious Condition of the Russian People according
to Foreign Authors of the XVIth and XVIIth Centuries_; Nicolaïevski has
written on _Preaching in the XVIth Century_; Demaïanovitch, on _The
Jesuits in Western Russia, from 1569 to 1772_, at which latter year
the thread of their history is taken up and continued by Moroehkine;
Kratchkovski, on the _Interior State of the Uniate Church_ (1872); and
Stcherbinski has given the history of the Order of S. Basil. But we must
not prolong the catalogue, which, however, is by no means complete. Never
has so much literary activity been known in the “Orthodox” communion as
now, if, perhaps, we except the first times of the union.

But before passing on to another head we must not fail to mention, as
one of the principal representatives of the literary movement of the
XVIth century, the celebrated namesake and predecessor of the present
Metropolitan of Mesopotamia, _i.e._, Archbishop Macarius, to whom we
are indebted for the monumental work known as the _Great Menology_, and
which is a species of religious encyclopædia, containing, besides the
lives of the saints for every day in the year, the entire works of the
early fathers, as well as ascetic, canonical, and literary treatises.
The Archæographic Commission of St. Petersburg has undertaken the
republication, in its integrity, of this colossal work, of which only
three quarto volumes in double columns have at present appeared.

IV. BIOGRAPHIES.--As we have already remarked, it is interesting to
observe the eagerness with which the Russian people welcome everything
that tends to throw light upon their past. For instance, what is usually
drier than a catalogue? And yet the one compiled by M. Méjov has already
reached four thousand copies. It is true that his _Systematic Catalogue_
(of original documents) combines various qualities that are somewhat rare
in publications of this description. It is not, however, desirable that a
taste for the mere reproduction of inedited manuscripts should be carried
too far; the interests of science demanding rather that they should be
made use of in the production of works aspiring to greater completeness,
and suited to meet the requirements of modern criticism.

A certain number of works have already been written in accordance with
this idea. That of M. Tchistovitch, entitled _Theophanes Procopovitch
and his Times_, may be given as a model, as may also the excellent study
of M. Ikonnikov on Count Nicholas Mordinhov, one of the remarkable men
who flourished in the reign of the Emperor Alexander I. and Nicholas.
Various memoirs of this personage had previously appeared in different
collections, but no one before the young professor of Kiev had taken
the trouble to study the original sources upon which alone an authentic
life could be written, to reduce them to system, and give them a living
form. It is not only the opinions and theories of the count which are
given, but those also of contemporary society and the persons by whom
he was surrounded, those of the latter being occasionally too lengthily
developed. M. Ikonnikov was also, some years ago, the author of an
interesting work, entitled _The Influence of Byzantine Civilization
on Russian History_ (Kiev: 1870). And this leads us to mention a book
recently published by M. Philimonov, vice-director of the Museum of Arms,
on _Simon Ouchakov and the Iconography of his Time_.

The name of this artist has scarcely been heard in the West. Born
in 1626, he early evinced a talent for painting, and at the age of
twenty-two was admitted into the number of iconographists appointed by
the czar; his specialty consisting in making designs, more particularly
for the gold-work appropriated to religious uses. Of his paintings,
the earliest bears the date of 1657. M. Philimonov passes in review
all his later productions, accompanying each with a short but careful
notice, and dwelling chiefly upon the two which he considers the
masterpieces of Russian iconography at that period, namely, the painting
of the Annunciation and that of Our Lady of Vladimir. Besides these
two principal paintings, Ouchakov left a quantity of others, most of
which bear his name, with the date of their completion, although these
indications are not needed, his pictures being easily recognizable. He
may, in fact, be considered as at the head of a new school of painting,
taking the middle line between the conventional Muscovite iconography
and the paintings of the West; between the inanimate and rigid formalism
of the one and the living variety of the other; and thus inaugurating
the new era in religious art which manifested itself in Russia with
the opening of the XVIIth century, and permitting the introduction of
a realism which the ancient iconographers were wholly ignorant of,
and would have considered it detrimental to Oriental orthodoxy to
countenance. Ouchakov was ennobled, in honor of his talents, and died in
1656, at the age of sixty, in the full enjoyment of public esteem.

In connection with the subject of art, we may add that M. Philimonov has
just issued an elegant edition of the _Guide to Russian Iconography_,
which teaches the correct manner in which to represent the saints. The
text of this work, which is for the first time published in Russian, has
been furnished by three of the most ancient manuscripts known to exist,
one of which formerly belonged to the Church of S. Sophia of Novogorod.
Fully to comprehend the text, however, it is necessary to have together
with it, for constant reference, some pictorial guide, as, for instance,
the one published by M. Boutovski. The two works explain and complete
each other, as both alike refer to about the same period; but, also, both
should be consulted in subordinate reference to the Greek _Guide_, if the
reader is to be enabled to separate the Byzantine element from that which
is specially characteristic of Russian iconography.

In connection with general literature mention must be made of the
fabulist, Khemnitzer, whose complete works and correspondence have
been edited by Grote, together with a biography, composed from
previously-unpublished sources. After the vast labor of editing the works
of Derjavine, those of Khemnitzer would be in comparison a mere amusement
to the learned and indefatigable academician.

V. JOURNALS AND MEMOIRS.--The _Journal of Khrapovski_ (1782-1793),
published by M. Barsoukov, who has enriched it with a biographical notice
and explanatory notes, appears for the first time in its integrity,
and accompanied by a _catalogue raisonné_ of all the personages who
find themselves mentioned in the text. This journal derives its special
interest and value from the position of the author, who for ten years
was attached to the _personal_ service of the Empress Catherine II.
(_Chargé des Affaires Personnelles_), and who, being thus admitted into
the interior and home-life of the court, noted down day by day, and
sometimes hour by hour, all that he there saw or heard. This is certainly
not history; but an intelligent historian will sometimes find there, in a
sentence spoken apparently at random, the germ of great political events
which were accomplished later.

The _Journal of Lady Rondeau_, wife of the English resident-minister at
the court of the Empress Anne, is the first volume of foreign writers on
the Russia of the XVIIIth century, edited with notes by M. Choubinski.
The idea of publishing the accounts of foreigners on the Russian Empire
merits encouragement, and, if well carried out, will shed new light on
numberless points which an indigenous author would leave unnoticed, but
which have a real interest in the eyes of a stranger. If it should be
objected that foreigners judge superficially and partially, it is none
the less true that the worth of their impressions arises precisely from
the diversity of country and point of view. Besides, all strangers could
not, without injustice, be alike charged with lightness and inexactitude.
The memoirs of Masson on the court of Catherine II. and of Paul I. are
quoted by the Russians themselves as a striking proof to the contrary;
no single fact which he mentions having been disproved by history. The
merit of Lady Rondeau’s book is increased by the notice, in form of an
appendix, which is added by her husband, on the character of each of the
principal personages of the court.

We conclude this rapid and imperfect summary by mentioning the _Catalogue
of the Section of Russica_, or writings upon Russia in foreign
languages--a work of which the initiation is due to the administrators of
the Public Library of St. Petersburg, and forming two enormous volumes.
To give some idea of the riches accumulated in the section of _Russica_,
perhaps unique in the world, and of which the formation commenced in
1849, it will suffice to say that the number of works enumerated in the
catalogue reaches the figures 28,456, _without reckoning_ those composed
in Lithuanian, Esthonian, Servian, Bulgarian, Greek, and other Oriental
languages, which will together form a supplementary volume. Besides
original works, the catalogue indicates all the translations of Russian
books, and enumerates all the periodicals which have appeared in Russia
in foreign languages.

The works are arranged in alphabetical order; but at the end of the
second volume we find an analytical table, commencing with history, the
historical portion being the most considerable one in the section of
_Russica_. Thus the literary treasures possessed by the principal library
of the empire are henceforward made known with regard to each branch of
the sciences in relation to Russia. If to this we add the _Systematic
Catalogue_ of M. Méjov, mentioned above, we possess the historic
literature of Russia in its completeness.


THE FIRST JUBILEE.

Almighty God, who has “ordered all things in measure and _number_ and
weight” (Wisd. xi. 21), and who teaches us, under the guidance of his
church, to observe sacred times and seasons, has brought around again the
Holy Year of Jubilee, during which an extraordinary indulgence is granted
by the Pope, that sinners being led to repentance, and the just increased
in grace, each one can hear it said to himself: “In an _acceptable time_
I have heard thee” (Is. xlix. 8).

We will not touch here upon the nature or doctrine of indulgences,
more than to give a definition of our Jubilee, viz., a solemn plenary
remission of such temporal punishment as may still be due to divine
justice after the guilt of sin has been forgiven, which the Sovereign
Pontiff, in the fulness of apostolic power, makes at a stated period to
all the faithful, on condition of performing certain specified pious
works; empowering confessors to absolve for the nonce in reserved cases
and from censures not specially excepted, and to commute all vows not
likewise excepted into other salutary matter. Our Holy Father, Pius
IX., by an Encyclical Letter dated from S. Peter’s on the vigil of last
Christmas, has announced that, the year 1875 completing the cycle of
time determined by his predecessors for the recurrence of the Jubilee,
he declares it the Holy Year, and sets forth the conditions of the same,
with other circumstances of ecclesiastical discipline usual on so rare an
occasion of grace.

The origin of the word _jubilee_ itself is uncertain. It is a Hebrew
term that first occurs in the twenty-fifth chapter of Leviticus: “And
thou shalt sanctify the fiftieth year, … for it is the year of Jubilee.”
Josephus (_Antiquit._, iii. 11) says that it means _liberty_, by which
his annotators understand that discharge among the Jews from debts
and bondage, and restitution to every man of his former property, as
commanded by the law. The more common opinion derives it from _jobel_,
a ram’s horn, because the Jubilee year was ushered in by the blasts
of the sacred trumpets, made of the horns of the ram. Pope Boniface
VIII. is erroneously supposed by many to have instituted the Christian
Jubilee; for he only restored what had already existed, and reduced it
substantially to its present form; inasmuch as there had been from an
early period a custom among Christians of visiting Rome at the turn of
every succeeding century, in the hope of obtaining great spiritual favors
at the tomb of S. Peter, and perhaps also with the idea of atoning in
some measure for the superstitious secular games which during the reign
of Augustus the _Quindecimviri_ (a college of priests) announced as
having been given once in every century in memory of the foundation of
the Eternal City, and which, after consulting the Sibylline books in
their care, they prevailed upon the emperor to celebrate again. Mgr.
Pompeo Sarnelli, Bishop of Bisceglie in 1692, treats of the secular year
of the heathen Romans and the Jubilee of their Christian descendants
together, as though one were in some respect a purified outgrowth of
the other. He says: “But the Christians, to change profane into sacred
things, were accustomed to go every hundredth year to visit the Vatican
basilica, and celebrate the memory of Christ, who was born for the
redemption of the world; so that the Holy Year was the sanctification
of the profane centenary in the lapse of time; but in its spiritual
benefits it perfected the effects of the Jubilee kept by the Jews every
fiftieth year for temporal advantages” (_Lettere Ecclesiast._, x. 50).
Macri also, in his _Hiero-lexicon_ (1768), says: “We believe that the
popes who have always endeavored (when the nature of the thing permitted)
to alter the vain observances of the Gentiles into sacred ceremonies for
the worship of God, in order to eradicate the superstitious secular year
of the Romans, established our Holy Year of Jubilee, and enriched it
with indulgences.” Of the connection between our Jubilee and that of the
Jews Devoti (_Inst. Can._, ii. p. 250, note) remarks that their fiftieth
year “aliquo modo imago fuit Jubilæi, quem postea Romani Pontifices
instituerunt--” was in some wise a figure of that Jubilee which, at a
later period, the Roman pontiffs instituted.

Benedetto Gaetani of Anagni (Boniface VIII.) had been elected pope
at Naples on Dec. 24, 1294, and was residing in Rome at the close of
the century, when he heard towards Christmas that many pilgrims were
approaching the city, who came, they said, to gain the indulgence which
an ancient tradition taught could be obtained there every hundredth
year, at the beginning of a new century. Although search was made in the
pontifical archives for some record of a concession of special indulgence
at such a period, none was found; but witnesses of established veracity
assured the pope that they had heard of this indulgence, and that it was
connected with a visit to the tomb of S. Peter.

Brocchi in his _Storia del Giubbileo_, page 6, mentions among the
venerable persons examined before the pope and cardinals one man 107
years old, and another--a noble Savoyard--over 100 years old, who both
made deposition that as children they had been brought to Rome by their
parents, who had often reminded them not to omit the pilgrimage of the
next century, if they should live so long. Two very aged Frenchmen
from the Diocese of Beauvais also deposed to having come to Rome on
the strength of a like centennial tradition of which they had heard
their fathers speak. The chronicler William Ventura of Asti (born in
1250) writes that at the beginning of the year 1300 an immense crowd
of pilgrims, coming to Rome from the East and from the West, used to
throng about the pope and cry out: “Give us thy blessing before we die;
for we have learnt from our elders that all Christians who shall visit
on the hundredth year the basilica where rest the bones of the apostles
Peter and Paul can obtain absolution of their sins and the remission
of any penance that might still be due for them” (apud Muratori, _Rer.
Ital. Script._, xi. 26). Boniface VIII. then called a consistory, and on
the advice of the cardinals determined to issue a bull confirming the
grant of indulgence, did such really exist; and in any case offering a
plenary indulgence to all who, contrite, should confess their sins and
visit at least once a day for thirty days--not necessarily consecutive,
if Romans; if strangers, only for fifteen days in the same manner--the
two basilicas of the holy apostles SS. Peter and Paul during the course
of the year 1300. This interesting bull, which is usually cited by its
opening words, _Antiquorum habet fida relatio_, and may be seen in any
collection of canon law among the _Extravagantes Communes_ (lib. v.
De Pœn. et Rem., c. 1), is short and elegantly condensed--for which
reason, perhaps, an old glossarist calls it “epistola satis grossè
composite”--and, although written before the revival of Latin letters,
compares favorably with the verbose composition of later documents. It
was probably drawn up by Sylvester, the papal secretary, who is named
as writer of the circular-letter sent in the pope’s name to all bishops
and Christian princes to acquaint them with the measure taken, and
invite them to exhort the faithful of their dioceses and their loyal
subjects to go on the pilgrimage Romeward. The pope published his bull
himself on the 22d of February, 1300, being the feast of S. Peter at
Antioch, by reading it aloud from a richly-draped _ambon_ erected for the
occasion before the high altar in S. Peter’s, which had a very different
appearance from the domed and cross-shaped structure that we now admire,
as lovers of architectural elegance; for as antiquarians we must regret
the venerable building which was a _basilica_ in form as well as in name.
When Boniface had finished, he descended, and went up in person to the
altar to deposit upon it the bull of indulgence in homage to the Prince
of the Apostles, whose successor he was, and not unworthily maintained
himself to be. Then returning to his former place, while the cardinals
stood with bended head around it and beneath him, he gave his solemn
blessing to an immense number of pilgrims, who, filling the church and
overflowing into the square in front, reverentially knelt to receive it.
Truly, the hearts of the people were with that man, although the hands
of princes were against him. A most interesting memorial of this very
scene has been preserved to us through sack and fire for nearly six
hundred years in the shape of a painting by the celebrated Giotto--a
portrait, too, and not a fancy sketch--which is the only portion saved
of the beautiful frescos with which he ornamented the _loggia_ built by
Boniface at S. John Lateran. It represents the pope in the act of giving
his benediction to the people between two cardinals (or, as some critics
think, two prelates), one of whom holds a document in his hand--evidently
meant for the bull of Jubilee by an artist’s license, to specify more
distinctly the circumstance; for it was then actually on the altar--while
the other looks down upon the crowd over the hanging cloth on which the
Gaetani arms are emblazoned. This specimen of higher art of the XIVth
century was for a long time preserved in the cloister of S. John, until
a representative of the Gaetani (now ducal) family had it carefully set
up against one of the pilasters of the church, and protected with a glass
covering, in 1786, where it may still be seen, although it is not often
noticed according to its merits.

Our chief authorities for the details of this Jubilee are the pope’s
nephew, James Cardinal Stefaneschi; the Chronicler of Asti (generally
quoted as _Chronicon Astense_); and the Florentine merchant and Guelph
historian, John Villani, who died of the plague in 1348. All were
eye-witnesses.

The cardinal wrote on the Jubilee in prose and verse. His work, _De
centesimo, seu Jubilæo anno Liber_, is published in the _Biblioth. Max.
Patrum_, tom. xxv. He is the earliest writer to use the word _jubilee_,
which is not found in the pope’s bull, but must have been common at
the period, for others use it. A sententious specimen of the cardinal
deacon’s prose style may be interesting; it contains a good sentiment,
and is not bad Latin, although the German Gregorovius, in his _History
of Rome in the Middle Ages_, speaks of “die barbarische Schrift des
Jacob Stefaneschi”--“that barbarous opuscule of James Stefaneschi”:
“Beatus populus qui scit Jubilationem; infelices vero qui torpore, vel
temeritate, dum alterius sibi forsan ævum Jubilæi spondent, neglexerint”
(cap. xv.)--“Blessed is the people that profiteth by this season of
remission; but unhappy are the slothful and presumptuous ones who,
promising themselves another Jubilee, neglect it.” His hexameters,
however, are undoubtedly execrable; for instance:

    “Discite, centeno detergi crimina Phœbo, (!)
    Discite, si latebras scabrosi criminis ora
    Depromunt, contrita sinu, dum circulus anni
    Gyrat, perque dies quindenos exter, et Urbis
    Incola tricenos delubra patentia Patrum
    Ætherei Petri, Pauli quoque gentibus almi
    Doctoris subeant, ubi congerit urna sepultos.”

Cardinal James of the Title of S. George _in Velabro_ was one of the
most distinguished men of Rome; “famous,” as Tiraboschi says (_Letterat.
Ital._, v. 517), “not less for his birth than for his learning.” His
mother was an Orsini. He died in 1343.

As soon as the grant of this great indulgence was noised abroad an
extraordinarily large number of pilgrims set out from all parts of Italy,
from Provence and France, from Spain, Germany, Hungary, and even from
England, although not very many from that country, which was then at
war. They came of every age, sex, and condition: children led by the
hand or carried in the arms, the infirm borne in litters, the knightly
and those of more means on horseback, while not a few old people were
seen, Anchises-like, supported on the shoulders of their sons. _The
Chronicle of Parma_ (quoted by Gregorovius, _Geschichte der Stadt Rom im
Mittelalter_, v. p. 549) says that “every day and at all hours there was
a sight as of a general army marching in and out by the Claudian Way,”
which brought the pilgrims into the city after joining the Flaminian Way
at the gate now represented by the Porta del Popolo; and the Chronicler
of Asti has to use the words of the Apocalypse to describe the throngs
that gathered about the roaring gates. “I went out one day,” he says,
and “I saw a great crowd which no man could number.” The whole influx of
pilgrims, including men and women, during the year, was computed by the
Romans at over two millions; while Villani, who was a careful observer,
writes that about thirty thousand people used to enter and leave the city
every day, there being at no time less than two hundred thousand within
the walls over and above the fixed population. But the pilgrimage was
especially one of the poor to the tomb of the Fisherman; and all writers
on it have remarked, in noticing the fervent enthusiasm of the common
people, the cold reserve and absence of their royal masters. Only the
Frenchman Charles Martel, titular King of Hungary, came; it is presumable
more to obtain the pope’s good-will in the dispute about the succession
to the throne than from piety. The nearest approach to royalty after him
was Charles of Valois, who came accompanied by his family and a courtly
retinue of five hundred knights, and doubtless hoped to receive the crown
of Sicily from Boniface, if he could expel the usurping Aragonese.

So many thousands of pilgrims, citizens and strangers, went day and
night to S. Peter’s that not a few were maimed, and some even trampled
to death, in the struggling crowd of goers and comers that met at the
crossing of the Tiber over the old Ælian bridge leading to the Leonine
city. To obviate such disasters in future, the wide bridge was divided
lengthwise by a strong wooden railing, thus forming two passages, of
which the advancing and returning pilgrims took respectively the one
on their right. The poet Dante, who is strongly supposed to have been
in Rome for the Jubilee, although there is no proof either in the
_Divine Comedy_ or the _Vita Nuova_ that he was, may have written as an
eye-witness when he describes this very scene of the passing but not
mingling streams of human beings in the well-known lines:

    “Come i Roman, per l’esercito molto,
      L’anno del giubbileo, su per lo ponte
      Hanno a passar la gente modo tolto;
    Che dall’ un lato tutti hanno la fronte
      Verso’l castello, e vanno a Santo Pietro--
      Dall’ altra sponda vanno verso’l monte.”[84]

    --_Inferno_, xviii.

The castle here mentioned is, of course, Sant’ Angelo; and the hill is
probably Monte Giordano, in the heart of the city, which, although, from
the grading of the surrounding streets, is now only a gentle rise graced
by the Gabrielli palace, was a high and strongly-fortified position in
the XIVth century. Among all the relics seen by the pilgrims in Rome,
the Holy Face of our Lord, or Cloth of Veronica, which is preserved
with so much veneration in S. Peter’s, seems to have attracted the most
attention. By order of the pope it was solemnly shown to the people
on every Friday and on all the principal feasts throughout the year of
Jubilee. The great Tuscan has also sung of this, which he possibly saw
himself:

    “Quale è colui che forse di Croazia
      Viene a veder la Veronica nostra,
      Che per l’antica fama non si sazia,
    Ma dice nel pensier, fin che si mostra;
      Signor mio Gesù Cristo, Dio verace,
      Or fu sì fatta la sembianza vostra?”[85]

    --_Paradiso_, xxxi.

A modern economist might wonder how a famine was to be averted, with
such a sudden and numerous addition to the population of the city. The
foresight of the energetic pope, whose family also was influential in
the very garden of the Campagna, among those hardy laborers of whom
Virgil sung, “Quos dives Anagnia pascit,” had early in the year caused
an immense supply of grain, oats, meat, fish, wine, and other sorts
of provision for man and beast to be collected from every quarter and
brought into the city, where it was stored and guarded against the
coming of the pilgrims. The provisions were abundant and cheap. The
Chronicler of Asti, it is true, complains of the dearness of the hay or
fodder for his horse; but as he thought _tornesium unum grossum_ (equal
to six cents of our money) too high for his own daily lodging and his
horse’s stabling, without bait, we must think either that the means
of living in Italy in those days were incredibly low, or that Ventura
was very parsimonious. It is the testimony of all the writers on this
Jubilee that, except an inundation of the Tiber, which threatened for a
few days to cut off the train of supplies for the city, everything was
propitious to the comfort and piety of the faithful. The roads through
Italy leading to Rome were safe, at least to the pilgrims, to whom a
general safe-conduct was given by the various little republics and
principalities of the Peninsula; and if the Romans did grow rich off of
the strangers, there was good-humor on both sides, and not the slightest
collision. Indeed, the Romans (who perhaps gained the Jubilee before the
great body of the pilgrims had arrived; at least we know that those out
of the northern parts of Europe timed their departure from home so as to
avoid the sweltering southern heat) seem to have shown some indifference
to the spiritual favors offered; as Gregorovius--who, however, is
anti-papal--with a quiet sarcasm says: “They left the pilgrims to pray
at the altars, while they marched with flaunting banners against the
neighboring city of Toscanella”; and Galletti, in his _Roman Mediæval
Inscriptions_ (tom. ii. p. 4), has published a curious old one on this
martial event, the original of which is now encased in one of the inside
walls of the Palazzo dei Conservatori (this name may have been changed
by the present usurpers) on the Capitoline hill, where it was set up
under Clement X. in 1673. As it is most interesting for its synchronism
with the first Jubilee, and the insight it gives us into the mixed sort
of fines imposed by the descendants of the conquerors of the world upon
a subjugated people in the middle ages--bags of wheat, a bell, the city
gates, eight lusty fellows to dance while their masters piped, and a
gentle hint that there was _no salt sown_--we think it might well appear
(doubtless for the first time) in an American periodical. The original
being in the abbreviated style of the XIVth century, we have modernized
it to make it more intelligible to the reader:

    “Mille trecentenis Domini currentibus annis
    Papa Bonifacius octavus in orbe vigebat
    Tunc Aniballensis Riccardus de Coliseo
    Nec non Gentilis Ursina prole creatus
    Ambo senatores Romam cum pace regebant
    Per quos jam pridem tu Tuscanella fuisti
    Ob dirum damnata nefas, tibi dempta potestas
    Sumendi regimen est, at data juribus Urbis
    Frumenti rubla bis millia ferre coegit
    Annua te Roma vel libras solvere mille
    Cum Deus attulerit Romanis fertilitatem
    Campanam populi, portas deducere Romam
    Octo ludentes Romanis mittere ludis--
    Majori pœna populi pietate remissa.
    Sunt quoque communis servata palatia Romæ
    Dummodo certe ruant turresque palatia muri
    Si rursus furere tentent fortassis in Urbem
    Vel jam prolata nolint decreta tenere
    In æde reponatur sacra pro tempore guerræ
    Tempore vel caro servanda pecunia prorsus.”

The meaning of the tenth, eleventh, and twelfth lines is that, since
the Romans have land enough to give them their daily bread, but do not
object to any amount of _quattrim_ (coin), if the vanquished should
prefer, they may pay once for all a thousand pounds in money, instead of
the annual tribute of two thousand sacks of grain--with freight charges
to destination; and the last lines signify that a sum is laid up in the
chapel to be used to carry on another war if the Tuscanellans should
again machinate against the City--as Rome was proudly called--or refuse
to fulfil the stipulations.

The pilgrims of the Jubilee generally made a small offering at the altars
of the two basilicas, although no alms were required as a condition of
gaining the indulgence; and it is particularly from a _naïve_ passage of
one of them in his valuable chronicle that Protestants and Voltaireans
have taken occasion to deride the Jubilees as mere money-making affairs;
and even the Catholic Muratori (_Antichità Italiane_, tom. iii. part ii.
p. 156) carps at the inimitable description of so Romanesque a scene as
that of two chatting clerics raking in the oblations of the _forestieri_;
but Cenni, the annotator of this great work of the Modenese historian
in the Roman edition of 1755, which we use, aptly remarks here that if
writers will look only at the bad side of the many and almost innumerable
events that have occurred in this low world of ours, and illogically
conclude from a particular to the universal, they will discover that art
of putting things whereby what has generally been considered good and
laudable will appear thereafter worthy only of censure. The Chronicler
of Asti, certainly with no great thought of what people would think five
hundred years after he was mouldering in his grave, simply writes of the
pilgrims’ donations: “Papa innumerabilem pecuniam ab eisdem recepit, quia
die ac nocte duo clerici stabant ad altare sancti Petri, tenentes in
eorum manibus rastellos rastellantes pecuniam infinitam.”

Although we believe that the honest Chronicler of Asti deserves credit
for taking notes at the Jubilee, yet this very passage, read in
connection with the other one about the dearness of his living, shows us
that he was one of those pious but penurious souls who, if he had lived
in our day, and a gentleman called on him for a subscription, would beg
to be permitted to wait until the list got down very low. The Protestant
Gregorovius has shown that these exaggerated offerings “were for the most
part only small coin, the gift of common pilgrims”; while the Catholic
Von Reumont (_Geschichte der Stadt Rom_, vol. ii. p. 650) has calculated
that this “infinite amount of money” was only after all equal to about
two hundred and forty thousand Prussian thalers, which would make no more
than one hundred and seventy-five thousand, two hundred dollars. When the
pope knew how generous were the offerings of the faithful, he ordered the
entire sum to be expended on the two basilicas, in buying property to
support the chapter of the one and the monastery attached to the other,
and in those thousand and more other expenses which only those who have
lived in Rome can understand to be necessary to support the majesty of
divine worship within such edifices. Surely, it was better, in any case,
that the money of the pilgrims should go for the glory of the saints
and the embellishment of God’s temples than be exacted at home by cruel
barons and ruthless princes to carry on their petty wars or strengthen
their castles.

Mr. Hemans (no friend to our Rome), in his _Mediæval Christianity and
Sacred Art_ (vol. i. p. 474), says, after mentioning these “heaps of
coins”: “If much of this went into the papal treasury, it is manifest
that the expenditure from that source for the charities exercised
throughout this holy season must also have been great.” This is a lame
statement; because, although on the one hand the large subventions of the
pope to the poor pilgrims are certain, on the other there is no proof
whatever that _any_ alms they gave went into his “treasury.” The pope,
indeed, having at heart the comfort of the strangers and the beauty of
the city, put up many new buildings and made other improvements, such as
the beautiful Gothic _loggia_ of S. John of Lateran, which the greatest
painter of the age was commissioned to decorate with frescos (Papencordt,
_Rom im Mittelalter_, p. 336). It is perhaps from a traditionary
knowledge of these architectural propensities of the pope during the
Jubilee year, and of his endowments to the basilicas, that so many
people have quite erroneously believed the sombre but picturesque old
farm-buildings of Castel Giubileo, which crown the green and lonely hill
where more than two thousand years ago the Arx of Fidenæ stood a rival
to the Capitol of Rome, to be a memorial of, and to get its designation
from, this Jubilee of A.D. 1300. Even Sir Wm. Gell (_Top. of Rome_, p.
552) repeats the old story. But the more careful Nibby (_Dintorni di
Roma_, vol. ii. p. 58) has demonstrated, with the aid of a document in
the archives of the Vatican basilica, that the name of this place between
the Via Salaria and the Tiber, five miles from Rome, is derived from that
of a Roman family which acquired the site (previously called Monte Sant’
Angelo) and built the castle in the XIVth century; and that it did not
come into the possession of the chapter of S. Peter until the 16th of
December, 1458, when it was bought for the sum of three thousand golden
ducats. So much for an instance of jumping at conclusions from a mere
similarity of name, put together with something else, which is so common
a fault of antiquaries.


GREVILLE AND SAINT-SIMON.

Mr. Charles Greville was not a La Bruyère,[86] but, as he appears in
his _Memoirs_, he might have sat very well for that portrait of Arrias
which the inimitable imitator of Theophrastus has drawn in his chapter
on society and conversation: “Arrias has read everything, has seen
everything; at least he would have it thought so. ’Tis a man of universal
knowledge, and he gives himself out as such; he would sooner lie than
be silent or appear ignorant of anything.… If he tells a story, it is
less to inform those who listen than to have the merit of telling it.
It becomes a romance in his hands; he makes people think after his own
manner; he puts his own habits of speaking in their mouths; and, in fine,
makes them all as talkative as himself. What would become of him and of
them, if happily some one did not come in to break up the circle and
contradict the whole story?”

This exact picture of the late clerk of H.B.M. Privy Council might have
been written the morning after his _Memoirs_ appeared in the London
bookstores, instead of nearly two hundred years ago. It is at once a
proof of the penetrating genius of La Bruyère, and a photograph every one
will recognize of the author of the journal which has lately made so much
noise in society. This clever Newmarket jockey--_rebus Newmarketianis
versatus_, as he says of himself--to whom every point of the betting book
is familiar, carelessly refreshes his jaded intellect with the _Life
of Mackintosh_, as he rides down in his carriage to the races. With
affable profusion he scatters broadcast to the mob of readers scraps of
Horace and Ovid, mingled with the latest odds on the Derby. He has seen
everything from S. Giles’s to S. Peter’s, and, with the _blasé_ air of a
man at once of genius and fashion, proclaims “there is nothing in it.” He
knows everything, from the most questionable scandal of the green-room to
the best plan of forming a cabinet; such second-rate men as Melbourne,
Palmerston, and Stanley he sniffs at with easy disdain; and if at times
he gently bemoans a few personal deficiencies, it is with a complacent
conviction that it needed only a little early training to have made him a
Peel, a Burke, or a Chatham! That he would “sooner lie than be silent,”
one needs only remember his infamous stories about Mrs. Charles Kean and
Lady Burghersh; his calumnies against George IV. and William IV.--the
masters whose gracious kindness he repaid by bribing their _valets_
for evidence against them--his unfounded attacks upon Peel, Stanley,
O’Connell, and Lyndhurst; his slanders even against obscure men, like
Wakley and others. As to his habit of “making people think after his own
manner,” and putting “his own mode of speaking in their mouths,” the
profanity and vulgarity which disfigure his pages are the best evidence.

That this is a true estimate of the merits of _The Greville Memoirs_
is now generally admitted. The most respectable critical exponents of
English opinion have united in condemning the bad taste and breach of
trust which made either their composition or publication possible. It
needs no refinement of reasoning to prove that the expressions everywhere
so freely quoted from this journal are such as could not honorably be
uttered by any gentleman holding the office Mr. Greville did. Readers
will easily be found for them, either from a love of sensation or because
of the illustration they offer of the character of the persons described
or the writer; but nothing can condone their real offensiveness. Such,
however, was far from being the first opinion of the press. The leading
English journal, in two lengthy reviews such as rarely appear in its
columns, handled Mr. Greville’s work with a delicacy, an admiration,
a regretful and half-tender daintiness of touch for the author, that
promised everything to the reader. This criticism was followed by a
general outburst of applause on the part of the press, which soon began
to waver, however, when it was found that the best section of English
society regarded the book with disapproval.

So conscious, indeed, were the American publishers of its intrinsic
lack of interest or literary merit that one firm has presented it to
the public with nearly all the political portions left out and the
private gossip retained. “It is said,” says the _Saturday Review_ not
long ago, “that an American compiler has published a pleasant duodecimo
volume containing only those passages which may be supposed to gratify a
morbid taste.” The London critic intended, no doubt, to be pungent and
satirical; but how innocuously does such satire fall upon the head of the
average “compiler”!

If Mr. Greville has not made good his claim to stand among the masters
of his craft, least of all is he to be named in the same day with the
prince of memoir-writers--Saint-Simon; unless, indeed, it be to point
the moral that more is needed for excellency in such an art than an
inquisitive mind and a biting pen. Yet Mr. Greville’s opportunity was
great--greater, probably, than will happen to any other memoir-writer for
some generations to come. Like Saint-Simon, he began active life in an
age of great events and great men. Whatever may be said of the pettiness
of the regency, of its profligacy and mock brilliancy, no one can forget
that those were days of great perils; of vast struggles, military and
civil; of giants’ wars, and of a race of combatants not unworthy to take
part in them. Nor were the twenty years succeeding--which make up, as
we may roughly say, that portion of his journal now printed--wanting
in great interests and momentous events. The age which gave birth to
Catholic Emancipation and the Reform Bill, while it still numbered
among its chiefs the veterans of the great Continental war, could not
fail to offer subjects for treatment that would be read eagerly by all
succeeding times. If Saint-Simon witnessed the culmination of the glories
of the reign of Louis XIV., and saw De Luxembourg and Catinat, the last
survivors of that line of victorious marshals beginning with the great
Condé and Turenne, who had carried the lilies of France over Europe,
not less was it Greville’s fortune to converse familiarly with the great
duke who, repeating the triumphs of Marlborough, had beaten down the arms
of the empire in a later age. And if Saint-Simon lived also to see the
disasters, the weakness, the desolation, and bankruptcy of his country
which succeeded the long splendor of his youth, Greville too looked on as
a spectator, almost, one might say, as a registrar, at the hardly less
terrible civil struggles and social depression which threatened to rend
the kingdom asunder.

Both were of noble families, although the Duc de Saint-Simon was the head
of his house, and Mr. Greville only a cadet of his. Both were courtiers;
and although Saint-Simon’s position as a peer of France lifted him far
above Greville’s in his day, who was rather a paid servant of the crown
than strictly a courtier, yet the very office of the latter gave him
advantages which the elder memoir-writer did not always possess. Here,
however, all parallel ceases. The radical incapacity of Mr. Greville’s
mind to lift him above the common race of diarists prevents all further
comparison. He had neither the genius of assimilation nor description
to make the portraits of men and manners live, like Saint-Simon’s, in
the gallery of history. His informants are _valets_, his satire mere
backbiting, his reflections trivial, his descriptions a confused mass of
petty details.

It is not proposed here to weary the reader with long quotations from a
work which so many already have read or skimmed over. Nor do we intend,
on the other hand, to follow the fashion of some critics, and carefully
gather up all the points which might be woven into an indictment against
Mr. Greville’s honor or candor or wit. Such a task would be endless; it
would take in almost every other page of his volumes. But that it may be
seen that the unfavorable opinion which, after a careful examination, we
have been led--much to our disappointment--to entertain of his work is
not misplaced, we shall proceed to give some passages that sustain, in
our judgment, the correctness of the view we have taken.

Charles C. F. Greville was, as his editor, Mr. H. Reeve, informs us, the
eldest son of Mr. Charles Greville, grandson of the Earl of Warwick,
and Lady Charlotte Bentinck, daughter of the Duke of Portland. He was
born in 1794. At the age of nineteen he was appointed private secretary
by Earl Bathurst, and almost at the same time family influence procured
for him a clerkship in the Board of Trade. Both offices had comfortable
salaries attached to them; neither of them any duties. Thus at the outset
of his career, fortunate in his family influence and his friends, Mr.
Greville was started, fairly equipped, on the road of life. Unencumbered
by any responsibility, nor weighed down by that sharp and bitter load
of poverty that men of humbler birth have commonly to carry on their
galled shoulders, while they strive to gain an insecure foothold on
the slippery road to fame or fortune, he had every incentive and every
advantage to secure success. A subject for thanksgiving, shall we say, to
this accomplished sinecurist? By no means! Years afterwards he bemoans
the fact that he had nothing to do, no spur to honorable ambition. He
forgot that at the same or an earlier age Saint-Simon, whom he appears
to have read only to copy his sometimes coarse language, was handling
a pike as a volunteer in the service of his king, and carrying sacks
of grain on his shoulders to the starving troops in the trenches at
Namur, disdaining those little offices into which Greville insinuated
himself as soon as he left college. Or if it be said--what no man could
then (1812) predict--that the war was nearly over, and there was little
prospect of another, what was there to prevent him from seeking a place
in Parliament--not hard to gain with his family influence--and there
carving out for himself a place like that of Burke, to whom he sometimes
lifts his eyes? The truth is, to use a vulgar phrase, Mr. Greville had
“other fish to fry.” He knew well he had other easier and more profitable
game to follow. He was scarcely of age when the influence of his uncle,
the Duke of Portland, obtained for him the sinecure office of Secretary
of Jamaica, a deputy being allowed to reside in the island; better still,
the same influential relative secured him the reversion of the clerkship
of the Council! Henceforward not the camp nor parliamentary struggles
occupied Mr. Greville’s mind; the glorious task of “waiting for a dead
man’s shoes,” varied by the congenial study of the stables, occupied that
powerful intellect which, in these _Memoirs_, looks down with contempt
on all the names most distinguished in European statesmanship during
the first half of this century. The office fell to him in 1821, and he
continued to hold it for nearly forty years. The net income of the two
offices, we are elsewhere informed, amounted to about four thousand
pounds; and as he died worth thirty thousand pounds, the charitable
supposition of the _Quarterly Review_ is that “probably he was a gainer
on the turf.” He died in 1865.

The bent of Mr. Greville’s genius was early shown.

    “Sunt quos curriculo pulverem Olympicum
    Collegisse juvat.”

The clerk of the Council was one of them. The blue ribbon of the turf,
not parliamentary honors or the long vigil of laborious nights--except
over the card-table--was the centre around which his ambition and
aspirations circled. Early smitten by the betting fever, he became as
nearly a professional turfman as the security of his office would permit;
and there is something ludicrous in those expressions of regret, which
have drawn such tender sympathy from his critics, that he gave himself up
to the passion instead of becoming the scholar or statesman he is always
hinting he might have been. Mr. Greville, in fact, makes the blunder of
supposing that the craving for fame is equivalent to the faculty for
winning it. Not the turf, but original defect of capacity, hindered him
from being more than he was--a clerk with a taste for gambling, held
in check by a shrewd eye for the odds. His contemporary, the late Lord
Derby, whom he seldom lets pass without a sneer in these _Memoirs_, was
an example showing that, had true genius existed, a taste for the turf
without participation in gambling, need not have prevented him from
becoming both an accomplished scholar and a brilliant statesman.

An early entry in Mr. Greville’s journal gives the measure of the man.
Under date of February 23, 1821, he says:

“Yesterday the Duke of York proposed to me to take the management of his
horses, which I accepted. Nothing could be more kind than the manner in
which he proposed it.”

“March 5.--I have experienced a great proof of the vanity of human
wishes. In the course of three weeks I have attained the three things I
have most desired in the world for years past, and upon the whole I do
not feel that my happiness is increased.”

This is a good example, but far from the best of its kind, of that vein
of apparently philosophical reflection running here and there through his
journal, with which Mr. Greville deliberately intended, we believe, to
hoodwink the critics, and in which anticipation he has been wonderfully
successful. Coolly examined, it resolves itself as nearly as possible
into a burlesque. His reflections, as La Bruyère says elsewhere of a like
genius, “are generally about two inches deep, and then you come to the
mud and gravel.” What were the three highest objects of human ambition in
the mind of this ardent young man of twenty-seven, with the world before
him to choose from? 1st. A berth in the civil service to creep into for
the rest of his life. 2d. The place of head jockey and trainer in the
prince’s stables. 3d. Unknown.

Alas! poor Greville, that the bubble of life should have burst so soon,
leaving thee flat on thy back in a barren world, after having thus airily
mounted to such imperial heights! Had either Juvenal or Johnson known thy
towering ambition and thy fall, he would have placed thee side by side
with dire Hannibal or the venturous Swede “to point a moral or adorn a
tale”!

It is wonderful, however, how easily the diarist lays aside his
philosophic tone to take up the more congenial _rôle_ of a spy upon the
kings whose names are so ostentatiously displayed on his title-page, and
from whose service alone he derived all the consideration he had.

On January 12, 1829, Lord Mount Charles comes to him for some
information. Thereupon, under the guise of friendship and confidence,
he avows with a curious shamelessness that he proceeded to interrogate
his visitor about George IV.’s private life and habits. When he has got
all he wants out of the unsuspecting Mount Charles, he sets it down in
his journal and winds up with this reflection, everywhere quoted: “A
more contemptible, cowardly, selfish, unfeeling dog does not exist than
this king.” These were strong words to apply to a sovereign whose bread
he was eating, and who had always personally treated him with marked
confidence and kindness. Perhaps those who read Mr. Greville’s journal
with attention, and note the slow portrait he therein unconsciously draws
of himself, will be better able to judge where the terms more aptly
apply. As a work of art, indeed, the journalist’s picture of himself is
far superior to anything else in his book. Touch by touch he elaborates
his own character. It is not a flattering one; it was never revealed to
the artist. How pitiably does this coarse generalization of Greville’s
compare with the fine but vigorous and indelible strokes of Saint-Simon’s
pencil in his portrait of Louis XIV.! It is not a character, but a gross
and clumsy invective.

But Mr. Greville had already plumbed a lower depth of baseness in his
prurient eagerness for details.

August 29, 1828.--“I met Bachelor, the poor Duke of York’s old servant,
and now the king’s _valet de chambre_, and he told me some curious things
about the interior of the palace. But he is coming to call on me, and I
will write down what he tells me then.” On the 16th of September he sent
for Bachelor, and had a long conversation with him, drawing out all he
could from the valet about his master’s habits.

May 13, 1829.--“Bachelor called again, telling me all sorts of details
concerning Windsor and St. James.”

What a picture for the author of Gil Blas! It reminds one of some of
those Spanish interiors the novelist has so deftly painted, where valet
and adventurer put their heads together, scheming how best to open some
rich don’s purse-strings, or ensnare his confidence before beginning some
villanous game at his expense. If these be the springs of history, Clio
defend us against her modern sister!

What makes all this prying the more indefensible is that Mr. Greville was
without need of it even for the composition of these _Memoirs_. Elsewhere
he boasts of the “great men” he has known. And it is true that he knew
them; and had his ability equalled his opportunity, enough sources of
information were honorably open to him to have made his journal valuable
and interesting. But the truth is, Mr. Greville loved to dabble in dirty
waters, as he has elsewhere plainly shown in his book.

A large part of these volumes--the major part of them, indeed--is taken
up with political gossip. It would not be correct to give it any higher
title. Its weight as a contribution to history, to use La Bruyère’s
illustration, would be about two ounces. It consists chiefly of what he
gathered at the council-table. But disloyal as this tampering with his
oath may have been, his singular inaptitude to gather what was really
important hardly offers even the poor excuse of interesting his readers
in its results. The consideration of the eccentricities and sarcasms of
his _bête noir_, the chancellor (Lord Brougham), during a large portion
of the time covered by this journal, generally puts to flight in Mr.
Greville’s mind all other topics. The rest of his political reminiscences
are made up of conversations with the actors in the parliamentary scenes
here presented; but even these lose the greater part of their value from
his inveterate habit of confounding his own opinions and language with
those of the person he happens to be “interviewing.” This confusion in
Mr. Greville’s mind between what he thought and said and what others
thought and said has been fully exposed by the numerous letters which
have been drawn forth in England from the survivors of the persons named
in his _Memoirs_ or from their friends. Mr. Greville adds very little to
our knowledge of the events of the period he treats of. Nearly everything
of importance in his journal has been anticipated. The correspondence of
William IV. and Lord Grey, the life and despatches of Wellington, and the
lives of Denman, Palmerston, and others, have left little to be supplied
of this era of English history.

One of the most curious features--we might almost say the distinguishing
feature--in a work full of curious traits of levity, conceit, and
immature judgment, is the universal tone of depreciation in which the
author speaks of the men of his acquaintance. This is not confined to
ordinary personages who lived and died obscure, but embraces, as we
have heretofore said, a large number of the names most illustrious in
statesmanship and diplomacy in his times. Lord Althorpe, Melbourne, the
late Earl Derby, Graham, Palmerston, O’Connell, Guizot, Thiers--one
scarcely picks out a single name of eminence that he has not attempted to
belittle. His opinions and prophecies have been in every instance flatly
contradicted by events. Of Palmerston especially--of his stupidity, his
ignorance, his lightness, his general want of capacity, and the certainty
that he would never rise to be anybody--he is never done speaking
slightingly. It is true that the late English premier passed through many
years of obscurity in office, making, perhaps, some sort of excuse for
Mr. Greville’s blindness; but this example is not an isolated one. The
late Lord Derby comes in for an almost equal share of it, although he is
allowed the possession of some brains--a claim denied to his after-rival.
Mr. Greville is equally impartial in discoursing about crowned heads
and plain republicans. His neat and finely-pointed satire stigmatized
the king whose paid servant he was as a “blackguard,” a “dog,” and a
“buffoon”; and he held his nose, as in the case of Washington Irving, did
any “vulgar” American democrat come “between the wind and his nobility.”

Those of Mr. Greville’s subjects who have virtues are imbeciles; those
who have talent are adventurers or knaves. He appears to have centred
all the admiration of which he was capable upon Lord de Ros, a young
nobleman absolutely unknown outside a small English circle. Mr. Greville
seems, in fact, to have been one of those men who seek, and sometimes
gain, a certain reputation for sagacity by depreciating everybody around
them. Of the late Lord Derby he says: “He (Stanley) must be content with
a subordinate part, and act with whom he may, he will never inspire real
confidence or conciliate real esteem.” In another place, in summing up a
conversation with Peel, he accuses him (Stanley), by direct implication,
of being “a liar and a coward,” although he puts these ugly words in
another’s mouth. How far these predictions and this estimate were just
history has already decided. High and low all dance to the same music
in Mr. Greville’s journal. On September 10, 1833, speaking of a speech
of William IV.--not very wise, perhaps, but natural enough under the
circumstances--he says: “If he (William IV.) was not such an ass that
nobody does anything but laugh at what he says, this would be important.
Such as it is, it is nothing.”

The circumstances that influenced his pique are sometimes of the most
trivial character. Under date September 3, 1833, he notes that the king
complained that no one was present to administer the oath to a new
member of the Privy Council whom Brougham had introduced. “And what is
unpleasant,” he says, “the king desires a clerk of the council to be
present when anything is going on.” _Inde iræ._ A few days afterwards, in
a notice of the prorogation of Parliament, he thus revenges himself for
the king’s implied censure:

“He (William IV.) was coolly received; for there is no doubt there
never was a king less respected. George IV., with all his occasional
popularity, could always revive the external appearance of loyalty when
he gave himself the trouble.” Thus one master, who was a “dog,” is made
to do duty on occasion against an other who was an “ass.” But this is not
all he has to say of the same monarch. At page 520, vol. ii., summing up
his character after his death, he says:

“After his (William IV.’s) accession he always continued to be something
of a blackguard and something more of a buffoon. It is but fair to his
memory at the same time to say that he was a good-natured, kind-hearted,
and well-meaning man, and that he always acted an honorable and
straightforward, if not always a sound and discreet, part.”

That this statement, that “never was there a king less respected,”
was false, it needs hardly the popular verdict about William IV. to
prove. Mr. Greville contradicts himself on page 251 of the same volume,
where he notes the “strong expressions of personal regard and esteem”
entertained for the king by such competent witnesses as two of his
ministers, Wellington and Lord Grey. Even their testimony is not needed.
Whatever may have been William IV.’s private weakness and foibles, the
regret felt for him was general, and the esteem for his character as a
popular sovereign publicly expressed. In any case, the indecency in Mr.
Greville’s mouth of the expressions he makes use of is too plain to need
argument. Speaking, in one place, of Lord Brougham and referring to the
chancellor’s habit of sarcasm, he says:

“He reminds me of the man in _Jonathan Wild_ who couldn’t keep his hand
out of his neighbor’s pocket, although there was nothing in it, nor
refrain from cheating at cards, although there were no stakes on the
table.”

This description is true enough, in another sense, of Mr. Greville
himself. A Sir Fretful Plagiary, he could see no man succeed without
carping at him, nor resist criticising another’s performance for the sole
reason that he had no hand in it. Noting the appearance of a political
letter by Lord Redesdale, he says: “There is very little in it.” This
single phrase gives the key to his character and the tone of his journal.
At page 69, vol. ii., he sums up the whole subject of Irish national
education in the profoundly-disgusted remark that there is nothing more
in it than “whether the brats at school shall read the whole Bible or
only parts of it.”

Page 105, vol. ii.: “O’Connell is supposed to be horribly afraid of the
cholera.” “He dodges between London and Dublin” to avoid it, “shuns
the House of Commons,” and neglects his duties. On pages 414-15: “He
(O’Connell) is an object of execration to all those who cherish the
principles and feelings of honor”--a high-toned remark, coming from a
man of such delicate honor that, according to his own confession, he had
no scruple in greasing the palm of a king’s valet for the secrets of his
master’s bed-chamber; who avows without a blush that he deliberately led
Lord Mount Charles, and Lord Adolphus Fitzclarence into confidences he
there and then meant to betray; who in these _Memoirs_ is continually
invading the privacy of homes in which he was a guest; and who, finally,
takes advantage of his official position under oath to disclose
the conversations of the Privy Council! Surely, no juster piece of
self-satire was ever written!

“’Tis a man of universal knowledge,” says La Bruyère. His familiarity
with constitutional law would lead him to unseat the bench. Judges Park
and Aldersen, famous lawyers, known to all the courts, are “nonsensical”
in a decision they come to about the sheriff’s lists. Mr. Justice Park is
“peevish and foolish.”

His loose way of damaging private character is not less remarkable. To
give a single instance: he gives a _bon mot_ about a certain Mr. Wakley,
a parliamentary candidate of the day, who was forced to bring an action
against an insurance company, which resisted the claim on the ground
that the plaintiff was concerned in the fire. No further information is
given--the verdict of the jury or the judgment. But Mr. Greville thus
coolly concludes:

“I forget what was the result of the trial; but that of the evidence was
a conviction of his instrumentality.” A “conviction” by whom? By Mr.
Greville--who “forgets the result of the trial”! There is nothing to show
that the friends or family of this Mr. Wakley are not still living to
suffer from this unsupported libel. “Jesters,” says a French humorist,
“are wretched creatures; that has been said before. But those who injure
the reputation or the fortunes of others rather than lose a _bon mot_,
merit an infamous punishment; this has not been said, and I dare say it.”

His “blackguards” are not all seated on a throne. His hatred of the “mob”
was greater, if possible, than his envy of his superiors. “Odi profanum
vulgus et arceo” is the head-line of all his pages. Look at this entry,
where the whole character of the man breaks forth irresistibly:

“Newmarket, October 1, 1831.--Came here last night, to my great joy, to
get holidays, and leave reform and politics and cholera for racing and
its amusements. Just before I came away I met Lord Wharncliffe, and asked
him about his interview with radical Jones. This _blackguard_ considers
himself a sort of chief of a faction, and one of the heads of the
_sans-culottins_ of the present day.”

From radical Jones to Washington Irving is but a step for Mr. Greville’s
nimble pen. The one is--what he says; the other, essentially “vulgar.”
The same “vulgarity” offends his delicate taste in Thiers, Macaulay, and
a score of others “the latchet of whose shoes he was unworthy to loose.”
Is it to be wondered at that the venerable pontiff Pius VIII. (page 325,
vol. i.) fails to satisfy this fastidious critic? The pope, however,
escapes tolerably well. As a matter of course, “there is nothing in him”;
but the distinguished urbanity and refined wit of the condescending Mr.
Greville is satisfied to pronounce him a good-natured “twaddle.” These
large airs of superior wisdom and refinement, this tone of pitying
kindness, which Mr. Greville adopts towards the most illustrious men in
Europe of his day, remind us of nothing so much as the majestic demeanor
of the _burgo_, or great lord of Lilliput, who harangued Capt. Gulliver
the morning after his arrival in that island. “He seemed to me,” says
Capt. Gulliver, “to be somewhat longer than my middle finger. He acted
every part of an orator, and I could observe many periods of threatening,
and others of promises, pity, and kindness.”

The distinguished author of these _Memoirs_ was not always, however,
as we have seen, in the same amiable mood that the _burgo_ afterwards
manifested. After lashing each one of the persons he has known,
separately and in turn, in the words which we have quoted, in another
passage his acquaintances are all collected in a group and dashed off
with graphic effect.

October 12, 1832.--Immediately after an entry giving a conversation with
the accomplished Lady Cowper, he says: “My journal is getting intolerably
stupid and entirely barren of events. I would take to miscellaneous and
private matters, if any fell in my way. But what can I make out of such
animals as I herd with and such occupations as I am engaged in?” A week
after, at Easton, besides Lady Cowper, he names some other “animals”:
“The Duke of Rutland, the Walewskis, Lord Burghersh and Hope--the usual
party,” he exclaims with a sigh. Sad fate! The adventurous Capt. Gulliver
elsewhere, in a letter to his cousin Sympson, says: “Pray bring to your
mind how often I desired you to consider, when you insisted on the
motive of Public Good, that the Yahoos were a species of animals utterly
incapable of amendment by precept or example.”

Such appear to have been the melancholy reflections forced upon the mind
of Mr. _Houyhnhnm_ Greville by the _Yahoos_ he tells us he was compelled
to “herd with”! Ever and anon he turns a regretful eye to the nobler
race he was suited to, and lets us into the secret of the company and
occupations that relieved him from the desolating _ennui_ of uncongenial
society.

“June 11, 1833.--At a place called Buckhurst all last week for the Ascot
races. A party at Lentifield’s; racing all the morning; then eating,
drinking, and play at night. I may say with more truth than anybody,
_Video meliora proboque, deteriora sequor_.”

“Not at all,” it might have been answered. “A jockey and gamester _ab
ovo usque ad mala_. Fortune has now placed thee in the rank kind nature
fitted thee to adorn, had not a too avid uncle snatched thee therefrom,
and dry mountains of crackling parchment and red tape crushed thy
yearning ardor for the loose boxes and the paddock!”

“March 27.--Jockeys, trainers, and blacklegs are my companions, and it
is like dram-drinking: having once entered upon it, I cannot leave it,
although I am disgusted with the occupation all the time.” Truly a long
and fond “disgust,” since it lasted from his eighteenth year until his
death!

“While the fever it excites is raging and the odds are varying, I can
neither read nor write nor occupy myself with anything.”

Let us not be unjust to Mr. Greville. Kings, pontiffs, statesmen, and
authors may have been “blackguards” or “vulgar buffoons,” the most
refined society of both sexes in England a “herd” of _Yahoos_; but that
he was not insensible to real merit, that he had a true appreciation of
the good and the beautiful when he found it, one single example, shining
out in these many pages of depreciation, proves beyond peradventure. In
the flood of universal cynicism that pours over them, one man there is at
least who lifts his head above the waters--one other gentle Houyhnhnm,
fit companion for Mr. Greville, possessing all that wisdom and discretion
denied to the rest of the world, and, more wonderful still, that elegant
taste the fastidious critic finds nowhere else. This phenomenon is Mr.
John Gully, prize-fighter retired! “Strong sense,” “discretion,” “reserve
and good taste”--these are the encomiums heaped upon him; to crown all,
“remarkably dignified and graceful in his manners and actions.” Ah! poor
Macaulay, or thou, gentle Diedrich Knickerbocker, where wanders now thy
ghost, condemned for thy “vulgarity” to pace the borders of the sluggish
Styx, while the “champion heavy-weight” is ferried over to immortality by
this new Charon of gentility?

We decline to soil our pages with any of Mr. Greville’s impure stories.
Those who have seized on the book for the purpose of reading them must
have been sadly disappointed if they hoped to find in them a doubtful
amusement. Not a scintilla of wit relieves their baseness. Their vileness
is equalled only by their dulness. They are simply falsehoods from
beginning to end. Where Mr. Greville, with a singular depravity, does
not himself admit them to be false while wilfully publishing them, they
have been elsewhere fully and indignantly disproved. In a single word, as
Mrs. Charles Kean aptly says in her letter published in the _Times_, “the
grossness was in Mr. Greville’s mind,” not in the conduct of those he
slanders.

If it be said that our criticism upon these volumes and their author has
been too unsparing; that the old saying, _De mortuis nil nisi bonum_,
should have inspired a smoother tone, the answer is given by Mr. Greville
himself. “Memoirs of this kind,” he said in a conversation held some time
before his death with his editor, Mr. Reeve, “ought not to be locked up
till they had lost their principal interest by the death of all those
who had taken any part in the events they describe.” In other words, the
diseased vanity and cynicism which made him rail at everybody while
he lived made him unwilling to lose the pleasure by anticipation of
wounding everybody after his death. The shallow eagerness to have himself
talked about after he was gone made him insensible to those ideas which
seem to have animated Saint-Simon, who was content to look forward to
an indefinite time for the publication of his _Memoirs_, desiring them
rather to be a truthful and interesting contribution to history than a
hasty means of venting his passing spleen. Mr. Greville has indeed been
talked about sufficiently; but that the conversation would be pleasing to
him, could he hear it, is more doubtful.

One thing at least is to be commended in Mr. Greville--his style. This,
for certain uses, is admirable. It is easy and plain. He is a master
of that part of the art of writing which Horace describes in the 10th
_Satire_:

    “Interdum urbani, parcentis viribus atque
    Extenuantis eas consulto.”

His is “the language of the well-bred man,” the pure English of the
society in which he lived. We do not take account here of his occasional
coarseness, and even oaths--these were of the character of the man, not
of his style. The latter, for purposes of correspondence, or even a short
diary, might generally be taken for a model. Any single page will be read
with pleasure. But as, on the other hand, he neglects the other side of
the Venusian’s advice, seldom rising to “support the part of the poet or
rhetorician,” these closely-printed volumes eventually become tiresome to
the reader. Even good English will grow monotonous if it has nothing else
to sustain it.

Little room is left to speak of the greatest of French memoir-writers,
or perhaps of any literature--Saint-Simon. A few remarks may be jotted
down, having reference chiefly to the points of contrast suggested by the
Greville _Memoirs_. Of the substance and texture of Saint-Simon’s great
and voluminous work, as it unrolls itself slowly before us--the opening
splendor, the daring, the eccentricities, the wit, and the vices of the
courts under which he lived; the prodigies of baseness and monuments of
heroic virtue that rear themselves opposed in that marvellous age; the
long line of portraits, dark, lurid, threatening, radiant, gentle, so
full of surprises to the student of history as ordinarily written; the
turning of the fate of campaigns by the caprice of an angry woman; the
crippling of fleets by the jealousy of a minister; the desolation of
whole provinces by the corruption of intendants; the closing scenes of
profligacy and bankruptcy under the regency--many pages would be required
to give even an outline. The analysis of his genius and character would
make a distinct essay. Sainte-Beuve and other masters of criticism have
labored in the field; yet the soil is so rich that humbler students
will still find enough to repay them. We indicate the landmarks of the
country, without entering on it. Nor would we be supposed to endorse or
give our sanction to many of the opinions and sentiments Saint-Simon so
freely gives utterance to. His Gallicanism, which he shared with the
court; his sympathy with the Jansenist leaders, if not with their heresy;
his violent hatred of the Jesuits--these are blots on his work that cover
many pages.

The Duc de Saint-Simon was born in 1675. During the lifetime of his
father he bore the name of the Vidame de Chartres, and in a subsequent
passage of his _Memoirs_, relating to the birth of his own eldest son,
he gives a highly characteristic account of the title. At his first
appearance at court the king was already privately married to Mme. de
Maintenon, the widow Scarron, whose character and astonishing fortunes
are nowhere more vividly described than in the pages of Saint-Simon.
Louis XIV. was at the summit of his glory. Henceforward, though none
could then foresee it, the course was all down-hill. Saint-Simon in his
first campaigns accompanied the king into Flanders. Some discontent about
promotion, to which he believed himself entitled, caused him to retire
from the service. Henceforward he continued to live chiefly at court,
having already begun the composition of his _Memoirs_. On the death of
his father, the confidential adviser of Louis XIII., even under the
ministry of the famous Cardinal Richelieu, he succeeded to the title and
the government of Blaye. At this early age he was accustomed secretly to
visit the monastery of La Trappe for meditation and retreat. His gravity
and seriousness of mind are everywhere felt through his _Memoirs_,
although these qualities do not lessen the pungency of his style, nor
blunt the _bon mots_ of the court, or his graphic description of the
surprising adventures of the men of his day. He married Mlle. de Durfort,
the daughter of Marshal de Durfort. This union was one of singular
happiness, interrupted only by her death.

The death of the Dauphin, the pupil of Fénelon, destroyed the hopes
that were opening up before Saint-Simon of becoming the chief minister
of the next reign. Under the regency he continued to be the intimate
and sometimes confidential adviser of the Duke of Orleans, although
supplanted in state affairs by Cardinal Dubois. His embassy to Madrid to
negotiate the marriage of the young king, Louis XV., with the Infanta of
Spain, is well known. After the death of the regent he retired to his
château of La Ferté-Vidame, where chiefly he continued henceforward to
live in retirement, composing his immortal _Memoirs_. He died in Paris
in 1755. Having known the subtle sway of a Maintenon, he lived to see
the audacious empire of the Pompadour; and having served in his first
campaigns under Luxembourg, he witnessed before his death the Great
Frederick launch his thunderbolts of war, and the rise of Prussia among
the great powers of Europe.

To attempt, in these few concluding remarks, to give any criticism of
Saint-Simon’s great work would be a hopeless task. Its character is so
many-sided, even contradictory, that any single judgment about it would
be deceptive. We were impelled to connect the author’s name with that of
the later memoir-writer by the contrasts which irresistibly suggested
themselves.

Stated broadly, the main distinction between Saint-Simon and such writers
as Greville and his kind is this: that Saint-Simon presents a connected
narrative, flowing on largely, fully, evenly, abundantly, like a majestic
river sweeping slowly past many varieties of scenery; while Greville
gives nothing more than a hodge-podge diary, with no connection except
the illusory one of dates, a jumble of short stories, petty details,
and ill-natured remarks, bubbling like a noisy brook over stones and
shingle, often half lost in the mud and sand, and not unlikely to end
in a common sewer. It follows that, while it is difficult to remember
particular events or conversations in Greville’s journal, many scenes
from Saint-Simon remain for ever fixed in the memory. Take, for instance,
one--not the most striking--that of the death of Monseigneur. Who
can forget the picture of the old king, in tears, only half-dressed,
hastening to the bedside of his son; the sudden terror of the prince’s
household; the flight of La Choin, hastily gathering up her jewelry; the
row of officers on their knees in the long avenue, crying out to the king
to save them from dying of hunger; the well-managed eyes of the courtiers
at Marly!

Greville is cynical or satirical by dint of the child’s art of using hard
words. Saint-Simon seldom, comparatively speaking, puts on the garb of
a cynic; but his narrative, with scarcely any obtrusion of the writer,
often becomes a satire as terrible as that of some passages of Tacitus,
or, in another vein, of Juvenal.

Many of the historical characters introduced into these works are no
favorites of ours; but our purpose in this article has been, not to
discuss them, but rather the capacity and good taste, or otherwise, of
their critics.

Sainte-Beuve, in one of his felicitous periods, expresses the wish that
every age might have a Saint-Simon to chronicle it. As a paraphrase of
this remark, it might be said that it is to be wished no other age may
have a Greville to slander it.


DOM GUÉRANGER AND SOLESMES.[87]


I.

The church in France has just sustained a severe loss in the death of
Dom Guéranger, the illustrious Abbot of Solesmes, who, on the 30th of
January last, rendered up his soul to God in the noble abbey which he had
restored at the same time that he brought back the Benedictine Order to
France; and where, during the last forty years of his life, he had lived
in the practice of every monastic virtue, and in the pursuit of literary
labors which have rendered him one of the oracles of ecclesiastical
learning.

We are not about to enter into details of the religious life of the
venerable abbot. It belongs rather to those who have been its daily
witnesses to trace its history; but we feel that it may be of interest
to touch upon certain features of the character and public works of this
humble and patient religious, this vigorous athlete, the loss of whom is
so keenly felt by the Holy Father, whose friend and counsellor he was,
and by the church, of which he was the honor and the unwearied defender.

Dom Guéranger, in mental temperament, belonged to that valiant generation
of Catholics who, after 1830, energetically undertook the cause of
religion in their unhappy country, more than ever exposed to the attacks
of the Revolution. The university had become a source of antichristian
teaching; the press everywhere overflowed with evil and daring scandals
of every kind were rife. A new generation of Jacobins had sprung from
the old stock, and were eager to invade everything noble, venerable, and
sacred; legal tyranny threatened to do away with well-nigh all liberty of
conscience, while the government, either not daring or not desiring to
sever itself from the ambitious conspirators to whom it owed its being,
allowed free course to the outrages and persecutions against the church.
It was the most critical and ominous period of the century, and French
society was rapidly sinking into an abyss.

One man, who had foreseen all this evil, and whose genius would have
probably sufficed victoriously to combat it, had he only possessed
the virtue of humility, was M. de Lamennais. Happily, the pleiades
of chosen minds whom he had gathered around him did not lose courage
after the melancholy defection of their brilliant master. The three
most illustrious of these shared among them the defence of the faith
against the floods of unbelief that threatened to overwhelm the country.
Montalembert remained to defend the church in the public assemblies;
Lacordaire adopted as his own the words of S. Paul to his disciple,
_Prædica verbum, insta opportune, importune_,[88] and succeeded so
effectually that he brought back the robe of S. Dominic into the
pulpit of Notre Dame, amid the applause of the conquered multitude;
Guéranger felt that prayer and sound learning were the two great wants
of society. The number of priests was insufficient for the labors of the
sacred ministry. The needs of the time had indeed called forth some few
weighty as well as brilliant apologists; but deep and solid learning
as yet remained buried in the past, and the patient study so necessary
for the polemics of the present and the future threatened indefinitely
to languish. It was to this point, therefore, that the Abbé Guéranger
directed his especial attention, and he it was who was chosen of God to
rekindle the expiring, if not extinguished, flame.

He was led to this sooner than he himself had perhaps anticipated, and
by a circumstance which rather appeared likely to have disturbed his
projects. Solesmes, which, up to the Revolution, had been a priory
dependent on S. Vincent de Mans, had just been sold to one of those
“infernal bands” who in the course of a few years destroyed the greatest
glories of France. Everything was to be pulled down: the cloister of
eight centuries and the church, renowned for the admirable sculptures now
doomed to fall beneath the “axe and hammer”; the authorities of the time
doing nothing to check the devastation effected by the bandits who were
rifling their country after having assassinated her.

The Abbé Guéranger could not endure to witness the annihilation of so
much that was sacred and venerable; besides, the ruins of Solesmes were
especially dear to him, and had been the favorite haunt of his early
childhood and youth, so much so that from this and other characteristic
circumstances he was at that period known among his school comrades
at Le Sablé as _The Monk_. In concert with Dom Fontaine and other
ecclesiastics of the neighborhood he rescued the abbey from the hands
of its intending destroyers. It had already suffered considerably from
the Revolution, but remained intact in all essential particulars. He
spent the winter of 1833 at Paris, going about the city in his monk’s
habit--which at that time had become a novelty--and knocking at every
door, without troubling himself about the religious opinions or belief of
those to whom he addressed himself. The sceptical citizens of the time
amused themselves not a little at his expense; but the learned world
received with distinction the energetic young priest who was so bent
upon giving back the Benedictine Order to France. He never once allowed
any obstacles to hinder or discourage him in the prosecution of his
undertaking. In 1836 he repaired to Rome, there to make his novitiate;
and, after a year passed in the Benedictine Abbey of San Paolo Fuora
Muri, he pronounced his solemn vows, and occupied himself in preparing
the constitutions of Solesmes. These, on the 1st of September, 1837, were
approved by Pope Gregory XVI., who at the same time raised the Priory of
Solesmes into an abbey, and authoritatively nominated Dom Guéranger to be
its first abbot.

Solesmes and the grand Order of S. Benedict were thus restored to France.
The new abbot was soon surrounded by men nearly all of whom have taken
a distinguished rank in learning and science, and during forty years
the austere discipline and deep and extensive studies of the sons of S.
Benedict flourished under his able rule.

Dom Guéranger, moreover, restored Ligugé, the oldest monastery in
France, built in 360 by S. Martin of Tours. He also founded the Priory of
S. Madeleine at Marseilles, and at Solesmes the Abbey of Benedictine Nuns
of S. Cecilia.

The attention he bestowed upon these important foundations did not hinder
this indefatigable religious from amassing the treasures of erudition
which he dispensed with so much ability in defence of the truth and of
sound doctrine. To the end of his life his pen was active either in
writing the numerous works which have rendered his name so well known,
or in correcting the errors of polemics and answering his adversaries
when the interests of religion required it; habitually going straight
to the point in his replies, fearlessly attacking whatever was false or
mistaken, and never allowing any approach to a compromise with error. The
defence of the church was his constant and engrossing thought, and no
important controversy arose but he was sure to appear with the accuracy
of his learning and the always serious but unsparing process of a logic
supported by a thorough acquaintance with doctrine and facts.

The Abbot of Solesmes was endowed with a large amount of prudence and
good sense. When his former companions of La Chesnaie undertook to
popularize “liberal Catholicism,” the precise creed of which has never
yet been ascertained, and the unfailing results of which have been
scandal and division, he undertook to bring back the church in France to
unity of prayer by writing his book entitled _Institutions Liturgiques_,
which, exhibiting in all their beauty the forgotten rites and symbols,
succeeded in securing for them the appreciation they merit; so that
from that time the liturgy in France began to disengage itself from the
multiplicity of particular observances.

In this matter Dom Guéranger had engaged in no trifling combat, his
opponents being many and powerful; but he energetically defended his
ground, and did not die until he had seen his undertaking crowned with
full success by the restoration of the Roman liturgy in France.

Besides these liturgical labors, which chiefly occupied him, and his
_Letters_ to the Archbishops of Rheims and Toulouse, as likewise to Mgr.
Fayet, Bishop of Orleans, in defence of the _Institutions_, he undertook
the _Liturgical Year_, which, unfortunately, was left unfinished at
his death. His _Mémoire_ upon the Immaculate Conception was included
among those memorials sent to the bishops by the Sovereign Pontiff on
the promulgation of the dogma. His _Sainte Cécile_, remarkable for
its historical accuracy, as well as for its excellence as a literary
composition, is a finished picture of Christian manners during the
earliest centuries.

When the Vatican Council was sitting, Dom Guéranger appeared for the
last time in the breach. Confined a prisoner by sickness, but intrepid
as those old captains who insist on being borne into the midst of the
fight, he wished to take part in the great debate which was being carried
on in the church. He fought valiantly, and answered the adversaries
of tradition by his work on _The Pontifical Monarchy_, defending Pope
Honorius against the attacks of an ill-informed academician.

We are unable to give a complete list of the writings of Dom Guéranger,
numerous articles having been published by him in the _Univers_--notably
those on Maria d’Agreda and the reply to an exaggerated idea of M.
d’Haussonville on the attitude of the church under the persecution of
the First Bonaparte. We will only name, in concluding this part of the
subject, his _Essais sur le Naturalisme_, which dealt a heavy blow to
free-thinking; his _Réponses_ upon the liturgical law to M. l’Abbé David,
now Bishop of St. Brieuc; and a _Défense des Jesuites_.

Should it be asked how the Abbot of Solesmes could find the time for so
many considerable works, the answer is given in the _Imitation_: _Cella
continuata dulcescit_. He had made retreat a willing necessity for
himself, and, being in the habit of doing everything in its proper time,
he had time for everything without need of haste.

From the day that he became Abbot of Solesmes he was scarcely ever seen
in the world, never absenting himself without absolute necessity or from
obedience. Of middle height, decided manner, with a quick eye and serious
smile, Dom Guéranger attracted those who came to him by the simplicity
and kindness of his reception, and those who sought his advice by the
discerning wisdom of his counsels. High ecclesiastical dignities might
have been his had he not preferred to remain in the seclusion of his
beloved abbey.

He leaves behind him something far better than even his books, in
bequeathing to the church and to society a family of monks strongly
imbued with his spirit, and destined to perpetuate the holy traditions
which he was the first to revive in his native land.

The imposing ceremonies of the funeral of Dom Guéranger, which took
place on the 4th of February at the Abbey of Solesmes, were conducted by
the Bishops of Mans, Nantes, and Quimper; there were also present the
Abbots of Ligugé, La Trappe de Mortagne, Aiguebelle, and Pierre-qui-Vire,
besides more than two hundred priests of La Sarthe.

The remains of the reverend father, clothed in pontifical vestments,
with the mitre and crozier, were exposed in the church from the evening
of the 30th (Saturday) for the visits of the faithful, crowds of whom
came from all the country round, in spite of the exceeding inclemency of
the weather, to pay their last respects and to be present at the funeral
of the illustrious man, who, during his forty years’ residence among
them, had made himself so greatly beloved. Just before the close of the
ceremony, when the Bishop of Mans invited those present to look for the
last time upon the holy and beautiful countenance of the departed abbot,
who had been a father to many outside as well as within the cloister
walls, a general and irrepressible burst of sobs and tears arose from the
multitude which thronged the church.

Among those present were many noble and learned friends of the deceased,
besides the mayor and municipal council of Solesmes, and also of Sablé
(Dom Guéranger’s native place), a deputation of the marble-workers of the
district, and people of every class.


II.

    “La voyez vous croitre,
    La tour du vieux cloitre?”

Before concluding our notice we must devote a page or two to the “Old
Cloister Tower,” which is discernible from a considerable distance, with
its four or five stories and its heraldic crown rising above the walls of
the ancient borough of Solesmes. The abbey itself next appears in sight,
majestically seated on the <DW72> of a wide valley, through which flows
the Sarthe, on a level with its grassy borders.

The locality, which is pleasing rather than picturesque, is fertile,
animated, and cheerful. Besides several châteaux of recent construction,
which face the abbey from the opposite side of the river, may be seen, at
some distance off, the splendid convent of Benedictine Nuns, built some
years ago by a lady of Marseilles, and on the horizon appears the Château
of Sablé, with its vast terraces and (according to the country-people)
its three hundred and sixty-five windows.

The Abbey of Solesmes, founded about the year 1025, has preserved, in
spite of several reconstructions, the architectural arrangement, so
suitable for community life, copied by its first monks from the Roman
houses of the order. The enclosure consists of a quadrangle, with an
almost interminable cloister, out of which are entrances into the
church, the chapter-house, the refectory, the guest-chamber, and all the
places of daily assembly. There silence and recollection reign supreme.
Excepting only during the times of recreation, no sound is to be heard
save the twittering of birds, the sound of the _Angelus_ or some other
occasional bell, or the subdued voice of a monk who, with some visitor,
is standing before a sculptured saint, or examining the fragments of some
ancient tomb.

It is chiefly the abbey church which attracts the curiosity and interest
of artists and antiquaries. There is not an archæologist who has not
heard of the “Saints of Solesmes,” as the groups of statues and symbolic
sculptures are called which fill the chapels of the transept from roof
to pavement. These wonderful works, executed for the most part under the
direction of the priors of Solesmes, form one of the finest monuments of
mediæval sculpture to be found in France. They are mystic and somewhat
mannered in style, but of bold conception, vigorously expressed.

A multitude of personages, sacred, historical, or allegorical,
intermingle with coats-of-arms, heraldic devices, bandrols, and all the
details of an ornamentation of which the skilfully-studied arrangement
corrects the redundance, which would otherwise be confused. This,
however, is but the purely decorative portion; the principal works being
enshrined in deep niches or recesses, in which may be seen groups of
seven or eight figures, the size of life, and wonderfully effective in
attitude and action.

In a low-vaulted crypt resting on pillars, to the right, is represented
the Entombment. This group, which is the earliest in date, having been
executed in 1496 under the direction of Michel Colomb, “habitant de Tours
et tailleur d’ymaiges du roy,” is the most considerable, and perhaps also
the most striking. All the figures, ten in number, have impressed on
their countenances and movements the feeling of the dolorous function in
which they are engaged. Most of them are represented in the costume, and
probably with the features, of persons of the time. Joseph of Arimathea
in particular has the look and bearing of the lord of the place, or, it
may be, of the prior of the monastery. But nothing attracts the attention
more than a little statue with features so refined that it might have
descended from the canvas of Carlo Dolci. It is the Magdalen, seated in
the dust; the elbows supported on the knees, the hands joined, the eyes
closed. All her life seems concentrated in her soul; and that is absorbed
in penitence and prayer, grief, love, and resignation--she is as if still
shedding her sanctified odors at the Saviour’s feet.

The left transept is devoted to the honor of the Blessed Virgin. She has
fallen asleep in the Lord, surrounded by the apostles. Then follow her
burial, her Assumption, and finally her glorification. She tramples under
foot the dragon, who, with bristling horns and claws, vainly endeavors
to reach her. He is bound for a thousand years. This subject, rarely
attempted, is here powerfully treated; all these heads, with horrible
grimaces, appear to be howling and blaspheming in impotent fury--_Et
iratus est draco in mulierem_[89]--but the Woman is raised on high, and
with her virginal foot tramples on the enemy of mankind. Facing this
subject are the patriarchs and prophets, in niches royally decorated.
This work was executed in 1550 by Floris d’Anvers, after the plan given
by Jean Bouglet, Doctor of the Sorbonne, and Prior of Solesmes.

But time would fail us to describe all these remarkable sculptures,
which so narrowly escaped destruction or desecration at the hands of the
revolutionists. The First Napoleon had the idea of transporting them
to some museum as curiosities of art. It would have been a sacrilege,
and one which, alas! has been too often perpetrated in other countries
besides France. But what Catholic that visits the garden even, to say
nothing of the museum, of the ancient monastery of Cluny (now Musée de
Cluny, at Paris), is not pained at seeing saints and virgins, angels and
apostles, more or less shattered and dismembered, torn from their places
in the sanctuary, and figuring as statues on the lawn, or mere groups of
sculpture picturesquely placed to assist the effect of the gardener’s
arrangement of the shrubs and flower-beds?

Bonaparte, however (after testing with gimlet and saw the hardness of the
stone), found himself obliged to leave the “Saints of Solesmes” where
they were, as, unless the whole were to be ruined, the entire transept
would have had to be transported all in one piece, every part of this
immense sculptured fresco being connected and, as it were, enwound with
the other portions, and each detail having only its particular excellence
in the completeness of the rest.

It is amid the ceremonies of Solesmes that those who enter into the
spirit of Christian art can penetrate more deeply into the meaning of the
vast poem carved upon the walls of the church. During the simple recital
of the psalms, as in the most solemn and magnificent ceremonies, there is
a striking harmony between the decoration and the action, the one being a
commentary on the other. The monks, motionless in their carven stalls, or
disposed on the steps of the altar, seem to make one with the Jerusalem
in stone, while the saints in their niches may almost be imagined to sing
with the psalmody and meditate during the solemn rites at which they are
present. At the most solemn moment of the Mass, when clouds of incense
are filling the holy place, the mystic dove descends, bearing between
her silver wings the Bread of Heaven, and, when it is deposited in the
pyx, mounts again into her aerial shrine, which is suspended from a lofty
cross.

This custom of elevating the tabernacle between heaven and earth was not
the only one in which the venerable abbot exactly copied the ancient
rites. The ceremonies of Solesmes are full of the spirit of the church’s
liturgy, and the community formed by his teaching and example will not
fail to perpetuate the pious and venerable observances which he was the
first to restore in France.


LEGEND OF THE BLUMISALPE.

There was a time when around this mountain, now covered with perpetual
snow, swarms of bees produced aromatic honey; fine cows, pasturing the
entire year in the green fields, filled the dairy-women’s pails with rich
milk; and the farmer by trifling labor obtained abundant harvests. But
the inhabitants of this fertile country, blinded by the splendor of their
fortune, became proud and haughty. They were intoxicated with the charms
of wealth; they forgot that there are duties attached to the possession
of wealth--the duties of hospitality and of charity. Instead of using
their treasures judiciously, they employed them solely in ministering to
a more luxurious idleness, and in a continual succession of festivities.
They closed their ears to the supplications of the unfortunate, and sent
the poor from their doors; and God punished them.

One of these proud, rich men built on the verdant <DW72>s of the
Blumisalpe a superb château, intending to reside there, surrounded by
his unworthy associates. Every morning their baths were filled with the
purest milk.

The terraced steps of the gardens were made, according to the legend, of
finely-cut blocks of excellent cheese. This Sardanapalus of the mountains
had inherited all his father’s vast domains, and, whilst he revelled in
this manner in his rich possessions, his old mother was living in want in
the seclusion of the valley. One day the poor old woman, suffering from
cold and hunger, supplicated his compassion. She told him that she was
living alone in her cabin, unable to work; indigent, without assistance;
infirm, without support. She begged him to grant her the fragments of
his feast, a refuge in his stables; but, deaf to her entreaties, he
ordered her to leave. She showed him her cheeks, wrinkled by grief more
than by age; her emaciated arms, that had carried him in his infancy; he
threatened to command his attendants to drive her away.

The poor woman returned to her cabin, overwhelmed with grief by this
cruel outrage. She tottered through his beautiful grounds with bowed
head, and sighs that she could not restrain burst from her oppressed
heart, and bitter tears streamed from her eyes. God counted the mother’s
tears.

She had scarcely arrived at her hut when the avenging storm came.

The château of the ignominious son was struck by lightning, his treasures
were consumed by the flames, from which he himself did not escape, and
his companions perished with him.

Those fields, that once yielded so abundantly, are now covered with
a mass of snow that never melts. On the spot where his mother vainly
implored his compassion, the rent earth has opened a frightful abyss;
and where her tears then flowed now, drop by drop, fall the tears of the
eternal glaciers.


NEW PUBLICATIONS

    THE YOUNG CATHOLIC’S ILLUSTRATED FIFTH READER. Pp. 430, 12mo.
    THE YOUNG CATHOLIC’S ILLUSTRATED SIXTH READER AND SPEAKER.
    By Rev. J. L. Spalding, S.T.L. Pp. 477, 12mo. New York: The
    Catholic Publication Society, 9 Warren Street. 1875.

These books have been prepared with great care and rare tact. We have
examined, from time to time, the various Readers which are used in this
country, and the Young Catholic’s Series is certainly the best which we
have seen. But the Fifth and Sixth Readers of this series are especially
good, and we are confident that they are destined to become the standard
Readers of the Catholic schools of the United States. They are indeed
more than reading-books: they are collections of choice specimens of
English literature, in prose and poetry, so arranged as to present every
variety of style, that opportunity may be given to the pupil to cultivate
all the different forms of vocal expression.

In the Fifth Reader the attention of the young Catholic is called to the
history of the church in the United States by the attractive biographical
notices of some of the most distinguished bishops and archbishops of
this country; and, as an introduction to the Sixth, we have a brief but
exhaustive treatise on elocution. We have not the space to enter into
a minute criticism of these books; but we have expressed our honest
conviction of their excellence, and we are quite sure that their own
merits will open for them a way into Catholic schools throughout the land.

    PAX. THE SYLLABUS FOR THE PEOPLE: A Review of the Propositions
    condemned by His Holiness Pope Pius IX., with Text of the
    Condemned List. By a Monk of S. Augustine’s, Ramsgate, author
    of _The Vatican Decrees and Catholic Allegiance_. New York: The
    Catholic Publication Society. 1875.

This is an almost necessary complement to the publications forming the
Gladstone controversy, the original being so frequently referred to by
Mr. Gladstone and his reviewers.

We cannot do better than quote the editor’s preface, by way of comment:

“The Syllabus of Pius IX. has been the subject of so many misconceptions
that a plain and simple setting forth of its meaning cannot be useless.
This is what I have tried to do in the following pages. A vindication or
defence of the Syllabus was, of course, out of the question in so small
a compass; but I think that more than half the work of defence is done
by a simple explanation. During the ten years just completed since its
promulgation, much has occurred to show the wisdom that dictated it.
The translation I have given is the one authorized by His Eminence the
Cardinal Archbishop of Dublin.”

    POSTSCRIPT TO A LETTER ADDRESSED TO HIS GRACE THE DUKE OF
    NORFOLK, ON OCCASION OF MR. GLADSTONE’S RECENT EXPOSTULATION,
    AND IN ANSWER TO HIS “VATICANISM.” By John Henry Newman, D. D.,
    of the Oratory. New York: The Catholic Publication Society.
    1875.

In this _Postscript_ Dr. Newman pulverizes the different statements of
Mr. Gladstone’s rejoinder, one by one. The blunders of the ex-Premier are
not surprising, seeing that he attempts to write about matters in which
he is not well informed, but they are certainly very gross. Dr. Newman
has taken him by the hand with a very gentle smile on his countenance,
but he has broken his bones as in a vise.

    PERSONAL REMINISCENCES. By Moore and Jerdan. Edited by Richard
    Henry Stoddard. New York: Scribner, Armstrong & Company. 1875.

This small and dainty-looking little volume is one of the “Bric-a-Brac”
Series. Its two hundred and eighty-eight pages profess to give us the
“personal reminiscences” of Moore and Jerdan. They give nothing more
than such extracts from the original as have taken the fancy of the
editor. Whether that fancy has always been wise in its choice is fairly
open to question. There is much of Moore’s reminiscences omitted that
might have been very profitably inserted, at least in exchange for many
things which have found their way into the volume. It is Moore “bottled
off,” so to say, and given out in small doses. The experiment is not
very satisfactory. Moore suffered irretrievably in his biographer, Lord
John Russell, of whose “eight solid volumes,” as Mr. Stoddard says, “the
essence is here presented to the reader.” Lord Russell will be credited
with many blunders in after time, and very grave ones some of them; but
never did he make a more exasperating mistake than in undertaking the
editing of Moore’s _Memoirs, Journal, and Correspondence_, in rivalry
of Moore’s own admirable biography of Byron. Readers of _Personal
Reminiscences_ must be prepared to meet with a vast quantity of nonsense
and trash. But much of this constitutes the chief value of such works. In
the jottings down of daily journals no one expects to meet with profound
reflections and labored thoughts. They are rather, in the hands of such
men as Moore, “the abstract and brief chronicle of the time” in which
they are made. Moore’s witty and graceful pen was just adapted to such
work as this. Whoever or whatever was considered worth seeing in the
world in which he lived and moved as one of its chief ornaments, he saw,
and set down in his private journal. Bits of this Mr. Stoddard gives us
in the present volume; but those who care for this kind of literature
at all will prefer the whole to such parts as have pleased the editor;
and the whole does possess an intrinsic value to which the present
volume does not pretend. Mr. Stoddard’s preface is not encouraging. He
seems to write under protest that his valuable time should be consumed
in this kind of work. “I cannot put myself in the place of a man who
keeps a journal in which he is the principal figure, and in which his
whereabouts, and actions, and thoughts, and feelings are detailed year
after year,” says Mr. Stoddard; and the obvious comment is: “Very
probably; but no one has asked Mr. Stoddard to do anything so foolish.”
Persons who keep “journals,” however, are not in the habit of keeping
them for other people. “I cannot put myself in the place of Moore,”
insists Mr. Stoddard, with unnecessary pertinacity, “who seems to have
never lost interest in himself.” The comment again is very obvious:
Mr. Stoddard is a very different man from Mr. Moore. The truth is, Mr.
Stoddard does not like either Moore or his poetry. “The reputation which
had once been his had waned.” “A new and greater race of poets than the
one to which he belonged had risen.” “_Lalla Rookh_ was still read,
_perhaps_, but not with the same pleasure as _The Princess_ or _The Blot
on the Scutcheon_. Moore had ‘ceased to charm.’” Such statements as these
Mr. Stoddard would seem to consider self evident facts of which no proof
is needed. And he would be astonished were some one to ask him to point
out the “new and greater race of poets” which has arisen since Moore’s
death. Still more would he be astonished if asked to point out, not “a
race of poets,” but a single member of the race whose writings are more
read, whose name and fame are better known, who is “greater,” than Moore.
He would be thunderstruck were he informed that for a hundred who had
read _Lalla Rookh_ not twenty had read _The Princess_, knew its author
or of its existence, and not ten knew even of the name of the other
poem mentioned. Altogether, though Mr. Stoddard’s preface is short,
it is certainly not sweet, and both himself and the reader are to be
congratulated at his not having extended it.

    OUR LADY’S DOWRY; or, How England Gained and Lost that Title. A
    compilation by the Rev. T. E. Bridgett, of the Congregation of
    the Most Holy Redeemer. London: Burns & Oates. 1875. (New York:
    Sold by The Catholic Publication Society.)

This book is among the most delightful and the most valuable which it has
been our good-fortune to meet with. It establishes not only the fact of
England having been called “throughout Europe Our Lady’s Dowry,” but her
right to the glorious title.

Those who imagine what is known to-day as Catholic devotion to Our Lady
a thing of comparatively modern growth, or, again, that it can only
bloom luxuriantly in the sunny climes of Spain and Italy, will find both
illusions dispelled in these pages. The old Anglo-Saxon love of Mary was
as warm and tender as any of which human hearts are capable. And instead
of finding our English ancestors behind us in this devotion, we must
rather own ourselves behind them.

We would gladly give our readers an analysis of Father Bridgett’s
“compilation,” but this cannot be done except in an elaborate review.
Suffice it to say that never was a “compilation” (as the author modestly
calls it) less like what is ordinarily understood by the term--we mean in
point of interest and style.

We subjoin a passage from Chapter V. on “Beads and Bells” (p. 201). We
think the information it contains will be new to almost all:

“The word ‘bead’ has undergone in English a curious transformation of
meaning. It is the past participle of the Saxon verb _biddan_, to bid,
to invite, to _pray_. Thus in early English it is often used simply for
_prayers_, without any reference whatever to their nature or the mode
of reciting them. To ‘bid the beads’ is merely to say one’s prayers.
‘Bidding the beads’ also meant a formal enumeration of the objects of
prayer or persons to be prayed for. Beadsmen or beads-women are not
necessarily persons who say the Rosary, but simply those who pray for
others, especially for their benefactors.

“But as a custom was introduced in very early times of counting prayers
said, by the use of little grains or pebbles strung together, the name
of prayer got attached to the instrument used for saying prayers; and in
this sense the word beads is commonly used by Catholics at the present
day.

“Lastly, the idea of prayer was dropped out altogether in Protestant
times, and the name of ‘beads’ was left attached to any little perforated
balls which could be strung together merely for personal adornment,
without any reference to devotion.”

    BULLA JUBILÆI 1875; seu, Sanctissimi Domini nostri Pii Divina
    Providentia Papæ IX. Epistola Encyclica: Gravibus Ecclesiæ, cum
    Notis, Practicis ad usum Cleri Americani. Curante A. Konings,
    C.SS.R. Neo-Eboraci: Typus Societatis pro Libris Catholicis
    Evulgandis. MDCCCLXXV.

The reverend clergy will be grateful to Father Konings for this
convenient and beautiful edition of the text of the bull announcing the
present Jubilee, and for the accompanying notes.

    SEVEN STORIES. By Lady Georgiana Fullerton. Baltimore: Kelly,
    Piet & Company. 1875.

This is a handsome reprint of a work the English edition of which was
noticed, on its first appearance, in these pages.

    READINGS FROM THE OLD TESTAMENT. Arranged with Chronological
    Tables, Explanatory Notes, and Maps. For the Use of Students.
    By J. G. Wenham, Canon of Southwark. London: Burns & Oates.
    1875. (New York: Sold by The Catholic Publication Society.)

The title of the work is almost a sufficient description of its contents.
The primary object of the book is to give a consecutive history of the
events related in the Old Testament, in the words of Holy Scripture. It
includes a history of the patriarchs from the beginning to the birth
of Moses; of the Israelites from the birth of Moses to the end of the
Judges; of the Kings from the establishment of the kingdom to its end;
and of the Prophets from B.C. 606 to the birth of Christ, embracing an
account of the prophetic writings.




THE CATHOLIC WORLD.

VOL. XXI., No. 123.--JUNE, 1875.

Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1875, by Rev. I. T.
HECKER, in the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington D. C.


SPECIMEN CHARITIES.

Charity is generally acknowledged to be, particularly by those who do
not practise it, the greatest of the virtues. Judged by this standard,
everything connected with it ought to command a special interest. Among
ourselves the most practical form of it is exhibited in the institutions
provided for the care of that large section of society that may be
classed as the unfortunate. It is only natural to suppose, then, that
the reports of these institutions would be caught up and studied with
avidity by the public, who in some shape or form pay for and support
them. Nothing, however, is further from the truth. It is safe to say
that not one man out of every hundred ever sees a report of any single
institution, or ever dreams even of the existence of such a thing.

This indifference to how our money goes is one of the chief causes of
the gross peculations and frauds that startle and shock the public mind
from time to time. Where scrutiny is not close and constant, the conduct
of those who have reason to expect scrutiny is apt to be proportionately
loose and careless. There is no intention in saying this to arraign the
managers of public institutions with loose and careless conduct in the
discharge of their duties and the dispensing of the large sums of money
confided to their care. All that we would say is that the public is too
inert in the matter. A sharp lookout on officials of any kind never does
harm to any one. It will be courted by honest men, while it hangs like
the sword of Damocles over the heads of the dishonest. At all events, it
is the safest voucher for activity, zeal, and honesty on all sides.

The reports of several of the institutions best known to the public in
this city have been examined, and the result of the investigation will
be set forth in this article. It may be said here that perhaps a chief
reason for the general apathy of the public regarding these reports is
due to the reports themselves. As a rule, they seem to be drawn up with
the express purpose of giving the least possible information in the most
roundabout fashion. The very sight of them warns an inquirer off. While
he is solely intent on finding out what such and such an institution
does for its inmates, what it has done, what it purposes doing, how
it is conducted, what it costs, what it produces, what success it can
point to in plain black and white, and not in general terms, he is
almost invariably treated to homilies on charity; to dissertations on
the growing number of the poor and the awfulness of crime; to tirades
on the public-school question; to highly- opinions on the duty
of enforcing education; to extracts from letters that, for all he can
determine, date from nowhere and are signed by no one. Such is a fair
description of the average “report” of any given charity or public
institution, as any conscientious reader who is anxious for a sleepless
night and morning headache may convince himself by glancing at the first
half-dozen that come in his way.

This is much to be regretted. Little more than a year ago public inquiry
was stimulated by the public press to examine into the record of the
institutions that for years and years have been absorbing vast sums of
money, with no very apparent result. Grave charges were then made and
substantiated by very ugly figures, showing that the cost of the majority
of institutions was enormously in excess of the good effected. It was
charged that the statistics were not clear, that the managers shirked
inquiry, that the salaries were enormously disproportionate to the work
done--in a word, that the least benefit accrued to those for whom the
institutions were founded, erected, and kept a-going. Suspicion speedily
took possession of the public mind that what went by the name of public
charity was nothing more nor less than a system of organized plunder.

That opinion is neither endorsed nor gainsaid here. The result of such
investigations as have been made of reports drawn up for the past year
have been simply set forth, so that every reader may judge for himself
as to the benefits accruing to the public from the institutions in their
midst which every year absorb an aggregate of several millions of public
and private funds.

The institutions whose reports have been examined are for children of
both sexes and of all creeds. Some of them are more, some less, directly
under State control. All, at least, are under State patronage. Their aim
and purport is to relieve the State of a stupendous task--the care and
future provision for children who, without such care and provision, would
in all probability go astray, and become, if not a danger, at least a
burden, to the State. On this ground the State or city, or both together,
make or makes to each one certain apportionments and awards of the public
moneys. Those apportionments and awards are not in all cases equal either
in amount or in average. It is not claimed here that they are necessarily
bound to be equal either in amount or in average. The gift is practically
a free gift on the part of the State, although between itself and the
institutions the award made partakes of the nature of a contract. So
much is allowed for the care of State wards. What may be fairly claimed,
however, is that the awards of the State should be regulated by justice
and impartiality. Most money ought to be given where it is clear that
most good is effected by it. This system of award does not prevail.

Again, as these institutions undertake the entire control of their
inmates, and to a great extent their disposal after leaving, they are
charged with the mental, moral, and physical training of those inmates. A
vast number of the children are in all cases of the Catholic faith.

As the general question of religion in our public institutions was
dealt with at length in the April number of THE CATHOLIC WORLD, there
is no need of returning to it here further than to remind our readers
that the moral training of Catholic children in public institutions is
utterly unprovided for. Our main questions now are: What do our public
institutions do for the public? What do they do for the inmates? How much
does it cost them to do it? Whence does the money that sustains them
come, and whither does it go?

It is far easier to put these questions than to obtain a satisfactory
answer to them. Of the fitness of putting them and the importance of
answering them fully and fairly no man can doubt. They are equally
important to the public at large, to the State, and to the institutions
themselves. It is fitting and right that we know which institutions do
the best work in the best way; which merit the support of the public and
of the State; which, if any, are concerned chiefly about the welfare of
their inmates; which, if any, are concerned chiefly about the welfare of
their officers and directors. Let us see how far the _Fiftieth Annual
Report of the Managers of the Society for the Reformation of Juvenile
Delinquents_ may enlighten us on these interesting points.

In this institution there were received during the year (1874) seven
hundred and twenty-four children, of whom six hundred and thirty-six
were new inmates. The total number in the institution for the year was
one thousand three hundred and eighty-seven. The average figure taken
on which to calculate the year’s expenditure is seven hundred and
forty. Whence the children come may be inferred from the words of the
superintendent’s report (page 38): “By its charter the House of Refuge
is authorized to receive boys under commitment by a magistrate from the
first three judicial districts, and girls from all parts of the State.
The age of subjects who may be committed is limited to sixteen years.[90]
State Prison Inspectors have power to transfer young prisoners from
Sing Sing prison, under seventeen years of age, to this institution, if
in their judgment they are proper subjects for its discipline.… Prior
to 1847 this was the only place, except the prisons, in the State,
authorized to receive juvenile delinquents. At that time the Western
House of Refuge was organized at Rochester, and boys from the fourth,
fifth, sixth, seventh, and eighth judicial districts were directed, by
the act under which that institution was organized, to be sent there.
The State Prison Inspectors may transfer young prisoners from the State
prisons of Auburn and Dannemora to the Western House, the same as from
Sing Sing here. The United States courts, sitting within the State,
may commit youthful offenders under sixteen years of age to either
institution. The expense for the support of these is paid by the United
States government. Girls from all parts of the State are sent to this
house, there being no female department at the Western House.”

The expenses for support of the (average) seven hundred and forty
children for 1874 amounted to $103,524 23, according to the
superintendent’s report. To defray this, there was contributed in all
$74,968 61 of public moneys, in the following allotments:

    By Annual Appropriation,                  $40,000 00
    By Balance Special Appropriation,          10,500 00
    On account Special Appropriation, 1874,    10,000 00
    By Board of Education,                      7,468 61
    By Theatre Licenses,                        7,000 00
                                             -----------
                                              $74,968 61

There is one remark to be made on these figures, which have been copied
item by item from the report. They do not tally with the report of the
State Treasurer. In his report the award to the society is set down as
$66,500. There is evidently a mistake somewhere. A small item of $6,000
is missing from the report of the society. Where can it have gone?
The president himself, Mr. Edgar Ketchum, endorses the figures of the
superintendent and treasurer. He tells us (page 14) that the receipts for
1874, “from the State Comptroller, annual and special appropriations,”
are $60,500; but there is that page 34 of the annual report of the State
Treasurer, which sets it down plumply at $66,500. There will doubtless be
forthcoming an excellent explanation of this singular discrepancy between
the reports. The State Treasurer may have made the mistake; but, if not,
one is permitted to ask, is this the kind of arithmetic taught in the
Society for the Reformation of Juvenile Delinquents?

The remaining deficit is covered by “labor of the inmates”--which is
rated at $41,594 48--sale of waste articles, etc. There is no mention
whatever made of private donations. With an exception that will be noted,
there is not a hint at such a thing throughout the sixty-eight pages of
the report. If private donations were received at this institution during
the year, the donors will search the fiftieth annual report in vain
for any account of them. Attention is called to this point, because in
every other report examined the private donations have been ample, duly
acknowledged, and accounted for; but the managers of the Society for the
Reformation of Juvenile Delinquents observe silence on this subject.

Looking to see how the money went, we find the largest item of the
expenses set down as $44,521 62, for “food and provisions.” The next
largest item is $34,880 52, for salaries--as nearly as possible one-third
of the whole expense. This is a very important item. One-third of the
entire expenses, and considerably over half the net cost for the support
of the institution during the year, was consumed in salaries. Into the
various other items it is not necessary to go, as in these two by far
the largest portion of the expenses is accounted for. The sum of the
remainder for “clothing,” “fuel and light,” “bedding and furniture,”
“books and stationery for the schools and chapel,” “ordinary repairs,”
and “hospital,” amounts only to $27,555 84, or over $7,000 less than the
salaries; while “all other expenses not included” in what has already
been mentioned amount only to $23,339 23.

As this is the fiftieth annual report, the managers of the institution
have thought it a fitting time to publish a review of the work done
during the last half-century and of the cost of its doing. The “financial
statement for fifty years” informs us that “the cost for real estate
and buildings for the use of the institution, including repairs and
improvements,” was $745,740 31. This amount was paid “in part by private
subscriptions and donations”--the solitary mention to be found of
anything of the kind throughout the report--and the remainder “by money
received for insurance for loss by fires, money received from sale of
property in Twenty-third Street, New York, and by State appropriations.”
The amount of private subscriptions and donations was $38,702 04; thus
leaving $707,038 27, by far the greater portion of which, it is to be
presumed, was paid by State appropriations.

So far for the real estate and buildings for fifty years. Let us now look
at the cost of support for the same period.

Including every item of expense, except for the grounds and buildings,
the sum total is $2,106,009 16. Of this $767,189 31 was paid from labor
of the inmates and sale of articles; the remaining $1,338,819 85 was
paid “from moneys received from appropriations made by the State and by
the city of New York, from the licenses of theatres, from the excise and
marine funds.” In short, with the exception of the $38,702 04 already
mentioned as coming from private subscriptions and donations, of the
money received from sale of property in Twenty-third Street, New York,
and the amount earned by the inmates, the State has covered the entire
expenses of the Society for the Reformation of Juvenile Delinquents
since its founding, fifty years ago. Those expenses, according to their
own showing, were $2,045,868 12. Thus it is within the truth to say that
this society has received $2,000,000 from the State within the last fifty
years, one-third of which amount, if the figures for last year be a fair
gauge, was consumed in salaries.

Such has been the cost--a weighty one. What is the result? What has been
achieved by this immense outlay?--for immense it is. We are informed (p.
39) that “when a child is dismissed from the house, an entry is made
under the history, giving the name, residence, and occupation of the
person into whose care the boy or girl is given. Pains are taken, by
correspondence and otherwise, to keep informed of their subsequent career
as far as possible, and such information when received, whether favorable
or unfavorable, is noted under the history.”

The result may be given briefly: Fifteen thousand seven hundred and
ninety-one children have passed through the institution in fifty years.
Of these thirty-eight per cent. have been heard from “favorably,”
fourteen per cent. “unfavorably,” while forty-eight per cent. are
classified as “unknown.” Thus it is seen that not nearly one-half have
turned out well; a very considerable number have turned out badly; and of
a larger number than either--of almost half, in fact--nothing is known.
And it has taken about three millions of dollars (a far higher figure if
the private donations, of which no account is given, ranked for anything)
to achieve this magnificent result!

We have only one comment to offer. If, with the practically unlimited
means at their disposal, the managers of the society can do nothing
better for and with the children than they have done after fifty years
of trial, the experiment is, to say the least, a costly failure. Indeed,
it is not at all extravagant to assert that, taking into consideration
the migratory habits of our people and the ups and downs of life, these
children, if allowed to run their own course, would, were it possible
to follow up their histories, probably show as high a percentage of
“favorable” as this society has been able to show. In the proud words of
the superintendent’s report, “The results of half a century of labor in
the cause of God and humanity are now before us!”[91]

An institution similar to the one just examined is the New York Juvenile
Asylum, whose _Twenty-second Annual Report_ is published. Unlike its
predecessor, it acknowledges “the readiness with which the necessary
funds, beyond those received from the public treasury, are supplemented
by private beneficence.” It has a Western agency, whose business it is
to “procure suitable homes for children placed under indenture, and
conduct the responsible work of perpetuated guardianship, which forms the
distinguishing feature of our chartered obligations” (_Report_, p. 12).
We are informed that “an analysis of the treasurer’s report confirms the
uniform experience of the board, that the appropriations from the city
treasury of $110, and from the Board of Education of about $13 50, per
annum, for each child, are inadequate to the support of the institution
on its present required scale of superior excellence.”

The treasurer’s report is a study. The expenses for the year (1874) were
$95,976 83. Of this sum $67,452 05 is set down plumply as for “salaries,
wages, supplies, etc., for Asylum.” How much of it was devoted to
“salaries,” how much to “wages,” how much to “supplies,” and how much to
“etc.,” whatever that financial mystery may mean, is left to conjecture.
A similar entry for the House (connected with the asylum) amounts to
$16,875 59; and a third, for the Western agency, to $5,303 18. By this
happy arrangement there only remain some two thousand odd dollars to be
accounted for, and the balance-sheet pleasantly closes, leaving the
reader as wise as ever on the important query, Who gets the lion’s share
of the money, the children or the managers?

To cover the expenses of the year, the corporation gave $68,899 40; the
Board of Education, $8,833 23. Thus public moneys covered the great bulk
of the annual expense. The carefully-confused figures of the treasurer
make it impossible to say whether or not a judicious paring of the
“salaries, wages, etc.,” might not have enabled the same moneys to cover
it all and still leave a balance in the bank.

As it is hopeless to investigate how the money went, item by item, let us
turn to the children for whose benefit it was given.

The whole number in the Asylum and House of Reception at the beginning of
the year was 617; received during the year, 581; discharged, 585; average
for the year, 617. Of the discharged, 9 were indentured, 103 sent to the
Western agency, 466 discharged to parents and friends.

The managers are very strongly in favor of placing the children in
“Western homes,” and doubtless most persons interested in the question
of caring for these children would agree with them, could satisfactory
evidence only be given of the actual advantages of the plan. But such
evidence is not furnished by any of the reports we have examined. This
asylum, for instance, has been sending children West year after year, and
yet the superintendent informs us, as a piece of special news, that “in
the early part of November last the superintendent went to Illinois, for
the purpose of becoming better acquainted with the practical workings of
the agency, and visiting the children sent West in their new homes.”
This is given as an event in the workings of the institution. In other
words, the children sent out were left absolutely to the Western agent,
who may have been a very worthy and conscientious person, or who may have
been nothing of the kind. The amount expended on the Western agency would
not seem to indicate any very extensive or arduous labors. The result
of the superintendent’s trip was a visitation of twenty-five children,
and, on the strength of that very limited number of visits and the
representations of the agent, he states that “it was evident that great
care was taken and good judgment exercised in providing children with the
best of homes and looking after their general welfare.”

The Western agent himself reports: “For sixteen years the Asylum has
been sending to Illinois, and placing in families as apprentices,
those who have become permanently its wards, and during that time two
thousand three hundred and ninety-nine have been thus cared for. Their
employers have been required to make a legal contract in writing, binding
themselves to provide suitably for their physical comfort during their
minority, instruct them in a specified trade, allow them to attend school
four months in each year, _give them moral and religious training_,
and make a stipulated payment of clothing and money at the expiration
of their apprenticeship.… The Asylum is required by its charter to see
that the terms of every contract are faithfully performed throughout the
entire period of the apprenticeship.”

Of course these conditions are very favorable to the children, provided
only that they are carried out. That they are always carried out is
doubtful, and the number of complaints made by both children and
employers, mentioned incidentally, tend to strengthen this doubt. Then as
regards the “moral and religious training”: What in the case of Catholic
children such training is likely to be may be inferred from the fact that
the Catholic religion is proscribed in the Asylum and House, as also from
the fact mentioned by the agent himself (p. 42) that among the employers
“prejudiced against indentures,” “occasionally one objects to them _on
the ground of conscientious scruples_;” “but,” he adds, “it rarely occurs
that they cannot be prevailed upon to comply with our regulations in this
particular.”

What the Western “Home” is may be judged from the following pregnant
sentence of the agent’s report: “I am not instructed by the committee,
nor would it be well to make it an attractive rendezvous, and the
children are neither drawn to it by factitious allurements nor encouraged
to make a protracted stay.” The unsolicited testimony on this point may
be taken as unimpeachable. He admits that “instances of wrongs frequently
come to our knowledge, and doubtless many others exist of which we
have not been made aware.” Accordingly, “to prevent such abuses,” “an
additional agent has _recently_ been engaged, who will be employed
exclusively as a visitor.” This additional agent commenced service
“about five weeks” from the date of the Western agent’s report; but
“unprecedentedly stormy weather and difficult travelling have rendered it
impossible for him to enter upon his special work.” And such is all the
practical information furnished us concerning the Western branch of this
institution, notwithstanding that “every employer and every apprentice is
_written to_ at least once annually.”

The report of the agent tells us really little or nothing. Indeed, its
tone is not at all sanguine. His “time has been too fully occupied to
accomplish much in the way of gathering statistics of what is, in my
belief, a demonstrable fact: that, with as few exceptions as occur among
other children, asylum wards become reputable and prosperous citizens.”
No doubt; proof will be given afterwards that this belief is well
founded, but not as regards the institution in question. In its case,
unfortunately, the demonstration is the one thing wanting.

The total number of children admitted to the institution from 1853 to
1873 is 17,035, of whom 12,975 were of native, 3,820 of foreign birth.
Ireland contributed 2,006; France, 71; Spain, 6; Italy, 75; South
America, 5; Austria, 5; all of whom may be safely classed as Catholics.
Of the native-born New York alone contributed eleven thousand five
hundred and seventy-one, all the other States together adding only one
thousand three hundred and ninety-six. The number of native-born children
of Irish parents in the State of New York within the last twenty years
may be left to easy conjecture. One thing is certain: that the faith of
all the Catholic children admitted to this institution was, while they
remained in it, and as long as they remained under its supervision,
proscribed, while they were compelled to conform to the Church
Established in Public Institutions. There is no financial statement for
the twenty years.

The Children’s Aid Society has also published its _Twenty-second Annual
Report_. This is one of the most extensive organizations in the city,
and has quite a net-work of homes, lodging-houses, and industrial
schools connected with it, as well as a Western agency similar in its
office to that already noticed. Although not, in the accepted sense, a
“public institution,” it depends in a great measure on State aid for its
support. It professes to be superior in its mode of work to any public
institution. That point is too extensive to enter upon here. We merely
pursue our plan of searching its own record to see what it has done.
One of its chief aims may be gathered from the following statement of
the report (page 4): “The plan which this society has followed out so
persistently during twenty-two years, of saving the vagrant and neglected
children of the city, by placing them in carefully-selected homes in
the West and in the rural districts, is now universally admitted to be
successful. It has not cost one-tenth part of the expense which a plan
demanding support in public institutions would have done, and has been
attended by wonderfully encouraging moral and material results.”

As it is impossible within present limits to examine every detail of
this extensive report, which fills 96 pages, we pass at once to the
treasurer’s figures. The expenses for the past year amount to $225,747
92. To cover this the city and county of New York contributed $93,333
34; the Board of Education, $32,893 95; being a total of $126,227 29
contributed from the public moneys. The rest is made up by private
donations, legacies etc.

As an illustration of the difficulties to be met with in trying to
extract the gist of the various reports, the following sentence from the
one in hand may serve. In describing “the year’s work” the superintendent
says (p. 8): “The labors of charity of this society have become so
extended and multifarious that it is exceedingly difficult to give any
satisfactory picture of them.” If this is his opinion, what is ours
likely to be? However, we will make such use of the limited means at our
disposal as may tend to give some idea of the workings of this society.

The “industrial schools” constitute a prominent feature of it. There are
twenty-one of them and thirteen night schools. They give occupation to
eighty-six salaried teachers and a superintendent, and to a volunteer
corps of seventy ladies in addition. The volunteers, we are informed,
“produce results of which they have no adequate idea themselves.” The
industries taught in these “industrial schools” are not brought out very
prominently. The army of teachers, regulars and volunteers together,
have acted upon “an average number” of 3,556, and an aggregate number
of 10,288. Dropping the volunteers, that gives each of the eighty-six
“salaried teachers” just 41 and the 30/86th part of a child to devote his
or her sole attention to during the year. It is for these schools that
the Board of Education awarded the $32,893 95 already mentioned.

The schools alone consume of the whole expenses of the society for the
year $70,509 88, which is divided in the following pleasing manner:

    Rent of school-rooms,                         $11,455 25
    Salaries of superintendent and 86 teachers,    39,202 33
    Food, clothing, fuel, etc.,                    19,852 30

That is to say, the salaries of the school superintendent and 86 teachers
for 3,556 children cost considerably more than rent, food, clothing,
fuel, children, and everything else put together. This is worse even
than the Society for the Reformation of Juvenile Delinquents, whose
officers were modestly contented with a good third of the whole amount
of money spent on the institution. But here at the present ratio more
than one-half is absorbed in salaries. The public seems to labor under an
idea that the institutions which they so cheerfully support are intended
chiefly for the benefit of poor children. It is to be hoped that their
eyes may at last be opened to their fatal mistake. At all events, in
the present instance it is clear that the schools are less intended to
instruct the children than to support the teachers. The very liberal
allowance granted to these schools by the Board of Education falls
miserably below the teachers’ salaries.

The cheerfulness with which these figures are contemplated by the
officers of the society is positively exhilarating. We are informed (p.
45) that “the annual expense of twenty-one day and thirteen evening
schools, with salaries of superintendent and eighty-six teachers,
would be an intolerable burden to the society, did not the city pay
semi-annually a certain sum for each pupil, as allowed by law.” The
number of pupils paid for by the city is, of course, 10,288--“a gain over
last year of 704.” Here is a sample of how the list is made up:

                                 No. on   Average
                                 Rolls.  Attend’ce.
    Fifty-third Street School,   1,212     260
    Fifty-second Street School,    561     199
    Park School,                   807     301
    Phelps School,                 417      80
    Girls’ Industrial School,      298      91
    Fourteenth Ward School,        650     219
    Water Street School,           101      31

And so they go on. Comment is unnecessary. It is to be taken for granted
that the average attendance here given by the society is not likely to
be below the mark. Taking it then as correct, it may be left to honest
men to judge whether half the number of teachers would not be amply
sufficient. As to the question of salaries, it is needless to remark
further upon that. Who can resist the piteous appeal of the treasurer
after closing the account of the “thirty-four” schools? “Surely, then,”
he says, “this branch of the society’s work may claim the merit of
economy when considered in detail, although the aggregate cost is large.”

Mention of salaries occurs twice after. Five “executive officers” are
paid $8,944 14; five “visitors,” $3,944 06. The total “current expenses”
are set down at $174,821 38. Thus, as seen, salaries already absorb more
than a quarter of the current expenses, and the chief salaried officers
of the institution, as well as another small army of inferior officials,
remain to be portioned off. No mention is made of them in the treasurer’s
figures. Nor will it do to average the salaries of the superintendent
and eighty-six teachers of the schools, setting them down at the modest
allowance of $450 a head, granting, as seems incredible, considering
the number of pupils, that the number of teachers is accurately given.
The point is plain to all men: There is no need for such a number of
teachers. Some of them, it is to be presumed, are only employed in
the night-schools; consequently their salaries would be considerably
diminished. The salaries are not all equal, and, even were they all
equal, the amount of work done would be too costly at the price. To say
that twenty-one schools and eighty-seven teachers, with a contingent of
seventy volunteers, are needed for 3,446 children is simple nonsense.

Judging by what we have seen, if one-fourth the moneys spent on the
Children’s Aid Society is devoted exclusively to the children, both
children and public are to be congratulated on the self-denial of the
management. It is for those who support the society to consider how long
this state of things is to continue.

Among other benevolent works undertaken by the society is an Italian
school, for the special benefit of the poor little Italian children
decoyed from their homes to labor and beg for _padroni_ and such like in
this city and elsewhere throughout the country. There can be no doubt
about the religion of these children. The report informs us that this
school is under the care of the “Italian School Young Men’s Association.”
Their “collection of books has been enlarged by the contributions of
friends, and the reading-room will soon contain a large assortment of
Italian books forwarded by the Italian government, who, with provident
care, watches over our work and furthers the benevolent purposes of the
Children’s Aid Society.”

The object of organizing such a school is evident. There is no incentive
so effective with the large majority of Protestant hearts, nothing so
well calculated to draw contributions from their pockets, as the hope to
“convert to Christianity” <DW7> children. This school is intended for
just such a purpose, and the society would be the last in the world to
deny it. “The increase of _newly-arrived_ children attests the popularity
of the school. The benevolence of our patrons continues to make itself
unceasingly felt in various ways, more especially at the Christmas
festival, when the congregation of _the First Presbyterian Church_--Dr.
Paxton’s--come almost in a body to gladden our children with useful and
substantial gifts, and an outpouring of unmistakable Christian sympathy”
(page 32).

The Western agency of this society is on a par with that already
examined. The number of miles travelled by the agents is given, as
also the number of children placed out. The very names of the agents
bristle with activity. They are: Messrs. Trott, Skinner, Fry, Brace, and
Gourley. The warm temperament of Mr. Fry, “the resident Western agent,”
may be judged from the opening of his report. He writes from St. Paul,
Minnesota, under date October 18, 1874, to tell us: “I am up among the
saints, and ought to feel encouraged; but it seems such a hopeless task
to convey to others the happiness and contentment I witness in my rounds
of visitation that I always commence my annual report with a degree of
hesitation.”

There are many passages of equal beauty with this, but unfortunately Mr.
Fry’s pious enthusiasm is not exactly what is called for. What we want
to know is what has actually been done with the 1,880 boys and the 1,558
girls whom we are informed by the report “have been provided with homes
and employment” during the year. Men and women to the number of 242 and
305 respectively were sent out also during the year. Of the entire 3,985,
657 were Irish, 28 French, 13 Italian, 8 Poles, 10 Austrians--all of whom
may be set down as Catholics. The “American born” were 1,866, the German,
879. Of these also a fair percentage were probably Catholic. What has
become of them and of all? What has become of the 36,363 who have been
sent out in the same manner by the same society since 1853? How many
prospered? How many failed? How many died? How many turned out well? How
many ill? What was done for the Catholic portion of the emigrants? It is
absurd to put such questions to Mr. Fry, who is “up among the saints,”
“wrapped in the third heaven” of S. Paul. A man in such an exalted state
of terrestrial beatitude cannot be expected to descend to such sublunary
matters as those presented. Consequently, Mr. Fry contents himself with
vague generalities and a few specimen letters of the kind characterized
at the beginning of this article.

However, “Mr. Macy and his clerks in the office have kept up, as usual,
a vast correspondence with the thousands of children sent out by us. We
unfortunately can have room but for a few of the numerous encouraging
letters that have been received.” We may be permitted to give one, which
will explain itself and also what is in store for the Catholic children
cared for by this society. Needless to say, it does not find a place in
the report which we have been examining. It is, however, an authentic
copy, as Mr. Macy himself will testify, if necessary.

Mr. Macy’s letter, or the letter signed by him, needs a little
explanation, most of which will be supplied by the letter from the
“American Female Guardian Society,” which is also given. The story in
brief concerns two Catholic children, a boy and girl, whose mother
was dead and whose father was called away to the late war. They fell
into the hands of the Female Guardian Society, who handed them over to
the Children’s Aid Society to be “provided with homes in the West” or
elsewhere. The boy was sent to a Protestant in Dubuque, Iowa, the girl
to a Methodist family in the State of New York. After returning from the
war and coming out of hospital the father was anxious to learn something
of his children. His efforts were futile until, as said in the letters,
he interested the Society of S. Vincent de Paul in the matter. After such
trouble as may be imagined the society succeeded in gaining possession of
the children. _They had both become, or rather been made, Protestants_,
and hated the very mention of their religion. The following letters are
exact copies of the originals:

                    AMERICAN FEMALE GUARDIAN SOCIETY,
                           29 E. 29th Street,
                                   and
                         HOME FOR THE FRIENDLESS
                          30 E. 30th St., N. Y.

                                                      May 14th, 1874.

    Mr. Wilson:

    DEAR SIR: Very unexpectedly to us, a few days since the father
    of Edward Nugent, came to the Home, to inquire about his
    children, we had not seen him for six years, and as he had not
    even written during that time, we supposed he was dead; he has
    been in the Hospital it appears most of the time, is lame,
    having been injured in the feet during the war, he is not able
    to take care of his children, yet still claims he has a right
    to know where they are, though _we_ do not feel after all these
    years he has any claim at all, but we learned something of
    importance yesterday, which explains why he wants to know the
    children’s whereabouts, it seems he is a Catholic, and has been
    to the priests with his story about us whom they call heretics,
    and the priests have influenced him to demand the children, so
    we felt it our duty to let you know how the matter stands, for
    they are very persistent, and may send some one in that part
    of the country to ask the neighbours around there, if such a
    boy is in that neighbourhood, and if they can get him, no other
    way they will steal him, so if you have become attached to the
    child, and would desire to save his soul from the power of the
    destroyer of souls, we would say to you it would be better for
    you to send the boy away for a year from you, that you could
    say truthfully you do not know where he is; _when fourteen_
    he can choose his own guardian, then if he chooses you, no
    power can take him from you. Had he been fully committed to
    us they would have no right to interfere, but as he was not,
    they will do all in their power to get him from you, we would
    feel very sorry to have them find him, as we dread Catholic
    influence more than the bite of the rattle-snake, for that only
    destroys the body while the other destroys the immortal soul,
    too precious to be lost; if you have become attached to that
    dear boy, save him from the power of the fell-destroyer, and
    the conscious approving smile of your Heavenly Father will be
    your reward. I cannot say what course they will pursue, but if
    you wish the child, you must be very guarded how you act, and
    must _not_ confide in anyone, not even your own brother what
    your plans are, act cautiously, but decidedly. Please write
    immediately on receipt of this, and let us know what your
    course will be, as we feel the deepest interest in the matter.
    Yours truly,

                                (Signed)

                                                 MRS. C. SPAULDING,
                                                 For “Home Managers.”

    Please send Mr. Wilson’s first name.

    [Verbatim copy, even to italics and punctuation.]


LETTER NO. II.

                         CHILDREN’S AID SOCIETY,
                         No. 19 East Fourth St.,

                                            NEW YORK, May 19th, 1874.

    [Writing to Mr. Williams, who had charge of the boy Edward
    Nugent, in relation to the father of the boy.]

    “He has recently called at the Home for the Friendless for
    information in relation to Eddie and has interested the Society
    of St. Vincent de Paul to hunt up and return Eddie. They have
    begun to look into the matter and I presume that you will hear
    from them one of these days. We wrote to you some time ago that
    you had better have Eddie bound to you by the authorities and
    hope that you did so. I feel that Eddie has a good home and do
    not care to have him disturbed. It would be cruel to him and
    wrong by you and so I trust you will do what you can to prevent
    it. Please let me hear from him and you.”

                              Yours truly,

                                       (Signed) J. MACY, Asst. Sec’y.

To comment on the letter of the “Female Guardians” or the easy
conscience of the “Children’s Aid Society” would be “to gild refined
gold”; certainly, in the case of Mrs. C. Spaulding, “to paint the
lily.” Honest-minded men of any creed may now understand why it is that
Catholics who have any faith in their religion at all, who believe it
in their conscience to be the only true religion, demand in the name of
justice that associations and institutions of this character be thrown
open to the ministers of their religion, or that the State, to prevent
all that is shameful and horrible in proselytism, imitate all civilized
states, and adopt the denominational system of charities, which, as will
be shown in the case of Catholics at least, will not only not cost it a
penny more, but considerably less, and with results astounding in their
contrast.

We have now examined three of our principal institutions with a view to
their cost and results. With the exception of the two letters quoted, no
information has been used which is not presented in public reports. It
is seen that the Society for Juvenile Delinquents expends one-third of
its resources in salaries; the Children’s Aid Society, as far as it is
possible to base an opinion on its loose and incomplete figures, perhaps
three-fourths; while the figures of the Juvenile Asylum are too confused
to allow of any judgment in the matter at all. The results as affecting
the children, in the first instance, are avowedly far from satisfactory;
in the second and third instances no attempt is made to give such
results, though the inferences to be drawn from such evidence as is given
are far from hopeful. And so, unless a radical change is effected in
the training and management of the institutions, matters are likely to
continue. The excuse of inexperience in the management cannot hold here
with half a century at the back of one and over twenty years at the back
of the other two. The moral training of the children is in all instances
distinctly and avowedly Protestant. As shown sufficiently in a previous
article, there is no such thing possible as a religious education which
is “non-sectarian.” Consequently, Catholic children, who form a large
contingent of the inmates of these institutions, are subjected to a
course of instruction and moral training which is a gross and persistent
violation of the rights of conscience and of the constitution of the
State, and to this training have they been subjected ever since the
institutions were first founded. The only means of adjusting this grave
difficulty, of righting this great wrong, is to follow out the plan
which prevails in every civilized country with the exception of our own,
of either adopting the denominational system, or at least of allowing
free access to the clergymen of the religious denomination professed by
the children. The means of adjusting the salaries so as to bear a more
rational proportion to the work done is for the public to consider.

The effects of the denominational system are exemplified in the New
York Catholic Protectory, which has just presented its _Twelfth Annual
Report_. An examination of its working cannot fail to be instructive,
inasmuch as it was founded expressly to meet the difficulty noticed
above concerning the Catholic inmates of public institutions. From the
beginning it has been looked on rather as an enemy than a friend by those
who work the engine of the State. At the very least it was regarded as
a suspicious intruder into ground already occupied. It was Catholic,
therefore sectarian; therefore not a State institution, and consequently
not to be supported by the State. State funds could not go to teach
Catholic doctrine. But we need not repeat the arguments against it. They
are too well known, and are met once for all by the provision in the
constitution allowing liberty of conscience and freedom of worship to all
members of the State. If moral and religious training be provided for
children in all our public institutions, it is against all conscience,
law, right, and the spirit of the American people at large to convert
that moral and religious training into a system of proselytizing, no
matter to what creed. In the case of Catholic children such a system, as
known and shown, has prevailed from the beginning; and the first step
in the reformation of a Catholic child has been to seek by every means
possible to make it a renegade from its faith.

At the opening of the year there were in the Protectory 1,842 children;
during the year 2,877; average (entitled to per capita contributions),
1,871. To their support all that was contributed of public moneys was
the _per capita_ allowance for each child, which is common to all the
children of the institutions examined. Nothing was allowed by the Board
of Education, although the children are educated; nothing by “special
appropriations”; nothing from “theatre licenses”; nothing from “excise
funds”--nothing in a word, from any source at all, save the bare _per
capita_ allowance.

This is not an exceptional instance, but the normal relation between
the Catholic Protectory and the State. Within the twelve years of its
existence the whole amount of State aid received by it, through share of
charity fund, special grants, or from whatever source, has amounted to
$93,502 08--that is to say, at not $8,000 per annum--while its entire
grant for building purposes was $100,000.

The current expenses for the past year were $211,349 87. This includes
all outlays, except for the construction of buildings or other permanent
improvements. The _per capita_ allowance, received from the comptroller
covered $192,339 22 of this amount. It is to be borne in mind that this
allowance would have been paid for the children in any case, whatever
institution they had entered. Consequently, it is no favor at all to
the Protectory. The remaining $19,010 65 had to be met by the charity
of private individuals or not met at all. Of course the labor of the
inmates and the produce of the farm covered a considerable sum; but the
age of the children admitted to the Protectory is limited to fourteen
years, and the vast majority of them are considerably under fourteen,
and consequently cannot contribute by their labor so efficiently as the
inmates of the Society for Juvenile Delinquents, whose average age runs
so much higher.

But the expenses by no means ended here. The Protectory is still
really in course of erection. The aggregate expenditures during the
past year for buildings and permanent improvements, “all of which were
indispensable for the carrying out of the mandate of the State in the
shelter and protection of its wards,” were $107,491 65. To this heavy
sum State and city contributed nothing at all. The bare _per capita_
allowance was the only public money received to aid in the sheltering,
educating, clothing, and feeding of these wards of the State; while to
all other public institutions, even to institutions not strictly public,
liberal special grants or appropriations from special funds were made.
The Catholic Protectory alone was left to meet a bill of $126,502 30 as
best it might.

In its struggle for existence the Protectory has had little in the
shape of aid for which to thank the State. There was great fear even
within the present year that the _per capita_ allowance would also be
withdrawn, avowedly because the Protectory was a Catholic institution,
and consequently without the range of assistance from public funds. This
is highly conscientious, no doubt. But the report of the State Treasurer
for the past year shows grant after grant to seminaries and “sectarian”
(to use the orthodox word) institutions of every kind, with the sole
exception of those professing the Catholic faith. A glance at the whole
work done by the Protectory and the aid afforded it by the State shows
the following:

It has been twelve years in existence. Within that period it has
“sheltered, clothed, afforded elementary education, and given instruction
in useful trades” to 8,771 children. This work cost in the aggregate
for current, expenses $1,257,189 41. To this sum the State contributed
through the comptroller out of the city taxes $1,057,578 66. This was
merely the _per capita_ allowance still. There remained, consequently,
for current expenses $199,610 75 to be paid by whatever means possible.

But the Protectory had to be built. Land had to be purchased, buildings
to be erected, and so on. In a word, the Protectory, like all other
institutions, had to grow, while there was a ravenous demand, as there
continues to be, for admission within its walls. In these twelve years
the outlays for land, buildings, and other permanent improvements
amounted to $806,211 74. The amount of contracts now being carried to
completion on the girls’ building, new gas-house, etc., is over $100,000.
To help to meet this necessary sum of $906,211 74 the State made a
munificent grant for building purposes of $100,000; while all its other
grants, of whatever kind, amounted to just $93,502 28. This left another
little bill for the Protectory to meet of $912,320 21 by the best means
it could. Is it to be wondered at that there rests on the institution a
floating debt of some $200,000, which seriously threatens its existence?
Our wonder is, with the encouragement which it has received from the
State and city, that it continues to exist at all. Private charity has
been its mainstay thus far; but private charity has always an abundance
of pressing demands on it, and may at any time give out, for the very
best of reasons, in a case where there is really no great call for
private charity at all. The children thus cared for, for whom these
vast sums have been paid, would have had in any case to be supported
by the State, and would have proved a costlier burden than in their
present hands. All we urge is that the State be just; that it assist this
institution in the same manner in which it assists other institutions,
by grants from the same funds, by appropriations from the same sources,
without cavil about religion or no religion. The crime of instructing
these children in their own religion is evidenced in the results
achieved. Of the 8,771 who have passed through the Protectory since
its opening, _exactly two have turned out badly_. So much for Catholic
education and mental and moral training.

We have reserved for the last an examination of the salaries. The entire
amount expended on salaries for the officers and employés of every
branch of the institution is $20,736 51; that is, between one-tenth and
one-eleventh of the sum total of the current expenses of the year. This
is the year’s pay of all officials and employés of an institution which
cared for and sheltered within its walls for that period 2,877 children.
Contrast this with the $34,880 52 paid the officials and employés of the
Society for Juvenile Delinquents for the care during the same period of
1,387 children, and the $39,202 33 paid by the Children’s Aid Society for
the teachers of 3,556 children. Contrast the result of the labors of each
society. Then contrast the sums lavished by city and State from special
appropriations and funds on societies whose chief claim for such special
grants consists in their devoting so large a portion of their means
to salaries, with their persistent deafness to the urgent appeals of a
society which has only good to show everywhere and an army of workers
such as the Brothers and Sisters, whose salary is embraced in their food
and dress. Let us look at these things, and blush at our pretensions
to justice and liberality. Why, it is not even honesty. We are too
conscientious to grant a penny out of the educational fund to Catholic
children educated by Catholics, while we give thousands freely for the
stowing away of Catholic children in asylums that pervert them and can
give no account of their stewardship. It is time to drop “conscience,”
that counterfeit so recently and so admirably described by Dr. Newman,
and fall back on common-sense. Of the institutions here examined the
Catholic Protectory combines beyond comparison the greatest economy with
the most extraordinarily successful results as affecting the wards of
the State. Such an institution has a solemn and the truest claim on the
heartiest co-operation and favor of the State.


THE BLIND BEGGAR.

    I cannot pass those sightless eyes,
      Or, if I pass them, I return,
    Led by resistless sympathies
      Above their rayless orbs to yearn,
    And place within the outstretched palms
    The patiently-awaited alms.

    Then, as my footsteps homeward speed.
      I dare with moving lips to pray
    That God, who knows my inmost need,
      May guide me on my darkened way,
    And place within my outstretched palms
    The patiently-awaited alms.


ARE YOU MY WIFE?

BY THE AUTHOR OF “PARIS BEFORE THE WAR,” “NUMBER THIRTEEN,” “PIUS VI.,”
ETC.

CHAPTER V.

Angélique was having a field day of it, and there was nothing she liked
better. It was an event when Sir Simon dropped in at The Lilies toward
supper-time, and announced his intention of staying to take pot-luck;
but this evening’s entertainment was a very different affair from these
friendly droppings-in, and Angélique was proportionately flurried. Like
most people who have a strong will and a good temper, she was easy to
live with; her temper was indeed usually so well controlled that few
suspected her of having one. But on occasions like the present they
were apt to find out their mistake; it was not safe to come in her way
when she had more than one extra dish on hand. Franceline knew this;
and after such interference in the way of whipping the eggs and dusting
the glass and china as Angélique would tolerate, she took herself off
to the woods for the remainder of the afternoon. There was a cleared
space where the timber had been cut down in spring, and here she settled
herself on the stem of a felled tree, and opened her book. It can hardly
have been a very interesting one; for, after turning over a few pages,
she began to look about her, and to listen to the contralto recitative
of a wood-pigeon with as much attention as if that familiar _dilettante_
performance had been some striking novelty. It was not long, however,
before sounds of a very different sort broke on her ear. Some one was
crying passionately, filling the wood with shrieks and sobs. Franceline
started to her feet and listened; she could distinguish the shrill
treble of a child’s voice, and, hurrying on in the direction from whence
it proceeded, she soon came upon a little girl, the daughter of a poor
woman of the neighborhood, called Widow Bing. The child was lying in a
heap on the ground, her basketful of school-books and lunch spilt on the
grass beside her, while her little body and soul seemed literally torn to
pieces by sobs.

“Why, Bessy, what’s the matter?” cried Franceline. “Have you hurt
yourself?”

“No-o-o-o!” gasped Bessy, without lifting her head.

“Have you broken something?”

“No-o-o-o!”

“Has anything happened to mammy?”

“No-o-o, but something’s a-goin to.” And the child raised her head for a
louder scream, and let it drop again with a thud on the ground.

“What’s going to happen to her? Tell me, there’s a good child,” coaxed
Franceline, crouching down beside the little, prostrate figure, and
trying to make it look up. “If it hasn’t happened, perhaps it will never
happen. I might prevent it, or somebody else might.”

A dim ray of consolation apparently dawned out of this hypothesis on
Bessy’s mind; she lifted her head, and, after suppressing her sobs,
exclaimed: “Mammy’s a-goin’ to be damned, she is!”

“Good gracious, child, what a dreadful thing for you to say!” exclaimed
Franceline, too much shocked by the announcement to catch the comical
side of it at once. “Who put such a naughty thing into your head?”

“It’s Farmer Griggs as said it. He says as how he knows mammy’s a-goin’
to be damned!” And the sound of her own words was so dreadful that it
sent Bessy into a fresh paroxysm, and she shrieked louder than before.

“He’s a wicked man, and you mustn’t mind him,” said Franceline; “he knows
nothing about it!”

“Ye-e-es he does!” insisted Bessy. “He-e-s not wicked; … he prea-a-a-ches
every Sunday at the cha-a-a-pel, he does.”

“Then he preaches very wicked sermons, I’m sure,” said Franceline, who
saw an argument on the wrong side for Farmer Griggs’ sanctity in this
evidence. “You must leave off crying and not mind him.”

But Bessy was not to be comforted by this negative suggestion. She went
on crying passionately, until Franceline, finding that neither scolding
nor coaxing had the desired effect, threatened to tell Miss Bulpit, and
have her left out from the next tea and cake feast; whereupon Bessy
brightened up with extraordinary alacrity, gathered up her books and
her dry bread and apple, and proceeded to trot along by the side of
Franceline, who soothed her still further by the promise of a piece of
bread and jam from Angélique, if she gave up crying altogether and told
her all about mammy and Farmer Griggs. An occasional sob showed every now
and then that the waters had not quite subsided; but Bessy did her best,
and before they reached The Lilies she had given in somewhat disjointed
sentences the following history of the prophecy and what led to it. The
widow Bing--who, for motives independent of all theological views, had
recently joined the Methodist Connection, of which Farmer Griggs was
a burning and shining light--had been laid up for the last month with
the rheumatism, and consequently unable to attend the meeting; but last
Sunday, being a good deal better, though still unequal to toiling up-hill
to the chapel, which was nearly half an hour’s walk from her cottage,
she had compromised matters by going to church, which was within ten
minutes’ walk of her. This scandal spread quickly through the Connection,
and was not long coming to Farmer Griggs’ ears, who straightway declared
that the widow Bing had thrown in her lot with the transgressors, and
was henceforth a castaway whose name should be blotted out. This fearful
doom impending over her mother had just been made known to Bessy by
Farmer Griggs’ boy, who met her tripping along with her basket on her
arm, and singing to herself as she went. The sight of the child’s gayety
under such appalling circumstances was not a thing to be tolerated; so
he conveyed to Bessy in very comprehensible vernacular the soothing
intelligence that her mother was “a bad ’un as was gone over to the
parson, as means the devil, and how as folk as was too lazy to come to
chapel ’ud find it ’arder a-goin’ down to the bottomless pit, where there
was devils and snakes and all manner o’ dreadful things a-blazin’ and
a-burnin’ like anythink!”

All this Franceline contrived to elicit from Bessy by the time they
reached The Lilies, where they found Miss Merrywig sitting outside the
kitchen-window in high confabulation with Angélique, busy inside at her
work. The day was intensely hot, and the sun was still high enough to
make shade a necessity of existence for everybody except cats and bees;
but there sat Miss Merrywig under the scorching glare, with a large
chinchilla muff in her lap.

“A muff!” cried Franceline, standing aghast before the old lady. “Dear
Miss Merrywig, you don’t mean to say you want it on such a day as this!
Why, it suffocates one to look at it.”

“Yes, my dear, just so. As you say, it suffocates one to look at it,”
assented Miss Merrywig, “and I assure you I didn’t find it at _all_
comfortable carrying it to-day; but I _only_ bought it yesterday, and I
wanted to let Angélique see it and hear her opinion on it, you see. I
went in to Newford yesterday, and they were selling off at Whilton’s, the
furrier’s, and this muff struck me as _such_ a bargain that I thought I
could _not_ do better than take it. Now, what _do_ you think I gave for
it? Don’t _you_ say anything, Angélique; I want to hear what mademoiselle
will say herself. Now, just look well at it. Remember how hot the weather
is; as you say, the sight of fur suffocates one, and that makes _such_
a difference. My dear mother used to say--and she _was_ a judge of fur,
you know; she made a voyage to Sweden with my father in poor dear old Sir
Hans Neville’s yacht, and that gave her such a knowledge of furs--you
know Sweden _is_ a great place for all sorts of furs--well, she used to
say, ‘If you want the value of your money in fur, buy it in the summer.’
I only just mention that to show you. But you can see for yourself
whether I got the full value in this one. You see it is lined with
satin--and such splendid satin! As thick as a board, and _so_ glossy! And
it’s silk all through. I just ripped a bit here at the edge to see if it
was a cotton back; but it’s all pure silk. The young man of the shop was
so _extremely_ polite, and _so_ anxious I should understand that it _was_
a bargain, he called my attention to the quality of the satin--which was
_really_ very kind of him; for of course that didn’t matter to _him_.
But they are wonderfully civil at Whilton’s. I remember buying some
swan’s-down to trim a dress when I was a girl and I was bridesmaid to
Lady Arabella Wywillyn--they lived at the Grange then--and it _was_,
I must say, a most excellent piece of swan’s-down, and cleaned like
new. I asked the young man if he remembered it--I meant, of course, the
marriage. Dear me, what a sensation it did make! But he did not, which
was of course natural, as it was long before he was born; but I thought
he might have heard the old people of the place speak of it. Well, now
that you’ve examined it, tell me, what _do_ you think I gave for it?”

Franceline was hovering on the brink of a guess, when Angélique, who had
returned to her saucepans, suddenly reappeared at the window, and, spying
Bessy’s red face staring with all its eyes at the chinchilla muff--which
looked uncommonly like a live thing that might bite if the fancy took it,
and was best considered from a respectful distance--called out: “What’s
that child doing there?” Franceline, thankful for the timely rescue,
began to pour out volubly in French the story of Farmer Griggs and the
widow Bing.

“It’s a shame these sort of people _should_ be allowed to terrify the
poor people,” said Miss Merrywig when she had taken it all in. “I
_wonder_ the vicar does not do something. He _ought_ to take steps to
stop it; there’s no saying what _may_ be the end of it. But dear Mr.
Langrove is _so_ kind and so _very_ much afraid of annoying anybody!”

While Miss Merrywig was delivering this opinion Angélique was making good
the bread-and-jam promise for Bessy, who stood watching the operation
with distended eyes through the open window, and saw with satisfaction
that the grenadier was laying on the jam very thick.

“Now, you’re not going to cry any more, and you’re going to be a good
girl?” said Franceline before she let Bessy seize the tempting slice that
Angélique held out to her.

Bessy promised unhesitatingly.

“Stop a minute,” said Franceline, as the child stretched up on tiptoe
to clutch the prize. “You must not repeat to poor, sick mammy what that
naughty boy said to you. Do you promise?” But the proximity of bread
and jam was not potent enough to hurry Bessy into committing herself
to this rash promise. What between the sudden vision of “devils and
snakes a-blazin’ and a-burnin’” which the demand conjured up again, and
what between the dread of seeing the bread and jam snatched away by the
grenadier, who stood there, brown and terrible, waiting a signal from
Franceline, her feelings were too much for her; there was a preparatory
sigh and a sob, and down streamed the tears again.

“I’d better go home with her, and tell the poor woman myself,” said
Franceline, appealing to Miss Merrywig.

“Yes, you come ’ome and tell mammy!” sobbed the child, who seemed to have
some vague belief in Franceline’s power to avert the threatened doom.

“I dare say that will be the safest way, and I’m sure it’s the kindest,”
said Miss Merrywig; “but it _will_ be a dreadfully hot walk for you on
the road, my dear, with _no_ shelter but your sunshade. I had better go
_with_ you. I don’t mind the heat; you see I’m _used_ to it.” Franceline
could not exactly see how this fact of Miss Merrywig’s company would
lessen the heat to her; but it was meant in kindness, so she assented.
The meadowlands went flowering down to the river, richly planted with
fine old trees, and only separated from the garden and its adjoining
fields by an invisible iron rail, so that the little cottage looked as if
it were in the centre of a great private park. A short cut through the
fields took you out on the road in a few minutes, and the trio had not
gone far when they saw Mr. Langrove walking at a brisk pace on before
them, his umbrella tilted to one side to screen him from the sun, that
was striking him obliquely on the right ear. Franceline clapped her hands
and called out, and they soon came up to him.

“What are you doing down here, may I ask? Having your face burned, eh?”
said the vicar familiarly.

Franceline burst out with her story at once. The vicar made a short,
impatient gesture, and they all walked on together, Bessy holding fast by
Franceline’s gown with one hand, while the other was doing duty with the
bread and jam.

“Really, my _dear_ Mr. Langrove,” broke in Miss Merrywig, “you _ought_
to take steps; excuse me for saying so, but you _really_ ought. It’s
quite dreadful to think of the man’s frightening the poor people in this
way. You really _should_ put a stop to it.”

“My good lady,” replied the vicar, “if you can tell me how it’s to be
done, there’s nothing will give me greater pleasure.”

“Well, of course you know best; but it seems to me something ought to
be done. The poor people are all falling into dissent as fast as they
can; it’s quite melancholy to think of it--it _really_ is. You’ll excuse
me for saying so--for it must be _very_ painful to your feelings, and I
never _do_ interfere with what doesn’t concern me; though of course what
concerns you, as our pastor, and the Church of England, _does_ concern
us, all of us--but I really think you _are_ too forbearing. You ought to
enforce your authority a _little_ more strictly.”

“Authority!” echoed the vicar with a mild, ironical laugh. “What
authority have I to enforce? Show me that first!”

“Dear _me_! But an ordained minister of the church, the church of the
realm--surely, _that_ gives you authority?”

“Just as much as you and other members of the church choose to accredit
me with, and no more,” said Mr. Langrove, with as much bitterness in
the emphasis as he was capable of. “If Griggs thinks fit to set himself
up as a preacher, and every man, woman, and child in my parish choose
to desert me and go over to him, I can no more prevent them than I can
prevent their buying their sugar at market instead of getting it from the
grocers.”

“And who is Monsieur Greegs?” inquired Franceline, who was backward in
gossip, and knew few of the local notabilities except by sight.

“Monsieur Griggs is a very respectable farmer, a shrewd judge of cattle,
who knows a great deal about the relative merits of short-horns and the
Devonshire breed, and all about pigs and poultry,” said the vicar with
mild sarcasm.

“And he is a minister too!”

“After a fashion. He elected himself to the office, and it would seem
he has plenty of followers. He started services on week-days when he
found that I had commenced having them on Fridays, and drew away the
very portion of the congregation they were specially intended for; and
he preaches on Sundays. You have a sample of his style here,” nodding at
Bessy, who was licking her fingers with great gusto, having finished her
last mouthful.

“Is it not dreadful!” exclaimed Miss Merrywig. “And the people _are_ so
infatuated; they actually tell me that they understand this man better
than their clergymen, that he speaks plainer to them, and understands
better what they want, and that sort of thing. They don’t care about
doctrine, you see, or controversy; they like to be talked to in a kind
of conversational way by one of their own class who speaks bad grammar
like themselves. They tell you to your face that they don’t understand
the clergyman--I assure you they do; that his sermons are too learned,
and only fit for gentle folk. You see they _are_ so ignorant, the poor
people! It’s very melancholy to think of.”

“They like better to be told they’ll go to hell and be damned, if they
go to their own church; they ought not to be allowed to go to hear such
things. I’ll speak to widow Bing, and make her promise me she’ll never go
there again,” said Franceline peremptorily.

“No, no, my dear child; you mustn’t do anything of the kind,” said the
vicar quickly. “No one has a right to meddle with the people in these
things; if she likes to go to the dissenters, no one can prevent her.”

“But if she was fond of going into the gin-shop and getting tipsy, you’d
have a right to meddle and to prevent her, would you not?” inquired
Franceline.

“That’s a different thing,” said the vicar, who in his own mind thought
the parallel was not so very wide of the mark.

“I can’t see it,” protested Franceline with an expressive shrug. “If you
have a right to prevent their bodies from getting tipsy, and killing
themselves or somebody else perhaps, why not their souls?”

The vicar laughed a complacent little laugh at this cogent reasoning of
his young friend. “Unfortunately,” he said, “we have no authority for
interfering with people in the management of their souls in this country.
Such a proceeding would be quite unconstitutional; the state only
legislates for the salvation of their bodies.”

“Dear me, just _so_!” ejaculated Miss Merrywig. “I remember my dear
mother telling me that a very clever man--I’m not sure if he _wasn’t_
a member of Parliament, but anyhow he made speeches _in_ public--and
he said--I really think it _was_ an electioneering speech just at the
time the Catholic Emancipation bill was being passed--that in this
_free_ country every man had a right to go to the devil his _own_ way.
How exceedingly shocking! To think of people’s going to the devil at
all! But that’s just it. They prefer to go their _own_ way, and, as you
say, the law can’t prevent them. It’s entirely a question of personal
influence, you see.”

“Then perhaps Sir Simon could do something,” suggested Franceline; “he’s
master here, and he makes everybody do what he likes. Why don’t you speak
to him, monsieur?”

“He might do something, perhaps, if anybody could; but, unfortunately, he
does not see it,” observed the vicar.

“I’ll speak to him. I’ll make him see it,” said Franceline, who flew with
a woman’s natural instinct to arbitrary legislation as the readiest mode
of redressing wrongs, and had, moreover, a strong faith in her own power
of making Sir Simon “see it.”

“But is this not rather--of course you know best, only it _does_ strike
me that it is a case for the bishop’s interference _rather_ than the
squire’s,” said Miss Merrywig. She was a remnant of the old times when a
bishop could hold his own; that was before ritualism came into vogue.

“Yes,” cried Franceline, with sudden exultation, “of course it’s the
bishop who must do it. You ought to write to him, monsieur!”

Mr. Langrove smiled. “The bishop has no more power to interfere with the
proceedings of my parishioners than you have.”

“Then what has he power to do? What are bishops good for?” demanded the
obtuse young <DW7>.

But Mr. Langrove, being a loyal “churchman,” was not going to enter
on such slippery, debatable ground as this. He was happily saved from
the disagreeable process of beating about the bush for an answer by
the fact of their being close by widow Bing’s door, from which there
issued distinctly a twofold sound as of somebody crying and somebody
else exhorting. Bessy no sooner caught it than she swelled the chorus of
lamentation by breaking forth into a loud cry. If there was any weeping
to be done, Bessy was not the one to be behindhand. And now she was
resolved to do her very best; for perhaps the prophecy was already coming
true, and mammy was beginning to be a prey to the snakes and devils.

“Stay here and keep that child quiet,” said the vicar hastily. “I hear
Miss Bulpit’s voice. I had better go in alone.”

“He is greatly to be pitied, poor Mr. Langrove! I think,” said
Franceline, as she turned back with Miss Merrywig. “I think you all ought
to write to the bishop for him.”

“Oh! that _would_ be a scandal! Besides, you heard him say the bishop
could not help him,” said the old lady.

“What a blessed thing it is to be a Catholic!” exclaimed Franceline,
laughing. “_We_ have no farmers’ boys or anybody else meddling with our
priests; but then we have the Pope, who settles everything, and everybody
submits. You ought to invite the Pope to come over and deliver you from
all your troubles!”

       *       *       *       *       *

The table was spread on the grass-plot in front of the cottage.
Franceline had made it pretty with ferns and flowers, and then sat down
under the porch, in her white muslin dress and pink sash, to converse
with her doves while waiting for Sir Simon and his two friends. Her
doves were great company to her; she had been so used to talking to them
ever since she was a child, complaining to them of her small griefs and
telling them of her little joys, that she came to fancy they understood
her, and took their plaintive coo or their little crystal laughter as
an intelligible and sympathetic response. One of the soft-breasted,
opal-winged little messengers is upon her finger now, clutching the
soft white perch sharply enough with its coral claws, and answering
her caresses with that low, inarticulate sighing that sounds like the
yearning of an imprisoned spirit. Franceline took some seed out of a box
on the window-sill beside her, and began to feed it out of her hand,
watching the little, pearly head bobbing on her palm with a smile of
tenderest approval. At the sound of footsteps crunching the gravel at the
back of the cottage she rose, still feeding her dove, to go and meet the
gentlemen. But there was only one.

“I fear I am before my time,” said Mr. de Winton, “but I expected to find
the others here before me.” (O Clide, Clide! what prevarication is this?)
“They went out about half an hour ago, and told me to meet them in the
Beech walk, where we were to come on together. Have I come too soon?”

“Oh! not at all,” said the young girl graciously; “my father will come
out in a moment, and I am not very busy, as you see!”

“You are fond of animals, I perceive.”

“Animals! Oh! don’t call my sweet little doves animals,” retorted
Franceline indignantly. “That’s worse than papa. When they coo too much
and disturb him, and I take their part, he always says: ‘Oh! I’m fond
of the birds, but they are noisy little things’! The idea of speaking of
them as ‘the birds’! It hurts my feelings very much.”

“Then pray instruct me, so that I may not have the misfortune to do so
too!” entreated Clide. “Tell me by what name I must call them.”

“Oh! you may laugh. I am used to being laughed at about my doves; I don’t
mind it,” said Franceline with a pretty toss of her small, haughty head.

“I am not laughing at you; I should be very sorry to call anything you
loved by a name that hurt you,” protested the young man with a warmth
that made Franceline look up from her dove at him; the fervor of the
glance that met her did not cause her to avert her eyes, and brought
no glow over her face. Three of the doves came flying down from the
medlar-tree, scattering the starry-white blossoms in their flight. After
making a few circles in the air, one perched on Franceline’s shoulder,
and two alighted on her head. Clide thought it was the prettiest picture
he had ever seen; and as he watched the soft little creatures nestling
into the copper- hair, he wondered if this choice of a nest did
not betray a little cunning, mingled with their native simplicity. But
Franceline could not see the performance from this picturesque point of
view. The two on her head were fighting, each trying to push the other
off. She put up her hand to chase them away, but the claws of one got
entangled in her hair, and the more it struggled, the more difficult
it became to escape. Clide could not but come to her assistance; he
disengaged the tenacious rose-leaves very deftly from the glossy meshes,
and set the prisoner free.

“Naughty little bird!” said Franceline, shaking back her flushed face,
and smoothing the slightly-dishevelled braids; and then, without a word
of thanks to her deliverer, or otherwise alluding to the misconduct of
her pets, she walked on towards the summer-house, and broke out into
observations about the beauties of the neighborhood, asking her companion
what he had seen and how he liked the country round Dullerton. She spoke
English as fluently as a native, with only a slight foreign accentuation
of the vowels that was too piquant to be a blemish; but every now and
then a literal translation reminded you unmistakably that the speaker was
a foreigner.

Clide thought the accent and the Gallicisms quite charming; he was,
however, a little startled when the young lady, in pointing out the
various places of the surrounding parts, and telling him who owned them,
informed him very gravely that the pretty Mrs. Lawrence, who lived in
that Elizabethan house with a clock-tower rising behind the wood, was
thirty years younger than her rich husband, and had married him for his
“propriety,” as she was very poor and had none of her own.

Franceline noticed the undisguised astonishment caused by this
announcement, and, blushing up with a little vexation, exclaimed: “I
mean for his property! You know in French _propriété_ means property.”
But after this she insisted on talking French. Clide protested he liked
English much better, and vowed that she spoke it in perfection; but it
was no use.

“English is too serious for conversation, and too stiff,” said
Franceline, revenging herself for her blunder on the innocent medium of
it, as we are all apt to do. “It is only fit for sermons and speeches. In
French you can talk for an hour without saying anything, and it doesn’t
matter. French is like a light, airy little carriage that only wants a
touch to send it spinning along, and, once going, it will go on for ever;
but English is a stagecoach, stately and top-heavy, and won’t go without
passengers to steady it and horses to draw it. Foolish thoughts always
sound so much more foolish in English than in French. People who are not
serious and wise should always talk French.”

“Ah! merci, now I see why you insist on my talking it,” said Clide,
laughing.

“It would have been a rash judgment; I could not tell whether you were
wise or not.”

“I dare say you are right, though it never occurred to me before,” he
remarked deprecatingly. “Our robust Anglo-Saxon is rather a clumsy
vehicle for conversation compared with yours.”

“I did not call it clumsy; I said stately,” corrected Franceline.

Clide began to fear he was making himself disagreeable; that she was
taking a dislike to him. Happily, before he committed himself further,
M. de la Bourbonais came out and joined them. He was soon followed by
Sir Simon and the admiral, and the little party sat down to Angélique’s
_chefs-d’œuvre_ under the shade of the medlar-tree, with the doves
sounding their bugle in the adjoining copse. The sun was setting, and
sent a stream of orange and rose  light into the garden and over
the group at the table; a breeze came up from the river, fluttering the
strawberry leaves and Franceline’s hair, and blowing the heavy scent of
new-mown hay into her face. It happened--of course by chance, unless
that far-sighted old Angélique had a hand in it--that Clide was seated
next to her; and as the leg of the long table made a space between her
and Sir Simon, it was natural that the two young people should be thrown
on their own resources for conversation, while their elders at the
other end talked incessantly of old times and people that neither Clide
nor Franceline cared about. It was the first time in her life that she
found herself the object of direct homage and attention from a young
yet mature man, and the experience was decidedly pleasant. Clide was
determined to efface the bad impression that he imagined he had made, and
to win Franceline’s good graces or die in the effort. It was not a very
difficult task, and the zest with which he set about it proved that it
was not a disagreeable one. He bent all the energies of his mind to the
sole end of interesting and entertaining her, and soon the undisguised
pleasure that shone in the listener’s face showed that he was succeeding.
With that instinct which quickens the perception of young gentlemen in
Clide de Winton’s present state of mind, he was not long in hitting upon
the subjects that most excited her curiosity. She had never been beyond
the woods of Dullerton since she was of an age to observe things, and
it was like a flight in a balloon over all these far-off countries to
be carried there in imagination by the vivid descriptions of one who
had seen them all. Clide began to wonder at himself as he went on; he
had never suspected himself of such brilliant conversational powers as
he was now displaying. He was surprised to see how much the dreamy,
dark eyes had read about the various countries he spoke of, and what
an enlightened interest she took in the natural history of each. She
wanted to know a great deal about the splendid tropical birds that have
no voices, and about the albatross and other marvellous inhabitants of
the skies in far-away lands; and Clide lent himself with the utmost
condescension to her catechising. But when he came to talking of Rome and
the Catacombs, the eyes kindled with a different sort of interest.

“And you saw the very spot where S. Cecilia was buried, and S. Agatha,
and S. Agnes, who was only thirteen when she was martyred? Oh! how I envy
you. I would walk all the way barefooted from this to see those sacred
places. And the Colosseum, where the wild beasts tore the martyrs to
pieces!” She clasped her hands and looked at him with the look of awe and
wonder that we might bestow on some one who had seen a vision. “And the
tombs of the apostles, and the prison where S. Peter was when the angel
came and set him free?”

“Yes, I saw them all; it was a great privilege,” said Clide, conscious of
realizing for the first time how great.

“Indeed it was!” murmured Franceline, as if speaking to herself; then
suddenly looking up at him, “Did it not make you long to be a martyr?”

Clide hesitated. The temptation to answer “yes” was very strong. The
dark, appealing eyes were fixed on him with an expression that it was
dreadful to disappoint; but he was too honest and too proud to steal her
approval under false colors.

“No, I am afraid I did not. I saw it all too much from the historical
point of view. The triumphs of the Christian heroes were mixed up in
my memory with too many classical associations; and even if it had not
been so, I confess that the phase of martyrdom recalled by the Colosseum
and the Catacombs is not the one to stir my slow heroic pulses. There is
too much of the ghastly physical strife on the one hand, and of wanton
cruelty on the other; the contemplation rather shocks and harrows than
stimulates me. I did once feel something like what you describe, but it
was not in Rome.”

“Where was it?” inquired Franceline eagerly.

“It was in Africa, amongst a tribe of savages. I remember feeling it
would be a grand use of a man’s life to devote it to rescuing them from
their deplorable state of mental darkness and physical degradation; and
that if one died in the struggle, like Francis Xavier, an outcast on the
sea-shore, forsaken by every visible helpmate, it would be as noble a
death as a man could wish to die.”

“I wonder you did not follow the impulse,” said Franceline. “You might
have converted thousands of those poor savages, and been a second S.
Francis Xavier. It must have been a great struggle not to try it.”

Clide did not laugh, but went on gravely dipping his strawberries into
sugar for a moment, and then said:

“No, I can’t pretend even to the negative glory of a struggle. I am
ashamed to say the desire was a mere transient caprice. I got the length
of spending ten days learning the language, and by that time the dirt
and stupidity and cruelty of the neophytes had done for my apostolic
vocation; the debased condition of the poor creatures was brought home
to me so fearfully that I gave it up in disgust. I dare say it was very
cowardly, very selfish; but, looking back on it, I can’t help feeling
that the savages had no great loss. It takes more than an impulse of
emotional pity to make a hero of the Francis Xavier type; one can’t be an
apostle by mere willing and wishing.”

“Yes, but one can,” denied Franceline; “that is just the one kind of hero
that it only wants will to be. One cannot be a warrior or a poet, or that
kind of thing, because that requires genius; but one may be a martyr or
an apostle simply by willing. Love is the only genius that one wants; it
was love that turned the twelve fishermen into apostles and heroes, you
know.”

“Just so; but I didn’t love the savages.”

“Perhaps you would if you had tried.”

“Do you think it is possible to love any one by trying?”

“Well, I don’t know; if they were very unhappy and wanted my love very
much, I think I might.”

Clide stole a quick glance at her; but Franceline was peeling a pear,
and evidently an undue portion of her thoughts were concentrated on that
operation and a care not to let the juice run on her fingers. “Then you
think it was very wicked of me not to have loved those savages?” he began
again.

“I don’t say it was wicked. If they were so very dirty and cruel, it must
have been hard enough; but you might have found another tribe that would
have been more lovable, and that wanted quite as much to be civilized and
converted--nice, simple savages, like wild flowers or dumb animals, that
would have been docile and grateful, perhaps revengeful too; but then
when they were Christians they would have conquered that--”

Clide laughed outright.

“I don’t think your vocation for converting the savages is so very much
superior to mine,” he said; “it certainly would not have lived through my
three days’ novitiate.”

Franceline looked at him, and laughed too--that clear, ringing laugh of
hers, that was so contagious; they both felt very young together.

“And what was your next vocation?” she asked, perfectly unconscious of
any indiscretion. “What are you going to do now?”

“This morning my mind was made up to go abroad again in a few days, and
recommence my old life of busy idleness; but your father has upset all my
plans.”

“My father!”

“Yes. It ought not to surprise you much; it is not likely to be the first
time that M. de la Bourbonais has proved the good genius of another. He
was kind enough to let me talk to him of myself, and to give my folly the
benefit of his wisdom; he made me feel that I was leading a very selfish,
good-for-nothing sort of life, and showed me how wrong it was; in fact,
he did for me what I wanted to do for the savages. He taught me what my
duty was, and I promised him I would try to do it.”

“Ah! then perhaps you are going to be a hero after all,” said Franceline,
a gleam of enthusiasm sparkling in her face again.

“I fear not; at least, it will be a very prosaic, humdrum sort of
heroism. I am going to stay at home, and try to be useful to a few people
in a quiet way on my own property.”

“Oh! I am so glad. Then we shall see you again. You’ll be sure to come
and see Sir Simon sometimes, will you not?”

“Yes, I will come in any case to see M. de la Bourbonais,” said Clide.
“His advice will be invaluable to me; and he was so kind as to promise
that he would always be glad to give it to me.”

The sweet dimples broke out with a blush of pleasure and pride in
Franceline’s face; it was a delight to her to hear any one speak so of
her father, and Clide had seen so many wise and clever people in his
travels that his admiration and respect implied a great deal. If the
young man had been a Talleyrand bent on attaining some diplomatic end, he
could not have displayed greater cunning and tact.

“It’s a great come down from the grand African scheme, you see,” he
observed, laughing; “but under such good guidance there is no saying what
I may not achieve. I may turn out a hero in the end.”

“If you do your duty perfectly, of course you will,” replied Franceline
confidently. “Papa says the real heroes are those that do their duty best
and get no praise for it.”

“Oh! but I should like a little praise; you would not grudge me a
little now and then if I deserved it?” And the look that accompanied
the question would have most fully explained the praise he coveted, if
Franceline had not been as unlearned in that species of language as one
of her doves.

“Bless me! how beautiful that child is!” said the admiral in a _sotto
voce_. “Just look at her color; did you ever see anything to come up to
it? It reminds me of that tinted Hebe that we went to see together in
Florence; you remember, Harness?”

The excitement of talking had brought an exquisite pink glow into
Franceline’s cheeks, and made her eyes sparkle with unwonted brilliancy.
Her father listened to the flattering outburst of the old sailor with a
bright smile of satisfaction, not venturing to look at Franceline, lest
he should betray his acquiescence too palpably.

“And she’s the very picture of health too!” remarked the admiral.

At this Raymond turned and looked at her.

“How like her mother she is!” said Sir Simon, appealing to him; but he
had no sooner uttered the words than he wished himself silent. The smile
died immediately out of M. de la Bourbonais’ face, and a sharp spasm of
pain passed over it like a shadow. Sir Simon guessed at once what caused
it: the bright and delicate color, that the admiral had aptly compared to
the transparency of tinted marble, reminded him of Armengarde when death
had cast its terrible beauty over her.

“Like her in beauty and in many other things,” resumed the baronet in
a careless, abstracted tone. “But, happily, Franceline does not know
what delicacy means; she has never known a day’s illness in her life, I
believe.”

But this reassuring remark did not bring back the smile into the father’s
face; he fixed his eyes on Franceline with an uneasy glance, as if
looking for something that he dreaded to see there.

“She must find this place dull, pretty little pet,” observed the admiral,
who saw nothing to check his admiring comments.

“It never occurred to me before, but I dare say she does,” assented the
baronet; “and she’s old enough now to want a little amusement. We ought
to have thought of that already, Raymond; but we’re a selfish lot, the
best of us. We forget that we were young ourselves once upon a time.
I’ll tell you what it is, De Winton, we’ll carry the child off one of
these days to London, and show her the sights and take her to the opera.
You’d like that, Franceline, would you not?” And shifting his chair
to the other side of the table, he set himself down by her side in an
affectionate attitude.

The project was discussed with great animation, Franceline being
evidently delighted with it.

“My step-mother was to be in town next week,” said Clide, “and I’m sure
she would be very happy to give her services as chaperon, if you have not
any more privileged person in view.”

“That’s not a bad idea. I had not thought of that. I’m glad you mentioned
it. I’ll write to her this very night,” said Sir Simon. “Meantime, it
strikes me that it would be a very good thing if you learned to ride,
Miss Franceline; it’s a disgrace to us all to think of your having
entered your eighteenth year without being taught this accomplishment. We
must set about repairing your neglected education at once. How about a
pony, Clide? Which of the nags would suit best, do you think?”

“I should say Rosebud would be about the nicest you could find for a
lady; she’s as gentle as a lamb, and as smooth-footed as a cat.”

“Rosebud!” echoed M. de La Bourbonais. “Mon cher…”

“Yes, I think you’re right,” said Sir Simon, completely ignoring the
interruption. “Rosebud is a gem of a lady’s horse. We’ll have a few
private lessons in the park first, and let her canter over the turf
before we show off in public.”

“Mon cher Simon,” broke in Raymond again, “it cannot be thought of.
Franceline would not like it; she does not care, I assure you.…”

“O petit papa!” cried Franceline with a little, entreating gesture.

“Ah! is it so indeed? But, my child, consider…”

“Consider, Monsieur le Philosophe, that you don’t understand the matter
at all; you just leave it to us to settle, and attend to what De Winton
is saying to you.”

This last was a difficult injunction, inasmuch as the admiral was saying
nothing. “Come along with me out of the reach of busybodies, Franceline,”
he continued, and, drawing her arm within his own, they walked off to
the summer-house, where Clide, without being invited, followed them.
There was a long and most interesting conference, which terminated in
Franceline’s standing on tiptoe to be kissed by her old friend, and
declaring that it was very naughty of him to spoil her so.

       *       *       *       *       *

“Show him in,” said the vicar, laying down his pen, and a stout,
rosy-cheeked, fair-haired young man in corduroys and top-boots was
ushered into the study.

“Well Griggs, I’m glad to see you. Sit down,” said Mr. Langrove in the
bland, familiar tone of kindness that put simple folk at ease with him
directly. “You’ve come to consult me on a matter of importance, eh?”

“Of importance,” echoed the farmer, twirling his round hat between his
knees and contemplating his boots--“of great importance, sir.”

“Well, let me hear what it is. If I can help you in any way, you may
count upon me,” replied the vicar encouragingly, drawing his chair a
little nearer.

“Thank you, I don’t want help,” he said with a significant emphasis. “I
know where to look for it when I do,” turning up his eyes sanctimoniously
to heaven.

“Certainly, that help is ever at hand for us. But what is your business
with me?”

“You’ll not take it amiss if I speak frankly, sir. We can none of us
do more than bear testimony to the truth, according to our lights,”
explained the farmer; and, Mr. Langrove having by a grave nod acceded to
this proposition, he resumed: “You contradicted yourself in the pulpit
last Sunday. It’s been repeated to me that you found fault with my
teaching concerning faith and works; and so, for sake of them as look to
me for guidance, I came up to hear what views you held on that head, as
the gospel of the day said: ‘And every man shall be judged according to
his works.’ Now, sir, it appears to me the end of the sermon was a flat
contradiction of the beginning.”

“Can you name the contradictory passages?” demanded the vicar, after an
imperceptible start.

“Well, I can’t say as I can,” admitted the farmer; “but I’d know them if
I heard them.”

Mr. Langrove rose, and took down a large manuscript volume from a shelf
directly over his head. Opening it at random, his eye fell upon the text:
“Learn of me, for I am meek and humble of heart.” He lingered on it
for a second, then turned over the leaves, and, having found the place
he wanted, he read aloud the first and last few pages of the preceding
Sunday’s sermon.

“Where do you see the contradiction?” he inquired, looking up and laying
his hand on the page.

“Well, as you read it now, I can’t say it sounds much amiss,” replied Mr.
Griggs, lifting his feet and bringing them down again with a dubious
thud. “I expect the fault was in the way of saying it. You don’t speak
plain enough; if you spoke plainer, folks would most likely understand
you better. Many as have joined the Connection say as it was that as
drove them to us. They couldn’t understand you; they often came away
puzzled.”

A transient flush rose and died out in the vicar’s face, and his lips
trembled a little. But Farmer Griggs did not notice this; he was looking
at his boots, and pondering on the wisdom of his own words. Mr. Langrove
had been pretty well trained to forbearance of late years, and, though
he was too humble-minded and too honest to pretend to be indifferent
to the humiliating interference he had to suffer, he was surprised to
find how keenly he smarted under the present one, and mortified to feel
how alive the old man was in him, in spite of the many blows he had
dealt him. He never, since he was a school-boy, was conscious of such a
strong desire to kick a fellow-creature; and this rising movement was no
sooner strangled by an imperious effort of self-control than it rose up
instantaneously in the milder form of an impulse to open the door and
show his visitor out. Before this second rebellion of the old man was put
down, Farmer Griggs, mistaking the vicar’s momentary silence for a tacit
acknowledgment of his shortcomings, observed:

“It’s a solemn thing to break the word; and the plainer and simpler one
speaks the better it is for those that hear it, though it mayn’t be such
a credit for them that speak it. There’s them that say you think more
about making a fine sermon than doing good to souls--which is no better
than spiritual pride. You can’t shut folks’ mouths, no more than you can
stop the river from running; they will say what they think.”

“Yes, and that is why we are commanded to think no evil,” rejoined the
vicar. “We are too ready to judge of other people’s motives, when in all
conscience we are hard set enough to judge our own. If we go to church
to pick holes in the sermon, as you say, we had better stay away. The
preacher may be a very poor one, but, trust me, while he does his best,
those who listen in the right spirit will learn no harm from him; those
who have not that spirit would do well to ask for it, and meantime to
study the chapter of S. James on the use of the tongue.”

The vicar rose, as if to intimate that the audience was at an end.

“Well, there may be something in that,” remarked the farmer, rising
slowly; “but, for my own part, I never had much opinion of James. Paul
is the man; if it hadn’t been for Paul, it’s my belief the whole concern
would have been a failure.[92] Good-morning, sir.” And without waiting
to see the effect of this startling announcement of his private views,
Farmer Griggs bowed himself out.

“And these are the men who take the word out of our mouths! Did he come
of his own accord, or was he set on to it by Miss Bulpit?” was the
vicar’s reflection, as he stood watching the farmer’s retreating figure
from the window. “It is more than I can bear; some steps must be taken.
It’s high time for Harness to interfere; it’s too bad of him if he
refuses.”

Mr. Langrove took up his hat, and went straight to the Court.

“Depend upon it,” said Sir Simon when the clergymen had related the
recent interview--“depend upon it, Griggs is too shy a chap to have done
it on his own hook; take my word for it, there is a woman at the bottom
of it.”

“That is just what makes it so serious. Griggs is a poor, ignorant,
conceited fellow that one can’t feel very angry with; one is more
inclined to laugh at him and pity him. But it is altogether unpardonable
in such a person as Miss Bulpit; it’s her being at the bottom of it that
makes the case hard on me.”

Sir Simon agreed that it was.

“Then what do you advise me to do? What steps are you prepared to take?”
asked Mr. Langrove.

“My advice is that we leave her alone,” replied Sir Simon. “We’re none of
us a match for womankind. She circumvented me about that bit of ground
for the Methodist chapel. She’s too many guns for both of us together,
Langrove; if you get into a quarrel with the old lady, she’ll raise
the parish against you with port wine and flannel shirts, and you’ll
go to the wall. After all, why need you worry about it! Let her have
her say. They love to hear themselves talk, women do; you can’t change
them, and you wouldn’t if you could. Come, now, Langrove, you know you
wouldn’t. Halloo! here’s something to look at!” And he started from his
semi-recumbent attitude in the luxurious arm-chair, and went to the open
window. It was a charming sight that met them. Two riders, a lady and a
gentleman, were cantering over the sward on two magnificent horses, a bay
and a black.

“Is that Franceline?” exclaimed Mr. Langrove, forgetting, in his surprise
and admiration, the annoyance of having his grievance pooh-poohed so
unconcernedly.

“Yes. How capitally the little thing holds herself! She only had three
lessons, and she sits in her saddle as if it were a chair. Let’s come out
and have a look at them!”

They stepped on the terrace. But Clide and Franceline were lost to view
for a few minutes in the avenue; presently they emerged from the trees
and came cantering up the lawn, Franceline’s laugh sounding as merry as a
hunting-horn through the park.

“Bravo! Capital! We’ll make a first-rate horse-woman of her by-and-by.
She’ll cut out every girl in the county one of these days. And pray who
gave you leave to assume the duties of riding-master without consulting
me, sir?”

This was to Clide, who had sprung off his horse to set something right in
his pupil’s saddle and adjust the folds of her habit, which had nothing
amiss that any one else could see.

“They told me you were engaged, so I did not like to disturb you,” he
explained.

“I should very much like to know who told you so,” said Sir Simon, with
offensive incredulity.

“My respected uncle is the offender, if offence there be; but now that
you are disengaged, perhaps you would like to take a canter with us. I’ll
go round and order your horse?”

“No, you sha’n’t. I don’t choose to be taken up second-hand in that
fashion; you’ll be good enough to walk off to The Lilies, and tell the
count I have something very particular to say to him, and I’ll take it as
a favor if he’ll come up at once.”

Clide turned his horse’s head in the direction indicated.

“No, no; you’ll get down and walk there,” said Sir Simon. “If he sees you
on horseback, he may suspect something, and that would spoil the fun.”
The young man alighted, and gave his bridle to be held.

“I don’t see why I shouldn’t hold it in the saddle,” said the baronet
after a moment; “and we will take a turn while we’re waiting.” He vaulted
into Clide’s vacant seat with the agility of a younger man.

“Well, a pleasant ride to you both!” said Mr. Langrove, moving away. “You
do your master credit, Franceline, whoever he is; and the exercise has
given you a fine color too,” he added, nodding kindly to her.

“Oh! it’s enchanting!” cried the young Amazon passionately. “I feel as if
I had wings; and Rosebud is so gentle!”

“Look here, Langrove,” called out Sir Simon, backing his powerful black
horse, and stooping towards the vicar, “don’t you go worrying yourself
about this business; it’s not worth it. They are a parcel of humbugs, the
whole lot of them. I know Griggs well--a hot-headed, canting lout that
would be much better occupied attending to his pigs. It would never do
for a man like you to come into collision with him. Let those that like
his fire and brimstone go and take it; you’ve a good riddance of them.
And as to the old lady, keep never minding. You’ll do no good by crossing
her; she’s a harmless old party as long as you let her have her own way,
but if you rouse her there will be the devil to pay.”

M. de la Bourbonais had been kept out of the secret of the riding
lessons. He had heard nothing more of the scheme since that evening at
supper, and, with Angélique in the plot, it required no great diplomacy
to manage the trying on of the riding habit, that had been made by the
first lady’s dressmaker in London, brought down for the purpose; so that
the intended surprise was as complete as Sir Simon and his accomplices
could have wished.

“Comment donc!”[93] he exclaimed, breaking out into French, as usual
when he was excited. “What is this? What do I see? My Clair de lune[94]
turned into an Amazon!” And he stood at the end of the lawn and beheld
Franceline careering on her beautiful, thoroughbred pony. “Ah! Simon,
Simon, this is too bad. This is terrible!” he protested, as the baronet
rode up; but the smile of inexpressible pleasure that shone in his face
took all the reproach out of the words.

“Look at her!” cried Sir Simon triumphantly; “did you ever see any one
take to it so quickly? Just see how she sits in her saddle. Stand out of
the way a bit, till we have another gallop. Now, Franceline, who’ll be
back first?”

And away they flew, Sir Simon reining in his more powerful steed, so as
to let Rosebud come in a neck ahead of him.

“Simon, Simon, you are incorrigible! I don’t know what to say to you,”
said Raymond, settling and unsettling the spectacles under his bushy
eyebrows.

“Compliment me; that’s all you need say for the present,” said Sir Simon.
“See what a color I’ve brought into her cheeks!”

“O petit père! it is so delightful,” exclaimed Franceline, caressing the
hand her father had laid on Rosebud’s neck. “I never enjoyed anything so
much. And I’m not the least fatigued; you know you were afraid it would
fatigue me? And is not Rosebud a beauty? And look at my whip.” And she
turned the elegant gold-headed handle for his inspection.

“Mounted in gold, and with your cipher in turquoise! Ah! you are nicely
spoiled! Simon, Simon!” What more could he say at such a moment? It would
have been odious to show anything but gratitude and pleasure, even if he
felt it. This, then, was the end of the earnest midnight conference, and
the distinct promise that Rosebud and Nero should be sold! The animal
that would have paid half a lawful and urgent debt was to be kept for
Franceline, and he must sanction the folly; to say nothing of the rigging
out of that young lady in a complete riding suit of the most expensive
fashion. Well, well, it was no use protesting now, and it was impossible
to deny that the exquisitely-fitting habit and the dark beaver hat set
off her figure and hair in singular perfection. The bright, healthy glow
of her cheeks, too pleaded irresistibly in extenuation of Sir Simon’s
extravagance.

“Shall we ride down to The Lilies? I should like Angélique to see me. She
would be so pleased,” said Franceline, appealing to Sir Simon.

“You think she would? Silly old woman! very likely; but I want to have
a talk with your father, so Clide must go and take care of you.” And
the baronet slipped off his horse, which Mr. de Winton, with exemplary
docility, at once mounted. The two young people set off at a canter,
Franceline turning round to kiss her hand to her father, as they plunged
into the trees and were lost to sight.

It would be useless to attempt to describe the effect of the apparition
on Angélique: how she threw up her hands, and then flattened them between
her knees, calling all the saints in Paradise to witness if any one had
ever seen the like; and how nothing would satisfy her but that they
should gallop up and down the field in front for her edification; and the
astonishment of a flock of sheep which the performance sent scampering
and bleating in wild dismay backwards and forwards along with them; and
how, when Franceline’s hair came undone in the galloping, and fell in
a golden shower down her back, the old woman declared it was the very
image of S. Michael on horseback, whom she had seen trampling down the
dragon in an Assyrian church. When it was all over, and Franceline had
gone upstairs to change her dress, Clide tied the horses to a tree, and
completed his conquest of the old lady by asking her to show him that
wonderful casket he had heard so much about. She produced it from its
hiding-place in M. de la Bourbonais’ room, and, reverently unwrapping
it, proceeded to tell the story of how the papers had been rescued, and
how they had been burned, watching her listener’s face with keen eyes
all the while, to see if any shadow of scepticism was to be detected in
it; but Clide was all attention and faith. “There are people who think
it clever to laugh at the family for believing in such a story,” she
observed; “but, as I say, when a thing has come down from father to son
for nigh four thousand years, it’s hard not to believe in it; and to my
mind it’s easier to believe it than to think anybody could have had the
wit to invent it.” And Clide having agreed that no mere human imagination
could ever indeed have reached so lofty a flight, Angélique called his
attention to the ornamentation of the casket. “Monsieur can see how
unlike anything in our times it is,” pointing to the antediluvian vipers
crawling and writhing in the rusty iron; “and all that is typical--the
snakes and the birds and the crooked signs--everything is typical, as
Monsieur le Comte will tell you.”

“And what is it supposed to typify?” asked Clide, anxious to seem
interested.

“Ah! I know nothing about that, monsieur!” replied Angélique with a
shrug; and lest other questions of an equally indiscreet and unreasonable
nature should follow, she covered up the casket and carried it off.

TO BE CONTINUED.


“CHIEFLY AMONG WOMEN.”

BY AN AMERICAN WOMAN.

Mr. Gladstone, in his _Political Expostulation_, makes use of the
following expression in regard to the growth of the Catholic Church in
England: “The conquests have been chiefly, as might have been expected,
among women.” That the ex-premier intended this as a statement of fact
rather than a sneer is very probable; for he evidently endeavors to
employ the language of good manners in his controversies, unlike his
predecessors in polemics during the XVIIth and XVIIIth centuries. The
debate between him and his distinguished antagonists in the English
hierarchy bears, happily, little resemblance to that between John Milton
and Salmasius concerning the royal rights of Charles I. But that,
nevertheless, there is a sneer in the quoted expression is scarcely to be
denied; and that this sneer had a lodgment in Mr. Gladstone’s mind, and
escaped thence by a sort of mental wink, if not by his will, is beyond
doubt. The pamphlet bears all the internal as well as external marks of
haste; it is only a piece of clever “journalism”--written for a day,
overturned in a day. “Mr. Gladstone lighted a fire on Saturday night
which was put out on Monday morning,” said the London _Tablet_. But the
sneer, whether wilful or not, stands, and cannot be erased or ignored;
and it is worth more than a passing consideration. It is an indirect and
ungraceful way of saying that the Catholic Church brings conviction more
readily to weaker than to stronger intellects; and that because the
“conquests” are “chiefly among women,” the progress of the church among
the people is not substantial, general, or permanent. We presume that
this is a reasonable construction of the expression.

Whether the first of these propositions be true or not is not pertinent
to the practical question contained in the second. We will only remark,
in passing it over, that there stands against its verity a formidable
list of giant male intellects for which Protestantism and infidelity
have failed to furnish a corresponding offset. Students of science and
literature and lovers of art will not need to be reminded of the names.
That Catholic doctrine is intellectual in the purest and best sense
there are the records of nineteen centuries of civilization and letters
to offer in evidence. But what Mr. Gladstone invites us to discuss is
the power of women in propagating religion. In arriving at a correct
estimate we must review, with what minuteness the limits of an article
will permit, the part that women have had in the establishment of
religion, the intensity, the earnestness, the zeal, the persistence--for
these enter largely into the idea of propagation--with which women have
accepted and followed the teaching of the church, and the ability they
have exhibited and the success they have achieved in the impression of
their convictions upon others. We must take into account the relative
natural zealousness of the sexes; for zeal, next to grace, has most to do
with the making of “conquests.” We must remember the almost invincible
weapon which nature has placed in the hands of the weaker sex for
approaching and controlling men; the beautiful weapon--affection--which
mother, wife, sister, daughter, wield, and for which very few men know of
any foil, or against which they would raise one if they did. If we admit,
to conciliate Mr. Gladstone, that religion is an affair of the heart as
well as of the head, he will be gracious enough in return, we apprehend,
to concede that women must be potential agents in its propagation.

Surely, it is only thoughtlessness which enables well-read men to assign
to women an insignificant place in the establishment of religion, or
their reading must have been too much on their own side of the line.
Even the pagans were wiser. They recognized the potency of women with
an intelligence born of nothing less correct than instinct. Their
mythological Titans were equally divided as to sex. A woman was their
model of the austerest of virtues--perpetual celibacy. A woman was their
goddess of wisdom, and, as opposed to man, the patroness of just and
humane warfare. A woman presided over their grain and harvests. Every
Grecian city maintained sacred fire on an altar dedicated to Vesta, the
protectress of the dearest form of human happiness--the domestic. It
was from Hebe the gods accepted their nectar. The nine tutelary deities
of the æsthetic--the Muses--were women. So were the Fates--who held the
distaff, and spun the thread of life, and cut the thread--

    “Clotho and Lachesis, whose boundless sway,
    With Atropos, both men and gods obey.”

Splendor, Joy, and Pleasure were the Graces. It was a woman who first set
the example of parental devotion--Rhea concealing from their would-be
destroyers the birth of Jupiter, Neptune, and Pluto. It was a woman who
first set the example of conjugal fidelity--Alcestis offering to die
for Admetus. It was from a woman’s name, Alcyone, we have our “halcyon
days”--Alcyone, who, overcome by grief for her husband, lost at sea,
threw herself into the waves, and the gods, to reward their mutual love,
transformed them into kingfishers; and when they built their nests, the
sea is said to have been peaceful in order not to disturb their joys. It
was a woman who dared to defy a king in order to perform funeral rites
over the remains of her brother. It was a woman, Ariadne, who, to save
her lover, Theseus, furnished him the clew out of the Cretan labyrinth,
although she abolished thereby the tribute her father was wont to extort
from the Athenians. In all that was good, beautiful, and tender, the
pagans held women pre-eminent; and whether we agree with the earliest
Greeks, who believed their mythology fact; or with the philosophers of
the time of Euripides, who identified the legends with physical nature;
or prefer to accept the still later theory that the deities and heroes
were originally human, and the marvellous myths terrestrial occurrences
idealized, the eminence of the position accorded to women is equally
significant. Woman was supremely influential, especially in all that
related to the heart. She had her place beside the priest. She was the
most trusted oracle. She watched the altar-fires. She was worshipped in
the temples, and homage was paid to her divinity in martial triumphs and
the public games. Whatever was tender and beneficent in the mythical
dispensation was associated with her sex. She was the goddess of every
kind of love. Excess, luxury, brute-power, were typified by men alone.
The pagans knew that love was the most potent influence to which man was
subject; and love with them was but another name for woman. “It is in the
heart,” says Lamartine, “that God has placed the genius of women, because
the works of this genius are all works of love.” Plautus, the pagan
satirist, offered his weight in gold for a man who could reason against
woman’s influence. Emerson, a very good pagan in his way, appreciates
the subtlety, the directness, and the impervious character of such an
influence in the making of conquests. “We say love is blind,” he writes,
“and the figure of Cupid is drawn with a bandage around his eyes--blind,
because he does not see what he does not like; but the sharpest-sighted
hunter in the universe is Love, for finding what he seeks, and only that.”

Woman holds a very prominent place in the religious history of the Jews.
Two books of the Old Testament were written in her exaltation--the
Book of Ruth and the Book of Esther--while in the others she is found
constantly at the side of man, exercising in religious affairs a
recognized power. Patriarchs acknowledge her influence; she is addressed
by the prophets. It was Anna who departed not from the Temple, but
served God with fastings and prayers night and day. It was to a mother’s
prayers that Samuel was granted. Sarah is honored by mention in the New
Testament as a model spouse, and the church has enshrined her name and
her virtues in the universal marriage service. Miriam directed the
triumphant processions and inspired the hosannas of the women of Israel,
and was their instructress and guide. As it was then, as now, the custom
of the Israelites to separate the men from the women in public worship,
Miriam was looked up to as the appointed prophetess of her time. Micah,
the prophet, speaking in the name of God, says to the Jews: “I brought
thee up out of the land of Egypt, and I sent before thee Moses and Aaron
and Miriam.” That she had been appointed by the Lord, conjointly with
her brothers, to rescue her people from servitude, appears from her own
words in Numbers: “Hath the Lord indeed spoken only by Moses? Hath he
not spoken also by us?” It is needless to allude to the esteem in which
Naomi and Ruth were held. The widow of Sarepta fed the prophet Elijah
when she had reason to believe that in so doing she would expose her son
and herself to death by famine. The Second Epistle of S. John was written
to a woman. The reverence and affection with which the writers in the New
Testament speak of the Blessed Virgin Mary are too familiar for more than
allusion. The women who followed Our Lord were singularly heroic, and the
influence which they exerted upon their associates and upon all who came
in contact with them must have been correspondingly strong. Woman never
insulted, denied, or betrayed Christ:

    “Not she with trait’rous kiss her Saviour stung,
    Not she denied him with unholy tongue;
    She, while apostles shrank, could danger brave--
    Last at his cross, and earliest at his grave.”

S. Paul himself commends the women who labored with him in spreading the
Gospel. It was Lois and Eunice who taught the Scriptures to Timothy.
It was in response to the appeals of women that many of the greatest
miracles were wrought; Elijah and Elisha both raised the dead to life at
the request of women; and Lazarus was restored by Our Lord in pity for
his sisters. It was to a woman our Lord spoke the blessed words, “Thy
sins be forgiven thee; go in peace.” It was a woman whose faith led her
to touch the hem of his garment, confident that thereby she would be made
whole. It was a woman whom he singled out as the object of his divine
love on the Sabbath day, in spite of the malicious remonstrances of the
Jews. Almost his last words on the cross had a woman for their subject.
It was women who followed him with most unflagging devotion; and it was
women whom he first greeted after his resurrection.

We come now to women in the church militant. The question is no longer,
What have women been in religion? but, What have they done? Does the
record which they have made for themselves in the propagation of
Christianity justify the sneer of the ex-premier? The implication in Mr.
Gladstone’s quoted sentence is that, because the church in England has
found her conquests thus far “chiefly among women,” the Catholic faith is
not making such progress in that country as should create apprehension.
He thus raises the issue of woman’s potentiality in religion.

We venture to suggest that there is no department of human endeavor in
which she is so powerful.

Woman’s power in the present and the future, as a working disciple
of Our Lord, is reasonably deducible from her past. We may not argue
that to-morrow she shall be able to bring others to the knowledge and
service of God, if, throughout the long yesterday of the church, she was
indifferent or imbecile. She has little promise if she has not already
shown large fulfilment. We may not look to her zeal at the domestic
hearth and in cultivated society for fruits worthy an apostle, if, in
the crimson ages of Christianity, her sex made no sacrifices, achieved
no glory. We may doubt the strength of her intellect, as applied to the
science of religion, if the past furnishes no testimony thereof; and we
may accept, with some indulgence towards its author, the ex-premier’s
sneer upon her efficiency in the active toil of the church, if, in the
past, she has not been alert and successful in its various forms of
organized intelligence, humanity, and benevolence.

What, then, are the facts? Did women, in the early days, submit to
torture and death, side by side with men, rather than deny their faith
in Christ? Was their faith, too, sealed with their blood? Did women
share the labor and the danger of teaching the truths of religion?
Did they, when such study was extremely difficult, and required more
intellect because it enjoyed fewer aids than now, devote themselves
to the investigation and elaboration of sacred subjects? Have they
contributed anything to the learning and literature of the church? Have
they gone into uncivilized countries as missionaries? Have they furnished
conspicuous examples of fidelity to God under circumstances seductive or
appalling? Have they founded schools, established and maintained houses
for the sick, the poor, the aged, the orphan, the stranger? Have they
crossed the thresholds of their homes, never to re-enter, but to follow
whithersoever the Lord beckoned? Has their zeal led them into the smoke
and rush of battle, into the dens of pestilence, into squalor and the
haunts of crime? Have they proved by evidence which will not be disputed
that, to win others to their faith, they have given up everything--they
can give up everything--that their faith is dearer to them than all else
on earth?

Then, surely, a faith which has made its progress even “chiefly among
women” has made a progress as solid as if it were chiefly among men, for
no greater things can man do than these.

It is neither possible nor desirable, in an article of narrow limits,
to enumerate the women who have taken even a prominent part in the
establishment of Christianity through the various agencies which the
church has employed. The notice of each class must be brief, and we shall
not formally group them; the testimony will be valid enough, even in a
cursory presentation. What have women done to prove their ability to
propagate the faith?

Beginning in the days of the apostles, we find the blood of women flowing
as freely as that of men in vindication of the Christian creed. If
men joyfully hastened to the amphitheatre, so did they. If men meekly
accepted torture and ignominy, so did they. If men defied the ingenuity
of cruelty and smiled in their agony, so did they. If men resigned human
ambition, surrendered possessions, and abandoned luxury, so did they. The
annals of the martyrs show, with what degree of accuracy it is difficult
now to determine, that if either sex is entitled to higher distinction
for the abandonment of everything that human nature holds dear, in order
to follow Christ even to ignominious death, the pre-eminence is in favor
of the weaker sex. It is impossible to read a chapter of martyrology from
the inauguration of persecution until its close without finding therein
the names of noble and gentle women illuminated by their own blood.

Contemporaneous with S. Paul is Thecla, who was held in so great
veneration in the early ages of Christianity “that it was considered the
greatest praise that could be given to a woman to compare her with S.
Thecla.” She was skilled in profane and sacred science and philosophy,
and excelled in the various branches of polite literature. She is
declared one of the brightest ornaments of the apostolic age; and one of
the fathers “commends her eloquence and the ease, strength, sweetness,
and modesty of her discourse.” She was distinguished for “the vehemence
of her love for Christ,” which she displayed on many occasions with the
courage of a martyr and “with a strength of body equal to the vigor of
her mind.” She was converted by S. Paul about the year 45. Resolving
to dedicate her virginity and life to God, she broke an engagement of
marriage, and, in despite of the remonstrances of her parents and the
entreaties of her betrothed, who was a pagan nobleman, devoted herself
to the work of the Gospel. At length authority placed its cruel hand
upon her. She was exposed naked in the amphitheatre; but her fortitude
survived the shock undaunted. The lions forgot their ferocity and licked
her feet; and S. Ambrose, S. Chrysostom, S. Methodius, S. Gregory
Nazianzen, and other fathers confirm the truth of the statement that she
emerged from the arena without harm. She was exposed to many similar
dangers, but triumphantly survived them. She accompanied S. Paul in many
of his journeys, and died in retirement at Isaura. The great cathedral of
Milan was built in her honor.

Visitors to Rome are taken to the Church of S. Prisca, built on the
original site of her house--the house in which S. Peter lodged. Prisca
was a noble Roman lady who, on account of her profession of Christianity,
was exposed in the amphitheatre at the age of thirteen. The lions
refusing to devour her, she was beheaded in prison. In the IIId century
we behold S. Agatha displaying a fortitude before her judge which has
never been surpassed by man, and suffering without resistance torture
of exquisite cruelty--the tearing open of her bosom by iron shears. In
the same century Apollonia, daughter of a magistrate in Alexandria, was
baptized by a disciple of S. Anthony, and there appeared an angel, who
threw over her a garment of dazzling white, saying, “Go now to Alexandria
and preach the faith of Christ.” Many were converted by her eloquence;
for her refusal to worship the gods she was bound to a column, and her
beautiful teeth were pulled out one by one by a pair of pincers, as
an appropriate atonement for her crime. Then a fire was kindled, and
she was flung into it. Apollonia preaching to the people of Alexandria
forms the subject of a famous picture by a favorite pupil of Michael
Angelo--Granacci--in the Munich gallery. In the beginning of the IVth
century a Roman maiden, whose name is popularly known as Agnes, gave
up her life for her faith. “Her tender sex,” says a Protestant writer,
“her almost childish years, her beauty, innocence, and heroic defence
of her chastity, the high antiquity of the veneration paid to her,
have all combined to invest the person and character of S. Agnes with
a charm, an interest, a reality, to which the most sceptical are not
wholly insensible.” The son of the Prefect of Rome became enamored of
her comeliness, and asked her parents to give her to him as his wife.
Agnes repelled his advances and declined his gifts. Then the prefect
ordered her to enter the service of Vesta, and she refused the command
with disdain. Chains and threats failed to intimidate her; resort was
had to a form of torture so atrocious that her woman’s heart, but for a
miracle of grace, must have quailed in the pangs of anticipation. She was
exposed nude in a place of infamy, and her head fell “in meek shame” upon
her bosom. She prayed, and “immediately her hair, which was already long
and abundant, became like a veil, covering her whole person from head
to foot; and those who looked upon her were seized with awe and fear as
of something sacred, and dared not lift their eyes.” When fire refused
to consume her body, the executioner mounted the obstinate fagots, and
ended her torments by the sword. She is the favorite saint of the Roman
women; two churches in the Eternal City bear her name; there is no saint
whose effigy is older than hers; and Domenichino, Titian, Paul Veronese,
and Tintoretto have perpetuated her glory. In the previous year, at
Syracuse, Lucia, a noble damsel, refused a pagan husband of high lineage
and great riches, preferring to consecrate herself to a divine Spouse.
Her discarded suitor betrayed her to the persecutors, from whose hands
she escaped by dying in prison of her wounds. Euphemia, who is venerated
in the East by the surname of _Great_, and to whom four churches are
erected in Constantinople, died a frightful death in Chalcedon, four
years after Lucia had perished in Syracuse. So general was the homage
paid her heroism that Leo the Isaurian ordered that her churches be
profaned and her relics be cast into the sea. Devotion found means for
evading the mandate, and the sacred remains were preserved. In the
same year Catherine, a niece of Constantine the Great, was martyred at
Alexandria. From her childhood it was manifest that she had been rightly
named--from καθαρός, pure, undefiled. Her graces of mind and person were
the wonder and admiration of the people. Her father was King of Egypt,
and she his heir. When she ascended the throne, she devoted herself to
the study of philosophy. Plato was her favorite author. It is declared
that her scholarship was so profound, so varied, and so exact that she
confounded a company of the ablest heathen philosophers. The Emperor
Maximin, failing to induce her to apostatize, had constructed four
wheels, armed with blades, and revolving in opposite directions. Between
these she was bound; but God miraculously preserved her. Then she was
driven from Alexandria, scourged, and beheaded. St. Catherine has been
honored for many centuries as the patroness of learning and eloquence.
In art S. Jerome’s name and hers are frequently associated together, as
the two patrons of scholastic theology. She carries a book in her hands,
like S. Thomas Aquinas and S. Bonaventure, to symbolize her learning,
and her statue is to be found in the old universities and schools. She
was especially honored in the University of Padua, the _Alma Mater_
of Christopher Columbus. In England alone there were upwards of fifty
churches dedicated in her name. The painters have loved to treat her as
the Christian Urania, the goddess of science and philosophy. She afforded
delightful opportunities of genius to Raphael, Guido, Titian, Correggio,
Albert Dürer. In the same century and about the same year Barbara, the
daughter of a nobleman in Heliopolis, was decapitated by her enraged
father on discovering her profession of the Christian faith; Margaret,
who refused to become the wife of a pagan governor, was beheaded at
Antioch; Dorothea was slain in Cappadocia.

Sometimes the women of these early days walked to martyrdom with
father, husband, brother, or friend; as Domnina and Theonilla; Lucia
with Gemmianus, under Diocletian; Daria with Chrysanthus, Cecilia with
Valerian, Tiburtius, and Maximus; Flora and Mary in Cordova; Dorothea and
her troop of followers; Theodora with Didymus; Victoria and Fortunatus;
Bibiana, a young Roman lady, with her father, mother, and sister, whom
she inspired and sustained.

Shall we prolong the calendar to show that woman’s courage did not expire
with the fervor of apostolic times? There were Thrasilla and Emiliana,
aunts of Gregory the Great. There was the English abbess, Ebba, who, with
her entire household, perished in the flames of their convent; the noble
Helen of Sweden, who was murdered by her relatives in the XIth century.

Did women seek the solitude of the wilderness and the perils of the
forest to serve God as hermits and solitaries? They began the practice
of the ascetic life in the apostolic days; they had formed communities
as early as the IId century; many lived in couples, as the anchorets
Marava and Cyra in the first century; some imitated the example of Mary
of Egypt, who spent twenty-seven years in isolation. There were the Irish
hermit, Maxentia in France; and Modneva, in the IXth century, also Irish,
who dwelt for seven years alone in the Island of Trent. S. Bridget of
Ireland had her first cell in the trunk of an oak-tree.

When we undertake to answer what sacrifices women have made for religion,
it is difficult to frame an adequate reply with sufficient brevity. From
the day that S. Catherine gave up the throne of Egypt until this hour,
women have been sacrificing for the Catholic faith--everything. If the
objects of their attachment are fewer than those of men, their domestic
love is of more exquisite sensibility, and its rupture is in many cases,
not the result of an instant’s strong resolve, but the slow martyrdom of
a lifetime. Nearly all the early heroines of Christianity were women of
high social position, of rich and luxurious homes, and many were noted
for their beauty, their culture, or their address. Some were on the eve
of happy betrothals; yet Eucratis spurns a lover, and Rufina and Secunda
depart from apostate husbands. It was to the courage and self-sacrifice
of their respective wives that the martyrs Hadrian and Valerian are
indebted for their palms. In the IVth century we see the Empress Helen,
mother of Constantine the Great, when fourscore years of age, proceeding
from Constantinople to Palestine for the purpose of adorning churches
and worshipping our Lord in the regions consecrated by his presence. It
was she who discovered the true cross of Christ. In the VIIth century
Queen Cuthburge of England resigned royal pleasures, founded a convent,
and lived and died in it. In the VIIth century Hereswith, Queen of the
East-Angles, withdrew from royalty, and became an inmate of the convent
in Chelles, France. Queen Bathilde, of France, followed her thither as
soon as her son, Clotaire III., had reached his majority, “and obeyed
her superior as if she were the last Sister in the house.” The abbess
herself, who was also of an illustrious family, was “the most humble and
most fervent,” and “showed by her conduct that no one commands well or
with safety who has not first learned and is not always ready to obey
well.” Radegunde, another queen of France, also passed from a court to a
cloister. In the IXth century Alice, Empress of Germany, presented, in
two regencies, the extraordinary power of religion in producing a wise
and efficient administration of political affairs. She was virtually a
recluse living and acting in the splendor of a throne. Is it necessary
to more than allude to S. Elizabeth of Hungary, or to her niece, Queen
Elizabeth of Portugal, who, after a glorious career, to which we shall
allude in another connection, joined the Order of Poor Clares? In the
East, Pulcheria, the empress, granddaughter of Theodosius the Great,
withdrew from a _régime_ in which she was the controlling spirit, and did
not return from her austerities until urgently requested to do so by Pope
S. Leo. At her death she bequeathed all her goods and private estates to
the poor. Queen Maud of England walked daily to church barefoot, wearing
a garment of sackcloth, and washed and kissed the feet of the poor. It
was a queen, Jane of France, who became the foundress of the Nuns of the
Annunciation.

When we consider the part that woman has had in the formation of the
various religious orders, the temerity of the ex-premier in belittling
her influence assumes still greater proportions. The undeniable fact
that Protestantism has never been able permanently to maintain a single
community of women, either for contemplation or benevolence, proves that
the Catholic Church alone is the sphere in which woman’s religious zeal
finds its fullest and most complete expression; that it is the Catholic
faith alone which thoroughly arouses and solidly supports the enthusiasm
of her nature, and embodies her ardor into a useful and enduring form.
The achievements of women in the religious orders demonstrate that it
is impossible to exaggerate this enthusiasm or to overestimate the
subtle influence which she exerts in society, Catholic and non-Catholic.
Human nature, in whatever creed, bows in involuntary homage to the
woman who has left her home, and father and mother, brother, sister,
and friends, to follow Jesus Christ and him crucified. This instinct
is as old as man. The pagan Greek, the brutal Roman, punished with
almost incredible severity offences against their oracles and vestals.
History furnishes no instance of a nation possessing a religion however
ridiculous, a worship however coarse and senseless, which did not award
exceptional deference to the virgins consecrated to the service of its
gods. Christianity, which emancipated woman from the domestic slavery
in which usage had placed and law confirmed her; which made her man’s
peer by its indissoluble marriage tie; and which compelled courts and
judges to modify barbarous statutes affecting her civil rights as well
as her conjugal relations, has been rewarded by eighteen hundred years
of unflagging zeal and unshrinking heroism. If woman had done nothing in
the household for the church; if she had been indifferent as a wife and
incompetent as a mother; if in the world the sex were merely frivolous,
pretty things, such as Diderot would describe with “the pen dipped in the
humid colors of the rainbow, and the paper dried with the dust gathered
from the wings of a butterfly”; if they had never done anything for
religion except what they have done out of the world--in the shade, as it
were--Christianity would still have been the gainer, civilization would
owe them a vast balance, and the sneer of the ex-premier would be found
to describe only his own bitterness.

There has been no salic law in the Catholic Church. Her crowns cover
women’s heads as well as men’s; women themselves have vindicated their
right to spiritual royalty.

The activity of women for the spread of the Gospel began, as we have
seen, in the days of the apostles, when the preaching of Thecla, the
exhortations of many women converts, and the courageous utterances of
those being led to martyrdom, won multitudes to Christ. The monastic
life of woman is as old as that of man. Indeed, our word _nun_, derived
from the Greek νὀννα, passed into the latter language from the Egyptian,
in which it was synonymous with _fair_, _beautiful_. As rapidly as
Christianity moved over the world women joyfully accepted its precepts
and hastened to its propagation. Lamartine says that “nature has given
women two painful but heavenly gifts, which distinguish them, and often
raise them above human nature--compassion and enthusiasm. By compassion
they devote themselves; by enthusiasm they exalt themselves.” These two
gifts find their freest exercise in conventual life, whether strictly
contemplative, as the monastic life in the East was in the beginning,
or contemplative and benevolent, as it became in the West. It was,
therefore, only natural that women of all degrees should listen to the
voice of God summoning them to this state. It was not natural, however,
to sever the domestic ties which nature herself had made and religion
had blessed. It was no easier in the days of Ebba and Bega than in
those of Angela Merici, or S. Teresa, or Catherine McAuley, for the
daughter to bid a final farewell to her home and its endearments for
an existence of self-immolation, of prayer, of obedience, of humility,
and often of hunger and cold, sickness, danger, and want. That women in
large numbers have nevertheless chosen this which the world calls the
worse life and the apostle the better, from the time of the apostles to
the present day, shows that it is in religion they reach the zenith of
their capabilities; for they have made no such sacrifices, they have
achieved no such successes, in art, in science, nor in literature. They
have entered the service of the church through the convent gate, in
despite of difficulties which would often have debarred men even from
the entertainment of the design. Their toil in the convents has been
wholly in the service of mankind. The history of the conventual life
of women is not divisible from that of civilization, and in rapidly
sketching it we shall discover chapters on the progress of religion, the
organization of benevolence, the preservation of learning, and the spread
of education. The assistance which women have rendered to the last two
has not been properly appreciated.

The catalogue of eminent foundresses is too long to be considered in
detail. Every country, every century, has its list of noble virgins, of
wealthy widows, or of mothers whose maternal duty was done, building
houses for established orders, or, under the authority of the church,
founding additional communities, always with a specific design; for the
church takes no step without an intelligent purpose. Among these women
have been many who were remarkable in more qualities than piety, in other
conditions than social distinction; and it is a fact which will scarcely
bear debate that it has been inside the convents, or, if outside, under
the direction and inspiration of religion, that the mind of woman has
enjoyed freest scope and produced palpable and permanent results. It is
true that there have been great women in profane history, ancient and
modern--a Cleopatra and Semiramis, a Catherine in Russia, an Elizabeth
in England; in literature a De Staël, a “George Sand,” and a “George
Eliot”; in histrionic art, in poetry, and in court circles, many women
have equalled and outshone men; and in science they have significantly
contributed to medicine and mathematics. But the annals of women in
religion reveal the heroic characteristics of the sex developed far
beyond the limit reached in the world.

We have just mentioned S. Elizabeth, Queen of Portugal. What woman has
surpassed her in perseverance--that most difficult of feminine virtues?
What man has surpassed the utterness of her love for God--that sublimest
of virtues in either sex? At eight years of age she began to fast on
appointed days; she undertook, of her own accord, to practise great
mortifications; she would sing no songs but hymns and psalms; “and from
her childhood she said every day the whole office of the Breviary, in
which no priest could be more exact.” Her time was regularly divided,
after her marriage to the King of Portugal, between her domestic duties
and works of piety. She visited and nursed the sick, and dressed their
most loathsome sores. “She founded,” says Butler, “in different parts
of the kingdom, many pious establishments, particularly an hospital
near her own palace at Coïmbra, a house for penitent women who had been
seduced into evil courses,” thus anticipating the future Sisters of the
Good Shepherd. She built an “hospital for foundlings, or those children
who, for want of due provision, are exposed to the danger of perishing
in poverty or of the neglect or cruelty of unnatural parents.” She won
her ruffianly husband, by patience and sweetness, to a Christian life,
and induced him to found, with royal munificence, the University of
Coïmbra. She averted wars, and reconciled her husband and son when their
armies were marching against each other. She made peace between Ferdinand
IV. and the claimant of his crown, and between James II. of Aragon and
Frederick IV. of Castile. What woman of profane history furnishes so
illustrious and so substantial a record as this? Religion alone supplied
its motive and maintained its progress.

The foundress of the Poor Clares, S. Clare of Assisium, was the daughter
of a knight, and had to suffer contumely and opprobrium for entering
the religious state instead of accepting proffered marriage. Her sister
and mother were led by her virtues to follow her example, and they
founded houses of the Poor Clares in all the principal cities of Italy
and Germany. They wore no covering on their feet, slept on the ground,
practised perpetual abstinence, and never spoke except when compelled
by necessity or charity. S. Clare’s great fortune she gave to the poor,
without reserving a farthing for herself. What but religion could
suggest, sustain, and crown so martyr-like a life as this? The Little
Sisters of the Poor are now nearest the model which S. Clare became; and
the Little Sister of the Poor is greater in the sight of Almighty God and
in the honest reverence of the human heart than a De Staël or a “Sand”!

We merely allude to S. Jane Frances de Chantal, the foundress of the
Order of the Visitation, whom our American widow, Mother Seton, foundress
of our Sisters of Charity, so strangely resembled in certain properties
of character and circumstances of life. The conspicuous virtue of these
two women was the same--humility. Space forbids more than allusion
to other noted foundresses--Angela Merici, mother of the Ursulines;
Catherine McAuley, of the Sisters of Mercy; Mme. Barat, foundress of
the Order of the Sacred Heart, whose beatification is in progress;
Nano Nagle, of the Sisters of the Presentation; and those holy, brave,
and zealous women who are to-day leading their respective communities
in every part of the world, whom to name, even in illustration of an
argument, would be to offend. They are exercising within convent walls
the sacrifices which made martyrs. They are sending pioneers of religion
to the frontiers of civilization; equipping hospitals, asylums, and
schools wherever and whenever called; carrying out faithfully on our
continent the example set them by the foundresses of American charitable
institutions; for our first hospital in New France was managed by three
nuns from Dieppe, the youngest but twenty-two years of age; and in 1639
a widow of Alenson and a nun from Dieppe, with two Sisters from Tours,
established an Ursuline Academy for girls at Quebec. Bancroft says: “As
the youthful heroines stepped on the shore at Quebec they stooped to kiss
the earth, which they adopted as their mother, and were ready, in case of
need, to tinge with their blood. The governor, with the little garrison,
received them at the water’s edge; Hurons and Algonquins, joining in the
shouts, filled the air with yells of joy; and the motley group escorted
the new-comers to the church, where, amidst a general thanksgiving, the
_Te Deum_ was chanted. Is it wonderful that the natives were touched by
a benevolence which their poverty and squalid misery could not appall?
Their education was also attempted; and the venerable ash-tree still
lives beneath which Mary of the Incarnation, so famed for chastened
piety, genius, and good judgment, toiled, though in vain, for the culture
of Huron children.” Could anything but religion enable delicately-reared
women to turn a last look upon the sunny <DW72>s of France, where remained
everything that their hearts cherished, and set out in 1639, in a slow
ship, over an almost unknown ocean, with certain expectation never to
return, and equally certain that in the new land they would encounter
an almost perpetual winter and incur all the perils of the instincts of
savages? What stately woman’s figure rises in profane history to the
height of Mary of the Incarnation?

The part that woman has had in the building up and the spread of
education has not, so far as we are aware, been adequately written.
Perhaps it never will be; for the materials of at least fifteen centuries
are, for the most part, carefully buried in convent archives, and their
modest keepers shun publicity. The lack of popular knowledge in this
portion of the history of education has induced the erroneous supposition
that woman has done little or nothing for the intelligence of the
race; that, until recently, the sex received slight instruction and
possessed only superficial and effeminate acquirements; and that the free
facilities which women are reaching after indicate an entirely new, an
unwritten, chapter in the culture of the sex.

Each of these suppositions is unwarranted by facts. Women have shared
in the establishment of educational institutions from the earliest
period of which we have authentic record. Their resources have founded
schools, their talents have conducted them. Whenever, from the days of
S. Catherine to those of Nano Nagle, special efforts have been made to
teach the people, women have furnished their full share of energy and
brains. The opportunities which, even in periods of exceptional darkness
or disturbance, were afforded for the higher education of women, were far
in advance of the standard which prejudice or ignorance has associated
with women in the past; and the increasing demand which we have on every
side for a more substantial and scholarly training for the sex does not
look forward to that which they have never had, but backward to what they
have lost or abandoned.

Again we find Mr. Gladstone’s sneer answered; for religion--the Catholic
religion--has been the sole inspiration of the part that woman has had in
popular education. The magnitude of that part we will only outline; but
enough will be shown of woman as a foundress, a teacher, and a scholar to
indicate the rank to which she is entitled as an educator, and the motive
which enabled her to attain it.

There were very few convents for women which were not also schools and
academies for their sex. Many Christian women, even in the days of
the Fathers, were not only skilled in sacred science, but in profane
literature, and these, naturally and inevitably, taught the younger
members of their own households, and, when they entered the service
of the church, became teachers of the children of the people. In the
IVth century Hypatia, invited by the magistrates of Alexandria to teach
philosophy, led many of her pupils to Christianity, although she herself
did not have the grace to embrace it; but her learning induced many
women to profound and elegant study. We have spoken of S. Catherine,
who confuted the pagan philosophers of that city of schools, and whose
condition was the delight of her contemporaries. The mothers and sisters
in those early days were not only willing but able to teach the science
of Christianity and letters. S. Paul himself alludes to the instruction
he received from his mother, Lois, and his grandmother, Eunice. It was
S. Macrina who taught S. Basil and S. Gregory of Nyssa. It was Theodora
who instructed Cosmas and Damian. “Even as early as the IId century,”
says a distinguished scholar, “the zeal of religious women for letters
excited the bile and provoked the satire of the enemies of Christianity.”
S. Fulgentius was educated by his mother. So solicitous was she about
the purity of his Greek accent “that she made him learn by heart the
poems of Homer and Menander before he studied his Latin rudiments.”
It was S. Paula who moved S. Jerome to some of his greatest literary
labors; and the latter assures us that the gentle S. Eustochium wrote
and spoke Hebrew without Latin adulteration. S. Chrysostom dedicated
seventeen letters to S. Olympias; and S. Marcella, on account of her rare
acquirements, was known as “the glory of the Roman ladies.” S. Melania
and S. Cæsaria were noted for their accomplishments.

Montalembert declares that literary pursuits were cultivated in the VIIth
and VIIIth centuries in the convents in England, “with no less care and
perseverance” than in the monasteries, “and perhaps with still greater
enthusiasm.” The nuns were accustomed “to study holy books, the fathers
of the church, and even classical works.” S. Gertrude translated the
Scriptures into Greek. It was a woman who introduced the study of Greek
into the famous monastery of S. Gall. The erudite author of _Christian
Schools and Scholars_ says that “the Anglo-Saxon nuns very early vied
with the monks in their application to letters.” There is preserved a
treatise on virginity by Adhelm, in the VIIth century, which contains an
illumination representing him as teaching a group of nuns. S. Boniface
directed the studies of many convents of women.

Hildelitha, the first English _religieuse_, had received her education
at the convent of Chelles, in France, “and brought into the cloisters
of Barking all the learning of that famous school.” This institution,
about five leagues from Paris, was founded by S. Clotilda, and one of its
abbesses in the IXth century was Gisella, a pupil of Alcuin and sister of
Charlemagne. It was in a convent school, that of Roncerai, near Angers,
that Heloise received her education in classics and philosophy; and
Hallam, who finds little to remark concerning convent schools--because,
we presume, their archives were not sought by him--says that the
“epistles of Abelard and Eloisa, especially those of the latter, are,
as far as I know, the first book that gives any pleasure in reading for
six hundred years, since the _Consolation_ of Boethius.” The learning
of S. Hilda was so highly esteemed that “more than once the holy abbess
assisted at the deliberation of the bishops assembled in council or in
synod, who wished to take the advice of her whom they considered so
especially enlightened by the Holy Spirit.” Queen Editha, wife of Edward
the Confessor, taught grammar and logic.

The scholarly women of the time were not all in England. Richtrude,
daughter of Charlemagne, had a Greek professor. The historian from whom
we have already quoted says, in _Christian Schools and Scholars_, that
the examples of learning in the cloisters of nuns were not “confined
to those communities which had caught their tone from the little knot
of literary women educated by S. Boniface. “It was the natural and
_universal development of the religious life_.”

Guizot ranks “among the gems of literature” the account of the death of
S. Cæsaria, written by one of her sisters. Radegunde, queen of Clothaire
I., read the Greek and Latin fathers familiarly. S. Adelaide, Abbess
of Geldern, in the Xth century, had received a learned education, and
imparted her attainments to the young of her sex. Hrotsvitha, a nun of
Gandersheim, in the Xth century, wrote Latin poems and stanzas, which
prove, says Spalding, “that in the institutions of learning at that day
classical literature was extensively and successfully cultivated by
women as well as by men.” In the XIIth century the Abbess Hervada wrote
an encyclopedia, “containing,” remarks Mgr. Dupanloup, “all the science
known in her day.”

Nor were women content to study and teach in their native countries.
When S. Boniface needed teachers in Germany to complete the conversion
and civilization of the country, he endeavored to enlist the enthusiasm
of the English women of learning and piety; and Chunehilt and her
daughter Berathgilt were the first to listen to his appeal. They are
called by the historian _valde eruditæ in liberali scientia_. The Abbess
Lioba, distinguished for her scholarship and her executive ability,
also accepted the invitation of Boniface, and thirty nuns, of whom
she was the head, reached Antwerp after a stormy passage, and were
received at Mentz by the archbishop, who conducted them to the convent
at Bischofsheim, which he had erected for Lioba. S. Boniface declared
that he loved Lioba on account of her solid learning--_eruditionis
sapientia_. Walburga, a subordinate of Lioba, went into Thuringia, and
became abbess of the Convent of Heidesheim, where she and her nuns
cultivated letters as diligently as in their English home. The church
herself watched over these efforts of women to elevate their sex; for the
Council of Cloveshoe, held in 747, exhorts abbesses diligently to provide
for the education of those under their charge. In so great admiration
and affection did S. Boniface hold Lioba that he requested that her
remains might be buried in Fulda, so that they might together await the
resurrection. Lioba survived the saint twenty-four years, during which
she erected many convents and received signal assistance from Charlemagne.

The convent schools maintained by these disciples of S. Boniface were
not the only ones in which women obtained more culture than is accorded
to them in our own boastful time. At Gandersheim the course of study
included Latin and Greek, the philosophy of Aristotle, and the liberal
arts. One of the abbesses of this convent was the author of a treatise
on logic “much esteemed among the learned of her own time.” It would be
easy enough to continue this record; to carry on the chain of woman’s
assistance--always under the guidance of religion--in the educational
development of Europe. It is not easy to avoid dwelling on the aid
she rendered in the foundation of colleges; of the standing which she
attained in the universities, where, both as student and professor, she
won with renown and wore with modesty the highest degrees and honors.

The catalogue of that metropolis of learning, the University of Bologna,
a papal institution, contains the names of many women who appeared
to enviable advantage in its departments of canon law, medicine,
mathematics, art, and literature. The period which produced Vittoria
Colonna, who received, her education in a convent, discovers Properzia
de’ Rossi teaching sculpture in Bologna; the painter Sister Plautilla,
a Dominican; Marietta Tintoretto, daughter of the “Thunder of Art,”
herself a celebrated portrait-painter, whose work possessed many of
the best qualities of her father’s; Elizabeth Sirani, who painted and
taught in Bologna; and Elena Cornaro admitted as a doctor at Milan.
We find a woman architect, Plautilla Brizio, working in Rome in the
XVIIth century, building a palace and the Chapel of S. Benedict. In
the papal universities, as late as the XVIIIth century, women took
degrees in jurisprudence and philosophy; among them, Victoria Delfini,
Christina Roccati, and Laura Bassi, in the University of Bologna, and
Maria Amoretti in that of Pavia. In 1758 Anna Mazzolina was professor of
anatomy in Bologna, and Maria Agnesi was appointed by the pope professor
of mathematics in the University of Bologna. Novella d’Andrea taught
canon law in Bologna for ten years. A woman was the successor of Cardinal
Mezzofanti as professor of Greek. Statues are erected to the memory of
two women who taught botany in the universities of Bologna and Genoa.
It is well to mention these facts as a sufficient reply to the flippant
charge, too frequently made, that the Catholic Church is “opposed” to the
higher education of women.

The relation of women in religion to the education and refinement of the
present day can be lightly passed over. In the convent schools in every
part of the world young women receive the best education now available
for their sex. The demands of society have affected the curriculum. It
is not as abstract or classical or thorough as in the time of Lioba and
Hrotsvitha, but it is the best; and it will return to the classical
standard as quickly as women themselves make the demand. In a word,
the orders of teaching women in the Catholic Church are, we repeat, a
sufficient answer to Mr. Gladstone’s sneer at the status of women in
religion. It was out of these that arose Catherine of Sienna--orator,
scholar, diplomate, saint. Of these was S. Teresa, whom Mgr. Dupanloup
characterizes as one of the greatest, if not the greatest, prose writers
in the Spanish literature. Of these have been hundreds, thousands, of
women, who, moved by the Spirit of God to his service, have found within
convent-walls opportunities for culture which society denies, and who, in
the carrying out of his divine will, have made more sacrifices, attained
higher degrees of perfection, and lived lives of sweeter perfume and
nobler usefulness, than the mind of Mr. Gladstone appears to be able to
conceive. A religion which makes conquests enough among women, since it
can inspire, control, and direct them thus, is the religion which must
conquer the world.

Finally, Mr. Gladstone forgot the subtle power of mother and wife, and
the marriage laws of the Catholic Church. The mother’s influence for good
or evil, but especially for good, to which she most inclines, is second
to none that moves the heart of man. Whether it be Cornelia, pointing
to the Gracchi as her jewels; or Monica, pursuing and persuading S.
Augustine; Felicitas, exhorting her seven sons to martyrdom; or the
mothers of S. Chrysostom, S. Basil, and S. Anselm, converting their
children to firmness in holiness; or whether it be the untutored mother
of the savage, or the unfortunate head of a household setting an
unwomanly example, the mother’s voice, issuing from the quivering lips
or coming back silently from the tomb, is heard when all other sounds of
menace, of appeal, of reproach, or of tenderness fail to reach the ear.
Every mother makes her sex venerable to her son. The mother’s love is
above all logic; it destroys syllogisms, refutes all argument. It cannot
be reasoned against; and when the salvation of the child is the motive,
there is no power given to man to withstand its seduction. “It shrinks
not where man cowers, and grows stronger where man faints, and over the
wastes of worldly fortune sends the radiance of its quenchless fidelity.”
Christ himself upon the cross was not unmindful of his mother; yet he was
God! Says the greater Napoleon, “The destiny of the child is always the
work of the mother.” To the end of time she will be, as she has ever been,

    “The holiest thing alive.”

The faith of the mothers, if they believe in it, must become the faith
of the sons and the daughters. That the Catholic mother believes, even
Mr. Gladstone will hesitate to deny. In no faith but the Catholic have
mothers accompanied their sons to martyrdom. In no faith but the Catholic
is the mother taught to believe, while still a child at her mother’s
breast, that she will be held responsible for the eternal welfare of
her children; that they must be saved with her, or she must perish with
them. For this salvation she will toil and pray and weep; for this she
will spend days of weariness and nights without sleep; for this religion
will keep her heart brave, and her lips eloquent, and her hand gentle and
strong. For this she will work as neither man nor woman works for aught
else; and for this she will lay down her life, but not until the sublime
purpose is accomplished! That done, she is ready to die. For

    “Hath she not then, for pains and fears,
      The day of woe, the watchful night,
    For all her sorrow, all her tears,
      An over-payment of delight?”

If the mothers of England become Catholic, England becomes Catholic.
The law is of nature. Love must win, if talent partly fails; for even
in heaven the seraphim, which signifies love, is nearer God than the
cherubim, which signifies knowledge.


ON A CHARGE MADE AFTER THE PUBLICATION OF A VOLUME OF POETRY

(WRITTEN NEAR WINDERMERE.)

    Beautiful Land! They said, “He loves thee not!”
    But in a church-yard ’mid thy meadows lie
    The bones of no disloyal ancestry.
    To whom in me disloyal were the thought
    Which wronged thee. For my youth thy Shakspeare wrought;
    For me thy minsters raised their towers on high;
    Thou gav’st me friends whose memory cannot die:--
    I love thee, and for that cause left unsought
    Thy praise. Thy ruined cloisters, forests green,
    Thy moors where still the branching wild deer roves,
    Dear haunts of mine by sun and moon have been
    From Cumbrian peaks to Devon’s laughing coves.
    They love thee less, be sure, who ne’er had heart
    To take, for truth’s sake, ’gainst thyself thy part.

    AUBREY DE VERE.


STRAY LEAVES FROM A PASSING LIFE.

CHAPTER III.

AU REVOIR.--THE PILGRIM’S PROGRESS.

We showed Kenneth such wonders as Leighstone possessed, and his visit was
to us at least a very pleasant one. My father was duly informed of his
harboring a <DW7> in his house, and, though a little stiff and stately
and a little more reserved in his conversation for a day or two, he could
not be other than himself--a hospitable and genial gentleman. And then
Kenneth was so frank and manly, so amiable and winning, that I believe,
had he solemnly assured us he was a cannibal, and avowed his voracious
appetite for human flesh, not a soul would have felt disturbed in the
company of so good-looking and well-bred a monster. Perhaps, after all,
had we questioned our hearts, the capital sin of Papistry lay in its
clothes. Papistry was to my father, and more or less to all of us, the
Religion of Rags. Leighstone had no Catholic church, and its Catholic
population was restricted to a body of poor Irish laborers and their
families, who were most of them the poorest of the poor, and tramped
afoot of a Sunday to a wretched little barn of a church eight miles
away, which was served by a priest of a large town in the neighborhood.
However much of the devil there might be among them, there was certainly
little of what is generally understood by the world and the flesh. Yes,
theirs was a Religion of Rags, and it was at once odd and sad to see how
rags did congregate around the Catholic church--an excellent church
indeed for them and their wearers, but not exactly the place to drive
to heaven in in a coach-and-four. It was a positive shock to my father
to find so fine a young man as Kenneth Goodal a firm believer in the
Religion of Rags. Of course he knew all about the Founder of Christianity
being born in a stable, and so on; but that was a great and impressive
lesson, not intended exactly to be imitated by every one. Princes in
disguise may play any pranks they please. Once the beggar’s cloak is
thrown off, everything is forgiven. We quite forget that hideous hump
of Master Walter in the play when, just before the curtain drops, he
announces himself as “now the Earl of Rochdale.” Indeed, it was a kind
of social offence to see a young man of breeding, blood, and bearing,
such as Kenneth Goodal, take his place among the rank and file, the army
of tatterdemalions, that made up the modern Church of Rome, as it showed
itself to the eyes of English respectability. Irish reapers, men and
maid-servants, cooks, beggars, the halt, the lame, and the blind--these
made up the army of modern Crusaders. S. Lawrence himself was very well,
but S. Lawrence’s treasures were very ill. The descendants of Godfrey
de Bouillon, the mail-clad knights of the Lion-Hearted Richard, my
ancestor Sir Roger, all made a very respectable body-guard for a faith
and a church; but the followers of Peter the Hermit, the lower layer
of society, the lazzaroni--these were certainly uninviting, and gave
the religion to which they belonged something of the aspect of a moral
leperhood, to be separated from the multitude, and not even sniffed afar
off. Yet here was a handsome young gallant like Kenneth Goodal plunging
deep into it, with eye of pride and steadfast heart, and a strange faith
that it was the right thing to do. It was positively perplexing, and
before Kenneth left us my father had another attack of gout.

Kenneth had the skill and good taste never to obtrude unpleasant
discussions. The only thing about him was a certain tone in his
conversation that made you feel, as decidedly as though you saw it
written in his open face, that he sailed under very pronounced colors. It
was no pirate, no decoy flag hung out to lure stray craft into danger,
and give place at the last moment to the death’s head and cross-bones.
It was the same in all weather and in all seas. “The Crusades only ended
with the cross,” he had said to me in our first conversation together;
and it seemed that I saw the cross painted on his bosom, and borne
about with him wherever he went--a very Knight-Hospitaller in the XIXth
century. In our long rambles together he and I had many a hard tussle.
I was the only one with whom he conversed on religious subjects at all,
and when he went away he left the leaven working. The good seed had been
sown, whether on stony ground, or among thorns, or on the good soil, God
alone could tell.

We missed him greatly when he went. He was so thorough an antiquarian
and such a capital chess-player that my father was irritated at his
absence, and had a second attack of the gout. Nellie was looking forward
and already making preparations for the visit we had promised to pay his
mother at Christmas; and as for me, I had lost my _alter ego_, and spent
more time than ever in the churchyard. Even Mattock noticed the frequency
of my visits; for he said to me one morning, as I watched him digging a
fresh grave: “Ye’re a-comin’ here too often, Master Roger. Graveyards and
graves and what’s in ’em is loike enough company for me, but not for sich
as ye. It an’t whoalsome, it an’t. Corpses grows on a man, they doos, and
weighs him down in spoite of himself. I doant know what I should a-done
these twenty-foive year, only for the drams I takes. I couldn’t a-kep up,
I couldn’t. There’s somethin’ about churchyeards and graves, a kind o’
airthiness loike, that creeps into a man’s veins, as the years come on
him, that at times I doant seem to know exactly which is the livin’ and
which is the dead. We’re all airth, Payrson Knowles says, and Payrson
Knowles is a knowledgable man; but he doant come here too often. I know
we’re all airth; for an’t I seen it? An’t I seen the body of as putty a
young gal as was ever kissed under the mistletoe stretched out and laid
in her grave afore the New Year dawned, and turned her out a year or so
after, a handful o’ bones ye might take in a shovel and putt in a basket,
and a doag wouldn’t look at em? Ay, many a sich! I’ve seen ’em set in
rows in the pews within thear, and seen ’em go a-flirtin’ and a-smirkin’
out through yon gate; and when the cholera cum, I’ve laid ’em row by row
i’ the airth here. I’ve got used to it, bless ye, and could a’most tell
their bones. I knows ’em all, and doant mind it a bit; and I shall feel
kind a-comfortable when my son, whom I’ve brought up to the bizness and
eddicated a-purpose for it, lays me by the side on ’em, yonder in that
corner where the sun shines of an evenin’. But sich thoughts an’t for
you, Master Roger. Git ye out into the sun, lad, and play while ye may.
There’s no sort o’ use in forestallin’ yer time. Ye an’t brought up to be
a grave-digger, and ye’ve no sort a-business here. Its onlooky, I tell
ye, its onlooky. Graves is my business, not yourn. So git ye gone, Master
Roger.”

One effect came from my cogitations with myself and my conversations with
Roger: I no longer went to church. Indeed, I had not been too regular
an attendant at the Priory for some time past. Still, when, as not
unfrequently happened, my father was laid up with the gout, I escorted
Nellie to church as in the old days, and thus sufficiently sustained the
Herbert reputation for that steady devotion to public duties that was
looked for from the leading family in the place; and though Mr. Knowles,
who was a frequent visitor at our house, grew a little chilly in his
reception of me when we met--I used to be a great favorite of his--he had
never undertaken to mention my delinquency to me. There was a certain
warmth in his agreement with my father, when that good gentleman broke
out on his favorite subject of the young men of the day, that was very
different from the old, deprecatory manner in which Mr. Knowles would
refer to the hot blood of youth, and the danger of keeping it too much
in restraint. I came to the resolution that I would go to no church any
more until I went to some church once for all; until I was satisfied
that I believed firmly and truly in the worship at which I assisted.
Anything else seemed to me now a sham that I could no more endure than
if I set up a Chinese image in my own chamber, and burned incense before
it. This was all very well for one Sunday or two. But my father’s attack
was at this time unusually prolonged; and when, Sunday after Sunday, I
conducted Nellie to the church-door, and there left her, to meet and
escort her home when service was over, my strange conduct, unknown to
myself, began to be remarked in Leighstone, and assumed the awful aspect
in a small place of studied bad example. Poor Nellie did not know what to
make of me; far less Mr. Knowles. It seemed that some silly young men of
the town, taking their cue from me, thought it the fashionable thing to
conduct their relatives to the church-door, leave them there, and often
spend the interval in somewhat boisterous behavior outside that on more
than one occasion disturbed the services; so that at length Mr. Knowles
was compelled to mention the matter in general terms from the pulpit, and
came out with quite a stirring sermon on the influence of bad example
on the young by those who, if respect for God and God’s house had no
weight with them, might at least pay some regard to what their position
in society, not to say in their own circle, required. Poor Nellie came
home in tears that day, and I joked with her on the unusual eloquence of
Mr. Knowles. The final upshot of it all was a visit on the part of that
reverend gentleman to my father, who was just recovering from his attack;
and as ill-luck would have it, I walked into the room just at the moment
when my poor father, between the twinges of conscience and the twinges of
a relapse resulting from Mr. Knowles’ eloquent and elaborate monologue on
my depravity, had reached that point of indignation that only needs the
slightest additional pressure to produce an immediate explosion.

“What is this I hear, sir?” he asked me immediately in a tone that sent
all the Herbert blood tingling through every vein in my body, the more so
that I observed the look of righteous indignation planted on the jolly
visage of Mr. Knowles. “What is this I hear? That you refuse to go to
church any more, and that, as a natural consequence, the whole parish is
following your example?”

“The whole parish!” I ejaculated in amazement.

“Yes, sir; and what else should they do when the heads of the parish
neglect their duty as Christians and as English gentlemen?”

“Do their duty, I suppose; go or stay, as it pleases them,” I responded
sullenly. Mr. Knowles rose up to depart with the air of one who was about
to shake the dust off his feet against me; but my father detained him.

“Mr. Knowles, will you oblige me by remaining? I have put up with this
boy’s insolence too long. It must end somewhere. It shall end here.” He
was white and trembling with rage; but his tone lowered and his voice
grew steady as he went on. I was alarmed for his sake.

“Look here, sir. There is no more argument in a matter of this kind
between you and your father. There is no argument in a question of plain
and positive duty. Your family has been and still is looked up to in this
town; and rightly so, Mr. Knowles will permit me to add.” Mr. Knowles
bowed a gracious but solemn assent. “I have attended that church since I
was a child, as my father did before me, and as the Herberts have done
for generations, as befitted loyal and right-minded gentlemen. You have
done the same until recently. What has come over you of late I don’t
know, and, indeed, I don’t care. What I do care about is that I have
a position to sustain in this town, and a public duty to perform. The
Herberts are now, as they have ever been, known to all as a staunch,
loyal, church-going, God-fearing race. As the head of the family I
insist, and will insist while I live, that that character be maintained.
When I am gone, you may do as you please. But until that event occurs you
will take your old place by the side of your father and sister, or find
yourself another residence. Mr. Knowles, oblige me by staying to dinner.”

I was not present at dinner that day. I saw that expostulation was
useless, and accordingly held my tongue. I knew of old that there was
a certain pass where reasoning of any kind was lost on my father,
and a resolution taken at such a moment was irrevocably fixed. Like
father, like son. Even while he was addressing me I had quietly
resolved at all hazards to disobey his order. So much for all my fine
cogitations regarding the rules of right and wrong. Their first outcome
was a deliberate resolve at any hazard to disobey a loving and good
parent, backed up by all the spiritual power of the church and things
established, as represented in the person of Mr. Knowles. What my precise
duty under the circumstances was I am not prepared to say, although I
know very well that the opinion of that highly respectable authority
known as common-sense would decide the question against me. I was not
yet quite of age. If I belonged to any religion at all, I belonged to
that in which I had been brought up. For a young gentleman who professed
to be so anxious to do what was right, the duty of obedience to his
father in a matter where of all things that father was surely entitled to
obedience, and where the effort to obey cost so little, where the result
as regarded others could not but be satisfactory, not to say exemplary,
looked remarkably like an opportunity of regulating one’s conduct by the
best of rules at once. In fact, everything, according to common-sense,
voted dead against me. On the other hand there lay a great doubt--a doubt
sharpened and strengthened in the present instance by the very natural
resentment of a young gentleman who, perhaps unconsciously, had come to
regard many of his father’s opinions with something very like contempt,
being lectured publicly--the public being restricted to Mr. Knowles--by
that father, as though, instead of having just emerged from his teens, he
were still a schoolboy. Rebellion begins with the incipient moustache.
Those scrubby little blotches of growing hair on the upper lip of youth
mean much more than youth’s laughing friends can see in them. Their
roots are the roots of manhood. As the line grows and strengthens and
defines itself, each new hair marks a mighty step forward into the great
arena to which all boyhood looks with eagerness. It is the open charter
to rights that were not dreamed of before. And if the artist’s skill
can advance its growth by the use of delicate pigments, why, so much
the better. I was a man, and it was a man’s duty to assert himself, to
do what was becoming in a man, whatever the consequence might be. All
which meant that I was determined to rebel. Consequently, I declined to
meet the Reverend Mr. Knowles at dinner. I strolled out, with doubtless
a more independent stride than usual, to study the situation in all its
bearings, and resolve upon my future course of conduct; for in two days
it would be Sunday, and the crisis would have arrived.

The argument, interesting as it was to myself at the time, would scarcely
prove equally so to the reader, who will thank me for sparing him the
details. Doubtless many a one can look back into his own life and find a
similar instance of resolute disobedience, which, it is to be hoped, he
has as bitterly repented as I did this. Happy is he if he can recall only
one such instance; thrice happy if he is innocent of any! I was moral
coward enough to forestall my sentence by flight. I was young, strong,
and active, though hitherto I had had no very definite object whereon
to exercise my activity. The world was all before me; and the world, as
we all know, wears a very fascinating face to the youth of twenty who
has never yet looked behind the mask and seen all the ugly things that
practical philosophers assure us are to be found there. To him it is a
face wondrous fair; and heaven be thanked for the deception, if deception
it be, say I. The eyes beam with gentleness and love. Not a wrinkle marks
the smooth visage; not a frown disturbs it. On the broad, open brow is
written honesty; on the rosy lips are alluring smiles; in the tones of
the soft, low voice there is magical music. What if some see on that
same brow the mark of Cain; on the lips, cruelty; in the eyes, death;
on all the face a calculating coldness? Such are those who have failed,
who have missed life’s meaning and cast away their chances--youthful
philosophers who have been crossed in love, or voluptuaries of threescore
and ten. But to high-hearted youth the world holds up a magic mirror,
wherein he sees a fairy landscape full of harmony, and peace, and beauty,
and love, all grouped around a central figure surpassing all, beautifying
all--himself and his destiny!

Yes, I would go out into the world, like the prince in the
fairy-tales--he is always a prince--to seek my fortune. Up to the
present I had done absolutely nothing for myself. Everything had run in
a monotonous groove mapped out according to the conventional rule, as
regularly as a railway, and without even the pleasing excitement of an
accident. Why not begin now? Why not carve out my own destiny--carve is
an excellent term--in my own way? “The world was mine oyster, which with
my sword I’d open.” What though the oyster was rather large, who said he
was going to swallow it? It was the pearl within I sought; perish the
esculent! Who knows what discoveries I may not make, what impenetrable
forests pierce, what lonely princesses deliver from their charmed sleep,
what giant monsters slay on the way, bringing back the spoils some day
to my father--some day! say in six months or so--and, laying them at his
feet, cry out in triumph, “Father, behold the prodigal returned, not like
him of old, who had squandered his inheritance and fed on the husks of
swine, but as a mighty conqueror, the admired of fair women and the envy
of brave men! Father, this mighty potentate is I, Roger, your son, who
would not bow the knee to Knowles!”

It was a pleasing picture, and took my fancy amazingly. Had any young
friend of mine come to consult me at that moment on a similar project in
his own case, I believe my counsel to him would have been of the sagest.
I would have told him to go home and sleep over the matter; to be a good
boy and not anger a loving parent. I would have advised him that there
is nothing like doing the duty that lies plain before us; that there was
a world of wisdom and of truth in that sage maxim of S. Augustine, _Age
quod agis_--Do what you do; that his schemes were visionary, his plans
those of a schoolboy, who clearly enough knew nothing whatever of the
world (whose depths, of course, I had sounded), who might have read books
enough, but had not the slightest experience of that which is never to
be found in books--real life; that, in pursuit of a passing fancy, he
was neglecting the real business of life, and embarking on a voyage to
Nowhere in the good ship Nothing, and so on. That is the advice I should
have delivered to any of my young friends who were idiots enough to think
that _they_ could venture to set out on such a visionary road alone
and without map or chart to guide them. That is how we should all have
advised our friends. But with ourselves--with ourselves--ah! the case
is different. _We_ can always do what it would be the most presumptuous
folly in others to attempt. _We_ can safely thrust our hand into the
fire, up to the elbow even, where another dare not trust the tip of a
little finger. _We_ can touch pitch, and never show a soil. _We_ can go
down into hell, and come back laughing at the devil, who dare not touch
_us_. What would be moral death to another is a mere tonic to us. And
yet, and yet, He who taught us to pray gave us as a petition: “Father, …
lead us not into temptation, but deliver us from evil.”

My mind was made up; and let me add that the fear of putting my father
to the trying test of acting upon his resolution in my regard had no
small share in shaping my resolve. I did not see him that night, and on
the next day he was confined to his room by an attack that necessitated
calling in the doctor, and kept Nellie, whom I did not wish to see, by
his side most of the day. I felt that I could not meet her eye without
divulging all. I had never done anything that would cause more than a
passing care to those who loved me, and I now moved about the house
as though I were about to commit or had already committed a great
crime. Not accustomed to deception, it seemed to me that any passing
stranger--let alone Fairy Nell, who knew me through and through, and
had counted every hair of that incipient moustache already hinted at
as it came, from whom I had never kept a secret, not even the pigments
laid apart for the cultivation of that same moustache--would have
read in my guilty face, as plainly as though it were written down on
parchment, “Roger Herbert, you are going to run away from home--not a
pleasant excursion, my fine fellow, but a genuine bolt!” I packed up a
few necessaries, and collected such stray cash of my own as I could lay
hands on. The sum seemed a small fortune for a man resolved on entering
on such a resolute life of hard labor of some kind or another as I
had marked out for myself. Long before that was exhausted I should of
course be in a position to provide for myself. How that self-support was
to come about I had not yet exactly decided on; but that was to be an
after-consideration. While I was waiting for the night to come down and
shield my guilty purpose, Nellie stole in from my father’s room to tell
me he was sleeping, and that Dr. Fenwick said a good night’s rest would
relieve him from all danger, and in two or three days he would be himself
again. This comforted me and enabled me to be better on my guard against
the witcheries of Fairy, who came and sat down near me; for she had heard
or guessed at the dispute that had arisen, and, like an angel of a woman,
now that she had tended my father, came to administer a little crumb of
comfort to me before going to bed. What an effort it cost me to appear
drowsy and to yawn! I thought every yawn would have strangled me; but I
was resolved to be on my guard.

“How dreadfully sleepy you are to-night, Roger!” said the Fairy at last.

“Am I?” asked the Ogre, with a tremendous yawn.

“Why, you’ve done nothing but gape ever since I came in. I believe you
are getting quite lazy and good-for-nothing.”

“I believe so too.”

“Well, why don’t you do something?”

“I think I will.” Another yawn. “I’ll go to bed. Ten o’clock, by Jove!
What a shocking hour for well-behaved young ladies to be up! Come, Fairy,
I will do something some day. Is father better?”

“Yes, he is sleeping quite soundly.” Shaking her head and speaking in a
solemn little whisper: “_O you naughty boy!_”

Clear eyes, clear heart, clear conscience! How your mild innocence
pierces through and through us, rebuking the secret that we think so
safely hidden in the far-away depths of our souls! That gentle little
reproof of my sister smote me to the heart.

“Why, Roger, what is the matter with you?”

“It’s a fly; a--something in my eye--nothing. Let go my hands, Nell.”

“Look me in the face, sir. You are crying, Roger. You have been
pretending. You were not sleepy a bit. Dear, dear! Don’t go on like that;
you make me cry too.”

“Nellie, my own darling--Fairy--there, let me blow the candle out. I was
always a coward by candle-light. There, now I can talk. Nellie,” I went
on, clutching her close, her face wet with my tears as well as her own,
and white as marble in the moonlight--“Nellie, I have been an awfully
wicked fellow, haven’t I?”

“N-no”--sob, sob.

“Yes, I have; and father is very angry with me, isn’t he?”

“N-no.”

“Do you think that if I were to do something very bad you could forgive
me, Nellie?”

“You c-couldn’t do--anything b-bad--at all.”

“Well, now listen. I haven’t done much harm, I believe, so far; neither
have I done much good. And now I make you a solemn promise that from this
night out I will honestly try all I can, not only to do no harm, but to
do good--something for others as well as myself. Is that a fair promise,
Nell?”

“Dear, darling old Roger!” she murmured, kissing me. “I knew he was good
all the time. I know--you needn’t say any more. You are coming to church
with me to-morrow. How pleased papa will be, and how pleased I am! Here,
you shall have my own book to keep as a token of the promise. I’ll run
and fetch it at once.”

She tripped up-stairs and came back breathless, putting the book in my
hand.

“There, Roger; that seals our promise. I’ve just written inside, ‘Roger’s
promise to Nellie,’ and the date to remind you. That’s all. And now papa
will be well again. O Roger!”--she came and kissed me again, as I turned
my back to the window--“you have made me so happy. Good-night.”

I could not trust myself to speak again and undeceive her. I kissed her
and did not look at her any more. I heard her room-door close, and, after
standing a long time where she left me, I followed her up-stairs. I stole
to my father’s door and listened. I could hear his regular breathing;
he was sound asleep. I do not know how long I listened, but at length I
crept away to my own room. My resolution was terribly shaken by Nellie’s
innocent confidence in me. It is so much easier to endure harshness or
suspicion from persons to whom you know you are about to give pain. Why
didn’t she scold me, or turn up her pretty nose at me, or stick a pin
in me, or do something dreadful to me--anything rather than believe me
the best fellow in the world? But, after all, could I not return when I
pleased? I had often been away before for a month or more on a visit to
some friends--for months together at college. Why should I hesitate to go
now?

Poor Nellie’s book was placed in the very bottom of my bag, and then I
sat down and wrote the following letter:

    “NELLIE: I am going away for a little while--for a month or
    more, probably. You must not expect to hear anything of me
    within that time. If you do hear of me, it will probably be
    through Kenneth Goodal. Indeed, I leave England on Monday, and
    my return will depend altogether upon circumstances. Nobody
    knows of my going or of my destination--not even Kenneth; so
    that it will be useless to make any inquiries. Give my love
    to my dear father, and tell him that, wherever I may be, the
    thought of him will always accompany me and prevent me from
    doing anything unworthy his son and your loving brother,

                                                             ROGER.

    “P.S.--I will keep my promise.”

This note, sealed and addressed to Nellie, I left upon my table. I waited
until not a sound was to be heard through all the house, and again left
my room to listen at my father’s door. I listened at Nellie’s also.
Nothing could be heard in either. They were sound asleep--dreaming,
perhaps, of me. My window overlooked the garden, and a soft grass-plot
beneath received myself and my bag noiselessly, as I made the drop I had
so often done in play, to the mingled alarm and admiration of Fairy.
After a walk of about five minutes I lit a cigar, and felt somewhat more
companionable than before. The moon had gone down long since, and a faint
flush in the east low down on the horizon betokened the dawn. There was a
keenness in the air and a freshness all around that quickened the blood
and inspirited the faint heart. The sense of freedom awoke in me with
every stride that carried me away from my father’s house out into the
world, whose largeness I was beginning to feel for the first time. There
was something about the whole enterprise of novelty and boldness and
change that grew on me every mile of the way. I thought less and less
of the consternation and grief I might occasion to those I left behind
me, and whose existence was bound up in mine. And striding along in this
frame of mind, I reached Gnaresbridge, where I was not known. My walk of
eight miles had given me a tremendous appetite. I entered the railway
hotel, and, by way of beginning at once my life of privation and economy,
ordered a right royal breakfast, the best the railway hotel could offer.
I then took a first-class ticket for London, engaged a room for one
night at the Charing Cross Hotel, and, finding my own company not of the
liveliest, strolled out into the streets.

The London streets are beyond measure dull on a Sunday. There is a
constrained air of good-behavior and drilled respectability about the
crowds going to and coming from church at the stated hours that strikes
one with a chill after the bustle and noise of the other six days of the
week. Religion looks so oppressively dull and hopelessly solemn. The
citizens seem to run up the shutters in front of their own persons as
well as of their goods; to bolt and bar and case themselves in a wooden
stolidity of dull propriety that is mistaken for religion. I do not
say that it is not well done; I only say that to me, at least, on this
occasion it was disagreeable. The light spirits I had picked up on the
road dwindled down immediately at sight of the solemn city, with its
solemn crowds. The sombre gray of my surroundings seemed to settle on my
mind and heart like ashes from which every spark had gone out. I fell
a-musing, and involuntarily followed one of the streams of people that
were moving along slowly to some place of worship. I felt sick at heart,
and wished for the morrow to come that was to bear me away somewhere out
of this tame and conventional life, where religion as well as business
followed a fixed routine. Before I knew or had time to think how I
had got there, I found myself in a Catholic church. I knew it to be a
Catholic church by the altar, and the crucifixes, and the Stations of the
Cross around the walls, and the general appearance of the congregation.
There is something about a Catholic congregation that distinguishes
it at once from all others. Heaven seems a happier place somehow from
a Catholic point of view. I had visited Catholic churches before, but
was never present at the Mass, and was about to retire as soon as I
discovered my whereabouts, when curiosity, mingled with the conviction
that I might be as comfortably miserable there as outside, detained me,
and I remained. Somebody directed me to a seat close to the altar, where
I could see everything perfectly.

The service was varied and full of dignified movements, but I could not
understand its meaning. The singing was good, it seemed to my poor ear;
but I could not say the same for the sermon. A quiet, pious-looking
gentleman preached from the altar a long and, to me, tedious discourse.
He seemed in earnest, however, and now and then his pale, worn face
would light up--once or twice especially when he spoke of the “Mother of
God.” Indeed, I found myself just becoming interested when the sermon
concluded. There was something far more impressive to me than the
priest’s discourse, than the solemn music, than the gleaming lights, than
the slow and reverent movements at the altar, in the congregation itself.
The people preached a silent but most telling sermon. I looked furtively
around, and watched them. Whether they were mistaken or not, whether they
were idolaters or not, there was certainly no sham about them; after all,
there was something thorough about this Religion of Rags. Beyond doubt
they prayed in real, downright earnest. One man differed from another;
one woman from her sister; this one was in rags, that in silks; this
man might be a lord, and his neighbor a beggar; but there was something
common to them all. They seemed, as they knelt there, possessed of one
heart and one soul. They appeared even one body. Their prayer seemed
universal and to pass from one to another out and up to God. All seemed
to _feel_ an Invisible Presence, which, from association, doubtless,
I could have persuaded myself that I also felt. A bell tinkles, once,
twice, thrice; once, twice, thrice again. There is an instantaneous hush;
the low breathing of the organ has ceased; and every head and heart is
bowed down in silent and awful adoration. Involuntarily I also knelt and
bowed.

Deeply impressed, I left the church at the conclusion of the service,
and seemed to be walking in a dream, when a light touch on my shoulder
startled and recalled me to my senses, while a voice whispered in my ear:

“Heretic, heretic! what dost thou here?”

It was Kenneth Goodal who stood smiling before me. The tears sprang to my
eyes, but he was too much himself to notice them. He drew my arm in his,
and led me to a carriage that was waiting near the door of the church.
Within the carriage sat a beautiful lady, whose likeness to Kenneth was
too apparent not to recognize her at once as his mother. “I have brought
you a treasure,” said Kenneth, addressing her; “this is the very Roger
Herbert of whom I have spoken to you so much. Who would have dreamed of
catching my heretic at Mass?” We were rolling along through the dull
streets by this time, but it was wonderful to think how their dulness
had suddenly departed. “Yes, actually at Mass. And I verily believe he
blessed himself and said his prayers like a true Christian. And where of
all places should they plant you but right in front of me?”

Kenneth’s mother was a sweet lady--just the kind of woman, indeed, I
should have expected Kenneth’s mother to be. To great intelligence and
that keen power of observation so noticeable in her son were added the
charms of a face and person that defied time, while the veil of true
Christian womanhood fell over, softened, and chastened all. She was a
fervent Catholic, who went about doing good. Kenneth laughingly told me
that her conversion had cost him a great deal more trouble and difficulty
than his own; but hers once attained, his father’s followed almost as a
matter of course. Mrs. Goodal had always been so pure and blameless in
her own life that her very excellence constituted a most difficult but
intangible barrier to her son’s theological batteries. Even if she became
a Catholic, what could she be other than she was? she had asked him once.
Of what crimes was she guilty, that she should change her religion at
the whim of a youthful enthusiast? Did she not pray to God every day of
her life? Did she not give alms, visit the sick, comfort the sorrowful,
clothe the naked? What did the Catholic ladies do that she did not?
She was not, and did not mean to become, a Sister of Charity, devoting
herself absolutely to prayer and good works. Her place was in the world.
God had placed her there, and there she would remain, doing her duty to
the best of her ability as a Christian wife and mother.

It was certainly a hard case, and she was greatly strengthened in her
position by her grand ally, Lady Carpton. Both these excellent women
grieved sorely over Kenneth’s defection; for Kenneth was an especial
favorite of Lady Carpton’s, and had been smiled upon by her fair
daughter, Maud. The two ladies had taken it into their heads that
Kenneth and Maud were admirably matched, and their marriage had long
ago been fixed upon by the respective mammas, who never kept a secret
from each other since they had been bosom friends together at school.
The announcement of Kenneth’s joining the Religion of Rags fell like a
bombshell into the camp of the allies, scattering confusion and dealing
destruction on all sides. Lady Carpton washed her hands of him, and
came to the immediate conclusion that “the boy’s mental obliquity was
inexplicable. The rash and ridiculous step he had taken was fatal to
all his prospects in this life, not to speak of those in the next. He
had inexcusably abandoned the social position for which his connections
and his rational gifts had eminently fitted him. She had been deceived,
fatally deceived, in him. He had destroyed his own future, disgraced his
family, and consigned himself henceforward to a life of uselessness and
oblivion.”

Lady Carpton, when fairly roused, had an eloquence as well as a temper
of her own. Majestically washing her hands of Kenneth, she immediately
encouraged the attentions of Lord Cheshunt to her daughter. From jackets
upwards Lord Cheshunt had worshipped the very ground upon which Maud
trod, as far as it was given to the soul of Lord Cheshunt to worship
anything or anybody at all. Maud resembled her mother. Great as her
liking--it was never more--for Kenneth had been, her virtuous indignation
was greater. With some sighs, doubtless, perhaps with some tears, she
renounced for ever Kenneth the renegade, and took in his stead, as a
dutiful daughter should do, her share in the lands, appurtenances,
rent-roll, and all other belongings of Lord Cheshunt, with his lordship
into the bargain. It was on her return from the bridal trip that her
mamma, with tears of vexation in her eyes, informed her of the cruel blow
that the friend of her girlhood had dealt her--out of small personal
spite, she was certain. The friend of her girlhood was Mrs. Goodal, who
had actually followed that scapegrace son of hers to Rome--had positively
become a Catholic! And as though to confirm the wretched saying that
misfortunes never come alone, between them they had dragged into their
fatal web that dear, good-natured, unsuspecting Mr. Goodal, just at the
moment when he was about to be returned in High Church interest for his
native borough of Royston. Thus “the cause” had lost another vote, at a
time, too, when “the cause” sadly needed recruiting in the parliamentary
ranks. “My dear,” she said impressively to Maud, “you have had a very
fortunate escape. Who knows what might have become of you? Lord Cheshunt
may not possess that young man’s intellect”--and Maud was already obliged
to confess that superabundance of intellect was scarcely Lord Cheshunt’s
besetting weakness--“but you see to what mental depravity the fatal gift
of intellect may conduct a self-willed young man. Poor dear Lord Byron
is just such another instance. Mark my word for it, Kenneth Goodal will
become a Jesuit yet!”--a fatality that to Lady Carpton’s imagination
presented little short of the satanic.

I spent a very pleasant day and evening with the Goodals--so pleasant
that it was not until I found myself saying “good-night” to Kenneth in
the street that the occurrences of the last few days flashed upon me.
“You will not forget your promise of coming to-morrow,” he said, as he
was shaking hands.

“To-morrow! Did I promise to spend to-morrow with you?” I asked.

“So Mrs. Goodal will assure you on your arrival.”

“Good heavens! did I make so foolish a promise? I cannot have thought of
what I was saying,” I muttered, half to myself.

“Well, I will call for you in the morning. By the bye, where are you
staying?” asked Kenneth.

“No, no. The fact is, I purposed leaving town again immediately. My
visit was merely a flying one. You must make my excuses to your mother,
Kenneth.”

“She will never hear of them. Traitor! thou hast promised, and thy
promise is sacred.”

“It was really a mistake. Well, if I decide on remaining in town over
to-morrow, I will come. If--if I should not come, tell your mother how
charmed I was with her, and with your father also. Kenneth, I should be
so glad if she would pay Nellie a visit--my sister, you know. Indeed, I
am very anxious that she should see Nellie as soon as possible.”

“But you forget again that you owe us a visit. Why not come at once? You
had better stay and send for your father and sister.”

“Well, I will sleep on the matter. Good-night, old fellow. In the
meanwhile do not forget my request.”

Again my resolution was terribly shaken. I went over the entire story,
and weighed all the _pros_ and _cons_ of the question, as I walked
back to my hotel. I had not yet even determined where to go, still
less what to do. On arriving at the hotel I went to the smoking-room,
feeling no inclination for slumber. It had only a single occupant--a
naval officer, to judge by his costume. He reached me a light, and made
some conventional remark on the weather, or some such subject. He was a
jovial-looking, red-faced man of about forty or forty-five, with a merry
eye and a pleasant voice, and a laugh that had in it something of the
depth and the strength and the healthy flavor of the sea. My cigar soon
coming to an end, he offered me one of his own with the remark:

“I like a pipe myself, with good strong Cavendish steeped in rum. The
rum gives it a wholesome flavor. But ashore I always smoke cigars. You
want a stiffish bit o’ sea-breeze up, and then you can enjoy the true
flavor of a pipe of Cavendish. All your Havanas in the world aren’t half
as sweet. But ashore here, why, Lord, Lord! a pipe o’ Cavendish would
smell from one end o’ the city to t’other, and all London would turn up
its nose. So I’m obliged to put up with Havanas,” said the captain (I was
sure he was a captain) ruefully.

“What is a mortification to you would be a pleasure to many,” I remarked
sagely.

“Ever been to sea?” he asked abruptly.

“Never,” I responded laconically.

He looked at me with a kind of pity in his glance.

“What! never been outside o’ this cranky little island, where men have
hardly got room to blow their noses?” he asked in amazement.

“Never,” I responded again. “And what’s more, up to the day before
yesterday I never wished to go.”

My seafaring friend sighed and smoked in silence. The silence grew
solemn, and I thought he would not condescend to address me again. At
length, however, he said:

“You’re a Londoner, I guess.”

I guessed negatively; but not at all abashed at his mistake, he went on:

“Well, it’s all the same. All Londoners an’t born in London, any more
than all Englishmen are born in England. But they’re all the same. A
Londoner never cares to study any geography beyond his sixpenny map o’
London. The Marble Arch and Temple Bar, Hyde Park and London Bridge, are
his points o’ the compass. Guild Hall and the Houses o’ Parliament mean
more to him than the East or West Indies, the Himalaya Mountains, North
or South America, or the Pyramids. The Strand is bigger than the equator,
and the National Gallery a finer building than S. Peter’s. Your thorough,
home-bred Englishman is about the most vigorously ignorant man I’ve ever
sailed across; and I’m an Englishman myself who say it. I do believe
it’s their very ignorance that has made them masters of the best part of
the world, and the worst masters the world has ever seen. They never see
or know or believe anything outside of London, and the consequence is,
they’re always making mighty blunders. There, there’s a yarn, and a yarn
always makes me thirsty. What will you drink?”

I found my new companion a shrewd and observant man under a somewhat
rough coating. He was captain of a steamer belonging to one of the great
lines that ply between England and the United States, and his vessel
sailed for New York the next day. Here was an opportunity of ending at
once all my doubts and hesitations. But on broaching the subject to the
captain I found him grow at once cautious, not to say suspicious. That
fatal admission about my never having been to sea at all told terribly
against me. Then he wanted to know if I had a companion of any kind with
me, which I took to be sailor’s English for asking if it were a runaway
match. Satisfied on this point, he grew more suspicious still. Running
away with a young lass he could understand, and perhaps be brought to
pardon; but if it was not that, then what earthly object could I have in
going to New York all alone?

“The fact is, youngster,” he blurted out at length, “you see it an’t
all fair and above-board with you. Youngsters like you don’t make
up their minds in half an hour to go to New York; and if they do,
they’ve no business to. If you was a little younger, I should call in a
policeman, and tell him you had run away from home. I don’t want to help
youngsters--nor anybody else, for that matter--to run into scrapes. There
will be some one crying for you, you know, and that an’t pleasant now.
Now, then, out with it, and let’s have the whole story. There’s something
wrong, and a clean breast, like a good sea-sickness, will relieve you.
It’s a little unpleasant at first, but you’ll feel all the better for it
afterwards. Trust an old sailor’s word for that.”

I do not attempt to give the pleasant nautical terms with which my
excellent friend, the captain, garnished his discourse. However, I told
him my story, sufficiently at least to diminish, if not quite to allay,
the worthy man’s scruples about my projected trip, which, of course,
was only to last until the storm at home blew over. Finally, at a very
early hour in the morning it was resolved that I should make my first
voyage with the captain, and that same day I penned, and in the afternoon
despatched, the following note to Kenneth:

    “MY DEAR KENNETH: By the time you receive this I shall be
    on my way to the United States. I said nothing to you of my
    plans last night, because, had I done so, I fear they might
    not have been put in execution without some unnecessary pain
    and difficulties. My chief reason for leaving England is the
    great doubt and perplexity that have fallen upon me. Any
    hope of clearing up such doubt in Leighstone would be absurd.
    There all persons and all things run in established grooves,
    and are more or less under the influence of traditions, many
    of which have for me utterly lost all force and meaning. A
    little rubbing with the world, a little hard work, of which I
    know nothing, the sweetness as well as the anxiety of genuine
    struggle in places and among persons where I shall be simply
    another fellow-struggler, can do no great harm, even if it does
    no great good. At all events, it will be a change; and a change
    of some kind I had long contemplated. A little difficulty with
    my father about not attending church as usual scarcely hastened
    my resolution to leave Leighstone. I should feel very grateful
    to you if you could assure him of this, as I took the liberty
    on leaving of telling my sister that they would next hear of
    me in all probability through you. My father’s kind heart and
    love for me may lead him to lay too great stress upon what in
    reality nowise affected my conduct and feelings towards him.
    Time is up, I find, and I can only add that wherever I may go
    I shall carry with me, warm in my heart, the friendship so
    strangely begun between us.

                                                        “R. HERBERT.”

I do not purpose giving here the history of my first struggles with the
world, as they contain nothing particularly exciting or romantic. The
circumstances that led to my connection with Mrs. Jinks and Mr. Culpepper
are easily explained. My small fortune disappeared with astonishing
rapidity, and, unless I did something to replenish my dwindling purse
very speedily, there was nothing left save to beg or starve. I would
neither write home nor to Kenneth, being vain enough to believe that
the smallest scrap of paper with my address on it would be the signal
for the emigration by next steamer of half Leighstone, with no other
purpose than to see me, its lost hero. Poverty led me to Mr. Culpepper
among others, and the same stern guardian introduced me to Mrs. Jinks.
I must confess--and the confession may be a warning to young gentlemen
inclined at all to grow weary of a snug home--that any particular romance
attached to my venture very soon faded out of sight. The world was not
quite so pleasant a friend as I had expected. The practical philosophers
were right after all. Dear, dear! how the wrinkles began to multiply in
his face, and what suspicious glances shot out of those eyes, that grew
colder and colder as my boots began to run down at heel, and my elbows
gave indications of a violent struggle for air. It required a vast amount
of resolution to keep me from volunteering to work my passage back to
England. I was often lonely, often weary, often sad, often hungry even.
But lonely, weary, sad, and hungry as I might be, I soon contrived to
become acquainted with others who were many times more sad, lonely, and
weary than I--poor wretches to whom my position at its worst seemed that
of a prince. The most wretched man in all this world is yet to be found.
Of that truth I became more deeply convinced every day. It was a fact
held up constantly before my eyes, and I believe that it did me good. It
was an excellent antidote to anything in the shape of pride. Pride! Great
heavens! what wretched little, creeping, struggling mortals most of us
were; crawling on from day to day, inch by inch, little by little, now
over a little mound that seemed so high, and took such infinite labor to
reach; now down in a little hollow that seemed the very depths, and yet
was only a few inches lower than yesterday’s elevation. There we were,
gasping and struggling for light and food and air day after day. Poverty
reads terrible lessons. It levels us all. Some it softens, while others
it hardens; some it sanctifies, multitudes it leads to crime.

Not that a gleam of sunshine never came to us. Some stray ray will
penetrate the darkest alley and crookedest winding, and warm and gladden
and give at least a moment’s life and hope and cheerfulness to something,
provided only a pinhole be left open to the heaven that is smiling above
us all the while. I began to make acquaintances, pleasant enough some
of them, others not so pleasant. There was much food for meditation
and mental colloquy in the daily life I was living, but I had no time
for such indulgence. I was compelled to work very hard; for this was
certainly not a vineyard where the laborers were few; and the harvest,
when gathered in, was but a sorry crop at the best. Is not the history of
the human race the record of one long and unsuccessful expedition after
the Golden Fleece? Such stray remnants of it as fell into my hand went
for the most part, for a long time at least, into the treasury of Mrs.
Jinks, who, like a female Atreus, served up my own children, the children
of my brain, or their equivalents, to me at table. Horrid provender!
One week it was an art criticism--dressed up with wonderful condiments
and melted down into mysterious soup, whose depths I shuddered to
penetrate--that sustained the life in me. Another time it was a fugitive
poem that took the form of roast beef and potatoes. A cruel critique on
some poor girl’s novel would give me ill dreams as pork-chops. A light,
brisk, airy social essay would solidify into mutton. And so it went on,
week in week out, the round of the table. An inspiriting life truly,
where your epigrams mean cutlets, and all the brilliant fancies of your
imagination go for honest bread and butter.

I believe that Mrs. Jinks secretly entertained the profoundest contempt
for me and my calling, mingled with a touch of pity for a young,
strong fellow who had missed his vocation, and who, instead of moping
and groping over ink-pots and scraps of paper, might be earning an
honest living like the butcher’s young man over the way--an intimate
acquaintance and close personal friend of mine who “kept company” with
Mrs. Jinks’ Jane. I ventured once to ask Mrs. Jinks whether she did not
consider literary labor an honest mode of earning a living; but I was not
encouraged to ask a similar question a second time. “She’d knowed littery
gents afore now; knowed ’em to her cost, she had. They was for ever
a-grumblin’ at their board, and nothing was good enough for them, though
they ate more than any two of her boarders put together, and always went
away owin’ her three months, besides a-borrerin’ no end o’ money and
things.” Such was Mrs. Jinks’ experienced opinion of “littery gents.”
She was gracious enough to add: “You know I don’t say this of _you_,
Mr. Herbert. _You_ don’t seem to eat as well as most on ’em. You don’t
grumble at whatever you git. _You_ don’t borrer, and you never fetches
friends home with you at half-past three in the mornin’, as doesn’t know
which is their heads and which is their heels, and a-tryin’ to open the
street-door with their watchkeys; tellin’ Mr. Jinks, who is a temperance
man, the next mornin’, that you’d been to a temperance meetin’ the night
afore, and took too much water. No, Mr. Herbert, I wouldn’t believe _you_
capable of such goins-on. But that’s because you an’t a reg’lar littery
gent; _you’re_ only what they calls an amatoor.”

Mrs. Jinks was right; I was only an amateur, though I had a faint
ambition some day of being regularly enrolled in “the profession.” I
flattered myself that I was advancing, however slowly, to that end. More
than a year had now flown by since I had left home. I came to be more and
more absorbed in my work, and the days and months glided silently past
me without my noticing them. This close and intense absorption succeeded
in shutting out to a great extent the thoughts of home. Indeed, I would
not allow my mind to rest on that subject; for when I did, I was quite
unmanned. It was not until I had made sufficient trial of the sweet
bitterness or bitter sweetness, as may be, of what was a hard and often
seemed a hopeless struggle, that I wrote to Kenneth under the strictest
pledge of secrecy, giving him a true and unvarnished account of my life
since we parted, and transmitting at the same time certain evidences
of what I was pleased to accept as the dawn of success in the shape of
sundry articles in _The Packet_ and other journals. He was enjoined
merely to inform them at home that I was in the enjoyment of good health
and reaping a steady income of, at an average, ten dollars a week, which
I hoped soon to be able to increase; and by a continuance of steady work
and the strictest economy I had every hope, if I lived to the age of
Methusaleh, of being in a position to retire on a moderate competency,
and end my patriarchal days in serene retirement and contemplation under
the shade of my own fig-tree. I described Mrs. Jinks and her household
arrangements at considerable length, and did that estimable lady infinite
credit, while I drew a companion picture of Mr. Culpepper that would
have done honor to the journal of which he was the distinguished chief.
But put not your trust in bosom friends! Mine utterly disregarded my
binding pledge, and the only answer I received to my letter was in
Nellie’s well-known handwriting on the occasion and in the manner already
described.

       *       *       *       *       *

That was a stormy passage back to England. We were detained both by
stress of weather and an accident that occurred when only a few days
out. It was the morning of Christmas eve when at length we landed at
Liverpool. The delay had exasperated me almost into a fever. I despatched
a telegram to Nellie announcing my arrival, and that I should be in
Leighstone that evening. The train was crowded with holiday folk: happy
children going home for the Christmas holidays; stout farmers, red and
hearty, hurrying back from the Christmas market; bright-eyed women loaded
with Christmas baskets and barricaded by parcels of every description.
The crisp, cold air seemed redolent of Christmas pudding and good cheer.
The guard wished us a merry Christmas as he examined our tickets. The
stations flashed a merry Christmas on us out of their gay festoons of
holly and ivy with bright-red berries and an ermine fringe of snow, as
we flew along, though it seemed to me that we were crawling. Just as
we entered London the snow began to fall, and I was grateful for it. I
was weary of the clear, cold, pitiless sky under which we had passed.
London was in an uproar, as it always is on a Christmas eve; but the
uproar rather soothed me than otherwise. What I dreaded was quiet, when
my own thoughts and fears would compel me to listen to their remorse
and foreboding. I saw lights flashing. I heard voices calling through
the fog and the snow. Songs were sung, and men and women talked in a
confused and meaningless jargon together. I heard the sounds and moved
among the multitude, but with a far-off sense as in a dream. How I found
my way about at all is a mystery to me, unless it were with that secret
instinct that guides the sleep-walker. I saw nothing but the white snow
falling, falling, white and silent and deadly cold, covering the earth
like a shroud. I remember thinking of Charles I., and how on the day of
his death all England was draped in a snow-shroud. That incident always
impressed me when a boy as so sad and significant. And here was my
Christmas greeting after more than a year’s absence: the sad snow falling
thicker and thicker as I neared home, steadily, solemnly, silently down,
with never a break or quaver in it, mystic, wonderful, impalpable as a
sheeted ghost; and more than a month ago my sister called me away from
another world to tell me that my father was dying.

“Great God! great God!” I moaned, “in whom I believe, against whom I have
sinned, to whom alone I can pray, spare him till I come.”

“Leighstone! Leighstone!” rang out the voice of the guard.

I staggered from the railway carriage, stumbled, and fell. I had tasted
nothing the whole day. The guard picked me up roughly--the very guard who
used to be such a great friend of mine in the old days--a year seemed
already old days. He did not recognize me now. I suppose he thought me
drunk, for I heard him say, “That chap’s beginning his Christmas holidays
pretty early,” and a loud laugh greeted the sally. I contrived to make
my way outside the little station. Not a soul recognized me, and I was
afraid to ask any one for information, dreading the answer that I could
not have borne. Outside the station my strength gave out. My head grew
dizzy; I staggered blindly towards some carriages drawn up in front of
me, and fell fainting at the feet of one of the horses.

My eyes opened on faces that I did not recognize. Some one was holding up
my head, and there were strange men around me. “Thank God! he recovers,”
said a voice I knew well, and all came back on me in a flash.

“Kenneth!” I cried, “Kenneth! Is he dead?”

“Hush, old boy. Take it easy. Rest awhile.”

His silence was sufficient.

“My God! I am punished!” I gasped out, and fainted again.

TO BE CONCLUDED NEXT MONTH.


THE CARDINALATE.

I.

The Senate and Sovereign Council of the Pope in the government and
administration of the affairs of the church in Rome and throughout the
world is composed of a number of very distinguished ecclesiastics who
are called Cardinals. The office and dignity of a member of this body is
termed the Cardinalate.

There is some dispute among the learned about the precise origin and
meaning of the word cardinal as applied to such a person; but the
commoner opinion derives it from the Latin _cardo_, the hinge of a
door, which is probably correct; but the reason assigned for the
appellation--because the Cardinals are, in a figurative sense, the pivots
around which revolve the portals of Christian Rome--is more descriptive
than accurate. At a comparatively early age the parish priests of the
churches, and later the canons of the cathedrals of Milan, Ravenna,
Naples, and other cities of Italy, also in parts of France, Spain, and
other countries, were called cardinals; and Muratori suggests that the
name was taken in imitation, and perhaps in emulation, of the chief
clergymen of the church in Rome. He thinks that they were so called
at Rome and elsewhere because put in possession of, or immovably
attached--_incardinati_--to certain churches, which was expressed in
low Latin by the verb _cardinare_ or _incardinare_, formed, indeed,
from _cardo_ as above, and the application of which in this sense
receives an illustration from Vitruvius, who writes, in his treatise on
architecture, of _tignum cardinatum_--one beam fitted into another.

Our oldest authority for the institution of the cardinalate is found in a
few words of unquestionable authenticity in the _Liber Pontificalis_, or
_Lives of the Popes_, extracted and compiled from very ancient documents
by Anastasius the Librarian in the IXth century. It is there written
of S. Cletus, who lived in the year 81, was an immediate disciple of
the Prince of the Apostles, and his successor only once removed: “Hic
ex præcepto beati Petri XXV[95] presbyteros ordinavit in urbe Roma,
mense decembri.” These priests, ordained by direction of blessed Peter,
formed a select body of councillors to assist the pope in the management
of ecclesiastical affairs, and are the predecessors of those who were
afterwards called cardinals of the Holy Roman Church. Hence Eugene IV.
said in his constitution _Non Mediocri_ (_XIX Bull. Mainardi_) that
the office of cardinal was evidently instituted by S. Peter and his
near successors. Again, in the _Life of Evaristus_, who became pope in
the year 100, we read: “Hic titulos in urbe Roma divisit presbyteris.”
To this day the old churches of the city, at the head of which stand
the cardinal-priests, are called titles, and all writers agree that
the designation was given under this pontificate. There is hardly less
difference of opinion about the original meaning of this word than there
is about that of cardinal. Some have imagined that the fiscal mark put on
objects belonging to, or that had devolved upon, the sovereign in civil
administration being called _titulus_ in Latin, the same word was applied
by Christians to those edifices which were consecrated to the service
of God; the ceremonies, such as the sprinkling of holy water and the
unction of oil used in the act of setting them apart for divine worship,
marking them as belonging henceforth to the Ruler of heaven and earth.
Others think that as a special mention was made in the ordination of a
priest of the particular church in which he was to serve, it was called
his title, as though it gave him a new name with his new character; and
this may be the reason of a custom, once universal, of calling a cardinal
by the name of his church instead of by his family name.[96] Father
Marchi, in his work on the _Early Christian Monuments of Rome_, has
given several mortuary inscriptions which have been discovered of these
ancient Roman priests and dignitaries, and from which we take these two:
“Locus Presbyteri Basili Tituli Sabinæ,” and “Loc. Adeodati Presb. Tit.
Priscæ.” After _locus_ in the first and its abbreviation in the second
inscription, the word _depositionis_--“of being laid to rest”--must be
understood.

Let us here remark with the erudite Cenni that these titled priests were
not such as were afterwards called parish priests or rectors of churches,
with whom they were never confounded, and over whom, as intermediaries
between them and the pope, they had authority. These titulars were
a select body of men not higher in point of _order_, but otherwise
distinct from and superior to those priests who had parochial duties to
perform within certain limits. Whether we believe that cardinal meant
originally one who was chief in a certain church, just as was said (Du
Cange’s _Glossarium_) _Cardinalis Missa, Altare Cardinale_, and as we
say in English, cardinal virtues, cardinal points; or whether we accept
it as one who was appointed to a particular church, it is not true
that the _Roman_ cardinals were so called either because they were the
chief priests--_parochi_--of certain churches, or because they were
attached--_incardinati_--to a title. The great Modenese author on Italian
antiquities has been deceived by similarity of name into stating that the
origin and office of the cardinals of Rome did not differ from that of
those of other churches (Devoti, _Inst. Can._, vol. i. p. 188, note 4).
Observe that the ordination performed by Cletus was done by direction of
blessed Peter; that it was that of a special corps of priests; that it
was not successive, but at one time, and that in the month of December,
the same which an unbroken local tradition teaches is the proper
season[97] for the creation of cardinals, out of respect for the first
example. Now, the pope surely needed no special injunction to continue
the succession of the sacred ministry; we may consequently believe that
the ordination made by him with such particular circumstances was an
extraordinary proceeding, distinct from, although immediately followed
by, the administration of the sacrament of Orders. Therefore if after
the Evaristan distribution of titles the successors of these Cletan
priests came to be called cardinals, it was not so much (accepting
the origin of the _name_ given above) because they were attached to
particular churches as because they were attached _in solidum_ to the
Roman Church, the mother and mistress of all churches, or, better still,
as more conformable to the words of many popes and saints, because they
were attached to (some good authors say incorporated with) the Roman
pontiff. And it is in this figurative but very suggestive sense that Leo
IV. writes of one of his cardinals whom he calls “Anastasius presbyter
_cardinis nostri_, quem nos in titulo B. Marcelli Mart. atque pontif.
ordinavimus” (Labbe, _Conc._, tom. ix. col. 1135). In the same sense
S. Bernard, addressing Eugene III., calls the cardinals his coadjutors
and collaterals, and says (_Ep._ 237) that their business is to assist
him in the government of the whole church, and (_Ep._ 150) that in
spiritual matters they are judges of the world. Not otherwise did Pope
John VIII., in the year 872, write that as he filled in the new law the
office of Moses in the old, so his cardinals represented the seventy
elders chosen to assist him. For this reason cardinals alone are ever
chosen legates _a latere_--_i. e._, _Summi Pontificis_. The cardinals of
Rome, therefore, were not cardinals because they had titles, but just
the contrary. We have been a little prolix on a point that might seem
minute, because there was once a determined effort made in some parts of
France and Italy, especially during the last century, to try to prove
that the cardinals of the Roman Church were no more originally than any
other priests having cure of souls in the first instance, except that by
a fortunate accident they ministered in the capital of the then known
world. This was an attempt to depress the dignity of the cardinalate, or
at least, by implication, to give undue importance to the status of a
parish priest, as though he and a cardinal were once on the same footing.
The like insidious argument would be prepared to show, on occasion, that
the pope himself was in the beginning no more than any other bishop.
The same name was often used in the early church of two persons, but of
each in a different sense; and thus the mere fact of there having been
cardinals in other churches than that at Rome no more diminishes the
superior authority and higher dignity of the Roman cardinalate than the
name of pope, once common to all bishops, lessens the supremacy of the
Roman pontificate. In ecclesiastical antiquities a common name often
covers very different offices. In general, however, the instinct of
Catholics will always be able to make the proper distinction, no matter
how things are called; and the words of Alvaro Pelagio, who wrote his
lachrymose treatise _De Planctu Ecclesiæ_ about the year 1330, show how
different was the popular opinion of the provincial and of the urban
cardinals: “Sunt et in Ecclesia Compostellana cardinales presbyteri
mitrati, et in Ecclesia Ravennate. _Tales cardinales sunt derisui potius
quam honori._” The name of cardinal was certainly in use at the beginning
of the IVth century; for the seven cardinal-deacons of the Roman Church
are mentioned in a council held under Pope Sylvester in 324; and a
document of the pontificate of Damasus in 367, registering a donation
to the church of Arezzo by the senator Zenobius, is subscribed in these
words: “I, John, of the Holy Roman Church, a cardinal-deacon, on the part
of Damasus, praise this act and confirm it.” Among the archives, also, of
S. Mary in Trastevere, there is mention of Paulinus, a cardinal-priest
in 492. The name of cardinal was restricted by a just and peremptory
decree of S. Pius V. in 1567 exclusively to the cardinals of pontifical
creation, and it was only then that the haughty canons of Ravenna dropped
this high-sounding appellation. The idea figuratively connected with the
cardinalship in the edifice of the Holy Roman Church is briefly exposed
by Pope Leo IX., a German, in a letter to the Emperor of Constantinople.
“As the gate itself,” he says, “doth rest upon its post, thus upon
Peter and his successors dependeth the government of the whole church.
Wherefore his clerics are called cardinals, because they are most closely
adhering to that about which revolveth all the rest” (_Labbe_, tom.
ii. _Epist._ i. cap. 22.) The author of an old poem on the Roman court
(_Carmen de Curia Romana_) gives in a few lines the principal points of a
cardinal’s pre-eminence:

    “Dic age quid faciunt quibus est a cardine nomen
      Post Papam, quibus est immediatus honor?
    Expediunt causas, magnique negotia mundi,
      Extinguunt lites, fœdera rupta ligant.
    Isti participes onerum, Papæque laborum,
      Sustentant humeris grandia facta suis.”

More completely, however, than anywhere else are the rights,
prerogatives, and dignity of the cardinalate set forth in the 76th
_Constitution_ of Sixtus V., beginning _Postquam ille verus_, of May 13,
1585.

A fact recorded by John the Deacon in the life of S. Gregory I. shows us
how high was the office and rank of a cardinal, and that to be appointed
to a bishopric was considered a descent from a higher position. He
says that this great pope was always careful to obtain the consent of
a cardinal before appointing him to govern a diocese, lest he should
seem, by removing him from the person of Christ’s Vicar, to give him a
lower place: “Ne sub hujusmodi occasione quemquam _eliminando deponere
videretur_.” That bishops undoubtedly considered the cardinalate, in
the light of influence on the affairs of the whole church and the
prospect of becoming pope, as superior to the episcopate, appears at
an early period, from a canon which it was necessary to make in order
to repress their ambition in this direction. In a council held at Rome
in the year 769 this canon was passed: “Si quis ex episcopis … contra
canonum et sanctorum Patrum statuta prorumpens in gradum Majorum[98]
sanctæ Romanæ Ecclesiæ, id est presbyterorum cardinalium et diaconorum,
ire præsumpserit, … et hanc apostolicam sedem invadere … tentaverit, et
ad summum pontificalem honorem ascendere voluerit, … fiat perpetuum
anathema.”

There was at one period not a little divergence of opinion about the
precedence of cardinals over bishops; but the matter has long ago been
irrevocably settled. A cardinal, indeed, cannot, unless invested with
the episcopal character, perform any act that depends for its validity
upon such a character, nor can he lawfully invade the jurisdiction
of a bishop; but apart from this his _rank_ in the church is always,
everywhere, and under all circumstances superior to that of any bishop,
archbishop, metropolitan, primate, or patriarch. Nor can it be said
that this is an anomaly, unless we are also prepared to condemn other
decisions of the church; for the precedence of cardinals over bishops has
a certain parity with that of the archdeacons in old times over priests,
which very example is brought forward by Eugene IV. in 1431 to convince
Henry, Archbishop of Canterbury, who had a falling out with Cardinal
John of Santa Balbina: “Quoniam in hujusmodi prælationibus officium
ac dignitas, sive jurisdictio, præponderat ordini, quemadmodum jure
cautum est ut archidiaconus, non presbyter suæ jurisdictionis obtentu,
archipresbytero præferatur” (_Bullarium Romanum_, tom. iii.) But we could
bring a more cogent example from the modern discipline of the church. A
vicar-general, although only _tonsured_, outranks (within the diocese)
all others, because, as canonists say, _unam personam cum episcopo
gerit_; with as much justice, therefore, a cardinal, who is a member
of the pope, whose diocese is the world, precedes all others (we speak
of ecclesiastical rank) within mundane limits. There is one example,
particularly, in ecclesiastical history that shows us how important was
the influence of the Roman cardinals in the whole church, and how great
was the deference paid to them by bishops. After the death of S. Fabian,
in the year 250, the priests and deacons--cardinals--of Rome governed
the church for a year during the vacancy of the see, and meanwhile wrote
to S. Cyprian, bishop, and to the clergy of Carthage, in a manner that
could only become a superior authority, as to how those should be treated
who, having lapsed from the faith during the persecution, now sought to
be reconciled. The holy bishop answered respectfully in an epistle (xxth
edition, Lipsiæ, 1838), in which he gave them an account of his gests and
government of the diocese. Pope Cornelius testifies that the letters of
the cardinals were sent to all parts to be communicated to the bishops
and churches (Coustant, _Ep. RR. PP._ x. 5). It is also very noteworthy
that in the General Council of Ephesus, in 431, of Pope Celestine’s three
legates, the cardinal-priest preceded the two others, although bishops,
and before them signed the acts. Those who say the Breviary according to
the Roman calendar are familiar with the fact that at an indefinitely
early age the cardinals were created (just as now) before the bishops of
various dioceses were named, hence those familiar words: “Mense decembri
creavit presbyteros (tot), diaconos (tot), _episcopos per diversa loca_
(tot).”

The importance of a cardinal a thousand years ago can be imagined from
the fact recorded by Muratori (_Annali d’Italia_, tom. v. part. i. pag.
55), that when Anastasius had absented himself from his title for five
years without leave, and was residing in Lombardy, three bishops went
from Rome to invite him back, and the emperors Louis and Lothaire also
interposed their good offices.

Although all cardinals are equal among themselves in the principal
things, yet in many points of costume, privilege, local office, and rank
there are distinctions and differences established by law or custom, the
most important of which follow from the division of the cardinals into
three grades, namely, of bishops, priests, and deacons. Although the
whole number of suburbicarian sees, of titles, and deaconries amounts to
seventy-two (six for the first, fifty for the second, and sixteen for
the third class), the membership of the Sacred College is limited since
Sixtus V. to the maximum of seventy. There can be no doubt that the
episcopal sees lying nearest to, and, so to speak, at, the very gates of
Rome, have enjoyed from the remotest antiquity some special pre-eminence;
but it is not easy to determine at what epoch their incumbents began
to form a part of the body of cardinals. It is certain only that they
belonged to it in the year 769. These suburban sees all received the
faith from S. Peter himself; and the tradition of Albano is that S.
Clement, who was afterwards pope, had been consecrated by the apostle
and sent there as his coadjutor and auxiliary. The number of these sees
was formerly seven, but for a long time has been only six. The Bishop
of Ostia and Velletri is the first of this order and Dean of the Sacred
College. He has the privilege of consecrating the pope, should he be
only in priest’s orders when elected, and of wearing the pallium on the
occasion.

The titles of the cardinal-priests are fifty, some being held by
persons who have been consecrated bishops but have no diocese, or by
jurisdictional bishops--_i.e._, those who are at the head of dioceses
and archdioceses. The most illustrious, though not the oldest, of these
is S. Lawrence in Lucina, which is called the first title, and gives its
cardinal precedence--other things being equal--in his class.

In the life of S. Fabian, who reigned in the year 238, we read that
he gave the districts of Rome in charge to the deacons: “Hic regiones
divisit diaconibus”; and these are supposed to have been the first
cardinal-deacons, or regionary cardinals, as they were long called. This
order is third in rank, but second in point of time when it was admitted
into the Sacred College. The number of cardinal-deacons became fourteen
(one for each of the civil divisions of the city) towards the end of the
VIth century, under the pontificate of S. Gregory the Great. In the year
735 Pope Gregory III. added four and raised the number to eighteen, which
was reduced under Honorius II., in the beginning of the XIIth century,
to sixteen. After various other mutations of number it was fixed as at
present. Until the pontificate of Urban II. in 1088 these cardinals were
denominated by the name of their district or region, except those added
by Gregory III., who were called palatines. After the XIth century they
were called from the name of their deaconries. S. Mary in Via Lata is the
first deaconry. The cardinal-deacons are often in priests’ orders; but
in this case they cannot celebrate Mass in public without a dispensation
from the Pope, but they can say it in their private chapel in presence
of their chaplain. In early times cardinal-deacons held a position of
very singular importance, and the pope was frequently chosen from their
restricted class. Even now some of the highest positions at Rome are
occupied by them.

Although a cardinal is created either a cardinal-priest or a
cardinal-deacon, there is a mode of advancement even to the chief
suburbicarian see. This is called, in the language of the Curia,
_option_, or the expressing a wish to pass from one order to a higher, or
from one deaconry, title, or see to another. The custom is comparatively
recent, and was looked upon at first with considerable disfavor. It owes
its origin to the schism which Alexander V. attempted to heal in 1409 by
forming one body of his own (the legitimate) and of the pseudo-cardinals
of the anti-pope Benedict XIII. As there were two claimants to the
several deaconries, titles, and sees, he proposed to settle the dispute
by permitting one of them in succession to optate to the first vacant
place in his order. What was meant as a temporary measure became an
established custom under Sixtus IV. (1471-1484). If a cardinal-bishop
be too infirm to perform episcopal duties in the see which he already
fills, Urban VIII. decreed that he cannot pass to another one. If a
cardinal-deacon obtain by option a title before he has been ten years
in his own order, he must take the lowest place among the priests; but
if after that period, he takes precedence of all who have been created
in either of the two orders since his elevation. The favor of option
is asked of the pope in the consistory held next after a vacancy has
occurred, by the cardinal proposing such a change. The prefect of
pontifical ceremonies having previously assured himself that no cardinal
outranking the postulant contemplates the same, the cardinal-priest,
to give an example from this order, rises and says: “Beatissime Pater,
si sanctitati vestræ placuerit dimisso titulo N. transitu ex ordine
presbyterali ad episcopalem, opto ecclesiam N.,” naming his title and the
suburbicarian see that he seeks to occupy.

These three orders of cardinals certainly had a corporate character at
an early period, and formed what the ancients called a college with its
officers and by-laws; but Arnulf, Bishop of Lisieux in the Xth century,
was the first to call them collectively _Collegium Sanctorum_; hence
in all languages it is now called the Sacred College. A proof that the
cardinals acted together in a public capacity, and of their exalted
dignity, is that they are termed _Proceres clericorum_ by Anastasius in
the _Life of S. Leo III._ In olden times cardinals were strictly obliged
to reside near the pope; and a Roman council, composed of sixty-seven
bishops, held in 853 under S. Leo IV., called in judgment and deposed
the cardinal-priest of S. Marcellus for having contumaciously absented
himself during a long time from his title. This obligation of residence
in the house or palace annexed to the title or the deaconry was somewhat
relaxed in the XIIth century, when bishops of actual jurisdiction began
to be created cardinals. The first example of a bishop governing a
diocese who was made a cardinal is that of Conrad von Wittelsbach, of the
since royal house of Bavaria, Archbishop of Mentz, who was raised to this
dignity by Alexander III. in 1163.

Innocent III., however, refused a petition of the good people of Ravenna
to let them have a certain cardinal for their archbishop, saying that
he was more useful to Rome and to the church at large where he was than
he could possibly be in any other position. At this period, and until
a considerable time after, it was very rare that a bishop was made a
cardinal without having to resign his diocese and reside _in curia_.

Leo X. was so strict in his ideas of the duty of cardinals to live near
him that he issued a bull renewing the obligation in very strong terms;
and in 1538 it was proposed to Paul III. to draw up a plan of reform
making it incompatible to govern a diocese and be at the same time a
cardinal, except in the case of the Fathers of the First Order, who,
from the nearness of their sees to Rome, could perform their service to
the pope as his councillors and assistants, and not neglect the faithful
over whom they were placed (Natalis Alexander, _Hist. Eccl._, tom. xvii.
art. 16). No such stringent rule was adopted, and a cardinal might be
this and govern a diocese, if he made it his place of habitual residence,
according to the decree of the Council of Trent (Session xxiii., on Ref.,
ch. 1).

Of the virtue, learning, and other qualities required in a cardinal
of the Holy Roman Church, SS. Peter Damian and Bernard have written
eloquently, and Honorius IV., of the great family of Savelli, once so
powerful in Rome, was inexorable against unworthy subjects, saying that
“he never would raise to the Roman purple any save good and wise men.”
Different popes have made excellent laws on these matters and others
connected with the cardinalate; but in some cases they have been
disregarded, especially those about age and about there not being two
near relatives in the Sacred College at the same time. The practice of
the last hundred years has been above cavil, and the abuses of other ages
have been exaggerated, partly through malice, and partly from not knowing
the secret reasons that popes may have had for creating, for instance,
mere youths--royal youths--cardinals, or conferring the high dignity upon
members of their own family, or upon men who had nothing to recommend
them but the importunate demands of their sovereigns. The hat bestowed
upon S. Charles Borromeo was productive of more good than all the rest of
“nepotism” was able to effect of evil.

The creation of cardinals is an exclusive privilege of the popes; but
they have sometimes granted the prayers of the Sacred College or of
sovereign princes asking to have the dignity conferred upon certain
subjects. For a long time, especially during the XVIth century, the
governments of France, Spain, Portugal, Poland, and the republic of
Venice were favored by being permitted to name once in each pontificate
a candidate for the cardinalate. This was called a crown nomination.
Clement V. is said (Cancellieri, _Mercato_, p. 105, note 3) to have been
the first to grant to princes the right of petitioning for a hat; and
the sultan Bajazet II. wrote on 28th September, 1494, to Alexander VI.,
begging him to make a perfect cardinal of Nicholas Cibo, Archbishop of
Aries, and cousin of Pope Innocent VIII. Clement XII. in 1732 tendered
to James III. (the “Elder Pretender”) the nomination of some subject to
the cardinalate, and he, like a true Stuart, neglecting his countrymen
and those who had suffered in his cause, proposed Mgr. Rivera, whom he
had taken a liking to for little courtesies shown at Urbino. It has long
been a custom for the pope to promote to this dignity a member of the
family or one of that religious order to which his predecessor belonged,
from whom he himself received it. The Italians call this a restitution of
the hat--_Restituzione di capello_. The number of cardinals has greatly
varied at different times. It was generally smaller before than ever
since the XVIth century. The cardinals could, of course, well be all
Romans, as they were in the beginning; but with a change of circumstances
the pontiffs have recognized the propriety of S. Bernard’s suggestive
query to Eugene III.: “Annon eligendi de toto orbe, orbem judicaturi?”
(_De Consid._, iv. 4). In 1331 John XXII. (himself a Frenchman), being
asked by the king to create a couple of French cardinals, replied
that two were too many, and he would make but one, because there were
only twenty cardinals in all, and seventeen of them were Frenchmen.
In 1352, after the death of Clement VI., the cardinals attempted to
restrict the Sacred College to twenty members, on the principle that
a dignity profusely conferred is despised--_communia vilescunt_; but
Urban VI. found himself constrained, by the course of events at the
schism, to create a large number of cardinals, in order to oppose them
to the pseudo-cardinals of Clement VII., and at one creation he made
twenty-nine, all except three being his own countrymen, Neapolitans; so
that the French of another generation were richly paid back for their
former preponderance. From this time the membership of the Sacred College
gradually increased up to the middle of the XVIth century. It is much to
the credit of Pius II. that when the Sacred College in 1458 remonstrated
with him on the number of cardinals, saying that the cardinalate was
going down, and begged him not to increase its membership to any
considerable extent, he told the fathers that as head of the church he
could not refuse the reasonable requests of kings and governments in such
a matter, but that, apart from this, his honor forbade him to neglect
the subjects of other countries than Italy in the distribution of the
highest favors in his gift (_Comment. Pii II._, lib. ii. pp. 129, 130).
Leo X., believing himself disliked by many cardinals, added thirty-one
to their number at a single creation on July 1, 1517, the like of which
the court has never seen before or after; but it had the desired effect.
The Council of Trent ordained (Sess. 24, _De Ref._, c. i.) concerning the
subjects of the cardinalate that “the Most Holy Roman Pontiff shall,
as far as it can be conveniently done, select (them) out of all the
nations of Christendom, as he shall find persons suitable.” This is not
to be understood, however worded, as more than a recommendation to the
pope. Paul IV. (Caraffa, 1555-59), a great reformer, after consulting
the Sacred College and long discussions, issued a bull called the
Compact--_Compactum_--in which he decreed that the cardinals should not
be more than forty; but his immediate successor, Pius IV. (Medici),
acting on the principle that one pope cannot bind another in disciplinary
matters, created forty-six. Sixtus V. in 1585 fixed the number at
seventy in imitation of the seventy elders chosen to assist Moses; and
since then all the popes have respected this precedent. During the long
reign of Pius VII., although, on account of the times, unable to hold
a consistory for many years, he created in all ninety-eight cardinals,
and when he died left ten _in petto_. Although, on the one hand, an
excessive number of cardinals would lessen the importance and lower the
dignity of the office, yet a very small number has occasioned long and
disedifying conclaves, whereby for months, and even years, the Holy See
has been vacant, to the great detriment of the church. This was the case
four times during the XIIIth century, and by a coincidence, each time it
was after a pope who was the fourth of his name, viz., Celestine (1241),
Alexander (1261), Clement (1268), and Nicholas (1292).

The subject of this article has grown so much under our hands that we are
reluctantly compelled to defer a description of the ceremonies attendant
on the election of cardinals, etc., till the July number of THE CATHOLIC
WORLD.


ON THE WAY TO LOURDES.

    “Quacumque ingredimur, in aliquam historiam vestigium
    ponimus.”--_Cicero._

The most direct route from Paris to Notre Dame de Lourdes crosses the
Bordeaux and Toulouse Railway at Agen, where the pilgrim leaves the more
frequented thoroughfares for an obscurer route, though one by no means
devoid of interest, especially to the Catholic of English origin; for the
country we are now entering was once tributary to England, and at every
step we come, not only upon the traces it has left behind, but across
some unknown saint of bygone times, like a fossil of some rare flower
with lines of beauty and grace that ages have not been able to efface.

Approaching Agen, we imagined ourselves coming to some large city, so
imposing are the environs. The broad Garonne is flowing oceanward, its
shores bordered by poplars, and overlooked by hills whose sunny <DW72>s
are covered with vineyards and plum-trees. Boats from Provence and
Languedoc are gliding along the canal, whose massive bridge, with its
gigantic arches, harmonizes with the landscape, and reminds one of the
Roman Campagna. The plain is vast, fertile, and smiling; the heavens
glowing and without a cloud. Every hill, like Bacchus, has its flowing
locks wreathed with vines of wonderful luxuriance, and is garlanded
with clusters of grapes, under which it reels with joyous intoxication.
Everywhere are white houses, fair villas, pleasant gardens, and all the
indications of a prosperous country.

The town does not correspond with its surroundings. It is damp and said
to be unhealthy. The streets are narrow and winding, the houses without
expression. The population is mostly made up of merchants, mechanics,
and _gens de robe_. Here and there we find a noble mansion, a few great
families, and a time-honored name; but the true lords of the place are
the public functionaries, worthy and grave, and clad in solemn black,
quite in contrast with the joyous character of the people. The local
peculiarities of the latter may be studied to advantage in an irregular
square bordered with low arcades--the centre of traffic for all the
villages eight or ten leagues around. Famous fairs are held here three or
four times a year, one for the sale of prunes--and the Agen prunes are
famous--but the most important one is the lively, bustling fair of the
Gravier, which brings together all the blooming grisettes of the region,
who, in festive mood and holiday attire, gather around the tempting
booths. The Gravier was formerly a magnificent promenade of fine old
elms, which Jasmin loved to frequent, and where he found inspiration for
many of his charming poems in the Gascon language--one of the Romance
tongues; for the so-called _patois_ of this part of the country is by
no means a corruption of the French, but a genuine language, flexible,
poetic, and wonderfully expressive of every sweet and tender emotion.
Some of Jasmin’s poems have been translated by our own poet Longfellow
with much of the graceful simplicity of the original. Most of the fine
elms of the Gravier have been cut down within a few years, to the great
regret of the people.

One of the most striking features of the landscape in approaching Agen
is a mount at the north with a picturesque church and spire. This is the
church of the Spanish Carmelites, who, driven some years ago from their
native country, came to take refuge among the caves of the early martyrs
beside the remains of an old Roman _castrum_ called Pompeiacum. Here is
the cavern, hewn centuries ago out of the solid rock, where S. Caprais,
the bishop, concealed himself in the time of the Emperor Diocletian to
escape from his persecutors. And here is the miraculous fountain that
sprang up to quench his thirst; sung by the celebrated Hildebert in the
XIth century

    “Rupem percussit, quam fontem fundere jussit;
    Qui fons mox uber fit, dulcis, fitque saluber,
    Quo qui potatur, mox convalet et recreatur.”

That is to say: “Caprais smote the rock, and forth gushed a fount of
living water, sweet and salutary to those who come to drink thereof,” as
the pilgrim experiences to this day.

From the top of this mount S. Caprais, looking down on the city, saw
with prophetic eye S. Foi on the martyr’s pile, and a mysterious dove
descending from heaven, bearing a crown resplendent with a thousand
hues and adorned with precious stones that gleamed like stars in the
firmament, which he placed on the virgin’s head, clothing her at the same
time with a garment whiter than snow and shining like the sun. Then,
shaking his dewy wings, he extinguished the devouring flames, and bore
the triumphant martyr to heaven.

After the martyrdom of S. Caprais, the cave he had sanctified was
inhabited by S. Vincent the Deacon, who, in his turn, plucked the
blood-red flower of martyrdom, and went with unsullied stole to join
his master in the white-robed army above. Or, as recorded by Drepanius
Florus, the celebrated deacon of Lyons, in the IXth century: “Aginno,
loco Pompeiano, passio sancti Vincentii, martyris, qui leviticæ stolæ
candore micans, pro amore Christi martyrium adeptus, magnis sæpissime
virtutibus fulget.”

His body was buried before S. Caprais’ cave, and, several centuries
after, a church was built over it, which became a centre of popular
devotion to the whole country around, who came here to recall the
holy legends of the past and learn anew the lesson of faith and
self-sacrifice. Some say it was built by Charlemagne when he came here,
according to Turpin, to besiege King Aygoland, who, with his army, had
taken refuge in Agen. This venerable sanctuary was pillaged and then
destroyed by the Huguenots in 1561, and for half a century it lay in
ruins. The place, however, was purified anew by religious rites in 1600;
the traditions were carefully preserved; and every year the processions
of Rogation week came to chant the holy litanies among the thorns that
had grown up in the broken arches. Finally, in 1612, the city authorities
induced a hermit, named Eymeric Rouidilh, from Notre Dame de Roquefort,
to establish himself here. He was a good, upright man, as charitable as
he was devout, mocked at by the wicked, but converting them by the very
ascendency of his holy life. He brought once more to light the tomb of
S. Vincent and S. Caprais’ chair, and set to work to build a chapel out
of the remains of the ancient church. The dignitaries of the town came
to aid him with their own hands, the princes of France brought their
offerings, and Anne of Austria came with her court to listen to the
teachings of the holy hermit. Among other benefactors of the Hermitage
were the Duc d’Epernon, Governor of Guienne, and Marshal de Schomberg,
the first patron of the great Bossuet.

Eymeric’s reputation for sanctity became so great that he drew around
him several other hermits, who hollowed cells out of the rock,
and endeavored to rival their master in the practice of rigorous
mortification. They rose in the night to chant the divine Office,
and divided the day between labor and prayer, only coming together
for a half-hour’s fraternal intercourse after dinner and the evening
collation. Eymeric himself, at night, sang the _réveillè_ in the streets
of Agen, awakening the echoes of the night with a hoarse, lamentable
voice: “Prégats pous praubés trépassats trépassados que Diou lous
perdounné!”--Pray for the poor departed, that God may pardon them all!

Eymeric was so scrupulous about using the water of S. Caprais’ fountain
for profane purposes that, discovering some plants that gave indications
of a source, he labored for six months in excavating the rock, till at
length he came so suddenly upon a spring that he was deluged with its
waters.

During the plague of 1628, and at other times of public distress, his
heroic charity was so fully manifest that he was regarded as a public
benefactor; and when he died, the most distinguished people in the
vicinity came to testify their veneration and regret.

The cells of the Hermitage continued, however, to be peopled till the
great revolution, when the place was once more profaned. But in 1846 a
band of Spanish Carmelites came to establish themselves on the mount
sanctified by the early martyrs. Martyrs, too, of the soul are they;
for there is no martyrdom more severe than the inward crucifixion of
those who, in the cloister, offer themselves an unbloody sacrifice to
God for the sins of the world. Some, who have not tried it, think the
monastic life to be one of ease and self-indulgence. But let them
seriously reflect on the “years of solitary weariness, of hardship and
mortification, of wakeful scholarship, of perpetual prayer, unvisited
by a softness or a joy beyond what a bird, or a tree, or an unusually
blue sky may bring,” with no consolations except those that spring from
unfaltering trust in Christ and utter abandonment to his sweet yoke, and
they will see that, humanly speaking, such a life is by no means one of
perfect ease.

On this new Carmel lived for a time Père Hermann, the distinguished
musician, who was so miraculously converted by the divine manifestation
in the Holy Eucharist, and it was here he gave expression to the ardor of
his Oriental nature in some of his glowing _Cantiques to Jésus-Hostie_,
worthy to be sung by seraphim:

      “Pain Vivant! Pain de la Patrie!
    Du désir et d’amour mon âme est consumée
      Ne tardez plus! Jésus, mon Bien-Aimé,
              Venez, source de vie,
      Ne tardez plus! Jésus, mon Bien-Aimé!”

Agen is mentioned on every page of the religious history of southern
France. In the IIId century we find the confessors of the faith already
mentioned. Sixty years later S. Phoebadus, a monk of Lerins who became
Bishop of Agen, defended the integrity of the Catholic faith against the
Arians in an able treatise. He was a friend of S. Hilary of Poitiers and
S. Ambrose of Milan. St. Jerome speaks of him as still living in the
year 392: “Vivit usque hodie decrepitâ senectute.” In the time of the
Visigoths SS. Maurin and Vincent de Liaroles upheld and strengthened the
faith in Novempopulania.

In feudal times the bishops of Agen were high and puissant lords who
had the royal prerogative of coining money by virtue of a privilege
conferred on them by the Dukes of Aquitaine. The money they issued was
called _Moneta Arnaldina_, or _Arnaudenses_, from Arnaud de Boville, a
member of the ducal family, who was the first to enjoy the right.

It was a bishop of Agen, of the illustrious family Della Rovere that
gave two popes--Sixtus IV. and Julius II.--to the church, who induced
Julius Cæsar Scaliger to accompany him when he took possession of his
see. Scaliger’s romantic passion for a young girl of the place led him
to settle here for life. Not far from Agen may still be seen the Château
of Verona, which he built on his wife’s land, and named in honor of his
ancestors of Verona--the Della Scalas, whose fine tombs are among the
most interesting objects in that city. This château is in a charming
valley. It remained unaltered till about forty years ago; but it is now
modernized, and therefore spoiled. The oaks he planted are cut down, the
rustic fountain he christened Théocrène is gone. Only two seats, hewn out
of calcareous rock, remain in the grounds, where he once gathered around
him George Buchanan, Muret, Thevius, and other distinguished men of the
day. These seats are still known as the Fauteuils de Scaliger.

The elder Scaliger was buried in the church of the Augustinian Friars,
which being destroyed in 1792, his remains were removed by friendly hands
for preservation. They have recently been placed at the disposition of
the city authorities, who will probably erect some testimonial to one who
has given additional celebrity to the place. The last descendant of the
Scaligers--Mlle. Victoire de Lescale--died at Agen, January 25, 1853, at
the age of seventy-six years.

Agen figures also in the religious troubles of the XVIth century, as it
was part of the appanage of Margaret of Valois; but it generally remained
true to its early traditions. Nérac, the seat of the Huguenot court at
one time, was too near not to exert its influence. Then came Calvin
himself, when he leaped from his window and fled from Paris. Theodore
Beza too resided there for a time. They were protected by Margaret of
Navarre, who gathered around her men jealous of the influence of the
clergy and desirous themselves of ruling over the minds of others.
They boldly ridiculed the religious orders, and censured the morals of
the priesthood, though so many prelates of the time were distinguished
for their holiness and ability. Nérac has lost all taste for religious
controversy in these material days. It has turned miller, and is only
noted for its past aberrations and the present superiority of its flour.

On the other side of the Garonne, towards the plain of Layrac, we come
to the old Château of Estillac, associated with the memory of Blaise
de Monluc, the terrible avenger of Huguenot atrocities in this section
of France. He was an off-shoot of the noble family of Montesquiou,
and served under Bayard, Lautrec, and Francis I.--a small, thin,
bilious-looking man, with an eye as cold and hard as steel, and a face
horribly disfigured in battle, before whom all parties quailed, Catholic
as well as Protestant. He had the zeal of a Spaniard and the bravado of a
true Gascon; was sober in his habits, uncompromising in his nature, and,
living in his saddle, with rapier in hand, he was always ready for any
emergency, to strike any blow; faithful to his motto: “_Deo duce, ferro
comite_.”

We are far from justifying the relentless rigor of Monluc; but one
cannot travel through this country, where at every step is some trace
of the fury with which the Huguenots destroyed or desecrated everything
Catholics regard as holy, without finding much to extenuate his course.
We must not forget that the butchery which filled the trenches of the
Château de Penne was preceded by the sack of Lauzerte, where, according
to Protestant records, Duras slaughtered five hundred and sixty-seven
Catholics, of whom one hundred and ninety-four were priests; and that the
frightful massacre of Terraube was provoked by the treachery of Bremond,
commander of the Huguenots at the siege of Lectoure.

Among the other remarkable men upon whose traces we here come is
Sulpicius Severus, a native of Agen. His friend, S. Paulinus of Nola,
tells us he had a brilliant position in the world, and was universally
applauded for his eloquence; but converted in the very flower of his
life, he severed all human ties and retired into solitude. He is said
to have founded the first monastery in Aquitaine, supposed to be that
of S. Sever-Rustan, where he gave himself up to literary labors that
have perpetuated his name. The Huguenots burned down this interesting
monument of the past in 1573, and massacred all the monks. It was from
the cloister of Primulacium, as it was then called, that successively
issued his _Ecclesiastical History_, which won for him the title of
the Christian Sallust; the _Life of S. Martin of Tours_, written from
personal recollections; and three interesting _Dialogues on the Monastic
Life_, all of which were submitted to the indulgent criticism of S.
Paulinus before they were given to the public. The intimacy of these two
great men probably began when S. Paulinus lived in his villa Hebromagus,
on the banks of the Baïse, and it was by no means broken off by their
separation. The latter made every effort to induce his friend to join
him at Nola; but we have no reason to complain he did not succeed, for
this led to a delightful correspondence we should be sorry to have lost.
We give one specimen of it, in which modesty is at swords’ points with
friendship. Sulpicius had built a church at Primulacium, and called
upon his poet-friend to supply him with inscriptions for the walls. The
baptistery contained the portrait of S. Martin, and, wishing to add
that of Paulinus, he ventured to ask him for it. Paulinus’ humility is
alarmed, and he flatly refuses; but he soon learns his likeness has
been painted from memory, and is hanging next that of the holy Bishop
of Tours. He loudly protests, but that is all he can do, except avenge
his outraged humility by sending the following inscription to be graven
beneath the two portraits: “You, whose bodies and souls are purified in
this salutary bath, cast your eyes on the two models set before you.
Sinners, behold Paulinus; ye just, look at Martin. Martin is the model of
saints; Paulinus only that of the guilty!”

Sometimes there is a dash of pleasantry in their correspondence, as
when Paulinus sends for some good Gascon qualified to be a cook in
his _laura_. Sulpicius despatches Brother Victor with a letter of
recommendation which perhaps brought a smile to his friend’s face: “I
have just learned that every cook has taken flight from your kitchen.
I send you a young man trained in our school, sufficiently accomplished
to serve up the humbler vegetables with sauce and vinegar, and concoct a
modest stew that may tempt the palates of hungry cenobites; but I must
confess he is entirely ignorant of the use of spices and all luxurious
condiments, and it is only right I should warn you of one great fault:
he is the mortal enemy of a garden. If you be not careful, he will make
a frightful havoc among all the vegetables he can lay his hands on. He
may seldom call on you for wood, but he will burn whatever comes within
his reach. He will even lay hold of your rafters, and tear the old joists
from your chimneys.”

Among other Agen literary celebrities is the poet Antoine de La Pujade,
who was secretary of finances to Queen Margaret of Navarre--not the
accomplished, fascinating sister of Francis I., but the wife of the
_Vert-Galant_, “_Du tige des Valois belle et royale fleur_,” who
encouraged and applauded the poet, and even addressed him flattering
verses. His tender, caressing lines on the death of his little son of
four years of age are well known:

    “Petite âme mignonnelette,
    Petite mignonne âmelette,
    Hôtesse d’un si petit corps!
    Petit mignon, mon petit Pierre,
    Tu laisses ton corps à la terre,
    Et ton âme s’en va dehors.”

La Pujade consecrated his pen to the Blessed Virgin in the _Mariade_, a
poem of twelve cantos in praise of the _très sainte et très sacrée Vierge
Marie_.

Another rhymer of Agen, and a courtier also, is Guillaume du Sable, a
Huguenot, who in his verses held up his wife, his daughter, and his
son-in-law as utterly given up to avarice. As for himself, he was always
ready to spend! Yes, and as ready to beg. That he was by no means
grasping, that his palms never itched, is shown by his poems, which are
full of petitions to the king for horses, clothes, and appointments. Like
so many of his co-religionists, he did not disdain the spoils of the
enemy, as is apparent from this modest request to Henry IV.:

    “Mais voulez-vous guérir, Sire, ma pauvreté?
    Donnez-moi, s’il vous plait, la petite abbaye,
    Ou quelque prieuré le reste de ma vie,
    Puisque je l’ai vouée à votre majesté.”

He wrote against priests and monks, but stuck to the royal party,
condemning all who revolted under pretext of religion. Perhaps the most
supportable of his works is that against the Spanish Inquisition--a
subject that never needs any _sauce piquante_. His _Tragique Elégie du
jour de Saint Barthélemy_ affords an additional proof in favor of the
approximate number of _one thousand_ victims at the deplorable massacre
of August 24, 1572.

As a proof of the tenacity with which the Agenais have clung to past
religious traditions and customs, we will cite the popular saying
that arose from the unusual dispensations granted during Lent by Mgr.
Hébert, the bishop of the diocese, in a time of great distress after an
unproductive year:

“En milo sept centz nau L’abesque d’Agen debenguèt Higounau”--In 1709 the
Bishop of Agen turned Huguenot!

Leaving Agen by the railway to Tarbes, we came in ten minutes to Notre
Dame de Bon Encontre--a spot to which all the sorrows and fears and
hopes of the whole region around are brought. This chapel is especially
frequented during the month of May, when one parish after another comes
here to invoke the protection of Mary. A continual incense of prayer
seems to rise on the sacred air from this sweet woodland spire. A few
houses cluster around the pretty church, which is surmounted by a
colossal statue of the Virgin overlooking the whole valley and flooding
it with peace, love, and boundless mercy. The image of her who is so
interwoven with the great mysteries of the redemption can never be looked
upon with indifference or without profit. The soul that finds Mary in
the tangled grove of this sad world enters upon a “moonlit way of sweet
security.”

We next pass Astaffort, a little village perched on a hill overlooking
the river Gers, justifying its ancient device: _Sta fortiter_.[99] It
played an important part in the civil wars of the country. The Prince
de Condé occupied the place with four hundred men, and, attacked by the
royalists, they were all slain but the prince and his valet, who made
their escape. A cross marks the burial-place of the dead behind the
church of Astaffort, still known as the field of the Huguenots.

Lectoure, like an eagle’s nest built on a cliff, is the next station,
and merits a short tarry; for, though fallen from its ancient grandeur,
it is a town full of historic interest, and contains many relics of the
past. It is a place mentioned by Cæsar and Pliny, and yet so small that
we wonder what it has been doing in the meantime. It was one of the
nine cities of Novempopulania, and in the IXth century still boasted
the Roman franchise, and was the centre of light and legislation to the
country around, on which it imposed its customs and laws. It governed
itself, lived its own individual life, unaffected by the changes of
surrounding provinces, and proudly styled itself in its public documents
“the Republic of Lectoure.” In the XIIth century it was the stronghold of
the Vicomtes de Lomagne; and when Richard Cœur de Lion wished to bring
Vivian II. of that house to terms, he laid siege to Lectoure, which,
though stoutly defended for a time, was finally obliged to yield. In
1305 it belonged to the family of Bertrand de Got (Pope Clement V.),
which accounts for a bull of his being dated at Lectoure. Count John of
Armagnac married Reine de Got, the pope’s niece, in 1311, and thus the
city fell into the hands of the haughty Armagnacs, who made it their
capital. At this time they were the mightiest lords of the South of
France, and seemed to have inherited the ancient glory of the Counts of
Toulouse. For a time they held the destiny of France itself in their
hands. For one hundred and fifty years they took a prominent part in all
the French wars. Their banner, with its lion rampant, floated on every
battle-field. Their war-cry--Armagnac!--resounded in the ears of the
Derbys and Talbots. It was an Armagnac that sustained the courage of
France after the surrender of King John at Poitiers; an Armagnac that
united all the South against the English in the Etats-Généraux de Niort;
and an Armagnac--Count Bernard VI.--who maintained the equilibrium of
France when Jean-sans-Peur of Burgundy aimed at supremacy, and fell a
victim to Burgundian vengeance at Paris.

Lectoure gives proofs of its antiquity and the changes it has passed
through in the remains of its triple wall; its fountain of Diana; the
bronzes, statuettes, jewels, and old Roman votive altars, that are now
and then brought to light; its mediæval castle, and the interesting old
church built by the English during their occupancy, with its massive
square tower, whence we look off over the valley of the Gers, with its
orchards and vineyards and verdant meadows shut in by wooded hills, and
see stretching away to the south the majestic outline of the Pyrenees.

At the west of Lectoure is the forest of Ramier, in the midst of which
once stood the Cistercian abbey of Bouillas--Bernardus valles--founded in
1125, but now entirely destroyed.

    “Never was spot more sadly meet
    For lonely prayer and hermit feet.”

There is a popular legend connected with these woods, the truth of which
I do not vouch for--I tell the tale as ’twas told to me:

A poor charcoal-burner, who lived in this forest close by the stream
of Rieutort, had always been strictly devout to God and the blessed
saints, but, on his deathbed, in a moment of despair at leaving his
three motherless children without a groat to bless themselves with,
invoked in their behalf the foul spirit usually supposed to hold dominion
over the bowels of the earth, with its countless mines of silver and
gold. He died, and his three sons buried him beside their mother in the
graveyard of Pauillac; but the wooden cross they set up to mark the spot
obstinately refused to remain in the ground. Terrified at this ominous
circumstance, the poor children fled to their desolate cabin. The night
was dark and cold, and wolves were howling in the forest. “Brothers,”
said the oldest, “we shall die of hunger and cold. There is not a crumb
of bread in the house, and the doctor carried off all our blankets
yesterday for his services. The Abbey of Bouillas is only half a league
off. I am sure the good monks will not refuse alms to my brother Juan.
And little Pierréto shall watch the house while I go to the Castle of
Goas.”

Both brothers set off, leaving Pierréto alone in the cabin. He trembled
with fear and the cold, and at length the latter so far prevailed
that he ventured to the door to see if he could not catch a glimpse
of his brothers on their way home. It was now “the hour when spirits
have power.” Not a hundred steps off he saw a group of men dressed in
rich attire, silently--“all silent and all damned”--warming themselves
around a good fire. The shivering child took courage, and, drawing near
the band, begged for some coals to light his fire. They assented, and
Pierréto hurriedly gathered up a few and went away. But no sooner had he
re-entered the cabin than they instantly went out. He went the second
time, and again they were extinguished. The third time the leader of the
band frowned, but gave him a large brand, and threateningly told him not
to come again. The brand went out like the coals; and the men and fire
disappeared as suddenly. Pierréto remained half dead with fright. An
hour after Juan returned from the Convent of Bouillas with bread enough
to last a week, and Simoun soon arrived from the castle with three warm
blankets.

When daylight appeared, Pierréto went to the fire-place to look at his
coals, and found they had all turned to gold. The two oldest now had the
means of making their way in the world. One became a brave soldier, and
the other a prosperous merchant; but Pierro became a brother in the Abbey
of Bouillas. Night after night, as he paced the dark cloisters praying
for his father’s soul, he heard a strange rushing as of fierce wind
through the arches, and a wailing sound as sad as the _Miserere_. Pierro
shuddered and thought of the cross that refused to darken his father’s
grave; but he only prayed the longer and the more earnestly.

Years passed away. Simoun and Juan, who had never married, weary of
honors and gain, came to join their brother in his holy retreat. Their
wealth, that had so mysterious an origin, was given to God in the person
of the poor. Then only did the troubled soul of their father find rest,
and the holy cross consent to throw its shadow across his humble grave.

Lectoure is surrounded by ramparts; but the most remarkable of its
ancient defences is the old castle of the Counts of Armagnac, converted
into a hospital by the Bishop of Lectoure in the XVIIIth century. This
castle witnessed the shameless crimes of Count John IV. and their fearful
retribution at the taking of Lectoure under Louis XI. The tragical
history of this great lord affords a new proof of the salutary authority
exercised by the church over brutal power and unrestrained passion during
the Middle Ages.

There is no more striking example of the degradation of an illustrious
race than that of John V., the last Count of Armagnac, who shocked the
whole Christian world by an unheard-of scandal. Having solicited in
vain a dispensation to marry his sister Isabella, who was famous for
her beauty, he made use of a pretended license, fraudulently drawn up
in the very shadow of the papal court, as some say, to allay Isabella’s
scruples, and celebrated this monstrous union with the greatest pomp. He
forgot, in the intoxication of power and the delirium of passion, there
could be any restraint on his wishes, that there was a higher tribunal
which watched vigilantly over the infractions of the unchangeable laws
of morality and religion. The pope fulminated a terrible excommunication
against them. King Charles VII., hoping to wipe out so fearful a stain
by the sacred influences of family affection, sent the most influential
members of the count’s family to exert their authority; but in vain.
The king soon turned against him, because he favored the revolt of the
Dauphin, and sent an army to invade his territory. Count John’s only fear
was of losing Isabella; and rather than separate from her to fight for
the defence of his domains, he fled with her to the valley of Aure, while
the royal army ravaged his lands.

Condemned to perpetual banishment, deprived of his dominions, his power
gone, under the ban of the church, his eyes were opened to the extent of
his degradation, his soul was filled with remorse. He took the pilgrim’s
staff and set out for Rome, begging his bread by the way, to seek
absolution for himself and his sister. Isabella retired from the world
to do penance for her sins in the Monastery of Mount Sion at Barcelona.
The church, which never spurns the repentant sinner, however stained with
crime, granted him absolution on very severe conditions. The learned
Æneas Sylvius (Pius II.) occupied the chair of S. Peter at that time.
His great heart was touched by the heroic penance of so great a lord. He
received him kindly, dwelt on the enormity of the scandal he had given to
the world, and reminded him that Pope Zachary had condemned a man, guilty
of an offence of the same nature, to go on a round of pilgrimages for
fourteen years, the first seven of which he was ordered to wear an iron
chain attached to his neck or wrist, fast three times a week, and only
drink wine on Sundays; but the last seven he was only required to fast on
Fridays; after which he was admitted to Communion.

More merciful, Pius II. enjoined on Count John never to hold any
communication with Isabella by word, letter, or message; to distribute
three thousand gold crowns for the reparation of churches and
monasteries; and to fast every Friday on bread and water till he could
take up arms against the Turks; all of which the count solemnly promised
to do. Nor do we read he ever violated his word. Affected by such an
example of penitence, the pope addressed Charles VII. a touching brief to
induce him to pardon the count.

When Louis XI. came to the throne, remembering the services he had
received from Count John, he restored him to his rank. The count now
married a daughter of the house of Foix. Everything seemed repaired.
But divine justice is not satisfied. Louis XI., determined to destroy
the almost sovereign power of the great vassals, took advantage of
Count John’s offences against his government, and resolved on his
destruction. He sent an army to besiege him at Lectoure. At this siege
Isabella’s son made his first essay at arms, and displayed the valor of
his race but the young hero finally perished in a rash sortie, and the
count soon after capitulated. The royal forces, taking possession of
the place, basely violated the terms of surrender. The city was sacked
and nearly all the inhabitants massacred. Among the victims was Count
John himself, who died invoking the Virgin. The walls of the city were
partly demolished, and fire set to the four quarters. The dead were left
unburied, and for two months the wolves that preyed thereon were the only
occupants of the place. Never was there a more fearful retribution. It
took the city nearly a century to recover in a measure from this horrible
calamity.

Lectoure was in the hands of the Huguenots when Monluc laid siege to it
in 1562. Bremond, the commander, offered to capitulate, and, proposing an
exchange of hostages, he asked for Verduzan, La Chapelie, and a third.
Monluc consented, and as they approached the gates of the city they were
fired upon by thirty or forty arquebusiers, but without effect. Monluc
cried out that was not the fidelity of an honest man, but of a Huguenot.
Bremond protested his innocence of the deed, and, pretending to seize
one of the guilty men, he hung an innocent Catholic on the walls in
sight of Monluc. Unaware of the fraud, the hostages again approached,
and again they were fired upon. A gentleman from Agen was killed and
others wounded. Indignant at such treachery, and supposing his own life
particularly aimed at, Monluc exclaimed that, since they held their
promises so lightly, he would do the same with his, and he immediately
sent Verduzan with a company of soldiers to Terraube to despatch the
prisoners whose lives he had spared. This order was executed with as
much exactness as barbarity, and the implacable Monluc declared he had
made “a fine end of some very bad fellows.”

Bremond, urged by the inhabitants, again renewed negotiations, and
finally surrendered the city on condition of being allowed to withdraw
with his troops to Bearn, flags flying and drums beating, and the
Protestants left in the place permitted the free exercise of their
religion--terms that were faithfully kept by Monluc.

It was probably the sympathy of Lectoure with the Huguenot party that led
Charles IX. to deprive it of many of its ancient rights and privileges,
which hastened its decline. It put on a semblance of its former grandeur,
however, when it received Henry IV. within its walls, and Anne of Austria
with Cardinal Richelieu.

It was in the old historic castle that Richelieu imprisoned the
unfortunate Duc de Montmorency. The people favored his escape, and sent
him a silk ladder in a _pâté_; but his kindness of heart led to his
destruction. Desirous of saving a servant to whom he was attached, he
took him with him in his attempt to escape. The servant fell from the
ladder, and was wounded. His cry aroused the guard. Montmorency was
taken and soon after beheaded at Toulouse. The soldiers present at his
execution drank some of his blood, that, infused into their veins, it
might impart something of the valor of so brave a man. He was so beloved
by the common people that the peasantry of Castelnaudry, where he was
taken prisoner, are familiar with his history, and speak of him with
admiration and affection to this day. His wife, an Italian princess,
became a Visitandine nun after his execution.

One cannot visit the old castle of Lectoure, with its thousand memories,
without emotion. It is now a hospital. Charity has taken the place of
brutality and lawless passion. Looking off from the walls over the
pleasant valley below, watered by streams and divided by long lines of
trees, we hear the song of the peaceful laborer instead of the battle-cry
of the olden time, and the lowing of the fawn- Gascon cattle
instead of the neighing of war-horses.

Before the castle opens a street that goes straight through the town,
at the further end of which is the parish church of S. Gervais, a fine,
spacious edifice of the Saxo-Gothic style, built by the English during
their rule. The immense square tower was once a fortress, called the
tower of S. Thomas, from which the sentinel signalled the approach of the
enemy. It was formerly surmounted by the highest steeple in France, but,
repeatedly struck by lightning, it was taken down some years ago by order
of the bishop.

The Carmelite nuns at Lectoure have had from time immemorial a cross
of marvellous efficacy, especially in cases of fever. It is of a style
not often met with in France, though common in Spain, where it is held
in great veneration from its miraculous prototype--the Santa Cruz de
Caravaca.

This cross is made of copper, and has two cross-beams, like a patriarchal
cross, with figures in relief on each side, which are connected with an
interesting history. On the top of one side of the cross is the monogram
of Christ, with a crosslet above and the three nails of the Passion
below. The upper cross-beam has a chalice on the left arm, and on the
right the lance that pierced the Sacred Heart, crossed by a reed with a
sponge at the end. In the middle is an open space for relics.

On the left arm of the lower cross-beam is the scourge and the lantern
that lit the soldiers to the Garden of Olives; on the right is a ladder;
and in the centre the cock crowing on a pillar that extends up from the
foot of the cross, at which is a death’s head.

These are the usual emblems of the Passion, familiar to all; but the
other side is more mysterious. On the upper part is a patriarchal cross
supported by two angels, one on each arm of the upper cross-beam. Lower
down, in the centre of the lower cross-beam, is a priest in sacerdotal
vestments, ready to offer the Holy Sacrifice, standing in an attitude of
astonishment and admiration, looking up at the cross borne by the two
angels. On his breast is the monogram of Christ, and beneath that of the
Virgin. On each side are lilies in full bloom, and above his head, in
the centre of the upper cross-beam, stands a chalice, as on an altar,
covered with the sacred linen veil. It is evident the artist intended to
represent all the objects necessary to celebrate the Holy Sacrifice of
the Mass. There are two lighted candles at the side of the priest, and
at the end of the right arm of the lower cross-beam are two kings filled
with evident amazement, one of whom is gazing at the angelic apparition.
At the left extremity is a queen and an attendant.

The Cross of Caravaca is associated with a chivalric legend of southern
Spain. We give it as related by Juan de Robles, a priest of Caravaca,
whose account was published at Madrid in 1615.

About the year of our Lord 1227 there reigned at Valencia a Moorish
prince, known in the ancient Spanish chronicles by the Arabic name
of Zeyt Abuzeyt, who embraced Christianity. According to Zurita, he
became King of Murcia and Valencia in 1224, and was at first a violent
persecutor of his Christian subjects. In 1225 he made peace with Iago,
King of Aragon, promising him one-fifth of the revenues of his two
capitals, which enraged his people and caused him the loss of Murcia. The
Moors, discovering he held secret intercourse with the King of Aragon and
the pope, drove him from Valencia in 1229. He died about 1248, before
King Iago took possession of that city.

Zeyt Abuzeyt’s conversion to Christianity took place in consequence
of a miracle that occurred in his presence at Caravaca, a town in his
kingdom where he happened to be. At that time the Spanish victories
over the Moors announced the speedy expulsion of the latter from the
Peninsula, and frequent conversions took place among them. A Christian
priest ventured among the Moors of the kingdom of Murcia to preach the
Gospel. He was seized and brought before Zeyt Abuzeyt, who asked him many
questions concerning the Christian religion, and, in particular, about
the Sacrifice of the Mass. The explanations of the priest interested him
so much that he requested him to celebrate the Holy Mysteries in his
presence. The priest, not having the necessary articles, sent for them
to the town of Concha, which was in the hands of the Christians; but it
happened that the cross, which should always be on the altar during the
celebration of Mass, had been forgotten. The priest, not remarking the
deficiency, began the Holy Sacrifice, but, soon observing the cross was
wanting, did not know what to do. The king, who was present with his
family and the court, seeing the priest suddenly turn pale, asked what
had happened. “There is no cross on the altar,” replied the priest. “But
is not that one?” replied the king, who at that moment saw two angels
placing a cross on the altar. The good priest joyfully gave thanks
to God and continued the sacred rites. So marvellous an occurrence
triumphed over the infidelity of Zeyt Abuzeyt, and he at once professed
his faith in Christ. Popular tradition says he was baptized by the name
of Ferdinand, in honor of the holy king, Ferdinand III., who stood as
sponsor. Pope Urban IV. addressed him a brief of felicitation on account
of his baptism.

Zeyt Abuzeyt had one son, who received the name of Vincent when baptized,
and subsequently married a Christian maiden. At the death of his father
he took the title of the King of Valencia, which he held till the King of
Aragon took possession of the city. He then contented himself with the
lands and revenues assigned him by the conqueror.

This account explains the figures on the Cross of Caravaca. We see the
astonished priest and the cross borne by the angels. The two kings,
who are gazing at the cross, are of course King Zeyt Abuzeyt and S.
Ferdinand, his god-father. The queen opposite is doubtless Dominica
Lopez, whom, according to tradition, he married after his baptism; and
beside her is her daughter, called Aldea Fernandez in honor of King
Ferdinand.

This cross, to which a great number of miracles are attributed, is
preserved with great care in the church at Caravaca, in the ancient
kingdom of Murcia. It is believed to be made of the sacred wood of the
true cross. A great number of similar crosses have since been made, and
there is hardly a family in Spain which has not a Cross of Caravaca. Many
people wear one.

S. Teresa had great devotion to this cross, and her cross of Caravaca
fell into the possession of the Carmelites of Brussels, who gave it to
the monastery of S. Denis during the time of Mme. Louise of France; but
this precious relic has since been restored to the convent at Brussels.

On an eminence in sight of Lectoure is one of the sanctuaries of
mysterious origin dear to popular piety, so numerous in this country. It
is Notre Dame d’Esclaux. Its modest tower looks down on a secluded valley
which delights the eye with its freshness and fertility, its fine trees,
and the sparkling streams here and there among the verdure. Beyond are
fertile heights in the direction of Nérac. The origin of this church is
somewhat obscure. Old traditions tell of oxen kneeling in a thicket in
the meadow belonging to the lord of S. Mézard. The shepherds, attracted
by the circumstance, found a statue of Our Lady buried in the ground.
There are many instances of similar discoveries in this region. The
animals that witnessed the Nativity have always had a certain sacredness
in the eyes of the people, and they have part in many an ancient legend,
like that in which they are made to kneel at the midnight hour at
Christmas. The lord of the manor built a chapel for the wondrous image,
and a fountain soon after sprang up, which to this day is celebrated
for its miraculous virtues. The most ancient document concerning this
chapel bears the date of April 23, 1626, stating it had been destroyed
by the Huguenots during the religious wars, and owed its restoration
to the piety of the noble family who, according to tradition, first
founded it. The concourse of pilgrims has not ceased for three centuries.
Whole parishes come here in procession in perpetual remembrance of some
great benefit. The parish of Pergain has not failed to make its annual
pilgrimage for two hundred years in fulfilment of a vow made to avert
the divine wrath after a fearful hail-storm that had ravaged its lands.
Only a few of the wonders wrought in this sanctuary have been recorded.
We find a striking one, however, in the beginning of last century. A
little boy of seven years of age, who had never walked in his life and
had no use whatever of his feet, was taken by his pious parents to Notre
Dame d’Esclaux, where Mass was said for his benefit. At the moment of
the Elevation the little <DW36> rose without assistance, and went up to
the railing of the chancel, and afterwards walked home to La Romieu, a
distance of about six miles. He always celebrated the anniversary of his
miraculous cure with pious gratitude, and his descendants have continued
to do the same to this day. The details of this wonderful occurrence have
been furnished by M. Lavardens, the present head of the family, one of
the most respectable in the region.

A path leads the devout pilgrim up the sad way of the cross to the summit
of the hill, where stands a large crucifix, in which is enshrined a relic
of the true cross. We loved to see these heights consecrated to religion
with the sign of the Passion--emblem of the triumph of moral liberty.

    “O faithful Cross! O noblest tree!
    In all our woods there’s none like thee.
    No earthly groves, no shady bowers,
    Produce such leaves, such fruit, such flowers;
    Sweet are the nails, and sweet the wood,
    That bear a weight so sweet and good.”

Fifteen minutes’ walk to the south of Lectoure brings you to the Chapel
of S. Geny, on the banks of the Gers. Behind it rises the mount on whose
summit this saint of the early times was wont to pray. Here he was when
thirty soldiers, sent by the Roman governor in pursuit of him, appeared
on the other side of the Gers. S. Geny lifted up his clean hands and pure
heart to heaven. The hill trembled beneath his knees. The river rose so
high that for two days the amazed soldiers were unable to cross, and then
it was to throw themselves at the saint’s feet and acknowledge the power
of the true God. They received baptism, and were soon after martyred in a
place long known as the “Blood of the Innocents.” A new band being sent
against S. Geny, he again ascends the mount, but this time to pray his
soul may be received among those whose robes have just been washed white
in the blood of the Lamb. And while he was praying with eyes uplifted
the heavens opened, he saw the newly-crowned martyrs, encircled with
rejoicing angels, chanting: Let those who have overcome the adversary
and kept their garments undefiled have their names written in the Lamb’s
book of life! At this sight the saint’s knees bend, his ravished soul
breaks loose from its bonds and takes flight for heaven. This was on the
3d of May. His body remained on the top of the mount, giving out an odor
of mysterious sweetness, till the Bishop of Lectoure brought it down to
the foot of the hill, and buried it in the little church S. Geny had
erected over his mother’s tomb. Not long after two persons, overtaken
by darkness, sought refuge in this oratory, and found it filled with a
great light and embalmed with lilies and roses--beautiful emblems of the
supernatural love and purity that had distinguished the saint.

Not far from Lectoure was once another “devout chapel,” one of the most
noted in the country around--Notre Dame de Protection, in the village
of Tudet, a place of pilgrimage as far back as the XIIth century. The
Madonna has a miraculous origin, like so many others in this “Land of
Mary.” According to the old legend, it was discovered by shepherds in
a fountain at which an ox had refused to drink. The statue was set
up beside the spring, and became a special object of devotion to the
neighborhood and a source of many supernatural favors. Vivian II.,
Vicomte de Lomagne, in gratitude for personal benefits received, built
a chapel for the reception of the statue in 1178, but, as it proved too
small for the numerous votaries, Henry II. of England, a few years after,
erected a large church adjoining Vivian’s chapel, with a hospice, served
by monks, for the accommodation of pilgrims. All over the neighboring
hills rose little cells inhabited by hermits drawn to this favored
spot from the remotest parts of southern France. Not only the common
people, but the nobles and renowned warriors of the Middle Ages, and
even the kings of France, came here to implore the protection of the
Virgin. Every year, at spring-time, came the inhabitants of Lectoure,
Fleurance, and all the neighboring parishes, often fourteen or fifteen
at a time, accompanied by priests in their robes and magistrates in red
official garments, chanting hymns in honor of Mary. Countless miracles
were wrought at her altar. The walls were covered with crutches and _ex
votos_. One of the fathers of Tudet writes thus at the close of last
century: “Here Mary may be said to manifest her power and goodness in a
special manner. How many times has she not caused the paralytic to walk,
cured the epileptic, given sight to the blind, hearing to the deaf, and
speech to the dumb! How often has she not healed the sick at the very
gates of death, snatched people from destruction at the very moment of
danger, and put an end to hail-storms, tempests, and the plague!”

Nothing enrages the impious so much as the evidences of a piety that is a
constant reproach to their lives; and the Revolution of 1793 swept away,
not only the ancient chapel of the Viscounts of Lomagne, but the church
of Henry II., the hospice, and the hermits’ cells, leaving only a few
broken arches where now and then a solitary pilgrim went to pray. The
miraculous statue, however, was rescued from profanation, and for a long
time buried in the ground. It is still honored in the village church of
Gaudonville, but it is only a mutilated trunk, its head and most of the
limbs being gone. So many holy recollections, however, are associated
with it, that people still gather around it to pray, especially in
harvest-time, to be spared the ravages of hail, often so destructive in
this region.

Some of the old hymns in the expressive Gascon tongue, as sung at Notre
Dame de Protection, are still extant, and nothing is more pathetic than
to see a group of hard-working peasants around the altar of the chapel of
Gaudonville singing:

    “Jésus, bous aouets tribaillat
    Prenéts noste tribail en grat!”[100]

or:

    “Jésus! bous ets lou boun Pastou,
    Bost’oilhe qu’ey lou pécadou
    Gouardats-lou deu loup infernau,
      Et de touto sorto de mau!”[101]

Among other prayers they chant is a rhymed litany of twenty-seven saints
of different trades, and twenty-one shepherd saints, with an appropriate
invocation to each, not exactly poetical, but, sung by the uncultivated
voices of poor laborers in that rustic chapel in a measured mournful
cadence, there is something akin to poesy--something higher--which
awakens profound and salutary thoughts. It is in this way they invoke S.
Spiridion, the reaper; S. Auber, the laborer in the vineyard; S. Isidore,
the gardener:

“Sent Isidore, qui ets estats Coum nous au tribail occupat,” etc.--S.
Isidore, who wast like us in labor occupied, etc.--a touching appeal for
sympathy to that unseen world of saints of every tribe and tongue and
degree, which excludes not the highest, and admits the lowest.

The Church of Notre Dame de Tudet is about to be rebuilt. The
corner-stone was laid a short time since on the feast of Our Lady of
Protection, under the patronage of the pious descendants of the ancient
Viscounts of Lomagne, true to the traditions of their race. The entire
population of fourteen neighboring villages assembled to witness the
solemn ceremony and pray in a spot so venerated by their ancestors.
The mutilated statue of Gaudonville is to be restored, and brought
back in triumph to the place where it was once so honored. Thus all
through France there is a singular revival of devotion to the venerable
sanctuaries of the Middle Ages. Everywhere they are being repaired or
rebuilt--a significant fact of good augury for the church.

TO BE CONCLUDED NEXT MONTH.


BROTHER PHILIP.[102]

The century in which we live has distinguished itself by a terrible
propaganda of evil, error and corruption taking every variety of form to
insinuate themselves into society; yet this same century is also marked
by great and generous efforts in the cause of truth and goodness, and
in these France has proved herself true to her ancient vocation. From
a peculiar vivacity of energy (if we may be allowed the expression) in
the national character, whether for good or for evil, the land that
has produced some of the most hardened atheists, the worst and wildest
communists, and the most frivolous votaries of pleasure, continues to
produce the most numerous and devoted missionaries, the readiest martyrs,
and saints whose long lives of hidden toil for God and his church are a
noble pendant to her martyrs’ deaths.

One of these lives of unobtrusive toil is now before us--that of Brother
Philip, who during thirty-five years was Superior-General of the Frères
des Ecoles Chrétiennes, or Brothers of the Christian Schools. Before
tracing it, even in the imperfect manner which is all for which we have
space, it will be well to give a brief sketch of the institute of which
he was for so long the honored head.

Jean Baptiste de la Salle, the son of noble parents, was born at Rheims
in the year 1651. Entering Holy Orders early in life, he greatly
distinguished himself in the priesthood, not only as a scholar and
theologian, but also as an orator, so eloquent and persuasive that he
might have aspired to the highest dignities in the church had he not
chosen to limit his ambition to the lowly work of popular education. This
education was not then in existence. Not that there was an utter absence
of schools, but these were all unconnected with each other, and were
besides greatly wanting in any good and efficient method of teaching. The
Abbé de la Salle invented the simultaneous method, namely, that which
consists in giving lessons to a whole class at a time, instead of to each
child separately. The subjects of instruction were reading, writing,
French grammar, arithmetic, and geometry, with Christian teaching as
the basis and invariable accompaniment of all the rest. He founded an
association of religious who were not to enter the priesthood, of which,
however, they were to become the most efficient allies in the education
of the young according to the mind of the church, this intention being
their distinguishing characteristic. Resolving to live in community with
them, he resigned his canonry at Rheims, and sold his rich patrimony,
distributing the money among the poor. He gave the brethren their rule,
and also the habit which they wear. Thus a new religious family, not
ecclesiastical, appeared in France, the members of which were only to
be brothers, united by the vows of poverty, chastity, and obedience.
The Abbé de la Salle also established a school for training teachers,
which was the first normal school ever founded in France; he also
originated Sunday-schools for the young apprentices of different trades,
and _pensionnats_, or boarding-schools, the first of which was opened
at Paris, for the Irish youths protected by James II. of England, and
fugitives like himself.

The chief house of the order was St. Yon (formerly Hauteville), an
ancient manor just outside the gates of Rouen, surrounded by an extensive
enclosure, and affording a peaceful solitude where M. de la Salle enjoyed
his few brief intervals of repose in this world. He had been invited to
settle there by Mgr. Colbert, Archbishop of Rouen, and M. de Pontcarré,
First President of the Parliament of Normandy, and, after the death of
Louis XIV., made it more and more the centre of his work. It was at St.
Yon that he resigned the post of superior-general in 1716, and there he
died on Good Friday, the 7th of April, 1719, aged sixty-eight years. The
house was soon afterwards enlarged and a church built, to which in 1734
the Brothers transferred the remains of their holy founder, which had
until then rested in the Church of S. Sever.

The Brothers of the Christian Schools were called the Brothers of St.
Yon, and sometimes les Frères Yontains, whence originated the title
of Frères Ignorantins, which has, however, been _lived down_ by the
institute, the excellence of the instruction afforded by the Christian
Schools not permitting the perpetuation of the derisive epithet.

The new order supplied a want too generally felt not to extend itself
rapidly, and at the time of the Abbé de la Salle’s death it numbered
twenty-seven houses, two-hundred and seventy-four Brothers, and nine
thousand eight hundred and eighty-five pupils. In 1724 Louis XV. granted
it letters-patent expressive of his approval, and it was in the same
year that Pope Benedict XIII. accorded canonical institution to the
congregation, thus realizing the earnest desire of the venerable founder,
that his institute should be recognized by the Sovereign Pontiff as a
religious order, with a distinctive character and special constitutions.
Brother Timothy was at that time superior-general. He governed the
institute with energy and wisdom for thirty-one years, during which time
no less than seventy additional houses of the order were established
in various of the principal towns of France, everywhere meeting with
encouragement and protection from the bishops and the Christian nobility,
so that every inauguration of a school was made an occasion of rejoicing.

The successor of Brother Timothy was Brother Claude, who was
superior-general from 1751 to 1767, when, having attained the age of
seventy-seven, he resigned his office, continuing to live eight years
longer in the house of St. Yon, where he died. It was at this period that
the atheism of the XVIIIth century was making its worst ravages. A band
of writers, under the leadership of Voltaire, laid siege, as it were,
to Christianity, by a regular plan of attack, and, employing as their
weapons a false and superficial philosophy, distorted history, raillery,
ridicule, corruption, and lies, they conspired against the truth, while
licentiousness of mind and manners infected society and literature alike.
At the very time when the followers of the faith were devoting themselves
with renewed energy to the instruction of the ignorant and the succor
of the needy, philosophy, so-called, by the pen of Voltaire, wrote as
follows:

“The people are only fit to be directed, not instructed; they are not
worth the trouble.”[103]

“It appears to me absolutely essential that there should be ignorant
beggars. It is the towns-people (_bourgeoisie_) only, not the
working-classes, who ought to be taught.”[104]

“The common people are like oxen: the goad, the yoke, and fodder are
enough for _them_.”[105] Thus contemptuously were the people regarded
by anti-Christian philosophy, which, while it paid court to any form of
earthly power, perpetuated, and even outdid, the traditions of pagan
antiquity in its hardness and disdain towards the lower orders.

On the retirement of Brother Claude, Brother Florentius accepted,
in 1777, the direction of the house at Avignon, where the storm of
Revolution burst upon him. After undergoing imprisonment and every kind
of insulting and cruel treatment he died a holy death, in 1800, when
order was beginning to be restored to France.

Brother Agathon, who next ruled the congregation, was a man of high
culture in special lines of study, of wise discernment regarding the
interests and requirements of the religious life, and of rare capacity as
an administrator. The circular-addresses he issued from time to time have
never lost their authority with the Brothers, and furnish a supplement
as well as a commentary to the rule of their institute. He did much to
increase the extent and efficiency of the latter, but was interrupted in
the midst of his work by the political disturbances that were agitating
his country. The decree of the 13th of February, 1790, by which “all
orders and congregations, whether of men or women,” were suppressed, did
not immediately overthrow the institute; but, although it suffered the
provisional existence of such associations as were charged with public
instruction or attendance on the sick, the respite was to be of short
duration. The Brothers, however, notwithstanding the anxiety into which
they were thrown by the decree of the Constitutional Assembly, ventured
to hope that their society would be spared on account of its known
devotedness to the interests of the people. Brother Agathon, moreover,
was not a man who would silently submit to unjust measures, and several
petitions were addressed by him to the Assembly, in which he fearlessly
pleaded the cause of his institute, on the ground of its acknowledged
utility among the very classes whose benefit the Assembly professed to
have so greatly at heart. The simple and conclusive reasoning of these
petitions must have gained their cause with reason and justice; but
reason and justice were alike dethroned in France. One member alone of
the Assembly did himself honor by representing the excellence of their
teaching and the reality of their patriotism, but he spoke in vain; and
on the universal refusal of the Brothers to take the oath imposed by the
civil constitution on the members of any religious society, as well as on
those of the priesthood, the houses to which they belonged were summarily
suppressed. They were abused for not sending their pupils to attend the
religious ceremonies presided over by schismatic ministers; they were
accused of storing arms in their houses to be used against the country;
they were charged with monopolizing and concealing victuals; but after
a visit of inspection at Melun the municipal officers were compelled to
bear testimony to the disinterested probity of these pious teachers,
and similar perquisitions invariably resulted in the confusion of their
calumniators.

But the Revolution continued its course. A decree passed on the 18th
of August, 1792, suppressed all “secular ecclesiastical corporations”
and lay associations, “such as that of the Christian Schools,” it being
alleged that “a state truly free ought not to suffer the existence in its
bosom of any corporation whatsoever, not even those which, being devoted
to public instruction, have deserved well of the country.”

The Reign of Terror had begun; the dungeons were filling, and the
prison was but the threshold to the scaffold. The children of the
venerable De la Salle were not spared. Brother Solomon, secretary to
the superior-general, was martyred on the 2d of September for refusing
to take the schismatic oath. Brother Abraham was on the very point of
being guillotined when he was rescued by one of the National Guard. The
Brothers of the house in the Rue de Notre Dame des Champs continued
to keep the schools of S. Sulpice until the massacre of the Carmelite
monks. Several of the Brothers were put to death. The courageous words
of Brother Martin before the revolutionary tribunal at Avignon have been
preserved. “I am a teacher devoted to the education of the children
of the poor,” he said to his judges; “and if your protestations of
attachment to the people are sincere; if your principles of fraternity
are anything better than mere forms of speech, my functions not only
justify me, but claim your thanks.” Language like this ensured sentence
of death. Besides, at that time they condemned; they did not judge.

After eighteen months of imprisonment Brother Agathon was restored to
liberty, and died in 1797, at Tours, leaving his institute dispersed; but
consoled by the last sacraments, which he received in secret.

Among the scattered members of a congregation too Christian not to be
persecuted in those days we do not find one who did not remain faithful.
Many of them, in the name and dress of civilians, continued to occupy
themselves in teaching, and filled the post of schoolmasters at Noyon,
Chartres, Laon, Fontainebleau, etc. From the municipal authorities of
Laon they received a public testimonial of esteem; and in 1797, being
imprisoned on the denunciation of a schismatic priest, the Brothers
were set at liberty by a grateful and avenging ebullition on the part
of the mothers of families. Their exit from prison was a triumph, the
population crowding to meet them and throwing flowers in their way until
they reached the school-house, in the court of which a banquet had been
prepared, at which masters and scholars found themselves happily reunited.

In spite of the decree which had smitten their institute, the Brothers
were still sought after as teachers in purely civil conditions. Nothing
had replaced the orders and establishments which had been destroyed; no
instruction was provided for the young; and as the churches were still
closed and the pulpits silent, a night of ignorance was beginning to
spread itself over the rising generation. On the 25th of August, 1792, a
boy demanded of the National Assembly, for himself and his comrades, that
they should be “instructed in the principles of equality and the rights
of man, instead of being preached to in the name of a so-called God.”

Such men as Daunou, Desmolières, and Chaptal were deploring the state
of public instruction in France, which during ten years had been a mere
mixture of absurdities and frivolities, when Portalis dared to declare
openly that “religion must be made the basis of education.”

This was in 1802, about the time that the relations of France with the
Sovereign Pontiff were renewed by the Concordat, and the three consuls
had gone together in state to the metropolitan church of Notre Dame. By
the consular law of the 1st of May, 1802, on public instruction, the
Brothers were authorized to resume their functions. The institute no
longer possessed any houses in France, but a few remained to it in Italy,
and over these Pope Pius VI. had appointed, as vicar-general, Brother
Frumentius, director of the house of San Salvatore at Rome.

Lyons was the first city in France where the members of the scattered
congregation began to reassemble; Paris was the next; then St. Germain
en Laye, Toulouse, Valence, Soissons, and Rheims. The Brothers at
Lyons--namely, Brother Frumentius and three companions--received, in
1805, a memorable visit. Pope Pius VII., in quitting France, after having
crowned at Notre Dame the emperor by whom, three years later, he himself
was to be discrowned, repaired, accompanied by three cardinals, to the
Brothers of the Christian Schools. He blessed the restored chapel and the
reviving institute, his fatherly words of encouragement being a pledge
and promise of its beneficent prosperity.

As it was of importance that the dispersed members should be made aware
of the reorganization of their society, an earnest and affectionate
circular-letter was addressed to them by Cardinal Fesch, archbishop of
Lyons, inviting them to repair to Brother Frumentius to be employed
according to the rule of their congregation, towards which he at the same
time assured them of the emperor’s good-will.

The decree for the organization of the University, issued on the 17th
of March, 1808, restored to the institute a legal existence, together
with all the civil rights attached to establishments of public utility.
In these statutes it is stated that the Brothers form a society for
gratuitously affording to children a Christian education; that this
society is ruled by a superior-general, aided by a certain number
of assistants; that the superior is elected for life by the General
Chapter or by a special commission; and that the superior nominates the
directors, and also the visitors, whose duty it is to watch over the
regularity of the masters and the efficient management of the schools.

The Brothers had a powerful friend in M. Emery, the Superior of S.
Sulpice, a man of high character and sound judgment, and who was held
in great esteem by the emperor, as well as by every one with whom he
had anything to do. Napoleon, particularly, appreciating the excellent
organization of the society, recommended “the Brothers of De la Salle in
preference to any other teachers.”

We now come to the special subject of our memoir.

Among the dispersed members of the institute who first responded to
the invitation of Cardinal Fesch were two brothers of the name of
Galet, whose memory is especially connected with Brother Philip. On the
suppression of the house at Marseilles they sought shelter from the
violence of the Revolution in the retired hamlet of Châteaurange (Haute
Loire), where they kept a school. On receiving the cardinal’s circular
the elder brother announced to the pupils that he had been a Brother of
the Christian Schools, until compelled to return to secular life by the
suppression of his institute; but learning that this was re-established,
he was about to depart at once to Lyons, there to resume his place in it,
adding that, if any of them should desire to enter there, he would do
all in his power to obtain their admission and to help them to become
accustomed to the change of life.

Amongst those who availed themselves of this invitation, and who,
three years later (in 1811), presented himself to be received into the
novitiate, was Mathieu Bransiet, born on the 1st of November, 1792, at
the hamlet of Gachat, in the Commune of Apinac (Loire). Pierre Bransiet,
his father, was a mason; the house in which he lived, with a portion
of land around it, which he cultivated, constituting all his worldly
possessions. Like his wife (whose maiden name was Marie-Anne Varagnat),
he was a faithful Christian, and during the revolutionary persecution
habitually afforded refuge to the proscribed priests. It was the custom
of the little family to assemble at a very early hour of the morning in a
corner of the barn, where, on a poor table behind a wall or barricade of
hay and straw, the Holy Sacrifice was offered up, as in the past ages of
paganism, and as under Protestant rule, whether in the British Isles not
so many generations ago, or in Switzerland at the very time at which we
write; some trusty person meanwhile keeping watch without, in readiness
to give timely warning in case of need. Nor did Pierre Bransiet confine
himself to the exercise of this perilous but blessed hospitality; many a
time did he accompany the priests by night in their visits to the sick
and dying, and bearing with them the sacred Viaticum after the hidden
manner of the proscribed.

Amid scenes and impressions such as these the young Bransiet passed
his childhood, learning the mysteries of the faith from an “abolished”
catechism; kneeling before the crucifix, which was hated and trampled
under foot in those godless days; and worshipping when those who prayed
must hide themselves to pray. Thus a deeply serious tone became, as it
were, the keynote of his soul, which harmonized with all that was earnest
and austere. Even as an old man he never spoke without deep feeling of
his early years, when he only knew religion as a poor exile and outcast
on the earth. The simple and hardy habits of his cottage-home, his own
early training in labor, self-denial, and respectful obedience, the
Christian teaching of his mother and elder sister (now a religious at
Puy), all helped to form his character and mould his future life. He was
the most diligent of the young scholars of Châteaurange, which is half a
league distant from Gachat, and made his first communion in the church of
Apinac, when the Church of France had issued from her catacombs, and the
Catholic worship was again allowed. As a child Mathieu was remarkable for
his never-failing kindness and affectionateness towards his brothers and
sisters, for the tenderness of his conscience, and for his jealousy for
the honor of God, which would cause him to burst into tears if he saw any
one do what he knew would offend him.

Mathieu was seventeen years of age when, with the full consent of his
parents, he entered the novitiate at Lyons. He had six brothers, one of
whom followed his example, and is at the present time worthily fulfilling
the office of visitor to the Christian Schools of Clermont-Ferrand.
Boniface was the name by which the young novice was at first called; but
as this was soon afterwards exchanged for that of Philip, we shall always
so designate him.

His exemplary assiduity and piety, as well as his rare qualifications as
a teacher, quickly drew attention to him, and on account of his skill in
mathematics he was appointed professor in a school of coast navigation
at Auray in the Morbihan, where he was very successful. While here he
wrote a treatise on the subject of his instructions, which was his first
attempt in the special kind of writing in which he afterwards so greatly
excelled. M. Deshayes, the curé of Auray, and a man of great discernment,
was so much struck by his practical wisdom and good sense that he said
to the Brother director, “See if Brother Boniface is not one day the
superior of your congregation!”

It was at Auray, in 1812, that he made his first vows, and there he
remained until 1816. Of the boys who during this time were under his
care, no less than forty afterwards entered the sacerdotal or the
monastic life. From Auray he was sent to Rethel as director, and from
thence, in 1818, to fill the same office at Rheims, the nursery of his
order, and afterwards at Metz. In 1823 the superior-general, Brother
William of Jesus--who was seventy-five years old, and had been in
the congregation from the time he was fifteen--appointed him to the
responsible post of director of S. Nicolas des Champs at Paris, as well
as visitor of several other houses in the provinces and in the capital.
In 1826 he published a book entitled _Practical Geometry applied to
Linear Design_,[106] which is regarded by competent judges as the best
work of the kind in France. He continued director at Paris during the
eight remaining years of Brother William’s life, which ended a little
before the Revolution of July, 1830. On the succession of Brother
Anaclete as superior-general Brother Philip was elected one of the four
assistants of the General Chapter, and thus found himself associated with
the general government of the congregation; but the higher he was raised
in the responsible offices of his order, the more apparent became his
good sense and sound understanding--qualifications of especial value amid
the troubles of that stormy time.

The opening of evening classes for working-men is due to Brother Philip,
who first commenced them in Paris, at S. Nicolas des Champs, and at Gros
Caillou, extending them, with marked encouragement from the Minister of
Public Instruction, M. Guizot, to other quarters of the city. The law of
1833, by establishing normal schools for primary instruction, furnished a
test as well as a rivalry to the schools of the Brothers; but the latter
showed themselves equal to the emergency, supplementing their course of
instruction by additional subjects, and taking all necessary measures for
carrying on their work in the most efficient manner.

Their novitiates were the models of the normal primary schools; but in
comparing the vast difference of expense between the one and the other it
is easy to perceive on which side self-denial and prudent administration
are to be found. A normal school like the one at Versailles costs more
than 60,000 francs, or 12,000 dollars, yearly; and that of Paris more
than 100,000 francs, or 20,000 dollars; while the Brothers, for the
training of their masters, receive nothing from the state; and these
young masters, formed with the aid of small resources, become none the
less admirable teachers, having moreover in their favor the double grace
of devotedness and a special vocation.

Under the name of Louis Constantin, Brother Anaclete began the
publication of works of instruction which was afterwards so efficiently
continued by Brother Philip. The latter gave particular attention to
the formation of a preparatory novitiate called _le petit noviciat_,
which is not a novitiate, properly so called, but a preliminary trial of
vocations, similar to that of the _Petit Séminaire_. Should the young
members persevere, their education prepares them for teaching; and if
their vocation is found to be elsewhere, this time of study will, all the
same, be of great advantage to them, whatever may be their future.

The little novices were particular favorites of Brother Philip, who took
delight not only in instructing them himself in both sacred and secular
knowledge, but watched over them with a sort of maternal affection, and
was often seen carrying into their cells warm socks or any other article
of apparel of which he had discovered the need.

On the death of Brother Anaclete, in 1838, Brother Philip was unanimously
elected superior by the General Chapter, on the 21st of November. After
the election the chapter, contrary to its wont, abstained from passing
any decree, “leaving to the enlightened zeal of the much-honored superior
the care of maintaining in the Brothers the spirit of fervor.”

The Abbé de la Salle had recommended the practice of mortification,
silence, recollection, contempt for earthly things and for the praise
of man, humility, and prayer; and the venerable founder has continued
to speak in the persons of the successive superiors of his institute.
We have not space here to give quotations from the circulars issued
by Brother Philip during the thirty-five years of his government, but
they must be read before a just appreciation can be had of all that a
“Christian Brother” is required to be, and also of the heart and mind of
the writer, who never spoke of himself, but whose daily life and example
were his best eloquence. He always presided over the annual retreats,
commencing by that of the community in Paris. One of the Brothers, in
speaking of these, said: “In listening to him I always felt that we had a
saint for our father.”

A rule had been made by the chapter of 1787 that the Brother assistants
should cause the portrait of the superior-general to be taken with the
year of his election. It was with the greatest reluctance, and only
from a spirit of obedience, as well as on account of the insistence
of the Brother assistants, that Brother Philip suffered this rule to
be observed in his case. Horace Vernet had the highest esteem for the
superior-general, and told the Brothers who went to request him to take
the portrait that he would willingly give them the benefit of his art in
return for the benefit of their prayers. Brother Philip sat to him for an
hour, and the painting so much admired in the Exhibition of 1845 was the
result. Later on the visits of Brother Philip were a much-valued source
of help and consolation to the great painter during his last illness.

Our sketch would be incomplete were we to leave unnoticed the daily life
of the Brothers of the Christian Schools, which exhibits their profession
put into practice.

The Brothers rise at half-past four; read the _Imitation_ until a
quarter to five, followed by prayer and meditation until Mass, at
six, after which they attend to official work until breakfast, at a
quarter-past seven; at half-past seven the rosary is said, and the
classes commence at eight; catechism at eleven, examination at half-past;
at a quarter to twelve dinner, after which is a short recreation. At
one o’clock prayers and rosary; classes recommence at half-past one.
Official work at five; at half-past five preparation of the catechism;
spiritual reading at six; at half-past six meditation; at seven supper
and recreation; at half-past eight evening prayers; at nine the Brothers
retire to bed; and at a quarter-past nine the lights are extinguished,
and there is perfect silence.

After having been for twenty-five years established in the Rue du
Faubourg St. Martin the Brothers had to make way for the building of the
Station of the Eastern Railway (Gare de l’Est), and after long search
found a suitable house in the Rue Plumet, now Rue Oudinot, which they
purchased, and of which they took possession, as the mother-house of the
institute, in the early part of 1847.

On entering this house it is at once evident that rule and order
preside there. All the employments, even to the post of _concièrge_, or
door-keeper, are carried on by the Brothers, each one of whom is engaged
in his appointed duty. The first court, called the _Procure_, presents a
certain amount of movement and activity from its relations with the world
outside. The second court, which is the place for recreations, and which
leads into the interior, is much more spacious and planted with trees. It
was in these alleys that Brother Philip was accustomed to walk during
his few moments of repose, conversing with one of the Brothers or readily
listening to any of the youngest little novices who might address him.

The _Salle du Régime_, or Chamber of Government, is a marvel in the
perfection of its arrangements. The superior-general is there at his
post, the assistants also; the place of each occupying but a small space
and on the same line. Each has his straw-seated chair, his bureau, and
papers; the chair of the superior differing in no way from the rest.
On each bureau is a small case, marked with its ticket, indicating the
countries placed under the particular direction of the Brother assistant
to whom it belongs. There are to be found all the countries to which
the schools of the institute have been extended, from the cities of
France and of Europe to the most distant regions of the habitable globe.
Little cards in little drawers represent the immensity of the work.
Everything is ruled, marked, classified, in such a manner as to take
up the smallest amount of space possible; as if in all things these
servants of God endeavored to occupy no more room in this world than was
absolutely necessary. “We have seen,” writes M. Poujoulat, “in the _Salle
du Régime_, the place which had been occupied by Brother Philip; his
straw-seated chair and simple bureau, upon which stood a small image of
the Blessed Virgin, for which he had a particular affection, and one of
S. Peter, given to him at Rome. From this unpretending throne he governed
all the houses of his order in France, Belgium, Italy, Asia, and the New
World, and hither letters daily reached him from all countries. He wrote
much; and his letters had the brevity and precision of one accustomed
to command. The secretariate occupies ten Brothers, and, notwithstanding
its variety and extent, nothing is complicated or irregular in this
well-ordered administration.

“We visited, as we should visit a sanctuary, the cell of Brother
Philip, and there saw his hard bed and deal bedstead, over which hung
his crucifix.… A few small prints on the walls were the only luxury he
allowed himself.… Some class-books ranged on shelves, a chair, a bureau,
and a cupboard (the latter still containing the few articles of apparel
which he had worn), … compose the whole of the furniture. How often the
hours which he so needed (physically) to have passed in sleep had Brother
Philip spent at this desk or kneeling before his crucifix, laying his
cares and responsibilities before God, to whom, in this same little
chamber, when the long day’s toil was ended, he offered up his soul!”

In another room, that of the venerable Brother Calixtus, may be seen
the documents relating to the beatification of the Abbé de la Salle,
bearing a seal impressed with the device of the congregation--_Signum
Fidei_. Besides thirty-five autograph letters of the founder and the form
of profession of the members, there are here the bulls of approbation
accorded by Pope Benedict XIII. in 1725, and the letters-patent granted
the previous year by Louis XV. In a room called the Chamber of Relics are
preserved various sacred vestments and other objects which had belonged
to the venerable De la Salle. The chapel is at present a temporary
construction.

The mother-house comprises the two novitiates and a normal school
appropriated solely to the perfecting of the younger masters. It is from
the little novices that the Brothers select the children of the choir.
To see these twenty-five or thirty little fellows on great festivals, in
alb and red cassock, swinging censers or scattering flowers before the
Blessed Sacrament, amid the rich harmonies of the organ and the church’s
sacred chant, was Brother Philip’s especial delight; he seemed to see in
them, as it were, a little battalion of angels offering their innocent
homage to the hidden God.

If order forms one part of the permanent spirit of the institute, so
also does the practice of poverty; but it is _holy_ poverty, tranquil
and cheerful. Self-denial is the foundation of all that is seen there,
but so also are propriety and suitability. The life of the Brothers is
austere, but by no means gloomy; on the contrary, one of their prevailing
characteristics is a cheerful equanimity, which seems never to forsake
them. Nothing useless is permitted in any of the houses. “We must not,”
wrote Brother Agathon in 1787, “allow anything which may habitually or
without good reason turn aside the Brothers from the exercises of the
community or trouble their tranquillity; such things, for instance, as
fancy dogs, birds, the culture of flowers, shrubs, or curious plants.”
And these regulations have been faithfully observed.

This the mother-house, in the Rue Oudinot, is the centre of government
to the numerous establishments of the institute spread over the earth;
it is, in fact, their little capital, from whence the superior-general
and his assistants, like the monarch and parliament of a constitutional
kingdom, exercise a wise and beneficent dominion.

The Revolution of February, 1848, notwithstanding the general
disorganization of which it was the cause, did not prejudicially affect
the work of the Brothers of the Christian Schools. The moderate spirit
of a large majority of the constituency was in their favor, and the
triumph of what was styled the “right of association” was of benefit to
the religious orders. And, besides this, men high in office acknowledged
the small consideration given to the religious element in the primary
instruction organized by the law to have occasioned the moral devastation
of which they had been the sorrowful witnesses.

This state of opinion, by producing an increased respect for the Brothers
and appreciation of their work, was very favorable to the institute of De
la Salle. In 1849 the superior-general was requested to take part in an
extra-parliamentary commission on the subject of public instruction and
liberty of teaching. His extensive and practical knowledge made a great
impression on his fellow-commissioners. Naturally modest and retiring, he
was never one of the most forward to speak, but the most listened to of
any; his observations being so conclusive and to the point as invariably
to decide the ultimate resolution of a question; and answers which
others were painfully seeking he found at once in the store-house of his
long experience. That portion of the law of March 15, 1850, relating to
primary instruction, bears the impress of these discussions.

The epoch of the Second Empire was a time of difficulty for the
Brothers. The new government, which had begun by wishing to decorate
Brother Philip--who was always rebellious against seductions of
this nature--raised against his institute the question of scholar
remuneration, alleging that it owed its success merely to its rule of
teaching gratuitously, to the prejudice of the schools of the state,
and requiring the municipality of every place where the Brothers were
established to insist on their adoption of the remunerative system. These
difficulties, which had begun under the ministry of M. Fortoul, became
more serious under that of M. Rouland.

Now, it was one of the fundamental rules of the institute that the
Brothers should receive no remuneration whatever in return for their
instructions. Brother Philip, therefore, in the name of the statutes of
his order, resolutely resisted their infringement. To punish him for so
doing the annual sum of eight thousand four hundred francs, which had
been granted to the institute under the ministry of M. Guizot for the
general expenses of administration, was suppressed, many of the houses
were closed, and forty more threatened with the same fate.

At last, after an anxious struggle of seven years’ duration, it was
decided by the General Chapter, assembled in 1861, that, to avoid worse
evils and save the institute from destruction, a partial concession
should be made. Payments were allowed where the government insisted, but
it was expressly stipulated that these payments would be the property of
the municipal council, the Brothers themselves having nothing whatever to
do with them.

This concession, which had only been forced from him by a hard necessity,
was a great vexation to Brother Philip, who, however, consoled himself
with the thought that this moral oppression would only be of temporary
duration. Nor was he mistaken. For twenty years past not only has the
gratuitous system not been attacked, but the very men who opposed it
in the case of the Brothers have themselves insisted on its general
adoption, in their endeavors to force upon the whole of France a primary
instruction without religion.

The ministry of M. Rouland, being particularly jealous of Brother Philip
as head of a religious congregation, had other trials in store for him,
taking out of his hands the right of appointing masters, in order that
it might, through the prefects, place lay teachers of its own selection
in places where the people themselves had requested that their children
should be taught by the Brothers of the Christian Schools. The measures
taken to attain this end were, however, only partially successful.

In 1862 a curious complaint was made against those who had for so long
been called _Ignorantins_, accusing them of teaching too many things and
overstepping the limits allowed by Article 23 of the law of 1850.[107]

When at Dijon, in 1862, Brother Pol-de-Léon made his request to
be instituted as director of the _pensionnat_, the administration
refused to grant it, on the ground that the title of “elementary
school” taken by the said _pensionnat_ was in manifest contradiction
to the advanced instruction given there, and which included algebra,
geometry, trigonometry, French literature, cosmography, physics,
chemistry, mechanics, English, and German. The Brothers, thus accused
of distributing too much learning, replied that, if the law of 1850 did
not mention these subjects of instruction, neither did it prohibit them;
they consented, however, to withdraw a portion from this programme. The
president of the provincial council, M. Leffemberg, was merciful, and
allowed some of the additions, among which were English and German, to
remain.

Subsequent arrangements have been made, by which a regular course of
secondary or higher instruction has been organized by the Brothers. This
is admirably carried on in their immense establishment at Passy (amongst
other places), and its normal school is at Cluny; and no one now disputes
with the institute the honor of having been the originator of the special
course of secondary instruction which has been found to answer so
remarkably in France.

One of the most serious anxieties of Brother Philip under the Second
Empire arose in 1866 on the subject of dispensation from military
service. Since their reorganization the Brothers of the Christian Schools
had been exempted from serving in the army, on account of their being
already engaged in another form of service for the public benefit,
and on condition of their binding themselves for a period of not less
than ten years to the public instruction. A circular of M. Duruy, by
changing the terms of the law, deprived the Brothers of their exemption,
whilst in that very same month of February M. le Maréchal Randon, in
addressing general instructions to the marshals of military divisions in
the provinces, gave distinct orders that the Brothers of the Christian
Schools should not be required to serve, on account of the occupation in
which they were already engaged; thus, in two contradictory circulars
on the same question, the interpretation of the Minister of Public
Instruction was unfavorable to the education of the people; the contrary
being the case with that of the Minister of War.

We have not space to give the particulars of the long struggle that
was carried on upon this question, and in which Cardinals Matthieu and
Bonnechose energetically took part with the Brothers; the Archbishop of
Rennes and the Bishop of Ajaccio also petitioning the senate on their
behalf. But in vain. To the great anguish of Brother Philip, the senate
voted according to the good pleasure of M. Duruy. The superior-general
left no means untried to avert the threatened conscription of the young
Brothers; he petitioned, he wrote, he pleaded, with an energy and
perseverance that nothing could daunt, until the law, passed on the
1st of February, 1868, relieved him from this pressing anxiety. He had
unconsciously won for himself so high an opinion in the country that his
authority fought, as it were, for his widespread family.

Ever since the Revolution of 1848 a great clamor has been raised in
France about the moral elevation of the laboring classes; but while
the innovators who believe only in themselves have been talking, the
Christian Brothers have been working. We have already mentioned the
classes for adults established by the predecessor of Brother Philip.
These, and especially the evening classes, were made by the latter the
objects of his especial attention. He arranged that linear drawing
should in these occupy a considerable place; thus there is scarcely a
place of any importance in France in which courses of lessons in drawing
do not form a part of the popular instruction, and, with the exception
of a few large towns which already possessed a school of design, nearly
all the working population of the country has, up to the present time,
gained its knowledge of the art in the classes directed by the Brothers.
Proof of this fact is yearly afforded in the “Exhibition of the Fine Arts
applied to Practical Industries,” which, since 1860, has been annually
opened at Paris, and in which the productions of their schools are
remarkable among the rest for their excellence, as well as their number.
The gold medal as well as the high praise awarded them by the jury of the
International Exhibition in 1867 testified to the thoroughness of the
manner in which the pupils of the Christian Brothers are taught.

One of the gods worshipped by the XIXth century is “utility,” and to
such an extent by some of its votaries that one of them, some years ago,
proposed to the Pacha of Egypt to demolish the pyramids, on the ground
that they were “useless.” This reproach cannot certainly be applied to
the Brothers of the Christian Schools. All their arrangements, their
instructions, their daily life, have the stamp of utility, and that of
the highest social order.

Although our space does not permit us to speak of the works of the
Brothers in detail, their variety answering, as it does, to all the needs
of the people, yet a few words must be given to that of S. Nicolas, for
the education of young boys of the working-classes.

Towards the close of the Restoration, in 1827, M. de Bervanger, a priest,
collected seven poor orphan children, whom he placed under the care of
an honest workman in the Rue des Anglaises (Faubourg St. Marceau), who
employed them in his workshop, his wife assisting him in taking charge
of them. This was the commencement of the work of S. Nicolas. In a few
months the little lodging was too small for its increasing number of
inmates, and, assistance having been sent, a house was taken in the Rue
de Vaugirard, where the boys were taught various trades and manufactures,
but still under a certain amount of difficulty, a sum of seven or eight
thousand francs being pressingly required. It was at this time that M.
de Bervanger became acquainted with Count Victor de Noailles, who at
once supplied the sum, and from that time took a great and increasing
interest in the establishment, of which he afterwards became the head. On
the breaking out of the revolution of 1830 he saved it by establishing
himself there under the title of director; M. de Bervanger, for the
sake of prudence, having only that of almoner. The two friends, being
together at Rome in the winter of 1834-5, were warmly encouraged in their
undertaking by Pope Benedict XIII., who desired Count Victor to remain at
its head. Soon afterwards a purchase of the house was effected, and in
this house of S. Nicolas the count died in the following year. From that
time M. de Bervanger took the sole direction, and the work prospered in
spite of every opposition. To meet its increased requirements he bought
the Château of Issy, and Mgr. Affre, Archbishop of Paris, announced
himself the protector of what he declared to be “the most excellent work
in his diocese.” The republic of 1848 was rather profitable to it than
otherwise. Former pupils of the house, enrolled in the Garde Mobile,
did their duty so bravely in quelling the terrible insurrection of June
that to fifteen of their number the Cross of Honor was awarded, proving
that in those days of violence the _gamin de Paris_, the foundation or
material of the work of S. Nicolas, could be a hero.

This work, owing to the unbounded energy and devotion of its reverend
director, had immensely increased in efficiency and extent. More than
eleven hundred children were here receiving the elementary instruction,
religious and professional, of which no other model existed. But
although his courage never failed, his strength declined, and, to save
the work, he gave it up, in 1858, into the hands of the Archbishop of
Paris, Cardinal Morlot. A document exists which proves it to have been
necessary to resist the will of the holy priest, in order that, after
having given up the value of about a million and a half of francs,
without asking either board or lodging, he should not be left utterly
without resources. The archbishop, after treating with the members of the
council of administration and obtaining the consent of Brother Philip,
who threw himself heartily into the work, placed S. Nicolas in the hands
of the Brothers of the Christian Schools, who for the last fifteen years
have admirably fulfilled this additional responsibility then confided
to them. At the time of their installation the Brothers appointed to S.
Nicolas were seventy in number; they have now increased to a hundred
and thirty, for the direction of the three houses, one of which is at
Paris, another at Issy, and the third at Igny. The house in the Rue
Vaugirard alone contains about a thousand boys, who are there taught
various trades; there are carpenters, cabinet-makers, carvers, opticians,
watchmakers, designers of patterns for different manufactures, etc., etc.
At the end of their apprenticeship these lads can earn six, seven, or
even eight francs a day. The most skilful enter the schools of _Arts et
Métiers_--arts and trades--the most brilliant efforts being rewarded by
the rank of civil engineer.

The large and fertile garden of Issy is a school of horticulture, and at
Igny the boys are taught field-labor and farming, as well as gardening;
the fruits and vegetables of Igny forming a valuable resource for the
house in the Rue Vaugirard, at Paris. The Sisters of the Christian
Schools have charge of the laundry and needle-work of the three
establishments. Once every month two members of the council inspect these
schools to the minutest details--the classes, the workshops, the gardens,
the house arrangements, the neatness of the books, etc.--and interrogate
the children.

Instrumental as well as vocal music is taught at S. Nicolas as a
professional art. A few years ago might be seen on the road from Issy
to Paris two battalions of youths who passed each other on the way, the
one that of the “little ones,” clad in blouses of black woollen; the
other the pupils and apprentices of the Rue Vaugirard, in dark gray, each
with its band of music. The passers-by called them “the regiments of S.
Nicolas.” In the French expedition into China the band of the flag-ship
was chiefly composed of former pupils of these establishments, who,
faithful to their old traditions, had with them the banner of their
patron saint, which was duly displayed on grand occasions, to the great
satisfaction of the admiral commanding the expedition.

The idea of the celebrated Dr. Branchet, of placing blind and also deaf
and dumb children in the primary schools of the Brothers, has been
attended with the happiest results. These children enter at the same age
as those who can speak and see, and, like them, remain until they have
made their first Communion, and leave just at the period when they can be
received into special institutions, where they are kept for eight years
longer. The rapid improvement in these poor children, who are under the
care of the Brothers, and of the Sisters of S. Vincent de Paul and of S.
Marie, is truly wonderful. Mistrust, timidity, and reserve speedily give
place to cheerfulness, confidence, and affection; the habitual contact
with children who can see and hear being a great assistance to the
development of their intelligence and capabilities.

In 1841 the Minister of the Interior, acting by desire of the local
authorities, requested that the Brothers should be sent to certain
of the great central prisons of France. The first essay was made at
Nîmes, where three Brothers were placed over that portion of the prison
appropriated to the younger offenders, in whom so great a change for the
better soon became apparent that a general desire arose that all the
prisoners, twelve hundred in number, should be put under their charge.
Brother Philip, after taking the matter into careful consideration,
gave his consent, to the great joy of the prefect of Nîmes; and in
the same year, 1841, the rough keepers were replaced by a detachment
of thirty-seven Brothers of the Christian Schools. In the course of
two months the new organization had effected a complete change in the
prison, not only as regarded the docility and general improvement of the
prisoners, but their health also, from the alterations made by the new
managers in the sanitary arrangements of the building. Brother Facile,
a man of great intelligence, firmness, and good sense, was the director
of the Brothers, who had various trials to undergo in the exercise of
their present functions. In spite of various difficulties, most of which
were occasioned by the conduct of lay officials, the Brothers remained
at Nîmes until 1848, when the revolution cut short their work, not only
there, but also at Fontevrault (where they had the charge of fourteen
hundred prisoners), at Aniane, and at Mélun.

The institute of the Brothers of the Christian Schools, being of French
origin, naturally developed itself first in France. At the beginning
of 1874 it numbered nine hundred and forty-five establishments in that
country, more than eight thousand Brothers, and above three hundred and
twelve thousand pupils. From the commencement of the congregation it has
had a house at Rome; and at Turin their schools are attended by more than
three thousand five hundred children. They easily took root in Catholic
Belgium, where their pupils are above fifteen thousand in number. They
are in England, Austria, Prussia, and Switzerland. Passing out of Europe,
we find them honored and encouraged in the little republic of Ecuador,
where they were first planted in 1863, under Brother Albanus, a man of
great prudence as well as of activity and zeal. Two years later four
Brothers embarked for Cochin-China, the Admiral of La Grandière having
requested Brother Philip to send them to teach the children of the new
French colony. Their first house there was at Saïgon, to which others
were added in different parts of the country, as more Brothers arrived.
They have establishments in Madagascar, the Seychelles, the East Indies,
and the Isle of Mauritius, and have been in the Ile de la Réunion
ever since 1816. They are at Tunis, where they teach the children in
Italian (that language being the one most usually spoken there); and in
Algiers, where for years the bishop, Mgr. Dupuch, had been begging that
they might be sent. Brother Philip was both ready and willing, but the
delays and difficulties raised by the French Minister of War, would not
allow him to accede to the request until 1852, after the death of M.
Dupuch, who had begun the negotiation ten years before. When, in 1870,
contrary to the entreaties of the bishop, Mgr. de Lavigerie, and the
protest of the inhabitants of the place, the Brothers were forced out of
their schools--their only offence being that they were Christian--they
opened free schools, independent of any government arrangement, and had
them filled at once by three thousand of their former pupils; the same
thing being done at other towns with the same result. A change for the
better took place in the ideas of the home government in 1871, and at
the present time, thanks to the rule of Marshal MacMahon, the Christian
Schools of Algiers have been restored to their rights.

In concert with the Lazarists the Brothers opened schools at Smyrna in
1841, and soon afterwards at Constantinople, with the authorization of
the government. They are settled also at Alexandria under the protection
of the bishop, and under that of the vicar-apostolic at Cairo, where they
have received marked proofs of interest from the Viceroy of Egypt.

But it is not of the children of the Old World only that the Brothers
have so largely taken possession; the spirit of Christianity is a spirit
of conquest, and the missionary, the Sister of Charity, and the Christian
Brother are of the conquering race.

The infant foundations of the latter have a particular interest in
the vast American continent, where either all is comparatively of
yesterday, or else the vast solitudes of ages still await the footstep
of civilization, or even of man. Religious orders prosper in this
land; and the children of La Salle first settled in Canada in 1837, at
the earnest invitation of M. Quiblier, Superior of the Seminary of S.
Sulpice at Montreal, and of Mgr. Lartique, the bishop of that city.
Four Brothers of the Christian Schools were sent by the packet-boat
_Louis Philippe_, which sailed on the 10th of October in that year,
reaching New York on the 13th of November. The _curés_ of S. Sulpice at
Paris were the earliest supporters of the venerable De la Salle; and
it is interesting to notice, at a distance of two centuries and on the
other side of the Atlantic, the sons of the same house faithful to the
same traditions. The work spread rapidly in Montreal, where in a short
time twenty-five Brothers were occupied in teaching eighteen hundred
children. Four of their pupils of this city, who had become postulants,
took the habit on All Saints’ Day, 1840. The same year brought them a
visit from the Governor-General of Canada, Lord Sydenham, who, after
entering with interest into the details of their work, gave them the
greatest encouragement. In the course of the following year they held
their classes in presence of the bishops of Montreal, Quebec, Kingston,
and Boston, numerously accompanied by their clergy, and received the
congratulations and benediction of the prelates. They opened a school
at Quebec in 1843, and later, on the invitation of the Archbishop of
Baltimore, Brother Aidant went to found one also in that city. It was he
who was authorized by Brother Philip, in 1847, to go to Paris in order to
give an account of the work which had been carried on in America during
the previous ten years, and who returned thither, accompanied by five
more Brothers.

When, in 1848, the members of the institute were withdrawn from the
central prisons of France, their superior felt that the energetic Brother
Facile would be an invaluable superintendent of the Christian Schools
in the New World. Brother Aidant had done great things during the
eleven years that he had occupied the post of director and visitor of
the province of Canada and of the United States. Five principal houses,
employing fifty Brothers, had been established there--namely, those of
Montreal, Quebec, Three Rivers, Baltimore, and New York; but the work
received a new and extensive development during the twelve years of the
directorship of Brother Facile, who, when summoned to France by Brother
Philip in 1861, left behind him 78 schools, 24,532 pupils, 368 Brothers,
and 74 novices; and this wonderful increase has subsequently continued.

In 1863 Brother Philip considered it advisable to divide North America
into two provinces, namely, those of Canada and the United States;
Brother Ambrose, director of the schools of St. Louis, Missouri, being
named visitor of the province of the United States, in residence at New
York; and Brother Liguori, of Moulins, in residence at Montreal, visitor
of the province of Canada.

The Brothers of the Christian Schools in America are recruited not only
from France, but from all the nationalities of the country. Among them
are Franco-Canadians, Anglo-Americans, Irish, Belgians, and Germans.
The visit of Lord Young, the Governor-General of Canada, in 1869, to
their principal school in Montreal, was a sort of official recognition
of their teaching on the part of Great Britain. He praised their work
as being the “type and model of a good education.” Amongst those who
were presented to him, the governor-general saw with particular interest
Brother Adelbertus, the only surviving one of the four who were sent to
Canada in 1837. They now have schools in all the six provinces of Canada,
and since 1869 have been established also at Charlottetown, the capital
of Prince Edward’s Island. A Protestant writer who visited their schools
at Halifax, in giving an account of what he had seen, stated that he was
greatly struck by “the perfect discipline of the pupils, their silence,
their prompt obedience and great assiduity, their neatness, and the good
expression of their countenances, whether Catholic or Protestant.” He
did not take offence at the short prayer said at the striking of every
hour. “Each child,” he observes, “can repeat to himself the prayer learnt
at his mother’s knee.” But what most of all excited his wonder were the
difficult exercises in geometry, trigonometry, land-surveying, algebra
(and other sciences, of which he gives a list), which he saw accomplished
by the class of advanced pupils under the direction of Brother Christian.
According to his account, the so-called _Ignorantins_ are almost
alarmingly scientific.

When we bear in mind that Canada, although its present population does
not amount to four millions, is one-third larger than France, and that
its natural resources are equivalent to those of France and Germany
combined, we can understand the importance of its future when once those
resources shall be made available; and also we perceive the wisdom of
the Christian Brothers in doing their utmost to prepare the way for this
result to be attained by a well and religiously instructed generation.

But to return to Europe. The work of the Christian Schools began in
Ireland, in 1802, when Mr. Edmund Rice, of Waterford, founded one in his
native town, with great success. Another was established in 1807, by Mr.
Thomas O’Brien, at Carrick-on-Suir, and a third at Dungarvan; but it was
not until 1822 that the Irish Brothers adopted the rule of the venerable
De la Salle. The institute in Ireland is the same in spirit as it is the
same in rule, with some slight modifications; but it does not depend
upon the French institute, although connected with it in friendly and
fraternal relations, its separate existence being especially adapted to
the wants of the people of Ireland.

In tracing some of the widespread ramifications of his work we seem to
have lost sight of the toiling Brother to whom so much of its success
was due. The fact of having the responsibility of so extensive an
administration did not prevent his personally working at the classes like
any other Brother of the institute. He possessed in a remarkable degree
the gift of imparting knowledge, whether in things human or divine.
From the time of his entrance into the institute his manner of teaching
the catechism had been remarked; and it was always with the liveliest
enjoyment that he fulfilled this important portion of his duties. Nothing
of all this teaching has been written down; but there remains a book
written by Brother Philip, of which the title is _Explanations in a
catechetical form of the Epistles and Gospels for all the Sundays and
principal festivals of the year_, in which the varied depths of religious
thought of the pious writer are presented with a precision and yet
readiness of expression in themselves constituting a simple and earnest
eloquence. This book is considered a model, both with regard to the
substance and the art of teaching; the writer does not fit the truth to
his words, but his words to the truth.

Thus far we have sketched the origin and progress of the institute of
the Brothers of the Christian Schools in times of comparative peace,
with brief exceptions; in the second and concluding part of our notice
the members of this institute will appear under a new aspect--on the
battle-fields where these men of prayer and peace showed themselves to
be, in that which constitutes true heroism, the bravest of the brave.

TO BE CONCLUDED NEXT MONTH.


THE LADY ANNE OF CLEVES.

Anne of Cleves, the fourth queen and third wife of Henry VIII. of
England, is one of the least known personages in history. Fortunately for
herself, she never gained the sad celebrity of his victims, Catherine
of Aragon, Anne Boleyn, and Catherine Howard. As virtuous and sedate
as the former, she was less high-spirited and dangerously fearless. At
the same time, her gentleness was much the same as that of her only
royal predecessor, and, like her, she won the respect and love of the
people. If she submitted somewhat too passively to the sentence of
divorce, or rather of nullification of her marriage, as pronounced by
Cranmer, it must be remembered that, unlike Catherine of Aragon, she had
reason to dread the consequences of opposition to the king’s despotic
will. Her husband’s brutal treatment of her during the short time they
lived together, his coarse expressions of disrespect and loathing, his
utter want of consideration towards her as a princess, and lack of
gentlemanlike behavior towards her as a woman and a stranger in his
realm, were enough to dispose her to consent to any conditions which
left her alive and safe, even had she not had before her eyes the sad
experience of several judicial murders committed just before and after
her ill-omened wedding. Among the strange circumstances of her--in a
sense--obscure life is this: that, having been brought up a Lutheran,
and proposed as a wife to Henry VIII. as a means of conciliating the
league of powerful Protestant princes in Germany, she died a Catholic in
her adopted country. Her sister, Sibylla, had married John Frederick,
the Elector of Saxony, who uniformly befriended Luther. Whether Anne’s
convictions were very strong or not it is not easy to say; a terror of
her future husband was enough to explain her making no demur at being
married according to the Catholic form, which was done with great pomp
and solemnity; but she did her best while queen to save Dr. Barnes, the
Reformer, probably on account of her sympathy with his opinions. In this
she was unsuccessful; indeed, she never had any influence with the king.
This is perhaps the only decided evidence of her being attached to the
doctrines in which she had been educated, and probably the religious
impressions she received in England were all in favor of Catholicity.
At this time neither court nor people had changed in doctrine, though
there _was_ a real Protestant party, quite distinct from the king’s
time-serving prelates and obsequious courtiers. Still, Henry was
unswervingly attached to the forms of the church of his fathers, and in
many points to its doctrines, and, indeed, would have been by no means
flattered by becoming the head of a “church” without outward symbolism
and stately ceremony, such as the hidden body of Puritans already desired.

The portrait of Anne of Cleves--_i.e._, of her disposition and
character--is very winning. Her mother, who, says Nicolas Wotton, was a
“very wise lady, and one that very straightly looketh to her children,”
had evidently brought her up, as most Flemish and German girls, in a
womanly, modest, and useful fashion. She is described as “of very lowly
and gentle conditions, by which she hath so much won her mother’s favor
that she is very loath to suffer her to depart from her. She occupieth
her time much with her needle. She can read and write her own, but
French, or Latin, or other language she knoweth not; nor yet can sing or
play on any instrument, for they take it here in Germany for a rebuke and
an occasion of lightness that great ladies should be learned or have any
knowledge of musick.”

It is not surprising that they should have had such a prejudice at that
time, considering how polite learning was fast becoming the all-atoning
compensation for the lowest morals and most shameless intrigues in the
courts of Italy, of France, and of England. Later on the English annalist
Holinshed, who wrote of her after her death, praised her as “a lady of
right commendable regard, courteous, gentle, a good housekeeper, and very
bountiful to her servants.” Of her kind heart her will is a striking
instance; for her heart seems more set on her “alms-children” than on
any other of her pensioners and legatees. Herbert, the author of a short
sketch of her life, gives his opinion as follows: “The truth is that
Anne was a fine, tall, shapely German girl, with a good, grave, somewhat
heavy, gentle, placid face”; but he goes on to add up her deficiencies
in beauty, style, and accomplishments, and calls her “provincial” as
compared with the “refined, volatile beauties of the French and English
or the stately donnas of the Spanish courts.”

That she was not beautiful, and that Henry was purposely deceived as
to her personal charms by the short-sighted Cromwell, is undeniable.
Henry, who had so unfeelingly discarded his once beautiful and sprightly
and his still loving, stately, and queenly wife, Catherine of Aragon,
as soon as his wandering fancy had fixed upon a younger beauty, could
not be expected to feel less than a sheer disappointment at the sight
of Anne of Cleves. So fastidious was he that he had actually asked
Francis I. of France to send him twenty or thirty of the most beautiful
women in France, that he might pick and choose among them; and when the
hapless ambassador, Marillac, had respectfully proposed that he should
send some one to the court to choose for him, he had abruptly exclaimed
with an oath: “How can I depend upon any one but myself?” Cromwell, to
whose political schemes the alliance of the Schmalkalden League (as the
coalition of German Lutheran princes was called) was necessary, duped
the king by causing Holbein to paint a flattering miniature of Anne.
This was enclosed in a box of ivory delicately carved in the likeness of
a white rose, which, when the lid was unscrewed, showed the miniature
at the bottom. Her contemporaries vary so greatly in their reports of
her appearance that an exact description of an original pencil-sketch
(unfinished) among the Holbein heads in the royal collection at Windsor
may be of some value. Miss Strickland, in her _Lives of the Queens of
England_, gives it thus: “There is a moral and intellectual beauty in
the expression of the face, though the nose and mouth are large and
somewhat coarse in their formation. Her forehead is lofty, expansive,
and serene, indicative of candor and talent. The eyes are large, dark,
and reflective. They are thickly fringed, both on the upper and lower
lids, with long, black lashes. Her hair, which is also black, is
parted and plainly folded on either side the face in bands, extending
below the ears--a style that seems peculiarly suitable to the calm and
dignified composure of her countenance.” What must have been most to her
disadvantage was not the _brown_ complexion of which Southampton, the
lord-admiral, so dexterously spoke when the king asked him in anger, “How
like you this woman--do you think her so fair?” nor her heavy features,
but the marks of the small-pox, with which she was plentifully pitted.
This, in itself, may have materially contributed to the clumsiness of
her features. Her “progress” from her native city of Düsseldorf to the
shores of England lasted two months, partly from stress of weather,
which detained her nearly three weeks at Calais, partly from the state
of the roads and the necessary pageantry which her own countrymen and
her future subjects tendered to her on her way. Antwerp distinguished
itself, as usual, by a lavish display of _bravery_. The English merchants
of that town came out four miles to meet her, to the number of fifty,
dressed in velvet coats and chains of gold; while at her entrance into
the town, at daylight, she was honorably received with twice fourscore
torches. Again, we find that she arrived at Calais between seven and
eight o’clock in the morning, and that in mid-December. As she is said
to have travelled generally at about the rate of twenty English miles a
day, and each of these places, at which she arrived so early, was made
the scene of rejoicing and feasting for her and her train, it is evident
that much of her journey must have been performed in the chilly hours
before the dawn of a winter’s day. In the train sent to welcome Anne
of Cleves were kinsmen of five out of Henry’s six queens. The time was
whiled away in the then English city of Calais in the usual festivities,
and she was taken to see the king’s ships _Lyon_ and _Sweepstakes_, which
were decked in her honor with a hundred banners of silk and gold, and
furnished with “two master-gunners, mariners, thirty-one trumpets, and
a double-drum that was never seen in England before; and so her grace
entered into Calais, at whose entering there were one hundred and fifty
rounds of ordnance let out of the said ships, which made such a smoke
that not one of her train could see the other.”[108] From Dover, after
a quick and prosperous passage of the proverbially churlish Channel,
she went to Canterbury and thence to Rochester, where, on New Year’s
eve, 1540, the king, impelled by a boyish curiosity ill-suited to his
years and antecedents, told Cromwell that he intended to visit the queen
privately and suddenly. So he and eight of his attendant gentlemen
dressed themselves alike in coats of “marble color” (probably some kind
of gray), and presented themselves in her apartments. He was taken
aback at her appearance, and for once “was marvellously astonished and
abashed.” It was the first time he had had a queen proposed to him whom
he had not seen beforehand, and he felt that, at least in the eyes of
the people, he had gone too far to be able to draw back now. He, who
had never been taught self-restraint in anything, was not the man to
exercise forbearance towards his luckless bride; yet, for the first and
almost the only time, it was noticed that he absolutely showed her some
scant civility. Either she knew him from his portraits or the evident
prominence of one of her visitors indicated to her who was her future
husband; for she sank on her knees at his approach, probably reading his
surprise by her own instincts, and wishing to propitiate him with the
meekness and deep humility of her behavior. Still, it was not Catherine
of Aragon’s dignified humility and Christian majesty of demeanor, as
she had pleaded for herself as a stranger no less than as a loving and
faithful wife. The chronicler Hall says that the king “welcomed Anne with
gracious words, and gently took her up and kissed her”--which is likely
enough; yet we cannot rely on Hall’s authority as a grave historian, in
after-times, as we always find him a gossiping and complacent relater of
court pageantries, and a blind admirer of the king’s every word and look.
No doubt he was wise in his generation--for what else could contemporary
historians do to save their heads?--and after three hundred and fifty
years we are glad to have his gorgeous _Chronicles_ to dip into. Strype,
Lord Herbert of Cherbury, Burnet, Lingard, and others agree that
immediately after the king left Anne (with whom he had supped) he angrily
called his lords together, and reproached them with having deceived him
by false reports of her beauty; and, further, that he sent her the New
Year’s gift, which he had intended to present to her in person, by his
master of the horse, Sir Anthony Browne, with a cold, formal message,
excusing himself to those about him by saying that “she was not handsome
enough to be entitled to such an honor” as his personal offering.

The French ambassador, Marillac, preserved the record of many little
details in his sprightly but gossiping correspondence with his superiors
during the years 1539-40. These diplomatic gossipings seem to have been
much the fashion; for the Venetian envoys also indulge in them. Courts
and cabinets were more intimately connected then than the _bourgeois_
improvements of the later domestic life in royal circles make it possible
for them to be now. But if the French ambassador could be minute in his
descriptions, he was not so good an adept at the mysteries of English
spelling. He invariably spells Greenwich _Greenwigs_, and Westminster
_Valsemaistre_. After Henry’s discourteous reception of his bride he
returned to his palace at the former place, and there met the cunning
contriver of the match, Cromwell, whom he upbraided coarsely for having
yoked him with a “great Flanders mare.” The minister tried to shift the
blame on Southampton, who had conducted the princess to England; but the
latter bluntly replied that “his commission was only to bring her to
England; and … as she was generally reputed for a beauty, he had only
repeated the opinion of others, … and especially as he supposed she would
be his queen.” Dealing with Henry VIII. involved a dangerous game, as no
one knew for two days together to whom to look as the “rising sun.” The
mild, gentle woman who was never to have any influence, and yet was to
win all hearts save that of the brutal king, was perhaps an object of
chivalrous pity to the lord high admiral, who thus prudently entrenched
himself within the safe limits of his “commission.”

At length, after repeated, peevish outbursts of despotic ill-temper and
such expressions as this: “Is there, then, no remedy but that I must
needs put my neck into the yoke?” the king gave orders for his marriage
preparations. It is curious to think of the now dense and unsavory city
accumulations that cover the “fair plain” at the foot of Shooter’s Hill,
on which were pitched the tent of cloth of gold and the gay pavilions
where the slighted bride was publicly met and saluted by her future
husband. To do him justice, he behaved with proper outward respect
towards her. From Greenwich to Blackheath “the furze and bushes” were
cut down and a clear road made, lined with the companies of merchants,
English, Spanish, Flemish, and Italian, in coats of embroidered velvet,
while “gentlemen pensioners” and knights and aldermen wore massive chains
of gold. The princess and her retinue, consisting both of her English
escort and her native attendants, met the king at some distance from the
tent, and patiently listened to a long Latin oration delivered by the
king’s almoner, and answered on her behalf by another solemn string of
classical platitudes by her brother’s learned secretary, of neither of
which speeches she understood one word. Anne wore a rich but somewhat
tasteless dress, cut short and round, without any train, which rather
shocked the fastidious eyes of the French ambassador and the English
courtiers. The king, for his fourth bridal, wore a dress which, though
rich, must have been unbecoming to one of his size and complexion. The
chronicler Hall describes it as a sort of frock of _purple_ velvet, “so
heavily embroidered with _flat gold of damask_ and lace that little of
the ground appeared. Chains and guards of gold hung round his neck and
across his shoulders. The sleeves and breast were cut and lined with
cloth of gold, and clasped with great buttons of diamonds, rubies, and
orient pearls, … his sword and girdle adorned with emeralds, … but his
bonnet so rich of jewels that few men could value them; … besides all
this, he wore a collar of such balas, rubies, and pearls that few men
ever saw the like.” He was on horseback, but his “horse of state” was
led behind him by a rein of gold, and wore trappings of crimson velvet
and satin embroidered with gold. A multitude of gorgeously-dressed pages
followed, each mounted on coursers with trappings to match. The princess
was no less loaded with jewels, and her horse wore trappings which,
together with the “goldsmith’s work” of the dress of her running footmen,
was embroidered with the black lion of the shield of Hainaut. The king
advanced and embraced her, and, to all outward appearance, did princely
homage to her--all through an interpreter, however; and with more
descriptions of wonderful clothes and ornaments, the old chronicler moves
the whole pageant forward through the park to Greenwich palace. At one
stage of the procession the princess seems to have exchanged her horse
for a chariot of curious, antique fashion. A prominent place was assigned
among her retinue to her three Flemish washerwomen, or, in the language
of that day, her launderers. Then followed the great water-pageant on
the Thames, where each city guild rivalled its fellows in display, every
barge rowing up and down, proudly showing its streamers, pensiles, and
targets, some painted with the king’s arms, some with her grace’s, and
some with those of their own “craft or mystery.” Then there was a barge,
made like a ship, called the bachelor’s bark, decked with the same
streaming banners, besides a “foyst,” or gun, “that shot great pieces
of artillery.” The barges also bore companies of singers and players,
some concealed, some elevated on decorated platforms. This was the fifth
time that they had been decked for a bridal, if we count Catherine of
Aragon’s first wedding-day, when the Prince Arthur, who might have
rivalled his legendary namesake, received the acclamations of a loyal
people. The loyalty must have got sadly rusty by this time, however, as
the unwieldy, bloated king rode past in his ghastly finery, escorting
another perspective victim to a palace which only good-luck prevented
from becoming her prison. Again Henry gave Cromwell ominous hints of his
distaste to Anne of Cleves, as on the evening of this holiday he asked
his opinion of her beauty. Cromwell answered that she had a queenly
manner; and for Henry, whose two beheaded favorites, Anne Boleyn and
Catherine Howard, chiefly offended him by their indiscreet and familiar
behavior, this ought to have been a source of satisfaction; yet even
on that last day of his liberty he called his council together, and
despotically ordered them to see if he could not, by any quibble, get
rid of his bargain with the despised princess. Doubtless the indignity
would have seemed rather a boon to the royal Griselda; but, such as it
was, it was not granted. Things had gone too far. The Schmalkalden League
might resent the insult; the English people, with their rough love of
“fair play,” might even rise in insurrection. Tudorism had scarcely yet
advanced to absolute Mahometanism, and the council decided that the
marriage must take place. Henry sullenly acquiesced, but Cromwell’s
fate was sealed. “I am not well handled,” exclaimed the king more than
once, and alleged that his bride had been betrothed to the Prince of
Lorraine in her childhood, though Anne, when required, solemnly denied
that at present she was bound by any pre-contract. This she was forced
to do in public before the whole council. When the marriage was fixed
for the feast of the Epiphany, 1540, Henry, ignoring the right of her
own countrymen, Overstein and Hostoden, to give her away, associated
one of his subjects, Lord Essex, in the office which by every right,
of custom as well as feeling, belonged only to the representatives of
her family. The bridal robes were a repetition of the gorgeous apparel
already described; but the _round_ dress of the bride seems ungainly. She
wore her long, luxuriant yellow hair flowing down her shoulders, says
Hall; but, as in her portrait her eyes and hair are dark, Miss Strickland
suggests that these “golden locks” were false. The contrast must have
been unfavorable. On her coronal “were set sprigs of rosemary, an herb
of grace, which was used by maidens, both at weddings and funerals, for
_souvenance_,” say some MSS. of that day.

The marriage was performed at Greenwich by Cranmer, Archbishop of
Canterbury, according to the rites of the Catholic Church. There was
a solemn Mass, at the Offertory of which the king and queen went up to
the altar and offered tapers. Then, returning to the gallery, they took
wine and spices (_i.e._, comfits and preserves), and at nine in the
morning (the marriage had been at eight o’clock) dined together. There
was something terribly incongruous in the schismatic king, excommunicated
for adultery, and the passive Lutheran princess, being joined together
in matrimony by an archbishop whose _complaisant_ character and loose
morals made many, even of that day, consider him a false shepherd. And
add to this that Queen Anne died a Catholic, and had as her chaplain
and confessor a Spaniard, whom it is permissible to identify with the
same Tomeo who was once in the service of the holy Queen Catherine of
Aragon. The wedding-ring which Henry gave to his third and last lawful
wife[109] had this motto engraved on it: “God send me weel to kepe,”
in Old-English letters. In the evening of the wedding-day the royal
pair attended Vespers in state and then supped together. These meals
must have been characterized by the same barbarous etiquette as those
on the occasion of Anne Boleyn’s coronation, during which we are told:
“And under the table went two gentlewomen and sat at the queen’s feet
during the dinner.” Their office was to hold the queen’s handkerchief,
gloves, etc. Sometimes there were as many as four of these attendants.
The queen publicly washed her hands in a silver basin full of scented
water, and the basin and ewer were both held by the great dignitaries of
the realm. Two countesses stood one on each side, “holding a fine cloth
before the queen’s face whenever she listed to spit or do otherwise at
her pleasure”--a most extraordinary office, but probably so old as to be
still in form indispensable in that land of _precedents_ and of tenacity
concerning all old customs.

Anne’s short days with her ungallant husband were a sad trial to her;
she never gained his affections nor acquired influence with him. She was
too true to feign a love she did not feel or to use adulation to conquer
power. Henry complained to Cromwell that she “waxed wilful and stubborn
with him”; and her partial biographer, Miss Strickland, says of her:
“Anne was no adept in the art of flattery, and, though really of ‘meek
and gentle conditions,’ she did not humiliate herself meanly to the man
from whom she had received so many unprovoked marks of contempt.”

The king, whether from ironical or politic motives, still called her
“sweetheart” and “darling” before the ladies of her bed-chamber, but
was already meditating a divorce. Their last public appearance together
was at the jousts at Durham House, where a company of knights in white
velvet took part in a tournament and a feast of good cheer which the
king and queen honored with their presence. This was on the first of
May, after they had been married but four months. The queen, whose
conduct was so irreproachable that her direst enemy could find no link
in this “armor of proof,” occupied her time in embroidery and needlework
with her maids of honor, as the meek but dignified Catherine of Aragon
had done, both in the days of her power and in those of her distress.
Saving the beauty which had once been his first wife’s portion, and the
majesty of character which never left her to her dying day, his third
consort must have reminded him of the pure, domestic tie which had been
his in his youth, of the blameless, gentle, yet stately courtesies in
which his court had rejoiced under the sway of a _royal_ mistress.
But the unhappy Catherine had loved him, while the more passive Anne
simply endured him. Even this was a surprise and a vexation to him, as
appeared a few weeks later, when, on hearing that she gladly assented
to the divorce, he wondered that she was so ready to part with him.
When her ladies ventured to ask her if she had told “mother Lowe,” her
confidential nurse and countrywoman, how the king neglected her, she
answered truthfully, “Nay, I have not; but I receive quite as much of his
majesty’s attention as I wish.” Henry meanwhile encouraged her English
ladies to mimic and ridicule her in her dress, her foreign accent, her
want of learning. He openly said that he had never given his _inward
consent_ to the marriage; that he feared he had wronged the Prince of
Lorraine, to whom he persisted in considering her as “precontracted”;
and further had the assurance to prate of his _conscientious scruples_
as to marriage with a Lutheran![110] But the plotter whose schemes her
marriage had served was doomed to fall before her. Cromwell was arrested
a few days before she was dismissed from the court on the pretext of her
health requiring change of air. She was banished to Richmond; he was
confined in the Tower. The facile Cranmer for the third time “dissolved”
a marriage he had made, and, obeying Henry’s changeful whims, pronounced
_both parties_ free to marry again. But the liberty so formally granted
was by no means to be literally understood as regarded the queen. “The
particulars of this transaction (the divorce),” says Miss Strickland,
“show in a striking manner the artfulness and injustice of the king and
the slavishness of his ministers and subjects.” A so-called convocation
reviewed the case and pronounced the divorce, on the grounds already
mentioned, dictated by the king, and the House of Lords cringingly passed
the necessary bill. The very same Southampton who had escorted Anne of
Cleves to England bore the message to her depriving her of her royal
state. She swooned at first, thinking that the deputation had come to
pronounce sentence of death upon her. As soon as she understood that
her life was safe she showed an alacrity in stripping herself of her
dangerous honors, which of itself was perhaps more dangerous. However,
the king was too busy with his new toy-victim, the wretched Catherine
Howard, to take notice of these symptoms of Anne’s joy at her safety.
The terms were simply honorable imprisonment. She was not to leave the
realm, and, in reality, was kept as a hostage for the good behavior of
her relatives abroad, who might otherwise have been tempted to resent her
wrongs. Here begins the uniqueness of her lot. She was adopted as the
king’s “sister,” was to resign the title of queen, but to have precedence
at court over every other lady, save the king’s future “wife” and his
two daughters, and to be amply provided for out of the royal treasury.
With Mary and Elizabeth she was on the most friendly terms, and at the
beginning of her marriage endeavored, by every means in her power, to
bring the neglected Mary into notice. From Anne’s expressions in her
letters to her brother it appears that any hostile demonstration on his
part to revenge her would have brought evil on her. She says: “Only I
require this of you: that ye so conduct yourself as for your untowardness
in this matter I fare not the worse, whereunto I trust you will have
regard.” She humbly returned her wedding-ring to her dictatorial husband,
and wrote a letter of submission in German, which the councillors sent
to him in translation. A handsome maintenance was allotted her, and she
evidently took kindly to her new position, even cheerfully acquiescing
in the command to receive no letters or messages from her kindred. Thus
the leave to “marry again” was in her case evidently only a matter of
form. The king had the boldness to allude to her “caprice” as a woman,
which might make her break these promises, and the meanness to order that
measures should be taken to prevent the possibility of her breaking them.
These are his words--a monument of despicable tyranny: “And concerning
these letters to her brother, how well soever she speaketh now, with
promises, to abandon the condition [caprice] of a woman, … we think
good, nevertheless, rather by good means to prevent that she should not
play the woman _than to depend upon her promise_; _nor, after she have
felt at our hand all gratuity and kindness_, … to leave her at liberty,
to gather more stubbornness than were expedient, … she should not play
the woman [_i.e._, change her mind] if she would.… Unless these letters
be obtained, all shall [_i.e._, will] remain uncertain upon a woman’s
promise--that she will be no woman--the accomplishment whereof, on
her behalf, is as difficult in the refraining of a woman’s will, upon
occasion, as in changing her womanish nature, which is impossible.”[111]

Marillac, the ambassador, says on this occasion that “the queen takes
it all in good part.” But the people had evidently grown to love her,
and, as far as they dared, murmured at the indignity put upon her; for
he adds: “This is cause of great regret to the people, whose love she
had gained, and who esteemed her as one of the most sweet, gracious,
and humane queens they have had; and they greatly desired her to
continue with them as their queen.” No doubt the people had a greater
sense of dignity than their king, and wished the sovereign lady of so
great a realm to be of royal race and breeding. It was not for them
to be subjects of a subject, while foreign kingdoms, and even small
principalities, had queens-consort of royal degree. They had had sad
experience, too, of the desolating rivalries produced among the great
lords by these intermarriages with subjects, and therefore welcomed the
gentle foreigner, so quick to learn English speech and English ways, but
whose kindred was little likely to embarrass them.

Anne always signed herself “Daughter of Cleves” after her dismissal from
court, and her gayety seems to have revived as soon as she found her life
safe. Scarcely a month after the divorce was pronounced Henry visited
her at Richmond, and she entertained him so pleasantly, says Marillac,
that he stayed and supped with her “right merrily, and demeaned himself
with such singular graciousness that some … fancied he was going to
take her for his queen again.” If his hostess had thought so, doubtless
she would have abated her pleasant humor and appeared less ready to
welcome him. As it was, she put on every day a rich new dress, “each
more wonderful than the last,” fared sumptuously, held her little court
like a noble English lady of that day, dispensing alms and bounties, and
passing her time, as Marillac says, “in sports and recreations.” Her real
self bloomed again in this atmosphere of safety and unrestricted mental
freedom; for such this “honorable imprisonment” as a hostage certainly
was when compared with the teasing, daily companionship with the
treacherous king. A feint was made a little later to give her a choice as
to whether she would live in England or abroad; but as the jointure was
tied up in English lands and their revenue alone, and to the possessor of
these residence in England was attached as a _sine qua non_ condition,
the liberty of choice was practically null.

Anne’s court at Richmond and her life of gentle charities and innocent
merry-makings were suddenly startled, after sixteen months’ peace, by
the news of the trial and execution of her unhappy successor, Catherine
Howard. Immediately her partisan maids of honor, and indeed all her
household, who were devoted to her, began to speculate as to the chances
of Providence interfering to reinstate their mistress in her rights.
Every one but herself wished for this restoration. One of her ladies
was actually committed to prison for having said, “Is God working his
own work to make the Lady Anne of Cleves queen again?” adding that it
was impossible that so sweet a queen as Lady Anne could be utterly put
down. But, fortunately for the queen’s peace of mind, there was no such
possibility, even though her brother’s ambassadors rather inconsiderately
urged her restoration to her rightful position. The Privy-Purse expenses
of her step-daughter, the Princess Mary, mentions a visit made by her to
Anne in the year 1543 and her largesses to the latter’s servants; also a
present of Spanish silk sent by Anne to Mary. Their intercourse seems to
have been pleasant and familiar; they were nearly of the same age and had
many domestic tastes in common. The contact between them may have been in
part the means of Anne’s becoming a Catholic, though there is but little
to show at what precise time this took place. So English had the queen
grown that when Henry died, in 1547, she did not care to go to her own
country, but willingly cast in her lot with her adopted land. Wise in her
widowhood, as she had been virtuous in her married life--no less during
the seven years of her separation than the six months of her reign--she
did not marry again nor in any way mix in political matters. Posterity
has unjustly set her down as an ugly, ill-conditioned, unlearned woman, a
person without taste and discernment, at best a mere puppet of Henry’s.
But we venture to see her otherwise; though she may not have been learned
like Mary Tudor or Jane Grey, she was yet sufficiently instructed in
all womanly arts, and quickly learned English, adapting herself, with
rare prudence and discretion, to the ways of life and even the gorgeous
sports of her adopted land; a trustworthy friend to the king’s daughters,
especially the spurned and ill-fated Mary; a benevolent and self-denying
woman, a good mistress, a pleasant hostess, an admirable manager of her
tenants, estates, and household, deft with her fingers, skilful at her
needle, gentle towards all, and, though not handsome, yet so winning
that her ladies--though it was the worst policy--had no other title for
her than their “sweet queen,” their “dear lady,” their “sweet mistress.”
She outlived her stepson, Edward VI., and assisted publicly at Mary’s
coronation, sitting in the same chariot as Elizabeth. “But,” says Miss
Strickland, “her happiness appears to have been in the retirement of
domestic life.” Further on the same biographer adds that it has been
surmised, from certain items in her list of expenses, that she sometimes
made private experiments in cooking. “She spent her time at the head
of her little court, which was a happy household within itself, and we
may presume well governed; for we hear neither of plots, nor quarrels,
tale-bearings nor mischievous intrigues, as rife in her home-circle. She
was tenderly beloved by her domestics, and well attended by them in her
last sickness.” She survived her husband ten years, and died calmly and
happily at the age of forty-one. In her will she left almost all the
money and jewels which she had at her disposal to those who had served
her and to poor pensioners, besides scrupulously ordering every debt to
be paid. She left marriage-portions for her maids of honor, and ended by
beseeching her executors to “pray for us and to see our body buried, …
that we may have the suffrages of holy church according to the Catholic
faith, wherein we end our life in this transitory world.”

Accordingly, Queen Mary had her buried in Westminster Abbey with great
pomp, and the procession was graced with a hundred of her servants
bearing torches, many knights and gentlemen with eight banners of arms
(her own) and four banners of “white taffeta wrought with gold,” then
the twelve bedesmen of Westminster in new black gowns, bearing twelve
burning torches and four white branches, her ladies on horseback and in
black gowns, and eight heralds, with white banners of arms, riding near
the hearse. At the abbey-door the abbot and other Catholic dignitaries in
mitres and copes received the corpse with the usual solemn ceremonies,
and, bringing her into the church, “tarried dirge, and all the night
with lights burning.” This stands for the Vespers in the Office for the
departed. “The next day,” says the chronicler Stow, “requiem was sung,
and my lord of Westminster (the abbot) preached as goodly a sermon as
ever was made, and the Bishop of London sang Mass in his mitre, … and
all the gentlemen and ladies offered [alms] at Mass.… Then all her head
officers brake their staves, and all her ushers brake their rods and cast
them into her tomb, … and thus they went in order to a great dinner given
by my lord of Winchester to all the mourners.”

There was more rest and peace in this funeral pageant than there had
been in the ill-omened wedding ceremony of which she had been the object
seventeen years before. Her tomb is near the high altar Westminster
Abbey, at the feet of King Sebert, the original Saxon founder, before the
restoration of the abbey by Edward the Confessor. It is a plain-looking
slab, like a bench, placed against the wall, and on parts of the
unfinished structure the curious inquirer can trace her initials, A. and
C., interwoven; but, such as it is, it is more of a memorial than fell
to the lot of any of Henry’s queens, not one of whom, says Stow, “had a
monument, except Anne of Cleves, and hers was but half a one.”

The horror felt on the Continent for the excesses and cruelty of the
Bluebeard of England was such that it was long believed that Anne had
either died by unfair means or had escaped from her “cruel imprisonment.”
An impostor, therefore, for a time was enabled to take her place at one
of the German courts--that of Coburg, where she was treated with royal
consideration--but the fraud was afterwards discovered. This is mentioned
in Shobert’s _History of the House of Saxony_. Upon the whole, Anne of
Cleves may be considered as the most fortunate among the many women whose
lives were connected with that of King Henry VIII.


IN MEMORY OF HARRIET RYAN ALBEE.

    Like as remembered music long asleep
      Within the heavy, o’erencumbered brain,
      When touched by some remote, unheeded strain,
    Returns as turning tides from ocean creep
      Along the sandy flats, and fill again
    All the least wrinkles and each minute bowl
      Which in their ebbing had imprinted been,
    And soon with mightier longing overroll
      Their wonted, moon-drawn ways, and throb and swell
    ’Gainst the bared bosom of the happy earth;
      So comes her spirit in the empty well
    Of my dead heart, and overflows its dearth
      With her all-perfect presence and the spell
    Of love as strong, as sweet, as at its birth.


THE ROMAN RITUAL AND ITS CHANT

_COMPARED WITH THE WORKS OF MODERN MUSIC._[112]

INTRODUCTION.


ON THE DIVINE IDEA.

    _The Divine Idea, the Exemplar or Pattern, in conformity with
    which the intellect and free will of man, and whatever is their
    combined work, finds its perfection._

All persons are familiar with the expression “beau ideal,” and in judging
of matters of taste nothing is more common than to appeal to the standard
of an “ideal”; as, for instance, the statue of the “Apollo Belvedere”
would be, and is commonly said to realize, the “ideal” of the human
form. Of course the ideal thus appealed to, as existing generally in the
minds of persons of education, is nothing in itself absolutely certain
or determinate. But, as far as it goes, it is a natural indication that
the standard and measure of all perfection is an “ideal.” For we see that
an ideal which is generally recognized and acknowledged by persons of
taste and refinement does, in point of fact, come to be a standard, the
authority of which is accepted to a great extent by others.

What is, then, in a measure true of an “ideal” subsisting in the mind of
persons of education, as a standard of perfection, must be infinitely
true of the idea of creation subsisting in the mind of God from all
eternity. But as this leads to a speculative portion of Christian
philosophy which can scarcely be deemed popular, and might perhaps give
rise in some minds to the feeling “parturiunt montes,” if they found that
an abstruse foundation had been formally laid only for the superstructure
of a discussion upon plain chant, the few remarks that have seemed
necessary to explain and justify the ground on which the ensuing essay
proceeds have been collected together, and are here given in the form of
an introduction, for the sake of burdening the discussion as little as
possible with reasoning that does not properly belong to it.

All creation, according to Catholic theology, is the work of the
ever-blessed Trinity. For only inasmuch as the Godhead subsisting in a
Trinity of persons is for itself a perfect and undivided whole (κοσμος
τελειος) can God bring into being a creation external to himself, without
becoming himself the world which he creates.

To God the Father theologians assign the eternal idea, or the conception
from all eternity of the idea or form of creation;

To God the Son, the realization of the idea of the Father, or the act of
bringing created things into being out of nothing, in conformity with the
idea of the Father;

To God the Holy Ghost, the bringing creation to its perfection through
the period of its development or growth.

S. Basil speaks to this effect in the following passage: “In the
creation I regard the Father as the first cause of created being, the
Son as the creating cause, and the Holy Ghost as the perfecting cause.
So that spirits, through the will of the Father, are called into actual
being through the operation of the Son, and are brought to perfection
by the presence of the Holy Spirit. Let no one, however, think either
that I assume the existence of three original substances or that I call
the operation of the Son imperfect. For there is but one first principle
(αρχη), which creates through the Son and brings to perfection through
the Holy Ghost” (_De Spiritu Sancto_, c. 16).

The work, then, of God the Father was the eternal idea of all creation;
in the language of S. Gregory Nazianzen, εννοει ὁ πατηρ--και το εννοημα
(idea) ἐργον ην, λογῳ συμπληρουμενον και πνευματι τελειουμενον (_Orat._
xxxviii. n. 9); and this thought or idea was a work brought into reality
by the Word, and brought to perfection by the Spirit.

The eternal idea of creation is thus explained by S. Thomas, _Summa_, p.
i. quæst. xv. art. 1 (_Utrum ideæ sint_):

“I answer that it is necessary to suppose ideas in the mind of God.
Idea is a Greek word, and answers to the Latin _forma_, form. Whence by
the term ideas we understand the forms of things that exist external
(_præter_) to the things themselves. The form of a thing existing
external to it may serve two purposes: 1. That it should be the
exemplar (ideal) of that of which it is said to be the form, or that it
should be, as it were, the principle of knowledge itself, according to
which the forms of things that may be known are said to exist in the
understanding. And in either point of view it is necessary to suppose
ideas, as will be at once manifest. In all things that are not generated
by chance, it is necessary that the production of some form should be
the result of the act of generation. For an agent would not act with
reference to a particular form, except so far as he was already in
possession of the likeness of the form in question. In some agents the
form of the thing to be produced already pre-exists in a natural manner
(_secundum esse naturale_), as in those things which act by natural
laws; but in others the form pre-exists in the intellect (_secundum esse
intelligibile_). Thus the likeness or form of a house already exists in
the mind of the builder, and this may be called the idea of a house; for
the architect intends to make the house resemble the form which he has
conceived in his mind. As, then, the world is not made by chance, it
follows that there must exist a _form_ (idea) in the mind of God, after
the likeness of which the world was made.”

Quite similar to these words of S. Thomas are the statements of S.
Augustine, Dionysius, and other fathers, who had to deal on the one hand
with the philosophy of Plato, which taught that God created the world
out of eternal matter, and according to an exemplar or ideal existing
externally to himself (κοσμος νοητος); and on the other with the Gnostic
Pantheism, which taught that the divine idea after which the world was
created was identical with God, and creation consequently no more than an
extension or manifestation of the Godhead.

Similar also is the following passage of the Abate Rosmini:

“‘Fide intelligimus aptata esse secula verbo Dei, ut ex invisibilibus
visibilia fierent’ (Heb. xi. 3). What ever are these invisible things
from which the things that are visible have been drawn? They are the
conceptions of the Almighty, which subsisted in his mind before the
creation of the universe; they are the decrees which he has framed from
all eternity, but which remained invisible to all creatures, because
these latter were not yet formed and the former not yet carried into
execution. These decrees and conceptions are the design of the wise
Architect, according to which the building has to be formed. But this
design was never at any time drawn out on any external material, on paper
or stone, but existed only in his own mind” (Rosmini, _Della Divina
Providenza_, ed. Milano, 1846, p. 57).

Creation proceeds from the thought and will of God jointly exercised,
and is something external to God, which he has brought into being out of
absolute nothing, to quote Professor Staudenmaier: “The world is God’s
idea of the world brought into being, and the perfection of the original
world consisted in the fact that it absolutely corresponded to the divine
idea” (_Die Lehre von der Idee_, p. 914). “Et vidit Deus quod esset
bonum” (Gen. i. 10).

The creation which we see, and of which we are ourselves immediately a
part, bears the appearance of being an organized system, far outreaching
the powers of our intelligence; and we conclude intuitively that not only
as an organized whole it answers to the idea of God, which contemplated
system, order, harmony, and subordination of parts, but, further, that
every several part, as it came forth from the hand of the Creator, was
found good. In creation there are two principal parts, the material
world and the world of spirits. Matter, from the first instant of
creation, being without free will or mind, necessarily obeys the laws
of its Creator, and at once absolutely answers to the divine idea.
But spirits were created in the image of God, and were endowed with
the likeness of his power of thought and will, and with a personality
resulting from the possession of these gifts. To them, therefore, there
is a moral trial or probation to be passed through before they finally
correspond to the idea of their Creator. It is indeed true that from the
instant of their creation they realize the divine idea, in so far as that
idea contemplates them, about to enter upon probation; but their passing
through this trial or probation to the attainment of their perfection is
also contemplated, and of this perfection the divine idea is the exemplar
or form.

Spirits, then, formed in the image of God, and endowed with created
being, intellect, and will, in the present system of creation, pass
through probation; and their probation consists in learning to possess
these gifts in subordination to their Creator, who is absolute being,
intellect, and will; and this trial is necessary to the perfection of
their nature and to their passing into the possession of their permanent
place (ταξις) in the great order and harmony of the universe. There is
not, and cannot be, in the mind of God, any idea of evil. Evil has its
sole origin in the rebellion of the created spirit when it refuses to
possess and use its power of thought and will in subordination to the law
and majesty of its Creator. And hence, although the rebel spirit answered
equally with others at the first moment of its creation to the divine
idea, yet, inasmuch as in its subsequent career it has placed itself
against its Creator, it has ceased to answer to the divine idea; it has
become a contradiction to it, and henceforward its existence is evil.

The case as regards the human creation does not differ at all in
principle. Man is also a spirit, though his spirit be united to a body,
and he is possessed of the same trinity of gifts--being, thought, and
will--although from the circumstance of his coming into the world in
the form of an infant, with his intellect and will in a state of germ,
appointed to acquire their natural maturity only in process of time,
his probation would seem to require a longer period than that of the
angels, and to be subject to the fluctuation of rebellions, succeeded by
repentances, and _vice versâ_--all which hardly seems probable in their
case. Still man, like the angels, passes through his probation; and when
he has passed through it, he is found either realizing the idea of his
Creator, and happy, or fallen from it, and henceforward in contradiction
with it, for an eternity of misery. The idea of the Creator is to man, as
well as to the angels, the exemplar, or pattern, of his perfection.

Analogous to the first creation of the world is the second great work of
God--the redemption or new creation. Its decree is from God the Father;
the carrying into effect the Father’s decree is the work of God the
Eternal Son; and the conducting it to perfection during the period of its
growth and probation is the work of the Holy Ghost.

Nor is this work of redemption based upon any fundamental change in
the eternal idea of God, after which man was created. The eternal idea
of God is incapable of change, and the work of grace or redemption
is the restoration to a state of grace of the whole race, which, in
the person of Adam, fell into a condition of helpless although not
total contradiction with the divine idea; and in his restored state of
redemption the power has been again given to him of issuing out of his
probation through the aid and guidance of the Holy Ghost, conformable to
the unchanged, eternal idea of the Father.

To prevent misconception, it may be further remarked, in the words of
Professor Staudenmaier, “The second creation (or scheme of redemption)
builds itself, on the one side, on _all that is indestructible_ in the
divine idea of man, as intelligence and freedom, and at the same time
labors to restore again that which was really lost by the original
transgression, viz., the supernatural principle and the justice and
holiness of life which stands in connection with it. Hence under the
scheme of redemption man comes to the perfection of his nature, in the
manner in which that perfection was contemplated in the divine idea (_in
der Idee gesetz war_), viz., as the union of grace and free will (_in der
Einheit von Freiheit und Gnade_).” (_Die Lehre von der Idee_, p. 923).

The divine idea, then, is the exemplar or pattern of perfection
(προορισμος παραδειγμα, forma seu exemplar, _das Musterbild_) which,
under the scheme of redemption, man is called to realize. And his term
of probation, under the guidance and influence of God the Holy Ghost, is
so constituted as to be the trial of both his intellect and will, which
in man, as in God, are mutually co-operating and co-ordinate springs of
action. But though in man intellect and will must ever move hand in hand
and in mutual concert to determine his actions, yet it is possible for
him to go astray through the special fault of one or the other, and to
be found at the end of his probation not to be what he might and ought
to have been, as well through some special error of the understanding as
through some vicious act of the will. Hence, after that the sacrifice had
been paid which purchased man’s restoration to a state of grace, God the
Father, in the Son and through the Eternal Spirit, went on to provide the
aid that was found absolutely necessary to protect the erring intellect
and the infirm will, in order that men might be preserved in the state of
grace, be guided in it onward to their perfection, and be furnished with
the medicinal means of restoration in case they might fall from it.

To this end the great society of the Catholic Church was instituted by
God the Son, and the command given to the Apostolic College to go forth
to collect and organize it out of all the nations of the earth: “As the
Father hath sent me, so send I you”; while the work of God the Holy Ghost
is the invisible imparting of spiritual gifts to the baptized members of
this society, according to the needs of their rank, position, ministry,
and functions; and the whole work is directed to the end that man may
issue out of his probation fulfilling and realizing the divine idea.

Now, as God recognizes, in the probation of man, the trial of both
intellect and will, and wills that not without the free exercise of these
he should attain the perfection of his nature, our first parents, in
the state of innocence, would, from their then enjoying a communication
with heaven, possess, perhaps, partly through intuition, partly from
revelation, a knowledge of the divine Exemplar, into conformity with
which they were called to bring themselves. But when man fell and lost
the illumination of sanctifying grace, then the perception of the divine
ideal would be obscured and would cease to exist, except in the way of
the few mercifully-surviving glimpses of their higher destination, which
the history of our fallen race seems to indicate were never wholly lost.

It must be obvious, then, that a clear and practical view of the divine
Exemplar, which we are required to resemble, is as much the natural guide
of the intellect in its probation as the view of the moral attributes
of God is that which wins the heart and leads captive the will. It was,
among other reasons, in order to place this Exemplar before us, that
the Eternal Son became man, and thus laid before the intellect of man,
in his own most sacred humanity, the incarnate Exemplar of that which
humanity was to aim at becoming during the course and at the issue of
its probation. And if a doubt could for a moment cross the mind as to
the question, What is the likeness or ideal that a Christian, as far as
the power is given to him, should seek to aim at bringing himself to
resemble? it is answered by the fact of the Incarnation of the Son of
God. He is the incarnate Exemplar, or Pattern, for our study. His sacred
humanity absolutely answers to the idea of God the Father; and they who,
through the aid of God the Holy Ghost, succeed in acquiring a resemblance
to this incarnate Pattern, will be found at the issue of their probation
so far to realize the end for which they were created.

The sacred humanity of the Eternal Son being now no longer visible in
the same manner as in the days when he taught with his apostles in
Judæa, the church which he has founded has come to supply his place,
and, by her varied means of instruction, to bring the knowledge of this
divine Exemplar home to the minds of all. In the words of an author
quoted by Professor Möhler, the church is a continuation of Christ (_ein
fortgesetzer Christus_).

And thus with the question of Christian song. The intellect must at once
feel that it needs a guide, and cannot be safely entrusted to itself.
Nor can this guide be any other than the divine idea. And here, of
course, it would be a manifest impiety for a human mind to attempt to
construct, _à priori_, an idea of music, and then to call its own work
the divine idea; for the whole value of the inquiry that is to follow is
built on the truth that the main features and the subsequently-detailed
constituent parts of the divine idea, as they have been laid down, are
what they claim to be; and so far as these are capable of being disputed,
the comparison will of course fail of its effect. Professor Staudenmaier
justly observes, in treating of the creation, “Both ideas, the divine
and the human, stand in this relation to each other: that God realizes
his own eternal idea of the world in the act of creation, while man has
to acquire his idea of the world from reasoning and an experimental
examination of the world as it exists after creation. As the idea, then,
to God is the first, and the world last, so, on the contrary, to man the
world is first and the idea last, as that, namely, which he has had to
gain for himself, as the result of a scientific examination of the divine
work” (_Die Christliche Dogmatik_, vol. iii. part 1, p. 42.)

But if it be possible for the human mind to obtain a view of the divine
idea of the creation from the study of the world as it exists, it must be
also possible, in an analogous manner, to gain a view of the divine idea
of Christian music from the history of the church and the legislation of
councils, from the doctrine of the apostles and fathers of the church,
and, lastly, from the reason of the thing. The contrary supposition would
involve the inadmissible alternative that our divine Redeemer, who had
done so much to furnish our understanding with its needed measure of
guidance in the fact of his Incarnation and his living example, has left
us without any principle at all to serve as our guide in the choice and
employment of sacred music. This cannot be. The divine Teacher of mankind
cannot, for his mercy’s sake, have left us to ourselves in so important
a matter, that so much concerns the adoration he has himself taught us
to pay to his Father and the Holy Spirit. It must be possible, from his
own sacred words, from those of his inspired apostles, from the doctrine
of the fathers, from the history and legislation of the church, as well
as from our own Christian reason and instinct, as has been humbly and
imperfectly attempted in the ensuing inquiry, to gather a view of the
divine idea sufficiently clear and intelligible, sufficiently trustworthy
and decisive, to serve as a guide for the understandings of those who
feel the deep and dear interest of the question and their own liability
to fatal error, with all its destructive consequences.

And if the means of acquiring such a view be open, it need not be said
how great a duty there is to search for it; and in whatever proportion
there be ground for believing that it has been, even though imperfectly,
attained, it becomes so far a duty--an element in our probation, as
well as a sacred and meritorious work, by every tender, considerate,
legitimate, and untiring endeavor, to seek to bring Catholic Church music
into conformity with it.


I.

GENERAL STATEMENT OF THE BASIS OF THE COMPARISON.

It would be surely a superfluous labor at the outset of an inquiry which
it is desirable should be as short and condensed as possible to prove,
in a learned manner, the great practical importance of the question,
What, under our present circumstances, is the wisest, the best, and the
most effectual use of music in the Catholic Church? The œcumenical and
provincial councils that have made ritual chant the subject of their
legislation; the authors, such as Cardinal Bona and Abbot Gerbertus,
subsequent to the Council of Trent, not to speak of those who lived
before it, who spent their lives in the study of all that Christian
antiquity has thought and written upon it; the line of illustrious Roman
pontiffs who made it their study, with a view to the true direction of
its use in the church, need but to be recalled to mind to place in its
true light the exceedingly practical importance of any controversy which
affects its efficiency or mode of employment in the Catholic Church.[113]
Moreover, if there were no such evidence of the importance of the
question at issue to be found in the history of the past, still the mere
obvious fact that vocal music enters so naturally into all the feelings
of humanity, and domesticates itself so easily in every people, would
be sufficient to explain its importance. People in any society are so
insensibly moulded by all that surrounds them, are so much the creatures
of the system in which they move, and grow up so naturally in conformity
with it, that in such a society as the Catholic Church, organized by
a divine wisdom, with a view to the training and instruction of its
members, it is simply impossible that an agency such as music, possessed
of such power for good or evil, could ever be regarded with indifference,
or that there should be no definite views with regard to it, and its
employment be abandoned to the indiscretion and caprice of individuals.

A question of individual taste, then, the present inquiry cannot for an
instant be considered. Indeed, from the moment it were thus regarded
it would have lost its whole value. Persons are no doubt to be found
who would take a long journey and pay a large sum to hear Beethoven’s
music for the Ordinary of the Mass sung among the performances of a
music-meeting, who, as far as music was concerned, and setting aside the
miracle, would hardly care to go across the street to hear S. Gregory
sing Mass with his school of cantors, were they all to rise from the
dead. So that if music in the Catholic Church could for a moment be
considered as belonging of right to the dominion of individual taste,
further controversy, it is plain, would be so far quite out of the
question. The tastes of individuals, if not only devoid of rule, still do
not go by any rule sufficiently clear to be made the subject of a formal
controversy.

But in the Catholic Church the question is not, and cannot be, one of
individual taste. When the divine Redeemer called his church to the work
of training every nation and people under heaven, and gave to it the gift
of sacred song, to be used as a powerful auxiliary agency in their work,
we are bound to conceive that there existed in his divine mind a clear
and definite intention, both relatively to the end it was intended to
accomplish in the midst of Christian society, and to its application to
this end as time should advance.

Sacred song has certainly a mission to accomplish upon earth, as well as
the proper manner of its application to its proposed end; and both alike
have been, in common with the whole work of creation, from the beginning
contemplated and intended by Almighty God.

Now, the end intended by Almighty God, in his work of redemption in this
world, as say theologians, is primarily the manifestation of his own
glory; and, secondarily, the re-establishment of order and virtue, piety
and sanctity, in human society, with a view to the life to come, or, in
other words, with a view to the true and eternal, as distinguished from
the false and fleeting, happiness of his creatures. From whence it would
seem to result that the true character of the ecclesiastical song and
its true application will be that in which it tends, in its own proper
degree, to become an auxiliary in the accomplishment of this great end.
Nor is it a second or a third rate efficaciousness that should be
deemed sufficient. For if Almighty God, as many theologians seem with so
much justice to say, not from any external necessity, but from his own
perfections, in virtue of which he is a law to himself, freely chooses
only those means that are _most_ efficacious to the end he proposes, so,
in like manner, the Catholic Church, filled as she is with the outpouring
of the divine Spirit, and called to the imitation of the divine
perfections, cannot but in like manner feel constrained to choose that
alone for her music which tends, with the best and most certain efficacy,
to the attainment of the end which God has designed in the gift.

The foregoing remarks have, I hope, now laid the foundation on which the
proposed inquiry may be conducted. And I think I may be allowed to say
in the outset that an inquiry which has for its object to ascertain what
that may be in music and in the manner of its use which answers best
to the idea existing in the mind of God, unless it very much belie its
pretensions and profession, may justly claim respect; and that the whole
investigation is thus at once raised beyond the horizon of anything like
human partisanship, as well as the sphere of those little irritabilities
with which discussions upon music may so easily be disfigured. And
without at all presuming that the views here advocated ought necessarily
to be adopted, the inquiry is still not a valueless service rendered to
religion, if it succeed no further than in impressing upon the minds of
those into whose way it may fall the fundamental idea upon which it is
built, viz., that the mission of sacred song in the Catholic Church
is to realize, not the _ideas_ of men, which may and do differ in each
individual, but the _idea_ of the merciful and good God, who gave it for
his own purposes of mercy and benevolence.

And since the idea, as it subsists in the mind of God, relative to the
use of song in the Catholic Church, is made the sole keystone of the
whole inquiry, as well to guard an avenue against possible misconceptions
as also the more clearly to lay the basis of the discussion, it will be
necessary to state, at a somewhat greater length, what the divine idea of
sacred song, in its first broad outline, may be taken to be.

Sacred song, it has been said, is to be regarded as the musical associate
and auxiliary of the work of Christian instruction and sanctification
in the church. It cannot be anything or everything that is luscious or
pleasing in music; moreover, it is an idea that goes beyond the notion of
mere tune or melody, or even of the richest combination of sound that art
ever produced. Sacred song, in the divine idea, must be more than mere
music. For though it be true that tunes and other works of art in music
are so far things by themselves as to be capable of being written in
notation, and thus preserved, still it seems impossible that mere tunes
and mere music should answer to the divine idea of sacred song.

When music has ceased to be mere sound; when it has been taken up by
the feelings and living intelligence of the human heart and mind; when
these have wedded it to themselves, have created in it a dwelling-place
and a home, and out of it have formed for themselves a second language
and range of expression; when the charm of melody has become the organ
of a living soul and an energetic intelligence, then there results the
birth of an element of the utmost power for good or evil in the heart
of human society; and it is in this power, Christianized and reduced to
subservience to the church, that there may be seen the first outline of
the divine idea of sacred song.

This principle is thus stated by Mgr. Parisis, Bishop of Langres:

“To preserve the true character of the ecclesiastical chant it is
necessary to recall to mind the following essential maxim:

    ‘_Music_ for _words_, and not _words_ for _music_.’

This is not the principle of worldly music, in which the words are often
nothing but the unperceived and insignificant auxiliary of the sound.

“In religion this cannot be, because articulate language is the essential
basis of all outward worship, especially public worship. This is a
certain truth of both reason and tradition. It is a truth of reason; for
language, that marvellous faculty which the Creator has given to man
alone, is exclusively capable of finding an adequate expression for a
worship of spirit and truth. It is also a truth of tradition; for the
Catholic divine Offices have always been composed of words either drawn
from the Sacred Scriptures or consecrated by tradition and chosen by
the church. It is superfluous to press the demonstration of a principle
that has never even been contested by any sect of separatists and does
not admit of serious doubt” (_Pastoral Instruction on the Song of the
Church_, part ii.)

The three great social convulsions of France have given a remarkable
proof of the above-mentioned power of song. Each called into being, and
was furthered in its rise and progress, by a song, _La Marseillaise_,
_La Parisienne_, and that whose well-known burden runs thus:

    “C’est le plus beau sort, le plus digne d’envie
    Que de mourir pour la patrie.”

Separate the words of these songs from their melodies, and the result
would probably be the insignificance of both. But unite them, see them
pass into the mouths and hearts of convulsed multitudes, observe men,
under the delirium of their influence, march up to the cannon’s mouth and
plunge themselves headlong into eternity, and we have an instance of what
is meant by saying that music, united to intelligence, is an agent of
nearly unlimited power for good or evil in human society.

This, then, is the sense in which sacred song is to be viewed as
contemplated in the divine idea, viz., as the union of music with
thought, feeling, and intelligence; in the words of the apostle (1 Cor.),
_I will sing with the spirit, and I will sing with the understanding
also_--not, of course, as taking the understanding out of its natural
medium, language, but as clothing this its natural expression with a
superadded charm, and a charm too, as will be afterwards seen, which
has the gift of absorbing and, to a certain extent, of reproducing the
idea annexed to it. The church music which the divine idea contemplates
is that vocal song which Christian truth, in all its varied range, has
appropriated, has taken from the sphere of music and wedded to herself,
with the view of using the song thus associated to herself as the
instrument by which she may pass into the mouths of men, and in this
way find a home in their hearts. Analytically, then, in the sacred
song contemplated by the divine idea, two separate elements are to be
acknowledged--song and truth--but practically only one; for in practice
they are indissolubly linked together, and constitute one moral whole, as
body and soul together make up but one living being, to which, even more
than to the sacred architecture of a church, the beautiful sentiment of
the Ritual may be applied:

    “O sorte nupta prospera,
    Dotata Patris gloria,
    Respersa sponsi gratia,
    Regina formosissima,
    Christo jugata principi.”

    _De Ded. Eccl._

Turning now, with this view of sacred song, to inquire what the Catholic
Church possesses, after 1800 years of labor with the people of every
variety of race and climate, in realization of the idea above stated,
her various rituals, now for the most part withdrawn to make way for the
beautiful Ritual of the Roman Church, present themselves to view. These
rituals and their chant[114] have, we may be sure, at least in their day,
been in the church the fulfilment, imperfect indeed and inadequate, as
all that man does in this world necessarily is, yet still the fulfilment
of the divine idea with respect to song. More cannot be necessary in
support of this statement than the fact of the innumerable churches that
have overspread Christendom, and the innumerable companies of saintly men
whose lives were spent in the choirs of these churches--not, of course,
to the exclusion of other duties and spheres of labor, yet mainly spent
in the choral celebration of the offices of the Ritual and in all that
accessory labor of musical study and tuition which the organization of a
choir and the becoming celebration of the divine Office imply. The divine
idea, in accordance with which sacred song has a fixed and determinate
end to realize in the church, is the only way to account for this vast
phenomenon in the history of Christendom. Nothing but an idea in the mind
of God that sacred song is the living adjunct of the living truth, which
the Catholic Church was sent to teach, could have had the power to call
into being, not alone the rituals themselves and their song, but the
innumerable choirs of Christendom which have been gathered together and
governed by a more than human wisdom of organization for the purpose of
their celebration.

Bearing in mind, then, that sacred song is the combination of music with
the words of inspired truth, I propose, in the ensuing inquiry, to draw
a detailed comparison between the Roman liturgy and its traditional
chant, on the one hand, and the works of the modern art of music, which
constitute the _corps de musique_, if I may use the expression now in
use, adapted as they are to parts of the liturgy, and in their own way
contributing to supply the want that is felt for sacred music; and this
with the view to ascertain, as far as may be, from the result of the
comparison, in which of the two the divine idea and intention is best
answered and fulfilled. The human mind will not, and indeed ought not to,
submit to any mere human idea, but ought willingly to accept the idea of
God; and hence nothing but the divine idea, and this alone, is or can be
the key to the present inquiry.


II

THE COMPARISON CARRIED INTO ITS DETAILS.

It has been already laid down that sacred song is the union of music
to the words of inspired truth, with the view of its thus becoming an
auxiliary in the work of Christian instruction and sanctification.

Before passing on to the approaching details let us stop for a moment
fairly to consider the result of this principle as it affects the
comparison generally.

Here, on the one hand, we have the _Canto Fermo_, with its vast variety
of music, embracing an equally varied range in the stores of divine
revelation, inasmuch as it is the counterpart in song of the entire
Ritual; on the other hand we have the works of modern music, of which
I am speaking, embracing scarcely more than a fraction of the Ritual.
With a vast numerical rather than a real variety in point of the one
constitutive element of sacred song--viz., music--they are poverty itself
as regards the other--viz., inspired truth--the _Kyrie_, _Gloria_,
_Credo_, _Sanctus_, and _Agnus Dei_, from the Ordinary of the Mass, and
a small number of hymns, antiphons, and scattered verses from the Holy
Scriptures, in the form of motets, being literally the sum-total of their
possession in this element.

And now to carry the comparison into its details. The divine idea of
sacred song could not have been known to us without a revelation, the
very gift itself being, from its nature, the companion of a revelation.
We are not, therefore, as has been remarked in the introduction, thrown
upon our own natural powers of speculation either for our general
knowledge of the divine idea itself or for gaining an insight into its
constituent details; indeed, without revelation this would have been
altogether beyond our natural capacities. But since God became man and
founded his own society, the Catholic Church, and both taught himself
and placed inspired teachers in it to succeed him, the ideas of God as
to questions that concern the welfare of his church have, through the
Incarnation of the Son, been brought to the level of our capacities,
and are to be found in the Scripture and in Christian theology, and are
there to be sought for as occasion may require. Thus examined, then,
by the light of the Christian revelation, the divine idea of sacred
song will, without urging that these are co-extensive with it, admit
of being resolved into the ensuing points; the truth of which will be
proved separately, as they come forward successively in the course of the
comparison. They are as follows:

I. Authority: 1, ecclesiastical; 2, moral.

II. Claim to the completeness and order of a system.

III. Moral fitness: 1, as a sacrificial song; 2, as a song for the
offices of the church.

IV. Fitness for passing among the people as a congregational song.

V. Moral influence in the formation of character.

VI. The medium or vehicle for divine truth passing among the people.

VII. Medicinal virtue.

VIII. Capacities for durable popularity.

IX. Security against abuse.

X. Catholicity, or companionship of the Catholic doctrines over the globe.

Upon these, then, the comparison may be now conducted.

TO BE CONTINUED.


NEW PUBLICATIONS.

    THE INTERNAL MISSION OF THE HOLY GHOST. By Henry Edward,
    Cardinal Archbishop of Westminster. New York: The Catholic
    Publication Society. 1875.

Those who have read the most eminent prelate’s _Temporal Mission of
the Holy Ghost_ will know what a spiritual and intellectual feast is
before them in the present work, “which traces,” says the author, in his
dedicatory preface to the Oblates of S. Charles, “at least the outline of
the same subject.”

“The former book,” he explains, “was on the special office of the Holy
Ghost in the one visible church, which is the organ of his divine voice.
The present volume deals with the universal office of the Holy Ghost in
the souls of men. The former or special office dates from the Incarnation
and the day of Pentecost; the latter or universal office dates from the
Creation, and at this hour still pervades by its operations the whole
race of mankind. It is true to say with S. Irenæus, ‘Ubi Ecclesia, ibi
Spiritus--Where the church is, there is the Spirit’; but it would not be
true to say, Where the church is not, neither is the Spirit there. The
operations of the Holy Ghost have always pervaded the whole race of men
from the beginning, and they are now in full activity even among those
who are without the church; for God ‘will have all men to be saved and
to come to the knowledge of the truth.’”

“I have, therefore,” he continues, “in this present volume, spoken of
the universal office of which every living man has shared and does share
at this hour; and I have tried to draw the outline of our individual
sanctification.”

And then, after expressing a hope that the Oblate Fathers may be “stirred
up to edit in one volume” certain great treatises, patristic and
scholastic, on the Holy Ghost and his gifts, as “a precious store for
students and for preachers”--a wish in which we most heartily concur--he
goes on to say:

“My belief is that these topics have a special fitness in the XIXth
century. They are the direct antidote both of the heretical spirit
which is abroad and of the unspiritual and worldly mind of so many
Christians. The presence of the Holy Ghost in the church is the source
of its infallibility; the presence of the Holy Ghost in the soul is the
source of its sanctification. These two operations of the same Spirit
are in perfect harmony. The test of the spiritual man is his conformity
to the mind of the church. _Sentire cum Ecclesia_, in dogma, discipline,
traditions, devotions, customs, opinions, sympathies, is the countersign
that the work in our hearts is not from the diabolical spirit nor from
the human, but from the divine.”

And again:

“It would seem to me that the development of error has constrained the
church in these times to treat especially of the third and last clause
of the Apostles’ Creed: ‘I believe in the Holy Ghost, the Holy Catholic
Church, the Communion of Saints.’ The definitions of the Immaculate
Conception of the Mother of God, of the Infallibility of the Vicar of
Christ, bring out into distinct relief the twofold office of the Holy
Ghost, of which one part is his perpetual assistance in the church; the
other, his sanctification of the soul, of which the Immaculate Conception
is the first-fruits and the perfect examplar.

“The living consciousness which the Catholic Church has that it is the
dwelling place of the Spirit of Truth and the organ of his voice seems to
be still growing more and more vividly upon its pastors and people as the
nations are falling away.”

The work consists of seventeen chapters. The first two are headed
respectively “Grace the Work of a Person,” and “Salvation by Grace.”
Then follow three on the virtues of faith, hope, and charity. The sixth
treats of “The Glory of Sons.” From the seventh to the fourteenth we have
the “Seven Gifts of the Holy Ghost.” The fifteenth is on “The Fruits
of the Spirit”; the sixteenth on “The Beatitudes.” The last chapter
deals with “Devotion to the Holy Ghost.” We must refrain from making
citations from these chapters; for if we once began, we should find
it very difficult to stop. But we would draw special attention to the
ninth chapter, on the “Gift of Piety,” and again to the seventeenth, on
“Devotion to the Holy Ghost.” This devotion is one we have very much at
heart; for none, we are persuaded, can so help us to realize the presence
of God with and in us, and also the intimacy and tenderness of his love.
We believe, with the Ven. Grignon de Montfort, that devotion to the Holy
Ghost is to have a special growth, in union with devotion to his spouse,
Our Lady, in these last times of the church.

We commend, then, this beautiful book to our readers as one of the most
valuable and at the same time delightful it can ever be their lot to
study. The happy language and luminous style of the author make his
works intelligible to the ordinary mind beyond those of most theological
writers. We trust that every encouragement will be given to the
circulation of this work in America.

We have but to add that this is the only authorized American edition
of the work, having been printed from duplicate sets of the stereotype
plates of the London publishers.

    MARY, STAR OF THE SEA; or, A Garland of Living Flowers Culled
    from the Divine Scriptures and Woven to the Honor of the Holy
    Mother of God. A Story of Catholic Devotion. New York: The
    Catholic Publication Society. 1875.

It is scarcely necessary to say aught in praise of so old and
well-established a favorite as this, further than to mention that the
above is identical with the new and handsome London edition containing
the corrections and additions of the author. The original edition,
published in 1847, has been some time out of print, and the English
market was supplied from this country until the American plates were
consumed in the Boston fire.

This is not like the common run of stories; the story is only a
slender thread, on which the garland of flowers culled by the pious
and gifted author in honor of the Most Holy Virgin Mary is strung.
The style is subdued, poetic, and devout, and there is just enough of
dramatic personality and incident to relieve the mind and interest
the imagination, while the reader follows the current of thought and
reflection and pious sentiment which chiefly demands his attention.

We are now authorized to state that this work, which has heretofore
appeared anonymously, was written by Edward Healy Thompson, A.M., so
favorably known by the Library of Religious Biography, embracing Lives
of SS. Aloysius and Stanislaus Kostka, Anna Maria Taigi, etc., published
under his editorial and authorial supervision.

This work is admirably adapted, both in matter and mechanical execution,
for premium purposes at the coming examinations.

    ADHEMAR DE BELCASTEL; or, Be Not Hasty in Judging. Translated
    from the French by P. S., Graduate of S. Joseph’s, Emmettsburg.
    New York: The Catholic Publication Society. 1875.

Here is another book fit for a prize for those who win examination
honors, for which the youthful recipients will doubtless be duly
grateful. It is brought out in the usual tasteful style of the Society’s
publications.

    A TRACT FOR THE MISSIONS, ON BAPTISM AS A SACRAMENT IN THE
    CATHOLIC CHURCH. By Rev. M. S. Gross. New York: The Catholic
    Publication Society. 1875.

The author’s design in this publication is to “treat, first, of the
valid manner of baptizing and the effect of baptism, as a sacrament of
the Catholic Church; and, secondly, of the necessity of baptism for all
persons, infants as well as adults.”

    THE VATICAN DECREES AND CIVIL ALLEGIANCE.

    THE TRUE AND FALSE INFALLIBILITY.

The Catholic Publication Society has collected into two volumes the most
prominent pamphlets written in answer to Mr. Gladstone’s _Expostulation_
and _Vaticanism_, and of those having a bearing on the controversy. The
first-named of these volumes embraces Cardinal Manning’s _The Vatican
Decrees in their Bearing on Civil Allegiance_; Dr. Newman’s _A Letter
Addressed to the Duke of Norfolk_, and the _Postscript_ to the same;
together with the _Decrees and Canons of the Vatican Council_. The second
includes _The True and False Infallibility_ of Bishop Fessler; _Mr.
Gladstone’s Expostulation Unravelled_, by Bishop Ullathorne; _Submission
to a Divine Teacher_, by Bishop Vaughan; _The Syllabus for the People_:
a review of the propositions condemned by his Holiness Pius IX., with
text of the condemned list, by a monk of S. Augustine’s, Ramsgate. The
works composing these volumes have already been separately noticed in our
pages. The present editions are printed on superior paper and are very
convenient in form for preservation and reference.

    PAPARCHY AND NATIONALITY. By Dr. Joseph P. Thompson. Pamphlet.
    Reprinted from the _British Quarterly Review_.

It is a very repulsive spectacle to behold when an American citizen
prostrates himself before a perfidious, unscrupulous brutal tyrant
like Bismarck. For a descendant and representative of the Puritans it
is an utter denial and abandonment of his own cause and the historical
position of his own sect. The noble attitude and language of some of the
distinguished Protestants of Prussia ought to put to shame this recreant
American.

    CRITERION; or, How to Detect Error and Arrive at Truth. By
    Rev. J. Balmes. Translated by a Catholic Priest. New York: P.
    O’Shea. 1875.

We wish our reverend friend had told us his name, that we might know whom
to thank for this excellent translation of a work written by one who is
high in rank among the modern glories of the priesthood in Catholic
Spain and Europe. Balmes had his mind saturated with S. Thomas, and he
possessed an admirable gift for rendering the doctrine of the Angelical
Philosopher of Aquin intelligible and attractive to ordinary readers.
The _Criterion_ is an eminently intellectual and at the same time a most
practical treatise. The study and practice of its maxims and instructions
are fitted to make one wise both in the affairs of this life and those
connected more immediately with the perfection and salvation of the soul.
We beg of the translator to give us some more choice reading of the same
quality.

    THE LIFE OF FATHER BERNARD. By Canon Claessens, of the
    Cathedral of Malines. Translated from the French. New York: The
    Catholic Publication Society. 1875.

The many persons who remember the celebrated Father Bernard, Provincial
of the Redemptorists in the United States, and director of a great many
of the missions given by his subjects from the year 1851, will be pleased
to read this biography. Father Bernard was a man of remarkable gifts
and very thorough, solid learning, but still more eminent for apostolic
zeal and personal sanctity. The late Archbishop Hughes had a very great
veneration for him, and said of him, in his terse, emphatic style, which
had more weight as he very seldom employed it in the praise of men:
“Father Bernard is a man of God.” Besides the labors of a long life, he
devoted a large fortune which he inherited to the service of religion.
He was more celebrated in the Low Countries, as a preacher in the French
and Flemish languages, than in the United States and Ireland, where he
was obliged to make use of German and English. The biography is very
interesting, and gives a full account of the earlier and later periods
of Father Bernard’s life and his holy death, which occurred at Wittem,
September 2, 1865, at the age of 58. The history of his administration
of the province of the United States is meagre, although this was the
most distinguished and useful portion of his public career. The appendix
contains an amusing letter describing the voyage of Father Bernard and
a band of Redemptorists from Liverpool to New York. Father Hecker and
Father Walworth came back on this occasion; and immediately afterwards,
during the Lent of 1851, the mission of S. Joseph’s, New York, was given,
which is famous and remembered even now. Father Bernard’s American
friends will be specially interested in the history of the closing scenes
of his life. His death was like that of the saints; and we may say
without exaggeration that he was in every way one of the worthiest of
the sons of his great father, S. Alphonsus, who have adorned the annals
of the Congregation he founded. The portrait at the head of the volume,
though not admirable as a work of art, is strikingly faithful to the
original.

    BRIEF BIOGRAPHIES. English Statesmen. Prepared by Thomas
    Wentworth Higginson. New York: Putnams. 1875.

We all know the charm of Col. Higginson’s style, and are familiar with
his many spirited sketches of scenes and men. Of course we expect a
treat when we open a book which bears his name, and the readers of the
very choice, elegant little volume before us will not be disappointed.
Gladstone, Disraeli, Bright, the Duke of Argyll, Lord Cairns, and a
number of other prominent English statesmen, are drawn to the life, and
numbers of sparkling anecdotes, bits of eloquent speech, and witticisms
are interspersed. It is a very readable book and extremely lively and
piquant.

    A LECTURE ON SCHOOL EDUCATION AND SCHOOL SYSTEMS. Delivered
    before the Catholic Central Association of Cleveland, Ohio, by
    Rt. Rev. B. J. McQuaid, D.D., Bishop of Rochester. Cleveland:
    _Catholic Universe_ office. 1875.

    OUR PUBLIC SCHOOLS; ARE THEY FREE FOR ALL, OR ARE THEY NOT? A
    lecture delivered by Hon. Edmund F. Dunne, Chief-Justice of
    Arizona, in the Hall of Representatives, Tucson, Arizona. San
    Francisco: Cosmopolitan Printing Co. 1875.

The Catholic Association of Cleveland, we have heard, is an energetic
body, and exercised an active influence in securing the passage of
the bill lately passed by the Ohio Legislature securing the rights
of Catholics to the free exercise of religion in prisons and State
institutions. The Bishop of Rochester and his immediate neighbor, the
Bishop of Buffalo, are among the most efficient of our prelates in
promoting Catholic education; and the pamphlet of the first-mentioned
prelate, the title of which is given at the head of this notice, is a new
proof of his zeal and ability in this important controversy.

The lecture of Chief Justice Dunne is a well-reasoned document, written
in a plain, direct, and popular style--that of a lawyer who both
understands his subject and the way of presenting it to an audience which
will make them understand it.

    HOW TO MAKE A LIVING. Suggestions upon the Art of Making,
    Saving, and Using Money. By George Carey Eggleston. New York:
    Putnams. 1875.

This very small and neat book contains a great many practical and
sensible suggestions.

    THE STORY OF A CONVERT. By B. W. Whitcher, A.M. New York: P.
    O’Shea. 1875.

Those who have read the _Widow Bedott Papers_ have not forgotten that
humorous and extremely satirical production. The authorship of this
clever _jeu d’esprit_ was in common between Mr. Whitcher and his former
wife, a lady who died many years ago. Something of the piquant flavor
of that early work is to be found in _The Story of a Convert_. It is,
however, in the main, serious, argumentative, and remarkably plain and
straightforward. Mr. Whitcher was an Episcopalian minister. He became a
Catholic from reading, conviction, and the grace of God, which, unlike
many others, he obeyed at a great sacrifice. He has, since that time,
lived a laborious, self-denying, humble life as a Catholic layman; and
his arguments have therefore the weight of his good example to increase
their force. The fidelity to conscience of such men is a severe reproach
to the _dilettanti_ and amateur theologians who dabble for amusement in
pseudo-Catholicism, and are ready to sacrifice their consciences and
to mislead others to their eternal perdition for the sake of worldly
advantages. This little book is one well worthy of circulation, and
likely to do a great deal of good. We notice that the author mentions
the name of McVickar among the converts from the General Theological
Seminary. We have never heard of any convert of that name who was ever a
student at this seminary, and we think Mr. Whitcher’s memory must have
deceived him in this instance. We trust that this excellent little book
will find an extensive sale and the honesty of the author at least a few
imitators.

    THE ORPHAN’S FRIEND, ETC. By A. A. Lambing, late Chaplain to S.
    Paul’s Orphan Asylum, Pittsburg. New York: D. & J. Sadlier &
    Co. 1875.

This series of plain, simple instructions in religion and morals is
intended, by a kind friend of the orphans, to be a guide to them when
they are sent forth into the world. The poor orphans certainly need all
the friends and all the sympathy and help they can get, and it was a good
thought in the pious author to prepare this excellent little book.

    THE OLD CHEST; or, The Journal of a Family of the French People
    from the Merovingian Times to Our own Days. Translated from the
    French by Anna T. Sadlier. New York: D. & J. Sadlier & Co. 1875.

    THE STRAW-CUTTER’S DAUGHTER, and THE PORTRAIT IN MY UNCLE’S
    DINING-ROOM. Two Stories. Edited by Lady Georgiana Fullerton.
    Translated from the French. Same publishers.

The first of these pretty little volumes is quite unique in its idea. A
picture is given of French life and manners at the different epochs of
history, by a series of supposed narratives preserved and handed down
from father to son in an old chest, which was bequeathed by the last of
the family to a friend, who published its contents. It is not so good in
execution as in conception; for, indeed, it would require the hand of a
master to carry out such an idea successfully. Nevertheless it is quite
interesting and instructive reading.

The two stories of the second volume are romantic, tragic, vividly told,
and quite original in conception.

    ESSAYS ON CATHOLICISM, LIBERALISM, AND SOCIALISM, considered
    in their fundamental principles. By J. D. Cortes, Marquis of
    Valdegamas. Translated from the Spanish by Rev. W. McDonald,
    A.B., S.Th.L., Rector of the Irish College, Salamanca. Dublin:
    W. B. Kelly. 1874. (New York: Sold by The Catholic Publication
    Society.)

We do not ordinarily feel called upon to speak of _new editions_, but in
the present instance the book under notice is also a new translation of
a valuable work. These _Essays_ were translated by an accomplished lady
in this country several years since; but as the work was not issued by a
Catholic house, it may have escaped the attention of many of our readers
who would be glad to make its acquaintance. We perceive that the original
work was submitted to the approval of one of the Benedictine theologians
at Solesmes, and that Canon Torre Velez has, in an appreciative
introduction, discussed the plan and analysis of the work, so that the
reader is pretty well certified of the value and correctness of the
opinions advanced.

The title of the first chapter, “How a great question of theology is
always involved in every great political question,” shows what a direct
bearing the work has on topics of permanent interest.

We have a special reason for wishing that this and similar works may be
widely known, in the fact that Spain--intellectually, more, perhaps, than
physically--is so much a _terra incognita_ to the rest of the world.

    DOMUS DEI: A Collection of Religious and Memorial Poems. By
    Eleanor C. Donnelly. Philadelphia: Peter F. Cunningham & Son.
    1875.

This volume is published “for the benefit of the Church of S. Charles
Borromeo,” in course of erection at Philadelphia. The authoress is
already before the public.

Among the “religious” poems is one entitled “Bernadette at the Grotto of
Lourdes.” They are all pleasant reading. The “memorial” poems, again,
will be considered by many the choicest part of the book.

We wish the volume an extensive patronage.


THE IRISH WORLD.

It is not customary nor ordinarily proper for a magazine to engage
in controversies which are waged among newspapers. Nevertheless, the
one in which the _Irish World_ is engaging itself with a considerable
number of our Catholic newspapers is of such unusual importance and
violence that we trust we may be permitted to make a few remarks upon it.
Disunion, division of sentiment founded on differences of nationality
and race, extreme partisan contests on any pretext whatever, and violent
hostilities, among those who profess the Catholic religion, especially
just at this time and in this country, are to be deprecated as more
injurious to the cause of the faith and church of God than any amount
of opposition from professed enemies of the Catholic religion. These
can only be avoided by adopting and following out pure and perfect
Catholic principles In all things whatsoever, and making the Catholic
rule of submission to lawful authority, and conformity to the Catholic
tradition, the Catholic spirit, and the common-sense which pervades the
whole body of sound, loyal, hearty Catholics everywhere, without any
exception or reservation, the standard of judgment and the law of action.
It is necessary to be first a Catholic and afterwards French, German,
American, English, or Irish, as the case may be; to be first of all
sure that we understand and receive the teaching and the spirit of the
Catholic Church, in theology, philosophy, morals, politics, and that we
make her rights and interests, her advancement and glory, the spiritual
and eternal good of the whole human race, the triumph of Jesus Christ,
and the glory of God, paramount to everything. Secondary interests, and
ideas, opinions, projects, which spring merely from private conviction
or characterize nationalities, schools, parties, associations of human
origin, should always be subordinate and be kept under the control of the
higher principles of Catholic unity, charity, and enlightened regard for
the rights of all men. This is the only true liberality. Liberalism, as
it is called, which is nothing else than the detestable, anti-Christian
Revolution, destroys all this by subverting the principle of order, which
alone secures harmony, a just equality, and the rights of all. What is
called Catholic liberalism, and has been denounced by Pius IX. as more
dangerous and mischievous among Catholics than any open heresy could be,
is a system of independence of Catholic authority, and of separation from
the Catholic common doctrine and sentiment, of disrespect, disloyalty,
irreverence, disobedience, and opposition to the hierarchy and the Holy
See, in those things which are not categorically defined as articles of
faith, yet, nevertheless, are doctrinally or practically determined by
authority.

We have not been in much danger in this country from any clique of
ecclesiastical and theological liberals. But the line adopted by the
_Irish World_ shows an imminent danger from another quarter. The
editor professes submission to the authority of the Catholic Church in
respect to the faith, and those precepts of religion and morals which
are essential. We give him credit for sincerity and honesty and for
good intentions. These are not, however, sufficient guarantees against
principles and opinions which are erroneous, logically incompatible
with doctrines of faith, tending to subvert faith in the minds of his
readers, and producing an irreverent and disloyal spirit contrary to the
true Christian and Catholic submission and respect to the prelates and
the priesthood which is commanded by the law of God. If the respected
gentleman who edits the _Irish World_ desires to employ his talents and
zeal to a really noble and useful purpose, with success and honor, for
the spiritual and temporal welfare of men of his own race and religion,
we recommend to him, in a friendly spirit, to modify some of his ideas
in a more Catholic sense, and to take counsel from those who understand
thoroughly the doctrine and spirit of the Catholic Church. Much greater
men than any of us--Jansenius, De Lamennais, Döllinger, and a host
of others--began by professing to be Catholics in _faith_. But they
preferred their own private notions in respect to certain reforms in
doctrine, discipline or morals, and politics, which they considered to be
necessary and important, to the judgment of their spiritual rulers and
the common Catholic sense. Their end was in heresy or apostasy, and they
misled to their ruin those who followed them. We trust we shall be spared
the misfortune of seeing a falling away from the faith of any part of the
Catholic race of Ireland, either at home or in other countries. They are
in no danger of perversion to Protestantism, nor are they at present
assailable by open and avowed enemies of religion. It is by hidden poison
only that they can be gradually infected and destroyed. This poison must
disguise itself in some way as Liberal Catholicism. This is precisely
the lurking poison which the unerring Catholic instinct has detected in
the specious, pseudo-Christian, pseudo-Scriptural, pseudo-Catholic, and
pseudo-Irish communism into which the conductors of the _Irish World_
have been unwittingly betrayed. A journal so extensively circulated must
necessarily, unless purged from this foreign and noxious element, do a
great deal of harm. If the good sense, honesty, and Catholic faith of
its editors are strong enough to free them from the specious illusions
of Liberalism, the _Irish World_ is in a condition to exert a very great
and extensive influence for good, and we shall heartily wish it success.
We approve of the free and generous activity of laymen in associations
and through the press. Nevertheless, the great liberty enjoyed by them
is liable to misdirection, and it is very necessary to guard against
disorders which may spring from its abuse.

       *       *       *       *       *

“Sacerdos” is requested to send his address to the editor of THE CATHOLIC
WORLD, who will be happy to answer his note in a private letter.


BOOKS AND PAMPHLETS RECEIVED.

    From G. P. PUTNAM’S Sons: The Maintenance of Health. By J. M.
    Fothergill, M.D. 12mo, pp. 362. Protection and Free Trade. By
    Isaac Butts, 12mo, pp. 190. Religion as affected by Modern
    Materialism. 18mo, pp. 68.

    From KELLY, PIET & CO.: Meditations of the Sisters of Mercy,
    before the Renewal of Vows. By the late Rt. Rev. Dr. Grant,
    Bishop of Southwark (Reprinted from an unpublished edition of
    1863.) 18mo, pp. 116.

    From R. WASHBOURNE, London: Rome and Her Captors. Letters
    collected by Count Henry D’Ideville. 1875. 12mo, pp. 236.

    From D. & J. SADLIER & CO., New York: The Month of S. Joseph;
    or, Exercises for each day of the month of March. By the Rt.
    Rev. M. de Langalerie, Bishop of Belley. 1875.

    From BURNS & OATES, London: Jesus Christ, the Model of the
    Priest. From the Italian, by the Rt. Rev. Mgr. Patterson. 24mo,
    pp. 103.

    From MCGLASHAN & GILL, Dublin: The History of the Great Irish
    Famine of 1847. By the Rev. J. O’Rourke. 12mo, pp. xxiv., 559.

    From LEE & SHEPARD, Boston: The Island of Fire. By Rev. P. C.
    Headley. 12mo, pp. 339.

    From THE CATHOLIC PUBLICATION SOCIETY, New York: The Spirit of
    Faith; or, What must I do to Believe? Five Lectures, delivered
    at S. Peter’s, Cardiff, by the Rt. Rev. Bishop Hedley. O.S.B.
    12mo, pp. 104.




THE CATHOLIC WORLD.

VOL. XXI., No. 124.--JULY, 1875.

Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1875. by Rev. I. T.
HECKER, in the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington, D. C.


SPACE.

I.

Mathematicians admit three kinds of continuous quantities, viz., the
quantity of space measured by local movement, the quantity of time
employed in the movement, and the quantity of change in the intensity
of the movement. Thus all continuity, according to them, depends on
movement; so that, if there were no continuous movement, nothing could
be conceived as continuous. The ancient philosophers generally admitted,
and many still admit, a fourth kind of continuous quantity, viz., the
quantity of matter; but it is now fully demonstrated that bodies of
matter are not, and cannot be, materially continuous, even in their
primitive molecules, and that therefore the quantity of matter is not
continuous, but consists of a discrete number of primitive material
units. Hence, matter is not divisible _in infinitum_, and gives no
occasion to infinitesimal quantities, except inasmuch as the volumes, or
quantities of space, occupied (not filled) by matter are conceived to
keep within infinitesimal dimensions. We may, therefore, be satisfied
that space, time, and movement alone are continuous and infinitely
divisible, and that the continuity of space and time, as viewed by the
mathematicians, is essentially connected with the continuity of movement.
But space measured by movement is a _relative_ space, and time--that is,
the duration of movement--is a _relative_ duration; and since everything
relative presupposes something absolute which is the source of its
relativity, we are naturally brought to inquire what is _absolute_ space
and _absolute_ duration; for, without the knowledge of the absolute, the
relative can be only imperfectly understood. Men of course daily speak
of time and of space, and understand what they say, and are understood
by others; but this does not show that they know the intimate nature, or
can give the essential definition, of either time or space. S. Augustine
asks: “What is time?” and he answers: “When no one asks me, I know what
it is; but when you ask me, I know not.” The same is true of space.
We know what it is; but it would be hard to give its true definition.
As, however, a true notion of space and time and movement cannot but
be of great service in the elucidation of some important questions of
philosophy, we will venture to investigate the subject, in the hope
that by so doing we may contribute in some manner to the development
of philosophical knowledge concerning the nature of those mysterious
realities which form the conditions of the existence and vicissitudes of
the material world.

_Opinions of Philosophers about Space._--Space is usually defined “a
capacity of bodies,” and is styled “full” when a body actually occupies
that capacity, “void,” or “empty,” when no body is actually present
in it. Again, a space which is determined by the presence of a body,
and limited by its limits, is called “real,” whilst the space which is
conceived to extend beyond the limits of all existing bodies is called
“imaginary.”

Whether this definition and division of space is as correct as it is
common, we shall examine hereafter. Meanwhile, we must notice that there
is a great disagreement among philosophers in regard to the reality
and the essence of space. Some hold, with Descartes and with Leibnitz,
that space is nothing else than the extension of bodies. Others hold
that space is something real, and really distinct from the bodies by
which it is occupied. Some, as Clarke, said that space is nothing but
God’s immensity, and considered the parts of space as parts of divine
immensity. Fénelon taught that space is virtually contained in God’s
immensity, and that immensity is nothing but unlimited extension--which
last proposition is much criticised by Balmes[115] on the ground that
extension cannot be conceived without parts, whereas no parts can be
conceived in God’s immensity.

Lessius, in his much-esteemed work on God’s perfections, after having
shown (contrary to the opinion of some of his contemporaries) that God
by his immensity exists not only within but also without the world, puts
to himself the following objection: “Some will say, How can God be in
those spaces outside the skies, since no spaces are to be found there
which are not fictitious and imaginary?” To which he answers thus: “We
deny that there are not outside of the whole world any true intervals
or spaces. If air or light were diffused throughout immensity outside
of the existing world, there would certainly be true spaces everywhere;
and in the same manner, if there is a Spirit filling everything outside
of this world, there will be true and real spaces, not corporeal but
spiritual, which, however, will not be really distinct from one another,
because a Spirit does not extend through space by a distribution of
parts, but fills it, so to say, by its totalities.… Hence, when we say
that God is outside of the existing world, and filling infinite spaces,
or that God exists in imaginary spaces, we do not mean that God exists
in a fictitious and chimerical thing, nor do we mean that he exists in a
space really distinct from his own being; but we mean that he exists in
the space which his immensity formally extends, and to which an infinite
created space may correspond.… We may therefore distinguish space into
_created_, _uncreated_, and _imaginary_. Created space embraces the whole
corporeal extension of the material world. Uncreated space is nothing
less than divine immensity itself, which is the primitive, intrinsic, and
fundamental space, on the existence of which all other spaces depend, and
which by reason of its extension is equivalent to all possible corporeal
spaces, and eminently contains them all. Imaginary space is that which
our imagination suggests to us as a substitute for God’s immensity, which
we are unable to conceive in any other wise. For, just as we cannot
conceive God’s eternity without imagining infinite time, so neither can
we conceive God’s immensity without imagining infinite space.”[116]

Boscovich, in his _Theory of Natural Philosophy_, defines space as “an
infinite possibility of ubications,” but he does not say anything in
regard to the manner of accounting for such a possibility. Others, as
Charleton, were of opinion that real space is constituted by the real
ubication of material things, and imaginary space by the actual negation
of real ubications.

Among the modern authors, Balmes, with whom a number of other
philosophers agree on this subject, gives us his theory of space in the
following propositions:

“1st. Space is nothing but the extension of bodies themselves.

“2d. Space and extension are identical notions.

“3d. The parts which we conceive in space are particular extensions,
considered as existing under their own limits.

“4th. The notion of infinite space is the notion of extension in all its
generality--that is, as conceived by the abstraction of all limits.

“5th. Indefinite space is a figment of our imagination, which strives
to follow the intellectual process of generalization by destroying all
limits.

“6th. Where no body exists, there is no space.

“7th. Distance is the interposition of a body, and nothing more.

“8th. If the body interposed vanishes, all distance vanishes, and
contiguity, or absolute contact, will be the result.

“9th. If there were two bodies only, they would not be distant; at least,
we could not intellectually conceive them as distant.

“10th. A vacuum, whether of a large or of a small extent, whether
accumulated or scattered, is an absolute impossibility.”[117]

These assertions form the substance of Balmes’ theory of space. But he
wisely adds: “The apparent absurdity of some of these conclusions, and
of others which I shall mention hereafter, leads me to believe either
that the principle on which my reasonings rest is not altogether free
from error, or that there is some latent blunder in the process of the
deduction.”[118]

Lastly, to omit other suppositions which do not much differ from the ones
we have mentioned, Kant and his followers are of opinion that space is
nothing but a subjective form of our mind, and an intuition _a priori_.
Hence, according to them, no real and objective space can be admitted.

Amid this variety and discord of opinions, we can hardly hope to
ascertain the truth, and satisfy ourselves of its reality, unless we
settle a few preliminary questions. It is necessary for us to know,
first, whether any vacuum is or is not to be admitted in nature; then, we
must know whether such a vacuum is or is not an objective reality. For,
if it can be established that vacuum is mere nothingness, the consequence
will be that all real space is necessarily and essentially filled with
matter, as Balmes and others teach; if, on the contrary, it can be
established that vacuum exists in nature, and has an objective reality,
then it will follow that the reality of space does not arise from the
presence of bodies, and cannot be confounded with their extension. In
this case, Balmes’ theory will fall to the ground, and we shall have
to borrow from Lessius and Fénelon, if not the whole solution of the
question, at least the main conceptions on which it rests.

_Existence of Void Space._--The first thing we must ascertain is the
existence or non-existence of vacuum in nature. _Is there any space in
the world not occupied by matter?_

Our answer must be affirmative, for many reasons. First, because without
vacuum local movement would be impossible. In fact, since matter does not
compenetrate matter, no movement can take place in a space full of matter
unless the matter which lies on the way gives room to the advancing
body. But such a matter cannot give room without moving; and it cannot
move unless some other portion of matter near it vacates its place to
make room for it. This other portion of matter, however, cannot make
room without moving; and it cannot move unless another portion of matter
makes room for it; and so on without end, or at least till we reach the
outward limits of the material world. Hence, if there is no vacuum, a
body cannot begin to move before it has shaken the whole material world
throughout and compelled it to make room for its movement. Now, to make
the movement of a body dependent on such a condition is absurd; for the
condition can never be fulfilled. In fact, whilst the movement of the
body cannot begin before room is made for it, no room is made for it
before the movement has begun; for it is by moving that the body would
compel the neighboring matter to give way. The condition is therefore
contradictory, and can never be fulfilled, and therefore, if there is no
vacuum, no local movement is possible.

Secondly, it has been proved in one of our articles on matter[119] that
there is no such thing in the world as material continuity, and that
therefore all natural bodies ultimately consist of simple and unextended
elements. It is therefore necessary to admit that bodies owe their
extension to the intervals of space intercepted between their primitive
elements, and therefore there is a vacuum between all the material
elements. This reason is very plain and cannot be questioned, as the
impossibility of continuous matter has been established by such evident
arguments as defy cavil.

Thirdly, bodies are compressible, and, when compressed, occupy less
space--that is, their matter or mass is reduced to a less volume.
Now, such a reduction in the volume of a body does not arise from
material compenetration. It must therefore depend on a diminution of
the distances, or void intervals, between the neighboring particles of
matter.

Fourthly, it is well known that equal masses can exist under unequal
volumes, and _vice versa_--that is, equal quantities of matter may occupy
unequal spaces, and unequal quantities of matter may occupy equal spaces.
This shows that one and the same space can be more or less occupied,
according as the density of the body is greater or less. But the same
space cannot be more or less occupied if there is no vacuum. For, if
there is no vacuum, the space is _entirely_ occupied by the matter,
and does not admit of different degrees of occupation. It is therefore
evident that without vacuum it is impossible to account for the specific
weights and unequal densities of bodies.

Against this, some may object that what we call “vacuum” may be full of
imponderable matter, say, of ether, the presence of which cannot indeed
be detected by the balance, but is well proved by the phenomena of heat,
electricity, etc. To which we answer, that the presence of ether between
the molecules of bodies does not exclude vacuum; for ether itself is
subject to condensation and rarefaction, as is manifest by its undulatory
movements; and no condensation or rarefaction is possible without vacuum,
as we have already explained.

Another objection against our conclusion may be the following: Simple
elements, if they be attractive, can penetrate through one another, as
we infer from the Newtonian law of action. Hence, the possibility of
movement does not depend on the existence of vacuum. We answer, that
the objection destroys itself; for whoever admits simple and unextended
elements, must admit the existence of vacuum, it being evident that no
space can be filled by unextended matter. We may add, that natural bodies
and their molecules do not exclusively consist of attractive elements,
but contain a great number of repulsive elements, to which they owe their
impenetrability.

The ancients made against the existence of a vacuum another objection,
drawn from the presumed necessity of a true material contact for
the communication of movement. Vacuum, they said, is _contra bonum
naturæ_--that is, incompatible with the requirements of natural order,
for it prevents the interaction of bodies. This objection need hardly
be answered, as it has long since been disposed of by the discovery of
universal gravitation and of other physical truths. As we have proved in
another place that “distance is an essential condition of the action of
matter upon matter,”[120] we shall say nothing more on this point.

_Objective Reality of Vacuum._--The second thing we must ascertain
is _whether space void of matter be a mere nothing, or an objective
reality_. Though Balmes and most modern philosophers hold that vacuum is
mere nothingness, we think with other writers that the contrary can be
rigorously demonstrated. Here are our reasons.

First, nothingness is not a region of movement. But vacuum is a region of
movement. Therefore, vacuum is not mere nothingness. The minor of this
syllogism is manifest from what we have just said about the impossibility
of movement without vacuum, and the major can be easily proved. For,
the interval of space which is measured by movement may be greater or
less, whilst it would be absurd to talk of a greater or a less nothing;
which shows that vacuum cannot be identified with nothingness. Again,
void space can be really occupied, whilst it would be absurd to say that
nothingness is really occupied, for occupation implies the presence of
that which occupies in that which is occupied; hence, the occupation of
nothingness would be the presence of a thing to nothing. But presence
to nothing is no presence at all, just as relation to nothing is no
relation. And therefore, the occupation of void space, if vacuum were a
mere nothing, would be an evident contradiction. Moreover, nothingness
has no real attributes, whereas real attributes are predicated of void
space. We find no difficulty in conceiving void space as infinite,
immovable, and virtually extended in all directions; whilst the
conception of an extended nothing and of an infinite nothing is an utter
impossibility. Whence we conclude that space void of matter is not a mere
nothing.

Secondly, a mere nothing cannot be the foundation of a real relation:
space void of matter is the foundation of a real relation; therefore,
space void of matter is not a mere nothing. In this syllogism the
major is quite certain; for all real relation has a real foundation,
from which the correlated terms receive their relativity. Now, all
real foundation is something real. On the other hand, nothingness is
nothing real. Therefore, a mere nothing cannot be the foundation of a
real relation. The minor proposition is no less certain, because space
founds the relation of distance between any two material points, which
relation is certainly real. In fact, that on account of which a distant
term is related to another distant term, is the possibility of movement
from the one to the other--that is, the possibility of a series of
successive ubications between the two terms, without which no distance is
conceivable. But the possibility of successive ubications is nothing else
than the successive occupability of space, or space as occupable. And
therefore, occupable space, or space void of matter, is the foundation of
a real relation, and accordingly is an objective reality.

Thirdly, if vacuum were mere nothingness, no real extension could be
conceived as possible. For, since all bodies are ultimately composed of
elements destitute of extension, as has been demonstrated at length in
our articles on matter, and since the primitive elements cannot touch one
another mathematically without compenetration, the extension of bodies
cannot be accounted for except by the existence of void intervals of
space between neighboring elements. But, if vacuum is a mere nothing,
all void intervals of space are nothing, and nothing remains between
the neighboring elements; and if nothing remains between them, all the
elements must be in mathematical contact, and therefore unite in a single
indivisible point, as even Balmes concedes. Whence it is evident that the
existence of real extension implies the objective reality of vacuum. We
conclude, therefore, that space void of matter is not a mere nothing, but
an objective reality.

Against this proposition some objections are made by the upholders of a
different doctrine. In the first place, distance, they say, is a mere
negation of contact; and since a mere negation is nothing, there is no
need of assuming that vacuum is a reality.

We answer, that, if distance were a mere negation of contact, there would
be no different distances; for the negation of contact does not admit
of degrees, and cannot be greater or less. Distances may be, and are,
greater or less. Therefore, distance is not a mere negation of contact.
The negation of contact shows that the terms of the relation are distinct
in space; for distinction in space is the negation of a common ubication.
But the distinction of the terms, though a necessary condition for the
existence of the relation, does not constitute it. Hence, the relation
of distance presupposes, indeed, the distinction of the terms and the
negation of contact, but formally it results from a positive foundation
by which the terms are linked together in this or that determinate
manner. If the interval between two material points were nothing, a
greater interval would be a greater nothing, and a less interval a less
nothing. We presume that no philosopher can safely admit a doctrine which
leads to such a conclusion.

A second objection is as follows: It is possible to have distance without
any vacuum between the distant terms. For, if the whole space between
those terms were full of matter, their distance would be all the more
real, without implying the reality of vacuum.

We answer, first, that, to fill space, continuous matter would be needed;
and, as continuous matter has no existence in nature, no space can be
filled with matter so as to exclude real vacuum. We answer, secondly,
that, were it possible to admit continuous matter, filling the whole
interval of space between two distant terms, the reality of that
interval would still remain independent of the matter by which it is
assumed to be filled; for matter is not space; and, on the other hand,
if all the matter which is supposed to fill the interval be removed, the
distance between the terms will not vanish; which shows that the filling
of space, even if it were not an impossible task, would not in the least
contribute to the constitution of real distances. Hence, space, even if
it were assumed to be full of matter, would not found the relation of
distance by its fulness, but only by its being terminated to distinct
terms, so as to leave room between them for a certain extension of local
movement.

A third objection may be the following: True though it is that real
attributes are predicated of void space, it does not follow that void
space is an objective reality. For, when we say that space, as such,
is infinite, immovable, etc., we must bear in mind that we speak of a
potential nature, and that those predicates are only potential. Again,
though we must admit that void space can be measured by movement, we know
that such a mensuration is not made by terms of space, but by terms of
matter. Lastly, although space is the capacity of receiving bodies, it
does not follow that there is in space any receptive reality; for its
capacity is sufficiently accounted for by admitting that space becomes
real by its very occupation.[121]

To the first point of this objection we answer, that space may, perhaps,
be called a “potential nature” in this sense, that it is susceptible of
new extrinsic denominations; but if by “potential nature” the objector
means to express a potency of being, and to convey the idea that such a
nature is not real, then it is absolutely wrong to say that void space
is a potential nature. Space is not in a state of possibility, and never
has been, as we shall presently show. Hence the predicates, _infinite_,
_immovable_, etc., by which the nature of space is explained, express
the actual attributes of an actual reality. The author from whom we have
transcribed this objection says that such predicates of space are real,
not _objectively_, but only _subjectively_. He means, if we understand
him aright, that the reality of such predicates must be traced to the
bodies which occupy space, not to space itself, and that, though we
conceive those predicates to be real owing to the real bodies we see
in space, yet they are not real in space itself. As for us, we cannot
understand how “to be _infinite_, to be _immovable_, to be _occupable_,
etc.,” can be the property of any body which occupies space, or be the
property of space, by reason of its occupation and not by reason of its
own intrinsic nature. Space must be really occupable before it is really
occupied; and nothing is really occupable which is not real, as we have
already established. Whence we conclude that this part of the objection,
as confounding the possibility of occupation with the possibility of
being, has no weight.

To the second point we answer, that the thing mensurable should not be
confounded with that by which it can be measured. Whatever may be the
nature of the measure to be employed in measuring, no mensuration is
possible unless the mensurable is really mensurable. Hence, no matter by
what measure space is to be measured, it is always necessary to concede
that, if it is really measured, it is something real. The assertion that
space is measured “by terms of matter” can scarcely have a meaning.
Terms, in fact, measure nothing, but are merely the beginning and the end
of the thing measured. Space is measured by continuous movement, not by
terms of matter; but before it is thus measured, it is mensurable; and
its mensurability sufficiently shows its objective reality.[122]

To the third point of the objection we reply, that space is not a
_subject_ destined to receive bodies; and therefore it is not to be
called “a capacity of _receiving_ bodies.” Hence, we admit that space has
no “receptive” reality. But there are realities which are not receptive,
because they are not intrinsically potential; and such is the reality
of space, as we shall hereafter explain. With regard to the assertion
that “space becomes real by its very occupation,” we observe that, if
space void of matter is nothing, as the objection assumes, it is utterly
impossible that it become a reality by the presence of bodies in it. The
presence of a body in space is a real relation of the body to the space
occupied; and such a relation presupposes two real terms--that is, a
real body and a real space. If space, as such, is nothing, bodies were
created in nothing, and occupy nothing. Their volumes will be nothings
of different sizes, their dimensions nothings of different lengths, and
their movements the measurement of nothing. It is manifest that real
occupation presupposes real occupability, and real mensuration real
mensurability; and, since mensurability implies quantity (_virtual_
quantity, at least), to say that occupable and mensurable space is
nothing, is to pretend that nothingness implies quantity--a thing which
we, at least, cannot understand. Moreover, to consider void space as
a potency of being, destined to become a reality through the presence
of bodies, is no less a blunder than to admit that the absolute is
nothing until it becomes relative, or to admit the relative without the
absolute. In fact, the space occupied by a body is a relative space,
as its determination depends on the relative dimensions of the body.
On the other hand, the relative dimensions of the body are themselves
dependent on space, for without space there are no dimensions; and the
space on which such relative dimensions depend must be a reality in
itself, independently of the same dimensions, it being evident that
the dimensions of the body cannot bestow reality upon that which is
the source of their own reality. To say the contrary is to destroy the
principle of causality, by making the absolute reality of the cause
dependent on the reality of its effects. The assertion that “the absolute
is nothing until it becomes relative,” leads straight to Pantheism. If
you say that absolute space is nothing until it is occupied by bodies,
and thus actuated and exhibited under determinate figures, the Pantheist
will say, with as much reason, that the absolute being is nothing until
it is evolved in nature, and thus actuated and manifested under different
aspects. If you say that absolute space, as such, is but an imaginary
conception, he will draw the inference that absolute being, as such,
is similarly a mere figment of our brains. If you say that the only
reality of space arises from its figuration and occupation, he will claim
the right of concluding, in like manner, that the only reality of the
absolute arises from its evolution and manifestation. We might dilate a
great deal more on this parallel; for everything that the deniers of the
reality of void space can say in support of their view can be turned to
account by the deniers of a personal God, and be made to serve the cause
of German Pantheism--the manner of reasoning of the latter being exactly
similar to that of the former. This is a point of great importance, and
to which philosophers would do well to pay a greater attention than was
done in other times, if they admit, in the case of space, that “the
absolute is nothing until it becomes relative,” they will have no right
to complain of the Pantheistic applications of their own theory.

_Vacuum unmade._--The third thing we have to ascertain is, _whether void
space, absolutely considered as to its reality, be created or uncreated_.
This point can be easily settled. Those who say that vacuum has no
objective reality have, of course, no alternative. For them, vacuum must
be uncreated. But they are probably not prepared to hear that we too, who
defend the reality of void space, do not differ from them in the solution
of this question.

To prove that space void of matter is not created, the following plain
reasons may be adduced. First, space void of matter is neither a material
nor a spiritual creature. It is no material creature; for it excludes
matter. It is no spiritual creature; for, whether there be spiritual
creatures or not, it is necessary to admit occupable space.

Secondly, no created thing is immovable, unchangeable, and unlimited.
Absolute space is evidently immovable, unchangeable, and unlimited.
Therefore, absolute space is not a product of creation.

Thirdly, space considered absolutely as it is in itself, exhibits an
infinite and inexhaustible possibility of real ubications. But such a
possibility is to be found nowhere but in God alone, in whom all possible
things have their formal possibility. And therefore, the reality of
absolute space is all in God alone; and accordingly, such a reality not
only is not, but could never be, created.

Fourthly, whatever is necessary, is uncreated and eternal. Space
considered absolutely as it is in itself is something necessary.
Therefore, absolute space is uncreated and eternal. The major of this
syllogism is evident; the minor is thus proved: Space absolutely
considered is nothing else than the formal possibility of real
ubications; but the possibility of things contingent is necessary,
uncreated, and eternal; for all contingent things are possible before
any free act of the creator, since their intrinsic possibility does not
depend on God’s volition, as Descartes imagined, but only on his essence
as distinctly and comprehensively understood by the divine intellect.

Our next proposition will afford a fifth proof of this conclusion.
Meanwhile, we beg of our reader not to forget the restriction by which we
have limited our present question. We have spoken of space _absolutely
considered_ as it is in itself--that is, of absolute space. Our
conclusion, if applied to relative space, would not be entirely true; for
relative space implies the existence of at least two contingent terms,
and therefore involves something created. We make this remark because men
are apt to confound relative with absolute space, owing to the sensible
representations which always accompany our intellectual operations, and
also because we think that the philosophical difficulties encountered by
many writers in their investigation of the nature of space originated in
the latent and unconscious assumption that their imagination of relative
space was an intellectual concept of absolute space. It is thus that they
were led to consider all space void of matter as imaginary and chimerical.

_Quiddity of Absolute Space._--It now remains for us to ascertain
_the true nature of absolute space_, and to point out its essential
definition. Our task will not be difficult after the preceding
conclusions. If absolute space is an uncreated, infinite, eternal, and
unchangeable reality, it must be implied in some of the attributes of
Godhead. Now, the divine attribute in which the reason of all possible
ubications is contained, is immensity. Hence, absolute space is implied
in God’s immensity, and we shall see that it is nothing else than _the
virtuality or the extrinsic terminability_ of immensity itself.

Before we prove this proposition, we must define the terms _virtuality_
and _terminability_. “Virtuality” comes from _virtus_ as formality from
_forma_. Things that are actual owe their being to their form; hence,
whatever expresses some actual degree of entity is styled “a formality.”
Thus, personality, animality, rationality, etc., are formalities
exhibiting the actual being of man under different aspects. Things, on
the contrary, that have no formal existence, but which may be made to
exist, owe the possibility of their existence to the power (_virtus_) of
the _efficient cause_ of which they can be the effect, or to the nature
of the _sufficient reason_ from which they may formally result. In both
cases, the things in question are said to exist virtually, inasmuch
as they are virtually contained in their efficient cause or in their
sufficient reason. Hence, every efficient cause or sufficient reason, as
compared with the effects which it can produce or with the results of
which it may be the foundation, is said to have “virtuality”; for, the
virtuality of all producible effects, as of all resultable relations,
is to be found nowhere but in their efficient cause and in their formal
reason. Thus all active power has a virtuality extending to all the acts
of which it may be the causality, and all formal reason has a virtuality
extending to all the results of which it may be the foundation. God’s
omnipotence, for instance, virtually contains in itself the reality of
all possible creatures, and therefore possesses an infinite virtuality.
In a similar manner, God’s immensity has an infinite virtuality, as it
virtually contains all possible ubications, and is the reason of their
formal resultability. Omnipotence has an infinite virtuality as an
_efficient_ principle; immensity has an infinite virtuality as a _formal_
source only.

These remarks about virtuality go far to explain the word
“terminability.” Whenever an efficient cause produces an effect, its
action is terminated to an actuable term; hence, so long as the effect is
not produced, the power of the efficient cause is merely terminable. In
the same manner, whenever a formal reason gives rise to an actual result,
and whenever a formal principle gives being to a potential term, there
is a formal termination; and therefore, so long as the result, or the
actual being, has no existence, its formal reason is merely terminable.
Hence, terminability has the same range as virtuality; for nothing that
is virtually contained in an efficient or in a formal principle can pass
from the virtual to the actual state except by the termination of an
efficient or a formal act to a potential term.

We have said that absolute space is nothing else than the virtuality,
or extrinsic terminability, of God’s immensity. The first proof of this
conclusion is as follows. Absolute space is the possibility of all real
ubications. But such a possibility is nothing else than the infinite
virtuality of God’s immensity. Hence our conclusion. The major of our
syllogism is obviously true, and is admitted by all, either in the
same or in equivalent terms. The minor needs but little explanation;
for we have already seen that absolute space is an uncreated reality,
and therefore is something connected with some divine attribute; but
the only attribute in which the possibility of all real ubications is
contained, is God’s immensity. Hence, the possibility of real ubications
is evidently nothing else than the extrinsic terminability of divine
immensity. In other terms, God’s immensity, like other divine attributes,
is not only an immanent perfection of the divine nature, by which God
has his infinite ubication in himself, but also the source and the
eminent reason of all possible ubications, because it contains them all
_virtually_ in its boundless expanse. Hence, the infinite virtuality
of God’s immensity is one and the same thing with the possibility of
infinite ubications. And, therefore, absolute space is nothing but the
virtuality of divine immensity.

Let the reader take notice that divine immensity is, with regard to
absolute space, the _remote principle_, or, as the Schoolmen would say,
the _principium quod_, whilst the virtuality or extrinsic terminability
of divine immensity is the _proximate principle_, or the _principium
quo_. Hence, it would not be altogether correct to say that absolute
space is nothing but God’s immensity; for, as we call “space” that in
which contingent beings can be ubicated, it is evident that the formal
notion of space essentially involves the connotation of something
exterior to God; and such a connotation is not included in divine
immensity as such, but only inasmuch as it virtually pre-contains all
possible ubications. And for this reason the infinite virtuality of God’s
immensity constitutes the formal ratio of absolute space. It is in this
sense that we should understand Lessius when he says: “The immensity of
the divine substance is to itself and to the world a sufficient space:
it is an expanse capable of all producible nature, whether corporeal or
spiritual. For, as the divine essence is the first essence, the origin of
all essences and of all conceivable beings, so is the divine immensity
the first and self-supporting expanse or space, the origin of all
expanse, and the space of all spaces, the place of all places, and the
primordial seat and basis of all place and space.”[123]

The second proof of our conclusion may be the following. Let us imagine
that all created things be annihilated. In such a case, there will remain
nothing in space, and there will be an end of all contingent occupation,
presence, or ubication. Yet, since God will remain in his immensity,
there will remain that infinite reality which contains in its expanse
the possibility of infinite contingent ubications; for there will remain
God’s immensity with all its extrinsic terminability. In fact, God would
not cease to be in those places where the creatures were located; the
only change would be this, that those places, by the annihilation of
creatures, would lose the contingent denominations which they borrowed
from the actual presence of creatures in them, and thus all those
ubications would cease to be _formal_, and would become _virtual_. It is
plain, therefore, that the reality of void space must be accounted for
by the fact that, after the annihilation of all creatures, there remains
God’s immensity, whose infinite virtuality is equivalent to infinite
virtual ubications. Hence, space void of matter, but filled with God’s
substance, can be nothing else than the infinite virtuality of divine
immensity.

A third proof of our conclusion, and a very plain one, can be drawn from
God’s creative power. Wherever God is, he can create a material point;
and wherever a material point can be placed, there is space; for space is
the region where material things can be ubicated. Now, God is everywhere
by his immensity; and therefore, everywhere there is the possibility of
ubicating a material point--that is, absolute space has the same range
as God’s immensity. On the other hand, there is no doubt that a material
point, by being ubicated in absolute space, is constituted in God’s
presence, and is thus related to God’s immensity; and this relation
implies the extrinsic termination of God’s immensity. Therefore, the
ubication of a material point in space is the extrinsic termination of
divine immensity; whence it follows that the possibility of ubications is
nothing but the extrinsic terminability of the same immensity.

The fourth proof of our conclusion consists in showing that none of
the other known opinions about space can be admitted. First, as to the
_subjective form_ imagined by Kant, we cannot believe that it has any
philosophical claim to adoption, as it evidently defies common sense,
and is supported by no reasons. “Kant,” says Balmes, “seems to have
overlooked all distinction between the imagination of space and the
notion of space; and much as he labored in analyzing the subject, he did
not succeed in framing a theory worthy of the name. While he considers
space as a receptacle of natural phenomena, he at the same time despoils
it of its objectivity, and says that space is nothing but a merely
subjective condition, … an imaginary capacity in which we can scatter
and arrange the phenomena.”[124] “To say that space is a thing merely
subjective,” continues Balmes, “is either not to solve the problems of
the outward world, or to deny them, inasmuch as their reality is thereby
denied. What have we gained in philosophy by affirming that space is a
merely subjective condition? Did we not know, even before this German
philosopher uttered a word, that we had the perception of exterior
phenomena? Does not consciousness itself bear witness to the existence of
such a perception? It was not this, therefore, that we wished to know,
but this only: whether such a perception be a sufficient ground for
affirming the existence of the outward world, and what are the relations
by which our perception is connected with the same outward world. This
is the whole question. He who answers that in our perception there is
nothing but a merely subjective condition, Alexander-like, cuts the
knot, and denies, instead of explaining, the possibility of experimental
knowledge.”[125]

As to Descartes’ and Leibnitz’ opinion, which makes the reality of
space dependent on material occupation, we need only observe that such
an opinion, even as modified by Balmes, leads to numerous absurdities,
presupposes the material continuity of bodies, which we have shown to
be intrinsically repugnant,[126] and assumes, by an evident _petitio
principii_, that space void of matter is nothing. The same opinion is
beset by another very great difficulty, inasmuch as it assumes that the
reality of space lies in something relative, whilst it recognizes nothing
absolute which may be pointed out as the foundation of the relativity.
This difficulty will never be answered. In all kind and degree of
reality, before anything relative can be conceived, something absolute
is to be found from which the relative borrows its relativity. On the
other hand, it is obvious that real space, as understood by Descartes,
and by Balmes too, is something purely relative; for “space,” says
Balmes, “is nothing but the extension of bodies themselves”; to which
Descartes adds, that such a space “constitutes the essence of bodies.”
But the extension of bodies is evidently relative, since it arises from
the relations intervening between the material terms of bodies. The
three dimensions of bodies--length, breadth, and depth--are nothing but
distances, and distances are relations in space. Hence, no dimension is
conceivable but through relations in space; and therefore, before we can
have real dimensions in bodies, we must have, as their foundation, real
space independent of bodies. Finally, since the opinion of which we are
speaking affirms that relative space is a reality, while it denies that
space without bodies is real, the same opinion lays down the foundation
of real and of ideal Pantheism, as we have already remarked. This
suffices to show that such an opinion must be absolutely rejected.

Nothing therefore remains but to accept the doctrine of those who account
for the reality of absolute space either by divine immensity or by the
possibility of real ubications. But these authors, as a little reflection
will show, though employing a different phraseology, teach substantially
the same thing; for it would be absurd to imagine the possibility
of infinite real ubications as extraneous to God, in whom alone all
things have their possibility. We must, therefore, conclude that space,
considered absolutely as to its quiddity, may be defined to be the
infinite virtuality, or extrinsic terminability, of divine immensity.

_A Corollary._--Absolute space is infinite, eternal, immovable,
immutable, indivisible, and _formally_ simple, though _virtually_
extended without limits--that is, equivalent to infinite length, breadth,
and depth.

_Solution of Objections._--It may be objected that absolute space, being
only a virtuality, can have no formal existence. In fact, the virtuality
of divine immensity is the mere possibility of real ubications; and
possibilities have no formal existence. Hence, to affirm that absolute
space has formal being in the order of realities, is to give body to
a shadow. It would be more reasonable to say that space is contained
in divine immensity just as the velocity which a body may acquire is
contained in the power of an agent; and that, as the power of the agent
is no velocity, so the virtuality of immensity is no space.

This objection may be answered thus: Granted that the virtuality
of divine immensity is the mere possibility of real ubications, it
does not follow that absolute space has only a _virtual_ existence,
but, on the contrary, that, as the virtuality of divine immensity is
altogether _actual_, so also is absolute space. The reason alleged, that
“possibilities have no formal existence,” is sophistic. A term which is
only possible, say, another world, has of course no formal existence;
but its possibility--that is, the extrinsic terminability of God’s
omnipotence--is evidently as actual as omnipotence itself. And in the
same manner, an ubication which is only possible has no formal existence;
but its possibility--that is, the extrinsic terminability of God’s
immensity--is evidently as actual as immensity itself. If absolute space
were conceived as an array of actual ubications, we would readily concede
that to give it a reality not grounded on actual ubications would be to
give a body to a shadow; but, since absolute space must be conceived as
the mere possibility of actual ubications, it is manifest that we need
nothing but the actual terminability of God’s immensity to be justified
in admitting the actual existence of absolute space.

Would it be “more reasonable” to say, as the objection infers, that
space is contained in divine immensity just as velocity is contained
in the power of the agent? Certainly not, because what is contained
in divine immensity is the virtuality of contingent ubications, not
the virtuality of absolute space. There is no virtuality of absolute
space; for there is no virtuality of possibility of ubications; as the
virtuality of a possibility would be nothing else than the possibility
of a possibility--that is, a chimera. Hence, the words of the objection
should be altered as follows: “Contingent ubications are contained in
divine immensity just as velocity is contained in the power of an agent;
for, as the power of the agent is no actual velocity, so the virtuality
of immensity is no actual contingent ubication.” And we may go further
in the comparison by adding, that, as the formal possibility of actual
velocity lies wholly in the power of the agent, so the possibility of
actual ubications--that is, absolute space--lies in the virtuality of
divine immensity.

Thus the objection is solved. It will not be superfluous, however, to
point out the false assumption which underlies it, viz., the notion that
the extrinsic terminability of divine immensity has only a virtual, not
a formal, reality. This assumption is false. The terminability is the
formality under which God’s immensity presents itself to our thought,
when it is regarded as the source of some extrinsic relation, _ut
habens ordinem ad extra_. Such a formality is not a mere concept of our
reason; for God’s immensity is not only conceptually, but also really,
terminable _ad extra_; whence it follows that such a terminability is
an objective reality in the divine substance. Terminability, of course,
implies virtuality; but this does not mean that such a terminability has
only a virtual reality; for the virtuality it implies is the virtuality
of the extrinsic terms which it connotes, and not the virtuality of its
own being. Were we to admit that the extrinsic terminability of God’s
immensity is only a virtual entity, we would be compelled to say also
that omnipotence itself is only a virtual entity; for omnipotence is the
extrinsic terminability of God’s act. But it is manifest that omnipotence
is in God formally, not virtually. In like manner, then, immensity is in
God not only as an actual attribute, but also as an attribute having an
actual terminability _ad extra_, which shows that its terminability is
not a virtual, but a formal, reality.

A second objection may be made. Would it not be better to define space
as _the virtuality of all ubications_, rather than _the virtuality of
God’s immensity_? For when we think of space, we conceive it as something
immediately connected with the ubication of creatures, without need of
rising to the consideration of God’s immensity.

We answer that absolute space may indeed be styled “the virtuality
of all ubications;” for all possible ubications are in fact virtually
contained in it. But such a phrase does not express the quiddity of
absolute space; for it does not tell us what reality is that in which all
ubications are virtually contained. On the contrary, when we say that
absolute space is “the virtuality of divine immensity,” we point out the
very quiddity of space; for we point out its constituent formality which
connects divine immensity with all possible ubications.

True it is that we are wont to think of space as connected with
contingent ubications; for it is from such ubications that our knowledge
of place and of space arises. But this space thus immediately connected
with existing creatures is _relative_ space, and its representation
mostly depends on our imaginative faculty. Hence, this manner of
representing space cannot be alleged as a proof that _absolute_ space can
be intellectually conceived without referring to divine immensity.

A third objection may be the following. Whatever has existence is either
a substance or an accident. But absolute space is neither a substance
nor an accident. Therefore, absolute space has no existence, and is
nothing. The major of this argument is well known, and the minor is
proved thus: Absolute space does not exist in any subject, of which it
might be predicated; hence, absolute space is not an accident. Nor is
it a substance; for then it would be the substance of God himself--an
inference too preposterous to be admitted.

This objection will soon disappear by observing that, although everything
existing may be reduced either to the category of substance or to some
of the categories of accident, nevertheless, it is not true that every
existing reality is _formally_ a substance or an accident. There are
a great many realities which cannot be styled “substances,” though
they are not accidents. Thus, rationality, activity, substantiality,
existence, and all the essential attributes and constituents of things,
are not substances, and yet they are not accidents; for they either enter
into the constitution, or flow from the essence, of substance, and are
identified with it, though not formally nor adequately. Applying this
distinction to our subject, we say that absolute space cannot be styled
simply “God’s substance,” notwithstanding the fact that the virtuality
of divine immensity identifies itself with immensity, and immensity
with the divine substance. The reason of this is, that one thing is
not said simply to be another, unless they be the same not only as to
their reality, but also as to their conceptual notion. Hence, we do
not say that the possibility of creatures is “God’s substance,” though
such a possibility is in God alone; and in the same manner, we cannot
say that the possibility of ubication is “God’s substance,” though such
a possibility has the reason of its being in God alone. For the same
reason, we cannot say simply that God’s eternity is his omnipotence, nor
that his intellect is his immensity, nor that God understands by his
will or by his goodness, though these attributes identify themselves
really with the divine substance and with one another, as is shown in
natural theology. It is plain, therefore, that absolute space is not
precisely “God’s substance”; and yet it is not an accident; for it is the
virtuality or extrinsic terminability of divine immensity itself.

A fourth objection arises from the opinion of those who consider God’s
immensity as the foundation of absolute space, but in such a manner as to
imply the existence of a _real_ distinction between the two. Immensity,
they say, has no formal extension, as it has no parts outside of parts;
whereas, absolute space is formally extended, and has parts outside of
parts; for when a body occupies one part of space, it does not occupy
any other--which shows that the parts of space are really distinct from
one another; and therefore absolute space, though it has the reason of
its being in God’s immensity, is something really distinct from God’s
immensity.

To this we answer, that it is impossible to admit a _real_ distinction
between absolute space and divine immensity. When divine immensity is
said to be the foundation, or the reason of being, of absolute space, the
phrase must not be taken to mean that absolute space is anything made,
or extrinsic to God’s immensity; its meaning is that God’s immensity
contains in itself _virtually_, as we have explained, all possible
ubications of exterior things, just as God’s omnipotence contains in
itself _virtually_ all possible creatures. And as we cannot affirm
without error that there is a real distinction between divine omnipotence
and the possibility of creatures which it contains, so we cannot affirm
without error that there is a real distinction between divine immensity
and the possibility of ubications which it contains.

That immensity has no parts outside of parts we fully admit, though
we maintain at the same time that God is everywhere _formally_ by his
immensity. But we deny that absolute space has parts outside of parts;
for it is impossible to have parts where there are no distinct entities.
Absolute space is one simple virtuality containing in itself the reason
of distinct ubications, but not made up of them; just as the divine
essence contains in itself the reason of all producible essences, but is
not made up of them.

As to the _formal extension_ of immensity, Lessius seems to admit it
when he says that “God exists in the space which his immensity _formally
extends_.” Fénelon also holds that “immensity is infinite extension”;
whilst Balmes does not admit that extension can be conceived where there
are no parts. The question, so far as we can judge, is one of words. That
God is everywhere _formally_ is a plain truth; on the other hand, to
say that he is _formally_ extended, taking “extension” in the ordinary
signification, would be to imply parts and composition; which cannot be
in God. It seems to us that the right manner of expressing the infinite
range of God’s immensity would be this: “God through his immensity is
formally everywhere, though by a virtual, not a formal, extension.”
In the same manner, space is formally everywhere, though it is only
virtually, not formally, extended. And very likely this, and nothing
more, is what Lessius meant when saying that immensity “formally extends”
space. This phrase may, in fact, be understood in two ways; first, as
meaning that immensity causes space to be _formally extended_--which
is wrong; secondly, as meaning that immensity is _the formal_, not the
efficient, _reason_ of the extension of space. This second meaning,
which is philosophically correct, does not imply the _formal_ extension
of space, as is evident, unless by “formal extension” we understand the
“formal reason of its extending”; in which case the word “extension”
would be taken in an unusual sense.

Lastly, when it is objected that “bodies occupying one part of space
do not occupy another,” and that therefore “space is composed of
distinct parts,” a confusion is made of absolute space, as such, and
space extrinsically terminated, or occupied by matter, and receiving
from such a termination an extrinsic denomination. Distinct bodies give
distinct names to the places occupied by them; but absolute space is not
intrinsically affected by the presence of bodies, as we shall see in our
next article; and, therefore, the distinct denominations of different
places refer to the distinct ubications of matter, not to distinct parts
of absolute space. As we cannot say that the sun and the planets are
parts of divine omnipotence, so we cannot say that their places are parts
of divine immensity or of its terminability; for as the sun and the
planets are only extrinsic terms of omnipotence, so are their places only
extrinsic terms of immensity. Such places, therefore, may be distinct
from one another, but their possibility (that is, absolute space)
is _one_, and has no parts. But this subject will receive a greater
development in our next article, in which we intend to investigate the
nature of relative space.

TO BE CONTINUED.


CORPUS CHRISTI.

    Not lilies here, their vesture is too pale,
    Nor will they crush to fragrance ’neath the tread
    Where every step must rapturous thought exhale
    Of the triumphant King whose thorn-crowned head
    Dripped crimson life-drops but a while ago.
    Not lilies here, to-day the roses know
    It is Love’s feast, and sacred banquet-hall
    And holy table should be decked and strewn
    With Love’s bright flowers, the perfumed gifts of June.
    Oh! that our hearts might lie beneath his feet
    Even as the drifting petals, pure and sweet!
    Joy, drooping soul! His peace is over all.
    Gethsemane is past, Golgotha’s darkness fled:
    To-day the guests are bidden, the heavenly banquet spread.


ARE YOU MY WIFE?

BY THE AUTHOR OF “PARIS BEFORE THE WAR,” “NUMBER THIRTEEN,” “PIUS VI.,”
ETC.

CHAPTER VI.

THE DEBUT.

The three days had expanded to ten when Admiral de Winton opened the
breakfast-room door on Monday morning, and, standing on the threshold,
said in his most emphatic manner: “Harness, I’m going up by the 3.20 this
afternoon. Now, not a word, or I’ll bolt this minute. … I can bear a good
deal, but there is a limit to everything. You’ve wheedled me and bullied
me into neglecting my business for a whole week, in spite of myself; and
I’m off to-day by the 3.20.”

“Well, depart in peace whatever you do,” said Sir Simon, “and I suppose
you had better have some breakfast before you start? It’s struck nine
already, but you will have time to swallow a cup of tea between this and
then.”

“The fact is it serves me right,” continued the admiral, advancing to his
accustomed seat at the table; “hard-worked drudges of my kind ought never
to trust themselves in the clutches of idle swells like you--they never
know when they’ll get out of them. Here’s a letter from the Admiralty,
blowing me up for not sending in that report I was to have drawn up on
the Russian fleet; and quite right, too--only it’s you who ought to get
the blowing up, not me.”

“But, uncle, I thought you had settled to remain till Thursday,” said
Clide; “you said you would yesterday.”

“One often says a thing yesterday that one has to unsay to-day,” retorted
the admiral, clearing for action by sweeping his letters to one side;
“I’m going by the 3.20. I tell you I am, Harness!”

“Well, I’ve not said anything to the contrary, have I?”

“But you needn’t be trying to circumvent me, to make me late for the
train, or that sort of thing. I’m up to your dodges now. Ryder will be on
the look-out; he’s packing up already.”

“I must say its rather shabby behavior to Lady Anwyll,” observed the
baronet; “the dinner and dance on Wednesday are entirely for you and
Clide.”

“Clide must go and make the best of it for me; an old fellow like me is
no great loss at a dinner, and I don’t suppose she counted much on me for
the dance. How much longer do you intend to stay here, eh?” This was to
his nephew.

“What’s that to you?” said Sir Simon, interrupting Clide, who was about
to answer; “you’d like him to do as you are doing--set the county astir
to entertain him, and then decamp before anything comes off.”

But the admiral was not to be moved from his determination by any sense
of ill-behavior to the county. He started by the 3.20. Sir Simon and
Clide went to see him off, and called at The Lilies on their way back.

“It’s perfectly useless, he never would consent to it; and in any case
it’s too late now,” Sir Simon remarked, with his hand on the wicket;
“it’s for Wednesday, and this is Monday. We should have thought of it
sooner.”

“Well, you’ll speak to him anyhow; it may serve for next time,” urged
Clide in a low voice; “it’s cruel to see her cooped up in this way.”

It was as Sir Simon guessed. M. de la Bourbonais would not hear of
Franceline’s going to Lady Anwyll’s. Why should he? He did not know Lady
Anwyll, and he was not likely to accept an invitation that had clearly
been sent at somebody else’s request, at the eleventh hour. But quite
apart from this he would never have allowed his daughter to go. He
never went out himself, and his paternal French instinct repelled as a
monstrous _inconvenance_ the idea of letting her go without him--above
all, for a first appearance.

“But, happily, Franceline does not care about those things,” he said;
“she has never been to a party, as you know. She is happier without
amusements of the sort; her doves are all the amusement she wants.”

“Hem!… I’m not so sure of that, Bourbonais,” said Sir Simon; “we take for
granted young people don’t care for things because we have ceased to care
for them; we forget that we were young once upon a time ourselves. Why
should Franceline not enjoy what other young girls enjoy?”

“She is not like other young girls,” replied her father, in a tone of
gentle sadness.

“Unfortunately for other girls and for mankind in general,” assented Sir
Simon.

Raymond smiled.

“I meant that their circumstances are not alike. You know they are not,
mon cher.”

“You make mountains out of mole-hills, Bourbonais,” said the baronet;
“however, I give in about this hop of Lady Anwyll’s. It wouldn’t quite
do to bring Mlle. de la Bourbonais out in that fashion; she must be
presented differently; those youngsters don’t consider these important
points.” And he nodded at Clide, who had sat listening with none the less
interest because he was silent. “But something must be done about it; the
child can’t be thrown any longer on her doves for society; she must have
a little amusement; it will tell on her health if she has not.”

It was not without intention that he pointed this arrow at Raymond’s
shield. Sir Simon knew where his vulnerable spot lay, and that it was
possible to make him do almost anything by suggesting that it might
affect his child’s health. He had, so far, no grounds for alarm, or even
anxiety about it; but the memory of her mother, to whom she bore in many
ways so strong a resemblance, hung over him like the shadow of an unseen
dread. It was this that conquered him in the riding scheme, reducing
him into acquiescence with what he felt was not frankly justifiable.
Sir Simon had indeed assured him that Lord Roxham had declined to take
Rosebud; but he did not explain the circumstances. Clide had taken
a fancy to the spirited bay mare, and on the very morning after the
letter was despatched he announced his intention of riding her while he
remained; whereupon the baronet, more keenly alive to the courtesies
of a host than the obligations of a debtor, instead of telling him
how matters stood, wrote a second letter on receipt of Lord Roxham’s
accepting the offer, to say he could not let him have the horse for a
week or so, and as Lord Roxham wanted her immediately as a present for
his intended bride, he could not wait, and thus £1,000 slipped out of
Sir Simon’s hands. Mr. Simpson, his incomparable man of business, had,
however, stopped the gap by some other means, and the rascally architect
was quieted for the present.

Raymond observed that Lord Roxham was not the only person in England
who was open to the offer of a mare like Rosebud, though it might be
difficult to meet with any one willing to give such an exorbitant price
for her; one does not light on a wealthy, infatuated bridegroom every
day. “Yes, that’s just it,” replied Sir Simon, grasping at any excuse for
procrastination, “one must bide one’s time; it’s a mistake selling for
the sake of selling; if you only have patience you’re sure to find your
man by-and-by.” And Raymond, feeling that he had done all that he was
called upon to do in the case, recurred to it no more, and was satisfied
to let Franceline use the horse. There was no doubt the exercise was
beneficial to her. Angélique said her appetite had nearly doubled, and
the child slept like a dormouse since she had taken the riding; and as to
the enjoyment it afforded her, there could be no mistake about that.

Sir Simon had promised to think over what next should be done to amuse
his young favorite, and he was as good as his word. He gave the matter,
in ministerial parlance, his most anxious consideration, and the
result was that he made up his mind to give a ball at the Court, where
Franceline should make her _début_ with the _éclat_ that became her real
station and the hereditary friendship of the two families. He owed this
to Raymond. It was only fitting that Franceline should come out under
his roof, and be presented by him as the daughter of his oldest and most
valued friend. He was almost as fond of the child, too, as if she were
his own; and besides, it was becoming desirable at this moment that her
position in society should be properly defined. He came down to breakfast
big with this mighty resolution, and communicated it to Clide, who at
once entered into the plan with great gusto, and had many valuable hints
to give in the way of decorations; he had seen eastern pageants, and
Italian and Spanish _festas_, and every description of barbaric gala in
his travels, and his ideas were checked by none of the chains that are
apt to hamper the flights of fancy in similar cases. Sir Simon had never
hinted in his presence at such a thing as pecuniary embarrassments, and
there was nothing in the style and expenditure at the Court to suggest
their existence there. Sir Simon winced a little as Clide unwittingly
brought his practical deception home to him by speaking as if money were
as plentiful as blackberries with the owner of Dullerton; but he was
determined to keep strictly within the bounds of reason, and not to be
beguiled into the least unnecessary extravagance.

“Bourbonais would not like it, you see; and we must consider him first in
the matter. It will be better on the whole to make it simply a sort of
family thing, just a mustering of the natives to introduce Franceline. It
would be in bad taste to make a Lord Mayor’s day of it, as if she were
an heiress, and so on. We’ll just throw all the rooms open, and make it
as jolly as we can in a quiet way. I’ll invite everybody--the more the
merrier.”

So they spent a pleasant hour or so talking it all over; who were to be
asked to fill their houses, and what men were to be had down from London
as a reserve corps for the dancing. They had got the length of fixing the
date of the ball, when Sir Simon remembered that there was the highly
important question of Franceline’s dress to be considered.

“I must manage to get her up to London, and have her properly rigged
out by some milliner there. I dare say your stepmother would put us up
to that part of the business, eh?” And Clide committed his stepmother
to this effect in a most reckless way. It had already been mooted with
Raymond by Sir Simon that Franceline should go to London for a few days
to see the sights, and he could fall back on this now for the present
purpose. He was surprised to find that Raymond consented to the proposal,
not merely without reluctance, but almost with alacrity.

“If you really think the change will do her good, I shall be only too
grateful to you for taking her,” he said; “but does it strike you she
wants it?”

Sir Simon felt a slight shock of compunction at this direct question,
and at the glance of timid inquiry that accompanied it. He had never
intended to distress or alarm his friend; he only made the remarks about
Franceline’s health as a means of compassing his own ends towards amusing
and pleasing her.

“Not a bit of it!” he answered contemptuously; “what could have put such
a notion into my head? When I say a little change of one sort or another
will do her good, I only judge from what I hear all the mothers say;
when their daughters are come to Franceline’s age they’re constantly
wanting change, and if they are too long without it they begin to droop,
and to look pale, and so forth, and the doctor orders them off somewhere.
I don’t imagine Franceline is an exception to the general rule; and as
prevention is better than cure, it’s as well to give her the change
before she feels the want of it. It’s a good plan always to take time by
the forelock; you see yourself that the riding has done her good.”

“Yes, mon cher, yes,” said M. de la Bourbonais, tilting his spectacles,
“it certainly has strengthened her. She has lost that pain in her side
she used to suffer from, though I never knew it--I only heard of it when
it was gone. Angélique should not have concealed it from me,” he added, a
little nervously, and with another of those inquiring looks at Sir Simon.

“Pooh, pooh, nonsense! What would she have worried you about it for? All
young people have pains in their sides,” returned the baronet oracularly.
“She’s not done growing yet. Well, then, it’s settled that I carry her
off on Monday. We will start early, so as to be there to receive Mrs. de
Winton, who arrives at Grosvenor Square by the late afternoon train.”

“But there is one thing you must promise me,” said Raymond, going up
to him and laying a hand impressively on his arm; “you will go to no
unnecessary expense. You must give me your word for that.”

“There you are, as usual, harping on the old string,” laughed the
baronet, with a touch of impatience. “What expense do you expect me to go
to? The house is there, and the servants are there and whether I’m there
or not the expenses go on. You don’t suppose Franceline will add very
heavily to them, or Mrs. de Winton either?”

“But you talked about taking her to the operas, and so on, and I am
sure she would not care for amusements of that sort; they would be too
exciting for her. The change of scene and the sights of the city will be
quite enough.”

“Make your mind easy about all that. Mrs. de Winton will take care the
child doesn’t overdo herself. She’s a very sensible woman, and not at all
fond of excitement.”

As the baronet pronounced Mrs. de Winton’s name, it occurred to him
for the first time to wonder if it suggested nothing to Raymond, and
whether Clide’s assiduity at The Lilies, and prolonged stay at Dullerton
after his announcement that he was only to remain three days, awoke
no suspicion in his mind. The thing would have been impossible in the
case of any other father; but Raymond was so absorbed in his studies,
in hunting out and analyzing the Causes of the Revolution, the proposed
title of the work that was to be Franceline’s _dot_, and so altogether
unlearned in the common machinery of life, that he was capable of seeing
the house on fire, and not suspecting it concerned him until it singed
his pen. He knew that Clide’s meeting with him had been a turning-point
in the young man’s life; that it was Raymond’s advice and influence that
determined him to return to Glanworth, and enter on his duties there
with a vigorous desire to fulfil them at the sacrifice of his own plans
and inclinations. He was already acting the part of mentor to Clide, who
carried him his agent’s letters to read, and consulted him about the
various philanthropic schemes he had in his head for the improvement of
the people on his estate--notably the repression of drunkenness, which
Raymond impressed on him must be the keystone of all possible improvement
among the humbler classes in England. Was it possible that this demeanor
and the son-like tone of respect which Clide had adopted toward him
suggested no ulterior motive on Clide’s part, or awoke no parental fear
or suspicion in Raymond? Sir Simon was turning this problem up and down
in his mind, and debating how far it might be advisable to sound his
friend, when Raymond said abruptly:

“Mr. de Winton is not going with you, of course?”

“No; he is to run down to his own place while we are away. I expect him
back when we return.”

Their eyes met. Sir Simon smiled a quizzical, complaisant smile, but it
died out quickly when he saw the alarmed expression in Raymond’s face.

“The idea never struck me before,” he exclaimed. “How should it? There
was nothing to suggest it; the disparity is too great.”

“How so? They are pretty well matched in age--eighteen and
eight-and-twenty--and as to Clide’s family, he cannot certainly count
quarterings with the De Xaintriacs, or perhaps even the Bourbonais; but
the De Wintons are…”

“Enfantillage,[127] enfantillage!” broke in Raymond with a gesture of
wild impatience; “as if it signified in a foreigner living in exile
whether his family be illustrious or not, when it is decayed and without
the smallest actual weight or position! The disparity I allude to is in
fortune. With such a barrier between my daughter and Mr. de Winton, how
could any arrangement have entered into my imagination?”

“And you have actually lived all these years in England without getting
to understand Englishmen and their ideas better than that!” said Sir
Simon. “As if it mattered that”--snapping his fingers--“about any
difference in fortune! Why half the wealthiest men I know have married
girls without a penny. I did it myself,” added the baronet, with a change
from gay to grave in his tone; “my wife had no fortune of her own, and if
she had, I wouldn’t have taken a penny with her. No man of spirit, who
has a fortune large enough to support his wife properly, likes to take
money with her. Clide de Winton has £15,000 a year, and no end of money
accumulating in the funds; he hasn’t spent two years’ income these last
eight years, I’ll lay a wager; it would be a crying shame if he were to
marry a wife with money; but he’s not the man to do it.”

M. de la Bourbonais had risen, and was walking up and down with his hands
behind his back and his chin on his breast, his usual attitude when he
was thinking hard. It was the first time that the idea of Franceline’s
marriage had come home to him in any practical form--indeed, in any form
but that of a remote and shadowy abstraction that he might or might
not be some day called upon to discuss. He had not discussed his own
marriage, and there was no precedent in his mind for discussing hers. As
far as his perceptions carried him, those things were entirely arranged
by outsiders; when everything was made ready in the business department,
the parties concerned were brought together, and the wedding took place.
But what business was there to arrange in Franceline’s case? If Mr. de
Winton had been a high-born young gentleman without a penny to bless
himself with, there would have been some sense in his being proposed as
a candidate for Mlle. de la Bourbonais; but it was against all law and
precedent that a millionnaire should dream of marrying a girl without a
_dot_.

“This is very foolish” he said, taking another turn up the long
room--they were in the library--“if it occurred to you before, you should
have told me.”

“Told you what? That Mlle. de la Bourbonais was a deuced pretty girl,
and Mr. de Winton a remarkably good-looking young man, neither blind nor
devoid of understanding. I should think you might have found that out for
yourself.”

“It is not a thing to joke about, Simon. I cannot understand your joking
about it.” And Raymond halted before Sir Simon, who was lounging back in
his chair, his coat thrown back, and his thumbs stuck into his waistcoat,
while he surveyed his friend’s anxious face with a look of comical
satisfaction. “Has Mr. de Winton spoken to you on the subject?”

“No.”

“Have you said anything to him about it?”

“Not I!”

“And yet you speak as if you had something to go upon.”

“And so I have. I have my eyes and my intelligence. I have been making
use of both during the last ten days.”

“Then am I expected to speak to him?”

“You are expected to do nothing of the sort,” said the baronet, starting
from his listless attitude, and speaking in a determined manner; “it does
not concern you at this stage of affairs. If you interfere you may just
put your foot in it. Leave the young people to manage their own affairs;
they understand it better than we do.”

“Not concern me!” echoed Raymond, protruding his eyebrows an inch
beyond his nose; “and if this idea, that seems so clear to you, should
seem clear to others, and nothing comes of it, how then? My child is
compromised, and I am not to interfere, and it does not concern me?”

“You talk like an infant, Bourbonais!” said Sir Simon, changing his
bantering tone to one of resentment. “Am I likely to encourage De Winton
if I did not know him; if I were not certain that he is incapable of
behaving otherwise than as a gentleman!”

“But you confess that he has not said anything to you; suppose he should
never have thought of it at all?”

“Suppose that he’s a blind idiot! Is it likely that a young fellow like
Clide should be thrown into daily society with a girl like Franceline and
not fall in love with her? Tell me that!”

But that was precisely what Raymond could not see. His mental vision was
not given to roaming beyond the narrow horizon of his own experience:
this furnished him with no precedent for the case in point--a young man
falling in love and choosing a wife without being told to do so by his
family.

“If it were suggested to him,” he replied, dubiously, “no doubt he might;
but no one has put it into his head; even you have not given him a hint
to that effect.”

Sir Simon threw back his head and roared.

“Really, Bourbonais, you’re too bad! ’Pon my honor you are. To imagine
that a man of eight-and-twenty waits for a hint to fall in love when he
has the temptation and the opportunity! But you know no more about it
than the man in the moon. You live in the clouds.”

“I have lived in them perhaps too long,” replied Raymond, humbly and
with a pang of self-reproach. “I should have been more watchful where my
child was concerned; but I fancied that her poverty, which hitherto has
cut her off from the enjoyments of her age, precluded all possibility of
marriage--at least until the fruit of my toil should have given her a
right to think of it. It seems I was mistaken.”

“And are you sorry for it?”

Raymond walked to the window, and looked out for a moment before he
answered.

“Admitting that the immense disparity in fortune were _not_ an
insuperable barrier, there is another that nothing would overcome in
Franceline’s eyes--he is not a Catholic.”

“Yes, he is. At least he ought to be; his mother was a Catholic, and he
was brought up one.

“Strange that he should not have mentioned that to me!” said Raymond,
musing; “but then how is it that we did not see him in church last
Sunday?”

“Hem!… I’m not quite sure that he went; it was my fault. I kept them
both up till the small hours of the morning talking over business, and
so on,” said Sir Simon, throwing the mantle of friendship over Clide’s
delinquency. “You know it does not do to draw the rein too tight with
a young fellow. He’s been so much abroad, and unhappy, and that sort of
thing, you see; but a wife would bring him all right again, and keep him
up to the collar.”

“Franceline would attach paramount importance to that, Harness,” said the
father, with a certain accent of humility; he did not dare insist on it
in his own name.

“Of course she would, dear little puss, and quite right; but she won’t be
too hard on him for all that.”

It required all Sir Simon’s powers of persuasion to make Raymond
promise that he would leave things alone, and not speak either to
Clide or Franceline on the subject of this conversation. He gave the
promise, however, feeling in some intangible way that the possibility
of Franceline’s marriage under such unprecedented, such unnatural
circumstances, in fact, was a phenomenon too far beyond his ken for him
to meddle with in safety. It was decided that she should go to London on
the day appointed, as if nothing had transpired between the friends since
the proposed visit had been agreed to.

       *       *       *       *       *

A ball anywhere at Dullerton was always a momentous occasion, stirring
the stagnant waters with pleasurable agitation; but a ball at the
Court was an event of such magnitude that it set the neighborhood in
movement like a powerful electric shock. It was, compared to ordinary
entertainments of the kind, what a Royal coronation is to a Lord Mayor’s
show. Wonderful reports were afloat as to the magnificence of the
preparations that were going on. Nobody had been allowed to see them; but
conjecture was busy, and enough transpired to excite expectation to the
highest pitch. It was known that men had been brought down from London
with vans full of all sorts of appliances for transforming the solemn
Gothic mansion into a fairy palace. How the transformation was to be
effected no one had the vaguest idea, and this made expectation all the
more thrilling.

It was indeed but too true that Sir Simon had abandoned his first wise
intention of making it no more than a gay mustering of the clans. Fate
so ordained that just at this time he got news of the rapidly declining
health of his interesting relative, Lady Rebecca Harness. “She cannot
possibly hold out over the autumn; her physician allowed as much to
transpire to a professional friend of mine, so we must be prepared for
the worst,” wrote Mr. Simpson; “it is certainly providential that the
£50,000 and the reversion of her ladyship’s jointure should fall in at
this moment.” And Sir Simon felt that he could not better express his
grateful sense of the providential coincidence, and at the same time
cheer himself up under the impending bereavement, than by giving for once
full play to the oriental element of hospitality and magnificence, so
long pent up in him by a sordid bondage to economy.

“Clide, that idea of yours about turning the Medusa gallery into a
moonlight walk, with palms and ferns, and so on, was really too good to
be lost. I think we must have the Covent Garden people down to do it. And
then the Diana gallery would make a capital pendant in the Chinese style.
It’s really a pity to do the thing by halves; I owe it to Bourbonais to
do it handsomely on an occasion like this; and, hang it! a couple of
hundreds more or less won’t break a man, eh?”

And Clide being decidedly of opinion that it would not, the Covent Garden
people were had down, and preparations went on in right royal style.

M. de la Bourbonais had been informed that a dance was in view for the
purpose of introducing Franceline, and accepted the intelligence as a
part of the mysterious web that was being woven round him by unseen
hands. Perhaps he vaguely connected the event with something like a
_soirée de contrat_, or a forerunner of it, and this would account for
his passive acquiescence, and the tender, preoccupied air that marked
his manner during the foregoing week. Sir Simon, like a wily diplomatist
as he was, managed to keep Clide from going to The Lilies for nearly the
entire week, by throwing the whole burden of overseer on him, filling his
hands so full of commissions for London, and shifting the responsibility
of everything so completely on his shoulders that he had scarcely time to
eat or sleep, being either on the railroad or in a state of workmanlike
_déshabillé_ that made it impossible for him to show himself beyond the
precincts of the scene of action until dinner-hour, when Sir Simon was
always abnormally disinclined for a walk, and insisted on being read to
or otherwise entertained by his young friend till bed-time.

Franceline, meanwhile, had her own preoccupations. Not about her
dress--that had been settled to her utmost satisfaction, being aided by
the combined action of Mrs. de Winton and that lady’s French milliner.
But there was another important matter weighing heavily upon her mind.
It was just three days before the great day. Mr. de Winton had rushed
down with the _Edinburgh Review_ for M. de la Bourbonais, apologizing
profusely to Franceline, who was sitting in the summer-house, for
presenting himself in such a state of undress, and saying something to
the effect that it was the servants’ dinner-hour, and they were so much
engaged, etc. But he could not keep the count waiting for the book, which
ought to have been sent several days ago. No, he would not disturb the
count at that hour, if Mlle. Franceline would be kind enough to take the
book and explain about the delay. Franceline promised to do so; which was
rash, considering that she did not understand a word about it, or that
there was any delay whatever.

“Oh! I may as well profit by the opportunity to ask if you are engaged
for the first waltz on Thursday?” said Mr. de Winton, turning back after
he had gone a few steps, as if struck by a happy thought.

No, Franceline was not engaged.

“Then may I claim the privilege of the first-comer, and ask you for it?”

“Yes, thank you. I shall be very happy.”

And she began immediately to be very miserable, remembering that she did
not know how to waltz, never having had a dancing lesson in her life.
She shut up her book, and set out toward the vicarage. She never felt
quite at home with the Langrove girls; but they were the essence of good
nature, and perhaps they could help her out of this difficulty. She was
ashamed to say at once what had brought her, and went on listening to
them chattering about their dresses, which were being manufactured out
of every shade of tarlatan in the rainbow. Suddenly Godiva exclaimed:
“I wonder if you’ll have any partners, Franceline? Do you think you
will? You know you don’t know anybody? You’ve never even spoken to Mr.
Charlton.” And Franceline, crushed under a sense of this and another
inferiority, blushed, and said “No.”

“Perhaps Mr. de Winton will ask you? Oh, I should think he’s sure to.
Hasn’t he asked you already?” And Franceline, painfully conscious of ten
eyes staring at her, blushed deep crimson this time, and answered “Yes”;
and then, suddenly recollecting that she had something important to do,
she said good-by and hurried away. She had not closed the gate behind her
when the five Misses Langrove who were “out” had rushed up to the nursery
and informed the five who were not “out” that Franceline de la Bourbonais
was engaged to that handsome, rich young Mr. de Winton, who had £60,000 a
year and the grandest place in Wales. Only fancy!

“How stupid I was to get red like that, instead of telling the truth
and asking Isabella to teach me how to do it!” was Franceline’s vexed
exclamation to herself, as she entered the garden, and, swinging her
sunshade, looked up at her doves perched on a branch just behind the
chimney that was curling its blue rings up against the deeper purple of
the copper-beech.

“What is my child meditating on so solemnly?” said M. de la Bourbonais,
meeting her at the door; and taking her face between his hands, he looked
into the dark, deep eyes that had never had a secret from him. Had they
now? He had watched her walking up the garden, and noticed that fold
in the smooth, white brow; he was always watching her of late, though
Franceline did not perceive it.

“I am worried, petit père. I wish I were not going to this ball!” And she
leaned her cheek against his with a sigh.

Raymond started as if he had been stabbed.

“My child! my cherished one! what is it? What has happened?”

“O petit père! it’s nothing,” she cried eagerly, smitten with remorse by
his look of anguish. “It’s not worth being unhappy about; only I never
thought of it before, and now I’m afraid it can’t be helped. They will
ask me to dance, and I don’t know how.”

“Mon Dieu! it is true. We should have thought of that. It was very
heedless of us all. But there must be a master here who could give thee
some lessons, my child. We will speak to Miss Merrywig. Stay, where’s my
hat? There is no time to be lost.”

But Franceline checked him. “Petit père, I should be ashamed to get a
master now; every one would know about it and laugh at me; all the young
girls would make such fun of me.”

“What dances dost thou want to dance?” inquired her father, knitting his
brows, as if searching some forgotten clew in the background of memory;
“I dare say I could recall the _minuet de la cour_ a little, if that
would help thee.”

“I never hear them speak of it. I don’t think they dance that now; only
quadrilles and waltzes,” said Franceline.

“Ah! quadrilles were after my day; but the _valse à trois temps_ I knew
once upon a time. Come and let us see if I cannot remember it.”

They went into the dining-room, pushed the table and chairs into a
corner, and M. de la Bourbonais, fixing his spectacles as a preliminary
step, put himself into position; his right foot a little in advance, his
eye-brows very much protruded, and his head bent forward; he made the
first steps with hesitation, then more boldly, assisting his memory by
humming the tune of an old waltz.

Angélique, who was spinning in the room overhead, came down to see what
the table and chairs were making all this clatter about, and burst in on
a singular spectacle: her master pirouetting to the tune of _un, deux,
trois!_ round the eight-feet square apartment, while Franceline, squeezed
against the wall, held up her skirt so as to afford a full view of her
shabby little boots, and tried to execute the same evolutions in a space
of one foot square.

“Papa is teaching me to waltz,” explained the pupil, not looking up, but
keeping her eyes stuck on the professor’s feet lest she should miss the
thread of their discourse.

“Well, to be sure! To think of Monsieur le Comte’s remembering his
steps at this time of day! What a wonderful memory monsieur has!” was
Angélique’s admiring comment.

“Now, then, shall we try it together?” said M. de la Bourbonais, and
placing his arm round Franceline, the two glided round the room, the
professor whistling his accompaniment with as much emphasis as possible,
while the pupil counted one, two, three, and Angélique kept time by
clapping her hands.

“Oh, petit père, I shall do it beautifully!” cried Franceline, suspending
the performance to give him an energetic kiss that nearly sent his
spectacles flying across the room. “Now if you only could teach me the
quadrille!”

But this recent substitute for the art of dancing was beyond the scope
of Raymond’s abilities; quadrilles, as he said, had come into fashion
long after his time. It was a grand thing, however, to have accomplished
so much, and Franceline felt a sense of triumphant security in her
newly-acquired possession that cleared away all her tremors. She spent
the rest of the afternoon practising the _valse à trois temps_, so as to
be quite perfect in it. Sir Simon found her thus profitably employed when
he came down just before his dinner with a newspaper.

“What were we all thinking about not to have remembered that?” was his
horrified exclamation. “Why, of course you must know the quadrille; you
will have to open the ball, child. You must come up this evening to the
Court, and we’ll have a private little dancing lesson, all of us, and put
you through the figures.”

And so they did; and the result was so successful that, when the great
day came, Franceline felt quite sure of being able to behave like
everybody else. Her dress came down with Mrs. de Winton on the eve of the
ball, and she was, in accordance with that lady’s desire, to dress at the
Court under her supervision.

It was a new era in Franceline’s life, finding herself arrayed in a fairy
robe of snow-white tulle, with wild roses creeping up one side of it,
and a cluster of wild roses in her hair. Angélique stood by, surveying
the process of transformation with arms a-kimbo, too much impressed by
the splendors of the whole thing to vindicate her rights as _bonne_, and
quite satisfied to see her natural functions usurped by nimble Croft,
Mrs. de Winton’s maid. But when that experienced person whipped up the
gossamer garment and shook it like an apple-tree, and tossed it with
a sweep over Franceline’s head, it fairly took away her breath, for
the pink petals stuck on in spite of the shock, and the soft flounces
foamed all round just in the right place, rippling down from the neck and
shoulders, and flowing out behind like a sea-wave. Then Croft crowned it
all by planting the pink cluster in the hair just as if it grew there.
Mrs. de Winton came in at this crisis, however, and suggested that they
would be more becoming a little more to the front.

“Well, ma’am, if you’ll take the responsibility,” demurred the abigail
with pinched lips, and stepping aside as if to get clear of all
participation in the rash act herself, “in course you can; but my maxiom
always was and is, as modesty is the most becoming ornament of youth; if
you put them roses forwarder, anybody’ll see as how it was meant to be
a set-off to the complexion--as you might say, putting a garding rose
alongside of a wild one, to see which was the best pink.”

“Oh! indeed, it’s very nicely done; it could not possibly be better,”
said Franceline earnestly. She was rather in awe of the fine lady’s maid,
and looked up appealingly to Mrs. de Winton not to gainsay her; but that
serene lady paid no more heed to the abigail’s protest than she might
have done to the snarling of her pet pug. With deft and daring fingers
she plucked out the flowers, pushed the rich, bright coils to one side so
as to make room for them, and then planted them according to her fancy.
If the change were done with a view to the effect foretold by Mrs. Croft,
there was no denying it to be a complete success. Angélique, by way of
doing something, took up a candle and held it at arm’s length over
Franceline’s head, making short chuckling noises to herself which the
initiated knew to be expressive of the deepest satisfaction.

“Now, my dear, I think you will do,” said Mrs. de Winton, looking up and
down the young girl with a smile of placid assent, while she washed her
long, tapering hands with the old Lady-Macbeth movement; “let us go down.”

Sir Simon and the Admiral and M. de la Bourbonais were assembled in
the blue drawing-room, where the guests were to be received, when the
two ladies entered. Mrs. de Winton, in the mellow splendor of purple
velvet, old point, and diamonds, looked like the protecting divinity of
the cloud-clad nymph tripping shyly after her. An involuntary murmur
of admiration burst from the Admiral and Sir Simon, while M. de la
Bourbonais, all smiles and joy, came forward to embrace Franceline.

“O my dear child!…”

“Count, take care of her roses!” cried Mrs. de Winton, ruffled into
motherly alarm as she saw Franceline, utterly oblivious of her headgear,
nestling into her father’s neck.

Raymond started, and looked with deep concern to see if he had done any
mischief. Happily not.

“Come here and let me look at you!” said Sir Simon, holding her at
arm’s length out before him. “They’ve not made quite a fright of you, I
see--eh, admiral?”

“Dear Sir Simon, it’s all a great deal too pretty. It’s like being in a
story-book, my lovely dress and everything?” said Franceline, standing on
tip-toe to be kissed.

Mr. de Winton came in at this juncture.

“I say, Clide, it’s rather hard on us to have to stand by and not follow
suit,” grumbled the admiral.

Franceline crimsoned up; the bare suggestion of such a possibility as
the words implied made her heart leap up with a wild throb. She did not
mean to look at Clide, but somehow, involuntarily, as if moved by some
mesmeric force, their eyes met. It was only for a moment, but that rapid,
mutual glance sent the life-current coursing through her young veins with
strange thrills of joy. Clide had turned quickly to point out something
in the decorations to his uncle, and Franceline slipped her arm into her
father’s, and began to admire the beauty of the long vista of parlors
leading on to the ball-room, where the orchestra was already inviting
them to the dance with abrupt flashes of music, one instrument answering
another in sudden preludes, or chords of sweetness “long drawn out.”

“You have not seen the galleries yet,” said Sir Simon; “come and look at
them before the crowd arrives.”

They followed him into the Medusa gallery, and the transition from the
brilliant glare of wax-lights to the subdued twilight of the blue dome,
where mimic stars were twinkling round a silver crescent, was so solemn
and unexpected that Raymond and Franceline stood on the threshold with
a kind of awe, as if they had come upon sacred precincts. Tall ferns
and palms nodded gently in the blue moonlight, swayed by some invisible
agent. The change from this to the gaudy brilliancy of the Diana gallery
was in its way as striking; myriads of Chinese lanterns were swinging
from the ceiling; some peeped through flowers and plants, and some were
held by Chinese mandarins with pig-tails and embroidered bed-gowns.

“Are they real Chinamen?” enquired Franceline in a whisper, as she passed
close by one of them and met his eyes fixed on her with the appreciating
glance of an outer barbarian.

“Real! To be sure they are. I imported a small cargo of them from Hong
Kong, pig-tails and all, for the occasion,” replied Sir Simon.

But a twinkle in his eye, and a broad grin on the face of the genuine
John Chinaman, belied this audacious assertion. Franceline laughed
merrily.

“How clever of you to have invented it, and how exactly like real
Chinamen they are!” she cried, intending to be complimentary to all
parties; which the mandarin under consideration acknowledged by a slow
bend of his skull-capped head and a movement of the left hand towards the
tip of his nose, supposed to represent a native salutation.

“Bestow your commendation where it is due,” said Sir Simon; “it’s all
that young gentleman’s doing,” pointing with a jerk of his head towards
Clide, who had sauntered in after them. “But here comes somebody; we must
be under arms to receive them.”

The baying of the bloodhounds chained in the outer court announced the
arrival of a carriage; they reached the reception-room in time to hear it
wheeling up the terrace.

And now the master of Dullerton Court was in his element. The tide of
guests poured in quickly, and were greeted with that royal courtesy that
was his especial attribute. No matter what the worries and cares of life
might be elsewhere, they vanished as if by enchantment in the sunshine
of Sir Simon’s hospitality. He forgot nobody; the absent ones had their
tribute of regret, and he remembered the precise cause of the absence:
the daughter who had an inopportune toothache, the son forced to remain
in town on business, and the father pinned to his bed by the gout;
Sir Simon was so sorry for each individual absentee that while he was
expressing it you would have imagined this feeling must have damped his
joy for the evening; but the cloud passed off when he shook hands with
the next arrival, and he was radiantly happy in spite of sympathetic gout
and toothache.

Mrs. de Winton seconded her host well in doing the honors. If she was a
trifle stiff, it was such a graceful, well-bred stiffness that you could
not quarrel with it, and she neglected no one.

“There are Mr. Langrove and the girls!” exclaimed Franceline, in high
excitement, as if that inevitable spectacle were an extraordinary
surprise.

“Oh! how gorgeous you are, Franceline,” was Godiva’s awe-stricken _sotto
voce_, as if she feared that loud speech might blow away the bubble.

“And what a delicious fan! Do let me look at it!” panted Arabella in the
same subdued tone.

“Oh! but look at her shoes,” cried Georgiana, clasping her hands and
looking down, amazed, at the white satin toe, with its dainty pink
rosette, that protruded from under the skirt.

“I’m so glad you like it all,” said Franceline, delighted at the _naïve_
and good-natured expressions of admiration. They were all as artless
as birds, the Langrove girls, and had not a grain of envy in their
composition.

“Oh! there’s Mr. Charlton,” whispered Matilda, nudging Alice to look as
the observed-of-all-observers in Dullerton appeared in the doorway.

The room was now full to overflowing, and the crowd, swayed by one of
those spontaneous movements that govern crowds, suddenly poured out
of the blue drawing-room into the adjoining ones, leaving the former
comparatively empty. Franceline was following the stream when Sir Simon
called out to her:

“Don’t run away; come here to me. I want to introduce you to my friend
Lady Anwyll. Mlle. de la Bourbonais--I was going to say, my daughter, but
unfortunately she is only the daughter of my oldest friend and second
self, the Comte de la Bourbonais; you have met him, I believe?”

Lady Anwyll had had that distinction, and was charmed now to make his
daughter’s acquaintance. She had none of her own to dispose of, which
the wily Sir Simon perhaps remembered when he singled her out for this
introduction.

“You’ll see that she has a few partners. I dare say they won’t be very
reluctant to do their duty with a little pressing.”

“It’s the only duty young men seem equal to nowadays,” said the plump old
lady, nodding in the direction of a group of the degenerate race; and she
drew Franceline’s hand through her arm, and bore her off like a conquest.

“Who’s that girl? She’s awfully pretty! What color are her eyes--black,
blue, or brown? I’ve not seen such a pair of eyes this season, by Jove!”
drawled a _blasé_ young gentleman from the metropolis.

“You’re a luckier man than your betters if you have ever seen a pair like
them,” retorted Mr. Charlton, superciliously; “that’s the belle of the
evening, Mlle. de la Bourbonais.”

“You’ll be a good fellow, and introduce me--eh, Charlton?” said his
friend.

But Mr. Charlton turned on his heel without committing himself further
than by a dubious “I’ll see about it.” His position as native gave him
the whip-hand over all interlopers, and he meant to let them know it.

And now the orchestra has burst out in full storm, and engaged couples
are hunting for each other amidst the vortex of tarlatan and dress-coats.
Clide has found his partner and led her to the top of the room, where Sir
Simon and Lady Anwyll are waiting for their _vis-à-vis_. A little lower
down, Miss Merrywig is standing up with Mr. Charlton.

“How very absurd of him, my dear,” the old lady is protesting to Arabella
Langrove, who made their _dos-à-dos_; “but he will have me dance the
first quadrille with him. Was there ever anything so absurd!”

Arabella was too polite to contradict her; and Mr. Charlton bent down
to assure Miss Merrywig there was no one in the room he could have
half as much pleasure in opening the evening’s campaign with; a speech
which was overheard by several neighboring young ladies, who commented
on it in their own way, while Franceline, who beheld with surprise the
ill-assorted couple stand up together, thought it showed very nice
feeling on the part of Mr. Charlton to have selected the dear old lady
for such a compliment, and that she looked very pretty in her lavender
watered silk and full blonde cap with streamers flying. But it was
quite clear that Miss Bulpit thought differently. That estimable and
zealous Christian had with much difficulty been persuaded by Sir Simon
to condescend so far to sanction the vanities of the unconverted as to
be present at the ball, and she had discarded her funereal trappings of
black bombazine for the mitigated woe of black satin; but the cockade of
limp black feathers that sprouted from some hidden recess where her back
hair was supposed to be protested sorrowfully against the glossy levity
of her dress, and bobbed with a penitential expression that was really
affecting. Mr. Sparks was hawking her about like a raven in a carnival.
_He_ entered into her feelings; it was chiefly the desire to support her
by his countenance and sympathy that had brought him to this scene of
ungodly dissipation.

Franceline was terribly nervous in the first figure, and Clide felt it
incumbent on him to give her his utmost help in the way of prompting
beforehand, and commendation when the feat was over. They got on
swimmingly until the third figure, when she became hopelessly entangled
in the ladies’-chain, giving her hand to Lady Anwyll instead of Sir
Simon, and then rushing back to Clide, while Sir Simon rushed after her
and made everything inextricable.

“Really, governor, you’re too bad!” protested Mr. de Winton; “why don’t
you mind what you’re about? You’re putting my partner out disgracefully!”

Sir Simon bore the broadside with heroic magnanimity, apologized to
everybody all round, except Clide, who ought to have called him to order
in time, and not let him go bungling on, confusing everybody. By the time
he had done scolding and they had all got into position again, the figure
was over. The rest of the quadrille was got through without any mishaps
to speak of, and when Clide carried his partner off for a promenade in
the moonlit gallery, assuring her that she had done it all beautifully,
Franceline felt that the praise, for being a trifle strained, was none
the less due. Other couples followed them in amongst the ferns and palms,
and Franceline was soon besieged by entreating candidates for the next
dances. Mr. Charlton came up with the graceful self-possession that
belongs to six thousand pounds a year and a decidedly handsome and rather
effeminate face, and requested the favor of a quadrille. It was promised,
and he stood by her side and in that earnest tone that was acknowledged
to be so captivating by all the young ladies of Dullerton asked Mlle. de
la Bourbonais if this was her first ball.

“Ah! I thought so. One can always tell by the freshness with which
people enjoy it. For my own part, I confess I envy every one their first
experience of this kind; it so soon wears off--the pleasure, I mean--and
one feels the insipidity of it. Perhaps you already anticipate that?”
There was a depth of expression in her face that suggested this remark.
Mr. Charlton considered himself a reader of character--a physiognomist,
in fact.

“Oh! no,” exclaimed Franceline, with artless vehemence; “I don’t think I
should ever get tired of it; it’s far more enjoyable than I imagined!”

“Ah, indeed! Well, just so; it’s as people feel; for my part I think it’s
a mistake--I mean getting _blasé_ of things;” and he ran a turquoise and
diamond finger through his curly straw- hair.

“I hate people who are _blasé_,” was the unconventional rejoinder; “they
are always so tiresome and woe-begone. Papa always says he feels under
a personal obligation to people for being happy; they do him good--like
dear little Miss Merrywig, for instance. I’m sure she’s not _blasé_ of
anything; how she did enjoy herself in the quadrille! And it was so
pretty to see her dancing her demure little old-fashioned steps.”

“She’s a very old friend of yours, is she not, Charlton?” said Clide.

“Oh! yes; since before I was born. She’s a dear old girl, if she would
only not bother one to guess what she gave for her buttons,” replied Mr.
Charlton. “But just see here! Is our Christian friend trying to deal with
Roxham?”

Miss Bulpit was coming across the conservatory out of the Diana gallery,
leaning on Lord Roxham, with whom she was conversing in an earnest manner.

“Oh! here you are, Roxham. I’ve been hunting for you this quarter of an
hour,” called out Sir Simon, appearing from behind a mandarin who was
holding a tray full of tea-cups to the company. “Franceline, my friend
Lord Roxham has threatened to shoot me if I don’t get him a dance from
you; so in self-defence I had to make over my right to the first waltz. I
couldn’t do more, or less. What do you say, Miss Bulpit?”

Miss Bulpit considered Sir Simon was behaving very handsomely.

“It’s easy to be generous at other people’s expense,” observed Mr.
de Winton, tightening his grasp on the light arm that was obediently
slipping from him; “it so happens that Mlle. de le Bourbonais has
promised the first waltz to me.”

“I’m sorry to disappoint you, my dear fellow, but you might have had a
little thought for other people’s rights. You won’t deny that I deserve
an early favor?” said the baronet, with playful peremptoriness.

“Dear Sir Simon, I never thought of your asking me,” said Franceline
penitently.

“Oh! that’s it,” said the baronet, shaking his head; “that’s sure to
be the way of it; we poor old fogies get shoved out of the way by the
youngsters. Well, you see I’m letting you off easier than you deserve.
Roxham, we’ll change partners, if Miss Bulpit does not object to taking
an old man instead of a young one.”

Franceline was again going to draw her arm away, but again the tightening
grasp prevented her. She looked up at Clide; but he was looking away from
her, his mouth set in a rigid expression, and an angry fold divided the
straight brows that lay like bars across his forehead.

“Mlle. de la Bourbonais promised me this dance,” he said, coldly, to Lord
Roxham.

“But I overrule the promise; she had no business to give it without
consulting me, naughty, unfeeling little person! Come, De Winton, make
way for my deputy!” And with a nod and a laugh that were clearly not to
be trifled with, he beckoned Clide to follow him.

Franceline looked up with the beseeching glance of a frightened fawn
as Clide released her arm, and with a low bow walked away. She was
ready to cry; but there was nothing for it but to accept Lord Roxham’s
proffered arm, and go into the ball-room where in a moment she was
caught up and was whirling mechanically along with the waltzers. She
was too preoccupied to be nervous about the performance that she had
looked forward to with so much trepidation, and so she acquitted herself
admirably. Her partner stopped after the first round to let her take
breath.

“Yes, thank you, I am a little giddy; I am not accustomed to dancing.”

So they stood under the colonnade. Lord Roxham would have been a pleasant
partner if Franceline had been in a mood to enjoy his lively talk on all
sorts of subjects. He saw there were likely to be breakers ahead between
Clide and some one about this dance; but he had had nothing to say to
that. He felt rather aggrieved than otherwise, being forced, as it were,
on a girl against her will, or at any rate without her being consulted.
And it was hard on De Winton, whether he particularly held to his pretty
partner or not. What the dickens did Harness mean by meddling in it at
all? He was not given to putting spokes in other people’s wheels. Lord
Roxham was very intelligent, but though furnished with an average share
of masculine conceit, it never occurred to him to think that the falling
through of his marriage lately, and the fact of his being the eldest
son of a peer with a fine estate--a good deal encumbered, but what of
that?--might afford any clue to Sir Simon’s odd behavior.

“No, I did not mean in the political issue of the contest; ladies are
not expected to take much interest in that part of the business,” he was
saying to his partner; “but they are apt to get up very warm partisanship
for the candidates, irrespective of politics.”

“Who are the candidates?” inquired Franceline.

Lord Roxham laughed.

“Poor wretches! They _are_ to be pitied. Sir Ponsonby Anwyll on the
Conservative side and Mr. Charlton for the Liberals.”

“Mr. Charlton! He is then clever? Can he make speeches?”

Lord Roxham laughed again, and hesitated a little before he replied:
“It’s rather a case, I fancy, of the man who could not say whether he
could play the fiddle, because he had never tried. We none of us know
what we can do till we try. Charlton does not strike you as having the
making of an orator in him, I see.”

“Oh! I don’t know. I spoke to him to-night for the first time; he did not
give me the idea of a person who could make speeches and laws; one must
be very clever to get into Parliament, must he not?”

“If elections were conducted on the competitive examination system, one
might assume that; but I’m afraid we successful candidates can hardly
take our success as the test of merit,” said her companion. “I see you
have rather a high standard about electioneering.”

Franceline had no standard at all, and was full of curiosity to hear
about the mysteries of canvassing and constituents, and the poll,
from some one who had gone through the various stages of the battle,
from being pelted with rotten eggs on the hustings to the solemn
taking possession of a legislator’s seat in the Imperial Parliament.
A legislator must be a kind of hero. She was glad to have met one.
Lord Roxham, who liked to hear himself talk, proceeded to enlighten
her to the best of his ability; he had no end of droll electioneering
stories to tell, and scandalous tales of corruption through the medium
of gin-shops, etc.; he opened her eyes in horror by his account of the
rotten-borough system, and the rottenness of the law-making machine in
general, touching the heroes of the Liberal party with a light dash
of satire and caricature that brought the dimples out in full force in
Franceline’s cheeks, and made her laugh merrily; in short, he was so
lively and entertaining that she was quite sorry when he held out his arm
for them to start off again in the dance. As they stepped from under the
colonnade, she saw Clide leaning against a pillar at the other side, with
his eyes fixed on her.

“Oh! stop, please,” pleaded Franceline, after one turn over the spacious
floor, and they rested for a moment; just as they did so, a couple flew
past--Mr. de Winton and a very beautiful girl, as tall as Franceline, but
in no other way resembling her; her hair was black as ebony, with black
eyes and a clear olive complexion.

“Who is that lady?”

“Lady Emily Fitznorman, a cousin of mine.”

“How beautiful she is! I never saw any one so handsome!”

“Did you not?” with an incredulous smile, then looking quickly away. “She
is a very striking person; she is the belle of _our_ county. You look
warm; shall we take a turn in the galleries?”

Franceline assented. Passing through the conservatory, they came upon
two persons seated in a recess, partly screened by a large fan-leaved
plant. It was Clide and Lady Emily; she was talking with great animation,
gesticulating with her fan, while he sat in an attitude of deep
attention, his elbows resting on his knees, and his head bent forward.
Franceline felt a sudden shock at her left side, as if her heart had
stopped, while a spasm of pain shot through her, making every fibre
tingle. What was this olive-skinned beauty saying to Clide that he was
listening to with such rapt attention? He did not even look up, though
he must have seen who was passing. Poor Franceline! what tremor is this
that shakes her from head to foot, convulsing her whole being with one
fierce throb of angry emotion! Poor human heart! the demon of jealousy
had but to blow one breath upon it, and she whose life had hitherto been
a sort of inverse metempsychosis of a lily and a dove, was transformed
into a woman fired with passionate vindictiveness, longing to snatch
at another human heart and crush it. But the woman’s pride, that woke
up with the pain, came instinctively to her assistance. She began
talking rapidly to Lord Roxham, sinking her voice to the _sotto voce_
of confidence and intimacy, so that he had to lower his head slightly
to catch what she was saying; thus they swept by the two in the recess,
without glancing towards them.

Clide meantime had seen it all. He had been straining every nerve to
catch what Franceline was saying, and was voting his friend Roxham a
confounded puppy, whose conceited head he would have much pleasure in
punching on the first opportunity. He could not punch Sir Simon’s, though
he deserved it more than Roxham.

“May I ask you for an explanation of your behavior to me just now, Sir
Simon?” he had said to his host as soon as Miss Bulpit had set him free;
“what did you mean by interfering with me in that manner?”

“Did I interfere with you?” was the supercilious retort, with a bland
smile. “I’m very sorry to hear it; but I think I had a right to the
second dance from a young lady whom I consider my adopted daughter.”

“If it had been for yourself I should have yielded without a word; but
it was for Roxham you shoved me aside.”

“Well, suppose I choose to elect a deputy to do my duty? I had a right to
choose Roxham.”

“I fancied I might have had a prior claim.”

“Indeed! Then you should have told me so. How was I to know it?--Well,
vicar, I see your young ladies are in great request; how does Miss Godiva
happen to be in your company?”

“What can he be driving at?” muttered Clide, as his host turned away
to get a partner for Godiva Langrove; “has he been fooling me all this
time--is he playing me off against Roxham? And is she--” He walked into
the ballroom, and there saw, as we know, Lord Roxham and Franceline very
happy in each other’s society.

He went straight to Lady Emily Fitznorman, and asked her for the waltz
that was going on. She was _fiancée_ to a friend of his, he knew; so
he was safe so far, and she had plenty to say for herself, and he must
talk to some one. He was not a man to show the white feather, whatever
he might feel. He kept steadily aloof from Franceline after this, and
Lord Roxham, taking for granted that he had been mistaken in his first
impressions, secured her for three more dances, which was all he dared do
in the face of Dullerton.

Franceline was grateful to him. She felt suddenly forsaken in the midst
of the gay crowd, as if some protecting presence had been withdrawn.
Her father was playing _piquet_ in some distant region where there were
card-tables. But even if he had been within reach, there was something
stirring in her newly-awakened consciousness that would have prevented
her seeking him. Clide should not see that he had grieved her. She could
enjoy herself and be merry without him, and she would let him see it!

“Has the honor of taking you in to supper been already secured,
mademoiselle?” said Mr. Charlton, making sure at this early stage that it
had not, and coming up to claim it with the air of elaborate grace that
springs from the habit of easy conquest.

“Yes, it has,” replied Lord Roxham, quickly taking the answer out of
Franceline’s mouth. “I was before you in the field, Charlton, I am happy
to say.”

“How could you tell such a story?” whispered Franceline, with an attempt
to look shocked when Mr. Charlton had gone away.

“I told you everything was considered fair in electioneering,” replied
the member of Parliament.

“Then electioneering must be very bad for everybody who has to do with
it, if it teaches them to tell stories and call it fair.”

But she promised, nevertheless, to act as accomplice in this particular
case of badness, and to let him take her in to supper. He came to claim
his privilege in due time, and they went in together. But the tables were
already so crowded that they could not find two contiguous seats. Some
one beckoned to Lord Roxham that there was a vacant chair higher up,
on a line with where they stood. He elbowed his way through the crowd,
and seized the chair, and placed Franceline in it. She was sitting down
before she noticed that her next neighbor was Clide de Winton. He was
busily attending to the wants of Lady Emily, but turned round quickly on
feeling the chair taken, and moved his own an inch or so to make more
space. At the same moment he looked up to see who Franceline’s attendant
was. “Can’t you find a seat, Roxham? I’ll make way for you presently. We
have nearly done.” There was not a trace of vexation in his manner, or in
his face.

“No hurry! I can bear up for ten minutes more,” replied his friend,
good-humoredly; “but help me to attend to Mlle. de la Bourbonais. What
will you begin with?” bending over her chair.

Franceline did not care. Anything that was at hand.

“Then let me recommend some of this jelly; it is pronounced excellent by
my partner,” said Clide, politely, and scanning the well-garnished table
to see what else he could suggest.

“Thank you. I will take some of these chocolate bonbons.”

“Nothing more substantial?”

“Bonbons are always nourishment enough for me. I think I could live on
them without anything stronger; I have quite a passion for them--my
French nature coming out, you see.”

She spoke very gayly. He helped her without looking at her. She made a
feint of nibbling the _pralines_, but she could not swallow; her heart
was beating so hard and loud she fancied Clide must hear it.

“Roxham, suppose you made yourself useful and get a glass of champagne
for these ladies,” said Clide. “Waylay that fellow with the bottle there.”

Lord Roxham charged valiantly through the crowd, snatched the bottle from
the astonished flunky, and bore it away in triumph over the heads of the
multitude.

“Well done! That’s what I call a brilliant manœuvre,” said Clide,
laughing. “No, you must help them yourself; you deserve that reward
after such a feat of arms, and Mlle. de la Bourbonais, who has a great
admiration for heroes, will drink to your health I daresay.”

“I’ve been trying to excite her admiration by the recital of my heroic
exploits at the last elections; but I’m afraid I rather scandalized her
instead,” said the young man, as he poured the sparkling wine into her
glass.

“Served you right,” said Lady Emily, with cousinly impertinence; “when
people fish for compliments they generally catch more snakes than eels.”

“Roxham, will you reach me those sandwiches?” cried a gentleman
struggling with a lady on his arm beyond arm’s length of the table. Lord
Roxham immediately went to his assistance, and some one else instantly
pressed into his place behind Franceline.

“We had better go now, if you have quite finished,” said Clide to Lady
Emily.

Franceline made a movement to rise, but sat down again; Clide’s chair was
on her dress.

“Oh! I beg your pardon. Have I done any mischief?” he exclaimed, starting
up and lifting his chair; the foot had caught in the tulle and made a
slight rent.

“Oh! I am so sorry. I beg your pardon a thousand times!” he said with
great warmth and looking deeply distressed.

“It’s of no consequence; it will never be noticed,” she answered, gently.

“I am so sorry!” Clide repeated. Their eyes met at last; he was disarmed
in an instant.

“Will you dance with me now?” he said almost in a whisper.

“Yes.”

They were soon in the ball-room again.

“Why did you turn me off in that way? Was it that you preferred dancing
with Roxham?”

“O Clide!” The words escaped her like the cry of a wounded bird, and,
with as little sanction of her free will, the tears rose.

He made no answer--no audible one at least; but there is a language in a
look sometimes that is more eloquent than speech. Franceline and Clide
dwelt for a moment in that silent glance, and felt that it was drawing
their hearts together as flame draws flame.

She never knew how long the dance lasted; she only knew that she was
being borne along, treading on air, it seemed to her, and encompassed by
sweet sounds of music as in a dream. But the dream was over, and she was
being steadied on her feet by the strong protecting arm, and Clide was
looking down upon her from his six feet of height, the frown that had
made the dark bars over his eyes look so formidable a little while ago
quite vanished.

“Is Sir Simon angry with us?” she asked, looking up into his face.

“Not he! Why should he be angry with us? And if he were, what does
it matter?” he added, in a voice of low-toned tenderness; “what does
anything matter so long as we are not angry with each other?”

He drew her hand within his arm, and they walked on in silence.
Franceline’s heart was too full for words. Was it not part of her
happiness that this new-found joy should be overshadowed by a vague and
nameless fear?

TO BE CONTINUED.


THE CARDINALATE.

SECOND AND CONCLUDING PAPER.

The manner of creating Cardinals has differed in different ages.
Moroni[128] (_Dizionario_, ix. p. 300, _et seq._) gives a description
of the ancient, the mediæval, and the modern ceremonies used on the
occasion. In the earliest period of which there are details we know
that the pope created the cardinals on the ember-days of Advent in the
churches of the Station. There were three stages in the proceeding:
the first on Wednesday at S. Mary Major’s, the second in the Twelve
Apostles’, and the third in S. Peter’s. The subjects of the cardinalate
were called out in the first two churches by a lector after the pope had
read the Introit and Collect of the solemn Mass; but in the last one,
the pope himself declared such an one to be elected cardinal-priest, or
deacon, by a formula the beginning and essential words of which were:
“Auxiliante Domino Deo et Salvatore Nostro Jesu Christo, _eligimus_ in
ordinem diaconi Sergium (for instance) subdiaconum.” The cardinal-elect
then received from the pope “inter missarum solemnia,” the necessary
Order of the diaconate or priesthood. In those days there was a much
stricter connection required between the (sacred) character of a subject
and his order in the cardinalate than there now is, when a bishop often
belongs to the presbyterial and a priest to the diaconal order. In the
Middle Ages, cardinals were no longer created during Mass or in church
in presence of the people; but at the pope’s residence of the Lateran,
before the Sacred College. The season was still the same and the custom
of creating them only on a fast-day of December lasted for over six
hundred years.

In the mediæval creations three consistories were held in the Apostolic
Palace, of which two were secret and one was public. In the first
consistory the pope deputed two cardinals to go around to the house of
every sick or legitimately-absent cardinal and get his opinion on these
points: Ought there to be a creation? And if so, of how many?

On the return of the deputies the pope asked the cardinals present the
same questions. All voted thereon; and after the votes had been counted,
if the pope saw fit he pronounced that he followed the advice of those
who were in favor--“Nos sequimur consilium dicentium, quod fiant.” Then
the cardinals voted on the number to be created, and after the counting
of the votes, the pope said that he followed the advice of those who
proposed that six (for instance) should be created--“Nos sequimur
consilium dicentium, quod fiant sex.” After a recommendation to reflect
maturely, and deliberate upon the persons proper to be elected, the
consistory broke up. On the Friday following it assembled again, and
when two cardinals, sent out for the purpose as on the first day, had
returned with the names of those suggested by the absent ones, the pope
commanded an empty chair to be brought--“Portetur nuda cathedra.” Then
the cardinals all stood up behind the two rows of benches that ran down
the great _aula consistorialis_, and the senior advanced and, sitting
down beside the pope, was made acquainted in a low voice with the names
of those whom the pope wished to create, and was asked his opinion.
“Quid tibi videtur?” As soon as the cardinal had answered, the next one
went up, and so on until all had been heard. The pope then announced
the result of this auricular consultation and declared such and such
persons created cardinals of the Holy Roman Church. The next day a public
consistory was held in which they were solemnly published; after which
the elect were introduced and heard an allocution addressed to them by
the pope on the duties and dignity of their office, and received from
his hands the large hat, with the designation of their churches. All the
cardinals dined that day with the pope, and in the afternoon the new ones
went in grand cavalcade to take possession of their Titles or Deaconries,
as the case might be.

In more recent times, that is, about 1646, when Lunadoro wrote his
celebrated account of the Roman court,[129] the manner of creating was
almost as at present, except that the now unheard-of Cardinal _Nephew_
(who was called in Italian--_vae, vae!_--Il cardinale _Padrone_) had a
large share in the ceremonies, as he doubtless had a decided influence in
the nominations, and that the red _beretta_, or cap, was placed on the
head of the elect by the pope himself, with the words _Esto cardinalis_,
and the sign of the cross. According to the modern ceremonial, the pope
summons a consistory, and, after delivering an appropriate address, asks
the cardinals their opinion with the customary (but, since the XVth
century, rather perfunctory) formula, “What think ye?” Then they rise,
take off their caps, and bow assent; whereupon the pope proceeds to
create the new cardinals in the words: “By the authority of Almighty God,
of the blessed apostles Peter and Paul, and of our own, etc.”

On account of the present Piedmontese occupation of Rome, the subsequent
ceremonial has to be dispensed with in the case of those cardinals who
may be there at the time of their elevation to the dignity. Those who
are absent receive the lesser insignia of their rank from two papal
messengers; one of whom is a layman and member of the Noble Guard,
carrying the _zucchetto_, or skull-cap, the other an ecclesiastic of some
minor prelatic rank in the pope’s household, bringing the _beretta_. If
the head of the state be a Catholic, he is permitted to place the cap
(brought by the ablegate) upon the new cardinal, the function taking
place in the royal chapel; but in other countries a bishop or archbishop
is appointed by the pope for the purpose.

At one period, particularly during the XVIth century, many serious
scandals were occasioned by the practice of betting on or against the
advancement of certain individuals to the cardinalate, and some who
had staked heavily were convicted of resorting to infamous calumnies
to hinder the nomination of those against whom they had betted. Things
finally became so outrageous that Gregory XIV., in 1591, issued a bull
in which excommunication, already declared, was pronounced against any
one who should presume to wager on the promotion of cardinals (Bul. 4,
Gregory XIV. _cogit nos_).

The expression applied to a cardinal of being or having been reserved
_in petto_, means to be created but (for reasons known only to the pope)
not published or promulgated as such. It is not certainly known when
this practice began, and the subject has been so often confounded with
that of _secret_ creation that it is difficult to assign a precise date.
The secret creation was simply the creation of a cardinal without the
usual ceremonial. It originated with Martin V. (Colonna), probably urged
thereto by the jealousies and dangers that still lingered after the great
schism of the West was happily ended. The other cardinals were consulted,
and notice was given to the honored individual, who was not, however,
allowed to assume the distinctive ornaments or the station of his rank.
In the _in petto_ appointments, only the pope and perhaps his _Uditore_,
or some extremely confidential person bound to secrecy, know the names
of those reserved. It is related of a certain prelate, Vannozzi, who was
much esteemed by Gregory XIV. for his varied learning and long services,
that having been commissioned one day to take note of the names of a few
cardinals to be created in the next consistory, he had the satisfaction
to be ordered to write his own name in the list. Although bound to
secrecy, he was weak enough to give in to the importunate solicitations
of the Cardinal Nephew and show him the paper, which coming to the pope’s
ears, he called the prelate and made him erase his name--and that was the
end of Vannozzi.

A cardinal created, but reserved _in petto_, if he be subsequently
published, takes precedence of all others (in his order) created
subsequently, notwithstanding the reservation. If the pope wish to create
and reserve in this manner, after publishing the names of the cardinals
created in the ordinary way, he uses the formula: “Alios autem duos (for
example) in pectore reservamus arbitrio nostro quandocumque declarandos.”
It is believed that Paul III. (Farnese, 1534-49) was the first to reserve
_in petto_; and we think that he may have done so to reward attachment
to faith and discipline in that heretical age without seeming to do
so too openly, to avoid its having an interested look. The celebrated
Jesuit (himself a cardinal) and historian of the Council of Trent, Sforza
Pallavicini, gives a curious reason--that certainly shows how great was
the idea entertained in his day, the middle of the XVIIth century, of
the Roman cardinalate--why the expression _creation_ of a cardinal is
officially used; and says (vol. 1. p. xiii.) that it is meant to intimate
by the word that the excellence of the dignity is so exalted that all
degrees of inferior rank are as though they were not; so that when the
pope makes a man a cardinal, it is as if in the sphere of honors he
called him out of non-existence into being.

In the first consistory held, in which the newly-created cardinals
appear, the pope performs on them the ceremony of Sealing the Lips (more
literally of Closing the Mouth). It is done in the following formula:
“Claudimus vobis os, ut neque in consistoriis neque in congregationibus
aliisque functionibus cardinalitiis sententiam vestram dicere valeatis.”
At the end of the consistory, when the junior cardinal-deacon rings
a little bell, the pope unseals their lips by saying (in Latin): “We
open your mouths, that in consistories, congregations, and other
ecclesiastical functions, ye may be able to speak your opinion. In
the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, Amen”;
making over them meanwhile three times the sign of the cross. This
custom must be pretty old, for it is mentioned in the XIIIth century
by Cardinal (Stefaneschi) Gaetani, nephew of Pope Boniface VIII., as
already in existence. It has been conjectured that the intention of such
a ceremony was to pass the newly-created cardinals through a kind of
novitiate before receiving what is called, in canon law, the active and
passive voice, _i.e._, the right of electing and of being elected to the
pontificate; but it may also have been intended to impress upon them the
necessity of prudence and modesty of speech in such august assemblies.

The College of Cardinals is the seed and germ of the papacy, and the
greatest act that one of its members can perform is to take part in a
papal election. This is done in a convention called the _Conclave_, which
is subject to many regulations, as becomes so important an occasion. The
present order of this assembly dates from the pontificate of Gregory
XV., in 1621. When Rome was not occupied by some sacrilegious invader,
it took place in the Quirinal Palace by secret voting, the votes being
opened and counted in a chapel called, from the circumstance, _Capella
Scrutinii_. When the election was complete, the senior cardinal-deacon,
whose office corresponds to that of the ancient archdeacons of the Roman
Church, announced it to the people. Originally, however, the cardinals
were not the only electors of the pope, but any foreign bishop in
communion with the Holy See, who happened to be present during a vacancy,
was permitted to take part in the election. Thus, when Cornelius was
exalted to the Chair of Peter, in 254, sixteen such bishops, of whom
two were from Africa, concurred in the act. The rest also of the Roman
clergy had some voice in the election, but it was greatly weakened by
Pope Stephen III. _alias_ IV., in a council held at the Lateran in the
year 769, who made it obligatory to elect a member of the Sacred College.
Alexander III., by the advice and with the approval of the eleventh
General Council (third of Lateran), in 1179, considering the difficulties
arising out of a great number of electors (no less than thirty-three
schisms having already been occasioned thereby), solemnly decreed that
in future the cardinals alone should have the right to choose, confirm,
and enthrone the pope, and that two-thirds of the votes cast would be
necessary for a canonical election. Lucius III., his successor in 1181,
was the first pope elected in this manner by the exclusive action of the
Sacred College. This wise provision was confirmed for the edification
of the faithful, and to show that the bishops dispersed throughout the
church did not claim any share in the election of its head, by the
general councils of Lyons (IId) in 1274, and Vienne in 1311. But once
since have any others had an active voice in the matter, which was at
Constance, when the twenty-three cardinals, to put an end to the schism,
opened the conclave for this time only to thirty prelates, six from
each of the five great nations represented there. This resulted in the
election of Martin V. (Colonna) on November 11, 1417. Since the year
1378 no one not a cardinal has been elected pope; but before that time
a good many, despite the decree of Stephen III. (or IV.), were elected
without being cardinals; six in the XIth, two in the XIIth, three in the
XIIIth, and three in the XIVth century. Of these were S. Celestine V.
and, before him, Blessed Gregory X. A curious circumstance attended the
election of the latter, in which the cardinals were treated as jurymen
who are locked up until they agree upon a verdict. After the death of
Clement IV., in 1268, the Holy See was vacant longer than ever before,
viz., two years nine months and two days, on account of the dissensions
of the eighteen cardinals who composed the Sacred College. The conclave
was held at Viterbo; but, although King Philip III. of France and Charles
I. of Sicily went there to hasten the election, and S. Bonaventure,
general of the Franciscans, induced the towns-people to keep the fathers
close prisoners in the episcopal palace, nothing availed, until the happy
thought struck Raniero Gatti, captain of the city, to take off the roof,
so that the rain would pour in on wet, and the sunshine on hot days.[130]
This had the desired effect, and after S. Philip Beniti, general of
the Servites, had refused the offer of election, the cardinals promptly
agreed upon Theobald Visconti, archdeacon of Liege, and apostolic legate
in Syria. It was on this occasion that an episcopal quasi-poet improvised
the leonine verses:

    “Papatus munus tulit Archidiaconus unus,
    Quem Patrem Patrum fecit discordia Fratrum.”

About this time it became customary for the cardinals to act as
“protectors” of nations, religious orders, universities, and other great
institutions, which were liable to be brought into relations with the
Holy See more frequently then than at present; but Urban VI., in 1378,
without absolutely prohibiting this species of patrocination, forbade
cardinals to accept gifts or any kind of remuneration from those whose
interests they guarded. Martin V. in 1424, Alexander VI. in 1492, and
Leo X. in 1517, issued various decrees to moderate or entirely abolish
such an use of their influence by the cardinals for private parties,
because it might easily, under certain circumstances, stand in the way
of that impartial counsel to the pope and equity of action to which they
were bound before all things. Yet it shows the immense importance of the
cardinalate in the XIVth and XVth centuries, that powerful sovereigns
gave to individuals in the Sacred College the high-sounding title of
protectors of their kingdoms. At the present day, cardinals are allowed
to assume, gratuitously, a care of the interests of religious orders,
academies, colleges, confraternities, and other institutions, mostly in
Rome, which may choose to pay them the compliment of putting themselves
under their patronage.

In the IXth century, S. Leo IV. made a rule that the cardinals should
come to the apostolic palace twice a week for consistory, and John VIII.,
towards the end of the same century, furthermore ordered them to meet
together twice a month to treat of various affairs appertaining to their
office. We find here the beginning of those later celebrated assemblies
called Roman Congregations, which are permanent commissions to examine,
judge, and expedite the affairs of the church throughout the world. Each
cardinal is made a member of four or more of these congregations, and
a cardinal is generally at the head--with the name of prefect--of each
of those the presidency of which the pope has not reserved to himself.
It is always from among the cardinals that the highest officials of the
Church in Rome and of the Sacred College are chosen. The former are the
palatine cardinals, so called because they are lodged in some one of
the pontifical palaces and enjoy the fullest share of the sovereign’s
confidence and favor. They are at present four in number, viz., the
pro-datary, secretary of briefs, of memorials, of state. Next come
the cardinal vicar, grand penitentiary, chamberlain, vice-chancellor,
librarian. The cardinal-archpriests are at the head of the three great
patriarchal basilicas of S. John of Lateran, S. Mary Major, and S. Peter.
The officials of the Sacred College number five, who are all, except one,
_ex-officio_; these are: the dean, who is always Bishop of Ostia and
Velletri, is head of the Sacred College, and represents it on certain
occasions of state, as when he receives the first visit of princes and
ambassadors, and expresses to the Holy Father any sentiments that he and
his colleagues may wish to announce in a body. The sub-dean supplies
his place when absent, or incapacitated from whatever cause. The First
Priest and First Deacon, who were anciently called the Priors of their
order, have precedence, other things being equal, over those of the same
class, besides certain rights and privileges of particular importance
during a vacancy of the See. The chamberlain is appointed annually in the
first consistory held after Christmas. His office is not so venerable or
so significant as the others are in times of extraordinary occurrences;
but in days of peace it is of the highest practical importance. It was
instituted under Leo X., but received its present development under Paul
III., in 1546. Each cardinal habitually residing in Rome must serve in
his turn, beginning with the dean and ending with the junior deacon. From
this arrangement it may be imagined that few cardinals live long enough
in the dignity to have to assume more than once the rather onerous duties
of the office.

The pope gives the chamberlain possession in the same consistory at
which he has been named, by handing him a violet silk purse fringed with
gold and containing certain consistorial papers and the little balls
used by the cardinals to vote with in the committees in which they treat
of their corporate affairs. The principal duties of the chamberlain
are of a two-fold character: as chancellor, to sign and register all
cardinalitial acts, and as treasurer, to administer any property that may
be held in common by the cardinals. He is assisted in his office by a
very high prelate, who is secretary of the Sacred College and consistory.
The archives are in a chamber of the Vatican palace assigned for the
purpose by Urban VIII., in 1625. The chamberlain is also charged to sing
the Mass at the solemn requiem of a cardinal dying during his tenure of
office, and on November 5 for all deceased cardinals. But if he be of
the order of deacons, even if he have received the priesthood, he must
invite a cardinal of the higher order to officiate. This anniversary was
established by Leo X. in 1517.

On account of the great antiquity of the cardinalate, there are many
things of minor importance connected with it that are buried in the
obscurity of ages. Such are appellations of honor and distinctions in
dress; but all writers agree that after the IXth century there was a
remarkable increase in what we might call the accessories of this great
office. Passing over a decree which Tamagna (who yet is an authority on
cardinalitial matters) ascribes to the Emperor Constantine, in which
the cardinals of the Holy Roman Church were put on the same footing
before the state with senators and consuls, and received other marks
of imperial favor, it is certain that during the Middle Ages they were
frequently called senators, were styled individually _Dominus_, and
addressed as _Venerande Pater_, as we learn from a memorandum drawn up
by a Roman canonist in 1227. In the accounts of the Sacred College from
the beginning of the XIVth century up to the year 1378, the cardinals are
called _Reverendi Patres et Domini_. But from this period they assumed
the superlative, and up to the whole of the XVth century were styled
_Reverendissimi_.[131] Urban VIII., on the 10th of June, 1630, gave
them the title of eminence, which was not, however, unknown to the early
Middle Ages, when it was given to certain great officers of the Byzantine
Empire in Italy. Urban’s immediate successor, Innocent X., forbade
cardinals to use any other designation than that of cardinal, or title
than that of eminence, or to put any crown, coronet, or crest above their
arms, which were to be overarched by the hat alone. When Cardinal de’
Medici read the decree, with what was then in such a personage considered
exemplary submission, he requested his friends and the members of his
household never to call him highness any more, and immediately had the
grand-ducal crown removed from wherever it was blazoned. In course of
time, however, cardinals of imperial or royal lineage were allowed to
assume a style expressive of their birth; thus the last of the Stuarts,
the Cardinal Duke of York, etc., was always called Royal Highness at
Rome. The pope writes to a cardinal-bishop as “Our venerable brother,”
but to a cardinal-priest or deacon as “Our beloved son”; and a cardinal
writing to the pope who has raised him to the purple should add at the
end of his letter, after all the other formulas of respectful conclusion,
the words, _et creatura_. Although the cardinals hold a rank so exalted,
they are in many ways made to remember their complete dependence in
ecclesiastical matters upon the sovereign pontiff. There is a peculiar
act of homage due by them to the pope, which is called _Obedience_, and
consists in going up publicly one by one in stately procession, with
_cappa magna_ of royal ermine, and outspread trailing scarlet robe, to
kiss the ring after making a profound inclination to the pontiff sitting
on his throne. This is surely the grandest sight of the Sistine Chapel,
and we have often thought in seeing it what a good reminder it was to
those most eminent spiritual princes that, how great soever they might
be, they were after all but the rays of a greater luminary without which
they would have no existence. The obedience is done at Mass and Vespers;
but never twice on the same day, nor in services for the dead.

The color of a cardinal’s dress is red, unless he belong to a religious
order, in which case he retains that of his habit, but uses the same
form of dress as the others. In 1245, Innocent IV. conferred upon the
cardinals at the first Council of Lyons the famous distinction of the
red hat, which is so peculiarly the ornament of their rank that, in
common parlance, to “receive the hat” is the same as to be raised to the
cardinalate. The special significance of the hat is, that it is placed
by the hands of the pope himself upon the dome of thought and seat of
that intellect by which the cardinal will give learned and loyal counsel
in the government of the church; and its color signifies that the wearer
is prepared to lose the last drop of his blood rather than betray his
trust. Our readers will be reminded here of that angry vaunt of Henry
VIII. about Fisher, Bishop of Rochester, who was lying in prison because
he would not acknowledge the royal supremacy in matters of religion.
When news came to England that Paul III. had raised him to the purple,
the king exclaimed, “The pope may send him the hat, but I will take care
that he have no head to wear it on”; in fact, the bishop was shortly
afterwards beheaded. This hat is now one of ceremony only, and serves
but twice: once, when the cardinal receives it in consistory, and next
when it rests upon the catafalque at his obsequies. It is then suspended
from the ceiling of the chapel or aisle of the church in which he may be
buried. The form is round, with a low crown and wide, stiff rim, from the
inside of which hang fifteen tassels attached in a triangle from one to
five. At the ceremony of giving the hat the pope says, in Latin: “Receive
for the glory of Almighty God and the adornment of the Holy Apostolic
See, this red hat, the sign of the unequalled dignity of the cardinalate,
by which is declared that even to death, by the shedding of thy blood,
thou shouldst show thyself intrepid for the exaltation of the blessed
faith, for the peace and tranquillity of the Christian people, for the
increase and prosperity of the Holy Roman Church. In the name of the
Father ✠; and of the Son ✠; and of the Holy ✠ Ghost. Amen.” Paul II., in
1464, added other red ornaments, and among them the red _beretta_ or cap
to be worn on ordinary occasions; but cardinals belonging to religious
orders continued to use the hood of their habit or a cap of the same
color, until Gregory XIV. made them wear the red. This point of costume
is illustrated by an anecdote which we have heard from an eye-witness; it
also shows that one should not be sure of promotion--until it comes.

Pope Gregory XVI. was a great admirer of a certain abbot in Rome,
whose habit was white, and rumor ran that he would certainly be made
a cardinal. Some time before the next consistory, the pope, with a
considerable retinue--it was thought significantly--went to visit
the monastery, the father of which was this learned monk, and there
refreshments were served in the suite of apartments called, in large
Roman convents, the cardinal’s rooms, because reserved for the use of
that dignitary, should one be created belonging to the order. When
the trays of delicious pyramidal ice-creams were brought in, the pope
deliberately took the _white_ one presented to him on bended knee by a
chamberlain and handed it to the Lord Abbot sitting beside and a little
behind him, then took a _red_ one for himself. No one, of course, began
until Gregory had tasted first, and while all eyes were on him he took
the top off his own ice-cream, turned and put it on his neighbor’s,
saying with a smile as he looked around him, “How well, gentlemen,
the red _caps_ the white!” Alas! the poor abbot; he understood it as
doubtless was meant he should, but he was foolish enough to act upon
it, and procure his scarlet outfit. This came to the ears of the pope,
who was so displeased that he scratched him off the list, nor could any
friends ever get him reinstated; and it was only when Cardinal Doria
said that he was positively wasting away with the disappointment and
mortification, that the pope consented to make him an archbishop _in
partibus_.

In the greater chapels, in the grand procession on Corpus Christi, and on
other occasions the cardinal-bishops wear copes fastened by a pectoral
jewel called _Formale_, which is of gold ornamented with three pine cones
of mother-of-pearl, the priests (even though they may have the episcopal
character) wear chasubles, and the deacons dalmatics, but all use white
_damask_ mitres with red fringes at the extremity of the bands. In their
Titles and Deaconries, also elsewhere, when they officiate, the cardinals
have the use of pontificals. The custom of wearing mitres is said to have
begun for cardinals of the two lower orders only in the XIth century. One
of the distinctive ornaments of a cardinal is the gold ring set with a
sapphire, and engraved on the metal surface of the inside with the arms
of the pope who has created him. It is put on his finger by the Sovereign
Pontiff with these words, some of which are omitted in the case of
deacons: “For the honor of Almighty God, of the holy apostles SS. Peter
and Paul, and of the blessed N. N. (naming the Title) we commit unto thee
the church of ---- (naming it), with its clergy, people, and succursal
chapels.” The actual value of this ring is only twenty-five dollars, but
for many centuries the newly-created cardinal has been expected to give
a large sum of money for some pious purpose, which was different under
different popes, but was perpetually allotted by Gregory XV., in 1622, to
the Sacred Congregation for the Propagation of the Faith. Students of the
Propaganda will remember the elegant tablet and commemorative inscription
originally set up in the college church, but now encased in the wall near
the library. For a long time the sum was larger than at present and was
paid in gold, but in consideration of the general distress in the early
part of this century Pius VII. reduced it to six hundred scudi of silver,
equal to about seven hundred and fifty dollars of our paper money. The
last cardinal who gave the full amount before the reduction was Della
Somaglia, in 1795.

The Roman ceremonial shows the singular importance of the cardinalate,
by the disposition ordered to be made of its members even after death.
It is prescribed that when life has departed a veil be thrown over the
face, and the body, dressed in chasuble if bishop or priest, otherwise in
dalmatic, shall lie in state.

The hat used in his creation must be deposited at his feet, and after
his funeral be suspended over his tomb. His body must be laid in a
cypress-wood coffin in presence of a notary and his official family,
a member of which--the major-domo--lays at his feet a little case
containing a scroll of parchment on which has been written a brief
account of the more important events of his life. Then the first coffin
is enclosed in another of lead, and the two together in a third one of
some kind of precious wood, each coffin having been sealed with the seals
of the dead cardinal and the living notary. The body thus secured is
borne by night with funeral pomp of carriages and torches and long array
of chanting friars to the church of requiem, where it remains until the
day appointed for the Mass, at which the cardinals and pope are present,
and the latter gives the final absolution.

When carriages first came into use in Italy, which was about the year
1500, they were considered effeminate and a species of refined luxury, so
much so that Pius IV., at a consistory held on November 27, 1564, in a
grave discourse exhorted the cardinals not to use a means of conveyance
fit only for women, but to continue to come to the palace in the virile
manner that had been so long the custom--that is, on horseback; and
reminded them that when the Emperor Charles V. returned into Spain from
his visit to Italy, he had said that no sight pleased him there so
much as the magnificent cavalcade of the cardinals on their way to the
chapels and consistories. After this they always rode or were carried in
litters or sedan-chairs, until the beginning of the XVIIth century, when
it became impossible any longer to hinder them from using the new and
more convenient style which had become general for all people of means.
Urban VIII., in 1625, by ordering cardinals to put scarlet head-gear on
their horses, seemed to sanction the change; but it appears to have been
abused, by some at least, in a manner described by Innocent X. (1676),
in a pathetic address, as ill becoming those who had renounced the pomps
and vanities of the world. We may get an idea of the ostentation, when
we know that but a few years previously Maurice of Savoy (who afterwards
by permission renounced the cardinalate for reasons of state) used to go
to the Vatican with a following of two hundred splendid equipages and
a numerous escort of horsemen in brilliant uniforms. The modern custom
(which has been interrupted by the Italian usurpers) is certainly very
modest.

The cardinals proceed to the minor functions with a single carriage and
two on gala days, but princes by birth have three.

Each carriage is red, finished with gilt ornaments, and drawn by a pair
of superb black horses from a particular breed of the Campagna. The
scarlet umbrella carried by one of the somnolent footmen behind is seldom
taken out of its cover, being merely a reminiscence of the old fashion
when their eminences rode, and it might be of service against the rain or
the sun.

Cardinals belonging to a religious order of monks or friars who wear
beards retain them after their exaltation; but others must be clean
shaven. There have been considerable changes in this matter, and
cardinals wore no beards in the XVth century. In fact, the long, silky,
and well-cultivated beard of Bessarion (a Greek) lost him the election
to the papacy after the death of Nicholas V., in 1455. It was also the
occasion of his death with chagrin at an atrocious insult offered him by
Louis XI. of France; for being on an embassy to compose the differences
between that monarch and the Duke of Burgundy, he wrote to the latter
stating the object of his mission before having made his visit to the
former, which so enraged that punctilious king that when the legate came
the first thing he did was to pull his magnificent beard and say:

    “Barbara graeca genus retinent quod habere solebant.”

Under the pontificate of Julius II., who gave the example, cardinals wore
long beards; but in the next century only mustaches and _la barbetta_
(the “goatee”)--varied among the more rigid by just a little bit beneath
the under lip, and called a _mouche_ by the French--were retained until,
in the year 1700, Clement XI. introduced the perfectly beardless face,
which now shows itself under the _beretta_ (Cancellieri, _Possessi de’
Papi_, page 327).

Not to mention S. Lawrence, who is generally reckoned an archdeacon
(_i.e._, cardinal first deacon) of the Roman Church, or S. Jerome, in
vindication of whose cardinalate Ciacconius wrote a special treatise
(Rome, 1581), the Sacred College counts among its members fifteen saints
either canonized or beatified. The first is S. Peter Damian, in 1058,
and the last Blessed Pietro-Maria Tommasi, in 1712. The cardinals
have the privilege of a _Proprium_ for these in the Office. There are
besides nine others popularly venerated as Blessed, but without warrant
from the Holy See that we are aware of. The noblest families of Europe,
imperial, royal, and of lower rank, have been represented in the Sacred
College, those of Italy, of course, preponderating: and no other one,
we believe, has had so many cardinals as that of Orsini, which claims
over forty-two, beginning with Orsino, cardinal-priest A.D. 500. Yet
merit has never been refused a place among its members because it made
no “boast of heraldry” or other pretension to social superiority. Where
so many have been distinguished in a very high degree, it is difficult
to select half a dozen names from as many different nations that have
been represented in the Sacred College, and that stand out above all the
rest in their several countries. Among the Germans, Nicholas de Cusa,
in 1448, is superior to all others for his intrepid defence of the Holy
See and his immense learning, especially in mathematics. He discovered
the annual revolution of the earth around the sun before Copernicus or
Galileo were born. Among the Spaniards, Ximenes, in 1507, is easily
chief, as a minister of state and encourager of education. In England,
Wolsey, created by Leo X., in 1515, although Panvinius (_Epitome_, p.
377) insolently calls him “the scum and scandal of the human race,” is
the greatest figure, and needs no praise. In Scotland, Beaton is first
as state minister and patron of learning. He was put to death in hatred
of the faith which could not be subverted while he lived. Among the
Italians, Bellarmine may be placed first; certainly no other cardinal
has filled so often and so long the minds of the adversaries of the
faith. Clement VIII., in 1599, when he created him, said that there was
no one his equal for learning in all the church. In France, Richelieu,
the greatest prime minister that ever lived, and the savior of the
government and the church by effectually putting down the rebellious
Huguenots. Everything that is good and very little comparatively that
is bad has been represented in the Sacred College; but lest we should
be thought to flatter we will give a few examples that show how no
body of men is entirely above reproach. Moroni has a special article
on pseudo-cardinals and another on cardinals who have been degraded
from their high and sacred office. We say nothing of the former, or we
would be led into an interminable article on the ambition, intrigue,
and schisms that have disgraced individuals and injured the church.
Boniface VIII. was obliged to degrade and excommunicate the two turbulent
Colonnas, uncle and nephew; but doing penance under his successor,
they were restored. Julius II. and Leo X. had difficulties with some
of their cardinals, and one of them, Alfonso Petrucci, for conspiring
against the sovereign, was decapitated in Castle Sant’ Angelo on July
6, 1517. Odet de Coligni, who had been made a cardinal very young at
the earnest request of Francis I., afterwards embraced Calvinism, and,
as usual with apostates, embraced something else besides. Although he
had thrown off his cassock, yet when Pius IV. pronounced him degraded
and excommunicated, he resumed it, out of contempt, long enough to get
married in his red robes. Cardinals Charles Caraffa[132] and Nicholas
Coscia[133] in Italy; de Rohan[134] of the Diamond Necklace affair,
and de Loménie de Brienne[135] in France, _if_, on the one hand, they
have not been what we would expect from those so highly honored, on the
other, they give us proofs of the impartial justice of the popes, and
that no one in their eyes is above the law. Among the curiosities of the
cardinalate is that of Ferdinand Taverna, Bishop of Lodi, who was raised
to the purple in 1604, and died of joy. This reminds us that Cancellieri,
with his usual singularity of research, has a passage in his work on
the _Enthronement of the Popes_, about “persons who have gone mad or
died of grief because they were not made cardinals,” and tells of one in
particular who hoped to make his way by his reputation for learning, and
had a little red hat hung up above his desk to keep himself perpetually
in mind of the prize he was ambitiously seeking--and, of course, never
found. Poor human nature! The importance of the telegraph as a means of
avoiding inconvenient nominations is shown by a good many cases of men
elevated to the cardinalate when they were already dead. Three occurred
in the XIVth century; but as late as 1770 Paul de Carvalho, brother of
the infamous Pombal, was published (having been reserved _in petto_) on
January 20, three days after he had expired.

The Orsini are noted for their longevity, and it has shown itself in
the cardinals as well as in others of the family. Giacinto Bobò Orsini
was made a cardinal at twenty by Honorius II., and after living through
sixty-five years of his dignity and eleven pontificates, was himself
elected pope (being only a deacon) at the age of eighty-five, and reigned
for nearly seven years as Celestine III. (1191-1198). Another one, Pietro
Orsini, after having three times refused the honor, was at length induced
to accept it, wore the purple for fifty-four years and finally became
Benedict XIII. (1724-1730).

Gregory XI., who brought back the See from Avignon, was made a cardinal
by his uncle at seventeen; Paul II. by his, at twenty-one; Pius III.
by his, at twenty; and Leo X. by his, at fourteen--but not allowed to
wear his robes until three years later. The last example, we believe, of
a very young cardinal is that of a Spanish Bourbon, Don Luis, created
at twenty-three by Pius VII., in 1810; he was permitted afterwards to
renounce it. Although exceptions may occasionally be made in future, a
mature age has for many pontificates come to be considered absolutely
necessary before being raised to the dignity. Artaud de Montor has an
anecdote in his _Life of Pius VIII._, about the inexorable Leo XII. in
connection with the young Abbé Duc de Rohan-Chabot, a Montmorency, and
as such, one would think, quite the equal of an Orsini, Colonna, or
the son of any other great Italian family. Whenever Leo was pressed on
the subject, and he was urged by many and very influential persons, to
confer the dignity upon the princely, learned, and virtuous priest, he
had a new Latin verse ready in praise of him, but always ending with
his inevitable youth, as this one for example: Sunt mores, doctrina,
genus--sed deficit ætas (_Artaud_, i. p. 205). He was thirty-seven at the
time.

We conclude with a few words the bibliography of the cardinalate. Not
to mention the almost innumerable separate lives of cardinals which
have been published in all countries, particularly Italy, the greatest
work or series of works connected with the subject is undoubtedly that
of the Spanish Dominican, Chacon, who wrote a _History of the Popes and
Cardinals_ up to Clement VIII. His work was corrected and continued
by the Italian Jesuit, Oldoini, up to Clement IX. inclusive, all with
beautiful portraits and arms. At the request of Benedict XIV., a learned
prelate named Guarnacci continued this work to the pontificate of
Clement XII. inclusive. It was sumptuously brought out in 1751. There
is a continuation of this, containing the whole of Benedict XIV.’s
pontificate, and later matter from MSS. left by Guarnacci and from other
sources, that appeared in 1787, and is actually (if our memory does not
deceive us) rarer at Rome than the other parts of the work, although
published so much later. We have understood that there are still some
precious MS. collections on the same subject in the possession of the
noble Del Cinque family, which are probably waiting for a Mæcenas to
accept the dedication before being published. These are the full titles
of the works referred to:

Alphonsi Ciacconii, _Vitæ et res gestæ Pontificum romanorum, et S. R.
E. Cardinalium ab initio nascentis Ecclesiæ, usque ad Clementem IX.,
ab Augustino Oldoino recognitæ_. Romæ: 1677 (3d ed., 4 vols. fol.)
Mario Guarnacci, _Vitæ et res gestæ Pontificum romanorum, et S. R. E.
Cardinalium a Clemente IX. usque ad Clementem XII._ Romæ: 1751 (2 vols.
fol.)

_Vitæ et res gestæ summorum Pontificum et S. R. E. Cardinalium ad
Ciacconii exemplum continuatæ, quibus accedit appendix, quæ vitas
Cardinalium perfecit, a Guarnaccio non absolutas._ Auctoribus Equite Joh.
Paulo de Cinque, et Advocato Raphaele Fabrinio. Romæ: 1787.

The best work in Italian is Lorenzo Cardella’s _Memorie storiche de’
Cardinali della S. Romana Chiesa, in comminciando da quelli di S. Gelasio
I., sino ai creati da Benedetto XIV._ Roma: 1792.

A recent and probably very excellent work in French is Etienne Fisquet’s
_Histoire générale des Papes et des Cardinaux_. Chez Etienne Repos, 70
rue Bonaparte, Paris (5 vols. 8vo).

The principal work on the cardinalate in general is by Plati: _De
Cardinalis dignitate et officio_, of which a sixth edition was published
at Rome in 1836; and an exquisite monograph, small in size (one little
volume) but full of research, is Cardinal Nicholas Antonelli’s _De
Titulis quos S. Evaristus Romanis Presbyteris distribuit, dissertatio_.
Published at Rome in 1725; rather rare.

The _Calcografia Camerale_, near the Fountain of Trevi at Rome, used to
have for sale at a reasonable price the engraved portraits of all the
cardinals from the pontificate of Paul V. (1605-21) to that of Pius IX.;
but being an establishment belonging to the papal government, the present
occupiers of the city in their zeal for the fine arts may have turned it
upside down.

A collection of portraits in oil colors of all the British Cardinals was
begun at the English College in Rome in 1864.


HORN HEAD.

(COUNTY OF DONEGAL.)

    Sister of Earth, her sister eldest-born,
    Huge world of waters, how unlike are ye!
    Thy thoughts are not as her thoughts: unto thee
    Her pastoral fancies are as things to scorn:
    Thy heart is still with that old hoary morn
    When on the formless deep, the procreant sea,
    God moved alone: of that Infinity,
    Thy portion then, thou art not wholly shorn.
    Scant love hast thou for dells where every leaf
    Boasts its own life, and every brook its song;
    Thy massive floods down stream from reef to reef
    With one wide pressure; thy worn cliffs along
    The one insatiate Hunger moans and raves,
    Hollowing its sunless crypts and sanguine caves.

    AUBREY DE VERE.


STRAY LEAVES FROM A PASSING LIFE.

CONCLUDED.

CHAPTER IV.

WE ALL MEET TO PART.

A second time I recovered. I was still in the same place, and the same
hand was supporting me. Some brandy was forced down my throat, and it
revived me.

“Now listen,” he said. “I have good news for you. Why, the man is
going off again! Here, Roger, take another nip. So. Now you are much
nearer being a dead man than your father, only you will not let me tell
you quietly. Hush, now! Not a word, or I am dumb. You lie still and
listen, and let me talk. Everything is well here. That is about as much
information as you can bear at present. There is nothing the matter with
anybody, except with yourself. Miss Herbert, in consequence of a lucky
little telegram received this afternoon commissioned me to await your
arrival here, and tell you just that much. Everything else was to be
explained at the Grange, where your father and some friends are waiting
to receive with open arms the returned prodigal. This much I may add:
Your father has been ill, very ill. But he has recovered. Now, another
nip and I think we may be moving. That was Sir Roger at whose feet you
fell outside. The noble old veteran never moved a foot, or your brains
might have been dashed out. He is a truer friend than I, Roger, for he
knew you at once, pricked up his ears, bent down his head towards you,
and gave a low whinny that told me the whole story in a second. I’ll be
bound you have had nothing to eat all day. That is bad. Why, you are
the sick man after all. Do you feel equal to moving now? Well, come:
easy--in--hold this skin up to your chin--so! And now we are off. Mr.
Roger Herbert, I wish you a very merry Christmas!”

I sat silent with that delicious sense of relief after a great danger
averted while the shadow of that danger has not quite passed away.
Kenneth did all the talking. The snowfall had ceased and the moon was up.
How well I remembered every house we passed, as the cheery lights flashed
out of the windows, and the sounds of merry voices, whose owners I could
almost name, broke on my ear. Leighstone seemed fairy-land, which I had
reached after long wanderings through stony deserts and over barren seas.
There is the old Priory, rising dark and solemn out of the white snow,
with the white gravestones standing mute at the head of white graves all
around it. The moonlight falls full on the family tomb. I shuddered as
I looked upon it, not yet quite assured that it is not open for another
occupant. I can see the frozen figure of Sir Roger stiff and stark with
his winter grave-clothes upon him as we roll by the Priory gates. And
there, at last, are the gleaming windows of the Grange, and the faint
feeling again steals over my heart.

The heavy snowfall deadens the sound of the wheels, and we are within the
house before our arrival is known. Miss Herbert is called out quietly by
a servant, a stranger to me. Dear hearts! What these women are! She does
not cry out, she does not speak a word; watching and suffering had made
her so wise. She clings to me, and weeps silently on my breast a long
while, smothering even the sobs that threaten to break her heart. When
at last we look around for Kenneth he is nowhere to be seen, but there
is a strange hush over all the house, and the voices that I heard on my
entrance are silent.

“Papa is alone in the study--waiting,” whispered Nellie. “I received your
telegram. O Roger! that little scrap of paper was like a message from
heaven. He is growing anxious, but expects you. Hush! follow me.”

She stole along on tiptoe, and I after her. The door of the study was
ajar. She opened it softly, and, standing in the shadow, I peeped in. He
was seated in an easy-chair and had dozed off. His face wore that gentle,
languid air of one who has been very ill and is slowly recovering; of
one who has looked death in the face and to whom life is still new and
uncertain. Ten years seemed to have been added to his life. Whether owing
to his illness or to some other cause, I could not tell, but it seemed
to me that a certain look of firmness and resolve, that was at times too
prominent, had quite disappeared. Instead of his own brown locks he wore
a wig. He had suffered very much. The door creaked as Nellie entered,
disturbing but not awakening him. He sighed, his lips moved, and I
thought he muttered my name.

“Papa!” said Nellie, touching his arm lightly. How matronly the Fairy
looked! “Papa!”

“Ah! Yes, my dear. Is that you, my child? Is--is nobody with you?” What a
wistful look in the eyes at that last question!

“Do you feel any better, papa? It is time to take your medicine.” How
slow the demure minx is about it.

“Is it? I don’t think I will take any now. I want nothing just now, my
darling.”

“What--no medicine! Nothing at all, papa?”

“Nothing at all. Is not that train arrived yet?” he asked, looking around
anxiously at the clock.

“I--I think so, papa. And it brought such a lot of visitors.”

“Any--any--for us, Nellie?” He coughed, and his voice trembled into a
feeble old treble as he asked this question.

“Only one, papa. May he come in?”

He knew all in an instant. He rose and tottered towards the door, where
he would have fallen had I not caught him in my arms. Only one word
escaped him.

“Roger!”

After some time Kenneth stole in, and seeing how matters stood insisted
on bearing me off to dinner. He took me into the parlor, which was
blazing with lights and decorated with holly and red berries in good old
Christmas fashion. The first object to meet my eyes was a great “Welcome
Home” which flashed in letters of fragrant blossoms cunningly woven in
strange device about my portrait. Mrs. Goodal came forward and kissed me
while the tears fell from her eyes. “You don’t deserve it, you wicked
boy, but I can’t help it,” she said. Mr. Goodal had seized both my hands
in his. A beautiful girl stood a little apart watching all with wondering
eyes, and in them too there were tears, such is the force of example with
women. I had never seen her before, but I needed no ghost to tell me that
she was Kenneth’s sister.

“This is Elfie, Roger,” said Fairy. “She wants to welcome you too. Elfie
is my sister. I stole her. Oh! a sister is so much nicer than a great
rough brother who runs away!”

“And this,” said Mrs. Goodal, leading forward a tall, spare gentleman,
with that closely shaven face and quiet lip and eye that, with or
without the conventional garb, stamp the Catholic priest all the world
over--“this is our dear friend and father, the friend and father of all
of us, Father Fenton.”

There was a general pause at this introduction. I suppose that my
countenance must have shown some perplexity, for a general laugh followed
the pause. Mrs. Goodal came to the rescue.

“You expected to meet Mr. Knowles, I suppose, sir, or the Abbot Jones.
Kenneth has told me about the Abbot Jones. But you must know that the
present Archdeacon Knowles is far too high and mighty a dignitary for
Leighstone, and the abbot is laid up with the gout. Your father has not
been to the Priory for a very long time--for so long a time that he
thinks he would no longer be known there. The Herbert pew is very vacant;
and Nellie has had no one to take her. Still mystified? You see what
comes of silly boys running away from home and never writing. They miss
all the news.”

She led me to the other end of the parlor, and I stood before a lofty
ivory crucifix. The light of tapers flashed upon the thin pale face;
blood gleamed from the nailed hands and feet, from the pierced side,
from the bowed and thorn-crowned head. It was the figure of “the Man of
Sorrows,” and the artist had thrown into the silent agony of the face an
expression of infinite pity. My own heart bowed in silence.

“We are all <DW7>s, Roger. What are you?” whispered Mrs. Goodal at my
elbow.

“Nothing,” I murmured. “Nothing.”

“Nothing yet,” she whispered again. “But do you think that we have all
been praying to _Him_ all this time for _nothing_?”

“And my father?”

“The most inveterate <DW7> of us all!”

There was a tone of triumph in her voice that was almost amusing.

“How did it all come about?”

“She did it,” broke in Kenneth, pointing to his mother. “Did I not tell
you that she was the sweetest woman to have her own way? If I were a
heretic, I would sooner face the Grand Inquisitor himself than this most
amiable of women. Set a thief to catch a thief, Roger. But come; heretics
don’t abstain as do wicked creatures like these ladies. I forget, they
do, though; and my heretic, fair ladies, has had nothing to eat all day;
so I insist upon not another word until the fatted calf is disposed of by
our returned prodigal.”

That was a merry Christmas eve. We all nestled together, and bit by
bit the whole story came out. On the receipt of my first letter, after
a fruitless inquiry for me, Kenneth and his mother posted down to
Leighstone. Their arrival was most opportune; for my father, on hearing
of my departure, suffered a relapse that laid him quite prostrate. Poor
Nellie was in despair, brave heart though she was. By unremitting care
he was partially restored, and then followed the long dreary months and
the weary waiting, day after day, for some scrap of news from me. In
such cases, the worst is generally dreaded save when the worst actually
takes place, and my father drooped gradually. He was prevailed upon to
pay a visit to the Goodals, and there it was that his heart, pierced with
affliction, and bowed down with sorrow, opened to the holier and higher
consolation that religion only affords. Father Fenton, who was invalided
from a severe course of missionary labors, was staying with them, and the
intercourse thus begun developed into what we have seen. On his return to
Leighstone, the silent house opened up the bitter poignancy of his grief.
Every familiar object on which his eye rested only served to remind him
of one who had passed away; whom he accused himself of having driven
away by an order that he could only now regard with abhorrence. A cold,
something slight, seized him, and soon appeared alarming symptoms. In
view of the recent changes, Nellie knew not to whom of our relatives to
apply in this emergency, and could only write to Mrs. Goodal, who flew
to her assistance. The arrival of my letter brought down Kenneth, “like
a madman,” his mother said. The letter arrived just at the crisis of the
fever in which my father lay; the good news was imparted to him in one of
his lucid intervals, and the crisis took a favorable turn. The Christmas
holy-days brought Elfie from her convent; and finally all came together,
awaiting my expected return. How that letter had been kissed, petted,
wept over, laughed over, spelt out inch by inch! I wonder that a fragment
of it remained; but even had it been worn to dust by reverent fingers,
it would not have mattered: the women knew every word of it by heart. It
formed the staple topic of conversation whenever they met. There never
yet was such a letter written, and the idea that the writer of it should
only receive ten dollars--how much money was ten dollars?--a week was
proof positive that the American people did not appreciate true genius
when it found its way among them. Mr. Culpepper, indeed! Who cared what
he would think? The idea of a person of the name of Culpepper having to
do with men of genius! They wondered how I could consent to write for
such a person at all. And Mrs. Jinks! Good gracious! that dreadful Mrs.
Jinks and her “littery gents”; Mrs. Jinks and the beefsteak; Mrs. Jinks
and the pork chops; Mrs. Jinks and her “mock turtle” soup; Mrs. Jinks and
“her Jane,” etc. etc. Poor old Roger! Poor, dear boy! How miserable it
made them all, and yet how absurdly ridiculous it all was. It made them
laugh and cry in the same breath.

What a hero I had become! What was all my fancied triumph to this? What
is all the success one can win in this world to the genuine love and the
foolish adoration of the two or three hearts that made up our little
world before we knew that great wide open beyond the boundary of our own
quiet garden? And all this fuss and affection was poured out over me, who
had run away from it, and thought of it so little while I was away. It
was, speaking reverently, like the precious ointment in the alabaster
vase, broken and poured out over me, in the fond waste of love. Why,
indeed, was this waste for me? This ointment was precious, and might have
been sold for many pence and given to the poor--the poor of this great
world, who were hungering and thirsting after just such love as this,
that we who have it accept so placidly, and let it run and diffuse itself
over us, and take no care, for is not the source from which it comes
inexhaustible, as the widow’s cruse of oil? But so it is, and so it will
continue to be while human nature remains truly human nature. The good
shepherd, leaving the ninety-nine sheep, will go after the one which was
lost, and finding him, bear him on his own travel-weary and travel-worn
shoulders in triumph home. The father will kill the fatted calf for the
prodigal who has lived riotously and wasted his inheritance, but the
faint cry of whose repentant anguish is heard from afar off. The mother’s
heart will go out after the scapegrace son who is tramping the world
alone, turned out of doors for misbehavior; and all the joy she feels
in the good ones near her is as nothing compared with the thought that
_he_ at last has come back, sad and sorrowful and forlorn, to the home
he left long ago, in the brightness of the morning, with so gay a step
and so light a heart. It is unjust, frightfully unjust, that it should
be so. Did not the good son so feel it, and was his protest not right?
Did not the laborers in the vineyard so find it when those who came
at the eleventh hour, and had borne naught of the heat and the burden
of the day, received the same reward as they? And who shall say that
the laborers were not right and the lord of the vineyard unjust? What
trades-union could ever take into consideration such reasoning as this,
forbidden by the very book of arithmetic? Wait awhile, friends. Some day
when we, who now feel so keenly the injustice of it all, are fathers and
mothers, let us put the question then to ourselves: “Why this waste of
precious ointment on one who values it not? I will seal up the alabaster
jar, let the ointment harden into stone, and no sweetness shall flow out
of it.” Do so--if you can, and the world will be a very barren place.
It would dry and shrivel up under arid justice. Did not the Master tell
us so? Did he not say that he came to call not the just but sinners to
repentance? And is it not this very injustice that makes earth likest
heaven, where we are told there shall be more joy over one sinner doing
penance than over the ninety-nine just who need not penance?

And here am I preaching, instead of spending my Christmas merrily like a
man. But the thought of all this affection wasted on so callous a wretch
as I had proved myself to be, was too tempting to let pass. Suddenly the
chimes rang out from the old steeples, and we were silent, listening with
softened hearts and moistening eyes.

“There is another surprise for you yet,” said Mrs. Goodal, mysteriously.
“Come, I want to show you your room.”

She took me upstairs, paused a moment at the door to whisper: “It has
another Occupant now, Kenneth. Go in and visit him,” opened the door and
pushed me gently in.

The room was lighted only by a little lamp, through which a low flame
burned with a rosy glow. The flame flickered and shone on an altar with
a small tabernacle, before which Father Fenton was kneeling in silent
prayer. My old room had been converted into a chapel, and there they had
knelt and prayed for me. Presently the chapel was lighted up, and my
father was assisted to a chair that had been prepared for him. Mr. Goodal
took up his position near a harmonium, in one corner, while I retired
into the other. One or two of the household came in and took their places
quietly. Father Fenton rose up, and, assisted by Kenneth, vested himself,
and the midnight Mass began. Soon the harmonium was heard, and then in
tones that trembled at first, but in a moment cleared and grew firm and
strong and glorious, Elfie, laughing Elfie, who now seemed transformed
into one of those angels who brought the glad tidings long, long ago,
burst forth into the _Adeste Fideles_.

    “Natum videte
    Regem angelorum.”

All present joined in the refrain, Nellie’s sweet voice mingling with the
strong, manly tones of Kenneth. I saw his face light up as a soldier’s of
old might at a battle cry. How happy are the earnest!

Before the Mass was ended, Father Fenton turned and spoke a few words:

“One of old said, ‘When two or three are gathered together in my name,
there am I in the midst of them.’ I need not point out to you the solemn
manner in which a few moments since he who made that promise fulfilled
it, for he has spoken to your own hearts. But I would call your attention
to the wonderful and special manner in which Christ has visited and
blessed the two or three gathered together here this night in his name.
We are here like the shepherds of old, come to adore the Christ born in
a manger. One by one have we dropped in, taken in hand and led gently,
as though by the Lord himself. This great grace has not been given us
for nothing. It has been the answer to fervent, earnest, and unceasing
prayer, which, though it may sometimes seem to knock at the gates of
heaven a long while in vain, has been heard all the while, and at length,
entering in, falls back on our hearts laden with gifts and with graces.
The two or three have increased now by one, now by another, and under
Providence are destined to increase until the Master calls them away
unto himself. Happy is the one who comes himself to Christ, thrice happy
he who helps to lead another! He it is who answers that bitter cry of
anguish that rang out from the darkness and the suffering of Calvary--‘I
thirst.’ He holds up the chalice to the lips of the dying Saviour filled
with the virtues of a saved soul. It was for souls Christ thirsted, and
he gives him to drink. But when a conversion is wrought, when a stray
sheep is brought into the fold, the work is only begun. All the debt is
not paid. It is well to be filled with gratitude for the wonderful favor
of God in bringing us out of the land of Egypt and the house of bondage
into the land flowing with milk and honey, where the good shepherd
attends his sheep, where we draw water from the living fountain. We have
left behind us the fleshpots of Egypt. But there is ingratitude to be
remembered and wiped out. Many weary years have we wandered in desert
places seeking rest and finding none. Yet the voice of the shepherd
was calling to us all the while. Peace, peace, peace! Peace to men of
good-will has been ringing out of the heavens over the mountains of this
world these long centuries, yet how many ears are deaf to the angels’
song! The star in the East has arisen, has moved in the heavens, and
stood over his cradle--the star of light and of knowledge--yet how many
eyes have been blind to its lustre and its meaning. It is because it
points to a lowly place. In Bethlehem of Judæa Christ is born, not in the
city of the king; in a stable, not in the palace of Herod; in a manger
he is laid, wrapped in swaddling-clothes, not in the purple of royalty.
He is lowly; we would be great. He is meek; we would be proud. He is a
little innocent child; we would be wise among the children of men. The
birth-place of Christianity is humility. We must begin there, low down,
for he himself has said it: ‘Suffer little children to come unto me’;
‘Unless ye become as one of these little ones, ye shall not enter the
kingdom of heaven.’

“My brethren, my dear children, little flock whom Christ has visited
really and truly in his body and blood, soul and divinity, this is
our lesson--to be humble as he is. In this was his church founded on
this memorable night, at this solemn hour, while day and night are
in conflict. The day dawned on the new birth and the night was left
for ever behind. There is no longer excuse for being children of the
darkness, for the light of the world has dawned at length. It dawned
in lowliness, poverty, suffering--these are its surroundings. Christ’s
first worshippers on this earth were the one who bore him and her spouse,
Joseph the carpenter. His second, the poor shepherds, whose watchful
ears heard first the song of peace. The kings from afar off followed who
were looking and praying for light from heaven, and it came. The angels
guided the ignorant shepherds to where he lay; but of those to whom more
was given, more was expected. The gifts of intellect, learning, and the
spirit of inquiry are gifts of God, not of man, or of Satan. They are to
be used for God, not sharpened against him. Happy are those to whom he
has given them, who, like the Kings of the East, though far away from
the lowly place where he lies, hearken to the voice of God calling to
them over the wildernesses that intervene, and make answer to the divine
call. Search in the right spirit--search in the spirit of humility, and
honesty, and truth. To them will the star of Truth appear to guide them
aright over many dangers and difficulties, and disasters mayhap, to
the stable where Christ is sleeping, to lay at his feet the gifts and
offerings he gave them--the gold of faith, the frankincense of hope, the
myrrh of charity.”

I suppose it is intended that sermons should apply to all who hear them.
That being the case, how could Father Fenton’s words apply to me? There
was not a single direct allusion to me throughout. What he said might
apply equally to all, and yet surely of all there I was the most guilty.
I alone did not adore; and why? After all, was humility the birthplace
of Christianity? But was not I humble as the rest of them? “You! who are
so fond of mounting those stilts,” whispered Roger Herbert senior--“you,
who spend your days and nights dreaming of the _divinus afflatus_--you,
who would give half your life, were it yours to give, to convert those
little stilts into a genuine monument, and for what purpose? That men
might point and look up at the dizzy height and say, Behold Roger
Herbert, the mighty, his feet on earth, his head among the gods of
heaven!” And was it true that Truth had been speaking all this time, all
these centuries, to so little purpose? Why was it? how could it be if the
voice was divine? “The devil, the world, and the flesh, Roger; forget not
the devil, the world, and the flesh. Were there only truth, we should all
be of one mind; but unfortunately, truth is confronted with falsehood.”
What is truth--what is truth? Ay, the old agony of the world. One alone
of all that world dared to tell us that he was the Truth, he was the Way,
he was the Life. “Let us find him, Roger. Father Fenton says he is in the
midst of those gathered together in his name.”

Christmas passed, and a New Year dawned on us--a happy new year to all
except myself. I was the only unhappy being at the Grange. Elfie went
back to her convent school. My father’s health was on the high road to
restoration, and the growing attachment between Kenneth and Nellie was
evident even to my purblind vision. Strange to say, I did not like to
talk to Kenneth as openly as at first about my doubts and difficulties,
and Father Fenton’s company, when alone, I avoided, although he was the
most amiable of men, gifted with wit softened by piety, and a learning
that not even his modesty could conceal. He must have observed how
studiously I shunned him, for, after seeking ineffectually once or twice
to draw me into serious conversation, he refrained, and only spoke on
ordinary topics. I began to grow restless again.

The season had advanced into an early spring; the green was already
abroad and the birds beginning to come, when one afternoon, that seemed
to have strayed out of summer, so soft and balmy was the air, Nellie and
I sat together out on the lawn as in the old days. My father was taking a
nap within; the Goodals had driven to Gnaresbridge to meet a friend whom
they expected to pass by the up-town train to London. Nellie was working
at something, and I was musing in silence. Suddenly she said:

“Roger, do you remember the promises you made me the night before you ran
away?”

“Yes, Fairy.”

“Well, sir?”

“Well, madam?”

“Is that all?”

“Is what all?”

“Do you only remember your promise?”

“Is not that a great deal?”

“No; unless you have kept it.”

“Ah--h--h!”

“What do you mean by ah--h?”

“What did I promise?”

“That from that day forward you would not only try not to do harm, but to
do some good for others as well as for yourself.”

“That is a very big promise.”

“No bigger now than it was then.”

“But it means more now than it did then.”

“Not a bit, not a bit, not a bit!”

“Things look to me so differently now. One grows so much older in a year
sometimes.”

“Then you have not kept your promise? O Roger!”

“Good, though you can spell it in four letters, is a very large word,
Nellie, and means so much; and others mean so many. Not to do much harm
is one thing; but to do good, not once in a while, but to be constant
in it--that is another thing, Nellie, and that was what I promised. That
promise I cannot say I have kept.”

Nellie bent her head lower over her work, and I believe I saw some tears
fall, but she said nothing. I went on:

“Now Kenneth does good.”

There was no mistake about the tears this time, although the head bent
a little lower still. “Kenneth does a great deal of good. He goes about
among the poor as regularly as a physician, and whatever his medicine may
be it seems to do them more good than any they can get at the druggist’s.
He has sent I don’t know how many youngsters off to school, where he pays
for them. In fact, he seems to me to be always scheming and thinking
about others and never dreaming of himself, whereas I am always scheming
and thinking about myself and never seem to see anybody else in the
world. Why, what are you doing with that stuff in your hands, Nellie? You
are sewing it anyhow.”

“O Roger! You--you--” she could say no more, but hid her face, that was
rosy and pure as the dawn, on my breast.

“A very pretty picture,” said a deep voice behind us, and Nellie started
away from me, while all the blood rushed back to her heart. She was so
white that Kenneth--for it was he who had stolen up unobserved at the
moment--was frightened, and said:

“Pardon me, Miss Herbert, if I have startled you. I have only this
instant come, and quite forgot that the grass silenced the sound of my
footsteps. Take this chair--shall I bring a glass of water?”

“No, thank you; I am better now. It was only a moment. We did not hear
you.”

“May I join you, then? Or was it a _tête-à-tête_?”

“No; sit down, Kenneth. The fact is, we were just discussing the
character of an awful scamp.”

“Who arrived just too late to hear any evil of himself--is that it?”

“No, he was here all the time,” said Nellie, laughing, and herself again.

“But what brings you from Gnaresbridge so soon, Kenneth, and all alone?
Where have you left Mr. and Mrs. Goodal?”

“Mrs. Goodal had some shopping to do at Gnaresbridge, and Mr. Goodal,
as in duty bound, waited patiently the results of that interesting
operation. His patience makes me blush for mine. The shopping is such a
very extensive operation that I preferred a walk back, and even now you
see I have arrived before them.”

“How very ungallant, Mr. Goodal! I am surprised at you. I thought Roger
was the only gentleman who didn’t like shopping.”

“On the contrary, I am quite fond of it. I used to do all my own shopping
in New York. I got Mrs. Jinks to buy me some things once, but as she,
woman-like, measured everybody by Mr. Jinks, the articles, though an
excellent fit for him, were an abomination on me.”

“And what did you do with them?”

“What could I do with them? Gave them to Mrs. Jinks, of course, and for
the future did my own shopping. Indeed, I am getting quite lazy here.
There is nothing for a fellow to do--is there, Kenneth?”

“I was thinking of that as I came along.”

“Thinking of what?”

“The great puzzle--What to do. I put it in every imaginable form. The
question was this: ‘Kenneth Goodal, what are you going to do with
yourself?’ and the whole eight miles passed before I could arrive at
anything like a satisfactory conclusion. I finally resolved to leave the
question to arbitration, and get others to decide for me. I have already
applied to one.”

He paused, and his gaze was fixed on the ground. His face was flushed,
and his broad brow knitted as though trying to find the right clue to
a puzzling query. I glanced at Nellie, and observed that her face had
whitened again, while her eyes were also bent upon the ground, and her
breath came and went painfully.

“Yes,” he went on without raising his head--Nellie was seated between
us--“I determined to leave my case to arbitration. Your father was one of
the arbiters; you were to be another, Roger; and a certain young lady was
to be a third. I had intended to attack the members of this high court
of arbitration singly; but as I find two of them here together, I see no
reason why I should not receive my verdict at once.. ..”

A further report of this most important and interesting case it is not
for me to give, inasmuch as I was not present. I saw at once that the
decision rested now with the third arbiter, and that my opinion was
practically valueless in the matter. How the case proceeded I cannot
tell. Thinking that there was little for me to do, and how deeply engaged
were the other two parties, I took advantage of the noiseless grass to
slink away without attracting the attention of either, heartily ashamed
of myself for being so persistent an intruder where it was clear I was
not particularly wanted. It was a lovely evening, and I took a long quiet
ramble all by myself. How much longer the court was in session I do not
know, I only know that it was broken up before I entered, just in time
for dinner. I noticed that in my father’s eyes there was a softer look
than usual; that Mrs. Goodal took Nellie’s place at table, opposite to
my father; that Mr. Goodal and myself were neighbors, while opposite to
us sat the adjourned court of arbitration, looking--looking as young
persons look only once in their lives. There was a rather awkward silence
on my entrance, which I found so unpleasant that I rattled away all
through dinner. I must have been excellent company for once in my life;
for though at this moment I do not recollect a single sentence that I
uttered, there was so much laughter throughout the dinner, laughter that
grew and grew until we found ourselves all talking at length, all joining
in, all joking, all so merry that we were astounded to find how the
evening had passed. My father looked quite young again.

As I was retiring to my own room for the night, Nellie caught me, put
both her arms around my neck, and looked up into my eyes a long time
without saying a word, until at last she seemed to find in them something
she was looking for, and when, kissing her, I asked if I should blow
the candle out again, as I did on a former memorable confession, she
flew away, her face lost amid blushes, laughter, and tears. I was
congratulating myself on seeing an end to a long day, when a guilty
tap came to my door, and Kenneth stole in with the air of a burglar
who purposed making for the first valuable he could lay hands on, and
vanishing with it through the window. He closed the door as cautiously
as though a policeman, whom he feared to disturb, was napping without,
and sat down without saying a word. I looked at the ceiling; he sat and
stared at me. In his turn, he began examining my eyes. I could bear it
no longer, but burst out laughing, and held out my hand, which he almost
crushed in his.

“You are as true a knight as ever was old Sir Roger,” said Kenneth,
wringing my hand till I cried out with pain. “I went on talking for I
don’t know how long, and saying I forget now what, but, on looking up, I
found there was only one listener. Well, we did without you.”

“So now you know what to do with yourself. Happy man! What a pity Elfie
is only fourteen! She might tell me what to do with Roger Herbert.”

I saw the two who, after my father, I loved the best in all the world
made one. I waited until they returned from the bridal trip, by which
time my father was fully restored to health. We spent that season in
London, and when it was over returned to Leighstone. The brown hand of
autumn was touching the woods, when one morning I began packing my trunk
again, and that same evening ate my last dinner at the Grange. It was not
a pleasant dinner. The ladies were in tears at times, and the gentlemen
were inclined to be taciturn. I did my best to rally the party as on a
former occasion, but the effort was not very successful.

“Oh! you are all Sybarites here,” was my closing rejoinder to all
queries, tears, and complaints; “and I should never do anything among
you. Not so fortunate as Kenneth, who has found some one to tell him
what to do with himself, I am driven back on my own resources, and must
work out that interesting problem for myself. I was advancing in that
direction when called away. I go back to resume my labors in the old way.
You cannot realize the delicious feeling that comes over one at times
who is struggling all alone, and groping in the darkness towards a great
light that he sees afar off and hopes to reach. I leave my father with a
better son than I, and my sister with something that even sisters prefer
to brothers. I am only restless here. There is work to be done beyond
there. I may be making a mistake: if so, I shall come back and let you
know.”


AN OLD IRISH TOUR.

It was the long vacation in Dublin, 186-. Summer reigned supreme over
the Irish capital. The long, bright afternoons, still and drowsy, seemed
never to have an end. The soft azure overhead, so different from our deep
blue skies, was whole days without a cloud--rare phenomenon in Irish
weather. It was hot. The leaves drooped and the insects hummed, till I,
a solitary American student, holding my chambers in college for a couple
of weeks after all others had left--waiting for some friends to make up a
party for the seaside--began to think of the fierce blaze of the Broadway
pavement in July. The four o’clock promenade on Grafton and Westmoreland
streets seemed almost abandoned by the tall, fresh- Dublin belles;
and even the military band on Wednesday afternoons in Merrion square drew
few listeners. It was dull as well as hot.

Taking down volume after volume at a venture from the shelves of the
house library, I happened on Arthur Young’s _Tour in Ireland in 1776-9_.
I opened it at the account of his visit to the Dargle. I had not yet
visited the glen, and was interested by his description. “What!” said I,
laying the book open on my knee, “shall I stay here broiling for another
week? I will run down to Bray and Wicklow for a day or two, and have a
look at the lions.” From my windows every morning I used to look out at
the distant hills, till they seemed to me like old acquaintances. The
next day I started. The trip is still a pleasant one in my memory; but
it is not of my own short Wicklow tour I am going to write, although in
these fast days it also might now be called ancient.

This was my first acquaintance with Arthur Young’s celebrated _Tour_.
Not long ago I met with his work again. It was a copy of the second
edition, “printed by H. Goldney for T. Cadell in the Strand, MDCCLXXX.”
I recognized my old friend at a glance. The quaint engraving of
the “Waterfall at Powerscourt, I. Taylor, _sculp._,” renewed old
associations, and led to a second and more attentive reading.

Although Young’s works are still the standard authority on the
agricultural condition of England and Ireland, one hundred years ago,
recognized in those countries, he is not so well known on this side of
the water, and a few facts concerning his life and writings may be given.
He was born in 1741. He was the son of the Rev. Arthur Young, rector
of Bradford, and sometime chaplain to Speaker Onslow. His father was
noted for some fierce blasts against “Popery,” but our author, in many
passages of a just and humane spirit, shows that he did not imbibe the
iconoclast zeal of Arthur Young the elder. His works are voluminous,
comprised in twenty volumes. They relate almost exclusively to the state
of agriculture in the two kingdoms and in France. His _Travels_ in the
East, West, and North of England, in Wales, in Ireland, and in France,
and his _Political Economy_, are the chief titles. But Arthur Young was
more than a practical farmer, honorable as that vocation is. He was
a man of liberal education and cultivated taste, and his works often
rise above the dull level of the fields and are pervaded with a true
Virgilian flavor. They have been warmly praised by such widely different
authorities as McCulloch, De Tocqueville, and the _Times_ Commissioner
in 1869; and Miss Edgeworth, herself now grown a little antiquated, says
of his _Tour in Ireland_: “It was the first faithful portrait of its
inhabitants.” Arthur Young died in 1820. An extended but not complete
list of his works will be found in Allibone.

Young had a high but well-grounded idea of the place that agriculture
holds in the economy of the state.

    “The details,” he says, “of common management are dry and
    unentertaining; nor is it easy to render them interesting by
    ornaments of style. The tillage with which the peasant prepares
    the ground; the manner with which he fertilizes it; the
    quantities of the seed of the several species of grain which
    he commits to it; and the products that repay his industry,
    necessarily in the recital run into chains of repetition which
    tire the ear, and fatigue the imagination. Great, however, is
    the structure raised on this foundation; it may be dry, but it
    is important, for these are the circumstances upon which depend
    the wealth, prosperity, and power of nations. The minutiæ of
    the farmer’s management, low and seemingly inconsiderable as
    he is, are so many links of a chain which connect him with
    the state. Kings ought not to forget that the splendor of
    majesty is derived from the sweat of industrious and too often
    oppressed peasants. The rapacious conqueror who destroys and
    the great statesman who protects humanity, are equally indebted
    for their power to the care with which the farmer cultivates
    his fields. The monarch of these realms must know, when he is
    sitting on his throne at Westminster, surrounded by nothing but
    state and magnificence, that the poorest, the most oppressed,
    the most unhappy peasant, in the remotest corner of Ireland,
    contributes his share to the support of the gaiety that
    enlivens and the splendor that adorns the scene.”

Our author, it will be seen, lived close enough to the great Dr. Johnson
to catch something of the swelling and sonorous rotundity of style which
he impressed upon the Georgian era. And, in truth, there is a weighty and
nervous energy about the prose writing of that age which contrasts, not
to our advantage, with the extenuated and sharply accented style of our
day.

The careful investigation of his special study led Young into minute
inquiries and much experimental journalizing, into which it would not
be possible or even desirable for us to follow him. We shall therefore
content ourselves with a notice of his more general observations in the
character of tourist.

Arthur Young started from Holyhead for Dunleary--as Kingstown was then
called, before the “First Gentleman in Europe” set his august foot upon
its quay--on the 19th of June, 1776. What a tremendous turn of the wheel
has the world taken since then! These colonies had just plunged slowly
but resolutely into that great struggle for independence, the centennial
commemoration of which we shall celebrate next year. Progress in Ireland,
though not so radical, has been such as would have been derided as
a day-dream by the generation then living. In the arts and sciences
the advance has been as amazing as in politics. As we read of Young’s
tedious passage of twenty-two hours on board the small sailing packet of
those days, we take in at a glance the difference of times which has
substituted for those “Dutch clippers” the magnificent steamships which
now make the passage between those ports with undeviating regularity in
four hours.

Young’s tour was made under the auspices of the English Board of
Agriculture. It was his intention to make a complete survey of the
state of the art in the island. He complains, however, of the want of
encouragement his project met with in England; the Earl of Shelburne,
“Edmund Burke, Esq.,” and a few others being the only persons of eminence
who took the trouble to interest themselves in the undertaking. “Indeed,”
says our author, commenting on this indifference, “there are too many
possessors of great estates in Ireland who wish to know nothing more of
it than the collection of their rents”--a remark which has not lost its
force in our own day.

The reception he met with in Dublin, however, when the purpose of his
visit became known, seems to have compensated him for the coldness he
had experienced on the other side of the Channel. The most distinguished
persons of the Irish capital--a title then to some extent real--warmly
encouraged him in his project, treated him with true Irish hospitality
in their own houses, and provided him with letters of introduction to
facilitate his inquiries. Thus equipped, Young felt sure of bringing his
undertaking to a successful issue; nor did he disappoint his subscribers.
But before going further, let us first note his impressions of the
capital.

Dublin exceeded his anticipations. Its public buildings, which still
recall its old glories to the Irish-American tourist, “are,” he
says, “magnificent; very many of the streets regularly laid out, and
exceedingly well built.” The Parliament House, within the walls of which
Grattan and Flood were then exerting their growing powers, attracted his
admiration, although some of its architectural features seemed to him
open to criticism. Young found the subject of Union an unpopular one
wherever broached, and, although an advocate of the scheme, does not
appear to have imagined that in a little over twenty years the doors of
the Parliament House would be closed upon the representatives of Ireland.
The cold and business-like precincts of the Bank of Ireland, as the
building is now called, make stronger by contrast the recollection of the
fervid eloquence once heard within its walls. Young attended the debates
frequently; but, whether it was from English phlegm, or perhaps it would
be more just to him to say, from the recollection of the transcendent
powers of Burke and Chatham, he does not appear to have been carried away
by the _perfervidum ingenium_ of the Irish orators. After naming Mr.
Daly, Mr. Flood (who had dropped out of the scene), Mr. Grattan, Serjeant
Burgh, and others, he says: “I heard many eloquent speeches, but I cannot
say they struck me like the exertion of the abilities of Irishmen in the
English House of Commons.”

Young’s opinion of the musical talent of Dublin would be apt also
to excite the ire of its present opera-goers. No city in the United
Kingdom flatters itself more upon its correct musical taste and warm
encouragement of talent. But this is what our unabashed tourist says: “An
ill-judged and unsuccessful attempt was made to establish the Italian
opera, which existed but with scarce any life for this one winter; of
course, they could rise no higher than a comic one. ‘La Buona Figliuola,’
‘La Frascatana,’ and ‘Il Geloso in Cimento’ were repeatedly performed,
or rather murdered, except the part of Sestini. The house was generally
empty and miserably cold.” This is no doubt an honest description of
the fortunes of the opera in his day, but those who have witnessed the
successive appearances of Grisi, of Piccolomini (in light _rôles_), of
Titjens, and Patti will not accuse a modern Dublin audience of want of
sympathy.

Dublin, always a gay city socially, was enlivened in Young’s day by
the presence of a larger resident aristocracy than ever since. The
greater power and state of the “Castle” before the Union, the splendid
hospitality of the old Irish nobility, the beauty of its fair dames--the
toast of more than one court, the gallant, open-handed manners of the
native landed gentry, made it then one of the most brilliant capitals in
Europe. Young supposes the common computation of its inhabitants, two
hundred thousand, to be exaggerated; he thinks one hundred and forty
or one hundred and fifty thousand would be nearer the mark. Although
Dublin, to-day, nearly if not quite doubles the latter figures, and in
countless ways shares in the general progress of the age, she misses
the independent spirit her native parliament gave her, and which filled
the smaller city of the last century with an exuberant life that is now
absent in her streets and along her quays.

Young thus sums up his observations on the city: “From everything
I saw, I was struck with all those appearances of wealth which the
capital of a thriving community may be supposed to exhibit. Happy if
I find through the country in diffused prosperity the right source
of this splendor!” Whatever the gaiety of the capital, the impartial
observer, as Young himself soon found, could not fail to note through
the country, notwithstanding some gleams of better times, the fixed
wretchedness of a whole people, bowed down under the yoke of those penal
laws the unspeakable horror of which no later English legislation,
however beneficent, can ever redeem. But the native buoyancy of the
Irish character was well exemplified in the comparatively cheerful and
quiescent spirit with which they bore their hard lot in the breathing
space, if one may so term it, between 1750 and 1770. For some years
previous to Young’s _Tour_, the general state of the country, contrasted
with what it had been seventy years previously, was what might almost be
called prosperous. The population was increasing, and was not suffering
from want of food; and the penal laws in some instances were allowed to
fall into abeyance. The country was comparatively free from agrarian
disturbances. Whiteboys and “Hearts of Steel” had sprung up in some
counties after Thurot’s landing in 1759, but were quickly suppressed;
their indiscriminate attacks upon private property in some instances
causing the Catholic country people to rise against them. The trade of
Ireland was still oppressed by the English prohibitory laws, but some
mitigation had been granted; and in 1778 the threatening attitude of
the Irish Volunteers at last wrung a tardy measure of justice from the
English government. The value of land in many counties had more than
doubled in the previous thirty years. Much of this rise in value was
undoubtedly due to natural causes--improved and extended cultivation,
and the increase of population--but it is plain from Young’s testimony,
without going to Catholic contemporary evidence, that the rents were
raised artificially in numberless cases by the grinding agents of the
absentee landlords. The Irish woollen trade had been annihilated by
English monopoly. The manufacture of linen, which was at its height in
1770, had greatly declined in consequence of the American difficulties,
but was beginning to revive a little. The effect of the war had also
been to check the emigration, which was chiefly confined, however, to
the North. Young gave particular attention to this subject, noting
down the emigration in each parish he visited; and the result of his
observations is summed up in these words: “The spirit of emigrating in
Ireland appeared to be confined to two circumstances, the Presbyterian
religion and the linen manufacture. I heard of very few emigrants except
among the manufacturers of that persuasion.” This remark has of course
been completely nullified in later years by the famine and continued
misgovernment, which at last, breaking down the Irishman’s strong love
of home, have sent him forth as a wanderer, but, in the designs of
Providence, to carry with him his faith and build up a greater Catholic
Church in America--happy also in the country and the laws which enable
him by his own exertions to gain a position equal to any other citizen’s,
and to throw off that poverty and servility which too often weighed down
his spirit at home.

On the whole, then, it may be said that the time of Arthur Young’s
visit was a favorable one, if any time might be accounted favorable in
that long night of oppression which was still brooding over Ireland, and
which had yet to reach its darkest hour before the first faint streaks
of dawn gladdened the eyes of its weary watchers. The country was just
touching on that short period of flickering prosperity, culminating in
the assertion of its constitutional independence in 1782, but destined to
set in fire and blood in the tragedy of ’98 and the ill-starred Union of
1800.

Leaving Dublin, Young first made a short tour through Meath and
Westmeath, returning by way of Carlow, Wexford, and Wicklow to the
capital before entering on his more extensive circuit of the island. In
this first excursion he at once exhibits the plan of his journal, noting
down with minuteness the character of the soil, the course of the crops,
the nature of the tenancy, and the condition of the people. Potatoes were
the great article of culture, alternating with barley, oats, and wheat.
Much of the best land was given to grazing. The average rent of the
county of Westmeath, exclusive of waste, was nine shillings--including
it, seven shillings; but in this, as in the other counties near Dublin,
the best land let from twenty shillings to as high as thirty-five
shillings sterling an acre. The rise in the price of labor for ten years
was from fivepence and sevenpence to eightpence and tenpence per day,
but the laborers worked harder and better. Women got eightpence a day in
harvest. Lands in general were leased to Protestants for thirty-one years
or three lives, but Catholics were in almost all cases at the mercy of
their landlords. The law allowing Catholics to hold leases for lives was
not yet passed. June 28th, he notes:

    “Took the road to Summerhill, the seat of the Right Hon. H.
    L. Rowley; the country cheerful and rich; and if the Irish
    cabins continue like what I have seen, I shall not hesitate
    to pronounce their inhabitants as well off as most English
    cottagers. They are built of mud walls, eighteen inches or two
    feet thick, and well thatched, which are far warmer than the
    thin clay walls in England. Here are few cottars without a
    cow, and some of them two, a bellyful invariably of potatoes,
    and generally turf for fuel from a bog. It is true they have
    not always chimneys to their cabins, the door serving for
    that and window too; if their eyes are not affected with
    the smoke it may be an advantage in warmth. Every cottage
    swarms with poultry, and most of them have pigs. Land lets at
    twenty shillings an acre, which is the average rent of the
    whole county of Meath to the occupier, but if the tenures of
    middlemen are included it is not above fourteen shillings.
    This intermediate tenant between landlord and occupier is
    very common here. The farmers are very much improved in their
    circumstances since about the year 1752.”

Although we may partially agree in Arthur Young’s opinion that some
amelioration was visible in the material surroundings of the Irish
peasant during the quarter of a century preceding his visit, no equal
concession can be made regarding his political rights. These remained
absolutely nil. The comparative tranquillity that prevailed was the
lethargy not the security of freedom. In a slightly altered sense might
have been uttered of the whole nation what Hussey Burgh said of a year or
two later, referring more particularly to the Volunteers: “Talk not to
me,” he exclaimed, “of peace; it is not peace, but smothered war!”

Contrasted with this description of the cabins of the peasantry, the
following account of an Irish nobleman’s country mansion in the same
county one hundred years ago will be found interesting. Headfort is still
one of the principal residences in that part of the country:

    “July 1st: Reached Lord Bective’s in the evening through a
    very fine country, particularly that part of it from which
    is a prospect of his extensive woods. No person could with
    more readiness give me every sort of information than his
    lordship. The improvements at Headfort must be astonishing to
    those who knew the place seventeen years ago, for then there
    were neither building, walling, nor plantations; at present
    almost everything is created necessary to form a considerable
    residence. The house and offices are new-built. It is a large
    plain stone edifice. The body of the house 145 feet long,
    and the wings each 180. The hall is 31½ by 24, and 17 high.
    The saloon of the same dimensions; on the left of which is a
    dining-room 48 by 24, and 24 high. From the thickness of the
    walls, I suppose it is the custom to build very substantially
    here. The grounds fall agreeably in front of the house to a
    winding narrow vale, which is filled with wood, where also
    is a river which Lord Bective intends to enlarge. And on the
    other side, the lawn spreads over a large extent, and is
    everywhere bounded by large plantations. To the right the town
    of Kells, picturesquely situated among groups of trees, with
    a fine waving country and distant mountains; to the left, a
    rich tract of cultivation. Besides these numerous plantations,
    considerable mansion, and an incredible quantity of walling,
    his lordship has walled in 26 acres for a garden and nursery,
    and built six or seven large pineries, each 90 feet long. He
    has built a farm-yard 280 feet square, surrounded with offices
    of various kinds.”

July 4th, there is an entry of interest, as showing the position of
Catholic tenants at that day even under the best landlords. Young was
then a guest of Lord Longford’s at Packenham Hall. We give the passage in
his own words, as it is a favorable index to our author’s character:

    “Lord Longford carried me to Mr. Marly, an improver in the
    neighborhood, who has done great things, and without the
    benefit of such leases as Protestants in Ireland commonly have.
    He rents 1,000 acres; at first, it was twentypence an acre;
    in the next term, five shillings, or two hundred and fifty
    pounds a year; and he now pays eight hundred and fifty pounds
    a year for it. Almost the whole farm is mountain land; the
    spontaneous growth, heath, etc.; he has improved 500 acres.…
    It was with regret I heard the rent of a man who had been
    so spirited an improver should be raised so exceedingly. He
    merited for his life the returns of his industry. But the cruel
    laws against the Roman Catholics of this country remain the
    marks of illiberal barbarism. Why should not the industrious
    man have a spur to his industry, whatever be his religion; and
    what industry is to be expected from them in a country where
    leases for lives are general among Protestants, if secluded
    from terms common to every one else? What mischiefs could flow
    from letting them have leases for life? None; but much good in
    animating their industry. It is impossible that the prosperity
    of a nation should have its natural progress where four-fifths
    of the people are cut off from those advantages which are
    heaped upon the domineering aristocracy of the small remainder.”

Young made many inquiries here concerning the state of the “lower”
classes, and found that in some respects they were in good circumstances,
in others indifferent. They had, generally speaking, plenty of potatoes,
enough flax for all their linen, most of them a cow and some two, and
spun wool enough for their clothes; all, a pig, and quantities of
poultry. Fuel, and fish from the neighboring lakes, were also plenty.

    “Reverse the medal,” says Young: “they are ill clothed, make
    a wretched appearance, and, what is worse, are much oppressed
    by many, who make them pay too dear for keeping a cow, horse,
    etc. They have a practice also of keeping accounts with the
    laborers, contriving by that means to let the poor wretches
    have very little cash for their year’s work. This is a great
    oppression; farmers and gentlemen keeping accounts with the
    poor is a cruel abuse. So many days’ work for a cabin--so many
    for a potato garden--so many for keeping a horse--and so many
    for a cow, are clear accounts which a poor man can understand;
    but farther it ought never to go; and when he has worked out
    this, the rest ought punctually to be paid him every Saturday
    night. They are much worse treated than the poor in England,
    are talked to in more opprobrious terms, and otherwise very
    much oppressed.”

Passing through the county Wexford, Young diverged a little from his
route to visit the baronies of Forth and Bargy, the peculiar character of
the people of which had always attracted the attention of tourists. They
are supposed to have been completely peopled by Strongbow’s followers,
and have retained a language peculiar to themselves. They had the
reputation even then of being better farmers than in any other part of
Ireland.

“July 12th: Sallied from my inn, which would have made a very passable
castle of enchantment in the eyes of Don Quixote in search of adventures
in these noted baronies, of which I had heard so much.” He did not find,
however, as much difference in the husbandry as he expected, but the
people appeared more comfortable. Potatoes were not the common food all
the year through, as in other parts of Ireland. Barley bread and pork,
herrings and oatmeal, were much used. The cabins were generally much
better than any he had yet seen; larger, with two and three rooms in good
order and repair, all with windows and chimneys, and little sties for
their pigs and cattle. They were as well built, he says, as was common in
England. The girls and women were handsomer, having better features and
complexions than he saw elsewhere in Ireland. Young was a poor authority
on this point, however; for he says, in the most ungallant manner, that
“the women among the lower classes in general in Ireland are as ugly
as the women of fashion are handsome.” A remark equally composed of
truth and falsehood: a handsome Irish lass being as easily found in any
townland as in any Dublin drawing-room. Young was a good man and a good
farmer, but we fear in this case his cockney prejudices deceived him.

Understanding that there was a part of the barony of Shellmaleive
inhabited by Quakers, rich men and good farmers, our tourist turned aside
to visit them. A farmer he talked to said of them: “The Quakers be very
cunning, and the d----l a bad acre of land will they hire.” This excited
Young’s admiration for these sagacious Friends. He found them uncommonly
industrious, and a very quiet race. They lived very comfortably and
happily, and many of them were worth several hundred pounds.

Returning through Wicklow to Dublin, he passed through the Glen of the
Downs and the Dargle, as we have already noticed. His description of the
scenery of these noted spots is picturesquely written, but too long to
quote. July 18th, he set out for the North. Leaving Drogheda, he made a
visit to the Lord Chief Baron Foster at Cullen. This “great improver,”
“a title,” he says, “more deserving estimation than that of a great
general or great minister,” had reclaimed in twenty years a barren tract
of land, containing over 5,000 acres, which, when Young visited it, was
covered with corn. In conversation with him, the Chief Baron said that
in his circuits through the North of Ireland he was on all occasions
attentive to procuring information relative to the linen manufacture.
It had been his general observation that where linen manufacture spread
tillage was very bad. Thirty years before, the export of linen and yarn
had been about £500,000 a year; it was then £1,200,000 to £1,500,000. In
1857, the export of linens, according to McCulloch, was £4,400,000. In
1868, there were 94 flax-spinning factories in Ireland, driving 905,525
spindles, employing about 50,000 (_vide_ I. N. Murphy’s valuable work,
_Ireland--Industrial, Political, and Social_, London, 1870).

In conversation upon the “Popery” laws, Young expressed his surprise at
their severity. The Chief Baron said they were severe in the letter,
but were never executed. It was rarely or never, he said (he knew no
instance), that a Protestant _discoverer_ got a lease by proving the
lands let under two-thirds of their real value to a Catholic. But it
is plain the Chief Baron took a more roseate view of the situation
than it deserved; the explanation of the last-mentioned circumstance
being, as we have seen in the case of Mr. Marly, already mentioned, that
the landlord generally took good care to keep the rent well up to the
two-thirds value. The penalties for carrying arms or reading Mass were
severe, the Chief Baron admitted, but the first was never executed for
merely poaching (rare clemency!), and as to the other, “Mass-houses were
to be seen everywhere.” The Chief Baron did justice, Young says, to the
merits of the Roman Catholics, by observing that they were in general
a very sober, honest, and industrious people. Arthur Young winds up
this conversation with Chief Baron Foster, however, with the following
spirited remark, which shows that he had not listened in vain to the
great orator of that age: “This account,” he says, “of the laws against
them brought to mind an admirable expression of Mr. Burke’s in the
English House of Commons: _connivance is the relaxation of slavery, not
the definition of liberty_.”

The Chief Baron was of opinion that the kingdom had improved more in the
last twenty years than in a century before. The great spirit began, he
said, in 1749 and 1750. With regard to the emigrations, which then made
so much noise in the North of Ireland, he believed they were principally
idle people, who, far from being missed, benefited the country by their
absence. They were generally dissenters, he said; very few Churchmen or
Catholics.

Coming to Armagh, Young found the “Oak Boys” and “Steel Boys” active in
that part of the country. He attributes their rise to the increase of
rents and the oppression of the tithe-proctors. The manufacture of linen
was at its height; the price greater, and the quantity also. A weaver
earned from one shilling to one shilling and fourpence a day, a farming
laborer eightpence. The women earned about threepence a day spinning, and
drank tea for breakfast.

July 27th, in the evening, he reached Belfast. He gives an animated
description of the town and its trade and manufactures. “The streets,” he
says, “are broad and straight, and the inhabitants, amounting to about
fifteen thousand, make it appear lively and busy.” The population of
Belfast is now probably one hundred and twenty-five thousand. It was
then already noted for its brisk foreign trade with the Baltic, Spain,
France, and the West Indies. The trade with North America was greatly
affected by the contumacious behavior of the “rebels.”

Thence our tourist wended his way through the North, through the
mountains and moors of Donegal, and down the wild west coast of Sligo
and Galway. Here he describes a wake, and the “howling” of the “keeners”
“in a most horrid manner,” in a tone of alarm and amazement which would
put to shame the stage “English officer” of some of our modern Irish
melodramas.

Continuing his route through Clare and Limerick, he arrived at Cork
September 21st. This is his description of the city one hundred years ago:

    “Got to Corke in the evening, and waited on the Dean, who
    received me with the most flattering attention. Corke is
    one of the most populous places I have ever been in; it was
    market-day, and I could scarce drive through the streets, they
    were so amazingly thronged; the number is very great at all
    times. I should suppose it must resemble a Dutch town, for
    there are many canals in the streets, with quays before the
    houses. Average of ships that entered in nineteen years, eight
    hundred and seventy-two per annum. The number of people in
    Corke, upon an average of three calculations, as mustered by
    the clergy, by the hearth-money, and by the number of houses,
    sixty-seven thousand souls, if taken before the first of
    September; after that, twenty thousand increased.”

These last figures appear large. The population of Cork in 1866 was
estimated at eighty thousand. Ships entered and cleared in 1859, 4,410.

From Cork, Young set out for Killarney. The lakes were already a great
point of attraction for the tourist. Young was in raptures with the
mingled beauty and sublimity of the scenery. His description of Glena,
Mucross Abbey, Mangerton, and the other wild and beautiful features
of lakes and mountain, might almost be taken for an account of their
appearance within the last ten years. Of Innisfallen, he says:

    “September 29th: Returning, took boat again towards Ross Isle,
    and as Mucruss retires from us nothing can be more beautiful
    than the spots of lawn in the terrace opening in the wood;
    above it, the green hills with clumps, and the whole finishing
    in the noble group of wood above the abbey, which here appears
    a deep shade, and so fine a finishing one, that not a tree
    should be touched.… Open Innisfallen, which at this distance
    is composed of various shades, within a broken outline,
    entirely different from the other islands. No pencil could
    mix a happier assemblage. Land near a miserable room where
    travellers dine.--Of the isle of Innisfallen it is paying no
    great compliment to say it is the most beautiful in the king’s
    dominions, and perhaps in Europe. It contains twenty acres of
    land, and has every variety that the range of beauty, unmixed
    with the sublime, can give. The general feature is that of
    wood; the surface undulates into swelling hills, and sinks
    into little vales; the <DW72>s are in every direction, the
    declivities die gently away, forming those slight inequalities
    which are the greatest beauty of dressed grounds. The little
    vallies let in views of the surrounding lake between the hills,
    while the swells break the regular outline of the water, and
    give to the whole an agreeable confusion. Trees of large size
    and commanding figure form in some places natural arches; the
    ivy mixing with the branches, and hanging across in festoons
    of foliage, while on the one side the lake glitters among the
    trees, and on the other a thick gloom dwells in the recesses
    of the wood. These are the great features of Innisfallen.
    Every circumstance of the wood, the rocks, and lawn are
    characteristic, and have a beauty in the assemblage from mere
    disposition.”

With the exception of the “miserable room where travellers dine,”
which happily has disappeared, this is a good picture of the scene when
the writer visited this lovely spot. Young elsewhere complains of the
“want of accommodations and extravagant expense of strangers” visiting
Killarney. The “Victoria,” the “Lake,” and other good hotels now leave
no room for reproach on the first score; though the “stranger” may still
feelingly recognize the point of Young’s last remark.

Moore had not yet written:

    “Sweet Innisfallen long shall dwell
    In memory’s dream, that sunny smile
    Which o’er thee on that evening fell,
    When first I saw thy fairy isle.”

From Killarney Young took the road through Limerick and Tipperary. Here
he stopped at Sir William Osborne’s, near Clonmel. Always on the alert to
note improvements, he here describes a scene of industry and labor which
in an extended form still attracts the attention of the tourist:

    “This gentleman” (Sir W. Osborne), he says, “has made a
    mountain improvement which demands particular attention, being
    upon a principle very different from common ones. Twelve years
    ago he met a hearty-looking fellow of forty, followed by a wife
    and six children in rags, who begged. Sir William questioned
    him upon the scandal of a man in full health and vigor
    supporting himself in such a manner. The man said he could get
    no work. ‘Come along with me, I will show you a spot of land
    upon which I will build a cabin for you, and if you like you
    shall fix there.’ The fellow followed Sir William, who was as
    good as his word; he built him a cabin, gave him five acres of
    a heathy mountain, lent him four pounds to stock with, and gave
    him, when he had prepared his ground, as much lime as he would
    come for. The fellow flourished; he went on gradually; repaid
    the four pounds, and presently became a happy little cottar: he
    has at present twelve acres under cultivation, and a stock in
    trade worth at least eighty pounds. The success which attended
    this man in two or three years brought others, who applied for
    land. And Sir William gave them as they applied. The mountain
    was under lease to a tenant, who valued it so little that, upon
    being reproached with not cultivating or doing something with
    it, he assured Sir William that it was utterly impracticable
    to do anything with it, and offered it to him without any
    deduction of rent. Upon this mountain he fixed them, giving
    them terms as they came determinable with the lease of the
    farm. In this manner Sir William has fixed twenty-two families,
    who are all upon the improving hand, the meanest growing
    richer, and find themselves so well off that no consideration
    will induce them to work for others, not even in harvest. Their
    industry has no bounds; nor is the day long enough for the
    revolution of their incessant labor.

    “Too much cannot be said in praise of this undertaking. It
    shows that a reflecting, penetrating landlord can scarcely move
    without the power of creating opportunities to do himself and
    his country service. It shows that the villany of the greatest
    miscreants is all situation and circumstance; _employ_, don’t
    _hang_ them. Let it not be in the slavery of the cottar system,
    in which industry never meets its reward, but, by giving
    property, teach the value of it; by giving them the fruits of
    their labor, teach them to be laborious. All this Sir William
    Osborne has done, and done it with effect, and there probably
    is not an honester set of families in the county than those
    which he has formed from the refuse of the Whiteboys.”

Exception will be justly taken here to the use of the word “miscreants,”
of which nothing appears to show that these poor people were deserving
the name, and which is probably used generally; but let it be remembered
that these sentiments were written one hundred years ago, and by an
Englishman who, from his position, might well be supposed to share all
the prejudices of his race, and the philanthropy and love of justice
which belonged to Young’s character will conspicuously appear. What a
revelation of the state of the country and the condition of its native
people, when a stranger utters these appalling words (to our ears) to its
landlords: “_Employ_, don’t _hang_ them.”

In September, 1869, the _Times_ Commissioner in Ireland thus wrote of the
great-grandchildren of these men:

    “I took care to visit a tract in this neighborhood which I
    expected to find especially interesting. Arthur Young tells us
    how, in his day, Sir William Osborne of Newtownanner encouraged
    a colony of cottiers to settle along the <DW72>s that lead to
    the Commeraghs, and how they had reclaimed this barren wild
    with extraordinary energy and success. The great-grandchildren
    of these very men now spread in villages along the range for
    miles, and, though reduced in numbers since 1846, they still
    form a considerable population. The continual labor of these
    sons of the soil has carried cultivation high up the mountains,
    has fenced thousands of acres and made them fruitful, has
    rescued to the uses of man what had been the unprofitable
    domain of nature. These people do not pay a high rent. They
    are for the most part under good landlords; but I was sorry to
    find this remarkable and most honorable creation of industry
    was generally unprotected by a certain tenure. The tenants
    with hardly a single exception declared they would be happy to
    obtain leases, which, as they said truly, would ‘secure them
    their own, and stir them up to renewed efforts.’”

A few years before the visit of the _Times_ Commissioner, the writer
of this article passed along the same road on his way to Clonmel and
Fethard, and still vividly remembers the remarkable appearance of the
long range of these little holdings climbing high up the steep side of
the mountains; the clustering cabins; the narrow paths winding up to
them; and, higher than all, the gray masses of mist sweeping along the
rocks and purple heath.

From Clonmel Arthur Young proceeded to Waterford, and thence, on the 19th
of October, the wind being fair, took passage in the sailing packet, the
_Countess of Tyrone_, for Milford Haven, Wales--thus bringing to an end
his first and most interesting tour in Ireland.

In a subsequent volume, he relates his experiences two years later. But
this second volume, though valuable, is not of the same interesting
character as the first. It consists chiefly of chapters under general
headings, such as Manufactures, Commerce, Population, etc. It is
speculative and theorizing, and has not the freshness of particular
incidents and observations. Nevertheless, it will always be consulted by
the student who desires to learn from an impartial English observer the
condition of Ireland one hundred years ago.

The following are the laws of discovery, as they were called, given by
Young in his chapter on “Religion,” vol. ii., as in force in his day.
They are given in his own words:

    “1. The whole body of Roman Catholics are absolutely disarmed.

    “2. They are incapacitated from purchasing land.

    “3. The entails of their estate are broken.

    “4. If one child abjures that religion, he inherits the whole
    estate, though he is the youngest.

    “5. If the son abjures the religion, the father has no power
    over his estate, but becomes a pensioner upon it in favor of
    such son.

    “6. No Catholic can take a lease for more than 31 years.

    “7. If the rent of any Catholic is less than two-thirds of the
    full improved value, whoever discovers takes the benefit of the
    lease.

    “8. Priests who celebrate Mass must be transported; and if they
    return, to be hanged.

    “9. A Catholic having a horse in his possession above the value
    of five pounds to forfeit the same to the discoverer.

    “10. By a construction of Lord Hardwick’s they are
    incapacitated from lending money on mortgage.”

“The preceding catalogue,” says Young, with grave irony, “is very
imperfect. But,” he continues, “it is an exhibition of oppression fully
sufficient.”

With these words may fitly be concluded a notice of Ireland one hundred
years ago. Twenty years after Arthur Young wrote them, the short period
of comparative peace he chronicled ended, and the pitch-cap became the
emblem of English government in Ireland.


BROTHER PHILIP.

CONCLUDED.

It was reserved for Brother Philip not only to give a fresh impetus to
the Institute of the Christian Schools, but also to see it acquire an
additional and important title to respect by a new form of self-devotion
on the fields of battle. Never had the Brothers failed to prove their
loyal love of their country, but the year 1870, so terrible to France,
brought out their patriotism in all its active energy.

There is no need that we should relate how, in the July of that year,
Napoleon III., who was unprepared for anything, provoked King William,
who was prepared for everything, it being our object to give the history
of self-devotion, not to recall mistakes.

The best Christians are always the truest patriots. The heart of Brother
Philip thrilled at the very name of France, and he so well knew that
France could equally reckon on his Brothers that he did not even consult
them before he wrote his letter of the 15th of August to the Minister
of War, in which he said that they would wish to profit by the time
of vacation to serve their country in another manner than they had
been wont; at the same time placing at his disposal, to be turned into
ambulances, all the establishments belonging to the Institute, as well
as all the communal schools directed by the Brothers, who would devote
themselves to the care of the sick and wounded. “The soldiers love our
Brothers,” wrote the Superior, “and our Brothers love the soldiers, a
large number of whom have been their pupils, and who would feel pleasure
in being attended to by their former masters.… The members of my Council,
the Brother Visitors, and myself will make it our duty to superintend
and to encourage our Brothers in this service.” All the houses of the
Christian Schools, therefore, were speedily put in readiness to receive
the wounded. Some of the Brothers were left in charge of the classes.
Wherever they were wanted they were to be found. We find them for the
first time engaged in their new work after the engagements of the 14th,
16th, and 18th of August, which took place around Metz, where trains
filled with wounded were sent by Thionville to the Ardennes and the
North. Supplies of provisions were organized at Beauregard-lez-Thionville
by the Brother Director of that place, for these poor sufferers, who
were in want of everything; all the families of the town with eager
willingness contributing their share. Thus eight trains, carrying five
hundred wounded, successively received the succor so much needed. At
St. Denis, the Brothers responded to the municipal vote which had just
been passed for their suppression by their active zeal in the service
of the _bureau de subsistence_, or provision-office. In many towns the
military writings were entrusted to them. At Dieppe, being installed in
the citadel, they made more than 120,000 cartridges. On the 17th of
August, Brother Philip received, with the most cordial kindness, two
hundred firemen of Dinan and St. Brieuc, forming part of the companies
of the Côtes-du-Nord, who had hastened to the defence of Paris--himself
presiding at their installation in the mother-house, and bidding them
feel quite at home there, as the Brothers were the “servants of the
servants of their country.” There the good Bretons remained four days,
each receiving a medal of Our Blessed Lady from the Superior-General when
the time came for departure. The Brothers of the _pensionnat_ of S. Marie
at Quimper, during the early part of August, received more than fifteen
hundred military in their dormitories, the Brothers of Aix-les-Bains,
Rodez, Moulins, and Châteaubriant also affording hospitable lodging
to numerous volunteers. “At one time,” said the Brother Director of
Avignon, “we were distributing soup, every morning and evening, to from
five hundred to seven hundred engaged volunteers, and also to a thousand
zouaves who had been housed by the Brothers of the Communal Schools; we
were at the same time lodging at the _pensionnat_ three hundred and sixty
of the _garde mobile_; thus, in all, we had charge of about two thousand
men.”

The officers and soldiers of the eighth company of _mobiles_ at Aubusson
were so grateful for the kindness shown them by the Brother Director
that they wished to confer on him the rank of honorary quartermaster,
and decorate him with gold stripes. The Brothers at Boulay, six leagues
from Metz, were the first to observe the superior quality of the enemy’s
army and the severity of its discipline. A doctor of the Prussian
army said to them on one occasion, “We shall conquer because we pray
to God. You in France have no religion; instead of praying, you sing
the _Marseillaise_. You have good soldiers, but no leaders capable of
commanding: Wissembourg, Forbach, and Gravelotte[136] have proved this.
Your army is without discipline, while our eight hundred thousand march
as if they were one man. And then our artillery … which has hardly yet
opened fire!” These words were uttered on the 25th of August, by which
time the fate of France could be only too plainly foreseen. The Brothers
of Verdun showed a courage equal to that of the defenders of the place.
From the 24th of August to the 10th of November, they were to be seen on
the ramparts succoring the wounded, carrying away the dead, working with
the firemen, in the midst of the bombs, to extinguish the conflagrations,
besides attending on the wounded in the ambulance of the Bishop’s house.
The Brothers at Pourru-Saint-Rémy, by their courageous remonstrances,
saved the little town from destruction, and also the lives of two
Frenchmen whom the Prussians were about to shoot.

The same works of mercy were being carried on at Sedan amid the horrors
of that fearful time--when seventy thousand men were prisoners of war,
and in want of everything; when every public building, and even the
church, was filled with wounded. Some of the Brothers went from door to
door begging linen, mattresses, and straw, while others washed and bound
up the wounds, aided the surgeons, and acted as secretaries to the poor
soldiers desirous of sending news of themselves to their families.

The Brother Director at Rheims gives the following account of his visit
on the 22d of September to the battle-field around Sedan: “We began by
Bazeilles,” he writes, “and truly it was a heartrending spectacle. This
borough of two thousand five hundred inhabitants, which I had recently
seen so rich and prosperous, is entirely destroyed. The only house left
standing is riddled with shot, all the rest being mere heaps of charred
stones, still smoking from the scarcely extinguished burning. The field
of battle was still empurpled with blood, and trampled hard like a road,
while in all directions were scattered torn garments, rifled wallets, and
broken weapons.”[137]

The ambulance of Rethel received, in four months, eight hundred men,
many Prussians being of the number. Several of the Brothers fell ill
from their excessive exertions, and from typhus, caught in the exercise
of their charitable employment, the latter proving fatal in the case of
Brother Bénonien. One of the Directors dying at Châlons-sur-Marne, the
Prussians, in token of their respect, allowed the bells, which had been
silent since the invasion of the town, to be tolled for his funeral. At
Dîjon the Brothers were repeatedly insulted by a handful of demagogues,
who would fain have compelled them to take arms and go to the war while
they themselves staid at home; but when, soon afterwards, these same
Brothers who had been derided as “lazy cowards,” were seen bearing in
their arms the wounded men--whom they had on more than one occasion
gone out to seek with lanterns, amid rain and mud and darkness--gently
laying them in clean white beds, and attending to all their wants with
the tenderest solicitude, the mockers were silenced, and their derision
forgotten in the admiration of the grateful people. It was here also
that, after the battle of the 30th of October, many Garibaldians who
were among the wounded beheld with astonishment the calm devotedness of
these “black-robes,” whom they had always been accustomed to malign.
Not content with begging their pardon merely, they were exceedingly
desirous that Garibaldi should award military decorations to certain of
the Brothers, who would have had as strong an objection to receive the
honor from such hands as the godless Italian would have had to confer
it; nor did the cares lavished by these religious on his companions in
arms hinder his execrations of the priests and religious orders in his
proclamation of January 29, 1871.

In Belgium as well as in France the good offices of the Brothers found
ample exercise. After the defeat of Gen. de Failly, more than eleven
hundred exhausted and famishing soldiers, with their uniforms torn to
shreds after a march of ten leagues through the woods, arrived at a late
hour of the night, on the 1st of September, at the house of the Brothers
at Carlsbourg, not knowing what place it was. Great was the joy of the
poor fugitives at the unexpected sight of that well-known habit and those
friendly faces. All were welcomed in, and their lives saved by the timely
hospitality so freely accorded to their needs. The sick and wounded
had already been brought in carts from the scene of the engagement,
and were receiving every care under the same roof. All through the
month of September this house was a centre of assistance, information,
and correspondence, as well as of unbounded hospitality. At Namur the
Brothers converted their house into an ambulance, and, in their work of
nursing the sick and wounded, had able auxiliaries in many Christian
ladies of high rank.

While the red flag was floating over the Hôtel de Ville at Lyons, and
those who talked the most loudly about “the people” troubled themselves
the least on their account, the Brothers of this town prepared a hundred
beds in their house, and successively had charge of seven hundred
soldiers, the Brother Director during all that time having to maintain
a persevering resistance to the revolutionists, who no less than twelve
times attempted to disperse the community. The devotion of the Brothers
was characterized by a peculiar courage in the ambulance at Beaune,
reserved for sufferers from the small-pox, and which none but they
dared approach. At Châlons-sur-Saône they had four ambulances, in the
charge of which they were aided by some nursing Sisters. Many Germans
were among their wounded at Orléans and at Dreux. It was at the latter
place that one of the chief medical officers of the Prussians, a very
hard-hearted man, who had made himself the terror of the ambulance as
well as of the town, gave orders that every French soldier, as soon as
he began to recover, should be sent a prisoner to Germany; the Brothers,
however, did not rest until they had so far softened him as to save their
convalescents from the threatened captivity.

But we should far exceed the limits of our notice were we to follow with
anything like completeness the work of the Brothers in the departments
of France. The places particularized suffice as an indication of what
was done in numbers more, in several of which some of the Brothers
fell victims to their charity. The testimony of the medical men, in
praise not only of their unwearied devotion, but also of their skill
in the care of the sick and wounded, was everywhere the same. It seems
scarcely credible that in several localities--at Villefranche and Niort
amongst others--where they were unostentatiously carrying on these
self-denying labors, the municipal councils, as if to punish them for
their generosity, withdrew the annual sum which had for years past (in
one case, for sixty-four years) been allowed to their schools for the
expenses of administration. It frequently happened that, in opening
ambulances, they did not, for that reason, discontinue their classes,
those who taught in the day watching by the sick at night; giving up for
the good of others their time, their repose, their comfort--all they had
to give. The Committees of Succor did much, but it seemed as if without
them something would have been wanting to the ambulances. For additional
particulars we must refer the reader to the interesting pages of M.
Poujoulat, from which we have drawn so largely. And now, having in some
measure sketched the work of the Brothers in the provinces during the
war, we must not leave it unnoticed in the capital.

Towards the end of November, 1870, Brother Philip, after receiving the
appeal from the ambulances of the Press, issued no order to the Brothers
of the communities in Paris, but simply informed them of the request that
had been made him, bidding them consider it before God, and adding, “You
are free to give your assistance or to withhold it.” The Brothers prayed,
went to Communion, and then said to their Superior, “We are ready.” Even
the young novices in the Rue Oudinot wrote to him letters of touchingly
earnest entreaty to be allowed to serve with their elders. We give the
following in the words of M. Poujoulat:

    “On the 29th of November, at six o’clock in the morning, in
    piercing cold, a hundred and fifty of the Brothers of the
    Christian Schools were assembled at the extremity of the Quai
    d’Orsay, near the Champ de Mars. An old man was with them in
    the same habit as themselves; this was Brother Philip, his
    eighty years not appearing to him any reason for staying at
    home. They were awaiting the order to march. Gen. Trochu,
    acting less in accordance with his own judgment than with the
    imperious despatches sent from Tours and with the wishes of the
    Parisians, proposed to pierce through the enemy’s lines and
    join the army of the Loire. The attack having been retarded
    by an overflow of the Marne, and the necessity of throwing
    additional bridges across the river, the Brothers waited eight
    hours for an order which never came. On the following morning,
    the 30th, they were again with Brother Philip at the same post,
    at the same hour, and shortly received the order to advance,
    while, with profound emotion, the venerable Superior, after
    seeing his ‘children,’ as he was wont to call them, depart,
    returned alone to the Rue Oudinot.

    “Cannonading was heard towards the southeast. The two corps
    of the army, under Gens. Blanchard and Renault, had attacked
    Champigny and the table-land of Villiers. The Brothers,
    mounted in various vehicles, proceeded towards the barrier of
    Charenton, on their way receiving many encouraging acclamations
    from the people. Their work commenced on the right bank of
    the Marne, which they crossed on a bridge of boats, not far
    from Champigny and Villiers, amid the rattling of musketry
    and the roar of heavy guns. Divided into companies of ten,
    each with its surgeon, provided with litters, and wearing the
    armlet marked with the Red Cross, they proceed to seek the
    wounded, troubling themselves little about finding death. They
    are attended by ambulance carriages, in which they place the
    sufferers, who are taken to Paris by the _bateaux mouches_
    (small packet-boats of the Seine). When litters are not to
    be had, the Brothers themselves carry those whom they pick
    up, sometimes for long distances, never seeming to think
    themselves near enough to danger, because they wish to be as
    near as possible to those who may be reached by the shell and
    shot. They walk on tranquilly and fearlessly, the murdering
    projectiles appearing to respect them. They have lifted up the
    brave Gen. Renault, mortally wounded by the splinter of a bomb.

    “This general, before his death, a few days afterwards, said
    to the Brother Director of Montrouge: ‘I have grown gray on
    battle-fields; I have seen twenty-two campaigns; but I never
    saw so murderous an engagement as this.’ And it was in the
    midst of this tempest of fire that the Brothers fulfilled their
    charitable mission. No one could see without admiration their
    delicate and intelligent care of the wounded.”

On this latter subject, M. d’Arsac writes as follows:

    “They” (the Brothers) “knelt down upon the damp earth--in the
    ice, in the snow, or in the mud--raising the heavy heads,
    questioning the livid lips, the extinguished gaze, and, after
    affording the last solace that was possible, recommencing
    their difficult and perilous journey across the ball-ploughed
    land, through the heaps of scattered fragments and of corpses,
    amid the movements to and fro upon the field of carnage. Very
    gently they lift this poor fellow, wounded in the chest,
    raising him on a supple hammock of plaited straw, keeping the
    head high, and placing a pillow under the shoulders, avoiding
    anything like a shock.… Thus they advance with slow and even
    pace never stopping for a moment to wipe their foreheads. A
    woollen covering envelops the wounded man from the shoulders
    downward. Often his stiffened hand still clutches his weapon
    with a spasmodic grasp, … the arm hangs helplessly, and from
    minute to minute a shiver runs over the torn frame. He faints,
    or in a low whisper names those he loves. The Brothers quicken
    their steps. The ‘Binder’ carriage is not yet there; so they
    lay their burden gently down upon a mattress, in some room
    transformed into an ambulance, where a number of young men, in
    turned-up sleeves and aprons of operation, are in attendance.
    They pour a cordial through the closed teeth of the sufferer,
    complete the amputation of the all but severed limb, and do
    that to save life which the enemy did to destroy it.”

The Brother Director of Montrouge gives the following account of the
night which followed the battle of Champigny:

    “Being stronger and more robust than the rest, I got into one
    of Potin’s wagons, and returned to beat the country around
    Champigny, Petit-Bry, and Tremblay. On reaching the plateau
    of Noisy, where lay many wounded, uttering cries of pain and
    despair, a soldier, who was cutting a piece of flesh from a
    horse killed that morning, told me that the Prussians would
    not allow them to be removed, and that if I went further I
    should be made prisoner. I went on, notwithstanding, in the
    hope of succoring these poor fellows, but presently a patrol
    fire barred the way against me, and compelled me to believe
    the statement of the marauding soldier. It was one o’clock
    in the morning; and I went away, grieved to the heart at the
    thought of those unhappy men lying there on the cold earth,
    into which their life-blood was soaking, in the piercing cold,
    and under the pitiless eye of an inhuman enemy. The man who
    drove my conveyance was afraid, and his wearied horses refused
    to go a step further; I left them therefore in the road, and,
    lantern in hand, walked along the lanes, through the woods,
    across the fields, but found everywhere nothing but corpses.
    I called, and listened, but everywhere the only answer was
    the silence of death. At last I went towards the glimmering
    lights of the watch-fires of our soldiers, and learnt that on
    the hill, into a house which had been left standing, several
    men had been carried at nightfall; and there in fact I found
    them, twenty-one in number, lying at the foot of a wall whither
    they had dragged themselves from a ditch where they had been
    left, and patiently waiting until some one should come to their
    assistance. Happily I was soon joined here by others, who
    helped me to place the wounded in different vehicles, and we
    set out for Paris, where we arrived at half-past four in the
    morning. After seeing them safely housed, I set out again for
    Champigny, longing to know the fate of the poor creatures whose
    cries had pierced my very soul, without my being able to succor
    them. I hastened to the plateau of Noisy, and there found
    eighty frozen corpses. Some had died in terrible contortions,
    grasping the earth and tearing up the grass around them;
    others, with open eyes and closed fists, appeared fierce and
    threatening even in death; while others again, whose stiffened
    hands were raised to heaven, announced, by the composure of
    their countenances, that they had expired in calmness and
    resignation, and perhaps pardoning their executioners the
    physical and moral tortures they endured.”

During any suspension of arms, the Brothers buried the dead, digging
long trenches in the hard and snow-covered earth, in which the corpses,
in their uniforms, were laid in rows. A single day did not suffice for
these interments, everything being done with order and respect. When all
was ended, the falling snow soon spread one vast winding-sheet over the
buried ranks, while the Brothers, having finished their sad day’s toil by
torchlight, knelt down and said the _De profundis_.

Every fresh combat saw these acts of intrepid charity renewed. Brother
Philip, although, on account of his advanced age, not himself on the
field, was the moving spirit of the work. Daily, before the Brothers
started for their labors, he multiplied his affectionate and thoughtful
attentions, going from one to another during the frugal breakfast which
preceded their departure, with here a word of encouragement and there of
regard. He arranged and put in readiness with his own hands the meagre
pittance for the day, and examined the canteens and wallets to see that
nothing was wanting. His paternal countenance wore an expression of
happiness and affection, not untinged with melancholy, and seemed to say,
“They go forth numerous and strong, but will they all return?”

On the morning of the 21st of December, 1870, long before daybreak,
Brother Philip and a hundred and fifty of his “children” were at their
usual place near the Champ de Mars; others of their number, under the
direction of Brother Clementis, having been sent on the previous evening
to sleep at St. Denis. The roar of the cannon on this morning was
terrible. It was the battle of Bourget. The Brothers, after reaching
the barrier of La Villette, hastened to the points where men must
have fallen, and were soon carrying the wounded in their arms to the
ambulance-carriages, and returning for more, regardless of the hail of
shot whistling around them. Two courageous Dominicans had joined the
company led on by Brother Clementis, which was preceded by a Brother
carrying the red-cross flag of the Convention of Geneva, and not attended
by any soldier, when they received a charge of musketry. One of the
Brothers, “Frère Nethelme,” fell mortally wounded, and was laid on the
litter he was carrying for others, and taken by two of his companions
to St. Denis, whither Brother Philip immediately hastened on receiving
tidings of what had befallen him. Brother Nethelme was one of the masters
at S. Nicolas, Rue Vaugirard, and thirty-one years of age. He lived three
days of great suffering and perfect resignation, and died on Christmas
Eve. His funeral took place on S. Stephen’s Day, December 26, in the
Church of S. Sulpice, which was thronged with a sympathizing multitude.
This death of one of their number, instead of chilling the zeal of the
Brothers, kindled a fresh glow of their courageous ardor.

Other trials of a similar nature were in store for the Superior-General.
When, in the midst of the bombardment of January, 1871, great havoc was
made in the house of S. Nicolas by the bursting of a shell, it was with
an aching heart that he beheld so many of the pupils killed or wounded,
and that, a fortnight after the funeral of Brother Nethelme, he followed
the young victims to their graves. This cruel bombardment on the quarters
of the Luxembourg and the Invalides excited the minds of the people to
vengeance, and led to the sanguinary attempt of Buzenval. Brother Philip
having had notice the evening before, a hundred of the Brothers assembled
in the Tuileries, from whence they started for the scene of action, and
approached the park of Buzenval through a hailstorm of balls, to find the
ground already strewn with wounded. The soaking in of the snow having
made the land a perfect marsh, greatly increased the difficulty of their
labor, but they only exerted themselves the more, astonishing those who
observed them. On the 19th the Committee of the Ambulances of the Press
for the second time addressed to the Superior-General its thanks and
congratulations.

After the battle near Joinville-le-Pont, the Brothers had to carry the
wounded a league before reaching the carriages.

In this brief sketch we can give but a very inadequate idea of the
work of the Brothers, not only in collecting and housing the wounded,
but also in nursing them with unwearied assiduity day and night. The
ambulance at Longchamps, a long wooden building, had been organized by
Dr. Ricord, the first physician in Paris, and an excellent Christian,
who had obtained numerous auxiliaries from Brother Philip. One of
these, Brother Exupérien, showed an extraordinary solicitude for the
four hundred wounded of whom he there shared the charge. The cold was
intense; there was scarcely any fuel; and food of any kind was difficult
to be had. This good Brother never wearied in his constant and often
far-distant search for supplies for the many and pressing necessities of
the sufferers; day after day walking long distances, and often having to
exercise considerable ingenuity to get even the scanty provision which
his perseverance succeeded in obtaining.

Brother Philip bestowed his especial interest on the ambulance
established in the Mother-house, Rue Oudinot, and which was called the
ambulance of S. Maurice. The novices had been removed into the nooks and
corners of the establishment, so as to give plenty of air and space to
the suffering soldiers. All the Brothers in this house, young and old,
devoted themselves to their sick and wounded; Brother Philip setting the
example. He would go from one bed to another, contrive pleasant little
surprises, and do everything that could be done to cheer the spirits of
the patients as well as to afford them physical relief. The Abbé Roche,
the almoner of the mother-house, exercised with the greatest prudence and
kindness the priestly office in this ambulance.

On the 1st of January, 1871, one of the soldiers decorated at Champigny
for bravery read aloud to Brother Philip, in the “great room,” turned
into an ambulance, a “compliment,” in which he offered him, as a New
Year’s gift on behalf of all, the expression of their gratitude. On
the 6th, in a letter to the Superior-General from Count Sérurier,
vice-president of the _Société de Secours_, and delegate of the Minister
of War and of the Marine, he says: “All France is penetrated with
admiration, reverence, and gratitude for the examples of patriotism and
self-devotion afforded by your institute in the midst of the trials sent
by Providence upon our country.”

The first Brother who re-entered Paris on the day after the signing of
the armistice at Versailles was the Director of the orphanage at Igny. It
was like an apparition once more from the world without, after the long
imprisonment under the fire of the enemy.

It must not be forgotten that, besides all that we have mentioned from
the beginning of the war to the end of the first siege, teaching was
not neglected by the Brothers for a single day; all else that they were
doing was but a supplement to their ordinary occupations; and all went
well at the same time, in the schools, the ambulances, and on the field
of battle. It was as if they multiplied themselves for the good of their
fellow-countrymen.

Acknowledgments in honor of their courageous devotion were sent from
nearly every civilized country; but amongst all these we select one for
mention as having a particular interest for Americans. We give it in
the words of M. Poujoulat--first stating, however, that the _Académie
Française_ had awarded an exceptional prize, declared “superior to all
the other prizes by its origin and its object,” to the Institute of the
Christian Brothers. M. Poujoulat writes as follows:[138]

    “In 1870, we were abandoned by every government, but when our
    days of misfortune commenced, we were not forgotten by the
    nations. There arose, as it were, a compassionate charity
    over all the earth to assuage our sorrows. The amount of
    gifts was something enormous. One single city of the United
    States, Boston, with its environs, collected the sum of eight
    hundred thousand francs. The _Worcester_, a vessel laden
    with provisions, set sail for Havre, but on hearing of the
    conclusion of peace, the insurrection, and the second siege
    of Paris, the American captain repaired to England, where the
    ship’s cargo was sold, and the amount distributed among those
    localities in France which had suffered most. When this had
    been done, there still remained two thousand francs over, which
    the members of the Boston Committee offered to the _Académie
    Française_, to be added to the prize for virtue which was to be
    given that year. ‘This gift,’ said the letter with which it was
    accompanied, ‘is part of a subscription which represents all
    classes of the citizens of Boston, and is intended to express
    the sympathy and respect of the Americans for the courage,
    generosity, and disinterested devotion of the French during the
    siege of their capital.’

    “The Academy, in possession of this gift, deliberated as to
    whom the prize should be decreed, it being difficult to point
    out the most meritorious among so many admirable deeds. After
    having remarked, not without pride, upon the equality of
    patriotism, the Academy resolved to give to this prize the
    least personal and the most collective character possible.

    “‘We have decreed it,’ said the Duc de Noailles, speaking for
    the Academy, ‘to an entire body, as humble as it is useful,
    known and esteemed by every one, and which, in these unhappy
    times, has, by its devotedness, won for itself a veritable
    glory: I allude to the Institute of the Brothers of the
    Christian Schools.’

    “After the Director of the _Académie Française_, in an eloquent
    speech had justified the decision, he added that ‘this prize
    would be to the Institute as the Cross of Honor fastened to the
    flag of the regiment.’”

Already had the Government of the National Defence perseveringly insisted
upon Brother Philip’s acceptance of the Cross of the Legion of Honor,
the reward of the brave; but his humility led him to do all in his power
to escape it, and he had already refused it four times in the course of
thirty years. It was only when he was assured that it was not himself,
but his Institute, that it was desired to decorate in the person of its
Superior-General, that, sorely against his will, he ceased to resist. Dr.
Ricord, in his quality of principal witness of the devotedness of the
Brothers, was charged to attach the Cross of Honor to Brother Philip’s
cassock, in the _grande salle_, or principal room, of the mother house.
Never had the saintly Superior known a more embarrassing moment than this
in all the course of his long life; and when he conducted Dr. Ricord
to the door of the house, he managed so effectively to conceal his new
decoration that no one would have suspected its existence. He never wore
it after this occasion; and this Cross of Honor which he wished to hide
from earth remains as a sort of mysterious remembrance. It has never been
found again.

Always clear-sighted and well-informed, the Superior-General had been
watching the approach of the insurrection of the 18th of March, and sent
away the pupils of the Little and Great Novitiates, foreseeing that Paris
was about to fall into the power of the worst enemies of religion and
civilization. The satanic character of the Commune declared itself in the
words of Raoul Rigault, one of its chiefs, who said: “So long as there
remains a single individual who pronounces the name of God, everything
has yet to be done, and there more shooting will always be necessary.”
The Commune began its work by beating down the cross on the church of
S. Géneviève, and putting the red flag in its place. We cannot wonder,
therefore, at its hatred of the Christian Brothers--their Christianity
being an unpardonable crime. They were not even allowed to remove the
wounded, who were left to die untended in the street, rather than that
they should be succored by religious.

Two decrees were passed, one putting the state in possession of all
property, movable or otherwise, belonging to the religious communities,
and the other incorporating into the marching companies all valid
citizens between nineteen and forty years of age. The Commune was
returning to its traditions of ’93, “interrupted,” it was stated, “by
the 9th of Thermidor.” There were to be no more Christian schools; no
more Christ; no more religion; no more works of piety, Catechism, First
Communion, the Church--all these were proscribed, and none but atheists
might keep a school.

But we will give some extracts from a circular issued to his community by
the Superior on the 21st of June, 1872, in which he briefly notes down
the events of these dreary days:

    “The festival of Easter (April 9th) was spent in anxiety,
    sadness, and mourning, for Monseigneur the Archbishop and
    several priests have been arrested as hostages.

    “April 10th: Some of our Brother Directors were officially
    informed that my name had been placed on the proscription list,
    and that I should be arrested forthwith. Yielding, therefore,
    to the solicitations of my Brother Directors, and to the
    injunctions of our dear Brother Assistants, I quitted Paris to
    visit our houses in the provinces.

    “On the 11th of April, towards ten o’clock in the morning,
    a commissioner and delegate of the Commune, accompanied by
    forty of the National Guard, surrounded the house, announcing
    that they had orders to take me away, and to search the
    establishment. Brother Calixtus told them that I was absent,
    and accompanied them wherever they wished to go. They carried
    off the money that remained in the chest, as well as two
    ciboria, two chalices, and a pyx, after which they declared
    that, in default of finding the Superior, they were to lead off
    the person who had been left there in his place.

    “The dear Brother Calixtus presented himself, and was ordered
    by the commissioner to follow him; whereupon there ensued
    a scene which it would be impossible to describe. All the
    Brothers insisted on following our dear Brother Assistant;
    and some even of the National Guards were moved to tears. A
    crowd of people collected in the street, expressing grief and
    indignation. The commissioner then gave a promise that Brother
    Calixtus should not be detained a prisoner, at the same time
    bidding him get into a cab, which took him to the prefecture
    of police. There he was set at liberty, and returned to the
    mother-house.

    “From the 10th to the 13th our Brothers of Montrouge,
    Belleville, and S. Nicolas were expelled, and lay teachers
    put in their place. On the 17th the house at Ménilmontant was
    searched at the very time that the Brothers were engaged with
    the classes; they were arrested, and detained prisoners until
    the 22d, during which time they were threatened and insulted
    in various ways. On the 18th a staff of military _infirmiers_
    was substituted for the Brothers in charge of the ambulance at
    Longchamps, and the Brother Assistants were officially informed
    that it was resolved upon to arrest the Brothers _en masse_,
    in order either to imprison them or to enrol them for military
    service. Thus they put soldiers with our sick, and intended to
    send us on the ramparts to defend the cause of our persecutors,
    who were also the enemies of order and religion. It was a
    critical moment, but Providence came to our aid in a particular
    manner. Many persons, several of whom were unknown to us,
    offered their assistance in contriving to send out of Paris
    those of our Brothers who were between nineteen and forty years
    of age, and, thanks to God’s goodness and to this friendly
    aid, a certain number, by one means or another, daily effected
    their escape.

    “During the period between the 19th of April and the 7th of
    May, all our free schools were successively closed, and the
    emigration of the Brothers continued. This, however, could
    not be completely accomplished; new orders, more and mote
    suspicious and oppressive, having been issued by the Commune,
    an increasingly rigorous surveillance was kept up, and the
    Brother Director of S. Marguérite and two of his subordinates
    were arrested in their community. Towards the 7th of May, from
    thirty to forty of the Brothers who were attempting to escape
    were also arrested, either at the railway stations or at the
    city gates, or even outside the ramparts. A few of these were
    released, but twenty-six were taken to the Concièrgerie, and
    from thence to Mazas.

    “Of all our establishments, one alone never ceased working,
    namely, that of S. Nicolas, Vaugirard, which, even when times
    were at their worst, numbered its thirty Brothers and three
    hundred pupils.

    “The projectiles of the besieging army having reached
    Longchamps, it was found necessary to remove further, into the
    city the sick and wounded with which the ambulance was crowded.
    It was then that, on an order of the Committee of Public
    Health, our house was requisitioned by the Administration of
    the Press, who required there a hundred beds. It was arranged
    that the Brothers should undertake the attendance on the
    sick, but scarcely had they begun to organize the work before
    a new order arrived from the committee, forbidding any of
    the Brothers to remain in the house under pain of arrest and
    imprisonment. Our dear Brother Assistants therefore, with the
    others who until then had remained at the post of danger, as
    well as our sick and aged men, found themselves compelled to
    quit that home which could no longer, alas! be railed the
    mother, but the widowed, house, and, during five or six days,
    the abode of pain and death. The ambulance was established
    there under the direction of the Press, the administrators of
    which testified a kindly interest towards us, and we gladly
    acknowledge that to them we owe the preservation of our house,
    which, but for them, would in all probability have been given
    up to the flames.

    “On Sunday, the 21st of May, there was no Mass in our deserted
    chapel, from whence the Blessed Sacrament had been removed the
    evening before. The persecution against us had reached its
    height, and also its term. That same day the besieging army
    forced the Gate of St. Cloud, and on the next, the 22d, took
    possession of our quarter, and put an end for us to the Reign
    of Terror.…

    “All this week was nothing but one sanguinary conflict; our
    mother-house was crowded with wounded to the number of six
    hundred; a temporary building had also been erected within its
    precincts, to which were brought those who were slain in the
    neighborhood; as many as eighty dead would sometimes be carried
    in at a time. On Wednesday, the 24th, however, the military
    authorities decided that the ambulance should be transferred
    back again to Longchamps, and that the Brothers should
    immediately be restored to the possession of the mother-house
    as well as of their other establishments. From that day a new
    order of things commenced for us, and with it the reflux into
    Paris of our emigrated Brothers.

    “But all were not able to return; some were prisoners at
    Mazas. Already, out of hatred to religion, the Commune had
    shot Monseigneur the Archbishop, the _cure_ of the Madeleine,
    and several other priests, secular and regular, … and they now
    proposed to shoot _all_ their prisoners, and renew in 1871 the
    massacre of 1792. But again time failed them.

    “The liberating army, like an irresistible torrent, carried
    away the barricades, and the firing soon began around Mazas,
    whereupon the keepers of the prison seized the Communist
    director and locked him up, opening all the doors, and
    bringing down the captives--between four and five hundred in
    number--into the court, from whence they made their exit three
    by three. Our Brothers went out; but only to find themselves
    entangled in the lines of the Federals, and forced to work
    at the barricades, until night seemed to favor their escape.
    It was while he was thus employed that our dearest Brother
    Néomede-Justin, of Issy, was killed by the bursting of a shell.”

During three days and nights the Brothers were the objects of the most
active surveillance, and had to watch their opportunity to recede from
one barricade to another. In this way several managed to reach the
mother-house on Friday, the 25th; others, on the two following days, but
not all. To continue in the words of Brother Philip:

    “On Whit-Sunday, towards one o’clock in the morning, all the
    insurgents were surrounded on the heights of Belleville,
    disarmed, chained five together, taken to La Roquette (the
    prison of the condemned), and brought before a council of
    war. Our two Brothers, who had been also chained to three
    insurgents, were present at the interrogation of those who
    had preceded them, and at the execution of sentence of death
    upon a large number. For the space of three hours they waited
    thus in the most anxious expectation. When it was their turn
    to appear, they said that they were Brothers of the Christian
    Schools, just out of prison, but that for three days they had
    found it impossible to escape from the vigilant oppression of
    the insurgents. On ascertaining the truth of their statement,
    the council gave them a pass, and facilitated their return to
    the mother-house.

    “They came back to us worn out and broken down by fatigue, as
    well as by all the terrible emotions they had undergone, and
    blessing God for their wonderful preservation.”

On hearing of the restoration of order the emigrated Brothers hastened
back to Paris, their venerable superior joining them at the mother-house
on the evening of the 9th of June.

“It was,” writes Brother Philip, “the hour of Benediction of the Blessed
Sacrament, … after which we sang the psalm, _Ecce quam bonum_, … and then
I attempted to say a few words to our dearest Brothers, reunited once
more, but I found it impossible, so great was my emotion.”

When, during his absence, Brother Philip had heard of the arrest of
Brother Calixtus, he immediately set out from Epernay, to give himself
up in the place of his friend; but learning, at St. Denis, that he had
been set at liberty, he proceeded to the visitation of other houses of
his institute in the provinces. We can understand with what joy these two
holy friends would meet again.

After some great calamity has passed away, life, emerging from the
regions of death, seems as it were to begin anew. Brother Philip, who
regarded the misfortunes of France as a warning from God, invited all the
members of his institute to carry on their work with increased energy
and devotion. From the beginning of the year 1872, as if he had had some
presentiment of his approaching end, he gave more attention than ever to
the perfecting of his “children,” and completed various little works of
piety which he thought might prove useful to them. An illness which he
had at this time he regarded as a first warning. The Archbishop of Paris,
Mgr. Guibert, who had not then long succeeded his martyred predecessor,
came at this time to visit the venerable Superior.

Brother Philip presided at all the sittings of the general chapter which
was assembled from the 12th of June, 1873, to the 2d of July. Towards the
conclusion of the last sitting, in reply to some respectful words which
had been addressed to him, he answered: “My dearest Brothers, soon, yes,
soon you will again assemble together, but I shall be no longer among
you. I shall have had to render to God an account of my administration.”
It was with heavy hearts that the Brother Assistants heard these words,
while their Superior proceeded to consecrate the Institute to the Sacred
Heart of Jesus.

Our Holy Father Pius IX. had for the heart of Brother Philip an
unspeakable attraction. On the 22d of October, 1873, the latter set out
on his fifth journey to Rome. His first visit to the Eternal City was in
1859, when he was welcomed by the Pope with paternal affection. He was
there again in 1862, for the canonization of the Martyrs of Japan, when
he had an opportunity of conversing with the bishops of many distant
regions in which the Brothers of the Christian Schools were established.
On this second occasion, the day after his arrival in Rome, he hastened
to the Vatican and mingled with the crowd in the hall of audience;
but the Pope having observed his name in the long list of the persons
present, immediately sought with his eye the humble Superior, and,
perceiving him far off in the last rank of the assembly, his Holiness,
with that clear and sweet voice so well known to the faithful, said to
him, _Philip, where shall we find bread enough for all this multitude?_
(S. John vi. 5), and bade him come near. Brother Philip, confused at so
great a mark of attention, approached, and, kneeling before the Holy
Father, presented the filial offering of which he was the bearer on the
part of his Institute. He made his third journey to Rome in 1867, to
be present at the eighteenth centenary anniversary of the Martyrdom of
the Apostles SS. Peter and Paul. On seeing him, the Pope said, “Here is
Brother Philip, whose name is known in all the world.”

“It will soon be so at Madagascar, Most Holy Father,” answered Brother
Philip, smiling, “as we are just now establishing ourselves there.”

In 1869, about the time of the opening of the Vatican Council, the
Superior-General was again at Rome. True as the needle to the magnet
was his loyal heart to the Vicar of Christ; and yet once more must the
veteran soldier look upon the face of his chief before laying down his
arms and receiving his crown. He took his fifth and last journey to the
city of Peter in 1872, accompanied by Brother Firminien. Of this last
visit, which especially concerned the beatification of the founder of his
Institute, as well as of the preceding ones, full particulars are given
in the work of M. Poujoulat. The Pope received Brother Philip to private
as well as to public audiences, asking many questions and conversing
with interest upon the details of the various works in which the order
was engaged. On the Festival of All Saints, more than a hundred of the
Brothers being assembled with their Superior-General in the throne-room
at the Vatican, the Pope entered, preceded by his court, and attended
by five cardinals, numerous bishops, and other ecclesiastics, for the
reading of the decree referring to the beatification of the venerable De
la Salle. When a few lines had been read, His Holiness said to one of the
prelates, “Do not allow Brother Philip to continue kneeling; the brave
old man must be fatigued.”

The reading being ended, Brother Philip was invited to approach the
Holy Father, to whom he made an address of thanks for the progress of
his founder’s cause, concluding with the following words: “With regard
to our devotion to the Holy Church, to this ever-celebrated chair of
Peter, and to the illustrious and infallible Pontiff who occupies it so
gloriously, it will be the same all the days of our life; and, moreover,
we shall never cease, Most Holy Father, to offer to God our most fervent
prayers that he will speedily put an end to the calamities which afflict
so profoundly the paternal heart of Your Blessedness, … praying Your
Blessedness to be pleased to bestow your holy benediction upon him who
has at this moment the exceeding happiness of kneeling at your feet, and
also upon all the other children of the venerable De la Salle.”

Copies of the decree were then distributed amongst those present, the
original manuscript, which was presented to the Superior, being now in
the archives of the _Régime_. The Pope addressed his answer directly to
his “dearest son, Brother Philip,” as if to testify his esteem not only
for the Institute but for the man. Immediately after the closing of the
audience, the Pope despatched messengers to the Palazzo Poli with two
immense baskets full of various kinds of pastry, etc., saying, “Brother
Philip must assemble the Brothers to-day for a little family feast, and
I wish to regale them”; and when afterwards the Superior expressed his
thanks for this paternal mark of attention, the Holy Father answered:
“Some good nuns thought of the Pope, and the Pope thought of Brother
Philip.”

On his return from this last journey to Rome, the Superior reached Paris
at seven o’clock in the morning, was present at Mass in the mother-house
at eight, and half an hour later was seated at his bureau as usual in the
_Salle du Régime_, as if he had never quitted his place. The longest life
is short; but what can be done by a man who never wastes a moment of his
time is something prodigious. One result of this unceasing activity on
the part of Brother Philip was the fact that, having found 2,300 Brothers
and 143,000 pupils when he was placed at the head of the Institute, he
left 10,000 of the former engaged in the education of 400,000 youths and
children. He was a man of study, prayer, and action; no one could be more
humble than he, nor yet more qualified to govern. He listened patiently
to arguments and suggestions, but, when his resolution was once taken, he
adhered to it. He spoke little, having neither taste nor time for much
talking, but what he said was always to the point, the right thing at
the right time, and the truth on every question. His correspondence was
a reflection of himself, his letters containing just so many syllables
as were sufficient to express his meaning: with him, a letter was an
action. He was at the same time the most devout of religious and the most
assiduous of workers; severe to himself, and never accepting the little
indulgences which others would fain have mingled with the hardness of
his life. The Abbé Roche mentions that on one occasion Brother Philip,
arriving in a little town of Cantal after forty hours of travelling, had
one hour to rest. Being shown the way to the house of the Brothers, he
found them assembled in the chapel, where he remained until the prayers
were over. Then, after exchanging greetings with them, and taking a
morsel of bread moistened with wine and water, he resumed his journey.
There are few communities of his Institute in France which he did not
visit, and in all these his presence left an abiding remembrance.

The art of ruling presupposes a knowledge of men. Under his simple and
modest exterior, Brother Philip had a keen penetration; he very quickly
formed his judgment of what a man was and what were his capabilities,
and there could be no better proof that he chose his instruments wisely
than the fact that all his establishments have succeeded; not that he
always allowed human prudence to have much voice in his undertakings,
as he frequently preferred to leave much to Providence. His look and
manner were reserved, almost cold, but in his heart were depths of real
tenderness and feeling. He allowed no recreation to his fully occupied
existence except indeed his one refreshment and rest, which was in
attending the services at the chapel; and his great enjoyment, the beauty
of the ceremonies and the grand and ancient music of the church. He never
failed to bestow the most particular attention on every detail of the
procession on the Feast of Corpus Christi, and took an especial delight
in being present at the First Communion of the pupils. For this great act
of the Christian life he recommended a long and serious preparation, and
wrote a manual with this intent, entitled _The Young Communicant_.

He excelled in the art of solving difficulties, not by having recourse to
human wisdom, but by imploring light and guidance from above. To overcome
obstacles, he prayed; he did the same to lead his enemies to a better
mind; and against their decisions, again he armed himself with prayer.

The municipal council of Châlons had, in 1863, suppressed the Christian
schools in that town. Brother Philip repaired thither on the 2d of May.
The mayor gave notice that the council would assemble on the following
day. The Superior was suffering from acute rheumatism, but would not
accept anything but the regulation supper of the Brothers, who made
him a bed in the parlor. The next morning, at four o’clock, when the
community had risen, they found Brother Philip kneeling on the pavement
of the chapel, and it was observed that his bed had not been touched. He
had passed the night in prayer before the Tabernacle. At six o’clock he
attended Mass with his foot bound up in linen. On the evening of the same
day the municipal council, annulling its decision of the preceding year,
permitted the re-establishment of the Christian Schools in Châlons. The
Superior had not prayed in vain.

One of his principal cares was always the reinforcement of his Institute,
and it was with exceeding happiness that, on the 7th of December, 1873,
he presided at the reception of fifty-four postulants.

It was not without apprehension that the Brothers had seen their
venerated Superior, at eighty-one years of age, undertake his last
journey to Rome, but after his return his activity was unabated, and he
did not in any way diminish his daily amount of work. On the 30th of
December, having returned to the mother-house in the evening from a visit
to Passy, he was indisposed, but rose the next morning at the hour of
the community. After Mass he was seized with a shivering; he repaired,
however, to the _Salle du Régime_, where deputations from the three
establishments of S. Nicolas were waiting to offer him their respectful
greetings for the New Year. On receiving their addresses he answered,
in a weak and failing voice: “My dearest children, I thank you for your
kindness in coming so early to wish me a happy New Year; perhaps I shall
not see its close. I am touched by the sentiments you have so well
expressed, but, for my own part, there is but one thing that I desire,
and that is, that you should go on increasing in virtue.” After a few
more words of paternal counsel, he bade them adieu.

The exchange of good wishes between himself and the community was not
without sadness. On the 1st of January he made a great effort to go to
the chapel, where he heard Mass and received Holy Communion. This was
the last time that he appeared amid the assembled Brothers; his weakness
was extreme, and his prayers were accompanied by evident suffering. From
the chapel the Superior went to his bed, from which he was to arise no
more. On the 6th of January, the Feast of the Epiphany, he received the
last sacraments, while the Brother Assistants were prostrate around his
bed, weeping and praying. One who appeared more broken down with sorrow
than the rest was Brother Calixtus, the old and most intimately beloved
friend of the dying Superior. The Apostolic Benediction solicited by
Brother Floride at four o’clock arrived at six, but Brother Philip,
having fallen into a profound slumber, was not aware of it until past
midnight. The morning prayers were being said in a low voice in his cell,
it not being known whether he was unconscious or not, but the Brother
who presided having, through distraction, begun the _Angelus_ instead of
the _Memorare_, the dying man gave a sign to show that he was making a
mistake.

There is a little versicle and response particularly dear to the dying
members of the Institute: “_May Jesus live within our hearts!_” to which
the answer is, “_For ever._” It is, as it were, their watchword on the
threshold of eternity. On the morning of the 7th of January, Brother
Irlide, assistant, bending over the Superior, pronounced the words of
Jesus on the Cross: “_Father, into thy hands I commend my spirit_,”
adding, “_May Jesus live within our hearts_.” Brother Philip, like a
faithful soldier, ever ready with the countersign, attempted to utter
the answer “_For ever_,” but in the effort his soul passed away. The
community being then assembled in the chapel for the recitation of the
Rosary, at once commenced the _De profundis_. The Institute had lost its
father and head.

The death of Brother Philip produced a profound impression. Together
with the sense of a great loss, a feeling of admiration for the great
qualities of the departed, and gratitude for the immense services he had
rendered to his countrymen, burst forth from all ranks of society. The
working-classes more especially felt keenly how true a friend they had
lost, and the announcement, “Brother Philip is dead,” plunged every heart
into mourning. From the moment of his death the cell of the Superior was
constantly filled by the novices, who in successive companies recited
the Office of the Dead. In the evening, the body was removed into the
Chamber of Relics, which had been transformed into a _chapelle ardente_,
or lighted chapel, and there in the course of two days more than ten
thousand persons came to pay their respects and to pray by the dead.
On the Friday evening the remains were enclosed in a coffin, which was
covered with garlands and bouquets which had been brought, a tall palm
being placed at the top; and on Saturday morning it was transferred to
the chapel, where the sorrowing community had assembled, and where a Low
Mass of requiem was said by the Reverend Almoner, the Abbé Roche.

But another kind of funeral was awaiting the humble religious. The
Institute, in accordance with its rules, had ordered merely a funeral
of the seventh class; but France, true to herself, was about to honor
her benefactor with triumphant obsequies. The coffin, taken out of the
mother-house at a quarter past seven, and placed upon a bier used for the
poorest of the people, was borne to the church of S. Sulpice, through
silent and respectful multitudes, and placed upon trestles, surrounded
by lighted tapers, in the nave. A white cross on a black ground behind
the high altar composed all the funeral decoration of the church. But
a splendor of its own was attached to this poverty and simplicity,
contrasted as it was with the vast assemblage present, among whom were
two cardinals, several bishops, and many of the most important personages
of the church and state. There were the representatives of all the
parishes of Paris, and of all the religious orders, as well as of the
public administration. Not the smallest space remained unoccupied in the
vast church; and, when it was found necessary to close the doors, more
than ten thousand persons remained in the Place St. Sulpice. Cardinal
Guibert, Archbishop of Paris, gave the absolution, and M. Buffet,
President of the National Assembly, threw the first holy water on the
coffin.

“On both sides of the streets,” writes an eye-witness, “the crowd formed
a compact mass; the men uncovered, and the women crossing themselves, as
the body of the venerated Superior passed by. Long lines of children
conducted by the Brothers marched continuously on each side. In the
course of the progress to the cemetery of Père la Chaise, ten thousand
pupils of the Christian Brothers, school by school taking its turn,
joined without fatigue in the procession.”

Paris, this city so wonderful in its contrasts--in the brightness of its
lights and the depths of its shadows--is more Christian than men are
apt to suppose. Out of this Paris no less than _forty thousand persons_
attended the remains of Brother Philip to the grave, and many were the
tears of heartfelt sorrow which mingled with the last prayers at the
brink of that vault where he was laid, the place of burial reserved for
the Superiors of his order. On the day of the funeral itself, the memory
of Brother Philip received from Cardinal Guibert, in his circular letter
addressed to the venerable _curé_ of S. Sulpice, a testimony which will
remain as a page in the history of the church of Paris.

And it was not Paris only, but France, which paid its homage to the
memory of Brother Philip. The whole French episcopate testified its
regard for him by requiem Masses on his behalf, by solemn services,
funeral orations, allocutions, or circular letters. Nor was this
religious mourning limited to France: it was expressed in all the lands
where the Christian Schools have been founded, so that throughout the
world honor has been done to him who never sought it, but who, on the
contrary, shrank from celebrity, feared the praise of man, and singly and
simply did all for God.

As the crown and completion of all other witness to the merits of
the departed Superior, the Brothers received in answer to the letter
announcing their bereavement a Brief from our Holy Father Pius IX.,
most honorable to the departed, and for themselves full of sympathy and
consolation.

Five months after the death of Brother Philip, the venerable Brother
Calixtus, who had for sixty-four years been his dearest friend, and who
was chosen as Superior-General in his place, followed him to the grave.

His present successor is Brother Jean-Olympe, an excellent and devoted
religious, who, at the time we write, has just returned from Rome, where
with four of the Brother Assistants he has been welcomed by the Holy
Father with marks of particular regard. We conclude our sketch in the
words of M. Poujoulat, the admirable writer already so often quoted: “The
undying remembrance of Brother Philip will remain a motive power for his
Institute, an effective weapon in time of conflict, an incitement to
perseverance in well-doing, to the love of God, our neighbor, and our
duty.”


SUBMISSION.

    When the wide earth seems cold and dim around me,
      And even the sunshine is a mocking thing;
    When the deep sorrow of my soul hath bound me,
      As the gloom swept from a dark angel’s wing;
    When faces, dearer to my soul than being,
      Like shadows faint and frozen past me flee,
    I turn to thee--Almighty and all-seeing
      God of the universe!--I turn to thee!

    When in my chamber, lone and lowly kneeling,
      I pour before thee thoughts that inly burn;
    I lay before thy shrine that wealth of feeling
      Whose ashes sleep in my heart’s funeral urn:
    I pray thee, in a mercy yet untasted,
      To raise my spirit from its dark despair;
    To give back prospects crushed, and genius wasted,
      That have no memory save in that wild prayer.

    It may not be! O Father! high and holy,
      Not thus thy _chosen_ bow before thy shrine;
    But with submission, beautiful and lowly,
      Asking no boon save through thy will divine;
    Bearing with faith the Saviour’s cross of sorrow,
      Filling his bleeding wounds with tears of balm,
    Seeking his cankering crown of thorns to borrow--
      To make them worthy of the pilgrim’s palm.


THE ROMAN RITUAL AND ITS CHANT

_COMPARED WITH THE WORKS OF MODERN MUSIC._

II.--CONTINUED.


RESPECTIVE AUTHORITY, ECCLESIASTICAL AND MORAL.

Natural religion attaches the idea of authority to God. God is King,
“Dominus Exercituum,” the Lord of Hosts, the one supreme absolute source
of all power and authority. Moreover, society implies authority, in order
that it may exist. In social life there cannot be discordant purposes
and independent wills. Now, God called all created society into being
out of nothing, and through the principle of authority and subjugation
of the will maintains his work in love, happiness, and mutual concord.
And in the scheme of redemption he has sent his church, a working society
upon earth, to heal by her sweet and divine yoke of a lawful authority
the social anarchies and disorders of a fallen race. In the church,
then, as sent by him who is the absolute source of authority and order,
governed by him, and in continual correspondence with him through prayer,
we expect to find all her important elements and modes of acting upon,
and of dealing with, mankind under the direction of the principle of
authority; and since God declares of himself that he is a God of order,
and the “author, not of confusion, but of peace in the churches” (1
Cor. xiv. 33), we conclude that God will contemplate sacred song in
the Christian Church as subject to the principle of authority, as an
instrument placed by himself at the disposal of the church for carrying
out her divine work, and as such to be used, under the guidance and
direction of the authority which governs her.

To put, then, what is meant by the claim about to be made that the Ritual
or Gregorian Chant possesses this authority, in its true light, it would
be a misconception to suppose that the notion of a _positive authority_
is identical with that of _absolute monopoly_. The positive authority
of the chant of the Ritual by no means implies that the use of modern
music cannot, under certain conditions, enjoy a just toleration, as will
be plain from an instance. The sick man who is slowly recovering from a
severe disease may be fully aware of the positive authority which his
physician has for many reasons attached to a particular rule of diet,
and may yet have the permission occasionally to deviate from it. But
now, if it be asked, what is this authority which is claimed for the
Roman Ritual chant-books? it may be replied, if a spectator, at a review
of British military, were to ask what authority the infantry regiments
had for wearing red coats, he, I suppose, would be answered at once,
that in a disciplined army the regimental uniform could not be otherwise
than authorized. In the same manner, in an organized state of society
so perfect as that of the Catholic Church, the mere existence of such
song-books as the Gradual and Antiphonary, and their immemorial use
in connection with the Missal and Breviary, necessarily implies their
authority. It would be in place here, if space permitted, to cite the
various archiepiscopal and episcopal synods that have made these or
similar song-books the subjects of their legislation, providing, down to
the minutest details, for the different questions which might be liable
to arise out of their use. But it may here suffice to refer to the fact,
not perhaps sufficiently known, that the whole of the Roman Liturgy, the
entire Breviary, the whole of the Missal, except the few parts which the
celebrant himself recites in an undertone of voice at the altar, has
its proper notation in music, which every efficient choir-singer and
celebrant priest is required to know, as the necessary accompaniment of
his functions.

The authority, therefore, of the Ritual chant is to a considerable
extent identified with that of the Ritual itself in the character of
the authorized form of its solemn celebration. No other music has been
at any time published by the church. No other is co-extensive with the
Ritual; and the use, therefore, of any other, however permissible it may
have become through force of circumstances, can only be regarded as a
deviation from perfect Ritual rule.

That such was the view of the fathers of the Council of Trent is evident
from the fact, that they seriously debated whether it might not be
advisable to put an end to the scandalous musical excesses that had
found their way into the church through the partial abandonment of the
Ritual chant, by rendering it henceforth imperative. But though this
measure was vehemently urged by more than one father as the best remedy
for the evil complained of, still the father of the council at length
declined to pass the decree. They seemed to have judged it to be on the
whole wiser to leave the Ritual chant to its claims as the acknowledged
and authorized song of the Liturgy, and to have thought that the remedy
required was rather to be sought for in prayer to God to give his people
a better and more sober mind than in a severe and peremptory legislation,
which might end in provoking the further and worse evil of a more formal
and open disobedience.

But to return to the subject of the positive ecclesiastical authority of
the Ritual chant-books. The truth and the reason of this authority appear
at once, on reflecting how impossible it is that a kingdom directed by
the Spirit of God, under the government of a divinely founded hierarchy,
should employ sacred song to the extent which the Catholic Church does,
without a sanctioned and authenticated form of it. That this form should
be absolutely imperative, to the rigid exclusion of every other, could
occur to no one to maintain. But still, without an acknowledged body and
form of song, of such indisputable authority as to claim the willing
confidence of those whose calling is with sacred song, its efficacy is
certainly lamed and its mission impeded. Men that have work to do in
God’s vineyard require to know not merely the general truth that what
they are engaged with is in the main good, but they also desire to know
that the blessing of God is with the manner of their work, and the means
they employ. Now, such confidence nothing but an authorized body of song
can supply.

For what reason do we trust the church in her definitions of faith?
Because we feel our own weakness; because we feel how impossible it is
for the mind to repose on its own conclusions. We know, from a voice that
speaks from within the heart, that our heavenly Father could not have
given a revelation without the conditions necessary to fit it to meet our
wants. And because we feel the need of a positive authority in matters of
faith, we believe it to have been given, and that the Catholic Church is
the depository of it, as alone possessing the satisfactory credentials.
Now, although it may be true that an equal need for a positive authority
in matters of song cannot be asserted, yet if ecclesiastical music do
really possess those many healing virtues which at once betoken its
divine origin and heavenly mission, it may be asked, is it a wise, is it
a self-distrusting, is it a pious course for each individual to imagine
himself free from such an authority? Is it not rather true that, in
proportion as his sense of the heavenly mission of the ecclesiastical
chant deepens, the more vivid will become his perception of the need of
an express living authority to which the individual can commit himself,
in perfect confidence that that song which a divinely directed hierarchy
shall put forth and acknowledge as their own work, will be sure to carry
along with it the blessing of God upon its use.

I do not see how a reasonable person can refuse to admit that such is
the positive authority attaching to the liturgical song-books, and
that it is to the devout and skilful use of these books by her own
priests, cantors, and devout people, that the church mainly looks for the
fulfilment of the divine idea with respect to sacred music. How otherwise
will you account for their existence? to what purpose has the wisdom of
saints who contributed and collected their contents been exerted? Why
has the church not let the Gregorian system of music alone, as she has
the modern? why has she formed a complete system and body of song in the
one, and not in the other, if her work, when complete, has no positive
authority? Or will the advocate of modern art say, that this her work is
defective and superannuated; and that it is time it should be locked up,
out of the way, in collections of antiquities, and cease to be an offence
to ears polite? Yet, if such be the case, an abrogation is not to be
presumed; it must be proved. But the fact is, that the Council of Trent
caused the song-books to be reissued, and directed the ecclesiastical
chant to be taught in the seminaries of the clergy.[139] And when those
very canonized saints, of whose conditional approbation of the use of
modern art so very much is made, came to the dignity of obtaining a
record in the church’s song of her warriors departed, here was surely a
fit occasion, if, indeed the church had abandoned her former song, and
disembarrassed herself of its defective scale and wearisome monotony, to
call for the charms of modern art, that at least it might be identified
with its votaries. Yet with this very natural supposition contrast the
fact that the Ritual chant and its singers continue year by year to hand
on the memory of the virtues of S. Philip Neri and S. Charles Borromeo;
while for these, its supposed patrons, modern art has not even a little
memorial. To the Ritual song it leaves what would seem to be to itself
the unwelcome task of keeping up the record of their sanctity and their
example.

Nor do I see to what purpose a reference can be made to the anecdote of
Pope Marcellus’ approbation of Palestrina’s composition, since named
_Missa Papæ Marcelli_, with the view to establish an authority for the
system of modern music; for the idea of deviation from the order of the
Ritual chant once admitted to toleration, nothing can be more natural
than that a pontiff, equally with any other person, might come to express
his very high commendation of a particular composition. And if we allow
that such a commendation is not without its weight, it would surely be a
violent inference, singularly betraying the absence of better argument,
if an instance of such approbation of a particular work were to be
claimed as an _ex cathedra_ legislative authorization of a whole system
of music to which it cannot be said to belong.[140] For it should not
be forgotten that Palestrina’s music is essentially different from the
existing system of modern art, inasmuch as his works are either mere
harmonies upon the _Canto Fermo_, or else consist of themes borrowed
from it, which frequently preserve that distinct tonality of the modes of
the ecclesiastical chant which modern art has quite abandoned.

It has been objected, “that an assertion that the church does not
authorize the use of modern harmony, because she has not herself
furnished her children with any individual compositions, is about as
reasonable a conclusion as the notion that she does not authorize and
sanction sermons, because their composition is left to the judgment,
good or bad, of private clergymen.” But the objection fails, as there
is a total want of parity between the office of singer and preacher.
The preacher passes through a long course of training to the state of
priesthood, before he receives a license to preach; and every person
in the church who has the license to preach, is to be presumed to be
duly qualified both to make known the divine law and recommend it by
his words and example. This is not the case with the singer, who is not
necessarily even in the minor orders, and whose duty is merely to sing
what is placed before him correctly and with feeling. If the education
of the priests were left to the same hazard and caprice that would seem
to be desired for the choice of music for the church, it is easy to
imagine the result. But very far from this, the most thoughtful care is
bestowed by the church on the training of her future ministers: obliged
to fixed and unalterable dogmas of the faith, versed in one sacred
volume, bound to one uniform office of daily prayer and pious reading,
trained in an almost uniform system of studies and external discipline,
the preacher comes forth the living organ of a divine system, fitted to
be the spokesman of a kingdom that is endowed with the power of drawing
its manifold materials to a concordant and coherent system, and moulding
multiform and varied minds to a unity of type and consistency of action.
“Such was the strict subordination of the Catholic Church,” says the
historian Gibbon (_Hist._, ch. XX.), “that the same concerted sounds
might issue at once from a hundred pulpits of Italy or Egypt, if they
were tuned by the master hand of the Roman or Alexandrian primate.” Carry
the same principle of system and order into the song of the church, and
it will be found impossible to stop short of the Ritual chant-books.

2. With regard to the moral authority of the chant: moral authority, in
the legislation of the church, is ever a necessary companion of any act
of her legislative authority. We should not, however, overlook what seems
to be a distinct element of moral authority, in the historical connection
of the Ritual chant with the generations now past and gone to their rest.
It was their song, the song of saints long ago departed. It is the song
which S. Augustine sang, and which drew forth his tears: “Quantum flevi
in hymnis et canticis, suave sonantis ecclesiæ tuæ vocibus commotus
acriter; voces illæ influebant auribus meis, et eliquebatur veritas tua
in cor meum, et ex ea æstuabat. Inde affectus pietatis, et currebant
lacrymæ, et bene mihi erat cum illis”--“How often have these sacred hymns
and songs moved me to tears, as I have been carried away with the sweetly
musical voices of thy church. How these sounds used to steal upon my ear,
and thy truth to pour itself into my heart, which felt as if it were set
on fire! Then would come tender feelings of devotion, my tears would
flow, and I felt that all was then well with me” (_Confess._ lib. vi.
cap. 6). It was the song of S. Augustine, the apostle of Saxon England,
of S. Stephen the Cistercian, and of all the holy warriors of our Isle
of Saints. Nor is it only the song which the saints sang, but it is the
song that sings of the saints--the only song which cares to pour the
sweet odor of their memory over the year, or to spread around them its
melodious incense, as they too surround the throne of their Lord and King.

Again: a moral authority attaches to the Roman Ritual chant in the
very name _Gregorian_, by which it is so generally known. S. Gregory
was the first to collect it from the floating tradition in which it
existed in the church, and to digest it into that body of annual song
for the celebration of the Ritual which has come down to us. This work
came to be called after him, _Cantus Gregorianus_, and forms at this
day the substance of the Roman chant-books, enriched and added to by
the new offices and Masses that have since then been incorporated in
the Ritual. Nothing is known with any positive historical certainty as
to the authorship of the several pieces in the song-books; but as to
the main fact, that the music of the Ritual is the work of the greatest
saints of the church--of the Popes Leo, Damasus, Gelasius, and S. Gregory
himself--of many holy monks in the retirement of their cloisters--history
leaves no doubt. This fact, then, is beyond dispute: that the Roman
Ritual chant, which the present inquiry concerns, is the creation of the
saints of the Roman Church, for the decorum and solemnity of the public
celebration of the Liturgy.

And now, to come to the comparison: if to the adequate realization of
the divine idea of sacred song, as an instrument placed at the disposal
of the church, to aid in carrying out her work of sanctification and
instruction, the notion of a definite authority, both defining what
it should be, and prescribing and regulating the manner of its use,
necessarily belongs, the conclusion I think is that this authority is
found attaching itself to the Ritual chant; and, from the nature of the
case, it is incapable of attaching itself to the works of modern music.
First, because it would seem to be an inseparable principle as regards
their use, that every individual must be at liberty to ask for or to
demand their employment according to his own pleasure; and secondly,
because a positive authority can attach to that alone which exists in a
definite and tangible shape, which is far from being the case with the
works of modern music. They not only do not form a definite collection,
but, such as they are, are subject to perpetual change--that which is on
the surface to-day and admired, being to-morrow nauseated and condemned;
and hence there is no resting point whatever in them for the idea of a
positive authority.

And as regards the comparison on the score of moral authority, the
attempt to draw it will, I fear, touch upon delicate ground; for, to
confess the honest truth, it cannot be drawn without bringing to light
the degeneracy of our popular ideas respecting sacred music. Who is
there who seriously thinks of claiming for the works of modern music
any connection with the saints, past or present? or who is there who
either cares to ask for, or to attribute any character of sanctity to
its authors? or would even be likely to think very much the more highly
of the music if the fact of its saintly origin could be established? And
what kind of persons, for the most part, have its authors been? Mozart
died rejecting the last sacraments; Beethoven is supposed by his German
biographer, Schindler, to have been a pantheist during the greater part
of his life; Rink was a Protestant; Mendelssohn a Jew, who cared very
little for his Jewish faith; and the different _maestri di capella_ who
have been throughout Europe the chief composers of these works, were, for
the most part, also the directors of the theatres and opera-houses of
their royal patrons.

But enough has been said to make it evident upon how different a footing
the chant of the Ritual and the works of modern art respectively stand,
as regards moral and ecclesiastical authority.


RESPECTIVE CLAIM TO THE COMPLETENESS AND ORDER OF A SYSTEM.

The idea of a God Incarnate, manifesting himself in the nature of man on
earth, necessarily contains the idea of a system and order displayed in
his works. All apparent system, it is true, does not necessarily imply
God as its author; but absence of system and its consequence, positive
confusion and disorder, is undeniably a sign that the mind of the
Almighty is not there. If, then, the Catholic Church be the kingdom of
God Incarnate, and the abiding-place of his Spirit, it follows that her
song is a _system_, if God is at all to acknowledge it in any respect of
his own. But the idea of system leads at once to the Ritual song-books.
Modern art has not as yet furnished even the necessary materials out
of which to construct a system, not to speak of the hopelessness of
forming one, when the materials should exist. Do but remove the Ritual
chant from the church, and you remove a wonderful and perfect system,
which an order-loving mind takes pleasure in contemplating--one that
moves with the ecclesiastical year, that accompanies the Redeemer
from the annunciation of his advent, the Ave Maria of his coming in
the flesh, to his birth, his circumcision, his manifestation to the
Gentiles, his presentation and discourse with the learned doctors in
the Temple, his miraculous fast in the companionship of the wild beasts
in the wilderness, his last entry into his own city, his betrayal,
his institution of the Holy Eucharist, his agony in the garden, his
death upon the cross, his resurrection from the dead, his ascension
into heaven--a system of song which places around him, as jewels in a
crown, his chosen and sainted servants, as the stars which God set in
the firmament of heaven to give light upon the earth. _Cœli enarrant
gloriam Dei, et opera manuum ejus annuntiat firmamentum_--“The heavens
declare the glory of God, and the firmament showeth his handiwork” (Ps.
xviii.) Yet if we saw the heavens only in the way in which we are treated
to the performances of modern music, the greater and the lesser light
occasionally changing places, after the manner of the vicissitudes of
Mozart and Haydn, the planets moving out of their orbits in indeterminate
succession, at the caprice of some archangel, as the organist changes
his motets and introits, the Psalmist would hardly have spoken of the
“_firmament showing God’s handiwork_.” Where is there a trace of order
and system in the use of the works of modern art? Where is the musician
who regards “duplex,” “semiduplex,” or “simplex”? Mozart in one church,
Haydn in another, Beethoven in a third, and a host of others whose name
is Legion, taken like lots from a bag, as whim or fancy may at the moment
direct, like the chaos described by the poet, where

    “Callida cum frigidis pugnant, humentia siccis,
    Mollia cum duris, sine pondere habentia pondus.”

    --_Ovid, Metam._

But to approach the comparison. If in the divine idea of the Christian
song there is necessarily contained the notion of a working and efficient
system, the simple truth is, that there is no such system, either in the
works of modern music themselves, or in the manner of their use. On the
one side is the important fact, that the modern art of music leaves the
vastly larger portion of the Ritual without any music at all, embracing
positively not more than its merest fraction; on the other, the equally
great fact of a total absence of any thing like rule to determine their
selection. As a working system, then, full and complete in all its
points, the Ritual chant stands alone the only realization of that part
of the divine idea which contemplates order and system in the use of
Christian song.


RESPECTIVE MORAL FITNESS: I. AS A SACRIFICIAL SONG; II. AS A SONG FOR THE
OFFICES OF THE CHURCH.

I. _As a Sacrificial Song._

It has been already remarked that ecclesiastical song is not everything
or anything that is beautiful in music, nor merely a work of art. It
is, strictly speaking, a sacrificial chant, the song of those engaged
in offering sacrifice to God, _Tibi sacrificabo hostiam laudis_. Such
a song is obviously not any kind of song, but one that possesses a
moral type and character, rendering it a fit companion for the holy and
bloodless victim offered on the Christian altar; becoming an offering,
offered not to man, but to the ears of the Most High, and akin to the
solemnity of its subject--redemption from sin and death through the blood
and sufferings of a sinless victim, the crucified Son of God. The divine
idea may then, I think, be said to contemplate sacred song as possessing
a sacrificial character.

And the reason, if required, will appear, on considering to how great
an extent music possesses the remarkable gift of absorbing and becoming
possessed with an idea. When song has been successfully united to
language, the ideas contained in the latter are found to take possession
of the music, and to form the sound or tune into an image and reflection
of themselves, in a manner almost analogous to the way in which the mind
within moulds the outward features of the face, so as to make them an
index and expression of itself. What I mean by this alleged power of
music to absorb, and afterwards to express, ideas, even those the most
opposite to each other, may be exemplified, if an instance be wanted,
by contrasting any popular melody from the Roman Gradual, as the _Dies
Iræ_, or the _Stabat Mater_, with one of our popular street tunes,
“Cherry ripe,” or “Jim Crow”; and it will be seen at once, on humming
over these tunes, with what perfect truth and to how great an extent
music is able to ally itself to the most opposite ideas, and how, through
the ear, it has the power, not merely to convey them to the mind, but to
leave them there, firmly and vividly impressed. If, then, by virtue of
this power, music may, on the one hand, become the channel of the most
exquisite profaneness in divine worship, so it certainly may, on the
other, contribute wonderfully to its majesty and power of attraction.
And since the music of the field of battle, the military march, and the
roll of the drum, has a character not shared by other kinds, as the song
of the banquet, and of the dance, of the drunkard over his cups, of
the peasant at his plough, of the sailor at sea, of the village maiden
at her home, have each their own stamp and form: so also in the song
of Christian worship, God will regard it as the song of men offering
sacrifice to himself, as having a character inherent in its subject--the
life, sufferings, and death of him who died to take away the sins of the
world--in a word, as a sacrificial chant.

Now that a sacrificial chant has in all ages accompanied the offering
of sacrifice, is a truth to which history, if examined, will be found
to bear abundant testimony. In the sacrifice described by Virgil in the
Æneid,

            “pueri innuptæque puellæ
    Sacra canunt.”

When, at the command of Nehemias, on the return of the captive Jews
from Babylon, sacrifice was solemnly offered after their custom in
Jerusalem, the priests, it is said (2 Machab. i. 30), _sang psalms until
the burnt-offering was wholly consumed_. Nor is it the whole truth to
say that this sacrificial chant has passed over in its more perfect
reality to the Christian Church, but even in the Song of Heaven among the
redeemed, the sacrificial character still continues, a point well worthy
of the notice of those who are so confident that the type of the modern
music is alone that which is found in heaven. “And they [the twenty-four
ancients] sang a new song, saying, Thou art worthy to take the book and
open the seals thereof, for thou wast slain, and hast redeemed us to God
by thy blood, out of every kindred, and tongue, and people, and nation.”

If, then, the ideas which suggest themselves and arise naturally on
reflecting upon what, in the nature of things, would be the type and
character of the Christian sacrificial chant; if these ideas find
themselves absorbed, then expressed, embodied, and brought out into life
and being in the music of the ecclesiastical chant; and if, on the other
hand, they are not to be found in the variety of modern compositions
such as are now in partial use;[141] if it be possible to conceive our
Lord’s apostles, upon the supposition that they could return to the
earth, standing up in any church of Christendom to sing the song of the
Ritual in honor of the Holy Sacrifice, and in company with the celebrant
priest;[142] and if there be something obviously unbecoming in the mere
thought of their taking bass or tenor in such music as that of Mozart’s
or Haydn’s masses, neither of which will be denied; then, I think, it
is not extravagant to infer that the Plain Chant of the Ritual is far
the most adequate fulfilment of that part of the divine idea which
contemplates Christian music as a sacrificial song.


II. _Fitness for the Offices of the Church._

With regard to the fitness of the ecclesiastical chant for the offices of
the church, it must be remarked, that the ideas of the modern musician
touching the use of music in the church are very widely removed from
those of the fathers of the church. In their idea, a church-singer would
somewhat answer to what would be a ballad-singer in the world, inasmuch
as he has a great deal to convey to his hearers in the way of narrative.
Almighty God has been pleased to work many wonderful works, and the
fathers of the church appointed singers for the churches, to celebrate
these works in song, in order that the people who came to worship, or
even the heathens who came as spectators, might hear and learn something
of the works of the Lord Jehovah, into whose house they had come.
What can be more reasonable than this? “_My song shall be of all thy
marvellous works_,” says the Psalmist. But, according to the notions of
a modern musician, if a Brahmin priest, or the Turkish ambassador, were
to come to Mass, and to hear a choral performance, in which the concord
of voices should be most ravishingly beautiful, but in which not a single
one of the marvellous works of God could be understood from the concert,
he is still to consider that he has heard the perfection of Christian
music, and ought, according to them, to go away converted. Out of two so
contradictory notions one must necessarily be chosen as the one which
best answers to the divine idea. And if persons are prepared to say that
the ideas of the fathers are become antiquated, and that they would have
acted differently had they known better, they are certainly called upon
to make this good.

But, in the meantime, it will be both reasonable and pious to acquiesce
in the belief that the fathers acted in conformity with the divine idea,
and under the direction of God’s Holy Spirit, in appointing a song for
the church, in which the marvellous and merciful works of God might be
set forth in a charming, becoming, and perfectly intelligible manner,
for the instruction of the people. A serious person, when he goes into
the house of God, is supposed to go there with the intention of learning
something respecting God, and it is to be supposed that Almighty God
desires to see every church in such a condition as that the people
who frequent it may learn all that they need to know respecting God
and his works. To this use the fathers employed chant, and considered
that it was, by the will of God, to be employed to this end. If any
candid and serious person will take the trouble to examine the language
and sentiments of the Ritual apart from its musical notation, he will
be struck with it as a complete manual of popular theology. He will
see that it is full of the works of God, the knowledge of which is
the food of the faithful soul, particularly among the poor and the
unlearned. Next let him examine its notation in song, as contained in
the Gradual and Antiphonary, and he will be struck with a solemnity,
beauty, and force of melody fitted to convey to the people the words of
inspiration, to which melody was annexed in order that they might be
the better relished, and pass current the more easily. And lastly, let
him consider them, in both these respects, as forming one united whole,
and he cannot refuse to acknowledge the fitness of the chant which the
fathers selected for the purpose they had in view. Musicians must be
equitable enough to abstain from complaining of a work on the score of
its unisonous recitative character, if they will not be at the pains to
understand or to sympathize with the end for which it was formed and
destined. Have the fathers ever troubled themselves to criticise what was
innocent and allowable in the world’s music? Then why should musicians
go out of the way to find imaginary faults with that of which they seem
indisposed to consider either the use or the efficacy? The church chant
was framed generations before they and their art were known; and it has
helped to train up whole nations in the faith, and fulfilled its end to
the unbounded satisfaction of the fathers, who adopted, enlarged, and
consolidated it into the form in which it has come down to us, and may
therefore claim a truce to such criticism.

But here, again, the comparison fails for want of a competitor, and
we are again brought back to the fact that the works of modern art
embrace too small a fraction of the whole Liturgy to be in a condition to
challenge any comparison. And could the comparison be admitted, it would
still remain to insist on the equally certain truth of experience that
the idea of a lengthened and continual recitation of the works of God,
intended to be popularly intelligible, is one unsuited to the employment
on any great scale of even the simplest counterpoint vocal harmonies,
and fundamentally averse to the prevailing use of the canon and fugue of
modern musical science.


RESPECTIVE FITNESS TO PASS AMONG THE PEOPLE AS A CONGREGATIONAL SONG.

Upon this point of the comparison the result, I think, will be tolerably
obvious, if it be admitted that the divine idea contemplates the chant
of the church as designed to pass to some considerable extent among the
people in the form of congregational singing. It will not, however, be
out of place to show briefly on what grounds this assumption rests.

1. Almighty God has created in people a strong love for congregational
psalmody, and has attached to it peculiar feelings possessed of an
influence far more powerful for good than the somewhat isolated pleasure
that the musician feels on hearing beautiful artificial music, inasmuch
as congregational singing is a common voice of prayer and praise; and
being, as Christians, members one of another, in congregational psalmody
we gain a foretaste of heaven, where it will be far more perfect.

2. There are obvious benefits arising from it. It is an union of prayer
and praise, and as such is more powerful with God. It kindles in the
individual a livelier sense of Christian fellowship. It is a voice that
expresses the union of the many members in the one body; many voices, one
sound.

3. The argument from history. The worship of God has always been that of
congregational psalmody; and where trained choirs of singers existed,
their song was always such as to admit of the people at times taking
part with them. This is an undeniable fact of history. “Then sang _Moses
and the children of Israel_ this song unto the Lord” (Exodus xv.) “Then
_sang Israel_ this song, Spring up, O well, sing ye unto it, etc.”
(Numbers xxi. 17). The psalm CXXXV. was composed for the people to sing
the chorus. The Book of Psalms is a kind of historical testimony, in many
of its passages, to the fact of that congregational song to which it so
often exhorts. Fleury, in his _History of the Manners of the Jews and
Christians_ (page 143), acknowledges congregational song as a fact among
both. He cites the testimony of S. Basil, that all the people in his time
sang in the churches--men, women, and children--and he compares their
voices to the waters of the sea. S. Gregory of Nazianzen compares them to
thunder. But it is impossible to conceive such to have been the practice
both of Jews and Christians, without inferring that it was so with the
approbation of Almighty God.

4. The apostles and the fathers of the church have sanctioned it.
“Teaching and admonishing yourselves in psalms and hymns and spiritual
songs, singing with melody in your hearts unto the Lord” (Col. iii. 16).

“Wherefore, since these things are so, let us with the more confidence
give ourselves to the work of song, considering that we have obtained a
great grace of Almighty God, to whom it has been given, in company with
so many and so great saints, the prophets, and the martyrs, to celebrate
the marvellous works of the eternal God.”--_An old author in the first
volume of Gerbert’s Scriptores Musici._

“Quocunque te vertis, arator stivam tenens Alleluia decantat, sudans
messor Psalmis se evocat, et curva attollens vitem falce vinator
aliquid Davidicum cantat. Hæc sunt in provincia nostra carmina, hæc
ut vulgo dicitur amatoriæ cantationes, hic pastorum sibilus, hæc arma
culturæ.”--“Wherever you turn, the laborer at his plough sings an
alleluia; the reaper sweating under his work refreshes himself with a
psalm: the vinedresser in his vineyard will sing a passage from the
Psalmist. These are the songs of our part of the world. These are, as
people say, our love-songs. This is the piping of our shepherds, and
these are the arms of our laborers.”--_S. Jerome, Epist. 17 ad Marcellum._

“Alas!” observes Mgr. Parisis, upon this passage of S. Jerome, “where are
now the families who seek to enliven the often dangerous leisure of long
winter’s evenings with the songs of the Catholic Liturgy; where are the
workshops in which an accent may be heard borrowed from the remembrance
of our divine offices; where are the country parishes which are edified
and rejoiced by the sweet and pious sounds which in the times of S.
Jerome echoed through the fields and vineyards?”[143]

S. Augustine: “As for congregational psalmody, what better employment can
there be for a congregation of people met together, what more beneficial
to themselves, or more holy and well-pleasing to God, I am wholly unable
to conceive?”--_Letter to Januarius, towards the end._

A passage of S. Chrysostom, exhorting the people to psalmody, will be
found elsewhere. It is unnecessary to do more than to refer to the
example of S. Basil and S. Ambrose, encouraging their people in the same
manner; to which may be added a passage from the life of S. Germanus:

    “Pontificis monitis, psallit plebs, clerus et infans.”

                                            _Venantius, vita S. Germani._

Lastly, the _moral_ reason of the thing.

This is expressed by S. Basil in the words: “O wonderful wisdom of the
teacher! who hath contrived that we _should both sing_, and therewith
learn that which is good.”

Now, if it be considered that Providence could not possibly have meant
that the people at large should be formed into singing classes, in order
to be initiated into the mysteries of minim and crotchet, tenor and bass,
and that the _one_ only practical means of bringing them to pick up by
ear the more popular parts of the church chant is by encouraging, as the
system of the Ritual chant does, that clear enunciation of language and
melody which easily fixes itself upon the ear, and which the prevalence
of unison singing gives;[144] it follows at once that the only hope of
procuring general congregational singing in the worship of the Catholic
Church lies in the increased use and zealous propagation of the unison
execution of the Ritual chant. Experience is clear to the point that the
use of the works of modern art, with their rapid movements, elaborate
fugues, scientific combinations of sound, necessarily tends to stifle the
voices of the people, and this is certainly not the will of our merciful
God.

Now, if this be the case, I do not see how we are to avoid the
conclusion, that any extensive use of these works of modern art tends
to the clear frustration and the making void one great and important
popular end, viz., congregational singing, which the divine idea
contemplates in the song of the church, and which, in the song of the
Ritual, is efficiently realized, as the history of the progress of the
faith abundantly testifies. Might it not, then, be well that those who
advocate the continued cultivation of these elaborate works of art should
consider the full meaning of Mardocheus’ prayer, _Ne claudas ora te
canentium_: “Shut not the mouth of them that sing thy praise, O Lord”
(Esther xiii. 17).


RESPECTIVE MORAL INFLUENCE IN THE FORMATION OF CHARACTER.

The influence upon the mind of sounds that habitually surround the ear
is a fact well known to all moralists. “Whosoever,” says Plato, in
his treatise _De Republicâ_, quoted by Gerbert, “is in the habit of
permitting himself to listen habitually to music, and to allow his mind
to be engaged and soothed by it, pouring in the sweet sounds before
alluded to through the ears, as through an orifice, soft, soothing,
luscious, and plaintive, consuming his life in tunes that fascinate
his soul; when he does this to an excess, he then begins to weaken,
to unstring, and to enervate his understanding, until he loses his
courage, and roots all vigor out of the mind.” Cicero observes, “Nihil
tam facile in animos teneros atque molles influere quam varios canendi
sonos, quorum vix dici potest quanta sit vis in utramque partem; namque
et incitat languentes, et languefacit excitatos, et tum remittit animos,
tum contrahit” (lib. ii. _De Legibus_). These remarks seem very much to
have their exemplification at this day in the effeminate tone and temper
of polished society in all the nations of Europe, who seem to be befooled
with their love for pretty airs and opera music. Now, if the fathers,
observing this power of music insensibly to mould and form the character,
and acting, as it is more than pious to believe, under the guidance of
the Holy Spirit, that his divine intention might be fulfilled, designed
the song of the church to form a character very different from that
of the musical voluptuary--one who was to be no cowardly skulker from
the good fight of faith, but the soldier of Jesus Christ, the disciple
patiently taking up his cross and following his crucified Master--those
who do not participate in these ideas ought not to wonder that they
find so little in the church chant with which they can sympathize; but
above all let them at least have the modesty not to blame the fathers of
the church for adapting it, after their wisdom, to a purpose the need
for which they do not comprehend. The historian Fleury has a pertinent
remark: “Je laisse à ceux qui sont savants en musique à examiner si dans
notre Plain Chant il reste encore quelque trace de cette antiquité [he is
speaking of the force of character of the old chant]; car notre musique
moderne semble en être fort eloignée” (Fleury, _Mœurs des Chrétiens_,
page xliii.)--“I leave to those who are versed in music to determine
whether there remain any traces of this ancient vigor in our Plain Chant;
for our modern music seems very far from it.”

Is it a thing to be wondered at if the Christian Israel’s Song of the
Cross should have in it something a little strange to the ear of Babylon?
Or are we to content ourselves with the conclusion that nothing but what
is dainty and nice, nothing but that which is as nearly like the world
as possible, will go down with Christian people? On the contrary, is
it not to be presumed that the multitudes, with whom, in the main, the
Christian teacher’s duty lies, are of that sickly, degenerate tone of
mind that nauseates the strong, peculiar, and supplicating energy of the
ecclesiastical chant?

But on this point the comparison may be drawn in the words of Mgr.
Parisis:

“External to the Ritual chant, that is to say, the Gregorian, or Plain
Chant, little else is now known except the works of modern music, that
is to say, a music essentially favoring what people have agreed to call
_sensualism_. It is this, almost exclusively this, which, under the
austere title of sacred music, is sought to be introduced into our sacred
offices. Now, without desiring to enter deeply into the matter, we need
but few words to point out how grievously it is misplaced.

“Worldly music agitates and seeks to agitate, because the world seeks
its pleasure in stir and change. The church, on the contrary, seeks for
melodies that pray and incline to prayer. The church cannot wish for any
others, since her worship has no other object than prayer.

“In vain will it be said that this is the work of one of the greatest
masters, that it is a scientific and a sublime composition; it may
be all this for the world--it is nothing at all of this for the
church. And especially when this worldly music, by its thrilling
cadences or impassioned character, leads directly to light ideas,
sensual satisfactions, and dangerous recollections, it is not only a
contradiction in the house of God, but a formal scandal.” (_Instruction
Pastorale_, p. 45)

TO BE CONCLUDED NEXT MONTH.


A LEGEND OF THE RHINE.

It is now many years since, during a summer ramble, I found myself at
A----k, now nothing more than a hamlet in population, but retaining
traces of having once been a place of very considerable importance, and
boasting of very remote antiquity. The remains of the wall are, indeed,
locally attributed to the Romans, probably because they are lofty and
very strong, and it is the habit of ignorant people to refer all great
works to that wonderful people. In this instance, however, tradition is
certainly wrong, as the walls bear unmistakable evidence of mediæval
origin, being in parts much enriched with Gothic work.

The little town stands on a plateau enclosed between a bend of the Rhine
and the steep bluff on which the ruins of an old castle stand perched,
equally watching the little burgh below and the counterpart castle on the
opposite side of the Rhine at its next bend.

The eagles that once lived in and sought their prey from that lofty nest
have long since crumbled into dust and have even passed from the memory
of man, leaving for sole representatives the choughs and the crows, and
perhaps a jolly old owl to keep up revelry at night.

The horses that those old knights rode must have been of a sure-footed
breed, for it is hard to conceive how any quadruped, save a goat, could
have mounted the path I scrambled up among the vines; but it is with the
village and the village church that we have to do.

Who built the Rhine churches?

They all, with a few exceptions, are strikingly alike; though varying in
size, number of towers, and many other particulars, they have mostly a
strict resemblance in general conception and detail. To cite an instance:
The cathedral at Coblentz might stand as the type of twenty others;
instead of being individual and standing out alone--an effort of genius
like Cologne, Strasbourg, Notre Dame, Ely, or Winchester--they have all
the same resemblance to one another that a little oak has to a big one.

The church at A----k was no exception. Cathedral it might almost be
called from its great size; but there was no bishop there, and it was
only a parish church! With its three great towers, vast nave, long
aisles, and noble choir, it seemed as if it might well hold all the
population for many miles around, and the extremely small congregation
that were present at the celebration of the High Mass that morning
appeared ridiculously out of proportion. It was a high festival--the
Annunciation--it is therefore to be assumed that the bulk of the
population were there, and the High Mass was at the somewhat early hour
of half-past five!

After the Mass was over, and the last peal of the organ had died away,
and the patter of the last footstep been lost in the distance, as it
still wanted a considerable time to my breakfast hour, I strolled round
the great empty church. There seemed to be nothing of value in it. If
it had ever possessed any of the treasures of art, they had probably
perished or been carried away during the long wars that devastated the
country after the period of the Reformation, for I found nothing worthy
of notice. I had just concluded to leave the church when my eye was
arrested by what I took to be an accident which had happened to the
crucifix on one of the side altars. At first I supposed that it had
received a blow which had nearly broken off the right arm of the figure.
On looking more closely I perceived that it was evidently of great
age, and the arm I supposed to be broken stood out from the cross at a
considerable angle, and hung about half way down the side, the nail by
which it had once been attached still remaining in the hand.

Whilst I was still wondering as to the nature of the accident which had
befallen the quaintly-carved crucifix a quiet and pleasant voice roused
me from my revery.

“I see, sir, that you are examining our curious old crucifix!”

Turning round I recognized the old priest who had sung Mass, and
encouraged by his amiable manner and address, I stated the matter I had
been pondering over, and asked for an explanation.

“There has been no accident,” said he; “the distortion which you notice
in the right arm has existed far beyond the memory of man.

“The figure is carved out of some very hard wood, and all out of a single
block--there being no joining in any part of it.”

Still more astonished, I asked what could have been the motive of
representing the Saviour in so strange an attitude; the more, as the hole
for the nail still remaining in the hand was still to be seen plainly in
the wood, whilst the hand was in the position in which it would have been
had it just struck a blow.

“That is a curious story, and is, in fact, the only legend I know of
connected with this church.

“The crucifix is held in great reverence, and people come from great
distances to pray before it. As I see you are a stranger, perhaps you
will partake of an old man’s breakfast, whilst you listen to him as he
relates the traditional story, which being connected with this church,
where he has grown old, he regards as almost peculiarly his own. Besides,
the story is too long to be listened to either standing or fasting.”

Thanking the good priest for his kind offer, I followed him into the
little presbytery almost adjoining the church, where we were soon seated
on each side of a little table taking off the edge of our appetites with
eggs, coffee, and rolls.

When we had somewhat appeased our craving, the good man commenced, saying:

“The tradition of which I have to speak dates back a long way, and has
at least so much of authenticity about it as attaches to the undoubted
antiquity of the crucifix itself, and to the fact that, for many
generations at least, no other account has been current.

“My grandfather used to tell it to me when an infant on his knee, and
said that he had heard it from his grandfather in the same way.

“In which of the many wars which have scourged this unfortunate land
since the rebel monk Luther brought the curse of religious dissension
upon it, the circumstances which I am about to relate occurred, I am
unable to determine; for the traditions, which agree in all other points,
differ on this.

“On the whole I incline to the one which places these events during
the period of Gustavus Adolphus’ invasion, and attribute them to the
particular band which was led by his lieutenant Oxenstiern, who certainly
did sack the place. This would place it at more than two hundred years
ago, and it certainly is not more recent.

“At that period there lived in A----k a widow and her daughter. They were
very poor, belonging to the peasant class, and supported themselves in
winter by spinning; and when the spring came round, they would go off to
the steep mountain-sides, where they helped to dress the vines or gather
the vintage, according to the season.

“They never went to distant vineyards, because the mother, having in her
youth met with a severe accident, was unable, from its effects, to walk
far. There was also another reason: for Gretchen, who was the prettiest
girl for many miles around, was also the best, and never failed, winter
or summer, to hear Mass and to spend some time in prayer before that very
crucifix which has attracted your attention.

“There was, no doubt, some older tradition about its origin, for it had a
great reputation for sanctity even then; this tradition, whatever it may
have been, seems, however, to have been swallowed up by the overwhelming
interest of the subsequent event, which I am about to relate.

“All accounts agree that when Gretchen first worshipped there the
crucifix had nothing unusual about it to distinguish it from any other,
except its artistic merit.

“The hand was then nailed to the cross. There, however, kneeling in front
of it, wrapped in prayer, this young girl spent all the time she could
spare from the humble duties of her life.

“She milked the cow, the one valuable possession of her mother, who had
the right of common; she washed the clothes, cooked and did the work
about her mother’s house, and acted as her crutch as she climbed the
steep paths of the vineyard--for, in spite of her lameness, she was a
skilful vinedresser--in short, she was all in all to her only parent.

“With all this labor and care Gretchen grew in grace and beauty; and
though so devout, she was as bright and cheerful and winning in her ways
as the most worldly of her young companions.

“Never, however, could she be tempted to go to any of the merry-makings
or harvest-homes or vintage feasts that were held at a distance; her
invariable answer was, ‘My mother cannot walk so far.’

“She had many suitors; and admirers came from a great distance.

“To all Gretchen was equally kind and considerate; but to none did she
show any sort of preference, so that all the youths for many miles on
both sides of the Rhine were pulling caps for her.

“Thus things went on till she was nineteen, when, to the great surprise
of all, she was seen to take up with and give a decided preference to the
attentions of a young stranger who had been in the place only a few weeks.

“The favored youth was a journeyman clockmaker from Nuremberg, who was
going through his year of wandering, and was at the moment settled in the
town, working for the only tradesman in his line of business in the place.

“A----k was then much more populous, as you may well suppose, being able
to support such a trade.

“This youth, whose name was Gotliebe Hunning, was handsome and showy,
wearing his hair in long locks down his back, and spending much of his
earnings in dress. He sung, played the guitar, and was reputed wild,
though no harm could be alleged against him.

“The old folks shook their heads, and deplored that so sweet and modest a
girl as Gretchen should be seen so much with a roisterer like Gotliebe.

“Somehow it had been no sin to sing and be gay like God’s unreasoning
creatures before the sour times of Calvin, Huss, and Luther; but though
their errors had not penetrated here to any great extent, something of
their acid had been imparted to the leaven of life.

“So things were, however, and all the time that Gretchen gave to
pleasure--which was little enough, poor child, for they were very poor
and her mother was very helpless--she spent with this handsome, clever
youth; not that she abandoned her devotion, or was less frequently
prostrated before the crucifix; for indeed, if possible, she was found
there more than ever. Still, the gossips shook their heads and remarked
upon it.

“One would say, ‘Ah! I never trusted that meek manner of hers. I always
knew she would surprise us some day, and here it is! It is always so with
the very good ones!’ ‘Ay, ay,’ her neighbor would say, ‘cat will after
cream! And Eve has left her mark upon the best of them! The girl is a
girl like other young things; but I did hope better things of Gretchen,
so well brought up as she has been!’--thus they ran on.

“Soon, however, it began to be said that Gotliebe was sobering down; he
frequented the tavern less, never danced except with Gretchen, sang less
and worked more.

“He was admitted to be a master of his craft, and when it became known
that he was engaged in all his leisure hours in making a great clock--the
very one the chimes of which you were admiring--for the church, there
was less head-shaking, and more talk about Gretchen’s luck in making so
great a catch. Still he made no change in his showy dress, and indeed
I think that genius, at least in art, often shows itself in that way,
and tradition testifies that he was no mean proficient in the art he
practised, of which indeed we still have proof every hour.

“Then it began to be observed that Gotliebe was frequently in the church
with Gretchen, and had become a regular attendant at Mass. Still, things
went on in the same way and no betrothal was spoken of, until, after the
war had again broken out and seemed to be drifting this way, it suddenly
became known that Gretchen had consented to be married to Gotliebe
without loss of time, and that he was to take a house and her mother was
to move into it.

“In this remote place, far from any of the great avenues of trade--for
vessels usually passed it by, no great roads branching off here, and
there being no steamboats invented--news came doubtfully and seldom, and
war was at the very door at a moment when only distant rumors had reached
A----k.

“However, to return to Gretchen and Gotliebe: You may be sure that what
goes on now went on then, and that all the busybodies were agog as to
what they were to live upon; how she was to be dressed, and who were to
be the bridemaids; but as the world spins round in spite of the flies
that buzz about it, so they went their way regardless of all that was
said about them.

“In the meantime, the rumors grew more frequent and more particular
concerning the cloud of war which was every day drifting nearer and
nearer, until the dark mass seemed ready at any moment to burst upon the
unfortunate village itself.

“Indeed, news came from neighboring towns and villages that they had
been taken and burned by the heretic Swedes, and tales, no doubt often
exaggerated, of the violent and dissolute conduct of Oxenstiern’s
troopers, kept every one in terror.

“Affairs were in this threatening condition when the wedding-morning
came; and, as the story was, though Gretchen had little to spend on
dress, no art and no expense could have produced a lovelier bride than
stood before the altar of the Crucifix that morning. She wore nothing but
a simple dress of white, and a wreath of apple-blossoms, for the trees
were just then in flower.

“The wedding-bells were ringing, and the humble bridal-party had just
reached the house which Gotliebe had taken, when cannon were heard, and a
band of fierce Swedish soldiers rushed into the village.

“The firing proceeded from an attack upon the castle, which still stands
at about a mile from this place, and the invaders of the village were
army followers and a few of the more dissolute of Oxenstiern’s soldiery,
who, encountering the bridal-party, at once interrupted its progress,
treating the bridemaids rudely; and one of them, who threw his arms
around Gretchen, was immediately struck down by Gotliebe, who, as before
said, was a spirited youth.

“One of the invaders, without a moment’s hesitation, struck him lifeless,
and attempted to seize the bride, who, with a shriek, fled and took
refuge in the church.

“Thither Gretchen was pursued by the band; and when after many hours
the troops were withdrawn, and the priest, with a few of the boldest of
his flock, ventured into the sacred edifice, they found the high altar
desecrated, the sacred vessels gone, and other sacrileges committed,
which filled them with horror; but on turning to the altar of the
Crucifix, they found the bride prostrate before it, either in a trance
or ecstasy, with the soldier who had pursued her lying with his skull
broken, and his iron head-piece smashed in as though a sledge-hammer had
struck it, and the arm of the crucifix distorted as you see it now.

“On being questioned, the young widow could only say: ‘God has protected
me!’

“The poor mother only lingered a day or two afterwards, and was borne to
the grave at the same time as the unfortunate Gotliebe.

“Gretchen never knew, or would not say, more than I have repeated of what
had occurred at the altar of the Crucifix. It was unplundered!

“The people, however, all said that God, who had borne the insults and
profanation directed against himself at the high altar, had interposed
when the virtue of a pure virgin was threatened, and had himself, by
the hand of his image, smitten the would-be violator dead, leaving the
distorted arm as an admonition for ever.”

We were both silent after this recital, and for some moments toyed with
the fragments of our breakfast.

At length, raising my head, I asked: “And you, father--do you believe
this tale?”

A sweet, soft smile hovered about his lips, as he replied: “Nothing in
which the goodness of God is instanced is hard for me to believe! He is
less ready to show his anger, so that, though we live in the midst of his
wonders, we have got so used to them that it is said that there are those
who deny his existence.”

This was said as if to himself. Then, speaking more collectedly, he
continued:

“You English would rather believe in ghosts and devils than in the good
God. Whence do you suppose they derive their existence and their power?”

I assured him that I was of the same faith as himself, and only asked
because I wished to have the opinion of a cultivated man on the subject
of this particular legend, which had greatly interested me, and of which
there remained so singular an evidence.

After a moment’s pause, he said:

“Think of the facts yourself, sir. This tradition, which is certainly
very old, is either true in its main features or it was made to fit the
crucifix. Assume this last to be the case, how did so singular an image
come into existence? Made to hang the tradition upon? Scarcely in so
small a community, where all must have known each other. Besides, it is a
work of art, and I have been told that as such it is of rare merit. Such
a work could hardly have been produced for an unworthy object, and would
have been difficult to substitute for one of inferior workmanship. If I
called it a legend, it is because it has an air of romance about it. But
God is good, and does what he pleases!”

I had nothing more to say; so I asked what had become of Gretchen, and
was told that she had been taken as a lay sister in the small convent at
the head of the valley, whence she had continued, to the very day of her
death, to come and pray at the foot of the crucifix, where in fact she
was at last found dead, in her eighty-seventh year, and that during the
whole time she had been regarded as a saint.

“The altar,” he resumed, “is universally regarded with great reverence,
and is always spoken of as the Altar of Succor to a very considerable
distance up and down the Rhine, and the unusual number of models in wax
or wood which you see hanging before it indicate how special favors are
reputed to have been granted there.”

“I noticed them,” I replied, “when first I entered Belgium, where I saw
many. I was much struck with what I thought the singular idea of offering
a leg in wax to obtain the cure of lameness, an eye for blindness, and so
on.”

“I perceive, sir,” said the good priest, “that you have fallen into the
error of mistaking cause for effect. These models and tokens are in no
case hung before the altar until after the cure prayed for has been
effected, when it is the pious custom of the people to commemorate the
blessing they have received--much as one out of the ten lepers cured by
our Lord did--by showing gratitude, that all may see what he has done for
them.

“Some of these emblems,” continued he, “have curious histories attached
to them, whose events have occurred under my own eye.

“I will give you one instance only, not to be tedious.

“Did you notice a small bottle amongst the objects we speak of?”

I acknowledged that I had not done so, having paid little attention to
them.

“Well, there is one there at all events, which I myself attached to the
bunch, under the following circumstances:

“Some years ago, two brothers, both young men, were leaving a wharf
some miles up the river, at twilight. The steamer having landed its
passengers, was on the point of starting, when the elder of the two
remonstrated with his brother upon the condition in which he found him;
in fact, the youth was addicted to drinking, and gave much trouble to his
elder brother, who was a remarkably steady young man. I will not mention
their names, as both are living; but for convenience will call the elder
Fritz and the younger Carl.

“Carl was given to be quarrelsome in his cups, and on this occasion was
more so than usual, and began to struggle with his brother, who wanted to
get him on board, as the boat was in the act of starting; in doing so,
however, he lost his balance, and they fell into the water together.

“Carl, with the luck which is proverbially attributed to drunkards, was
almost immediately pulled out by those who had seen the accident. Fritz,
however, appeared to have been carried away by the current, all search
proving in vain.

“Carl, now completely sobered, was terribly afflicted, as he was deeply
attached to his brother, and remembering the traditional sanctity of the
Altar of Succor, he started off and walked all night, and, wet as he
was, threw himself at the foot of the altar. There he remained for some
hours; whilst prostrate there, another man came in and knelt beside him.

“It is always rather dark at that side altar, which, being situated in
the north aisle, was darker still at that hour of the morning.

“I had observed the prostrate man soon after the church had been opened
in the morning. When next I passed I saw him prostrate still, with
another kneeling beside him.

“Thinking there might be something wrong, I went up, and stooping, laid
my hand upon his shoulder; he was wet, and a shiver ran through him at
my touch. To my surprise I saw that there was a pool of water round the
kneeling man.

“At my touch the man raised himself, exclaiming, as he did so, ‘Yes, I
did it; but I did not mean it! Take me if you will!’

“Before I could explain, the other rose to his feet, exclaiming, in a
voice of great emotion, ‘Carl!’ In an instant the brothers were in each
other’s arms, and explanations were made. It appears that Fritz went down
at once, and, being unable to swim, was borne down for some distance
under water. On coming to the surface his head came in contact with some
substance which he instinctively grasped; it was wood, and was large
enough to enable him to keep his head above water. He drifted down the
current till, almost dead with cold, he found himself cast ashore at a
bend of the river.

“He was glad to find a cottage door open, where he was welcomed to warm
himself and to share the peasants’ humble meal. There also he learned
that he was not far from A----k and the wonderful Altar of Succor, and
at once resolved to come here, moved by gratitude for his escape, and
anxiety for his brother, of whose fate he was of course ignorant.

“A year passed, and one morning Carl called upon me, and I then fully
learned the particulars I have just related.

“At his request I attached the small bottle to the other tokens, in
gratitude, as he said, for the victory there granted to him over the evil
habit which must, otherwise, have rendered his life a curse.

“He also left a sum of money for the poor, and told me that his brother
and himself were both married, and living as prosperous merchants at a
considerable town lower down the Rhine.

“Go thou and do likewise!” added the good priest, laughing as we shook
hands at parting.


WHY NOT?

    I knelt before the altar-rail
      One holy festal morning,
    As to and fro the sexton moved,
      The holy place adorning.

    Now vases, bright with ruby hues,
      He places on the altar,
    And now the flowers! O gorgeous sight!
      “Good sexton,” I did falter,

    “But for one instant let me smell
      Those odors which, like vapor
    From censer, rising, lift--” “Smell! marm--
      They’re only made o’ paper!”

    And now the golden candlesticks,
      With candles like to rockets,
    Lighting afar, quoth he: “Tin, marm:
      The candles are in the sockets!”

    Yet there I see a hundred more
      With blessed tapers burning.
    O happy bees! Lo! here he comes,
      From sacristy returning,

    With basket filled with precious load
      Of many more for decking
    The candelabra round the “throne.”
      Said I, his pathway checking:

    “Oh! lift for me the basket-lid;
      I’ll only humbly peer in
    And see the blessed wax!” “Sakes! marm
      Not wax, but only stearine!”

    Oh! sparkle brightly, olive star,
      In lamp inscribed with Latin:
    “Sweet oil! whose unction--” “Guess not, marm:
      The gas is turned on that ’un!”

    “Devotion dims my pious view,
      And speech within me throttles,
    To see those sacred relics--” “Them?
      Them’s ’pothecary bottles!”

    “Now don’t you go a-pokin’ round
      Your nose to find ‘abuses’;
    We’ll let you know we has these things
      Because--because we chooses!”


ON THE WAY TO LOURDES.

CONCLUDED.

Leaving Lectoure, the railway keeps along the valley of the Gers, a
branch of the Garonne several shades yellower than the Tiber. The sides
of the road are covered with _genêt_, or broom, loaded with yellow
blossoms--the emblem of the Plantagenets, to whom this part of France
was once subject. It is not long before we come to Mount St. Cricq at
the left, where, in the IVth century, the glorious S. Oren, the apostle
of the country, demolished a temple of Apollo-Belen, and set up an altar
to the only true and uncreated Light under the invocation of S. Quiricus
(S. Cyr) and S. Julitta. The church is now gone. A windmill stands near
its site, the only prominent object on the hill, which is as bald and
parched as if Apollo had claimed it for his own again.

Auch now comes in sight, built on a height, and crowned with the towers
of its noble cathedral. The sides of the hill are covered with houses,
whose arched galleries are open to the sun and pure mountain air, and
gay with vines and flowers. The terraces before them look like hanging
gardens, which give a charming freshness to the picturesque old city. The
Gers flows along at the foot of the hill as quietly as when Fortunatus
sang of its sluggishness centuries ago. We cross it, and gain access to
the city by one of the long, narrow, steep, sunless staircases of stone,
called _pousterles_, which remind us of Naples and Perugia. The place,
in fact, is quite Italian in its whole aspect. As we ascend one of these
flights we see, away up at the top, a large iron cross with all the
emblems of the Passion in the centre of the landing-place, and we feel as
if we were ascending some _Calvaire_. There is a broad modern staircase,
much more grand and elegant, but not so interesting, dignified by the
imposing term of _escalier monumental_, which takes one up a more gradual
and less weary way of two hundred and thirty-two steps--something rather
formidable, however, for the fat and scant o’ breath!

These old cities, built on heights for greater security, were powerful
holds in the Middle Ages, and all have their history. Their towers are
all scarred over with fearful tragedies, relieved here and there by some
flower of sweet romance or saintly legend.

Auch was in ancient times called Climberris, the stronghold of the
_Ausci_, who dwelt here before the Roman conquest--descendants of the
Iberians from the Caucasian regions, who left their country and settled
in Spain and this side of the Pyrenees. The chief city of the most
civilized people of the country, a Roman settlement under the Cæsars,
the most important place in Novempopulania, the capital of the Counts
of Fezensac and Armagnac in the Middle Ages, and a wealthy influential
see, whose archbishops took part in all the great movements of the
day, Auch was from early times a place of no small importance, however
insignificant now.

When Cæsar’s lieutenant, Publius Crassus, took possession of the country,
he established a Roman colony on the banks of the Algersius, and the
Ausci, descending from their heights, it became so flourishing that
it received the imperial name of Augusta Auscorum, and was one of the
few cities of the land to which the Roman emperors accorded the Latin
right--that is, the power of governing itself. In the year 211, Caracalla
allowed it the privilege of having a forum, gymnasium, theatre, baths,
etc., and it became the seat of a senate, the head of which was a Roman
officer called _comes_. Roman domination was at first submitted to
reluctantly, but it proved an advantage to the city. Literature and the
arts were cultivated with success, the people enriched by new sources of
industry, sumptuous villas were built in the environs, and roads opened
to Toulouse and various parts of Novempopulania. The pre-eminence of the
schools here is evident from the poet Ausonius, tutor of the Emperor
Gratian, who spent part of his youth at Auch, pursuing his studies under
Staphylius and Arborius, both of whom he eulogizes for their learning.
Arborius, the brother of Ausonius’ mother, was the son of an astrologer,
from a distant part of Gaul, who married a lady of rank in this country
and settled here. He taught rhetoric, not only at Auch, but at Toulouse,
where he became the confidential friend of Constantine’s brothers, then
in a kind of exile. This led to his fortune. The emperor afterward called
him to Constantinople, where he was loaded with riches and honors.

Ausonius’ friend, Eutropius, a celebrated Latin author who held offices
under Julian the Apostate, had a seat in the vicinity of Auch.

The women, too, of this country were inspired with a taste for mental
cultivation, as is shown by Sylvia, sister of the illustrious Rufinus
of Elusa, one of the best-versed women of her day in Greek literature,
and who rivalled the noble Roman matrons of the time of S. Jerome in her
knowledge of sacred science. Sylvia died at Brescia, where her name is
still honored, while her native land has nearly forgotten her memory.

The prosperity of Auch was put an end to in the Vth century by the
invasion of the Goths and Vandals, and the city was only saved from
destruction by the mediation of S. Oren, its bishop. In the VIIIth
century the country was overrun by the Moors, who destroyed the whole
city, with the exception of a faubourg still known, after more than a
thousand years, as the Place de la Maure.

Two centuries after, the Counts of Armagnac built a castle on the summit
of the hill where stood the ancient Climberris, and gathered their
vassals around them. Here they held a brilliant court which attracted
gallant knights and the gayest troubadours of the south. We read that
one of the counts, whose stout heart yielded for a time to the softening
influences of the poetic muse, went to Toulouse to breathe out his tender
lays at the feet of a certain fair lady, Lombarda, but prudence getting
the better of his gallantry, he abruptly brought them to an end, and
hurried back to the defence of his castle, suddenly besieged by the enemy.

It was also in the Xth century Auch became a metropolitan see, which
was so generously endowed by the barons of the country that it became
one of the wealthiest and most powerful in the kingdom. Its archbishops
were to the great lords of the province what the popes then were to
the sovereigns of Europe. They were the lords spiritual, not only of
Novempopulania, but the two Navarres. Kings of England wrote them to
secure their influence, which was so great that there was a rivalry among
the leading families desirous of securing the see for their children.
When the Counts of Armagnac transferred their capital to Lectoure, the
archbishops became sole lords of the city, and in them centred its
history from that time. They bore the proudest names in the land, and
maintained all the state to which their birth and the importance of their
office entitled them. We read that when they came to take possession
of their see, the Baron de Montaut, at the head of all the neighboring
gentry, met them at the entrance to the city, and with bared head and
knee took the archbishop’s mule by the bridle and led him to the castle.
This was in accordance with the customs of feudal times, when vassals
offered homage to their liege lords by bending the bared knee to the
ground, an _extension_, we suppose, of the Oriental practice of baring
the feet. We learn from Andres de Poça, in his work, _De la Antigua Lenga
y Comarcas de las Españas_, that the lords of Biscay took their oaths of
fealty in the sanctuary in this way--a custom derived, perhaps, from the
ancient Cantabrians, who, as Strabo tells us, went to battle with one
foot shod and the other bare, reminding one of the touching nursery rhyme
of “My son John,” or the French ditty which is more to the point:

    “Un pied chaussé et l’autre nu,
    Pauvre soldat, que feras-tu?”

There were two other bishops in the south of France who received a
similar mark of homage at taking possession of their sees. At Lectoure,
it was the Seigneur de Castelnau, and at Cahors the Baron de Ceissac,
whose duty it was to offer it. At Auch, the Baron de Montaut afterwards
served the archbishop at dinner and received the silver plate on the
table as his perquisite. Dom Brugelles, in his Chronicles of the diocese,
gives a ludicrous account of the disappointment of a Baron of Montaut at
the arrival of a cardinal-archbishop of simple habits, whose service was
of glass, though of fine workmanship, which so disappointed the baron
that he forgot his loyalty and smashed all the dishes, to the great
disgust of the cardinal, who left the city and never returned.

One of the Archbishops of Auch, Geraud de Labarthe, went with Richard
the Lion-Hearted to the Holy Land, and had command of an armament. He
knew also, it seems, how to wield his spiritual weapons, for on the way
he stopped in Sicily for a theological encounter with the celebrated
abbot Joachim, in which he proved himself worthy of his descent from the
Lords of the Four Valleys. He died in the Holy Land in 1191, leaving a
foundation for the repose of his mother’s soul, a touching incident in
the life of this valorous churchman.

Another archbishop established the Truce of God in his province, issued
indulgences to encourage his people to go to the aid of the Spanish in
their crusade against the Moors, and finally placed himself at the head
of those who responded to his appeal and went to the assistance of Don
Alfonso of Aragon, where he distinguished himself by his bravery and
religious zeal.

Other prelates have a simpler record which it is pleasant to come upon
in such rude times. Of one we read he granted an indulgence of three days
to all who should bow the head at hearing the Holy Name of Jesus. This
was in 1383, when S. Bernardin of Sienna, the great propagator of this
devotion, was still a child.

In the XIVth century we find Cardinal Philip d’Alençon, of the blood
royal of France, among the archbishops of Auch. He died in Rome in
the odor of sanctity, and was buried in the church of Santa Maria in
Trastevere, where his beautiful Gothic tomb--a _chef-d’œuvre_ of the
XIVth century--may be seen in the left transept. In the arch is a fresco
of the martyrdom of his patron, S. Philip, who was crucified with his
head downward, like S. Peter; and beneath lies the cardinal on his tomb,
sculptured in marble, with hands folded in eternal prayer. Above are
his cardinal’s hat and the _fleurs-de-lis_ of France, and below is the
epitaph:

    “Francorum genitus Regia de stirpe Philippus
    Alenconiadus Ostiæ titulatus ab urbe
    Ecclesiæ cardo, tanta virtute reluxit
    Ut sua supplicibus cumulentur marmora votis.”

This prelate was the nephew and godson of Philippe le Bel, the destroyer
of the Knights-Templars and persecutor of Pope Boniface VIII., who
merited the stigma Dante casts on him in his _Purgatorio_:

    “Lo! the flower-de-luce
    Enters Alagna: in his vicar, Christ
    Himself a captive, and his mockery
    Acted again. Lo! to his holy lip
    The vinegar and gall once more applied,
    And he ’twixt living robbers doomed to bleed.”

“When, O Lord! shall I behold that vengeance accomplished which, being
already determined in thy secret judgment, thy retributive justice even
now contemplates with delight?” continues the spirit met by the Divine
Poet in the place of expiation--words that might be echoed in these days,
when

    “The new Pilate, of whose cruelty
    Such violence cannot fill the measure up,
    With no decree to sanction, pushes on
    Into the temple his yet eager sails.”

We are here reminded it was at Auch all the Knights-Templars of Bigorre,
with their commander, Bernard de Montagu, were executed. M. Martin,
in his _History of France_, observes that all the traditions of this
region are favorable to the Templars. There is not one that is not to
their credit. The old saying, “Drink like a Templar,” has no echo in the
mountains of Bigorre. Many of their churches are still standing, objects
of interest to the archæologist, and of devotion to the pious. There
are six or seven skulls shown at Gavarnie, said to be of the martyred
Templars, and every year, on the anniversary of the destruction of the
Order, a knight armed from top to toe, and wearing the great white mantle
of the Order, appears in the churchyard and cries three times: “Who will
defend the Holy Temple? Who will deliver the Sepulchre of the Lord?” Then
the seven heads come to life and reply: “No one! no one! The Temple is
destroyed!” How earnestly these unfortunate knights begged to be tried
by the Inquisition is well known. They felt there was some chance for
justice at a tribunal in which there was a religious element.

A Cardinal d’Armagnac was Archbishop of Auch when the tragedy of Rodèle
took place, which rivals that of the Torre della Fame at Pisa in horror.
Geraud, brother of Count Bernard VII. of Armagnac, having married his son
to Margaret of Comminges, took up arms against her for forsaking her
youthful husband and withdrawing to the castle of Muret. Count Bernard
took advantage of this to make war on Geraud for holding the county of
Pardiac, on which he himself had claims, and pursued his brother from
one castle to another. Finally taking him captive, he carried him to
the fortress of Rodèle, and threw him into a deep pit, where he died of
hunger and cold in four or five days.

Geraud’s two sons, John and Guilhem, alarmed at his captivity, but
unaware of his fate, were induced to come to Auch to implore the clemency
of their ferocious uncle, and on Good Friday, 1403, the Count de l’Isle
Jourdain, kneeling with the poor children at his feet, besought him to
pardon them, in memory of the Divine Passion that day celebrated; but
neither the day nor the helplessness of the children, so touchingly
alluded to by their advocate, softened the inflexible count. He had them
imprisoned in the castle of Lavardens, and shortly after, Guilhem, a
lad of barely fifteen, was tied to a horse and taken to the fortress of
Rodèle. There he was shown the horrible pit into which his father had
been let down alive to incur so fearful a death. The poor boy looked into
the fatal pit, fell senseless to the ground, and was never restored to
life. His brother John, the unhappy husband of the faithless Margaret of
Comminges, was carried to the castle of Brugens, where horrid tortures
awaited him. He had only escaped from the hatred of his wife to fall into
the hands of Bonne de Berri, Count Bernard’s wife, a woman of insatiable
ambition and relentless purpose. This new Frédégonde put his eyes out by
passing a red-hot brazier before them, and then, remembering the strength
God gave the blind Samson to take vengeance on his enemies, she had him
thrown into a deep moat, where he died of hunger.

Never was there a family that reflected more faithfully than the
Armagnacs all the vices and defects as well as the virtues of the Middle
Ages. Its history contains every element to fix the attention, with
its tragedies, its examples of brutal power, its prodigies of valor
and heroism, its struggles in the cause of liberty, and, finally, in
its marvels of faith. Religious influence sooner or later asserted its
triumph in the heart. Many of the counts laid aside their armor for the
cowl and scapular, and atoned for their sins in the cloister. They were
benefactors to the Church, they founded monasteries, they fought in the
holy wars. We find them with Godfrey of Bouillon under the walls of
Jerusalem, and fighting against the Moors with the Kings of Castile and
Aragon. Among the most renowned members of the race, we must not forget
Count John I., a native of Auch, whose valor placed him on a level with
Du Guesclin, the greatest captain of the age. For a time they fought on
the same side, but they met as opponents on the plain of Navarrete, where
Count John fought for Don Pedro and greatly contributed to the victory.
Du Guesclin was taken prisoner. For more than thirty years Count John was
one of the strongest supporters of the King of France. After the battle
of Crécy, he stopped the tide of English invasion, and when the Black
Prince was covering Aquitaine with blood and ruins in 1355, he alone
ventured to resist him and obstruct his victorious march.

After the defeat at Poitiers, he veiled the humiliation of the king
with the splendor of his munificence. He sent the king all kinds of
provisions, as well as silver utensils, for his table. He convoked the
Etats-Généraux to organize forces to avert calamities that threatened
the country. He fought beside the Duke of Anjou and Du Guesclin in the
immortal campaigns of 1369 and 1370. This was the period in which the
grandeur of the house of Armagnac culminated. John I. married Reine
de Got, niece of Pope Clement V., whom Dante thrusts lower than Simon
Magus. She was buried in the choir of the Cordeliers at Auch, now,
alas! a granary. The count’s second wife was Beatrice de Clermont,
great-granddaughter of S. Louis IX., king of France, and one of his
daughters married the brother of Charles V., and the other the oldest son
of Don Pedro of Aragon.

Such were the royal pretensions of this great house. Descended from the
Merovingian race of kings through Sanche Mitarra, the terrible scourge
of the Moors, who lies buried at S. Oren’s Priory, founded by the first
Count of Armagnac, on the banks of the Gers, the Counts of Auch, as they
were sometimes called, bore themselves right royally. They acknowledged
no suzerain. They were the first to call themselves counts _by the grace
of God_, a formula then used to express the divine right, but in the
sense of S. Paul and of the Middle Ages, which was simply acknowledging
that all power comes from God, and that the right of exercising it has
for its true source not the force of arms, but in God alone. We must
come down to the XVth century to find the jealous susceptibility that
only interpreted, in the sense of absolute independence of all human
power, such expressions as _Dei gratiâ_; _per Dei gratiam_; _Dei dono_,
etc., which had been used with the sole intention of expressing a truth
of the Christian faith, a profound sentiment of subordination to divine
authority. This intention is nowhere so explicit as in the legend on the
ancient money of Béarn, where its rulers used almost the words of the
apostle: _Gratia autem Dei sumus id quod sumus_.

Charles VII. thought it worth while to forbid John IV. of Armagnac, in
1442, the use of such formulas. Seven years after, he obliged the Dukes
of Burgundy to declare they bore no prejudice to the crown of France.
Louis XI. vainly tried to prevent the Duke of Brittany from using them.
Since that time it has been claimed as the exclusive right of sovereigns.
Bishops, however, retain the formula _Dei gratia_ in their public acts of
diocesan administration, with the addition: _et apostolicæ sedis_, which
dates from the end of the XIIIth century only.

It was the independence and royal pretensions of such great vassals that
determined the kings of France to destroy their power. Under the sons
of Philip le Bel began the great struggle between the crown and the
feudal aristocracy. In order to incorporate their provinces with the
royal domains, they availed themselves of every pretext to crush them,
and such pretexts were by no means wanting in the case of the Armagnacs,
where they could claim the necessity of protecting the eternal laws
on which are based all family and social rights and the principles of
true religion. History is full of the cruelty of the last counts, and
forgets all it could offer by way of contrast. It forgets to speak of
Count John III., who put an end to the brigandage of the great bands
in southern France, and went to find a premature death under the walls
of Alessandria, in an expedition too chivalrous not to be glorious. It
insists on the brutal ferocity and excessive ambition of Bernard VII.,
the great constable, and passes over all that could palliate his offences
in so rude an age--his fine qualities, his zeal for the maintenance of
legitimate authority, and his interest in the welfare of the Church.
It lays bare the criminal passion of Count John V., and forgets his
repentance and reparation, as well as the holy austerities of Isabella in
the obscure cell of a Spanish monastery, where she effaced the scandal
she had given the world.

Count John was the last real lord of Armagnac. He filled up the cup
of wrath, and his humiliations and frightful death, the long, unjust
captivity of his brother Charles, the scaffold on which perished Jacques
de Nemours, and the abjection into which his children were plunged, are
fearful examples of divine retribution.

The spoils of the counts of Armagnac were given as a dowry to Margaret
of Valois when she married Henry II. of Navarre, who, as well as her
first husband, the Duc d’Alençon, descended from the Armagnacs. Henry and
Margaret made their solemn entry into Auch in 1527, and the latter, as
Countess of Armagnac, took her seat as honorary canon in the cathedral.
Her arms are still over the first stall at the left, beneath the lion
rampant of the Armagnacs--a stall assigned those lords as lay canons, in
the time of Bernard III., who was the first to pay homage to S. Mary of
Auch.

Margaret’s grandson, Henry IV., united the title of Armagnac to the crown
of France, and Louis XIV., on his way from St. Jean-de-Luz, where he was
married to Maria Theresa, the Infanta of Spain, passed through Auch, and,
attending divine service in the cathedral, took his seat in the choir as
Count of Armagnac.

Napoleon III. accepted the title of honorary canon of this church.

The cathedral at Auch is remarkable for the stained glass windows of
the time of the Renaissance, which Catherine de Medicis wished to carry
off to Paris, and the one hundred and thirteen stalls of the choir, the
wonderful carvings of which rival those of Amiens. Napoleon I., on his
return from Spain, admired and coveted these beautiful stalls, and wished
to remove the old rood-loft which concealed them from the public. He
endowed the church with an annual sum, and expressed his regret so fair
a _Sposa_ should be bereaved of its lord--the hierarchy not being fully
restored in France at that time.

The canons of the cathedral were formerly required to be _nobilis
sanguine vel litteris_--noble of birth or distinguished in letters.
That they keep up to their standard in learning seems evident from
the reputation of one of their number, the savant Abbé Canéto, one of
the most distinguished archæologists of the country, whose works are
indispensable to the visitor to Auch and the surrounding places.

It is quite impressive to see these venerable canons seated in their
carved stalls, worthy of princes, singing the divine Office. Their capes,
we noticed, are trimmed with ermine, probably a mark of their dignity.
To wear furs of any kind was in the Middle Ages an indication of rank,
or, at least, wealth. The English Parliament made a statute in 1334
forbidding all persons wearing furs that had not an income of one hundred
pounds a year.

In this church is the altar of Notre Dame d’Auch, the oldest shrine
of the Virgin in the province, first set up at ancient Elusa by S.
Saturninus, the Apostle of Toulouse, and brought here by S. Taurin in the
IVth century, when that place was destroyed by the barbarians.

The similarity of S. Saturninus’ devotion to that of the present day
is remarkable--devotion to Mary and the Chair of Peter. Everywhere he
erected churches in their honor, as at Elusa, now the town of Eauze.
At Auch he dedicated a church to the Prince of the Apostles, where now
stands the little church of S. Pierre, on the other side of the Gers,
once burned down by the Huguenots.

The paintings of the Stations of the Cross in the cathedral were given by
a poor servant girl, whose heart at the hour of death turned towards the
sanctuary where she had so often experienced the benefit of meditating
on the Sacred Passion that she was desirous of inciting others to so
salutary a devotion.

In one of the chapels is a monument to the memory of M. d’Etigny, whose
statue is on the public promenade--the last Intendant of the province,
who employed a part of his immense fortune in building the fine roads
that lead to the watering-places in the Pyrenees, which have added so
much to the prosperity of the country. But he was one of those _cui bono_
men who always sacrifice the picturesque and the interesting on some
plea of public utility. He destroyed the mediæval character of the city,
with its narrow streets, curious overhanging houses--of which a few
specimens are left--and ancient walls with low arched gateways, made when
mules alone were used for bringing in merchandise. When any sacrifice
is to be made, why must it always fall on what appeals to the eye and
the imagination? Why must some people insist on effacing the venerable
records of past ages to make room for their own utilitarian views? There
are too many of such palimpsests. Is not the world large enough for all
human tastes to find room to express themselves?

We had, however, no reason to grumble at M. d’Etigny’s fine roads among
the mountains, which saved us, in many instances, from being transported
like the ancient merchandise of Auch, and we nearly forgot his enormities
when we found ourselves at Bagnères-de-Luchon under the shade of the fine
trees he planted in the Cours d’Etigny, where tourists and invalids love
to gather in the evening.

M. d’Etigny also took an interest in the religious prosperity of
the country. On the corner-stone of a church at Vic Fezensac is the
inscription: _Dominus d’Etigny me posuit_, 1760. This church was built
by Père Pascal, a Franciscan, out of the ruins of the old castle of the
Counts of Fezensac, which he obtained permission to use in spite of the
town authorities, by applying to Mme. de Pompadour, then all-powerful
at court. Do not suppose the good friar paid the least homage to
wickedness in high places by so doing. On the contrary, he boldly began
his petition: “Madame, redeem your sins by your alms.” Instead of taking
offence, the duchess profited by the counsel. The _père_, returning
from Auch with the royal permission, met some of his opponents, wholly
unsuspicious of the truth, to whose pleasantries he replied: “Let me
pass. I am exhausted, for I carry in my cowl the ruins of the castle of
Vic.”

Auch in those days was only lighted by the lamps that hung before the
niches of the Virgin, and the only night-watchman up to the last century
was the crier, who went about the streets at midnight calling aloud on
the people to be mindful of their soul’s salvation and pray for the
dead. This practice was called the _miseremini_, because the crier
sometimes made use of the words of Job sung in the Mass for the Dead:
_Miseremini, miseremini mei, vos saltem amici mei, quia manus Domini
tetigit me_--“Have pity on me, have pity on me, O ye my friends! for the
hand of the Lord hath touched me.” It was also called the Reveillé, from
the beginning of the verses he sometimes chanted:

    “Réveille-toi, peuple Chrétien,
    Réveille-toi, c’est pour ton bien.
    Quitte ton lit, prend tes habits,
    Pense à la mort de Jésus Christ.
    A la mort, à la mort, il faut tous venir,
    Tout doit enfin finir.

    Quand de ce monde tu partiras,
    Rien qu’un linceul n’emporteras
    Ton corps sera mangé des vers
    Et peut-être ton âme aux enfers.
    A la mort, à la mort, etc.

    Tu passeras le long d’un bois,
    Là tu trouveras une croix,
    Sur cette croix il y a un écrit
    C’est le doux nom de Jésus Christ,
    A la mort, à la mort, etc.”

This crier acted the part of a policeman, keeping an eye on the
evil-doer, and watching over the safety of the town. If he discovered a
door ajar, he entered and aroused the inmates. A startling apparition
he must have been to the offenders of the law. He wore a death’s head
and cross-bones embroidered before and behind, and carried a small bell
in his hand, which he rang from time to time as he passed through
the narrow streets with his lugubrious cry. Of course he was a public
functionary of importance. He figured in full costume in the great
religious processions and took a part in all the public festivities.

On the sunny terraces of Auch grow the seedless pears which have been so
renowned from time immemorial that they have their place in the annals of
the city. We have fully tested the qualities of these unrivalled pears,
and can sincerely echo all that has been said in their praise. Duchesne,
the physician of Henry IV., an empiric of the school of Paracelsus, and a
famous person in his day, does not forget in his _Diæteticon_ to mention
them among the most famous productions of his country. He places them in
the first rank, and those of Tours in the second. According to him, they
originated in the town of Crustumerium in Italy, and their name, derived
therefrom, was softened by the Italians into Cristiano, whence that
of Bon Chrétien, as they are sometimes called, though not their right
name. Others call them Pompéienne, because, as they say, introduced by
Pompidian, an ancient bishop of Eauze. But everybody with a proper sense
of the case will stoutly attribute them, in accordance with the popular
tradition, to the great S. Oren, whose blessing gave them their rare
qualities, especially the peculiarity of being seedless when the trees
grow within the limit of the city, though this is by no means the case
with those that grow in the environs.

Dom Brugelles, a Benedictine of last century, mentions this peculiarity
in his Chronicles of the diocese, and says they were in such demand in
his time as to be worth sometimes thirty-six francs a dozen.

Père Aubéry, in his Latin poem of _Augusta Auscorum_, is enthusiastic in
their praise: “How I love the aspect of these fair gardens enclosed among
sumptuous dwellings! What a wealth of flowers! And the trees bear a fruit
still more worthy of your admiration. The Pompéienne pear, delicious as
the ambrosia of the gods, was reserved for the soil of this city alone.
The trees without its walls, even those that grow close to its trenches,
do not produce the like. This most glorious of fruit is an inappreciable
gift of heaven and earth, which is praised throughout the kingdom and
sold at a great price in distant lands.[145]

“The pears of the fertile gardens of Touraine cannot be compared to
those whose old name of Pompéienne is now lost in that of Bon Chrétien.
The pears at Tours are as inferior to those of Auch as other honey in
sweetness to that of Hybla. Nay, should the gods themselves by chance
know of these trees, should they taste of these Auscitain pears so
delicious to the palate, they would despise the dishes served at their
celestial banquets--yes, scorn the flowing nectar and sweet ambrosia that
feed their immortality.

“And as the admirable name of Bon Chrétien is only given the pears that
grow in the gardens of the city, and belongs not to those produced
elsewhere; as it is only within these walls they acquire so agreeable
and appetizing a flavor, their name is a presage that the inhabitants
shall never be infected by the contagion and venom of heresy--a scourge
that has attacked almost all the towns of Armagnac--and that the Mother
of Christ, patroness of Auch, by averting this poison, shall keep them
faithful to the rites of their ancestors, and fill them with eternal love
for the ancient religion.”

M. Lafforgue, in his _History of Auch_, says these pears are so
prized that they are often presented to princes, governors, and other
distinguished characters. When Elizabeth Farnese, Queen of Spain, passed
through Auch on her way to join her husband Philip V., in Nov., 1714,
the city consuls offered her, as they had done the Dukes of Berry and
Burgundy in 1701, some of the _poires d’Auch_. Twenty dozen, which cost
one hundred and forty-three livres, were presented her in straw boxes
made by the Ursuline nuns.[146]

When Mr. Laplagne, a native of this part of the country, and Minister of
Finance under Louis Philippe, boasted in M. Guizot’s presence, with true
Gascon expansiveness, of the seedless pears that grow on the terraces of
Auch, the latter, with the distrust of certain great minds, expressed
some incredulity. M. Laplagne resolved to convince the President of
the Council publicly, and procured at some expense an enormous pear,
ripened on the very terrace which a century before had produced the fruit
so vaunted by Dom Brugelles. Fifty guests were invited to witness the
result. They assembled around the table, in the centre of which was
displayed the wonderful pear from Auch. M. Guizot could hardly believe
his eyes at such a prodigy, and declared himself convinced. The dessert
was impatiently awaited. The Minister of Finance, certain of victory,
insisted on M. Guizot’s opening the pear. It was set before him. He cut
it in two with some difficulty--it contained four large seeds!

In spite of this exceptional case, the _poires d’Auch_ (their right name,
by the way) that grow within the limits of the city are generally without
seeds. The superabundant pulp seems to stifle them. They are still the
pride of the place, and it was only a year or two ago a number were sent
to his Holiness Pius IX.

Père Aubéry, whom I have quoted, was connected with the college at Auch,
formerly under the direction of the Jesuits. S. Francis Regis was also
for some time one of its professors. Among the eminent men educated here
may be mentioned Cardinal d’Ossat, who, when _chargé d’affaires_ at Rome,
succeeded in obtaining the absolution of Henry IV. from the Holy See. He
was a poor country lad, whose condition, exciting the pity of the canons
of Trie, they made him a choirboy, and sent him to school. He became
successively a charity scholar of the Jesuits at Auch, the _protégé_ of
Cardinal de Foix and his secretary of embassy at Rome, and, finally,
_chargé d’affaires_ at the Papal court and Cardinal-bishop of Bayeux. He
died at Rome in 1604, bequeathing the little he possessed to the poor
and his two secretaries. This celebrated diplomatist was an honor to his
country and the church that developed his talents.

The famous Nostradamus was another pupil of this college.

Bernard du Poey, a disciple of Buchanan, and a poet of some note, was
professor here when the college was under the direction of laymen. We
give one of his epigrams, written while connected with this institution:

    “Lucis amore simul fœdam protrudimus omnem
    Barbariem: tenebris nec patet ista domus.”

“The love of light makes us cast away every vestige of barbarism: this
house opens not to darkness.”

“Barbarism”--“light”--“darkness”--a jargon often heard in our day also,
and it still finds its dupes. The would-be metaphysicians and theologians
who use it should meditate on this sentence of Berkeley’s: “We first
raise a dust, and then complain we cannot see!”

Once more on the way. It is not till we approach Rabastens we see an
opening in the outer range of the Pyrenees, and behold Mt. Maladetta
raising heavenward its glittering diadem of glaciers. Behind is Spain,
religious Spain, “land of an eternal crusade” and wondrous saints.
Rabastens is one of the most ancient towns in Bigorre, and celebrated in
the religious wars: It was here Blaise de Monluc received the frightful
wound in his face which obliged him to wear a mask the rest of his life,
and gave him the leisure to write his Commentaries, which Henry IV.
called the Soldier’s Bible. This old warrior, deprived of nearly all his
limbs, coolly relates a thousand incidents of incredible bravery in the
boasting manner of a true Gascon, that does not ill become a book written
for the defenders of Gascony.

Twelve miles or so further on is Tarbes, the _chef-lieu_ of the Hautes
Pyrénées--“gentille Reine.”

“Bigourdaine,” as Jasmin says, “splendidement assise au milieu de la
plaine la plus fraiche, la plus fertile et la plus variée.” The water
from the Adour, first brought here to fill the moat that surrounded the
city, is now used to turn mills and fertilize the meadows, which are
wonderfully fresh, affording a charming contrast to the mountains in the
background.

The foundation of Tarbes is lost in the remoteness of time. Its
occupation by the Romans is evident from the camp still pointed out in
the vicinity. Bigorre, of which it was the principal city, was made
a _comté_ in the VIIIth century, and its succession of counts was
uninterrupted till Henry IV. ascended the throne of France. Its first
count was Enéco (or Inigo) Arista, or The Bold, who became King of
Navarre, and rivalled the Cid in prowess.

Bigorre was ceded to the English by the treaty of Brittany, but when
war again broke out between England and France two great barons of the
province, Menaud de Barbazan and the Sire d’Anchin, as Froissart relates,
seized the city and castle of Tarbes, and all Bigorre rose to expel the
English, who only continued to hold for a time the impregnable fortresses
of Lourdes and Mauvezin. This Lord of Barbazan was a companion in arms
of Du Guesclin and took sides with the Armagnacs, his kinsmen, in their
famous contest with the house of Foix. His son, Arnauld Guilhem de
Barbazan, was the valiant knight who wore so worthily the fair flower of
a blameless life that he received the title, which he was the first to
bear, of the _chevalier sans peur et sans reproche_, conferred on him by
his contemporaries. Monstrelet says he was a noble knight, prompt in
action, fertile in expedients, and renowned in arms. He was the leader
in the famous encounter between seven French and seven English knights
at Saintonge in 1402, when the latter challenged the French to a trial
of arms out of love for _les dames de leurs pensées_. The French knights
began the day by devoutly hearing Mass and receiving the Holy Body of the
Lord. Jouvenel des Ursins depicts the fearful encounter, which took place
in presence of a vast number of spectators, among whom was the Count of
Armagnac. Lances were shivered and terrible blows given with sword and
battle-axe, but it was Barbazan who decided the day, and the English were
forced to acknowledge themselves defeated. The conquerors, clothed in
white, were led in triumph to the King, who loaded them with presents. To
the Chevalier de Barbazan he gave a purse of gold and a sword on one side
of which was graven, _Barbazan sans reproche_, in letters of gold; and
on the other, _Ut lapsu graviore ruant_. This sword is still preserved
in the Château de Faudoas by the descendants of Barbazan’s sister. The
chivalric deeds that won it were commemorated not only in the chronicles
of the time, but in three ballads of Christine de Pisan.

Barbazan was as noble in heart as heroic in action. He took sides with
Count Bernard VII. of Armagnac against the Duke of Burgundy, but, when
the latter fell a victim to treachery, he indignantly condemned the
crime, and said he would rather have died than had a hand in it. He
fought side by side with Dunois, Lahire, and La Trémouille, at Orleans,
Auxerre, and many another battle-field. His last exploit was to rout
eight thousand English and Burgundian troops near Chalons, with only
three thousand, a few months after the atrocious murder of Joan of Arc,
under whose white banner he had fought.

So valuable were his services that the king conferred on him the
magnificent title of “Restaurateur du royaume et de la couronne de
France,” and added the _fleurs-de-lis_ to his arms. Soldiers received
knighthood from his hands as if he were a king. When he died, he was
buried at St. Denis among the kings of France with all the honors of
royalty--a supreme honor, of which there are only two other instances in
French history--Du Guesclin and Turenne.

The feudal castle of Barbazan is on a steep hill a few miles southeast
of Tarbes. The Roman inscriptions found there show it to be of extreme
antiquity. On the summit of the hill is the chapel of Notre Dame de
Piétat, built by Anne de Bourbon, Lord of Barbazan, to receive a
miraculous Madonna that had long been an object of veneration to the
people around. He founded two weekly Masses here, one in honor of the
holy name of God, and the other of the Virgin, and he bequeathed lands
for the support of the chapel, which is still a pious resort for pilgrims.

The Cathedral of Tarbes is built on the ruins of the ancient fortress
of Bigorre, which gave its name to the surrounding province. The
bishops have an important place in the annals of the country. Under the
Merovingian race of kings they held the rank of princes, and were the
peers of the proudest barons in the land. We find several saints in the
list--S. Justin, S. Faustus, and S. Landeol, whose venerable forms look
down from the windows of the chancel in the cathedral. Gregory of Tours
mentions S. Justin, and speaks of a lily on his tomb that bloomed every
year on the day of his martyrdom.

Bernard II., a bishop of Tarbes in the year 1009, merits the admiration
of posterity for his efforts to relieve his flock during a terrible
famine of three years, in which people devoured one another to such an
extent that a law was made condemning those who ate human flesh to be
burned alive. The holy bishop, like S. Exuperius of Toulouse, sold all
the vessels and ornaments of the church, and gave all he possessed, to
alleviate the wants of his people.

His successor stayed a civil war that broke out, to add to the distress
of the country, by assembling the chief lords of the land and conjuring
them not to add fire and pillage to the horrors of famine, but rather
seek to disarm the vengeance of heaven by their prayers. He established
the Truce of God in his diocese, and had the happiness of seeing peace
and abundance restored to the land. These old bishops seemed to have some
correct notions of their obligations, though they did live in the darkest
of the Middle Ages!

In the time of a bishop who belonged to the house of Foix appeared a
comet which alarmed all Europe. The Pope profited by the universal terror
to recommend a stricter practice of the Christian virtues, in order, as
he said, if any danger were at hand, that the faithful might be saved.
The Bishop of Tarbes instituted public processions on the occasion.

It was a Bishop of Tarbes, the Cardinal Gabriel de Gramont, who in
the XVIth century played so important a part in the negotiations
between Henry VIII. of England and the Pope to dissolve the marriage
of the former with Catherine of Aragon. The king pretended to act from
conscientious motives, and said the Bishop of Tarbes confirmed his
scruples. We need something more than the mere word of a monarch who
violated the most solemn promises and obligations to induce us to believe
in the complicity of the bishop, though, deceived by the representations
of the king, and alarmed at the consequences of a rupture with the Holy
See, he may have endeavored to temporize, that the crisis might be
delayed.

Tarbes was taken by the Huguenots under the ferocious Count de Montgomery
in the XVIth century. He devastated the cathedral, and burned its fine
organ, its altars, vestments, choral books, library, and chapter-house.
The bells were melted down, the bishop’s house pillaged and burned, as
well as the residences of the canons, the convents of the Cordeliers,
Carmelites, etc. The bishop was forced to retreat to the mountains,
where, charmed by the picturesque heights above the valley of Luz, he
re-established the springs of S. Sauveur, and built a little chapel with
the inscription: _Vos haurietis aquas de fontibus Salvatoris_; whence the
name since given this watering-place was derived.

It is recorded of a bishop in the XVIIth century, as something
extraordinary, that, contrary to custom, he allowed his flock, in a time
of famine, to eat meat during Lent on Sundays, Tuesdays, and Thursdays.
He probably had the liberal proclivities of Bishop Hébert of Agen,
already mentioned!

Finally, it was a Bishop of Tarbes who, in these days, restored four
devout chapels of the Virgin, of ancient renown in the country, but
profaned at the Revolution and left desolate, and gave them back to Mary
with priests to minister at their altars: Notre Dame de Garaison, in a
valley of the Hautes Pyrénées; Notre Dame de Piétat, overlooking the
plain of Tarbes; Notre Dame de Poueylahun, on a picturesque peak that
rises from the valley of Azun; and Notre Dame de Héas, the Madonna of
shepherds, in a hollow of the wild mountains near the Spanish frontier--a
powerful quadrilateral for the defence of this diocese of Mary. The
memory of Bishop Lawrence will likewise be for ever associated with
the church of Notre Dame de Lourdes, for it was he who, by his zeal,
prudence, and spiritual insight contributed so greatly to its foundation.
It became the cherished object of interest in his old age. He begged for
it, labored for it, and watched over the progress of the work. His last
act before attending the Council of the Vatican was a pilgrimage to the
sacred Grotto, and while at Rome his heart was constantly turning to this
new altar in Mary’s honor, and testifying great joy at the splendor of
the solemnities. He died at Rome in January, 1870, and his remains were
brought back to Tarbes for burial.

At Tarbes we changed cars for Lourdes. Here we received our first
impressions of the great religious movement in the country, manifested
by the immense pilgrimages, which rival those of the Middle Ages. We
encountered a train of pilgrims with red crosses on their breasts and
huge rosaries around their necks. There were gentlemen and ladies, and
priests and sisters of different religious orders. Among them was a
cardinal, whose hand people knelt to kiss as he issued from the cars.
They all had radiant faces, as if they had been on some joyful mission
instead of a penitential pilgrimage. But one of the fruits of penitence
and faith is joy in the highest sense of the word. Spenser wisely makes
the proud Sansfoy the father of Sansjoy.

Leaving them behind, we kept on in full view of the mountains along a
fine plateau called Lanne Maurine, or the Land of the Moors. The Moorish
invasion, though more than a thousand years ago, has left ineffaceable
traces all through this country. The traveller is always coming across
them. In one place is the Fountain of the Moors; in another the Castle of
the Moors; and there are many families who still bear the names of Maure
and Mouret. The Lanne Maurine is so called from a bloody combat which
took place here to dispute the possession of the plain. It was a priest
who roused the people to arms and led them against the infidel, whom they
smote hip and thigh. A grateful people have erected an equestrian statue
to his memory at the entrance of his village church.

We were now rapidly approaching Lourdes. Already the Pic du Gers rose
out of the valley sacred to Mary, and the heart instinctively turns from
everything else to hail the new star that has risen in these favored
heavens to diffuse the pure radiance of the Immaculate Conception!


A LITTLE BIRD.

    In his cage my blithe canary, swinging,
      Trills with merry voice a roundelay;
    From the early sunrise he is singing,
      Chirping, flying, flitting all the day.

    They who call it cruel thus to hold him
      Never saw his joyous, twinkling eyes,
    Never heard the something that I told him
      Once, beneath delusive April skies:

    When my hand drew back the sliding casement,
      Bidding him be happy and go free,
    Thinking all the while, in self-abasement,
      Never more a jailer stern to be.

    So I left him, lingering, fearing, sighing,
      Loath to watch him soar and speed away,
    Loath to see him from my roof-tree flying,
      Sad to miss his songs and pretty play.

    Evening fell, and in my chamber lying,
      Wondering where the bird had found a nest,
    What was that around me feebly flying,
      What was that low drooping on my breast?

    Ruffled plumage, tiny pinions weary,
      Every flutter seemed a throb of pain;
    Ah! the prison-house was not so dreary,
      Tired Robin had come home again!

    They who deem it cruel thus to hold him
      Should have seen the wanderer’s listless eyes
    Greet the loving care so quick to fold him
      Safe and warm from show’ry April skies.

    Never morning now but sees him flitting
      In and out, as happy as can be;
    Never twilight but it finds him sitting
      Drowsy-eyed, a willing captive he.

    Birdie, warbler, beautiful canary!
      Trill the fulness of thy roundelay;
    Of the rippling sweetness never chary,
      Sing, my pretty Robin, all the day!


EARLY ANNALS OF CATHOLICITY IN NEW JERSEY.

The first navigators who are known to have sailed along the seaboard,
and perhaps to have landed on the soil of that part of America now
called New Jersey, were Catholics, and in fact made their voyages before
Protestantism was heard of. These hardy men were Sebastian Cabot, a
Venetian in the service of King Henry VII. of England, who sailed from
Bristol in the month of May, 1498, and, proceeding considerably to the
north, afterwards turned south and followed the coast-line as far as
the Chesapeake; and John Verazzano, a Florentine in the pay of the King
of France, who, taking a southerly course to America in 1524, proceeded
along the coast from Florida to the fiftieth degree of north latitude,
and is supposed to have entered the harbor of New York. The earliest
colony established here was about 1620, when Dutch Calvinists (emigrants
from Holland) settled the town of Bergen; and in 1638, a party of
Swedes, who were Lutherans, made several settlements on the shore of
the Delaware. They were under the patronage of their celebrated Queen
Christina, who later became a Catholic. In 1664, a grant of the country
between the Connecticut and the Delaware rivers was made by King Charles
II. of England--the Swedes having been subjugated by the Hollanders, and
these in their turn by the English--to his brother the Duke of York,
who afterwards was a sincere convert to the Catholic faith, and reigned
as James II. That portion of this territory which is now New Jersey
was sold by the royal patron to two proprietors, one of whom was Sir
George Carteret; and it was in his honor that it received its present
name, for his having defended during the Parliamentary war against the
Revolutionists the island of _Jersey_, which is one of the so-called
Channel Isles on the coast of France, and is full of ancient churches and
other memorials of the Catholic faith, introduced there by S. Helier in
the VIth century.

But apart from the name there was nothing that recalled the Catholic
religion in New Jersey. The most intense anti-Catholic sentiment was
prevalent, and the bitter fanaticism of the mother country was extended
even to these parts with perhaps increased virulence. Thus, in 1679, the
26th of November was appointed a day of thanksgiving in the colony for
deliverance from what was called “that horrid plot of the <DW7>s to
murder the King (Charles II.) and destroy all the Protestants!”--which
was the infamous affair of Titus Oates, gotten up maliciously against
the Catholics to have still another pretext for persecuting them. The
whole province having been divided into two parts, called respectively
East and West New Jersey, the latter was settled, to mention only
the English-speaking population, mostly by members of the Society of
Friends, commonly called Quakers, from England, but the former by
Scotch Presbyterians and Congregationalists from New England; and of
this part Robert Barclay was appointed first governor for life, but,
having power to name a deputy, he remained in Scotland. This miserable
man, after having become a Catholic in France, where he had an uncle a
priest, who was at the expense of educating him, relapsed into heresy
shortly after returning to his native country, where his religion was
proscribed, and finally joined the Quakers, for whom he wrote the
famous _Apology_. A circumstance in the life of this apostate shows
well the constancy of the royal convert who lost three kingdoms for his
faith, and must have reminded him of his own instability upon the same
matter. Barclay was in London in 1688, probably on business connected
with his government of East New Jersey, and solicited an interview with
King James. The revolution was already breaking, and his treacherous
son-in-law, afterwards William III., was on his way to dethrone him;
when, standing by an open window of the palace, his Majesty observed to
the governor that the wind was fair for the Prince of Orange to come
over: whereupon Barclay replied that it was hard no expedient could be
found to satisfy the people. The king declared he would do anything
becoming a gentleman except “_parting with liberty of conscience_, which
he never would while he lived.” The king was indeed a martyr to this
principle, and how much it was despised by his Protestant betrayers may
be seen, to give an example out of these parts, from the instruction
given in 1703 to Lord Cornbury, governor of the Jerseys (as well as
of New York), “to permit liberty of conscience to all persons _except
Papists_”; and this barbarous intolerance continued as long as the
colonies remained united to England. Every now and then glaring cases of
anti-Catholic bigotry, calculated only to perpetuate civil dissensions
sprung from religious differences, were found in the history of the
colony; as, for instance, in 1757, when the principal edifice of the
College of New Jersey at Princeton was named by Governor Belcher _Nassau
Hall_--“to express,” he said, “the honor we retain in this remote part
of the globe to the immortal memory of the glorious King William III.,
who was a branch of the illustrious house of Nassau, and who, under
God, was the great deliverer of the British nation from those two
_monstrous furies_, _Popery_ and slavery.” About this period there were
a few Jesuit priests in Maryland and Pennsylvania; and the earliest
account that we have of Catholics in New Jersey is in 1744, when we
read that Father Theodore Schneider, a distinguished German Jesuit who
had professed philosophy and theology in Europe, and been rector of a
university, coming to the American Provinces, “visited New Jersey and
held church at Iron Furnaces there.” This good missionary was a native
of Bavaria. He founded the mission at Goshenhoppen, now in Berks county,
Pennsylvania, about forty-five miles from Philadelphia, and ministered
to German Catholics, their descendants, and others. Having some skill in
medicine, he used to cure the body as well as the soul; and, travelling
about on foot or on horseback under the name of Doctor Schneider
(leaving to the _Smelfunguses_ to discover whether he were of medicine
or divinity), he had access to places where he could not otherwise have
gone without personal danger; but sometimes his real character was found
out, and he was several times raced and shot at in New Jersey. He used
to carry about with him on his missionary excursions into this province
a manuscript copy of the _Roman Missal_, carefully written out in his
own handwriting and bound by himself. His poverty or the difficulty of
procuring printed Catholic liturgical books from Europe, or, we are
inclined to think, the danger of discovery should such an one with its
unmistakable marks of “Popery” about it (which he probably dispensed
with in his manuscript), fall into the hands of heretics, must have led
him to this labor of patience and zeal. Father Schneider, who may be
reckoned the first missionary of New Jersey, died on the 11th of July,
1764. Another Jesuit used to visit the province occasionally after 1762,
owing to the growing infirmities of Father Schneider, and there still
exist records of baptisms performed by him here. This was the Rev. Robert
Harding, a native of England, who arrived in America in 1732. He died at
Philadelphia on the 1st of September, 1772. But the priest principally
connected with the early missions in New Jersey is the Rev. Ferdinand
Farmer. He was born in South Germany in 1720, and, having entered the
Society of Jesus, was sent to Maryland in 1752. His real name was
Steenmeyer, but on coming to this country he changed it into one more
easily pronounced by English-speaking people. He was learned and zealous,
and for many years performed priestly duties in New Jersey at several
places in the northern part, and seems to have been the first to visit
this colony regularly. In his baptismal register the following among
other places are named, together with the dates of his ministrations:
a station called Geiger’s, in 1759; Charlottenburg, in 1769; Morris
County, Long Pond, and Mount Hope, in 1776; Sussex County, Ringwood,
and Hunterdon County, in 1785. The chief congregation at this period
was at a place called Macoupin (now in Passaic County), about fifteen
miles from the present city of Paterson. It was settled in the middle of
the last century by Germans, who were brought over to labor in the iron
mines and works in this part of the province. Two families from Baden
among the colonists were Catholics; and the first priest who visited them
is said to have been a Mr. Langrey from Ireland. Mount Hope, not far
from Macoupin, used to be visited by Father Farmer twice a year, and by
other priests, as occasion might require, from Philadelphia. Except the
Catholics in the northern parts, there were very few scattered about New
Jersey before the American Revolution. The schoolmaster at Mount Holly
in 1762 was an Irish Catholic named Thomas McCurtain, and one of his
descendants is the distinguished scholar and antiquarian, John G. Shea.
The Catholics in these colonies before American Independence were subject
in spiritual matters to the Bishop (vicar-apostolic) of London, who used
to appoint a vicar-general (the superior of the Jesuits in Maryland) to
supply his place. After the suppression of the Society of Jesus in 1773,
the vicar-general. Father John Lewis, was the late superior of the order
in this country. The visits of the missionaries to New Jersey seem to
have been interrupted during the Revolutionary War; but a number of very
distinguished foreign Catholics serving in our army honored the land by
their presence in such a cause. Among them we find Lafayette, Chevalier
Massillon, De Kalb, Pulaski, Kosciusko, and Mauduit du Plessis, the
engineer officer who fortified Fort Mercer, at Red Bank on the Delaware,
with so much skill that the attacking Hessians were thoroughly repulsed.
In the months of August and September, 1781, the French troops under
De Rochambeau marched diagonally across the State from Sufferns (just
over line) in New York, by way of Pompton, Whippany, Byram’s Tavern,
Somerville, Princeton, and Trenton. An army chaplain, the Abbé Robin,
published a little book in 1782, describing this French expedition from
New Port to York-town; but, regrettably, he gives his readers not a word
about any Catholics that he may have met or heard of in New Jersey.

After the evacuation of New York by the British in 1783, there was a
prospect of collecting the few scattered Catholics on Manhattan Island
into a congregation, and the venerable Father Farmer used to go twice a
year to visit the faithful there, across the northern part of this State,
stopping on his way to officiate at Macoupin. On the 22d of September,
1785, the Rev. John Carroll, who had been appointed by the Pope superior
of the church in the United States and empowered to give Confirmation,
set out on a tour to administer this sacrament at Philadelphia, New York,
and (as he writes to a friend) “in the upper counties of the Jerseys and
Pennsylvania, where our worthy German brethren had formed congregations.”
In this year Rev. Mr. Carroll computed the number of Catholics under his
charge at sixteen thousand in Maryland, seven thousand in Pennsylvania,
and two thousand scattered about the other States. The number of priests
was nineteen in Maryland and five in Pennsylvania. We learn how small was
the grain of mustard-seed of the church in this part of the world less
than a hundred years ago, when we see that there was no resident priest
at that time between Canada and Pennsylvania; and it used to be said
contemptuously (so Watson has it in his _Annals_): “John Leary goes once
a year to Philadelphia to get absolution.” This worthy man therefore,
who was certainly living in New York in 1774, had to leave that city and
cross the whole of New Jersey before he could perform his Easter duties.
The earlier editions of Catholic books printed in the United States
were generally gotten up by subscription, and a perusal of the lists of
subscribers is interesting, as giving some idea of the number, zeal,
and original nationality (conjectured from the form of patronymic) of
the Catholics at the time. Thus, to the first Catholic Bible published
in the United States, at Philadelphia in 1790, only six out of the four
hundred and twenty-seven subscribers were from New Jersey. These are
Joseph Bloomfield, Attorney-General of the State; James Craft and R. S.
Jones, Burlington; John Holmes, Cape May; Alexander Kenney, near (New)
Brunswick; and Maurice Moynihan, Atsion; but in considering this, the
most interesting to us of any lists of subscribers to early Catholic
books, we must remember that the names are not all of Catholics; and of
these six from New Jersey the last three only are considered orthodox by
Archbishop Bayley in his appendix to the _History of the Catholic Church
in New York_ (2d ed.)

The massacre of 1793 in the Island of Hayti drove a number of French
Catholics to the United States, some of whom settled at Mount Holly,
Elizabethtown, and other parts of the State, but we do not know that they
did anything for the church. Catholic advance was to come from quite
another immigration. In 1805, or earlier, the Rev. John Tisserant, one
of the French clergy driven from home by the Revolution, was living at
Elizabethtown. He was an excellent man, and may be considered the first
resident priest in New Jersey, although he cannot be said to have been
_stationed_ here by authority. He returned to Europe in June, 1806. The
minister of the Presbyterian church at Whippany (Morris County) from 1791
to 1795 was Calvin White. “His ministry, though brief, was useful,” says
the historian. He afterwards connected himself with the Episcopalians,
and finally became a Catholic. A conversion of this kind at that period
was sufficiently remarkable, we think, to be mentioned in notes on the
Catholic Church in New Jersey.

In the year 1808, the dioceses of New York and Philadelphia were erected,
with the northern part of New Jersey within the former and the southern
within the latter diocese. This arrangement continued until 1853; and
while it lasted religion made some progress here, but slowly. The Rev.
Richard Bulger, a native of Kilkenny, Ireland, having come to the
American Mission, was ordained priest by Bishop Connolly of New York, in
1820. He was assistant at the cathedral in New York, and thence regularly
attended Paterson, where he devoted himself to the Catholics gathered in
that manufacturing town, and scattered about the upper part of the State.
The church at Paterson is mentioned in the Almanac of 1822; it being then
the only one in New Jersey. The pastor was exposed to inconvenience,
insults, and hardship. One evening, for instance, a bigoted ruffian threw
a large jagged stone into his lighted room, the shutters or window-blinds
having been left unclosed, and he had a narrow escape from a hole in his
head. On another occasion he was rudely turned out on to the muddy road
with his Breviary and bundle from a country cart, the driver of which had
given him a lift until he discovered that he was a priest. The account,
however, says that it was the farmer’s _wife_ who “declared that he
should not remain in the wagon”; and the man afterwards applied to Father
Bulger for instruction, and was received into the church, but we do not
hear of the conversion of the scold--perhaps because (as an old poet says)

    “Women’s feet run still astray,
    If once to ill they know the way”!

    --_Habington._

About 1825, that part of New Jersey under the jurisdiction of the Bishop
of Philadelphia used to be visited occasionally by clergymen from beyond
the Delaware, and stations were established at Pleasant Mills and
Trenton, which continued to be served, but without resident pastors (we
believe), until the diocese of Newark was erected. The city of Newark
had a pastor about 1830 in the person of Rev. Gregory Pardow, who was
in 1834 the only priest actually residing in New Jersey. After this
period churches were erected not only in the principal city, Newark, but
also in Jersey City, Perth Amboy, Belleville, Madison, New Brunswick,
Elizabethtown, Macoupin, and other centres of population. The church at
Macoupin was erected in 1841 by Father John Raffeiner, a native of the
Tyrol, who came to this country in 1833, and used to visit the Germans
scattered through New Jersey; and in 1842 a church in Newark for the
German Catholics was erected by Father Balleis, a Benedictine monk. On
the 30th of October, 1853, the Rt. Rev. J. R. Bayley, at the time a
priest in New York, was consecrated first bishop of Newark, the diocese
being coextensive with the State; and, on his taking possession of his
see, found thirty-three churches and thirty clergymen. Since then the
advance of the Catholic religion here has been rapid; and when Bishop
Bayley was transferred to Baltimore, he left to his successor what is
considered, we believe, one of the completest dioceses in the United
States--a disciplined clergy, religious orders of both sexes, diocesan
seminary, college for higher education, academy for young ladies, select
and parochial schools, orphan asylums, hospitals, cemeteries, and other
Christian institutions, in a flourishing condition. The progress of the
church during these latter years has been before the eyes of all; and
as we have intended to limit ourselves to the period anterior to the
erection of New Jersey into a diocese, in making notes on Catholicity in
the State, we now end them, if even a little abruptly.


NEW PUBLICATIONS.

    MANUAL OF THE BLESSED SACRAMENT. Translated from the French of
    Rev. T. B. Boone, S.J., by Mrs. Annie Blount Storrs. New York:
    The Catholic Publication Society. 1875. 18mo, pp. 509.

The publication of this manual supplies a real want which many devout
persons have felt, and which they will now find fully satisfied. It is
a companion for the altar, a treasure of pious reading, of meditation
and prayers, for Mass, Communion, Visits to the Blessed Sacrament,
Confraternities, and days of special devotion, such as Corpus Christi
and the Forty Hours’ Adoration. It is translated from the French by
an accomplished lady well fitted for the task, and has been carefully
examined and corrected by several clergymen of New York who are
distinguished for their learning and piety. The approbation of the
Cardinal is the best proof of the excellence of the work, for, apart
from the authoritative character of his sanction, no one is better able
to appreciate a work of this kind, or to judge of its merits, than His
Eminence; and we are assured that he has not simply contented himself
with the examination requisite to make sure that this manual is orthodox
in doctrine, and therefore fit for publication, but has warmly interested
himself in its translation and preparation for the press, on account of
his high estimate of its value. In Belgium, where devotion to the Blessed
Sacrament especially flourishes, it is the favorite book of its kind.
The treatise on frequent communion is especially thorough and important;
and there is one, also, on the devotion to the Sacred Heart of Jesus--a
devotion so intimately connected with that of the Blessed Sacrament of
the Altar. We need not add, after this, that we recommend the manual
in a special manner to religious communities, and to the faithful
generally. We trust that their own personal experience of the benefit and
consolation to be derived from its use will secure their cordial assent
to the praise we have bestowed upon it, and that it will become as
popular here as it is in Belgium.

    THE LIFE OF OUR LORD JESUS CHRIST. By Louis Veuillot.
    Translated into English by the Rev. Anthony Farley. From the
    Seventh French Edition. New York: The Catholic Publication
    Society. 1875.

At last we welcome in English a work published eleven years ago. Written
in answer to Renan, “It is truly,” says the translator, “what our Holy
Father Pius IX. calls it, ‘A vindication of the outraged Godhead of
Christ.’” The letter of the Holy Father is prefixed to the table of
contents.

We transcribe what the translator says in apology for reproducing the
work at this late hour:

    “Appearing as it does some time after the existence of the
    original work, it might seem that the object of the book had
    ceased to be, had been forgotten, or was of no moment to the
    public of our day and of our country. But when we remember
    the deep impression produced by Renan’s work--an impression
    stamped (it would seem indelibly) upon the religious literature
    and religious teaching of our times--we have to admit that a
    vindication of Christ, _the God-Man_, is as necessary to-day
    as it was when the new Voltaire appeared to shock religious
    sentiment in France and in the world. ‘Christus heri et hodie,’
    is the war-cry of the foes, just as much as the trust and
    comfort of the faithful lovers of the God-Man.”

Next comes Louis Veuillot’s preface, which should be read with more
attention than is generally accorded to prefaces. Indeed, we think few
who begin to read it will hesitate to go through. The author reminds us
that himself was once a sceptic; and throws a light upon the unbelieving
mind--upon the cause and nature of unbelief--which only such a man with
such an experience can throw.

His aim in writing Our Lord’s life is to show the overwhelming force
of the simple Gospel story. He contends (and we are sure he is right)
that, while the “deniers and falsifiers of the truth have been admirably
refuted in every objection raised by them,” yet, “since their supreme
art lies in feigning and producing _ignorance_, the essential point
should be to reply especially to what they do _not_ say. This is what we
unavoidably forget” (pp. 17, 18). Then, referring to Renan, he continues:

    “The last of those wicked impugners of the divinity of
    Christ our Lord who has rendered himself celebrated has well
    understood, in a book of five or six hundred pages, how to
    speak of Jesus Christ without pointing him out. Perpetually
    avoiding all that belongs to God, with the same stroke he
    perverts all that belongs to _the man_. This artifice of
    weakness is the only strength of the book. It has drawn the
    apologist into the discussion of trifles in which the Man-God
    completely disappears. The refutations are excellent, but they
    leave us ignorant of what Jesus Christ has done, and for what
    purpose he came into the world. Thus it is not Christ who has
    the case gained, yet less the laborious reader of so much
    controversy; it is this miserable man, who has proposed to
    himself to betray God and his neighbor.”

And again:

    “The clement wisdom of Jesus has not been left to the mercy of
    sophists, nor to the resources of reason, nor to lowliness or
    feebleness of faith. It has foreseen the weakness of the mind
    of man, and has prepared a succor always victorious. It is not
    necessary to ransack the libraries, to collect together so
    many dead languages, so much history, so much physics, so much
    philosophy, to know with certainty him who came to save the
    little ones and the ignorant. The bread of life is as easy to
    find as the material bread, on the same conditions. A simple,
    faithful Christian or member of the Church of God, a man of the
    world, provided he may have studied a few books and heard some
    instruction, can render an account of his faith far better than
    the ‘savants,’ the pretended unbelievers, are in a condition to
    give an account of their incredulity. The Gospel is sufficient
    for that.

    “The Gospel contains motives conclusive of the faith in Jesus
    Christ, true God and true man--motives, reasons, which the
    Saviour himself has put forth. We can paralyze, by the contents
    of the Gospel, the sophistry of the infidel, without being
    shocked by its contact. What does it matter that the sophist
    should amass notes against the sincerity of the Evangelists, if
    we have clear proof that he of whom the Evangelists speak is
    God? On bended knees, before _the Real Presence_, one is not
    tempted to withdraw from its contemplation in order to consider
    or view more closely this vile apparition of blasphemy. We
    are by no means bound to extract from it open avowals of
    repentance.”

Then he gives the reason for this sufficiency of the Gospel:

    “There are different degrees in the region of the mind;
    discussion belongs to the inferior degrees. In discussing, man
    is pitted against man; the reason of the one seems as good as
    that of the other. In expounding, we place God against man.

    “This exposition of the truth must get the preference when God
    is absolutely and personally in the case. From the apex of
    those lofty heights the voice of man properly avoids discussing
    with nothingness, lest weak human reason might be inclined to
    believe that nothingness could reply; that the beauty of truth
    might appear alone in the presence of the absolute deformity of
    falsehood.”

And again:

    “Among infidels ignorance of the Gospel is generally complete;
    among a great many Christians it is hardly less so. They know
    the Gospel by heart, and they do not understand it. They
    have not read it with care, with order, such as it has been
    delivered. They do not know how to explain it or meditate on it
    as they ought. Whosoever sees in the Gospel only the letter,
    does not understand even the letter; and whosoever seeks for
    morality only in its pages, does not find the morality they
    contain.”

Lastly, he dismisses Renan’s _Life_ in the following masterly words:

    “As to a certain malicious book which unhappily signalizes the
    age in which we live, we have been obliged to refer to it two
    or three times. We could have wished not to touch on it. The
    first sentiments of Catholics on this deplorable book have
    become much modified since they have been enabled to perceive
    more exactly the malicious industry of the author. While we see
    him assume the task of ignoring, we are convinced he is yet far
    from having lost the faith. He dare not look upon the crucifix
    face to face--he would fear to see the blood trickling down.
    In his conscience he declares himself a traitor. This is the
    confession which we read in his book, turned resolutely away
    from the light of day. We blame this miserable man, and we
    detest and abhor his crime; but he is to be pitied, and every
    Christian will be happy to say to him what Ananias said to
    Saul: ‘My brother Saul, the Lord Jesus, _who appeared to you on
    the road whence you are coming_, has sent me to meet you, so
    that you may receive your sight.’”

    A DISCOURSE COMMEMORATIVE OF HON. SAMUEL WILLISTON. By W.
    S. Tyler, Williston Professor of Greek in Amherst College.
    Springfield, Mass.: Clark W. Bryan & Co. 1874.

The venerable gentleman commemorated in this discourse died on the
18th of July, 1874, at an advanced age, after a life which is in many
respects remarkable and worthy of lasting remembrance. His history is
interesting, as presenting the most distinctive and admirable traits of
the genuine old-fashioned New England type of character. It is remarkable
on account of the great works which he performed during his lifetime. It
is honorable and worthy of remembrance on account of the great example
it presents to wealthy men, of a man who realized the proper position
which men of large fortunes ought to take in the community, as public
benefactors, as founders, as stewards of wealth for the common good.
Mr. Williston was the son of a poor country clergyman whose salary was
$300 a year. Disappointed in his early efforts to obtain a liberal
education by an affection of the eyes which debarred him from the
pleasure of reading all his lifetime, he set himself to the task of
making a fortune that he might have the means of promoting education and
in other ways benefiting his fellow-men, especially those of his own
neighborhood and commonwealth. He was successful in this undertaking,
and, besides the large fortune which he left at death to his heirs, he
is said to have bestowed a million of dollars in public beneficent works
during his lifetime, and to have bequeathed more than half that sum by
testament for similar purposes. He was the second founder of Amherst
College, the founder of the Williston Seminary at Easthampton, and of
the beautiful town of that name, which Prof. Tyler says “he found a
mere hamlet, and left one of the richest and most beautiful towns in
Hampshire County, a great educational and manufacturing centre, with
beautiful farmhouses (villas they might almost be called) and several
model villages clustered about elegant churches, and a model seminary
of learning.” Mr. Williston gained during life, and left after him, the
reputation of a man of integrity, probity, and high moral principle. His
religious belief, which was that of the old-fashioned Congregationalists
of Massachusetts, was his guiding and dominating idea, and he followed it
up in practice consistently and conscientiously. The portrait prefixed
to Prof. Tyler’s discourse is one very pleasant to look upon, and shows
the face of an honest, sensible, good man, surmounted by an expansive,
intellectual forehead, and set firmly upon a manly bust. One excellent
feature in Mr. Williston’s character was his adherence to the principle
that good education and healthy civilization must rest on a religious
and Christian basis. In this respect, he contrasts favorably with a
large and increasing class of Protestants, who are taking sides openly
with infidels in the accursed work of secularizing education, and crying
up merely material or intellectual progress. His panegyrist, Prof.
Tyler, writes admirably upon this theme. This discourse, apart from
the interest given to it by the truly noble life which it describes,
is in itself remarkably full of fine thoughts, showing the effect of
the deep study of the classics to which the learned author has devoted
his life. We are pleased to notice the calm and just manner in which he
touches incidentally upon some topics connected with the Catholic Church.
Speaking of the honor which is due to those men who are founders of
institutions useful to mankind, in a truly philosophical strain, and with
illustrations drawn from both pagan and Christian history, he proceeds to
say: “There are no names more hallowed in the Catholic Church than the
founders of those monasteries which, with all their sins, have the merit
of keeping religion and learning alive through the darkness and confusion
of the Middle Ages. The founders, too, of those religious orders whose
influence has been felt to the remotest bounds of Christendom, what
veneration is felt for them by all good Catholics, from age to age!
The names of S. Benedict, S. Dominic, S. Francis, and Ignatius Loyola
have been canonized and embalmed in the religious societies which they
established.” The fact that these words were pronounced in the pulpit of
the chapel of Amherst College gives them a peculiar significance. We do
not consider them as denoting any Catholic tendencies in Prof. Tyler or
his associates, but merely a diminution of power in the old Protestant
and Puritan tradition, and the existence of a more philosophical and
eclectic spirit. The rationalizing movement which is disintegrating
Protestant societies carries away a great deal of prejudice and error on
its tide. It threatens also to sweep away the remnants and fragments of
truth. Amherst, seated on the remote hills of Hampshire, has been safer
from the flood, hitherto, than Cambridge and New Haven. Nevertheless,
it must be invaded by the rising waters in its turn. There is nothing
but the Catholic Church which can stand, when knowledge and reason
take the place of the ignorance and credulity necessary to a blind
following of the Reformation. The remnant of orthodox Protestants must
therefore follow the inexorable logic of Luther’s principle into its
consequences of sheer rationalism, or make their way back to Catholic
faith. Individuals may remain stationary, but the mass has to move,
and even the works of men who are both great and good rest on a sandy
foundation, which will be undermined in a short time unless they are
built on the rock of Catholic stability. Mr. Williston, we have no doubt,
did his best, not only to create temporal well-being and prosperity,
but also that which is higher, more lasting, and directed toward the
eternal good, which is the chief end of man. Numbers of generous and
noble hearts, like himself, have endeavored and are now striving toward
the same objects, from the same motives. They are the pillars of the
commonwealth, the real peers of the realm, the chief bulwark of our
political and social state amid the horde of base, corrupt intriguers and
demagogues, mammon worshippers and spendthrifts, crowding our legislative
halls and marts of business, and flaunting in vulgar show through our
streets. It is impossible, however, that the work which they strive
singly to accomplish, whether for education, philanthropy, political
reform and progress, or the promotion of the Christian religion, should
be successfully performed except through Catholic unity and organization
in the communion of the one true Church. If all the enlightened and
virtuous men and women in the United States who believe that Jesus Christ
is the Saviour, and Christianity the salvation of mankind were united in
faith and directed by one authority, there is nothing which they could
not accomplish on this vast field which God has given us, and which at
present is to a great extent mere wild land. In conclusion, we express
our thanks to Mrs. Emily G. Williston and the other executors of the Hon.
Mr. Williston for their courtesy in sending us a copy of this discourse,
which is printed in a most beautiful and tasteful manner.

    THE CHILD. By Mgr. Dupanloup, Bishop of Orleans. Translated,
    with the author’s permission, by Kate Anderson. Boston: Patrick
    Donahoe. 1875.

Mgr. Dupanloup is one of the most eloquent orators and writers of France.
The theme of the present book, which might have been handled in an able
and complete and yet dull manner by another, is treated in a spirited,
glowing, fascinating style by the illustrious Bishop of Orleans. It is a
charming, attractive, and most important theme, handled by one who was
a most enthusiastic and successful teacher of boys and youths before
he became a bishop. Every parent, and especially every mother, should
read this book; so also should those who have the charge of children
and young people in schools or elsewhere. It is more specifically and
precisely suitable to the case and condition of boys, as is natural,
considering that the author has been more immediately engaged in the
care of colleges than of convents. Yet, in general, its principles and
instructions are appropriate for girls also, children being very nearly
alike in most respects, whether they are boys or girls. In respect to
the moral training of boys, there are some instructions very plainly and
yet delicately given in the fourteenth and fifteenth chapters, which are
specially necessary for a very large class at the present day and in
our very corrupt state of society. In the wealthy and fashionable circle
of American society, the children are very generally spoiled. Who is not
familiar with the fast boy of fourteen, whose outward and visible sign is
a blue ribbon on his straw hat, and with his sister of twelve, in short
clothes, sparkling with jewelry, but dim-eyed, pale-faced, and thin, from
keeping late hours and other precocious dissipations? The end of these
fast young people is usually tragical. If not so, they are at the best
wilted and spoiled, like bouquets of flowers which have remained for a
whole day among lighted candles.

We regret to say that many of our wealthy Catholics, especially those
who have suddenly acquired riches, strive to emulate in the race of
extravagance and luxury the most utterly worldly class of people, who
live professedly for mere earthly enjoyment. Their children are therefore
trained in a way which is morally the very opposite of the Christian and
Catholic method. In a lesser degree, the same loose, indulgent, soft,
and effeminate style of bringing up children prevails in families where
the spirit of the parents is less worldly and more religious. Boys and
girls do not remain children long enough, and are not treated as children
ought to be treated. They are too precociously developed into young
ladies and gentlemen. So far as our observation extends, the education
at home and at school which our Catholic boys of the more affluent class
are receiving is much more defective in respect to religion and morality
than that of the girls. They are more spoiled at home, and are less
amenable to wholesome discipline and intellectual training at school than
their sisters. They are also exposed to much greater danger of becoming
essentially irreligious and vicious, and going utterly to ruin, before
or soon after they attain their majority, and therefore great errors in
their early training are more deplorable. All parents, and especially
mothers, who are not wholly careless and frivolous, must perceive clearly
and feel deeply the vital importance of this subject of the early
training of boys. Let them read carefully and frequently this choice book
of Bishop Dupanloup, and they will understand better how to reverence
that wonderful and beautiful being--a regenerate child; how to train the
child for the duty and the solid happiness of its earthly life, how to
educate it for heaven.

    SPAIN AND THE SPANIARDS. By N. L. Thiéblin. Boston: Lee &
    Shepard; New York: Lee, Shepard & Dillingham. 1875.

The corps of professional writers for the great newspapers of Europe
and America is remarkable in many ways for talent, enterprise, courage,
sagacity, and skill in that style of composition which is the most
effective for the purposes of the secular press. Its _esprit de corps_
is not very high as regards truth, the eternal principles of right and
devotion to just and noble causes. It is to a great extent mercenary,
unscrupulous, time-serving, skeptical, and superficial. Incidentally it
often serves the cause of right and truth with great efficacy, and no
doubt wages a very successful war on many evils and abuses in favor of
certain temporal interests, diffuses a vast amount of information, and
contributes its full quantity of force to the wheels that make the world
spin round with an ever-increasing velocity. Certain of its members have
made themselves truly famous in this present age by their explorations
and their chronicles of wars or other great contemporary events, that
almost rival Livy and Cæsar. It is only necessary to mention the names of
Russell and Stanley as illustrations of this statement.

Mr. Thiéblin has won a high place among these brilliant writers for the
press, by his extraordinary courage and enterprise in following up, first
the military movements of the Franco-Prussian war, and more recently
those of the Carlist campaigns, and his very great talent in describing
what he has seen and learned with so much perseverance and effort. He
is a good specimen of the corps to which he belongs. Apparently a mere
free-thinker in respect to all the higher order of truth, solicitous only
to see and narrate what is transpiring on the earth, an intellectual
knight-errant and free lance, without any kind of allegiance to any
power higher than the _Pall Mall Gazette_ or the _New York Herald_, he
is brave, good-humored, witty, and graphic; a keen observer, a charming
narrator, with a great deal of justice and impartiality, and evidently
telling the truth about those things which can be apprehended through
the senses, and which his mind is capable of understanding. There are
a few offensive remarks about Catholic matters, a few jeering allusions
to things beyond his rather limited sphere of vision, and a moderate
quantity of the usual newspaper political wisdom, upon which we place,
of course, a very low estimate. The real substance of the book, however,
which is the testimony of the writer respecting what he learned by
personal observation respecting the army of Don Carlos and the state of
things in Spain, is of the highest value and interest. We have not read
a book with so much pleasure for a long time. The author takes us right
into the Carlist camp and the romantic Vasco Navarrese country where Don
Carlos is king, into the company of his generals and soldiers, into the
houses of the parish priests, and among the loyal, religious peasantry.
He has no sympathy with the religion of the Spaniards or the cause of
Don Carlos, and his favorable testimony to the piety, morality, bravery,
and good discipline of the faithful soldiers and subjects of the gallant
prince are beyond cavil. The history of the eccentric and famous Curé of
Santa Cruz is most curious. The authentic narrative of facts concerning
the Carlist movement makes it evident to our mind that the prospects
of ultimate and complete success in the effort of Don Carlos to gain
possession of the kingdom are very encouraging. Mr. Thiéblin does not
confine himself to an account of his experience in the Carlist camps.
He gives a great deal of information gathered from the visits he made
to the quarters of the Republicans, personal observation of the state
of things in Madrid and other places, and conversations with prominent
personages. He can appreciate what is admirable in Spain and the
Spaniards much better than most non-Catholics; and being wholly free from
Protestant sympathies, perceives clearly and ridicules freely the sham
of Evangelical missions with their invariable concomitant of boastful
and calumnious lying. As a very good sort of heathen, and an extremely
clever man, with a fine taste for what is beautiful, and an eclectic
habit of mind, he gives just and charming descriptions of many things in
that Catholic country and people--in short, understanding the principles
and causes which have produced that which he partially approves, but
cannot estimate at its full worth, as he would do if he were a thorough
and intelligent Catholic, in respect to the state of Catholic religion
and piety in Spain, his account of the lapse from ancient faith is
partly correct, but one-sided and imperfect, as that of a foreign and
anti-Catholic observer must be. In respect to morality and general
well-being and happiness, he is a competent witness, and his testimony
shows how much better, happier, and more refined, in the true sense, the
Spanish people, even in their present disorganized state are, than the
mass of the population in England or the United States. In regard to
Spanish politics, he sympathizes, of course, most perfectly with Castelar
and the orderly, moderate Republicans, and next to these with the party
of Don Alfonso. He makes an elaborate argument in favor of the claim of
this young prince to be the inheritor of all the rights of Ferdinand VII.
In our opinion, Don Carlos has the most valid title to this inheritance.
But as we have no time to prove this, we must waive the question of
legitimacy.

There is another right which has precedence of any right to inherit the
throne: This is the right of the Church and nation to have restored
and preserved the ancient heritage of the Spanish nation, those laws
and institutions, and that government which are necessary to the
religious and political well being of the whole people. The régime of
the Christinos was destructive to both, and almost the whole nation
acquiesced in the expulsion of Isabella. We do not think that the
majority of even that portion of the Spaniards who are at present
subject to Don Alfonso really consent to his rule, or that there is any
guarantee that it will be better than that of the late queen. He has
been taken up by the Liberals as a _pis aller_, and is only tolerated by
the greater part of those who are loyal to the religion and constitution
of the Spanish monarchy. Don Carlos, as his own published statements,
particularly his recent letter to Louis Veuillot, prove, is the champion
of religious and political regeneration. It is, therefore, desirable that
his claim to the crown should be lawfully ratified, and receive whatever
may be requisite to make it a perfect right in actual possession, by the
act of the Spanish nation. We may say the same of the Comte de Chambord
in respect to the throne of France. This is a sufficient reason why
Catholics, even American Catholics, who are faithful to the Republic
here, because it is an established and legitimate order, should be
hostile to the Republican party in Spain and France, and to any kind
of patched-up liberalistic monarchy in either country, and wish for
the success of Don Carlos and Henri de Bourbon. There are some very
good Catholics who think differently, even such staunch champions of
the Catholic cause as our illustrious friend the Bishop of Salford,
the editor of the _London Tablet_, and Dr. Ward. They seem to us to be
mistaken and inconsistent, and we agree personally with the _Civiltà
Cattolica_ and the _Univers_ that the cause of Charles VII. and Henry V.
is the same with that of Pius IX. considered as a temporal sovereign, and
closely connected with the triumph of his rights as Sovereign Pontiff.
We have, moreover, the confident hope that the one will yet reign over
regenerated Spain and the other over regenerated France, after the
infamous Prussian tyranny shall have been trampled in the dust, and
the usurper of the Quirinal shall have met the fate of all foregoing
oppressors of the Holy See.

DIOS, PATRIA, Y REY is the true watchword of beautiful, Catholic, unhappy
Spain.

    A PILGRIMAGE TO THE LAND OF THE CID. Translated from the French
    of Frederic Ozanam. By P. S. New York: The Catholic Publication
    Society. 1875.

This little volume, by the eminent writer and lecturer Prof. Ozanam,
supplies much that was wanting in the one just noticed, in its
appreciative sketches of Catholic objects and traditions. The book was
the result of a tour made a year before the author’s death. It would be a
good travelling companion in the country described, or elsewhere.

    A FULL CATECHISM OF THE CATHOLIC RELIGION (preceded by a Short
    History of Religion), from the Creation of the World to the
    Present Time. With Questions for Examination. Translated from
    the German of the Rev. Joseph Deharbe, S.J., by the Rev. John
    Fander. First American Edition. _Permissu Superiorum._ New
    York: The Catholic Publication Society. 1875.

“This is the most celebrated catechism of the century, has been most
extensively approved and brought into use, and will be of great service
to those who are employed in teaching young people the Christian
doctrine, as well as for the instruction of converts.”

We can add nothing to the above notice of the London edition of this
catechism, which heretofore appeared in this magazine, except to say that
the American edition has been revised and corrected, and adopted into the
Young Catholic’s School Series.

    THE VICTIMS OF THE MAMERTINE. By Rev. A. J. O’Reilly, D.D. New
    York: D. & J. Sadlier & Co. 1875.

_The Martyrs of the Coliseum_ will have prepared the reader for another
treat in this later work of the same author. Dr. O’Reilly is one of
the most diligent workers of the rich mine of Christian traditions
so successfully explored by Cardinal Wiseman, in the preparation of
_Fabiola_. The author properly claims great authenticity for the records
of this prison, the high position of its victims rendering the task of
identification one of comparative ease. While the world is being filled
with the exploits of “the heroes of paganism, who were at best but
tyrants and murderers,” we should not ignore the deeds of those truer
heroes--the persecuted champions of the early Christian Church.

    THE SPIRIT OF FAITH; or, What I Must do to Believe. By Bishop
    Hedley, O.S.B. New York: The Catholic Publication Society. 1875.

This _brochure_ is made up of a series of lectures delivered in St.
Peter’s, Cardiff, by its right reverend author. The reader will not
have proceeded far to be convinced of the opportuneness of the subjects
discussed, and the competence of the writer, who may also be recognized
as a former contributor to these pages.

    SERMONS FOR EVERY SUNDAY IN THE YEAR, AND FOR THE LEADING
    HOLIDAYS OF OBLIGATION. By Rev. William Gahan. With a Preface
    by the Right Rev. Dr. Walsh. Edited by Rev. J. O’Leary, D.D.
    New York: D. & J. Sadlier & Co. 1875.

The reverend clergy will be content with the announcement of a new
edition of these standard discourses. Their quality was long ago
determined.




THE CATHOLIC WORLD.

VOL. XXI., No. 125.--AUGUST, 1875.

Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1875, by Rev. I. T.
HECKER, in the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington, D. C.


THE PERSECUTION IN SWITZERLAND FROM THE REVUE GENERALE.

For seven months have we kept silence on the religious persecution in
Switzerland. Not that during that interval the rage of the persecutors
has become appeased; very far from it. But the spectacle they afford
is so repulsive to the conscience that the pen falls from the hand in
disgust whilst narrating their exploits. Nevertheless, we suppose it
may be of service to give a complete although succinct history of the
violence and hypocrisy of Swiss liberalism. And for that reason we renew
our recital.

Up to the present time, the persecution has only raged in two dioceses,
the smallest, Geneva, and the largest, Basel. But elsewhere the fire
smoulders beneath the ashes, and everything goes to prove that, if the
liberals should succeed in overthrowing the church in the cantons where
they have inaugurated their barbarous and intolerant rule, they will
continue their efforts even into the heart of the country. Already,
indeed, here and there, outside of the two just-named dioceses, they
reveal their intentions by isolated measures.

Thus at St. Gall, the cantonal council, the majority of which consists of
Protestants and free-thinkers, has forbidden the Catholic clergy to teach
the Syllabus and the dogma of Papal Infallibility; and, as the clergy
have refused to obey such an order, the Council of Public Instruction
has withdrawn from them the teaching the catechism during Lent, and has
placed the duty in the hands of schoolmasters in absolute dependence on
the state. This example betrays the intention of liberalism, in the name
of liberty, no longer to tolerate any religion but such as is fashioned
by its own hand. This intention is now betraying itself openly in the
two dioceses of Geneva and Basel. It is useless to speak of the rights
of Catholics consecrated by treaties, to invoke the respect due to their
conscience; useless is it to adduce in their behalf the religious
equality which they scrupulously maintain in the cantons, such as Lucerne
and Freyburg, where they have the superiority; useless to insist on their
patriotism, and on their loyal submission to laws which do not encroach
on the domain of religion. No, there are no rights for Catholics, there
is no justice for them; and when it is a question of attacking them, the
end justifies the means.

This is no invention of ours. We will cite a few examples in support of
our assertion.

M. Teuscher in the canton of Bern, and M. Carteret at Geneva, have
founded churches to which they have assigned the name of Catholic, which
they support with unusual zeal. Now, in the journal of these churches,
the _Démocratie catholique_, which is published at Bern, of the date of
January 2, is the following statement: “Ultramontanes are malefactors,
and there is no liberty for malefactors.” It may be objected, that these
words are merely the expression of an individual opinion. Let us listen
then to M. Carteret, speaking, about the same time, before the Grand
Council of Geneva: “Ultramontanism is dangerous; it is necessary to
combat it, to make on it a war of extermination and without mercy; it is
affectation to dream of being just and equitable with such an adversary.”
A little later on, in the same assembly, a credit was voted for the
maintenance of candidates for Catholic cures, whose rightful possessors
had been arbitrarily ejected; and when M. Vogt expressed his astonishment
that the canton should keep a tavern for liberal _abbés_, a deputy
exclaimed, “We shall act as we please.”

It would seem impossible for cynicism to go beyond this. But no; the
brutality of despotism was able to surpass even it. At the moment
when, in the canton of Soleure, the people were summoned to vote
the suppression of the secular foundations, of which we shall speak
presently, one of their journals published the following: “If we should
be conquered, and the _blacks_ should defeat the measure, _we shall
handle the knife_.” It sounds like a sinister echo of 1793.

What can be the object of the persecutors? Is it the substitution of
Protestantism for Catholicity? Scarcely. Protestants who really believe
in their religion disapprove of these iniquities. The object is akin,
rather, we may be sure, to the sentiment lately given utterance to by
the Pastor Lang of Zurich: “We are slowly but surely approaching the
end towards which the development of our spiritual life is urging us,
to wit, _the suppression and disappearance of all churches_.” The same
sentiment had been expressed during the debates on the federal revision
by M. Welti. “He who would wish to be free must not belong to any church.
No church gives liberty. The _state_ alone gives that.” In other words,
the ideal to be aimed at is the reign of the state over soul as well
as body. After this, can we wonder at the cry of alarm issuing from a
quarter not at least to be suspected of Catholic bias? It is a Protestant
journal--_l’Union jurassienne_--which exclaims, “The star of liberty
pales, the shadows of spiritual despotism are gathering around us.”
But the cry is lost in the desert. Despotism throws those who exercise
it into a kind of intoxication; every one of the excesses to which it
commits itself becomes the source of fresh ones. Its last word is
proscription, when it is not the scaffold.… In the diocese of Basel the
crimes of liberalism have been perpetrated principally at Soleure, in the
Jura, and at Bern. We will review them successively.

At Soleure, the Benedictine monastery of Maria-Stein, the collegiate
church of Schoenwerth, and that of S. Urs and S. Victor have been
overthrown at one stroke.

The monastery of Maria-Stein was founded in 1085, and had cleared and
cultivated the country. But the church can no more reckon upon the
gratitude of its enemies than upon their justice. They determined to
seize the property of the convent, to convert the building into a
madhouse, and to mock justice with the bestowal of a trifling alms on
the religious thus iniquitously dispossessed. At the first news of this
project, the ex-Father Hyacinthe again gave expression to the indignation
he had exhibited before on similar provocation, and sent to the abbot of
the monastery a protest against “this attack on property and religion.”

The foundation of the collegiate church of Schoenwerth, situated near
Olten, dates from the Xth century. It had only five canons, who served
four parishes, and gave instruction in the schools. That of S. Urs and S.
Victor from the VIIIth. It was erected into a cathedral in 1828; when the
residence of the Bishop of Basel was transferred to Soleure. Its chapter
has kept perpetual watch for nearly a thousand years at the tombs of the
Theban martyrs. These venerable memories arrested not the arms of the
spoilers. What was wanted was to punish the canons of Schoenwerth and of
Soleure for their loyalty to their bishop, and at the same time to get
possession of the endowments they administered.

Consequently, the suppression of the two collegiate churches, as well as
of the monastery of Maria-Stein, was submitted to the popular vote. It
was adopted by 8,356 votes against 5,896. But when it is remembered that
the majority included about 3,000 Protestants, besides the manufacturing
population of Olten, who are in complete subjection to the tyranny of
their Freemason employers; that more than 3,000 timid Catholics abstained
from voting, and that the women and children were not consulted, there
can remain no doubt that once again a Catholic majority has been
sacrificed to a coalition of Protestants and free-thinkers.

However it may be, this vote remarkably facilitated the object the
liberals have had in view for some time, namely, of abolishing the
chapter of Basel. This chapter consisted of canons from seven states of
the diocese--Bern, Basel, Thurgau, Aargau, Soleure, Zug, Lucerne. The
state of Soleure having suppressed its own, and the states of Aargau and
Bern being urged to do the same to theirs, the conference of the diocesan
states, on the 21st December, decreed the suppression of the chapter
itself and the sale of its effects. The support of five of these states
had been procured. No heed was taken of the opposition of Lucerne and Zug.

And it is asserted that it is in the name of religious liberty that
Swiss liberalism has deprived the diocese of Basel of its bishop and
its chapter! But what cares liberalism for the rights of Catholic
consciences? However, in thus decapitating the diocese it was carrying
out a purpose on which it was inexorably bent. It had long resolved
to create a national church calling itself Catholic, and it hugged the
illusion that the suppression of the Catholic bishoprics would contribute
to the success of this design. It is in pursuance of the same object that
it opened in Bern, in the month of October, a faculty of Old Catholic
theology.

These facts display a complete change of tactics on the part of unbelief.
In the last century, Voltaire and his satellites tried to batter down
the church, without dreaming of putting anything in her place. They
failed. Their successors of to-day adopt another plan. It is to create
anti-Catholic churches, calling themselves Catholic, to which they do not
belong, whose dogmas they abjure, and whose priests they despise. They
trust thus to satisfy the people, whilst retaining for themselves the
benefits of unbelief.

Next, in the month of October, the government of Bern opened, in the
federal capital, a faculty of theology, which it called “faculty of
Catholic theology,” and it invited chiefly foreigners to occupy its
chairs. It nominated dean of the faculty a German, that unfortunate Dr.
Friedrich of Munich, who was amongst the first to follow Döllinger in
his perversity, and they appointed as his subordinates a few apostates
picked up wherever they could find them. Eight students, almost all from
the canton of Soleure, the real focus of Swiss liberalism, were enrolled.
With such a contingent, the dream of a national church does not appear
certain to be realized. But the government of Bern flatters itself that
in time the number of students will increase, and that it will thus have
at its disposal submissive agents ready to assist it in its detestable
undertaking, the perversion of the Jura.

The Jura! It is impossible to cast a glance around that unfortunate
country without being filled with gratitude to God for the religious
heroism it perseveres in displaying in the presence of a powerful and
treacherous enemy who is striving to crush it utterly.

It is notorious that the ninety-seven parishes of the Jura have been
arbitrarily reconstructed by the government of Bern; and that, after
having reduced them to the number of twenty-five, it finally increased
them to forty-two. Nothing has been left undone to place at the head of
every one of these an apostate priest. But in spite of all its efforts
it has only been able to muster seventeen. Besides, what trouble do the
recruits swept up from all the by-ways of Europe cause them! Some have
already sent in their resignation.

Thus it was with Giaut, curate of Bonfol, who, in a public letter
announced his abandonment of the mission he had assumed, “because he saw
no immediate prospect of the realization, in the Jura, of his aspirations
and ideas.” Of the same kind was the course pursued by d’Omer Camerle,
who, on his withdrawal, declared that the new clergy, “utterly despised
by the liberals and execrated by the ultramontanes, were attempting a
work which was entirely useless if not contemptible.” Others have been
obliged to escape, or had to evade justice.

We have before narrated the misfortunes of Rupplin. His rival Naudot,
arrested for abduction of a minor, was condemned to six months’
imprisonment. In his defence, made by himself, he demanded, “Am I more
guilty than Giaut, _curé_ of Bonfol, who calls himself Guiot; than
Choisel, _curé_ of Courgenay, whose real name is Chastel; than Déramey,
who calls himself Pipy?” We must, however, state to his credit that he
abjured his errors and returned into the bosom of the church.

At Bienne, the intruder, St. Ange Lièvre, threw off the mask, and
married a Protestant named Tsantré-Boll. The union was blessed by M.
Saintes, a Protestant minister, after an address by M. Hurtault, from
Geneva, who complimented his colleague “for having had the courage to
throw off the yoke of bondage imposed upon him by the Roman papacy.”
This was overshooting the mark. The intruders may commit all imaginable
escapades without provoking attention. But they must not marry. It
reveals prematurely the programme of the free-thinkers of Bern, who, in
order to conciliate the population of the Jura, declare that they have
no intention to meddle with the dogmas of the church. Accordingly, the
“Provisionary Catholic Synodal Commission,” in a letter addressed to
“MM. the curates of the Jura,” “severely rebuked the deplorable example
given by M. St. Ange Lièvre, and promised to demand from the authorities
a remedy, which could not be refused if another member of the clergy
should venture to violate the venerable laws of the church.” Ludicrous
imbecility! They will try to hinder for the future a renewal of these
wanton freaks, but they respect what has been already perpetrated. And
so M. Lièvre and his Protestant wife remain at the head of the parish of
Bienne!

But do any of the intruded meet with success in their propaganda? No! At
Alle, Salis rings the bell for Masses which he does not say. At Bienne,
only twenty or thirty persons attend the service of St. Ange Lièvre. At
Delémont, the chief place of the district, enjoying a radical priest, a
radical president of the tribunal, radical functionaries, so empty is the
church usurped by Portaz-Grassis that, on the 7th of January, the council
of the parish gave vent to the following cry of distress in a circular
addressed to “Liberal Catholics”: “The religious question in the Jura
being intimately associated with the political one, it is important, now
that our national church is constituted on solid and legal foundations,
that all liberals should support this church and sustain the majority
of the Bernese people in the steps that have been taken. [It must be
remembered that the majority of the Bernese people is Protestant.]

“Yet is our worship little frequented, and our enemies proclaim
everywhere that our church is deserted.

“In presence of this carelessness--we may say, even of this culpable
indifference--we make a last appeal to the patriotic sentiments of the
liberal Catholics of Delémont, beseeching them to assist more regularly
at the Sunday Mass, and above all to induce their wives and children to
be present at it. If Catholics [!] will not show more zeal in supporting
the liberal curate and the council of the parish, the latter will resign
_in globo_ the charge entrusted to it.”

Nothing, however, discourages the government of Bern, and in conformity
with the law of worship, voted some months ago, it has obliged the new
parishes of the Jura to proceed to the formation of parochial councils,
and to the nomination, or rather confirmation, of the intruding curates.
But here, also, what deception! Out of 12,000 electors, only the tenth
part voted. In 28 communes, not a single elector presented himself at
the ballot. In the others, the number was laughably small. At St. Imier,
for instance, out of 1,933 electors, only eight answered the summons. At
Moustier, out of 1,429, only 24. No less significant are the numbers of
votes polled for the elected curates:

Fontenais: M. d’Abbadie (Frenchman) had 77 votes out of 1,651 electors.

Courtemaiche: M. Coffignal (Frenchman) had 15 votes out of 1,683 electors.

Undervelier: M. Salis (Italian) had 13 votes out of 1,046 electors.

Courroux: M. Maestrelli (Italian) had 60 votes out of 1,557 electors.

Roggenburg: M. Oser (German) had 40 votes out of 465 electors.

Bislach: M. Schoenberger (German) had 33 votes out of 669 electors.

Dittengen: M. Fuchs (Austrian) had 33 votes out of 667 electors.

Bienne: M. St. Ange Lièvre (Frenchman) had 50 votes out of 1,040 electors.

Imagine the Bernese government being eager to confirm nominations made
under such circumstances!

As to the Catholics, they continue to assemble in barns and cart-sheds,
and there to lift with faith their hands towards heaven, and to rest
firm in their fidelity. This attitude only aggravates the rage of their
persecutors. We have already spoken of the suppression of the Ursulines
of Porrentruy. The last remaining religious congregation in that town
could not long escape the same fate. It was that of the Sisters of
Charity of Ste. Ursanne, who had for twenty years ministered in the
hospital for the poor of the chief town of the Bernese Jura. They began
with seizing their chapel and handing it over to schism. Then, without
any pretext, they cast into prison the Superior and two of the Sisters,
where they remained four days. At length, one fine morning, they were
informed that they must leave the place within four hours; at the
expiration of which period, if they had not left, “they would be forcibly
expelled.” The execution soon followed the sentence; and these religious
ladies, whose presence had only been known by good works, were, in their
turn, compelled to tread the path of exile!

In spite of the implacable intolerance of their enemies, the Jurassians
do not cease petitioning the federal authorities; and to the number of
9,000 they have demanded the restitution of their churches and of their
ecclesiastical property, the re-establishment of the Catholic worship,
and the recall of the 97 priests unjustly expelled. The restitution
of the churches, and the re-establishment of the Catholic as a public
worship, have been flatly refused, on the plea that there cannot exist
in the canton any other public Catholic worship than that established
by the law of January, 1874! But the federal council, notwithstanding
its notorious hostility, shrunk from an open and avowed approbation of
the ostracism of the faithful priests; and it requested of the Bernese
government an explanation of the reasons which, in its opinion, justified
the continuance of that rigorous measure; reserving to itself to give a
subsequent decision on the appeal which had been made to it.

Opinions are divided as to the real intentions of the federal council,
and at the moment when we write the definitive decision has not been
announced. But whatever may be the fate of the appeal, the situation of
the church in the Jura will remain no less lamentable.

Whilst the Jurassian population give, thus, an example of fidelity worthy
of the first ages of the Christian era, the tempest has burst upon the
Catholic parish of the town of Bern.

This parish possesses a church built by the late Mgr. Baud, predecessor
of the present curate, M. Perroulaz, and paid for by the alms of the
Catholics of the entire country. The schismatics cast longing eyes upon
it; but their designs were for a while impeded by the fear of displeasing
the ambassadors. This fear was unfounded. For since the overthrow of
governments caused by the detestable policy of Napoleon III., there is no
longer an Europe; and everywhere violence and injustice, having nothing
to fear from the once protective influence of the great powers, commit
themselves to every license. It is thus, then, they set about to compass
their end.

First, an assembly of the parish was convoked to elect a parochial
council. But as such an assembly owes its existence to the late law of
worship, and as the faithful Catholics could not consequently take any
part in it, the council was chosen by one hundred out of three hundred
and sixty electors. Scarcely was it installed when it received a request
from the professors of the Old Catholic faculty of Bern, that the
church might be placed at their disposition, for their Masses, worship,
and preachings. It eagerly acceded to this request, and desired M.
Perroulaz to open the gates of the church to the schismatic priests of
the university. He refused. They ordered him to give up the keys. He
did nothing of the kind. They went to his house and took them from him;
and on Sunday, 28th February, Dr. Friedrich and his accomplices took
possession of the sanctuary. M. Perroulaz, to avoid scandal, assembled
his parishioners for the celebration of their worship in the great
hall of the Museum. Thither they flocked in crowds. Foremost amongst
the worshippers were the ambassadors of France, Austria, Italy, Spain,
Portugal, Brazil, etc. Thirty years ago, such a demonstration of the
diplomatic body would not have remained without results. But in the
year of grace 1875, “might makes right,” and the petty tyrants of Bern,
supported by certain foreign cabinets, satiate with impunity their hatred
of the church.

But even this did not content them. It was not sufficient for them to
have deprived Catholics of their church. They wanted, further, to compel
M. Perroulaz to say Mass in it together with the apostates. The Council
of State designed, in this way, to place him in a position in which they
might be able, in due form of law, to relieve him of his functions. On
his refusal it decided to institute a process of revocation; and, pending
the trial, it suspended him! Then he was driven out of the presbytery,
and a Bavarian impostor was installed in his place. What! After having
despoiled the faithful of the sanctuary built by their own hands and
with their own money, they command them, besides, to make common cause
with renegades, and make it a crime in their pastor to assemble them
elsewhere to adore God according to their conscience. At Rome, under the
pagan emperors, the Christians had the freedom of the Catacombs; at Bern,
in 1875, even such freedom would be grudged by the ingrates whose cradle
was enlightened by the rays of divine truth!

At Geneva affairs are as gloomy as in the canton of Bern. Last August,
at the moment when we were relating the high-handed proceedings of the
government, M. Loyson had just distinguished himself by breaking his
connection with the lay chiefs of the schism. “I will not engage,” he
said, “in useless discussions with men who confound liberalism with
radicalism, Catholicism with the _Profession of Faith_ of the Savoyard
vicar.” The poor apostate would, we suspect, have been but too glad to
return to the venerable church which received his first oaths. But how
dispose of Mme. Loyson and the little Emmanuel? He continued therefore
schismatic, and he announced that he should remain at Geneva “until the
election of a bishop, who, with his synod, was the only authority,” he
added, “which he could recognize in the religious order.” In pursuance of
this secession, he founded a free worship, which has a small number of
sectaries as its following.

As to the official church, its misfortunes are beyond calculation. The
town of Geneva itself was favored with three curates, each receiving
from four to five thousand francs a year, and a few vicars. After
the retirement of M. Loyson, the second of the three curates--M.
Hurtault--left, in order to occupy one of the chairs of the Old Catholic
faculty at Bern. It was, no doubt, to console the new church in these
bereavements, that one of the vicars, M. Vergoin, in imitation of his
accomplices, took to himself a wife in the person of a Freyburg damsel.

However, the law of the organization of religious worship enjoined on all
the curates and vicars of the canton the oath of obedience to the laws.
The Council of State shrunk for a long time from the application of this
provision in the rural communes. At length, yielding to the impatience
of the “Catholic Superior Council,” it decreed that the oath should be
taken on the 4th September by the seventeen curates and the two vicars
officiating in the country.

On the appointed day, a large crowd assembled around the entrance of the
town-hall. Not a priest summoned presented himself. They, too, were proud
to wear the device of Mgr. Lachat: _Potius mori quam fœdari!_--“Death
rather than shame!”

Immediately afterwards, the Council of State pronounced the aforesaid
cures vacant, and suppressed the pay of their occupiers from October 31.
This measure was communicated to the “Catholic Superior Council,” with
the view of its filling the vacancies.

Great was the embarrassment of the latter. As a commencement, it demanded
of the Council of State the power of disposing of the country churches
from the 31st October. The reply was that it had only to apply to the
municipal authorities. It then devised the plan of publishing in the
journals, amongst the advertisements, a notice to the effect that “the
registry was open at the office of the superior council for the offices
of curate and vicar in twenty-two parishes of the canton, which had
become vacant in consequence of death, dismissal, and revocation.” When
at length it had found a candidate, it resolved to present him to the
parish of Grand-Saconnex, one of the nearest to Geneva, and which on
that account appeared to it to be ripe for schism. But only thirty-three
electors out of one hundred and sixty-six responded to the call. It was
less than a third, and the election was abortive in consequence.

Such a check was suggestive. The measure decreed on the 4th September
was not put in force, except that the salaries of the faithful curates
remained suppressed. But they revenged themselves by annoying the
Catholics in every possible way.

We will cite two instances.

An Old Catholic interment having taken place at Hermance, after several
provocations, the population threw some stones on the coffin of the
defunct. The blame was immediately laid on the curate, and he was
expelled from the canton on the pretext that “he troubled the public
peace,” said the decree, “by his preachings, and excited hatred of one
another among the citizens.” No accusation could be more serious than
this. For, indeed, had he been guilty of it, it was before the courts he
should have been brought. But all that was wanted then was to punish the
parishioners for having, a few days before, given an ill reception to two
intruders who had attempted to pervert the village.

The second is a yet sadder incident. One fine day, an Old Catholic
inhabitant of Geneva, named Maurice, who lived close to the Old Catholic
church, took it into his head to have his infant child baptized by the
intruding priest, Marchal, in the Catholic Church of Compesières, used
for two communes, Bardonnex and Plan-les-Ouates. On the arrival of the
cortége, the mayors of these communes, habited in their scarfs of office,
and surrounded by their subordinates, opposed its entry into the church,
and forced it to beat a retreat. At the news of this there was great
consternation at Geneva.

The whim of M. Maurice was not only a violation of the liberty of
religion; it was a wanton provocation, since he belonged to the commune
of Geneva, and could have had his child baptized in the church of S.
Germain, of which the schism had taken possession. No matter. The
Council of State took advantage of the incident, and ordered the mayors
of Compesières to keep the parish church open for baptism of the little
Maurice. At the same time it ordered thither some squadrons of gendarmes
and of carabineers, and, thanks to this display of the public force, a
locksmith was able to force open the doors of the sacred edifice. They
had it sealed with the borough-seal, and a huge placard was stuck on it,
bearing the following inscription: “Property is inviolable.” Before the
profanation, a delegate from the communal authorities of Bardonnex and of
Plan-les-Ouates had communicated to the invaders a final protest.

Any commentary would be superfluous. We limit ourselves to quoting
the following words of the _Journal de Genève_: “What has passed at
Compesières has but too quickly justified the mournful forebodings
inspired by the violent policy which is growing from bad to worse in
official quarters. We persist in demanding that a stop be put to this
sowing the wind at the risk of reaping the whirlwind.” But the object
had been achieved. The Catholics had been outraged, and a pretext had
been made for dismissing M. de Montfalcon, mayor of Plan-les-Ouates and
president of “l’Union des Campagnes.”

It appears, however, that this was not enough. In the bosom of the
“Catholic Superior Council,” M. Héridier exclaimed: “We must follow
the course of the Bernese government.” Such bitter hatred can only
be accounted for by the negative results of the country enterprise.
The firmness of the Catholics, in fact, increases, instead of growing
fainter, and they are unanimous in adopting the sentiments of a speaker
of the “Union des Campagnes,” who exclaimed lately: “Whatever happens
we will not be found wanting. If they despoil us of our churches, they
can only take the walls; they cannot take our souls. We will follow our
stripped and proscribed altars even into the poverty of a barn or the
darkness of a cavern. If they hunt our priests from their presbyteries,
we will offer them an asylum under our modest and friendly roofs. If they
rob them of their salaries, we will share with them the wages of our
labor and the bread of our tables.”

A special cause of irritation to the liberals and free-thinkers was the
circumstance that scarcely had the Catholics been despoiled of the church
of S. Germain before they bought, to replace it, the Temple Unique,
formerly occupied by the Freemasons, and which they dedicated to the
Sacred Heart. Accordingly, no sooner had the elections for the renewal of
the Grand Council given a majority to M. Carteret, before that gentleman
set to work to inflict a fresh blow upon the Catholics, by robbing them
of the Church of Notre Dame. This magnificent church was built in 1857
by means of subscription collected throughout the Christian world by
Mgr. Mermillod, and M. Dunoyer, the dismissed curate of Geneva. The
subscriptions had been given, we need scarcely say, on the faith of the
Catholic worship, and that alone, being celebrated in the church; and for
seventeen years no other had been celebrated there.

For a long while M. Carteret and the free-thinking liberals had been
casting longing looks on this prey. They had been impeded in their
designs by energetic resistance, and, amongst others, by that of the
ex-Father Hyacinthe. But at last they lost patience, and at their
instigation, backed by the pressure of a populace whose worst passions
they had inflamed, the Grand Council, at the beginning of January,
adopted an order of the day requiring the prompt execution of the law of
2d November, 1850.

This law, which had bestowed upon Catholics the land on which the sacred
edifice is built, enacted that the administration of the church should
be entrusted to a commission of five members, chosen by the Catholics of
the parish of Geneva. By demanding the putting in force of this clause,
they hoped to form a commission of Old Catholics who would hand over the
church to the radicals concealed under a schismatic mask.

We do not intend to discuss here the question of right; although it
appears clear to us that they could not justly turn against Catholics
a stipulation which had been made expressly in their favor. The mere
equity of the case should have sufficed to prevent, under existing
circumstances, the application of the clause. This was the view taken
by two distinguished Protestants who had not abandoned all regard for
justice--M. Naville and M. de la Rive. The latter, in a remarkable
production, observed: “There is not, I think, an impartial mind, which,
looking at the matter from the point of view of simple equity, will not
decide in favor of that one of the two churches which has borne the whole
of the large outlay by which the value of the original grant has been
increased more than tenfold. The spot on which now stands one of the most
splendid monuments of our city would be still a waste space but for the
sums collected and furnished precisely by those persons whose possession
of it is now disputed. Notre Dame is exclusively the work of the priests
and faithful of the Catholic Church. That is a notorious, undisputed
fact.”

There could be no reply to language so true and striking. Moreover, one
of those who had collected the subscriptions, in a published letter,
stated that “the principal part of the sums employed in the erection of
the building had been subscribed by Roman Catholics throughout the world,
and that he could assert and prove that those who are separated from the
Catholic Church had nothing whatsoever to do with its construction.”

But these protests were useless. Had, however, the sectaries the pretence
that they were in a majority in Geneva, and that they had need of Notre
Dame? By no means. And the _Chronique radical_ remarked it, demanding:
“What will you do with the church of Notre Dame? Can you fill it?”
Indeed, no! They will never be able to fill it. But the object was to
wrest it from the faithful--from those who flocked to it in crowds,
whose registry records, in 1874, 260 Baptisms, 170 Burials, 60 Marriages,
174 First Communions, and 30,000 Communions of adults; and for whom five
Masses were celebrated every Sunday. Here, once more the end justifies
the means.

The Council of State, moved thus to put in force the law of 1850,
convoked the electoral body, deciding, as a preliminary, that the
citizens of Geneva alone should take part in the election. To understand
the importance of this qualification it will suffice to observe that
there are in the canton of Geneva 25,000 Catholic foreigners,[147] and
that, by depriving them of the right of voting, the Catholic strength
would be seriously weakened.

In spite of this subterfuge, there was every prospect of victory for
the faithful, when, on the very eve of the elections, the 6th February,
during the afternoon, the number of electors which, in the morning,
stood at 1,500 only, was raised to 1,924. Whence these recruits at the
last moment had been procured may be easily conjectured. The _Courrier
de Genève_ asserted that it saw come to the poll “a band of unknown
individuals who appeared to be formed in brigades.”

Thanks to this reinforcement, the free-thinking list obtained a majority
of 187 votes.

The commission thus elected immediately entered upon its duties, and
instead of taking their church away from the Catholics, it hurriedly
decided that “the inhabitants of the right bank of the Rhone and of the
Lake, who belong to the religion recognized by the state, should be at
liberty to perform in the temple the ceremonies of Baptism, Marriage, and
Burial,” and that it reserved for itself to take what steps it might deem
advisable to take against ecclesiastics who should give occasion to just
complaints, specially in aught that concerns the public peace, obedience
to the laws, and the respect due to magistrates.

These resolutions were on the point of being executed when Mgr.
Mermillod, M. Dunoyer, as representatives of the subscribers, and M.
Lany, rector of Notre Dame, claimed, before the courts, the ownership of
the edifice.

Do judges still exist at Geneva? It remains to be seen.

But this was not all. On the 6th April, at five o’clock in the morning,
the recently-elected commission had the doors of the church broken open
by a locksmith, protected by a squad of gendarmes and police-agents;
after which seals were placed on the doors, and further worship
interdicted!

The situation becomes thus more and more critical. M. Carteret envies
M. Bismarck his laurels, and, supported by all that is evil in Geneva,
we must expect to see him rush headlong to the utmost extremities. Far
distant, indeed, is the time when one could talk of Swiss liberty. The
violence of every description which has gone on increasing in the old
Helvetic land demonstrates that despotism can run riot as savagely under
a republican form of government as under any other; and that they who cry
out the most lustily against the tyranny of kings are themselves tyrants
of the worst kind when they have power in their hands.

It is clear that in the course they are pursuing the Swiss radicals
will not suffer themselves to be distanced by any one. They have formed
a vast association, called the _Volksverein_, at one of whose meetings,
held at Olten last autumn, a programme was voted containing the following
clause: “The moment has arrived for the application of the principles
which are the foundation of the new federal party. In order to crush
for ever the influence of Ultramontanism it is not enough to emancipate
from the church the individual as such, it is necessary that churches
themselves should be governed democratically and nationally and that
every hierarchical institution be suppressed, as dangerous to the state
and to liberty; and that, by virtue of Art. 50 of the new constitution,
the existing bishoprics be suppressed by the federal assembly.” The
hypocrites! They dare to take the name of liberty upon their lips! True,
the “National Convention,” and the Paris “Commune,” they too scribbled
the word everywhere!

The demonstrations, the principal of which we have indicated, must end
in the definitive constitution of the projected national church, before
which all will be expected to bow the knee, as the pagans demanded of the
primitive church to adore their false gods. Active negotiations for this
object are being carried on between five states of the ancient diocese
of Basel, the cantons of Zurich, Schaffhausen, Ticino, Geneva, etc. It
has been decided to have a bishop. All will be required to submit to
this bishop. But he will have a superior in the form of a synod composed
of sectaries of all creeds or of no creed, and these will enjoy, in his
regard, the right of deposition. It is asserted that M. Reinkens will
consecrate the new bishop. The consecration of an apostate does not share
in the promise of indefectibility.

Anyhow, the Old Catholics will not succeed in erecting a serious edifice.
To found a church there are needed faith, zeal, devotedness, religious
conviction. Radicals and free-thinkers have none of these.

Without belief of any kind, their one aim is the overthrow of all
religion. Let them, then, seize our churches--let them decree the
formation of an ecclesiastical hierarchy! The profaned churches will be
deserted, their priests will be despised, and again they will be taught
the lesson that the Living God does not preside over schismatics and
heretics!


COFFIN FLOWERS.

    And doth Saint Peter ope the gates
      Of heaven to such a toll?
    Or do you think this show of flowers
      Will deck my naked soul?

    Perhaps you wish the folks to know
      How much you can afford;
    And prove upon my coffin-lid
      You don’t “let out,” nor board.

    Oh! cast an humble flower or two
      Upon my funeral bier;
    And drop upon my lifeless form
      One true, love-speaking tear.

    But take away these shop-made things,
      They mock my sighs and groans;
    And soon, like me, will rot, and show
      Their framework, like my bones.

    God only asks if my poor soul
      A wedding garment wears.
    A bridal wreath? Yes, make _it_ up
      Of flowers. God’s flowers are prayers!


ARE YOU MY WIFE?

BY THE AUTHOR OF “PARIS BEFORE THE WAR,” “NUMBER THIRTEEN,” “PIUS VI.,”
ETC.

CHAPTER VII.

THE SEARCH RENEWED.

Everybody was late next day at the Court; everybody except Clide de
Winton, whose waking dreams being brighter than any that his pillow
could suggest, had deserted it at a comparatively early hour, and had
been for a stroll in the park before breakfast. He re-entered the house
whistling an air from _Don Giovanni_, and went into the library, where he
expected to find Sir Simon. The baronet generally came in there to read
his letters when there were people staying in the house. The library was
a noble room with its six high pointed windows set in deep mullions, and
its walls wainscoted with books on the east and west--rich-clad volumes
of crimson and brown, with the gold letters of their names relieving the
sombre hues like thin streaks of light, while at intervals great old
florentines in folios “garmented in white” made a break in the general
solemnity. The end opposite the windows was left clear for a group of
family portraits; and beneath these, as Clide burst into the room,
there stood a living group, conversing together in low tones, and with
anxious, harassed faces. Mrs. de Winton, contrary to her custom, had on
a gray cashmere dressing-gown, whose soft, clinging drapery gave her
tall figure some resemblance to a classical statue; she was leaning her
arm on the high mantel-piece, with an open letter in her hand, which
she was apparently discussing with deep annoyance, and with a cloud of
incredulity on her handsome, cold features; the admiral was striking the
marble with his clenched hand, and looking steadily at the bronze clock,
as if vehemently remonstrating with it for marking ten minutes to eleven;
Sir Simon was standing with his hands in his pockets, his back against
the base of Cicero’s bust, very nearly as white as the Roman orator
himself.

The three figures started when Clide opened the door. He felt
instantaneously that something was amiss, but there was a momentary pause
before he said:

“Has anything happened?”

Mrs. de Winton, seeing that no one else spoke, came forward: “Nothing
that we are certain of; but your uncle has received a letter that has
shocked and startled us a good deal, although it seems on the face of
it quite impossible that the thing can be true. But you will be brave,
Clide, and meet it as becomes a Christian.” She spoke calmly, but her
voice trembled a little.

“For heaven’s sake what is it?” said Clide, a horrible thought darting
through him like a sting. Why did his uncle keep looking away from him?
“Uncle, what is it?”

“It is a letter from Ralph Cromer--you remember your uncle’s old
valet?--he is in London now; he was at Glanworth on that dreadful night.…
My dear boy,” laying her hand kindly on his arm, “it may be a mere fancy
of his; in fact, it seems impossible for a moment to admit of its being
anything else; but Cromer says he has seen her.…”

“Seen whom? My dead wife … Isabel! The man is mad!”

“It must be a delusion; we are certain it is; but still it has given us a
shock,” said his stepmother.

“What does the man say? Show me his letter!”

She handed it to him.

    “HONORED MASTER: I am hard set to believe it; but if it an’t
    her, it’s her ghost as I seen this mornin’ comin’ out of a
    house in Wimpole Street, and though I ran after her as hard as
    my bad leg ’ud let me, she jumped into a cab and was off before
    I could get another look of her. It was the young missis,
    Master Clide’s wife, as you buried eight year ago, Sir, as I’m
    a live man; unless I went blind of a sudden and saw wrong,
    which an’t likely, as you know to the last my eyes was strong
    and far-seein’. I went back to the house, but the man could
    tell me nothin’ except as all sorts of people keep comin’ and
    goin’ with the toothache, in and out, his employer bein’ a
    dentist, and too busy to be disturbed with questions as didn’t
    pay. I lose no time in acquaintin’ you of, honored master, and
    remain yours dutifully to command,

                                                       RALPH CROMER.”

There was a dead silence in the room while Clide read the letter. Every
one of the six eyes was fixed on him eagerly. He crushed the paper in his
hand, and sat down without uttering a word.

“Don’t let yourself be scared too quickly, De Winton,” said Sir Simon;
“it is perfectly clear to my mind that the thing is a mere imagination of
Cromer’s; he’s nearly in his dotage; he sees somebody who bears a strong
likeness to a person he knew nearly eight years ago, and he jumps at the
conclusion that it is that person.”

Clide made no answer to this, but turned round and faced his uncle, who
still stood with his hand clenched stolidly on the mantel-piece.

“Uncle, what do you think of it?” he said hoarsely.

The admiral walked deliberately towards the sofa and sat down beside his
nephew. Before he spoke he held out his horny palm, and grasped Clide’s
hand tightly. The action was too significant not to convey to Clide all
it was meant--perhaps unconsciously--to express.

The admiral did not believe the story to be the phantom of dotage; he
believed Cromer had seen Isabel.

“My boy,” he said, speaking in a harsh, abrupt tone, as if the words were
being dragged out of him, “I can say nothing until we have investigated
the matter. An hour ago I would have sworn it was absurd, impossible. I
would have said, with an oath, it cannot be true. I saw her laid in her
coffin and buried at St. Valéry. But I might have sworn falsely. Several
days had elapsed between the death and the burial; the features were
swollen, scarcely recognizable. I took it perhaps too readily for granted
that they were hers; I ought to have looked closer and longer; but I
shrank from looking at all; I only glanced; they showed me the hair; it
was the same length and apparently the same color, deep jet black; the
height too corresponded. This, as well as all the collateral evidence,
satisfied me at once as to the identity. It may be that I was too rash,
too anxious to be convinced.”

Clide was silent for a few moments. Then he said:

“Where did the dentist live that gave us the clew before?”

“In Wimpole Street.”

Clide drew away his hand quickly from his uncle’s with a visible shudder.
The coincidence had done its work with the others before he came in. An
inarticulate exclamation, full of passionate emotion of some sort, broke
from him.

“Come, come,” said Sir Simon, striding towards the window, “it’s sheer
nonsense to take for granted that the house is burnt down because there’s
a smell of fire. The coincidences are strange, very singular certainly;
but such things happen every day. I stick to my first impression that
it’s nothing but a delusion of Cromer’s in the first instance, to which
the chance similarity of the dentist’s address gives a color of reality
too faint to be worth more than it actually is. You must go up to town at
once, and clear away the mistake; it’s too monstrous to be anything else.”

He spoke in a very determined manner, as if he were too thoroughly
convinced himself to doubt of convincing others. Clide made a resolute
effort to be convinced.

“Yes, you say truly; it’s unreasonable to accept the story without
further evidence. I will go in search of it without an hour’s delay.
Uncle, you will come with me?”

“Yes, my boy, yes; we will go together; we must start in about an hour
from this”--pulling out his watch--“meantime, come in and have your
breakfast; it wont help matters to travel on an empty stomach.”

Mrs. de Vinton left the room hurriedly; the others were following; but
Clide had weightier things on his mind than breakfast; he closed the
door after his uncle and turned round, facing Sir Simon.

The latter was the first to speak.

“Has anything definite passed between you and Franceline?”

It was precisely to speak about this that he had detained Sir
Simon, yet when the baronet broached the subject in this frank,
straight-to-the-point way, he answered him almost savagely: “What’s
the use of reminding me of her now! As if the thought were not already
driving me mad!”

“I must speak of it. Whatever misery may be in store for the rest of
us, I am responsible for her share in it. I insist upon knowing how far
things have gone between you. Have you distinctly committed yourself?”

“If following a woman like her shadow, and hanging on every word she
says, and telling her by every look and tone that he worships the ground
she walks on--if you call that distinctly committing myself, I shouldn’t
think you needed to ask.”

“Have you asked her to be your wife?”

“Not in so many words.”

“Does she care for you? De Winton, be honest with me. This is no time for
squeamishness. Speak out to me as man to man. I feel towards this young
girl as if she were my own child. I have known all along how it was with
you. But how about her? Have I guessed right--does she love you?”

“God help me! God help us both!” And with this passionate cry Clide
turned away and, hiding his face in his hands, let himself fall into a
chair.

“God help you, my poor lad! And God forgive me!” muttered Sir Simon.

The accent of self-reproach in which the prayer was uttered smote Clide
to the heart; it stirred all that was noble and unselfish within him,
and in the midst of his overwhelming anguish bade him forget himself to
comfort his friend.

“You have nothing to reproach yourself with; you acted like a true
friend, like a father to me. You meant to make me the happiest of men,
to give me a treasure that I never could be worthy of. God bless you for
it!” He held out his hand, and grasped Sir Simon’s. “No, nobody is to
blame; it is my own destiny that pursues me. I thought I had lived it
down; but I was mistaken. I am never to live it down. I could bear it if
it fell upon myself alone. I had grown used to it. But that it should
fall upon her! What has she done to deserve it?… What do I not deserve
for bringing this curse upon her?” He rose up with flashing eye, his
whole frame quivering with passion--he struck out against the air with
both arms, as if striving to burst some invisible, unendurable bond.

Sir Simon started back affrighted. Kind-hearted, easy-going Sir Simon had
never experienced the overmastering force of passion, whether of anger
or grief, love or joy; his was one of those natures that when the storm
comes lie down and let it sweep over them. He was brought now for the
first time in his life in contact with the spectacle of one who did not
bend under the tempest, but rose up in frantic defiance, breasting and
resisting it. He quailed before the sight; he could not make a sign or
find a word to say. But the transient paroxysm of madness spent itself,
and after a few minutes Clide said, hopelessly yet fiercely:

“Speak to me, why don’t you, Harness?” Emotion swept away his habitual
tone of respect towards the man who might have been his father. “Help me
to help her! What can I do to stand between her and this misery? I must
see her before I go, and what in Heaven’s name shall I say to her?”

“You shall not see her,” said Sir Simon; “you would not think of such a
thing if you were in your right mind; but you are mad, De Winton. Say to
her, indeed! That you find you are a married man--I don’t believe it,
mind--but what else could you say if you were to see her? While there
is the shadow of a doubt on this head you must not see her, must not
directly or indirectly hold any communication with her.”

“And I am to sneak off without a word of explanation, and leave her to
think of me as a heartless, dishonorable scoundrel!”

“A bitter alternative; but it is better to seem a scoundrel than to be
one,” answered Sir Simon. “What could you say to her if you saw her?”

“I would tell her the truth and ask her to forgive me,” said the young
man, his face kindling with tenderness and passion of a softer kind than
that which had just convulsed its fine lineaments. “I would bless her for
what the memory of her love must be to me while I live. Harness, if it is
only to say ‘God bless you and forgive me!’ I must see her.”

“I’ll shoot you first!” said the baronet, clutching his arm and arresting
his steps toward the door. “You call that love? I call it the basest
selfishness. You would see the woman who loves you for the sole purpose
of planting yourself so firmly in the ruins of her broken heart that
nothing could ever uproot it; but then she would worship you as a
victim--a victim of her own making, and this would be compensation to you
for a great deal. I thought better of you, De Winton, than to suppose you
capable of such heartless foppery.”

It was Clide’s turn to quail. But he answered quickly:

“You are right. It would be selfish and cruel. I was mad to think of it.”

“Of course you were. I knew you would see it in a moment.”

“But there is no reason why I should not see her father,” said Clide; “it
is only fit that I should speak to him. Shall I go there, or will you
bring him up here?”

“You shall not see him, here or anywhere else,” was the peremptory reply.
“Have you spoken to him already?”

“No. I went down this morning for the purpose, but he was not up.”

“That was providential. And about Franceline, am I to understand there is
a distinct engagement between you?”

“As distinct as need be for a man of honor.”

“Since when?”

“Last night.”

Sir Simon winced. This at any rate was his doing. He had taken every
pains to precipitate what now he would have given almost anything he
possessed to undo.

“I’ll tell you what it is, you must leave the matter in my hands. I will
see the count as soon as you are gone. I will tell him that your uncle
has been called off suddenly on important business that required your
presence, and that you have gone with him. For the present it is not
necessary to say more; it would be cruel to do so.”

“I will abide by your advice,” said Clide submissively; “but
afterwards--what if this terrible news turns out to be true?”

“It has yet to be proved.”

“If it is proved it will kill her!” exclaimed Clide, speaking rather to
himself than to his companion.

“Pooh! nonsense! All fancy that. Lovers’ dead are easily buried,” said
Sir Simon, affecting a cheerfulness he was very far from feeling. He knew
better than Clide how ill-fitted Franceline was, both by the sensitive
delicacy of her own nature and the inherited delicacy of a consumptive
mother, to bear up against such a blow as that which threatened her;
but he would not lacerate the poor fellow’s heart by letting him share
these gloomy forebodings that were based on surer ground than the
sentimental fears of a lover. Perhaps the expression of his undisciplined
features--the brow that could frown but knew not how to dissemble;
the lip that could smile so kindly, or curl in contempt, but knew not
how to lie; the eye that was the faithful, even when the unconscious,
interpreter of the mind--may have said more to Clide than was intended.

“I trust you to watch over her,” he said; and then added in a tone that
went to Sir Simon’s very heart, “don’t spare me if it can help you to
spare her. Tell her I am a blackguard--it’s true by comparison; compared
to her snow-white purity and angelic innocence of heart, I am no better
than a false and selfish brute. Blacken me as much as you like--make her
hate me--anything rather than that she should suffer, or guess what I am
suffering. God knows I would bear it and ten times worse to shield her
from one pang!”

“That is spoken like yourself,” said the baronet. “I recognize your
father’s son now.”

They grasped each other’s hands in silence. Clide was opening the door
when suddenly he turned round and said with a smile of touching pathos:

“You will not begin the blackening process at once? You will wait till we
know if it is necessary?”

“All right--you may trust me,” was the rejoinder, and they went together
into the breakfast-room.

       *       *       *       *       *

They had the carriage to themselves. Clide was glad of it. It was a
strange fatality that drew these two men, alike only in name, so closely
together in the most trying crises of the younger man’s life. He spoke of
it gratefully, but bitterly.

“Yes, your support is the one drop of comfort granted me in this trouble,
as it was in the other,” he said, as the train carried them through the
green fields and past many a spot made dear and beautiful by memory; “it
is abominably selfish of me to use it as I do, but where should I be
without it! I should have been in a mad-house before this if it were not
for you, uncle, hunted as I am like a mad-dog. What have I done so much
worse than other men to be cursed like this!”

The admiral had hitherto been as gentle towards his nephew as a fond but
awkward nurse handling a sick child; but he turned on him now with a
severe countenance.

“What right have you to turn round on your Maker and upbraid him for the
consequences of your own folly? You talk of being cursed; we make our
own curses. We commit follies and sins, and we have to pay for it, and
then we call it destiny! It is your own misdoing that is hunting you.
You thought to make life into a holiday; to shirk every duty, everything
that was the least irksome or distasteful; you flew in the face of
common-sense, and family dignity, and all the responsibilities of life
in your marriage; you rushed into the most solemn act of a man’s life
with about as much decency and reverence as a masquerader at a fancy
ball. Instead of acting openly in the matter and taking counsel with
your relatives, you fall in love with a pretty face and marry it without
even as much prudence as a man exercises in hiring a groom. You pay the
penalty of this, and then, forsooth, you turn round on Providence and
complain of being cursed! I don’t want to be hard on you, and I’m not
fond of playing Job’s comforter; but I can’t sit here and listen to you
blaspheming without protesting against it.”

When the admiral had finished this harangue, the longest he ever made in
his life, he took out his snuff-box and gave it a sharp tap preparatory
to taking a pinch.

“You are quite right, sir; you are perfectly right,” said Clide; “I have
no one to blame but myself for that misfortune.”

“Well, if you see it and own it like a man that’s a great point,” said
the admiral, mollified at once. “The first step towards getting on the
right tack is to see that we have been going on the wrong one.”

“I was very young too,” pleaded Clide; “barely of age. That ought to
count for something in my favor.”

“So it does; of course it does, my boy,” assented his uncle warmly.

“I came to see the folly and the sinfulness of it all--of shirking my
duties, as you say--and I was resolved to turn over a new leaf and make
up for what I had left undone too long. M. de la Bourbonais said to me,
‘We most of us are asleep until the sting of sorrow wakes us up.’ It
had taken a long time to do it, but it did wake me up at last; and just
as I was thoroughly stung into activity, into a desire to be of use to
somebody, to make my life what it ought to be, there comes down this
thunderclap upon me, and dashes it all to pieces again. That is what I
complain of. That is what is hard. This has been no doing of mine.”

“Whose doing is it? It is the old mistake sticking to you still. It is
the day of reckoning that comes sooner or later after every man’s guilt
or folly. We bury it out of sight, but it rises up like a day of judgment
on us when we least expect it.”

“I was not kept long waiting for the day of reckoning to my first
folly--call it sin, if you like--” said Clide bitterly. “I should have
thought it was expiated by this. Eight of the best years of my life
wasted in wretchedness.”

“You wasted them because you liked it; because it was pleasanter to you
to go mooning about the world than to come back to your post at home,
and do your duty to God and yourself and your fellow-men,” retorted the
admiral gruffly. “If we swallow poison, are its gripings to be reckoned
merit to us? You spent eight years eating the fruit of your own act, and
you expect the bitterness to count as an atonement. My boy, I have no
right to preach to you, or to any one; I have too many holes in my own
coat; but I have this advantage over you--that I see where the holes
are and what made them. We need never expect things to go right with us
unless we do the right thing; and if we do right and things seem to go
wrong, they are sure to be right all the same, though we can’t see it.
It is not all over here; the real reckoning is on the other side. But
we have not come to that yet,” he added, in an encouraging tone; “this
threat may turn out to be a vain one, and if so you will be none the
worse for it--probably all the better. We want to be reminded every now
and then that we don’t command either waves or wind; that when we are
brought through smooth seas safe into port, a Hand mightier than ours has
been guiding the helm for us. We are not quite such independent, fine
fellows as we like to think. But come what may, fine weather or foul, you
will meet it like a Christian, you will bow your head and submit.”

The admiral tapped his snuff-box again at this climax, took another
pinch, and then fell back on the cushions and opened his paper.

Clide was glad to be left to himself, although his thoughts were not
cheerful.

Sir Simon had said truly, he was or ought to have been a Catholic. At
almost the very outset of his acquaintance with Franceline, he had
intimated this fact to her, and though she did not inform her father of
it, the knowledge undoubtedly went far in attracting her towards the
young man and inspiring the confidence that she yielded to him so quickly
and unquestioningly.

Mrs. de Winton, Clide’s mother, had been a sincere Catholic, although
her heart had beguiled her into the treacherous error of marrying a man
who was not of her faith. She had stipulated unconditionally that her
children should be brought up Catholics; and on her death-bed demanded
a renewal of the promise--then, as formerly, freely given--that Clide,
their only child, should be carefully educated in his mother’s religion.
But these things can never safely be entrusted to the good-will of any
human being. The mother compromised--if she did not betray--her solemn
trust, and her child paid the penalty. Mr. de Winton kept his promise as
far as he could. He had no prejudices against the old religion--he was
too indifferent to religion in the main for that--the antiquity and noble
traditions of the Catholic Church claimed his intellectual sympathies,
while its spirit and teaching, as exemplified in the life of her whom
he revered as the model of all the virtues, inclined him to look on the
doctrines of Catholicity with an indulgence leaning to reverence, even
where he felt them most antagonistic.

Clide had a Catholic nurse to wash and scold him in his infantine
days, and when, too soon after his father’s second marriage, the boy
became an orphan and was left to the care of a stepmother, that cold
but conscientious lady carried out her husband’s dying injunctions by
engaging a Catholic governess to teach him his letters. Conscience,
however, gave other promptings which Mrs. de Winton found it hard to
reconcile with the faithful discharge of her late husband’s wishes. She
maintained the Catholic influence at home, but she would not prolong the
evil day an hour more than was absolutely necessary. She felt justified,
therefore, in precipitating Clide’s entrance at Eton at an age when many
children were still in the nursery. The Catholic catechism was not on the
list of Etonian school-books, and he would be otherwise safe from the
corroding influence which as yet could scarcely have penetrated below the
surface of his mind. It was reasonably to be hoped that in course of time
the false tenets he had imbibed would fade out of his mind altogether,
and that when he was of an age to choose for himself the boy would elect
the more respectable and rational creed of the De Wintons. His stepmother
carried her conscientious scruples so far in this respect, however, as
to inform the dame who was charged with the care of Clide’s linen, and
the tutor who was to train his mind, that the boy was a Catholic and
that his religion was to be respected. This injunction was, after a
certain fashion, strictly obeyed. The subject of religion was carefully
avoided, never mentioned to Clide directly or indirectly; and he was left
to grow up with about as much spiritual culture as the laborer bestows
on the flowers of the field. The seeds sown by his mother’s hand were
quickly carried away by the winds that blow from the four points of the
compass in those early, youthful days. If some sunk deeper and remained,
they had not sun or dew enough to blossom forth and fructify. Perhaps,
nevertheless, they did their work, and acted as an antidote in the
virgin, untilled soil, and preserved the young infidel from the vicious
vapors that tainted the air around him. It is certain that Clide left
the immoral atmosphere of the great public school quite uncorrupted,
guileless and upright, and still calling himself a Catholic, although
he had practically broken off from all communion with the church of
his childhood. He was more to be pitied than blamed. He was thinking
so now as he lay back in the railway carriage, while the admiral sat
beside him grunting complacently over the leading article, and mentally
prognosticating that the country was going to the dogs, thanks to those
blundering, unpatriotic Whigs. Yes, Clide pitied himself as he surveyed
the past, and saw how his young life had been wasted and shipwrecked. If
he felt that he had been too severely punished for follies that he had
never been warned against, you must make allowance for him. His face wore
a very sad, subdued look as he gazed out vacantly at the quiet fields and
villages and steeples flying past. Why does he suddenly make that almost
imperceptible movement, starting as if a voice had sounded close to his
side? Was it fancy, or did he really hear a voice, low and soft, like
faint, distant music that stirred his soul, making it vibrate to some
dimly remembered melody? Could it be his mother’s voice echoing through
the far-off years when he was a little child and knelt with his small
hands clasped upon her knee, and lisped out some forgotten words that she
dictated? Was it a trick of his imagination, or did some one stand at
his side, gently touching his right hand and constraining him to lift it
to his forehead, while his tongue mechanically accompanied the movement
with some once familiar, long disused formula? There was in truth a
presence near him, and a voice sounding from afar, murmuring those notes
of memory which are the mother-tongue of the soul, subtle, persuasive,
irresistible; accents that live when we have forgotten languages
acquired with mature choice and arduous study; a presence that clings to
us through life, and reveals itself when we have the will and the gift
to see and to recognize it. That power is mostly the purchase of a great
pain; the answer to our soul’s cry in the hour of its deepest need.

It flashed suddenly upon Clide, as that sweet and solemn influence
pervaded and uplifted him, that here lay the unexpected solution of
the problem--the missing key of life. He had fancied for a moment that
he had found it in M. de la Bourbonais’ serene theories and practical
philosophy. These had done much for him, it is true; but they had fallen
away; they failed like a broken sword in the hour of trial; they did
well enough for peaceful times, but they could not help and rescue him
when all the forces of the enemy were let loose. Yet they seemed to have
sufficed for Raymond.

Clide did not know that the calm philosophy was grafted on a root of
faith in the French gentleman’s mind; his faith was not dead; far from
it, and its vital heat had fed the strength which philosophy alone could
never have supplied. Poor Clide! If any one had been at hand to interpret
to him the message of that voice from his childhood, the whole aspect of
life might there and then have changed for him. But no spiritual guide,
no gentle monitor was there to tell him what it meant. The music died
away; the presence was clouded over and ceased to be felt. When the train
entered the station the passing emotion had disappeared, drowned without
by the roar of the great city; within, by the agitation of the present
which other thoughts had for a moment lulled to sleep.

The travellers drove straight from the railway station to Wimpole Street.
Mr. Peckett, the dentist, was at home. They were admitted at once, and a
few minutes’ conversation sufficed to confirm their worst forebodings.
There could be no doubt but that the person whom Cromer had recognized in
that transitory glimpse the day before was the beautiful and mysterious
creature, Clide’s wife.

The dentist had very little definite information to give concerning her.
He could only certify that she was the same who had come to him nearly
ten years ago to have a silver tooth made. It was a fantastic idea of
her own, and in spite of all his remonstrances she insisted on having
it carried out; it had seriously injured the neighboring tooth--nearly
eaten it away. This was what Mr. Peckett had foretold. He was launching
out into a rather excited denunciation of the thing, an absurdity against
all the laws of dentistry, when the admiral called him back to the point.
Did this tooth still exist? Yes; and if it was of no other use, it would
serve to identify the wearer. She had been to have it arranged about four
years ago, and again within the last few days. Mr. Peckett said she was
very little changed in appearance; as beautiful as ever, and considerably
developed in figure; but in manner she was greatly altered. Her former
childlike gayety was quite gone; she sat demure and silent, and when she
spoke it was with a sort of frightened restraint; if a door opened, or
if he asked a question abruptly, she started as if in terror. It was not
the ordinary starting of a nervous person; there was something in the
expression of the face, in the quivering of the mouth and the wavering
glance of the eyes, that had on one occasion especially suggested
to him the idea of a person whose mental faculties had suffered some
derangement. She gave him the impression, in fact, of one who either
had been or might on slight provocation become mad. She never gave any
name or address, but had always been accompanied by either the man whom
she called “uncle,” or an elderly woman with the manner of a well-to-do
shopkeeper; and she seemed in great awe of both of them. Yesterday was
the first time she had ever come by herself, and Mr. Peckett thought that
very likely either of these persons was waiting for her in the cab into
which she had jumped so quickly when Cromer was trying to come up with
her. She had left no clew as to her residence or projected movements;
only once, in reply to some question about a recipe which her uncle
wanted the dentist to see, she said that it had been forgotten in St.
Petersburg. His answer seemed to imply that they meant to return there.
Mr. Peckett was quite sure she sang in public, but whether on the stage
or only in concerts he could not say.

This was all he had to tell about his mysterious patient. He was very
frank, and appeared anxious to give any assistance in his power, and
promised to let Admiral de Winton know if she came to him again. But he
thought this was not likely for some time, at any rate. He had finished
with her on the last visit, and there was no reason that he foresaw for
her coming back at present.

There was not a shadow of doubt on Clide’s mind but that the person in
question was his lost Isabel. The admiral, however, stoutly continued
to pooh-pooh the idea as absurd and impossible. He was determined, at
any rate, not to give in to it until he had been to St. Valéry, and
investigated the question of the dead Isabel whom he had seen buried
there. So he left Clide to open communications once more with Scotland
Yard, and set the police in motion amongst the managers of theatres and
other agents of the musical world, while he went on board the steamer to
Dieppe. He was not long searching for the link he dreaded to find. The
young woman whom he had so hastily concluded to be his nephew’s missing
wife had been proved to be the daughter of a Spanish merchant, whose
ship had foundered on the Normandy coast in the gales that had done so
much damage during that eventful week. He himself had been saved almost
miraculously, and after many weeks of agonized suspense as to the fate of
his child, he heard of a body having been washed ashore at St. Valéry,
and buried after waiting several days for recognition. He hastened to the
spot, and, in spite of the swift ravages of death, recognized it beyond a
doubt as that of his child. The English milord who had paid for all the
expenses of the little grave, and manifested such emotion on beholding
the body, turning away without another glance when he saw the long hair
sweeping over it like a veil, had left no address, so the authorities had
no means of communicating with him.

This was the intelligence which Clide received two days after his
interview with the dentist. It only confirmed his previous conviction. He
was as satisfied that his wife was alive as if he had seen and spoken to
her. About an hour after his uncle’s return there came a note from Mr.
Peckett saying that “the person in question” was on her way to Berlin, if
she had not already arrived there. The landlady of the house where she
had been lodging, under the name of Mme. Villar, had called at Wimpole
Street for a pocket-book which her late tenant believed she must have
dropped there. While she was inquiring about it of the servant, Mr.
Peckett came out; he inquired after his patient; the landlady was glad
to say she was well, and sorry to say she was gone; she had left the day
before for Berlin, going _via_ Paris.

“Now, uncle, we must part,” said Clide; “I can’t drag you about on this
miserable business any more. I must do what remains to be done myself. I
will start at once for Berlin, and once there, à la grace de Dieu! you
will hear from me when I have anything to say.”

“I shall hear from you as soon as you arrive; you must write to me
without waiting for news,” said the admiral. “You will take Stanton with
you?”

“I suppose I had better; he knows everything, so there is no need to
shirk him, and he’s a discreet fellow, as well as intelligent and
good-natured. He may be of use to me.”

“Then God be with you both, my boy. Bear up, and keep a stout heart
whatever comes,” said the admiral, wringing his hand.

“You will write to Harness for me,” said Clide; “tell him I can’t write
myself; and say I trust to his doing whatever is best for me.…”

He turned away abruptly; and so they parted.

No incident broke the monotony of the road until Clide reached Cologne.
There, as he was crossing the platform, a lady passed him; she looked
at him, and started, or he fancied she did, and instead of getting into
the carriage that they were both evidently making for, she hurried on
to the one higher up. He drew his hand across his forehead, and stood
for a moment trying to remember where he had seen the face, but his
memory failed him. His curiosity was roused, however, and he was in
that frame of mind when every insignificant trifle comes to us pregnant
with unlooked-for possibilities. He went on to the carriage the lady
had entered. There was only another occupant beside herself, an elderly
German, with a beery countenance and brick-red whiskers. Clide got in
and seated himself opposite the lady, who was at the other end of the
compartment, and steadily looking out of the window. He felt sure she had
seen him come up to the door, but she did not turn round when he opened
it and closed it again with a bang. They had five minutes to wait before
the train started. Clide employed them in getting out a book and making
himself comfortable for the long ride in prospect. The lady was still
absorbed in the landscape. The German made his preparations by taking
a clay pipe from his pocket, filling it as full as it would hold with
tobacco, and then striking a light. Clide had started bolt upright, and
was watching in amazement. The lady was in front of him. Did the brute
mean to puff his disgusting weed into her face? He was making a chimney
of his hand to let the match light thoroughly. Perhaps Clide’s vehement
look of indignation touched him mesmerically, for before applying it to
the pipe he looked round at him and said in very intelligible English:

“I hope you don’t object to smoking?”

“I can’t say I much relish tobacco, but I sha’n’t interfere with you if
this lady does not object.”

Mein herr asked her if she did. She was compelled to turn round at the
question.

“I am sorry to say I do, sir; the smell of tobacco makes me quite sick.”

Hem! She is not a lady, at any rate, thought Clide.

“Oh! I am sorry for that,” said the German; “for you’ll have the trouble
of getting out.”

Before Clide could recover sufficient presence of mind to collar the man
and pitch him headforemost out of the window, the lady had grasped her
bag, rug, and umbrella, and was standing on the platform. The impending
ejectment was clearly a most welcome release; nothing but the utmost
goodwill could have enabled her to effect such a rapid exit. Clide was
so struck by it that he forgot to collar the German, who had begun with
equal alacrity to puff away at his pipe, and the train moved on.

The first thing Clide saw on alighting at the next station was his
recent _vis-à-vis_ marshalling an array of luggage that struck even his
inexperienced eye as somewhat out of keeping with a person who said “sir”
and travelled without a servant. What could one lone woman want with such
a lot of boxes, and such big ones? She waylaid a porter, who proceeded to
pile them on a truck while she stood mounting guard over them.

“Follow that man and see where he is taking that luggage to,” Clide
whispered to Stanton, and the latter, leaving his master to look after
their respective portmanteaux, hurried on in the direction indicated.

“They are going to the Hotel of the Great Frederick, sir,” he said,
returning in a few minutes.

“Then call a cab and let us drive there.”

The Hotel of the Great Frederick was not one of the fashionable
caravansaries of the place; it was a large, old-fashioned kind of
hostelry, chiefly frequented by business people, travelling clerks,
dress-makers, etc.; and its customers were numerous enough to make it
often difficult to secure accommodation there on short notice. This was
a busy season; everybody was flitting to and from the watering-places,
where the invalids and gamblers of Europe were ruining or repairing their
fortunes and their constitutions, so that Mr. de Winton was obliged to
content himself with two small rooms in the third story for the night;
to-morrow many travellers would be moving on, and he could have more
convenient quarters.

“Stanton, keep a lookout after that person. I am in a mood for suspecting
everything and everybody; but I don’t think it’s all fancy in this case.
I believe the woman is trying to avoid me; and if so, she must have a
motive for it. Ask for the visitors’ book, and bring it to me at once.”

Stanton brought the book, and while his master was running his eye
searchingly over the roll of names, hoping and dreading to see Mme.
Villar among the number, he set off to look after the woman with the
multitude of boxes. She was lodging on the first floor, and had been
expected by a lady and gentleman who had taken rooms in the house the day
before. This much Stanton learned from a _Kellner_,[148] whom he met
coming out of the said rooms with a tray in his hands.

“I think I know her,” said Stanton. “What is her name?”

But before the _Kellner_ could answer the door opened, and the lady
herself stood face to face with Mr. de Winton’s valet. Their eyes
met with a sudden flash of recognition; Stanton turned away with an
almost inaudible whistle, and was vaulting up to the third story in the
twinkling of an eye.

“I’ve seen her, sir, and I can tell you who she is. She is the dressmaker
that made Mrs. de Winton’s gowns before you brought her to Glanworth. I
remembered her the moment I saw her without a bonnet. I had been twice
to her place in Brook Street, with messages and a band-box from Mrs. de
Winton.”

Clide had started up with an exclamation of anger and triumph. Here,
then, was a clew. Evidently the woman held communication or was in some
way connected with Isabel, else why should she have shrunk from meeting
him? It was clear as daylight now that she did shrink.

“Tell the landlord I wish to speak to him,” said Clide.

He was walking up and down the room, his hands in his pockets, and his
head tossed back like an impatient horse, when the owner of the Great
Frederick came in.

“I want to have a word of conversation with you; sit down, pray,” said
Clide; but he continued walking, as we are apt to do when agitation is
too vehement to bear immobility, and must have an outlet in motion. The
landlord had taken a chair as desired, but rose again on seeing that his
guest did not sit down; the hotel-keeper was a well-mannered man. There
was a lapse of two or three moments while Clide considered what he should
say. It was impossible to acknowledge the real motive of his curiosity
about the occupants of the first-floor rooms, and how otherwise could he
justify any inquiries about them and their movements? He recoiled from
the odious necessity that drove him to pry into people’s affairs, to ask
questions and set watches like a police agent; but this was the mere husk
of the bitter kernel he had to eat. It may have been the extraordinary
agitation visible in the young man’s face and gait and manner that
aroused the hotel-keeper’s suspicions and put him on the defensive, or
it may have been that some one had been beforehand with Clide, and cut
the ground from under his feet by warning the landlord not to give any
information; but at any rate the latter acted with a circumspection that
was remarkable in a person so unskilled in the science of diplomacy.
These first-floor people were good customers; this was the third time
they had stopped at the Great Frederick, and it was not likely to be the
last, unless, indeed, the house should be made objectionable to them in
some way; and no landlord who knew his duty to his customers could be a
party to such a proceeding.

“Mme. Brack is a most excellent customer, but no dressmaker--that I
can assure milord of; she has many boxes because she goes to spend
many months at Vienna; that is her custom, as also that of the friends
she travels with--M. Roncemar and his daughter, people of quality like
milord, and large fortune. Unfortunately they do not tarry long at the
Great Frederick, only remaining three days to rest themselves; their
rooms are already bespoke from Friday morning, when they start by the
midday train. But why should not milord go himself and ask of M. Roncemar
any information he desires? M. Roncemar is a most polite gentleman, and
would no doubt be happy to see a compatriot.”

This was all that Clide could extract from the wily master of the Great
Frederick. If he had been more outspoken, he might have been more
successful; but he could not bring himself to this; he spoke so vaguely
that his motives might have borne the most opposite constructions. The
landlord’s private opinion was that there was a money-claim in the way,
and that he was on the track of some fugitive, perhaps fraudulent,
debtor; it was no part of a landlord’s business to pry into matters of
this sort, or bring a customer into trouble.

“Well, sir?” said Stanton, coming in when he saw the landlord come out.

“I did not make much out of him; the fellow either knows more than he
cares to tell, or we are on the wrong scent. You must lose no time in
finding out from the waiters whether these names are the real ones;
whether, at least, they are the same the people have borne here before,
and also if it is true that the rooms are taken till Friday next; if so,
it gives me time to go to the consul and take proper legal steps for
their arrest. But it may be a dodge of his; if the woman recognized us
both, as I am strongly inclined to believe, they have put the landlord up
to telling me this, just to prevent my entrapping them, and so as to give
them time to escape. The people whom he calls Roncemar have been here at
any rate before the alarm came, and it will be known most likely whether
they are on their way to Vienna or not. Be cautious, Stanton; don’t rouse
suspicion by asking too pointed questions, because you see it may be that
as yet there is no suspicion, it may be my fancy about the man’s throwing
me off the scent. He urged me to go and see M. Roncemar myself, which
was either a proof that he suspects nothing, or that he is the cleverest
knave who ever outwitted another. Be off and see what you can learn. I
will dine at the _table d’hôte_.”

The few details that Stanton gleaned from the _kellner_ attached to the
first floor corroborated all that the landlord had said: the party were
to remain until Friday--in fact they were not quite decided about going
so soon; the younger lady was in delicate health, and greatly fatigued
by the journey; it was possible they might remain until the Monday. “So
if you are counting on the rooms you may be disappointed,” he added,
winking at Stanton as he whipped up a tray and darted up the stairs like
a monkey, three steps at a time.

So far, then, Clide was sure of his course. He walked about after
dinner--supper, as it was called there--and called at the consulate; but
the consul had been out of town for the last week, and was not expected
home until the next day.

“And he is sure to be here to-morrow?” inquired the visitor.

“Yes, sir; he has an appointment of great importance at one o’clock. We
expect him home at twelve.”

“Then I will call at two. You will not neglect to give him this card?”
He wrote a line in pencil on it announcing his visit at two next day,
and returned to the hotel. As he was crossing the hall he heard the
heavy tramp of hobnailed shoes on the stairs, and a noise as of men
toiling under a weight. It was a piano. Clide walked slowly up after the
carriers, saw them halt at the rooms on the first floor, saw the doors
thrown open and the instrument carried in; there was no mistake about it;
the occupants meant to remain there for some few days at least.

He sat down and wrote a long letter to the admiral, lit a cigar, and
killed time as best he could with the newspapers until, physically worn
out, he lay down in hopes of catching a few hours’ sleep. Stanton,
satisfied with the information he already possessed, felt it might be
unwise to ask further questions, and contented himself with hanging about
the corridors in the neighborhood of Mrs. Brack’s rooms, in hopes of
seeing her coming in or out, and catching a glimpse, perhaps, of another
inmate who interested him more closely. It may seem irrational in him,
and especially in his master, to have jumped at a positive conclusion
as to the identity of that inmate on such a flimsy tissue of evidence;
but when our minds are entirely possessed by an idea, we magnify trifles
into important facts, and see all things  by the medium of our
prepossessions, and go on hooking link after link in the chain of
witnesses till we have completed it, and made our internal evidence do
the work of substantial testimony.

It was a glorious day, and when Clide had breakfasted he was glad to
go out and reconnoitre the town instead of sitting in his dingy room,
or lounging about the reading-room. He was a trained walker, thanks
to his years of travel, and once set going he would go on for hours,
oblivious of time, and quite unconscious of fatigue as long as the
landscape offered him beauty or novelty enough to interest him. It was
about half-past ten when he left the house, and he tramped on far beyond
the town, and walked for nearly two hours, when the chimes of a village
Angelus bell reminded him that time was marching too, and that he had
better be retracing his steps. It was close upon two o’clock when he
appeared at the consul’s door. On entering the hall, the first person he
saw was Stanton.

“Sir, I’ve been waiting here these two hours for you. You’d better please
let me have a word with you before you go in”; and Clide turned into
the dining-room, which the servant of the house civilly opened for him.
“We’ve been sold. They were off this morning at six. The three started
together. They are gone to Berlin--at least so one of the _kellners_ let
out to me; the one I spoke to yesterday was coached-up by the landlord
and the people themselves, I suppose, for he told me it was Vienna they
were gone to; he had a trumped-up story about the _fraulein’s_ mother
being taken suddenly ill and telegraphing for them. They are a cunning
lot. That piano was a dodge to put us to sleep, sir.”

“What proof have you that they are gone to Berlin? That other man may
be mistaken, or lying to order like the rest? I must see the consul and
take advice with him. This scoundrel of a landlord shall pay for his
lies,” said Clide, beating his foot with a quick, nervous movement on the
ground; “he must be forced to speak, and to speak the truth.”

“No need, sir; I’ve found it out without him. I’ve been to the railway. I
made believe I was the servant following with luggage that was forgotten,
and they told me the train they started by and the hour it arrives, and
described them all three as true as life,” said Stanton.

“And it is _she_?”

“Not a doubt of it, sir. As certain as I’m Stanton.” Clide felt
nevertheless that it would be well to see the consul; the case was
so delicate, so fraught with difficulties on all sides, that it was
desirable at any cost of personal feeling to furnish himself with all the
information he could get as to how he should now proceed, so as not to
entangle things still further.

On hearing his visitor’s strange tale, the consul’s advice was that he
should see with his own eyes the person whom he took for granted was his
wife, before venturing on any active steps. “The fact is quite clear to
you,” he remarked, “and from what you say it is equally clear to me; but
the evidence on which we build this assumption would not hold water for
one minute before a magistrate. Suppose, after all, it turns out to be a
case of mistaken identity; what a position you would be in!”

“That is impossible,” affirmed Clide.

“No, not impossible; highly improbable, I grant you; but such improbable
things occur every day. You must have more substantial ground than
second-hand evidence and corroborating circumstances to go upon before
you stir in the matter, and then you must do nothing without proper legal
advice.”

Clide recognized the common-sense and justice of this, and determined to
be advised. He started for Berlin, and on arriving there went straight
from the railway to the British Embassy, where he obtained a letter from
the ambassador to the Minister of Police, requesting that functionary to
give the young Englishman every assistance and facility. The minister
was going to bed; it was near twelve o’clock; the ambassador’s letter,
however, secured the untimely visitor immediate admission, and a civil
and attentive hearing. He took some notes down from Clide’s dictation,
and promised that all the resources of the body which he controlled
should be enlisted in the matter, and as soon as they had discovered
where the party they were in pursuit of had alighted, he would
communicate with Mr. de Winton.

The latter then went to the hotel, where Stanton had preceded him, and
was waiting impatiently for his arrival. The moment he entered the room,
Stanton was struck by his pale, haggard look; he had not noticed it on
the journey; when the train stopped, they saw each other in the shade
or in the dark, and after exchanging a hasty word passed each to his
separate buffets and carriages. It was indeed no wonder his master should
be worn out after the terrible emotions of the last few days, added to
the continued travelling and scarcely any sleep or food, but it did not
look like ordinary fatigue.

“You had better go to bed, sir; you’ll be used up if you take on like
this; and that won’t mend much,” he said, when Clide, after lighting a
cigar, flung himself into a chair and bade Stanton bring him the papers.

“I’ll go to bed presently; bring me the papers,” repeated Clide, and the
man left the room.

When he returned he found his master standing up and holding on by the
back of his chair as if to steady himself.

“I feel queerish, Stanton; get me some brandy and water; make haste,” he
said, speaking faintly.

Instead of obeying him, Stanton forced him gently into the chair, and
proceeded to undress him Clide resigning himself passively to it, as if
he were in a stupor; he let himself be put to bed in the same way, like a
child too sleepy to know what was being done to it.

“I don’t like the looks of him at all,” thought Stanton, as he stole
softly out of the room; “if he’s not all right to-morrow, I send for the
admiral.”

Clide was not all right in the morning; he was feverish and exhausted,
and complained in a querulous way, quite unlike his usual self, of a
burning, hammering pain in his head. Stanton sent for a medical man
without consulting him. When he said he had done so, Clide gave no sign
of displeasure; he did not seem quite to take it in.

“I’ve got fifty thousand toothaches in my skull, Stanton; what the deuce
is it, eh?” he cried, tossing from side to side on his pillow. Then
suddenly he raised himself:

“Stanton!”

“Yes, sir!”

“You think I’m going to be ill. Don’t deny it; I see it in your face.
Perhaps I am; I feel uncommonly odd here”--passing his hand over his
forehead--“but I want to say one thing while I think of it: you don’t
write a word to any one in England until the doctor says I’m a dead man.
Do you hear me speaking to you?”

“Yes, sir; but don’t you think if the admiral…”

“If you attempt to write to him, I’ll dismiss you that very instant!” And
his eyes flashed angrily. “You mind what I say, Stanton!”

“All right, sir; you know best what you like about it.”

The excitement seemed to have exhausted his remaining strength; he grew
rapidly worse; and when the doctor came, he declared his patient was in
for a brain fever that might turn to worse unless the circumstances were
specially propitious.

Why should we linger by his bedside? It would be only a repetition of the
old story; delirium following on days of pain and restlessness; a long
period of anxiety while youth battled with the enemy, now seemingly about
to be worsted in the fight, then rising above the disease with unexpected
starts, showing how rich and strong the resources of the young frame
were. The medical man was not communicative with the valet; he kept his
alternations of hope and fear to himself; it was only by scrutinizing
the expression of his face as he felt the patient’s pulse that Stanton
could make a guess at his opinion. To his eager inquiries on accompanying
the oracle to the door, he received the uniform reply that this was a
case in which the disease must run its course, when no one could say
what a day might bring forth, when much depended on the quality of the
patient’s constitution; the one drop of comfort Stanton extracted from
him was the emphatic assurance that in this instance the patient had a
constitution of gold. The crisis came, and then Stanton, convinced in his
inexperienced mind that no mortal constitution could pass this strait,
boldly asked the doctor if it was not time to write to the family.

“These things must run their course; in twenty-four hours it will be
decided,” was the sententious reply.

Stanton was fain to be content with it, and wait. The day passed, and the
night dragged on slowly as a passing bell, until at last the decisive
hour came and was passed; then the medical man spoke again.

“He is saved. The worst is now over; he is entering on the period of
convalescence.”

The period was long--longer than he had anticipated; for the golden
constitution had been fiercely tried and shaken; it was more than two
months from the day of Clide’s arrival in Berlin until he was able to
leave the hotel. In the meantime, what had become of Isabel, or Mme.
Villar, as we shall call her for the present? All that Stanton could
ascertain was that she had left Berlin about a week after his master had
been struck down, and had gone--so it was said at the hotel where she and
her party put up--for a tour in the neighboring spas, after which she was
to proceed to St. Petersburg to fulfil an engagement for the season. This
was the last link the police had got hold of; but as nobody had taken it
up at the time, it was impossible to say how many others had intervened
in the two months that had gone by.

It was now late in September. Clide was very weak still, and unfit for
a long railway journey, and besides, it was unlikely Mme. Villar would
be yet in St. Petersburg, assuming that the story of her going there at
all was true. He yielded therefore to the doctor’s advice, and went to
recruit himself at the nearest watering-place, after having again seen
the authorities at Berlin, and urged them not to let the affair sleep,
but to keep a sharp lookout in every direction.

In the first week of October he arrived in St. Petersburg. The city
of the Czars looked dreary and desolate enough in these keen autumn
days; there was not much movement in its immense market-places--its
bald, spacious squares, and high, broad houses standing unsocial and
mistrustful, far apart in the wide, noiseless streets; but people were
dropping in quickly from day to day from their country-houses, getting
out their furs, and settling down for the winter campaign that was at
hand; for the foe was marching steadily on them, girt with sullen skies
of lead, and tawny mists, and trumpeted by the shrill blast of the north
wind, a few strong puffs from whose ice-breathing nostrils would soon
paralyze the rivers and lay them to sleep under twenty feet of ice. Clide
was weary after his long ride, and was in a mood to be exasperated when,
on stepping out of the train, and seeking for their two portmanteaus
amongst the heaps of luggage, the porters said they were missing. It was
no small inconvenience, for the said portmanteaus contained all their
clothes, and nearly all their money.

The officials were very civil, however, and assured the travellers that
their luggage would be forthcoming next day. There was nothing for it
but to console themselves with this promise, and go on to the hotel.
Clide then gave his purse to Stanton and bade him go out and purchase
such things as were indispensable for the night. The valet accordingly
set off, accompanied by an English waiter who volunteered to interpret
for him, and Clide sallied forth for a stroll along the Neva, that still
flowed high and free between its broad quays. He walked on and on,
forgetting time, as was his habit, until lassitude recalled him to his
senses, and he looked around him and began to wonder where he had strayed
to. He had drifted far beyond his intention, and now found himself on
an island where handsome villas amidst groves and long avenues were to
be seen on every side. Happily a drosky passed empty at the moment; he
hailed it, gave the name of his hotel, and drove home. Stanton had not
yet returned. This was odd, for his interpreter had come back an hour
since, and said that the valet, after doing all his commissions, had
lingered behind merely to see the quays, saying he would follow in ten
minutes. It was impossible he could have lost his way, for the hotel
was in sight. The fact was, Stanton had had an adventure. He happened
to be crossing the bridge when he noticed a man bestriding the parapet
at the other end, swinging from side to side, and apostrophizing the
lamp-post with great earnestness. Stanton watched him as he walked on,
mentally wondering how long this social position would prove tenable,
when the man gave a sudden lunge, and was precipitated with a shriek
into the water. There were several foot-passengers close to the spot;
they rushed towards the parapet, and began screaming to each other in
Russian and gesticulating with great animation, hailing everybody and
everything within sight, but no one gave any sign of doing the only thing
that could be of avail, namely, jumping in after the drowning man. The
unfortunate wretch was struggling frantically, and gasping out cries
for help whenever he got his head above the water. There was a stair
running down from the quay, where boats were moored to rings in the
wall. Stanton saw this; he was a capital swimmer; so, without stopping
to reflect, he pulled off his coat, flew down the steps, and plunged
in. A loud cheer rang all along the parapet, then a breathless silence
followed; the two men in the water were wrestling in a desperate embrace;
Stanton had the Russian by the collar, and the latter with the suicidal
impulse of a drowning man, was clutching him wildly, and dragging him
down with all his might. Happily, he was no match for the Englishman’s
sinewy arms; Stanton shook himself free with a vigorous effort, swam out
a few yards, then he turned and swam back, caught the drowning man by the
hair, and drew him on with him to the steps. A thundering salvo greeted
his achievement; the group had now swelled to a crowd, and a score of
spectators came tumbling down the steps gabbling their congratulations,
and, what was more to the purpose, helping the hero to lift the rescued
man on to the steps, and then haul him up to the landing-place. Stanton
broke through the press to snatch up his coat, and was elbowing his way
out, when two individuals, whom he rightly took for policemen, came
up to him, and began to hold forth volubly in the same unintelligible
jargon. Stanton only understood, by their pointing to some place and
clutching him by the shoulder, that they wanted him to accompany them.
With native instinct, Stanton suspected they were proposing a tribute
of admiration to him in the shape of a bumper at the tavern; but he was
more intent on his wet clothes, and, thanking them by signs, indicated
that he must go in the opposite direction, shouting meanwhile, at the
very top of his lungs, “Hôtel Peterhof! I’m going to Peterhof!” But the
policemen shook their heads, and still pointed and tugged, until, finding
further expostulation useless, one of them took a stout grip of Stanton’s
collar and proceeded to drag him on, _nolens volens_. The British lion
rose up in Stanton “and roared a roar.” He levelled his clenched fist
at the aggressor’s chest, struck him a vigorous blow, and in language
more forcible than genteel bade him stand off. But the Russian held
on like grim death, gabbling away harder than ever, and pointing with
his left thumb to the _spit_ on his own breast, and then touching the
corresponding spot on Stanton’s wet shirt; but Stanton would not see
it. He doubled up his fist for another blow, when the other policeman
suddenly caught him by both arms, and pinned his elbows as in a vise
behind his back. The crowd had gone on swelling, and now numbered several
hundred persons; they crushed round the infuriated Englishman, who stood
there the picture of impotent rage, dripping and foaming and appealing to
everybody to help him. At this juncture a carriage drove up; the coachman
stopped to know what was going on; and great was Stanton’s joy when he
heard a voice cry out to him in English: “You must go with them; they
won’t hurt; they are going to give you a decoration for saving a man’s
life.”

“Confound their decoration! What the devil do I want with their
decoration? Tell them I’m not a Russian!”

“They know that, but it don’t matter; the law is the same for natives and
foreigners,” explained the coachman.

“Hang it, I’m not a foreigner; what do you take me for? I’m an
Englishman!” protested Stanton.

“Don’t matter; you must be decorated; you may as well do it, and be done
with it.”

“But look at my clothes, man! I’m as wet as a drowned rat!”

“Served you right! What business had you jumping into the water after a
fool that wanted to drown himself?”

“I wish I’d let him,” said Stanton devoutly; “but just you tell these
chaps to let me go or else they’ll ’ear of it; tell them my master will
go to the ambassador and get them flogged all round; tell them that, and
see what comes of it.”

“No good. The law is the law. Good morning to you; take a friend’s
advice, and keep your skin dry next time”; and, nodding to Stanton, he
touched his horses and was off at a pace.

There was nothing for it but to resign himself to his fate. Stanton
ceased all resistance, and let himself be led to the altar where glory
awaited him in the form of a yellow _spit_. He was marched on to a
large, barrack-like building; two sentries were mounting guard over its
ponderous iron gate. He passed through them and was marched from bureau
to bureau, addressed by several officials in every tongue under the sun,
it seemed to him, till they came to the right one, requested to record
his name, age, and state of life in several ominous-looking books, and on
each occasion was embraced and shaken hands with by the presiding genius
of the bureau; at last he was brought into the presence of a gold-laced
and highly decorated individual, who handed him a written document, very
stiff and very long, and with this a knot of ribbon. Stanton without more
ado was stuffing both into the pocket of his soaked pantaloons, when the
gold-laced gentleman exclaimed with friendly warmth, “Oh! you must permit
me to place the _spit_ upon your breast!” Upon which the Englishman
recoiled three steps with a scowl of disgust, and bade him do it if he
dared. The official, apparently surprised to see his polite offer met so
ungraciously, forbore to press it, and demanded the fee. “The fee!--what
fee?” He explained that a fee was always paid on receipt of a decoration.
Stanton declined paying it, for the substantial reason that he had no
money; his luggage had been lost on the railway; so had his master’s. The
polite gentleman was very sorry to hear of their misadventure, but the
law was inexorable--every man who performed that noble feat of saving a
Russian’s life should be decorated, and the decoration involved a fee.

“Then what in the name of the furies do you want me to do?” cried the
exasperated Stanton; “I can’t coin any, can I?”

No; this was not a practical alternative, but very likely his master
could devise one; he would have no difficulty in getting credit for the
amount; any one in St. Petersburg would be happy to accommodate a milord
with so small a sum, or indeed any sum.

Stanton had nothing for it but to write a line to the Peterhof explaining
his pitiable position, and entreating his master to come to the rescue
without delay.

It was late in the evening when this missive was handed to Clide. The
landlord, with the utmost alacrity, placed the coffers of the Peterhof at
his disposal, and sent for a carriage to convey him to the scene of his
valet’s distress.

“If ever any one catches me saving a Russian fellow’s life again may I
be drowned myself!” was Stanton’s ejaculation as he shut his master into
the cab, and drove home with the _spit_ in his pocket.

This little incident gave Clide some food for reflection, and aroused
in him a prudent desire to make some acquaintance with the ways and
customs of Muscovy before he went further. A little knowledge of the
code which included such a very peculiar law as the aforementioned might
prove not only desirable but essential, before he entangled himself in
its treacherous meshes. A paternal government might have its advantages,
but clearly it had its drawbacks. Russia was almost the only spot in
the so-called civilized world that he had not explored in the course
of his wanderings, so the people and their laws were as unknown to him
practically as the people and the laws of the Feejee Islands. He had
gone once as far as Warsaw with the intention of pushing on to Russia,
but what he saw in the Polish city of her spirit and national character
sickened and horrified him; he turned his back on the scene of her
cruelty and demoralizing rule, and went down to Turkey. There at least
barbarism reigned with a comparatively gentle sceptre, and wore no
hypocrite’s mask. He had not furnished himself with a single letter of
introduction to St. Petersburg. It never entered into his imagination
when leaving London that he should want any; he did not dream that the
will-o’-the-wisp he was chasing would have led him so far. But he was
here now, and he must find some one to steer him safe through quicksands
and sunken rocks.

There was no doubt an English lawyer in the city to whom he could safely
apply. The landlord of the Peterhof gave him the address of one. It was a
Russian name, but he assured Clide that it was that of the English lawyer
of St. Petersburg, who managed all the law affairs of English residents.
Clide went to this gentleman’s office, and found a small, urbane little
man, who spoke English with a very pure accent and fluently, but with
Muscovite written on every line of his face. It was of no consequence,
however, as he showed his client in the first few questions he put that
he was in the habit of dealing with English people and transacting
confidential and intricate cases for them. The present one he frankly
admitted was without precedent in his legal experience, and his advice to
Clide was pretty much the same as the consul’s, reinforced, however, by a
rather startling argument.

“You must first prove beyond a doubt that it is not a case of mistaken
identity, and, even when this is done, you have to consider whether it
is expedient to run the risks that must attend any active proceedings
against the persons in question. Let us consider the facts as they
stand, setting aside possible antecedents. The lady is engaged here
for the season. I can guarantee that much. I heard her repeatedly last
year, and the announcement, on the night of her last appearance, that
she was to return next season, was received with an enthusiasm that I
cannot describe. She is, therefore, an established favorite with the
public. This in itself is a fact fraught with danger to any one seeking
to molest her--I use the word from the point of view of the public--any
person interfering with so important a branch of their pleasure as the
opera would expose himself to disagreeable consequences. The government
is paternally anxious that the people should be amused. It is not
wise to thwart a paternal government.… The Czar, moreover, has shown
decided appreciation of this prima donna. He condescended to receive
her into the imperial box and himself clasp a costly diamond bracelet
on her arm. He and the rest of the royal family are to be present at
her first reappearance. No one, be they ever so guilty, can be attacked
with impunity while under the favor of the imperial smile. A paternal
government is not trammelled by the conventionalisms and routine that
check the action of other forms of government; it acts promptly,
decisively. If you meddle in this matter rashly, you may find yourself in
very unpleasant circumstances.”

“I should agree with all you say if I were a subject of the Russian
government,” said Clide, “but I am an Englishman; surely that makes a
difference?”

The lawyer smiled grimly.

“I would not advise you to count upon it for security. I have known
some Englishmen whose nationality did not prove such a talisman as they
expected.”

“You mean that they have been imprisoned without offence or trial,
treated like Russian subjects?” Clide’s lip curled under his moustache as
he emitted the monstrous proposition.

“I mean to give you the best advice in my power,” returned the urbane
lawyer with unruffled coolness. “You have come to me for counsel. You are
free to follow it or not as you see good.”

“So far, you have given me only negative advice. You tell me what I must
not do; can you tell me nothing that I can and ought to do?” said Clide.

“For the present, I can only urge you to be prudent. One rash act may
precipitate you into a still worse dilemma than the present. See this
lady for yourself, and see the man who accompanies her. I do not advise
you to speak to them, nor even to let them know of your presence here,
still less of your intentions. The man, from what you already know of
him, is likely to be an unscrupulous fellow, a dangerous enemy to cope
with. He--on account of his pupil or niece--has patrons in high place. If
he got wind of your designs, he might frustrate them in a manner … that
… that you don’t foresee.…” The lawyer paused, and bent his sharp green
eyes on Clide with a meaning that was not to be misunderstood.

“You mean that the government would connive at or assist him in some
personal violence to me?”

“I mean to advise you honestly. I might put you off with a sham, or lay
a trap for you; I should be well paid for it. But I traffic as little
as possible in that sort of thing, and _never_ with an English client.”
It was impossible to doubt the genuine frankness in this assurance,
coupled as it was with the implied admission that the lawyer was less
incorruptible to native clients. Clide was convinced the man was dealing
fairly by him.

“And when I have seen them both, and thus put a seal on certainty--what
next?”

“Wait until the season is over; then follow them to their next
destination, out of Russia, and take counsel with a shrewd legal man
of the place. My own opinion is that your wisest course would be to do
nothing until you can attack the affair in England: the mere fact of
being a foreigner puts barriers in the way of the law for helping you
anywhere; but, as you value your liberty, don’t interfere with a prima
donna who is in favor with the Court of St. Petersburg--it were safer for
you to play with fire.”

Clide laid a large fee on the lawyer’s green table, and wished him good
morning.

He hesitated as he was stepping into his fly. Should he go to the British
Embassy, and lay the whole story before Lord X----, and so place one
strong barrier between him and the monstrous possibilities with which the
lawyer had threatened him? He stood for a moment with his hand on the
door, which Stanton was holding open for him; his forehead had that hard
line straight down between the horizontal bars over his eyes that had
once so scared Franceline. “To the hotel!” he said, slamming the door,
and Stanton jumped up beside the coachman.

They had gone about a hundred yards when the window was pulled down in
front, and Clide called out: “To the British Embassy!”

The horse’s head was turned that way. While they were rattling over the
stones, Clide was arguing his change of resolution, and trying to justify
it. “I will burn my ship and take the consequences. What balderdash he
talked about the danger of letting the man know of my intentions! How
the deuce could they harm me? If I were a Russian, no doubt; but the
government would hardly run their neck into such a noose as assault or
imprisonment of a British subject for the sake of a popular prima donna!
Pshaw! I was an idiot to mind him.”

The coachman pulled up before the British Embassy. Two private carriages
stopped at the same moment, gentlemen alighted from them and ran up the
steps. Stanton held the door open for his master, but Clide did not move;
he sat with his head bent forward, examining his boots, to all appearance
unconscious of his valet’s presence.

“Here we are, sir; this is the Embassy,” said Stanton. But Clide sat
dumb, as if he were glued to the seat. At last, starting from his revery,
he said “Home!” and flung himself back in the carriage.

“That fever has left him a bit queer,” thought Stanton, as he closed the
door on his capricious master.

“What a fool’s errand it would be!” muttered Clide to himself; “and what
have I to say to Lord X----? If it _should_ turn out to be a case of
mistaken identity.… The lawyer’s advice is after all the safest and the
most rational.”

TO BE CONTINUED.


SPACE.

II.

It is of the utmost importance in the philosophical investigation
in which we have engaged to bear in mind that the power by which we
attain to the knowledge of the intrinsic nature of things is not our
imagination, but our intellect. The office of imagination is to form
sensible representations of what lies at the surface of the things
apprehended; the intellect alone is competent to reach what lies under
that surface, that is, the essential principles of the thing, and their
ontological relations. This remark is so obvious that it may seem
superfluous; but our imagination has such a power in fashioning our
thoughts, and such an obtrusive manner of interfering with our mental
processes, that we need to be reminded, in season and out of season, of
our liability to mistake its suggestions for intellectual conceptions.
What we have said about absolute space in our past article shows that
even renowned philosophers are liable to such mistakes; for nothing
but imagination could have led Balmes, Descartes, and many others, to
confound absolute space with the material extension of bodies. As to
relative space, the danger of confounding its intellectual notion with
our sensible representation of it, is, perhaps, less serious, when we
have understood the nature of absolute space; yet, here too we are
obliged to guard against the incursions of the imaginative faculty, which
will not cease to obtrude itself, in the shape of an auxiliary, upon our
intellectual ground.

Absolute space cannot become relative unless it be extrinsically
terminated, or occupied, by distinct terms. Hence, in passing from the
consideration of absolute space to that of relative space, the first
question by which we are met is the following:

Is absolute space intrinsically modified or affected by being occupied?
or, _Does the creation of a material point in space entail an intrinsic
modification of absolute space?_

The answer to this question cannot be doubtful. Absolute space is not
and cannot be intrinsically affected or modified by the presence of a
material point, or of any number of material points. We have shown that
absolute space is nothing else than the virtuality of God’s immensity;
and since no intrinsic change can be conceived as possible in God’s
attributes or in the range of their comprehension, it is evident that
absolute space cannot be intrinsically modified by any work of creation.
On the other hand, nothing can be intrinsically modified unless it
receives in itself, as in a subject, the modifying act; for all intrinsic
modifications result from corresponding impressions made on the subject
which is modified. Thus the modifications of the eye, of the ear, and of
other senses, result from impressions made on them, and received in them
as in so many subjects. But the creation of a material point in space
is not the position of a thing in it as in a subject; for, if absolute
space received the material point in itself as in a subject, this point
would be a mere accident; as nothing but accidents exist in a subject,
and since it is manifest that material elements are not accidents, it is
plain that they are not received in space as in a subject.

Hence the creation of any number of material points in space implies
nothing but the _extrinsic_ termination of absolute space, which
accordingly remains altogether unaffected and unmodified. Just as a body
created at the surface of the earth immediately acquires weight, without
causing the least intrinsic change in the attractive power which is the
source of all weights on earth, so does a material element, created in
absolute space, acquire its ubication without causing the least intrinsic
change in absolute space which is the source of all possible ubications.
A material element has its formal ubication inasmuch as it occupies a
point in space. This point, as contained in absolute space, is virtual;
but, as occupied by the element, or marked out by a point of matter, it
is formal. Thus the formality of the ubication consists in the actual
termination and real occupation of a virtual point by an extrinsic term
corresponding to it.

The formal ubication of an element is a mere relativity, or a
_respectus_. The formal reason, or foundation, of this relativity is the
reality through which the term ubicated communicates with absolute space,
viz., the real point which is common to both, though not in the same
manner, as it is _virtual_ in space, and _formal_ in the extrinsic term.
A material element in space is therefore nothing but a term related by
its ubication to divine immensity as existing in a more perfect manner in
the same ubication. But since the formality of the contingent ubication
exclusively belongs to the contingent being itself, absolute space
receives nothing from it except a relative extrinsic denomination.

Some will say: To have a capacity of containing something, and to contain
it actually, are things intrinsically different. But absolute space, when
void, has a mere capacity of containing bodies, whilst, when occupied,
it actually contains them. Therefore absolute space is intrinsically
modified by occupation.

To this we answer, that the word “capacity,” on which the objection is
built up, is a mischievous one, no less indeed than the word “potency,”
which, when used indeterminately, is liable to opposite interpretations,
and leads to contradictory conclusions.

The capacity of containing bodies which is commonly predicated of
absolute space, is not a passive potency destined to be actuated by
contingent occupation; it is, on the contrary, the formal reason of all
contingent ubications, since it contains already in an infinitely better
manner all the ubications of the bodies by which it may be occupied. To
be occupied, and not to be occupied, are not, of course, the same thing;
but it does not follow from this that space unoccupied is intrinsically
different from space occupied; it follows only, that, when space is
occupied, a contingent being corresponds to it as an extrinsic term,
and gives it an extrinsic denomination. In other terms, everything
which occupies space, occupies it by ubication. Now every ubication is
the participation in the contingent being of a reality which absolute
space already contains in a better manner. Consequently, the capacity
of containing bodies, which is predicated of space, already _contains
actually_ the same ubications, which, when bodies are created, are
formally attributed to the bodies themselves.

This answer is, we think, philosophically evident. But, as our
imagination, too, must be helped to rise to the level of intellectual
conceptions, we will illustrate our answer by an example. Man has
features which can be reflected in any number of mirrors, so as to form
in them an image of him. This “capacity” of having images of self is
called “exemplarity,” and consists in the possession of that of which an
image can be produced. Hence, man’s exemplarity actually, though only
virtually, contains in itself all the images that it can form in any
mirror; and when the image is formed, man’s exemplarity gives existence
to it, but receives nothing from it, except a relative denomination drawn
from the extrinsic term in which it is portrayed. In a like manner, God’s
omnipotence, and his other attributes, are mirrored in every created
thing, and their “capacity” of being imitated in a finite degree arises
from the fact that God’s attributes contain already in an eminent manner
the whole reality which can be made to exist formally in the contingent
things. Hence, when these contingent things are created, God gives
existence to them, but receives nothing from them, except a relative
denomination drawn from the extrinsic terms in which his perfections
are mirrored. In the same manner, too, when a material element is
created, it receives its being, and its mode of being in space, that is,
its ubication, which is a finite image or imitation of God’s infinite
ubication; but it gives nothing to the divine ubication, except the
extrinsic denomination; just as the image in the mirror gives nothing to
the body of which it is the image, but simply borrows its existence from
it.

From this it follows that material elements are in space _not by
inhesion, but by correlation_, each point which is formally marked out by
an element corresponding to a virtual point of space, to which it gives
an extrinsic denomination. The said correlation consists in this, that
the contingent term, by its formal mode of existing in the point it marks
out, really imitates the eminent mode of being of divine immensity in the
same point; and from this it follows again, that whatever new reality
results from the existence of a material element in space, belongs
entirely to the element itself, and constitutes its mode of being.

The relation between the contingent being as existing formally in its
ubication, and divine immensity as existing eminently in the same
ubication, is called “presence.”

We must notice, before we go further, that the virtuality of God’s
immensity, when considered in relation to the distinct terms by which it
is extrinsically terminated, assumes distinct relative denominations,
and therefore, though it is one entitatively, it becomes manifold
terminatively. In this latter sense it is true to say that the virtuality
of divine immensity which is terminated by a certain term _A_, is
distinct from the virtuality which is terminated by a certain other
term _B_; and when a material point moves in space, we may say that its
ubication ceases to correspond to one virtuality of immensity, and begins
to correspond to another. Such virtualities, as we have just remarked,
are not entitatively distinct, for immensity has but _one_ infinite
virtuality. Yet this _one_ virtuality, owing to the possibility of
infinite distinct terminations, is capable of being related to any number
of distinct extrinsic terms, and of receiving from their distinct mode
of existing in it any number of distinct relative denominations. When,
therefore, we speak of distinct virtualities of divine immensity, we
simply refer to the distinct extrinsic terminations of one and the same
infinite virtuality, in the same manner as, when we speak of distinct
creations, we do not mean that God’s creative act is manifold in itself,
but only that its extrinsic termination to one being, v. gr. the sun, is
not its termination to other beings, v. gr. the stars. And in a similar
manner, when a word is heard by many persons, its sound in their ears
is distinct on account of distinct terminations, though the word is not
distinct from itself.

We have explained the origin and nature of formal ubication; we have
yet to point out its division. Ubication may be considered either
_objectively_ or _subjectively_. Objectively considered, it is nothing
else than a _point in space marked out by a simple point of matter_.
We say, _by a simple point_ of matter, because distinct material
points in space have distinct ubications. Hence, we cannot approve
those philosophers who confound the _ubi_ with the _locus_, that is,
the ubication with the place occupied by a body. It is true that those
philosophers held the continuity of matter; but they should have seen
all the same that all dimensions involved distinct ubications, and that
every term designable in such dimensions has an ubication of its own
independent of the ubications of every other designable term; which
proves that the _locus_ of a body implies a great number of ubications,
and therefore cannot be considered as the synonym of _ubi_.

If the ubication is considered subjectively, that is, as an appurtenance
of the subject of which it is predicated, it may be defined as _the mode
of being of a simple element in space_. This mode consists of a mere
relativity; for it results from the extrinsic termination of absolute
space, as already explained. Hence, the ubication is not _received_ in
the subject of which it is predicated, and does not _inhere_ in it, but,
like all other relativities and connotations, simply connects it with its
correlative, and lies, so to say, between the two.[149]

But, although it consists of a mere relativity, the ubication still
admits of being divided into _absolute_ and _relative_, according as
it is conceived absolutely as it is in itself, or compared with other
ubications. Nor is this strange; for relative entities can be considered
both as to what they are in themselves, and as to what they are to one
another. Likeness, for instance, is a relation; and yet when we know the
likeness of Peter to Paul, and the likeness of Peter to John, we can
still compare the one likeness with the other, and pronounce that the one
is greater than the other.

When the ubication is considered simply as a termination of absolute
space without regard for anything else, then we call it _absolute_, and
we define it as _the mode of being of an element in absolute space_, by
which the element is constituted in the divine presence. This absolute
ubication is an _essential mode_ of the material element no less than
its dependence from the first cause, and is altogether immutable so long
as the element exists; for, on the one hand, the element cannot exist
but within the domain of divine immensity, and, on the other, it cannot
have different modes of being with regard to it, as absolute space is
the same all throughout, and the element, however much we may try to
imagine different positions for it, must always be in the centre, so to
say, of that infinite expanse. Hence, absolute ubication is altogether
unchangeable.

When the ubication of one element is compared with that of another
element in order to ascertain their mutual relation in space, then the
ubication is called _relative_, and, as such, it may be defined as _the
mode of terminating a relation in space_. This ubication is changeable,
not in its intrinsic entity, but in its relative formality; and it is
only under this formality that the ubication can be ranked among the
predicamental accidents; for this changeable formality is the only thing
in it which bears the stamp of an accidental entity.

The consideration of relative ubications leads us directly to the
consideration of the relation existing between two points distinctly
ubicated in space. Such a relation is called _distance_. Distance is
commonly considered as a quantity; yet it is not primarily a quantity,
but simply the relation existing between two ubications with room for
movement from the one to the other. Nevertheless, this very possibility
of movement from one point to another gives us a sufficient foundation
for considering the relation of distance as a virtual dimensive quantity.
For the movement which is possible between two distant points may be
greater or less, according to the different manners in which these points
are related. Now, more and less imply quantity.

The quantity of distance is essentially continuous. For it is by
continuous movement that the length of the distance is measured. The
point which by its movement measures the distance, describes a straight
line by the shifting of its ubication from one term of the distance to
the other. The distance, as a relation, is the object of the intellect,
but, as a virtual quantity, it is the object of imagination also.
We cannot conceive distances as relations without at the same time
apprehending them as quantities. For, as we cannot estimate distances
except by the extent of the movement required in order to pass from one
of its terms to the other, we always conceive distances as relative
quantities of length; and yet distances, objectively, are only relations,
by which such quantities of length are determined. The true quantity of
length is _the line_ which is drawn, or can be drawn, by the movement
of a point from term to term. In fact, a line which reaches from term
to term exhibits in itself the extent of the movement by which it is
generated, and it may rightly be looked upon as a track of it, inasmuch
as the point, which describes it, formally marks by its gliding ubication
all the intermediate space. The marking is, of course, a transient
act; but transient though it is, it gives to the intermediate space a
permanent connotation; for a fact once passed, remains a fact for ever.
Thus the gliding ubication leaves a permanent, intelligible, though
invisible, mark of its passage; and this we call a geometric line. The
line is therefore, formally, a quantity of length, whereas the distance
is only virtually a quantity, inasmuch as it determines the length of
the movement by which the line can be described. Nevertheless, since we
cannot, as already remarked, conceive distances without referring the one
of its terms to the other through space, and, therefore, without drawing,
at least mentally, a line from the one to the other, all distances, as
known to us, are already measured in some manner, and consequently they
exhibit themselves as formal quantities. Distance is the base of all
dimensions in space, and its extension is measured by movement. It is
therefore manifest that no extension in space is conceivable without
movement, and all quantity of extension is measured by movement.

We have said that distance is a relation between two terms as existing in
distinct ubications; and we have now to inquire what is the foundation of
such a relation. This question is of high philosophical importance, as on
its solution depends whether some of our arguments against Pantheism are
or are not conclusive. Common people, and a great number of philosophers
too, confound relations with their foundation, and do not reflect that
when they talk of distances as _relative spaces_, they do not speak with
sufficient distinctness.

We are going to show that relative space must be distinguished from
distances, as well as from geometric surfaces and volumes, although these
quantities are also called “relative spaces” by an improper application
of words. Relative space is not an intrinsic constituent, but only
an extrinsic foundation, of these relative quantities; hence these
quantities cannot be styled “relative spaces” without attributing to the
formal results what strictly belongs to their formal reason.

What is relative space? Whoever understands the meaning of the words
will say that relative space is that through which the movement from a
point to another point is possible. Now, the possibility of movement
can be viewed under three different aspects. First, as a possibility
dependent on the active power of a mover; for movement is impossible
without a mover. Secondly, as a possibility dependent on the passivity of
the movable term; for no movement can be imparted to a term which does
not receive the momentum. Thirdly, as a possibility dependent on the
perviousness of space which allows a free passage to the moving point;
for this is absolutely necessary for the possibility of movement.

In the present question, it is evident that the possibility of movement
cannot be understood either in the first or in the second of these three
manners; for our question does not regard the relation of the agent to
the patient, or of the patient to the agent, but merely the relation of
one ubication to another, and the freedom for movement between them. If
the possibility of movement were taken here as originating in a motive
power, such a possibility would be greater or less according to the
greater or less power; and thus the relativity of two given ubications
would be changed without altering their relation in space; which is
absurd. And if the possibility of movement were taken as resulting
from the passivity of the term moved, then, since this passivity is a
mere indifference to receive the motion, and since indifference has no
degrees, it would follow that the possibility of movement would be
always the same; and therefore the relativity of the ubications would
remain the same, even though the ubications were relatively changed;
which is another absurdity. Accordingly, the possibility of movement
which is involved in the conception of relative space is that which
arises from space itself, whose virtual extension virtually contains all
possible lines of movement, and allows any such lines to be formally
drawn through it by actual movement.

From this it follows that relative space is nothing else than _absolute
space as extrinsically terminated by distinct terms, and affording
room for movement between them_. It follows, further, that this space
is relative, not because it is itself related, but because it is that
through which the extrinsic terms are related. It is actively, not
passively, relative; it is the _ratio_, not the _rationatum_, the
foundation, not the result, of the relativities. It follows, also, that
the foundation of the relation of distance is nothing else than space
as terminated by two extrinsic terms, and affording room for movement
from the one to the other. This space is at the same time absolute
and relative; absolute as to its entity, relative as to the extrinsic
denomination derived from the relation of which it is the formal reason.

The distinction between absolute and relative space is therefore to be
taken, not from space itself, but from its comparison with absolute or
with relative ubications. Space, as absolute, exhibits the possibility
of all absolute ubications; as relative, it exhibits the possibility of
all ubicational changes. Absolute space may therefore be styled simply
“the region of ubications,” whilst relative space maybe defined as “the
region of movement.”

This notion of relative space will not fail to be opposed by those who
think that all real space results from the dimensions of bodies. Their
objections, however, need not detain us here, as we have already shown
that the grounds of their argumentation are inadmissible. The same notion
will be opposed with greater plausibility by those who confound the
formal reason of local relations with the relations themselves, under the
common name of relative space. Their objections are based on the popular
language, as used, even by philosophers, in connection with relative
space. We will reduce these objections to two heads, and answer them,
together with two others drawn from other sources, that our reader may
thus form a clearer judgment of the doctrine we have developed.

_First difficulty._ The entity of a relation is the entity of its
foundation. If, then, the foundation of the relation of distance is
absolute space, or the virtuality of God’s immensity, it follows that the
entity of distance is an uncreated entity. But this cannot be admitted,
except by Pantheists. Therefore the relation of distance is not founded
on the virtuality of God’s immensity.

This difficulty arises from a false supposition. The entity of the
relation is _not_ the entity of its foundation, but it is the entity of
the connotation (_respectus_) which arises from the existence of the
terms under such a foundation. Likeness, for instance, is a relation
resulting between two bodies, say, white, on account of their common
property, say, whiteness. Whiteness is therefore the foundation of their
likeness; but whiteness it not likeness. On the contrary, the whiteness
which founds this relation is still competent to found innumerable
other relations; a thing which would be impossible if the entity of the
foundation were not infinitely superior to the entity of the relation
which results from it.

This is even more evident in our case; for the foundation of the
relation between two ubications is an entity altogether extrinsic to
the ubications themselves, as we have already shown. Evidently, such an
entity cannot be the relativity of those ubications. The relation of
distance is neither absolute nor relative space, but only the mode of
being of one term in space with respect to another term in space. Now,
surely no one who has any knowledge of things will maintain that space,
either absolute or relative, is a mode of being. The moon is distant from
the earth; and therefore there is space, and possibility of movement,
between the moon and the earth. But is this space _the relation_ of
distance? No. It is the ground of the relation. The relation itself
consists in the mode of being of the moon with respect to the earth; and,
evidently, this mode is not space.

The assumption that the entity of the relation is the entity of its
foundation may be admitted in the case of transcendental relations,
inasmuch as the actuality of beings, which results from the conspiration
of their essential principles, identifies itself _in concreto_ with
the beings themselves. But the same cannot be said of predicamental
relations. It would be absurd to say that the dependence of the world
on its Creator is the creative act; nor would it be less absurd to say
that the relativity of a son to his father is the act of generation, or
that the fraternity of James and John is the same thing as the identity
of Zebedee, their father, with himself. And yet these absurdities, and
many others, must be admitted, if we admit the assumption that the entity
of predicamental relations is the entity of their foundation. Hence the
assumption must be discarded as false; and the objection, which rested
entirely on this assumption, needs no further discussion.

We must, however, take this opportunity to again warn the student of the
necessity of not confounding under one and the same name the relative
space with the relations of things existing in space. This confusion is
very frequent, as we often hear of distances, surfaces, and volumes of
bodies spoken of as “relative spaces,” which, properly speaking, they
are not. We ourselves are now and then obliged to use this inaccurate
language, owing to the difficulty of conveying our thoughts to common
readers without employing common phrases. But we would suggest that, to
avoid all misconstruction of such phrases, the relative space, of which
we have determined the notion, might be called “_fundamental_ relative
space,” whilst the relations of things as existing in space might
receive the name of “_resultant_ relative spaces.” At any rate, without
some epithets of this sort, we cannot turn to good account the popular
phraseology on the subject. Such a phraseology expresses things as they
are represented in our imagination, not as they are defined by our
reason. Distances are intervals between certain points in space, surfaces
are intervals between certain lines in space, volumes are intervals
between certain surfaces in spaces; but these intervals are no _parts_
of space, though they are very frequently so called, but only relations
in space. Space is one, not many; it has no parts, and, whether you call
it absolute or relative, it cannot be cut to pieces. What is called an
interval _of_ space should rather be called an interval _in_ space; for
it is not a portion of space, but a relation of things in space; it is
not a length of space, but the length of the movement possible between
the extrinsic terms of space; it is not a divisible extension, but the
ground on which movement can extend with its divisible extension. In
the smallest conceivable interval of space there is God, with all his
immensity. To affirm that intervals of space are distinct spaces would
be to cut God’s immensity into pieces, by giving it a distinct being in
really distinct intervals. It is therefore necessary to concede that,
whilst the intervals are distinct, the space on which they have their
foundation is one and the same.

Pantheists have taken advantage of the confusion of fundamental space
with the resulting relations in space, to spread their absurd theories.
If we grant them that _distance is space_, how can we refute their
assertion that distance is a form under which divine substance, or the
Absolute, makes an apparition? For, if distance is space, and space is
no creature, distance consists of something uncreated (and therefore
divine) under a contingent form. This is not the place for us to refute
Pantheism; what we aim at is simply to point out the need we have of
expressing our thoughts on space with philosophical accuracy, lest the
Pantheists may shield themselves with our own loose phraseology.

God is everywhere, and touches, so to say, every contingent ubication by
his presence to every ubicated thing. But the contingent ubications are
not spaces, nor anything intrinsic to space; they are merely extrinsic
terms, corresponding to space, as we have explained; and therefore such
ubications are not apparitions of the divine substance, but apparitions
of contingent things; they are not points of divine immensity, but points
contingently projected on the virtuality of God’s immensity. It is as
vain to pretend that contingent ubications are points of space, as it
is vain to pretend that contingent essences are the divine substance.
Pantheists, indeed, have said that, because the essences of things are
contained in God, the substance of all things must be God’s substance;
but their paralogism is manifest. For the essences of things are in
God, not formally with the entity which they have in created things,
but eminently and virtually, that is, in an infinitely better manner.
The formal essences of things are _only_ in the things themselves, and
they are extrinsic terms of creation, imperfect images of what exists
perfect in God. In the same manner the ubications of things are not in
God formally, but eminently and virtually. They formally belong to the
things that are ubicated. So also the intervals of space are in God
eminently, not formally; they formally arise from extrinsic terminations,
and therefore are mere correlations of creatures. This suffices to show
that distances and other relations in space involve nothing divine in
their entity, although they are grounded on the existence and universal
presence of God, in whom “we live, and move, and have our being.”

_Second difficulty._--If the foundation of local relations is uncreated,
it is always the same; and therefore it will cause all such relations
to be always the same. Hence, all distances would be equal; which is
manifestly false.

This difficulty arises from confounding the absolute entity of the
thing which is the foundation of the relation, with the formal manner
of founding the relation. The same absolute entity may found different
relations by giving to the terms a different relativity; for the same
absolute entity founds different relations whenever it connects the
terms of the relation in a different manner. Thus, when the entity of
the foundation is a generic or a universal notion, it can give rise to
relations of a very different degree. Taking _animality_, for instance,
as the foundation of the relation, we may compare one hound with another,
one wolf with another, one bird with another, or we may compare the
hound with the wolf, the wolf with the bird, the bird with the lion,
etc.; and we shall find as many different relations, all grounded on
the same foundation--that is, on animality. In fact, there will be as
many different relations of likeness as there are different animals
compared. Now, if one general ratio suffices to do this, on account
of its universality, which extends infinitely in its application to
concrete things, it is plain that as much and more can be done by the
infinite virtuality of God’s immensity, which can be terminated by an
infinite variety of extrinsic terminations. It is the proper attribute
of an infinite virtuality to contain in itself the reason of the being
of infinite terms, and of their becoming connected with one another
in infinite manners. This is what the infinite virtuality of divine
immensity can do with respect to ubicated terms. Such an infinite
virtuality is whole, though not wholly, in every point and interval of
space; it is as entire between the two nearest molecules as between
the two remotest stars. Hence its absolute entity, though unchangeable
itself, can have different extrinsic terminations; and, since it founds
the relations in question inasmuch as it has such different terminations,
consequently it can found as many different local relations as it can
have different extrinsic terminations. A hound and a wolf, as we have
said, inasmuch as they are animals, are alike; and the wolf and the bird,
also, inasmuch as they are animals, are alike; but the likeness in the
second case is not the same as in the first, because the animality, which
is one in the abstract, is different in the concrete terms to which it is
applied. Hence the difference, or entitative distance, so to say, between
the wolf and the hound is less than the entitative distance between the
wolf and the bird, although the ground of the comparison is one and the
same. In a like manner, the distance from a molecule to a neighboring
molecule is less than the distance from a star to another star, although
the ground of the relation be one and the same; with this difference,
however, that in the case of the animals above mentioned the relation
has an intrinsic foundation, because “animality” is intrinsic to the
terms compared; whilst in the case of local distances the relation has
an extrinsic foundation; for the ubications compared are nothing but
extrinsic terms of space.

_Third difficulty._--Distances evidently intercept portions of space, and
differ from one another according as they intercept more or less of it.
But, if space is the virtuality of divine immensity, such portions cannot
be admitted; for the virtuality of divine immensity cannot be divided
into parts distinct from one another.

This difficulty arises from the confusion of that which belongs to space
intrinsically, with that which belongs to it by extrinsic denomination
only. Space in itself has no parts; and therefore distance cannot
intercept a portion of the entity of space. Nevertheless, parts are
attributed to space by extrinsic denomination, that is, inasmuch as
the movements, which space makes possible between given terms, do not
extend beyond those terms, while other movements are possible outside
of the given terms. Hence, since space is infinite and affords room
for an infinite length of movement in all directions, the space which
corresponds to a limited movement has been called an interval of space
and a portion of space. But this denomination is extrinsic, and does not
imply that space has portions, or that the entity of space is divisible.
That such a denomination is extrinsic, there can be no doubt, for it is
taken from the consideration of the limited movement possible between
the terms of the distance, as all distances are known and estimated by
movement. Indeed, we are wont to say that “movement measures space,”
which expression seems to justify the conclusion that the space measured
is a finite portion of infinite space; but, though the expression is
much used (from want of a better one), it must not be interpreted in a
material sense. Its real meaning is simply that movement “measures the
length of the distance” in space, or that movement “measures its own
extent” in space--that is, the length or the extent, not of space, but
of what space causes to be extrinsically possible between two extrinsic
terms.

This will be still more manifest by referring to the evident truth
already established, that all ubications as compared with the entity
of space are unchangeable, because the thing ubicated cannot have two
modes of being in the infinite expanse of space, but, wherever it be, is
always, so to say, in the centre of it. This proves that the movement
of a point between the terms of a given distance measures nothing else
than _its own length_ in space; for, had it to measure _space itself_, it
would have to take successively different positions with regard to it,
which we know to be impossible. We must therefore conclude that distance
does not properly intercept space, though it determines the relative
length of a line which can be drawn by a point moving through space; for
this line is not a line of space, but a line of movement. In other words,
distance is not the limit of the space said to be intercepted, but of the
movement possible between the distant terms.

As this answer may not satisfy our imagination as much as it does
our intellect, and as our habit of expressing things as they are
represented in our imagination makes it difficult to speak correctly of
what transcends the reach of this lower faculty, we will make use of a
comparison which, in our opinion, by putting the intelligible in contact
with the sensible, will not fail to help us fully to realize the truth
of what has been hitherto said.

Let God create a man, a horse, and a tree. The difference, or, as we will
call it, the entitative distance, between the man and the horse is less
than between the man and the tree, as is evident. Yet the man, the horse,
and the tree are extrinsic terms of _the same_ divine omnipotence, which
neither is divisible nor admits of more or less. Now, can we say that,
because the man is entitatively more distant from the tree than from the
horse, there must be _more of divine omnipotence_ between the man and the
tree than between the man and the horse? It would be folly to say so.
The only consequence which can be deduced from the greater entitative
distance of the man and of the tree, is, that a greater multitude of
creatures (extrinsic terms of divine omnipotence) is possible between the
man and the tree, than between the man and the horse. The reader will
readily see how the comparison applies to our subject; for the two cases
are quite similar. Can we say, then, that, because two points in space
are more distant than two other points, there must be _more of divine
immensity_, or of its virtuality, between the former than between the
latter? By no means. The only consequence which can be deduced from the
greater distance of the two former points is, that a greater multitude of
ubications (extrinsic terms of immensity) is possible between them, than
between the two others. This greater multitude of possible ubications
constitutes the possibility of a greater length of movement; and shows
the truth of what we have maintained, viz., that distance endues the
aspect of quantity through the consideration of the greater or less
extent of the movement possible between its terms, and not through a
greater or less “portion” of space intercepted.[150]

The difficulty is thus fully answered. Nevertheless, as to the phrases,
“a portion of space,” “an interval of space,” “space measured by
movement,” and a few others of a like nature, we readily admit that their
use, having become so common in the popular language, we cannot avoid
them without exposing ourselves to the charge of affectation, nay, we
must use them, as we frequently do, in order to be better understood.
But we should remember that the common language has a kernel as well as
a shell, and that, when we have to determine the essential notions and
the intelligible relations of things, we must break the shell that we may
reach the kernel.

_Fourth difficulty._--The notions of space and of ubication above given
imply a sort of vicious circle. For space is explained by the possibility
of ubications, whilst ubications are said to be modes of being in space.
Therefore neither space nor ubication is sufficiently defined.

We answer, that then only is a sort of vicious circle committed in
defining or explaining things, when an unknown entity is defined or
explained by means of another equally unknown. When, on the contrary, we
explain the common notions of such things as are immediately known and
understood before any definition or explanation of them is given, there
is no danger of a vicious circle. In such a case, things are sufficiently
explained if our definition or description of them agrees with the notion
we have acquired of them by immediate apprehension. We say that _Being_
is that _which is_, and we explain the extension of time by referring
to movement, while we also explain movement by referring to time and
velocity, and again we explain velocity by referring to the extension
of time and movement. This is no vicious circle; for every one knows
these entities before hearing their formal definition. Now, the same
is true with respect to space and ubication; for the notion of space
is intuitive, and before we hear its philosophical definition, we know
already that it is the region of all possible ubications and movements.

Moreover, such things as have a mutual connection, or as connote one
another, can be explained and defined by one another without a vicious
circle. Thus we say that a _father_ is one who has a _son_, and a _son_
is one who has a _father_. In the same manner we define _the matter_ as
the essential term of a form, and _the form_ as the essential act of the
matter. Accordingly, since ubications are extrinsic terms of absolute
space, and space is the formal reason of their extrinsic possibility, it
is plain that we can, without any fear of a vicious circle, define and
explain the former by the latter, and _vice versa_.

Finally, no philosopher has ever defined space or explained it otherwise
than by reference to possible or actual ubications, nor was ubication
ever described otherwise than as a mode of being in absolute or in
relative space. This shows that it is in the very nature of things that
the one should be explained by reference to the other. Hence it is that
even our own definition of absolute space, which does not explicitly
refer to contingent ubications, refers to them implicitly. For when we
say that “absolute space is the virtuality, or extrinsic terminability,
of divine immensity,” we implicitly affirm the possibility of extrinsic
terms, viz., of ubications.

And here we will end our discussion on the entity of relative space; for
we do not think that there are other difficulties worthy of a special
solution. We have seen that relative space is entitatively identical
with absolute space, since it does not differ from it by any intrinsic
reality, but only by an extrinsic denomination. We have shown that space
is relative in an active, not in a passive sense, that is, as the formal
reason, not as a result of extrinsic relations. We have also seen that
these extrinsic relations are usually called “relative spaces,” and that
this phrase should not be used in philosophy without some restrictive
epithet, as it is calculated to mislead.

Let us conclude with a remark on the known division of space into _real_
and _imaginary_. This division cannot regard the entity of space,
which is unquestionably real. It regards the reality or unreality of
the extrinsic terms conceived as having a relation in space. The true
notion of real, as contrasted with imaginary space, is the following:
Space is called _real_, when it is _really_ relative, viz., when it is
extrinsically terminated by _real_ terms, between which it founds a
_real_ relation; on the contrary, it is called _imaginary_, when the
extrinsic terms do not exist in nature, but only in our imagination;
for, in such a case, space is not really terminated, and does not
found real relations, but both the terminations and the relations are
simply a fiction of our imagination. Thus it appears that void space,
as containing none but imaginary relations, may justly be called
“imaginary,” though in an absolute sense it is intrinsically real.

Hence we infer that the _indefinite_ space, which we imagine, when we
carry our thoughts beyond the limits of the material world, and which
philosophers have called “imaginary,” is not absolute, but relative
space, and is not imaginary in itself, but only as to its denomination of
relative, because where real terms do not exist there are only imaginary
relations, notwithstanding the reality of the entity through which we
refer the imaginary terms to one another.

That absolute space, considered in itself, cannot be called “imaginary”
is evident, because absolute space is not an object of imagination.
Imagination cannot conceive space except in connection with imaginary
terms so related as to offer the image of sensible dimensions. It is,
therefore, a blunder to confound imaginary and indefinite space with
absolute and infinite space. Indeed, our intellectual conception of
absolute and infinite space is always accompanied in our minds by a
representation of indefinite space; but this depends on the well-known
connection of our imaginative and intellectual operations: _Proprium
est hominis intelligere cum phantasmate_; and we must be careful not
to attribute to the object what has the reason of its being in the
natural condition of the subject. It was by this confusion of the
objective notion of space with our subjective manner of imagining it,
that Kant formed his false theory of subjective space. He mistook,
as we have already remarked, with Balmes, the product of imagination
for a conception of the intellect, and confounded his phantasma of
the indefinite with the objectivity of the infinite. It was owing to
this same confusion that other philosophers made the reality of space
dependent on real occupation, and denied the reality of vacuum. In
vacuum, of course, they could find no real terms and no real relations,
but they could _imagine_ terms and relations. Hence they concluded that,
since vacuum supplied nothing but imaginary relations, void space was an
imaginary, not a real, entity. This was a paralogism; for the reason why
those relations are imaginary is not the lack of real entity in absolute
space, but the absence of the real terms to which absolute space has to
impart relativity that the relation may ensue. It was not superfluous,
then, to warn our readers, as we did in our introduction to this article,
against the incursions of imagination upon our intellectual field.


A FRAGMENT.

_David Ben-Aser to his friend, Amri Ephraim, health, love, and greeting_:

MY BEST FRIEND: A month past I would have marvelled greatly that the
fame of one seemingly so obscure as he who calls himself Jesus of
Nazareth--and what good can come out of Nazareth?--could have travelled
to Rome or Damascus.

But the inquiry in thy friendly epistle from the banks of the Tiber,
brought me to-day by thy faithful Isaac, assures me that the city of the
Emperor has caught wind of the rumors with which Jerusalem is filled, and
’tis but an hour since Yusef, a Damascene merchant, questioned me with
interest concerning this new teacher, whose wonderful doctrines and still
more wonderful deeds have set all Galilee in a flame.

Strangely enough, it has been my fortune of late to have met him, not
once only, but several times, and always under striking circumstances.
What seemed less likely when we parted than that I should give more than
idle thought to what we both deemed a sensation of the hour; and yet it
has come to pass that this prophet, teacher--what you will, so that it
be kindly--has occupied my reflections for many moments in many days.
Things have so fallen out from a small beginning that I am bidden to dine
to-morrow at the house of Simon the Pharisee, in the company of Jesus.

At the present writing, I can gratify thy curiosity to a certain
important and strange extent; but after having had opportunity to
converse with him, I hope to be able still further to enlighten thee,
as well as satisfy myself as to the nature and depth of the impression
this strange teacher has made on thy hitherto reserved and unsusceptible
friend. I saw him first about a fortnight past.

On my way to the house of Marcus the centurion, with whom I had a money
transaction, my attention was attracted by a motley crowd of men, women,
and children, all eager to press closer to what seemed to be some
prominent figure in their midst.

“What is the cause of this commotion,” I inquired, “and whither are ye
bound?”

One of the number made answer thus: “We follow Jesus of Nazareth, who has
been sent for by Marcus the centurion, to heal his servant, now lying at
the point of death.”

“Which is Jesus?” I asked “and is he also a physician?”

“That is he with the grave face and gentle eyes, and he is not a
physician, but a worker of miracles.”

Anxious to obtain a nearer view of him whose name is in every mouth, I
endeavored to force my way through the crowd, when a man running at full
speed and making wild gestures with his hands called on the multitude
to part and give him speech with Jesus, which they did, as soon as they
fully understood his meaning and from whence he came. Then he called
out, saying: “Lord, my master saith, Trouble not thyself, for I am not
worthy that thou shouldst enter under my roof; say but the word, and my
servant shall be healed.” Jesus lifted his head, and I saw his face for
the first time; nay, but that part which extends from the top of the
forehead beneath the eyes. But what eyes--how full of life, and holiness,
and truth! And methought they fixed their piercing glance full upon me
as he cried aloud: “I say unto you, I have not found so great faith in
Israel.”

But the crowd pressed about him and I saw him no more, for he retraced
his steps, followed by the multitude, while I pursued my way, filled
with curiosity as to the result. As I neared the house of Marcus I heard
sounds of thanksgiving, and what was my surprise to hear, and in a moment
after see, the man who had been ill, perfectly restored, and fairly
dancing and laughing with joy.

Marcus is a man of probity and considerable influence, as you well know,
and his faith in the power of Jesus is very great, which can hardly be
counted singular.

Having transacted my business, I went on my way, marvelling and
reflecting much, albeit I am not given to running after strange prophets,
nor to walk in new paths. But once lighted upon, it seemed this untrodden
way was to open out fresh scenes to my view.

The next day I betook my steps early to Nain, where my brother-in-law,
Jonah, lies sick of the fever, which is now making fearful ravages in
that city. Returning in the cool of the evening, I suddenly encountered
a funeral procession. A woman deeply veiled followed the corpse,
piercing the air with heartrending cries. At the same moment a group
of travel-stained men entered the gate of the town. In their leader I
recognized Jesus of Nazareth, and at his approach an indefinable feeling
possessed me. I cannot describe it save in saying that I would fain have
fallen at his feet, as though in the presence of some superior being.

“Whom do you carry?” inquired one of the travellers.

“The only son of his mother, and she is a widow,” was the sad response.

Jesus touched the bier, and the bearers paused. Turning with a look of
ineffable compassion to the heartbroken mother, he said, in tones gentle
as those of a woman, “Weep not.” Then, in a louder voice, “Young man, I
say to thee, Arise.”

My breath came thick and fast, the cold dews gathered on my forehead,
for, miracle of miracles: the dead arose, cast aside his grave-clothes,
and fell sobbing upon his joyful mother’s breast. This I beheld with my
eyes--I heard him speak, I saw his happy tears. But Jesus calmly gathered
up his robe and pursued his journey, and once again I fancied--or did I
fancy?--that he singled me out from the crowd, and fixed his eyes on mine
with an expression that was almost an appeal. My eager gaze followed him
till I could no longer catch the outline of his garments; after which, I
slowly returned to Jerusalem.

There is much talk in the city concerning this last great miracle, and I
have been at pains to learn more of Jesus, of whom it is even said that
he calls himself the Messiah. It is argued against him that he consorts
with publicans and sinners, and that his most intimate friends and
disciples are illiterate fishermen.

However, he preaches that he came not to call the just, but sinners, to
repentance; it is therefore but natural and consistent that he should
seek out such, if his mission lies among them; and, with regard to his
near friends being illiterate, he is himself only a carpenter’s son.

Again, his enemies say that he casts out devils and works prodigies
through Beelzebub. But he preaches charity, good-will, hatred of
hypocrisy and double-dealing, and surely these are not the weapons of the
prince of darkness.

Many of the Pharisees, far wiser than I, are disturbed and thoughtful
because of these marvels that are daily occurring, so be not alarmed, nor
fear that your David is losing his wits.

Three days ago, on my way from the synagogue, I was joined by Simon, to
whom Jesus is well known, and in the conversation which ensued between
us, our friend hospitably invited me to dine with him at his house this
evening, saying that Jesus would be of the company. Of course I assented,
and am all impatience for the hour to arrive. Simon’s recognition of
Jesus speaks well for both, the former being a shrewd and careful man, a
quick observer, and not slow to detect imposture; and if the qualities of
the latter were not sound and commendable, Simon would not thus honor him
with his hospitality.

But already the sun dips low in the heavens; till to-morrow, my
Ephraim--farewell.

       *       *       *       *       *

I left you last evening aglow with curiosity to see and hear more of the
prophet of Israel, who is agitating all Jerusalem with the fame of his
miracles. I return to you awestruck, fascinated, filled with the spirit
of reverence and admiration. What I have to say may lose much of its
impressiveness by reason of distance and want of actual participation in
the events which have taken place. But you cannot fail to be touched by
the strangeness and sublimity of the soul embodied in the form of Jesus.
Yet you have not seen him, you have not heard the sublime language that
falls from his lips whenever he opens them to speak, you have not felt
his god-like eye penetrating yours, nor seen his rare and wondrous smile.
Therefore, should you scorn my enthusiasm, I shall not blame you, but
abide the time when Jerusalem may claim you once more. For the rest, I do
not doubt that in this, as in all things else, we two shall be one. But I
must hasten to resume my narrative while the events of the past few hours
are still fresh in my memory.

The sun had gone down behind a huge bank of crimson clouds, portending a
storm, as is not unusual at this wintry season, when we seated ourselves,
to the number of twenty or thereabouts, at the well-spread table of
Simon the Pharisee. Jesus was already present when I arrived, and sat,
the honored guest, at the right hand of the host, while several of his
friends or disciples surrounded him in the semicircle formed by the curve
of the table. Was I mistaken, or did his eyes rest on me, as I entered,
with that half-sad, half-affectionate expression so like an invitation?
Remembering the interest I had manifested in our conversation concerning
him, Simon kindly placed me as near Jesus as could well be, owing to the
proximity of several older guests, but after the first moment of greeting
Jesus resumed his discourse, and I had ample opportunity for observing
him at my leisure. He wore a single garment of woollen stuff, which fell
in graceful folds to his feet, being confined at the waist by a thick
cord. The robe was of soft but coarse material, and, though considerably
worn, appeared quite free from soil or travel-stain. He sat with hands
loosely folded on his knees, and I noticed the peculiar whiteness and
transparency of the fingers, which were long and thin. Those hands do
not look as though they belonged to a carpenter’s son. His forehead is
high and broad, and the hair, tinged with auburn, falls in graceful waves
about half-way to the shoulders. The face is oval, each feature perfect,
the eyebrows delicately pencilled, the nose of a Grecian rather than
our native Hebrew type, the lips not very full, but firm and red. Beard
the color of his hair, and slightly cleft, shows the well-formed chin,
and barely sweeps his breast. But those eyes--those deep, unfathomable,
crystal wells--how can I speak of their many and varied expressions, of
that changeful hue between gray and brown so beautiful and yet so rare.
They seem to unite in themselves all of majesty and sweetness I have
ever dreamed looked forth from eyes of angels--dignity and lowliness,
severity and tenderness, sadness and something higher than joy. But their
prevailing expression is one of sorrow, as though they had looked out
into the world, and, taking in its untold miseries and sins at one deep
glance, must hold the mournful picture there for evermore. Indeed, it is
said, I know not how truly, that Jesus has never been known to laugh.
His voice is low and soft, but very clear. I fancy it would be most
melodious in our Hebrew chants. And yet it can grow strong and loud in
reproach, as you shall presently hear.

The feast had begun, and the servants were busy attending to the wants
of the guests, when a slight noise was heard in the antechamber, as
though the porter were remonstrating with some one who desired to enter.
Suddenly a woman appeared on the threshold, clothed in a fleecy white
tunic, girdled with blue, and bearing an alabaster box in her hand. A
murmur went round the assembly. Surely our eyes did not deceive us--it
was the notorious courtesan, Mary Magdalen, but divested of the costly
robes and ornaments which were formerly her pride, and with her rich
golden hair loosely coiled at the back of her head and simply fastened
with a silver comb.

I bethought me of a rumor I had heard, that Jesus had once delivered her
from the hands of those who were about to stone her, and also that since
that time she had renounced her abandoned manner of life. Pale, with
eyes downcast, she stood one hesitating instant in the doorway; then,
falling on her knees before Jesus, she wept aloud, literally bathing his
feet with her tears. He uttered no word of reproach, but suffered her
to unbind that beautiful hair whose golden threads had lured so many to
destruction. Now, as though seeking to make atonement, she wiped with it
his tired feet. Kissing them humbly, and still weeping, she drew from
the alabaster box most precious ointment and anointed them profusely.
All were silent, but many shook their heads with doubt and suspicion.
Simon the Pharisee folded his arms, but spake not, till Jesus, as though
divining the thoughts of his heart, said slowly and impressively:

“Simon, I have somewhat to say unto thee.”

And he answered him: “Master, say on.”

Then he said: “There was a certain creditor who had two debtors: the one
owed five hundred pence, and the other fifty. And when they had nothing
to pay, he frankly forgave them both. Tell me, therefore, which of them
will love him most?”

Simon answered and said: “I suppose he to whom he forgave most.”

And he said unto him: “Thou hast rightly judged.” And he turned to the
woman, and said unto Simon: “Seest thou this woman? I entered into thine
house, thou gavest me no water for my feet; but she hath washed my feet
with tears, and wiped them with the hairs of her head. Thou gavest me no
kiss; but this woman, from the time I came in, hath not ceased to kiss
my feet. My head with oil thou didst not anoint, but this woman hath
anointed my feet with ointment. Wherefore, I say unto thee, her sins,
which are many, are forgiven, for she hath loved much; but to whom little
is forgiven, the same loveth little.” And he said unto her: “Thy sins are
forgiven.”

No one made answer as the woman silently departed, but the incident
had strangely disturbed the spirit of the feast. I marvel how the most
critical could have found fault or misjudged what was undoubtedly a
spontaneous expression of gratitude and contrition in the repentant
sinner. Jesus had saved Mary from death, and humbled her accusers with
these remarkable words: “Let he who is without sin among you throw the
first stone.” They slunk away mortified and abashed.

Since that time she has seen the error of her ways, and surely, if
the God of our fathers pardons sinners, it is but in keeping with his
established character for justice and mercy that so perfect a man as
Jesus should not rebuke them. I am more and more powerfully drawn towards
this wonderful teacher. As the guests dispersed last evening, I contrived
to obtain speech with him, and he replied to several questions of mine
with great mildness and suavity. And although, by reason of my known
wealth and position among the Pharisees, one might suppose he would make
some note of the voluntary admiration and respect I did not hesitate to
manifest, he soon turned with grave dignity to others who surrounded
him, his own friends no doubt, and seemed to forget my presence. They
say he goes to-morrow into various towns and villages, for the purpose
of preaching and instructing. He will be accompanied by the twelve who
always follow him. My interest has been so strongly excited that I am
tempted to defer still longer my journey to Rome, which I had intended to
begin almost immediately. However, I shall not postpone it sufficiently
long to deprive myself of the pleasure of thy company in the capital for
some time previous to thy return to Jerusalem.

In any event, I shall write thee soon. Blessings upon thee, dearest
friend! I await an answer to this lengthy epistle.


II.

The fury of the first persecution had nearly exhausted itself, and even
Nero, that insatiable butcher whose thirst for blood had enkindled the
fierce flame, seemed to have well-nigh spent the measure of his inhuman
cruelty.

Hiding like criminals in gloomy abodes and obscure retreats, those
Christians who had escaped martyrdom seldom ventured forth save when the
dusk of evening rendered them less liable to scrutiny or interrogation.

But among the exceptions to this precautionary rule was one, that of
a very old, white-haired man, who might be seen at all times in the
most public places, and who was well-known to be a fearless and devoted
Christian. Indeed, he seemed rather to court danger than avoid it, and
it was a marvel to the more timid among his brethren how he had thus far
escaped the lion’s jaws or the caldron of boiling oil.

One raw evening in early March, three drunken soldiers were tumbling
along a narrow Roman street, lined with small, obscure-looking houses,
when a bent figure suddenly issued from one of the low doorways and
walked hurriedly in the direction of the Jews’ quarter, not far distant.

“Ho there!” called one of the three, eager for adventure of any kind, “ho
there! Who art thou, and whither goest thou?”

The figure paused, and said in reply, “I am an old man, and I go to
relieve a fellow-man in distress.”

“Not so fast, not so fast, friend,” retorted the soldier. “In these
times, we guardians of the emperor’s peace must be circumspect and
vigilant.”

“Ho, ho! It is Andrew, that dog of a Christian who boasteth, I am told,
that he is not afraid of our august emperor himself,” said another of the
three. “Speak, old man; art thou not a Christian, and brave enough to
face thy master, who can, if he so pleases, make a torch of thee to light
belated way-farers home?”

“Ay, thou sayest truly, I am a Christian,” replied the old man, folding
his arms and standing erect, as he continued: “My name is Andrew; I am
well known in the city, and acknowledge no master in the odious tyrant
who calls himself Emperor of Rome.”

“Ah! what is this?” said the soldier who had not yet spoken, and who
appeared the most sober of the three. “So--so. A traitor and a Christian.
There is a double reward set upon thy head, old fellow. Comrades,
we would be doing an injustice to the emperor and the state in not
apprehending this venomous traitor. Let us away with him to prison, and
before this time to-morrow he may know what it is to feel the emperor’s
avenging arm.” The old man’s eye brightened, and he would have spoken,
but was prevented by him who had first accosted him.

“Nay, nay, comrades,” he said, “let the poor creature go. He has been
seen in all public places since the edict, and is well known for a
Christian. Yet his age and infirmities have thus far saved him from
arrest. Let us to our quarters, and permit him to go free.”

“Not so,” replied his companion gruffly, while the other seized the old
man by the cloak. “It won’t do to make fish of one and flesh of another.
Besides, there’s the booty, and that’s something not to be despised.”

“Well, so be it,” was the reply; “one against two is but poor odds. Let
us go.”

The prisoner made no resistance, walking on silently between his captors,
but a strange light shone in his eyes; and when the great iron door of
the cell into which he was rudely hurried closed behind him, he fell on
his knees exclaiming:

“At last, my God, at last! O Lord! I thank thee--let not this great joy
pass from me.”

Morning dawned, and Nero sat dispensing death and torture to the doomed
Christians, inventing new cruelties with each death sentence. An old man,
heavily manacled, was led in by three guards. His venerable appearance
attracted the emperor’s notice, and he cried out:

“Ho, guards! bring forward the patriarch. What offence hath the old Jew
committed? Has he been pursuing some unlucky creditor, or hath his last
enterprise savored too strongly of usury? What is charged against thee,
Jew?”

“He is no Jew, but a bragging Christian, most noble emperor,” exclaimed
the foremost guard. “He boasted but last night that he would not
acknowledge thee for master, and we have brought him to thy presence that
his boast may wither beneath the light of thy august countenance.”

“Art thou not a Jew?” cried Nero, as the prisoner lifted his bowed head,
and stood erect.

“I am a Jew by birth, but a Christian by religion,” he replied in a low
but audible voice.

“What is thy name?”

“I was baptized Andrew, and so I am called.”

Here a murmur ran through the crowd, and a centurion stepped forward,
saying:

“A most bitter enemy of the gods, most noble emperor. He is the same who
may be seen at all the public executions of Christians, exhorting and
praying with them.”

“I wonder he has never been apprehended until now--it speaks well for
the devotion of my adherents,” replied the emperor with a sneer. The
centurion drew back somewhat abashed.

“I have often sought death, but my gray hairs have spared me until now,”
said the old man.

“Hold thy treacherous tongue, sirrah,” cried one of the guards. “I’ll
warrant thee they will not spare thee now.”

“Silence!” cried the emperor. “Old man, art thou the same of whom it is
said thou wert a friend of the Galilean ere he went to the gibbet?”

“What I was it matters not. What I desire to be is the faithful servant
of my Lord Jesus Christ.”

“Verily, thou art impertinent, and age hath not taught thee humility.
Mayhap, it would please thee to have thy old body cut in slices and
thrown to the wild beasts.”

“It would be the fulfilment of my most ardent prayers--any death by which
I might suffer martyrdom for Jesus Christ. I have longed for it these
fifty years.” As he spoke his face seemed transfigured, while that of
Nero assumed a new and more malicious expression.

“How old art thou?” he asked.

“I am ninety-two.”

“Where is thy birthplace?”

“Jerusalem.”

“And thou wouldst die for Jesus Christ?”

“Thou knowest it, my judge.”

“Such death would be the greatest boon thy heart desires?”

“My God knoweth it.”

A mocking smile played around the emperor’s lips as he said:

“Then hear thy sentence. Thou shalt be taken from hence to the Appian
gate--and there bidden go thy way in peace. Thou art not young enough
to be toothsome to the lions, and the sap is so dried in thy veins thou
wouldst make but a sorry torch by night. There is so little flesh upon
thy bones that thou wouldst not sink in Tiber, and we cannot afford to
waste stones in weighting such as thou. Thy withered carcass would not
whet the executioner’s knife; there is naught for it but to let thee
go. Spend the remainder of thy days as thou hast wasted those that are
gone, in longings for martyrdom. Guards! seize your prisoner, and execute
sentence upon him.”

The light that had illumined the eyes of the old man slowly faded as the
emperor spoke, and great tears rolled down his furrowed cheeks. Clasping
his withered hands high above his head, he exclaimed:

“It is not to be--it is not to be! My God, I accept the retribution.”

“What sayest thou?” cried Nero. “Hast thou committed some terrible crime
that thou talkest of retribution?”

“Ay, a great crime; but I have suffered much, and striven to make
atonement. But my Saviour is not yet satisfied.”

“Accuse thyself. We may be less lenient here than awhile ago.”

The old man’s eyes kindled once more and again he stood erect: “Yes, I
will confess,” he cried in a loud voice. “I will let all the world know
that he whom his companions have called just is the meanest sinner of
them all; I will strive by the whiteness of my gray hairs and the years
of sorrow that have passed since that mad day to awaken in thy tyrant
heart some pity, some relenting from thy cruel sentence.

“But alas! what do I say? The hand of God is in it--my Saviour refuses me
the boon I crave, and thou art but his instrument.” He sighed heavily,
wiped the tears from his eyes, and continued in a less agitated voice:

“I am a native of Jerusalem--a descendant of the tribe of Aser; my father
was a ruler of much wealth and influence--both of which I inherited. I
had luxurious tastes, and gratified them to a certain extent, filling my
house with rare and costly furniture and ornaments. I travelled much, and
indulged my inclinations to the fullest extent without transgressing the
moral law. I esteemed virtue and practised it, more from a sense of pride
than a feeling of true religion. I was unmarried and had few intimate
friends. One, however, Amri Ephraim, was bound to me by the closest ties
of intimacy and association. He was also wealthy. Business called him to
Rome about the time our Lord Jesus began to preach the gospel in Galilee.
We were both somewhat interested in the new prophet, as he was then
called; but from my first meeting with him I was filled with admiration
for his teachings, and drawn towards him by an attraction I could not
then understand. Alas! I have known its meaning for many sorrowful,
repentant years.

“His influence grew upon me. I followed him from place to place; he
took kindly notice of me. His gentle looks seemed to beckon me on; his
wondrous miracles became convincing proofs of his divine mission; his
merciful and consoling teachings entered deep into my soul, and left
it glowing with awe and veneration. I felt that he was the Messiah
promised by David; I knew it in my coward heart. And yet this world--this
glittering, hollow sham--it was that which held me back and lured me to
my own perdition. Many times I saw Jesus look upon me with a gaze that
told of affection mingled with doubt and sorrow. For days I would absent
myself from his side, only to return athirst and filled with new desires.

“One day, as he sat in the shade of a palm-tree with a few of his
disciples, I threw myself at his feet and listened to the wisdom that
fell from his lips.

“‘Master,’ I said at length, ‘what shall a man do to inherit eternal
life?’

“‘Keep the commandments,’ he answered, fixing his eyes upon me as though
he would read my soul.

“‘I have kept them from my youth,’ I replied.

“‘Then lackest thou yet one thing,’ he said. ‘Sell all thou hast, give
thy treasure to the poor, and come, follow me.’

“The words were spoken--they had appealed to my heart for many days;
Jesus loved me, he had singled me from the multitude of whom but little
is required--he would have chosen me for a familiar disciple. I saw it in
his eye; I heard it in his voice. He had called me to follow him! And I?…

“Before me there swept a vision of lost delights and despised honors. I
saw myself hungry and cold, and naked and scorned; I heard the censure of
the world, the altered tones of friends, the jibes and sneers of enemies.
If I had dared once more to lift my eyes--if I had met that benignant
glance, so full of affection and assurance--all would have been well, and
the craven heart had never bled these sixty years for that one moment’s
loss. But, alas! I cast down my eyes and bowed my head; I arose and went
away sorrowful. That night I left Jerusalem and fled to Rome. I say
fled, for I was like a criminal fleeing not from a tyrant but a kind
and merciful father. My friend, to whom I had written faithfully of my
interest in Jesus, passed and missed me on the way to Jerusalem.…”

Here the old man’s voice faltered and his frame shook with sobs. He
seemed unconscious of all but his own sorrow as he continued:

“He learned to know Jesus--became a faithful disciple; he witnessed his
capture and cruel trial; he followed him to Calvary; he saw the prodigies
that occurred at his death; he saw him ascend into heaven. He enjoyed
the sweet privilege of conversing with Mary; he received the dead body
of Stephen the blessed martyr, and helped to give it decent burial, and
his body lies to-day at the bottom of old Tiber--martyred for the faith
of Christ; while I--coward that I was--awoke to the sense of my sin when
it was too late to return and throw myself at his sacred feet, too late
to touch the hem of his garment, too late to follow his bloody footsteps
up the frightful Mount of Calvary. One expiation I thought to make--one
atonement for my sin; for the poor sacrifice of my wealth was nothing to
me. I sought martyrdom. In the public places, in the forum, by the side
of dying Christians, at the graves of murdered saints. But I seemed to
bear a charmed life. They passed me by, they did not molest me. He is
harmless, said one; he is old, said another. And now, when I thought the
goal within my reach, when I hoped that my expiation had been accepted,
it is again denied me. Be it so, my God, my outraged and despised
Saviour, be it so! I rejected thee--thou rejectest me. Thou didst die for
me--thou wilt not suffer me to die for thee. Thy will be done!”

The bowed head fell heavily on the clasped hands, and the old man sank
slowly on his knees. At that moment a stray sunbeam, the first of a murky
morning, touched his white hair as with a crown of brightness, then faded
and the clouded heavens grew dark. The guards stooped to lift him. He was
dead.

“What a dramatic talent those Christians have!” said the emperor to his
friend Apulius, who stood beside his throne. “Pity they do not apply it
to better purpose. Guards! let that old man go free--we pity his gray
hairs--ha! ha!”

“He is dead, most noble emperor,” replied one of the soldiers, not
without something of softness in his voice.

“Ah! so? Remove the corpse then; and thou, good Marcellus, be sure thou
hast those fifty Syrian Christian torches well pitched and oiled ere
night--for it will be dark, and we must needs be lighted to Phryma’s
banquet. Come Apulius--make way, lictors.”

So Nero passed beneath the arched doorway from his tyrant throne--and at
the same moment some timid Christians near its foot bore away the body of
a saint for burial.


ART AND SCIENCE.

    A wild swan and an eagle side by side
    I marked, careering o’er the ocean-plain,
    Emulous a heaven more heavenly each to gain,
    Circling in orbits wider and more wide:
    Highest, methought, through tempest scarce descried,
    One time the bird of battle soared;--in vain;
    So soon, exhausted ’mid their joy and pride,
    Dropped to one sea the vanquished rivals twain.
    Then, o’er the mighty waves around them swelling,
    That snowy nursling of low lakes her song
    Lifted to God, floating serene along;
    While she that in the hills had made her dwelling
    Struggled in vain her wings to beat and quiver,
    And the deep closed o’er that bright crest for ever.

    AUBREY DE VERE.


THE ROMAN RITUAL AND ITS CHANT

_COMPARED WITH THE WORKS OF MODERN MUSIC._

II.--CONCLUDED.


VALUE AS A MEDIUM OR VEHICLE OF DIVINE TRUTH AMONG THE PEOPLE.

Popular national songs with their melodies are not, either in point of
poetry or music, very elaborate or classical works of art. Consummate art
is incapable of passing among a people, and must ever remain confined
to the initiated and the connoisseur; yet national songs are not only
characteristic of all people, but fulfil a very important function. They
not only foster and preserve the national spirit, of which they are the
expression, but also keep up, by tradition among the people, a knowledge
of the history of their race, and of the exploits and noble deeds of its
great men. In a word, the songs of a people have an influence over the
growth of their moral character which it is not easy to overestimate, and
which was well known to that statesman who was heard to say that they who
have the making of a people’s songs will soon have the making of their
laws; a sentiment fully confirmed by the proverb, “Qui mutat cantus,
mutat mores.”

The above remarks, much too brief to put the importance of the ideas
contained in them in their proper light, seem to issue in the conclusion
that the song of the Christian kingdom will be necessarily something very
different from an elaborate work of musical genius.

When our divine Redeemer lifted up his eyes, and beheld the multitudes
going astray as sheep without a shepherd, he was moved with compassion.
Surely in his judgment sacred song will be deemed to fulfil its mission
when it passes current among the people, is domesticated in the laboring
man’s cottage among his children, and there teaches the family the
knowledge of their Saviour’s life and sufferings, of their redemption by
these from sin, and the death of the world to come. Sacred song will,
in his compassionate eyes, fulfil its mission of mercy when it takes up
the words of eternal Wisdom, and puts them in the mouth of the people
as a charm against the maxims of a world declared by the Word of God to
be “_lying in wickedness_,” and as a shield against the assaults of a
tempter, said in the same Word “_to be ever going about seeking whom he
may devour_.” It will fulfil its mission when it enters into the heart
and soul of the people, accompanies the departed with a requiem as man
goeth to his long home and the mourners go about the streets, when it
administers comfort to the survivors, while it bids them not to sorrow
as they that have no hope, and, in a word, weeps with them that weep,
and rejoices with them that do rejoice. Nor let it be said that this is
a romantic notion--the making out of the earth an ideal paradise. Surely
the actual and adequate fulfilment of such a mission of sacred song
belongs to the idea of the mission of the Son of God, sent by the Father
to re-establish order, piety, and sanctity on the earth. But what if this
idea was not only familiar to the fathers, but that they actually saw the
progress of its accomplishment?

“There is no need here,” says S. Chrysostom, exhorting his people to take
part in the church chant, “of the artist’s skill, which requires length
of time to bring to perfection. Let there be but a good will and a ready
mind, and the result will soon be sufficient skill. There is no absolute
need even of time or place, for in every place or time one may sing with
the mind. Though you be walking in the Forum, or are on a journey, or
are seated with your friends, the mind may be on the alert, and find for
itself an utterance. It was thus that Moses cried, and God heard. If you
are an artisan, you may sing Psalms as you sit laboring in your workshop;
you may do the same if you are a soldier, or a judge seated on his bench”
(Hom. on Ps. iv.)

A formal acknowledgment on the part of the church of this principle of
teaching by means of song, which at the same time proves its antiquity,
though it can be hardly necessary to cite it, may be found in one of
the Collects for Holy Saturday: “Deus, celsitudo humilium, et fortitudo
rectorum, qui per sanctum Moysen puerum tuum ita erudire populum tuum
sacri carminis tui decantatione voluisti, ut illa legis iteratio fiat
etiam, nostra directio,” etc., etc.--“O God! the loftiness of the humble
and the strength of them that are upright, who wast pleased, through thy
holy servant Moses, to instruct thy people by the singing of a sacred
song,” etc., etc.

If, then, this be a true and just view of the mission of the sacred song
among the poor and the unlearned multitude, as contemplated in the divine
idea; if it be true, as I suppose no one will deny, that the Ritual
Chant is not only fitted to accomplish it, but has realized it in times
past, and does still realize it in countries that might be named; and
if the works of modern art are, from their very scientific character
as music, incapable of being the medium in which divine truth can pass
among the people; and, indeed, if it be their nature to give so much
more of prominence to the beauty of mere sound than to the expression of
intelligible meaning or sentiment, which every one knows is the case, we
seem to gain this obvious result, on drawing the comparison, that the
Ritual chant is a _real medium_ or vehicle for the circulation of divine
truth among the people, fitted with a divine wisdom to its end; while
the great works of art that the musician so much admires are not, to any
practical extent whatever, such a medium, and indeed, if the truth must
be said, were probably _never_ contemplated as such, either by those who
composed or those who now admire them.


COMPARATIVE “MEDICINAL VIRTUE.”

“They that are whole need not a physician,” said our Redeemer (Mark
ii. 17), “but they that are sick. I came not to call the just, but
sinners to repentance.” It was part of the mission of the Son of God
upon earth, that he should be the physician of the souls of men (Isaiæ
lxi.): “Spiritus Domini super me, eo quod unxerit Dominus me, _ut mederer
contritis_ corde.” It will follow, then, that the music which the divine
Physician of souls will desire to see employed in his church will be
strongly marked with the medicinal character.

And this conclusion becomes the more natural, from observing the
numberless indications which the literature of different countries
affords that music has always been popularly regarded as a medicine for
the spirit; as, for instance, the Greek pastoral poet, Bion:

    Μολπὰν ταὶ Μοῖσαι, μοὶ ἀεὶ ποθέοντι διδοῖεν
    Τὰν γλυκερὰν μολπὰν τᾶς φάρμακον ἅδιον οὐδέν.

    BIONIS, _Bucolica_, i.

“Song than which no medicine so sweet.” Among the Romans, the courtly
Ovid:

    “Hoc est cur cantet vinctus quoque compede fossor
      Indocili numero, cum grave mollit opus.
    Cantat et innitens limosæ pronus arenæ,
      Adverso tardam qui vehit amne ratem;
    Qui refert pariter lentos ad pectora remos,
      In numerum pulsâ brachia versat aquâ.
    …
    Cantantis pariter, pariter data pensa trahentis
      Fallitur ancillæ, decipiturque labor.”

    OVID, _de Tristibus_, _Eleg._ lib. i.

And, in our own literature, the great poet of human nature, Shakspeare:

    “When griping grief the heart doth wound,
      And doleful dumps the mind oppress,
    Then music with her silver sound
      With speedy help doth lend redress.”

    SHAKSPEARE’s _Romeo and Juliet_.

With this view of music, as permitted by a merciful Providence to retain
a large share of healing virtue, even apart from religion, and in the
midst of the disorders of heathenism, expectation will be naturally much
raised on coming to inquire what have been the effects of the Christian
music which the divine Physician of souls has given to his Church. Nor
will there be any disappointment. S. Basil the Great, the well-known
doctor and bishop of the East, speaks of the Plain Chant of his own day
in the following terms:

“Psalmody is the calm of the soul, the umpire of peace, that sets at rest
the storm and upheaving of the thoughts. Psalmody quiets the turbulence
of the mind, tempers its excess, is the bond of friendship, the union of
the separated, the reconciler of those at variance; for who can count him
any longer an enemy with whom he has but once lifted up his voice to God?
Psalmody putteth evil spirits to flight, calleth for the help of angels,
is a defence from terrors by night, a rest from troubles by day, is the
safety of children, the glory of young men, the comfort of the old, the
fairest ornament of women.… Psalmody calls forth a tear from a heart of
stone, is the work of angels, the government of Heaven, the incense of
the Spirit.”

S. Ambrose, Archbishop of Milan in the West, in the preface to his
Commentary on the Book of Psalms, speaks as follows:

“In the Book of Psalms there is something profitable for all; it is a
sort of universal medicine and preservative of health. Whoever will
read therein may be sure to find the proper remedy for the diseased
passion he suffers from. Psalmody is the blessing of the people, a
thanksgiving of the multitude, the delight of numbers, and a language
for all. It is the voice of the Church, the sweetly-loud profession of
faith, the full-voiced worship of men in power, the delight of the free,
the shout of the joyous, the exultation of the merry. It is the soother
of anger, the chaser away of sorrow, the comforter of grief. It is a
defence by night, an ornament by day, a shield in danger, a strong tower
of sanctity, an image of tranquillity, a pledge of peace and concord,
forming its unity of song, as the lyre, from diversity of sound. The
morning echoes to the sound of psalmody, and the evening re-echoes.
The apostle commanded women to be silent in the church; yet the song
of psalmody becomes them (S. Ambrose is speaking of congregational
psalmody). Boys and young men may sing psalms without danger, and even
young women also, without detriment to their matronly reserve. They
are the food of childhood; and infancy itself, that will learn nothing
besides, delights in them. Psalmody befits the rank of the king, may be
sung by magistrates, and chorused by the people, each one vying with his
neighbor in causing that to be heard which is good for all” (_Præfatio in
Comment in Lib. Psalmorum_).

S. Augustine speaks thus of the Church Chant: “How my heart burned within
me against the Manicheans, and how I pitied them, that they neither
knew its mystery nor healing virtue; and that they should insanely rage
against that very antidote by which they might have recovered their
saneness (insani essent adversus antidotum quo sani esse potuissent)!”
(_Confess._ lib. ix.) To which should certainly be added the fact that,
in some degree, the church may be said to be indebted to this very
medicinal power of her psalmody, and to the tears it drew forth from the
young catechumen Augustine, for one of the profoundest among her saints
and doctors.

And to come to times nearer our own, the well-known Massillon, in one
of his charges to his clergy, delivered at the Conference at which he
presided, earnestly recommends them to make the study of the Plain Chant
a part of their recreation; for, adds he, “le peuple souvent se calme au
chant du sacerdoce dans le temple.” (_Conferences_, vol. iii.) And our
own times have witnessed a remarkable instance of the same medicinal
power of the church chant when in the Champs Élysées of Paris, during the
summer of 1848, the citizens met in the open air, to celebrate a Requiem
Mass for the repose of those who had fallen in the great civil commotion
of that year, which had been suppressed with such loss of life. Here were
to be seen the murderer and the relations of the murdered, forgetting
that strongest and deadliest feud of the human heart--the thirst for
vengeance for the shedding of kindred blood--joining their own to the
thousands of voices that poured forth the well-known church chant of the
_Dies iræ_. Ten thousand voices supplicating Almighty God to pardon the
past, to grant rest to the souls of the slain, to bear in mind that he
had come on earth to save them, and to beg that he would remember them in
mercy at the day of his judgment, in the language and song of the church!
Of a truth, then, may the church chant say, _Unxit me Spiritus Domini, ut
mederer contritis corde_.

It is also curious to observe in what a marked manner, even in the recent
Protestant literature of our own country, this medicinal character of the
church chant is still recognized. Mr. Wordsworth has the following lines
in his _Ecclesiastical Sonnets_ (xxx.):


CANUTE.

    “A pleasant music floats along the Mere,
    From monks in Ely chanting service high,
    While--as Canute the King is rowing by--
    ‘My oarsmen,’ quoth the mighty king, ‘draw near,
    That we the sweet song of the monks may hear.’
    He listens (all past conquests and all schemes
    Of future vanishing like empty dreams)
    Heart-touch’d, and haply not without a tear.
    The royal minstrel, ere the choir is still,
    While his free barge skims the smooth flood along,
    Gives to that rapture an accordant Rhyme.[151]
    O suffering earth! be thankful; sternest clime
    And rudest age are subject to the thrill
    Of heav’n-descended piety and song.”

Henry Kirke White, in the fragment of a ballad entitled the “Fair Maid of
Clifton,” bears even the still more remarkable testimony to a power over
evil spirits. He is describing the death-bed of a female who, fearing
that the demons would carry her away, had sent for her own relations to
pray by her side, and for the “clerk and all the singers besides.”

    “And she begged they would sing the penitent hymn,
      And pray with all their might;
    For sadly I fear the fiend will be here,
      And fetch me away this night.
    …
    “And now their song it died on their tongue,
      For sleep it was seizing their sense,
    And Margaret screamed and bid them not sleep,
      Or the fiends would bear her hence.”[152]

    _Southey’s edition_, p. 281.

And now, in drawing the comparison, it is fair to ask, granting the
exception where it may be justly conceded, in favor of particular
compositions: What on the whole is the _medicinal virtue_ of our modern
figured music? how does it take effect? who are the persons whose sorrow
it relieves? who are they who find themselves really made better by it,
and inclined, through its influence, to feel in greater charity with the
remainder of the congregation? To judge from the kind of remarks that are
usually made by persons coming away from a church where one of these
figured music Masses has been executed, one would certainly not say that
they could be many. For what are these remarks but those of connoisseurs,
who criticise the merits of a voice which has reached a very high or
low note, or of a particular solo, trio, or quartet, to which those who
are uninitiated in the mysteries of minim and crotchet pay positively
no attention at all? Now, let us for a moment suppose a person to say,
with S. Ambrose, in praise of Mozart’s famous No. XII., that it was a
“defence by night, an ornament by day, a shield in danger, a strong tower
of sanctity, an image of tranquillity, a pledge of peace”; or with S.
Basil, that “it had the virtue of putting devils to flight”; would any
experience more unfeigned surprise than those very persons who think this
Mass the absolute ideal of church music? Or again: if, unknown to himself
and to others, there were at this moment a future doctor of the church
among our London club politicians, how much would it naturally occur to
us to think that the performance of this same No. XII. would be likely to
contribute towards effecting his conversion?


RESPECTIVE CAPACITY FOR DURABLE POPULARITY.

God, who gave the Ecclesiastical Chant as a gift of mercy to the people,
must needs contemplate it as _popular_. For except it were really
popular, it would fail to attain its end. This, then, will be the place
to examine what indications are to be found that the Ritual Chant is
really, in this particular, the fulfilment of the Divine idea.

When an invention or an art is such that people come to borrow from
it popular expressions, or when it gives birth to new phrases or
metaphors, or a word or words come to be engrafted from it upon one or
many languages, this becomes an argument for its popularity, such as no
one will be inclined to dispute. Such phrases as those of “Go ahead,”
“Get the steam up,” are quite sufficient to prove the fact of everybody
being well acquainted with the steam-engine, from which they are derived.
Now, if a similar fact can be found relative to the Gregorian chant, its
popularity is in a manner placed beyond the reach of doubt.

When the poet Gray uses a well-known word in the lines,

    “The next, with _dirges_ due, in sad array.
    Slow through the church-yard path we saw him borne,”

he bears testimony to such a fact. The initial word of the first Antiphon
of the Matins for the dead, “_Dirige_ gressus meos, Domine,” has given
this well-known word to our language. It can be hardly necessary to
refer to a similar reception of the word “Requiem” into many different
languages, which is the initial word of the Introit in the Mass for the
dead.

The following anecdote, related by Padre Martini, page 437 of the third
volume of his _History of Music_, may be here to the point. It is of
Antonio Bernacchi, the most celebrated singer of his day (the beginning
of the XVIIIth century), and narrated to him by Bernacchi himself:
that, as he happened to be on a journey in Tuscany, near a monastery
of Trappist monks, he felt a desire to visit it, in order to become
acquainted with the way of life of these religious. He entered their
church exactly at the time they were singing Tierce. Bernacchi was
overcome by the effect of a multitude of voices in such perfect union
that they seemed to be only one voice. He admired their precision in
the utterance of every syllable, and in the softening, swelling, and
sustaining of the voice, that although no more than men, they seemed
to him like angels occupied in praising God; whereupon Bernacchi fell
into the following soliloquy: “How deceived have I been in myself; I
thought that, after a long and diligent application to the art of singing
under such a master as Pestocchi, and having the natural gift of a good
voice, I might pretend to exercise my profession without any question.
How have I been deceived, being obliged to confess that the psalmody of
these religious has in it a value and a quality that renders their song
superior to mine!”

Dom Martene relates that, in his travels to visit the churches of France,
he passed by a church of Benedictine nuns, who met with a patron and
benefactor in the following manner: The Duc de Bournonville retiring from
Paris in disgrace to “Provins,” on his arrival inquired for the nearest
church; and, upon being shown the church of these nuns, he entered it as
they were singing Vespers. So charmed was he by the sweetness of their
song, that he seemed to himself to be listening to angels, and not to
human creatures. On hearing, in an interview that followed, that the
community were in debt, he gave the lady abbess an immediate present of
one thousand ecus, and ever afterwards continued to be a benefactor to
the convent (_Voyage Littéraire_, etc., part i. p. 79).

Baini (_Mem. Stor._, vol. ii. p. 122) quotes a letter, which is thus
addressed to some English gentlemen who had visited Rome: “To Mr. Edward
Grenfield, Fellow of the Royal Academy of London, to Mr. Davis, Mr.
Morris, and other learned Englishmen, whose ears have not been altered by
fashion, and made obtuse by habit, and who have been more than once heard
to say, that they felt themselves more moved by the Gregorian Chant than
by all the noisy performances of the greater part of our theatres.”

Nor is this appreciation for Gregorian music confined merely to persons
from among the multitude. The following are the sentiments of two of the
most distinguished musical scholars of the day:

“All is worthy of admiration in the primitive Roman Chant. The tune of
the ‘Kyrie,’ for doubles and feasts of the first class, runs out to some
length, and is full of beautiful passages. That of Sundays is shorter
and more simple, but not the less full of unction. In both the one and
the other it seems impossible to change or to suppress a note without
destroying a beautiful idea, where all hangs so perfectly together. With
what natural, or rather inspired genius, has not this Kyrie, confined as
it is to such narrow limits, been conceived to form a whole so complete”
(Fetis, _Des Origines du Plain Chant, ou Chant Ecclésiastique_).

“Musicians may oppose and contradict what I say as they please; they have
full liberty; but I am not afraid to assert that the ancient melodies of
the Gregorian Chant are inimitable. They may be copied, adapted to other
words, heaven knows how, but to make new ones equal to the first, that
will never be done” (Baini, _Memorie Storiche di P. Palæstrina_, vol. ii.
p. 81).

And again, describing Palæstrina as engaged in the task of revising the
Gradual, he says: “But the Gregorian chant claims a character wholly its
own, has a beauty and a force proper only to itself. It is what it is,
and does not change. But to remain ever the same, and to be susceptible
of a change contrary to its nature, would be impossible. In a word, it
may be said that _heaven_ formed it through the early fathers, and then
fractured the mould.”

“Palæstrina applied himself with the zeal of one who had deeply at heart
the majesty of divine worship. But having completed the first part, _De
Tempore_, his pen fell from his hands, and more wearied than Atlas under
the weight of the sky, he abandoned his attempt; and nothing was found
at his death but the incomplete manuscript.… And thus we may see the
greatest man ever known in the art and science of figured music _become
less than a mere baby_ when he wished to lay a _profane hand_ on the
fathers and doctors of the Holy Roman Church. …And how wise at last was
he, after having fruitlessly attempted in so many ways to correct this
_divine song_ according to human ideas, to abandon the enterprise for
ever, and to conceal up to his death the useless result of his labor,
which he himself acknowledged to be unworthy of being made public” (_Mem.
Stor._ vol. ii. p. 123).

Next, as slightly illustrating its power of pleasing even a modern
European people, and that in contrast with the most elaborate products
of modern art; in 1846, at the centenary Jubilee of the Feast of Corpus
Christi at Liege, Mendelssohn’s _Lauda Sion_ was sung at one of the
offices. Yet the general opinion of the people who heard it (and who, by
the by, from its constant use in processions, are well acquainted with
the old Gregorian melody of the same sequence) was, that it was not
to be compared to the ritual _Lauda Sion_. At the Metropolitan Church
of Mechlin, on Easter Day, 1846, the students of the great and little
seminaries united together to sing at the evening Benediction. The pieces
sung were from Italian masters, Baini and a second, and the third was the
Gregorian sequence, _Victimæ Paschali Laudes_. One of the singers himself
told me that the people thought nothing comparable to the old melody,
sung in simple unison.

The Collegiate Church of S. Gudule, in the city of Brussels, may also
be cited as an existing proof of the power of the old chant. Whoever
has heard the Requiem Mass and the _Te Deum_ sung in that church by
two hundred voices in unison, must cease to think of the idea of its
popularity as if it were strange.

In the church of Notre Dame, in Paris, the simple melody of the _Stabat
Mater_ is sometimes sung by a congregation of four thousand persons, at
the conclusion of the annual retreats, with an effect that can never be
forgotten.

Again, as has been already said, the Requiem Mass, which took place
in the Champs Elysées after the terrible days of June (1848), it was
proposed that the Mass should be sung in music; but the Republican
authorities, in conjunction with the bishops, forbade it, and the Plain
Chant was ordered instead. Tens of thousands joined in singing the _Dies
iræ_, and their voices seemed to rend the heavens.

In Germany, among the melodies that pass by tradition among the people,
are many that are derived from the Ritual Chant of different localities,
as may be seen by merely looking into their numerous printed collections
of these melodies.

The Gregorian modes, again, as has been said, are far from being
unpopular in their nature. Many of the Scotch and Irish melodies,
traditional among the people, belong to neither of the modern major nor
minor modes. The French in Egypt found many traditional Arab melodies in
the Gregorian modes; and no doubt the same would be found to be the case
over the whole world.

The chant of the Vespers is exceedingly popular among our congregations
in England, though they are acquainted with it only in a form of
disguise, shorn of its antiphons, and encrusted with the deposit of a
long bandying about from organist to organist, like Ulysses, returning
home in rags and tatters after his many years’ wandering. Why should not
the popularity of the whole, when it shall become known, by the kind
efforts of such as will feel a pleasure in devoting themselves to teach
it to the poor, be believed in, upon the augury of the known popularity
of a mutilated and tattered part?

This idea has long since found a home among English Catholics. Charles
Butler, Esq., in his _Memoirs of English, Irish, and Scottish Catholics_,
after reviewing the chief Catholic composers of modern music, says: “But,
with great veneration for the composers and performers of these sacred
strains, the writer has no hesitation in expressing a decided wish that
the ancient Gregorian Chant was restored to its pristine honors.” And
again:

“There (in the church) let that music, and that music only, be performed,
which is at once simple and solemn, which all can feel, and in which most
can join; let the congregation be taught to sing it in exact unison, and
with subdued voices; let the accompaniment be full and chaste; in a
word, let it be the Gregorian Chant” (vol. iv. p. 466).

Benedict XIV., after expressing his own decided opinion of the superior
fitness of the Plain Chant, accounts, by means of it, for a _fact_, that
those who think the Gregorian Chant an unpopular one, would do well to
study. This, says he, is the chief cause why the people are so much more
fond of the churches of the Regulars than the Seculars. And then he
quotes a very remarkable passage from Jacques Eveillon: “This titillation
of harmonized music is held very cheap by men of religious minds in
comparison with the sweetness of the Plain Chant and simple Psalmody.
And hence it is that the people flock so eagerly to the churches of the
monks, who, taking piety for their guide in singing the praises of God
with a saintly moderation, after the counsel of the Prince of Psalmists,
skilfully sing to their Lord as Lord, and serve God as God, with the
utmost reverence” (_Encyclical Letter_, p. 3).

The same Dom Martene who has been quoted above, often speaks, in the
narrative of his journey, of the different churches which he visited,
and in which he was present at the celebration of any of the solemn
offices of the Liturgy. The following passages are specimens of his
opinion on the comparative merits of the Plain Chant. Describing the
Cathedral of Sens he says: “Pour ce qui est de l’Eglise Cathedrale, elle
est grande,” etc. “La musique en est proscrite, on n’y chante qu’un
beau Plain Chant, qui est beaucoup plus agréable que la musique.”--“As
regards the cathedral church, it is large and spacious, and figured
music is banished from it. Nothing but a beautiful Plain Chant is sung
in it, which is far more agreeable than music” (Part i. p. 60). Again,
speaking of the Cathedral of Vienne (Dauphinois), he says: “L’Office s’y
fait en tout temps avec une gravité qui ne peut s’exprimer. On en bannit
entièrement l’orgue et la musique; mais le Plain Chant est si beau,
et se chante avec tant de mesure, qu’il n’y a point de musique qui en
approche.”--“The divine Office is sung there with a gravity that cannot
be surpassed. The organ and all figured music are banished from it; but
the Plain Chant is so beautiful, and is sung with so much rhythm, that
there is no music that can come near to it” (Part i. p. 256).

Even Rousseau, in his _Lexicon Musicum_, article, “Plain Chant,” says:
“It is a name that is given in the Roman Church at this day to the
Ecclesiastical Chant. There remains to it enough of its former charms to
be far preferable, even in the state in which it now is (he is speaking
of the falsified French edition of it), for the use to which it is
destined, than the effeminate and theatrical, frothy and flat, pieces
of music which are substituted for it in many churches, devoid of all
gravity, taste, and propriety, without a spark of respect for the place
they dare thus to profane.”

Here it occurs to reply to a remark that I have seen made, which unless
it be founded, as is not impossible, on some very faulty version of the
Roman Chant, seems to betray some little inexperience. After having
admitted a superiority of the Gregorian melodies for hymns written in
the classical metre, the writer proceeds to say: “But, on the other
hand, let us take any one of the hymns of the church, in which, though
the words are Latin, the classical quantities are wholly disregarded,
while the verse proceeds in the measured beat of modern poetry, and
the lines are all in rhyme, and let us make an effort to sing it to an
unmutilated Gregorian Chant. What an absurd effect is the result! The
ear is distracted between two principles of rhythm and versification.
The structure of the poetry forces us, whether we will or no, to mark
the divisions of the song in accordance with its beat and its rhyme;
while the unmeasured, unmarked cadences of the music refuse to yield
any willing obedience, and produce no melodious effect, except at an
entire sacrifice of the principles on which they were framed. A wretched,
hybrid, unmeaning series of sounds is the result, neither recitative nor
song, neither classic nor rhyming, neither Gregorian nor modern, but
wholly barbarous.”

Now, if the writer of this passage be here speaking of the adapting of
melodies to words for which they were not composed, he is himself to
blame for a result of which he is the sole cause. Dress a city alderman
in the uniform of an officer of marines, and send him afloat on duty, if
you will, but do not lay it to his charge if the result is neither very
civic nor very nautical. But if the writer in question really means his
words to apply to the melodies to which these hymns are set in the Roman
Chant-books, he is confronted by the fact that, among these, and they are
now but few, chiefly in the Feast of Corpus Christi, are found the gems
of Gregorian melody. Who is there that has heard the _Ave verum_ and the
_Adoro te_, and the other hymns of S. Thomas on the Blessed Sacrament,
sung to their original melodies, without feeling their exquisite rhythm
and expressiveness? Again, the Gregorian melody of the _Dies iræ_, in the
Requiem Mass, has Châteaubriand’s express commendation as among the most
masterly adaptations of music to words. Lastly, the touching and most
plaintive melody of the _Stabat Mater_, which brings tears into the eyes
of all who hear and sing it.

If space permitted, it would be no very difficult task to multiply
such proofs and examples as these of an inherent popularity, both in
the general character or effect, and in the particular parts of the
Ritual Chant. But I think enough has been adduced to indicate that the
popularity is one that is co-extensive with mankind, that it finds an
echo in the human heart of every age, nation, or state of life. Of
course, God, who gave the ecclesiastical song to work a work of mercy
among the people, contemplates it as capable of popularity; and I think
we have evidence that this part of the divine idea is really fulfilled
by the Ritual chant. And, without prejudging the result, I would wait
to see whether indications of a similar popularity can be found for the
works of art with which I have been engaged in comparing it. However, I
think this is impossible; and for this reason: Things come to be popular
by being often repeated; and suitableness for perpetual repetition is the
test of popularity. But if I am not mistaken, the perpetual production
of novelties, which appear and then disappear, is a first and indeed
indispensable principle in the mode of dealing with these works of art.


SECURITY AGAINST ABUSE.

All things human are certainly liable to abuse and degeneracy, yet
all are very far from being on a par with each other in this respect.
In all human undertakings, order, discipline, and system are the
divinely-appointed securities against abuse. Now, the Ritual Chant, as
all who are acquainted with it know, is, like the ceremonial of the
church, a perfect system. It has two large folio volumes of music,
embracing the whole annual range of canonical offices, and a body of
rules prescribing even the minutiæ of their celebration. On the other
hand, the modern art has no such system, no such rules. Its use is, in
practice, altogether subject to the dominion of individual taste. The
choir-master who likes Haydn’s music, takes Haydn; another, who likes
Mozart, takes Mozart; another, who takes a trip on the continent, comes
back with the newest French, German, or Italian novelties. I am not here
insisting on the singularly small portion of the liturgy that is set to
compositions of modern art, but on the entire absence of all system in
the use of the pieces themselves, on the complete subjection of the whole
thing to individual caprice and taste.

It is quite true that the Bride of Christ is encompassed with variety
(_circumdata varietate_). But the church is also the kingdom of the God
of order; and I apprehend that between the _varietate_ characteristic of
such a kingdom, and the variety actually introduced into Catholic worship
by the unrestrained dominion of individual taste in music, there is the
widest possible difference.

The obvious exposure of modern music to the easiest inroads of every
kind of abuse, in consequence of this absence of system, has been felt
by its best-disposed advocates; and an able writer has maintained the
notion, that the compulsory use of the organ alone, to the exclusion
of all orchestral instruments, especially the violin, would be an
all-sufficient safeguard. But it is not very easy to see upon what
principle orchestral instruments are to be excluded, when the whole thing
is built on the principle of the supremacy of individual taste; and even
could they be excluded, it would still remain to be seen whether the
organ itself were really the impeccable instrument it is represented.

Let us hear a witness in the Established Church, where, according to this
writer, its dominion has been so unexceptionable. In the _Ecclesiastic_
for July, 1846, the following remarks occur: “How intolerable to such
saints (Ambrose and Gregory) would have been the attempt to give effect,
as it is called, to the Psalms, by the organist’s skilful management
of the stops. What would they have thought of the mimic roll of the
water-floods, and the crash of the thunder, and the hail rattling on
the ground, the lions roaring after their prey down in the bass, and
the birds singing among the branches, represented by a twittering among
the small pipes? From a heathen poet these gentry might learn a lesson
of reverence--Virgil seems to make it a point of natural piety not to
counterfeit the thunder of the Highest--

    “Vidi et crudeles dantem Salmonea pœnas,
    Dum flammas Jovis et sonitus imitatur Olympi.
    Demens qui nimbos et non imitabile fulmen
    Ære et cornipedum pulsu simularat equorum.”

    _Æneid_, vi. 585.

A real thunderstorm interrupting one of these mimic tempests on the
organ, makes one feel the profaneness of the imitation.”

Now, it is fair to ask, if the organ is to be the guardian of the
sobriety and gravity of modern art, who is to keep the organ in order?

      “Quis custodiet ipsum
    Custodem?”

There were great abuses in the use of modern art at the Council of Trent.
Yet the fathers of the council declined altogether to forbid its use.
They tacitly allowed its continuance, as it had come into existence,
and could not be removed without serious evils. And with regard to the
favorable light in which its use was viewed by some of the bishops of
that council, and by some other men of authority who have since spoken in
its commendation, it should be borne in mind that all such commendation
has had annexed to it the condition, _provided that such music be grave
and decent, that the meaning of the divine words be not disguised in it,
and that it possess nothing in common with the theatre_ (Benedict XIV.,
Encyclical Letter). Of which conditions the subsequent history of the use
of modern music in the church is, to say the least, a very inadequate
fulfilment, as the ensuing testimony will show.

Bishop Lindanus, quoted in the same Encyclical Letter on the subject of
church music, says: “I know that I have often been in churches where I
have listened most attentively to learn what it was that was being sung,
without being able to understand one single word.”

Salvator Rosa, the celebrated painter of the XVIIth century, gives the
following account of the church music of his day--the middle of the
century:

“An effeminate and lascivious music is the only thing that people at
all care for. The race of musicians eats up all before it, and princes
do not scruple to lay burdens on their subjects to glut them according
to their desires. The churches are made to serve as nests for these
owls. The Psalms become blasphemies in passing through the mouths of
these wretches; and no scandal can equal that of the Mass and Vespers,
barked, brayed, and roared by such fellows. The air is so filled with
their bellowings that the church resembles Noah’s ark. At one time it
is a _Miserere_ sung to a _chaconne_ (a sort of polka of that day); at
another, some other part of the Office adapted to music in the style of a
farce.” (Quoted in M. Danjou’s _Revue de Musique_, 3d year, page 119.)

Again, Abbot Gerbert, in 1750, complains so deeply of the degradation
of the church music of his day as to say, in the preface to his learned
work _De Musica Sacra_, that the evil had grown to so great a pitch that,
unless God in his mercy applied the remedy, which he had daily besought
him to do, all was over (_actum est_) with the decorum and solemnity of
the Catholic worship.

Yet this result ought really not to be a matter of surprise; for how can
it be expected that the majesty and solemnity of worship should long
survive when its music is left to the control of individual tastes?

Musicians, therefore, when they plead for modern music, must plead for
it as it exists in an ideal form in their own minds; and the advocate
for the use of the Ritual Chant objects to it, not as it might be if
every organist and company of singers were other Davids and the sons of
Asaph, but for being what he hears it to be with his own ears wherever
he goes; for being what he knows it to have been, and still to be, from
the testimony of writers and travellers; and, lastly, from what he
foresees it will be to the end of time. The one has before his mind’s eye
the harmonies of heaven and the choirs of angels, and hopes to attain to
these with the elements of earth. A vision of glory flits before him,
and, forgetting that the earth is peopled by sinners, he thinks it may at
once be grasped. The other remembers the sad reality of what it is; he
thinks of the churches in which he has been present, where he has heard
the sounds of the theatre--the fiddle, the horn, and the kettle-drum;
where he has heard the song of dancing-girls rather than of worshippers,
and choruses rather of idolaters than of men believing in the mysteries
at which they were present.

    Ἠΰτε περ κλαγγὴ γεράνων πέλει οὐρανόθι πρὸ,
    Αἵτ’ ἐπεὶ οὖν χειμῶνα φύγον καὶ ἀθέσφατον ὄμβρον.
    Κλαγγῇ ταίγε πέτονται ἐπ’ ὠκεανοῖο ῥοάων,
    Ἀνδράσι Πυγμαίοισι φόνον καὶ κῆρα φέρουσαι.

    _Iliad_, b. iii.

Or, in the more humble words of an English poet--

    “As if all kinds of noise had been
    Contracted into one loud din.”

    _Hudibras_, canto ii. book ii.

And I would ask, considering the endlessly varying caprices of the human
mind, how any thing else except confusion and disorder is to be expected
from the principle of the supremacy of individual taste; and if music in
the Christian Church is to be regarded as called to fulfil the intention
of a God of order, in what way it is expected that this end will ever be
realized, where the safeguards of a fixed order and system are discarded,
and individual discretion enthroned in their stead?


LAST POINT OF THE COMPARISON.

    _Catholicity of the Ecclesiastical Song, or its Companionship
    of the Catholic Doctrines over the whole Globe._

This last point of the comparison, though far from the least weighty,
to those who will fairly consider it, may happily be much more shortly
stated. The Prophet Malachi predicted that, from the rising of the sun
to its setting, God’s name should be great among the Gentiles, and a
“pure offering” (_munda oblatio_) should be offered to him; a prediction
fulfilled by the fact of the Christian missionaries having carried the
Holy Sacrifice of the Mass over the globe. If, then, there be a song
which has ever been the faithful companion of this Holy Sacrifice,
wherever it has been conveyed; that has ever been present with it when
solemnly offered; which has survived the passing away of generations;
has undergone no change, but is now what it was of old; is the same to
the priests of one nation which it is to those of another--if such a
song there be, it will hardly be disputed that such is an accredited
and authentic song of the Christian kingdom. Yet such is the Ritual
Chant, which, at least in its well-known parts, has literally overspread
the whole globe. A French traveller in Russia, finding there the
Ecclesiastical Chant, and that the Greek Church had preserved it equally
with the Latin, speaks of it as a part of the “_Dogme Catholique_”--these
church traditions of song seeming to him as great a bondage as the church
traditions of faith. (See a very well written paper in the _Ecclesiastic_
for July, 1846, a magazine conducted by clergy of the Established Church.)

If, then, the advocate for modern music be unable to point to any such
fact as this for his art--if he be compelled to acknowledge that it is
necessarily confined to people either of European origin or education;
that it is no song for the Caffre of Africa, the Tartar of Asia, the
savage of Australia, the Red Indian of North America, the Esquimaux, the
Paraguay Indian--nothing but the luxury of the European; there can be
little room to doubt that, on this last particular also, the Ritual Chant
is the only adequate fulfilment of the divine idea.


DR. DRAPER.

In consequence of the eulogy passed by Prof. Tyndall on Dr. Draper’s
book, which is entitled a _History of the Intellectual Development of
Europe_, we inquired with some curiosity for this work, and have since
examined it. It is evident that Prof. Tyndall himself is largely indebted
to it, as he states; but a more flimsy and superficial attempt to trace
the history of philosophy we have never met with. It seems that this
gentleman, Dr. Draper, is a professor of chemistry and physiology at New
York. His object, as he informs us, in this compilation, was to arrange
the evidence of the intellectual history of Europe on _physiological_
principles. The style is feeble and incorrect, and the analysis of the
Greek philosophy positively ludicrous. As, however, it might be inferred
from Prof. Tyndall’s address that Dr. Draper was, like himself, a
disciple and admirer of Democritus, we will give the American philosopher
the benefit of citing his own appreciation of the atomic theory. After
stating that the theory of chemistry, as it now exists, essentially
includes the views of Democritus (a point on which we bow to his
authority), he proceeds thus, if we may be permitted slightly to abridge
a very clumsy sentence:

“A system thus based on secure mathematical considerations, and taking
as its starting-point a vacuum and atoms--the former actionless and
passionless, which recognizes in compound bodies specific arrangements
of atoms to one another; which can rise to the conception that even a
single atom may constitute a world--such a system may commend itself
to our attention for its results, but surely not to our approval,
when we find it carrying us to the conclusion that the soul is only a
finely-constituted form fitted into a grosser frame; that even to reason
itself there is an impossibility of all certainty; that the final result
of human inquiry is the absolute demonstration that man is incapable of
knowledge; that the world is an illusive phantasm; and that there is no
God.”

Such is the sentence passed upon Democritus and the atomic theory by Dr.
Draper, on whom Prof. Tyndall assures us that he relies implicitly as
an authority in the history of philosophy. Dr. Draper’s account of the
philosophical opinions and writings of Cicero is in the highest degree
inaccurate. But enough; we have done with him, and we advise Prof.
Tyndall to seek a better guide. Suppose, for example, he were to read
the dialogue of Velleius and Cotta in the first book of the _De Natura
Deorum_.[153]--_Edinburgh Review._


DANIEL O’CONNELL.

Man seeks in nature a hidden sympathy with himself. The quickened
beatings of his heart, the restless currents of his mind, make for
themselves a reflex image in the forces of the sea and sky. For ever, the
white crests of the breakers rolling in from the western ocean curl up
and lash themselves against the rocks on the coast of Kerry. For ever, in
the gray dusk, the waves, advancing and retreating, moan out a sad and
hollow sound. In sorrow and in gladness their monotone is the same. Yet
it well might be that the Irish peasant, in the year 1775, gathering kelp
for his patch of land from the shallow coves where the sea broke in over
his naked feet, felt, without thinking too closely about it, that nature,
chill, leaden, and stern, mirrored there his own lot. The sudden gleams
of blue sky through the drifting clouds reflected a buoyant humor that no
sufferings could quite subdue.

George III. had reigned fifteen years. Dull, bigoted, cruel; striving
in a blind way to be honest, but his blood tainted with the stains of
centuries of intolerance, he was now the living type of Protestant
fanaticism. In Europe, the old order of things existed without break
or fissure. In America, the first heavings of the volcano were plainly
felt. The King, Lords, and Commons of Ireland existed in name. The Irish
Parliament sat in College Green to register the degrees of the English
Privy Council. But what a Parliament! Four millions of Catholics without
a representative. The broken Treaty of Limerick might still be spoken of
among the traditions of the Irish peasantry, but its guaranties had sunk
more completely out of the mind of the English and Irish legislatures
than the statutes of Gloucester. The Penal Code was in full legal
effect. Burke had described it a few years before with the calmness of
concentrated passion as “well-digested and well-disposed in all its
parts; a machine of wise and elaborate contrivance, and as well fitted
for the oppression, impoverishment, and degradation of a people, and the
debasement in them of human nature itself, as ever proceeded from the
perverted ingenuity of man.” Yet even Burke hardly gave credit enough
to the magnificent qualities of the race which was able to survive this
code. It failed in its object. It did not succeed in extirpating them. It
never could degrade them, for they yielded neither to its blandishments
nor its terrors.

But though holding fast the faith with such power as if God’s arm
specially supported them therein for providential ends, English
Protestant domination had broken down and crushed this once proud race
to the very earth, in all material ways. The Israelites sweated not
more hopelessly in the Egyptian sands. In some respects the lot of the
Irish was worse. Their task-masters were an intruding race; they were
aliens in their own land. The face of the country in many places still
bore mute witness to Cromwell’s pathway of blood and fire. Then the
scriptural image had been reversed, and the Irish had been hewn down
like the Canaanites of old. The noonday horrors of Drogheda and Wexford
had left a scar in the national memory which time has not yet effaced.
Murder, lust, and rapine, under the guise of religious fanaticism, had
made this people throw up its hands despairingly to heaven, as if hell
itself had been thrown open, and its demons issued forth to scourge the
land. The XVIIIth century had opened under changed, but it could hardly
be said better auspices. The fury of destruction had ceased, but had been
succeeded by the ingenious devices of legislative hatred and tyranny. The
sword of Cromwell, dripping with the blood of men, women, and children,
had given place to the gibbet of William of Orange. The lawless murderer
was followed by the judicial torturer and jailer. The successors of
William III. trod faithfully in his footsteps. The parliaments of Anne,
of George I., of George II. heaped new fetters on the Irish <DW7>. What
wonder that a lethargy like death settled down upon the native race? The
national idea was almost lost. It wavered and flickered like an expiring
flame, yet was not quite extinguished. In caves and barns, by stealth,
and at uncertain times, the Irish priest poured out a little oil from
his scanty cruse which kept alive in the heart of his countrymen the
memory of his religion and his national history. The “iron fangs” of
the code relaxed a little during the first years of the reign of George
III. Its victim lay stretched supine. More truly even than on a later
occasion the words of Henry Grattan might have been applied to the
condition of the country. Ireland “lay helpless and motionless as if in
the tomb.” But though politically dead, the vitality of the race was
inexhaustible, unconquerable. Population increased. There was little or
no emigration except among the Protestant linen weavers of the north. The
amazing fertility of the soil, spite of legislative drawbacks, made food
plentiful. An English traveller, Arthur Young, in 1776, found the Irish
peasantry quiet, apathetic, content to till their wretched holdings,
at the mercy of their landlords, without complaint so long as they
could keep a shelter over their heads, and had potatoes enough to eat.
Political ambition or aspirations, the hope or even desire of shaking
off their chains and asserting their rights as freemen, did not seem to
exist among them. Thus far the oppression of centuries had done its work.
Some efforts at enfranchisement had been made by the Norman Catholic
aristocracy and the few old families of pure Irish blood who still held
their estates, or portions of them, by sufferance; but the words of Swift
continued true of the mass of the native race--not from want of natural
capacity or manhood--far from it; but from the effect of this grinding
oppression of centuries, and the systematic uprooting of all organization
among them by English policy. They were “altogether as inconsiderable,”
said the author of _Drapier’s Letters_, “as the women and children, …
without leaders, without discipline, … little better than hewers of wood
and drawers of water, and out of all capacity of doing any mischief if
they were ever so well inclined.” Swift went further and declared them
devoid of “natural courage.” But this was the libel of the Protestant
Dean, not the belief of the Irish patriot. The title of the land, with
a few unimportant exceptions, had passed completely out of the native
race. Under the law none could be purchased. Education was forbidden.
Yet such was the ardor of the inherited love of learning which had once
distinguished the island, that Arthur Young found everywhere schools
under the hedges, or, as he himself says, often in the ditches.

The breath of liberty was beginning to stir among the Protestants of
the north, and the Volunteer movement was soon to lead the way to the
short-lived recognition of the legislative independence of Ireland which
terminated with the Union. But among the mass of the Catholic Irish
peasantry no corresponding feeling as to their political rights was
manifested, or was even in any degree possible. Arms were forbidden them.
Terrible as the appellation sounds applied to that chivalrous race which
had won a deserved renown on so many battlefields of Europe, at home
they, were, in all outward respects, helots. The risings which sometimes
took place were seldom or never political. They were solely agrarian.
The infamous tithe-proctor roused a spasmodic, bloody resistance, which
ended with the removal of the special cause exciting it, never extending
to any effective organization against the political slavery under which
they lay torpid. The Whiteboys and Hearts of Steel were not the material,
nor were their aims and programmes the policy, out of which could spring
such a revolution as was contemporaneously taking place in the American
colonies. The mass of the people looked on in hopeless indifference
at the outbreaks of those secret societies, or in some instances
voluntarily combined against their indiscriminate violence. The native
Irish bore their misery alone, without friends or sympathy except from
France; and the interference of this power, by means of some feeble and
unsuccessful landings in Ireland, served only to irritate England and
tighten the chains of her captive. The mighty lever of moral support
which is now wielded by the united voice of her sons in every quarter
of the globe did not exist. In some counties, such as Kerry, where the
native language was chiefly spoken, and the Milesian Irish largely
predominated, the harsh hand of the law was never stretched out but to
seize upon the substance or the life of the people. The memory of liberty
could scarcely be said to exist in the hearts of this ancient race. That
gift which the Greek fable had declared to have remained at the bottom
of Pandora’s box when all else escaped, seemed to have taken wing from
Ireland. Hope had fled.

In that age, under those skies, Daniel O’Connell was born.

One hundred years have passed. Rises now the Genius of the Irish race
in America to celebrate the centennial anniversary of that glorious
birth, to invoke in tones that peal across the waves--the memory of that
illustrious and beloved name. A majestic, youthful presence, daughter of
Erin, robed in white and with a garland of green upon her brow, comes
with her sisters to lay a wreath upon the tomb of the Liberator of his
country. _Non omnis moriar_, wrote the Latin poet:

    “I shall not wholly die. Some part,
      Nor that a little, shall
    Escape the dark Destroyer’s dart
      And his grim festival.”

Conquerors and statesmen have repeated his words. But neither the
glories of war nor the triumphs of politics have won for any a surer
immortality than O’Connell’s. His fortunes waning at the close, his
blighted hopes, the broken column of his labors, have only endeared his
memory the more to his countrymen. Time has terminated discussion or
softened its asperity. Nothing is remembered but his love and his labors
for Ireland. From Montreal to New Orleans, from the first shore on which
the Irish exile set his foot, across the continent to the Pacific Coast,
over an expanse of country so vast that the parent isle would form but an
oasis in its central desert--myriad voices repeat his name, proclaiming
in various forms of words, but with one meaning, this eternal truth, that
freedom beaten to the earth will rise again. If in spirit the heroic
figure of the great Tribune could top once more the Hill of Tara, what
a spectacle would spread out before his eye unobscured by its earthly
veil! A mightier multitude would listen to his strong and mellow voice.
The descendants of the men into whose bruised and downcast hearts he
first breathed the hope and the ardor of liberty have built up a greater
Ireland in America. Sharing in the glories and faithful to the traditions
of American freedom--yielding to none in the duties of citizenship--they
have yet carried with them, and handed down to their sons, that love
of the mother country which seems ever to burn with a brighter flame
in man’s heart in enforced or unmerited exile. Irish-American generals
have equalled or eclipsed the fame of those distinguished soldiers whose
exploits in the service of foreign powers are household words in the
military history of the race.

Citizens and soldiers unite to commemorate the birth of the man whose
single arm struck off the fetters that had bound their fathers for nearly
three hundred years.

If we turn to Ireland itself, we shall find the change which has been
accomplished in those one hundred years in some respects more profound
and startling than the corresponding advance in the fortunes of the Irish
in America. The latter has been the regular and graduated result of
causes working in ascertained channels; the former has all the character
of a moral revolution. Ireland has not, it is true, gained that political
independence with which her sons in these United States started. But over
the far longer road before her to reach that goal her stride has been
vast and, if we consider the growth of nations, rapid. To appreciate the
transformation in the character and position of the Irish peasant we must
recall what he was in 1775. Catholic emancipation was a wrench to the
religious and social traditions of the English nation, and at the same
time a dead-lift to the moral status of the Irish, to which no parallel
will be found in history. Repeal failed from causes which we can now
easily discern, but which were hidden from O’Connell by his proximity to
the Union. But no Coercion Bills can conceal the fact that the strength
of Ireland is growing in a ratio greater than her bonds. The tendency
of modern European politics, and, willingly or unwillingly, of English
legislation itself, and the increasing material prosperity of Ireland,
are adverse to them, and continuously wearing them away. Her national
spirit is indomitable. The hour may be distant, but it is inevitable,
when they will fall from around her, and she will step forth in all the
majesty of freedom.

What, then, is the place O’Connell holds in the national development
of his race during those one hundred years? What are the achievements,
greater than all defeats, which demand from his countrymen a recognition
that no centennial celebration of his memory can too honorably offer.

In any view of modern Irish history it is essential to a clear
understanding of its motives that we should distinguish the character
and position of the three great races occupying the island. It is not
enough to divide the people into Saxon and Celt. The native Irish race,
the blended result of the successive ancient colonizations of the island,
remained essentially distinct from the Catholic Norman Irish even after
the Reformation. The intermarriages and adoption of Irish customs, which
had early given to the descendants of Strongbow’s followers the title
“Hibernicis Hiberniores,” had still left them a higher caste. They
retained a not inconsiderable portion of their great estates through all
the civil wars. The Penal Code never fell upon them with the rigor and
leaden weight that paralyzed the native Irish. Their wealth purchased
immunity. Although formally ostracized from political life, their
influence as landowners secured them consideration. The observance of the
duties enjoined by their religion was connived at. In other cases they
were powerful enough to make it respected.

Far different was the case of the Milesian Irish. Their history had
been a series of heroic struggles, ending in what appeared to be
irretrievable disaster. Before the process of consolidation, which was
simultaneously going on all over Europe, and which would have welded
the various septs and kingdoms into one nation, could be completed, the
Norman invasion under Strongbow had introduced a new and more furious
element of strife. The Reformation only changed their masters, but
changed them for the worse. Hitherto they had been serfs. They now became
helots. The glorious deeds of arms of the O’Neals and other chieftains,
which more than once threatened to drive the English into the sea,
delayed but could not finally avert the complete triumph of combined
craft and superior resources. Projects for the extirpation of the native
race were freely mooted. Famine, the sword, and the gallows at one time
seemed almost to promise it. The same price was set on the priest’s and
the wolf’s head. A non-Catholic writer, Lecky, gives this summary of the
Penal Code as it existed when O’Connell was born:

    “By this code the Roman Catholics were absolutely excluded from
    the Parliament, from the magistracy, from the corporations,
    from the bench, and from the bar. They could not vote at
    parliamentary elections or at vestries. They could not act
    as constables, or sheriffs, or jurymen, or serve in the army
    or navy, or become solicitors, or even hold the position of
    gamekeeper or watchman. Schools were established to bring up
    their children as Protestants; and if they refused to avail
    themselves of these, they were deliberately consigned to
    hopeless ignorance, being excluded from the university, and
    debarred under crushing penalties from acting as schoolmasters,
    as ushers, or as private tutors, or from sending their children
    abroad to obtain the instruction they were refused at home.
    They could not marry Protestants; and if such a marriage
    were celebrated, it was annulled by law, and the priest
    who officiated might be hung. They could not buy land, or
    inherit or receive it as a gift from Protestants, or hold life
    annuities, or leases for more than thirty-one years, or any
    lease on such terms that the profit of the land exceeded one
    third of the rent. If any Catholic leaseholder so increased
    his profits that they exceeded this proportion, and did not
    immediately make a corresponding increase in his payments,
    any Protestant who gave the information could enter into
    possession of his farm. If any Catholic had secretly purchased
    his old forfeited estate, or any other land, any Protestant
    who informed against him might become the proprietor. The
    few Catholic landholders who remained were deprived of the
    right which all other classes possessed, of bequeathing their
    lands as they pleased. If their sons continued Catholic, it
    was divided equally between them. If, however, the eldest son
    consented to apostatize, the estate was settled upon him, the
    father from that hour becoming only a life-tenant, and losing
    all power of selling, mortgaging, or otherwise disposing of
    it. If the wife of a Catholic abandoned the religion of her
    husband, she was immediately free from his control, and the
    chancellor was empowered to assign her a certain proportion of
    her husband’s property. If any child, however young, professed
    itself a Protestant, it was at once taken from its father’s
    care, and the chancellor could oblige the father to declare
    upon oath the value of his property, both real and personal,
    and could assign for the present maintenance and future portion
    of the converted child such proportion of that property as the
    court might decree. No Catholic could be guardian either to
    his own children or those of any other person; and therefore
    a Catholic who died while his children were minors, had the
    bitterness of reflecting upon his deathbed that they must pass
    into the care of Protestants. An annuity of from twenty to
    forty pounds was provided as a bribe for every priest who would
    become a Protestant. To convert a Protestant to Catholicism
    was a capital offence. In every walk of life the Catholic was
    pursued by persecution or restriction. Except in the linen
    trade, he could not have more than two apprentices. He could
    not possess a horse of more than the value of five pounds,
    and any Protestant upon giving him five pounds could take his
    horse. He was compelled to pay double to the militia. He was
    forbidden, except under particular conditions, to live in
    Galway or Limerick. In case of a war with a Catholic power,
    the Catholics were obliged to reimburse the damage done by
    the enemy’s privateers. The legislature, it is true, did not
    venture absolutely to suppress their worship, but it existed
    only by a doubtful connivance, stigmatized as if it were a
    species of licensed prostitution, and subject to conditions
    which, if they had been enforced, would have rendered its
    continuance impossible. An old law which prohibited it, and
    another which enjoined attendance at the Anglican worship,
    remained unrepealed, and might at any time be revived; and the
    former was in fact enforced during the Scotch rebellion of
    1715. The parish priests, who alone were allowed to officiate,
    were compelled to be registered, and were forbidden to keep
    curates, or officiate anywhere except in their own parishes.
    The chapels might not have bells or steeples. No crosses
    might be publicly erected. Pilgrimages to the holy wells
    were forbidden. Not only all monks and friars, but also all
    Catholic archbishops, bishops, deacons, and other dignitaries,
    were ordered by a certain day to leave the country, and, if
    after that date they were found in Ireland, they were liable
    to be first imprisoned and then banished; and if after that
    banishment they returned to discharge their duties in their
    dioceses, they were liable to the punishment of death. To
    facilitate the discovery of offences against the code, two
    justices of the peace might at any time compel any Catholic of
    eighteen years of age to declare when and where he last heard
    Mass, what persons were present, and who officiated; and if he
    refused to give evidence they might imprison him for twelve
    months, or until he paid a fine of twenty pounds. Any one who
    harbored ecclesiastics from beyond the seas was subject to
    fines which for the third offence amounted to the confiscation
    of all his goods. A graduated scale of rewards was offered for
    the discovery of Catholic bishops, priests, and schoolmasters;
    and a resolution of the House of Commons pronounced the
    prosecuting and informing against <DW7>s ‘an honorable service
    to the government.’”[154]

This is a dark picture. Yet it is drawn by an unwilling hand. Instances
might be accumulated where the severity of the law was outstripped by
the barbarity of its execution. Important relief bills were passed in
1777 and 1793. But they provided only for the removal of some of the
civil and political disabilities of the Catholics. The badge of religious
degradation remained untouched. The heaviest fetters of that iron code
still trailed after the limbs of the Irish Catholic. It is the glory of
O’Connell that he finally snapped them in twain, and trampled them for
ever in the dust. Englishman, Norman, and Milesian--the British colonist
who clung to a proscribed faith in every quarter of the globe--shared in
the results of that herculean labor.

But it is the special claim of O’Connell to the eternal gratitude of that
native Irish race to which he belonged, that he, first of all, after
that bondage of centuries, taught them to lift up their heads to the
level of freemen. Had his work stopped at Emancipation, had his claim
to fame and a place in the national memory been included solely in the
noble title of Liberator, enough had been done by one man for humanity
and his own renown. But in the course of that long struggle a greater and
further-reaching consequence was involved. A transformation took place
in the character of the native Irish, the full results of which are not
yet visible. In their journey through the desert, in their marchings and
counter-marchings, their victories and transient defeats, as they neared
the borders of the promised land towards which he led them, a change
wonderful, but not without parallel, became visible in their spirit and
their hopes. Insensibly and by slow degrees the political torpor of
centuries yielded to a new and living warmth. A generation sprang up
which had flung aside the isolation and submissive hopelessness of 1775,
yet was capable of a greater and more sustained effort than the frenzy of
despair which prompted ’98. Under the ardor of O’Connell’s burning words,
a full understanding of the functions of self-government permeated a race
which had hitherto seemed to exist by the sufferance of its masters. He
not only liberated his countrymen from religious bondage, he organized
them into a nation. He gave them the first impact of self-government
since the Invasion. And that impact is never again likely to be lost.

Daniel O’Connell did not, like some other great popular leaders, spring
directly from the midst of the people whose passions he swayed and
whose actions moved obedient to his will. His family belonged to the
old Irish gentry. He had the advantages of that collegiate course in
France which was the only way then open to Catholics of the upper classes
to afford their sons a liberal education. Yet his family was allied
closely enough to the people to make him share in all their feelings,
sympathies, and sufferings. The author whom we have already quoted,
with that curious blindness, the result of unconscious prejudice, which
makes most non-Catholic writers, however otherwise acute, miss the
true threads of Irish history, and insult the national sensibility at
the very moment they think themselves the most liberal, sets down as a
defect in O’Connell what was in reality the secret of his power. “With
the great qualities,” he says, “of O’Connell there were mingled great
defects, which I have not attempted to conceal, and which are of a kind
peculiarly repulsive to a refined and lofty nature. His character was
essentially that of a Celtic peasant.”

Yes, this was at once his glory and his strength. O’Connell’s personal
traits of character reflected faithfully, on a heroic scale, the national
features of his race. Not the coarseness nor scurrility ascribed to it
by the stage buffoon or the unsympathetic publicist, but the powerful
yet subtle understanding which has won for Irishmen in every age the
highest distinction in the field and in the schools, the large, warm
heart, easily swayed by generous impulses, the humor closely allied
to tears which is the secret of the most popular oratory. It is this
thorough identification with the national spirit, with the religion which
the persecution of centuries had made inseparable from it, that makes
O’Connell without equal or second among the great men who nobly contended
for their country’s freedom at the end of the last and beginning of the
present century. He stands alone, gifted with a power to which neither
the highest intellect nor the most brilliant oratory could otherwise
obtain. He swayed the force of the nation he had welded into shape.
It was this tremendous lever--obedient, one might almost say without
figure of speech, to his single arm--that enabled him to wrest Catholic
Emancipation from the combined determined opposition of the King,
Parliament, and people of England.

For forty years Henry Grattan labored with chivalrous devotion in the
service of Ireland. His eloquence has a charm, a poetical inspiration,
a classical finish O’Connell’s never equalled. It thrilled the Irish
Parliament like the sound of a trumpet, and held spell-bound the hostile
English House of Commons. His patriotism was as unselfish, his zeal, in a
certain sense, as ardent as O’Connell’s. Yet what did Grattan ultimately
accomplish? What was the end of all these noble gifts and labors? Having,
as he said, “watched by the cradle” of the constitutional independence of
the Irish Parliament, he lived to “follow its hearse”; and when he died
in 1820, Catholic Emancipation, the cause of which had been committed to
his hands, became more hopelessly distant than ever. His was individual
genius, individual energy, of a very high, if not the highest, type. But
it needed something more to win in such a cause. Classical eloquence was
thrown away in such a struggle. The concentrated strength of national
enthusiasm, careless of form, animated only by a single giant purpose,
was demanded. Grattan, though such a man as Irishmen of every creed might
well be proud of, was, unfortunately for his success in the attainment of
great national aims, neither a Catholic nor identified with the “Celtic
peasant.” He lacked the fundamental force bred of the soil. O’Connell, on
the other hand, might truly be likened to that fabled giant of antiquity,
Antæus, who gained a tenfold strength each time he was flung upon his
mother earth. Well might he declare, when reproached on one occasion
for the violence of his language, “If I did not use the sledge-hammer,
I could never crush our enemies.” It was a war of extremities. It was
an epoch surcharged with the elements of moral explosions, when men’s
passions were roused to the highest pitch. Those who read now the
measured language of Disraeli in Parliament will pause in astonishment
when they turn back to the frenzied raving with which he replied on a
memorable occasion to the terrible invective of O’Connell. In such an era
of violence, of anarchic strife, Grattan’s “winged words” fell harmless,
but O’Connell’s “sledge-hammer,” wielded with the arm of Thor, thundered
its most effective blows.

Another great Irishman had passed off the stage while the young Dublin
law student, Daniel O’Connell, was still only dreaming of the liberation
of his country. Edmund Burke--revered and illustrious name!--had rounded
off the labors of his long and honorable life in the cause of oppressed
humanity, wherever found, by some strenuous and well-directed efforts for
the relief of his Catholic fellow-countrymen. Yet he too failed, or at
best gained but an indifferent success. The principles he enunciated are
imperishable; his arguments will be preserved for ever among the grandest
vindications of religious liberty in the English tongue. But in that age
they fell upon deaf ears. He too wanted that element of success which
comes from identity of race, religion, feelings, opinions, sympathies.
To that native Irish race which must ever determine the destinies of
Ireland he was a stranger. What a satire upon humanity to expect that men
in their position--bondsmen, systematically, and under legal penalties,
deprived of all education, of every means of information--could
appreciate the teachings of a political philosopher, living in what they
regarded, with good cause, as a foreign or even hostile country. It
was well if they knew of his existence. He was no leader for them. Nor
did Burke ever affect to act with them, but rather for them, upon the
convictions of the higher English and Irish classes. Hence it is that
O’Connell is to be regarded as the purely national type of leader; by
means of action exercising a more powerful influence on human affairs
through the wide-spread Irish race than Burke by means of thought.

It will thus be seen that we place O’Connell on a high plane--above,
and different from, that of mere orators, or statesmen administering
established affairs, however great. He is to be ranked with the
nation-builders of all ages. This was the verdict of most contemporary
European observers, of Montalembert, of Ventura, and other exponents of
continental public opinion. To the English mind he was, and probably will
always be, a demagogue, pure and simple. But so no doubt was Themistocles
to the Persians. O’Connell stormed too many English prejudices--stormed
them with a violence which to his opponents seemed extravagant and
unendurable, but without which he could never have gained his end--to be
forgiven. The judgment of his countrymen, however--the supreme arbiter
for him--is already maturing to a decision in his favor which will place
him in a niche in the hall of Irish heroes above all others, and side
by side with that old king whose memory recalls the ancient glories and
victories of Ireland.

But what of his defeats?--of the failure of Repeal? This is not a
panegyric on O’Connell, but a sincere examination of his place in Irish
history. In many instances, and above all on the question of Repeal,
he miscalculated his forces and the strength of the forces opposed
to him. Like the greatest men of action in every age, his movements
were directed by the circumstances and exigencies of the occasion, by
experience, by the shifting currents of events, by his ability to create
those currents, or to turn them to his own purpose. The cast-iron rules
of policy which political philosophers formulate in their closets may
be singularly inappropriate for the uses of popular leaders. In 1829,
under the banner of Moral Force, with the nation arrayed behind him, he
had wrested Emancipation from the king and ministry. It was an immense
triumph. His temperament was sanguine--an element of weakness, but also
of strength. In the hopeless state in which he found Ireland, only a
character of the most enthusiastic kind would have ventured on the
crusade he opened. In 1843, he thought he could repeat his victory on
the question of Repeal. But in 1829 Peel and Wellington yielded, not to
moral force, which, so far as Ireland is concerned, is a term unknown in
English politics, but to the armed figure of rebellion standing behind
it. They were not prepared for the contest. In 1843, the English ministry
were ready to crush opposition with an overwhelming military force. If
they did not invite rebellion, as in ’98, they were equally ready to
ride roughshod over Ireland. The circumstances of the contest had also
changed. Catholic Emancipation attacked the religious prejudices of
England; Repeal threatened its existence as a nation. It could grant the
one, and still maintain its hatred of Popery; it could not yield the
other without setting up a legislature with rival interests in politics
and trade. The instinct of self-preservation was evoked. No argument
will ever convince the average Englishman that in restoring a separate,
independent Parliament to Ireland, he is not laying the foundation of a
hostile state. The result in 1843 was inevitable. As soon as a sufficient
military force was concentrated, remonstrance or negotiation ceased.
England simply drew her sword and flung it into the scale. O’Connell and
his associates were thrown into prison, and the guns of the Pigeon-House
Fort were trained on the road to Clontarf.

In the varied history of the human race few spectacles have ever been
presented of equal moral grandeur to those immense peaceful open-air
meetings which gathered to hear the great tribune. No greater testimony
was ever given of a nation’s confidence and love. Competent judges put
down the number who assembled at the Hill of Tara at half a million
of people. Yet to the unbiassed observer there is something almost as
pathetic in the helplessness of this great multitude--hoping to wrest
their independence from England without arms--as grand in the mighty
surge of its numbers. It was the confederacy of the sheep against the
wolves. O’Connell’s failure shows vividly how narrow is the plank
upon which the popular leader walks between an immortal triumph and a
prison cell. It reveals the tremendous power residing in an organized
government, capable only of resistance by a people in arms and inured to
the use of arms. That was a monster meeting of a different kind held on
Bunker Hill one hundred years ago, and commemorated this year by these
United States.

We are neither impeaching here the wisdom of the course pursued by
O’Connell in 1843, nor advising armed rebellion against England at
the present day. We discuss simply the historical aspects of the
question in the light of the experience of other nations. Nothing can
be more hazardous, however, or often absolutely fallacious, than broad
generalizations from the history of other countries as capable of
determining a particular line of policy for any given state. In nothing
else did O’Connell show a higher wisdom as a leader of the Irish people
than in rejecting those specious appeals to the success of arms in
America, made by the more ardent patriots in 1845-46.

The circumstances of the two countries were radically different. The
Americans exhausted every kind of “moral force” at their disposal, and
their revolution, when it finally came to blows, was not aggressive but
defensive; the policy of England made it incumbent on Ireland to strike
the first blow in a contest which she would quickly have found herself
unable to sustain. The Americans had a boundless territory; the Irish a
narrow island, capable of being pierced from shore to shore by English
troops in three weeks. The Americans were trained to arms by a war of one
hundred years with the French and Indians, in which they were drilled
and fought side by side with English regiments; the Irish--the native
Catholic Irish, the people for whom O’Connell was responsible before
God and mankind--could not keep a pike since the Treaty of Limerick.
An Irish rebellion, therefore, would have meant simply a massacre;
and O’Connell, in choosing the wiser course of present submission to
superior force, merited as much, although in defeat, the gratitude of his
countrymen as he did in his triumph in the cause of Emancipation. For it
will have been gathered from what we have already said that we regard
O’Connell’s greatest achievement in the service of his country--its
political organization, the education of its sons in the knowledge of the
rights and duties of freemen--as going on with equal step as well with
the unsuccessful agitation for Repeal as with the triumphant struggle
for Emancipation. His defeats carried with them the germs of victory.
The most ardent lover of his country can scarce escape an uneasy feeling
when he reads in the annals of Ireland that story, reiterated with
painful monotony, page after page, of the harryings, the devastations,
the ceaseless intestine wars, which mark its early history. It would seem
sometimes as if the ancient learning of Ireland which produced those
numerous and minute chronicles, served only the purpose of a reproach
to the island which fostered it. Other nations had struggled through
this transition period--common to the whole of Europe--and finally
consolidated themselves into peaceful and harmonious states. But it was
the misfortune of Ireland that this opportunity of domestic organization
was snatched from her by a foreign invasion ending in a domination of
which the cardinal principle was to “divide and conquer.” English writers
satirize the civil discord of the Irish race, forgetful that from the
time of Henry II. to that of George III. it was the steady, and as it
then seemed intelligent, policy of successive English statesmen to foster
wars between the rival chieftains and clans, to employ them against one
another, and in every way to break down any incipient attempt at union,
which must have been dangerous, if not fatal, to English power. No man
had arisen among the Irish race till O’Connell’s time who neutralized
that policy. He showed that they were capable of organization and
self-government in a patriotic common cause. In those immense meetings
which marked his progress, where men of every county united in one vast
brotherhood, he proved, first, that the Irish people loved domestic
peace and co-operation as much as any other race; and, secondly, that
under happy auspices they possessed a wonderful capacity for order
and self control. Even hostile observers concur in expressing as much
admiration for the undisturbed peacefulness of those assemblages of from
a quarter to half a million of people, as amazement at their vastness,
unprecedented in history. They were the foundation of the political
education of Ireland.

In another country, and a more remote age, another man of kindred, kingly
spirit and organizing power, with whom O’Connell is not unworthy to be
compared, had built up his vast empire by like national meetings, not
less than by force of arms. In the great national meetings of the Franks,
the _Champs de Mai_, Charlemagne gave the first impress of government to
Europe, torn to pieces after the fall of the Roman Empire. O’Connell,
another “king of men”--such as the Homeric legend sings of--emulated his
labors on a less extended scale in Ireland. But the empire of Charlemagne
fell to pieces with his death. Chaos reigned again. O’Connell’s work was
more homogeneous, and promises to be more enduring. We are only entering
upon the dawn of a more hopeful Irish history.

When we seek a comparison of individual action, in the history of
England, with O’Connell’s, we are struck at once with the grand but
sorrowful isolation of his position. Fortunate the country which has
never needed a liberator! Happy the kingdom whose greatest revolution
meant only a change of dynasty, a stronger leaven of republicanism,
and surer guarantees against religious toleration! The growth of
constitutional government in England has been comparatively steady
and uniform. Never--since the amalgamation of races following the
Norman invasion--subjected to the terrible consequences of conquest
and occupation by a race alien in language, religion, and national
prejudices, her political and religious struggles have been wrought
out to an issue among her own population. Whenever her civil liberty
or parliamentary privileges were threatened, sturdy champions were not
wanting among her own sons. Her Pyms, Hampdens, and Eliots find their
counterparts in the Grattans and Floods of Ireland. But the deliverer
of a crushed and hopeless people, the inspired guide who led them out
of bondage and defied their taskmasters, is a figure happily absent in
English history.

The imagination naturally turns with vivid interest to great deeds of
arms. The pomp and panoply of war, the heroic daring of the headlong
charge, the valor, disdainful of death, that awaits with constancy an
overwhelming foe--these are incentives to action, in presence of which
the labors and even triumphs of peaceful agitation appear tame and slow.
And the Irish are a people strongly susceptible to those influences.
They are a warlike race. Wherever the tide of battle turns against great
odds, where the smoke is thickest, and the carnage deadliest, there will
be found some Irish name upholding the traditions of his country’s fame.
O’Connell had therefore no easy task in restraining within peaceful
limits the immense agitation he had evoked. And in estimating his place
in history the same considerations place him at a disadvantage compared
with those great warriors, the glitter of whose victories is identified
with the warlike glories of their country. The “Bridge of Lodi,” the “Sun
of Austerlitz”--these are talismanic words which then rang in people’s
ears with startling sequence? Yet if we compare O’Connell’s labors and
their results with those of the great soldier whose career had closed
while the former was only beginning his peaceful struggle with England,
there is no reason to shrink from the verdict. Emancipation was worth
many Marengos. The _rôle_ of the Liberator may fairly be set off against
that of the Conqueror. The civic crown of green and gold placed on
O’Connell’s head on the Rath of Mullaghmast, in the presence of 400,000
men, was an emblem of true sovereignty greater in many ways than that
iron crown which Napoleon lifted with his own ambitious hands from the
altar at Milan. One was rust-eaten, it might be said, with the blood
and tears of unknown thousands; the other was invested with the halo of
peace, which the attainment of religious liberty and education in the
rights of freemen had introduced into a million humble homes. The career
of both Napoleon and O’Connell ended in defeat. But how conflicting
the emotions of each as he gazed for the last time on the shores of his
country! One, preoccupied by the shattering of his gigantic ambition,
and the assertion of petty details of etiquette in the midst of the ruin
around him; the other, oblivious of self, weighed down by the doom of
famine impending over his country--his last words a solemn and pathetic
appeal for its protection. In the hour of adversity, stripped of the
adventitious circumstances of power, O’Connell stands forth a figure of
greater moral grandeur. Of the victories of Napoleon nothing remains
but their name, and the terrible retribution that has followed them.
The influence of O’Connell’s unselfish labors in the cause of religious
freedom has a future practically endless; and after a season of adversity
and apparent forgetfulness, his political maxims and principles are again
reviving in Ireland in the constitutional agitation for Home Rule. Not in
the demand itself, stopping short as it does of Repeal, but in the means
by which alone its advocacy may be made successful.

It is a curious instance of the ebb and flow of historical movements
that O’Connell was at one time prepared to take up, under the name of
“Federalism,” the present demand for “Home Rule.” Ultimately, as is
well known, he was forced to abandon it by the mutiny of his followers,
who would be satisfied with nothing less than simple “Repeal.” And this
reluctance to adopt a middle course was natural enough at the time.
In 1840-45 the Irish people were still too close to the Union; the
infamous history of that measure and the burning eloquence of Grattan and
Plunkett in denouncing it were too strongly impressed upon the national
memory, to allow any hope of success to a leader who would promise
less than its total erasure from the statute book. Too many were still
living--like O’Connell himself--who could remember the brief yet glorious
history of Irish legislative independence, to give up the belief that it
was yet possible to see an Irish parliament sitting in College Green.
Experience, and the statesmanship which does not aim at the unattainable,
have shown the practical superiority of the lesser demand as a political
programme at the present day. But this does not impugn the wisdom of the
Repeal agitation. The true course of a people in its national affairs is
necessarily learned slowly. There is no ready-made chart in politics; and
were any offered, Burke’s satire upon geometrical demonstrations in state
affairs would be conclusive against it. Experience, even the experience
of failure, is the only trustworthy guide; and successive agitations,
though varying in their object, keep alive the cause in the national
memory.

Though the best and truest friends of Ireland, including that venerable
hierarchy which has steadily seconded every rational movement for
justice and equal rights, have never hesitated to give their support to
O’Connell’s policy of moral force, there have not been wanting from the
first restless spirits who have made it their bitterest reproach against
him, that he was unwilling to fling away the scabbard and plunge the
country into rebellion. It would be unjust to speak of all these men as
influenced by unworthy motives. Some of them breathed, and still breathe,
the purest aspirations of patriotism. But it was a mistaken patriotism,
influenced by examples which might indeed make martyrs, but which would
never lift one chain from the neck of their country. They might make good
soldiers, but were poor leaders. Ireland was not then, and is not now, in
a position to gain anything by a policy of violence.

But there are others, inflamed not with a love of Ireland, but with a
spirit of hostility to all governments, who would plunge their country
into bloodshed in hope of themselves floating to the top. These men are
infected with the spirit of the Commune. They are revolutionists--not
in the sense in which Washington or Hampden or O’Connell were
revolutionists--leaders of great movements for the liberties of
peoples--but socialists, whose single incentive is the envy and hatred
of all superior authority. Most of all, they desire to supplant the
Irish priesthood as the guides of the people. A sorry exchange, from the
well-tried friends, proved by the exacting ordeal of a thousand years, to
men of no responsibility--mere political gamblers--whose highest motive
is ambition, but a lower and more common one, the love of easy-gotten
money from confiding people. These conspirators are the promoters of the
secret societies against which O’Connell warned the Irish people. But
unfortunately they too often find that generous-hearted race--embittered
by the recollection of centuries of oppression--willing to give ear to
their delusive promises. Indifferent to their own future, these men
rejoice in anarchy. Some of them are no doubt poltroons, who would fly
as soon as they had led their dupes into danger. But it would be false
to deny them all the attributes of courage. Others would die bravely
enough behind a barricade. But their wars are essentially wars of the
barricades. If defeated they would perish recklessly, having nothing at
stake to make life valuable--absolutely indifferent to the slaughter, to
the burned homes, to the widows and orphans of the unfortunate people who
had submitted to their fatal guidance. If successful, their next attack
would be upon the Catholic Church. But success under such leadership is
a delusion wilder than the most exaggerated dream of fiction. They have
no conception of a national revolution higher than a conspiracy. The
elevated principles, the far-sighted calculations of a Washington, an
Adams, or a Franklin, which almost assured success from the start, are an
unknown language to them. Blind hatred, even of an existing tyranny, is a
poor basis upon which to sustain a long and exhausting war. And no one,
with the history of the American Revolution before him, can doubt what
the character of an armed struggle with England for the independence of
Ireland would be.

The same spirit of patriotism, therefore, that urged Washington to throw
his sword into the scale in the contest with Great Britain, animated
O’Connell with a contrary purpose in the case of Ireland. Yet not less is
the latter deserving of the title of “Father of his Country.” Success has
crowned the American patriot with a more splendid fame. But when we weigh
the individual exertions of each in his gigantic struggle with the great
empire opposed to him, and consider the incalculable advantages which a
boundless territory and an intervening ocean afforded to the American
leader, the Irish liberator will not suffer from the comparison.
Washington was surrounded and sustained by a group of great men who would
seem to have been providentially raised up at that momentous epoch to lay
the foundations of the noble structure of American liberty. O’Connell,
standing alone, an Atlas supporting the fortunes of six millions of
Irish Catholics on his shoulders, is a figure unexampled in history.
His herculean labors recall the fables of antiquity. In the whole
parliamentary history of England we read of no other example of one man
facing and trampling over the utmost hostility of that proud and powerful
assembly--the English House of Commons.

Yet though the pre-eminence of O’Connell makes him appear almost a
solitary figure in the records of that day, it would be unjust, in a
notice of him, to pass over the assistance he received from the brilliant
rhetoric and astute intellect of Richard Lalor Sheil. Though holding
a subordinate place to that of the great Agitator, and accused of
lukewarmness, in the end, by O’Connell himself, whose “Sheil, Sheil! this
will never do,” has become historic, his early exertions merit a grateful
remembrance. Nor can any Irishman ever forget the profound learning,
the masterly reasoning, the weight of character which Dr. Doyle, the
celebrated “J. K. L.,” brought to the contest in the early days of the
Catholic Association. Rivalling Swift in the keenness of his satire, and
“Junius” in the brilliancy of his style, he united to those qualities a
purity of purpose and freedom from personal rancor which neither of those
writers possessed. His life is an imperishable monument of the patriotism
of the Catholic hierarchy of Ireland.

It is not the purpose of this article to speak of O’Connell’s position
in the English House of Commons, of his action on the question of
Reform, or the revenues of the Irish Church, on which he anticipated the
tardy measure of Mr. Gladstone; nor of the truly liberal and tolerant
spirit which made him welcome into the ranks of the Repealers the
talented Protestant youth of Ireland, and oppose every manifestation
of religious rancor wherever he found it. We have sufficiently pointed
out what we believe to be his enduring claims to immortality--Catholic
Emancipation, and, in pursuance of that aim and of Repeal, the new level
of political thought and action to which he lifted the Irish race. He
is the grandest representative of the pure Celtic blood of Ireland that
the ages have produced. His power, like that of all other great national
leaders, depended upon that representative quality. And he used his
power faithfully. Unlike the great German chancellor of the present day,
who, beginning with the _rôle_ of a national liberator and organizer,
has ended in a career of foreign domination and domestic persecution,
O’Connell never perverted the strongest and noblest of popular forces
to the uses of tyranny under any form. Prince Bismarck’s plans lead up
to that very régime of hate, cruelty, and oppression which O’Connell
combated in Ireland, and if they become the settled policy of the Empire,
must in time give birth to a German Liberator.

It remains only to say a word upon the future of that Irish people to
whom O’Connell devoted his life. We will not venture upon hazardous
speculations. The wisdom of his policy was never more apparent than
to-day. The motives upon which it was founded repeat themselves
anew. There are too many interests in Ireland--Irish and Catholic
interests--opposed to revolutionary violences, to make rebellion either
desirable or practicable. It is only those who want to confiscate and
live by tumult that cry out for it. The same communists who burned Paris
and murdered its priests and archbishop under the name of liberty, would
like to sack Dublin under the cry of “Down with the Saxon!” National
ideas are everywhere the footballs of those radicals, by which they lead
the easily-swayed multitude to follow them in their game of plunder. But
an Irish communist--that is, one born of a Catholic Irish stock--is a
creature of abnormal growth. He will never make much headway in Ireland.

The true course of modern Irish politics points to the assertion of
that principle of federalism which has been established as the basis of
government in Austro-Hungary, in Canada and all the great free British
Colonies, and in the United States, and which, under the name of “Home
Rule,” is now the matured policy of the trustworthy exponents of Irish
public opinion. We would not be understood to commit ourselves to any
particular political programme, but before any of what may be termed
sentimental considerations, it would seem that the leaders of public
opinion in Ireland must direct their energies to build up its material
prosperity, and this can be best accomplished by local self-government.
Unanimity in its pursuit is therefore demanded even of those who
ultimately look beyond it. A rich and prosperous community will not long
remain enslaved. It is only the poor who are trampled on, among nations
as among individuals. It must be admitted, however, that nothing could
well appear more hopeless than the present position of the Home Rulers in
the English House of Commons. The decisive triumph of the Conservative
reaction has put them out of the calculations of both parties. But
this state of things is not likely to exist in the next Parliament,
nor in the one after. Courage and endurance, therefore--the virtues of
O’Connell--are the virtues that are needed in this temporary Slough of
Despond. The contempt, so loudly and persistently expressed as to imply
some apprehension, the frenzy of opposition, Home Rule has evoked in the
House of Commons, we do not count for more than it is worth. It is not
more bitter or uncompromising than the same feeling prior to Emancipation
or even Reform. The same threats of eternal opposition were then common.
It took sixty years of active opposition to gain the former; the same
number at least and enormous outside agitation to carry the latter. The
success of great national movements is necessarily slow against existing
forces, and must often be transmitted from generation to generation.
There is no need therefore of discouragement at a temporary check. Local
self-government--the same that exists in New York and Massachusetts, and
for the same objects--leaving foreign and exclusively national questions
for the consideration of an Imperial Parliament, as for Congress--is a
demand that commends itself to the feeling of justice of all mankind, a
feeling which England will eventually be unable to resist. We are not
of those who inculcate an eternal policy of revenge. This is easy for
irresponsible demagogues to preach, but blows are not given without
being received. The reality, the dreadful experiences of war, soon teach
moderation where war is felt. Even were the two states independent, peace
with England would be the true policy of Ireland.

As for the Irish in America, the future lies before them brilliant,
unclouded. It is bounded only by their own ability to make it honorable
and useful. Relying primarily, like every other man in the community,
upon his own industry, sobriety, and energy, the Irishman in the United
States or Canada may attain to any position he is fitted for. If in some
instances he has to encounter native prejudices, these will be best
overcome by an earnest effort on his own part to observe faithfully all
the duties of citizenship. No one who does so will ever fail to obtain
the respect and support of his Protestant neighbors. Those who make
foreign grudges their first consideration must expect to be looked upon
as strangers. Yet we must face what exists. So long as the stream of
immigration continues to pour into this country, so long will there be
a large body of our countrymen, receiving continual accessions, whose
dearest thoughts will be directed towards Ireland, their bitterest
towards England. This is inevitable. England reaps the fruit of her
past. She is now in the position of a jailer who would fain take off the
handcuffs from her prisoner, but dares not, for fear of retrospective
revenge. The misgovernment of ages cannot be blotted out from the
memory of the misgoverned in a day--nor in a hundred years. It is a
national Nemesis; and it will be well for England if it do not overtake
her in some dreadful form. This feeling naturally finds its strongest
expression in the United States. Sympathy with the mother country will
never fail. And God forbid that it should do so. But let that sympathy
take a proper direction, an efficient form. Give the strength of your
moral support--of your purses, if you will--to the men who are carrying
on under a different form the work of O’Connell in Ireland--who are now
bravely struggling for Home Rule. But turn a stern countenance on those
adventurers and desperadoes who have nothing wiser to advise than wild
and criminal incursions into a friendly province, where Irishmen possess
all the rights they do here, or conspiracies and secret societies in
Ireland--projects which make the honest patriotism and tried courage
of Irishmen a farce for the laughter of mankind. The Irish in America
have many traps laid for their nationality and their faith; but let them
avoid the snares of revolutionary, infidel leaders for themselves, and
of godless schools for their children, and the day will eventually dawn
when the weight of their support will turn the scale in favor of their
country’s rights against England. This is the true way to follow the
example and honor the memory of O’Connell.

In spirit, the Great Liberator still beckons the way to his countrymen.
The echo of that voice, sonorous, but clear and sweet as a silver bell,
is heard no more on the hillsides of Erin. The clover springs up where
the feet of thousands pressed closer to listen to its magic spell. But
his memory is eternal as the hills themselves.

    “By constancy like his sustained,
      Pollux, of yore, and Hercules,
    The starry eminences gained.”[155]

Unwearied by labors, animated by a single passion--the love of
country--men like him “becoming the heroes and benefactors of the human
race, attain to the glory of immortality.” The national historian, in a
future age, will date the rehabilitation of Ireland from the birth of
O’Connell.


ULTRAISM.

To be ultra is to go beyond. It is to attack the sceptre in the name of
the throne, and the mitre in the name of the altar; it is to maltreat
the thing you support; it is to kick in the traces; it is to cavil at
the stake for undercooking heretics; it is to reproach the idol with a
lack of idolatry; it is to insult by an excess of respect; it is to find
in the Pope too little papistry, in the king too little royalty, and too
much light in the night; it is to be dissatisfied with the albatross,
with snow, with the swan, and the lily, in the name of whiteness; it is
to be the partisan of things to the point of becoming their enemy; it is
to be so very pro that you are con.--_Victor Hugo._


MARIA IMMACOLATA OF BOURBON.[156]

We still see her, a gentle and beautiful girl of fourteen, seated beside
her brother, the exiled King of Naples, in a low carriage which passes
through the Villa Borghese, in Rome. Her face is of the Bourbon mould. A
fair, open forehead, doubly suggestive of the water-lily, because of its
snowy whiteness and the innocent frankness with which it seems to turn
towards heaven. Bright hazel eyes, the limpid, loving depths of which
are expressive of the innocence and purity of the soul, which gives them
life and light; while the lines of her chaste mouth and finely-chiselled
chin are ever forming themselves into a subdued smile of love, of peace,
and of quiet resignation. There is a modesty, and withal an elegance in
her dress and carriage, which strike the beholder at once. Her eyes do
not wander about, but are fixed with trusting tenderness on the face of
her brother, or rest affectionately upon the beautiful greyhound which
crouches at her feet and looks up at her with an earnestness almost
human. It may have been a mere fancy of ours, founded on our knowledge of
the history of that lovely creature; but it always seemed to us that the
earnest look of the dog at its young mistress was one of pity as well as
of affection--pity because she was an exiled princess; affection, because
she was fair to behold and gentle in demeanor, and the life-giving
spirit of both qualities was a pure and noble soul, which we have since
learned to regard with a veneration not unlike that which we bear towards
a saint. We do not purpose to write her biography, nor even her memoirs.
We will merely sketch briefly, and in the simplicity with which they
were narrated to us, some recollections of that short life of nineteen
years which wrought a chastening and ennobling influence upon all whose
happiness it was to be near her.

Maria Immacolata Aloysia of Bourbon was the youngest child but one
of Ferdinand II., King of Naples, and Maria Theresa of Austria, his
second wife, and was born in the castle of Caserta, on the 21st of
January, 1855. Her father the king died when she was quite young, and
was succeeded on the throne by Francis II., the first-born of his
marriage with the saintly Maria Christina of Savoy. After the death of
Ferdinand, the Queen-Mother, Maria Theresa, devoted all her energies to
the religious and secular education of her four children, the Princess
Maria Pia; Prince Don Pasquale, Count of Bari; the subject of this
sketch, Princess Maria Immacolata, and Prince Don Gennarino, Count of
Caltagirone. In doing this she was actuated by a strong sense of the
obligations of a Christian mother towards her children, while she felt
that in discharging these obligations with fidelity she paid a worthy
tribute to the memory of her deceased consort. Maria Immacolata, even
in childhood, showed herself worthy of the sweet name which was given
her in baptism, and the name of Aloysia was peculiarly becoming to her;
for as S. Aloysius was called “the Angel of the Court of Mantua,” so
did her sweet and angelic disposition win for her the appellation of
“Angel of the Court of Naples.” Naples, however, was not destined to
possess its “angel” long. The sad history of the treacherous expulsion of
Francis II. by his own first cousin, Victor Emanuel, is too well known
to need recital here. Enough to say, that in 1861 the Bourbons were
forced to fly from the fortress of Gaeta and seek refuge in Rome, which
was still the home of the exile, the weary, and the world-worn. As their
father Ferdinand had offered an asylum to Pius IX. when the revolution
of 1848 drove him from Rome, so now the noble heart of the Pontiff
sympathized with the exiles, and he forthwith ordered the Quirinal
Palace to be prepared for their reception. King Francis soon after took
up his residence in the Farnese Palace, and the Queen-Mother retired
with her four children to Palazzo Nipoti. It is into this sanctuary of
piety, order, and industry that we would introduce the reader, that he
may admire with us the domestic virtues of that Christian mother Maria
Theresa. All is order, tranquillity, and modesty. Each prince has his
own separate apartment and his own instructors. The hours for retiring
to bed at night, rising in the morning, for prayers, Mass, study,
meals, and recreation are regularly established. Besides the ordinary
exercises of piety, there is a religious instruction given once a week,
and a spiritual retreat once a year, at which the queen herself and
every member of her household assist. She is the ruling and guiding
spirit of all, and it was but natural, under the influence of such a
perfect model, that the children should soon give evidences of those
rare qualities of mind and soul which, in later years, became the theme
of general admiration. Such was the domestic life of the exiles. It was
here that the character of Maria Immacolata began to develop itself
with singular beauty. Naturally pious, she loved God tenderly. At the
religious instructions she observed a gravity of demeanor rarely met with
in a child of her years, and on retiring to her room, she used to note
down upon a slip of paper the principal points in the discourse which
she had just heard. Her temperament was a lively one, and no one enjoyed
the hours of recreation more heartily than she did. Yet it was apparent
to all as she grew up that she was struggling hard to obtain a perfect
mastery over herself, and the success which attended her efforts was
especially manifest in her affectionate obedience to the queen, to her
elder brothers and sister. The sweetest little nook in the Nipoti Palace
was the room of Maria Immacolata. It was so small, so neat, so orderly,
and the little altar in one corner, surmounted by a statuette of the
Immaculate Conception, and ornamented with sweet-smelling flowers, told
more plainly than words could who was the occupant. During the month
of May her room became a little Eden of flowers in honor of the Virgin
Mary. But other flowers were offered up to Our Lady which were far more
acceptable to her than the fairest flowers of earth. On the altar stood
a little vase of porphyry, containing a number of slips of paper, upon
which was written the name of some virtue, some act of charity to be
performed, or little mortification to be practised. Every morning, she
and her sister, Maria Pia, repaired together to this urn, and, with joy
depicted in their countenances, each drew out a slip of paper. Immacolata
was always wont to say, when she had read her slip of paper, “O mamma!
I need this virtue so much.” It has been said that love is ingenious;
and if this be true of that love which creatures, following a God-given
instinct, bear one towards another, it must find a proportionately more
beautiful application in the love which a pure creature of the earth
cherishes for the Immaculate Queen of Heaven. Maria Immacolata and her
sister were not content with practising daily the virtues named on each
slip of paper, but on the last day of the month they collected all the
slips of paper together, and, with the addition of some lilies, they
wove them into a chaplet, with which they crowned the statue of their
Queen. The idea had a doubly beautiful significance, being suggestive
at once of purity of heart and the traditional love of the Bourbons for
the lily. The young princess was scarcely eleven years of age when she
was told, to her unutterable delight, that she might prepare to receive
her First Communion. In this event of her life our admiration is divided
between the solicitous care of her noble mother in preparing her daughter
for a worthy reception of the Blessed Eucharist, and the holy readiness
and thorough spirit of appreciation with which the child performed all
that was enjoined upon her. In order to remove every possible occasion
of distraction during the spiritual retreat of eight days, which she
made in the palace under the direction of a Jesuit father, she sent all
her toys to a conservatory of little girls, and on the day previous
to her beginning the exercises, she was overheard to say to a parrot,
of which she was very fond, “Bird, you and I must part for awhile; a
great Visitor is coming, and I must prepare to receive him.” She went
so far as to deny herself the cup of chicken-broth which she was in the
habit of taking in the morning, because of her delicate constitution.
During the retreat she prayed most fervently to S. Aloysius, to whom
she was tenderly devoted, beseeching him to obtain for her the grace of
overcoming the enemies of her soul--the world, the passions, and the
demon. After her death, a slip of paper was found in her prayer-book,
upon which she had noted down all that she intended to ask our Lord for
at her First Communion. She seems to have been strongly attached to her
governess, for she writes: “and I will pray for Maria Laserre, that she
may never be separated from me; and I will also pray,” said the child,
“for Victor Emanuel, that God may enlighten him and pardon him all the
harm he has done to us.” The first prayer received a gracious hearing,
and we find Maria Laserre her constant and cheerful companion in all
the trials and vicissitudes to which that short and guileless life was
afterward subject. The other prayer reveals a sensitive soul, which was
penetrated to its depths with a full and saddening consciousness of
the monstrous wrongs which her family had suffered from their disloyal
cousin, and at the same time a generous, forgiving spirit, not unlike
that which prompted the touching prayer of Christ upon the cross,
“Father! forgive them.” Many a noble deed is recorded of the Bourbons
when they were in power, when the _fleur-de-lis_ was the emblem of a
glorious reality; but there is a sublimity of pathos in the forgiving
prayer of the delicate child of eleven, despoiled of every vestige of
royalty but her princely name, which is far beyond our appreciation, and
is only justly estimated by Him who taught us to forgive the trespasses
of others if we would hope for the forgiveness of our own. For all the
favors which she asked of S. Aloysius she promised to give him a clasp of
diamonds, which she had received from the king her father. Her anxiety,
however, was great lest her mother might not consent to her parting with
such a precious souvenir, as will appear in the letters which she wrote
to the saint during the retreat, and which were found after her death in
a small silver purse which she carried about with her. They are written
in elegant French. As they were never intended for mortal eyes, but were
addressed in all innocence and simplicity to a saint in heaven, we take
them up with all possible delicacy, and reverence for the chaste heart
of which they were the candid outpouring. While they bear testimony to
her purity of soul, they are also an evidence of what religion was to
her--not a hard, galling yoke, which must be borne from sheer necessity,
nor a heavy burden, to be carried only on a Sunday or a holyday. No,
there was an every-day warmth in her religion; it was something near at
hand, familiar, consoling, and refreshing, and nowhere more perfectly
embodied than in the short definition of the Redeemer: “My yoke is
sweet, and my burden light.” Here is one of her letters:

“O great saint! who never lost your innocence, and who by your sanctity
brought so much glory and honor upon your mother; S. Aloysius Gonzaga,
patron of the young, you who were possessed of a great knowledge of the
world and of human frailty, I recommend myself to you, that, by your
intercession with Jesus Christ our Lord, you obtain for me the grace that
I too may make a good First Communion. S. Aloysius Gonzaga! you who knew
so well how to make a First Communion, oh! grant that the First Communion
may be for me the beginning of a new life, the rule and guide of all my
actions; and that I too may begin to battle courageously with the world,
the demon, and my own passions. Grant me this favor, O great Saint!
Meanwhile, I choose thee for my protector, and I will recommend myself
to thee every day, in every sorrowful trial, at every suggestion of the
enemy, and in every instance of impatience; and when temptation assails
me, I will say a Gloria Patri for thee.

                             “MARIA IMMACOLATA OF BOURBON (great sinner).

“_Postscript._--Pray for me, O great Saint! and obtain for me these
graces. Glory be to God the Father! O my S. Aloysius Gonzaga! pray that
mamma will permit me without hesitation to carry as a gift to your chapel
that little clasp of diamonds, and give me light to know how to ask her
well for the favor, and how to reply, if she makes any objection.

                                                      “THE GREAT SINNER.”

Another letter is couched in these terms:

“O S. Aloysius Gonzaga! you see that I recommend myself to you every
day, as I promised you. Now, obtain this grace for me, that mamma may
look at me with a good face when I ask her for the cope for Father
N., of your own society; but especially when I ask her for the first
favor (permission to bestow the diamonds upon S. Aloysius), that she
may say yes without hesitating; and that she may also allow me to give
my photograph to Don Domenico (an old domestic in the family). But let
mamma say _yes_ without difficulty. I ask you earnestly. Glory be to the
Father.”

Here is another precious document:

“O S. Aloysius! my protector, I again recommend myself to thee. Give me
light and obtain for me the grace that I may make my First Communion
well. O happy day! O day that comes but once! O thrice happy day! Great
Saint! give me thy faith, give me the faith of all the saints. Pray that
I may not be ashamed to confess my sins. Meanwhile, I am thankful to thee
for the favor which thou hast granted me in the clasp of diamonds, and
for other favors, which I received from thee on other occasions. Pray for
the most humble servant of God.

                                             “M. I. OF B. (great sinner).

“_Postscript._--I recommend myself to thee, my dear protector; do me this
favor: ask God to pardon me.”

The “thrice happy day” came at last, and on the 24th of December, 1865,
she received Holy Communion from the hands of Cardinal Riario Sforza, in
the same chapel in which her “dear Protector,” S. Aloysius, pronounced
his vows. This chapel is in the Roman College, where S. Aloysius lived
and died. It was beautifully ornamented for the occasion, and, besides
the king, queen, and queen-mother, with their suites, a number of
distinguished persons were present, and a score of little girls, dressed
in white, assisted at the Mass, bearing lighted tapers in their hands.
Every eye rested on Maria Immacolata, whose recollection edified all
present. The smile which played around her mouth, and the blush which
mantled her cheeks, were but faint indications of the happiness in her
soul. What passed in that abode of purity and innocence is known only to
herself and Him whom she loved. We can only narrate what we saw. Having
obtained permission, she repaired with her governess, after thanksgiving,
to the room of S. Aloysius, and with a face all aglow with joy, she
placed a little casket on the altar. It was the clasp of diamonds. On
leaving the room of the saint, she remarked to her companion that she was
overwhelmed with gratitude towards God. “I must make him a present;” and
before the day was over she had bestowed every coin in her purse upon
his poor. Only one piece of gold was reserved, and that she sent on the
following day to a conservatory, to clothe a little orphan girl of her
own age, who was preparing for her First Communion. But of her boundless
charity we will have more to say anon.

The summer of 1867 found the royal exiles at Albano, a charming country
resort on the Appian Way, about fifteen miles from Rome. They had not
been there long when the Asiatic cholera broke out with a violence
unprecedented in the history of that terrible plague. The victims daily
were numbered by hundreds. Not a family in the city was spared.

The first victim in the Bourbon family was the young Prince Gennarino,
a bright little boy of eight years. At the first symptoms of the malady
he asked for his confessor, and confessed with such compunction of heart
that the good priest was moved to tears. He begged earnestly that he
might receive Holy Communion; “for,” said the little fellow, “I want to
die like a man.” Though he was so young, his request was granted. His
First Communion was his Viaticum, and “like a man” the young Bourbon
passed to another life. But death had singled out a more illustrious
victim in the person of Maria Theresa, the Queen-Mother. Her whole life
having been one of preparation, her death was that of the just. And here
we would willingly stop to admire the character of that noble Christian
mother, and worthy descendant of the great Maria Theresa of Austria; but
we are restrained from doing so by the reflection that we cannot pay a
more worthy or glowing tribute to her memory, than by sketching the life
and character of her saintly daughter Maria Immacolata. To a heart so
sensitive, so appreciative and affectionate, as was that of Immacolata,
the death of a mother was a great blow, and it was a long time before
she could be comforted. King Francis now became the natural protector of
the orphans, and took them to his own residence in the Farnese Palace,
in Rome. The habit of study had already been formed in the children by
their saintly mother, and so they applied themselves with renewed vigor
to the acquisition of knowledge. Maria Immacolata was gifted with talents
of the highest order. Besides speaking her own language with captivating
sweetness she spoke French and German fluently, and the facility with
which she could pass from one language to another was surprising. Drawing
was her passion, and her sketches in oil and water colors gave evidence
of no inconsiderable genius. Wherever she went, she brought her drawing
materials with her, and amused herself by sketching landscapes, palaces,
villas, and the like. She was equally skilled in portraits, and the last
production of her pencil, a beautiful picture of the Immaculate Heart,
has been very much admired. Literature was another source of pleasure to
her. Though she had a lofty appreciation of the beauties of the Italian
language, and was passionately fond of reading, she was never known to
indulge in light and promiscuous literature. While applying herself
to the cultivation of her mind, she did not forget the more modest
accomplishments which become her sex; and there are several beggars in
Rome this day who will show, with no small pride, the coarse stockings
which were knitted for them by the tiny hands of Maria Immacolata of
Bourbon. But these and many other accomplishments were but as the gold
which encircles a diamond of rare value and purity. Her richest treasure
was her humility and modesty. Her conversation, though entertaining and
lively, was modest; her deportment, though easy and graceful, equally
so. The sweetness of her disposition was especially noticeable in her
treatment of domestics.

In the October of 1867 the Eternal City was thrown into a state of
excitement and trepidation by the news that Garibaldi, with his horde
of desperadoes, was on the march for Rome. The little army of the Pope
prepared to make a gallant defence, and a number of chivalrous Roman
youths of the best families offered themselves to swell the ranks of the
Papal legions. Francis II. and his two brothers were among the first to
rush to the defence of the country--the only country which was now left
them. Their two orphan sisters, Maria Pia and Maria Immacolata, were
consequently left alone in the Farnese Palace. They did not remain long
unprotected, for the Holy Father sent for the two princesses, and had
them brought into the Vatican, where the magnificent apartment of the
Countess Mathilde had been prepared for them. Here they remained until
after the battle of Mentana, and the Papal troops returned in triumph to
the city. While the children were in the Vatican, they assisted every
morning at the Pope’s Mass, and received Holy Communion daily from
his hands. Every day, when he went to take his usual walk through the
galleries and corridors of the palace, he sent for the orphans, and by
his sweet and consoling conversation made them forget the anxiety which
tortured them about their brothers. During those days--the happiest of
her life--Maria Pia conceived a veneration and love for the Holy Father
which she cherished ever afterwards, and which, we may here remark,
was characteristic of her mother, Maria Theresa. When the storm had
blown over, the orphans returned to the Farnese Palace, and resumed
their usually quiet and retired life. It did not last long. This time
it was not the Garibaldian hordes that marched upon the city, but the
well-disciplined troops of a king who called himself “the dutiful son of
Pius IX.” To be brief, the year 1870 was one of woe to the Romans, but
to none was it more sorrowful than to the poor persecuted Bourbons. Once
more they were forced to fly, and in their flight the noble family was
obliged to divide itself. Some of them fled into Bavaria, some to France,
while Maria Immacolata went with her sister, now Duchess of Parma, into
the Tyrol, and afterwards to Cannes, on the confines of France. She was
accompanied by her governess Maria Laserre, her faithful friend and
comforter in every trial.

But the cold climate of the mountains was too severe for Immacolata. She
was a frail, delicate flower, and under the rough, inclement blasts of
a northern winter she began to wilt away. What with her weak health and
her strong affection for the Holy Father, she began to pine for Rome, her
country, as she called it. All this passed within her own bosom. For the
rest, she was patient, resigned, and more forgiving than ever towards
those who were the cause of her exile, first from the land of her birth,
and afterwards from Rome, to which her heart clung most lovingly. A soul
so closely united to God as was hers, soon found the wherewithal to
comfort her, and it was with a smile of heavenly joy in her countenance
that she brightened up and said to her maid, “Ah! well, there is one
consolation left me: the poor I have always with me.” From her infancy
she had been noted for her charities. What little she possessed in
childhood she gave to the poor joyfully. When she grew up and received a
monthly allowance from her mother for ordinary expenses, she gave with
such a liberal hand that her allowance used to be exhausted long before
the end of the month came. The Queen-Mother had become so accustomed to
the charitable prodigalities of her daughter that she used to say when
she would hear a modest knock at her door, about the 20th of each month,
“Here comes my little prodigal daughter; but, God bless her! she has not
wasted her substance.” When the Queen died, and Maria Immacolata came
into her inheritance, her charity was more a profusion than a giving; and
it was remarked that no one knew anything of her charities. The gospel
directed her to give in secret, and the Holy Spirit assured her that the
“Father who seeth in secret” would reward her. It was her chief delight,
when she went out to take a walk, to gather the young people around her,
and ask them the catechism, and teach them how to pray; and in order to
stimulate them to study the catechism thoroughly, she would give them
rosaries, medals, and pictures, which she had sent to her at regular
intervals from Rome. Whenever she met any one who was on the way to the
Eternal City, she could not restrain her tears, as she thought of the
happiness which was denied to herself; and, she would often remark, “It
is _so_ cold here, that not only the body, but the soul too shivers for
that warmth which can only be felt near the Vicar of Christ.”

About this time she became acquainted with Henry Bourbon, Count of Bardi,
son of Charles III. of Parma, and nephew of the Count of Chambord. Her
sister, Maria Pia, had already been married to Robert, Duke of Parma, and
the nuptial blessing was pronounced by the Holy Father, in the year 1869.
As her sister’s marriage was one of Christian love, not of political
or worldly interest, contracted under the influence of religion, and
not to keep up the “equilibrium of relationship,” as the saying is in
Europe, so was the marriage of Immacolata with the Count of Bardi. Among
other motives in favor of accepting his hand in marriage she was wont to
adduce this one, that the fact of his having been educated in the college
of the Jesuits at Feldkirch was an assurance to her that her marriage
would be a happy one. As she had prepared herself for the reception of
her First Communion, so by recollection and spiritual exercises did
she dispose herself for the Sacrament of Matrimony, and on the 27th
of November, 1873, she became the Countess of Bardi. The marriage was
a modest celebration throughout. The domestics of the family and the
poor of the city were the only merrymakers. As for the young spouses,
they were destined only to drink the cup of tribulation. The lily of
Bourbon was fast drooping, the color was fading from her cheeks, and the
unnatural brilliancy of her eyes told, more clearly than words could,
that Immacolata was not destined to live much longer. No one knew this
better than herself. Still she was resolved to do her duty, as if she
had long years before her. She began by studying the character of her
husband. Prior to all, however, she had marked out for herself a simple
line of conduct, which she couched in the two words, “affectionate
submission.” In the heaven-given light of this resolution, she loved him,
and by its influence and the discharge of all those kind and endearing
offices which are the noble prerogatives of the gentler sex, she won his
confidence, and strengthened his affection, as with a wall of granite.
Having acquired a thorough knowledge of his character, she anticipated
every desire of his, and executed his every wish with such readiness that
he was afterwards known to say that he could not decide whose wish she
accomplished, his or her own. In this way she obtained great influence
over him, but she only exercised it in the things of God. Wherever she
knelt down to pray, there he knelt at her side. When she was gone to her
rest, he was heard to say of her, “She took me by the hand, and led me to
God.”

On the day after their marriage the young spouses set out on a journey to
Egypt. The voyage was long and ill-suited to her delicate constitution;
but she went cheerfully, thinking not of herself, but only how she might
please her consort. During the forty days they were sailing up the Nile,
she lay prostrate with a malignant fever, which, together with the
ravages of consumption, reduced her almost to the last extremity. It
was hoped that she would rally during their voyage in Upper Egypt, but
in vain. When they arrived there, she became weaker and weaker, until,
finally, the most they hoped for was that she might live until their
return to France. Setting sail from Cairo, they arrived at Marseilles in
the March of 1874, where she rallied at the sight of her sister, Maria
Pia, and her beloved governess, Maria Laserre, who had come to meet her.
In a consultation of her physicians, it was resolved to bring her to
Cauterets, a little village in the Upper Pyrenees, and celebrated for
its sulphur baths. Maria Immacolata was delighted with the proposal,
not because she hoped for any relief from the waters of Cauterets, but
because in their journey thither they would pass Lourdes, to which she
had long yearned to make a pilgrimage.

Accordingly, they set out for Cauterets, stopping at Lourdes on the
way. The weary invalid’s heart throbbed with joy as she knelt for
the first time in the holy grotto. For two whole hours she remained
absorbed in silent prayer, giving no other sign of life than the long
and affectionate gaze which she fixed upon the image of Our Lady. During
their stay at Lourdes, she visited the grotto twice every day, and at
each visit she prayed long and fervently. Twice she insisted on being
immersed in the water, notwithstanding it was exceedingly cold. On being
asked what she prayed for, she replied, “That God’s will be done.” The
waters of Cauterets gave her no relief. The disease had taken deep root
in her system, and was rapidly advancing to a fatal termination. An
eminent physician was called from the city of Pau, who gave it as his
opinion that it was useless to hope for her recovery. She might live for
fifteen days more, and possibly might linger on for a month. The young
count thought no longer of the great loss he was about to suffer, but
only how he might make the remaining days of her short life as quiet and
devoid of pain as possible. It was resolved to bring her to Pau, the
principal city of the Lower Pyrenees, where she would receive better
attendance, and, above all, have the consolations of her religion. As
they carried her on a species of litter from the hotel to the carriage,
she said to her husband, “Not long ago I could move about with ease;
afterwards they carried me in an arm-chair; now it is a litter; the next
will be a bier.” Her sufferings on the road between Lourdes and Pau
were very great, but she bore them cheerfully, and only prayed that they
would let her die in Pau. After their arrival in that city, she rallied a
little, and her husband tried to raise her hopes by saying that she would
recover. “Do not be deceived, dear Henry,” she said; “before another
month passes away I shall be gone. Bring me a confessor.” One of the
Jesuit fathers came immediately, and her first prayer was that they would
erect an altar in her room at which Mass might be said on the following
day. Meanwhile, she prepared to make a general confession of her whole
life, and begged every one in the house to pray for her. Her first care
was to fulfil a number of promises which she had made to the Madonna, and
calling her husband to her bedside, she begged of him to make them good.
Her jewels, wedding-dress, and crown had already been promised to Our
Lady of Issoudun. After her death, the Duke of Parma and the Duchess, her
sister, repaired to that sanctuary and made the offering. She had also
vowed a silver heart to Our Lady of Einsiedeln, and a set of vestments to
Our Lady of Lourdes. She had begun to embroider the chasuble herself, but
was obliged from sheer weakness to lay it aside. She begged her sister to
finish it, and carry it in her name to the holy grotto. In addition to
these, she had also vowed to have two hundred Masses celebrated for the
suffering souls in purgatory. Opening her purse to fulfil this promise,
she found it empty. Indeed, that was its normal condition, and it was
said of her that a heavy purse never wore a hole in her pocket. She asked
her husband, with child-like simplicity, to give her six hundred francs,
and having received them, ordered the sum to be distributed among the
churches in the city according to her intention. On the following day,
the 20th of August, she confessed and received Holy Communion with
edifying fervor. Her only desire now was to remain quiet, that she
might commune with God and prepare for her final departure. On the day
mentioned, she was visited by Margherita, the wife of Don Carlos. But the
dying princess turned her eyes lovingly on the visitor and said, “Pardon
me, Margherita, but I must be alone with God.” The Princess Maria Pia
and her governess remained by her bedside constantly, and prayed aloud
with her. When her confessor entered the room she would say to him, “Must
I live many days longer? Pray God not to tarry.” Then she would chide
herself for a want of resignation, and say, “As thou wilt!”

It was no difficult task for one whose heart was detached from the things
of this world to make a will, and that of the Princess Immacolata of
Bourbon did not give her much anxiety. Still, she observed the legal
formalities, and showed such clearness and precision in her dictation
to the notary as surprised all present. With the exception of that
part of the will which affects her natural heirs, the rest is but one
long series of donations for religious purposes--foreign missions,
religious houses, orphanages, and the like. She was not content with
making a handsome provision for each of her domestics, but even made
appropriations for their relatives. The poor are called in the will
“my dearest heirs,” and to these, she left the sum of 20,000 francs in
gold, the distribution of which she entrusted to her governess, Maria
Laserre, begging her especially not to forget the poor families she
knew in Rome, and elsewhere, during her wanderings. In short, after
disposing of the enormous sum of 107,000 francs in gold, to be bestowed
in Christian charity, this generous soul concludes her will in these
terms: “I intend, moreover, that what remains, over and above, of my
capital be all expended in purchasing sacred vessels and vestments for
poor churches.” This last provision has already passed into effect, to
our personal knowledge. Among the many charitable institutions which
Rome possesses there is one whose members devote themselves especially
to making vestments and procuring sacred vessels for poor churches. We
know of one, composed of some eminent French ladies, who make it their
duty to provide for the poor churches of Italy; only a short time ago,
they exhibited a splendid assortment of vestments and church furniture,
mostly all purchased on the strength of the donation of Maria Immacolata
of Bourbon.

And now, having removed every earthly care from her mind, Maria
Immacolata disposed herself to receive the Sacrament of Extreme Unction.
She begged her confessor to read aloud from some ascetic work, that her
soul might be drawn more closely to God. When he had read for awhile, she
said, “Now I am ready,” and in the presence of her brother the Count of
Bari, her sister the Duchess of Parma, the Princess Margherita, wife of
Don Carlos, and her beloved governess, she received the last sacrament.
It was then that her confessor informed her that the following day,
August 23d, was the Feast of the Immaculate Heart of Mary, whereat she
besought all present to pray that she might obtain the singular favor
from God of dying on that day and of receiving the Holy Eucharist once
more; and with the holy simplicity and fervor of her childhood, she
recited aloud the following prayer: “Most Holy Virgin, I resign myself
to suffer still more for your honor, and the glory of your divine Son.
O my Mother! you who have permitted your daughter to bear your own
sweet name of Immacolata, obtain for me the grace to receive once more
the most Sacred Body of your divine Son, and to die on the Feast of
your Immaculate Heart.” Both favors were granted. On the following day,
Mass was celebrated in her room, and she received her Lord for the last
time. Her husband also, her brother Count of Bari, the Duke and Duchess
of Parma, the Princess Margherita, and all her maids and domestics,
communicated. It was a touching scene that transpired after Mass, when
the whole household gathered around the bed of the dying princess, and
asked her blessing. A smile of angelic delight mantled her face, and, as
she said herself, her soul seemed to be inundated with consolation. She
no longer felt the oppression and pain which had tortured her an hour
previous. Her sister Maria Pia, desirous of having a precious remembrance
in after-life, held her own photograph to her lips, that she might
imprint a kiss upon it. When she had kissed it, she asked for a pen, and
wrote upon the card, in a trembling hand, “Living or dead, I shall always
be near thee. Thy own Maria Immacolata”; and on the photograph which her
governess presented to her, she wrote, “In heaven and on earth I shall
never have but one heart with you. Your little Mistress.”

Calling every one of her domestics to the bedside, she gave each a
souvenir of herself, accompanied with a few words of wise counsel.
Turning then to the princes her brothers, her sister, and her
brother-in-law, she besought them to live together in harmony, and
to love one another for her sake. She then asked for her jewels, and
choosing a ring, she put it on the finger of Margherita of Spain; another
precious ring she put on the finger of her sister, and a third upon that
of her governess. While doing this, she asked them to pray that she might
be pardoned for the vanity of wearing those ornaments. She asked pardon
three successive times of her maid, Maria Grazia, for all the annoyance
she had ever given her, and taking another ring from her own finger, she
held it out saying, “This is for your sister Francesca in Naples, of whom
I ask pardon from afar.” But the Duchess of Parma had still one favor to
ask--a blessing for her four little children in the Castle of Wartegg,
in Switzerland. The dying sister answered, “Yes, I will pray for them
in heaven,” and pronouncing the name of each she kissed the Crucifix and
blessed them. The apostolic Benediction of His Holiness had already been
sent to her, and now a second arrived, and with it the plenary indulgence
_in the hour of death_. This was followed by a despatch from the Comte
de Chambord which said, “We are in great affliction, and are praying.”
While all this was passing, her eyes rested upon the form of her husband,
who knelt by her side. But recollecting herself, she said, “My Madonna
for Mademoiselle”--meaning her governess. “Now,” said she, “I have naught
to give away but my soul, and that I give to God.” Turning to her young
husband, she said, “Henry! O my Henry! I leave thee, to go where I am
called by that God who made us companions for a few short months on
earth; but I leave thee in good hands”; and holding in her right hand the
crucifix and her rosary, and inclining her head towards a statue of the
Blessed Virgin, as if saluting her, and recommending to her care him who
knelt there in sorrow, she died.


NOTRE DAME DE LOURDES.

    “THOU WEL OF MERCY, SINFUL SOULES CURE.”--CHAUCER.

Lourdes, apart from any religious interest, is well worth a visit, for it
is an old historic place. “Bigerronum arx antiqua fuit Luparda, quæ nunc
Lourda est,” says Julius Scaliger. It is associated with the Romans, the
Moors, the paladins of Charlemagne, and the flower of French and English
chivalry, and is celebrated by Gregory of Tours, Froissart, Monstrelet,
and all the ancient chroniclers of the land. Situated at the entrance
of the seven valleys of the Lavedan on the one side, and the rich sunny
plains of Béarn on the other, under a sky as soft and bright as that of
Italy, it is as attractive to the eye of the tourist as to the soul of
the archæologist and the pilgrim.

We arrived at Lourdes in less than an hour after leaving Tarbes. The
station is some distance from town, and at least a mile from the
world-famous grotto; but there are always hacks and omnibuses eager to
take the visitor to one of the numerous hotels. The depot is encumbered
with luggage and crowded with pilgrims going and coming, and on the side
tracks are long trains of empty cars that tell of the importance of the
station--an importance solely due to the immense number of pilgrims, who
sometimes amount to five hundred thousand a year.

On leaving the station, one naturally looks around to discover the
renowned sanctuary of Notre Dame de Lourdes, but not a glimpse of it is
to be seen. Nothing meets the eye but a gray picturesque town shut in
by the outlying Pyrenees. Nothing could be lovelier than the fresh green
valley in which it stands, framed by hills whose sides are blackened with
_débris_ from the immense quarries of slate. It is only a pleasant walk
to the town in good weather, which gives one an opportunity of taking in
the features of the charming landscape. Flowers bloom in the hedge-rows,
elms and ash-trees dot the grassy meadows, the hillsides beneath the
quarries are luxuriant with vineyards and fields of waving grain. The way
is lively with hurrying pilgrims, all intent on their own business and
regardless of you; some saying their rosaries, others in a band singing
some pious hymn, and many solitary ones absorbed in their own reflections.

We soon reach the town. The houses are of stone with slated roofs.
Nearly every one is a hotel, or a lodging-house, or a shop for the sale
of religious objects. The windows are full of rosaries, medallions
inscribed with the words of the Virgin to Bernadette, miniature grottos,
photographs--in short, everything that can recall the wonderful history
of the grotto of Massabielle. The very silk kerchiefs in the windows,
such as the peasants wear on their heads, are stamped with the Virgin
in her niche. The old part of the town has narrow streets, without
any sidewalks, paved with cobble-stones quite in harmony with the
penitential spirit of a true pilgrim. They are mere lanes, fearful in
muddy weather when crowded with people in danger at every step from the
carriages.

The Hotel de la Grotte is the nearest to the church of Notre Dame de
Lourdes, and very pleasantly situated at a convenient walking distance
from it. At one of our visits to the place, we stopped at the Hotel des
Pyrénées in the heart of the town, where we were made very comfortable;
but the second time, it was in the height of the season, and there was
not a room to be had in any of the hotels, and had we not providentially
stumbled on a friend with a vacant room at his command, we might have
been forced to spend the night in the church--no great penance, to be
sure, in so heavenly a place, where Masses begin at midnight and do not
cease till afternoon. The only safe way is to secure rooms beforehand,
especially when the place is most frequented.

Lourdes is a small town of about five thousand inhabitants, mostly
workers in marble, slate, etc., that is, those who do not keep a
hotel, or a _café_, or a shop of some kind; for the good people seem
quite ready to avail themselves of every opportunity of benefiting by
the piety that brings so many strangers among them. They are shrewd,
quick-witted, upright, and kind-hearted; attached to their ancient
traditions, and firm in their faith as their rock-built houses. They
have always been characterized by their devotion to the Blessed Virgin.
Five of the chapels in the parish church are dedicated to her honor.
The confraternities of the Scapular and the Rosary are flourishing, and
the congregation of the Enfants de Marie is one of the oldest in the
country. The dark-eyed women of Lourdes have a Spanish look, and are
quite picturesque in their scarlet capulets or black capuchins, but the
men have mostly laid aside the Bigorrais cloak, once so sought after
that they were exported from the country, and mentioned by learned men.
Pope Gregory I., in a letter to Eulogius, Bishop of Alexandria, thus
alludes to them: “Sex minora Aquitanica pallia.” S. Paulinus of Nola, in
a letter to Ausonius, says: “Dignaque pellitis habitas deserta Bigerris.”
“Bigerricam vestem, brevem atque hispidam,” says Sulpicius Severus. And
the poet Fortunatus, in his life of S. Martin, says: “Induitur sanctus
hirsuta Bigerrica palla.”

These _Marlottes_, as Scaliger calls them, are now mostly confined to
the mountaineers who cling to the old ways. The people of the valley,
however, have not laid aside all their old prejudices with their cloaks.
The natives of Lourdes are said to hold in proud disdain those who have
had the disadvantage of being born elsewhere, in proof of which it is
related that a prisoner of state, named Soulié, once confined in the
castle for some offence, at last died from the effects of his captivity.
His fellow-prisoners, desirous of showing him suitable honor, as well
as giving proper expression to their own regret, paid the bell-ringer
to toll a bell of the second class. It appears there were four bells in
use for funerals; the first for the clergy; the second, for the grandees
of the place; the third, for the common citizen, and the fourth for the
poor. The inhabitants were so enraged that such an honor as a bell of
the second class should be rung for a stranger, that they condemned the
guilty sexton to prison. During his long confinement, he was frequently
heard exclaiming with a groan: “Ah! detestable _Soulié_! Had it only been
a _savate_,[157] I should not be here!”

This is a mere reminiscence of their ancient glory. It is always
difficult to bring one’s self to the level of fallen fortunes. The title
of stranger is still said to be an original stain that nothing can ever
efface. Small and unpretending as Lourdes may now seem, it has its grand
old memories. Its origin is lost in the obscurity of remote ages, but
where history is at fault, fable generally comes to the rescue.

The glory of founding Lourdes is attributed to an Ethiopian princess.
Tarbis, queen of Ethiopia, captivated by the valor and personal
attractions of Moses, offered him her throne and hand. Wounded and
mortified at his refusal, she abandoned her country to hide her
disappointment in the obscurity of the Pyrenean valleys. She founded the
city of Tarbes, and her sister Lorda that of Lourdes.

In the Middle Ages the Counts of Bigorre were the Seigneurs of Lourdes,
and, like S. Louis under the oak of Vincennes, they seated themselves
with patriarchal simplicity on a stone bench under an elm before the
church to receive the homage of their vassals. Notre Dame de Bigorre! was
then the battle-cry of the people. Then, as now, Mary was the Sovereign
Lady of the valley. To her its lords acknowledged themselves vassals
and paid tribute, and the arms of the town commemorate her miraculous
intervention to deliver it from the hands of the Moors. But as this
legend is connected with the history of the castle, we will give a brief
sketch of that once strong hold.

The tourist, on his way to Pau, Cauteréts, St. Sauveur, or Bagnères, as
he traverses the plateau which overlooks the fertile valley of the Gave,
sees an ancient fortress on the top of an inaccessible cliff, that rises
straight up from the banks of the river. This is the old citadel of
Lourdes, the key of the Seven Valleys, the stronghold of the Counts of
Bigorre in the Middle Ages. The eye of the traveller cannot fail to be
struck by the antiquity of its gray battlements, crenellated towers, and
picturesque situation, and he at once feels it has a marvellous history.

The castle of Lourdes is more than two thousand years old. Here the
ancient inhabitants long held out against the attacks of the Romans;
and here, when they were forced to yield, their conquerors built the
fortifications whose indestructible foundation ages have passed over
without leaving any trace. Several centuries later, the castle of
Mirambel, as it was then called, was held by the Moors, and their leader,
Mirat, defended it for a time against the hosts of Charlemagne, and
at length, too haughty to yield to any earthly power, surrendered to
the Queen of Heaven, who wrought such a miracle of grace on the proud
painim’s heart that he and all his followers went with garlands of hay on
their lances to swear fealty to Notre Dame de Puy, and resign all right
to Mirambel. Mirat was baptized by the name of Lorus. He received the
honors of knighthood, and gave the name of Lordum to the castle he now
held in the name of the Virgin.

We are indebted to an English monk, named Marfin, for this legend,
and though rejected by many, it was doubtless founded on the popular
traditions of the country, which alone account for the arms of the town
and the annual tribute the Counts of Bigorre paid to Notre Dame de Puy as
long as they held possession of the castle.[158]

_Lo ric castel de Lorda_ having been taken possession of by the
Albigenses in the XIIth century, the celebrated Simon de Montfort
besieged it, but in vain. The castle remained in their hands till the end
of the war.

No one of English origin can look at the hoary walls of this ancient
fortress without the greatest interest, for it is associated with the
memory of the Black Prince, and the time was when the banner of England
floated from its towers and defied the efforts of the bravest knights of
France to tear it from its hold.

Lourdes, as well as the whole province of Bigorre (which lay between
Béarn and Foix), fell into the hands of the English by the treaty of
Bretagne, and constituted a part of the Duchy of Aquitaine, which Edward
III. conferred on his son, the Black Prince, who left England to take
possession of his domains in 1363. He made Bordeaux his capital, and
there, in the church of S. André, Jehan Caubot, consul of Lourdes, and
the representatives of Tarbes and other towns, presented themselves at
high noon before the most noble and puissant Lord Edward, Prince of Wales
and Duke of Aquitaine, and, in the presence of many lords, knights, and
citizens, swore fealty to the English prince, beseeching him to confirm
the rights and franchises which they had hitherto enjoyed, which he
solemnly promised.

The Count of Armagnac (John I.) gave so captivating a description of
the beauty of Bigorre that the Black Prince was induced to visit his
mountain province. He remained for some time at Tarbes, and while there
explored the neighboring valleys, strengthened old fortresses and built
several new ones. He was particularly struck with the castle of Lourdes,
and the advantage of holding such a position. “It is the key of many
countries,” said he, “by which I can find my way into Aragon, Catalonia,
and Barcelona.” He strengthened its fortifications, and entrusted the
command to Pierre Arnaud of Béarn, a cousin of Gaston Phœbus of Foix,
saying: “Master Arnaud, I constitute and appoint you captain of Lourdes,
and warden of Bigorre. See that you hold them, and render a good account
of your trust to me and my father.”

Arnaud swore fealty to the Prince, who soon after broke up his court
at Tarbes and returned to Bordeaux. He could not have left a better
commander at Lourdes. Arnaud was one of those men who would rather face
death a thousand times than be untrue to their word. He held the castle
long after all the rest of Bigorre had been wrested from the English,
and the exploits of the brave knights that took refuge here made it
the terror of the surrounding country. Froissart’s account of their
adventures is more like that of highwaymen than of chivalrous knights.
They were continually coming down from their eyry at the head of a band,
to scour the country and plunder all they could lay their hands upon.
Sometimes they extended their ravages to Toulouse, Alby, and Carcassone,
taking castles, robbing merchants and attacking knights, and then rushing
back to Lourdes with their booty--cattle, provisions, prisoners they
could ransom, etc. They only respected the rights of Gaston Phœbus, their
captain’s kinsman.

It is related of Mongat that on one occasion he put on the habit of a
monk, and with three of his men similarly attired, he took his way with
devout air and mien to Montpellier, where he alighted at the Angel and
gave out he was a lord abbot from Upper Gascony on his way to Paris on
business. Here he made the acquaintance of the Sire Berenger, who was
likewise going to Paris on some affair of importance, and was delighted
to be thrown into such holy company. The pretended abbot led him by
devious ways to Lourdes, where he ransomed him for a large sum.

In one of his adventures, Mongat came to his end. He had been to Toulouse
with two other knights and one hundred and twenty lances, and on their
way back with cattle, hogs, sheep, and prisoners, they were attacked by
two hundred knights, with the brave Ernauton Bissette at their head, in
a forest belonging to the Sire de Barbazan. The fury with which they
fought was only equalled by their knightly courtesy. When exhausted,
they took off their helmets, refreshed themselves at a stream, and then
resumed the contest. Mongat and Ernauton fought hand to hand the whole
day, and at length, utterly exhausted, they both fell dead on the field.
Hostilities then ceased. Each party bore away its dead, and a cross was
raised on the spot where they fell.

Of course the whole country around was eager to dislodge the English
from their fortress. The Duke of Anjou, with the celebrated Du Guesclin,
attacked it at the head of fifteen thousand of the best soldiers of
France. All the other castles of Bigorre had been taken. Tarbes had been
readily given up by the captain who had sworn to defend it. Mauvezin had
gallantly held out for a time, and then honorably surrendered. Lourdes
alone bade defiance to the enemy. The town, built on a <DW72> at the east
of the castle, resisted the duke’s army a fortnight. The inhabitants
finally took refuge in the castle, and the French took possession of the
empty houses, with great rejoicing. For six weeks they laid siege to the
castle, but in vain. The duke now sought to obtain it by bribing Arnaud
with vast sums of money, but the incorruptible captain replied:

“The fortress is not mine. It is the property of the King of England,
and I cannot sell, alienate, or give it up, without proving myself a
traitor, which I will not. I will remain loyal to my liege lord on whose
hand I swore by my faith, when he appointed me governor of this castle,
to defend it against all men, and to yield it to no one whom he had not
authorized to demand it, and Pierre Arnaud will keep to his trust till he
dies.”

Discouraged and mortified, the duke raised the siege and set fire to
the four quarters of the town, which was wholly consumed, with all the
titles of the ancient _fors_ and rights. He now determined to obtain the
castle by some other means, and despatched a messenger to Gaston Phœbus
to convince him it was for his interest to use his influence in driving
the English from Lourdes. The count promised to do so and invited Arnaud
to Orthez. Somewhat suspicious of his intentions, Arnaud, before leaving
Lourdes, appointed his brother John commander of the fortress, making
him swear by his faith and honor as a knight to guard it as faithfully
as he had done himself, and never to yield it to any one but him who had
entrusted it to their care.

John solemnly swore as he was desired, and his brother proceeded to
Orthez, where he was graciously received by the Count of Foix. It was not
till the third day he was summoned to give up the castle. Arnaud at once
comprehended the danger of his situation, but undauntedly replied: “My
lord, I doubtless owe you duty and regard, for I am a poor knight of your
land and race, but the castle of Lourdes I cannot surrender. You have
sent for me and can do with me whatever you please, but what I hold from
the King of England, I will surrender to no one but him.”

“Ha, traitor!” cried the count in a rage, drawing his dagger, “do you
tell me you will not do it? By my head, you shall pay for such a speech”;
and he stabbed him to the heart.

Arnaud cried: “Ah! my lord, you act not as beseemeth gentle knight. You
invited me here and it is thus you put me to death.”

This base act did no good. John was as faithful to his trust as
his brother Arnaud. His appointment was confirmed by the King of
England,[159] and the English flag was not taken down till the year 1425,
when the citadel of Lourdes surrendered to John of Foix, the companion
in arms of Dunois the brave, and the illustrious Barbazan, first to be
styled _Sans peur et sans reproche_. Then the war-cry, “S. George for
Lourdes!” was heard for the last time in the land, and the red flag of
England taken down for ever.

Lourdes was attacked by the Huguenots in 1573. The town was taken by
assault, pillaged, and partly burned, but they made no impression on the
castle. A cry of alarm, however, resounded all through the Seven Valleys.
The mountaineers of Lavedan knew the importance of the castle, which,
once taken, would expose them to an invasion it would be impossible to
resist, and they seized their arms and gathered under the banners of the
lords of Vieuzac and Arras to defend the entrance to their valleys. The
Huguenots, astonished at their determined resistance, were obliged to
retreat to Béarn.

The union of Bigorre with the crown of France by Henry IV. was favorable
to the prosperity and happiness of Lourdes, but fatal to the military
importance of the castle. After being for ages the chief defence of the
land, it now became the most unimportant fortress in the country.

In the XVIIIth century it was made the Bastile of the Pyrenees--a prison
“created by despotism on the frontiers of liberty”--and was called the
Royal Prison of Lourdes. Here, as the Comte de Marcellus says:

    “Dans d’effroyables cachots,
    Entouré d’épaisses ténèbres,
    Plus d’un captif, couché sous des voûtes funèbres,
    Attendrissait leurs lugubres échos
    Par ses gémissements, ses pleurs et ses sanglots.
    …
    Sous ses sombres donjons, l’œil, d’abime en abime,
    Voit le Gave rouler et bondir furieux;
    Et les monts hérissés qui portent jusqu’ aux cieux
    De leurs rocs décharnés l’inaccessible cime,
    Redoublent la tristesse et l’horreur de ces lieux.”

Père Lacombe, the spiritual director, or rather disciple, of the famous
Mme. Guyon, was confined in the castle of Lourdes in 1687. The see of
Tarbes was vacant at the time, but when a bishop was appointed, in 1695,
he obtained the deliverance of the poor prisoner, who did not, however,
enjoy his liberty long. His mind became so affected that he was again
confined at Charenton, where he died.

In the time of Napoleon I., Lord Elgin, the famous spoliator of the
Parthenon, on his way back from Constantinople, came for the recovery
of his health to the springs of Barrèges, where he was arrested by the
government and brought to the castle of Lourdes. He characteristically
profited by his confinement here to strip the fortress of all the
antiquities he could secure, and carry them off to his residence in
Fifeshire.

The castle ceased to be a prison at the restoration of the monarchy.
It is now a military post, and accessible to the tourist, who enters
a postern gate at the east, and ascends the cliff by a winding stone
staircase, at the top of which he comes out on a court with a clump of
trees and a few flowers, guarded by a sentinel ferocious-looking enough
to strike terror into the heart of the fearless Barbazan himself, but
whom we found to be the mildest of warriors, and the most accommodating
of guides around the old _château-fort_. Unless you looked at him, you
would never have supposed him brought up on the marrow of lions!

From the battlements there is a magnificent view of the valley of the
Gave. Never was fairer picture framed among majestic mountains. The
river flows directly beneath, through a meadow of wonderful freshness.
On the right bank stands the spacious monasteries of Mt. Carmel and S.
Benedict, not yet completed, and the other side, directly in front of the
castle, rises the new fortress of Our Lady of Lourdes--stronghold of the
faith--where the whole world comes, like the ancient Barons of Bigorre,
to pay tribute to Mary. It is high time to turn our steps thither.

Leaving the town of Lourdes by a narrow street to the west, we come out
into the open valley in full view of the Gave--a clear, broad stream, fed
by mountain torrents, which rushes impetuously over a rocky bed towards
the Adour and the ocean. It comes from the south, but here turns abruptly
away from the cliff--that rises straight up from its banks to the height
of three hundred feet, crowned with its old historic castle--and flows to
the west. In this sharp bend of the river is the cliff of Massabielle,
from the side of which rises before us into the clear blue heavens a tall
spire with a golden cross. It is the celebrated church of Notre Dame
de Lourdes, a pure white edifice worthy of the spotless Virgin whose
immaculate purity it commemorates--the object of so many vows, the spot
to which so many hearts are turned, and so many feet are wending, from
every part of the Christian world.

The road between the town and church is bordered by small booths for the
sale of rosaries, medals, and every conceivable object of devotion,
including pilgrims’ staves and scallop shells, and stacks of tall candles
to burn before Our Lady of Lourdes. There are over two hundred of these
little shops, altogether too many for the place, though there is a pretty
brisk trade during the season of pilgrimages. At every step you are
called upon to buy, just as at Loretto, the owner advertising his wares
with the volubility and something of the style of the London apprentices
in the time of Lord Nigel. Crossing the bridge, we stop to look down
into the clear, green, turbulent waters of the Gave. The mountaineers
say reproachfully to their troublesome wives: “Maridat lou Gabé, que
staré”--Marry the Gave, and it will remain quiet. However refractory this
virgin stream may be, the valley is peaceful enough to bring the heart
and soul into harmony with the place we are approaching. All along the
wayside are the blind and the lame in every stage of horrible infirmity,
appealing to the charity of the passers-by in the name of the _Sainte
Vierge_ of Lourdes, which no one can resist in the very sight of her
altar, and we stop every now and then to buy, in this way, “a pennyworth
of paradise,” like the prudent M. Géborand, of _miser_able memory. We
pick our way along through the crowds of pilgrims, going and coming with
arms full of tapers and great wooden rosaries, and a bleeding heart upon
their breasts, like a decoration. We are thrust aside by a procession
hurrying off to the station, joyously singing some song of praise,
and we turn for a moment into a soft green meadow on the banks of the
river, with pleasant winding paths among umbrageous trees, leading to an
immense ring with rustic roof and open sides, provided with seats and
tables of beautiful Pyrenean marble--where pilgrims can rest and take
their lunch--the gift of M. Henri Lasserre, the author of “Our Lady of
Lourdes,” so admirably translated for THE CATHOLIC WORLD. At one end of
the meadow is a pretty _châlet_ given the Bishop of Tarbes by some pious
individual for his residence when he comes to Lourdes. Turning into the
road again, we come to a fork--one path leading up over the cliff to the
church, and the other along the shore of the river beneath. Taking the
latter, we find a chain stretched across the way, beyond which no vender
of holy wares can go, or carriage pass. We keep on beneath the cliff of
Massabielle, crowned with its fair white church far above our heads. The
few rods that separate it from the Gave is crowded with people. We hurry
on. A slight turn brings us suddenly before the Grotto of the Apparition,
towards, which every eye is turned.…

                “O Light Divine!
    Thy Presence and thy power were here.”

No words can express the emotions of the heart at the very sight of this
place of benediction. You at once feel it has some mysterious connection
with the unseen world. A thousand memories of its history, its eighteen
apparitions, its countless miracles, come over you. You forget the crowd
around you. Like the rest, you kneel on the pavement to adore and pray.…

The grotto has wisely been left to nature. It stands open, facing the
Gave, tapestried with ivy, and rosebushes, and pretty ferns that grow in
the clefts of the rocks. The birds that build their nests among the vines
undisturbed are flying to and fro, their songs filling the air above the
hushed crowd. On one side of the grotto in a small niche--the very place
where Bernadette beheld the Marvellous Vision--is a statue of the Virgin
of pure white Carrara marble, standing with folded hands, palm to palm,
and uplifted eyes. A blue girdle is tied around the waist, a crystal
rosary hangs from her arm, and JE SUIS L’IMMACULÉE CONCEPTION, in silver
letters, form a glory around her head.

The grotto is all aflame with an immense pyramidal stand of tapers.
Enormous wax candles, several inches in circumference, burn on the
pavement among pots of lilies. The sides of the cave are hung with
innumerable crutches, canes, shoes, models of hands and arms, etc., etc.,
in pious commemoration of the wonderful cures wrought here. The pavement
is strewn with bouquets of beautiful flowers and more practical offerings
in the form of money, voluntarily thrown in to aid in the construction of
the church. Letters peep out of the clefts of the rocks, each with its
tale of suffering, its prayer for aid.

Of course every pilgrim wishes to enter the grotto, examine it, touch it
with his hands, and kiss it with profound respect. He wishes to pluck a
branch from the vine around the niche of the Virgin, and even appropriate
a fragment of the walls. The necessity will at once be seen of placing
some bounds to the manifestations of a piety praiseworthy in its nature,
but serious in its results. To protect the grotto, therefore, a solid
iron grating bars the entrance, but allows a clear view of the interior.
It is unlocked from time to time to admit a knot of pilgrims, so all can
have an opportunity of praying in so sacred a place. Before the grating
kneel countless pilgrims in the open air, on the cold pavement which
extends to the very edge of the Gave, thrust back from its course to
give additional space. There are a few benches for the weary and infirm.
The different classes of people gathered here, the variety of costumes
worn by peasants from different provinces, and the clergy and sisters of
various orders, to say nothing of the fashionable dresses of the upper
classes, are a study for the artist who has set up an easel before the
stone bench along the banks of the river. Beyond is a long avenue of
trees furnished with seats where pilgrims are gathered in knots around
huge lunch-baskets. At the left of the grotto are several faucets over a
long stone basin, fed by water from the miraculous fountain. Over them
is the inscription: “_Allez boire à la fontaine et vous laver._” Around
are crowded people drinking the healing waters, or filling their cans
and bottles to carry away. Close by is a room furnished with cans of all
dimensions for the accommodation of the pilgrim. Beyond are the bathing
rooms, to so many a pool of Siloam where the angel is never weary of
troubling the waters. Around these doors of hope is always a sad array of
the blind, the deaf, the lame, and the paralytic.

No wonder miracles are wrought here. There is such simple, unbounded
faith in the divine mercy and power, that mountains might be moved.
What would be marvellous elsewhere, only seems the natural order of
things here. Dr. Dozous, a physician of the place--who often accompanied
Bernadette in her visits to the grotto, and has watched with interest
the gradual development of the devotion to Notre Dame de Lourdes; and
witnessed a great number of miracles of all kinds, including the cure of
those who had been blind, or deaf and dumb, from their birth--says, in a
book he has recently published:

“The cures of which I have so often been the ocular witness, and which I
am about to relate, have convinced me, beyond the possibility of doubt,
of the importance of Bernadette’s visits to the grotto of Massabielle,
and the reality of the visions she was there favored with.”

M. Artus, an Alsace refugee at Bordeaux, whose niece had been
miraculously cured of a serious malady by recourse to Notre Dame de
Lourdes, has offered ten thousand francs to any one who will prove the
falseness of any of the statements in M. Lasserre’s book, but, though two
years have since passed, no one has been found quite ready to take up the
offer.

Miracles are so constantly wrought here, that not half of them are
recorded. Five occurred the day before our arrival, one, a deaf-mute to
whom the faculty of speech was instantaneously given. We dared not hope
to witness anything of the kind, nor did we need it to increase our faith
in the power of Omnipotence, though human nature is always seeking some
sign. But the piety of the multitude around obtained the grace we should
not have ventured to ask for ourselves. We were praying one morning in
the grotto, when suddenly there was an unusual movement in the crowd
without, and an increasing wave-like murmur that broke at last into a
tumultuous shout. A gentleman beside us seemed to catch the meaning,
for he sprang up and exclaimed at the top of his voice, _Vive Marie!_
which was answered by hundreds of voices. The effect was electrical,
and the feeling that came over us was something new in our experience.
Tears sprang to the eye. We hurried out of the grotto, and the movement
of the crowd brought us close to a young girl raised above the excited
multitude, pale, smiling with joy, and waving a hand covered with the
marks of ineffectual human remedies, and that had been utterly paralyzed
an hour before. Every one crowded around her to see, examine, test the
use of her arm, and assure themselves of the truth of the case. She had
been fourteen months in a hospital at Marseilles, and had come with a
large number of pilgrims from that place who were ready to testify to her
previous helplessness. The whole scene was thrilling. Bands of pilgrims
with blue badges of the Virgin sang hymns of joy. A wave of excitement
every now and then passed over the crowd and found vent in repeated
_vivas_. The girl was finally released from the examination and admitted
into the grotto, when the Magnificat was intoned.

The cliff of Massabielle has been cut down and levelled off to serve as
the foundation of the church, which stands on the top at a distance of
seventy or eighty feet directly above the grotto. The title of minor
basilica was conferred on it by His Holiness Pius IX., in March, 1874. A
path leads up to it from the shore, its windings along the edge of the
cliff forming the monogram of Mary, among hedges of roses and arbor-vitæ,
glistening with dew, and overhung with acacias and evergreens--a charming
ascent, each step of which leads to a rarer atmosphere, a lovelier and
more extended view, and nearer the altar of Mary.

There are two churches, one above the other; the lower one, dim and
solemn with penitential gloom; the upper, radiant with the light and
purity that ought to surround

    “Our tainted nature’s solitary boast.”

Let us first enter the crypt. In the vestibule is a statue of S. Germaine
of Pibrac with her crook and legendary apron of roses, and a lamb at her
feet--the gift of a band of pilgrims from Toulouse. An arched passage
leads each side of the crypt with banners hung over the confessionals
in the recesses. Passing through one of these, we found ourselves in
a low, gloomy nave crowded with columns to support the upper church.
It is chiefly lighted by the numerous lamps hanging on every side, and
the large stands of candles that burn before the Virgin, who is over
the altar embowered among roses. The pavement is covered with kneeling
forms--ladies, soldiers, peasants. You hear the whispered prayer, you
catch glimpses of devout faces, quivering lips, and upturned eyes.
Everything here is solemn and mysterious, and inclines one to serious
reflection. On the pillars hang the different scenes of the great Passion
in which we all had so sad a part. They strike new terror into the soul
in this sepulchral church that seems hewn out of the living rock.

                            “Low I sit,
    In sorrow, penitence-stricken, and deep woe,
    ’Mid shades of death, thine arrow drinks my blood;
    For I thine innocent side have piercéd deep.
    I dare not look upon thy bleeding brow,
    For I have circled it with thorny crown,
    Thou Holy One, and here I sit and weep,
    Bowed with the o’erwhelming burden down to earth.”

The carved confessionals at the end suggest comforting thoughts. There

          “The great Absolver with relief
    Stands by the door, and bears the key
    O’er Penitence on bended knee.”

There are five chapels--a mystic number associated with five sorrowful
mysteries--each with two small windows pierced through the thick walls,
looking like the loop-holes of a fort. Their sides are covered with
votive pictures and small marble tablets with inscriptions, some of which
we copy:

    “Reconnaissance éternelle à la toute puissante Notre Dame de
    Lourdes pour la grace qu’elle m’a obtenue.

                                             Paris, 30 Juillet, 1872.

                                                               “M. M.”

       *       *       *       *       *

    “Amour et reconnaissance à Notre Dame de Lourdes. Deux cœurs
    guéris et consolés.”

       *       *       *       *       *

    “A Notre Dame de Lourdes, Colonel L. S.

                                                       “6 Aout, 1870.”

       *       *       *       *       *

    “Reconnaissance éternelle à Notre Dame de Lourdes qui a guèri
    notre fille.”

There is a countless number of similar inscriptions, which are so many
leaves torn from domestic histories, extremely touching and suggestive
to read. They are eternal expressions of gratitude, which are doubtless
pleasing to the Divine Benefactor, who is not regardless of one who
returns to give thanks.

Our last visit to the crypt will never be forgotten. We had arrived at
Lourdes the evening before, in a pouring rain, which still continued
when we went at half-past four in the morning to attend the Mass of a
clerical friend. It was with difficulty we made our way into the nave,
crammed with pilgrims from Bretagne and La Vendée. The five chapels were
filled with priests waiting for their turn to say Mass. Our friend had
been there since two o’clock, and it was nearly seven before he found a
vacancy at the altar. Masses likewise had been continually succeeding
each other since midnight in the fifteen chapels of the church above. The
place, it will be seen, is one of perpetual prayer.

Our devotions over at a late hour, we ascended a flight of twenty-six
steps, which brought us to a broad terrace before the upper church
commanding a lovely view of the valley, with the picturesque old castle
directly in front. The sun had come out after the rain, and nothing could
be more fresh and enchanting. On the terrace stood the four bells given
by the Prince of Viana, and not yet hung. They were baptized August
11, by Cardinal Donnet of Bordeaux, in presence of a numerous crowd,
including Don Sebastian de Bourbon, Infante of Spain, the Duc de Nemours,
and the Prince of Béarn and Viana.

Before entering the church, we pause in front of the Gothic portal to
look up at the representation of our Saviour over the central arch. His
face is turned towards Lourdes, a cruciform nimbus surrounds his head,
the Alpha and Omega are at the side, and his right hand is raised to
bless the pilgrim beneath. At each side are the winged emblems of the
Evangelists. And lower down is the Virgin Mother, her hands crossed on
her breast, her face,

    “The most resembling Christ,”

sweet and thoughtful. She seems to be awaiting all who seek through her
the Divine Redeemer, who by her has been given to mankind. _Felix cœli
porta_, we say as we pass beneath.

Entering the church, we are at once struck with its immaculate purity.
It is in the style of the XIIIth century. The height is about double
the width, which makes the arches seem loftier than they really are.
The spotless white walls are relieved by the beautiful banners hanging
on every side. There are about four hundred of these banners, richly
embroidered with religious symbols and devices, and the arms of different
cities and provinces. Conspicuous among them are the banners of Alsace
and Lorraine bordered with crape. They were wrought in secret, and
brought over the frontier in the night to escape the vigilance of the
Prussian police. They were presented by faithful Christians, one of whom
was a valiant officer whose breast was covered with decorations, and
received by the Archbishop of Auch (to whose province Lourdes belongs),
who wept as he pressed them to his lips, affecting the vast crowd to
tears.

Around the nave of the church is an unique frieze of votive golden
hearts, so arranged as to form inscriptions in immense letters,
taken from the words of the Virgin to Bernadette: “VOUS PRIEREZ POUR
LA CONVERSION DES PÉCHEURS. ALLEZ BOIRE À LA FONTAINE ET VOUS Y
LAVER.--ALLEZ DIRE AUX PRÊTRES QU’IL DOIT SE BÂTIR ICI UNE CHAPELLE, ET
QU’ON DOIT Y VENIR EN PROCESSION.”

The main altar in the centre of the choir is dedicated to the mystery
of the Immaculate Conception. It is of pure white marble, and on the
front are five compartments on which are sculptured the Annunciation,
Visitation, Assumption, Coronation, and the Apparition of the Blessed
Virgin in the grotto. The altar is adorned with white lilies. Over
it in a golden niche is a statue of Mary Most Pure, “above all women
glorified,” the very embodiment of purity and love. Above her, like a
crown, is a constellation of beautiful lamps of filigree and enamel.
Rich votive offerings are fastened to the walls--crosses of the Legion
of Honor, epaulettes, swords crossed above flags, a miniature ship, the
mitre of Mgr. Lawrence, etc. On the keystone of the arch are sculptured
the arms of Pope Pius IX.

The main altar with its Madonna is the central object in the church,
and the focus of its splendor. Around it, like so many rays around the
Immaculate Conception, are five apsidal chapels. Directly behind it is
the chapel of the Sacred Heart, where of course the Blessed Sacrament
is kept. At the left is Notre Dame du Mont Carmel, in honor of the last
apparition to Bernadette, which took place on the festival of that name.
Next is the chapel of Notre Dame des Victoires, in commemoration of
the celebrated archconfraternity at Paris, which has effected so many
conversions, wrought so many miracles, and prepared the way, as it were,
for the triumph of the Immaculate Conception.

At the right of the chapel of the Sacred Heart is that of Notre Dame
du Rosaire, recalling the rosary the Virgin held on her arm in all her
apparitions to Bernadette. Then, Notre Dame de la Sallette, reminding us
that the tears the Mother of Sorrows once shed over the woes of France
in the mountains of Dauphine, have been succeeded by the smiles of Marie
Immaculée in the grotto of the Pyrenees.

Each of these five chapels recall the Holy Trinity by the number of their
windows, as the rose window in the façade is typical of the Divine Unity.
These windows are of stained glass--the gift of the Prince of Viana.
The main altar and the statue of the Immaculate Conception are from
an anonymous benefactor, and many of the other altars are the gifts of
private individuals.

Ten lateral chapels open out of the nave, and communicate with each
other for convenience. The four nearest the choir bring around Mary the
principal members of her family: S. Anne, S. Joachim, S. Joseph, and S.
John the Baptist. Then come the chapel of S. Peter, still living in our
“Pope of the Immaculate Conception,” who so glorified Mary on the 8th
of December, 1854; S. John, the beloved disciple, who was appointed her
son on Mt. Calvary; S. Francis of Assisi, the patriarch of the Seraphic
Order that has always been the advocate of the Immaculate Conception; S.
Francis Xavier, patron of the Society for the Propagation of the Faith,
one of the glories of this age of Mary; S. Bertrand, the illustrious
bishop of Commines and the patron saint of Mgr. Lawrence, whose name
will ever be associated with the church of Notre Dame de Lourdes; and S.
Germaine, the humble shepherdess of Pibrac, so like the little _bergère_
of Lourdes.

Thus four of the great religious orders of the church are represented
before the Virgin’s throne--the Carmelite, Dominican, Franciscan, and
Jesuit. Each chapel, sacred to some holy mystery, has its beautiful
altar, its carved oaken confessional, its circular golden chandelier, its
station of the cross, its banners, and its statues.

The carved oak pulpit on the left side of the nave was given by the
Bishop of Marseilles.

The windows of the side chapels, that await a donor, will depict the
history of Notre Dame de Lourdes, beginning with the first apparition
and ending with the consecration of the church. And the clerestory
windows will represent the history of the devotion to the Immaculate
Conception. The decoration of the church is by no means complete. It is
to be in harmony with the architecture, so pure in outline and light
in form. In the seventy-six arcatures of the triforium the saints most
devoted to the Immaculate Conception are to be represented on a gilt
ground.

To see this beautiful church crowded with devout pilgrims, priests
at every altar of the fifteen chapels, a grand service going on in
the choir with all the solemn pomp displayed in great cathedrals, the
numerous clergy in the richest vestments, and to hear the grand music of
Palestrina executed with perfect harmony and exquisite taste--the whole
congregation heartily joining in the chants, and the peal of the trumpets
contrasting admirably with their earnest voices--is to the ravished soul
like a vision of the heavenly Jerusalem. The lofty arches seem to sway
with the undulations of the music, sometimes soft as the murmur of a
rivulet, and again as deep as a mountain torrent falling over rocks. The
eye is never weary of gazing at this fair temple with its pure outlines,
so harmonious in all its parts, the soft light coming in floods through
the lofty windows and mingling with the brilliancy of the lights and
flowers; the immense oriflammes hanging from the arches to give testimony
to the glory of the Immaculate Conception and the Pontiff who crowned
that glory; the mysterious words on the wall that fell from the smiling
lips of the Virgin in the grotto; and the Most Pure herself, unveiled to
all eyes, standing in the midst of all this splendor above the altar,
in a golden atmosphere, raising heavenward her look of inspiration, her
hands joined in prayer, her heart swelling with love--adoring love for
Him who dwells in the tabernacle; and maternal love for her children
gathered around the fountain opened for the salvation of the world. O
Immaculate One! we here feel thy sweet presence, and the creative power
of thy word: “Go, tell the priests I wish a chapel to be built on this
spot.”

Never was greater miracle wrought by humbler instrumentality--never was
the Divine Hand more manifest than in the upspringing of this mountain
chapel--the lily of the Immaculate Conception, sweetest flower of this
age of Mary. Human intelligence is confounded at what has been effected
by the mouth of a poor peasant girl of this obscure valley. It grasps at
the assurance of faith in Mary who has wrought it. Before her the Gave
that beat against the cliff has fallen back--image of the torrent that
approached Mary at the moment of her creation, and, just as she was about
to receive the fatal stain, the wave of corruption, that bears all of us
poor children of Eve on its impure waters, fell back before the ark of
the new covenant, Fœderis Arca.

The very cliffs have bowed down at her presence, and these stones, these
walls, these columns, these arches, and the fountain of indisputable
potency that has sprung out of the bowels of the earth, bear witness to
her wonderful apparitions and power.

One of the most imposing spectacles at Lourdes is a procession of
pilgrims, especially when seen, as we saw one, from the mount above
coming from the town--a very forest of crosses, banners, and lanterns,
borne by thousands of people with that slow, measured, solemn, harmonious
step that is in itself a prayer. We thought of good Mother Hallahan and
her delight in nine miles of prayer. Here were whole leagues of praise.

                    “On the ear
      Swells softly forth some virgin hymn;
    The white procession windeth near,
      With glimmering lights in sunshine dim.

    Mother of Purity and Peace!
      They sing the Saviour’s name and thine:
    Clothe them forever with the fleece
      Unspotted of thy Lamb Divine!”

From one end of the immense procession to the other rose chants without
discord--here from a band of maidens and innocent children, yonder from
harmonious choirs of maturer years. From time to time a peal of trumpets
drowned the murmur of the Gave and awoke the echoes of the mountains. In
the procession were hundreds of men organized into pious confraternities
as in the Middle Ages. They follow the path taken by Bernadette, when she
was irresistibly led on to the place of the wondrous vision. They all
stop to make a genuflection where she knelt before the Beautiful Lady,
and begin the Litany of Loretto in the sweet plaintive air peculiar to
the country. It is delightful to hear Mary’s name swelling along the
valley and up the rocky heights! Thus chanting they ascend the winding
path on the cliff, forming a living monogram of the Virgin’s name, among
roses that give out their perfume, through cedars of Lebanon and other
rare trees that bend down their branches laden with dew. And above this
verdure, these perfumes, and these chanted supplications, the white
marble Church of the Immaculate Conception sends heavenward the silent
prayer of its gleaming walls, its pillars, its turrets and pinnacles.
They wind around the church like a wreath and disappear within its
sculptured portal chanting: _Lætatus sum in his quæ dicta sunt mihi_--I
was glad at the things that were said to me. We will go into the house
of the Lord.… Our feet were wont to stand in thy courts, O Jerusalem!
Jerusalem which is built as a city that is at unity with itself.…
Plenteousness be to them that love thee!

At the particular request of the Prince of Viana, one of the greatest
benefactors to the church, his Holiness Pope Pius IX. has granted a
partial indulgence to all who visit the church, and a plenary indulgence
to those who here approach the sacraments and pray for concord among
Christian princes the extirpation of heresies, and the exaltation of our
holy Mother the Church.

A winding road leads from the church by gentle ascent up the picturesque
mount behind, along which are to be built fifteen chapels in honor of
the Mysteries of the Rosary, where the words once spoken by the angel
will ascend the mountain side in one long and incessant Ave Maria! Along
this holy way will continually ascend and descend the pious votary in
“pilgrim’s cowl and lowly weed”

    “Dropping on each mystic bead
    To Mary, Mother Mild, a contrite tear.”

A certain party, desirous of bringing pilgrimages into disrepute, and
inclined to seek some human cause for everything supernatural, attributes
a political object to this great crusade of prayer which the impious
instinctively tremble before, and not without reason. M. Lasserre thus
closes an address to the visitor to Notre Dame de Lourdes:

“Pilgrims of France! Your politics at the grotto of Lourdes is to pray,
to begin a new life, to sanctify yourselves, and to become in this
corrupt age the chosen righteous who are to save the wicked cities of the
land. It is thus you will labor efficaciously for the prosperity of your
country and bring back its past splendor and glory. A nation desirous of
salvation in heaven, is a nation saved on earth.”

We close by echoing one of the acclamations sung alternately by clergy
and people at the solemn celebration in this place of benediction:

V. Omnibus nobis peregrinantibus, et universo Christiano populo, Fidei,
Spei, et Charitatis augmentum et gaudium æternum.

R. Amen. Amen. Salvos fac servos tuos, Domine, et benedic hæreditati tuæ,
et rege eos, et extolle illos usque in æternum.

Fiat. Fiat. Amen.


THE HOUSE OF JOAN OF ARC.

I am writing these lines in a small inn of Domrémy, on the evening of
my pilgrimage to the lowly dwelling of Jeanne d’Arc. My table is an old
coffer, shakily placed on the rugged and disjointed paving stones which
form the floor, and my only companion a kitten gambolling in the red rays
of the setting sun. I thus begin my account of that house which has been
well called the _santa casa_ of France.

Arriving at Domrémy while yet its green valleys were enveloped in the
white vapors rising from the Meuse, my first sight of the place was
through the mist of early morning.

It is a small village of Lorraine, near the confines of Champagne. God,
who so often wills to choose a mere nothing through which to exercise his
power, chose it as the starting-point of his work for the deliverance
of France. For Domrémy was a little village also in the year 1425, when
there the heavenly light appeared, there the angel descended, and the
voices not of earth were heard.

The mutilation of this province by the German invasion has only rendered
Domrémy more _lorrain_ than ever: and the Vosges Mountains raise their
blue summits along the horizon and lengthen their shadows as if the
better to guard the home of her who was the good angel of her country.

The village consists of scarcely more than a hundred houses, clustered
round the venerable church and the old walls of the cottage which
sheltered the infancy and youth of the daughter of Jaques d’Arc and his
wife Isabelle Romée.

This church, to which her earliest steps were bent, the place of her
prayers and inspirations, where she armed her soul with virtue and
heroism before arming her breast like a brave warrior preparing for
battle--this church is more than lowly, it is poor; and it is matter for
wonder that, if no one else does so, at least that the maidens of France
do not organize themselves into an association which should make it their
chosen sanctuary, and by which they would engage themselves not only to
provide it with what is necessary and fitting, but with pious generosity
to enrich and beautify their privileged altar.

At the threshold of the church stands a ridiculous statue of Jeanne
d’Arc. It seems a sort of sacrilege so to have misrepresented the
features of the Maid; and the best way to dispose of this image would be
to throw it into a furnace and melt it down in company with the still
more objectionable equestrian statue recently erected in the Place des
Pyramides at Paris, which insults the modest virgin by placing her
astride on her charger, in a complete suit of armor, instead of the steel
breastplate which alone she wore over her womanly apparel. Then, out of
the metal of these molten caricatures might be struck medals of worthier
design, to be distributed in the country.

Among the trees at a few paces from the church is a little Greek monument
supported by four columns, beneath which is a bust of Jeanne in white
marble. Facing this little monument, about a stone’s throw off, stands
her dwelling. This house is separated from the road by two pavilions
connected by a railing of gilt arrows. Trees envelop its walls with their
overshadowing branches, and a third part of the roof is covered with ivy.
Above the door, which is low, are three shields of armorial bearings, the
Arms of France, charged with a sword, and those of the family of D’Arc;
or, to speak more exactly, the door is surmounted by three escutcheons,
namely, that of Louis XI., who caused the cottage to be embellished;
that which was granted to one of the brothers of Jeanne, together with
the name of Lys; and a third, which bears a star and three ploughshares,
to symbolize Jeanne’s heavenly mission and the lowly condition of her
parents. Two inscriptions in uncial Gothic are graven on the stone:
“_Vive Labeur!_”--the motto of Jeanne and the _resumé_ of her history;
and “_Vive le Roi Loys!_”--the _resumé_ of her great work.

On the left of the door is a lattice window with diamond-shaped panes.
Two rooms constitute the whole of the house. Jeanne was born in the first
and larger of the two; the second and inner one is dimly lighted by a
small window opening towards the church. Here it was that Jeanne listened
to the heavenly voices, and here she heard the church bells summoning
to prayer, or sounding the tocsin, when the village was attacked by
marauding bands who came to sack the place and cut down the partisans of
the throne of France.

On several occasions fugitives were concealed by her in this obscure
chamber. She gave up her bed to them, and went to rest in the hayloft.

Facing the hearth in the entrance room is a statue in bronze, reduced
from the expressive figure by the Princess Mary of Orleans.[160] Garlands
of moss surround this statue, and rose-leaves are scattered at its
feet. The nuns who are in charge of the house assemble every evening in
this room with the young girls of the village, to sing hymns. On the
wall hangs a crucifix, and beneath it stands an image of the Blessed
Virgin; and here the nuns with their little flock keep the month of Mary,
celebrating the praises of the Royal Virgin of Judah, who was so dear to
the heart of the virgin of Domrémy.

Here and there upon the walls are _ex votos_, slabs of marble and bronze
relating facts worthy of remembrance in honor of Jeanne, or recalling
historic dates. The beams and rafters of the ceiling are dinted by axe
and sabre strokes given by the Prussians in 1814, not by any means from
disrespect, or motives of jealousy, but merely from an outbreak of
destructive devotion. They entered the house, silent, and with their hats
off, but they did not wish to leave it without taking from it some relics
to carry into their own country.

Numerous pilgrims have been guilty of the low and objectionable
proceeding of carving their names on the stones of the house, although a
register is kept at hand on purpose to receive the visitors’ names and
impressions. The piece of furniture on which the volumes are placed was
presented last year by a prince of France, and accompanied by the gift of
a piece of Gobelin tapestry representing the entry of King Charles VII.
and _Jehanne la bonne Lorraine_ into the city of Rheims.

The latest volume of the register commences in 1871, after the disasters
and misfortunes of France. To every name inscribed in its pages, whether
of aristocrat or commoner, officers of the army or men of the rank and
file, thoughts are elaborated of more or less pretension to literary
merit, in prose or verse, but the dominant idea is prayer to God for the
salvation of France, and grateful love to Jeanne d’Arc; while here and
there are appeals to the Sovereign Pontiff for the beatification of the
young patriot martyr, or at any rate for a solemn affirmation of the
miraculous nature of her call and the sanctity of her life.

A touching incident occurred not quite a year ago. One evening in the
month of May, two English ladies, nuns of the Order of Servites, visited
the house, accompanied by a priest of Vaucouleurs, and had no sooner
crossed the threshold than, falling on their knees, they burst into
tears, entreating God to pardon England, guilty of the death of Joan of
Arc, and making a fervent act of reparation for their country, their
ancestors, and themselves. Nor did they rise before they had kissed the
floor of that lowly cottage where she had so often knelt in prayer to God
and in converse with his glorified saints, and where she had lived in the
fulfilment of the daily duties of her lowly estate.

On another occasion a band of volunteers, on their way to join the
army, came to ask _La Pucelle_ to help them to be good soldiers, and
begging her blessing on themselves and their arms as they would that of
a canonized saint. A cavalry officer made a visit to Domrémy expressly
to remind her that one of his comrades in arms died at Gravelotte
repeating her name. A great number of officers who made their escape from
Germany also came hither direct from the frontier, to return thanks for
their safety, before returning to the homes where their families were
anxiously awaiting them.

A great pope has said, “France will not perish, for God has always a
miracle in reserve to save her.”

The miracle came in the middle of the XVth century, in the person of
Jeanne d’Arc. It may come again through her instrumentality; not this
time leading on the victors at Orleans, Patay, Troyes, Rheims, Compeigne,
Paris, or dying at Rouen amid the flames, but crowned a saint upon the
Church’s altars, as a powerful intercessor for her native land. Mgr.
Dupanloup has given a great impetus to the desire for forwarding her
cause at the infallible tribunal of the Catholic Church.

Gerson, the great and pious chancellor, and the contemporary of Joan of
Arc, ardently desired the same cause, which is now taken to heart, not
only by the illustrious bishop, but also by the clergy, the magistrature,
and the army in Orleans, who are at the head of various commissions
employed in obtaining the evidence necessary for aiding the judgment
of the Sovereign Pontiff. He will have a pleasant task who may be
entrusted to collect the popular traditions which linger like a fragrance
at Domrémy, of the innocent and holy life of Joan of Arc, and to him
the very walls of her cottage birthplace will be eloquent: _lapides
clamabunt_.[161]


SONNET.

    Mark yonder gentle doe! her one loved fawn
    Close at her side, just where the leafy wood,
    With all its summer charms of solitude,
    Steps o’er the verdant edges of our lawn!
    Mark their shy grace at this chaste hour of dawn!
    While culling spicy birch-twigs, their cropped food
    Dew-drops impearl, and morning shadows brood
    O’er dells, towards which their timid feet are drawn.
    Thus have I seen, within a cloister’s shade,
    A widowed mother and one tender child
    Close at her side; one habit on them laid;
    Both, by a kindred exaltation mild,
    Led to the service of the Mother Maid,
    With her to seek Heaven’s peace through pathways undefiled.


DOMINIQUE DE GOURGUES,

_THE AVENGER OF THE HUGUENOTS IN FLORIDA, A CATHOLIC_.

The traveller between Bordeaux and Bayonne who takes an eastward train at
Morcenx, will arrive in less than an hour at Mont-de-Marsan, a small town
of four or five thousand inhabitants, on the borders of the Landes, at
the confluence of the Douze and Midou, which form the Midouze. Some say
it was founded on the site of an old temple of Mars, by Charlemagne, on
his return from Roncesvalles. If so, the place was afterwards destroyed
by the Saracen or Norman invaders, for the fifth Vicomte de Marsan,
desirous of purging the forest of Maremsin of the robbers who endangered
the lives and property of the merchants and pilgrims who passed that
way, built a castle at the junction of the two rivers, on a spot which
bore a name of ominous meaning: _Maü-pas_, or _Mauvais-pas_--doubtless
a bad place to fall into, on account of the frequent robberies. Around
this castle gathered the vassals of the neighboring abbey of S. Sever for
protection. They came from the parish of S. Pierre-du-Mont, and brought
their devotion to S. Peter with them. The arms of the town are still two
keys _en pal_, between the letters M. M. (Mons Martianus); and the parish
church that stood till the Revolution, was dedicated to S. Peter, where
the mayor, before entering on his functions, took the following curious
oath in three languages--the Gascon, Latin, and French:

    Per Diu et per aquet monsegné Saint Pé,
    Jou juri que bon et lejau a la bille jou seré
    Lous bens daquere jou proucureré,
    Et lous maux esbiteré.
    Las causes doubtouses dab conselt jou feré,
    Justice tan au petit com au gros jou faré,
    Com an heit lous autes maires et millou si jou sé,
    Ansi me adjudé Diu et monsegné Saint Pé.

    Per Deum et sanctum Petrum juro
    Quod urbi bonus et legalis ero,
    Ejus bona procurabo,
    Ejus mala vitabo:
    Dubia faciam cum consilio,
    Et justitiam tam parvo quam magno,
    Sicut alii magistratus et melius si scio,
    Sic non ero sine Dei ac sancti Petri adjutorio.

    Je jure par le Dieu vivant et par Saint Pierre,
    Que jè seray bon et légal à la ville;
    Que j’en procureray les biens et eviteray les maux,
    Que je ne feray jamais les choses douteuses sans conseil,
    Que je feray justice, au petit comme au grand,
    De même que les autres maires, et mieux si je scay;
    Ainsi me puisse toujours ayder mon Dieu et Saint Pierre.[162]

In 1256, the town passed into the possession of the lords of Béarn,
and to keep it in due subjection Gaston Phœbus built the castle
of _Nou-li-bos_, _i.e._, _You-do-not-wish-it-there_, referring to
the opposition of the inhabitants--a name that recalls the famous
_Quiquengrogne_ erected by Anne of Bretagne to keep the town of S. Malo
in check, and the _Bridle_ built by Louis XII. at the entrance of the
harbor of Genoa.

Calvinism, of course, took some root here in the time of Jeanne d’Albret.
Theodore Beza sent preachers to win over the people, but the Catholics
organized under the Seigneur de Ravignan and for a while kept the
Huguenots from any excesses. Montgomery, however, soon swept over the
country, sacking all the churches and monasteries, many of which he razed
to the ground. Among these was the convent of Bayries, a community of
Clarist nuns in the vicinity of Mont-de-Marsan, founded in 1270 by Gaston
Phœbus and his wife Amate, which numbered Catherine d’Albret, a cousin
of Francis I., among its abbesses. Marie d’Albret, another relative of
the king’s, was abbess when the marriage between him and Eleanore of
Austria took place here, July 6, 1530. This house of historic interest
was stripped of every valuable by the Huguenots, and then burned to the
ground, the nuns barely escaping with their lives.

The redoubtable Monluc soon avenged all these sacrileges by taking
Mont-de-Marsan, and despatching all who opposed the passage of his
troops. The few Huguenot soldiers left, he threw from the windows of the
formidable _Nou-li-bos_, to avenge, as he said, the brother-in-arms,
whose officers were treacherously butchered by the Huguenots after the
capitulation of Orthez.

This castle of terrible memory has a pleasanter association, for in it
passed the early childhood of the poet François Le Poulchre, the king’s
knight, and lord of La Motte-Messemé, who boasted of descending from the
ancient Roman consul, Appius Pulcher, who displayed such conspicuous
valor under the famous Lucullus,

    “Un Appius Pulcher, gentilhomme Romain,
    Duquel s’est maintenu le nom de main en main
    Jusques au temps présent, jusqu’à moi qui le porte.”

He took for his device: _Suum cuique pulchrum_, in allusion to his name.

As his father was superintendent of the household of Margaret, queen
of Navarre, sister of Francis I., François Le Poulchre had the honor
of having that king for his godfather, and Margaret for his godmother.
The latter conceived such an affection for him that she kept him at her
castle at Marsan, and made him eat at her table as soon as he was old
enough. He says himself:

    “J’eus l’honneur pour parrain d’avoir le roi François,
    Pour marraine sa sœur, Royne des Navarrois,
    Qui me favorisa jusque là elle mesme
    Me tenir sur les fons le iour de mon baptesme,
    Faict par un grand preslat l’evesque de Loron. (Oloron).
    …
    “Me faisant mesmement à sa table manger
    En présence des siens, ou de quelque estranger
    Qui peut y arriver, ne changeant onc de place.”

With little taste for study Le Poulchre left college at an early age to
embrace the profession of arms.

    “Avecque ce grand duc, non moins vaillant que bon,
    Race de Saint Louis, dit Louis de Bourbon,”

--that is to say, under the great Condé. He has given us his own life
and adventures under the title of _Les honnestes Loisirs du Seigneur de
la Motte-Messemé_, which is divided into seven books bearing the title
of the seven planets, as the history of Herodotus bears the name of the
nine muses, and the poetical Zodiac of Marcellus Palingenesis bears the
names of the twelve signs of the zodiac. To compose it, he retired to the
Château de Bouzemont in Lorraine. We trust he was more skilful in the use
of the sword than of the pen. One of his sonnets, however, is pleasing.
It is like a single flower in a barren parterre. It is addressed to
the _dame de ses pensées_, to whom, after acknowledging she hears Mass
devoutly, fasts with due strictness, goes to confession regularly, and
is always charitable to the poor, he says:

    “Vous faictes tout cela, mais ce seroit resver
    De croire que cela tout seul vous pust sauver.
    Ne vous y arrestez pas, je vous prie, Madame;
    D’aller en Paradis le plus certain moyen
    C’est de rendre à chacun ce que l’on a du sien:
    Rendez-moi donc mon cœur, vous sauverez vostre ame;”

--You do all this, but it is a dream to suppose this alone can save you.
Do not stop here, madam, I pray you; the surest means of gaining paradise
is to restore to every one what belongs to him: Give me back my heart,
then, and you will save your soul!

Among other historic memories evoked by Le Poulchre in his seven cantos,
he relates how, going to kiss the hand of the young King Charles IX.,
Anne d’Este,

                      “Veufve du grand Lorrain,
    Qu’avait meschantement d’une traisteresse main
    Blecé d’un coup de plomb Poltrot, son domestique,”

--came not to seek vengeance on Poltrot, for he had already been drawn
and quartered before St. Jean de Grève, but on Coligny, whom, in the
presence of the king, the Cardinal de Guise, and others, in the nave
of the chapel of the château de Vincennes, she accused of being an
accomplice in the crime of February 18, 1563.

It was not long after this the king,

                  “Se hastant de traverser les Lanes
    Pour aller voir sa sœur la Reyne des Espagnes,”

stopped at Mont-de-Marsan, where he made Le Poulchre _escuyer d’escuyrie
ordinaire_, as the poet does not fail to record, and shortly after he
received the collar of knighthood from the same royal hand.

The château of Gaston Phœbus, which had received so many princes and
princesses within its walls, and been the witness of so many tragedies,
was, after being taken anew from the Huguenots, totally demolished by
the order of Louis XIII A charming promenade, called the _Pépinière_,
surrounded by the Douze, is now the spot.

Mont-de-Marsan was formerly a centre of considerable trade, and the
entrepôt of the country around. Wine, grain, turpentine, wool, etc.,
were brought here to be sent down the Midouze. This was a source of
considerable revenue to the place, and explains the extensive warehouses,
now unused in consequence of the railway and the diversion of trade.
There is still a little wharf, where are moored several barks laden with
wood or turpentine, but there is not business enough to disturb the
quietness of the place. No one would suppose it had ever been the theatre
of terrible events. The most striking feature is a peculiar oblong
court, surrounded by houses of uniform style, with numerous balconies
for the spectators to witness the bull-fights occasionally held here--an
amusement that accords with the fiery nature and pastoral pursuits of
the people around, and is still clung to in several places in the Landes
and among the Pyrenees. This square is, by a singular anomaly, called
the _Place St. Roch_, from a saint regarded throughout the region as the
patron of animals; and they certainly have need of his protection in a
place where they are exposed to such cruelty.

Such are some of the characteristics and memories of the small inland
town in which was born Dominique de Gourgues, the leader of the
celebrated expedition against the Spaniards in Florida. He was the third
son of Jean de Gourgues and Isabella de Lau, his wife.

He was born in the year 1537, in an age of religious conflict, when
party spirit ran too high for any one to remain neutral, whatever their
grade of piety. It might therefore seem surprising there should ever have
been any doubt as to the religious convictions of De Gourgues. Because
he was the avenger of the massacre of the Huguenots in Florida, he has
often been identified with the Protestant party. Because he lived in an
age when provincial and sectarian spirit often prevailed over patriotism,
it has been taken for granted that sympathy with the religious sentiments
of the victims of the Spaniards could alone have induced him to sell
his property to provide for a distant and dangerous expedition that
would never repay him even if successful. In a work entitled, _La
France Protestante_, by MM. Haag, a kind of dictionary of Protestant
celebrities in France, issued in 1853 by a proselyting press, whose works
are everywhere to be found, De Gourgues is made a Huguenot. No proof is
given, no doubt expressed--the surest and shortest way of carrying one’s
point in these days. Assurance always produces a certain effect even
on the thoughtfully-minded. They take it for granted it has some real
foundation.

The _Revue Protestante_[163] makes the same assertion, appealing to De
Thou and other historians.

Francis Parkman, in his _Pioneers of France in the New World_, says:
“There was a gentleman of Mont-de-Marsan, Dominique de Gourgues, a
soldier of ancient birth and high renown. That he was a Huguenot is not
certain. The Spanish annalist Barcia calls him a terrible heretic; but
the French Jesuit, Charlevoix, anxious the faithful should share the
glory of his exploits, affirms, that, like his ancestors before him, he
was a good Catholic. If so, his faith sat lightly upon him, and Catholic
or heretic, he hated the Spaniards with a mortal hate.”

The English made the Catholic Church responsible for the massacre of
the Huguenots. The account of Le Moyne, published in England under the
patronage of Raleigh, inflamed anew the public mind against Catholicity,
and the terrible words of the Spanish leader, _El que fuere herege
morira_, were regarded as the echo of the church. Consequently the
avengers of the deed were supposed to be necessarily Protestants--not
only De Gourgues, but all his followers. Nor is this all. The whole
family of the latter is said to have been converted to Calvinism in the
XVIth century.

M. le Vicomte de Gourgues, the present representative of the family,
desirous of vindicating the orthodoxy of his ancestors, and, in
particular, of so illustrious a relative as Dominique de Gourgues, has
given to the public incontrovertible proofs that the whole family was
eminently Catholic, that Dominique lived and died in the faith, and that
his expedition to Florida was a patriotic deed in which religious zeal
had no part. He felt the anger of a man of honor against the cruelty of
the Spaniards. A great national injury was to be avenged, and he was too
good a soldier not to wish to be foremost in the conflict. And perhaps
some private motives excited him to vengeance, for he had been taken
himself by the Spaniards, and narrowly escaped death at their hands,
and could therefore feel for these new victims of their barbarity.
Moreover, his expedition was the expression of public sentiment in
France concerning the massacre--the mere outburst of the electric current
that ran over the country at such an insult to the honor of France.
The assertion that De Gourgues was a Protestant is a modern invention
without a shadow of foundation. None of the old French historians express
any doubt as to his orthodoxy. Even the romances in which he figures
represent him as a Catholic, as if his religion were a prominent feature
in his character. Some years ago, a novel was published in the _Siècle_
called “La Peine du Talion,” of which the Chevalier de Gourgues is the
hero, and on his Catholicity turns the interest of the story. He is
represented as a brilliant cavalier who has served in the wars of Italy,
and is now an officer in the service of the Duke of Guise, whose favor
he enjoys. An attachment is formed between him and Estiennette de Nérac,
whose hand he requests in marriage. The Seigneur de Nérac expresses great
surprise that Messire Dominique should forget the insuperable abyss there
is between an ardent Catholic in the service of the house of Lorraine and
his Protestant daughter.

But for more serious proofs. And first let us examine the orthodoxy of
Dominique de Gourgues’ family.

That his parents were Catholics is proved by the list of those who
appeared in the ban and arrière-ban at Mont-de-Marsan, March 4, 1537.
“Noble Jean de Gourgues, Seigneur de Gaube and Monlezun, present at the
convocation held in this town by order of the king.” And Isabella de
Lau, his wife, requests in her will “to be buried in the church of the
convent of the Cordeliers at Mont-de-Marsan,[164] before the chapel of
the Conception where the ancestors of the said De Gourgues are buried.”
It is sure, therefore, that Dominique was baptized in the Catholic Church
at Mont-de-Marsan.

Dominique and his brother Ogier left their native place in early life
and established themselves at Bordeaux. The former was never married,
and seems to have made his home with his brother, to whom he was greatly
attached. At the château de Vayries there were, a few years ago, four
old evergreen trees of some foreign species, at the corners of the lawn
before the terrace, said by tradition to have been planted by the hero of
Florida.

Ogier became king’s counsellor in the council of state, and president
of the treasury in Guienne, and, after serving his country faithfully
under five kings, died full of years and honors at his house in Bordeaux,
“without leaving the like of his quality in Guyenne.” He took part in
all the affairs of the province, in the accounts of which we find many
things significant of his religious convictions. Monluc mentions him in
his _Commentaries_, as offering to procure wheat and cattle from the
Landes, on his own credit, when it was proposed to fortify the coast to
defeat the projects of the Huguenots. He placed his property as much as
possible at the disposal of the king. He manifested great interest in the
reduction of La Rochelle, and lent twenty-three hundred livres to enable
the Baron de la Gardie to despatch his galleys to the siege, as is shown
by the following letter from the king:

“For the payment of my galleys which I have ordered Baron de la Gardie,
the general, to despatch promptly to the coast of Bretagne on a service
of great importance, … I write praying you to advance to Sieur Felix
the sums I have assigned for this purpose, … trusting that, as in the
past you have never spared your means and substance in my service,
you will spare them still less in this urgent necessity. I have been
advised, however, by the said Sieur de la Gardie that you have not yet
lent your aid, which I am persuaded proceeds from want of means; but
well knowing the credit you have in my city of Bordeaux, and trusting to
your good-will, I send this line to beg you, in continuation of the good
and acceptable services I have heretofore received from you in public
affairs, and on other occasions which have presented themselves, to do
me likewise this other in so extreme a need, to advance and place in the
hands of the said Felix the sums I have assigned in aid, not only of
the said Sieur de la Gardie, but the other captains of my said galleys,
which I will pay and reimburse you, or those who by your favor and credit
shall have advanced them.… (Hoping) that you have lessened in no way the
extreme affection you have had till the present, in all that relates to
my service, which I will not forget in due time or fail to recognize,
… to gratify you in every way possible, … I finish praying God, Sr. de
Gourgues, to have you in his holy keeping.--Given at Gaillon the 24th of
May, 1571.

                                                               “CHARLES.”

The appeal was not in vain, as we have said.

Máréchal de Matignon, in a letter to the king in 1585, renders the
following fine testimony concerning Ogier de Gourgues:

“Sire, the pestilence in this city continues to such a degree that there
is not a person, with the means of living elsewhere, who has not left it,
and there are now only the Srs. Premier President and De Gourgues, who
remain out of the special affection they have for your service.”

Ogier de Gourgues had two sons, Antoine and Marc Antoine. Antoine, the
elder, presumed by MM. Haag and others to be a Protestant, is thus spoken
of in the _Chronique Bourdeloyse_, published in 1672:

“The château de Castillon, in Médoc, having been surprised by some
troops, has been restored to the obedience of the king and the Seigneur
de Matignon in eight days by Capt. de Gourgues, _mestre de camp_ of a
French regiment, and cousin of him who attacked the Spaniards in Florida.”

And in another place: “And after some sorties from the garrison of Blaye,
in which Capt. de Gourgues, while fighting valiantly, was wounded, and
after some days died, the said Seigneur de Matignon raised the siege.”

Of course, Marshal de Matignon’s lieutenant could not be a Huguenot.
Besides, the account of the expenses at the grand funeral services of
Capt. Antoine de Gourgues, attended by all the religious communities in
Bordeaux, is still extant. By this we find seven livres are paid the
Carmelite monks for their services three days, and the use of several
objects for the funeral; three crowns to the canons of St. André for
High Mass and the burial service; twenty sols to the Brothers of the
Observance for three days’ assistance and the use of robes; four crowns
to the religious of the Chapelet for aiding in the three days’ service;
five sols to the Brothers of Mary for the same; two crowns to twenty-four
priests who recited prayers around the bier; fifty-one sols each to four
women who dressed the body and remained with it day and night; one sol
apiece given to three thousand poor on the day of burial, and six deniers
the following day, etc., etc. There is a _chapelle ardente_, hung with
mourning, emblazoned with the family arms, the bells are tolled two days,
and all the clergy and poor follow him to the grave, with the most solemn
rites of the Catholic Church.

Marc Antoine, the second son of Ogier de Gourgues, was a zealous
defender of the Catholic faith. He travelled all through Europe in his
youth, studied theology at the Roman college, and, gifted with uncommon
eloquence, though he did not take Orders, held public controversies
against Calvinism and a discussion with Scaliger, as is shown by the
eulogy at his funeral, which took place at Bordeaux. Some years after
those public vindications of the Catholic faith, he went to England,
where he was received with great distinction by Queen Elizabeth, a fact
worthy of notice, as the favor she manifested to Dominique has been
considered as an argument in proof of his Protestant proclivities. She
liked to gather around her men of certain celebrity, and those who
were in her good graces were not always in sympathy with her religious
notions, as is shown in the case of Marc Antoine.

Marc Antoine became Premier President of the Parliament of Bordeaux, and
was charged with all the preparations relative to the fulfilment of the
marriage between Louis XIII. and the Infanta of Austria--a difficult
mission, because the Huguenots, opposed to the alliance, were resolved
to frustrate it. M. O’Reilly, in his _Histoire de Bordeaux_, says: “They
endeavored to seize the person of the king in the environs of Guitre,
but he arrived at Bordeaux without any disaster, thanks to the excellent
arrangements made by President de Gourgues.”

Marc Antoine not only made foundations in favor of the Jesuits and
Carmelites, but his second wife, Olive de Lestonnac, left thirty thousand
livres to the Recollects of Sainte Foy, to build a residence where they
could labor for the conversion of the Huguenots. It would seem as if
every member of the family were animated with a particular zeal for the
Catholic religion.

In 1690 we find Jacques Joseph de Gourgues Bishop of Bazas.

After the foregoing proofs, no possible doubt can be felt concerning
the stanch Catholicity of the De Gourgues family. As for Dominique,
but little is known of his life previous to his expedition to Florida.
Though he afterwards belonged to the royal navy, it appears that he first
served on land and took part in the Italian campaign under Maréchal de
Strozzi. His last feat of arms in Italy, says one of his biographers,
was to sustain a siege, in 1557, with thirty men against a corps of
Spanish troops. The fort held was taken by assault, and the garrison all
slaughtered, except De Gourgues, who was spared, to be sent ignominiously
to row on the galleys. His boat being captured by the Turks on the coast
of Sicily, he was taken to Rhodes and thence to Constantinople. But
his fate was not changed; he continued to serve in the galleys. Again
putting to sea, he was taken and set at liberty by Mathurin Romegas,
commander of the galleys of Malta and Knight of S. John of Jerusalem.
The deliverer of the future hero of Florida was likewise a Gascon. His
tombstone may still be seen in the nave of the nuns’ church of Trinità
de’ Monti at Rome, the inscription half effaced by the feet of the
worshippers.

Dominique now returned to France, and after a voyage to Brazil and the
Indies, he entered the service of the house of Lorraine, who employed him
on several private occasions against the Huguenots. His expedition to
Florida did not take place till the year 1567. We have seen him fighting
against the Spaniards in Italy, and subjected by them to the utmost
degradation. It is not surprising he burned to avenge the murder of his
companions-in-arms and the severe treatment he had endured, as well
as to wipe out the stain on the national honor caused by the massacre
of his fellow-countrymen in Florida. He had too narrowly escaped the
Spanish sword himself not to feel the deepest sympathy in their fate. He
afterwards drew up himself an account of his expedition, which is full
of thrilling interest. It has been published, but the original is in the
Bibliothèque Impériale at St. Germain.

The establishment of a French colony in Florida grew out of the civil
and religious contests of the XVIth century. Admiral de Coligni, with
the view of providing his co-religionists a safe asylum beyond the
seas, induced Charles IX. to allow five or six hundred Huguenots under
Jean Ribault to embark at Dieppe, Feb. 18, 1561, in order to establish
themselves in Florida. They landed at the mouth of the Rio San Mateo on
the 1st of May, and built a fort on an island, which they called Fort
Charles, in honor of their sovereign. The return of Ribault to France led
to a relaxation of discipline, and the consequent ruin of the colony.
Other companies, also favored by Coligni, were sent in 1564 and 1565,
under Laudonnière and the same Ribault, to place the colony on a better
footing. Laudonnière secured the friendship of the Indians, whose chief,
Satirova, hastened to offer his support. But the destitution to which the
colony was reduced weakened the attachment of the natives, and some acts
of piracy exasperated the Spaniards, who regarded them as intruders, and
resolved on their destruction.

Pedro Melendez appeared with six vessels before Fort Caroline and
summoned Laudonnière and Ribault to surrender, promising to spare those
who were Catholics, but declaring all heretics should be put to death.
They defended themselves valiantly, and even took the offensive, and
had it not been for a tempest, perhaps bravery would have won the day
over the number of the enemy. But we need not give details which are
familiar to all. The fort fell into the hands of Melendez, and all,
except Laudonnière and one of his companions who evaded the search, were
put to death, “not as French, but as heretics,” if we are to believe an
inscription left on the spot. Nothing could be more horrible than this
atrocious murder of four hundred inoffensive colonists. The Spaniards
even tore out the eyes of their victims, stuck them on the point of their
daggers, and hurled them against the French on the water. The skin of
Ribault was sent to the King of Spain. And to crown so barbarous a deed,
they heaped together the bodies of the men, women, and children, and
kindling a great fire, reduced them to ashes, with savage howlings.

Whatever the zeal of the Spanish for the Catholic religion, we may
naturally suppose it was not the only motive that animated them on this
occasion. Their eagerness to take possession of the country and fortify
it, instead of requesting Charles IX. to send a Catholic colony to
replace the Huguenots, shows that other motives influenced them. Religion
was only a cloak. Moreri, in his _Dictionnaire Historique_, 1712, says:
“They hung the French under the pretext they were Lutherans.”

Laudonnière, who escaped, brought the fearful details of this butchery
to France. The rage was universal. Notwithstanding the antipathy of the
court to the religion of the majority of the victims, it has been too
strongly asserted that all sense of national honor was lost in view of
the religious aspect of the case. The government of Charles IX. was too
weak to insist on complete reparation, but his letters to the French
Ambassador at Madrid prove he demanded Philip II. should chastise those
who were guilty of the massacre.[165] No reparation, however, was made,
and the cruelties of Melendez not only remained unpunished, but he was
loaded with honors.

Père Daniel, in his _History_, says: “This inhumanity (of Melendez),
instead of being punished by the government of Spain when complaint was
made, was praised, and those who had a share in it rewarded. The unhappy
state of affairs in the kingdom (France), in consequence of the civil
wars, prevented the king from taking vengeance, and three years passed
away without the court’s thinking of exacting justice. Capt. Gourgues,
a man who sought to distinguish himself, and loved glory more than
anything else, resolved to avenge the insult to the French nation, and
without looking for any other reward but success and renown, undertook
the expedition at his own expense in spite of the danger and every
expectation of being disavowed at court.… This deed, that may be numbered
among the most memorable ever done of the kind, wiped out the affront
inflicted on the French nation.”

And the account from the Imperial library says: “The traitors and
murderers, instead of being blamed and punished in Spain, were honored
with great estates and dignities. All the French nation expected such
an injury to the king and the whole nation would soon be avenged by the
public authorities, but this expectation being disappointed for the space
of three years, it was hoped some private individual would be found to
undertake a deed so essential to the honor and reputation of France.
There were many who would have been glad of the renown to be won by such
an enterprise, but it could not be undertaken without great expense; the
result, for many reasons, was uncertain, hazardous, and full of peril;
and even if successfully executed, it might not be exempt from calumny.
And it was difficult to find any one willing to incur this calumny by the
loss of his property, and an infinite number of difficulties and dangers.”

It was not Laudonnière who went to take vengeance on the Spaniards. It
was no agent of Coligni’s. It was not even one of the Huguenots, though
their brothers’ blood cried from the ground, who lent his ear to the
terrible appeal. No; the brave heart who atoned for the weakness of the
sovereign belonged to a devoted Catholic family of the Landes. It was a
soldier who had served under the Strozzi in Italy, and afterwards under
the Guises in France, who lost sight of religious distinctions in view of
his country’s disgrace, and nobly resolved to become the avenger of the
Huguenots.

Dominique de Gourgues began his preparations early in the year 1567. He
sold some of his property, or, as stated by others, his brother Ogier
advanced the money necessary for fitting out the expedition. He armed two
vessels small enough to enter the large rivers, and a patache which, when
there was lack of wind, could be propelled by oars. He manned them with
eighty sailors and one hundred and fifty soldiers, among whom we find
some of the noble, as well as plebeian, names of Gascony. Monluc, the
governor of Bordeaux, allowed him to depart on a pretended expedition to
the coast of Africa. It was the 22d of August. De Gourgues even concealed
the object of the voyage from his followers, which shows how unreasonable
it is to regard them as Protestants going to avenge a Protestant cause,
as many suppose. The names of only a few of them are known, and nothing
in particular of these. Capt. Cazenove, of a noble family near Agen that
still exists, commanded one of the vessels. Another is called Bierre
by MM. Haag, and De Berre by M. de Barbot, and one of the captains of
the Baron de la Gardie’s galleys was named Loys de Berre, of course a
stanch Catholic. But we see no reason for religious distinctions in
the case. The important thing was to have brave, resolute men. And it
is certain they knew nothing of the object of the expedition till they
arrived at Cape St. Antoine. It is said when they learned it, “they were
at first surprised and dissatisfied,” which does not look much like
sympathy for slaughtered co-religionists. Parkman says: “There (in Cuba)
he gathered his followers about him and addressed them with his fiery
Gascon eloquence.… He painted with angry rhetoric the butcheries of Fort
Caroline and St. Augustine. ‘What disgrace,’ he cried, ‘if such an insult
should pass unpunished! What glory to us if we avenge it! To this I have
devoted my fortune. I relied on you. I thought you jealous enough of your
country’s glory to sacrifice life itself in a cause like this. Was I
deceived? I will show you the way; I will be always at your head; I will
bear the brunt of the danger. Will you refuse to follow me?’ The sparks
fell among gunpowder. The combustible French nature bursts into flame.”

There is not a word in this address of their being Huguenots, though free
to express his sentiments at such a distance from their native land. The
only appeal is--glory and France.

It is unnecessary to relate the wonderful _coup-de-main_ by which the
three forts of the Spanish were taken. Every one knows how he hung up
the thirty Spaniards who were left, on the same trees on which his
fellow-countrymen had been hung, and in place of the inscription left by
Melendez, he graved with a red-hot iron on a pine slab: “This is not done
to Spaniards, but to treacherous robbers and assassins.” One of these
victims confessed the justice of the act, as he had hung five of the
Huguenots with his own hand.

The _Revue des Deux Mondes_ calls the retaliation of the bold Landais
“savage,” and certainly grave moral reasons can be brought against such
a proceeding. But everything was exceptional in this historic episode,
and we must not regard it according to the ideas of the present age. The
disinterested and heroic daring of De Gourgues cannot be denied, nor can
any one help applauding his patriotic wish to repair the injured honor of
the nation. That he looked upon his deed as one of righteous vengeance
is sure. How solemn and religious is his language in addressing his
followers after his victory:

“My friends, let us give thanks to God for the success he has accorded
to our enterprise. It was he who saved us from danger in the tempest off
Cape Finibus Terræ, at Hispaniola, Cuba, and the river of Halimacany!
It was he who inclined the hearts of the savages to aid us! It was he
who blinded the understanding of the Spaniards, so they were unable to
discover our forces, or avail themselves of their own! They were four
to our one, strongly intrenched, and well provided with artillery, and
supplies of food and ammunition. We only had justice on our side, and
yet we have conquered them with but little trouble. It is not to our
strength, but to God alone we owe the victory. Let us thank him, my
friends, and never forget the benefits we have received from him. Let us
pray him to continue his favor towards us, to guide us on our way back
and preserve us from all danger; pray him also to vouchsafe to dispose
the hearts of men so that the many dangers we have incurred and the
fatigues we have endured may find grace and favor before our king and
before all France, as we had no other motive but the service of the king
and the honor of our country!”

They set sail May 3, and arrived at La Rochelle the 6th of June. De
Gourgues went immediately to Bordeaux to render an account of his
voyage to Monluc, who, as Père Daniel says, loaded him with praises and
caresses, which, with his antipathy to Huguenotism, he would hardly
have done had De Gourgues been a Huguenot in the service of Huguenots.
If the latter did not inform him before his departure of the object of
his expedition, it was because he knew Monluc was anxious to avoid all
occasion of rupture with Spain. MM. Haag say Monluc had received orders
to forbid all expeditions of the kind. And though De Gourgues did not
doubt the approbation of the governor, he did not wish to compromise him
in the eyes of the king.

De Gourgues received not only a flattering welcome from Monluc but the
acclamations of the entire nation. The wish for vengeance had been
universal, and he was applauded for realizing it. Perhaps it was this
outburst of patriotism that forgot all religious animosities which led
that sagacious diplomatist, François de Noailles, at this very time
Bishop of Dax, a place not far from Mont-de-Marsan, to assure the king
the best means of putting an end to the civil dissensions of the country
was to declare war against Spain.

Had De Gourgues been a Huguenot he would probably have disposed of his
war prizes at La Rochelle, where he first touched, thereby rendering his
party a service by supplying them with arms. Instead of that, he took
them to Bordeaux, and Monluc bought them to arm the city against the
Huguenots, as is shown by existing documents estimating their value,
dated Aug. 27, 1568.

“This day appeared before me Capt. Dominique de Gourgues requesting the
appraisement of nine pieces of artillery, one cannon, a culverin, and
three _moyennes_, which he has brought to this said city from the voyage
he has lately made, and taken in the fort the French had built, but which
was afterwards seized by one Pierre Malendes, a Spaniard.… Presented
themselves before us to make the said appraisement and valuation: Antoine
de Cassagnet, lord of Cassagnet and Tilhadet, Knight of the Order of the
King, and governor of the city and country of Bordeaux in the absence
of Sr. de Monluc; Jehan de Monluc, Knight of the Order of St. John of
Jerusalem, gentleman in ordinary of the king’s chamber, and colonel of
the infantry of Guienne; Jacques Descar, Knight of the Order of the King,
captain of fifty men-at-arms of his ordinance, captain and governor of
the Château du Ha in the said city and province of Guienne; Charles de
Monferrand, also Knight of the Order of the King; Pierre de Savignac,
also Knight of the same order; and Loys de Lur, Seigneur d’Uza, whom,
etc.”

All these persons to whom De Gourgues thus confided his interests were
Catholic lords of Guienne, whose religious convictions could not be
doubted, and with whom he must have been on intimate terms to induce them
to take the trouble to estimate the value of his war-prizes.

But it is said Charles IX. and his court condemned De Gourgues’ act. M.
de Lacaze, in his biography, says: “He received from his compatriots
the liveliest testimonies of admiration and gratitude; but it was not
the same at court, where his courage and achievements were rewarded
by ingratitude and persecution. The Spanish ambassador demanded his
head, and the heroic Frenchman was obliged to conceal himself at Rouen
to escape death. He was living in a state bordering on want when Queen
Elizabeth offered him command of a fleet she was going to send to the
assistance of King Antonio of Portugal; but enfeebled by age, chagrin,
and fatigue, Gourgues was unable to profit by so brilliant an offer. He
died on his way to London.”

Many of these statements need to be greatly modified, as we shall show.

De Thou says: “At his return he is badly received by the court, which is
_wholly Spanish_. The king treats him as a disturber of the public peace.”

There is no doubt the king feared a rupture with Spain, in consequence
of the civil dissensions in his kingdom. M. de Monluc, in his
_Commentaries_, alluding to his son’s expedition to Africa, expressed a
fear of its leading to disturbance with Spain. Personally, he desired
war, but did not wish him to draw upon himself the censure of the
government. What he says explains the reception of De Gourgues at a court
where Spanish influence predominated, and leaves no doubt the latter was
only received as the son of Monluc himself would have been, had he given
cause for war with Spain. He was, however, soon honorably received into
service, for we find him, in August, 1568, attached to the royal navy; so
he could not, as he states, go to Dax, being “prevented by the affairs of
the king and the service of the galleys.”

We find De Gourgues’ vessel, the _Charles_, named in an act of October
22, 1568, in which it is said that Loys de Lur, Vicomte d’Uza, was
“general-in-chief of the army, and of the vessels _Charles_, _Catherine_,
etc., which will at once set sail by order of M. de Monluc.” These
vessels were to guard the mouth of the Gironde.

There are still several documents in the archives of the department of
the Gironde which refer to De Gourgues’ official duties at this time.
From them we give the following extracts:

“Know all men that on this 14th of March, 1572, appeared before me,
Jehan Castaigne, etc., for the purpose of selling by these presents to
Dominique de Gourgues, squire and gentleman in ordinary of the king’s
chamber, … four hundred quintals of biscuit, good and salable, for the
sum of six livres and fifteen sols for each of said quintals.[166]…”

Arcère speaks of an armament fitted out at Brouage by Philip de Strozzi,
as if to ravage the Spanish coasts of America--a cloak to his real
design. He provided this fleet with provisions, munitions of war, etc.,
with no appearance of haste, though so late in the season. Coligni,
therefore, was warned.

We find a letter from Charles IX. to Dominique de Gourgues on the
subject, written fifteen days after St. Bartholomew’s Day, when there was
no need of concealing his real designs:

    “CAPTAIN GOURGUES: As I have written my cousin, the Sire de
    Strozzy, to approve his appointing you to go on a voyage of
    discovery, with the general consent of the company, I trust
    this letter will find you ready to set sail. I beg to warn you,
    before setting out, not to touch at any place belonging to my
    brother-in-law, or any prince friendly to me, and with whom I
    am at peace. Above all, fear to disobey me if you desire my
    approbation, and the more, because I have more need than I once
    had of preserving the friendship of all my neighbors. Conduct
    yourself, therefore, wisely, and according to my intentions,
    and I will remember the service you do me. Praying God, Captain
    Gourgues, to have you in his keeping.

                                                             CHARLES.

    “PARIS, September 14, 1572.”

This letter proves the king’s serious intention of sending the fleet
abroad, and contains a somewhat severe warning not to repeat his bold
deeds in Florida.

D’Aubigné declares that these vessels were really intended to attack the
Spanish settlements in America, but their destination was changed, and
they served at the siege of La Rochelle, “to the great displeasure of
those who were hoping for a voyage at sea.”

Arcère, in his _Histoire de la Rochelle_, thus speaks of the _Charles_
at the siege of that city: “The king’s fleet was composed of six galleys
and nine vessels. The largest of these vessels was called the _Charles_.
The admiral’s, named the _Grand Biscayen_, was under the Vicomte d’Uza,
commander of the fleet in the absence of the Baron de la Gardie.
Montgomery advanced as if to engage in combat, but he encountered full
fire from the enemy’s fleet; the vessel he commanded, pierced by a ball,
would have sunk without speedy assistance, and he decided to retreat.”

That Dominique de Gourgues was in command of the _Charles_ on this
occasion is proved by a document in possession of the present Vicomte
de Gourgues, which states that Dominique, by an act signed by the king
in council, August 10, 1578, was paid the sum of seven thousand crowns
“for services rendered at and before the siege of La Rochelle with his
vessel, the _Charles_, and a patache called the _Desperada_.”

This is the latest known document referring to the public services of
Dominique de Gourgues. There is, however, another letter from the king
referring to another service a few years previous, and confirming the
fact that the _Charles_ was under his command: “Capt. Gourgues: After
deliberating about using some of the largest and best vessels of my
navy before the city of La Rochelle--in the number of which is the
_Charles_, which belongs to you--for the embarkation of four thousand
soldiers intended for Poland, I have concluded to send you this present
to notify you at once of my intention, praying you above all, as you love
the welfare of my service, to give orders that your vessel be equipped
as soon as it can be done, and ordered to Havre de Grace, where it is
necessary to arrive by the 12th or 13th of August next; and, that you
arrive with greater security, it will be expedient for your vessel to
join the others ordered on the same voyage, that you may go in company
to said Havre. I beg you, therefore, to proceed for this purpose to
Bordeaux, where the Sire de Berre is to despatch twelve cannons and
other arms, that are also to go to said Havre with all speed. Endeavor
to render the service I expect of you in that place. Praying God that he
have you, Captain Gourgues, in his holy and safe keeping,

                                                                “CHARLES.

“GAILLON, July 2, 1573.”

Such are some of the records of the public services of Dominique de
Gourgues after the Florida expedition. Of course his achievements
were not rewarded as they should have been. Pedro Melendez was created
marquis for his barbarous deed and enriched with estates. The brave
Landais, who took vengeance, merited far more. But, as we have shown,
he still remained in the king’s service, and retained, or regained, his
confidence. And his exploit has always been regarded as one of the most
brilliant episodes of French history. Châteaubriand, blaming the author
of the _Henriade_ for having recourse to threadbare examples from ancient
times, says “the Chevalier de Gourgues offered him one of the most
thrilling of episodes.”

We find a private paper dated January 14, 1580, in which Dominique de
Gourgues gives Romarine de Mesmes, _damoyselle_, his aunt, power and
authority to receive the fruits, profits, and emoluments of all his
cattle and real estate in the Vicomté de Marsan, which shows that he did
not sell all his property to provide for the expedition to Florida, or
die in want, as has been stated.

Queen Elizabeth of England offered him command of a fleet to aid Don
Antonio of Portugal in the war against Spain; but this honor is no
proof of his being regarded by her as a Protestant, but rather of his
well-known hatred of the Spanish, for it was to aid one Catholic nation
against another. It was on his way to take command of this fleet that he
fell ill at Tours, in which he died in the year 1583. He was buried with
honor in the abbatial church of S. Martin of Tours--the crowning proof
that Dominique de Gourgues was a genuine Catholic.


THE LADDER OF LIFE.

There are a great many rounds in the ladder of life, though simple
youths have always fancied that a few gallant steps would take them to
the summit of riches and power. Now the top-round of this ladder is not
the presidency of any railroad or country, nor even the possession of
renowned genius; for it oddly happens that when one sits down upon it,
then, be he ever so high up in life, he has really begun to descend.
Those who put velvet cushions to their particular rounds, and squat at
ease with a view of blocking up the rise of other good folks, do not know
they are going down the other side of the ladder; but such is the fact.
Many thrifty men have, in their own minds, gone far up its life-steps,
when, verily, they were descending them fast; and poor people without
number have in all men’s eyes been travelling downward, though in truth
they have journeyed higher by descent than others could by rising. So
many slippery and delusive ways has this magical ladder that we may say
it is as various as men’s minds. One may slip through its rounds out of
the common way of ascent, and find himself going down when he ought to be
going up; and vain toilers have ever fancied that they were mounting to
the clouds when everybody else must have seen they were still at the same
old rounds. Ambitious heroes have made the same mistake, if indeed the
particular ladder which they have imagined for themselves has not itself
been sliding down all the while they have been seeking vainglory by its
steps.

The ladder of life is an infinite ladder. It is full of indirections to
suit the abilities, and of attractions to suit the tastes of climbers.
You may work at a forge, or sail the sea, or trade in money and goods,
or hear operas, or write romances, or wander over mountains, or go to
church, while living thereon; but you must go up or go down, and, anyway,
you will have some toiling to do. Everywhere on the ladder is trouble
save in careful steps, and since human progress is so illusory, many
honest persons rather feared to fall than aspire.


NEW PUBLICATIONS.

    THE SPIRIT OF FAITH; or, What must I Do to Believe? Five
    Lectures delivered at S. Peter’s, Cardiff, by the Right
    Reverend Bishop Hedley, O.S.B. New York: The Catholic
    Publication Society. 1875.

When we noticed these lectures last month, we had not found time to do
more than glance at them. But having since discovered their very uncommon
merit, we feel bound to let our readers know it.

Never--we do not say seldom, but never--have we seen such a happy
combination of simplicity with force. The bishop’s English, by itself,
is a treat. His style has all the ease of conversation; here and
there rising into eloquence, or delighting us with master-strokes of
description and illustration. Then, as to the argument of his book, it is
so amiable and courteous that no one can take offence; yet the points are
put with stern fidelity and driven home with ruthless cogency.

The title speaks for itself. The “_spirit_ of faith” is precisely what
is least understood by non-Catholics; and again, “What they must _do_ to
believe” is the thing they most need to be shown.

When accused of being “mental slaves,” etc., we justly reply that, on the
contrary, we are the freest of the free, that “truth” alone “makes free”;
but perhaps we are apt to forget--or rather, we fail to insist--that
the “spirit of faith” is, nevertheless, “a spirit of lowliness” (as the
bishop says)--“of childlike obedience, and of ‘captivity’”; that there
must be “a taking up of a yoke, a bowing of the head, a humbling of the
heart.” It will therefore do Catholics good, as well as Protestants, to
read the second of these lectures on “What faith is.” So, again, when
allowing for the strength of prejudice in alienating the Protestant mind,
we are in danger of false charity--by forgetting that prejudice may
easily be _a sin_; and that _wilfulness_ plays a large part in popular
“ignorance” nowadays. The third and fourth lectures, on “Prejudice” and
“Wilfulness” as “Obstacles to Faith,” are the best of their kind we
remember to have seen, and we are sure that many Catholics need to read
them--nor only for the sake of their Protestant friends.

But, of course, it is chiefly for the sake of Protestant friends that
we wish to see these lectures in the hands of our readers. The book is
something for an earnest man to go wild about. Its cost is little; and we
hope it will soon be scattered broadcast over the land.

    RELIGION AND SCIENCE IN THEIR RELATION TO PHILOSOPHY. An
    Essay on the Present State of the Sciences. Read before the
    Philosophical Society of Washington. By Charles W. Shields,
    D.D., Professor of the Harmony of Science and Revealed Religion
    in Princeton College, N. J. New York: Scribner, Armstrong & Co.
    1875.

The trustees of Princeton College have deserved commendation and given a
good example to other colleges by establishing the chair filled by Dr.
Shields. The learned doctor is evidently applying himself with zeal and
industry to the studies which will fit him to teach with ability in his
important branch of science--one which demands an almost encyclopædic
knowledge of many sciences specifically different from each other.
He informs us that he is preparing an extensive work on the topics
presented in the essay before us, which is certainly a most laudable
undertaking, and one in which we hope he may achieve a successful and
useful result. In the present essay the author shows a very considerable
amount of reading and thought, some skill in generalization, and a good
deal of that felicity of diction which is requisite in making such
abstruse themes as those which relate to natural and theological science
attractive and intelligible even to the mass of cultivated persons.

The distinctive and principal thesis defended by Dr. Shields is, that
philosophy is the only umpire to determine controversies in which the
opposing parties advocate what are professedly revealed and professedly
scientific facts or truths, respectively, in a mutually destructive or
hostile sense to each other. To a certain extent, and in a correctly
defined sense, we cordially agree with him, and in this sense the high
office of philosophy, as the queen of all rational science, is affirmed
and defended by all Catholic philosophers and theologians worthy of
the name. The five primary natural sciences--physics, mathematics,
metaphysics, logic, and ethics--are certainly none of them subaltern one
to another, yet the other four are subordinate to metaphysics, because
its object has a precedence in the order of the knowable, and its
principles furnish the other sciences with their rational foundation.
Nevertheless, it is evident, and must be admitted by every one who
believes in a certain, clear, and surely ascertainable revelation of
facts and truths by God, which is supernatural, that there is a science
above metaphysics in excellence--viz., theology, which dominates over
it in so far that the latter science cannot reject any of its dogmas.
The sciences cannot therefore properly be said to be separate from each
other, although they are really distinct. All rational sciences are
subalternated to one or more of the five primaries, and thus subordinated
to metaphysics, which is subordinated to theology. We consider that
the author is mistaken in asserting that a “healthful separation and
progress” marked the first stage of the history of the sciences since
the Reformation. If by separation he means distinction only, and the
free development in each science of its own proper principles by its
proper methods, this distinction was recognized and acted on before
the Reformation, as may be seen by consulting the great master of the
schools, S. Thomas. Some of the sciences have made great progress since
that event, not by means of, but partly notwithstanding, their violent
and unnatural separation from metaphysics and theology. In respect to
metaphysics and ethics, the Reformation has produced one only direct
result, which is a miserable decadence and retrogression, which seems to
have nearly reached its lowest term. The sciences can only progress with
full liberty towards the perfection of human knowledge when they exist
in the due harmony and subordination which their nature demands and God
has established. The exposition of the order and relation of scientific
facts, principles, and deductions in the universal realm of truth, as
a universal or encyclopædic science, must, therefore, always place
each one in its due subordination, and cannot admit of the umpirage of
an inferior over a superior science, much less of a revolt on the part
of the inferior. It is absurd to suppose that the inferior tribunal of
human reason can judge a case in which the judgment of God, who is the
supreme reason, or of an authority which God has made supreme, comes up
by appeal. Dr. Shields objects that the great problems in question cannot
be settled by the determination of Scripture, councils, the Holy See,
or any kind of ecclesiastical decisions, because there is no agreement
respecting the true sense of Scripture, or universal recognition of a
competent and unerring tribunal. To this we reply that the construction
of certain and complete science is one thing, and the communication of
this science to the ignorant or erring is another. Questions may be
really and definitively settled, though great numbers of men may remain
in culpable or inculpable ignorance or error. The _Syllabus_ has settled
all that it was intended to settle, so far as the right of the matter is
concerned, and for the whole body of men who submit to the infallible
authority of the Vicar of Christ. Our knowledge is not in any way
impaired by the ignorance of those who are deprived of the benefit of
that instruction which Catholics enjoy. But, when we come to controversy,
we cannot, of course, attempt to convince or confute the ignorant or
erring by simply appealing to an authority which the antagonist or
objector, or uninstructed inquirer, does not know or recognize to be an
authority. We cannot assume the authority of God with an atheist, of
the Christian revelation with an infidel, of the Catholic Church with a
Protestant. One of the fathers says, _Qui fidem exigit, fidem astruat_,
and Catholic theologians have always acted on that maxim. Dr. Shields, as
a Protestant, has no rational idea of a positive, theological science.
It is all mere controversy, and we apprehend that his philosophy will be
found to be something equally unsettled and incapable of settling itself.
It is a very dangerous thing for any kind of dogmatic Protestantism to
concede the rights of reason, and especially so for Calvinism. Princeton
appears to be losing the old, Presbyterian, Calvinistic spirit, and going
the way of the rest of the world towards rationalism. We are not sorry
for it, because we hope that the cultivation and exercise of reason will
prepare the way for a great number of intelligent and educated young men
to submit their minds to the rightful and ennobling dominion of divine
faith. Notwithstanding the defects of Dr. Shields’ essay, we are glad to
see him advocate the study of philosophy and exalt its dignity; for the
search after the true philosophy may lead many to find it, and the true
philosophy is the handmaid of the true theology, and leads her votaries
to the feet of her mistress.

    AN ELEMENTARY TREATISE ON PHYSICAL GEOGRAPHY. By D. M. Warren.
    Revised by A. von Steinwehr. Philadelphia: Cowperthwait & Co.

This book is one which Catholic teachers should never think of using, and
against which Catholic children should, as far as possible, be specially
warned, should it be introduced in any school which they are obliged by
circumstances to attend.

It is probable that the chapter on ethnography, which is specially
objectionable, is the composition of the reviser. At least we should so
infer from the stupid arrogance which crops out in its last sentence,
and which is characteristic of the Prussia of to-day, intoxicated with
a temporary success which was, as any careful student of history will
conclude, intended for the purification of France rather than for the
exaltation of her opponent. “The present historical period,” he says, “is
directed by the Germanic Aryans, who are the leaders of modern Christian
civilization.” Comment is unnecessary. We venture to say that few of our
or anybody else’s readers have ever come across anything more impudent or
absurd. It is an insult to the American people, Catholic or non-Catholic,
to palm off on them such stuff as this.

He also implies in another place that the German nation “worked out its
own civilization.” We have not heard of any nation that has done that,
but that the Germans did not is too manifest to admit of argument.

The principal objection to the chapter, however, is the publication,
without note or comment of course, of two heresies with regard to the
origin of the human race, as being equally entitled to acceptance with
the Mosaic account. One of these is its origin from different original
pairs, the other what is commonly known as Darwinism.

It is not worth while to give a more extended notice to a book of this
sort. This species of book can be turned off by any person with a
smattering of science who has the leisure for authorship, and who can
find a publisher. The market is flooded with such. We should not have
said anything about it had not our attention been called to it by a
friend on account of its dangerous character.

It is high time that we had a complete series of really Catholic
text-books which would need no correction, either in their matter or in
the spirit in which they are written. We could put up even with inferior
ones for the sake of religion and the faith of our young people; but we
should not have to try very hard to come up to the standard of such books
as the one just noticed.

    NEW PRACTICAL MEDITATIONS for Every Day in the Year, on the
    Life of Our Lord Jesus Christ. Chiefly intended for the use of
    Religious Communities. By the Rev. Father Bruno Vercruysse,
    S.J. The only complete English translation. New York and
    Cincinnati: Benziger Brothers. 1875.

We have seen several books of meditations, but none so _business-like_
as this. The practice of mental prayer is by no means easy to everybody,
and needs much explanation and suggestive aid. Now, many of the manuals
which are offered as guides prove unsatisfactory to the user by either
suggesting too little or making the meditation for him. In the work
before us we see nothing of this kind to regret. The plan is in many
respects new. Indeed, the author calls special attention to the preface
in which he explains his method.

Though “chiefly intended for religious communities,” these meditations
are well adapted for private individuals, both ecclesiastic and lay.
Moreover, a single “point” of each meditation will be found sufficient by
itself for those who have not time for more. The work is also “enriched
by several Novenas and Octaves; Meditations for the First Friday of every
month, and for the days of Communion; … a new method of hearing Mass,
and practical remarks on the different parts of meditations; a plan of
Jerusalem with a map of Palestine, showing the different localities
mentioned throughout the work, and an alphabetical table of contents,
and of meditations on the Gospels of the Sundays.” Also, for religious,
“Exercises preparatory to the renewal of vows, and for a retreat of eight
days.”

Lastly, the approbation of his eminence Cardinal Deschamps, Archbishop
of Mechlin, speaks in unequivocal terms of the work’s merit. “These
Meditations,” he says, … “are remarkable for the solidity of doctrine,
the happy choice of subjects, and unctuous piety. The use of them cannot
fail to be very profitable to religious communities, to ecclesiastics,
and to those pious persons in the world who aspire to perfection.”

Annexed also is the approbation of Father Charaux, S.J., Superior-General
of the Mission of New York and Canada; together with extracts from three
letters of Father Beckx, the General of the Jesuits, to the author.

    MADAME DE LAVALLE’S BEQUEST: Counsels to Young Ladies who
    have Completed their Education. Translated from the fourth
    French edition by a Sister of St. Joseph. Philadelphia: P. F.
    Cunningham. 1875.

There is no doubt that this book, written in a tone of genuine affection
and interest, and addressed to young ladies who have completed their
education, is one that might profitably be put into the hands of those
for whom it was written and translated. The only question seems to be
how best to commend it to their attention; for in these days of varied
and indiscriminate reading, the advice or recommendation of older people
is seldom asked, and a hurried glance at the contents of a book is often
sufficient to cause its rejection, as prosy or unattractive.

To young ladies, also, who enjoying in a happy home the merited
confidence of their parents, and accustomed to few restrictions from
them, the minute and careful instructions and directions found in some
of the chapters might perhaps seem superfluous and a little amusing.
Yet, when they read the dedication, and recognize the fact that the book
was written under the eyes, as it were, of the Blessed Virgin, with the
approbation of her who was the truest lady as well as the purest woman
in the world, they will be disposed to accept with more humility and
gratitude suggestions which they must feel, if followed, would render
them more truly her imitators, more worthy of the name of her children.

To those who have had the privilege and happiness of a convent education,
this book is of course appropriate. It will bring to their minds the
gentle teaching of those peaceful days, and act as a kind of charm in
recalling holy aspirations and resolutions. Especially will they welcome
it as proving the tender interest of their former teachers, which, though
no longer folded around them like a mantle, now attracts their attention,
as a signal waved from a secure haven, to encourage their frail barks, as
they push out on the uncertain waves of life.

Thoughtful minds are glad to find in a book a companion and friend; to
such, and as such, we recommend this valuable Bequest.

    HERBERT’S WIFE: A STORY FOR YOU. By Minnie Mary Lee. Baltimore:
    Kelly, Piet & Co. 1875.

We again welcome the author of _The Heart of Myrrha Lake_ to the field
of Catholic literature. The writer possesses many of the qualifications
most essential to a writer of fiction--skill in the construction of
plots, ability to read character at sight, and a certain raciness and
vivacity of style, which holds the reader’s attention from first to
last, and gives her the preference over some writers of greater artistic
finish. In this is indicated our chief criticism and regret--that
one so well qualified should neglect that attention to detail which
characterizes the perfect artist. Not that we would advocate anything
stiff or “artificial,” for true art is always in harmony with nature. It
is precisely these exuberances and inaccuracies which cause the writer
subsequent annoyance, and for which the critical eye is needed, to prune
and correct. The plot of _Herbert’s Wife_, though simple, abounds in
vivid pictures of real life, and its incidents serve the moral purpose
of the story admirably. We do not doubt that each succeeding effort will
exhibit less and less of the defect alluded to.

    BREAKFAST, LUNCHEON, AND TEA. By Marian Harland. Author of
    _Common Sense in the Household_. New York: Scribner, Armstrong
    & Co. 1875.

This is decidedly the most sensible, and, we may add, entertaining book
on domestic economy we remember to have met. “Marian Harland” has
evidently availed herself of her skill as a novelist in sugar-coating
a subject supposed to be unpalatable to those for whom the book is
intended, the instructions being conveyed in the form of “Familiar
Talks with the Reader.” If the writer succeeds in inducing her fair
countrywomen to become proficients in the art she teaches, much will
have been added to the substantial comfort of households, and a truer
appreciation reached of the services of good domestics.

    LINGARD’S HISTORY OF ENGLAND, ABRIDGED: With a Continuation
    from 1688 to 1854. By James Burke, A.B. And an Appendix to
    1873. The whole preceded by a Memoir of Dr. Lingard, and
    Marginal Notes. By M. J. Kerney, A. M. Baltimore: J. Murphy &
    Co. 1875.

This is a library edition of the abridgment heretofore issued by the same
house, printed on better paper, and making a handsome octavo of 688 pages.

Lingard’s is still considered the standard English History by Catholic,
and by an increasing number of impartial non-Catholic, students, and as
it is probable that comparatively few readers will consider they have
time enough for the entire work, this edition is likely to be a favorite
one with book-buyers.

    THE CATHOLIC PREMIUM-BOOK LIBRARY. First Series, 8vo. New York
    and Cincinnati: Benziger Brothers. 1875.

The six volumes we have seen of this series seem to be creditable
specimens, both in matter and illustrations, and the publishers are to
be commended for their contributions towards a class of literature which
needed attention. We cannot well have too many books which are attractive
in style and healthful in tone at the same time. The works having been
taken from the French, the translations have been made by competent
hands, and the pictures have much greater pretensions to being termed
illustrations than many which are made to do duty in that capacity. We
think, however, that the publishers’ American printers and binders could
have produced better work than the letter-press and “imitation cloth”
binding of these volumes.

The same publishers also issue a duodecimo and an 18mo series of the
same library.

    WANN SPRICHT DIE KIRCHE UNFEHLBAR? ODER: NATUR UND ZWECK DES
    KIRCHLICHEN LEHRAMTS. Von Thomas Franz Knox, Priester des
    Oratoriums in London. Regensburg: Georg Joseph Manz. 1874.

We are glad to see that Father Knox’s work has met the appreciation
in Germany of which this translation is the evidence. The publication
may also, we presume, be taken as an indication of the feeling which a
community of interests and dangers engenders, and which is drawing the
members of the one fold in different lands into closer relations and
sympathies.


BOOKS AND PAMPHLETS RECEIVED.

    From D. & J. SADLIER & CO., New York: Rose Leblanc. By Lady
    Georgiana Fullerton. 16mo, pp. 220.--The Two Victories. By Rev.
    T. J. Potter. Third edition. 16mo, pp. 170.--Olive’s Rescue,
    etc. 18mo, pp. 149.--True to the End. 18mo, pp. 150.--The
    Little Crown of St. Joseph. Compiled and translated by a Sister
    of St. Joseph. 24mo, pp. 347.

    --The Double Triumph: A Drama. By Rev. A. J. O’Reilly. Paper,
    16mo, pp. 66.--The Foundling of Sebastopol: A Drama. By W.
    Tandy, D.D. Paper, 16mo, pp. 70.

    --A Politico-Historical Essay on the Popes as the Protectors of
    Popular Liberty. By Henry A. Brann, D.D. 8vo, pp. 30, paper.

    From G. P. PUTNAM’S SONS, New York: Philosophy of Trinitarian
    Doctrine. By Rev. A. J. Pease. 12mo, pp. 183.

    From LEE & SHEPARD, Boston: Socialistic, Communistic,
    Mutualistic, and Financial Fragments. By W. B. Greene. 16mo,
    pp. 271.

    From KELLY, PIET & CO., Baltimore: Emmore, etc. 18mo,
    pp. 99.--Trouvaille, etc. By Lady Georgiana Fullerton.
    18mo.--Reparation, etc. Same author.

    From the AUTHOR: Mansions in the Skies: An Acrostic Poem on the
    Lord’s Prayer. By W. P. Chilton, Jr. 12mo, pp. 27.

    From ROBERTS BROTHERS, Boston: Through the year: Thoughts
    Relating to the Seasons of Nature and the Church. By Rev. H. N.
    Powers. 16mo, pp. 288.

    From BAKER, GODWIN & CO., New York: Reports of the Board of
    Directors and the Committees of the Xavier Union, New York,
    etc. 1875.

    From J. W. SCHERMERHORN & CO., New York: The Mosaic Account of
    the Creation, the Miracle of To-day; or, New Witnesses of the
    Oneness of Genesis and Science. By Chas. B. Warring. 1875.

    From HENRI OUDIN, Paris: Les Droits de Dieu et les Idées
    Modernes. Par l’Abbé François Chesnel. 8vo, pp. xxxix., 394.

    From the AUTHOR: The Proposed Railway across Newfoundland: a
    Lecture. By Rev. Father Morris. 8vo, pp. vi., 46, paper.




THE CATHOLIC WORLD.

VOL. XXI., No. 126.--SEPTEMBER, 1875.

Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1875, by Rev. I. T.
HECKER, in the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington, D. C.


THE RIGHTS OF THE CHURCH OVER EDUCATION.

FROM LES ETUDES RELIGIEUSES, ETC.

Of all the questions which preoccupy--and justly--public opinion, and on
which war is declared against the Catholic Church, one of the most vital
is that of education.

“It is certain that instruction is, in fact, the great battle-field
chosen in our days by the intelligent enemies of the faith. It is there
they hope to take captive the youth of France, and to train up future
generations for impiety and scepticism. And it must be admitted that
they conduct this war with a skill which is only equalled by their
perseverance.”[167]

We endeavored to point out, in a former article, the intentions of
the enemies of the church, the depth of the abyss they are digging
for Christian society, and the infernal art which they have shown in
combining their plan of attack.[168] Since then, a first success has
befallen them to justify their hopes and inflame their ardor. We may
expect to see them increase their efforts to carry the fortress. Why
should they not succeed when they have opposed to them only divided
forces?

Happen what may, however, we must remain true to ourselves. It is
our duty to hold fast the standard of our faith, in spite of the
contradictions of human reason; and to oppose to the pagan error, that
the state is master of education, the Christian truth, that the church
alone is endowed with the power to educate the young.… The opponents
of the church on this point are of two classes. One consists of those
who never belonged to her, or who do so no longer; the other, of those
who still call themselves her children. The former are principally
Protestants, and those philosophical adversaries of revelation who deny,
with more or less good faith, Catholic doctrine, and pretend to find
nothing in it but illusion and blind credulity. These are, it must be
owned, consistent with themselves when they refuse to the church the
rights she claims over education. Their logic is correct; but it is the
logic of error, and to contend with such adversaries we should have to
begin with a proof of Christianity. That is not our object. Whatever may
be their error, however, on the subjects of Christian revelation and the
church, we hope to be able to convince them that a spirit of encroachment
and ambition of rule has no part in the pretensions of the church, in the
matter of the education of the young. Rather, they ought to acknowledge,
with us, that therein we only fulfil a duty the most sacred, the most
inviolable--that of conducting Christian souls to their supreme and
eternal destiny.

But what is far less excusable is the inconsistency of certain Catholics.
They are persuaded, they say, of the truth of the Catholic religion;
they profess to believe her doctrine, to submit to her authority; and
yet one sees them make common cause with the enemies of their faith in
repudiating all control of the church in questions of instruction and of
education. It is for these especially we write, in the hope of convincing
them that, in challenging for herself not only complete liberty to teach
her children divine and human science, but also the moral and religious
direction of all Christian schools, the Catholic Church claims nothing
but what is her right, and pretends to nothing more than the legitimate
exercise of a necessary and divine power. Would that they could
understand, in short, that no Catholic can, without inconsistency and
without a kind of apostasy, assent to the exclusion of the Church from
the supervision of instruction, and to the whole of it being directed by
the sole authority of the civil power!


I.--THE PRINCIPLES OF SOLUTION IN THE PRESENT QUESTION.

The whole Christian theory of education rests on the following twofold
truth taught by the Catholic Church: that man is created by God for a
supernatural end, and that the church is the necessary intermediary
between man and his supreme destiny. These two points cannot be admitted
without admitting, also, that the church is right in all the rest.
Unfortunately, nothing is less common than the clear understanding of
these truths, essential as they are to Christianity. It will, therefore,
not be unprofitable to take a brief survey of them.

The Christian religion does not resemble those philosophical theories
which an insignificant minority of the human race have been discussing
for three thousand years without arriving at any conclusion, and which
have no practical issue for the rest of mankind. Its aim, on the
contrary, is essentially practical. From the first it addresses itself,
not to a few persons of the highest culture, but to all indifferently,
rich and poor, learned and ignorant. It is designed for every one,
because every one has a soul, created in the image of God, and because
this soul religion alone can save--that is to say, conduct to its
ultimate end, by rendering it at last conformable to its divine type,
to the infinite perfections of God. But especially is Christianity
practical, because, without any long discussions, it says to every one
of us, “I am the voice of God revealing to men truths which it is their
duty to believe, virtues which it is their duty to practise in this life
in order to deserve, after death, everlasting happiness in the very bosom
of God. Here are my credentials; they affirm the mission I have received
from on high. Believe, then, the Word of God; practise his precepts, and
you will be saved.” Her credentials having been verified, it comes to
pass that multitudes of men yield faith to the teachings of Christianity
as coming from God; they place themselves under her obedience, and the
Christian society is founded, with its hierarchy, its object clearly
defined, and its special means determined by Jesus Christ, its divine
founder.

But is it all, and will it be sufficient to call one’s self Christian,
to be enrolled in the number of believers, to have received baptism, and
to practise with more or less fidelity the precepts of the divine and
ecclesiastical law? To suppose that it is, is the fatal error of a number
of modern Christians, as unacquainted with their religion as they are
lukewarm in fulfilling its duties. Thus understood, would Christianity
have done anything but add to the religions of the philosophers
incomprehensible mysteries, exceedingly troublesome practices, and
ceremonies as meaningless to the mind as useless to the soul? Far from
this, Christianity is itself, also, radical after its fashion. It
deprives man of nothing which constitutes his nobility; it enriches it
rather. It does not oppose his legitimate aspirations for what is great,
for what is beautiful; it hallows them rather. It does not deny him the
gratification of any of his loftier and more generous instincts; it only
supplies them with an object infinitely capable of contenting them. In
a word, it does not destroy nature; it transforms and deifies it, by
communicating to it a supernatural and divine life.

What is life in mortal man but the movement of all his powers in quest of
an object which gives them happiness? Well, then, Christianity lays hold
of these human powers, and, in order to transform them, it infuses into
them a new principle, which is grace--that is, the virtue of God uniting
itself to the soul; it places a higher end before them--the possession
of God in his own essence, an infinite object of knowledge and of love;
it enables them, indeed, to bring forth works not possible to our frail
nature without a divine illumination which enlightens the intelligence,
and without a holy inspiration which strengthens and assists the will.
It is a completely new man grafted on the root of the natural man. It
is a new way of living, wherein, under the influence of a supernatural
and divine principle, our feelings become purified by finding their
source in God, our knowledge enlarges, because it penetrates even into
the mysteries of the divine essence, and our love becomes limitless as
God himself, the only true good, whom we love in himself, and in his
creatures, the reflex of himself.

We know well that rationalistic philosophy, when it hears us speak of a
divine life, of union with God by a higher principle than nature, shrugs
its shoulders, and with superb self-complacency rings the changes on the
words illusion, mysticism, extravagance. But what matter? Has it ever,
like us, had any experience of this second life of the soul, so as to
understand its reality and its grandeur? Its God, silent and solitary,
exists only for reason. He will never issue from his eternal repose. He
will not meddle with his creatures to constitute their happiness. This is
not the God to satisfy our nature, thirsting for the infinite. He is not
the God of Christianity whom we have learned to know and to love.

But to return to the church. Manhood is not the work of a day. Thirty
years at the least pass away before the human being arrives at maturity,
passing successively through the stages of infancy, boyhood, and youth.
What care, what pains, and what active solicitude are needed for his
education! A mother, a father, a master, devote themselves to it by
turns. Fortunate if, after all, these efforts are crowned with success!
Is it to be said that it costs less time and labor to bring a soul to
spiritual maturity, to raise it to the perfection of this divine life? A
day, a year--will they suffice to enlighten the intelligence with truths
it must believe, to instruct it in obligations it must fulfil, but, above
all, to form in it a habit of all those virtues it is bound to practise?
Or is its education so different from the natural education that it can
dispense with an instructor? Will the child, unaided, raise itself to
God--we mean to the highest degree of moral perfection, of Christian
sanctity? It would be folly to suppose it. It needs, therefore, a master;
some one charged with the duty of teaching it truth, of forming it in
virtue. Who is this instructor? Is it any other than that one to whom
Jesus Christ, the divine but invisible Master, once said, “As my Father
has sent me, I send you. Go then, teach all nations; teaching them to
observe my whole law.” This instructor is the church, represented by her
pastors, the lawful successors of the apostles.

This principle must be borne in mind, this indisputable truth of revealed
doctrine. We shall see the consequences of it presently. We assert that
the church, and the church alone, has received from Jesus Christ the
power of forming the supernatural man--the Christian in the full force of
that term. No one else can pretend to it. Not the state, with its power;
not private individuals, with their knowledge, however great; not even
the father or mother of the family, great as is the authority over their
children’s souls with which God has invested them. And wherefore? Because
the church alone possesses the means indispensable for a Christian
education.

These means are of three kinds. In the name of God, the church gives
truth to the understanding; she imposes a law on the will; and she
dispenses grace, without which the Christian would lack power to believe
the truth and to fulfil the law. Withdraw these things, and Christian
education ceases to exist. You deliver up the understanding to human
opinions; therein it loses faith. The will becomes a law to itself; that
is to say, it has no other law to guide it than its own caprices and
passions; and then, the moral force disappearing, man in the face of duty
is oftener than not powerless to fulfil it. Now, who is it whom God has
charged with the duty of preserving amongst men, and of communicating
to every generation the treasure of revealed truths? Who is it who
represents on earth the divine power, and has the right of enlightening
consciences on the subjects of justice and injustice, of right and wrong?
Whom, in short, has Jesus Christ appointed minister of his sacraments to
distribute to souls the supernatural succors of grace? The church, and
the church alone. To her have all generations of mankind been entrusted
throughout the progress of the ages, in order that she may bring them
forth to spiritual life, and form in them Jesus Christ, the divine model
whom Christian education ought to reproduce in every one of us. It is,
then, true that the formation of the supernatural man, of the Christian,
is the proper ministry of the church; that this ministry constitutes
a part of her essential functions; that it is, in a sense, her whole
mission on earth; so much so, that she could not abdicate it without
betraying her trust, without abandoning the object of her mission, and
overthrowing the whole work of Christianity.

This is a fundamental principle which no sincere Catholic could think of
rejecting, so solidly is it based on revelation, and so conformable is it
to the principles of faith. There remains, consequently, only to deduce
from it its consequences, and to point out how the whole claim of power
over the instruction and education of Christian youth which the church
asserts flows from it as a necessary and logical deduction. Now the
church herself having been careful to determine the rights which belong
to her, it is her word we shall take for our guide, it is her doctrine we
propose to defend. It is clearly annunciated in the Encyclical _Quanta
Cura_, and in the _Syllabus_, the most authentic exposition of the mind
of the church on all the disputed questions of the day, as it is the most
assailed.


II.--POSITION OF THE QUESTION.

For nearly three centuries the government of France has labored with
indefatigable persistency and energy to concentrate in its hands all
the social powers, and to constitute itself, as it were, the universal
motive-cause in the state. Autonomy of provinces, communal franchises,
individual or collective precedence in certain great public services, all
have successively disappeared before the continual encroachments of the
central power. Thus the state is no longer a living organism of its own
life, at once manifold and ordered. It has become a huge mechanism, whose
thousands of wheels, inert and powerless of themselves, move only at the
impulse of the centre of the motive forces. To make of society a kind of
human machine may be the ideal of a certain materialist and socialist
school. It has never been the idea of Christianity. We Christians have
too much regard for our personal dignity, we know too well the limits of
the functions of the civil power, thus to abdicate all spontaneity, all
precedence of our own, and to consent to become nothing but mere parts of
a machine, when we can be, and ought to be, activities full of life and
movement.

In the matter of education especially, what errors have not been
committed, of what usurpations has not the civil power incurred the
guilt? By the creation of an official, pattern university, monopolizing
instruction, and subject exclusively to the direction of the government,
all the authorities to whom belonged formerly the instruction and
education of youth have been suppressed at one blow. There is no longer
any right recognized, any action suffered, but that of the state, master
both of school and pay. Everything by the state, everything for the
state, this through long weary years has been the undiscussable maxim
against which Catholic consciences, little disposed to sacrifice their
right to the usurped power of the government, struggled in vain.

At last, thanks to the persistent protest of those consciences, so long
despised; the principle has lost its pretended obviousness, and the fact
itself has received its first check--sure prelude of its approaching
disappearance. The moment seems to have arrived when those who have the
right ought to claim their legitimate share in the exercise of a function
eminently social. Now all have a right here. The government has its
rights; as responsible for the good and evil which befall society; for
the evil, to check and prevent it; for the good, to help in effecting
it. The church has her rights, because she is the great moral power in
society, and there is question here, pre-eminently, of a moral function.
The family has its rights, for it is its fruit which has to be reared and
instructed. Individuals, even, have their rights--the right of devotion
and sacrifice in behalf of a holy work, and of a ministry which, more
than any other, stands in need of those graces.

Here are, assuredly, enough of rights, despised for three-quarters of
a century, and swallowed up in the insatiable power of the state. It
would be a deed worthy of our generation to re-establish all in their
original and proper order. It is being attempted, we know, and already
the National Assembly[169] has begun to concede an instalment of justice
to the family and to individuals. But the church! Why is silence kept
concerning her? Why is it sought to exclude her from the debate, and
to treat her claims as null and void? We Catholics cannot accept this
disavowal of our rights. It concerns us to ascertain what place they
propose to assign to our church in the modern state. We should like to
know whether we still belong to a Christian society, or must prepare to
defend the rights of our conscience in a state decidedly pagan.

What are these rights? What do we demand for the church? What position,
in short, do we wish to see her assume in all that concerns the education
of youth? Such are the questions we propose to solve. We will state
them with yet more precision. When there is question of the rights of
the church in communities, three hypotheses are possible according
to the different conditions of those communities. We may suppose a
state religiously constituted--that is to say, wherein the gospel
and Christianity are not only the rule of life and the religion of
individuals, but, besides, the foundation of legislation, the worship
adopted in the manifestations of public piety; whatever may be, in other
respects, the general aspect of the relations established, by common
consent, between the church and the state.

In opposition to this first hypothesis there exists another--that of
a civil society, wherein the religious authority and the political
authority have the appearance of ignoring one another; wherein the state
affects indifference with regard to all religions, fosters no one of
them, and, limiting its action exclusively to the material interests of
the community, leaves individuals to embrace and practise whichever
of the worships suits them best. To borrow the popular formula, such a
constitution would realize “a free church in a free state”; or, more
exactly, “a state separated from the church.”[170]

Lastly, modern times have given birth to a third kind of political
constitution, a mean between the two preceding ones, in which Catholicity
is no longer the base of the social edifice in preference to every
other religion, and is only one of the public worships recognized by
the state; at times that of the majority of the citizens, and observed
as such in the religious solemnities in which the government takes a
part. In this hypothesis, the state remains religious, but it is neither
Catholic nor Protestant. A Christianism vague and general enough to lend
itself to all communions, a kind of rational deism, rather, inspires its
legislation; honor is done to ministers of recognized worships, and when
government feels a need of betaking itself to God, in order to implore
his mercy, or to give him thanks for his blessings, it orders prayer
in all the places of worship without distinction. Manifold, as may be
supposed, are the shades of difference in the manner of constituting a
state of such indefinite religious forms. It is nevertheless true that
the greater number of our modern constitutions reproduce, more or less,
the type we have just sketched. Are we to see in this merely a kind
of transition between ancient communities, which almost all realized
the first hypothesis, and the communities of the future? Or will the
state, separated from the church, organize itself and govern itself
in a complete independence of all religion? This is the dream of our
free-thinkers. For the happiness of humanity, we hope it will not be
realized.

In addition to these three hypotheses there remains the state persecutor
of the church. But although this is by no means uncommon in these
days, it does not enter into our present subject; which is limited to
determining the rights and action of the church in a tranquil and, up to
a certain point, regular state of things.

Further, Christianity being to us truth, and the Catholic Church the
only true Christianity, it evidently follows that the first hypothesis
constitutes the normal state of society, that in which it attains
its end with the greatest perfection by the most abundant and most
appropriate means. Religion, in short, is as necessary to communities as
to individuals; and of all religions, only the true one can be a real
element of the prosperity of states.

The problem to solve, then, is as follows: First to examine and determine
the rights which belong to the church in a well-organized society--that
is to say, in a Christian or Catholic society. Then, when we know the
better, the more perfect, to lay down the necessary and the possible, in
communities where human passions have made for the church an inferior
position, but little favorable to the full exercise of her rights.


III.--CHRISTIAN EDUCATION IN A CHRISTIAN STATE.

The Jews in this resembled, to a certain extent, a Christian--that is
a Catholic--people; namely, that amongst them one of the tribes had
been chosen by God to be wholly consecrated to his service, and to be
devoted exclusively to the ministry of the altars. So also, but with
the difference demanded by the new conditions of the priesthood, God
chooses amongst the faithful his clerics, divinely called to exercise the
sacerdotal functions; for under the New Law, as under the Old, no one can
pretend to this honor unless he be called of God. Here, then, are two
categories of individuals in the nation; those who, by divine vocation,
are destined for the service of the church, and those who continue in
the ordinary condition of Christians--the ecclesiastics and the laics.
The distinction is necessary, because the church does not claim the same
rights in regard to both.

_The Rights of the Church over the Education of Clerics._--The education
of clerics--of young men, that is, who devote themselves to the
ecclesiastical ministry--has always been the object of the liveliest
solicitude of the church. Solely anxious to see the knowledge of the
faith and true piety flourish among the faithful entrusted to her care,
could she forget that people conform themselves to the model of those
who govern them, and that the essential condition for enlightening
understandings in the truths of religion, as well as for inclining
their hearts to the practice of Christian virtues, is first to fashion
a clergy solidly instructed and sincerely pious? In Thomassin[171] may
be found innumerable examples testifying to the solicitude of the church
on the subject of schools wherein young clerics are instructed. But the
most solemn act, and the most prolific in happy results, that has been
accomplished for this object, is, without contradiction, the decree of
the holy Council of Trent, directing all the bishops, metropolitans, and
other pastors charged with the government of the church to erect, each
in their respective dioceses, a house or seminary for the purpose of
lodging there, of instructing in ecclesiastical science, and bringing up
in ecclesiastical virtue, the children of the town, diocese, or province,
who shall show signs of a true divine vocation.[172]

At the same time that it directs the institution of seminaries, the
council is at the pains to explain their great usefulness, the necessity,
even, of them for the church, as the only efficacious means of always
providing zealous as well as solidly instructed ministers. It lays down
also the way of life which should be observed within them, the studies to
which especially the young men should devote themselves, the means to be
employed by the masters for the complete education of their pupils, and
even the resources of which the bishops will be able to avail themselves
to help to defray the expenses of these precious schools.

It may have been already remarked how the council regulates everything
of its own authority and without asking aught of secular powers. It
proves the church’s right to herself alone institute and organize her
ecclesiastical seminaries. But that which decisively manifests her mind
on this point is the care which the Council of Trent takes to place the
entire administration of these schools in the hands of the bishops,
assisted by two of the oldest and most prudent of the cathedral chapter,
chosen by them under the inspiration of the Holy Ghost.[173] Such is the
authority to which belongs exclusively the right of regulating all that
concerns the education of clerics. Neither can the lay faithful, nor
Christian families, nor, still less, governments, meddle at all with this
work, which is exclusively the affair of the church. Accordingly, in the
forty-sixth proposition of the _Syllabus_, the Sovereign Pontiff, Pius
IX., has reproved, proscribed, and condemned the doctrine of those who
pretend “to subject to civil authority the method to be followed in the
theological seminaries.”

The church claims, then, complete liberty to choose her ministers
herself, and to form them in the manner which seems to her most
desirable. This is no privilege which she asks of the state, it is a
right which she holds from Jesus Christ, and by his divine appointment:
the right of existing, the right of perpetuating herself upon earth by
keeping up her hierarchy of teaching pastors and faithful taught, and
in recruiting from among the latter those whom God himself calls to the
honors of the priesthood.

And, in truth, to what rights over the education of clerics can a civil
government pretend? Is it to judge of the knowledge which is necessary
for the ministers of the altar? But is not the church appointed by
Jesus Christ the sole guardian of revealed truth, and has not she alone
received the mission of teaching the peoples? Can it be, indeed, to
discern in the subjects who present themselves a divine vocation, and
the degree of virtue requisite for a priest? But for such discernment,
has, then, the civil power the special illumination of the Holy Ghost?
Does it know the mysterious action of grace in the soul, and does God
reveal to it his secrets? Or can it be, as some governments have not been
afraid to do, to determine the number of young men who ought every year
to respond to the call of God and enrol themselves in the sacred army?
Impious and sacrilegious pretension! which says to the Spirit of God,
“Thus far shall your inspirations go, and no farther.” As if the state,
and not God, were the judge of the church’s needs! As if the civil power
had received from Jesus Christ the commission to fix annually in the
budget the effective of men employed in his divine service, after the
same fashion as it regulates the annual contingent of soldiers called to
the service of the state!

But no, not one of these pretensions is tenable. The state has no power
whatever over the education of clerics; and the church, by its divine
institution, is alone competent for this work, necessary above all to its
existence and the perpetuity of its action in the world.

Such are the rights of the church in this first department of education.
They are absolute, exclusive, and inalienable. What have we next to say
of those she possesses in the education of the laity?

_The Rights of the Church over Public Education._--That which certain
Catholics refuse to the church, even in a community Christianly
constituted, is not the right of giving instruction in the public
schools, and making her influence felt there to the advantage of the
morality and good education of the youth. No one but a rationalist or
free-thinker can deny the necessity of making religion the foundation of
all education, if we would bring up Christians, and not unbelievers. More
than this, these same Catholics acknowledge, besides, that the church
by her priests, and her religious devoted to the education of youth,
enjoys the right possessed by all citizens of opening public schools
and teaching, not only the verities of the Catholic faith, but letters
and human science in all its branches. They are generally advocates of
freedom of instruction to its utmost extent; and the power they accord to
the humblest citizen they do not commit the folly of refusing to those
whose character, knowledge, and disinterestedness best qualify them for
those delicate functions.

Here, then, are two acknowledged rights of the church, on which we need
not insist further. First, the right of providing religious instruction
for the youth at school, and their education according to the principles
of Christian morality. Secondly, the right of giving, herself, to
children and to young people, whose families entrust them to her, a
complete education, embracing instruction in letters and in the secular
sciences; the right, consequently, of founding religious congregations
entirely consecrated to the ministry of instruction and Christian
education; the right of establishing these institutions, providing for
their recruitment, and for their material means of existence. All this,
it is acknowledged, constitutes the normal condition of the church in
communities which concede a just share of influence to the Catholic
religion, to its ministers, and to all those who are inspired with its
spirit of devotion to the general welfare. But observe the points of
divergence between the Catholics of whom we are speaking and those who
are more jealous to preserve intact the rights conferred by Jesus Christ
upon his church. According to the former, a distinction must be made
between religious education and literary or scientific education. The
former, by its object and by its end, escapes from the competence of the
state to re-enter what is exclusively the province of the church. It is
different with literary and scientific instruction. That, they say, is
a social service which belongs, like other services of a similar kind,
to the jurisdiction of the city or nation. The exercise of the teaching
ministry is undoubtedly free. Private individuals are entitled to devote
themselves to it without let or hindrance. But the direction of this
ministry should be ascribed to the state, the only judge of whatever
affects the present and the future of society. Guardian of order, of
justice, and of morals in the community, it is the duty of government
itself to regulate the discipline of public schools, the instruction
which is given there, the academic titles which open the way to certain
civil or administrative careers, and the choice of masters; who, at any
rate, should not have incurred any of the disqualifications determined
by the law. Moreover, since its functions impose on it the duty of
encouraging, as much as possible, useful institutions, and such as are
essential to public prosperity, the government is bound to support
schools founded by private individuals; and even, if there be not enough
of them for the needs of the people, to institute others by its own
authority, and out of the public funds. This, according to them, belongs
to the domain of the state. Here it reigns supreme, without having
to share its power with any other power, civil or religious. Public
instruction is a branch of administration on the same grounds as war or
finance.

Thus think and speak Catholics of the modern political school. Unluckily
for them, such is not the doctrine of the church. Pius IX., in the
forty-fifth proposition of the _Syllabus_, explicitly condemns the
opinion we have just described, and which he formulates in the following
terms: “The whole direction of public schools, in which the youth of a
Christian state is brought up, with the exception, to a certain extent,
of episcopal seminaries, can be and ought to be vested in the civil
authority, and that in such a manner that the right of no other authority
should be recognized to interfere with the discipline of those schools,
with the curriculum of studies, with the conferring of degrees, or with
the choice or approval of masters.” This, however specious, is thus
erroneous, and no Catholic can maintain it. It is, in fact, false in a
two-fold point of view--false in a merely natural point of view, because
it ascribes to the state a function which, in default of the church,
belongs exclusively to the family; false also, and especially, in a
supernatural point of view, because it separates what ought to be united,
the temporal consequences of education, and its supernatural end. We will
expose this twofold error.

Under the empire of a nondescript philosophical paganism, our modern
politicians have a striking tendency to enlarge more and more in
society the circle of governmental privileges. One would suppose, to
listen to them, that it was the function of power to completely absorb
all the organic elements which go to make a nation, and to leave no
longer existing side by side of it, or beneath it, aught but inert
individualities, social material capable of receiving impulse and
movement only from it. Healthy reason protests against a theory so
destructive of the most indispensable elements of social prosperity.
Families collecting into cities forfeited none of their natural rights;
cities, in associating themselves in nations did not pretend to abdicate
all their powers. What both sought, on the contrary, in association,
was a stronger guarantee of those very rights; it was the maintenance
of the most inviolable justice in human relations; it was, in short, an
efficient protection against violence and oppression, whether from within
or without.

What! Are we to admit that the right and the duty of educating children
sprung from society, and was originated by it? The bare thought is folly.
From the first creation of the family, God willed that the infant should
come into the world in feebleness and impotence; that, physically,
intellectually, and morally, it should have need of a long and toilsome
education before becoming a complete man. On whom was it, then, that
he imposed a natural obligation of undertaking and accomplishing its
education? Certainly not on society, which did not then exist. It was on
the family itself, on the father especially, who is its responsible head.
The power of engendering human beings includes of necessity the duty of
not leaving such a work incomplete--the duty, consequently, of guiding
the infant up to full manhood.

The family thus, by virtue of a law of nature, possesses the power of
instructing and educating the understanding and will of the child born
of it; and this power the family does not lose by being associated with
others in social life. For, we repeat, the state is not instituted to
absorb into its collective life all pre-existing rights. The act of union
merely consecrates those rights by placing them under the protection of
public authority. But when this authority, instead of protecting the
rights of the family, proceeds to take possession of them, it commits an
usurpation, it breaks the social pact, by making itself guilty of the
very crime which it ought to prevent.

Nothing less than the utter and ruinous confusion of ideas introduced
by the philosophy of the last century, and by its absurd theories
about the Social Contract, could have caused principles so clear and
so indisputable to be lost sight of, and all the usurpations of the
liberty and rights of families and individuals by the civil power to be
legitimized. But, be the errors of the time what they may, it is not
fitting that we Catholics should be either their accomplices or their
dupes. Enlightened by faith, our reason must hold fast those principles
on which human society is based, and were we to be their only defenders,
it would be to our honor to have maintained them against all the
negations of the spirit of system. To judge, then, only by reason, the
state has not those rights over the education of youth which a certain
school ascribes to it.

We asserted, moreover, that the opinion of this school is also false in
a supernatural point of view, because it separates what ought to be
united, because it makes the inference the principle, and despises the
one in order to attach itself exclusively to the other. And here we touch
the pith of the question.

It is alleged, a public education good or bad, has very serious
consequences for society. Its security or its ruin may depend on it, and,
anyhow, nothing more vitally affects its peace, strength, and prosperity.
The power, therefore, with which the government of a community is
invested cannot be a matter of indifference in education. It ought, then,
to superintend and direct it, and to place itself at its head, as it
naturally does of every social function. We shall presently see how much
this reasoning is worth. It includes three things--a principle, a fact,
and an inference. The principle is as follows: Whatever is for society an
element of strength and progress, and can cause its prosperity and decay,
is within the competence of the civil authority and ought to be subject
to it. The fact is affirmed in the premises of the argument, to wit,
that public education, according as it is good or bad, is naturally of
serious consequence to the state. Whence the inference, that it ought to
be subject to the civil authority--that is, to the government.

The principle we dispute; the fact is explained and vindicated in another
way, and the inference is inconsequential.

First, it is not true that whatever affects the prosperity of the state
ought of necessity to belong to the jurisdiction of the civil power,
and to be subject to its direction and control. Are not commerce and
manufacture elements of national prosperity? Is it necessary, on that
account, that the government should assume the direction of them,
and that nothing should be done in those two departments of social
activity except by it. No. In these the office of power is limited to
causing right and justice to be respected in industrial and commercial
transactions, to intervene in contentions to decide what is just, to
secure the observance of positive laws enacted by it for the purpose
of applying to every particular case the general principles of the
natural and of the divine law. The rest is an affair of individual
enterprise among citizens. Thus, in the question which engages us, that
the education of youth ought to contribute much towards the prosperity
of a state is not sufficient reason to induce us to resign the whole of
it into the hands of the civil power. We must further inquire if there
is not some one in the community authorized, by the law of nature or by
divine right, to assume its direction and control. If this be so, it will
not do to invest the state with a right which belongs to another.

In the second place, the happiness and prosperity of a state are
certainly the result of a good education of its youth; of a complete
education, that is, well conducted; such, in a word, as gives to the
young man all the qualities of perfect manhood. Now, this education is,
of necessity, Christian education, in which the state can do nothing--the
church, and the church alone, as we have endeavored to show, everything.

What, once more, is education? We have already defined it: the work of
fitting a man to fulfil his destiny; to place the faculties of man in a
condition of sufficing for themselves, and of pursuing, with the help of
God, the end which is allotted to them. Such, clearly, is the work of
education; such the end it must of necessity propose to itself. Suppose
that in educating a child this consideration of his final destiny should
be neglected, that he was brought up with an eye solely to a proximate
and terrestrial end, beyond which he could do nothing. Could such an
education be called complete? Could it be called sufficient? Would it
deserve even the name of education? Undoubtedly not. That child would not
have been educated. He would never become a man, _vir_, in the full sense
of that term, because the vision of his intelligence would never reach
beyond the narrow horizon of this world; because his powers of well-doing
would necessarily be extremely limited; because, at last, he would miss
the end which every man is bound to attain, and would be compelled to
remain for ever nothing but an immortal abortion.

Such is the necessity of recognizing man’s final end in education. That
must be its aim, that only, under pain of compromising all the rest. Is
there any need of mentioning the guarantees afforded by generations thus
educated, for the peace and happiness of communities? Has not true and
sincere piety, in the words of the apostle,[174] promise of this life as
well as of that of eternity? Is it in any other way than in practising
the virtues which make man a social being that we can hope to achieve
immortality? Thus to labor to render ourselves worthy of the destiny
which awaits us is, also, to prepare ourselves to become good citizens
of the earthly city, is to give to society the best possible security of
being useful as well as loyal to it. The greatest men of whom humanity
is proud, were they not at the same time the most virtuous?

Now, we must repeat to Catholics who forget it, that there are not two
last ends for man, but only one; and that is the supernatural end of
which we treated at the commencement. Created by God to enjoy his glory
and his happiness through eternity, in vain would man seek elsewhere the
end of his efforts and of his existence. Everything in him tends towards
this end. It is his perfection, and in order to exalt himself to it, he
ought to give to his faculties the whole power of development of which
they are capable. Woe to him, but much more woe to those who have had
the responsibility of his education, if, through their fault, he does
not find himself on the level of his destiny; if, instead of gravitating
towards heaven in his rapid passage across life, he drags himself
miserably along the ground, wallowing in selfish interests and sensual
passions!

But if this be so, what can the state do to guide souls to heights which
surpass itself? There is nothing to be done but to apply the principle
formulated by S. Thomas: “It is his to order means to an end, in whose
possession that end is”--_Illius est ordinare ad finem, cujus est
proprius ille finis_.[175] The supernatural transformation of the soul
into God, and eternal beatitude, which education ought invariably to
propose to itself, are not the objects of human society any more than of
the civil power which regulates it. That power is consequently incapable,
of itself, of ordaining the means which contribute to this supernatural
end. It cannot afford the very smallest assistance to education in this
respect, nothing to form the man, and to adapt him to the grand designs
of God in his behalf. In a word, education is not within the jurisdiction
of earthly governments. It is above their competence.

What, then, is the power in the Christian communities commissioned with
the sublime ministry of the education of souls? Who has received from
God the divine mission of begetting them to the supernatural and divine
life, rough-drawn on earth, perfected in heaven? There is, there can
be, but one reply. The church! When he founded that august spiritual
society, Jesus Christ assigned to it as its end, to guide men to eternal
happiness; and on that account he endowed it with all the powers
necessary to ordain and to put in operation the proper means for this
end. Education conducted in a spirit fundamentally Christian--such is the
universal, indispensable mean, over which, consequently, the church has
exclusive rights.

See then, established by Jesus Christ, the great instructress of the
human race--the only one which can rightfully pretend to direct public
education in Christian communities! That superintendence, that direction,
are an integral part of the pastoral ministry. The church cannot renounce
it without prevarication.

Her reason, therefore, is obvious for insisting, with such obstinate
persistency, in claiming, everywhere and always, the exercise of a right
which she holds from God himself. Obvious is the reason for which the
Sovereign Pontiffs have so severely condemned a doctrine which is the
denial of this inalienable right for which, in the concordats concluded
with Catholic powers, a special clause invariably reserves for the church
the faculty of “seeing that youth receive a Christian education.”[176]

Nothing is more clear than that, when the Catholic Church, in a Christian
state, claims for itself the ministry of public instruction, it is no
monopoly which it seeks to grasp for the profit of its clerics. It has
but one object, to wit, that instruction should have as wide a scope as
possible; and for this object she appeals to all devotedness. Laymen and
ecclesiastics, seculars and religious, all--all are besought to take a
part in this work of instructing the peoples. Whoever offers himself
with the necessary qualifications, a pure faith, Christian manners, and
competent knowledge, is welcome. To such an one the church opens a free
scope for his energies, to cultivate the rising generations under her
shelter and in co-operation with her, in order to enable them to bring
forth the fruits of knowledge and of virtue. What she does not assent
to, what she cannot assent to, is that, under the pretext of liberty of
instruction, the ravening wolf should introduce himself into the fold,
in the person of those teachers of errors and falsehood who lay waste
the flock by bringing into it discord and war; that, under the guise of
science and intellectual progress, they should sap the religious belief
of a people, assault Christian truth, and infect the young understanding
with the deadly poison of doubt and unbelief. No, indeed! Such havoc the
church can neither sanction nor allow them an opportunity to accomplish.
She remembers that she has received from Christ the care of souls, that
the salvation of his children has been entrusted to her keeping, and that
God will demand of her an account of their blood shed--that is to say, of
their eternal perdition. _Sanguinem ejus de manu tua requiram_ (Ezech.
iii. 18). As a watchful sentinel she keeps guard over the flock, and so
long as the criminal violence of human powers does not rob her of her
rights, neither the thieves nor the assassins of souls can succeed in
exercising their ravages.

By way of recapitulation we will enunciate, in five or six propositions,
the whole of this doctrine of the rights of the church over education,
and thus place the reader in a better position for judging of its full
force and extent.

1st. The education of clerics destined to ecclesiastical functions
is the exclusive right of the church. She alone regulates everything
connected with it, whether the erection of seminaries, or their interior
discipline, or the appointment of masters, or the instruction in letters
and science, or the good education of the pupils, or their admission
into the ecclesiastical body.

2d. The church implicitly respects the right of families to provide a
private education for their children by whomsoever and in whatever manner
they prefer. Only she imposes on the consciences of Christian parents
the obligation of seeing to it that that education be religious and in
conformity with the faith they profess.

3d. The superintendence and direction of the public schools, as well of
those wherein the mass of the people are instructed in the rudiments of
human knowledge, as of those where secondary and higher instruction are
given, belong of right to the Catholic Church. She alone has the right
of watching over the moral character of those schools, of approving the
masters who instruct the youth therein, of controlling their teaching,
and dismissing, without appeal to any other authority, those whose
doctrine or manners should be contrary to the purity of Christian
doctrine.

4th. Subject to the condition of being able to guarantee pure faith,
irreproachable manners, and competent knowledge, entire liberty is left
to private individuals, ecclesiastics and laity, seculars and religious,
to devote themselves to the ministry of teaching and education of youth,
to form associations for this object, to found academies and universities
wherein the sciences are taught, and which govern themselves by their
internal discipline, the choice of masters, and the regulation of the
studies, programmes, examens, etc. The church only reserves to herself,
in their case, her right of superintendence in the matters of morality
and the integrity of the faith.

5th. The church not only does not refuse the co-operation of the state
in education, but, on the contrary, she solicits it, whenever private
enterprise and her own resources do not suffice to enable her to extend
instruction as much as she would wish and as the welfare of peoples
demands. She then appeals to the communes, to the provinces, to the
nation, in order that everywhere the co-operation of the two powers may
effect the foundation of schools, the increase of the number of masters,
and may come to the aid of the indigent parents. But even in these
schools established with the concurrence of the civil power, if the state
may superintend the administration of material interests, the right of
direction and superintendence of teaching remains with the church.

6th. Lastly, the power, nevertheless, which the church exercises
over public instruction does not hinder governments, if they deem it
expedient, from establishing schools where professors chosen by them
may give a special training to young people who devote themselves to
administrative and military careers. The administration and the army
belong, in fact, exclusively to the jurisdiction of governments. It is
but just, therefore, that they should be able to give to those who are
to belong to them the especial knowledge required for their employment.
Only, here, the civil or military authority contracts the same
obligations as those which bind the consciences of individuals, to wit,
to watch that there be nothing in those schools contrary to religion and
to good morals.

Such is the whole doctrine of the Catholic Church with regard to
the education of youth in Christian states. Is there not in this
organization an ideal which one may justly long to see realized, since
it would be the solution of a certain number of problems which strangely
perplex our insecurely founded and badly balanced modern communities?
Two authorities, each having a distinct object, but united and being
mutually the complement one of the other, have the guardianship of human
interests--interests of time and interests of eternity. One, the civil
authority, has for its direct domain, temporal affairs. The other, the
religious authority, commands and directs in all that concerns the
supernatural life. The latter, having the responsibility of guiding
man from his birth up to his entrance into eternity, educates him,
instructs him, and transforms him into a perfect man, into a Christian
worthy by his virtues of the destiny which awaits him. The former
benefits generations thus formed, and out of these elements, so well
prepared to fulfil all the duties of the present life, it constitutes
social communities as so many provisional countries, where justice and
charity, loyally practised, present an image of the true and final
country--Heaven. Thus, the two powers lend to one another a mutual
support; the civil power, by securing to the spiritual power a complete
liberty of action; and the spiritual power, in its turn, by forming for
the state honest and perfect citizens. Thus peace and concord reign
throughout the entire society, interests harmonize, justice is loved,
order exists everywhere from the highest to the lowest step of the social
ladder, and every one, content with his position here on earth, because
his hopes are on high, is more intent on making himself better than on
overthrowing existing institutions that he may raise himself on their
ruins.

Where is to be found, once more we demand, an ideal more grand and
more true than this conception of Christian society? The middle ages
were not far from realizing it. Unhappily, a work so well begun at the
inspiration of the church, first legists, courtiers of the civil power,
afterwards Protestantism and its direct off-shoot, rationalism, were fain
to interrupt it, and gradually to throw us back into a state of things
which threatens to become worse than paganism or barbarism. There is
yet time to return to truth, to right and order, which are impossible
to be found except in a society based on Christian principles. But will
peoples and legislators have a sufficiently clear perception of their
duty and their interest to stay themselves at once on the incline down
which they are gliding, and dragging us with them, towards a dark and
tempest-threatening future?


IV.--CONDUCT OF THE CHURCH IN NON-CHRISTIAN COMMUNITIES.

In the eyes of the Catholic Church, Christianity is the divine afflatus,
breathing upon human society to give it a soul and infuse life. Without
her there can be in it no true nor prolific life, and every social
organization which is not inspired by Christianity is, of necessity,
defective and abnormal. The church cannot regard such an organization as
a benefit, much less as a progress beyond Christian communities.[177]
She deplores it, on the contrary, and she endeavors to persuade people
that it would be better for them to submit absolutely to religion, and
to take it as the guide and regulator of their social interests. Never
has the church concealed her desire, not to lord it over, but to direct
communities, to penetrate them with her spirit, to recover the salutary
influence over them which is their due, and which they cannot reject
without serious injury. The church has never made any mystery of this
ambition. Her enemies themselves are witnesses to it, even when they
permit themselves, as they too often do, to travesty and calumniate her
motives in order to render them odious.

Lamentable, however, as may appear to her to be the inferior position
which is allotted to her in modern communities, she does not abandon
herself to useless regrets. Without renouncing her inalienable rights,
she sets out from a fact which it is not in her power to change, and
exhausts her ingenuity in making the best she can of it for the good
of souls. The little liberty and influence left to her, she employs
to fulfil her ministry; her zeal is inventive to supply by redoubled
vigilance the want of her ordinary means in the spiritual government.
Must not the work of God be accomplished on earth, in spite of the
difficulties, in spite of the impediments of all kinds devised by hell?

Such, then, is the principle which regulates the conduct of the church
in states where her authority is disowned. To take into consideration
circumstances, established facts; to do nothing brusquely, but
using whatever power still remains to her, to exert every effort to
ameliorate the situation, to make herself more useful to the faithful
and to society. Let us see how she applies this rule to education in
non-Christian communities.

We find first the communities wherein the constitution proclaims the
liberty of all worships, and their equality before the law. Here, the
Catholic Church has ceased to be the religion of the state, which no
longer lives in her spirit, no longer accepts her direction in matters of
religion and morality, but prefers independence to all the advantages of
a union with which it thinks it can dispense. How will the church act in
this novel position? In the name of liberty, and of the equal protection
accorded to every worship, she demands, first of all, the right of
recruiting her ministers, and that of training them according to her own
laws; the establishment of large and small seminaries, as well as their
administration by the bishops exclusively. This is the first need to
satisfy. It is her right, included in her claim to existence.

She demands, moreover, that in the public schools created or authorized
by the government, religion be invariably the foundation of education;
that the pupils be instructed in the verities of the faith, and that
neither atheism nor religious indifferentism be taught there. She demands
that at least the primary schools remain denominational--that is to say,
specially appropriated to the children of every religion, and that the
Catholic clergy have free admission to the schools for Catholics. The
preservation of the faith in those young hearts is at stake here; for the
church knows by experience the doleful effects of an early education in
which religion has not had the principal part. Thus she may, with good
right, claim of a government, Christian in name, that it leave to the
religions protected by the law this legitimate amount of influence in the
education of the people. From the same motives, the church positively
rejects the system of non-denominational schools, in which eventuates a
jumble of religions fatal to the faith and piety of children. Assuredly
Catholics know how to recognize and respect the rights of dissenters,
nor do they dream of doing violence to the conscience of any one. Is it
not, then, simply common justice that no advantage should be taken of the
liberty and equality of the several religions before the law, to hand
over Catholic children to a manifest danger of religious perversion and
moral ruin?

But this is not all. The principles on which the communities of which we
speak rest, permit Catholics to require more. True liberty for a religion
consists in its being able to be not only practised by its adherents, but
also transmitted in its integrity to succeeding generations, with its
beliefs, its precepts, its exterior forms, and, above all, its interior
spirit. Now, that is only possible by means of education. It is, then,
permitted to the church to demand that liberty be left to families to
choose themselves masters worthy of their confidence, and whom they can
trust to instruct and educate their children in the principles of the
Catholic religion. When the national constitution has already embodied
the liberty of instruction in every stage, Catholics make as extensive
use of it as they can, and as their peculiar property, imitating in
that the shipwrecked man who collects together the waifs saved from the
wreck, and out of them tries to rebuild his shattered fortune. If, on
the contrary, the monopoly in favor of the state should be embodied
in the law, they arm themselves with maxims of natural right, at times
even with the commonly accepted ideas of liberty, wherewith to beat
down this scandalous monopoly. They know how to set in motion all legal
means; and without having recourse, like many of their adversaries, to
insurrection or corruption, they succeed, sooner or later, in bringing
over public opinion to the side of justice and truth, and in recovering,
thus, a portion of the rights which belong to their church, the right of
making instructed and conscientious Christians. After that, the church
can await from the divine benediction and her own efforts the return of
a happier era, for which she exerts all the means at her disposal, by
a solid Christian education given to youth, by preaching, and by good
example. She will, at least, have neglected nothing to acquit herself of
her mission, and to make herself useful even to the communities which
repudiate her.

There remains, lastly, the third hypothesis, that of a state separated
from the church--that is to say, organized wholly out of the religious
idea, a “lay state,” in the full force of that phrase.

We observe, first, that there is more than one degree in this
secularization of the state. The first realizes the rationalist idea,
according to which governments, respectful towards religion, and allowing
absolute liberty, leave the church to organize herself after her fashion,
to preach in her temples, to teach in her schools, and to govern the
consciences subject to her authority, whilst themselves govern according
to the right of rationalism, and without asking counsel of any religious
power. It is the dream of more than one liberal, simple enough to believe
a perfect equilibrium of human passions to be possible in society, by
the sole force of nature and reason. But experience soon dissipates
the illusion of so fair a dream. All the degrees of separation between
religion and society are soon traversed up to the last, wherein the
state, no longer acknowledging creed, church, or religion, announces
itself atheist, and forces consciences to the inflexible level of an
impious legislation. From thence there is but a step to the proscription
of Catholics, and to open persecution.

However, in the conditions of an existence so unpromising what is the
conduct of Catholics? What can they do save invoke the common right,
and turn against their adversaries the weapons by which the latter
dispossessed them? The lay state proclaims liberty for all to speak,
write, and teach, as seems good to them. It is in the name of this
pretended principle that the church saw herself robbed of almost all
her rights and driven from society. Do not imagine that she approves
or that she will ever adopt so monstrous an error. But this liberty of
speaking, writing, and teaching which you do not refuse to error, is it
forbidden to claim it for truth? Truth! It is herself; and her right to
speak to the world she holds, not from false maxims inscribed in modern
constitutions, but from Jesus Christ, her divine founder. Strong in this
right, superior to human constitutions, the church never hesitates to
assume in communities the whole space they leave her to occupy, and to
extend her action to the uttermost. If they claim to exclude her, she
fashions a weapon out of common right. She summons the governments to
admit her to the benefit of the universal liberty inscribed in the law,
and too profusely lavished on teachers of error. What exception can be
taken to this conduct, at once so loyal and so right?

But they charge it against us as an unworthy manœuvre, that we claim for
ourselves, in modern communities, and in the name of their principles, a
liberty we shall refuse to our adversaries the moment we regain power.
In presence of this accusation, the more exalted liberals demand that
preventive reprisals be employed in our regard, and that liberty be
denied us. The more moderate, affecting a sort of confidence in the
stability of their work--or rather, in the impossibility of modern
communities ever again returning to the yoke of religion--prefer to show
themselves generous, and to vote for liberty even although it be that
of Catholics. Touching self-sacrifice, and which it must be owned is no
longer in unison with the temperament of contemporary liberalism!

Be that as it may, the accusation is sheer calumny, as facts prove.
Neither in the small Swiss cantons, nor in Belgium, where Catholics
govern, are dissenters oppressed. If persecution rages anywhere in the
two hemispheres, it is where liberalism has planted its banner, and
against Catholics. It is something more than ignorance which can accuse
us of persecuting tendencies at this time of day. The truth is that
social peace has no firmer supporters than Catholics.

We have before asserted, but it is well to repeat it, that the Catholic
Church professes and practises the most absolute respect for acquired
rights, for conventions concluded and accepted. Thus, for the sake of
peace, certain governments have felt themselves obliged to recognize
the right of dissenters to live in the state, retaining their beliefs
and their religious forms. Liberty of conscience has been proclaimed,
the public exercise of all the worships authorized. It is, doubtless, a
misfortune that religious unity in society should be broken. The church
regrets this misfortune, and her most earnest desire is to see, some day,
unity re-established. But is that to say that she wishes violently to
change a situation imposed on her by circumstances? that she meditates
seizing again, at a blow, and in contempt of acquired rights, the power
she enjoyed in better times? By no means. The liberty which the various
sects enjoy, for the sake of peace, the Catholic Church respects and
knows how to maintain. Dissenters may continue to practise publicly their
religion, provided that they trouble neither order nor the tranquillity
of the state. Equality of civil and political rights is guaranteed to
all citizens, Catholic or not. The same liberty is conceded to them to
open schools, and to educate their children according to their beliefs.
Nothing, in short, which is just and equitable among fellow-citizens is
refused by Catholics to those who do not share their faith. What more
do they want? And what is lacking in this conduct to constitute true
toleration in mixed communities?

Of Catholics who have become the depositaries of power in these
communities the church demands complete liberty to fulfil the duties
with which she has been charged by Jesus Christ--the right of organizing
herself according to her own laws; of recruiting the sacerdotal ministry
and exercising all its functions; of watching over the good education
of Catholic youth; of founding and directing schools, colleges, and
universities; of having her religious congregations consecrated to
prayer, preaching, or education; of being able, in short, to exercise her
salutary influence in society, and of being free to devote herself to
rendering the people better, better instructed in their duties, and more
resolute to fulfil them. As regards non-Catholics, she demands of the
government not to substitute license for liberty, but to use its utmost
efforts to banish from society two things which are the most hostile to
its prosperity and to its happiness: we mean immorality and irreligion.
If, later on, differences disappear, if all hearts should unite in the
profession of one same faith, it will then be a source of regret to no
one that the church resumes her rank, and that society is once more
Christian and Catholic.


ARE YOU MY WIFE?

BY THE AUTHOR OF “PARIS BEFORE THE WAR,” “NUMBER THIRTEEN,” “PIUS VI.,”
ETC.

CHAPTER VIII.

A STARTLING DISCLOSURE.

And how had things fared at The Lilies all this time? Sir Simon had
behaved in the strangest way. Immediately after Clide’s departure, he
came, according to his promise, and explained it after a plausible
fashion to M. de la Bourbonais, who, unsuspecting as an infant, accepted
the story without surprise or question.

At the end of a week Sir Simon knew that the worst fears were confirmed;
the identity of the supposed Isabel had been disproved, and the existence
of the real one ascertained beyond the possibility of doubt. Clide was on
her track, but when or how he should find her was yet the secret of the
future.

The one thing clear in it was, that it was a miserable business and
could end in nothing but shame and sorrow for every one connected with
it. Sir Simon was helpless and bewildered. He was always slow at taking
in bad news, and when he succeeded in doing it, his first idea was, not
to take the bull by the horns and face the facts manfully, but to stave
off the evil day, to gain time, to trust to something turning up that
would avert the inevitable. He had never in the whole course of his life
felt so helpless in the face of evil tidings as on the present occasion.
He foresaw, all too plainly, what the effect was likely to be on the
innocent young creature on whom he had brought so terrible a share in
the catastrophe. It was no comfort to him that it was not his fault. He
would willingly have taken the fault on his own shoulders, if thereby
he could have lifted the pain from hers. He was too generously absorbed
in the thought of Franceline’s trouble to split hairs on the difference
between remorse and regret; he cursed his own meddling as bitterly as
if he had acted like a deliberate villain towards her; he felt there
was nothing for him to do but blow his brains out. He passed the day he
received the admiral’s letter in this suicidal and despairing state of
mind. The next day his indignation against himself found some solace in
vituperating Clide’s ill-luck, and the villainy of the woman who had led
him such a devil’s-dance. This diversion soothed him; he slept better
that night, and next morning he awoke refreshed; cheered up according to
his happy matutinal habit, and took a brighter view of everything. It
remained no doubt a most unfortunate affair, look at it as one might, but
Franceline would get over it by and by. Why not? All the nicest girls he
knew when he was a young fellow had been crossed in love, and they had
all got over it, and married somebody else and lived happily ever after.
Why should not Franceline do the same? De Winton was a very nice fellow,
but there were other nice fellows in the world. There was Roxham, for
instance. If he, Sir Simon, was a pretty girl, he was not sure but he
should like Roxham best of the two; he was deuced good-looking, and the
eldest son of a peer to boot; that counts with every girl, why shouldn’t
it with Franceline? “But is she like every girl? Is she a butterfly to
be caught by any candle?” whispered somebody at Sir Simon’s ear; but
he pooh-poohed the unwelcome busybody, as he would have brushed away a
buzzing fly. She must get over it; Roxham should come in and cut out
this unlucky Clide. The worst of it was that conversation Sir Simon had
had with Raymond before Franceline’s visit to London. If he had but had
the wit to hold his tongue a little longer! Well, biting it off now
would not mend matters. Roxham must come to the rescue. He had evidently
been smitten the night of the ball. Sir Simon had intentionally brought
him into the field to rouse Clide’s jealousy, and bring him to the
point; he had invoked every species of anathema on himself for it ever
since, but it was going to turn out the luckiest inspiration after all.
While the baronet was performing his toilet, he arranged matters thus
satisfactorily to his own mind, and by the time he came down to breakfast
he was fully convinced that everything was going to be for the best. He
read his letters, wished a few unpleasant little eventualities to the
writers of most of them, and crammed them into a drawer where they were
not likely to be disturbed for some time to come. The others he answered;
then he read the newspapers, and that done, ordered his horse round, and
rode to Rydal, Lady Anwyll’s place.

The conversation naturally fell on the recent ball at the Court,
and from that to the acknowledged belle of the evening, Mlle. de la
Bourbonais. In answer to the plump little dowager’s enthusiastic praises
of his young friend’s beauty the baronet remarked that it was a pity she
did not live nearer The Lilies. “It is dull for the little thing, you
see,” he said; “Bourbonais is up to his eyes in books and study, and she
has no society to speak of within reach; she and the Langrove girls don’t
seem to take to each other much; she is a peculiar child, Franceline; you
see she has never mixed with children, she has been like a companion to
her father, and the result is that she has fallen into a dreamy kind of
world of her own, and that’s not good for a girl; she is apt to prey upon
herself. I wish you were a nearer neighbor of ours.”

“I am near enough for all intents and purposes,” said Lady Anwyll,
promptly; “what is it but an hour’s drive? There’s nothing I should like
better than to take her about, pretty creature, with her great gazelle
eyes; but I dare say she would bore herself with me; they don’t care for
old women’s society, those young things--why should they? I hated an old
woman like a sour apple when I was her age.”

“Oh! but Franceline is not a bit like most girls of her age; she would
enjoy you very much, I assure you she would,” protested Sir Simon warmly.
“There is nothing she likes better than talking to me now, and I might be
your father,” he added, with more gallantry than truth; but Lady Anwyll
laughed a contemptuous, little, good-humored laugh without contradicting
him. “She has seen very little and read a great deal--too much in fact;
you would be surprised to see how much she has read about all sorts of
things that most girls only know by name; her father was for teaching her
Greek and Latin, but I bullied him out of that nonsense; it would have
been a downright crime to spoil such a creature by making her blue. I’ve
saved her from that, at any rate.”

“I dare say that is not the only good service she owes you,” observed the
dowager, “nor is it likely to be the last. When is your young relation
coming back?”

“De Winton, you mean? He’s hardly a relation--a connection at most. I
don’t know when he is likely to turn up; I believe he’s on his way to the
North Pole at present.”

“Really! I thought there was a magnet drawing him nearer home.”

“What! Franceline, eh? Well, I thought myself he was a trifle spooney
in that quarter,” said the baronet, bending down to examine his boots,
“but it would seem not, or he would not have decamped; he’s an odd fish,
Clide--a capital fellow, but odd.”

“I thought him original, and liked him very much, what little I saw of
him,” replied Lady Anwyll. “However, I am glad to hear it is not a case
between him and your pretty friend; if there is a thing I _hate_”--with
ten drops of vitriol in the monosyllable--“it’s chaperoning a girl in
love. You have no satisfaction in her; nothing interests or amuses her;
she is ready to bite the nose off any man that looks civil at her; she
is a social nuisance in fact, and I make a point of having nothing to do
with her.”

Sir Simon threw back his head and laughed.

“How about young Charlton?” resumed the dowager; “he is the match of the
county. Has he gone in for the prize?”

“He’s too great an ass,” was the rejoinder.

“Humph! Asses are proof, then, against the power of a beautiful face?
It’s the first time I’ve heard it.”

“The fact is, I don’t think he has had a chance yet,” said Sir Simon;
“Bourbonais is peculiar, and does not encourage people to go and see him;
he only admits a select circle of old fogies, and I think he fancies
Charlton is a bit of a puppy.”

“Perhaps he’s not much out in that,” assented the lady.

“Roxham struck me as being rather smitten the other night; did you notice
anything in that direction,” inquired Sir Simon carelessly, as he rose
to go. “I was too busy to see much of what was going on in the way of
flirtation, but I fancied he was rather assiduous!”

“Now, that would be a very nice thing!” And the mother who had made many
matches brightened up with lively interest. “I should like to help on
that; it would be quite an exciting amusement, and I have nothing to do
just now.”

“Take care!” and Sir Simon raised his finger with a warning gesture; “you
may have a social nuisance on your hands before you know where you are.”

“Oh! I don’t mind when it’s of my own making,” said the dowager; “that
quite alters the case.”

“Then you will drive over to-morrow or next day and call at The Lilies?”

Sir Simon mounted Nero in high good humor; whistled a hunting air as he
dashed through the stiff Wellingtonias that flanked the long avenue at
Rydal, and never drew rein until he alighted at his own door.

M. de la Bourbonais greeted Lady Anwyll with the innate courtesy of a
grand seignior, and never let her see by so much as a look that her
visit was not an agreeable surprise. Yet it was not so. Since that
conversation with Sir Simon about Franceline’s fortune, an uneasy
feeling had possessed him, and he had shrunk back more sensitively than
ever into his shell of reserve and isolation. He had been content, or
rather compelled, to leave matters entirely in Sir Simon’s hands, or
in the hands of fate, but he did not feel at rest, and he had no mind
to launch out into new acquaintances just at a moment when his mind
was disturbed by strange probabilities, and his habitual abstraction
broken up by vague anxieties, that could not take any definite shape as
yet. But Lady Anwyll saw nothing of this in the old gentleman’s courtly
greeting; she saw that Franceline had welcomed her with a warmth that
was unmistakable--childlike and gleeful, and fettered by no ice bands of
conventional politeness.

The dowager’s visit was indeed welcome; the utter silence that had
succeeded to the stir and agitation of the past few weeks had fallen
upon Franceline like a snow-drift in the midst of summer; the return to
the old stagnant life was dreadful--she felt chilled to death by it.
The reaction was natural enough to one of her age and circumstances;
but we know that there was a deeper reason for her sense of loneliness
and weariness than the mere relapse into routine and dulness after a
season of excitement. Where was Mr. de Winton, and why had he gone off
in that strange way, without a sign or a word, leaving her trembling and
expectant on the threshold of her awakened womanhood?

It was more than a week now since he went, and she had not heard his name
once mentioned, and there was no prospect of her hearing any one speak
of him; since neither her father nor Sir Simon did so. Lady Anwyll came
like a messenger and a link; Lady Anwyll was in Clide’s world, the wide,
wide world beyond her own small sphere where no one knew him. This was
unconsciously the reason of Franceline’s joyous greeting. Sir Simon had
come with the dowager; they had walked down through the park together,
and it was the first time in her life that Franceline was not thoroughly
glad to see him. He was not quite like his usual self either, to her, she
fancied. He rattled on in his own way, telling stories and making jokes,
and then catching up some chance words of Raymond’s and quarrelling with
them, until their author waxed warm, and was drawn out into an elaborate
refutation of some meaning that he never dreamed of giving them, but into
which Sir Simon had purposely twisted them; and finally accomplishing his
aim of keeping the conversation on abstract subjects and not letting it
slip into the dangerous path of personal or local events.

“So you will let me come and take you out for a drive sometimes,” Lady
Anwyll said, as she rose to take leave, “and by-and-by, when you get used
to the old woman, perhaps you will come and spend a day or two with her
in her big, lonely house? You will not be always afraid of her?”

“I am not afraid of her now,” protested Franceline, looking with her
radiant dark eyes straight into the old lady’s face, “you don’t look
wicked at all.”

“Don’t I? Then more shame for me; that shows I’m a hypocrite, a whitened
sepulchre, my dear,” and she nodded emphatically at Franceline, and gave
a little groan.

“For goodness’ sake don’t come Miss Bulpit over us!” cried Sir Simon,
holding up his hands. “I’ll bolt at once if you take to that.” And with
this pretence of alarm he hurried out of the room.

“Then, since you are not frightened at me, you will promise to come very
soon. Let us settle it at once--for Thursday next?” and she held the
young girl’s hand in both her own, and looked to M. de la Bourbonais for
assent.

But Raymond began to settle his spectacles, and was for explaining how
difficult it would be for him to part with his daughter even for a day,
and how unaccustomed she was to going anywhere alone, when Sir Simon
called out from the garden:

“Tut, tut, Bourbonais, that’s precisely why she must go; you must not
mope the child in this way; she must gad about a bit, like other girls.
It will do her good; it will do her good.”

The three came out and joined him, walking round to the back entrance
through which the visitors were going to re-enter the park.

“I shall get a few young people together, so it will not be so very dull
for you, my dear,” continued Lady Anwyll, as they walked four abreast on
the grass; “and I can mount you; I know you ride.”

“Oh! I don’t think she would care--” began Raymond; but Sir Simon cut him
short again.

“Is your son coming down for a shot at the partridges?”

“Not he; at least not that I know of; he is off fishing near Norway, or
was the last time I heard of him; but for all I know he may have joined
your friend young De Winton at the North Pole by this. Well, good-by, my
dear. I should dearly like a kiss. Would you mind kissing the old woman?”

Franceline put her soft, vermilion lips to the wrinkled cheek. Neither
Lady Anwyll nor Raymond saw how instantaneously the blood had forsaken
them, leaving them white as her brow; but Sir Simon did, and it smote
him to the heart. He walked on before the good-bys were over, ostensibly
to give some order about the carriage that was drawn up at a turn in the
avenue, but in reality to avoid meeting Raymond’s glance.

Late that evening a note came to The Lilies to say that he was obliged
to start at a moment’s notice for the south of France, where his
step-mother, Lady Rebecca, was dangerously ill. He was sorry to have to
rush off without saying good-by, but he had not a moment to lose to catch
the express.

Sir Simon did start by the express, and after a day or two in London,
where he saw Admiral de Winton, and ascertained that nothing new had
turned up in Clide’s affairs, he thought he might just as well go to
the south of France, where he would be within reach of his interesting
relative in case she should need him, or die, which the older she grew
the less she seemed inclined to do, in spite of Mr. Simpson’s periodical
tolling of her death-knell. Fate, that abstract divinity invoked by
pagans and novelists, interfered with the fulfilment of Franceline’s
engagement to Lady Anwyll. A letter--a real letter--awaited her at
home from her son-in-law, saying that his wife was taken suddenly ill,
and entreated her mother to come to her without delay. Franceline was
rather glad than sorry when the note came to postpone her visit. The
desire to go to Rydal was gone. She wanted to be left alone. She was
not equal to the effort of seeming amused. And yet, again, in another
way she regretted it. A day or two’s absence from her father would
have been a relief; the strain of keeping up false appearances before
him was worse than it need have been amongst strangers; it would have
sufficed them to be calm; at home she must be gay. After the sudden shock
which those words so carelessly uttered by Lady Anwyll had caused her,
Franceline’s first thought was to screen her feelings from her father.
She was helped in her effort to do this by her certainty that he had no
key to them, that he had not for a moment connected her and Clide de
Winton in his thoughts. If she had known how much had been disclosed to
him, how closely he had watched her ever since that fatal conversation
with Sir Simon, concealment would have been impossible. As it was, she
found it hard enough; but there was an unsuspected strength of will,
a vitality of power in her, that enabled her to act the part she had
resolved upon. She called up all her love for her father and all her
native woman’s pride and maiden delicacy to the effort, and she achieved
it. Her father watched her with the jealous eye of anxious affection,
but he could see nothing forced in her spirits; he heard no hollow note
in her laugh; he saw no trace of sadness in her smile. She was merrier,
brighter, more talkative for several days after Lady Anwyll’s visit than
he remembered to have seen her. Raymond sighed with relief many times
a day as he heard her singing to herself, or caressing her doves with
new names of endearment and fresh delight. She succeeded perfectly in
blinding him, but not in silencing the wild tumult of her own heart. It
was all mystery yet; pain and wonder were predominant, but hope was not
absent from the chaos of conflicting emotions, and there was nothing of
wounded self-respect, no definite feeling of reproach towards Clide. It
seemed as if everything were a mistake; no one had done anything wrong,
and yet everything had gone wrong. Was it all a dream the life she had
been living for those few blissful weeks? Was his devotion to her, his
exclusive assiduity during all that time, nothing but the customary
demeanor of a gentleman to a young girl in whose society chance had
thrown him? Franceline asked herself this over and over again, and could
only find one answer to it--the echo of her own heart. But what did she
really know about such things--what standard had she to go by? What had
she ever seen to guide her in forming a reasonable conclusion?--for
she wanted to be reasonable: to judge calmly without listening to the
longings and tyrannical affirmations of this heart. “He may have been
so assiduous in attending me in my rides simply to please Sir Simon,”
whispered reason; but the response came quickly: “Need he have looked and
spoken as he did to please Sir Simon? And that night of the ball, was it
to please Sir Simon that he was stung and angry when I deserted him for
Lord Roxham? Was it for that that he spoke those words that had set my
every fibre thrilling? ‘What does anything matter to us, Franceline, as
long as we are not angry with each other?’ To what melting tenderness
was his voice toned as he uttered them! How his glance sought mine and
rested in it, completing all that the words had left unsaid! And I am
to believe that he had meant no more than the customary gallantries of
a man of the world to his partner in the dance?” She laughed to herself
as the outrageous question rose in her thoughts. Then, apart from this
unanswerable testimony, there was evidence of Clide’s feelings and
motives towards herself in his conduct towards her father. How anxious he
had shown himself to please M. de la Bourbonais, to secure his advice and
follow it, and make her aware that he did so! No; she had not assuredly
been won unsought. This certainty supported and cheered her. If she had
been sought, she would be sought again. Clide would return and claim
what he had won. It was impossible to doubt but that he would. Whenever
Franceline arrived at this point in her cogitations her spirits rose to
singing pitch, and she would break out into carol and song, like a bird,
and run down to Angélique and tease her to exasperation, pulling out her
knitting-needles and playing tricks like a kitten, till she drove her
nearly frantic, and sent her complaining to M. le Comte that _la petite_
was grown as full of mischief as a squirrel; there was no being safe a
minute from her tricks once your back was turned. And Raymond would look
up with a beaming face, and beg pardon for the culprit. “She keeps life
in our old veins, ma bonne,” he would say; “what should we do without our
singing bird?”

But there were days when the singing bird was silent, when there
was no music in her, and when she could have broken into passionate
tears if they had not been restrained by a strong effort of will.
These alternations, however, passed unobserved by the two who might
have noticed them. Raymond had made up his mind that Sir Simon’s
brilliant scheme had failed, and that as the failure had dealt no blow
at Franceline’s happiness, it was not to be regretted. It had been
altogether too brilliant to be practicable; he felt that from the first,
and his instinct served him better than Sir Simon’s experience, shrewd
man of the world though he was. “Kind, foolish friend, his affection
blinded him and made him see everything as he desired it for Franceline,
and now he is vexed with himself, and ashamed very likely, and so he
keeps away from me. Perhaps he imagines I would reproach him. This poor,
dear Simon has more heart than head.”

And with these indulgent reflections, Raymond sank back into his dreamy
historical world, and left off watching the changeful aspects of his
child. She was safe; things were just as they used to be.

A month went by; during that time one letter had come from the baronet,
affectionate as ever, but evidently written under some feeling of
restraint. He talked of the annoyances he had had on the road, and
the loss of some of his luggage, and about French politics. M. de le
Bourbonais fancied he saw through the awkwardness; he answered the letter
in a more than usually affectionate strain; was very communicative about
himself and Franceline, who was growing quite beyond Angélique’s and his
control, he assured his friend, and required Sir Simon’s hand to keep
her within bounds, so he had better hasten home as quickly as possible
if he had any pity for the two victims of her tyranny and numberless
caprices. This letter had the effect intended; it brought another without
many days’ delay, and written with all the _abandon_ and spirit of the
writer’s most cheerful mood.

Lady Anwyll returned at the end of the month, and bore down on The Lilies
the very next day. Franceline would have fought off if she could have
done so with any chance of success; but the dowager was peremptory in
claiming what had been distinctly promised, and she agreed to be ready
the next day to accompany the old lady to Rydal.

Angélique put her biggest irons in the fire, and smoothed out her young
mistress’s prettiest white muslin dress, and set her sashes and ribbons
in order, and was as full of bustle as if the quiet visit a few miles off
had been a wedding.

“I am glad the _petite_ is going; it will do her good,” she observed,
complacently, as she brought in the lamp and set it down on the count’s
table that evening.

“Why do you think it will do her good? Is she suffering in any way?” said
the father, a sudden sting of the old fear giving sharpness to his voice.

“Bonté divine! How monsieur takes the word out of one’s mouth!”
ejaculated Angélique, throwing up her hands like an aggrieved woman;
“why, a little distraction always does good at mamselle’s age; look at
me: it would put new blood into my old veins if I could go somewhere and
distract myself.”

“You find it very dull, my good Angélique?” And the master turned a
kindly, almost penitent glance on the nut-brown face.

“Hé! listen to him again! One does not want to be dying of _ennui_ to
enjoy a little distraction; one does not think of it, but when it comes
one may like it!” She gave the shade a jerk that made it spin round the
lamp, and walked off in high dudgeon.

Franceline was conscious of a pleasurable flutter next day, when she
heard the carriage crunching the gravel, and presently Lady Anwyll came
round on foot, followed by the footman, who carried off her box and
secured it in some mysterious part of the vehicle. She was flushed when
she kissed her father and said good-by; he thought it was the pleasure of
the “little distraction” that heightened her color, and that took away
the pang of the short parting.

“Yes, decidedly, a change does her good,” he mentally remarked; “I must
let her take advantage of any pleasant one that offers.”

It was an event in Franceline’s life, going to stay at a strange house.
The Court was too much like her own home, and she had known it too long
and too early to feel like a visitor there, or to be overpowered by its
splendors. Rydal was not to be compared to it either for architectural
beauty or magnitude, or for the extent and beauty of the grounds and
surrounding scenery. The Court was a grand baronial hall; Rydal was
an old-fashioned manor house; low-roofed, straggling, and picturesque
outside; spacious and comfortable inside; with enough of the marks of
time on the furniture and decorations to stamp it as the abode of many
generations of gentlemen. A low-ceiled square hall, with sitting-rooms
opening into it on either side, and quaint pictures and arms ornamenting
its walls, received you with a hospitable hearth, where a huge log
was blazing cheerily under a high, carved oak mantel-piece. It was not
flagged with marble, nor supported by majestic columns like the Gothic
hall of the Court, but it had a charm of its own that Franceline felt,
and expressed by a bright exclamation as she alighted in it.

“Come in and sit down for a moment in the drawing-room,” said Lady
Anwyll. “I always rest before toiling up-stairs, my dear; and you must
fancy yourself an old woman and do so too.”

Franceline followed her into the handsome square room. Two projecting
windows thrust themselves out to the west to catch the last rays of the
setting sun at one end, and another bulged out southward to sun itself
in the noon-tide warmth; an old-fashioned sofa was drawn close to the
fire. Franceline fancied she saw the soles of two boots resting on the
arm facing the door; and was beginning to wonder where the body was that
they might belong to, when the dowager suddenly cried out in tones of
amazement rather than delight:

“Good gracious, Ponce! what brought you back, and when did you come? I
verily believe you have got some talisman like Riquet with the Tuft for
flying about the world like a bird! Where have you come from now?”

She stooped down to kiss the invisible head that lay at the other end of
the figure, and a voice from the cushions answered: “I pledged my word I
would be back in a day and a month; did you ever know me break my word,
lady mother?”

“You so seldom commit yourself by pledging it to me that I hardly
remember; however, now that you are here, I am glad to see you, and to
be able to offer you a reward for your punctuality. Come here, my dear,
and let me introduce my son Ponsonby to you.”

The recumbent giant was on his feet in an instant, with an involuntary
“Hollo!” as Franceline advanced at his mother’s bidding.

“This is Mlle. de la Bourbonais, Ponce; my son, Captain Anwyll.”

“It is not often punishment overtakes the guilty so fast,” said the
gentleman, with a very low bow, and an awkward laugh; “I so seldom
indulge in the laziness of stretching my long legs on a sofa, that it’s
rather hard on me that I should be caught in the act by a lady. Mother,
you ought to have given me notice in time.”

“Served you right! I’m glad you were caught; and, my dear, don’t you mind
his _seldom_; when he is not flying through the air or over the water,
this big son of mine is stretching himself somewhere. Come, now, and get
your things off.” As they were leaving the room, she looked back to ask
her son if he “had brought the regiment down with him,” and on hearing
that he had left that appendage in Yorkshire, his mother observed that it
was like him to leave it behind just when it might have been useful.

There are some people who, though inert and quiet themselves, have a
faculty for putting everybody about them in a commotion. Ponsonby Anwyll
was one of these. When he came down to Rydal it was as if an earthquake
shook the place. He wanted next to no waiting on, yet somehow every
servant in the house was busied about him. He was like a baby in a house,
exacting nothing, but occupying everybody.

He was constantly either overturning something, or on the point of doing
it. Like so many men of the giant type, he was as gentle as a woman and
as easily cowed; and like a woman, he always wanted somebody at his elbow
to look after him. If he attempted to light a lamp, ten to one he upset
it and spoiled a table-cover or a carpet, or he let the chimney fall, and
cut his fingers picking up the bits to prevent some one else’s being cut.
He took next to no interest practically in the estate; yet his tenantry
were very fond of him; he never bothered them about improvements or
abuses, and they were more obliged to him for letting them alone than for
benefiting them against their will. Whenever he interfered it was to take
their part against the agent, who could not see why the tenants were to
be let off paying full rents because the harvest happened to be a failure
one year, when it had been good so many preceding ones. Lady Anwyll would
bully and storm and protest that he was ruining the property, and that
they would all end in the Union; but Ponsonby soon petted her into good
humor. In her heart of hearts she was proud of her big, easy-going son,
who cared so little for money, and she was as pleased to be patronized by
him as a little kitten is when the powerful Newfoundland condescends to a
game of romps with it.

When Franceline, in her white muslin dress, floated into the
drawing-room, like a summer cloud, the Newfoundland was standing on the
hearth-rug, with its eyes fixed expectantly on the door. Lady Anwyll was
generally down long before her son. Ponce took an age to get out of one
set of clothes and into another; but he had the start of her to-day.

“You have had a nice drive from Dullerton,” he began; how else could he
begin? “But I fear the weather is on the turn; those clouds over the
common look mischievous.”

“Are you weatherwise?” inquired Franceline, following his eyes to the
window.

“Not he, my dear! He’s not wise in anything!” answered a voice from
behind her.

“Mother, this is positively too bad of you! I protest against your taking
away my character in this fashion, before I have a chance of making one
with Miss Franceline. You begin by making me out the laziest dog in
Christendom, and now you would rob me of my one intellectual quality! You
know I am weatherwise! They call me Girouette in the 10th, because I can
tell to a feather how the wind is blowing; ’pon my honor they do, Miss
Franceline!”

Franceline was going to assure him of her entire faith in this assertion
when dinner was announced, and they crossed the hall into the dining-room.

“Now, tell us something about where you’ve been and what you’ve seen and
done,” said the dowager; “and try and be as entertaining as you can, for
you see there is no one else to amuse my young friend.”

“I’m sure I should be very proud; I wish I could remember something
amusing to tell; but that’s the deuce of it, the more a fellow wants to
be pleasant the less he can. Do you care to hear about fishing?” This was
addressed to Franceline. There was something so boyish in his manner,
such an entire absence of conceit or affectation, that, in spite of other
deficiencies, she liked the shy hussar, and felt at ease with him.

“I dare say I should if I understood it at all; but I do not. But I am
always curious to know about foreign places and people,” she said.

“Oh! I’m glad of that; I can tell you plenty about no end of places,”
answered the traveller promptly; “but I dare say you’ve seen them all
yourself; everybody goes everywhere nowadays.”

“I have never been out of Dullerton since I came here as a child, but
once for a few days to London,” said Franceline; “so you can hardly go
wrong in telling me about any foreign place.”

“How odd! Well, its rather refreshing too. I suppose you are nervous,
afraid of the water, or the railway?”

“Not the least. I am too poor to travel.” She said it as simply as if she
had stated that the rain had prevented her going for a walk.

“Oh, indeed! That is a hindrance to be sure,” blundered out Ponsonby;
“but people are better off that stay at home. One is always within an
inch of getting one’s neck broken, or one’s eye put out; and people very
often do come to grief travelling. I dare say you wouldn’t like it at
all.”

“Getting her eyes put out? I should think not!” chimed in his mother,
with a mocking chuckle.

“I meant the whole thing,” pursued Ponce. “The only chance one has is to
go straight through like a letter in the post, from one place to another,
and stick there, and not go posting about from place to place, as we did
in Rome, now. That is a pleasant place to go to. I bet anything you’d
enjoy Rome awfully; everybody does; and now they’ve got good hotels, and
you can get as good a dinner as any fellow need care to eat. Only you
would not like the popish ways of the place. That’s the deuce of it, you
can’t get out of the way of that sort of thing; it’s in the air, you see;
but one grows used to it after a while, as one does to the bad smells.”

“I should not suffer from that. I am a Catholic,” said Franceline, her
color rising slightly.

“Oh, indeed! I beg your pardon; I had no idea; of course that makes all
the difference,” stammered the hussar, mentally comparing himself to
Patrick, who could never open his mouth without putting his foot in it.

Lady Anwyll had now despatched her dinner, or as much of the long meal as
she ever partook of. Feeling that the conversation was not progressing
very favorably between her son and her guest, she took the reins in her
own hand, and by dint of direct questions and an occasional touch of the
spur she managed to make time trot on in a straggling but on the whole
amusing style of talk, half narrative, half anecdote, until dinner was
ended, and she and Franceline migrated to the drawing-room, leaving the
captain to discuss the claret in solitary state.

       *       *       *       *       *

The next morning at breakfast Lady Anwyll proposed that the two young
people should go for a ride after lunch. Franceline demurred, on the
plea that she had never ridden but one horse and was afraid to trust
herself on any other. The captain, however, settled this difficulty,
by volunteering to send a man over to Dullerton for Rosebud. She would
come at an easy pace, and after an hour’s rest be ready for the road.
On seeing the point so satisfactorily arranged, Franceline immediately
dismissed her terrors, and thought it would be rather desirable to try
how she could manage on a strange horse. She could not plead that she
had forgotten her riding habit, for Angélique had remembered it, as well
as the hat and gloves and whip, all of which had been packed up with her
other clothes.

The weather was fine, a bright sun beamed from a stainless sky; the furze
on the common was yellow enough still to illuminate the flat expanse of
the country round Rydal, and as Franceline dashed through the golden
bushes on her spirited steed, her youth vindicated itself, the young
blood coursed joyously through her veins, her spirits rose, and soon
the exercise that she begun reluctantly became one of keen enjoyment.
Capt. Anwyll was not a very interesting companion, but he was natural
and good-natured, and anxious to please; he knew now what ground he was
treading, too, and made no more blunders, but chatted on without shyness
or effort, and was pleasant enough.

“Roxham is coming to dinner. You know Roxham? A capital fellow; a dead
shot; a clever fellow too; goes in strong for politics and philanthropy
and so forth. He’ll be in the ministry one of these days I dare say, and
setting the country by the ears with his reform crochets, and that sort
of thing: his head is full of them.”

“Not a bad sort of furniture either. Why don’t you follow his example?”
demanded Franceline.

“Me! How satirical you are! That’s not my line at all. I don’t go in for
politics--only for soldiering, if there were any to do. They set me up as
liberal candidate for the last elections, but when I found it was not to
be a walk-over, and that I was to contest it, I backed out. My mother was
dreadfully savage. But bless her! she does not understand it a bit. I’m
no hand at making speeches and addressing constituents. Now, Roxham can
hold forth by the hour to a mob, or to any set of fellows; it’s wonderful
to see how he spins out the palaver--and first-rate palaver it is, I can
tell you. You should hear him on the hustings! We’ll make him describe a
great row he and the liberal candidate had at the last elections, when
Roxham beat him out of the field in grand style; he was no match for
Roxham anyhow, and besides he had a stutter, and when he was in a passion
he couldn’t get a word out without stamping like a vicious horse. It’s
great fun to hear Roxham tell it; we’ll make him do so this evening. It
will amuse you.”

Franceline laughed. The name of Lord Roxham and the mention of his
electioneering feats recalled a scene that was seldom absent from her
memory now. Every trifling detail of that scene rose vividly before her
as she listened to Captain Anwyll. Would he never allude to one figure
in it that overshadowed every other? If she could but lead him to speak
of Clide! Perhaps he could tell her something of his present movements;
throw some light on her perplexity.

“Lord Roxham has a very handsome cousin, Lady Emily Fitznorman; do you
know her?” she asked, carelessly.

“Yes. A very nice girl as well as handsome.”

“I wonder she’s not married already.”

“You think she’s on the wane! Wait a while; you won’t think
three-and-twenty so antique by and by.”

“I did not mean that; I thought she was about my own age,” protested
Franceline with vivacity; “but when one is so much admired as Lady Emily
seemed to be that night at Dullerton, one wonders she is not carried off
by some devoted admirer.”

“Then you noticed that she had a great many? Would it be unfair to ask a
few names?”

“Mr. de Winton for one seemed very devoted.”

“De Winton! Humph! Who else?”

“Why do you say ‘humph’? Is there reason why he should not be amongst the
number?”

“Rather--that is to say perhaps--in fact, thereby hangs a tale.” His face
wore a quizzical expression as he spoke.

“What tale?” She looked round with a quick, curious glance.

“Oh! it’s not fair to tell tales out of school, is it?”

“Certainly not; I had no idea there was a secret in the way,” said
Franceline, bridling.

Ponsonby was not gifted with the knack of calm irrelevance; instead of
dropping the subject and turning to something else, he resumed presently:

“De Winton is a capital shot too--better than Roxham; I went boar-hunting
with him in Germany three years ago, and then black-cock shooting in
Prussia, and I never knew him to miss his aim once.”

“He will come home laden with bears this time no doubt,” she remarked
with affected coolness.

“Bears! not he. He has other game to follow now. Are you up to taking
that fence, or shall we go round by the bridle-path? It makes it a good
bit longer?”

“I don’t care to take the fence. Let us go round.”

She put her horse at a canter, and they scarcely spoke again until they
reached Rydal.

Lady Anwyll’s voice sounded from the drawing-room, summoning her to
come in before going upstairs, but Franceline did not heed it. She went
straight to her room; she must have a few moments alone; she could not
talk or listen just now. While she was flying through the air, it seemed
as if motion suspended thought, and kept her poised above the mental
whirlwind that Capt. Anwyll’s words had evoked; but once standing with
the ground firm under her feet, thought resumed its power, and shook
off the temporary torpor. She closed her door, and proceeded quietly to
take off her habit. As she did so a voice kept repeating distinctly in
her ears, “He has other game to follow now!” What did it, could it mean?
Why, since he had said so much, could he not in mercy have said something
more? But what did Capt. Anwyll know about mercy in the matter? What
was Mr. de Winton to her in his eyes? Nothing, thank heaven! Nor in any
one else’s. It was from mystery to mystery; she could make nothing out
of it. One fact alone grew clearer and clearer to her amidst the dim
chaos--Clide de Winton was the loadstar that was drawing her thoughts,
her longings, her life after him wherever he was. Everything else was
vague and undefined. She could not blame any one; she could not grieve or
lament; she could only lose herself in torturing conjecture. It wanted
more than an hour to dinner-time. Franceline had not the courage to spend
it in the drawing-room, where she would be the object of Lady Anwyll’s
motherly petting, and Ponsonby’s flat gossip; she must have the interval
to school herself for the effort that was before her for the rest of the
evening. There were steps on the landing; she opened her door; one of the
maids was passing.

“Please tell her ladyship that I am a little tired, and shall lie down
for half an hour before I dress.” The servant took the message.

Franceline did not lie down, however; she seated herself before the
window, and thought. The exercise was not soothing, but it was a respite;
and when she made her appearance in the drawing-room, there was so little
trace of fatigue about her that Lady Anwyll rallied her good-naturedly on
the cruelty of having stayed away under false pretences.

Lord Roxham met her with the frankness of an old acquaintance, and
had many pretty speeches to make about their last meeting. Franceline
responded with sprightly grace, and hoped he had come prepared to
complete her education in parliamentary matters. The evening passed off
gaily. Lord Roxham was a fluent if not a brilliant talker, and under the
animating influence of his lively rattle, Franceline’s spirits rose,
and her hosts, who had hitherto seen her rather willing to be amused
than amusing, were surprised to see with what graceful spirit she kept
the ball going, bandying light repartee with Lord Roxham, and pricking
Ponsonby into joining in the game with a liveliness that astonished him
and enchanted his mother. The dowager chuckled inwardly, and applauded
herself on the success of her little matrimonial scheme; she already saw
Franceline a peeress, and happily settled as a near neighbor of her own.
None of the party were musical, but they did not miss this delightful
element of sociability, so unflagging was the flow of talk and anecdote;
and when Lord Roxham started up at eleven o’clock to ring for his horse,
every one protested he must have heard the clock strike one too many.

“Come and lunch to-morrow, and join these two in their ride,” said Lady
Anwyll, as she shook hands with him.

“Am I going to ride home?” inquired Franceline, surprised.

“Certainly not! Nor drive either. You don’t suppose I’m going to let you
off with one day’s penance?”

“O dear Lady Anwyll! papa will expect me to-morrow, and he will be uneasy
if he does not see me; I assure you he will,” pleaded Franceline.

“I can remove that obstacle,” said Lord Roxham promptly. “I must ride
over to Dullerton early to-morrow morning, and I can have the honor of
calling at M. de la Bourbonais’, and setting his mind at rest about you.”

“The very thing!” cried Lady Anwyll, shutting up Franceline, who had an
excuse ready; “you can call at The Lilies on your way back, and tell the
count he is to expect this young lady when he sees her.”

Luckily Franceline was ignorant of the juxtaposition of the various seats
round Dullerton, or it might have struck her as odd that Lady Anwyll
should propose the messenger’s going a round of fifteen miles to call at
The Lilies “on his way back.” But she suspected nothing, and when Lord
Roxham alighted at Rydal next day punctually as the clock struck two P.M.
she greeted him with unabashed cordiality, and was all eagerness to know
if he had seen her father, and what the latter had said.

She had slept restlessly, but she had slept; her anxiety had not as yet
the sting in it that destroys sleep. She did not fail to notice with
renewed wonder that Lord Roxham had studiously avoided mentioning Mr.
de Winton’s name. Studiously it must have been; for what more natural
than to have mentioned him when discussing the fairy _festa_ where they
had first met? She felt certain there must be a motive for so palpable a
reticence, and the thought did not tend to reassure her. She had dressed
herself before luncheon, so when the horses came round, they mounted at
once. Franceline, on starting, had mentally resolved to make Lord Roxham
speak on the subject that was uppermost in her mind--to put a direct
question in fact, if everything else failed--but, strive as she might, he
would not be lured into the trap, and her courage sank so much on seeing
this that she dared not venture on a direct interrogation.

They stayed out until near sundown; the day was breezy and bright, and
Franceline looked radiant with the excitement and exercise.

“Let us ride up to the knoll and see the sun go down behind the common,”
proposed Capt. Anwyll, as they were about to pass the park gate; “the
sunset is the only thing we have worth showing at Rydal, and I’d like
Mlle. de la Bourbonais to see it.”

His companions gladly assented, and the party turned off the road into
a bridle-path across the fields which led to the elevation commanding
an unbroken view of the spectacle. It seemed as if everything had been
purposely cleared away from the landscape that could divert attention
for an instant from the glorious pageant of the western skies. Not a
house was visible, and scarcely a habitation; the cottages were hid in
the flanks of the valley, and only reminded you of their existence by a
thin vapor that curled up from a solitary chimney and quickly lost itself
in the trees. Nothing gave any sign of life but the sheep browsing on the
gilded emerald of the shorn meadows. The red and gold waves flooded the
vast expanse of the horizon, flowing further and higher as the spectators
gazed, until half heaven was on fire with a conflagration of rainbows.
Swiftly the colors changed, crimson and orange first, then deep and
tender shades of purple and green, until all melted into uniform violet,
the herald of the gathering darkness. They stood watching it in silence,
Franceline with bated breath. The sunset always had a solemn charm for
her, and she had never seen so vast and gorgeous a one as this. It was
like watching the dying throes of a divinity.

“The play is over, the audience may retire!” said Ponsonby, breaking the
pause; even he had been subdued by the sublimity of the scene.

“If I were a pagan I should be a fire-worshipper,” said Franceline, as
they moved away. “I think the worship of the sun is the most natural as
well as the most poetic of all forms of idolatry.”

“That’s just what De Winton said the first time he saw the sun set from
here!” exclaimed Capt. Anwyll triumphantly; “how comical that you should
have hit on the very same idea! He said, by the way, that it was the
finest sunset he had ever seen in England; it’s so wide and low, you
see; he showed me a sketch he made of a sunset somewhere in the Vosges
that he said it reminded him of. I forget the name of the valley; but it
was uncommonly like; do you know the Vosges?”

“No; I have never been to that part of France.”

Lord Roxham glanced at her as she said this in a clear, low voice. He
saw nothing in her countenance that afforded a clew to whatever he was
looking for.

It had grown chilly now that the sun had set, and they had been standing
several minutes on the knoll. Of one accord the three riders broke into
a gallop as they entered the park, and dashed along between the pollard
Wellingtonias, standing stiff and stark as tumuli on either side of the
long avenue.

Lady Anwyll had gone to visit some poor sick woman in the neighborhood,
and had not yet returned. The gentlemen went round to the stables, and
Franceline to her room. She dressed herself quickly, wrote a short letter
to her father according to her promise of writing to him every day during
her absence, and then threw the window wide open and sat down beside it.
It was fresh enough, and she wore only her muslin dress, but she did not
feel the freshness of the air--she was too excited to be conscious of any
external influence of the kind. She sat as motionless as a statue, gazing
abstractedly over the empurpled sky where the moon appeared like a shred
of white cloud. She had not sat there long when the fragrant fumes of a
cigar came floating in through her window, followed soon by a sound of
footsteps and voices. Ponsonby and his guest were coming in. Franceline
did not close the window or move away, though the voices were now
audible; the speakers had not entered the house; they were walking under
the veranda that ran round the front. What matter? They were not likely
to be talking secrets; she was welcome to listen, no doubt, to whatever
they might have to say.

“There is the carriage coming,” said Ponsonby; “my mother is out too late
with her rheumatism; I’ll pitch into her for it.”

“Yes; it doesn’t do to stay out after sunset when one has any chronic
ailment of that sort. By the way, you mentioned De Winton just now; have
you heard of him lately?”

“No; not since he left Berlin. It seems he was very near kicking the
bucket there; he was awfully bad, and nobody with him but his man
Stanton.”

“How did you hear about it?”

“Through Parker, a fellow in our regiment whose brother is _attaché_ at
Berlin; the story made a sensation there, but no one knew of it until De
Winton had left.”

The speakers passed on to the end of the veranda, and Franceline could
catch nothing more until they drew near again. Lord Roxham was speaking.

“Poor fellow! It’s tremendously hard on him, and I believe there is no
redress; nothing to make out a case for divorce.”

“I fancy not; but even if there were it would not be available, since
he’s a Romanist.”

“Ah! to be sure; I forgot that; but what a mystification the whole
business is! I’ve known De Winton since we were both boys--we were Eton
chums, you know--but he never breathed a word of it to me. Yet he’s not a
close fellow; quite the contrary. And who the deuce is the woman? Where
did he come across her?”

They passed out of hearing again, and when they returned the tramping of
horses and the crunching of wheels overtopped their voices. The sounds
all died away; Lady Anwyll had come in, and gone to her room--every
one was waiting in the drawing-room, but Franceline did not appear.
Her hostess, thinking she had not heard the dinner-bell, sent for her.
Presently the maid came rushing down the stairs and into the forbidden
precincts of the drawing-room with a scared face.

“Please, my lady, she’s in a dead faint! I found her all in a heap on the
floor, ready dressed. I lifted her on to the bed, but she don’t move!”

An exclamation burst simultaneously from the three listeners. In a moment
they were all in Franceline’s room; there she lay stretched on the bed,
as the woman had said, white and still as death, one hand hanging, and
her hair, that had been loosened in the fall, dropping on her shoulder.
The usual restoratives were applied, and in about a quarter of an hour
she gave signs of awakening--the veined lids quivered, the mouth twitched
convulsively, and a short sigh escaped her. Lady Anwyll signed to her
son and Lord Roxham to withdraw; they had scarcely left the room when
Franceline opened her eyes and stared about her with the blank gaze
of returning consciousness. She swallowed some wine at Lady Anwyll’s
request, but soon put the glass away with a gesture of disgust. In answer
to her hostess’ anxious entreaties to say where she suffered, and why she
had swooned, the young girl could only say she had felt tired and weary,
and that she longed to be left alone and go to sleep. Lady Anwyll agreed
that sleep would be the best restorative, and insisted on staying till
she saw her settled in bed; then she kissed her, and promising to come
soon and see if she was asleep, she left the room with a noiseless step.

“What is it? Is there anything much amiss, mother?” was the captain’s
exclamation. Lord Roxham was equally concerned.

“Nothing, except you have nearly killed her, both of you. You have ridden
the child to death; she is not accustomed to it, and she has overdone
herself; but she will be all right I hope in the morning. There’s nothing
the matter but fatigue, she assures me.”

Ponsonby rated himself soundly for being such a brute as to have let
her tire herself; he ought to have remembered that she was done up the
day before after a much shorter ride. He was awfully sorry. His remorse
was no doubt quite genuine, but when they sat down to dinner he proved
to demonstration that that feeling is compatible with an unimpaired
appetite. Lady Anwyll left them before they had finished to see how
Franceline was going on; she found her awake, but quite well, and going
to sleep very soon, she assured the kind old lady.

“Then, my dear child, I will not have you disturbed again; if you wake
and want anything, strike this gong, and Trinner will come at once. I
will make her sleep in the room next yours to-night.”

Franceline protested, but the dowager silenced her with a kiss; put out
the light, and left her.

She lay very still, but there was no chance of sleep for her. Sleep had
fled from her eyes as peace had fled from her heart. She longed to get
up, and find relief from the intolerable strain of immobility, but she
dared not; her room was over a part of the drawing-room, and she might
be heard. The evening seemed to drag on with preternatural slowness. She
could hear the low hum of voices through the ceiling. Once there was a
clatter of porcelain--probably Ponce overturning the tea-tray. At last
the stable-clock struck eleven; there was opening and shutting of doors
for a while, and then silence. Franceline sat up and listened until not a
sound was anywhere to be heard. Every soul in the house had gone to bed.
Trinner had come last of all to her room. The star made by her candle
gleamed through the key-hole for a long time; at last it disappeared,
and soon the loud, regular breathing told that she was fast asleep.
Franceline rose, threw her dressing-wrapper round her, and drew back the
curtain from the window. It was a relief to let the night-lights in upon
her solitude; the glorious gaze of the moon seemed to chase away phantoms
with the darkness. She felt awake now. All this time, lying there in the
utter darkness, it seemed as if she were still in a swoon, or held in the
grip of a nightmare; she shook herself free from the benumbing clutch,
and sat down close by the window, and tried to collect her thoughts.
There was one phantom which the moonlight could not dispel; it stood out
now distinctly as she looked at it with revived consciousness. Clide
de Winton was a married man. It was to the husband of another that she
had given her heart with its first pure vintage of impassioned love.
He who had looked at her with those ardent eyes, penetrating her soul
like flame, had all along been another woman’s husband. There was no
more room for hope, even for doubt; suspense was at an end; the period
of dark conjecture was gone. It was clear enough, all that had been so
inexplicable,--clear as when the lightning flashes out of a lurid sky,
and illuminates the scene of an earthquake; a sea lashed to fury by winds
that have lost their current, ships sinking in billows that break before
they heave, the land gaping and groaning, trees uprooted, habitations
falling with a crash of thunder, all live things clinging and flying in
wild disorder. Franceline considered it all as she sat, still and white
as a stone, without missing a single detail in the scene.

Violent demonstration was not in her nature. In pain or in joy it was
her habit to be self-contained. She had as yet been called upon but
for very slight trials of strength and self-control; but such as the
experience was it had left behind it an innate though unconscious sense
of power that rose instinctively to her aid now. She had fainted away
under the first shock of the discovery; but that tribute of weakness paid
to nature, she would yield no more. Tears might come later; but now she
would not indulge in them. She must face the worst without flinching.
What was the worst? Clide was a married man. That was bad enough in all
conscience; yet there might be worse behind. Circumstances might cast a
blacker dye even on this. Lord Roxham had spoken in a tone of sympathy:
“Poor fellow! It’s tremendously hard on him.…” He would have spoken
differently if there were any villany in question. But if Lord Roxham
had not thus indirectly acquitted him, Franceline would have done so
spontaneously. Yes, even in the first moment of despair, while the flood
was sweeping over her, she acquitted him. He had dragged her down into
unsounded depths of agony and shame, but he had not done it deliberately;
he was neither a liar nor a traitor. Had he not been brought to the jaws
of death himself only a month ago? There was an indescribable comfort
in the pang those words had inflicted. He too, then, was suffering;
they were both victims. Clide had never meant to deceive her; she would
have sworn it on the altar of her unshaken faith in him; she wanted
no stronger evidence than the promptings of her own heart. She was
confident there would be some adequate explanation of whatever now seemed
ambiguous, when she should have learned all. No; she need not separate
the attribute of truth and honor from his image; she could no more do
it than she could separate the idea of light from the pure maiden moon
that was looking down on her from heaven; she would see darkness in light
before she would believe Clide de Winton false.

This irrepressible need of her heart once satisfied--Clide judged and
acquitted--what then? Granted that he was innocent as yonder stars, how
did it affect her? What did it signify to her henceforth whether he was
innocent or guilty, true or false? He was the husband of another woman;
as good as dead to Franceline de la Bourbonais; parted from her by a more
impassable barrier than death. If he were only dead she might love him
still, hold him enshrined in her heart’s core with a clasp that death
could not sever--only strengthen. But he was worse than dead; he was
married. She must banish him even from her thoughts; his memory must
henceforth be as far from her as the thought of murder, or any other
crime that her crystal conscience shuddered even to name. She might
acquit him, crown him with the noblest attributes of manhood; but that
done, she must dismiss him from her remembrance, and forget him as if he
had never lived.

Franceline had remained seated, her hands locked passively in her lap,
while these thoughts shaped themselves in her mind. When they reached the
climax, expressed in these words: “I must forget him as if he had never
lived!” she rose to her feet, clasped her forehead in both hands, and an
inarticulate cry broke from her: “It would be easier to die!… If I had
anything to forgive, that would help me! But I have nothing to forgive!”
It would not have helped her, though she fancied so; it would have turned
the bitterness of the cup into poison. But she could not realize this
now. It seemed harder to renounce what was good and beautiful than to
cast away what was unworthy. If the idol had uttered one false oracle,
demanded anything base, betrayed itself before betraying her, it would
have been easier, she thought, to overturn it. Indignation would have
nerved her to the deed, and she would have dealt the blow without
compunction. But it had done nothing to forfeit her love and trust, and
nevertheless she must dash it down and cast the fragments into the fire,
and not preserve even the dust as a precious thing. What a merciful doom
his death would have been compared to this!

How was she to do it? Who would help her to so ruthless a demolition?
Did any one speak in the silence, or was it only the unspoken cry of
her own soul that answered? She had fancied herself alone; she had
forgotten that a Presence was close to her, waiting to be invoked,
patient, faithful, and protecting even while forgotten. The voice
sounded sweet in its warning solemnity, and filled the lonely chamber
with a more benign ray than ever shone from midnight sky or blazing
noon. Franceline stretched out her arms to meet it, and with a loud
sob fell upon her knees. “O my God! forgive me! Forgive me, and help
me! I have sinned, but my punishment is greater than I can bear!” The
floodgates were thrown back; the tears fell in hot showers, the sobs
shook her as the storm shakes the sapling. She knelt there crouching in
the darkness, her head leaning on her folded arms, and gave herself up
to the passionate outburst, like a child weeping itself to sleep on its
mother’s breast. But this could not last. It was only a truce. The real
battle, the decisive one, had only now begun; what had gone before were
but the preliminaries. Hitherto she had thought only of her grief and
humiliation; she was now brought face to face with her sin--the sin of
idolatry. She had made unto herself an idol of clay, and placed it on the
altar of her heart, and burned incense before it with every breath she
drew; the smoke had made a mist before her eyes, but it was dissolving.
She looked into the desecrated sanctuary, and struck her breast with
humility and self-abasement. Her tears were flowing copiously, but they
were not all brine; she was drawing strength from their bitterness.
Victory was not for “the days of peace,” but for such an hour as this.
She had been trained from childhood in the hope of heaven, in the firm
belief that this life was but the transitory passage to the true home;
that its sorrows and joys were too evanescent, too unreal to be counted
of more importance than the rain and wind that scatter the sunshine of a
summer’s day; she had been taught, too, that the bliss of that immortal
home is purchased by suffering--a thing to be taken by violence, a crown
to be grasped through thorns. Hitherto her adherence to this creed had
been entirely theoretical; she accepted it, but in some vague way felt
that she, personally, was beyond its action. Her father had suffered; her
mother, too, cut off in her happy bloom, had won the crown by a lingering
illness and an early death; but she, Franceline, enjoyed, it would seem,
some privileged immunity from the stern law. Such had unawares been her
reasoning. But now she was undeceived; her hour had come, and she must
meet it as a Christian. Now was the time to prove the sincerity of her
faith, the strength of her principles; if they failed her, they were no
better than stubble and brass that dissolve at the first breath of the
furnace.

A duel to the death is always brief: the foes close in mortal conflict;
the thrusts come fast and sharp; one or other falls. When Franceline
lifted her head from her arms, the expression of the tear-stained face
showed which way the battle had gone: the victor stood erect with his
foot upon the victim’s neck, unscathed, serene, and pitiless. Love lay
bleeding and maimed, but Conscience smiled in triumph. “I will not let
thee go until thou hast blessed me,” the wrestler had said, and the
angel had blessed her before he fled.

The night was nearly spent when Franceline rose up from her knees, numbed
and shivering, although the weather was not cold. She walked rapidly up
and down for a few moments to warm herself; there was a spring in her
step, a light in her eyes, that told of recovered energy and unshaken
purpose; her nerves might tingle, her heart might grieve, but they would
neither faint nor quail. She dropped on her knees again for one moment
and uttered a prayer, more of thanksgiving this time than supplication,
and then lay down and soon fell asleep.

       *       *       *       *       *

When Franceline came down next morning, after breakfasting in her room
as if she had been ailing, there was scarcely any trace in her aspect
of the conflict of the night. Eyes do not retain the stains of tears
very long at eighteen, and if she was a trifle paler than usual, it was
accounted for by the over-exertion which had brought the fainting fit.
She expressed a wish to go home as early as was convenient to her hosts,
and they consented with reluctance, but without offering any resistance.
Lady Anwyll said the child was weary and dull, and that the next time she
came to Rydal they should make it livelier for her.

With what a feeling of regaining a haven of rest did Franceline enter
the little garden at The Lilies, where her father, warned by the sound
of the wheels, hastened out and stood waiting to clasp her!--Angélique
graciously letting him have the first kiss, before she claimed her turn.

“We have been like fishes out of water without thee!--have we not, ma
bonne?” was Raymond’s joyful exclamation, as he gathered his child to
his heart, and then held her from him to look wistfully into the sweet,
smiling face.

“Yes, we were dull enough without our singing bird, though I dare say she
didn’t miss us much!” was Angélique’s rejoinder. Franceline declared she
would go away very soon again to teach them to value her more.

But the singing bird was not the same after this. The spirit that had
found utterance in its joyous voice was dead. A lark rises from the
clover-field, and pours out its sweet, “harmonious madness” over the
earth; swiftly it soars away--away--into fathomless space, and while,
spell-bound, we strain after the fading notes, lo! the sportsman’s arrow
hisses by, a cry rends the welkin, the songster is struck--he will never
sing again.

Perhaps you despise Franceline for allowing the loss of an imaginary
possession to put the light out of her life in this way. As if our
lives were not made desolate half the time by the loss of what we never
had! You will say that self-respect and pride ought to have come to her
aid, and enabled her to quench in blood, if needs be, the fire that her
conscience pronounced guilty. But is the process so quickly accomplished,
think you? Franceline was doing her best; she was concentrating all the
energies of her mind and soul in the struggle, but it was not to be done
in a day; the very purity of her love constituted its strength. If there
had been the smallest element of corruption in it, it would have died
quicker; but its fibres were enduring because they were pure.

Yet she was not forgetful of her father and of all that he had hitherto
been to her, and she to him; far from it. The effort to conceal her
sufferings from him was a great help to her in controlling them, though
it often taxed her strength severely. Sometimes, when the feeling of
isolation pressed on her almost beyond endurance, when she felt that she
must have the solace of his sympathy, cost what it might, she would steal
into his study, determined to speak and let the murder out; but the sight
of the venerable head bowed over his books, absorbed, and happy in his
unconsciousness, would arrest her words and choke them back into silence.
The strain was hard, but was it not a mercy that she had as yet only
her own burden to bear? What a price would she not have to pay for the
momentary relief of leaning it on him! What might not be dreaded from the
effect of the revelation on his sensitive pride, and still more sensitive
love? And then the inevitable breach between him and his oldest, almost
his only friend, Sir Simon! They would leave The Lilies and go forth she
knew not where. No; silence indubitably was best. To speak might be to
kill her father.

This state of things lasted for a week, and then there was granted an
alleviation. Father Henwick had been called to a distance to see his
mother, who was dying; he arrived in time to assist her with his filial
ministry in the last passage; remained to settle all that followed, and
then came back to resume the even tenor of his life at Dullerton.

Father Henwick was one of those men whom you may know for a lifetime,
and never find out until some special circumstance reveals them. There
was no sign in his outward man of anything remarkable in the inner man.
He had not acquired, or at any rate retained, any French polish or grace
from his early sojourn at the French seminary. His manners were very
homely, and abrupt almost to brusqueness; he was neither tall nor small,
but of that height which steers between the two, and so escapes notice;
his voice had the unmistakable ring of refinement and early education,
yet he seldom associated with his equals, his intercourse being confined
chiefly to the poor. These and their children were his familiars at
Dullerton. The latter looked on him as their especial property, and took
all manner of liberties with him unrebuked--hanging on to his coat-tails,
and plunging their audacious little paws into the sacred precincts of
his pockets, whence experience had taught them something might turn up
to their advantage: penny whistles, Dutch dolls, buns, lollypops, and
crackers were continually issuing from those mysterious depths which the
small fry sounded behind Father Henwick’s back, and apparently unbeknown
to him, while he administered comfort of another description to their
elders.

The fact of his having been educated in France, and speaking French like
a Frenchman, accounted to the general mind of Dullerton for the eccentric
habits and unconventional manners of the Catholic priest, especially for
his shyness with his own class, and undue familiarity with those in the
humbler ranks. It ought to have established him on the footing of close
intimacy at The Lilies; and yet it had not done so. M. de le Bourbonais
professed and felt the greatest esteem for him, and made him welcome in
his gracious way; but Father Henwick was too shrewd an observer of human
nature not to see exactly how far this was meant to go. Franceline’s
early instruction had been confided to him, and the remembrance of the
pains he had taken with the little catechumen, the fondness with which
he had planted and fostered the good seed in her heart, made a claim
on Raymond’s gratitude; but it did not remove an intangible barrier
between the father in the flesh and the father in the spirit. M. de la
Bourbonais was a Catholic; if anybody had dared to impugn by one word the
stanchness of his Catholicity, he would have felt it his painful duty to
run that person through the body; but, as with so many of his countrymen,
his faith ended here; it was altogether theoretical; he was ready at a
moment’s notice to fight or die for it; but it did not enter into his
views to live for it. For Franceline, however, it was a different thing.
Religion was made for women, and women for religion. With that tender
reverence for his child’s faith, which in France is so often the last
bulwark of the father’s, Raymond had been at considerable pains to hide
from Franceline the inconsistency that existed between his own practice
and teaching. When the great event was approaching which, in the life of
a French child especially, is surrounded by such touching solemnity, he
made it his delight to assist Father Henwick in preparing her for it,
making her rehearse his instructions between times, or teaching her the
catechism himself. Then, to anticipate awkward questions and impossible
explanations, he made a point of rising early on Sundays and festivals
and going to first Mass before Franceline was out of bed. The habit once
contracted, he continued it; so it came about naturally that she took
for granted her father did at a different hour what he attached so much
importance to her doing. In conversation with Father Henwick she had more
than once incidentally let this belief transpire; but he was not the one
to undeceive her, or tear away the veil that parental sensitiveness had
drawn between itself and those childlike eyes. Neither was he one to
broach the subject indiscreetly to M. de la Bourbonais. A day might come
for speaking; meanwhile he was content to be silent and to wait.

The day Father Henwick returned to Dullerton after his mother’s funeral,
his confessional was surrounded by a greater crowd than usual; his
parishioners had a whole week’s arrears of troubles and questions,
spiritual and temporal, to settle with him, and it was late when he
was able to speak to Franceline. The conference was a long one; by the
time it was over the church was nearly empty; only a few figures were
still kneeling in the shadows as the young girl, coming out through
a side-door, walked through the graves with a quick, light step and
proceeded homewards. Tears were falling under her veil, and a sob every
now and then showed that the source was still full to overflowing; but
her heart was lighter than it had been for many days, her will was
strengthened and her purpose fixed. She was bent on being courageous, on
walking forward bravely and never looking back. She blessed God for the
comfort she had received and the strength that had been imparted to her.
Oh! she was glad now that she had resisted the first impulse to speak to
her father, and had been silent.

That evening M. de la Bourbonais and Angélique remarked how cheerful she
was. She stayed up later than usual reading to Raymond, and commenting
spiritedly on what she read; then bade him good-night with almost a
rejoicing heart, and slept soundly until long past daybreak.

TO BE CONTINUED.


A VISIT TO IRELAND IN 1874.

“Yes,” said Mr. Bernard at the close of a long discussion, “it _is_ quite
marvellous how little Englishmen know about Ireland! And their prejudices
are the necessary consequence of such ignorance! I wish they could be
_made_ to travel there more!”

No one, perhaps, more heartily agreed with him than I did, taught by my
experiences of last autumn, which occurred in the following manner.

I had been sometime absent from that country, a resident in London,
when I unexpectedly received a pressing invitation last September,
from a friend living in the County Westmeath, to cross St. George’s
Channel and pay her my long-promised visit. “Westmeath!” exclaimed my
London circle--“Westmeath! You must not dream of it! You’ll be shot, my
dear!” said one old lady. “Taken up by the police!” said another. “It’s
ridiculous, absurd!” cried a third. “Remember the Peace-Preservation
Act and all that implies--murders, Fenians, Ribbonmen, police! Don’t
risk your precious life amongst them, or we shall never lay eyes upon
you again!” And they all looked as solemn as if they had received an
invitation to attend my Requiem, and were meditating what flowers to
choose for the wreaths each meant to lay upon my coffin.

Nothing, however, made me hesitate. Go I would, in defiance of all their
remonstrances; for, I argued, if my friend, who herself owned land in
Westmeath, could live there and see no impropriety in asking me, as a
matter of course I should run no risk in accepting her invitation. At
length, finding me obstinate, my cousin, Harry West, came forward, and,
volunteering to escort me, promised my relatives that he would judge for
himself, and if he saw danger would insist on my returning with him. He
was a middle-aged man, land agent of an estate in Buckinghamshire--one
of the most peaceful counties in the United Kingdom--had never set
foot in Ireland, but, having been studying the Irish question--as he
thought--and poring over the debates on this same Peace-Preservation Act
last session, held even gloomier views concerning Ireland than any of my
other numerous acquaintances. In consequence, I looked upon this as the
most self-sacrificing act of friendship he could possibly offer. At the
same time, I accepted it.

Accordingly, we started by the night mail which leaves Euston Square at
twenty-five minutes past eight P.M.

For the first two hours I was haunted, I confess, by the dread of the
Scotch limited mail running into us, as I knew it was to leave the same
spot only five minutes later; and both trains being express, if any hitch
should occur to us between the stations, we might “telescope” each other
without any means of preventing it. At least, so it seemed to my ignorant
mind. Harry fortunately knew nothing of this; but his thoughts were
none the less running upon danger, remembering some terrible accidents
to this same Irish mail--notably the one some four years ago, when Lord
and Lady Farnham, Judge Berwick and his sister, and others we knew, were
reduced to a heap of ashes in a few minutes by an explosion of petroleum
which caught fire in a collision. Luckily, Harry fell asleep on quitting
Chester, and never noticed the fatal spot, nor awoke until we drew up at
five minutes past three A.M. alongside the mail packet _Leinster_ some
way out on the pier at Holyhead.

The night was fine, the sea calm, the passengers tired; so every one
slept tranquilly until the stewardess, rushing into the ladies’ cabin,
announced that we had passed the Kish light some time, and should be “in”
in half an hour.

Without conveying any meaning to an English lady close by, the word
quickly roused me; for it was full of memories--sad, yet happy. Many
and many an evening, when living once on the Wicklow shore, had I
sat watching on the far horizon the sparkling light which marked the
well-known light-ship nine miles off the Irish coast. Of a summer’s night
it shone like a twinkling star, suggestive of cool, refreshing breezes
far away upon the calm waters, when perchance a hot breeze hung heavily
over the land; but in winter the simple knowledge of its existence, with
two men living there on board in a solitude that was broken only once a
month, while the winds and waves raged fiercely around the ship, often
haunted my dreams and made the stormy nights doubly dreary all along the
Wicklow sea-board.

“The Kish light! Has not that a delightful, pleasant home sound?” said a
middle-aged woman near, looking at me as if she had divined my thoughts.
“And these boats--there are no others to be compared to them! The English
have no excuse for not coming to Ireland,” she continued, “with vessels
of this kind, that are like true floating bridges, so steady, swift, and
large. Who could be ill in them? No one!”

I was puzzled to think who she could be; for though the face was not
unfamiliar, I could give it no name. It was that of a lady, certainly,
with a bright, intelligent, happy expression; but I saw that her garb was
coarse as she bent and rummaged for something in her bag. In a moment,
however, the mystery was solved by her lightly throwing a snow-white
piece of linen over her head, which, as if by magic, took the form of the
cornet of a Sister of S. Vincent de Paul.

“Sister Mary!” I exclaimed, “whom I knew at Constantinople!”

“The same,” she answered. “I thought I knew you!” And shaking hands
cordially, we sat down to talk over the past.

She was a native of Ireland--her accent alone betrayed her, though she
had not seen her native land for years--and I had known her in the East,
after which she had been to Algiers and various other parts. Now, to her
great joy, she had been ordered for a while to one of the convents of
the order in Dublin--a joy which, though she tried, nun-like, to subdue
it, burst forth uncontrollably the nearer we approached the land. Coming
with me on deck to watch our entrance into Kingstown Harbor, the first
person we met was Harry West, who eyed my companion with amazement; for
he had never seen a Sister of Charity in living form before, though he
entertained that sort of romantic admiration for them which the most
rigid Protestants often accord to this order, though they deny it to
every other. Turning round again, my surprise was great at encountering
the Bishop--the _Catholic_ Bishop--of ----shire, on his way to the
consecration of a church in the far west of Ireland. “Quelle heureuse
rencontre!” said his lordship playfully; for we were very old friends.
“You see I am attracted also to the _dear_ old country! You smile,” he
continued, noticing my amused expression as I introduced Harry to him.
“Oh! yes, I know I am a Saxon, _pur sang_. But we English bishops and
priests always feel as if we were at home the instant we put our foot
on shore in the Green Isle. There’s Kingstown and its church, where I
shall go to say Mass the moment we land. Watch, now!” he added, as we
drew up alongside the jetty; “you’ll see how civil the men will be the
instant they perceive I am a bishop.” As he spoke a porter rushed by, and
an impulse seized me to give him a hint to this effect. At once the man
knelt down, in all his hurry, “for his lordship’s blessing;” nor did he
limit his attentions to this, but insisted on carrying his luggage, not
only on shore, but up to the hotel, refusing, as the bishop later told
us, to accept a penny for his time and trouble--“the honor of serving his
lordship and of getting his blessing was quite reward enough!”

Harry, standing by, could not believe his eyes. It was a phase of life
quite unknown to him. But there was no time for meditation; the train was
on the pier, the whistle sounded, and we were soon on the road to Dublin.

It was Sunday--the one day of all others which, had I wished to show
Harry the difference between the two countries, I should have purposely
chosen; the one morning in the week when Dublin is astir from early dawn,
and London, on the other hand, sleeps. Residents in the latter, Catholic
residents especially, are painfully aware of the difficulty of finding
cab or conveyance of any kind to take them to early Mass, and know how,
in the finest summer weather, they may wander through the parks without
meeting a human being until the afternoon. In England church-going
commences, properly speaking, at eleven o’clock only, and then chiefly
for the upper classes; the evening services, on the contrary, are largely
attended by the servants and trades-people, to meet which custom a
vast majority of families dine on cold viands, or even relinquish the
meal altogether, substituting tea, with cold meat--or “heavy tea,” as
it is generally called--for the ordinary social gathering. In Ireland,
as in every Catholic country, the whole system is reversed, as the
natural consequence of the church discipline, which enjoins the hearing
of Mass on the whole community, high and low; and--contrary to the
Protestant system--once this obligation fulfilled, the attendance at
evening service is necessarily much smaller. Harry never having even
been out of England, except for a “run up the Rhine” some years before,
and knowing no Catholic but myself, it never occurred to him to think
of these distinctions, nor to suppose that he would find anything in
Ireland different from English ways, except that unlimited lawlessness
the existence of which he believed made life so impossible there.

He was in the process of recovering from his astonishment at the
unfamiliar phraseology of the Westland Row railway porters when our
passage to the cab was impeded by a crowd suddenly rushing along the
footway, met by an advancing one from the opposite direction, composed
of the very poorest class, men, women, and children. Harry’s lively
imagination and preconceived ideas led him at once to conclude that it
must be a Fenian Hyde Park mob _renforcé_; and the bewildered horror of
his countenance at thus finding his worst fears realized the instant he
arrived at the Dublin terminus was beyond all description comic.

“Ah! sure, your honor, it’s the seven o’clock Mass that’s just over,
and the half-past seven that is going to begin,” explained the cabman,
pointing to the large church which stands at Westland Row adjoining
the railway station. “Sure, this goes on every half-hour until one
o’clock. An’t we all obliged to hear Mass, whatever else we do?” And
as we proceeded, I cross-questioned him for the benefit of my cousin.
We discovered that this same man had been to church at six o’clock
that morning, belonged to a confraternity, approached the sacraments
regularly, and performed various acts of charity in sickness and distress
amongst his fellow-members, in accordance with the rules of the said
society; yet he was but poorly clad, and showed no outward signs of the
remarkable intelligence with which he answered me on every point.

As usual on these occasions, the choice of a hotel had been puzzling,
the Shelbourne, Morrison’s, Maple’s, each having their distinctive
advantages; but at last we decided in favor of the Imperial, a quiet but
comfortable establishment facing the General Post-Office in Sackville
Street. The streets were alive with people as we crossed Carlisle Bridge,
past Smith O’Brien’s white marble statue; and Harry could not help
noticing the contrast to England at that early Sunday hour.

Refreshed by our ablutions and clean toilets, we were comfortably seated
at breakfast, when sounds of music approaching caused us to rush to the
window, and showed us a wagonette full of musicians in green uniform,
playing “Garry Owen” and “Patrick’s Day,” followed by half a dozen
outside cars full of men and women.

“Fenians!” cried Harry. “I told you I could not be mistaken.”

“Only some trade guild going out for an innocent day’s pleasure in the
country; after having been to Mass too, I have no doubt,” observed a
gentleman close by, whose accent was unmistakably English. “This is not
the only custom that will seem new to you, if you are strangers,” he
continued, addressing Harry, and smiling meanwhile. “No two countries
ever were more different than England and Ireland. I shall never
forget my astonishment on arriving here two years ago. I could not
get accustomed to it at all at first. I remember one circumstance
particularly which greatly struck me. I arrived on a Sunday morning,
as you have done, and taking up the _Freeman’s Journal_--one of the
best Dublin papers--on Monday, perceived a short paragraph in a corner,
headed, ‘A Bishop Killed,’ so small that it might easily have escaped
notice. Nor was there any allusion to it in any other part of the paper;
but, reading on, you may conceive my surprise at finding that ‘a bishop’
was no one less than the Bishop of Winchester, _the_ leading bishop
in England, whose death by a fall from his horse, you will remember,
convulsed that country through its length and breadth. Not one of my
acquaintances even--and I had many in Dublin--took the smallest interest
in it. They had not followed his career; he had not the slightest
influence in Ireland; and few knew his name, or that he was any relation
to the great Wilberforce. On the other hand, they were at the time
living upon news from the North, where a police officer was on his trial
for the murder of a bank manager--a fact which no one in England gave
the smallest heed to. I had never heard of it. But that same afternoon
the head waiter of the hotel, unable to conceal his excitement, came
up and whispered to me, ‘He is condemned, sir! I have got a telegram
from Omagh myself this instant.’ I had only been thirty-six hours in
Ireland at the time, and, having merely glanced at the newspaper, knew
nothing of the trial; so I was electrified and mystified beyond measure,
and had no remedy but to sit down and study it. I then discovered it
was deeply interesting from its bearing upon all classes, and I could
not resist writing to some of the English papers and endeavoring to
excite them on the subject. But it would not do! No paper inserted my
letter. The similarity of interest is not kept up continuously between
the two countries, owing very much, I think, to the little interchange
of newspapers between them. I hope you have ordered your _Times_ to be
forwarded, sir,” he continued; “for you can’t expect to find one to buy
in Dublin. They’ll always give you the _Irish Times_, if you merely ask
for the _Times_; they never think about the latter--far less than on the
Continent.”

This was a dreadful blow to Harry; for, like all Englishmen, he could
not exist without his _Times_ at breakfast, and, though I proposed that
he should write for it by that night’s mail, his reviving spirits were
sadly checked by the feeling of being in a land which apparently did
not believe in _his_ guide and vade-mecum. I felt it would be heartless
under such circumstances to leave him alone; yet, I should go to Mass. At
length, not liking to let me wander by myself in “such a dangerous city,”
he offered to accompany me and give up his own service for the day. A
little curiosity, I thought, lurked beneath the kindness; but if so, it
was amply rewarded.

Following the porter’s direction of “first to the right and then to
the left,” we soon reached the handsome church in Marlborough Street,
opposite the National Schools. As at Westland Row, so here an immense
crowd was pouring out, but a far larger one pushing in; so that, although
long before twelve o’clock, we considered ourselves fortunate in getting
any places whatever. Unaware that this was the cathedral, and without
any expectations regarding it in consequence, our surprise was great
when a long procession moved up the centre, closed by His Eminence
Cardinal Cullen, in full pontificals, blessing us as he passed. “Those
are the canons who attend on all great occasions, and the young men are
the students at Clonliffe Seminary,” whispered a young woman next me in
answer to my inquiries, while his eminence was taking his seat on the
throne, to Harry’s infinite edification. “And we shall have a sermon from
Father Burke after Mass,” she continued--“‘our Prince of Preachers,’ as
the cardinal calls him. I came here more than an hour ago, in order to
get a place. I promise you it’ll be worth hearing. Oh! there’s no one
like him. God bless him!”

And as she said, so it happened. The instant Mass was over, not before,
the famous Dominican was seen ascending the pulpit. The centre of the
church was filled with benches, and a standing mass in the passage
between, while the aisles were so packed by the poorest classes that
a pin could not be dropped amongst them. Of that vast multitude not
one individual had stirred, and in a few seconds they hung with rapt
attention upon every word spoken by the gifted preacher. By their
countenances it was easy to see how they followed all his arguments,
drank in every sentiment, and--who could wonder at it?--were entranced by
his lofty accents. Harry himself was mesmerized. The subject was charity,
and the cause an appeal for schools under Sisters of Charity. In all his
experience of English preachers--and it was varied--Harry confessed that
he had never heard anything like this. Whether for sublime language,
beautiful, delicate action, pathetic tone, quotations from Scripture Old
and New, or eloquence of appeal, he considered it unrivalled. It lasted
an hour, but seemed not five minutes. As we passed out of the door, the
plates were filled with piles of those one-pound notes which in Ireland
represent the gold. I saw Harry’s hand glide almost unconsciously into
his pockets, and beheld a sovereign fall noiselessly amongst the paper.

“One certainly is the better of a fine sermon,” he remarked, as we
sauntered back to the hotel; “and I never heard a finer. Altogether, it
was a remarkable sight, and the people looked mild enough. But we must
not trust to appearances nor be deceived too easily, you know,” he added
after a few moments.

I knew nothing of the kind, but thought the best reply would be a
proposal to follow the multitude who were now crowding the tram-carriages
that start from Nelson’s Pillar to all the suburbs. “In half an hour the
streets will be deserted until evening,” said our English acquaintance,
whom we again met accidentally, and who recommended a walk on the pier
at Kingstown as the least fatiguing trip, volunteering, moreover, to
accompany us part of the way, as he was going to visit friends on that
line at the “Rock,” as Blackrock is usually called. It was contrary to
Harry’s customs on the “Sabbath”; yet, after all the church-going he had
seen that morning, he could not deny that air and exercise were most
legitimate. Accordingly, entering a crowded train to Westland Row, we
soon found ourselves retracing the route we came a few hours before.

Most truly has it been said that no city has more varied or beautiful
suburbs than Dublin, and no population which so much enjoy them. Hitherto
we had seen few but the lower and middle classes; for the wealthier
side of Dublin is south of the Liffey. Moreover, being autumn, the
“fashionables” were not in town. They were either travelling on the
Continent or scattered in the vicinity. The train, however, was full of
smart dresses and bright faces, “wreathed in smiles” and brimming over
with merriment. Every one, too, seemed more or less to know every one
else, and even our English friend was acquainted with many. “That is
Judge Keogh,” he said, as he bowed to a short, square-built man waiting
on the platform near us--“Keogh, of the celebrated Galway judgment--a man
of first-rate talent, as you may guess from his broad forehead and long
head; but he has ruined himself by his violence on that occasion. He is
quite ‘broken’ since then, and his spirits gone; for he knows what his
fellow-countrymen think of him, and he rarely appears in public except
upon the bench. He is probably going to Bray now, where he is spending
the summer quietly and unnoticed. And that is Judge Monahan getting into
the next carriage with those ladies--he who presided at the Yelverton
trial; also of great legal capacity and a most kindly, tender-hearted
man, always surrounded by his children and grandchildren. Sir Dominic
Corrigan, the eminent physician, is in that corner yonder; his fame has
doubtless reached you too,” he continued, addressing Harry, who had been
contemplating the two legal celebrities, well known to him through his
oracle, the _Times_, which, from their connection with the above-named
events, had noticed them on both occasions. “I could point out many
others, if I could escort you to Kingstown”; but as we halted at the
Blackrock Station a smart carriage was awaiting and carried him off
inland, whilst we dashed onwards, the blue waters of Dublin Bay, bounded
by the hill of Howth, on our left, and rows of terraces and pretty villas
along the shore on our right.

It was a bright afternoon, with a cool, refreshing breeze, and the pier
was one gay mass of pedestrians. The whole of Dublin might have been
there, so great was the gathering; but we afterwards found that every
other side of the capital was equally frequented. Fully an English mile
in length, it is of substantial masonry, which on the outer side <DW72>s
by large blocks of granite into the sea, while a broad road skirts the
inner line next to the harbor, terminated by a lighthouse at the extreme
point. Old and young were here congregated; children playing amongst the
granite rocks; clerks and shop-girls, mixed with whole families of the
professional classes of the capital, perambulating in groups, dressed in
their prettiest and brightest, looking the very pictures of enjoyment and
friendly intercourse. A man-of-war was anchored in the harbor, which was
also full of graceful yachts and alive with boating parties rowing about
in all directions. A more healthful, innocent afternoon it were difficult
to conceive, and even Harry admitted the general _brio_ which seemed to
pervade the air. Nor could he any longer deny the proverbial beauty of
the Dublin maidens; and I found him quite ready to linger on a seat and
watch the clear complexions and faultless features that passed in such
constant succession before us.

After some time that tinge of melancholy common to strangers in a crowd
began imperceptibly to steal over us, as we awoke to the recollection
that we alone seemed without acquaintances in that throng, and we moved
to the station on our way Dublin-ward. Suddenly the one defect to us
was repaired; for on the platform we found the Bishop of ----shire
going to Dalkey to dine with some old friends. Harry had made rapid
strides since the morning; for his face brightened as he recognized our
fellow-passenger, and the next moment, undisguisedly admitting that he
had spent a charming day, he dwelt with earnestness on the splendid
sermon of the morning.

“Oh! yes,” observed a priest who accompanied his lordship, “even a
Protestant clergyman told me lately that he considered the only orators
in the true sense of the word now in the United Kingdom to be Gladstone,
Bright, and Father Burke. But Father Burke has something more than mere
oratory,” said he, smiling. “You ought to hear him at his own church
in Dominic Street, where he is to preach again to-night. He is more at
home there than anywhere else. If you want a real treat in the matter of
preaching, I recommend you to go there.”

The remark was dropped at random; but, to my excessive surprise, Harry
caught fire, and, finding me willing, he hurried through his dinner in
a manner that was perfectly astounding. Then, in feverish haste, we
made our way to S. Saviour’s. It was not yet eight o’clock, but still
the church was so full that entrance was quite impossible. There was no
standing room even, said those at the door, and we were turning away, to
Harry’s deep disappointment, when a beggar-woman accosted us with “Won’t
your honor give me something for a cup of tea? Sure, I dreamt last night
that your honor would give me a pound of tea and her ladyship a pound of
sugar. Ye were the very faces I saw in my drame. And may God reward ye!”

“Dreams go by contraries,” replied Harry testily, so vexed at missing the
sermon that he was in no humor to be teased.

“Indeed! then, that’s just it,” answered the woman, an arch wink lighting
up her wizened features. “It’s just your honor, then, that’s to give me
the sugar and her ladyship the tea; so it’ll be good luck for me anyhow!
And may God bless you and his holy Mother watch over you!” she continued,
as Harry, unable to resist a hearty laugh at the woman’s readiness, drew
out his purse and handed her a shilling. “And now, sure, I’ll show ye how
to get in to hear his riverence! There’s no one all the world over like
Father Burke!--the darlin’. It would be a sin for you to go away without
hearing him; so I’ll bring ye round to the sacristy door, and you’ll get
in quite comfortable!”

“You must be very much at home here, if you can manage that,” observed
Harry, amused at the whole performance, as we meekly followed our
tattered guide.

“Oh! then, don’t I spend half my time in the church, your honor! A poor
body like me can’t work; but sure an’ can’t I pray? I hear three Masses
every Sunday and one every week-day. Sure, it’d be a sin if I didn’t. Oh!
I don’t mane it’d be a sin on week-days, but it’d be a mortal sin if I
didn’t hear one on Sundays. Sure, every one knows that!” …

This was, however, precisely the kind of knowledge in which Harry was
utterly deficient. Mortal sin and venial sin were to him, as to most
Englishmen, unknown terms, and he gaped with bewilderment as this ragged
woman proceeded to develop to him the difference in the clearest possible
language. There is no saying to what length the catechetical instruction
might have extended, if we had not reached the sacristy door, where, true
enough, the clerk, noticing we were strangers, led us into reserved seats
beside the sanctuary, though even there but scant room then remained.

S. Saviour’s, built by the Dominicans within the last fifteen years,
is an excellent specimen of Gothic, and, filled to overflowing with a
devout, earnest congregation, upon whom brilliant gaseliers now shed a
flood of light, no sight could be more impressive. The devotions, so
fitting in a Dominican church, commenced with the Rosary, which being
over, the black mantle, white robe, and striking head of the favorite
preacher rose above the pulpit ledge. His text was again on charity; and
if anything were needed to show his powers, the versatility with which
he treated the same theme would have been all-sufficient. Harry was lost
in admiration, especially as it was extempore, in contradistinction to
the Protestant habit of _reading_ sermons; nor could he believe, on
looking at his watch, that we had once more been listening for an entire
hour. He could have remained there for many more quarters; and, to judge
from their countenances, so could the whole congregation, even to the
very poorest. Benediction followed, and, as deeply impressed as in the
morning, we pursued our way back with the crowd through Dominic Street
into Sackville street and to our “home” at the Imperial Hotel.

Next morning Harry West was a different man. I sought, however, for an
explanation in vain. No _Times_, it is true, was forthcoming; but then
it was Monday, and in his Buckinghamshire retreat this likewise happened
on the first day of the week. The Irish papers doubtless irritated him
by their paucity of English news--not even “a bishop killed!”--and their
volubility on topics quite unfamiliar to him was very vexatious. Still
this was not sufficient to account for the change which had come over
the spirit of his dream. At length, by a slight hint, I discovered that
he thought he had allowed himself to be carried away giddily by the
excitement of the previous day, and that he must look at matters more
soberly if he really were to be an impartial judge. This was the day of
our departure for Westmeath, and he would not be influenced by any one.
Our train did not leave until three P.M., and I urged a ramble through
the town; but in his present mood he viewed everything askance, and would
not even smile at the many witticisms and pleasant answers which I found
it possible to draw forth from the guides, porters, and cabmen, almost
unconsciously to themselves.

At last we started from the Broadstone station. The afternoon was cloudy,
and, as we advanced, the country became dull and uninteresting. The line
ran beside a canal--on which there seemed but poor traffic--bordered by
broad fields of pasture, so thinly stocked with cattle, however, and
so deserted-looking, though in the vicinity of Dublin, that the effect
was even depressing upon me. Two ladies in our compartment, certainly,
noticed it as something unusual, saying some mysterious words about
Ballinasloe fair and how different it would be when that event took
place; but they left the carriage immediately, so we had no opportunity
of cross-questioning them. In the course of two and a half hours we
reached our terminus at Athboy, and the porter, asking if we were the
friends expected by Mrs. Connor, handed me a note just brought from
her. It explained that one of her horses being laid up and she likewise
ailing, she could neither come herself nor send her carriage; she hoped,
therefore, that we might be content with the “outside car,” a cart going
at the same time for our luggage. Content I certainly was, for I loved
the national vehicle; but Harry had never tried one, and in his present
temper nothing pleased him. The civility of the coachman even provoked
him, and made him whisper something about “blarney” in my ear. However,
putting our cloaks and bundles in the “well,” we got up back to back, one
on each side and the coachman on the seat in the middle.

Athboy, too, known to Harry from the debates as a focus of Ribbonism, was
an unlucky starting-point, and the number of barefooted though well-made,
handsome children running about its streets, greatly shocked him.

Whether the coachman really urged on the horse faster than on subsequent
occasions, or the turnings were sharper, or that Harry was startled by
the difficulty every novice experiences in holding on, I have never
since been able to ascertain; but, looking around at him in less than
five minutes after we left, his piteous expression convulsed me with
laughter. From him, however, it met with no response, and he either
could not or would not admire the brilliant sunset sky, which in autumn
is often so exquisite in this part of Ireland. With every step the
road grew prettier, thickly overshadowed by the large, spreading trees
of the beautiful gentlemen’s seats in this district; though here and
there a wretched roadside cabin startled Harry from his revery, and
the recurrence of a black cross now and again on a wall attracted his
attention.

“O sir! that’s only where some one was killed,” answered Dan, the
coachman, most innocently, making Harry shudder meanwhile; though in
the same breath he added: “This is where Mr. W---- was killed by a fall
from his horse, and the last one was put up where poor Biddy Whelan was
thrown out of the cart when returning from market at Delvin two years
last Michaelmas, by the old horse shying. She died on the spot in a few
minutes, and these crosses are painted that way on the wall to remind us
to say a prayer for the poor souls. God be merciful to them!”

Harry’s sidelong glances towards me, however, plainly proved that he
mistrusted the man’s words and gave them a very different meaning. By
degrees--as always does happen on these cars, which amongst their many
advantages cannot boast their adaptation for conversation--we grew
silent, and no one had spoken for the next ten minutes, when we turned
down a long, straight road, rendered still darker by the magnificent elms
which stretched across it as in a high arch. Suddenly a feeble shot was
heard not far off, and at the same moment Harry jumped off the car, put
his hand to his heart, and cried out: “I’m killed! I’m killed!” What
words can express my horror? To this day I know not how I too jumped
off; I only know that I found myself standing beside him in an agony
of mind. Had all my vain boasting, all my obstinacy, resulted in this?
Was poor Harry West thus to be sacrificed to my foolhardiness? But the
agony though sharp was--must I betray my cousin’s weakness, and confess
it?--short. I looked for blood, for fainting, for anything resembling
my preconceived notions of a “roadside murder”; when, as quickly as he
had jumped off the car, so quickly he now seemed to recover. Ashamed of
himself he certainly was, when, taking away his hand, he was obliged to
admit “it was all a mistake!” After all, he had never been touched! But
the shot had been so unexpected, and he had at the time been brooding
so deeply over all the stories he had read of “agrarian outrages,” that
he had positively thought he had been hit; and very natural it seemed
to him, as no doubt he had been already recognized as a _land agent_
by the Irish population![178] Quite impossible is it to describe my
mingled feelings of vexation at the needless fright and of uncontrollable
amusement at my English friend’s unexampled folly. Dan, the coachman,
underwent the same process, only in an aggravated form; for, while he
felt indignant at the implied insult to his countrymen, every feature in
his face betrayed the most uncontrollable amusement, mixed with supreme
contempt; for he declared that the shot was fired by his own son running
in search of hedge-sparrows, as was his wont at that hour, and he pointed
him out to us in the next field, which belonged to Mrs. Connor. The gate
of her avenue was only a few yards further on.

If I had wished to break the ice on our arrival at Mauverstown, this
incident would effectually have accomplished it. But the party consisted
of Mrs. Connor; her son, a youth of twenty; Katie, a daughter of
twenty-nine, and a handsome, black-eyed, fair-complexioned young lady,
Miss Florence O’Grady, come on a visit “all the way from Kerry.” Poor
Harry! At a glance I saw that he was in my power, and he gave me such
an imploring look that my lips were sealed, in the hope of saving him
from the tender mercies of the merry young ones. Not a word did I say of
the adventure. It was not to be expected, however, that Dan would show
him equal mercy; and young Connor’s roguish expression next morning,
when he came in late to breakfast after a visit to the stables, told me
that he had heard the story, and, moreover, that it had lost nothing in
the telling. Fortunately Harry, who was by nature the kindest and most
amiable of men, had thoroughly recovered his ordinary good temper, and
joined in the laugh against himself so cordially that the hearts of all
were at once gained. Had he by chance done otherwise, his life would
have been made miserable; but now one and all declared that they would
only punish him by making him acquainted with every hedge and bush in
the country, and that he should not leave until he “made restitution”
by singing the praises of “ould Ireland.” Charlie Connor would help him
in the shooting, the young ladies could take him across country--for
“cub-hunting” had begun, though it was too early yet for the regular
hunt--while Mrs. Connor mentioned a list of gentlemen’s places far and
near which she would show him, that he might tell his English friends it
was not quite so barbarous a land as they evidently imagined.

Good-natured though he was, Harry’s face lengthened at a prospect which
would involve a longer stay than he had intended; but there was no time
for reflection, for Charlie led him off to inspect the farm, the young
ladies took him through the pleasure-grounds on his return, and in the
afternoon we all drove to a croquet party more than eight miles off.

Henceforward most faithfully did they carry out their resolutions,
leaving no morning or afternoon unappropriated to some pleasure. Of all
counties in Ireland, Westmeath is remarkable for its many handsome seats,
well-timbered parks, and the pleasant social intercourse maintained
amongst their owners. At this season, too, every one was at home, and
croquet parties, _matinées musicales_, or dinner parties were countless.
The shooting filled a certain place in the programme for the gentlemen,
no doubt; still, Harry, announcing that he saw more of the country by
following the ladies, always managed to accompany us. The gardens and
conservatories interested him, he said; and the luxuriance of the shrubs
and evergreens always attracted his admiration, and was an invariable
excuse for a saunter with the young ladies, though oftener with only one
of the party. When we had inspected those in our immediate vicinity,
a flower-show at Kells, in the bordering county of Meath (also under
the Peace-Preservation Act!), displayed to us in addition the “beauty,
gallantry, and fashion” of both neighborhoods. Nothing, perhaps, on
these occasions is more striking to a stranger than the sort of family
life which seems to exist in Irish counties, every one knowing the other
from boyhood intimately--nay, from generation to generation. Above all is
it remarkable how every one can tell at once by the family name what part
of Ireland a new-comer springs from, or whether Celtic, of “the Pale,” or
Cromwellian, with most unerring accuracy. The majority of land-owners in
Meath and Westmeath belong to the latter--Cromwellian--class; but this in
no way hinders their living on the best terms--unlike what occurs in the
“Black North”--with their Catholic neighbors, few and far between though
these undoubtedly are.

One of the prettiest and most interesting places in this
neighborhood--Ballinlough Castle--belongs to the descendants of the
very ancient sept of O’Reilly, although within the present century
they have taken the name of Nugent, in consequence of a large property
having been left to them by one of that family. As the word implies,
it is situated on a lough, or small lake, and the house consists of an
old building to which several large rooms have been added within the
present century. The northwest front is now completely covered with
ivy, thickly intermingled with Virginia creepers, the deep-red leaves
of which amidst the dark green of the ivy made a beautiful picture at
this autumnal season. Embedded in the foliage, a tablet over the door
records the date, 1614--thirty-five years before the invasion of Ireland
by Cromwell. In the dining-room are two deep recesses, still called by
the family Cromwell’s stables; for tradition relates that in one his
horse, in the other his _cow_, rested during the one night he slept in
the castle. Early on the following day he left the place to continue his
march; but before he had proceeded far, having repented that he had not
seized so fine a property, he sent back one of his officers with an order
to the O’Reilly, the owner, to surrender at once, giving the officer
permission--as was his wont on such occasions--to take and keep the
castle for himself. Not so easy was this, however, as they had imagined
from their previous day’s experience; for “forewarned is forearmed,”
and the instant Cromwell departed the house had been barricaded. His
messenger, therefore, seen returning along the avenue, was communicated
with now only from behind closed doors. Yet the owner did not refuse in
so many words. He merely presented the house-key hanging on the end of a
pistol, through an opening over the door, desiring the man to seize it
if he dared! Not of a daring character, however, was the officer, and he
took a few moments to consider; then, throwing a _would-be_ contemptuous
look at the coveted house and land, he turned away, was soon out of
sight, and no Cromwell or Cromwellian ever troubled Ballinlough again.

The castle contains, besides some most beautiful carvings from Spain,
Aubusson tapestries from France, marble chimney-pieces and paintings
from Italy, collected in his travels by Sir James Nugent some fifty
years since; also many relics of past times--for example, one very fine
Vandyke; a full-length portrait of Lady Thurles, widow of the Duke of
Ormond’s son, and afterwards allied to the O’Reillys; another, of the
famous Peggy O’Neil, only daughter of Sir Daniel O’Neil, the hero at
the battle of the Boyne, who is said to be the one who exclaimed when
the day was over: “Change kings, and we will fight the battle over
again.” He then accompanied King James to France, but, being subsequently
pardoned by William and recalled to take possession of his estates, he
died at Calais on his road home. King William, strange to relate, is
stated notwithstanding, in a fit of generosity, to have given a large
dower to this his only daughter Peggy when she soon afterwards married
Hugh O’Reilly, of Ballinlough Castle, and thus became the ancestress of
the present family. A satin quilt embroidered by her hands still exists
amongst the castle treasures; but most interesting of all the relics is
an old chalice dating from that period.

On our road thither we had passed by the ruins of a small chapel
carefully preserved, standing in a field still called Cromwell’s field,
because there the priest was saying Mass when a scout returned and gave
the alarm that the invader and his troops were speedily advancing. In
consternation, the congregation fled; but the priest neither could nor
would interrupt the Holy Sacrifice, and he had just time to finish it
when the enemy’s soldiers appeared in sight. Then, and then only, he
took flight across the fields; but his foot slipped as he was crossing
the nearest hedge, and the chalice which he held in his hand was bent by
his fall. And this same chalice, notched and bent, we now saw carefully
preserved by the gracious _Dame-Châtelaine_ of Ballinlough. And here it
may be noticed that similar relics and traditions are found all over
Ireland. Another family of our acquaintance possesses the diminutive,
plain chalice used by a priest of their blood--his name being engraven on
the base--for saying Mass behind a hedge when even this was penal both
for priest and people. In that particular case, too, this steadfastness
to his duty did end fatally; for this same priest was one of those killed
at Drogheda. In the grounds of another friend a small, thickly-wooded
eminence is shown, with a grotto which served to shelter the priest when
officiating, whilst the congregation knelt in groups around, with scouts
outside ready to give warning of any unfriendly approach. Elsewhere the
“priest’s hill,” enclosed within the demesne walls, bears its name from
the sad fate of another of the sacred ministry killed there whilst caught
in the act of saying Mass. Two hundred years and more have elapsed since
Cromwell’s day, but it is no wonder that the memory of these events is
still fresh in the minds of a faithful posterity, or that they should
delight to speak of deeds which would honor any people.

Deeply impressed as Harry West was by traditions which until then had
been unknown to him, he was further edified by the manner in which the
Irish poor flock from far and near on Sunday mornings to the parish
church, often walking thither many a long mile in hail, rain, and snow.
Sometimes it stands at a central point, on a hill or in the middle of
a field, no village even near; but many handsome new churches are in
course of erection from contributions gathered chiefly amongst the poor.
Some of these collections are wonderful, considering the localities,
seven and eight hundred pounds--nay, a thousand--being often the result
of the “laying the foundation-stone,” or “opening day,” in a district
solely inhabited by farmers and peasants--especially, be it added, if the
favorite Father Burke be the preacher. Many and many a time, however,
large sums are sent on such occasions back from America from some old
parishioner whose fortune has increased since he left the “dear ould
country,” but whose heart still clings to it faithfully and tenderly.
Most remarkable, too, is the correspondence kept up by emigrants with
their families, and the large presents in money “sent home” from sons to
fathers, brothers to sisters. It was our friend’s custom--as it is at
Ballinlough Castle and many other houses--to let the poorer cottagers
come up to the hall-door for doles of bread, or presents of clothes at
certain seasons, and at all times for medicine, of which the ladies have
knowledge just sufficient for all minor wants. One morning I was watching
Mrs. Connor’s distribution, when old Biddy Nolan produced a letter which
she begged her honor to read for her. The postmark was Chicago, and it
came from her son _Mike_, who had not written since he left home; but now
he gave a full account of his adventures, winding up by enclosing his
mother, who was bathed in tears of joy, a draft for twenty pounds--his
savings during the last few months!

Another characteristic of the County Westmeath consists in its many
pretty lakes; and as picnics, fishing and boating excursions, were
not forgotten in the Connor hospitalities, these--Lough Derrevarra in
particular--could not be omitted. The road to the lakes lay across
a bog, moor, and wild, deserted-looking tract, the exact reverse of
the neighborhood we were living in. Dismal enough it was returning
sometimes in the dark without meeting a human being perhaps for miles,
and difficult to me now and then to resist a shudder. Strange, however,
is the world, and in nothing did it appear to me stranger than in Harry
West’s air of tranquillity and perfect security.

He never dreamt of jumping off of the car (he would have left a pretty
neighbor if he had!), nor seemed to remember the existence of the police,
Ribbonmen, or Peace-Preservation Act! He heard no one mention them, and
he had given up thinking about them.

Truly, a second change had come over the spirit of his dream. And in
proportion to his aversion to my Irish visit, so now he was the one that
experienced difficulty in ending it. Not days but weeks passed by; yet
there he lingered, to the inconceivable surprise of his friends at home.
Not to mine, however. The cause was patent to every one on the spot; nor
could I wonder when, one morning, throwing off his customary reserve,
he asked me to welcome as a cousin his Irish _fiancée_, the beautiful
Florence O’Grady. Short had been the wooing, he said, but none the less
thorough his conversion. A curious mixture of love and religion those
outside-car excursions must certainly have been (these two never would
avail themselves of carriage or other vehicle); for not only had she
conquered his Saxon, but even his religious prejudices so fully that he
voluntarily offered to place himself at once under some able teacher.

Christmas was not long in coming round under these circumstances, nor
Harry West in returning as a Catholic to claim his Kerry bride, blessing
me for having accepted his escort, whilst I regarded the event as a
reward for that act of self-denial on his part. Nor could he, at the
joyous wedding breakfast, resist describing the scene of his leap from
the car on the evening of his arrival, giving a cheer at the same time
for the Peace-Preservation Act, which, to him at least--although only
from the terror it had inspired--had been the primary cause of so much
happiness.


THE LEGEND OF FRIAR’S ROCK.

The thing long hoped for had come to pass (though, alas! by what a
way of grief) and I was visiting my school friend, Anne d’Estaing,
in Bretagne. It was six years since we had met, but we had kept up a
constant correspondence; and by letter when absent, as well as by word
when together, I had become so familiar with her home and her family that
I did not go there as a stranger.

They lived in an old castle partly fallen into picturesque decay. In
the eastern tower was a small chapel, which they had put into complete
repair, and there daily they had service, and Anne found her great
delight in decking the altar with flowers, and keeping everything in
exquisite order and neatness with her own hands. They had had great
sorrows in the six years of our separation. Only Anne and her parents
were left of the loving family that once numbered eleven. Two of the
sons fell in battle, a contagious disease swept off the three youngest
children in one week; Anne’s favorite brother Bertrand became a
missionary priest, and went to China under a vow never to return; and her
twin sister faded away in consumption.

It had seemed to me, in my Irish home, as if such sorrows could scarcely
be borne; but I had never been able to come to my friend with visible,
face-to-face, heart-to-heart consolation, for my daily duty was beside a
couch where my precious mother lay, suffering from an incurable disease.
When her long trouble was at last over my strength and spirits were much
shattered, and I longed to accept Anne’s pressing invitation. My father
was very unwilling that I should go--he thought it would be so sad and
dreary there; but Anne’s letters had revealed to me such a life of peace
and prayer and happy service that it seemed to me that Château d’Estaing
must be a very haven of rest.

And so I found it. From the moment that I looked on Anne’s pale but
placid face; from the time that her mother’s arms held me as those other
arms, which I had missed so sorely, used to do; from the first words
of fatherly welcome that the old count gave me, I was at home and at
peace. And when at sunset I went to Vespers, and the dying light shone in
through the lancet windows, along the aisle, and on the richly-decorated
altar, and Anne’s voice and fingers led the soothing _Nunc Dimittis_, it
was as if the dews of healing fell on my bruised heart.

They made no stranger of me; they knew too well what sorrow was, and how
its sting for them had been withdrawn. So together, in the early dawn,
we knelt for the holiest service, beginning the day in close intercourse
with Him whose “compassions fail not,” and finding that they are indeed
“new every morning.” Together we kept the Hours, and did plain household
duties, and visited in the village, dispensing medicines, reading to old
women, caring for the sick. Two afternoons in the week classes came to
the castle for instruction; every Wednesday evening the children came
to practise the church music--and, oh! how sweet that music was; and on
one afternoon we used to mount our shaggy ponies and ride to a distant
hamlet, to teach the children there. Together we took care of the garden,
where grew the flowers for the altar and for weddings and funerals; and
of the trellis of rare grapes, from which came the sacramental wine.
Every pleasant day we went out upon the bay in Anne’s boat, rowed by two
strong-armed Breton girls, visiting the rocky coves and inlets, startling
the sea-fowl from their nests, and enjoying the sea-breeze and crisp
waves.

Where the bay and the sea join is a headland, which commands the finest
view for miles around; yet, much as we loved that view, we were oftenest
to be found at the base, where we sat idly, while the boat rocked on the
water, which lapped with lulling sound against the rock. It was a pretty
sight, the face of that cliff, where wild vines crept and delicate wild
flowers bloomed, and an aromatic odor rose from the herbs that grew
there, and some small, weather-beaten firs found footing in the crevices.
On the summit were a few ruins. But the chief natural point of interest,
and that from which the Head derived its name, was a curious rock which
stood at its base. It was called the Friar. At first I saw little about
it which could lay claim to such a name; but the more I watched it, the
more the likeness grew upon me, till it became at times quite startling.
It was a massive stone, some thirty feet above the water at low tide,
like a human figure wrapped in a monk’s robe, always facing the east,
and always like one absorbed in prayer and meditation, yet ever keeping
guard. One day I asked Anne if there was not some legend about it, and
she replied that the country people had one which was very interesting,
and partly founded on fact. Of course I begged for it, and she was ready
to tell me.

As I write, I seem to see and hear it all again--the rocking boat; the
two girls resting on their oars and talking in their broad _patois_;
the twittering, darting birds; the butterfly that fluttered round us;
the solemn rock casting its long shadow on the water, that glittered in
the light of a summer afternoon; Anne’s pale, thin, sparkling face, and
earnest voice. I see even the children at play upon the shore, acting out
the old Breton superstition of the washerwomen of the night, who wash the
shrouds of the dead; and their quaint song mingles with Anne’s story:

    “Si chrétien ne vient nous sauver,
    Jusqu’au jugement faut laver;
    Au clair de la lune, au bruit du vent,
    Sous la neige, le linceul blanc;”

and the little bare feet are dancing through the water, and the little
brown hands wash and wring the sea-kale for the shrouds, and it all seems
as yesterday to me. But it was years and years ago.

“You know that this is a very dangerous coast,” Anne said. “The tide runs
fast here, and the rocks are jagged and dangerous. Row out a few strokes,
Tiphaine and Alix, and let Mlle. Darcy see what happens.”

A dozen strokes of the oars, and we were in an eddy where it took all the
strength of our rowers to keep back the boat; and beyond Friar’s Rock the
tide-race was like a whirlpool, one eddy fighting with another.

“We would not dare go further,” Anne said. “No row-boats venture there,
and large sailing-vessels need a cautious helmsman. In a storm it is
frightful, and the men and the boats are not few that have gone down
there. But never a board or a corpse has been found afterwards. There is
a swift under-current that sweeps them out to sea. Now, Tiphaine, row
back again.”

A white, modern lighthouse stands on a rock on the outer shore; its
lantern was visible above the Head. Anne pointed to it.

“That has been there only a century,” she said. “Before it we had another
and a better light, we Bretons. Where those ruins are, Joanne dear, there
was a small chapel once, and on the plain below the Head was a monastery.
It was founded hundreds of years ago, by S. Sampson some say, and others
by the Saxon S. Dunstan himself, or, as they call him here, S. Gonstan,
the patron of mariners. I do not know how long it had been in existence
at the time of the legend, but long enough to have become famous, quite
large in numbers, and a blessing to the country round about. The monks
were the physicians of the place; they knew every herb, and distilled
potions from them, which they administered to the sick, so that they came
to the beds of poverty and pain with healing for soul and body both. They
taught the children; they settled quarrels and disputes; on Rogation days
they led the devout procession from field to field, marking boundary
lines, and praying or chanting praises at every wayside cross.

“But that which was their special work was the guarding of this coast.
Instead of that staring white lighthouse, there was on the top of the
chapel’s square tower a large lantern surmounted by a cross, and all
through the night the monks kept it burning, and many a ship was saved
and many a life preserved by this means. At Vespers the lamp was lighted,
and one monk tended it from then till Nocturns, giving his unoccupied
time to prayer for all at sea, both as to their bodily and spiritual
wants, and to every one in any need or temptation that night. At Nocturns
he was relieved by another monk, who kept watch till Prime. Such for
three centuries had been the custom, and never had the light been known
to fail.

“It must have been a strange sight--that band of men in gown and cowl
engaged in the never-omitted devotions before the altar, then departing
silently, leaving one alone to wrestle in prayer for the tried souls that
knew little of the hours thus spent for them. O Joanne! what would I not
give to have it here again; to know that this was once more the Holy
Cape, as it used to be called; and that here no hour went by, however it
might be elsewhere, that prayers and praises were not being offered to
our dear Lord, who ever intercedes for us!”

Anne was silent for a while, and I felt sure that she was praying. When
she roused herself, it was to bid the rowers pull home fast, as it was
almost time for Vespers.

“You shall hear the rest, dear,” she said, “when we go up-stairs
to-night.” So after Compline, and after Anne and I had played and sung
to her parents, as we were wont to do, she came into my room and lighted
the fire and the tall candles, and we settled ourselves for a real
school-girl talk. Anne showed me a sketch which her brother Bertrand had
made, partly from fancy, and partly from the ruins, of the monastery and
chapel.

“It looks like a place of peace and holiness, where one might be safe
from sin for ever,” I said; but Anne shook her head.

“The old delusion,” she sighed. “As if Satan would not spread sore
temptations just in such abodes as these. Don’t you remember how often
we have spoken of it--the terrible strength and subtlety of spiritual
temptations, simply because they are less obvious than others? The legend
of the Friar witnesses to that, whether you take the story as true or
false. I am going to give myself a treat to-night, and I am sure it will
be one to you. Bertrand wrote out the legend after he made the sketch.
Will you care to hear it?”

“Indeed I would,” I answered; and Anne unfolded her precious paper.

“It is only a fragment,” she said, “beginning abruptly where I left off
this afternoon; but perhaps it will show you more of what Bertrand is.”

“Anne,” I asked suddenly, “don’t you miss him--more than any of the
others?”

“No--yes,” she answered, then paused thoughtfully. “Yes,” she said at
last, “I suppose I do. Because, so long as I know he is living somewhere
on this earth, it seems possible for my feet to go to him and my eyes to
see his face. But, after all, none of them seem far away. We are brought
so near in the great Communion, in prayers--_in everything_. In fact,
Joanne--does it seem very cold-hearted?--oftenest I do not miss them at
all; God so makes up for every loss.”

I was crying by this time, for my heartache was constant; and Anne came
and kissed me, and looked distressed. “I ought not to trouble you,” she
said. “Did I? I did not mean to hurt you.”

“Oh! no,” I answered. “Only why should I not be as resigned as you?”

“Joanne darling!” she exclaimed, “you are _that_ much more than I am.
Can’t you see? You feel--God causes you to feel it--keenly. That is
your great cross; and so, when you do not murmur, but say, ‘God’s will
be done,’ you are resigned. But that is not the cross he gives to me.
Instead, he makes bereavement light to me by choosing to reveal his
mercies; and I must take great care to correspond to his grace. Bertrand
warned me solemnly of that. And yet this is not all I mean. Perhaps you
will understand better when you have heard the legend.”

She sat on the floor close beside me, and held my hand. I thanked God for
her, she comforted me so. I was always hungry then for visible love; but
by degrees, and partly through her, he taught me to be content with a
love that is invisible.

“There was once a monk,” she read, “the youngest of the brotherhood, who
was left to keep the watch from midnight until dawn. Through the windows
the moonbeams fell, mingling with the light that burned before the
tabernacle, and with the gleam of the monk’s small taper. Outside, the
sea was smooth like glass, and the stars shone brightly, and a long line
of glory stretched from shore to shore. Lost in supplication, the monk
lay prostrate before the altar. His thoughts and prayers were wandering
far away--to the sick upon their beds of pain, to travellers on land and
sea, to mourners sunk in loneliness or in despair, to the poor who had no
helper, to little children, to the dying; most of all, to the tempted,
wherever they might be.

“He was intensely earnest, and he had a loving temperament and a strong
imagination which had found fitting curb and training in the devout
practice of meditation. The prayers he used were no mere form to him;
he seemed actually to behold those for whom he interceded, actually to
feel their needs and sore distress. This was nothing new, but to-night
the power of realization came upon him as never before. He saw the dying
in their final anguish; he suffered with the suffering, and felt keen
temptations to many a deed of evil, and marked Satan’s messengers going
up and down upon the earth, seeking to capture souls. Sharper than all
else was the conflict he underwent with doubts quite new to him--doubts
of the use or power of his prayers. Still he prayed on, in spite of the
keen sense of unworthiness to pray. He would not give place for a moment
to the suggestion that his prayers were powerless. Again and again he
fortified himself with the Name of all-prevailing might. And then it
seemed to him, in the dim candle-light and among the pale moonbeams, that
the Form upon the crucifix opened its eyes and smiled at him, and that
from the lips came a voice saying, ‘Whatsoever ye shall ask in my name,
that will I do.’

“The hour came to tend the light; he knew it. But he knew, too, that the
sea without was calm, even like the crystal sea before the Throne, save
where the wild currents that never rested were surging white with foam
and uttering hoarse murmurs. He knew that the night was marvellously
still; that there was no wind, not even enough to stir the lightest leaf.
What mariner could err, even though for once the light of the monks grew
dim--nay, even if it failed? Could he leave that glorious vision, in
order to trim a lantern of which there was no need; or cease his prayers
for perishing souls, in order to give needless help to bodies able to
protect themselves? These thoughts swept through his mind, and his choice
was hastily made to remain before the altar; and even as he made it the
vision faded, yet with it, or with his decision, all temptation to doubt
vanished too. If devils had been working upon him to cause him to cease
from intercession, they left him quite free now to pray--with words, too,
of such seeming power as he had never used before.

“Suddenly a sound smote upon his ear--such a sound as might well ring
on in one’s brain for a lifetime, and which he was to hear above all
earthly clamor until all earthly clamor should cease. It was the cry of
strong men who meet death on a sudden, utterly unprepared; the crash of
timbers against a rock; the groan of a ship splitting from side to side.
He sprang to his feet and rushed to the door. Already the great bell of
the monastery was tolling, and dark, cowled figures were hastening to
the shore. He looked up. In the cross-topped tower, for the first time
in man’s knowledge, the lamp of the monks was out. Just then the prior
hurried by him and up the stairs, and soon, but all too late, the beacon
blazed again.

“With an awful dread upon his heart he made his way to the coast. The
water foamed unbroken by aught save rocks; but pallid lips told the
story of the vessel that had sailed thither, manned by a merry crew made
merrier by drink, careless of their course, depending on the steadfast
light, and sure, because they did not see it, that they had not neared
the dangerous whirlpool and hidden rocks. Only one man escaped, and,
trembling, told the story. He had been the only sober man on board; and
when he warned the captain of their danger, he was laughed and mocked at
for his pains, and told that all true mariners would stake the monks’
light against the eyes of any man on earth. It was not the Holy Cape that
they were nearing, but Cape Brie, they said, and every one knew it was
safe sailing there. With jests and oaths instead of prayers upon their
lips, with sin-stained souls, they had gone down into that whirling tide,
which had swept them off in its strong under-tow to sea. There were homes
that would be desolate and hearts broken; there were bodies drowned, and
souls launched into eternity--perhaps for ever lost--for lack of one
little light, for the fault of a single half-hour. And still the stars
shone brightly, and the long line of glory stretched from shore to shore,
and the night was marvellously still; but upon one soul there had fallen
a darkness that might be felt--almost the darkness of despair.

“Monk Felix they had called him, and had been wont to say that he did not
belie his name, with his sweet young face and happy smile, and his clear
voice in the choir. He was Monk Infelix now and while time lasted.

“In the monastery none saw an empty place; for the man whose life had
been the only one preserved in that swift death-struggle had begged,
awed and repentant, to be received into the number of these brethren
vowed to God’s peculiar service. But in village and in choir they missed
him who had gone in and out among them since his boyhood, and under their
breath the people asked, ‘Where is he?’ No definite answer was given,
but a rumor crept about, and at length prevailed, that Monk Felix had
despaired of pardon; that day and night the awful death-cry rang in his
ears; and day and night he besought God to punish here and spare there,
imploring that he might also bear some of the punishment of those souls
that had passed away through his neglect. And a year from that night,
and in the very hour, the last rites having been given to him as to the
dying, the rock now called the Friar’s had opened mysteriously. Around it
stood the brotherhood, chanting the funeral psalms very solemnly; and as
the words, “De profundis clamavi ad Te, Domine,” were intoned, one left
their number, and, with steady step and a face full of awe and yet of
thankfulness, entered the cleft, and the rock closed.

“Years came and went, other hands tended the lantern, till in the
Revolution the light of the monks and the Order itself were swept away,
and the monastery was laid in ruins. But the legend is even now held for
truth by simple folk, that in Friar’s Rock the monk lives still, hearing
always the eddying flood about him, that beats in upon his memory the
story of his sin; and they say that with it mingles ever the cry of men
in their last agony, and the cry is his name, thus kept continually
before the Judge. There, in perpetual fast and vigil, he watches and
prays for the coming of the Lord and the salvation of souls, and the
rock that forms his prison has been made to take his shape by the action
of those revengeful waves. What he knows of passing events--what added
misery and mystery it is that now no longer the holy bell and chant echo
above him--none can tell. But there, they say, whatever chance or change
shall come to Bretagne, he must live and pray and wait till the Lord
comes. Then, when the mountains fall and the rocks are rent, his long
penance shall be over, and he shall enter into peace.”

Anne looked at me. “Was it very hard--too hard?” she asked.

“O Anne!” I cried, “it is not true?”

She smiled. “I have more to read,” she said; “more of fact, perhaps.” So
she went on.

“There is, in the archives of this domain, an account of a settlement
some twenty miles from here, where a horde of outlaws dwell in huts and
caves, their hand against every man, and every man’s hand against them.
It was as much as one’s life was worth to go among them, unless one was
ready to live as they lived, and sin as they sinned. But it is recorded
that in the same year in which is also recorded the loss of a Dutch
vessel by reason of the failure of the light of the monks--an event never
known before, and never again till the Revolution in its great guilt
quenched it and shattered the sacred walls--there came to these men a
missionary priest, seeking to save their souls. They say he was a man
who never smiled, yet his very presence brought comfort. Little children
loved him; and poor, down-trodden women learned hope and patience from
him; and men consented to have him there, and not to slay him.

“Yet what he underwent was fearful. He lived in a hovel so mean that the
storms drove through it, and the floor was soaked with rain or white with
frost or snow. No being in that place poorer, more hungry, more destitute
of earthly comfort. Yet his crusts he shared with the beggar, his pallet
of straw far oftener held the child turned out from shelter, the sick,
the dying, than him. There the leper found a home, and tendance, not only
of pity but of love--hands that washed, lips that kissed, prayers that
upbore him in the final struggle.

“We read of temptations from devils which the saints have undergone;
there are those who presume to doubt them. This man wrestled with
temptations from his brother men, who seemed like very fiends, and often,
often, the anguish of despair came upon him, and he thought he was
already lost, and a wild desire almost overwhelmed him to join them in
their evil ways. For, by some horrible instinct, they seemed to divine
that pain to the body would be slight to him compared to the tortures
which they could invent for his soul. They came to his ministrations, and
mimicked him when he spoke, and set their ribald songs to sacred tunes.
Before his door they parodied the holiest rites. They taught the children
to do the same things at their sports.

“And he--it is said that in the pauses of midnight or noontide rout and
wild temptation they heard him praying for them, and praying for himself,
like one who had bound up his own life in the bundle of their lives, and
believed that he would be lost or saved with them. It is said that at
times he rushed out among them like S. Michael, and his voice was as a
trumpet, and he spoke of the wrath of God; and, again, he would open his
door, and his face would be like death, and he would tremble sorely, as
he begged them, like some tortured creature, to cease from sin. What they
did was to him as if he did it. He was so of them that their temptations
were his also, till he often seemed to himself as sunk in sin as any of
them.

“Yet, one by one, souls went to God from that fiend-beleaguered place;
babes with the cross hardly dry upon their foreheads; children taught to
love the God whom once they had only known to curse; some of those sick
made for ever well, some of those lepers made for ever clean. The priest
set up crosses on their graves, and sacrilegious hands broke them down;
but no hands could stop his prayers and praises for the souls that by
God’s blessing he had won. He tried to build a little chapel, and they
rent it stone from stone; but none could destroy the temple of living
stones built up to God out of that mournful spot.

“A Lent came when as never before he strove with and for these people.
It was as if an angel spoke to them. An angel? Nay, a very man like
themselves, as tempted as any of them, a sinner suffering from his sin;
yet a man and a sinner who loved God, believed in God, knew that he would
come to judge, yet knew he was mighty to save. That Lent, Satan himself
held sway there; new and more vile and awful blasphemies surged through
the place; it was his last carnival, and it was a mad one. Men held women
back from church if they wished to worship, but followed them there and
elsewhere to darker deeds of sacrilege and revelry than even they had
known before. Yet in the gray dawn, when sleep overpowered the revellers,
a few people crept to that holy hut round which the sinners had danced
their dance of defiance and death and sin, and there sought for pardon
and blessing, and knelt before the Lord, who shunned not the poor
earth-altar where a priest pleaded daily for souls, as for so long he had
done, except on the rare occasions when he would be gone for a night and
a day, they knew not where, and return with fresh vigor and courage.

“Thursday in Holy Week he kept his watch with the Master in his agony.
Round him the storm of evil deeds and words rose high. In the midst of
it the rioters thought they saw a vision. It was a moonlight night, and
marvellously still; no wind moved the trees, and the water was like
glass. But all the silence of earth was broken by hideous shout and
song, and all its brightness turned to darkness by such deeds of evil as
Christians may not name. Before those creatures steeped in sin, wallowing
in it, one stood suddenly, haggard, spent as beneath some great burden,
wan as with awful suffering. The moonbeams wrapped him in unearthly
light, he seemed of heaven, and yet a sufferer. He did not speak; how
could he speak, who had pleaded with them again and again by day, and
spent his nights in prayer, for such return as this? He lifted up his
eyes, and spread his arms. He looked to them like one upon a cross. ‘The
Christ! The Christ!’ they murmured, awestruck. And then, ‘Slay him!’ some
one shouted frantically. There came a crash of stones, of wood, of jagged
iron, and in the midst a distinct, intense voice, ‘O Lord Jesus, forgive
us.’ They had heard the last of the prayers that vexed them.

“On Good Friday morning, as the brotherhood came from Prime, a strange
being, more like a beast than a man,, approached them. ‘Come to us,’ he
said in a scarcely intelligible dialect--‘come to the _Dol des Fées_: The
abbot asked no questions, and made no delay. He bade one of the older
monks accompany him, and together they sought the place. Before they
reached it, sounds of loud, hoarse wailing were borne to them upon the
breeze; and their guide, on hearing them, broke forth into groans like
the groans of a beast, and beat his breast, and cried, ‘My father, my
father! My sin, my sin!’

“They saw hovels and caves, deserted; among the poorest, one still
poorer; about it, men, women, and children wrung their hands or sobbed
and tore their hair, or lay despairing on the ground. Entering, four bare
walls met their view; then a pallet, where an idiot grinned and pointed.
Following his pointing finger, they saw an earth-altar where the light
still burned. Before it one lay at rest. Wrapped in his tattered robe;
his hands clasped, as though he prayed yet, above the crucifix upon his
heart; hands, neck, and face bruised and battered and red with blood; his
face was of one at peace. The contest was ended. He who lay there dead
lay there a victor, by the grace of God. Around him his people, for whom
he gave his life, begged for the very help they had so long refused. And
soon, where so long he labored, sowing good seed in tears, the reapers
went with shouting, bringing their sheaves with them. That which had been
the abode of sinners has become years since the abode of saints.

“Thanks be to God!”

“But it was such a little sin,” I said, as Anne put the paper by.

“How great a sin lost Eden?” she asked gravely. “Besides, we cannot tell
what spiritual pride or carelessness, unknown or hidden, may have led to
such a fall. But, dear, it was not anything of that sort I wanted to talk
about, but the mercy, and how it explains what we were speaking of.”

“The mercy?” I repeated.

“Yes,” she said fervently. “To be punished, and yet the very punishment
to contain the power to pray on still--to speak to God--to plead with
him for souls, the souls he died for on the cross. What though one were
shut for all time in Friar’s Rock, if one trusted that at the end the
Vision of God would be his for ever, and till then could and must ask him
continually to have mercy on immortal souls? Or who would not live that
living death in _Dol des Fées_ to live it in prayer at the altar, and to
die a martyr’s death?

“Joanne, my darling, what, after all, are sorrow and death and separation
and loneliness to us who can speak to God? In him we are all brought
near. His blood makes each of his children dear to those who love him.
Day by day to forget self in them, in him; day by day to let grief or
pleasure grow less and less in one absorbing prayer that his kingdom
come; day by day to lose one’s self in him--_that_ is living, and _that_
is loving. I cannot mourn much for my precious ones that are only absent
from my sight, but safe and present with him; my tears are for souls that
are _not_ safe, the wide world over; and I cannot miss much what I have
never really lost. A thousand times Friar’s Rock speaks to me, and this
is what it says:

“‘If thou, Lord, wilt mark iniquities, Lord, who shall stand it?

“‘For with thee there is merciful forgiveness; and by reason of thy law I
have waited--_for thee_, O Lord.

“‘From the morning watch even until night, let Israel hope in the Lord.

“‘Because with the Lord there is mercy, and with him plentiful redemption.

“‘And he shall redeem Israel from all his iniquities.’”

It was years ago, as I have said, that Anne d’Estaing told me this
legend. Since then, her parents have died, the château has passed into
other hands, she is head of a convent in Bretagne, and I--I lie here,
the last of my name, a hopeless invalid, with not a penny to call my
own. Rich once, and young, and fair, and proud; sad once, and doubting
how to bear a lonely future, I know the meaning of Anne’s story now. “I
have waited _for thee_, O Lord! And he shall redeem Israel from all his
iniquities.”

While I wait for him, I pray. It does not grieve me that I do not hear
from Anne. La Mère Angélique is more to me, and nearer to me, than when,
in days long past, we spoke face to face. For I _know_ we meet in the
sure refuge of the Sacred Heart of Jesus, and that, with saints on earth
and saints in glory, and the souls beneath the altar, we pray together
the same prayer--“Thy kingdom come.”


DUNLUCE CASTLE.

(COUNTY ANTRIM.)

    Oh! of the fallen most fallen, yet of the proud
    Proudest; sole-seated on thy tower-girt rock;
    Breasting for ever circling ocean’s shock;
    With blind sea-caves for ever dinned and loud;
    Now sunset-gilt; now wrapt in vapor-shroud;
    Till distant ships--so well thy bastions mock
    Primeval nature’s work in joint and block--
    Misdeem _her_ ramparts, round thee bent and bowed,
    For thine, and on _her_ walls, men say, have hurled
    The red artillery store designed for thee:--
    Thy wars are done! Henceforth perpetually
    Thou restest, like some judged, impassive world
    Whose sons, their probatory period past,
    Have left that planet, void amid the vast.

    AUBREY DE VERE.


SPACE.

III.

Bodies have bulk or volume, whereby they are said to occupy a certain
place, and to fill it with their dimensions. Hence, to complete our task,
we have now to consider space in relation with the volumes and places of
bodies. To proceed orderly, we must first determine the proper definition
of “place,” and its division; then we shall examine a few questions
concerning the relation of each body to its place, and particularly the
difficult and interesting one whether bodies can be really bilocated and
multilocated.

_Place._--Aristotle, in the fourth book of his _Physics_, defines
the place of a body as “the surface by which the body is immediately
surrounded and enveloped”--“_Locus est extrema superficies corporis
continentis immobilis._” This definition was accepted by nearly all
the ancients. The best of their representatives, S. Thomas, says:
“_Locus est terminus corporis continentis_”--viz., The place of a body
is the surface of the body which contains it; and the Schoolmen very
generally define place to be “the concave surface of the surrounding
body: _Superficies concava corporis ambientis._” Thus, according to the
followers of Aristotle, no body can have place unless it is surrounded by
some other body. Immobility was also believed to be necessarily included
in the notion of place: _Superficies immobilis._ Cardinal de Lugo says:
“the word _place_ seems to be understood as meaning the real surface of
a surrounding body, not, however, as simply having its extension all
around, but as immovable--that is, as attached to a determinate imaginary
space.”[179] We do not see what can be the meaning of this last phrase.
For De Lugo holds that “real space” is the equivalent of “place,” and
that space, as distinguished from place, is nothing real: _Non est
aliquid reale._[180] His imaginary space is, therefore, a mere nothing.
How are we, then, to understand that a real surface can be “attached
to a determinate imaginary space”? Can a real being be attached to a
determinate nothing? Are there many nothings? or nothings possessing
distinct determinations? We think that these questions must all be
answered in the negative, and that neither Cardinal de Lugo, nor any one
else who considers imaginary space as a mere nothing, can account for the
immobility thus attributed to place.

The reason why Aristotle’s definition of place came to be generally
adopted by the old Schoolmen is very plain. For, in the place occupied
by any given body, two things can be considered, viz., the limiting
surface, and the dimensive quantity which extends within the limiting
surface. Now, as the ancients believed the matter of which bodies are
composed to be endowed with continuity, it was natural that they should
look upon the dimensive quantity included within the limiting surface as
an appurtenance of the matter itself, and that they should consider it,
not as an intrinsic constituent of the place occupied, but as a distinct
reality through which the body could occupy a certain place. According to
this notion of dimensive quantity, the limiting surface was retained as
the sole constituent of the place occupied; and the dimensions within the
surface being thus excluded from the notion of place, were attached to
the matter of the body itself, as a special accident inhering in it.

This manner of conceiving things is still looked upon as unobjectionable
by those philosophers who think that the old metaphysics has been carried
to such a degree of perfection by the peripatetics as to have nothing or
little to learn from the modern positive sciences. But whoever has once
realized the fact that the dimensions of bodies are not continuous lines
of matter, but intervals, or relations, in space, will agree that such
dimensions do not _inhere_ in the matter, but are extrinsic relations
between material terms distinctly ubicated. What is called the volume of
a body is nothing but the resultant of a system of relations in space.
The matter of the body supplies nothing to its constitution except the
extrinsic terms of the relations. The foundation of those relations is
not to be found in the body, but in space alone, as we have proved in our
last article; and the relations themselves do not _inhere_ in the terms,
but only _intervene_ between them. Hence the dimensive quantity of the
volume is intrinsically connected with the place it occupies, and must
enter into the definition of place as its material constituent, as we are
going to show.

As to the Aristotelic definition of place, we have the following
objections: First, a good definition always consists of two notions,
the one generic and determinable, as its material element, the other
differential and determinant, as its formal element. Now, Aristotle’s
definition of place exhibits at best only the formal or determinant, and
omits entirely the material or determinable. It is evident, in fact, that
the surface of any given body determines the limits and the figure of
something involved in the notion of place. But what is this something?
It cannot be a mere nothing; for nothing does not receive limits and
figure, as real limits and real figure must be settled upon something
real. This something must therefore be either the quantity of the matter,
or the quantity of the volume enclosed within the limiting surface. And
as we cannot admit that the quantity of the place occupied by a body is
the quantity of matter contained in the body (because bodies which have
different quantities of matter can occupy equal places), we are bound
to conclude that the quantity of the place occupied by a body is the
quantity of the volume comprised within the limiting surface. This is the
determinable or material constituent of place; for this, and this alone,
is determined by the concave surface of the surrounding body. In the same
manner as a cubic body contains dimensions within its cubic form, so also
a cubic place contains dimensions under its cubic surface; hence the
place of a body has volume, the same volume as the body; and therefore
it cannot be defined as a mere limiting surface.

Secondly, the definition of a thing should express what every one
understands the thing to be. But no one understands the word “place” as
meaning the exterior limit of the body which occupies it, therefore the
exterior limit of the body is not the true definition of place. The minor
of this syllogism is manifest. For we predicate of place many things
which cannot be predicated of the exterior limit of the body. We say, for
instance, that a place is full, half-full, or empty; that it is capable
of so many objects, persons, etc.; and it is plain that these predicates
cannot appertain to the exterior limit of the body, but they exclusively
belong to the capacity within the limiting boundary. Hence a definition
of place which overlooks such a capacity is defective.

Thirdly, to equal quantities of limiting surfaces do not necessarily
correspond equal quantities of place. Therefore, the limiting surface is
not synonymous with place, and cannot be its definition. The antecedent
is well known. Take two cylinders having equal surfaces, but whose bases
and altitudes are to one another in different ratios. It is evident by
geometry that such cylinders will have different capacities--that is,
there will be more occupable or occupied room in the one than in the
other. The consequence, too, is plain; for, if the room, or place, can
be greater or less while the limiting surface does not become greater or
less, it is clear that the place is not the limiting surface.

Fourthly, what Aristotle and his school called “the surface of the
surrounding body,” is now admitted to be formed by an assemblage of
unextended material points, perfectly isolated; and therefore such
a surface does not constitute a continuous material envelope, as it
was believed in earlier times. Now, since those isolated points have
no dimensions, but are simply terms of the dimensions in space, the
so-called “surface” owes its own dimensions to the free intervals between
those points, just as the dimensions also of the volume enclosed owe
their existence to similar intervals between the same points. Therefore
the same terms which mark in space the limit of place, mark also its
volume; and thus the volume under the surface belongs to the place itself
no less than does the limiting surface.

Fifthly, a body in vacuum would have its absolute place; and yet in
vacuum there is no surface of surrounding bodies. Therefore an exterior
surrounding body is not needed to constitute place. In fact, the body
itself determines its own place by the extreme terms of its own bodily
dimensions. This the philosophers of the peripatetic school could not
admit, because they thought that the place of the body could not move
with the body, but ought to remain “attached to a determinate imaginary
space.” But, in so reasoning, they confounded the absolute place with
the relative, as will be shown hereafter. Yet they conceded that a body
in vacuum would have its place; and, when asked to point out there
the surface of a surrounding body, they could not answer, except by
abandoning the Aristotelic definition and by resorting to the centre and
the poles of the world, thus exchanging the absolute place (_locus_)
for the relative (_situs_), without reflecting that they had no right
to admit a relative place where, according to their definition, the
absolute was wanting.

Sixthly, the true definition of place must be so general as to be
applicable to all possible places. But the Aristotelic definition does
not apply to all places. Therefore such a definition is not true. The
major of our argument needs no proof. The minor is proved thus: There
are places not only within surfaces, but also within lines, and on the
lines themselves; for, if on the surface of a body we describe a circle
or a triangle, it is evident that a place will be marked and determined
on that surface. Its limiting boundary, however, will be, not the surface
of a surrounding body, but simply the circumference of the circle, or the
perimeter of the triangle.

For these reasons we maintain that place cannot properly be defined as
“the surface of the surrounding body.” As to the additional limitation,
that such a surface should be considered as “immovable”--that is,
affixed to a determinate space (imaginary, of course, according to the
peripatetic theory, and therefore wholly fictitious)--we need only say
that even if it were possible to attach the surface of a body to a
determinate space, which is not the case, yet this condition could not be
admitted in the definition of place, because the _absolute_ place of a
body is invariably the same, wherever it be, in absolute space, and does
not change except as compared with other places. Absolute place, just as
absolute ubication, has but one manner of existing in absolute space; for
all places, considered in themselves, are extrinsic terminations of the
_same_ infinite virtuality, and are all _equally_ in the centre, so to
say, of its infinite expanse, whatever be their mutual relations.

_True Notion of Place._--What is, then, the true definition of place?
Webster describes it in his _Dictionary_ as “a particular portion of
space of indefinite extent, occupied, or intended to be occupied, by any
person or thing, and considered as the space where a person or thing does
or may rest, or has rested, as distinct from space in general.” This is
in fact the meaning of the word “place” in the popular language. The
philosophical definition of place, as gathered from this description,
would be: “Place is a particular portion of space.” This is the very
definition which all philosophers, before Aristotle, admitted, and which
Aristotle endeavored to refute, on the ground that, when a body moves
through space, its place remains intrinsically the same.

We have shown in our last article that space considered in itself has no
parts; but those who admit portion of space, consider space as a reality
dependent on the dimensions of the bodies by which it is occupied--that
is, they call “space” those resultant relative intervals which have their
foundation in space itself. If we were to take the word “space” in this
popular sense, we might well say that “place is a portion of space,”
because any given place is but one out of the many places determined
by the presence of bodies in the whole world. On the other hand, since
space, properly so called, is itself _virtually_ extended--that is,
equivalent in its absolute simplicity to infinite extension, and since
_virtual_ extension suggests the thought of _virtual_ parts, we might
admit that there are _virtual_ portions of space in this sense, that
space as the foundation of all local relations corresponds by its
virtuality to all the dimensions and intervals mensurable between all
terms ubicated, and receives from them distinct extrinsic denominations.
Thus, space as occupied by the sun is virtually distinguished from itself
as occupied by the moon, not because it has a distinct entity in the
sun and another in the moon, but because it has two distinct extrinsic
terminations. We might therefore admit that place is “a virtual portion
of space determined by material limits”; and we might even omit the
epithet “virtual” if it were understood that the word “space” was taken
as synonymous with the dimensions of bodies, as is taken by those who
deny the reality of vacuum. But, though this manner of speaking is and
will always remain popular, owing to its agreement with our imagination
and to its conciseness, which makes it preferable for our ordinary
intercourse, we think that the place of a body, in proper philosophical
language, should be defined as “a system of correlations between the
terms which mark out the limits of the body in space”; and therefore
place in general, whether really occupied or not, should be defined as
“a system of correlations between ubications marking out the limits of
dimensive quantity.”

This definition expresses all that we imply and that Webster includes
in the description of place; but it changes the somewhat objectionable
phrase “portion of space” into what people mean by it, viz., “a system
of correlations between distinct ubications,” thereby showing that it
is not the absolute entity of fundamental space, but only the resultant
relations in space, that enter into the intrinsic constitution of place.

By “a system of correlations” we mean the adequate result of the
combination of all the intervals from every single term to every other
within the limits assumed, in every direction. Such a result will
therefore represent either a volume, or a surface, or a line, according
as the terms considered within the given limits are differently disposed
in space. Thus a spherical place results from the mutual relations
intervening between all the terms of its geometric surface; and therefore
it implies all the intervals which can be measured, and all the lines
that can be traced, in all directions, from any of those terms to any
other within the given limits. In like manner, a triangular place results
from the mutual relations intervening between all the terms forming
its perimeter; and therefore it implies all the intervals and lines of
movement which can be traced, in all directions, from any of those terms
to any other within the given limits.

In the definition we have given, the material or determinable element
is the system of correlations or intervals which are mensurable within
the limiting terms; the formal or determinant is the disposition of
the limiting terms themselves--that is, the definite boundary which
determines the extent of those intervals, and gives to the place a
definite shape.

Thus it appears that, although there is no place without space,
nevertheless the entity of space does not enter into the constitution of
place as an intrinsic constituent, but only as the extrinsic foundation.
This is what we have endeavored to express as clearly as we could in our
definition of place. As, however, in our ordinary intercourse we cannot
well speak of place with such nice circumlocutions as are needed in
philosophical treatises, we do not much object to the common notion that
place is “space intercepted by a limiting boundary,” and we ourselves
have no difficulty in using this expression, out of philosophy, owing
to the loose meaning attached to the word “space” in common language;
for all distances and intervals in space are called “spaces,” even
in mechanics; and thus, when we hear of “space intercepted,” we know
that the speakers do not refer to the absolute entity of space (which
they have been taught to identify with nothingness), but merely to the
intervals resulting from the extrinsic terminations of that entity.

Most of the Schoolmen (viz., all those who considered void space as
imaginary and unreal) agreed, as we have intimated, with Aristotle, that
the notion of place involves nothing but the surface of a surrounding
body, and contended that within the limits of that surface there was
no such chimerical thing as mere space, but only the quantity of the
body itself. Suarez, in his _Metaphysics_ (Disp. 51, sect. 1, n. 9),
mentions the opinion of those who maintained that place is the space
occupied by a body, and argues against it on the ground that no one can
say what kind of being such a space is. Some have affirmed, says he,
that such a space is a body indivisible and immaterial--which leads to
an open contradiction--though they perhaps considered this body to be
“indivisible,” not because it had no parts, but because its parts could
not be separated. They also called it “immaterial,” on account of its
permeability to all bodies. But this opinion, he justly adds, is against
reason and even against faith; for, on the one hand this space should
be eternal, uncreated, and infinite, whilst on the other no body can be
admitted to have these attributes.

Others, Suarez continues, thought that the space which can be occupied by
bodies is mere quantity extending all around without end. This opinion
was refuted by Aristotle, and is inadmissible, because there cannot be
quantitative dimensions without a substance, and because the bodies
which would occupy such a space have already their own dimensions, which
cannot be compenetrated with the dimensions of space. And moreover,
such a quantity would be either eternal and uncreated--which is against
faith--or created with all other things, and therefore created in space;
which shows that space itself is not such a quantity.

Others finally opine, with greater probability, says he, that space, as
distinct from the bodies that fill it, is nothing real and positive, but
a mere emptiness, implying both the absence of bodies and the aptitude to
be filled by bodies. Of this opinion Toletus says (4 _Phys._ q. 3) that
it is probable, and that it cannot be demonstratively refuted. Yet, adds
Suarez, it can be shown that such a space, as distinct from bodies, is in
fact nothing; for it is neither a substance nor an accident, nor anything
created or temporal, but eternal.

Such is the substance of the reasons adduced by Suarez to prove that
the space occupied by bodies is nothing real. Had he, like Lessius,
turned his thought to the extrinsic terminability of God’s immensity, he
would have easily discovered that, to establish the reality of space,
none of those old hypotheses which he refuted were needed. As we have
already settled this point in a preceding article, we will not return
to it. It may, however, be remarked that what Suarez says regarding the
incompenetrability of the quantity of space with the quantity of the body
is based entirely on the assumption that bodies have their own volume
independently of space--an assumption which, though plausibly maintained
by the ancients, can by no means be reconciled with the true notion of
the volume of bodies as now established by physical science and accepted
by all philosophers. As all dimensive quantity arises from relations
in space, so it is owing to space itself that bodies have volume;
and therefore there are not, as the ancients imagined, two volumes
compenetrated, the one of space, and the other of matter; but there is
one volume alone determined by the material terms related through space.
And thus there is no ground left for the compenetration of two quantities.

S. Thomas also, in his Commentary to the _Physics_ of Aristotle (4
_Phys._ lect. 6), and in the opuscule, _De Natura Loci_, argues that
there is no space within the limiting surface of the body, for two
reasons. The first is, that such a quantity of space would be an accident
without a subject: _Sequitur quod esset aliquod accidens absque subjecto;
quod est impossibile_. The second is, that if there is space within the
surface of the body, as all the parts of the body are in the volume of
the same, so will the places of all the parts be in the place of the
whole; and consequently, there will be as many places compenetrated with
one another as there can be divisions in the dimensions of the body. But
these dimensions admit of an infinite division. Therefore, infinite
places will be compenetrated together: _Sequitur quod sint infinita loca
simul; quod est impossibile_.

These two reasons could not but have considerable weight in a time when
material continuity formed the base of the physical theory of quantity,
and when space without matter was considered a chimera; but in our time
the case is quite different. To the first reason we answer, that the
space within the surface of the body will not be “an accident without
a subject.” In fact, such a space can be understood in two manners,
viz., either as the foundation of the intervals, or as the intervals
themselves; and in neither case will there be an accident without a
subject. For, the space which is the foundation of the intervals is no
accident; it is the virtuality of God’s immensity, as we have proved;
and, therefore, there can be no question about its subject. Moreover,
such a space is indeed within the limits of the body, but it is also
without, as it is not limited by them. These limits, as compared with
space, are extrinsic terms; and therefore they do not belong to space,
but to the body alone. Lastly, although without space there can be no
place, yet space is neither the material nor the formal constituent of
place, but only the extrinsic ground of local relations, just as eternity
is not an intrinsic constituent of time, but only the extrinsic ground
of successive duration. Whence it is manifest that the entity of space
is not the dimensive quantity of the body, but the eminent reason of its
dimensions.

If, on the other hand, space is understood in the popular sense as
meaning the accidental intervals between the limits of the body, then it
is evident that such intervals will not be without their proportionate
subject. Relations have a subject of predication, not of inhesion; for
relation is a thing whose entity, according to the scholastic definition,
consists entirely of a mere connotation; _cuius totum esse est ad aliud
se habere_. Hence all relation is merely _ad aliud_, and cannot be _in
alio_. Accordingly, the intervals between the terms of the body are
_between_ them, but do not inhere in them; and they have a sufficient
subject--the only subject, indeed, which they require, for the very
reason that they exist _between_ real terms, with a real foundation. Thus
the first reason objected is radically solved.

To the second reason we answer, that it is impossible to conceive an
infinite multitude of places in one total place, unless we admit the
existence of an infinite multitude of limiting terms--that is, unless
we assume that matter is mathematically continuous. But, since material
continuity is now justly considered as a baseless and irrational
hypothesis, as our readers know, the compenetration of _infinite_ places
with one another becomes an impossibility.

Yet, as all bodies contain a very great number of material terms, it
may be asked: Would the existence of space within the limits of place
prove the compenetration of a _finite_ number of places? Would it prove,
for instance, that the places of different bodies existing in a given
room compenetrate the place of the room? The answer depends wholly on
the meaning attached to the word “space.” If we take “space” as the
foundation of the relations between the terms of a place, then different
places will certainly be compenetrated, inasmuch as the entity of space
is the same, though differently terminated, in every one of them. But,
if we take “space” as meaning the system of relative intervals between
the terms of a body, then the place of a room will not be compenetrated
with the places of the bodies it contains; because neither the intervals
nor the terms of one place are the intervals or the terms of another, nor
have they anything common except the absolute entity of their extrinsic
foundation. Now, since place is not space properly, but only a system of
correlations between ubications marking out the limits of the body in
space, it follows that no compenetration of one place with another is
possible so long as the terms of the one do not coincide with the terms
of the other.

S. Thomas remarks also, in the same place, that if a recipient full of
water contains space, then, besides the dimensions of the water, there
would be in the same recipient the dimensions of space, and these latter
would therefore be compenetrated with the former. _Quum aqua est in vase,
præter dimensiones aquæ sunt ibi aliæ dimensiones spatii penetrantes
dimensiones aquæ._ This would certainly be the case were it true that
the dimensions of the body are materially continuous, as S. Thomas with
all his contemporaries believed. But the truth is that the dimensions of
bodies do not consist in the extension of continuous matter, but in the
extension of the intervals between the limits of the bodies, which is
greater or less according as it requires a greater or less extension of
movement to be measured. The volume of a body--that is, the quantity of
the place it occupies--is exactly the same whether it be full or empty,
provided the limiting terms remain the same and in the same relation
to one another. It is not the matter, therefore, that constitutes its
dimensions. And then there are, and can be, no distinct dimensions of
matter compenetrating the dimensions of place. But enough about the
nature of place. Let us proceed to its division.

_Division of Place._--Place in general may be divided into _real_ and
_imaginary_, according as its limiting terms exist in nature or are only
imagined by us. This division is so clear that it needs no explanation.
It might be asked whether there are not also _ideal_ places. We answer,
that strictly ideal places there are none; for the ideal is the object of
our intellect, whilst place is the object of our senses and imagination.
Hence the so-called “ideal” places are nothing but “imaginary” places.

Place, whether real or imaginary, is again divided by geometers into
_linear_, _superficial_, and _cubic_ or solid, according to the nature of
their limiting boundaries. A place limited by surfaces is the place of
a volume or geometric solid. A place limited by lines is the place of a
surface. A place limited by mere points is the place of a line.

The ancients, when defining place as “the surface of the surrounding
body,” connected the notion of place with the quantity of volume, without
taking notice of the other two kinds just mentioned. This, too, was a
necessary consequence of their assumption of continuous matter. For,
if matter is intrinsically extended in length, breadth, and depth, all
places must be extended in a similar manner. But it is a known fact that
the word “place” (_locus_) is used now, and was used in all times, in
connection not only with geometric volumes, but also with geometric
surfaces and with geometric lines; and as the geometric quantities
have their counterpart in the physical order, it is manifest that such
geometric places cannot be excluded from the division of place. Can we
not on any surface draw a line circumscribing a circle or any other
close figure? And can we not point out the “place” where the circle or
figure is marked out? There are therefore places of which the boundaries
are lines, not surfaces. And again, can we not fix two points on a
given line, and consider the interval between them as one of the many
places which can be designated along the line? The word “place” in its
generality applies to any kind of dimensive quantity in space. Those
who pretend to limit it to “the surface of a volume” should tell us
what other term is to be used when we have to mention the place of a
plane figure on a wall, or of a linear length on the intersection of
two surfaces. It will be said that the ancients in this case used the
word _Ubi_. But we reply that _Ubi_ and _Locus_ were taken by them as
synonymous. The quantities bounded by lines, or terminated by points,
were therefore equivalently admitted to have their own “places”; which
proves that the definition of place which philosophers left us in their
books, did not express all that they themselves meant when using the
word, and therefore it was not practically insisted upon. With us the
case is different. The _Ubi_, as defined by us, designates a single
point in space, and is distinct from _locus_; hence we do not admit
that our _ubi_ is a place; for there is no place within a point. But
the philosophers of the old school could not limit the real ubication
of matter to a mere point, owing to their opinion that matter was
continuous.

Thus we have three supreme kinds of place--the linear, with one
dimension, length; the superficial, with two dimensions, length and
breadth; the cubic or solid, with three dimensions, length, breadth, and
depth. The true characteristic difference between these kinds of place is
drawn from their _formal_ constituents, viz., from their boundaries. The
cubic place is a place terminated by surfaces. The superficial place is a
place terminated by lines. The linear place is a place terminated by two
points.

These supreme species admit of further subdivision, owing to the
different geometrical figures affected by their respective boundaries.
Thus the place of a body may be tetrahedric, hexahedric, spherical, etc.,
and the place of a surface may be triangular, polygonal, circular, etc.

Place is also divided into _absolute_ and _relative_. It is called
absolute when it is considered _secundum se_--that is, as to its entity,
or as consisting of a system of correlation within a definite limit. It
is called relative when it is considered in connection with some other
place or places, as more or less distant from them, or as having with
respect to them this or that position or situation.

The absolute place of a body, whatever our imagination may suggest to the
contrary, is always the same as long as the body remains under the same
dimensions, be it at rest or in movement. In fact, whenever we speak of a
change of place, we mean that the place of a body acquires a new relation
to the place of some other body--that is, we mean the mere change of its
relativity. When the world was believed to be a sphere of continuous
matter with no real space outside of it, the absolute place of a body
could be considered as corresponding to one or another definite portion
of that sphere, and therefore as changeable; but since the reality of
infinite space independent of matter has been established, it is manifest
that absolute place has no relation to the limits of the material world,
but only to the infinity of space, with respect to which bodies cannot
change their place any more than a point can change its ubication. Hence,
when a body moves, its relative place, or, better, the relativity of
its place to the places of other bodies, is changed; but its absolute
place remains the same. Thus the earth, in describing its orbit, takes
different positions round the sun, and, while preserving its absolute
place unchanged, it undergoes a continuous change of its relativity.

Lastly, place is also divided into _intrinsic_ and _extrinsic_. Omitting
the old explanations of this division, we may briefly state that the
intrinsic place is that which is determined by the dimensions and
boundary of the body, and therefore is coextensive with it. The extrinsic
place of a body is a place greater than the body which is placed in it.
Thus Rome is the extrinsic place of the Vatican Palace, and the Vatican
Palace is the extrinsic place of the Pope; because the Vatican Palace is
in Rome, and the Pope in the Vatican Palace.

_Occupation of Place._--We have now to answer a few questions about the
occupation of place. The first is, whether bodies fill the space they
occupy. The second is, whether the same place can be simultaneously
occupied by two bodies. The third is, whether the place limits and
conserves the body it contains. The fourth is, whether the same body can
be miraculously in two places or more at the same time.

That bodies fill place is a very common notion, because people do not
make any marked distinction between filling and occupying. But to fill
and to occupy are not synonymous. To fill a place is to leave no vacuum
within it; and this is evidently impossible without continuous matter.
As we have proved that continuous matter does not exist, we cannot
admit that any part of place, however small, can be _filled_. Place,
however, is _occupied_. In fact, the material elements of which bodies
are ultimately composed, by their presence in space occupy distinct
points in space--that is, take possession of them, maintain themselves
in them, and from them direct their action all around, by which they
manifest to us their existence, ubication, and other properties. This is
the meaning of _occupation_. Hence the formal reason of occupation is
the presence of material elements in space. Therefore, the place of a
body is occupied by the presence in it of discrete material points, none
of which fill space--that is to say, the place is occupied, not filled.
The common expression, “a place filled with matter,” may, however, be
admitted in this sense, that when the place is occupied by a body, it
does not naturally allow the intrusion of another body. This amounts to
saying, not that the place is really filled, but that the resistance
offered by the body to the intrusion of another body prevents its passage
as effectually as if there were left no occupable room. So much for the
first question.

The second question may be answered thus: Since space is not filled by
the occupying bodies, the reason why bodies exclude one another from
their respective places must be traced not to a want of room in them, but
only to their mutual opposite actions. These actions God can neutralize
and overcome by an action of His own; and if this be done, nothing will
remain that can prevent the compenetration of two bodies and of their
respective places. It is therefore possible, at least supernaturally, for
two bodies to occupy the same place. Nevertheless, we must bear in mind
that, as the elements of the one body are not the elements of the other,
so the ubications of the first set of elements are not the ubications of
the second, and consequently the correlations of the first set are not
identically the correlations of the second. Hence, if one body penetrates
into the place of another body, their places will be intertwined, but
distinct from each other.

The third question must be answered in the negative, notwithstanding the
contrary opinion of all the Peripatetics. The place does not limit and
conserve the body by which it is occupied; it is the body itself that
limits and conserves its own place. For what is it that gives to a place
its formal determination, and its specific and numeric distinction from
all other places, but its extreme boundary? Now, this boundary is marked
out by the very elements which constitute the limits of the body. It is,
therefore, the body itself that by its own limits defines the limits of
its own place, and constitutes the place formally such or such. There
is the same connection between a body and its place as between movement
and its duration. There is no movement without time, nor time without
movement; but movement does not result from time, for it is time itself
that results from movement. Hence, the duration of the movement is
limited by the movement itself. In like manner, there is no body without
place, and no place without a body; but the body does not result from the
place, for it is the place itself that results from the presence of the
body in space. Hence, the place of the body is formally determined by
the body itself. Therefore, it is the body that limits and conserves its
place, not the place that limits and conserves the body.

This conclusion is confirmed by the manner in which our knowledge of
place is acquired. Our perception of the place of a body is caused, not
by the place, but by the body, which acts upon our senses from different
points of its surface, and depicts in our organs the figure of its
limits. This figure, therefore, is the figure of the place only inasmuch
as it is the figure of the body; or, in other terms, it is the body
itself that by its limits determines the limits of its place.

From this it follows that, when a body is said to be in a place
_circumscriptively_, we ought to interpret the phrase, not in the sense
that the body is circumscribed by its place, as Aristotle and his
followers believed, but in this sense, that the body circumscribes its
place by its own limits. And for the same reason, those beings which do
not exist _circumscriptively_ in place (and which are said to be in place
only _definitively_, as is the case with created spirits) are substances
which do not circumscribe any place, because they have no material terms
by which to mark dimensions in space.

The fourth and last question is a very difficult one. A great number
of eminent authors maintain with S. Thomas that real bilocation is
intrinsically impossible; others, on the contrary, hold, with Suarez
and Bellarmine, that it is possible. Without pretending to decide the
question, we will simply offer to our reader a few remarks on the
arguments adduced against the possibility of real bilocation.

The strongest of those arguments is, in our opinion, the following. The
real bilocation of a body requires the real bilocation of all its parts,
and therefore is impossible unless each primitive element of the body can
have two distinct, real ubications at the same time the one natural and
the other supernatural. But it is impossible for a simple and primitive
element to have two distinct, real ubications at the same time, for two
distinct, real ubications presuppose two distinct, real terminations of
the virtuality of God’s immensity, and two distinct, real terminations
are intrinsically impossible without two distinct, real terms. It is
therefore evident that one point of matter cannot mark out two points in
space, and that real bilocation is impossible.

To evade this argument, it might be said that it is not evident, after
all, that the same real term cannot correspond to two terminations.
For to duplicate the ubication of an element of matter means to cause
the same element, which is _here_ present to God, to be _there_ also
present to God. Now this requires only the correspondence of the material
point to two distinct virtualities of divine immensity. Is this a
contradiction? The correspondence to one virtuality is certainly not the
negation of the correspondence to another; hence it is not necessary to
concede that there is a contradiction between the two. It may be added
that the supernatural possibility of bilocation seems to be established
by many facts we read in ecclesiastical history and the lives of saints,
as also by the dogma of the Real Presence of Our Lord’s Body in so many
different places in the Sacrament of the Eucharist. Lastly, although real
bilocation is open to many objections on account of its supernatural
character, yet these objections can be sufficiently answered, as may be
seen in Suarez, in part. 3, disp. 48, sec. 4.

These reasons may have a certain degree of probability; nevertheless,
before admitting that a point of matter can mark two points in space
at the same time, it is necessary to ascertain whether a single real
term can terminate two virtualities of God’s immensity. This is a thing
which can scarcely be conceived; for two distinct ubications result from
two distinct terminations; and it is quite evident, as we have already
intimated, that there cannot be two distinct terminations if there be
not two distinct terms. For the virtualities of divine immensity are
not distinct from one another in their entity, but only by extrinsic
denomination, inasmuch as they are distinctly terminated by distinct
extrinsic terms. Therefore, a single extrinsic term cannot correspond to
two distinct virtualities of divine immensity; whence it follows that a
single material point cannot have two distinct ubications.

As to the facts of ecclesiastical history above alluded to, it might be
answered that their nature is not sufficiently known to base an argument
upon them. Did any saints ever _really_ exist in two places? For aught we
know, they may have existed really in one place, and only phenomenically
in another. Angels occupy no place, and have no bodies; and yet they
appeared in place, and showed themselves in bodily forms, which need not
have been more than phenomenal. Disembodied souls have sometimes appeared
with phenomenal bodies. Why should we be bound to admit that when saints
showed themselves in two places, their body was not phenomenal in one and
real only in the other?

The fact of the Real Presence of Christ’s body in the Blessed Sacrament,
though much insisted upon by some authors, seems to have no bearing
on the present question. For, our Lord’s body in the Eucharist has no
immediate connection with place, but is simply denominated by the place
of the sacramental species, as S. Thomas proves; for it is there _ad
modum substantiæ_, as the holy doctor incessantly repeats, and not _ad
modum corporis locati_.[181] Hence, S. Thomas himself, notwithstanding
the real presence of Christ’s body on our altars, denies without fear the
possibility of real bilocation properly so called.

Though not all the arguments brought against real bilocation are equally
conclusive, some of them are very strong, and seem unanswerable. Suarez,
who tried to answer them, did not directly solve them, but only showed
that they would prove too much if they were applied to the mystery of the
Real Presence. The inference is true; but S. Thomas and his followers
would answer that their arguments do not apply to the Eucharistic mystery.

One of those arguments is the following: If a man were simultaneously in
two places, say, in Rome and in London, his quantity would be separated
from itself; for it would be really distant from itself, and relatively
opposed to itself. But this is impossible. For how can there be real
opposition without two real terms?

Some might answer, that a man bilocated is one term _substantially_,
but equivalent to two _locally_, and that it is not his substance nor
his quantity that is distant from itself, but only one of his locations
as compared with the other. But we do not think that this answer is
satisfactory. For, although distance requires only two _local_ terms, we
do not see how there can be _local_ terms without two distinct beings.
One and the same being cannot be actually in two places without having
two contrary modes: and this is impossible; for two contraries cannot
coexist in the same subject, as S. Thomas observes.[182]

Another of those arguments is based on the nature of quantity. One and
the same quantity cannot occupy two distinct places. For quantity is the
formal cause of the occupation of place, and no formal cause can have two
adequate formal effects. Hence, as one body has but one quantity, so it
can occupy but one place.

This argument cannot be evaded by saying that the quantity which is the
formal cause of occupation is not the quantity of the mass, but the
quantity of the volume. In fact, the duplication of the volume would
duplicate the place; but the volume cannot be duplicated unless each
material term at the surface of the body can acquire two ubications.
Now, this is impossible, as a single term cannot correspond to two
extrinsic terminations of divine immensity, as already remarked. Hence,
the quantity of volume cannot be duplicated in distinct places without
duplicating also the mass of the body--that is, there cannot be two
places without two bodies.

A third argument is as follows: If a body were bilocated, it would be
circumscribed and not circumscribed. Circumscribed, as is admitted,
because its dimensions would coextend with its place; not circumscribed,
because it would also exist entirely outside of its place.

This argument, in our opinion, is not valid; because it is not the place
that circumscribes the body, but the body that circumscribes its own
place. Hence, if a body were bilocated, it would circumscribe two places,
and would be within both alike. It will be said that this, too, is
impossible. We incline very strongly to the same opinion, but not on the
strength of the present argument.

A fourth argument is, that if a thing can be bilocated, there is no
reason why it could not be trilocated and multilocated. But, if so, then
one man could be so replicated as to form by himself alone two battalions
fighting together; and consequently such a man might in one battalion be
victorious, and in the other cut to pieces; in one place suffer intense
cold, and in another excessive heat; in one pray, and in another swear.
The absurdity of these conclusions shows the absurdity of the assumption
from which they follow.

This argument is by no means formidable. Bilocation and multilocation
are a duplication and multiplication of the place, not of the substance.
Now, the principle of operation in man is his substance, whilst his place
is only a condition of the existence and of the movements of his body.
Accordingly, those passions of heat and cold, and such like, which depend
on local movement, can be multiplied and varied with the multiplication
of the places, but the actions which proceed from the intrinsic
faculties of man can not be thus varied and multiplied. Hence, from the
multilocation of a man, it would not follow that he, as existing in one
place, could slay himself as existing in another place, nor that he could
pray in one and swear in another. After all, bilocation and multilocation
would, by the hypothesis, be the effect of supernatural intervention,
and, as such, they would be governed by divine wisdom. Hence it is
unreasonable to assume the possibility of such ludicrous contingencies
as are mentioned in the argument; for God does not lend his supernatural
assistance to foster what is incongruous or absurd.

To conclude. It seems to us that those among the preceding arguments
which have a decided weight against the possibility of real bilocation,
are all radically contained in this, that one and the same element of
matter cannot have at the same time two modes of being, of which the
one entails the exclusion of the other. Now, the mode of being by which
an element is constituted in a point, _A_, excludes the mode of being
by which it would be constituted in another point, _B_. For, since the
ubication in _A_ is distant from the ubication in _B_, the two ubications
are not only distinct, but relatively opposed, as S. Thomas has remarked:
_Distinguuntur ad invicem secundum aliquam loci contrarietatem_; and
therefore they cannot belong both together to the same subject. On the
other hand, we have also proved that a single element cannot terminate
two distinct virtualities of God’s immensity, because no distinct
virtualities can be conceived except with reference to distinct extrinsic
terms. Hence, while the element in question has its ubication in _A_, it
is utterly incapable of any other ubication. To admit that one and the
same material point can terminate two virtualities of divine immensity,
seems to us as absurd as to admit that one and the same created being is
the term of two distinct creations. For this reason we think, with S.
Thomas, that bilocation, properly so called, is an impossibility.


AN EPISODE.

The caption “episode” is advisedly adopted, inasmuch as we are going to
transcribe only one short chapter from a large manuscript of several
hundred pages containing “The Life of Sixtus V.”

However, it is to be regretted that such a life is not published. For it
would reveal unto us the _man_, whereas Ranke and Hübner describe only
the _prince_.

Sixtus V. fell into that mistake, which has proved disastrous to many
popes, and has afforded a weapon, however silly and easily broken, yet
a real weapon to the enemies of the Papacy--nepotism. The charge is
exaggerated of course: in fact, what our enemies assert to have been the
universal failing of all the popes, the true historian avers to have been
the mistake of a few, whereas the examples of heroic detachment from
kindred given by the vast majority of the Pontiffs are wonderful. S.
Gregory the Great says, “better there should be a scandal than the truth
were suppressed”; and surely the church needs no better defence than the
truth. For the present purpose, suffice it to quote the Protestant Ranke,
who, after a thorough investigation of the subject, gave it as his honest
opinion that only _three_ or _four_ popes are really liable to the charge
of nepotism. It is pleasant to be able to quote such an opinion of an
eminent non-Catholic writer against scores of wilful men, who sharpen
their weapons and discharge their shafts, not after honest study and
investigation, but merely on the promptings of blind hatred.

Pope Sixtus V. was the second son of Piergentile Peretti of Montalto.

His eldest brother was Prospero, who married Girolama of Tullio Mignucci,
and died A.D. 1560, without issue.

Camilla was his only sister. She was led to the altar by Gianbattista
Mignucci, brother to Girolama. To an exquisite correctness of judgment,
and great generosity of heart, she joined a quick apprehension of the
importance of circumstances by which she might find herself suddenly
encompassed. The _Anonimo_ of the _Capitoline Memoirs_ says that when
Camilla was unexpectedly raised from the obscure life of a _contadino’s_
wife to the rank of a Roman lady, she was not stunned, but felt perfectly
at ease, whilst her society was coveted by the choicest circles of the
nobility. Cardinal d’Ossat, in his _Letters_, informs us that she was
greatly esteemed and dearly beloved by Louise de Lorraine, queen-dowager
of the gifted but perverse Henry III. of France. The works of her
munificence and public charity in her native Grottamare are many, and
enduring to our day.

Father Felix Peretti had already mounted all the rounds but one of
ecclesiastical preferment--the cardinal’s hat was almost within his
reach. He was a bishop, and occupied some of the highest offices in the
_Curia Romana_. He thought the time had come to satisfy a long-felt
desire--the ennoblement of his family. Hence, in 1562, he called his
sister to Rome, having obtained a sovereign’s rescript by which his
brother was allowed to change his name, Mignucci, into that of Peretti.
On the 17th day of May, 1570, Pius V. raised Mgr. Felix Peretti to the
dignity of cardinal. Thenceforward he is more generally known in history
as Cardinal Montalto, from the place of his nativity.

Thus, even previous to his brother-in-law’s elevation, Gianbattista
Mignucci enters Rome transformed into Peretti, to join his wife and their
two children Francis and Mary.

_O fallaces cogitationes nostras!_ The friar hopes his name, made
illustrious by himself, will not become extinct; but he is mistaken;
if recorded on the tablets of time it will not surely be by a worldly
alliance, which is doomed to a dishonored extinction. The church will
inscribe the Peretti name and fame on the adamantine records of her
immortality.

Verily, if we understand aright the professions of recluses, the
Franciscan friar should have done away with his relations for ever; at
least, so far as not to allow himself to be blinded by human affection.
He should have remembered that he was under no obligation to them, that
from his earliest boyhood he had been taken in hand by churchmen, and
that only through scientific and moral resources acquired in a friary
he had received strength to climb up so high in the ecclesiastical
hierarchy. The world is keen in its observations, and Peretti did not
escape its strictures, seldom erring when established on principles and
facts universally admitted, and moreover sanctioned by divine teaching.
And has not _the_ example been set for those who profess the perfection
of evangelical counsels of how they should behave towards their kindred?

Be that as it may, Fra Felice paid dearly for his ambition.

His niece, Donna Maria Peretti, was soon married, and a dowry granted
her from the revenues of her uncle of three thousand crowns a year.
Mary’s children, two boys and two girls, became allied to some of the
most distinguished families of Italy, and the plebeian blood of Peretti
mingled with that of the simon-pure aristocracy. Out of this issue arose
eminent men who did honor to cross and sword. But enough of this branch
of the friar’s adoption.

About the time of Mgr. Felix Peretti’s elevation to the cardinalate, his
nephew Francesco was wedded to Donna Vittoria Accoramboni of Gubbio, in
Umbria, praised by the _Gentiluomo_, Aquitano (vol. ii., b. vi.), as “a
woman of high mind, of great beauty of soul and body.” Her family still
exists in Italy, and a lineal descendant occupies important posts in the
household of Pius IX.. Her suitors had been many and of princely caste;
among the rest Paolo Giordano Orsini, Duke of Bracciano, formerly married
to the sister of the Grand Duke of Tuscany, Francesco Medici. Paolo,
_homo ruptus disruptusque_, stands charged in history with the murder of
this his former wife, the accomplished Isabella, daughter of Cosmo, whom
he strangled on the 16th of July, 1576. But Vittoria’s father cut short
all suits, and gave her in holy wedlock to Francesco Peretti, nephew of
the mysterious cardinal, whose future elevation to the papal throne was
held _in petto_ by every discerning Roman.

However, Vittoria’s mother gave her consent reluctantly; for wearing the
ducal coronet seemed preferable to being the prospective niece of the
sovereign--_uccello in tasca è meglio che due in frasca_[183] the shrewd
Italian lady thought. But whereas Lady Accoramboni forgot that the Orsini
family owed their power to Nicholas III. (A.D. 1277-80), an Orsini by
birth, who, by the lever of nepotism, had raised an already celebrated
family to the highest standing of European nobility, her husband, on the
other hand, said to her: “Can’t you see? Vittoria will be the head of a
new, powerful family!” Still Lady Accoramboni did not see it, and the
loss of the coronet rankled for ever in her breast.

Indeed, in these days when tales of fiction are the almost exclusive
reading of the youth of both sexes, an accomplished writer might
weave out of the following events a story of stirring interest; not
sensational, indeed, but freighted with most salutary lessons.

Vittoria Accoramboni Peretti had three brothers:

Ottavio was, through the recommendation of Cardinal Peretti, nominated by
the Duke of Urbino for, and by Gregory XIII. appointed to, the bishopric
of Fossombrone. He adorned his see with all the virtues becoming a
scholar, a gentleman, a patriot, and a true apostolic prelate.

Giulio became one of the private household of Cardinal Alessandro
Sforza, by whom he was held in great favor, and employed as confidential
secretary.

Marcello was outlawed for his misdeeds, and a price set on his head. But
Cardinal Peretti obtained his pardon; yet leave to return to Rome was not
granted to him.

“A wise woman buildeth her house: but the foolish will pull down with
her hands that also which is built,” saith the Wise Man. The house of
Francesco and Maria Peretti _was_ built, and it was the home of comfort
and honor, enclosing within its walls the choicest gifts of the world;
and of its brightest ornament, the Lady Vittoria Peretti, it might be
said she was the cynosure of Roman society. The evening _conversazioni_
drew the _élite_ of Rome, graced as they were by the presence of the
cardinal, who, with his proverbial regularity, would attend them for a
definite length of time. His wise sayings, dignity of deportment, and
agreeableness of manners, mingled with an independence of character that
made him almost redoubtable at the Roman court, enhanced the charm of
the family circle. Young prelates prized highly the privilege of being
admitted amongst the visitors. The spacious halls of the Villa Negroni
were adorned with paintings and statuary, and the noblest specimens of
the art of painting; the gardens were reckoned the most tasteful of those
of any princely family in Rome. While he was scrupulous in his attention
to consistorial meetings, and the affairs of the _Curia Romana_ over
which he was appointed, Cardinal Peretti never gave his time to what he
would consider frivolous etiquette. His library, his gardens, afforded
him all the relaxation he needed; his life was most exemplary and devout.
Happy, indeed, was the home built by such hands; but a foolish woman
pulled it down!

At the depth of night, not many months after Vittoria had been wedded,
a note is hurriedly carried by a chambermaid to Francesco; it had been
left at the entry by a well-known friend, and the messenger had left
immediately. It was written by Marcello, who at times entered the city
under protection of night, or of some leaders of political factions, with
which the city swarmed--barons and princes who, under the mild government
of Gregory XIII., had everything their own way.

The letter summoned Francesco to repair at once to the Esquiline hill,
there to meet some gentlemen on a business the nature whereof could not
be entrusted to paper, and admitted of no delay. Hurriedly does the
devoted man dress himself, and, his sword under his arm, forces his way
through the servants who beseech him to halt, disentangles himself from
his wife and mother, who, prostrated before him, cling to his knees,
begging of him not to trust himself to the outlawed Marcello. In vain!
Preceded by a servant with torch in hand, no sooner had he reached the
brow of the Quirinal than the contents of three arquebuses were lodged in
his breast; whereupon four men fell upon him, and finished him with their
stilettos. “Thus,” says an old historian, “fell a youth whose only crime
was to be the husband of a most beautiful woman.” Another chronicler
calls Francesco _Cale e di gran correttezza di costumi_.

The commotion in the family when the ensanguined and ghastly corpse was
carried home can easily be imagined. The lamentations of the women and
the uproar of the servants awoke the cardinal, who slept in a distant
apartment--his palace, the Villa Negrone, as mentioned above, and by that
name known to modern tourists, extending from the Esquiline (Santa Maria
Maggiore) to the Piazza de’ Termini. It is said that on hearing the
dreadful news Montalto fell upon his knees, and prayed God to grant rest
to the soul of his nephew, and to himself fortitude, such as became his
character and dignity. His presence not only brought, but forced calm on
the distracted household. On the next day the Holy Father was to hold a
Consistory, and, contrary to the expectation of all, Cardinal Montalto
was at his post, as usual, among the first. His colleagues offer their
condolence, which he accepts with a resignation almost akin to stoicism.
But when he approaches the throne to give his opinion on the matters
debated, and the pope, with moist eyes and greatly moved, expresses a
heartfelt sympathy in the cardinal’s affliction, pledging his word that
the perpetrators shall be visited with summary and condign punishment,
Montalto thanks the Pontiff for his kind sympathy, protests that he has
already forgiven the murderers, and begs that all proceedings may be
stayed, lest the innocent should be punished for the guilty. Having thus
disposed of the matter, he proceeds with his wonted calmness to discuss
that which was before the Consistory.

Referring to this impassiveness of Peretti, the pope remarked, with an
ominous shake of the head, to his nephew, Cardinal San Sisto, “Indeed,
Montalto is a great friar!” And those of Peretti’s own times, and
subsequent historians, seem to have had an insight of his mind and
motives. In the sober language of Ranke, “His character does not appear
to have been so guileless as it is occasionally represented. As early
as 1574 he is described as learned and prudent, but also crafty and
malignant. He was doubtless gifted with remarkable self-control. When his
nephew was assassinated, he was himself the person who requested the
pope to discontinue the investigation. This quality, which was admired by
all, very probably contributed to his election” to the papal throne.

Those among our readers who have resided among Italians, and especially
in Rome, need not be told of the tremendous excitement which seized
the holy city as it awoke on that dreadful morning. Cardinal Peretti
of Montalto became the observed of all observers; nobles and prelates
thronged the avenues to his villa to assure him of their loyalty and
condolence; very few, indeed, as the world goes, honestly and sincerely;
many simply from custom; almost all, however, moved by a motive of
curiosity to see how the “Picenian packhorse” bore the great calamity,
and, above all, what feelings he would betray towards Paolo Giordano
Orsini, to whom the finger of public opinion already pointed as the
murderer of Vittoria’s husband. By some manœuvre of the “gossiping
committee” the day and the hour on which even Giordano would present
himself at the palace became known, and the throng at the drawing-rooms
was exceedingly great. When the murderer stood face to face before his
victim’s best friend and only avenger, not the least twitch in the
cardinal’s nerves, not a falter in the voice, nor the slightest change of
color betrayed the conflict in his soul. He received Orsini’s treacherous
sympathy as he had received the truest expressions of condolence.
Peretti stood there, the prince, not the avenger. Even the accursed
soul of Giordano was lost in wonderment; he became embarrassed and
disconcerted, and he was reported to have exclaimed as he re-entered his
carriage--“Montalto is a great friar; no mistake about it!” (Montalto è
un gran frate; chi ne dubita!)

Vittoria had no children. Hence, after the funeral, the cardinal sent
her home to her mother, bestowing upon her costly gifts, and giving her
the jewels, plate, and precious articles of furniture and apparel, which
had been the bridal presents of husband and friends. _Ora ti credo_,
said Pasquino to Marforio, in allusion to Montalto’s forbearance and
disinterested magnanimity.

The sequel to this tragedy is so thrilling in interest, so characteristic
of the times about which we write, and must have taxed the feelings of
the future pope so much, that a succinct account thereof cannot but prove
interesting to our readers.

Gregory XIII. urged with energy and perseverance the necessary inquests
to ferret out the murderers of Francesco Peretti. But wily old Giordano
Orsini (he was on the other side of fifty) knew how to baffle the
requisitions of justice, by no means a difficult task in those lawless
times. He sent the waiting-maid to Bracciano, to be protected by the
feudal immunities of the Orsini castle. Vittoria and her mother were
sheltered in Rome in the Orsini palace. The feudal power was still
great in those days, and often a franchise was secured to the premises
of Roman nobles by foreign princes, to the infinite annoyance of the
local sovereign, and often clogging the workings of justice. One
Cesare Pallentieri, an outlawed ruffian, was then bribed to write to
the governor of Rome avowing himself the plotter of Peretti’s death
to revenge himself for personal injuries received at that gentleman’s
hands. Nobody believed the story; and the verdict of public opinion was
sanctioned when, in February, 1582, Mancino, the bearer of the fatal
note, declared, under oath and without compulsion, that the whole plot
had been woven by Vittoria’s mother; that the servant-maid had been made
privy to it; and moreover revealed the names of two of the emissaries,
it being well known in whose pay they bore arms, although he stated no
employer’s name.

At this stage of the proceedings Cardinal Montalto, with persevering
endeavors with the pope and the interposition of friends, stayed all
prosecutions, and on December 13, 1583, obtained from the sovereign
pardon for Mancino, who was, however, banished from Rome, and
relegated--_interned_, in modern parlance--to Fermo, his native city,
being forbidden to quit it under penalty of death. But it was too evident
that there was a trifling with justice, and in the uncertainties between
which public opinion seemed to fluctuate, wiser counsels attempted to
vindicate the necessity of a just retribution. Hence, at the instance of
several cardinals and of the Spanish ambassador, Gregory was prevailed
upon to confine Vittoria to the castle Sant’ Angelo, and by a special
decree forbade her marrying Paolo Giordano Orsini, unless by a reserved
dispensation from himself or his successor, under attaintment of felony.
However, after two years of imprisonment she was declared innocent of
any share in or knowledge of the plot, and discharged. This happened on
the very day of Gregory’s death, April 10, 1585. Still Orsini could not
wed her, because of the forbidding clause in the pope’s order. But some
accommodating casuist came to the rescue, and averred that the defunct
pope’s brief was binding no more. Whereupon the duke hastened, by
special couriers on post-horses, to notify the good Bishop of Fossombrone
of his intended alliance with Vittoria, and to solicit his gracious
consent. Mgr. Ottavio refused his assent decidedly, nor would he allow
himself to change his refusal, although Orsini despatched messenger after
messenger, anxious, as he was, to accomplish his purpose ere a new pope
was elected. But the new pope was elected far sooner than the duke or
any one else expected, and in defiance of the express command of the
defunct pontiff, and in shameless disregard of the feelings of the new
sovereign, the very morning on which Cardinal Peretti, Vittoria’s uncle,
was proclaimed, she was wedded to Paolo Orsini, Duke of Bracciano. Rome
was bewildered at the announcement; and although no one could guess what
the consequences of the rash act might be, or how the pope would show his
displeasure, because Fra Felice never made any one the confidant of his
thoughts, yet the general impression was that sooner or later the duke
would be made to pay dearly for his daring and reckless disregard of the
commonest principles of decency.

Rome was on the alert. Duke Orsini is admitted to offer his obeisance
to the Pontiff Sixtus V. amid the solemn assembly of cardinals, foreign
envoys, and Roman princes and senators; the expression of his liege
words, his prostration at the sovereign’s throne, and his courtly homage
meet with the simple response of a look from Sixtus. That look gave
rise to the most clashing interpretations in the observing minds of the
beholders; it was a look of benignity, weighty with authority, crushing
with power, such as to subdue at once the haughty and defiant princely
ruffian. From that moment Paolo Orsini never raised his head; his day was
gone. Within a few days a sovereign decree, worded as only Sixtus V. knew
how to pen them, in terms at which no one would dare to cavil, Orsini was
forbidden to shelter outlaws. The duke solicited an audience; of what
occurred at that meeting no one could ever surmise; but Orsini found no
more charm in what he could heretofore call _his_ Rome. Accordingly,
within two months after the inauguration of Sixtus’ pontificate, he
left the papal city. In sooth, he was an exile, voluntary, as if by
courtesy. Great was the bitterness galling Vittoria’s heart, and she was
pitied by all--the victim of a mother’s rash ambition, she had to flee
that Rome where she could still have reigned the queen of society for
her beauty, her great gifts, and close relationship to the sovereign.
Donna Camilla reigned in her stead. Nor was this all. The handsome,
youthful, accomplished niece of Sixtus was then the slavish, unhappy wife
of a cumbrous quinquagenarian prince, covered with loathsome blotches
from the sole of his feet to the crown of his head, the penalty of his
dissipations; one of his legs so ulcered with cancer that it had swollen
to the size of a man’s waist, and had to be kept bandaged (the chronicler
says), with slices of _some other animal’s meat_, that the acrid humor
would not eat into _his own_ live flesh--a fretful old debauchee,
overbearing, universally loathed for his lecherous habits, hated for his
cruelties, and made intractable by a conscience gnawed by despair.

Poor Vittoria! On their way to Salò, near the lake of Garda in Lombardy,
her husband, consumed by ulcers and tortures of soul, died suddenly
whilst being bled in his arm!

Forlorn Vittoria! the first paroxysm of grief being over, raised a
pistol to her head, but it was happily snatched from her in time by her
brother Giulio, and she was spared a violent, unprepared, and cowardly
death! Thus left alone, unprotected in her beauty and youth, she was at
the mercy of Ludovico Orsini, her husband’s cousin, who despised her
on account of the great disparity of their birth. Her late husband had
indeed bequeathed to her one hundred thousand crowns, besides silver
plate, horses, carriages, and jewelry without stint. All this Ludovico
coveted, and stepped forward under pretence of protecting the rights of
Flaminio Orsini, Giordano’s son by his former wife; but unable to break
the will, he summoned one Liverotto Paolucci of Camerino to come to
Padua--whither Vittoria had repaired immediately, and, aided by such as
he might chose, to murder Vittoria and her brother! The bloody ruffian
answered the summons, and entering the princess’ apartment through a
window, in the depth of the night, his men fell at first upon Giulio,
and into his breast discharged the contents of three muskets. The victim
crawled to his sister’s room and crouched under her bed. There he was
finished with _seventy-three_ thrusts of white arms, encouraged all the
time by Vittoria, anxiously repeating--“Forgive, Giulio; beg God’s mercy,
and willingly accept death for his sake.”

It is recorded in the life of her sainted brother, the Bishop of
Fossombrone, that, upon the death of the duke, he without delay wrote
to his sister, exhorting her to amend her life, and devote herself to
works of atonement and piety; for, said he, “your days will not be many.”
And we have it from authenticated records of those times that she did
truly repent of her worldliness, and, having placed herself under the
protection of the Republic of Venice, retired to Padua, where she lived
in great retirement, dividing her time between practices of devotion in
the church, deeds of charity, and protracted orisons at home. She also
begged of the Pope leave to repair to Rome, the asylum of the wretched,
and spend the remainder of her life in a convent, for which purpose her
generous uncle had signed a remittance of five hundred gold crowns on
the very day he received the sad account of her death. Her brother, the
bishop, had so strong a presentiment, some say a revelation from above,
of the impending catastrophe, that on the 22d of December he ordered
special prayers to be offered by the clergy of his diocese in her behalf.

And she _did_ fall a victim to Ludovico’s dagger on the 22d of that month!

After Giulio had breathed his last, bathed in his own blood, Count
Paganello, one of Liverotto’s band, took hold of the devoted woman by
both arms, and holding her in the kneeling posture in which she had been
found at her prayers, bade one of his bravoes to tear open her dress on
the right side, whereupon she indignantly protested that she should be
allowed to die in her dress, as it became an honest woman and the _wife
of Giordano Orsini_! The brute plunged a stiletto into her bosom, and
kept trepanning towards the left side in search of the heart. She offered
no resistance, but during the horrid butchery of her form she ceased not
repeating, “I pardon you, even as I beg of God to forgive me.… Jesus!…
Jesus!… Mercy and forgiveness!” And with these words of forgiveness dying
on her lips she fell lifeless on the floor.

Thus ended, by a cruel death, yet heroically met, one of the most
remarkable women of her time--a woman renowned for her admirable beauty,
talents, and misguided ambition. Having been the pet of European society,
she died almost an outlaw; the niece of Pope Sixtus V., she died without
a home of her own; a lamentable instance of the ignominious end awaiting
those who have been endowed by a kind Providence with the noblest of
gifts, but have made a wrong use of them.


THE CROSS IN THE DESERT.

Some few years ago a pilgrim sailed across the blue waters of the
Mediterranean, smitten with the love of the cross, and bearing in his
hand “the banner with the strange device.”

It was a lovely summer’s evening. The fierce African sun was sinking to
his rest behind the hill on which the ruins of the old city of Hippo
stand; and as the pilgrim, who had climbed to its summit, stood gazing
around him, the glow of the western sky bathed his dusty garments in a
golden light, touching the ruins with a splendor of its own, and lighting
up the sea, that heaved gently down below, with the brightness of amber
and gold.

This, then, was all that remained of the proud old city whose name
Augustine had made famous to the end of time!

These crumbling walls were once the school where he taught, the halls
where his youthful eloquence fired the hearts of the great scholars of
the day; here were the baths where he lounged in his idle hours with
pleasure-loving companions; here the streets where every day he came
and went from Monica’s quiet home to the busy haunts of learning, of
sophistry, and science; here was the place where she had wept so bitterly
over him, the spot where that salutary fountain of a mother’s tears had
had its source; here he had sinned; hence he had gone forth in search of
truth, and, having found it, hither he had come back, transformed into
a confessor and a doctor of the church; here, finally, he died, full of
years, leaving behind him a name great amongst the greatest saints whom
the church has raised to her altars.

And what now remained to Africa of this light which had shed such glory
on her church? Where did his memory live? And the faith that he had
practised--whither had it fled?

The pilgrim sat down upon a stone, and, after indulging in reflections
such as these for some time, he rose and descended slowly towards the
plain.

Was it a fancy born of recent musings, or did he hear a voice issuing
from the massive fragment of a wall which still supported a majestic
dome, once probably the thermæ of the luxurious and wealthy citizens of
Hippo? Did he really see a light burning, or was it an hallucination
born of the mystic hour and the suggestive surroundings? He drew closer,
looked in, and beheld two white-bearded Arabs placing each a light on the
highest point of the wall. Was it some idolatrous rite, a spell, or an
incantation they were performing?

“What are you doing?” inquired the pilgrim.

“We are burning lights to the great Christian,” was the reply.

“Who is that? What is his name?”

“We do not know it; but we honor him because our fathers taught us to do
so.”

So, then, the memory of Augustine survived in the land, though his name
had perished!

The pilgrim murmured a prayer to the great Christian, as the Arabs
called him, and turned away, carrying in his heart a hope that he had
not known an hour ago--a hope that Augustine was still watching for the
resurrection of the cross in the land of his birth, and hastening its
advent by his intercession at the throne of Him whom he described as
“patient because he is eternal.”

It is a fact, as striking as it is consoling, that within the last few
years the faith has been making rapid conquests amidst the barbarous
nations, where in the days of S. Augustine, and long after, it flourished
so magnificently. Perhaps it is more surprising that this result should
not have been universal after nearly half a century of the rule of a
Catholic power; but the mistaken policy of the French government, and,
alas! we must add, the evil example of the French themselves, instead
of breaking down existing barriers, have raised new and insurmountable
ones against the spread of Christianity amongst the conquered tribes.
France proclaimed her intention of not alone tolerating, but protecting,
Islamism throughout her African dominion. She carried this policy so
far for many years that it was made punishable by French law to convert
a Mussulman to the Catholic faith, whilst, on the other hand, it was
perfectly lawful for any number of Catholics to turn Mussulmans. The
priests who went out as missionaries were thwarted at every step by the
French authorities. “Our adversaries, the men who worry us and stand
in the way of our making converts, are not the Arabs or even their
marabouts,” said one of these devoted men to us only a few days ago;
“it is our own countrymen, Frenchmen calling themselves Catholics, _whom
we have chiefly_ to contend against.” And he went on to describe how,
during the famine of 1867, when the Arabs were dying like flies all
over the country, the French authorities were constantly on the alert
to prevent the missionaries baptizing them, even _in extremis_. They
actually sent detachments of spahees to the various places where the poor
famine-stricken creatures congregated in greater numbers to die; and when
the priest was seen approaching them, as they lay gasping in their agony,
the soldiers rushed forward to stop him from administering the sacrament
of regeneration. One little missionary father contrived to outwit the
authorities, however, and, in spite of the lynx-eyes that were fixed on
him, he managed to baptize numbers from a little bottle of water hid
under his burnose.

No wonder the Arabs make small account of men who set such pitiful store
by their religion. They, call the French “sons of Satan,” and the French
priests and good Christians among the seculars will tell you themselves
that the name is well deserved; that the employees of the government,
military and civil, make the most deplorable impression on the natives,
and by their lives present a practical example of all the vices which it
is the boast of civilization to destroy. They are so untruthful that the
French missionaries declare they surpass even the Arabs in lies. The Arab
is abstemious by nature, and the law of the Koran compels him to the most
rigid sobriety; the Christians give him an example of excesses in eating
and drinking which excite his disgust and contempt.

There is a legend current amongst the Arabs in the French dominions that
on a certain day Mahomet will arise and precipitate the sons of Satan
into the sea. When a Frenchman, in answer to this prophecy, points to
the strength of his government, its enormous resources, the power of
steam, and the monuments he has built in Algeria, the Mussulman with grim
contempt replies in his grave, sullen way: “Look at the ruins of the old
Roman monuments! They were mightier than any you have raised; and yet,
behold, they lie in ruins throughout the land, because Allah so willed.
It is written: Allah will cast you into the sea as he did the Romans.”

All those who can speak from experience agree that there are no people
so difficult to evangelize as the Mussulmans; the pure idolater is
comparatively an easy conquest to the missionary, but it requires almost
the miraculous intervention of divine grace to make the light of the
Gospel penetrate the stolid fatalism of the Mahometan.

One of the greatest obstacles to the reception of truth in the Arab is
the intuitive pride of race which arms him against the idea of receiving
religious instruction from a race of men whom he despises with a scorn
which is actually a part of his religion, and who in their turn look down
on the children of the desert, and treat their manners and customs with
contempt. In order to overcome this first obstacle towards the success
of their ministry, the missionaries conceived the idea of identifying
themselves, as far as possible, with the natives, adopting their dress,
their manner of eating and sleeping, and in every way assimilating
outwardly their daily lives to theirs.

They tried it, and the system has already worked wonders. How, indeed,
could it be otherwise? If faith can move mountains, cannot love melt
them? Love, the irresistible, the conqueror who subdues all hard things
in this hard world--why should it fail with these men, who have human
souls like our own, fashioned after the likeness of our common God? Just
five years ago a handful of priests, Frenchmen, gone mad with the sweet
folly of the cross, heard of how these Arabs could not be persuaded to
receive the message of Christ crucified, but repulsed every effort to
reach them. They were seized with a sudden desire to go and try if they
could not succeed where others had failed; so they offered themselves to
the Archbishop of Algiers as missionaries in his diocese. The offer was
gladly accepted; but when the first presented himself to obtain faculties
for saying Mass in the villages outside Algiers and in the desert, the
archbishop signed the permission with the words _visum pro martyrio_,
and, handing it to the young apostle, said: “Do you accept on these
conditions?”

“Monseigneur, it is for that I have come,” was the joyous reply. And
truly, amongst all the perilous missions which every day lure brave souls
to court the palm of martyrdom, there is not one where the chances are
more in favor of gaining it than in this mission of Sahara, where the
burning sun of Africa, added to material privations that are absolutely
incredible, makes the life of the most fortunate missionary a slow
and daily martyrdom. His first task, in preparation for becoming a
missionary, is to master the language and to acquire some knowledge of
the healing art, of herbs and medicine; then he dons the dress of the
Arabs, which, conforming in all things to their customs, he does not
quit even at night, but sleeps in it on the ground; he builds himself
a tent like theirs, and, in order to disarm suspicion, lives for some
time in their midst without making the least attempt at converting them;
he does not even court their acquaintance, but waits patiently for an
opportunity to draw them towards him; this generally comes in the form of
a sick person whom the stranger offers to help and very frequently cures,
or at least alleviates, cleanliness and the action of pure water often
proving the only remedy required. The patient, in his gratitude, offers
some present, either in money, stuffs, or eatables, which the stranger
with gentle indignation refuses. Then follows some such dialogue as this:
“What! you refuse my thank-offering? Who, then, pays you?”

“God, the true God of the Christians. I have left country and family and
home, and all my heart loves best, for his sake and for his service; do
you think you or any man living can pay me for this?”

“What are you, then?” demands the astonished Arab.

“I am a marabout of Jesus Christ.” And the Mussulman retires in great
wonder as to what sort of a religion it can be whose marabouts take
neither money nor goods for their services. He tells the story to the
neighbors, and by degrees all the sick and maimed of the district come
trooping to the missionary’s door. He tends them with untiring charity.
Nothing disgusts him; the more loathsome the ulcers, the more wretched
the sufferer, the more tenderness he lavishes on them.

Soon his hut is the rendezvous of all those who have ailments or wounds
for miles round; and though they entreat him, sometimes on their knees,
to accept some token of thanks for his services, he remains inexorable,
returning always the same answer: “I serve the God of heaven and earth;
the kings of this world are too poor to pay me.”

He leads this life for fifteen months before taking his vows as a
missionary. When he has bound himself to the heroic apostleship, he is in
due time ordained, if not already a priest, and goes forth, in company
with two other priests, to establish a mission in some given spot of
Sahara or Soodan, these desolated regions being the appointed field of
their labors. The little community follows exactly the same line of
conduct in the beginning of its installation as above described; they
keep strictly aloof until, by dint of disinterestedness and of devotion
and skilful care of the sick, they have disarmed the fierce mistrust
of the “true believers,” and convinced them that they are not civil
functionaries or in any way connected with the government. The Arab’s
horror of everybody and of everything emanating from French headquarters
partakes of the intense character of his fanaticism in religious matters.
By degrees the natives become passionately attached to the foreign
marabouts, who have now to put limits to the gratitude which would invest
them with semi-divine attributes. The great aim of the missionaries is
of course to get possession of the children, so as to form a generation
of future missionaries. Nothing short of this will plant the cross in
Africa, and, while securing the spiritual regeneration of the country,
restore to that luxuriant soil its ancient fertility. Once reconciled
to civilization by Christianity, those two millions of natives, who are
now in a state of chronic suppressed rebellion against their conquerors,
would be disarmed and their energies turned to the cultivation of the
land and the development of its rich resources by means of agricultural
implements and science which the French could impart to them. Nor is it
well to treat with utter contempt the notion of a successful rebellion
in Algeria. At the present moment such an event would be probably
impossible; but there is no reason why it should be so in years hence.
The Arabs are as yet not well provided with arms and ammunition; but they
are making yearly large purchases in this line at Morocco and Tunis,
and the study of European military science is steadily progressing.
The deep-seated hatred of the Mussulmans for the yoke of the stranger
is moreover as intense as in the first days of their bondage; and if
even to-morrow, unprepared as they are materially, the “holy war” were
proclaimed, it would rouse the population to a man. The marabouts would
get upon the minarets, and send forth the call to every son of Mahomet to
arise and fight against the sons of the devil, proclaiming the talismanic
promise of the Koran: “Every true believer who falls in the holy war is
admitted at once into the paradise of Mahomet.” The number who would call
on the prophet to fulfil the promise would no doubt be enormous, and the
French would in all human probability remain masters of the desert; but
a kingdom held on such tenure as this state of feeling involves is at
best but a sorry conquest. If the Gospel had been, we do not even say
enforced, but simply encouraged and zealously taught, by the conquerors,
their position would be a very different one in Algeria now. After all,
there is no diplomatist like holy church. “Our little systems have their
day” and fall to pieces one after another, perishing with the ambitions
and feuds and enthusiasms that gave them birth, and leave the world
pretty much as they found it; but the power of the Gospel grows and
endures and fructifies wherever its divine policy penetrates. No human
legislation, be it ever so wise, can cope with this divine legislator;
none other can take the sting out of defeat, can make the conquerors
loved by the conquered, and turn the chains of captivity from iron to
silk. Even on the lowest ground, in mere self-interest, governments
would do well to constitute themselves the standard-bearers of the
King who rules by love, and subdues the stubborn pride of men by first
winning their hearts. The supremacy of this power of love is nowhere more
strikingly exemplified than amidst these barbarous Arab tribes.

The story of every little dark-eyed waif sheltered at the Orphanage of
S. Charles, lately established outside Algiers, would furnish a volume
in itself; but an incident connected with the admission of one of them,
and related to us a few days ago by a missionary just returned, is so
characteristic that we are tempted to relate it. The archbishop was
making a visitation in the poor villages sixty miles beyond Algiers; the
priest presented to him a miserable-looking little object whose parents
still lived in a neighboring desert tribe, but who had cast off the child
because of its sickliness and their poverty. Could his lordship possibly
get him taken in as an orphan? The thing was not easy; for every spot
was full, and the fact of the parents being still alive militated against
the claim of the little, forlorn creature. But the archbishop’s heart
was touched. He said he would arrange it somehow; let the boy be sent
on to Ben-Aknoun at once. This, however, was easier said than done; who
would take charge of him on such a long journey? His grace’s carriage
(a private conveyance dignified by that name) was at the door. “Put
him in; I will take him,” he said, looking kindly at the small face
with the great dark eyes that were staring wistfully up at him. But the
priest and every one present exclaimed at the idea of this. The Arabs
are proverbial for the amount of _light infantry_ which they carry about
with them in their hair and their rags; and the fact of their presence in
myriads on the person of this little believer was evident to the naked
eye. The archbishop, however, nothing daunted, ordered him to be placed
in the carriage; then, finding no one would obey him, he caught up the
little fellow in his arms, embraced him tenderly amidst the horrified
protestations of the priest and others, carried him to the carriage,
seated him comfortably, and then got in himself and away they drove. A
large crowd had assembled to see the great marabout depart, and stood
looking on the extraordinary scene in amazement. A few days later several
of them came to see the priest, and ask to be instructed in the religion
which works such miracles in the hearts of men, and to offer their
children to be brought up Christians.

This Orphanage of S. Charles is the most precious institution which
Catholic zeal has so far established in Algiers. It comprises a school
for boys, and one for girls conducted by nuns. The description of the
life there sounds like some beautiful old Bible legend. It is a life of
constant privation, toil, and suffering, both for the fathers and for
the sisters; but the results as regards the children are so abundant and
consoling that the missionaries are sometimes moved to exclaim, “Verily,
we have had our reward!”

The full-grown Arab is perhaps as wretched a specimen of unregenerate
human nature as the world can furnish. Every vice seems natural to him,
except gluttony, which he only acquires with the spurious civilization
imported by his conquerors. He is relentless and vindictive; false,
avaricious, cruel, and utterly devoid of any idea of morality; yet the
children of these men and women are like virgin soil on which no evil
seed has ever fallen. Their docility is marvellous, their capacity for
gratitude indescribably touching, and their religious sense deep, lively,
and affective. They accept the teaching of the missionaries and the nuns
as if piety were an inherited instinct in them; and the truths of our
holy faith act upon their minds with the power of seen realities.

One of the fathers told us, as an instance of this, that the children
were allowed to play in the fruit garden once when the trees were in
full bearing; and not a single fig, orange, or any other fruit being
touched, some visitor asked the children in surprise if they never pulled
any when their superiors were not looking; but they answered in evident
astonishment: “Oh! no; God would see us, and he would be angry!” We
quite agreed with the narrator that such a general example of obedience
and self-denial from such a principle might be vainly sought for in
our most carefully-taught schools in Europe and--would it be a calumny
to add?--America. The children also show a spirit of sacrifice that is
very striking, the girls especially. If they are ill and some nauseous
medicine is presented to them, the little things seize the cup with
avidity, and with a word, such as “For thee, dear Jesus!” drain it off at
once. They realize so clearly that every correction imposed on them is
for their good that it is nothing rare to see them go to the presiding
father or sister and ask to be punished when they have committed some
little misdemeanor unobserved. One little mite of six felt very sulky
towards a companion, and, after a short and vain struggle to overcome
herself, she went to the nun and begged to be whipped, “because she
could not make the devil go away.” Their vivid Oriental imaginations
paint all the terrible and beautiful truths of the faith in colors
that have the living glow of visible pictures. They have the tenderest
devotion to our Lord in the Blessed Sacrament, and nothing pleases them
more than to be allowed to spend their hour of recreation in prayer
before the tabernacle. Their sense of gratitude for the blessing of the
faith makes them long with an indescribable yearning to share it with
their people. All their prayers and little sacrifices are offered up
with this intention. Those among them who were old enough to remember
the wretchedness they were rescued from, speak of it continually with
the most touching gratitude to God and their instructors. One of
their greatest pleasures is to count over the good things they have
received from God. A sister overheard two of them one day summing
them up as follows: “He gives us bread and the sunshine and a house;
he has preserved us from dying in the night-time; he prevents the sea
overflowing and drowning us; he has given us monseigneur and our mammas
[the nuns]; he came on earth to teach us to be obedient; he brought us
the Gospel; he has given us the Blessed Virgin to be our mamma, and then
our angels, and then the Holy Father; he forgives us our sins; he has
given us sacraments for our soul and body; he stays always with us in the
chapel; he is keeping our place in heaven; he looks at us when we are
naughty, and that makes us sorry, and then he forgives us.” And so they
go on composing canticles out of their innocent hearts that must make
sweet music in His ears who so loved the little ones.

The deaths of some of these little barbarians are as lovely as any we
read of in the lives of the saints. One of them, who was baptized by
the name of Amelia, has left a memory that will long be cherished in
Ben-Aknoun. She was dying of a lingering, terrible disease; but her
sufferings never once provoked a murmur. She was as gay as a little bird
and as gentle as a lamb; her only longing was to see God. “And what will
you do besides in heaven?” asked one of her companions. “I will walk
about with the angels,” she replied, “and be on the watch to meet our
mammas when they come to the beautiful gates.” In her sleep she used to
pray still; many a time the nuns found her muttering her rosary with
clasped hands while sleeping the sound sleep of a tired child. She fought
against death as long as she could, insisting on getting up and going
to the chapel, where sometimes she would lie exhausted with pain and
weakness on the step of the altar, breathing her prayers softly until
she dropped asleep. Her only fear was lest she should not make her First
Communion before she died; but her extreme youth (she was not quite eight
years old) was compensated for by her ardent piety. They gave her our
Blessed Lord after giving her Extreme Unction. The expression of her
face was seraphic in its joy and peace. All her little companions were
kneeling round her bed, their eyes fixed in admiration on the beaming
countenance of the dying child. One of them, called Anna, who was her
chosen friend, an orphan from a remote desert tribe like herself, drew
near to say good-by. The two children clasped each other in silence; but
when they parted, the tears were streaming down Amelia’s cheeks. “Why did
you make her cry, my child?” whispered the nun to Anna reproachfully. “I
did not do it on purpose,” was the reply. “I only said, ‘O Amelia! you
are too happy; why can’t you take me with you?’ and then we both cried.”
The happy little sufferer lingered on in great pain for another day and
night, constantly kissing her crucifix, thanking those around her for
their kindness and patience.

Towards the evening of the second day the pains grew rapidly worse, and
she entreated to be carried to the chapel, that she might look once more
upon the tabernacle. The nun took her in her arms, and laid her on the
step of the altar, when her sufferings instantly ceased, and she sank
into a sleep which they thought was the last one. She was carried back
and laid on her bed, but soon opened her eyes with a look of ecstatic
joy, and cried out, gazing upwards, “See! how beautifully it shines. And
the music--do you hear? Oh! it is the _Gloria in Excelsis_.” No one heard
anything; only _her_ ears were opened to the heavenly harmonies that were
sounding through the half-open doors of Paradise. She continued listening
with the same rapt expression of delight, and then, clasping her little
hands together, she cried, “Alleluia! alleluia!” and fell back and spoke
no more. She had passed the golden portals; the glories of heaven were
visible to her now.

What wonder if the apostolic souls who reap such harvests as these
count their labors light, and rejoice in the midst of their poverty and
self-imposed martyrdom!

But there are homelier and less pathetic joys in the Orphanage every now
and then than these blessed deaths. When the boys and girls have learnt
all they need learn, and have come to the age when they must leave the
fathers and the nuns, they are perfectly free to return to their native
tribes; and it is a convincing argument in favor of the strength of their
newly-acquired principles and affections that they almost invariably
refuse to do so. The proportion of those who go back to the old life is
one in every hundred. The next thing to be considered is what to do with
those who refuse to go back. The plan of marrying the orphans amongst
each other suggested itself as the most practical method of securing
lasting results from their Christian education. The chief difficulty in
the execution of this plan was the reluctance of the Arab girls to marry
men of their own race; they had learned the privileges which women owe to
Christianity, and they had no mind to forego their dignity and equality,
and sink back into the degraded position of an Arab’s wife. “We will
not marry to be beaten,” they argued. “Find us Frenchmen, and we will
marry them and be good wives.” No doubt they would, but the Frenchmen
unfortunately could not be induced to take this view of the case; and
it required all the influence of their superiors to make the girls
understand that Christianity, in raising woman from the condition of a
slave to that of man’s equal, compels him to respect and cherish her.

The way in which the courtship and marriage proceed between the sons and
daughters of the great marabout (as the archbishop is called) is curious
in its picturesque simplicity.

A band of fifteen couples were lately married from the Orphanage of
Ben-Aknoun. The fathers informed the archbishop they had fifteen
excellent boys who were about to leave, and whom they wished to find
wives for and settle in the nearest Christian village. The archbishop
asked the superior of the girls’ school if she could supply fifteen
maidens who would go and share the humble homes of their brother orphans.

The superior replied that she had precisely the number required--girls
who must leave the shelter of the convent in a few months, and whom she
was most anxious to see provided for. The grapes were ripe, and the
vintage, which was close at hand, would furnish an opportunity for a
meeting between the parties. So one morning, in the cool, sweet dawn,
they set out to the vineyard, the maidens conducted by a sister, the
youths by one of the priests; the latter took one side and culled the
grapes, while at the other side the maidens gathered up the branches
and bound them into bundles. As they went they sang hymns and canticles
to lighten their labor; and when the day’s task was done, they left the
vineyard in two distinct bands, as they had come, and returned to their
separate convents.

“Well,” said Mgr. de la Vigerie to the presiding father next day, “have
the young men chosen each his maiden, and is the choice approved?”

“Alas! monseigneur, they did not even look at each other,” replied the
disconsolate matchmaker. “They never raised their eyes from their work.
Sister C---- and I watched them like lynxes.”

“You have brought up the children too well, my good father,” cried the
archbishop in despair. “What is to be done with them now?”

“Have a little patience, my lord, and it will come in good time,” replied
the father encouragingly.

Next day the two bands of maidens and youths sallied forth again to the
vineyard, and so every day for a week.

Then the father came in triumph to the archbishop to announce the
successful issue of the scheme. One by one the youths had plucked up
courage and peeped through the tendrils of the vine, and, thanks to some
magnetic sympathy, two dark eyes had been simultaneously raised to meet
theirs, and they smiled at each other. A little further on the green
leaves were fluttered by a whisper asking the fair one’s name; she told
it, and another whisper told her his. So the flower blossomed in the
thirty young hearts, and the priest and the sister who watched the gentle
growth looked on delighted.

But what wily diplomatists they are, these holy missionaries! How they
know the human heart, and how cunningly they can play upon it! Not a
word did they say; but, feigning complete blindness to the pretty little
comedy, marshalled the laborers home as if nothing had occurred to change
the still current of their young lives. A month went by, and then, when
the time came for the youths to leave the Orphanage, the father inquired,
with seeming innocence, if they thought of marriage by and by.

The question was evaded at first shyly; then by degrees the confession
came out--they had each determined to marry one of the maidens of the
vineyard. The father threw up his hands in amazement, shook his head, and
expressed grave doubts as to the possibility of their obtaining such a
prize. These maidens were pearls worthy to be set in fine gold; they had
been reared like delicate plants in the shadow of the sanctuary; their
hearts were pure as lilies, guileless as the flowers of the field; they
were strong in faith and adorned with all the virtues. Were poor Arab
youths worthy of such wives? But, brave with the boldness of true love,
the suitors answered in one voice: “We will be worthy; we will work for
them and serve them faithfully; we will love them and be fathers and
mothers to them! Give us the maidens of the vineyard!”

The missionary heaved a sigh, looked mightily perplexed, but promised to
speak to the archbishop and see what could be done. After several solemn
interviews, in which the young men were severely catechised and warned,
and made to pledge themselves to strive with all their might to make the
maidens happy, to treat them reverently, and serve them humbly, the
archbishop undertook to intercede for them. The fair ones, being of the
race of Eve, were a trifle coy at first; but soon the truth was elicited,
and each confessed that, since she needs must marry some one, Ben-Aïssa,
or Hassan, or Scheriff, would be less distasteful than another. So the
great affair was settled, and soon came the day of the weddings. The
archbishop himself was to perform the ceremony.

The fathers and sisters were afoot before sunrise, you may be sure; for
what an event was this! Fifteen Christian marriages celebrated between
the children of this fallen race of idolaters! And now see! the two
processions are approaching the church, the bridegrooms draped in the
native white burnose, with the scarlet turban on their heads; the brides
clad in spotless white, a soft white veil crowned with white flowers
covering them from head to foot. Slowly, with the simple majesty inherent
in their race, they advance to the altar and kneel side by side before
the archbishop, who stands awaiting them, robed in his gala vestments.
He looks down upon the thirty young souls whom his love has brought here
to the foot of the altar--the altar of the true God; thirty souls whom
he has had the unspeakable joy and happiness of rescuing from misery in
this life and--may he not hope?--in the next. He must speak a few words
to them. He tries; but the father’s heart is too full. The tears start to
his eyes and course down those careworn cheeks; he goes from one to the
other, and silently presses his hands on the head of each. The marriage
rite begins; the blessing of the God of Abraham is called down upon this
new seed that has sprung up in the parched land of the patriarch, once
so fertile in saints; the music plays, and songs of rejoicing resound
on every side as the fifteen brides issue from the church with their
bridegrooms.

And now do you care to follow them to their new homes, and to see where
their after-life is cast? The earthly providence which has so tenderly
fostered them thus far follows them still into the wide world where they
have embarked.

The archbishop’s plan from the start was to found Christian villages
in the desert, and to people them with these new Christians educated
by the missionaries. The cost of founding a village, including the
purchase of the land, the building of twenty-five huts, furnishing the
inhabitants with European implements of labor, building a little church
and a house for the fathers and one for the sisters, an enclosure for the
cattle, a well to supply that first element of life and comfort--pure
water in abundance--amounts to forty thousand francs (or say eight
thousand dollars), and this only with the utmost economy. The Society
for the Propagation of the Faith--that glorious institution, to which
Christendom owes a debt that can only be paid in heaven--comes nobly to
the assistance of Mgr. de la Vigerie. He supplies the rest himself out of
the resources of his apostolic heart, so inexhaustible in its ingenious
devices of charity; he prays and begs, and sends his missionaries all
over the world begging.

One of them has lately come over to Paris on that most heroic of
Christian enterprises--a begging tour--and has brought with him a little
black boy from Timbuctoo, who had been bought and sold seven times before
falling into the hands of these new masters for the sum of three hundred
francs. He is not yet ten years old--a mild-faced little fellow, who,
when you ask him in French if he likes the father, answers by a grin too
significant to need further comment, as he turns his ebony face up to
Père B---- and wriggles a little closer to him. Père B---- told us the
child belonged to a man-eating tribe, and turned up the corner of his lip
to show some particular formation of the teeth peculiar to that amiable
race of _gourmands_. He says that the same charming docility which marks
the young Arabs is observable in most of the savage tribes; they are far
more susceptive and easily moulded and impressed than the children of the
civilized races.

The capture and purchase of these unhappy little slaves all along
the coast and in the northern parts of Africa is part of the mission
which brings the fathers the greatest consolation. It is of course
attended with immense risk, sometimes danger even to life; but the human
merchandise which they thus obtain “is worth it all and ten times more,”
the Père B---- declared emphatically, as he dilated on the fervor of
these poor children’s faith and the intensity of their gratitude. The
great and constant want for the carrying on of the mission is--need we
mention it in this XIXth century, when we can scarcely save our own
souls, much less our neighbors’, without it?--money. People say money is
the root of all evil; but really, when one sees what precious immortal
goods it can buy, one is tempted to declare it the root of all good. The
archbishop has recently sent one of his missionaries, the Père C----, to
beg in America, and we are heartily glad to hear it. A French priest,
speaking about begging for good works the other day, said to the writer:
“I wish I could go to America and make the round of the States with my
hat in my hand. They are a delightful people to beg of. Somehow they are
so sympathetic to the Catholic principle embodied in begging for our Lord
that they take all the sting out of it for one; but, oh! what a bitter
cud it is to chew in Europe.” We hope the good father’s experience did
not represent the general one on the latter point, but is well founded
as to the generous spontaneity of our American fellow-Catholics towards
those who have “held out the hat” to them in the name of our blessed
Lord. Sweet bond of charity! how it welds the nations together, casting
its silver nets and drawing all hearts into its meshes! It matters not
whether the fisher come from a near country united to us by ties of blood
or clanship, or from some distant clime where the very face of man is
scarce that of a brother whom we recognize; he comes in the name of our
common Lord, and asks us to help in the saving of souls that cost as
dear to ransom as ours. He may labor sometimes all the night, and take
nothing; but the dawn comes, when he meets Jesus in the persons of those
generous souls who love him and have his interests at heart, and are
always ready to befriend him; and then the net is cast into deep waters,
and the draught is plentiful. Can we fancy a sweeter reward to stimulate
our zeal in helping the divine Mendicant who holds out his hand to us
for an alms than the scene which at this moment many multitudes of these
faithful souls may contemplate in imagination as they have helped to
create it.

A gathering of small, low houses--huts, if you like--set in smiling
patches of garden round a central building whose spire, pointing like
a silent finger to the skies, tells us at once its character and
destination. The time is towards sundown; the bell breaks the stillness
of the desert air, and with its silvery tongue calls the villagers to
prayer. The entire population, old and young, leave their work and
rise obedient to the summons; the children quit their play and troop
on together, while the elders follow with grave steps. The priest is
kneeling before the altar, where the lamp of the sanctuary, like a throb
of the Sacred Heart within the tabernacle, sheds its solemn radiance
in the twilight. The father begins the evening prayer; pardon is asked
for the sins and forgettings of the day, thanks are offered up for its
helps and mercies, blessings are invoked on the family assembled, then
on the benefactors far away. One who assisted at this idyl in the desert
declares that when he heard the officiating priest call down the blessing
of the Most High on “all those dear benefactors whom we do not know,
but who have been kind and charitable to us”; and when the voices of
the Arabs answered in unison, repeating the prayer, he felt his heart
bursting with joy at the thought that he was included amongst those on
whom this blessing was nightly invoked.

The Litany of Our Lady is then sung, and the assistants quietly disperse
and go home. The cattle are lowing in the park. The stars, one by one,
are coming out in the lovely sapphire sky. Angels are flying to many of
the white huts with gifts and messages. Some are speeding afar, eastward
and westward, bearing graces just granted in answer to those grateful
prayers; for who can tell the power of gratitude with God, or his loving
inability to resist its wishes--he who was so lavish in his thanks for
the smallest act of kindness, nay, of courtesy, when he lived amongst us,
and who declared that even a cup of cold water should not go without its
reward?


ORIGIN AND PROGRESS OF THE MISSION OF KENTUCKY.

FROM THE FRENCH.[184]

The Diocese of Bardstown, Kentucky, is a part of that vast extent of
country known in our ancient geographies by the name of Louisiana. It
is situated in the centre of the United States of North America, and is
bounded on the north by the Ohio, on the west by the Mississippi, on the
south by the State of Tennessee, and on the east by Virginia.

When, in 1792, it was admitted into the Union as a State, its population
was about seventy thousand; but it has since then increased tenfold.

About twenty poor Catholic families from Maryland, descendants of the
English colonists, came here to reside in 1785, as then good land could
be procured here almost for nothing.[185]

Their number rapidly increased, and in the year 1788 Father Wheelan, an
Irish Franciscan, was sent to them. As they were then at war with the
natives, and as this was continued until 1795, this missionary, two of
his successors, and the colonists were compelled to cross the hostile
country to arrive at the mission, even on reaching which their lives
were sometimes exposed to imminent dangers. Besides being at a distance
from a priest, they had also to struggle against poverty, heresy, and
vulgar prejudices with regard to the pretended idolatry of Catholics,
etc. Finally, Father Wheelan, at the expiration of two years and a half,
abandoned a post so difficult to hold, without even the satisfaction of
seeing a single chapel built. It was then impossible to find another
missionary to succeed him, and the faithful “were afflicted because they
had no shepherd” (Zach. x. 2). Finally, Holy Orders were conferred in
1793 for the first time in this part of the world, where the Catholics
had but so recently suffered under the penal laws of England. The
illustrious Bishop Carroll, first bishop of Baltimore, there ordained a
priest, M. Badin, from Orleans, whom he then sent to Kentucky. Besides
the difficulties which his predecessor met, the inexperience of the
young ecclesiastic, his slight knowledge of the English language and of
the habits of the country, made his task still more difficult. One can
easily conceive how painful must have been the situation of a novice thus
isolated and deprived of guidance in a ministry the weight of which would
have been burdensome for the angels even, say the holy fathers of the
church.

It is true he started from Baltimore with another French priest who
was invested with the power of vicar-general. But this priest was soon
discouraged by the wandering habits of the people and their style of
life. Four months had scarcely elapsed when he returned to New Orleans.
M. Badin was thus in sole charge of the mission during several years,
which mission, since the conclusion of peace with the savage tribes,
continually increased by the influx of the Catholics who came here in
large numbers from Maryland and other localities.

In addition to the fatigue of travelling, to controversy with
Protestants, to his pastoral solicitude, and to the frequent scruples
of conscience natural to one in a situation so critical, he had to
exert himself still more to form new parishes, prepare ecclesiastical
establishments at suitable distances, and finally to erect churches
or chapels in the different places where the Catholic population
established itself. Nevertheless, by the divine mercy he obtained from
time to time profitable advice through the letters which the charity
of the neighboring priest, who, though at a distance of seventy miles,
found means to write him. M. Rivet, formerly professor of rhetoric in
the College of Limoges, in the year 1795 came to reside as _curé_ and
vicar-general at Post Vincennes, on the Wabash, in Indiana.

But the respective needs of the two missions never permitted them to
cross the desert in order to visit one another or to offer mutual
encouragement and consolation in the Lord. Oh! how much anguish, how many
prayers and tears, arise from such isolation! And did not our divine
Saviour send his disciples in couples to preach the Gospel?--_misit illos
binos_ (S. Luc. x.)

Finally, two priests from the Diocese of Blois--MM. Fournier and
Salmon--came successively, in the years 1797 and 1799, to the rescue of
the pastor and his flock.

Divine Providence rendered useful to Kentucky and to several other
portions of the Diocese of Baltimore the talents and virtues of a great
number of ecclesiastics whom the French Revolution threw on the shores of
America. In the same year, 1799, there arrived a fourth missionary--M.
Thayer, the Presbyterian minister of Boston, who was converted through
the miracles of blessed Labre. At first he ridiculed this humble servant
of God and the miracles which were attributed to him, but afterwards he
investigated them with all the prejudices of a sectarian. He brought
to bear upon them his severest criticism, and finished by becoming a
Catholic at Rome, a priest at Paris, and a missionary in his own country,
where he had formerly propagated error. He found himself forced to write
several English works of controversy, which are lucid and deservedly
appreciated. His conversion, his writings, and his sermons excited either
the interest or the curiosity of all classes of society, and he hoped to
serve the cause of religion in multiplying himself, if one may speak
thus. He travelled over the United States, Canada, and a great part of
Europe, and died, beloved and revered, at Limerick, in Ireland.

The missionaries of Kentucky are obliged to ride on horseback nearly
every day of the year, and to brave often alone the solitude of the
forests, the darkness of night, and the inclemency of the seasons, to
minister to the sick and to visit their congregations on the appointed
days.[186]

Without this exactitude it would be difficult to assemble the families
scattered so far apart. M. Salmon was without doubt an excellent
ecclesiastic, though but a poor horseman. His zeal induced him, on the
9th of November, 1799, to visit a distant parish where he was instructing
a Protestant who has since then embraced the faith.

Being already feeble and just convalescing from a severe illness, a
fall from his horse carried him to the grave in less than thirty-six
hours. The accident happened towards noon at a little distance from a
residence. A servant who found him half-dead in the woods went to solicit
aid, which was denied him by an impious and cruel farmer, simply because
the unfortunate man was a priest. It was only towards night that a good
Catholic of the neighborhood--Mr. Gwynn--was informed of the fact. It
must nevertheless be admitted that this farmer’s revolting conduct is
in nowise American, and can but be attributed to his individual hate
for the true religion. Perhaps, also, he was ignorant of the extremity
to which M. Salmon was reduced. This fatal event, the departure of M.
Thayer for Ireland, and the equally sudden death of M. Fournier in
February, 1803, left M. Badin for about seventeen months in sole charge
of the mission, then consisting of about a thousand families scattered
over a space of from seven to eight hundred square miles. The death
of M. Rivet, which took place in February, 1803, deprived him of the
comforting letters of this friend, who expired almost in the arms of
the governor of the province, whose esteem and affection he enjoyed. At
this unfortunate period the nearest priest was a M. Olivier from Nantes,
an elderly gentleman, who resided at a distance of one hundred and
thirty miles in an Illinois village called Prairie du Rocher. Moreover,
he ministered to Kaskaskia, where the Jesuits had formerly instituted
a novitiate; Cahokia, St. Louis, capital of Missouri, St. Genevieve,
etc., on the banks of the Mississippi. M. Richard, a zealous and pious
Sulpitian, resided at the same distance at Detroit, on Lake St. Clair, in
Michigan.[187]

Finally, there were then but three priests in an extent of country larger
than would be France and Spain if united, and which country constitutes
to-day but one diocese, called Bardstown, formed in 1808 by the reigning
Pope, as will be seen in the sequel.

It is true that the most distant parishes can be visited but seldom, and
it is especially in these instances that the zeal of faith and the fervor
of piety are most evident.

One finds a great many persons who undertake fatiguing trips in order to
fulfil their Christian duties. They are seen at times to spend the night
in church, in order to make sure of having access to the sacred tribunal,
where the missionaries are to be found from early dawn.

They are obliged to say, and sometimes even to chant, Mass at noon, and
occasionally several hours afterwards, in order that all those who are
prepared for the tribunal of Penance may also receive Holy Communion.
Neither the fast, nor the late hour, nor the fatigues of the morning
exempt them from instructing the people; otherwise it would never be
done, as the faithful are assembled but once a day. A sermon, or at least
an impromptu exhortation, on controversy, morals, or the discipline of
the church, is always in order. After divine service there are the dead
to be buried, the children to be baptized, marriages to be performed,
etc., and then the departure for another station, which being reached
the next day, the same services are to be repeated. Often it so happens
that there is not one day of rest during the entire week, especially when
several sick persons who live far apart are to be visited.

While the confessor is occupied with his priestly functions the
catechists instruct the children and the <DW64>s, sing canticles, and
recite the rosary, etc. To in a manner fill the vacancy caused by their
absence, the priests recommended public prayer in families, catechism,
and nightly examination of conscience; Mass prayers, devotions of S.
Bridget, the litanies, spiritual reading on Sundays and feast-days. Pious
persons add to this the rosary, and their devotion to the Blessed Virgin
causes them every day to recite some special prayer in her honor.

The fear of God, respect for the priesthood, or filial piety often causes
good Christians to bend the knee before their fathers and mothers, their
sponsors, and their priests, to ask their blessing after prayer, in the
streets of the city or on the highways. English books on controversy are
being rapidly multiplied, and the majority of the country-people know
how to read them, and there are some persons in every congregation who
really study them in order to render themselves capable of sustaining a
discussion with Protestants.

By this means, as also by their piety and honesty, they assist from
time to time in gaining conversions to the faith. The number of these
good works greatly increased when Providence sent to us, in 1804, a new
missionary, M. Nérinckx, a Flemish priest, who pursued his apostolic
labors unceasingly. He instituted three monasteries, which were of great
benefit in educating poor girls, either Catholics or non-Catholics. These
religious women, who are called Friends of Mary at the Foot of the Cross,
remind us of the days of the primitive church. Their manner of life is
exceedingly laborious; they observe perpetual silence, and are almost
enveloped in their veil.[188]

A short time after M. Nérinckx arrived at the mission he was followed
there by a colony of Trappists, and by two pious and learned English
priests of the Order of S. Dominic. The one, Father Wilson, afterwards
became provincial; and Rev. Father Tuite is at present master of novices.
The Trappists organized a school for gratuitous education, but failed
to find among the poor Catholics of the neighborhood sufficient means
to maintain this charitable institution. Father Urbain Guillet, their
superior, had conceived the idea of rendering himself useful to the
savages by educating their children for them, hoping in this way to
facilitate their conversion.

In pursuance of this idea he formed a new establishment near Cahokia.
These good religious greatly edified the country by their austerity,
their silence, and their good works; but as missions were not the objects
of their order, they returned to France at the Restoration. We must now
speak of the natives, and by so doing gratify the very natural curiosity
of our readers. The majority of the savages believe in the existence,
in the spirituality, and in the unity of God, whom they style the Great
Spirit, the Master of Life, or Kissernanetou. They even appear to believe
somewhat in his providence; they offer him prayers, and sometimes even
sacrifices according to their fashion. Here is an example, which is
authentic, as it was told the author of this work by Gen. Todd, one of
the leading men of Kentucky. A native, annoyed by the extreme drought,
offered his pipe, or wampum, his most valuable article, to the Great
Spirit; then, seated pensively on the banks of a river, he supplicated
him thus: “Kissernanetou! thou knowest how highly the Indian prizes his
wampum; well, then, give us rain, and I will give thee my wampum.” And
as the Indian said this, he threw his pipe in the river, fully persuaded
that the Great Spirit would hear his prayer. They also believe in a
future state, as with their dead they bury their guns or cross-bows to
enable them to hunt in the next world; also their pipe and tobacco, meat,
etc. Those who were instructed by the Jesuits, although deprived of
missionaries for about fifty years, still retain some idea of the true
religion, as will be seen from letters of M. Olivier, from which letters
we will give a few examples; the first, being dated the 16th of May,
1806, is addressed to Father Urbain Guillet; the second, dated the 6th of
August, 1806; and the third, the 15th of March, 1807, were written to M.
Badin:

1. “Among the savage tribes who from the time of the Jesuits (whom they
called Black Gowns) had embraced Christianity and had erected churches in
which the greatest regularity existed, to-day, notwithstanding I am their
pastor, I do nothing but baptize their children, although among those of
Post Vincennes there are some who come to confession; which leads me to
think that you might procure some of their children.

2. “Since the banishment of the Jesuit fathers religion has decreased
by degrees, until now there remain but a few traces which would remind
one of extinct piety. I am not forgetting the desire expressed by Father
Guillet, superior of the Trappists--namely, to have in his community some
of the children of these savages. The chief of the nation, who is at
Kaskaskia, promised to ask his brethren to send some here.

3. “The chief of those at Kaskaskia, in selling his lands to the
government of the United States, required that it should build him a
church; and there is a provision of 300 piastres and 100 piastres to be
paid yearly to the missionary priest for seven years. Can these missions
be revived? The mercy of God is great, etc.…”

Yes, the mercy of God is great, and it may be hoped that Mgr. Dubourg and
his missionaries, who for some years have been living in the vicinity of
the Missouri and the Mississippi, will have all desired success, which
they must undoubtedly obtain if they succeed, as did the Jesuits, in
procuring the assistance of the French government.

The religious of S. Dominic succeeded tolerably well in their
establishments in Kentucky and Ohio.

Father Edward Fenwick, born in Maryland, had become a member of this
order, and professor at the College of Bornheim, in Flanders, where he
had been educated. Upon his return to his native country he spent his
inheritance in founding the Convent of S. Rose and a school which is
situated in Washington County. Two zealous missionaries, Father Fenwick
and his nephew, Father Young, were the first to devote themselves, two
years ago, to preach the faith in the State of Ohio, north of Kentucky,
and three churches have already been built there.[189]

The congregations in the interior are composed of Germans, Irish, and
Americans; but on the lakes that separate the United States from Canada
they are formed of French colonies. In the State and on the right bank of
the Ohio is situated Gallipolis, principal seat of the county of Gallia,
where in 1791 some French colonists tried to establish themselves; but
they were victims of a miserable speculation, and the majority of them
left the country.

MM. Barrières and Badin baptized in this place about forty children in
the year 1793, and then went to Kentucky. The entire village revived at
the sight of these two priests, their fellow-countrymen, at the singing
of the sacred canticles, and the celebration of the Holy Mysteries.
In this part of America entire liberty of conscience and religion are
enjoyed. One does not fear being molested if Christian burial be refused
to those who have lived a scandalous life. On the contrary, it is
expected that such will be the case, as it is the rule of the church;
hence the increased dread of dying without the Last Sacraments. Marriages
according to the Catholic rite are legal, and divorce and polygamy are
unknown among Catholics.

We march in procession around our cemeteries; we erect crosses on them;
we preach in the hotels and other public places, and even in Protestant
churches, for want of chapels, and all the sects come in crowds. During
the Mass they behave in a respectful and attentive manner--some of them
even bring us their children to baptize, and entrust the education of
their daughters to our religious--and sometimes we are greatly astonished
to see non-Catholics undertake to defend our belief. We also meet with
great respect in social life; for the Americans are very fond of the
French, whose politeness and gayety they try to emulate.

They remember with pleasure and gratitude the services they received from
the Martyr-King. Finally, the government of Kentucky has incorporated
or commemorated French names in its institutions; hence we have Bourbon
County, of which Paris is the principal town. We also find a Versailles,
a Louisville, etc. In this last place we built, with the aid of the
Protestants, the beautiful church of S. Louis, King of France.

Having the greatest esteem for learned men, they received the French
priests with generous hospitality, and our bishops are revered by
all sects. M. Carroll, formerly professor of theology among the
Jesuits, bishop and finally archbishop of Baltimore, was one of the
most distinguished men in America, and he was universally beloved and
respected. He was consecrated in England the 15th of August, 1790.
Two years afterwards he convoked a synod in Baltimore, where he was
successful in assembling twenty-five priests. His modesty and his piety
were as much admired as his learning. Finally, by his urbanity and his
inexhaustible charity, he won all hearts, even those of the Protestant
clergy.

His edifying death, mild and patient in the greatest sufferings, took
place the 3d of December, 1815--the day on which the church celebrates
the Feast of S. Francis Xavier, the glory of the Jesuits.

His death caused universal grief in a country where his memory has never
ceased to be venerated. It is incredible how he could have been equal to
all the tasks he had to accomplish, besides all the mental labor that
fell to his share. He afterwards obtained from the Holy See a coadjutor,
M. Neale, like himself an American and an ex-Jesuit. His Diocese embraced
all the United States; and he was, moreover, administrator of the diocese
of New Orleans. Our Holy Father, the Pope, has since then been entreated
to create four new bishoprics--namely, Philadelphia, New York, Boston and
Bardstown.[190]

M. Flaget, a Sulpitian, arrived in America with MM. David and Badin
in the year 1792, and was appointed to this last-named bishopric. His
humility was alarmed. He thought he neither possessed the talent nor the
other qualifications necessary to fill so high a position; and for two
years he persisted in his refusal, but he was finally obliged to submit
to the express mandate of the Pope, and undertook the task, for which he
was evidently destined by divine Providence. He is doubtless the poorest
prelate of the Christian world, but he is none the less zealous and
disinterested.

“Blessed is the rich man that is found without blemish; and that hath not
gone after gold, nor put his trust in money, nor in treasures. Who is he,
and we will praise him? for he hath done wonderful things in his life”
(Ecclesiasticus xxxi. 8, 9).[191]

In a limited number of years he founded so many institutions, undertook
so many voyages, underwent so much fatigue, both of mind and body, and
succeeded so well in all his projects for extending the kingdom of Jesus
Christ, that we must attribute his success and the diffusion of religion
to the special blessing of God which accompanied him unceasingly. M.
David, superior of the seminary, consecrated bishop-coadjutor the 15th
of August, 1819, co-operated with him in his good works: in the founding
of the seminary, which has already produced eight or ten priests; in the
founding of several convents for the Sisters of S. Vincent de Paul; in
the building of the cathedral of Bardstown, etc.[192]

It is in this little village, situated in the centre of the country, that
the episcopal seat has been fixed. The smallest seed becomes a large
tree, said our Saviour in the Gospel. This diocese embraces six large
States--Tennessee, Kentucky, Ohio, Michigan, Indiana, and Illinois.[193]

In all this country, where the population, the sciences and the arts,
agriculture and commerce, have in the last twenty years progressed
wonderfully, fifty years ago could be seen dense forests and limitless
prairies, inhabited only by wild beasts or scattered Indian tribes. But
there are to-day in this diocese twenty-five priests, seven convents, two
seminaries or colleges, thirty-five churches or chapels,[194] and about
forty thousand Catholics out of a population of two million inhabitants
of all denominations.

In all these States priests and churches are found except in Tennessee,
which, owing to its great distance and other drawbacks, has been visited
but four times by the oldest missionary in Kentucky. He gathered
together a little flock at Knoxville, the capital. With regard to this
place may these words of the prophet be fulfilled: “I will whistle for
them and gather them together; I have redeemed them; and I will multiply
them as they were multiplied before. And I will sow them among peoples,
and from afar they shall remember me.” The bishop has been trying to
establish a free school for the poor Catholics who have not made their
First Communion. Half of their time is employed in cultivating the ground
to defray their expenses, and the other half is devoted to reading,
writing, and instructions in Christian doctrine. With fifty such schools
we could renovate the entire diocese, and gather into the fold a great
many souls which otherwise would be deprived of the means of salvation.
Thus it is evident that what has been done is nothing in comparison
with what remains to be done. Our institutions, besides the incidental
and the daily expenses of the sanctuary, the voyage, etc., cost more
than 300,000 francs; and the bishop, who receives but 600 francs of
ecclesiastical revenue, owes more than 25,000 for his cathedral, which is
not yet finished, much less decorated. Unforeseen events precluded the
possibility of the subscribers making their payments; and if to-day they
were forced to do so according to the rigor of the law, it would be of
material injury to religion, and would produce the most baneful effect
on the minds and the hearts of both Catholics and Protestants, who are
also subscribers. The church in Kentucky owns some land, to be sure; but
to clear this land, and then to cultivate it, laborers are lacking, and
consequently this uncultivated property produces no revenue. The majority
of the students, both at the seminary and the monastery, pay no board.
The missionaries receive no assistance from the state; they are entirely
dependent on their parishioners, who often do not even defray their
travelling expenses, and perquisites are unheard of.

The spirit of religion obliges us to make a great many sacrifices and to
endure innumerable privations to avoid being considered avaricious, and
frequently it is necessary to make presents. Sometimes they ask us for
prayer-books or books of controversy, sometimes for catechisms, rosaries,
etc., etc. Moreover, when the necessary expenses for the support of two
or three hundred persons[195] are calculated and contrasted with our
limited resources, that they suffice seems incredible; and the mystery
thereof can only be solved by referring it to that infinite Providence
which feeds the birds of the air and gives to the lilies of the valley a
glory more dazzling than that of Solomon.

This paternal Providence, after having accomplished such wonders, will
not abandon us in our present distress. After making use of his ministers
as means of operation, he will also inspire religious souls with the
desire to co-operate in these good works, and crown his gifts in crowning
the merits of their charity.

The writer of this notice was a witness to the greater number of events
he relates--“Quod vidimus et audivimus, hoc annuntiamus vobis” (1 Joan.
i.) After working twenty-five years in this mission, he returned to
France to take a little rest and to solicit aid from his countrymen,
according to the instructions of his bishop. Although weakened by a
serious illness which he had undergone the preceding fall, and which
nearly exhausted his means, he proposed, together with M. Chabrat, a
missionary from the same country, to recross the ocean and undertake
a journey of nearly four hundred miles to reach Kentucky, where his
services are still required.

If some ecclesiastics felt themselves called to accompany him to America,
they will doubtless be persuaded from the perusal of this truthful
narrative that they will also have to travel the way of the cross,
which we know to be the way to heaven. It will also be expedient that
they procure all the books according to the ritual of Rome; theological
and Biblical works in French, English, and Latin; chalices, ciboriums,
crucifixes, vestments and church ornaments, altar pictures--in fact,
everything relating to divine service. Surely they will be assisted
through the piety of their friends and acquaintances. How many persons in
France possess ecclesiastical or theological works which are not printed
in America, as also sacred ornaments which are of no use to them; whereas
these articles could be employed in so useful and so holy a manner in
these new missions, which are in need of everything and possess nothing!
We hope through the charity of pious and wealthy souls that they will
generously offer to the service of God this small portion of the gifts
they have received from him in abundance. Faith teaches us that he will
not allow himself to be outdone in generosity, and what they sacrifice to
his glory will be returned a hundred-fold. As for us, our gratitude will
cause us to recommend our benefactors to the prayers of the missionaries,
of the religious orders, and of the laity who are thus benefited; and
we promise to celebrate a solemn Mass of thanksgiving, to which we will
invite all good Christians, to whom we will suggest a general Communion
to be offered to God for the same intention.

                                                         S. T. BADIN,
                                                   _American Missionary_.

PARIS, February 7, 1821, Seminary of S. Nicholas, Rue S. Victor.


_Extract of a letter from Bishop Flaget to Father Badin._

                                          ST. ETIENNE, February 19, 1820.

BELOVED COLABORER: Probably this letter, written from a place with which
you are familiar, and to which you are doubtless attached, will be handed
you by Father Chabrat. I earnestly desired to be in Kentucky at the time
of your departure; that which I have often said to you I repeat to-day--I
have always felt strongly inclined to love you; let us love one another
as brothers.

I will give you none of the diocesan details; Father Chabrat knows them
as well as I do, and he will be greatly pleased to answer your numerous
questions. The departure of this young man, that of Father Nérinckx,
and yours cause a great void in my diocese, and leave a burden which
would certainly overpower me if God, who has sustained me so far, did
not continue to shower his favors upon me. I still feel all the vigor of
youth to buckle on my armor. I am to take charge of Father Nérinckx’s
_religieuses_, who to-day form quite a little congregation. My coadjutor
will give his attention to the senior seminary and to the college, which
I am to open to-morrow.

MM. Dérigaud and Coomes direct the junior seminary and the parish of St.
Thomas, and their success astonishes every one. M. Abell is causing the
“Barrens” to prosper. Thus, my dear friend, will the diocese be managed
during your absence, while you, I hope, will make collections for our
poor parishes, which are in great want. I am going to re-employ your
brother, who is as pious and studious as ever, at the senior seminary
in Bardstown. I earnestly desire to see him a priest, and I am sure
that he is sufficiently informed either to direct the children in the
boys’ school or to take charge of Father Nérinckx’ _religieuses_. Bishop
Dubourg is endeavoring to have a bishop assigned to New Orleans, another
to Detroit, and a third to Cincinnati. If he succeeds, I will have less
extent of country to traverse, and as many opportunities as I now have of
making priests.

Thus the prospects of my diocese are daily becoming more promising.
Hasten to return; for God has not bestowed upon you so perfect a
knowledge of the language and habits of this country to no purpose.

Accept, I beg of you, sentiments of the most sincere friendship.

                                    BENOÎT-JOSEPH, _Bishop of Bardstown_.


BLESSED NICHOLAS VON DER FLÜE.

Of the many beautiful views from the Rigi, none seemed so determined to
imprint itself on our memories during our stay at Kaltbad as that looking
up the Valley of Sarnen. At whatever hour we wandered to the Känzli,
early or late, in bright weather or in dull, it was all the same. Somehow
the sun was always lighting up the valley; either resting placidly on
its velvety pastures, shining broadly over its small lake, and making
it glitter like a brilliant dewdrop amidst the encircling verdure, or,
at the very least, darting shy gleams across its waters from behind the
clouds which lowered on all else around. The lake of Zug was much nearer
to us, lying right beneath one angle of the Rigi; but it had not the
like powers of fascination. Moreover, we noticed that exactly in the
same degree that Sarnen attracted the sun Zug seemed to repel it. At all
events, the lasting remembrance of Zug is dark, bleak, and unfriendly;
that of Sarnen, on the contrary, peaceful and sunny. It seemed, too, as
though it were tenderly watched over by all its neighbors. Mt. Pilatus
guards the entrance to it from Lucerne, hills enclose the valley on three
sides, while above and beyond, as seen from Kaltbad, rise those giants of
the Oberland which give such sublimity to these scenes, and enhance their
beauty by the constant variety of their aspect.

Undoubtedly the associations connected with Sarnen had something to do
with our love for it. In the village of Sachslen, on the borders of its
lake, Blessed Nicholas von der Flüe was born and lived, and there his
remains are now preserved.

And here, behind this promontory of the Bürgenstock, just opposite
the Känzli, lies Stanz, the capital of Nidwalden--as this division of
Unterwalden is now called--whither Blessed Nicholas hurried, and, by his
influence with the Assembly, succeeded in saving his country from civil
war.

A visit to Sachslen held a special place in the programme sketched out
for us by Herr H----. There were some days, too, still to spare before
the feast at Einsiedeln on the 14th; so we determined to lose no further
time in making our pilgrimage to “Bruder Klaus,” as my Weggis guide and
all the people hereabouts affectionately call him.

It was easy to trace the route when standing at the Känzli, and to
perceive that, by crossing over to Buochs, we might drive thence to
Sachslen. Dismissing, therefore, all fears of the railway descent from
our minds, we started by the eleven o’clock train from Kaltbad, which it
cost us many a pang to leave, with its dear little church, its lovely
views, and its bright, invigorating air. Crossing then in the steamer
from Vitznau to Buochs, we speedily engaged carriages to take us to
Sachslen, and to bring us back from thence on the following day.

Our road led through Stanz, the home of Arnold von Winkelried, where we
lingered long, although determined not to visit the Rathhaus until our
return from the sanctuary of its hero. But we had two statues of Arnold
to admire--one, in fact, a handsome white marble group commemorating his
noble feat at Sempach, and erected by national subscription--to catch
a view of Winkelried’s house in a distant meadow; to see in the church
statues of “Bruder Klaus” and Konrad Scheuber--who also led a solitary
life of holiness in the Engelberg valley close by, and whose highest
honor it was to call himself the “Daughter’s Son” of the great hermit--to
read the tablet in the mortuary chapel in memory of the four hundred
and fourteen priests, women, and children who had fallen victims to
the French soldiery in 1798; and to hear tales of the desolation their
unbridled vengeance caused all this country. Pretty Stanz! now looking
so happy, smiling, and prosperous that it is difficult to realize it
ever could have been laid in ashes some seventy years ago. No district
in Switzerland is more fruitful at present; cultivated like a garden,
dotted over with fine timber, and making a beautiful picture backed by
the Engelberg line of mountains stretching away behind.

An avenue of stately walnut-trees leads to the little port of Stanzstadt,
and on the way we passed the chapel of Winkelried, where an annual fête
is held, and close to which the bodies of eighteen women were found,
after the fight in 1798, lying beside those of their fathers, husbands,
and brothers--so completely had it then become a war _à outrance_, in
defence of hearths and homes.

From Stanzstadt the road turned abruptly westward, at first along
the edge of the small lake of Alpnach, the ruins of Rossberg Castle
perceptible on the opposite shore--the first Austrian stronghold taken by
the Rütli confederates on the memorable New Year’s morning of 1308.

Thence the hills grew lower and the landscape more pastoral than
Alpine, until we reached Sarnen, above which formerly rose the castle
of Landenberg, the famous imperial vogt who put out the eyes of old
Anderbalben, of the Melchthal, in punishment for his son’s misdemeanors
when the latter evaded his pursuit. This barbarous act was the immediate
cause of the Rütli uprising; but, like all the others, the castle was
taken by surprise, and Landenberg’s life was spared. The terrace where it
stood is still called the Landenberg, and there the cantonal assembly has
annually met since 1646. Of this spot it is that Wordsworth speaks in his
desultory stanzas:

                            “Ne’er shall ye disgrace
    Your noble birthright, ye that occupy
    Your council-seats beneath the open sky
    On Sarnen’s mount; there judge of fit and right,
    In simple democratic majesty;
    Soft breezes fanning your rough brows, the might
    And purity of nature spread before your sight.”

The panorama thence is said to be magnificent, and it was easy to
conceive it all-inspiring to a patriotic orator; but the evening had
closed in before we crossed the Sarnen bridge, and it was hopeless to
attempt the ascent thither.

Whilst Mrs. C---- was inquiring about rooms we hastened to a church near
where a bell had been tolling as we entered the town. “Only a chapel,”
answered an old woman; “for the Blessed Sacrament is not kept there.” But
the “chapel” contained the cheering sight of troops of children saying
their night prayers aloud, headed by some of their elders. The inn is a
modest, clean establishment, but in any case it would have been dear to
us, all the rooms being full of pictures of “Bruder Klaus” and of every
incident in his life. Herr H---- had said that “no house in Obwalden
is without his picture,” and this quick fulfilment of our expectations
enchanted us. Instantly we stormed the _Kellnerinns_ with questions; but,
alas! they were Bernese maidens, and, whether from prejudice or stolid
ignorance, they only gave us the old stereotyped answer that “they were
‘Reformed,’ from the other side of the Bruning pass, and knew nothing,
nor ever inquired about such matters.”

Accustomed as we had been of late to the large tourist hotels, everything
seemed preternaturally quiet, when suddenly, late that evening, a deep
voice sounded in the distance, advancing steadily onwards. We had
scarcely time to reflect on this singular intrusion on the peaceful
village when it became evident that it was that mediæval institution,
“the watchman going his rounds,” which none of us ever before had an
opportunity of becoming acquainted with; and as he came along the streets
he distinctly sang:

    “The clock has struck ten;
    Put out fire and light,
    Pray God and his Mother
    To save and protect us!”

And constantly during the night the same appealing voice returned, merely
changing the hour as time ran on.

Next morning the sun again befriended us, and Mass was “at the convent
hard by,” said our hostess--“the convent of Benedictines, who teach all
our girls.” And she said truly; for not only did we find their chapel
crowded by the villagers, men, women, and children, while the nuns’
choir was hidden behind the altar, but High Mass was being sung at that
early hour of half-past seven, with exposition of the Blessed Sacrament,
ending by Benediction. Mr. C---- and George visited the Rathhaus and
its portraits; but we were in feverish haste to get on to Sachslen,
“two miles off,” said a peasant woman we accosted on the road, and who
also said she was on her way thither to pray at the shrine of “Bruder
Klaus.” Immediately after breakfast, therefore, taking leave of our
comely hostess and of this capital of Obwalden, still so primitively
good, although in the close vicinity of the “great world,” and feeling
an increased aversion to the Bernese maidens, whose spirit is unmoved by
things supernatural, we drove along the flat borders of the Sarnen lake,
caught sight of the Rigi and its Känzli, and in less than half an hour
found ourselves at Sachslen.

This village is very small, but at once tells its own tale; for the
church stands, according to the fashion of “holy places,” in a large
open space surrounded by good-sized houses, that serve as inns and
resting-places for the crowds of pilgrims who flock here at stated
periods. Now all was quiet and the church nearly empty; the Masses
of the day--unfortunately for us--were long since over. After paying
our visit to the Blessed Sacrament we wandered through the edifice,
admiring its size and beauty, but unable to discover any sign of the
shrine whose fame had brought us hither. At length George succeeded
in finding the sacristan, a wrinkled, toothless octogenarian, who, as
far as looks went, seemed quite ancient enough to have been himself a
contemporary of “Bruder Klaus.” His German, too, was so intensely local,
and consequently, to us, obscure, that we had the utmost difficulty
in understanding him. But he pointed to the altar in the centre with
an inscription in golden letters on its black marble frontal. And
certainly it was worth looking at; for a more remarkable specimen of
phonetic spelling is seldom to be found, exactly following the local
dialect, even in its total disregard of grammar. On the other hand, this
earnest simplicity in such strange contrast to the refined material that
perpetuates it is deeply touching and in perfect keeping with everything
connected with Blessed Nicholas and this pious people. It ran thus:

    “Allhier Buwet die gebein des Seeligen
    Bruder Claus von Flüe--dahero gesetzt da
    Man die Kirche gebüwet anno 1679.”[196]

As soon as the aged sacristan felt satisfied that we had read the lines,
without another word he drew back the picture over the altar as he
might a curtain, and disclosed “Bruder Klaus” himself confronting us!
Never shall I forget the thrilling sensation of beholding the hermit’s
skeleton in kneeling posture right above the tabernacle and facing the
congregation, clothed in his coarse habit, his hands clasped in prayer,
the cavity of his eyes filled by two large emeralds, his nose by one
enormous long, yellow topaz, while in the centre of the ribs, near
his heart, hung a large jewelled cross, and round his neck a number
of military orders. It was startling! We had expected from the word
“gesetzt” to find him reposing in a shrine, and should have preferred, it
must be confessed, to have seen more refinement and delicacy shown in
the use of those precious stones as ornamentation. But were they not the
precious stones of simple, firm faith and true love of God? This peasant
population never had any pretension to “high art or learning.” Blessed
Nicholas himself had naught but the refinement of that exalted piety
which in itself transcends even the highest flights of human culture, and
is, after all, the “one thing needful.” With such thoughts to guide us
we could only admire and respect the desire, albeit crudely expressed,
to show reverence to one whose own simple nature despised those “earthly
treasures.” His countrymen, however, had that deep “art and learning”
which taught them to appreciate Blessed Nicholas’ devotion to the
Blessed Sacrament; for they could think of no resting-place more dear
to him than that close to the dwelling of his Lord. Tender piety, too,
prompted the offerings; but no votive tablets recorded their stories,
as in the little church at Kaltbad, and we longed in vain to know their
histories. The orders alone, we discovered, had been won in different
countries by his descendants, and have been offered up by them, as well
as various swords and trophies by other Unterwaldeners, in thanksgiving
for the prayers and protection of the saintly hermit. A striking example
of the enduring value of a noble, self-denying, God-fearing character
it is thus to see the aid of this simple peasant still sought and the
influence of his memory so powerful on the minds and better natures even
of this material age. It was impossible not to pray that he may now more
than ever watch over his beloved fellow-countrymen, and obtain for them
that steadfastness in their faith and principles which they so sorely
need during the terrible struggle they are now passing through. There is
little else belonging to Blessed Nicholas to be seen--for was he not a
hermit, and the poorest of saints?--but in a case near the wall the old
clerk displayed his rosary and another habit, which we liked to fancy
might have been made from the piece of stuff presented to him by the town
of Freyburg after his successful intervention at the diet of Stanz.

Our thoughts now turned to his hermitage at Ranft, but only to meet with
severe disappointment. It was too far for “ladies to walk,” said every
one, and no horses could be had without previous orders, of which no one
had once thought. Had we only slept here, instead of stopping at Sarnen,
all would have been easy, and we should, moreover, have been able to have
heard Mass at the shrine. The “Engel” of Sachslen was larger than, though
scarcely so inviting as, the “Golden Eagle” of Sarnen, yet he would at
least have watched over our spiritual interests; and “when one undertakes
a pilgrimage,” exclaimed George, “ladies should despise comforts.”

“It was Herr H----’s plan,” retorted Caroline, determined that we should
not be blamed, “and _we_ should not be ungrateful; for remember that he
had also to think of us Protestants! All we can now do is to warn other
pilgrims, and advise them to come on here straight.”

It was provoking beyond measure to be thus deprived by mismanagement of
this point in our visit. But Mr. C---- and George were determined not
to give it up; they would go on foot, and report all to us, if only
we would wait patiently for a few hours. Where was the use of further
grumbling? Like good children, we cried out, “What can’t be cured must be
endured,” and, summoning all the piety we could command to our aid, we
offered up the disappointment in the spirit of true pilgrims in honor of
“Bruder Klaus,” and bade our friends “God speed” and depart.

Anna and the two young ladies, soon discovering pretty points of
view, settled themselves to sketch, while Mrs. C---- and I took a
ramble through the village. Though without any pretension to an Alpine
character, none is more genuinely Swiss than Sachslen. Leaving the
square, we wandered among the detached houses, scattered here and there
in the most capricious manner on the <DW72> of a hill that rises gently
behind, and which, dotted with timber throughout its fresh pastures,
forms a most beautiful background to the picture. The wood-work,
delicately, nay elaborately, carved, the windows glazed in many instances
with bull’s-eye glass, the low rooms with heavy cross-beams, are all many
centuries old, perhaps from the very days of Blessed Nicholas; but beyond
all doubt the “Holy Cross,” “Engel,” and other hostelries, of which the
place is chiefly composed, owe their origin to his memory. Photographs
of the church and the hermitage hung in the window of the “library” of
the village, which was opened for us, after some delay, by an active,
tidy matron. “These are quiet days and few purchasers,” she said in an
apologetic tone. “But the ladies would find it very different on feast
days; on the 21st of March above all. Then ten and twelve thousand
people often come from all quarters; every house far and near is full,
stalls are erected in the square, and the church is crowded from morning
till night. This is the _Litany_ chanted during the processions,” she
added, handing us a small book, which also contained “Prayers by Brother
Klaus,” collected from old writings by a priest. Nothing could be more
beautiful or simple than the latter; but the _Litany_ in particular
was a pre-eminently striking composition, every sentence showing that
remarkable union of patriotism and piety which runs through the whole
being of every Swiss Catholic. It begins by invoking the hermit, simply
as “Blessed Brother Klaus,” to “Pray for us,” and, going on through every
phase of his life, implores his intercession in a more emphatic manner
wherever his love of country or of justice had been most conspicuous.
And here it must be remembered that Blessed Nicholas has as yet only
been beatified. Hence those who style him “saint” transgress the proper
limits, which are never forgotten by the Swiss themselves. For this
reason it is that in no prayer is he ever addressed except as “Blessed
Nicholas,” and in popular parlance ranks no higher than their “dear
Bruder Klaus.” But that he may some day be canonized is the fond hope of
every Swiss Catholic, and one, it is said, which can be justified by many
miracles.

Mrs. C---- and I carried off the _Litany_, etc., and, sitting down on a
bench near the church, drew out other books we had with us, determined to
refresh our memories regarding this great servant of our Lord.

Of these, two small documents, written during his lifetime, are the most
interesting. One is a _Memoir_ by John von Waldheim, a gentleman from
Halle in Germany, giving an account of his visit to Brother Nicholas
in February, 1474, and found in the Wolfenbüttel Library; the other
a similar report of his pilgrimage to the Hermit of Ranft, addressed
to the clergy and magistrates of the town of Nuremberg, by Albert von
Bonstetten, canon of Einsiedeln, whom the historian, J. von Müller, calls
“the most learned Swiss of his age,” and found in the archives of the
town of Nuremberg in 1861, and wherein he states that, “as so many fables
had been circulated about the hermit, he felt convinced they would be
glad to know what he had himself seen.” Other contemporaries also allude
to their visits; but these two, though short, bear such internal evidence
of truth in the quaint freshness of their style and language, place
us so completely face to face with all concerned, give such a picture
of Blessed Nicholas’ humility and unsophisticated nature, and such an
insight into the habits of thought of that period, that no others equal
them, and we can only regret that space does not permit of more than
merely a passing quotation.

All authorities agree that Blessed Nicholas was born in this then obscure
hamlet on March 21, 1417. Zschokke, however, alone mentions that his
family name was Löwenbrugger--a fact ignored by others, so completely
had “Von der Flüe,” or “of the Rocks,” become his own, even during his
lifetime. Yet all his biographers begin by explaining that this cognomen
“came from his living at the rocks of Ranft.” Bonstetten also naïvely
asks “how any inhabitant of this region can avoid coming into the world
except under some one rock or another.” His parents were very poor,
and Nicholas labored hard, in the fields especially, from his tenderest
years. Grown to manhood, he married young, had ten children, and became
distinguished above his fellows, in his public and private capacity, as
“a model son, husband, father, and citizen.” He even served as soldier,
like others, in the Thurgau war, where he was equally noted for deeds
of valor and for compassion towards the sick and wounded. So high was
his reputation amongst his neighbors that they several times elected
him Landamman and resorted to him as arbitrator in their disputes.
“The virtues he displayed to all around him,” writes Bonstetten, “were
quite marvellous. For a long time he continued to lead this honorable
existence, considerate, affectionate, true to every one, importunate to
none.” At length a yearning for greater perfection became stronger than
all else, and at fifty years of age he determined to seek for closer
union with his Lord. Several of his children were already married and
settled in the neighborhood. To those that remained and to his wife he
handed over the house that he had built and the fields he had cultivated
from early youth upwards, and, taking leave of his family and of all that
he held most dear, he left his home for ever. Von Waldheim states that he
at first intended merely to wander as a pilgrim from one holy place to
another, but that, “on reaching Basel, he had a revelation, which made
him choose a hermit’s life in preference, and in consequence of which he
turned back to Unterwalden and to his own house. He did not, however,
allow himself to be seen by wife, children, or any one, but, passing the
night in his stables, he started again at dawn, penetrated for about a
quarter of a mile into the forest behind Sachslen, gathered some branches
of trees, roofed them with leaves, and there took up his abode.” At all
events, it was in this spot, known as “the solitude of Ranft,” at the
opening of the Melchthal, that he passed the remaining twenty years of
his saintly life.

But although _he_ had withdrawn from the world, that world soon followed
him. Before long the fame of his sanctity spread abroad; above all,
rumors were circulated that he never tasted earthly food, and that
his life was sustained solely by the Blessed Eucharist, which some
authorities say he received once a month, others on every Friday. This
celestial favor, however, was at first the cause of great suffering to
Blessed Nicholas. Calumnies were heaped upon him, insults offered. Still,
he remained impassive, taking no heed of men. Some would not doubt him.
“Why should they suppose that a man who had so long lived amongst them,
whose honor had been so well tried and recognized, and who had abandoned
the world merely to lead a hard life in the desert, would now try to
deceive them?” But others declared that he only wanted to impose on the
vulgar, and that he had food brought to him secretly. “What did the
landamman and elders do,” says Bonstetten, “in order to prevent their
being accused of playing the part of dupes? They selected trusty men,
made them take an oath to speak the truth, and placed them as guards
round the hermitage, to watch whether food was brought to Nicholas from
any quarter, or whether he procured any for himself.” For a whole month
this severe surveillance was maintained; but in the end it only proved in
a most convincing manner that the hermit neither ate nor drank anything
except that nourishment with which our Lord himself provided him. Two
Protestant writers, J. von Müller and Bullinger, give details of this
inquiry, of which they raise no doubt; and some years after it took
place, during the lifetime of Blessed Nicholas, the following entry was
made in the public archives of Sachslen:

    “Be it known to all Christians, that in the year 1417 was
    born at Sachslen, Nicholas von der Flüe; that, brought up in
    the same parish, he quitted father, mother, brother, wife,
    and children to come to live in the solitude called Ranft;
    that there he has been sustained by the aid of God, without
    taking any food, for the last eighteen years, enjoying all his
    faculties at this moment of our writing, and leading a most
    holy life. This we have ourselves seen, and this we here affirm
    in all truth. Let us, then, pray the Lord to give him eternal
    life whenever he shall deign to call him from this world.”

As a natural consequence of this investigation, a strong reaction at once
occurred. The villagers built him a chapel with a cell adjoining, and
soon the Bishop of Constance came to consecrate it.

But the bishop was also determined to test the fact of his total
abstinence, and ordered him to eat in his presence. Various are the
versions concerning this event, the majority asserting that Blessed
Nicholas was seized with convulsions the instant he swallowed the
first mouthful. But J. von Waldheim, who seems to have experienced no
difficulty in asking direct questions, gives us the hermit’s own words on
the subject, brimful of truthfulness and humility. After stating that
he had been entertaining Nicholas by an account of his own pilgrimages
to holy places, and amongst others to the sanctuary of Blessed Mary
Magdalen, in whose honor the Ranft chapel was dedicated, and having
brought tears into the eyes of the venerable hermit by the beautiful
legends regarding her which he told him, Waldheim proceeds:

    “I said: ‘Dear Brother Nicholas! in my own country, as well as
    here, I have heard it maintained that you have neither eaten
    nor drunk anything for many years past. What may I believe?’
    ‘God knows it!’ he answered, and then continued: ‘Certain folk
    asserted that the life I lead proceeds not from God, but from
    the evil spirit. In consequence my Lord the Bishop of Constance
    blessed three pieces of bread and a drop of wine, and then
    presented them to me. If I could eat or drink, he thought I
    should be justified; if not, there could no longer be any doubt
    that I was under the influence of the devil. Then my Lord the
    Bishop of Constance asked me what thing I considered the most
    estimable and meritorious in Christianity. ‘Holy obedience,’ I
    answered. Then he replied: ‘If obedience be the most estimable
    and meritorious thing, then I command you, in the name of
    that holy virtue, to eat these three pieces of bread and to
    drink this wine.’ I besought my lord to dispense me from this,
    because this act would grieve me to excess. I implored him
    several times, but he continued inflexible, and I was obliged
    to obey, to eat and to drink.’ I then asked Brother Nicholas,”
    continued Waldheim: ‘And since that time you have neither eaten
    nor drunk any thing?’ But I could extract no other answer from
    him save the three words, ‘God knows it.’”

Numberless were the reports concerning his mysterious ways. He often went
to Einsiedeln, yet it was said that no one ever met him on the road!

“How does he get there?” asks Waldheim. “God alone knows.” His
appearance, too, was said to be unearthly.

Waldheim had heard, too, that his body was emaciated and devoid of
natural warmth, his hands icy, and his aspect like that of a corpse. He
lays particular stress, therefore, on the fact that Nicholas possessed a
natural bodily heat, like any other man, “in his hands especially, which
I and my valet Kunz touched several times. His complexion was neither
yellow nor pale, but that of one in excellent health; his humor pleasant,
his conversation, acts, and gestures those of an affable, communicative,
sociable, gay being looking at every thing from the bright side. His hair
is brown, his features regular, his skin good, his face thin, his figure
straight and slight, his German agreeable to listen to.”

A few years later Père Bonstetten heightens this picture by a minuteness
that rivals the _signalements_ of old-fashioned passports. He describes
Brother Nicholas as being “of fine stature, extremely thin, and of a
brown complexion, covered with freckles; his dark hair tinged with gray,
and, though not abundant, falling in disorder on his shoulders; his beard
in like manner, and about an inch long; his eyes not remarkable, except
that the white is in due proportion; his teeth white and regular; and his
nose in harmony with the rest of his face.”

And as we read this clear description, Mrs. C---- and I could not
help regretting that posterity had not been satisfied with such a
recollection, without having endeavored by emeralds and precious stones
to fill up the voids which nature had since created; but when the motives
had been so pure and loving, it was not for us to find fault with the
manner of their reverence, nor do more than admire its earnestness and
simplicity.

There seems to have been a certain difficulty in obtaining admittance
to the hermit; for even Père Bonstetten had to be introduced by the
landamman, and Von Waldheim took with him the Curé of Kerns. Brother
Nicholas, it must be remembered, though an anchorite, was still not
ordained; hence a priest was to him always a welcome visitor. His family,
too, seem at all times to have had free access to him. Both writers
commenced their visits by hearing Mass in his little chapel, where
Brother Nicholas knelt behind a grating; but after their introduction he
let them into his adjoining cell. Here he impressed them deeply by his
humility, politeness, and gentleness, and both remark his sweet-toned
voice and his kindliness in shaking hands with every one, “not forgetting
a single person.” Père Bonstetten, more than Waldheim, seems to have
retained his self-possession; for he says: “I kept my eyes wide open,
looking right and left around the room, attentively considering
everything. The cell was not half warm. It had two small windows, but no
sleeping place, unless a raised portion at one end may be used for that
purpose.” Nor could he see a table, nor furniture of any kind, nor sign
even of a mattress on which this servant of God could ever repose. But
he dwells with emphasis on his simplicity and truthfulness, saying that
he answered his many questions, “not in the fashion of a hypocrite, but
simply as became an unlettered man.”

And like these visitors came others from every quarter to see and
consult him--magistrates to ask the advice of one who, in the words
of the _Litany_, had been like that “just judge whose decisions were
altogether dictated by conscience and justice,” and that “wise statesman
who administered his offices solely for the honor of God and the good
of his fellow-men”; soldiers to see the “brave warrior who took up
arms for God and fatherland, and was a model of virtue to the army”;
those in affliction to beg the prayers of that “most perfect follower
of Jesus, who, by meditation on the life and sufferings of our Lord,
had been so like unto him”; sinners to implore that “pious hermit, who
left the world from desire of greater perfection,” to teach them how to
subdue their passions. For all and each he had some word of comfort and
exhortation. One of these pilgrims was so captivated by his heavenly
admonitions that he resolved to remain near Blessed Nicholas and lead the
same life. He built himself a chapel and cell close by, and soon became
remarkable for his sanctity; but his antecedents are veiled in mystery,
and he has descended to posterity simply as “Brother Ulrich, once a
Bavarian gentleman.” Blessed Nicholas, however, evidently held him in
high regard; for, after praising him warmly, he urged both Waldheim and
Père Bonstetten to visit him before leaving Ranft. The naïve Waldheim
takes no pains to conceal that he was prejudiced against poor Ulrich by
reason of the mystery surrounding him; although “he is educated,” he
says,“whereas Brother Nicholas is a simple layman who does not know how
to read.” The learned monk of Einsiedeln, on the contrary, is at once
prepossessed in his favor by the tincture of culture which he quickly
detects. He notes that Ulrich “talks more and shows less dislike for the
society of men than Brother Nicholas. No doubt,” he adds, “because he is
more instructed. He is somewhat of a Latin scholar. At the same time, his
books are in German. He showed them to me. I think that I perceived the
_Gospels_ and the _Lives of the Fathers_ translated into German”--a fact
which we may further note as a remarkable proof that such translations
of the Gospels into the vernacular, mentioned thus incidentally by Père
Bonstetten, were common before the days of printing, in the very midst of
the so-called “dark ages.”

Amongst the many traits for which Blessed Nicholas was distinguished,
Père Bonstetten records that conformity to the will of God and love of
peace were pre-eminent. “He preaches submission and peace--that peace
which he never ceases to recommend to the confederates.” And a time was
coming when all his power and influence would be needed to preserve it.
Some years after these two accounts were written, and while Blessed
Nicholas and Brother Ulrich were praying and fasting in their “solitude
at Ranft,” great deeds were being done in other parts of Switzerland.
The battles of Grandson and Morat were fought and won, Charles the Bold
driven back into Burgundy, and the rich spoils of his army became the
property of the Swiss. But what union and heroism had gained victory
and prosperity well-nigh destroyed. Soleure and Freyburg, in virtue of
their hard fighting, claimed admission into the confederacy, which claim
the older states disdainfully rejected; while the enormous Burgundian
booty likewise became a fruitful source of discord. Numerous diets were
held, without avail, for the settlement of these questions, each only
increasing the trouble. At length a diet assembled at Stanz purposely
in order to come to a final decision; but the disputes reached such a
pitch that the deputies were about to separate, although the return to
their homes would have been the signal for civil war. Blessed Nicholas,
though so near, knew nothing of these proceedings until one morning,
when one of his oldest and most esteemed friends unexpectedly arrived
at the hermitage. It was the curé of Stanz; a worthy priest and a
true patriot, who, in despair at the state of affairs, and mindful of
Nicholas’ patriotism and love of peace, came to implore his help. Without
an instant’s delay the hermit took up his staff, walked across the paths
he knew so well, and marched straight into the hall at Stanz where the
deputies were assembled. Zschokke, the Protestant writer, thus describes
the scene:

    “All with one accord rose from their seats as they beheld in
    their midst this old man of emaciated aspect, yet full of
    youthful vigor, and deeply venerated by every one. He spoke
    to them with the dignity of a messenger from heaven, and in
    the name of that God who had given so many victories to them
    and to their fathers, he preached peace and concord. ‘You have
    become strong,’ he said, ‘through the might of united arms.
    Will you now separate them for the sake of miserable booty?
    Never let surrounding countries hear of this! Ye towns! do not
    grieve the older confederates by insisting on the rights of
    citizens. Rural cantons! remember that Soleure and Freyburg
    have fought hard beside you, and receive them into fellowship.
    Confederates! take care, on the other hand, not to enlarge your
    boundaries unduly! Avoid all transactions with foreigners!
    Beware of divisions! Far be it from you ever to prefer money
    to the fatherland.’ This and much more did Nicholas von der
    Flüe say, and all hearts were so deeply touched, so stirred, by
    the words of the mighty hermit, that in one single hour every
    disputed point was settled. Soleure and Freyburg were that
    day admitted into the confederacy; old treaties and compacts
    were renewed; and at the suggestion of the pious Nicholas it
    was decided that in future all conquered territory should be
    distributed amongst the cantons, but booty divided amongst
    individuals! This done,” continues Zschokke, “the hermit
    returned to his wilderness, each deputy to his canton. Joy
    abounded everywhere. From all the church-towers of the land
    festive peals announced the glad tidings, from the furthest
    Alps even unto the Jura.”

The cantons vied with each other in the effort to express their gratitude
to Blessed Nicholas. But in vain; he would take nothing from them except
a few ornaments for his small chapel. Freyburg alone was favored by his
acceptance of a piece of stuff to repair his worn-out habit, which was
then in shreds; and this it was which we liked to think identical with
the relic shown to us by the old sacristan in the church at Sachslen.
Bern, in a spirit widely different from that of its degenerate posterity,
presented him with a chalice, which elicited from him a letter full of
patriotism and tender Christian feeling: “Be careful,” he writes in
answer, “to maintain peace and concord amongst you; for you know how
acceptable this is to Him from whom all good proceeds. He who leads a
godly life always preserves peace; nay, more, God is that sovereign
peace in whom all can repose. Protect the widows and orphans, as you
have hitherto done. If you prosper in this world, return thanks to God,
and pray that he may grant you a continuance of the same happiness in
the next. Repress public vice and be just to all. Deeply imprint in your
hearts the remembrance of the Passion of our Lord Jesus Christ. It will
console and strengthen you in the hour of adversity.” Then, as if in
prophetic strain to the proud town, he adds: “Many people in our day,
tempted by the devil, are troubled with doubts on faith. But why have any
doubts? The faith is the same to-day that it ever has been.”

What wonder, after all this, that, in spite of himself, Blessed Nicholas
became the arbiter of Switzerland during the few remaining years of his
life? Every dispute was referred to him, and, as one writer adds, “In
that solitude, where he thought only of serving God, by the simple fact
of his sanctity he became of all his compatriots the most pleasing to God
and the most useful to his neighbor.” At length the holy hermit lay down
on the bare ground, which had so long been his couch, and, full of years
and honor, he “fell asleep in the Lord” on the 21st of March, 1487--on
the very day that he had fulfilled seventy years of his most spotless and
saintly life.

We had just reached this point, when, looking up, we beheld Mr. C----
and George advancing and exclaiming: “Such a pity you did not come--such
a pity!” Breathlessly they told us that the distance had proved
trifling; they found horses, too, on the way, and everything had been
deeply interesting. The road had passed near “Bruder Klaus’” fields,
crossed the rushing stream mentioned by Von Waldheim; and not only had
they visited the chapel and cell of Blessed Nicholas, but also that of
Brother Ulrich, exactly as described by the two mediæval pilgrims. The
stone used by Blessed Nicholas as his pillow is there preserved; both
places, kept in excellent repair and attended by a priest who resides
on the spot, are much frequented and full of votive offerings of various
kinds. At once it became a question of our starting thither, even at
that advanced hour. Had Anna and I been alone, we should have upset all
previous arrangements for this purpose; but charity and forbearance
are the virtues most needed and most frequently brought into play when
travelling with a large party. Smothering our annoyance, therefore, a
second time, as best we could, and making a mental resolve to return
some future day and see with our own eyes what our friends so vividly
described, we adjourned to the Engel, and did full justice to the meal
which its pleasant-faced hostess had prepared for us. In another hour we
were on the road back to Stanz, but this time across the hills. Kerns,
now speaking to our minds of Von Waldheim and Père Bonstetten, was first
passed, succeeded before long by St. Jacob and its plain, the scene of
the terrible battle with the French in 1798; and in two and a half hours
the comfortable cottages of Nidwalden had gradually developed into, and
terminated in, the pretty houses of its capital, Stanz. Here we now
halted, in order to repair our omission of yesterday by a visit to the
Rathhaus. It was opened for us after some delay by a bluff Nidwaldener,
whose German was as unintelligible as that of the Sachslen clerk. But,
in like manner, he supplied the defect by pointing to two curious and
very ancient paintings which hung in the entrance lobby, one representing
Blessed Nicholas taking leave of his wife and family before he went to
Ranft, the other his appearance at the diet here. The deputies in the
painting have all risen, whilst the emaciated hermit is addressing them
boldly and earnestly. As we proceeded into the hall close by, it required
no stretch of imagination to fancy that the scene had but just occurred
in that spot, so exactly is the room of the same shape, the chairs and
table of the same pattern, and all placed in the same position as in the
old picture. Though not the same building, one may well believe that
the present is only a reproduction of the former town-hall, simple and
unpretending as it is, and yet invested with such deep interest. Three
sides of the hall are hung with portraits of the landammans since 1521,
and the fourth is decorated by various banners won on different patriotic
occasions. Of these, we notice one that was taken at the battle of
Kappel, where Zwingle met his death; another sent to the Unterwaldeners
by Pope Julius II.; and a third recently presented by Zschokke, a native
of these parts, representing William Tell shooting the apple off his
son’s head--thus giving the sanction of this grave and graphic historian
to the story we all so much love. Long did we linger in the hall, full
of the day’s impressions; but the light was waning, and it was necessary
to depart. Ere we reached Buochs the sun had set; it was dark when the
steamer came up to the quay; and night had closed when we arrived at
Brunnen and entered the brilliantly-lighted hall of the Walstätter Hof.


THE ASSUMPTION.

    Crown her with flowers! She is the queen of flowers:
    Roses for royalty and mignonette
    For sweet humility, and lilies wet
    With morning dew for holy purity.
    Crown her with stars! She is the queen of stars:
    They sparkle round her maiden path in showers
    And stretch their beams of light in golden bars,
    Making a pavement for her majesty.
    Crown her with prayers! She is the queen of prayer:
    With eager hands she gathers every one,
    Wreathing them into garlands for her Son,
    Holding them close with fond, maternal care:
    Sweet flower--first planet in the realms above!
    Crown her with love! She is the queen of love.


THE SCIENTIFIC GOBLIN.

By one of those freaks of fortune rare even in fairyland, the small
people known as the Odomites had, in order to escape being devoured by
a strolling giant named Googloom, made him their king. This ogre was of
so wonderful an ugliness that babes died at the sight of him, and men
and maids had gone into convulsions of merriment; but the majority of
the Odomites, blessed with a wholesome fear, dared no more than laugh
in their sleeves at bare memory of his face, avoiding as much as they
could to see him. However, to make sure that all his people were as
sober as himself, King Googloom issued an edict defining laughter as
treason, under any pretext to be punished with death by slow torture.
In cases of young and pretty maids this sentence was varied by the fact
that the giant himself ate them up. Yet, spite of the terrors of his
decree, hundreds of his subjects perished for want of self-control; and
one man, whose fate became renowned as that of a voluntary martyr to free
expression, died laughing involuntarily, notwithstanding his tortures,
the giant Googloom being a witness of his execution.

When the realm of Odom was thus rid of all rebellion in the shape
of quips, jokes, pranks, tricks, antics, capers, smiles, laughs,
caricatures, chuckles, grimaces, Googloom yawned and rolled his eyes in a
manner fearful to see, and, leaving his throne, made a tour through his
dominions. Not a soul dared so much as smile in obeisance to him. Though
he made his ugliest faces, to such a degree that the passing ravens were
scared, not a single Odomite lifted up his head to grin for a moment.
Over all the land reigned the shadow of funlessness. Googloom had become
a dreadful chimera, a nightmare. Hardly knowing it, his people grew lean
and pined away.

Googloom himself began to be weary of the prevailing dulness, even
while he boasted that the land was never so sober and its population so
orderly. “When will the old times return,” asked his sages of themselves,
“when the land laughed and grew fat?” Googloom eyed with contempt the
bones of the children that were served up at his banquets; and one day,
seeing that the leanness of his people had extended to their crops, and
yet unwilling to alter his decrees, mockingly proclaimed that anybody who
could make him laugh at his own expense, or make anybody else laugh on
the same terms, should have the privilege of laughing whenever he pleased.

There was at this time living in one of the mountains of Odom a famous
goblin named Gigag. His exceeding knowledge and invention, assisted
by good-nature, had made him famous in the country round about; and
notwithstanding the prejudices of some of the Od people, he was permitted
to benefit them in various ways. For instance, he made them a stove which
gave them both heat and light; an instrument that produced exquisite
melodies whether you could play it or not; an accordeon that invented
tunes of its own accord, for the help of composers; a portable bridge
to be flung over chasms at pleasure; a drink that gave men’s eyes the
power of microscopes, and another that inspired them with the capacity
of telescopes; a fertilizer that brought up crops in seven days with
care; a flying-machine to save all who laughed; and a pill to cure
headache, heartache, rheumatism, dropsy, palsy, dyspepsia, epilepsy,
consumption--everything short of death itself--and to cause lost hair,
eyes, teeth, legs, and arms to grow again. There was also rumor that the
goblin Gigag had tunnelled the whole kingdom through, and that goblin
steeds and people could now travel at will an underground thoroughfare.
But, for all these things, the Odomites were no better than before. Their
taste in music was bad; they were blind as bats to their interests;
they tumbled over precipices; they neglected their crops, and were too
stupid to fly, if not too dull to laugh; and headaches, heartaches,
and palsies were much the same as ever, because they disliked to take
a pill that was not sugar-coated. In the end the scientific Gigag was
thought to be a goblin of genius--one of those fine spirits who are
always doing magnificent things to no purpose. Had he relied upon the
effect of his mechanical or chemical exploits to make his way in the
world, the well-meaning goblin would certainly have made a mistake. What,
then, was the secret of that extraordinary power which the goblin Gigag
exercised over the minds of those who came in contact with him? It was
his expression.

All the variety of which the goblin countenance is susceptible seemed to
be concentrated in that of Gigag. But its peculiarity was this: that his
eyes grew piercing and dazzling at will, while his teeth enlarged, his
mouth curved, and his nose elongated and turned at pleasure. It may well
be supposed that no Odomite could resist a smile or survive the scorn of
a countenance so effective; and we can only ascribe it to Gigag’s known
forbearance that the so-called anticachination laws of Googloom were not
a thousand times violated. But patience has its bounds. The national
dulness which made Googloom yawn and sneer made Gigag almost swear. The
reigning condition must be put an end to, or science itself would be
powerless at length to amuse or to cure. Accordingly, he sped through his
underground road, and came up at court by a secret path. Wearing a long,
conical hat and a fanciful jacket, with doublet and hose, and elongating
his features while he stretched himself to his full height, he stepped
into the presence of the king, knocking down by the way a few insolent
attendants who had excited his gaze. Bristling the few hairs of his upper
lip, which resembled the mustache of Grimalkin, and bowing with the most
obsequious of smiles, the goblin Gigag stood before the giant Googloom.

Never had that ogre seen a figure at once so lean and long, and a face
so bright and cunning. He would have ordered it at once to his darkest
dungeons, were it not for an unaccountable fascination which forced him
to listen to Gigag while he proposed not only to make Googloom laugh at
his own expense, but to make everybody else laugh at him on the same
terms, and to solve the problem of perpetual motion by making the land
of Odom merry ever afterwards. “I presume,” said he, “you have heard the
story of the pig’s fiddle”; and he proceeded to tell a tale which for
wit and fun would have made a thousand unicorns die laughing. But on
the giant it had either no effect at all or had only raised his spirits
to the point of being serious. Gigag clearly saw that he had failed by
trusting to the merits of his story instead of using his great weapon of
expression. “This is no ordinary case,” said the goblin to himself. “The
problem is to make an immense creature laugh who has nothing of the sort
in him. Perhaps the best thing to do is to torture him till he laughs in
despair.” Spite of the giant’s disposition to put his visitor at once to
the torture, he agreed that the accomplished goblin should call next day,
and make him laugh, or else die by slow boiling. This the goblin heard
with a mixture of scorn and amusement, curling his nose and showing his
teeth in an aristocratic manner.

As the cunning Gigag left the king’s chamber to go to his quarters in
a corner of the great palace, he took good care to scatter about two
scientifically-prepared powders, one of which dissolved in the air,
producing sleep, and the other by a similar change entered the nostrils,
producing throughout the body tickling sensations and a disposition
to low chuckling. When Gigag again came before Googloom, it was seen
that none of the royal guards were fit for duty, and that throughout
the palace and its grounds the disposition among courtiers, retainers,
servants, pages, to laugh in their sleeves at the smallest incitement,
was unmistakable. Even the kitchen cats had caught the infection, and
mewed dispersedly.

“Now, O great Googloom!” said Gigag when all the court had assembled,
“let me in three acts essay to complete that transformation by which thy
people’s despair shall be turned to joy, and thy laughing face shall
behold its own merriment.” At this moment the giant shook like one
who is tickled all over, but cannot laugh, experiencing the greatest
tortures without knowing what to make of them. To divert him the goblin
related his favorite story of the merry owl, with such catcalls, crowing,
mincing, and mewing, and withal such unearthly jest, that a thousand
dogs would have died if they did not laugh. What wonder, then, that long
before the witty Gigag had concluded a favorite page was so wrought upon
by chuckling that, bursting his buttons, at length he laughed right out,
which had such an effect upon all assembled that they chuckled, and then
roared. “Ho, guards!” cried Googloom; but Gigag easily drew his attention
to the second part of the programme--for the goblin had actually brought
the giant to the point of complacency. “I propose now,” he said, “to show
you the most ridiculous countenance that was ever seen, except one.”
Hereupon he diminished and heightened his figure at intervals, while he
curved his nose by degrees, lengthened his teeth as he pleased, and put
upon his mouth such an expression of maddening humor that his spectators
gasped with laughing, to the vast confusion of the helpless giant, who
vowed with a feeble smile that the gifted Gigag was certainly the most
ingenious man he ever knew.

“Nothing will serve you, I perceive, O beautiful Googloom! except
the light of science; and now I will show you the face of the most
ridiculous man that ever was born.” Accordingly, by means of an
instrument which he had invented, Gigag reflected upon a large canvas
the features of Googloom! Unwittingly the giant smiled, for he had never
seen so preposterous a face before; and the more he smiled, the more
ridiculous it grew, till at last, after the giant himself had given way
to laughter, it was so horribly funny that the whole court shrieked and
shrieked again, and Googloom, losing all control, roared with such a
volume and power of merriment that he toppled off his throne, and was
crushed under its ruins. The people, seeing the faces of the courtiers
and of each other, caught an infectious laughter, which prevailed
throughout all Odom, and did not by any means cease when the goblin Gigag
was called to the throne, and the reign of science began.


THE HAPPY ISLANDS.

    “Tell me, brother, dearest brother,
      Why it is thou aye dost weep?
    Why thus, ever listless, sittest
      Looking forth across the deep?

    “Thy impatient steed is wond’ring
      Why his master doth not come,
    On his perch thy hawk is sleeping,
      E’en thy hound’s deep voice is dumb.

    “Yesternight there came a minstrel
      With a glee-maid young and fair,
    If mayhap their merry voices
      Would beguile thy weary care.”

    “Hawk may sleep, and hound may slumber,
      My impatient steed must wait,
    Nor care I to hear the minstrel
      Who is resting at the gate.

    “E’en the keen breeze of the mountains
      Would not cool my fevered brow,
    E’en the shrill note of the trumpet
      Would not serve to rouse me now.

    “Dost remember, that our father
      Told us how his wond’ring eyes
    Once beheld the Happy Islands
      Far off on the ocean rise?

    “Those fair Islands where no mortal,
      As ’tis said, has ever been,
    Though at evening in the westward
      They at sunset oft are seen.

    “Those blest Islands that so often
      Were our aged minstrel’s theme,
    That surpass the fairest fancies
      Of a poet’s wildest dream.

    “Where the Holy Grail lies hidden
      Far from mortal quest or claim,
    And the Tree of Life stands, guarded
      By the Seraph’s sword of flame:

    “Where the Blessed Ones are dwelling
      Till the dawning of the day
    When this world and all upon it,
      Like a dream, will pass away.

    “And our sire sailed towards those Islands,
      Till their shore he drew so near
    That the strains of heavenly singing
      Fell upon his raptured ear.

    “And as that immortal music
      O’er his ravished senses stole,
    An intense and eager longing
      Took possession of his soul.

    “When, lo! as entranced he listened,
      Suddenly the mists of night,
    Gath’ring round the Happy Islands,
      Hid them from his anxious sight.

    “Then all through that weary midnight
      Stayed he waiting for the dawn,
    But when day broke, lo! the Islands
      With the mists of night had gone.

    “From that day thou know’st he languished,
      And could take nor food nor rest,
    For he aye was thinking, thinking
      On those Islands of the Blest.

    “When he died, dost thou remember
      We heard music from the sea,
    That enchained us with the weirdness
      Of its mystic melody?

    “Scarce three days ago at sunset
      I was sitting, thinking here,
    When I saw those Happy Islands
      In the west there, bright and clear.

    “Words would fail to tell their beauty,
      They were wrapt in golden haze,
    And they glowed with such a radiance
      That on them I scarce could gaze.

    “And since that resplendent vision
      On my raptured senses fell,
    It has haunted and enthralled me
      With the magic of its spell.

    “I must go and seek those Islands
      That far to the westward lie.
    I hear distant voices calling,
      I must find those isles or die.”

    At the early dawn next morning
      Young Sir Brian sailed away,
    Mournfully his brother watchèd
      On the shore the livelong day.

    Long kept guard the weary watchers,
      ’Mid the tempest and the rain,
    But ah! nevermore Sir Brian
      To his home came back again.

    It is said by some he perished
      In the wild and stormy wave,
    Where the sea-birds wailed the requiem
      O’er his mist-enshrouded grave.

    If perchance he reached those Islands,
      Be ye sure that he stayed there;
    For what earthly joy or beauty
      With those Islands can compare?

    Where the sun is ever shining
      And the blossom doth not fade,
    Where from quest of mortal hidden
      The most Holy Grail is laid.

    Where with flaming swords the Seraphs
      Stand around the Tree of Life,
    Where the Blessed Ones are dwelling
      Who have conquered in the strife.

NOTE.--This poem is founded on an ancient Irish legend, to the effect
that the Happy Islands, as they are called--that is, the temporal
resting-place of the blessed, where yet stands the Tree of Life guarded
by the cherubim--are situated in the ocean somewhere to the far westward
of Ireland.

It is said they are sometimes to be seen at sunset from the coast o’
Galway.

Many have sought to find them, and some even have come near them, but
just as they were approaching, either the night fell or a storm arose and
drove them from the enchanted shores.


NEW PUBLICATIONS.

    LES DROITS DE DIEU ET LES IDEES MODERNES. Par l’Abbé François
    Chesnel, Vicaire-Général de Quimper. Poitiers et Paris: Henri
    Oudin. 1875.

Every age has its special errors and its special manifestations of the
truth precisely opposite to those errors. The special errors of the
present age may be well summed up under one formula, which we find on p.
335 of the Abbé Chesnel’s work bearing the title placed at the head of
this notice: “The pretended incompetence of God and his representatives
in the order of human things, whether scientific or social.” The system
which springs from this fundamental notion has received the name of
Liberalism. In contradiction to it, the authority of God and the church
over those matters which are included in the order of human things, is
the truth which in our day has been the special object of inculcation,
definition, explanation, and defence on the part of the Catholic Church
and her most enlightened advocates. A great number of the very finest
productions of our contemporary Catholic writers in books, pamphlets,
and periodicals, treat of themes and topics connected with this
branch of the great controversy between Catholic truth and universal
error. The volume just published by the Abbé Chesnel is particularly
remarkable among these for simplicity, lucidity, and moderation in its
statements, and for its adaptation to the understanding of the great
mass of intelligent and educated readers, who are unable to profit by
any treatises presupposing a great amount of knowledge and thought on
abstruse matters. The form of dialogue helps the author and the reader
very much in respect to the facility and simplicity of the work of
giving and receiving elementary instruction on the subjects contained
within the volume. The other topics besides the particular one we are
about to mention are handled very much in the same manner by M. Chesnel
as by other sound and able writers, and require no special remark.
Thank God! our instructed American Catholics are not inclined to bury
themselves in what the author happily styles “the fog of liberalism,”
in so far as this confuses the view of the rights of the church and
the Holy See in respect to the usurpations of the civil power and the
rebellions of private judgment. We have turned with a more particular
interest to that part of the volume which treats of the nature, origin,
acquisition, and loss of sovereign rights by the possessors of political
power in the state. This is one of the most difficult topics in the
department of ethics, and one seldom handled, in our opinion, so well
as by our author. To a certain extent sound Catholic writers agree,
and the principles maintained are proved with ease to the satisfaction
of right-minded students. That political power is from God, that human
rights are from God, that an authority certainly legitimate cannot
be resisted within its lawful domain without sin, are so many first
principles universally accepted and easily proved. But when the sources
and criteria of legitimacy are in question, there is far less agreement
even among those who reject liberalism, and much less facility of laying
down and proving propositions in a satisfactory manner. The ingenious and
learned Dr. Laing, in his little book entitled _Whence do Kings Derive
the Right to Rule?_ in our opinion sustains most extravagant theories
regarding the divine right of monarchs. On the other hand, we are not
entirely satisfied with the reasonings of the very able and brilliant
Dublin Reviewer on the principles of legitimacy. In fact, we have not
seen the subject handled in a perfectly thorough and satisfactory
manner by any author writing in the English language. M. Chesnel is not
exhaustive, but, so far as his scope in writing permits him to develop
his subject, he seems to us remarkably clear and judicious. The beginning
of sovereignty he traces to the parental expanding into the patriarchal
authority. Acquisition of lawful sovereignty he refers to inheritance,
election, and just conquest. The rehabilitation of a sovereignty unjustly
acquired he refers to the accession of the right of a nation to the
possession of the goods which have become dependent on the peaceable
maintenance of a _de facto_ sovereignty, sanctioned by a common consent.
The possessor who has been unjustly despoiled of his sovereignty _de
jure_ by one who has become sovereign _de facto_ evidently loses his
right as soon as it is transferred lawfully to this spoliator or his
heirs in the manner indicated. The author, as we think unnecessarily,
resorts to the supposition that he is supposed to cede it, because he
cannot reasonably maintain it. He adds, however, that if he does not
cede it he nevertheless loses it, which seems to us to make his cession
or non-cession wholly irrelevant and without effect. It is lost by the
prevalence of a higher right on the part of the nation. Nevertheless,
we think that until a permanent and stable union of the welfare of
the nation with the right of the new dynasty is effected, the former
sovereign right may in certain cases remain in abeyance, and therefore
revive again in the future. This appears to us to be exemplified in the
case of the rights of Don Carlos to the throne of Spain, and of the Comte
de Chambord to the throne of France. Strictly, in themselves, their
rights have been in abeyance, and remain imperfect, until the national
welfare, sustained by a sound and powerful part of the body politic,
demands their restitution and actually effects the same. In such cases
there is always more or less doubt about the real sense of the better and
sounder part of the nation, and about the best settlement of conflicting
claims for the common good. And hence it is that the best men may differ,
and conscientiously espouse opposite sides, when a nation is in an
unsettled and divided state respecting its sovereignty.

In respect to the relation of the state to the church, the author has
some very just and sagacious remarks on the peculiar condition of things
in our own republic, quite in accordance with the views which have been
expressed by our soundest American Catholic writers. We conclude our
criticism by quoting a few passages:

“The religious system existing in the United States does not resemble,
either in its origin or in its applications, that which the liberal sect
imposes on the Catholic peoples of Europe. The American population, the
progeny of colonists driven from England by persecution, never possessed
religious unity. When Presbyterians, Episcopalians, and Catholics, who
had all fought in common for independence, assembled in Congress and
formed their constitution, they recognized the variety of worships as an
antecedent fact, and endeavored to accommodate themselves to it in the
best way they could. No false political theory disturbed the good sense
of these legislators. Governed by a necessity manifestly invincible, and
which still continues, they secured to each worship a complete liberty;
proclaimed that which is a just consequence from this principle: that
the state should have only a very restricted agency--that is, no more
than what is necessary for reconciling the liberty of each one with that
of all others. In fact, when separated from the true church, the state
is reduced to pure naturalism, and in this condition the action of the
state, separated from the church, ought to be reduced to the minimum” (p.
179).

    MEMOIRS OF GENERAL WILLIAM T. SHERMAN. By Himself. New York: D.
    Appleton & Co. 1875.

This book marks an epoch in the literary history of the war. Ten years
of reconstruction and of political spoil-gathering, of slow and still
incomplete recuperation at the South, and of reluctant, painful
subsidence to the moderate profits and the quiet of peace at the North,
had dulled the excitement attending the events of the war, had corrected
many prejudices, had taken off many of the prominent actors of both sides
of the contest, and had added to the literary public many men and women
who were children when Sherman “marched to the sea.” And now comes one
of the great conquerors of the Rebellion, and tells almost every word
that an honorable man would dare to tell of all that he knows about the
soldiers and the generals, the fighting and the plotting, of the war,
and with infinite frankness--not stopping with facts, and dates, and
figures, but detailing his remembrance of conversations, frankly offering
his opinion of motives and his judgment of character, as well adverse as
favorable--as readily giving names of those deserving blame as of those
worthy of praise. No wonder, therefore, that these _Memoirs_ have set
the whole country to thinking about the war, and all the newspapers to
discussing it. We have already had scores of explanations and defences
of those attacked, or of friends in their behalf, and we are promised
the Memoirs, Recollections, and Narratives of many of the more prominent
generals; so that we shall shortly be supplied with testimony as to
all the events of the late war, given by the actors themselves or by
eye-witnesses.

The first six chapters are occupied with General Sherman’s life from
the beginning of the Mexican war till the outbreak of the civil war.
They are intensely interesting. Many of those who afterwards became
leaders of great armies are introduced to the reader as simple captains
or lieutenants in the old army. Little incidents illustrative of their
characters are continually related, and the writer’s own impressions,
with his unflinching candor, continually offered, every page glowing
with good-humor and sparkling with entertaining anecdotes. The domestic
archives of more than one household of Lancaster, Ohio, must have been
well ransacked to get the letters written home by the young artillery
lieutenant, in order to secure such exactness in date, and place, and
conversation. One learns from these chapters about all that was done in
California during the Mexican war, and who did it; graphic descriptions
of many of the natural wonders of that country, and a very interesting
account of the early gold excitement. Gen. Sherman was on the staff of
Col. Mason, commanding United States forces in California, when gold was
found in Sutter’s mill-race; was present when Sutter’s messenger showed
it to Col. Mason and asked for a patent to the land; went to Sutter’s
place, and saw the first miners at work there; wrote (August 17, 1848)
the official despatch of Col. Mason to the Adjutant-General which gave
the world the first authentic information that gold could be had in
California for the digging.

After peace was concluded with Mexico, the author of the _Memoirs_
returned to the States; but soon resigned his commission, went back to
California, and opened a banking office in San Francisco--a branch of a
well-known house in St. Louis. His statement of the events of the year
1856 in San Francisco is most interesting, throwing much light on the
history of the famous Vigilance Committee. He was Militia General at the
time, and, in conjunction with the Governor, treated with the leaders of
the Committee, whom he undertakes to convict of falsehood, positively
asserting that, had Gen. Wool given him the arms, he was prepared to
fight the Vigilantes with militia, and would have suppressed them.
Hard times induced him shortly after to wind up his banking business
and return to the States, and in the autumn of 1860, after trying and
giving up various undertakings, he had organized and was president of
a flourishing military school, under the patronage of the State of
Louisiana. When that State seceded, Sherman at once resigned and went
North, and when war broke out was commissioned colonel in the regular
army, rising gradually in rank till finally half the army and country was
subject to his command.

Now begins his story of the war. To the most timid civilian there is an
intense fascination in that war--a deep interest in every true narrative
of it. Gen. Sherman takes us through some of its most exciting scenes,
and so frankly and so familiarly that you feel as if you were some
invited stranger, sharing his mess, discussing his plans, participating
in his hopes and fears, and rejoicing with him in his nearly uniform
success. His first battle was Bull Run, in which he commanded a brigade.
Shortly after this he was transferred to the West, where he remained
until in the winter of 1864-5, when, having fought and conquered his way
from Chattanooga to Atlanta, then through Georgia and South Carolina,
he found himself in North Carolina, in command of a large army, and
upon the communications of Richmond. The General’s narrative of these
four years is intensely interesting. Every description of battle or
march is intelligible and vivid, every statement of plans is clear.
The battle of Shiloh is wonderfully well described; so are the battles
which were fought around Atlanta. The same may be said of the storming
of Fort McAllister--one of the most gallant deeds of the war. Thousands
of ex-soldiers will fight their battles over again with this book--will
lose themselves in the great mass of the army--will struggle once more
against that sickening sensation which their sense of honor overcame as
the first bullet whistled by, the first pale, senseless form was borne
to the rear on the bloody stretcher--will tingle again in every nerve
at the first sight of the Southerners--will feel the sudden thrill of
the fearful excitement of the rush, or of the stubborn defence, or the
ecstasy of victory. Many a one will once more feel the terrible fatigue
of the march, the pangs of hunger and thirst, the weariness of sleepless
nights on picket, the tedious, painful weeks spent in hospital. And every
soldier will once more feel sad as he reads of the places and scenes of
the death of his comrades, and will repeat for the thousandth time that
it was always the best men who were killed.

The charges of cruelty and barbarity made during and after the war
against Gen. Sherman are indignantly denied. The depopulation of the
town of Atlanta is justified in so far as the General clearly shows the
purity of his motives and can cite the approval of both the civil and
military authorities; yet the ugly fact remains that it was done not for
the instant safety of his army or the immediate injury of the enemy’s,
but thousands of women and children were driven among strangers and their
homes abandoned to the chances of a civil war to secure a temporary
convenience. As to the unauthorized foraging of the troops generally,
the General condemned and often reproved and condemned it; though his
correspondence shows a secret satisfaction at the devastation committed
in South Carolina, except where it might result in permanent injury to
private property. His defence against Secretary Stanton’s charges of
usurping civil powers in treating with Gen. Jos. Johnston is simply
complete. Gen. Sherman here had the honor to be the first after the war
to suffer abuse and persecution because a kind heart and chivalrous
sympathy with a gallant and beaten foe roused the hatred and fear of a
class of politicians as malicious and vindictive as they were ambitious.

The last chapter, “Military Lessons of the War,” is extremely
interesting, especially to military men. It contains some very important
conclusions; for example, that infantry must hereafter fight in
skirmishing order; that cavalry can no longer be used against organized
infantry; that every night’s camp in an enemy’s vicinity should be
covered by light works; and that good troops with the rifle can beat off
from trenches double their numbers. All this and nearly all the other
opinions advanced in this chapter had become truisms to even the common
soldier in our war, and the late Franco-German war has made them such for
the whole world. But Gen. Sherman’s modesty has hindered him from showing
that his own persistent adherence to this new science not only gained
him Atlanta, but left him an intact and veteran army with which to crush
through the heart of the South; and that Gen. Grant’s neglect of it,
and his adopting the “hammering-away” method instead, not only did not
conquer Lee and take Richmond, but positively buried the old gallant Army
of the Potomac between the Rapidan and the Appomattox.

It is a great injustice to the Army of the Cumberland and its General to
say so glibly that at Chickamauga “Bragg had completely driven Rosecrans’
army into Chattanooga”; it is notorious that at the battle itself the
key of the position was never given up, and that the whole army offered
battle defiantly at Rossville before retiring to Chattanooga. Such a
mistake as this throws discredit upon Gen. Sherman’s statements of
other events of which he was not an eye-witness. It is also much to be
regretted that in matters wholly private he should not have reserved the
names of persons whose conduct was reprehensible. Thus it adds nothing
to the interest of his narrative to give the _name_ of the officer of the
ship whose incorrect reckoning so inconvenienced the passengers on the
author’s first voyage to California; or to give the _name_ of the lawyer
who swindled him out of the proceeds of a note given him to collect; wife
and children and friends should not be made to share public disgrace for
private acts of which they themselves are entirely guiltless.

    THE FIRST CHRISTMAS: A Mystery Play. By Albany James Christie,
    S.J. London: Burns & Oates. 1875. (New York: Sold by The
    Catholic Publication Society.)

We wish we could say that the contents of this small volume are worth its
elegant exterior.

    A POLITICO-HISTORICAL ESSAY ON THE POPES, as the Protectors of
    Popular Liberty. By Rev. Henry A. Brann, D.D. New York: D. & J.
    Sadlier & Co. 1875.

In spite of the confident assurance which every loyal Catholic has that
the rule of Rome, both temporal and spiritual, is not, never has been,
nor ever will be, a despotism, it cannot be denied that but few are well
acquainted with the facts of history which prove that the Papal power
has been the only interpreter, defender, and protector of their rights
which the people ever had, and that all the liberties nations now enjoy
are the result of the preaching and defence of the doctrines which lie at
the basis of all civilization by the popes, bishops, and priests of the
Catholic Church.

Just new the old howl against Rome is being renewed--the howl of the
wolves against the shepherd; and the sheep now and again think it
necessary to apologize to the wolves for the care their ever-watchful
guardian keeps over them, and also try to make them understand that it
is both convenient and necessary that he should keep a dog and carry a
crook. It is little wonder that the wolves bark and snarl in reply to the
apologies, and see no force in our argument for either the dog or crook.
But the sheep of the true fold, and also the “other sheep” who are not
yet of it, need, rather, plain, straightforward instruction, which, by
the grace of God, they will receive to their profit. Such is the essay
before us, which we heartily welcome as most opportune, and, although
far from being exhaustive of the subject, is both pertinent and forcible.
We commend it as an excellent pamphlet to be freely distributed both
among Catholics and honest-minded American non-Catholics.

    THE STORY OF S. STANISLAUS KOSTKA. Edited by Father Coleridge,
    S.J. London: Burns & Oates. 1875. (New York: Sold by The
    Catholic Publication Society.)

This is the thirteenth volume of the admirable Quarterly Series edited
by the Jesuit fathers in London. The “Story” is a brief one, but full
of interest. We confess that S. Stanislaus has always seemed to us more
charming than even S. Aloysius. Both “angelic youths” are among the
greatest glories of the Catholic Church and the Society of Jesus.

Father Coleridge tells us that the present work was at first intended to
be a simple translation from the Italian of Father Boero, but that he
has taken the pains to prepare an original narrative instead. All who
know his style will be grateful for the exchange. He has also confined
himself to a narration of facts, without digressing into “religious and
moral reflections.” We think this, too, makes the volume more attractive,
particularly to the young.

    BIOGRAPHICAL READINGS. By Agnes M. Stewart. London: Burns
    & Oates. 1875. (New York: Sold by The Catholic Publication
    Society.)

It is somewhat aggravating to those familiar with the larger biographical
dictionaries to take up a compilation like this. One is reminded of
the poet who sent his MSS. to a learned editor to prepare them for
publication, and, after hearing the judgment passed by the critic,
insisted that he had thrown out the best pieces and retained the only
trash in the collection. The reader must try to put himself in the place
of the compiler who undertakes the invidious task of determining who
to speak of and what to say in a book of the kind. Almost inevitably,
each reader has to regret the absence of some subjects by him deemed
important. But, at least, the work will serve as an introduction to more
exhaustive ones, and Catholics have an assurance in the editor that the
stale assertions against cherished names, lay or cleric, which have
heretofore disfigured most non-Catholic biographical sketches, will not
be found here.

    THE YOUNG LADIES’ ILLUSTRATED READER. New York: The Catholic
    Publication Society, 9 Warren St. 1875.

This is the last volume of the Young Catholic’s Illustrated Series of
Readers. We have read it with considerable care, and are of the opinion
that it is the best book of the kind in the English language. The
selections, which embrace a wide range of subjects, all bearing more or
less directly upon the mission and work of woman, have been made with
discernment and taste. The most important lessons are here taught in the
most agreeable style and in the pleasantest manner. It is a treatise on
the duties of Christian women without any of the dulness of the moral
essay.

We admire especially the biographical sketches of the foundresses of
religious orders which are scattered here and there through the book.
Whatever the vocation of a young girl may be, she will be all the truer
and nobler woman for having been taught to reverence and love the
religious life.

The perusal of the several Readers of the Young Catholic’s Series has
shown us, in a light in which we have never seen it before, the great
educational value of such books. We are not surprised at the favorable
manner in which these Readers have been received, nor shall we be
astonished to hear of their superseding all others in our Catholic
Schools.

       *       *       *       *       *

ANNOUNCEMENT.--In the October number of THE CATHOLIC WORLD we shall begin
a new serial story, entitled _Sir Thomas More: A Historical Romance_.


BOOKS AND PAMPHLETS RECEIVED.

    From P. O’Shea, New York: Notes on the Rubrics of the Roman
    Ritual. By the Rev. James O’Kane. 12mo, pp. xiv., 471.

    --Lives of the Saints, with a Practical Instruction on the Life
    of each Saint. By Rev. F. X. Weninger, D.D., S.J. Part III.
    8vo, pp. 144.

    --Recollections of the Last Four Popes and of Rome in their
    Times. By His Eminence Cardinal Wiseman. 12mo, pp. 487.

    From APPLETON & CO., New York: John Dorrien. By Julia Kavanagh.
    12mo, pp. 500.

    From the OFFICERS: Proceedings of the General Theological
    Library for the year ending April 26, 1875. 8vo, pp. 49.

    From K. TOMPKINS, New York: “Righteousness”: The
    Divinely-Appointed Rule of Life. By Philalethes. Paper, 12mo,
    pp. 75.

    From J. S. WHITE & CO., Marshall, Mich.: Mass in C. with
    Accompaniment for Piano or Organ. By Rev. H. T. Driessen.

    From GEORGE WILLIG & CO., Baltimore: Peters’ Celebrated Mass in
    D. Composed by W. C. Peters. Pp. 32.

    From D’Augutin Cote et Cie., Quebec: Annuaire de l’Université
    Laval pour l’Année Académique 1875-6. 8vo, pp. 97, xxviii.

    From The Christian Brothers’ College, Memphis: Address to the
    Graduates, June 25, 1875. By Hon. Jacob Thompson. 12mo, pp. 8.




FOOTNOTES


[1] For particulars see _Bulletin of the Catholic Union_, Jan., 1875,
which contains an admirably-prepared statement of the whole case.

[2] Italy! Italy!… Oh! that thou wert less fair or more powerful!

[3] “A slavish Italy! thou inn of grief!”--_Cary’s Dante._

[4] _Conf. of S. Aug._, b. x. ch. vi.

[5] A Sister’s Story.

[6] “Love that denial takes from none beloved.”--_Cary’s Dante, Inferno_,
canto v.

[7] Alexandrine de la Ferronnays.

[8] Madame Swetchine.

[9] We have the _eleventh_ edition of the English translation with the
title, _The Lady’s Travels into Spain_, 2 vols., London, 1808.

[10] See John Hay’s _Castilian Days_, p. 233.

[11] _Psiquis y Cupido_, two autos, refacciamento of the comedy of _Ni
Amor se libra de Amor_; _El Pintor de su Deshonra_, comedy of same name;
_El Arbol del Mejor Fruto_, _La Sibila del Oriente_; _La Vida es Sueño_,
comedy of same name; _Andromeda y Perseo_, comedy of same name; _El
Jardin de Falernia_, comedy of same name; _Los Encantos de la Culpa, el
mayor Encanto Amor_.

These, we believe, are all the _autos_ which duplicate comedies.

[12] A Mass, followed by the Benediction of the Most Holy Sacrament,
is celebrated with this intention the first Saturday of every month at
nine o’clock, in the chapel of the Barnabite Fathers at Paris, 64 Rue de
Monceau. The reader will find at the end of our second essay (_Le Pape de
Rome et les Popes de l’Eglise Orthodoxe d’Orient_. Paris: Plon) a notice
upon the “Association of prayers in honor of Mary Immaculate for the
return of the Greco-Russian Church to Catholic Unity,” with the documents
relating to it.

[13] “It is not for naught that the Russians have preserved among the
treasures of their faith the _cultus_ of Mary; it is not for naught that
they invoke her, that they believe in her Immaculate Conception, without,
perhaps, knowing it, and that they celebrate its festival.… Yes, Mary
will be the bond which shall unite the two churches, and which will make
of all those who love her a people of brethren, under the fraternity of
the Vicar of Jesus Christ” (_Ma Conversion et ma Vocation_, par le Père
Schouvaloff, Barnabite, II. part, §9, Paris, Douniol, 1859).

[14] She chose S. Rose of Lima for her patron, and took her name at
confirmation.

[15] The day of burial.

[16] See _Louis XVII., sa Vie, sa Mort, son Agonie_, par M. de
Beauchesne, published 1852.

[17] Materia quandoque est sub una forma, quandoque sub alia, per se
autem nunquam potest esse; quia, quum in ratione sua non habeat aliquam
formam, non potest esse in actu (quum esse in actu non sit nisi a forma),
sed solum in potentia; et ideo quidquid est in actu non potest dici
materia prima.--Opusc. _De Principiis Naturæ_.

[18] Quia materia est potentia tantum, ideo est una numero, non
per unam formam quam habeat, sed per remotionem omnium formarum
distinguentium.--In 1 sent., dist. 2, q. 1, a. 1, ad 3m.

[19] Forma accidentalis advenit subjecto jam præexistenti in actu; forma
autem substantialis non advenit subjecto jam præexistenti in actu, sed
existenti in potentia tantum, scilicet materiæ primæ.--In Arist. _De
Anima_, lib. 2, lect. 1.

[20] Hæc est vera natura materiæ, ut scilicet non habeat actu aliquam
formam, sed sit in potentia ad omnes.--In Arist. _Metaph._, 1, lect. 12.

[21] Materia prima est potentia pura, sicut Deus est actus purus.--_Sum.
Theol._, p. 1, q. 115, a. 1, ad 2m.

[22] Ut enim ad statuam æs, vel ad lecticam lignum, vel ad aliud quidpiam
corum quæ formam habent, materia et quod forma caret se habet priusquam
formam acceperit, sic ipsa ad substantiam se habet et ad id quod est hoc
aliquid, atque ens.--_Physic._, lib. 1.

[23] Materia prima est in omnibus corporibus.--_Sum. Theol._, p. 1, q. 8,
a. 4.

[24] Oportet ponere etiam materiam primam creatam ab universali causa
entium, … sed non quod sit creata sine forma.--_Ibid._, q. 44, a. 2.

[25] Quod autem materia prima remaneat actu post formam, non est nisi
secundum actum alterius formæ.--_Contra Gent._, lib. 2, c. 81.

[26] Id communiter materia prima nominatur, quod est in genere
substantiæ ut potentia quædam intellecta præter omnem speciem et formam,
et etiam præter privationem; quæ tamen est susceptiva formarum et
privationum.--_De Spirit. Creaturis_, art. 1. We can hardly conceive how
the matter thus abstracted from all forms can be understood to remain
“not under privations.” When we conceive the matter without any form, we
conceive it as _deprived_ of all forms. The thing is evident. Materia
absque forma intellecta cum privatione etiam intelligitur, says S. Thomas
himself, _De Potentia_, q. 4., a. 1.

[27] Terra autem ipsa quam feceras, informis materies erat, quia
invisibilis erat et incomposita … de qua terra invisibili et incomposita,
de qua informitate, de quo pene nihilo faceres hæc omnia quibus iste
mutabilis mundus constat.--_Confess._, lib. 12 c. 8.

[28] Augustinus accipit informitatem materiæ pro carentia omnis formæ; et
sic impossibile est dicere quod informitas materiæ tempore præcesserit
vel formationem ipsius vel distinctionem. Et de formatione quidem
manifestum est. Si enim materia informis præcessit duratione, hæc erat
jam in actu; hoc enim creatio importat. Creationis enim terminus est ens
actu; ipsum autem quod est actus, est forma. Dicere igitur, materiam
præcedere sine forma, est dicere ens actu sine actu, quod implicat
contradictionem.--_Sum. Theol._, p. 1, q. 66, a. 1.

[29] Informe appellabam non quod careret forma, sed quod talem haberet,
ut, si appareret, insolitum et incongruum aversaretur sensus meus,
et conturbaretur infirmitas hominis. Verum illud quod cogitabam, non
privatione omnis formæ, sed comparatione formosiorum erat informe:
et suadebat vera ratio ut omnis formæ qualescumque reliquias omnino
detraherem, si vellem prorsus informe cogitare; et non poteram. Citius
enim non esse censebam quod omni forma privaretur, quam cogitabam quiddam
inter formatum et nihil, nec formatum, nec nihil, informe prope nihil.
Et cessavit mens mea interrogare hinc spiritum meum plenum imaginibus
formatorum corporum et eas pro arbitrio mutantem atque variantem; et
intendi in ipsa corpora, eorumque mutabilitatem altius inspexi, qua
desinunt esse quod fuerant, et incipiunt esse quod non erant; eorumdemque
transitum de forma in formam per informe quiddam fieri suspicatus sum,
non per omnino nihil; sed nosse cupiebam, non suspicari. Et si totum
tibi confiteatur vox et stilus meus, quidquid de ista quæstione enodasti
mihi, quis legentium capere durabit? Nec ideo tamen cessabit cor meum
dare tibi honorem et canticum laudis de iis quæ dictare non sufficit.
Mutabilitas enim rerum mutabilium ipsa capax est formarum omnium in quas
mutantur res mutabiles. Et hæc quid est? Numquid animus? numquid corpus?
numquid species animi vel corporis? Si dici posset “Nihil aliquid,” et
“Est non est,” hoc eam dicerem; et tamen jam utcumque erat, ut species
caperet istas visibiles et compositas.--_Confess._, lib. 12, c. 6.

[30] Tu enim, Domine, fecisti mundum de materia informi, quam fecisti de
nulla re pene nullam rem.--_Confess._, lib. 12, c. 8.

[31] Licet essentia, qua res denominatur ens, non sit tantum forma,
nec tantum materia, tamen hujusmodi essentiæ sola forma suo modo est
causa.--_De Ente et Essentia_, c. 2.

[32] Etiam formæ non habent esse, sed composita habent esse per
eas--_Sum. Theol._, p. 1, q. 5, a. 4.

[33] Nec forma substantialis completam essentiam habet; quia in
definitione formæ substantialis oportet quod ponatur, id cujus est
forma.--_De Ente et Essentia_, c. 5.

[34] Creationis terminus est ens actu; ipsum autem quod est actus est
forma.--_Sum. Theol._, p. 1, q. 66, a. 1.

[35] This article is reprinted, with the author’s permission, from
advance sheets of a pamphlet published by Basil Montagu Pickering,
London.--ED. C. W.

[36] S. Matthew xviii. 8.

[37] Thomas à Kempis, book iii. c. 3.

[38] Genesis xvii. 1.

[39] Psalm xlv. 11.

[40] Psalm xxxiii. 9.

[41] 1 Corinth. iii. 16.

[42] Philip. ii. 13.

[43] Psalm ciii. 30.

[44] January 15, 1872. This, and the subsequent quotations of the words
of Pius IX. are taken from _Actes et Paroles de Pius IX._ Par Auguste
Roussel. Paris: Palmé. 1874.

[45] _Traite du S. Esprit_, par Mgr. Gaume, 1864.

[46] January 22, 1871.

[47] De Maistre, _Soirées de St. Petersburg_, Xe Soirée.

[48] S. Matt. xvi. 18.

[49] 1 Timothy iii. 15.

[50] Psalm lxvi. 5.

[51] S. Paul’s Epistle to the Romans, xi. 23.

[52] Encyclical to the German bishops, 1854.

[53] January 24, 1872.

[54] _History of the Conflict between Religion and Science._ By John W.
Draper. New York: D. Appleton & Co. 1874.

[55] The metrical translations used in this article are substantially
those of Mr. D. F. MacCarthy, whose works have been noticed before.
We cannot refrain from again expressing our admiration and wonder at
the successful manner in which he has overcome difficulties almost
insuperable, and which no one can appreciate until he has himself
attempted to translate Spanish _asonantes_ into corresponding English
verse.

[56] We have already spoken of Spanish _asonante_ rhyme and the
difficulty of its translation into corresponding English verse.

For those who are unacquainted with Spanish prosody the following
explanation of what the _asonante_ is may not be amiss.

Assonance consists simply in the similarity of the final, or last two
vowels in the line, _e. g._, _luna_, _juzoa_, _culpas_, _gula_, _suma_.
These all are considered to rhyme because they have the same vowels,
_u-a_; _honor_, _sol_, _hoy_, _dió_, _cuatro_, are examples of single
_asonantes_ in _o_.

Dean Trench calls this the “ghost and shadow of a rhyme.” How well Mr.
MacCarthy has succeeded in reproducing it the reader can see in the
above extract. The _asonantes_ in the original are _u-a_, for which Mr.
MacCarthy has substituted _u-e_.

[57] See Daniel, chap. v. 10, 11.

[58] Dico ergo primo: Materia prima ex se, et non intrinsece a forma,
habet suam entitatem actualem essentiæ, quamvis non habeat illam nisi cum
intrinseca habitudine ad formam.--_Disp. Metaph._ 13, sect. 4, n. 9.

[59] Dico secundo: Materia prima etiam habet in se et per se entitatem,
seu actualitatem, existentiæ distinctam ab existentia formæ, quamvis
illam habeat dependenter a forma.--_Ibid._ n. 13.

[60] Subjectum secundum privationem.--Arist. 8. _Metaph._, n. 1.

[61] Si enim materia prima haberet aliquam formam propriam, per eam esset
aliquid actu; et sic, quum superinduceretur alia forma, non simpliciter
materia per eam esset, sed fieret hoc vel illud ens; et sic esset
generatio secundum quid, et non simpliciter. Unde omnes ponentes primum
subjectum esse aliquod corpus, ut aërem et aquam, posuerunt generationem
idem esse quod alterationem.--_In 8. Metaph._, lect. 1.

[62] Cardinal Tolomei, who was not only a well-read man, but also
a peripatetic at heart, candidly confesses that the peripatetic
view of generation has never been substantiated. “Depend upon it,”
says he, “either no sound argument can be adduced in proof of the
peripatetic system, and we must, accordingly, simply postulate it; or,
if any proof can be adduced, it consists in the sole argument from
authority.” Crede mihi; vel solidi nihil afferri potest pro systemate
peripatetico adstruendo, adeoque simpliciter erit postulandum; vel unico
a nobis allecto argumento (auctoritatis) satis est roboris ad ipsum
confirmandum.--_Phil. Mentis et Sensuum_, diss 8, phys. gen. concl. 2.
And speaking of the argument drawn from substantial changes, he declares
it to be a mere sophism: Est mera petitio principii, et æquivocatio inter
materiam primam ab omnibus philosophis admissam, et materiam primam
Aristotelicam.--_Ibid._ See Tongiorgi, _Cosmol._, lib. 1, c. 2, n. 42 et
seq.

[63] On the difference between substantial and essential forms, see THE
CATHOLIC WORLD, November, 1873, p. 190.

[64] _Summa Theol._, p. 1, q. 76, a. 4.

[65] Vera corpora, quæ nimirum substantiæ sunt, et non aggregata
substantiarum, componuntur quoad essentiam ex materia et forma
substantiali.--Liberatore, _Metaph. Special._, p. 1, n. 53.

[66] Hominis ergo compositio ex materia et forma substantiali ostendit,
esse in rebus naturalibus quoddam subjectum naturale natura sua aptum ut
informetur actu aliquo substantiali; ergo tale subjectum imperfectum et
incompletum est in genere substantiæ; petit ergo esse semper sub aliquo
actu substantiali.--Suarez, _Disp. Metaph._ 15, sect. 1, n. 7.

[67] This reason is given by Suarez: “<DW25> constat forma substantiali ut
intrinseca causa.… Nam anima rationalis substantia est et non accidens,
ut patet, quia per se manet separata a corpore, quum sit immortalis; est
ergo per se subsistens et independens a subjecto. Non ergo est accidens,
sed substantia”--_Disp. Metaph._ 15, sect. 1, n. 6.

[68] Hæc paritas est innumeris affecta disparitatibus, quantum
videlicet interest inter animam rationalem, spiritualem, per se
subsistentem, immortalem, et entitates quasdam corporeas, corruptibiles,
incompletas.--_Loc. cit._

[69] See Tongiorgi, _Cosmol._, lib. i. c. 2, n. 35.

[70] THE CATHOLIC WORLD, April, 1875.

[71] See THE CATHOLIC WORLD, February, 1874, p. 584.

[72] See “Le Courrier Russe,” by M. J. Martinov, from which the present
article is in great part an abridged translation, _Revue des Questions
Historiques_ for April, 1874.

[73] It was on the 19th of February, 1861, that the Emancipation of the
Serfs was proclaimed.

[74] _Rousskaïa Istoria v jizneopisaniakh ïeïa glavneïchikh
predstavitelaei._

[75] The _Væringer_, or Varangians, were a people of Scandinavian race
who had settled in Neustria, which owes to them its name of Normandy.
Many of these warriors were invited into Sclavonia by the Novogorodians
to defend their northern frontier against the incursions of the Finns;
but some years later, in 862, Rurik, their chief, took possession of
Novogorod, assuming the title of Grand Prince. Others of the same race
established themselves at Kiev, in the year 864.

[76] The Countess Boutourlin and her sister, the Countess Virenzov.

[77] _Drevniaïa russkaïa istoria do Mongolskago iga._ Moscow: 1871.

[78] Amongst these may be named the _Historic Papers of Arseniev_, those
of _Catherine II._, and the _Marquis de Chétardie_, French Ambassador at
the court of Elizabeth, and in particular the very interesting work on
_Learning and Literature in Russia under Peter II._

[79] _Prikhodsokoïe doukhovenstvo so vremeni reformy Petra I._ Kazan:
1873.

[80] See also _The Russian Clergy_. By Father Gagarin, S.J. London: 1872.

[81] See p. 610.

[82] The Ruthenians, or Ruthenes, are a people of Sclavonic race
inhabiting the province of Servia. The Ruthenian or Servian alphabet is
also called “the Alphabet of S. Cyril.”

[83] _Istoria vozsoïedineniïa zapadnorouskikh ouniatov starykh vremen._
Petersburg: 1873.

[84]

    “E’en thus the Romans, when the year returns
    Of Jubilee, with better speed to rid
    The thronging multitudes, their means devise
    For such as pass the bridge; that on one side
    All front toward the castle, and approach
    S. Peter’s fane, on the other towards the mount.”

    --_Cary’s Translation._

[85]

                        “Like a wight,
    Who haply from Croatia wends to see
    Our Veronica and the while ’tis shown,
    Hangs over it with never-sated gaze,
    And, all that he hath heard revolving, saith
    Unto himself in thought: ‘And didst thou look
    E’en thus, O Jesus, my true Lord and God?
    And was this semblance thine?’”

    --_Cary’s Translation._

[86] _The Greville Memoirs._ A Journal of the Reigns of King George IV.
and King William IV. By Charles C. F. Greville, Clerk of the Council to
those Sovereigns. Edited by H. Reeve, Registrar of the Privy Council. New
York: Appleton & Co. 1875.

_Mémoires du Duc de Saint-Simon sur le siècle de Louis XIV. et la
Régence._ Paris: 1858.

[87] This notice is taken in part from the French of Henry Hoisnard and
other sources.

[88] “Preach the Word, be instant in season, out of season.”--2 Tim. iv.
ii.

[89] “And the dragon was angry against the woman.”--Apoc. xii. 17.

[90] The age of some of the “children” in this institution actually runs
up to twenty and even twenty-one.

[91] Possibly the superintendent, Mr. Israel C. Jones, and such as
he, have had much to do with bringing about this magnificent result.
Their course of treatment of the unfortunate children committed to
their care is sufficiently well known to many of our readers. Here is
a picture of Mr. Jones and his associate reformers, painted by his
own hand, and exhibited to the public gaze in a court of justice. It
occurred during the trial of Justus Dunn, an inmate of the Institution
for the Reformation of Juvenile Delinquents, for the killing of Samuel
Calvert, one of the keepers. In his cross-examination Mr Jones testified
respecting various modes of punishment used in the institution. One was
as follows: “I know of Ward being tied up by the thumbs. (The witness
described this mode of punishment.) In the tailor’s shop there is an
iron column five inches in diameter; around the top of that was placed a
small cord, and another small cord was run through it, and dropped down;
_the boys’ thumbs were put into the ends and drawn up until the arms were
extended_, but their feet were not moved.

“By Judge Bedford: How long were they kept in that position? A. From
three, perhaps to eight minutes. To Mr Howe: I tried the effect upon
myself; it was an idea that struck me to deal with that particular class
of boys. I think seven, not to exceed eight, boys were punished in this
way. I was present during the punishment of one of the boys part of the
time. I went out of the room.

“By Judge Bedford: You do not know of your own knowledge whether they
were raised from the ground? A. Not of my own knowledge.

“By Mr. Howe: You saw the boys put up by this small whip-cord? A. Yes,
sir.

“Q. And you would leave the room when they were spliced up? A. Yes, sir;
I stepped out of the room once or twice. I have seen boys beaten with
a rattan, but not so severely as to be able to count the welts by the
blood.”

There is much more of the same character, but the extract given is
enough to show the means adopted in this estimable institution and by
this eminently pious superintendent for the reformation of juvenile
delinquents. It is like reading again the pages of another but an earlier
Reformation.

[92] This answer was actually made not long ago to a Catholic priest by a
Protestant clergyman.

[93] How now!

[94] Light of the moon.

[95] Some codices have XXXV.

[96] During the residence of the popes at Avignon, and afterwards until
about the time of the Council of Trent, it was usual to call cardinals
by the name of their native places or of their dioceses, as the Cardinal
of Gaeta (Cajetan), the Cardinal of Toledo. This was the case at first
possibly because the cardinals were not very familiar with their titles
on the banks of the Tiber, which many of them never saw, and may have
been kept up afterwards when the popes returned to Rome, in some degree
by that love of grand nomenclature which characterized the age of the
revival of letters. It requires sometimes no little search to discover
the _real_ name of one who is called in history, for instance, the
Cardinal of S. Chrysogonus (Cardinalis Sancti Chrysogoni) or the Cardinal
of Pavia (Cardinalis Papiensis).

The present style has long been to call cardinals by their family names;
but if these be ancient or memorable ones, there is a recognized form of
Latinization not to be departed from. Thus, to give an example, the late
Cardinal Prince Altieri was in Latin Cardinalis de Alteriis.

[97] Those who use the Roman _Ordo_ in saying the Office will have
remarked how constantly the expression _Mense decembri_ occurs in the
lessons of the earlier pope-saints as the season at which they held one
or more ordinations. These ordinations thought worthy of being recorded
were only those of cardinals.

[98] Cenni gives it as here from a precious Veronese MS.; but Gratian,
in the _Decretum_ (dist. 79, can. 5), read _filiorum_; yet this does not
materially alter the text.

[99] Stand bravely.

[100]

    Jesus, thou didst labor,
    Aid us in our toil!

[101]

    Jesus! thou art the Good Shepherd;
      Thy flock, it is the sinner;
    Guard it from the wolf infernal
      And every kind of evil!

[102] _Vie du Frère Philippe._ Par M. Poujoulat. Tours: Mame et Fils.

[103] Letter of March 17, 1766.

[104] Ibid., April 1, 1766.

[105] Ibid., April 17, 1766.

[106] _Géométrie Pratique appliquée au dessin Linéaire._

[107] The article is as follows: “Primary instruction comprises moral
and religious teaching, reading, writing, the elements of the French
language, arithmetic, and the legal system of weights and measures; to
which may also be added arithmetic applied to practical operations,
the elements of history and geography, some acquaintance with physical
science and natural history applicable to the requirements of life,
elementary instruction in agriculture, manufactures and hygiene,
land-surveying, levelling, linear drawing, singing, and gymnastics.”

[108] From the MS. _Journey of the Lady Anne of Cleves_, in the State
Paper Office.

[109] The first was Catherine of Aragon; the second Jane Seymour; the
third Anne of Cleves. Between the first and second came Anne Boleyn, who
was never his _wife_; and after the third came two more queens, Catherine
Howard and Catherine Parr, neither of whom lays claim to the title of
wife, as Anne outlived him for many years.

[110] See Moreri and De Thou.

[111] State Papers.

[112] This essay, by the Rev. Henry Formby, published in England in
1849, has been many years out of print. We lay it before our readers
with the kind permission of the author, being assured that those who are
interested in the subject of which it treats will be glad to obtain an
opportunity to peruse it.--ED. C. W.

[113] Mgr. Parisis, Bishop of Langres, speaks thus of its importance:
“Far, then, from thinking that, in occupying ourselves with it, we
derogate from the sanctity of our ministry, we consider ourselves to be
performing an imperious duty and to be providing for an urgent necessity”
(_Instruction pastorale sur le Chant de l’Eglise_).

[114] The Roman chant exists in two principal collections: the _Gradual_,
which contains the Order of the Celebration of Mass throughout the year;
and the _Antiphonale_, which contains the chant for the canonical hours.
These usually form two large folio volumes. Besides these there are
smaller collections, the Rituale and Processionale, Hymnarium, etc.

[115] _Fundamental Philosophy_, lib. iii. c. 11.

[116] _De Divinis Perfectionibus_, lib. ii, c. 2.

[117] _Fundamental Philosophy_, lib. iii. c. 12, n. 82.

[118] _Ibid._, n. 83.

[119] THE CATHOLIC WORLD, January, 1875, p. 487.

[120] THE CATHOLIC WORLD, August, 1874, p. 583.

[121] This objection is taken from Dmowski’s _Cosmology_, n. 34.

[122] The phrase “space is mensurable” is common, but it is not strictly
correct; for it is not absolute space, but only the intervals or
distances (which are relations in space) that are really mensurable,
as we shall see in our next article. Yet, as the phrase was used in
the objection, we kept it in our answer, on the ground that, although
absolute space is not formally mensurable in itself, it is the reason
of the mensurability of all intervals arising from its extrinsic
terminations.

[123] Ipsa enim immensitas divinæ substantiæ et sibi et mundo sufficiens
est spatium, et intervallum capax omnis naturæ creabilis, tam corporalis,
quam spiritualis. Sicut enim essentia divina est primæva essentia, origo
et fundamentum omnis essentiæ et entis conceptibilis, ita immensitas
divina est primum et intimum intervallum, seu spatium, origo omnis
intervalli, et spatium omnium spatiorum, locus omnium locorum, sedes
et basis primordialis omnis loci et spatii.--_Lessius, De Divinis
Perfectionibus_, lib. ii., c. 2.

[124] _Philos. Fundament._, c. xvi. n. 113.

[125] _Ibid._, c. xvii. n. 119, 120.

[126] THE CATHOLIC WORLD, January, 1875, p. 487.

[127] Childishness.

[128] The Chevalier Gaetano Moroni is a gentleman of the bedchamber to
the present Pope. His farraginous work in one hundred and three volumes,
is an inexhaustible source of ecclesiastical erudition; but as Niebuhr
said of Cancellieri’s writings, these large octavos contain some things
that are important, many things that are useful, and everything that is
superfluous.

[129] _Relazione della corte di Roma._ The best edition is that published
at Rome in 1774, with notes by the learned Jesuit, F. A. Zaccaria.

[130] This strange proceeding of the belted custodian of the conclave
is confirmed by a document which was issued by the cardinals on the
8th of June--“In palatio discooperto episcopatus Viterbiensis” (Macri,
_Hierolexicon_).

[131] Our English distinction of Very, Right, and Most Reverend is
unknown in good Latin. _Admodum Reverendus_ is barbarous and repudiated
by the _stylus curiæ_.

[132] Betrayed his uncle Paul IV., was tried by eight of his peers and
condemned to death.

[133] Abused the confidence of Benedict XIII.; condemned by Clement XII.
to a fine of two hundred thousand crowns, to loss of all dignities, and
ten years’ imprisonment.

[134] He purged himself and was reinstated in the cardinalate; seems to
have been more of a dupe than a rogue.

[135] Deprived of his dignity by Pius VI. on Sept. 21, 1791, for taking
the schismatical civil oath of the French clergy.

[136] After the battle of Gravelotte, the Christian Brothers carried
eight thousand wounded from that sanguinary field.

[137] See _Les Frères des Ecoles chrétiennes pendant la Guerre de
1870-71_, par J. d’Arsac.

[138] See _Vie du Frère Philippe_, p. 296.

[139] “Forma erigendi seminarium clericorum:”--“Ut vero in eadem
disciplina ecclesiastica commodius instituantur, tonsura statim
atque habitu clericali semper utentur; grammatices, cantus computi
ecclesiastici, aliarumque bonarum artium disciplinam discent,”
etc.--_Concilium Tridentinum_: Sessio XXIII. de Reform, c. 18.

[In the letters of the Holy Father Pius IX. establishing the Seminario
Pio, he ordered that the students should be taught Gregorian Chant, and
no other. “Cantus Gregorianus, omni alio rejecto, tradetur.”--ED. C. W.]

[140] The approbation of the Missa Papæ Marcelli was based upon the fact
that the music most nearly approached in gravity to the ecclesiastical
song, not that it was better.

[141] It may not be unworthy of remark that the composers of modern
church music have uniformly thought a different style of composition
becoming, whenever occasion required the introduction of a _sham prayer_
into their operas; as may be seen in Mozart’s chorus of Egyptian priests
in the _Zauberflöte_, and many other similar instances. To real prayer,
and to the true adorable sacrifice, it is the operatic effects that are
exclusively dedicated, as in Mozart’s No. XII. and Haydn’s No. II.

[142] The following anecdote is told in the Breviary lections of S. Felix
of Valois, founder of the Congregation of the Most Holy Trinity for the
Redemption of Captives (his day occurs the 20th of November):

“S. Felix received a remarkable favor from the Blessed Virgin Mother.
All the brethren remaining asleep, and, by the disposition of God, not
rising for the celebration of Matins, which were to have been recited
at midnight on the Vigil of the Blessed Mother’s Nativity, Felix awoke,
as was his custom, and entering into the choir before the time, found
there the Blessed Virgin herself, clothed in a habit marked with the
cross of the order, and in company with a number of angels habited in
the same manner. Felix, taking his place amongst them, sang through and
finished the entire Office, the Blessed Mother herself acting the part of
precentor.”--_Breviarium Romanum._

This is but one specimen, among the many others which are to be found in
church history, of the light in which angels and saints regard the chant
of the Ritual.

[143] Mgr. Parisis continues: “My dear friends and brethren, we have
ourselves never precisely seen these sweet days of the faith; but in our
very early youth we seem to have caught, as it were, their last twilight;
we well remember that the sounds which first caught our ear were the
sweet melodies of the Liturgy, and during that Reign of Terror when they
were banished from the churches, we bless God with all our heart on
recollecting the holiday evenings when we were rewarded by being allowed
to sing with the family the touching mysteries of the Divine Son of Mary,
at one time in the language of the Church, at another in the well-known
tongue of our religious ancestors.”

[144] It is a fashion to despise _unison singing_; yet the highest
authorities in the church have given it their decided preference. The
Pontiffs John XXII. and Benedict XIV. have recommended unison singing
to the whole church as the fittest; Abbot Gerbert and Cardinal Bona
recognize its superiority; Mgr. Parisis says, “We speak here exclusively
of _unison singing, because it is this that best suits the church_.”
Conceit and fashion may be and most probably are at the bottom of such
a feeling of contempt; and of course where the singing is confined to
a limited number, individuals will naturally wish for an opportunity
of displaying their own little talent. “Omnium hominum,” is Guido of
Arezzi’s experience, “fatuissimi cantores.” S. Bernard says: “That new
canticle, which it will be given to virgins alone to sing in the kingdom
of God, there is no one who doubts but that the Queen of Virgins herself
will be the first to sing; and I think that, besides that song peculiar
to virgins, and which is common to her with others, she will delight
the city of God with some still sweeter and more beautiful song, the
exquisite melody of which no other virgin will be found worthy to sing,
save her only who may boast of having given birth, and that to God” (II.
Homily on _Missus est Gabriel_). Now the song here spoken of will be in
_unison_.

[145] The Empress Catherine of Russia, as well as the King of Denmark,
was in the habit of sending every year for a supply of these pears. They
are in less demand now, like many other things once valued.

[146] We were shown some of these curious boxes at S. Oren’s Priory.
The straw of different colors is woven in figures, giving the effect of
a kind of mosaic, or cloth of gold, according to the quality. The nuns
formerly made candlesticks for the altar in this way, which were both
unique and beautiful.

[147] There are in the canton 47,868 Catholics, of whom 25,000 are
foreigners; and 43,639 Protestants, of whom only 9,000 are foreigners. So
that the Protestant electors numbered 10,000 against 16,000.

[148] Waiter.

[149] On the relative modes see THE CATHOLIC WORLD for May, 1874, p. 179.

[150] This same subject has been developed under another form in THE
CATHOLIC WORLD for January, 1875, p. 495 _et seq._

[151] Which is still extant.

[152] The following is another interesting passage from a fragment of
Kirke White:

    “Hark, how it falls! and now it steals along,
      Like distant bells upon the lake at eve,
    When all is still; and now it grows more strong,
      As when the choral train their dirges weave,
    Mellow and many-voic’d; where every close
    O’er the old minster-roof in echoing waves reflows.

    “Oh! I am rapt aloft. My spirit soars
      Beyond the skies, and leaves the stars behind.
    Lo! angels lead me to the happy shores,
      And floating pæans fill the buoyant wind.
    Farewell! base earth, farewell! my soul is freed;
    Far from its clayey cell it springs.”

It is remarkable, also, that Goethe represents Faust as in the very act
of swallowing poison, to escape from the miseries of life, when the song
of an Easter hymn, sung in procession, falls upon his ear, and charms
away the thought of suicide.

[153] Vol i. p. 250.

[154] _Leaders of Public Opinion in Ireland_, p. 120.

[155]

    Hac arte Pollux et vagus Hercules
    Euisus arces attigit igneas.--_Hor._ Carm. iii. 3.

[156] We are indebted for the principal portion of the events mentioned
in this sketch to the beautiful narrative lately published by the Rev.
Giovanni Spillmann, S.J.

[157] The words _soulier_ and _savate_ mean _shoe_, and _old shoe_.

[158] The arms of Lourdes consist of three golden towers, the central
one bearing an eagle with a silver trout in its mouth, referring to the
legend of the fish brought by an eagle during the siege and dropped on
the highest point of the castle, still known as the _Pierre de l’Aigle_.
Mirat hastened to send it to Charlemagne as a proof his _vivier_ still
furnished good fish.

Bernard, Count of Bigorre, with his wife Clémence, went on a pilgrimage
to Notre Dame de Puy in the year 1062, and there consecrated himself and
his province to the Virgin, in presence of the chapter and many lords,
among whom was Arnaud Guillaume de Barbazan. Moreover, he agreed to pay
her a tribute of sixty sols annually.

[159] In the archives of the Tower of London we read: “No. 9 de
concedendo Joanni de Bearn armigero, custodiam castri de Lourdes et
patriæ de Bigorre, nec non officium senescalciæ; de Bigorre, teste Rege,
Westminster, 20 Januarii, 1383.”

[160] The poet Musset thus sings of the Artist-Princess:

                    “Ce naïf génie
    Qui courait à sa mère au doux nom de Marie,
    Sur son œuvre chéri, penchant son front rêveur
    A la fille des champs qui sauva sa Patrie
    Prête sa piété, sa grace et sa pudeur.”--

                    “This simple genius,
    Who, at the sweet name of Marie, to her mother ran--
    To the daughter of the fields, the deliverer of her country,
    Lends her own piety, modesty, and grace.”

[161] The writer is indebted to M. l’Abbé Huot for portions of the
foregoing.

[162] By the help of God and S. Peter, I swear to be good and loyal to
the town; to seek its welfare and avert all evil; to take counsel in
doubt, do justice to the small as well as the great; as former mayors
have done, and better if I know. So help me God and S. Peter.

[163] Article--“Dominique de Gourgues.”

[164] This church was sacked and burned by the Huguenots. De Gourgues can
hardly have sympathized with the destroyers of his mother’s tomb, to say
nothing of several generations of ancestors.

[165] See Letters of Charles IX., Catherine de Médicis, and M. de
Fourquevaulx ambassador at Madrid, published by the Marquis Duprat.

[166] Evidently for ship provisions.

[167] “Letter of the Bishop of Orleans to the Catholic
Committee.”--_Univers_, January 7, 1872.

[168] See the number of February, 1875--“Education on the Radical Plan.”

[169] Laboulaye’s measure concerning higher instruction. The reporter
recognizes in it the right of families themselves to choose tutors for
their children, and also the right of associations formed with the view
of instruction.

[170] A recent speech delivered at Belleville by the leader of French
liberalism, M. Gambetta, gives a sufficiently exact idea of this kind of
civil constitution. See the political journals of April 26, 1875.

[171] _Ancienne et nouvelle discipline de l’Eglise touchant les bénéfices
et les bénéficiers_, 2ᵉ part., liv. ii. ch. 26, 27; 3ᵉ part., liv. ii.
ch. 18-23.

[172] _Conc. Trid._, sess. xxii. _de reform._, cap. 18.

[173] “Quæ omnia, atque alia ad hanc opportuna et necessaria, episcopi
singuli, cum consilio duorum canonicorum seniorum et graviorum, quos
ipsi elegerint, prout Spiritus Sanctus suggesserit, constituent; eaque
ut semper observentur, sæpius visitando, operam dabunt.”--_Conc. Trid._,
loc. cit.

[174] “Pietas ad omnia utilis est, pro missionem habens vitæ quæ nunc
est, et futuræ.”--1 Tim. iv. 8.

[175] _Summ. Theol._, 1. 2. q. xc., art. 3.

[176] We quote at length the remarkable passage from which these words
are quoted. It occurs in an allocution of the Holy Father to the
cardinals, delivered in the Secret Consistory, Sept. 5, 1851, in which
his Holiness announces the concordat which had recently been concluded
with the Spanish government “The great object of our solicitude was
to secure the integrity of our holy religion and to provide for the
spiritual wants of the church. Now, you will see, the concordat arranges
that the Catholic religion, with all the rights it enjoys by virtue of
its divine institution, and of rules established by the sacred canons,
should be exclusively dominant in that kingdom; every other religion
will be openly banished from it and forbidden. It is, consequently,
settled that the manner of educating and instructing the youth in all
the universities, colleges or seminaries, in all the public and private
schools, will be in full conformity with the doctrine of the Catholic
religion. The bishops and heads of dioceses, who, by virtue of their
office, are bound to labor with all their might to protect the purity
of Catholic teaching, to propagate it, to watch that the youth receive
a Christian education, will find no obstacle to the accomplishment of
those duties; they will be able, without meeting the least hindrance, to
exercise the most attentive superintendence over the schools, even the
public ones, and to discharge freely, in all its plenitude, their office
of pastor.” Is not this, in exact terms, the thesis here defended?

[177] The following proposition has been condemned by Pius IX. in his
Encyclical _Quanta cura_: “Optimam societatis publicæ rationem civilemque
progressum omnino requirere, ut humana societas constituatur et
gubernetur, nullo habito ad religionem respectu, ac si ea non existeret,
vel saltem nullo facto veram inter falsasque religiones discrimine.”

[178] Incredible as this may seem, it is nevertheless true.

[179] “Nomine loci videtur intelligi superficies realis corporis
circumdantis, non tamen secundum se solum, sed prout immobilis, hoc est,
prout est affixa tali spatio imaginario” (_De Sacr. Euch._, disp. 5,
sect. 4).

[180] Loc. cit., sect. 5, n. 123.

[181] Corpus Christi non est in hoc sacramento sicut in loco, sed per
modum substantiæ.… Unde nullo modo corpus Christi est in hoc sacramento
localiter.--_Summ. Theol._, p. 3, q. 76, a. 5.

[182] Sed contra: omnia duo loca distinguuntur ad invicem secundum
aliquam loci contrarietatem, qua sunt sursum et deorsum, ante, retro,
dextrum et sinistrum. Sed Deus non potest facere quod duo contraria sint
simul; hoc enim implicat contradictionem. Ergo Deus non potest facere
quod idem corpus localiter sit simul in duobus locis.--_Quodlib._ 3, q.
1, a. 2.

[183] A bird in hand, etc.

[184] Full title of the original publication: _Origine et Progrès de la
Mission du Kentucky_ (Etats-Unis d’Amérique). Par un Témoin Oculaire.
Prix, 1 fr. au profit de la Mission. A Paris: chez Adrien Le Clere,
Imprimeur de N. S. P. le Pape, et de S. E. Mgr. le Cardinal Archevêque de
Paris. Quai des Augustins, No. 35. 1821.

[185] And even now, for one or two dollars an acre, fertile land can
be purchased in the vast extent of country watered by the Mississippi,
the Missouri, the Arkansas, etc.--that land which Bonaparte sold to the
United States in 1801 for ten million dollars. Kentucky produces in
abundance all sorts of grain, especially corn, and also sweet potatoes,
tobacco, cotton, flax, hemp, and indigo. In the month of February the
inhabitants tap the maple tree, in order to procure a liquid which they
boil until it is reduced to syrup or sugar. The wild grape-vine grows to
the height of thirty or forty feet, but the grapes are small and the wine
acrid; moreover, Americans do not understand the culture of the vine.

[186] When it is necessary to cross a desert, or when the guide loses his
way in the forest--which is of frequent occurrence--then the missionaries
are obliged to spend the night in the woods, to sleep on the ground near
a large fire, by the light of which they read their Breviary.

[187] The city of Detroit and the church were accidentally burned
seventeen years ago. The city was afterwards rebuilt and captured by
the English, assisted by the savages, during the last war with the
United States. Since the conclusion of peace there has been a cathedral
built, to which the Sovereign Pontiff has attached an episcopal seat
in perpetuity. The missions of Michigan, Illinois, Missouri, and Post
Vincennes were then almost entirely formed of French Canadians. With
regard to all the territory mentioned in this narrative, one can consult
M. Arrowsmith, an American geographer, whose work can be found in Paris
at Dezauche’s, Rue des Noyers, No. 40.

[188] Several years previous M. Badin, after having received the vows of
a few pious persons, and having had donated to him a hundred acres of
land, had a monastery built for the same purpose; but as it was a frame
building, it was, through the carelessness of the workmen, burnt before
being completed.

[189] We here submit an extract from an English letter written the 15th
of March, 1820, by Father Fenwick to the author of this notice: “I hope
that this will find you in good health and on the point of returning
to America. It will be a great pleasure for me to see you again and to
hear from your lips the particulars of your trip. If possible, bring me
home some pictures. With gratitude would I receive some for the altars
of the Blessed Virgin and S. Joseph, as also any other church furniture
or books, such as the lives of the saints of the Order of S. Dominic
by Father Touron, the history of the miracles of the holy fathers, or
any other works on those subjects. If you saw my relative, M. J. F., I
flatter myself sufficiently to hope that you remembered me to him, and
that you laid before him the needs of my mission. We have built three
churches, and only for one of these three do we possess sufficient
ornaments and other articles necessary for divine service.”

[190] We have to-day in the United States five bishops of French origin:
Bishop Maréchal, born at Ingré, in the Diocese of Orleans, third
archbishop of Baltimore; Bishop Cheverus, of Paris, first bishop of
Boston; Bishop Flaget, born in Auvergne, bishop of Kentucky, and Bishop
David, of the Diocese of Nantes, his coadjutor; and, finally, Bishop
Dubourg, bishop of Louisiana and the Floridas, who resides in St. Louis
on the Mississippi, in the State of Missouri. The see of Philadelphia
became vacant by the death of Bishop Egan, and that of New York is
occupied by Bishop Connelly, an Irishman of the Order of S. Dominic. The
number of American bishops is continually increasing. New Orleans and
the Floridas are too far from St. Louis; the Dioceses of Baltimore and
Bardstown are too extensive; and, moreover, the number of Catholics is
daily increasing, in consequence of the immigrations from Europe and from
conversions.

[191] By his writings you can judge the man; and we can give you no
better idea of the mildness, humility, and modesty of the Bishop of
Bardstown than by inserting here extracts from several letters which he
wrote from Baltimore to his vicar-general in Kentucky. His zeal, his
disinterestedness, and his self-abnegation are equalled only by his
confidence in divine Providence: “God be my witness that I do not desire
riches; and I would a thousand times rather die than be attacked by this
craving. The less we possess, the less worried will we be with regard to
it; but there are some things necessary, and it is upon you that I depend
to procure them for me. I must rely upon the friendship which you have
for me to ask you, my dear M. Badin, henceforth to provide for my wants.
After all, you desired it; for if it had not been for you, I would never
have been made bishop. We will have eight or nine trunks filled with
books and other articles. The distance is great and transportation very
high; the trip and the transportation will cost more than 4,000 francs,
and we have not a cent. We can only wait until Providence comes to our
rescue. To lessen my expenses I will leave the servant who offers me his
services in Baltimore; and I would even leave my books there, did I not
consider them essential to our establishment. In order not to increase
your expenses I will only bring with me M. David, and we will both be but
too happy to share your mode of life, however humble it may be. If the
bishopric had only presented difficulties of this nature, I would not
have hesitated so long before accepting it. Providence calls me to it
despite myself, and it was useless for me to travel over land and sea in
order to evade this charge. All my trouble was lost. God seems to exact
it of me that I bow my head to this weighty yoke, even though it should
crush me. Alas! should I stop sufficiently long to consider my weakness
and my troubles, I would fall into despair, and hardly would I dare take
one step in the vast career that is opening before me. To reassure myself
it is necessary that I frequently recall to mind that I did not install
myself in this important post, and that all my earthly superiors in a
manner forced me to accept it.”

From Baltimore, where he had more than one hundred miles by land and
three hundred miles by water over which to travel to arrive at Bardstown,
he writes thus: “Remember that for the use of seven or eight we have
but one horse, which I destine for M. David, as he is the least active
among us. For myself and the other gentlemen, we will go on foot with
the greatest pleasure, if there is the least difficulty in travelling
otherwise. This pilgrimage will please me exceedingly, and I do not
think it derogatory to my dignity. I leave it all to your judgment, and
I would be very glad to have sufficient money to join you at Louisville;
the remainder of the journey will be entirely at your expense. That the
will of God be done, I would a thousand times prefer going on foot rather
than to cause the slightest murmur; and you did very well to recall the
subscription which had been started for my benefit, as it would only have
tended to alienate people from me. It was, however, but right that people
anxious to have a bishop among them should furnish him means to reach
them. There is nothing I would not do for the sanctification of my flock.
My time, my work, my life even, is consecrated to it; and, finally, it
will only remain for me to say that I am ‘an unprofitable servant, having
done only that which I ought to do.’”

Divine Providence, whose intervention he had merited by his zeal and his
resignation, supplied, as if by miracle, in some invisible way, the needs
of the prelate, who on the 11th of June, 1811, arrived at St. Etienne,
the residence of M. Badin, with two priests and four scholastics. There
he found the faithful on their knees singing holy canticles, the women
nearly all robed in white, and some of them still fasting, although it
was then four o’clock in the afternoon, as they hoped to assist at his
Mass and receive Holy Communion from his hands that very day. An altar
had been erected under some shrubbery to afford a shade where the bishop
might rest himself. After the Asperges he was conducted in procession to
the chapel, the Litany of the Blessed Virgin being sung meanwhile; and
then followed the ceremonies and prayers prescribed in the Pontifical
for such an occasion. M. Badin lived in a little frame house, and, in
consequence of the expenses incurred to rebuild the burned monastery
of which we have already spoken, he with difficulty was able to build
two miserable little huts, sixteen feet square, for his illustrious
friend and the ecclesiastics who accompanied him. Finally, one of the
missionaries slept on a mattress in the attic of this whitewashed
episcopal palace, whose sole furniture consisted of one bed, six chairs,
two tables, and the shelves for a library. The bishop resided here one
year, and he considered himself happy to live thus in the midst of
apostolic poverty.

[192] The Dominican Fathers, assisted by their novices, with their own
hands performed a great deal of the work on their monastery and the
beautiful church of S. Rose. Like them, the scholastics afterwards made
bricks and lime, cut the wood, etc., to build that of S. Thomas, the
seminary, and convent of Nazareth. The poverty of our establishment
forces them to devote their hours of recreation to this work. Every day
they spend three hours in gardening, in working in the fields or in the
woods. Nothing could be more frugal than their table, and that of the two
bishops is no better; pure water from a spring is their ordinary drink.
Neither could anything be more humble than their clothing--imagine fifty
poor scholastics who are obliged to cover themselves with rags, and to
borrow decent clothes with which to appear in the town.

Bishop Flaget hopes that pious and charitable persons who are not able to
send him money for his cathedral will endeavor to send clothes or books
necessary for the studies and the clothing of his beloved scholastics.

[193] Since the appointment of Bishop Dubourg to St. Louis, the too
distant mission of Illinois, which was part of the Diocese of Bardstown,
has been attended by this prelate, whose residence is in the vicinity.

[194] Eight of these buildings are brick and stone, and the others frame.

[195] Besides the bishops and the missionaries, the students and servants
in the seminaries and convents are included in this number.

[196] Here rest the bones of Blessed Brother Claus von der Flüe, placed
here when this church was built, anno 1679.





End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Catholic World, Vol. 21, April,
1875, to September, 1875, by Various

*** 